summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/67413-0.txt21757
-rw-r--r--old/67413-0.zipbin433082 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67413-h.zipbin609482 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67413-h/67413-h.htm28511
-rw-r--r--old/67413-h/images/cover.jpgbin131016 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67413-h/images/illo003.jpgbin4879 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67413-h/images/illo004.jpgbin5262 -> 0 bytes
10 files changed, 17 insertions, 50268 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4d6b256
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #67413 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/67413)
diff --git a/old/67413-0.txt b/old/67413-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 0732e84..0000000
--- a/old/67413-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,21757 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Ecclesiastical History of England, The
-Church of the Restoration, Vol. 2 of 2, by John Stoughton
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Ecclesiastical History of England, The Church of the Restoration,
- Vol. 2 of 2
-
-Author: John Stoughton
-
-Release Date: February 16, 2022 [eBook #67413]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Emmanuel Ackerman, Karin Spence and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The
- Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY OF
-ENGLAND, THE CHURCH OF THE RESTORATION, VOL. 2 OF 2 ***
-
-
-
-
-
- ECCLESIASTICAL
-
- HISTORY OF ENGLAND.
-
- =The Church of the Restoration.=
-
- BY
-
- JOHN STOUGHTON, D.D.
-
- IN TWO VOLUMES--VOL. II.
-
- [Illustration]
-
- London:
- HODDER AND STOUGHTON,
- 27, PATERNOSTER ROW, E.C.
- MDCCCLXX.
-
- [Illustration]
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS.
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
- Popish Plot 1
-
- Titus Oates 2
-
- Coleman 3
-
- Act for Excluding Roman Catholics 10
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
- Fall of Danby 12
-
- New Parliament 13
-
- The Duke of York and the Bishops 14
-
- Archbishop Sancroft 17
-
- Dangerfield’s Plot 21
-
- Exclusion Bill 23
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
- Stillingfleet 26
-
- Howe and Tillotson 27
-
- Scheme of Comprehension 29
-
- Toleration Bill 30
-
- Oxford Parliament 31
-
- Exclusion Bill 32
-
- King’s Declaration 35
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
- Duke of Buckingham and Howe 40
-
- Men in Power--
-
- Halifax 41
-
- Rochester 43
-
- Conway and Jenkins 43
-
- Trial of Colledge 45
-
- Fall of Shaftesbury 49
-
- Persecution of Nonconformists 50
-
- Vincent 54
-
- Annesley and Bates 57
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
- Duke of Monmouth 60
-
- Royal Despotism 63
-
- Rye House Plot 64
-
- Lord Russell 65
-
- Death of Owen 70
-
- Persecution of Nonconformists--
-
- Heywood 71
-
- Rosewell 72
-
- Delaune 73
-
- Bampfield 75
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
- French Protestants 76
-
- Cabinet Meetings 82
-
- William Jenkyn 84
-
- Charles’ Court 85
-
- Scenes at Whitehall 86
-
- Death of Charles II. 87
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
- James II. 89
-
- Alterations in the Ministry 92
-
- Trial of Baxter 95
-
- Monmouth’s Rebellion 97
-
- Alicia Lisle 98
-
- Elizabeth Gaunt 99
-
- Persecution of Nonconformists 100
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
- Changes in the Cabinet 104
-
- Court Intrigues 105
-
- James’ Policy 106
-
- Declaration of Indulgence 118
-
- Penn 125
-
- Kiffin 127
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
- The Papal Nuncio 129
-
- Promotion of Romanists 131
-
- Proceedings at the Universities 132
-
- New Declaration 139
-
- The Seven Bishops 140
-
- Prosecution 149
-
- Trial 153
-
- Acquittal 155
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
- Development of Nonconformity 159
-
- Presbyterians 159
-
- Form of Church Government 160
-
- Independents 164
-
- Confession of Faith 166
-
- Baptists 171
-
- Confession of Faith 172
-
- Quakers 177
-
- Form of Church Government 178
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
- Cathedrals 180
-
- Churches 182
-
- Worship 185
-
- Ecclesiastical Revenues 190
-
- Ecclesiastical Courts 198
-
- Nonconformist Places of Worship 205
-
- Relative number of Conformists and Nonconformists 207
-
- Contrasts in Preaching 209
-
- Superstition 213
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
- Family Life amongst Nonconformists 217
-
- Family Life amongst Episcopalians 228
-
- Observance of the Sabbath 234
-
- Festivals 237
-
- Recreations 238
-
- Charities 243
-
- Missions 247
-
- Universities 250
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
- Theology 259
-
- Anglicans--
-
- Thorndike 268
-
- Bull 279
-
- Heylyn 287
-
- Taylor 289
-
- Cosin 299
-
- Morley 302
-
- Bramhall 303
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
- Anglicans--
-
- Sanderson 305
-
- Hammond 306
-
- Pearson 308
-
- Barrow 311
-
- Opinions respecting Popery 316
-
- Opinions respecting Unepiscopal Churches 318
-
- The Prayer Book 323
-
- Hooker’s Works 324
-
- Anglican Sermon Writers 328
-
- Critics 331
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
- Liberal Orthodox--
-
- Chillingworth 334
-
- Smith 336
-
- Hales 338
-
- Farindon 339
-
- Fowler 344
-
- Wilkins 348
-
- Cudworth 349
-
- Stillingfleet 352
-
- Critics--
-
- Lightfoot 353
-
- Patrick 354
-
- Science 355
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
-
- Latitudinarians 359
-
- Milton 363
-
- Biddle 365
-
- Scargill 368
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
-
- Quakers--
-
- Penn 369
-
- Barclay 377
-
- Other Mystics--
-
- Saltmarsh 380
-
- Sterry 382
-
- Sir Henry Vane 385
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
-
- Puritan Works on Evidences 386
-
- Gale 387
-
- Howe 389
-
- Owen 390
-
- Baxter 392
-
- Puritan Theology 394
-
- Thomas Goodwin 397
-
- Owen 401
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
-
- John Goodwin 406
-
- Horne 409
-
- Conyers--Lawson 410
-
- _Fur Prædestinatus_ 412
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
-
- Baxter 414
-
- Howe 421
-
- Puritan Views on Sacraments and the Ministry 430
-
- Controversy with Papists 435
-
- Ecclesiastical Controversy 437
-
- Practical Theology 442
-
- Expositors 446
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
-
- Poetry 451
-
- Hymnology 455
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
-
- Illustrations of Religious Character--
-
- Isaak Walton 468
-
- John Evelyn 471
-
- Margaret Godolphin 475
-
- Sir Matthew Hale 478
-
- Dr. Henry More 482
-
- Sir Thomas Browne 485
-
- Countess of Warwick 488
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
-
- Illustrations of Religious Character--(_Continued_)--
-
- John Burnyeat 492
-
- Joseph Alleine 494
-
- Thomas Ewins 497
-
- Owen Stockton 500
-
- Dr. Thomas Jacomb 504
-
- Sir Harbottle Grimston 505
-
- Unity of Spiritual Life 506
-
-
- APPENDIX.
-
-
- I. Letter referring to Projected Insurrection. 509
-
- II. Prayer Book attached to the Act of Uniformity. 513
-
- III. Alterations in Prayer Book in compliance
- with the Recommendation of the Puritans 521
-
- IV. Act of Uniformity 522
-
- V. Sealed Books 536
-
- VI. Number of the Ejected 538
-
- VII. Informer’s Note Book 542
-
- VIII. Accuracy of Anecdote respecting Peter Ince 544
-
- IX. Cecil, Lord Burleigh 545
-
- X. MS. respecting the Death of Charles II. 546
-
- XI. Story about Samuel Wesley 548
-
- XII. Anglican Views on the Relations of Church
- and State 549
-
- XIII. MS. Journal of Parliamentary Proceedings,
- by Lloyd, Bishop of Norwich 550
-
- XIV. Extract from MS. Vol. in the Bodleian Library
- respecting John Bunyan 555
-
- INDEX 556
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
-
-We resume the thread of our History, and return to notice the progress
-of the anti-Popish excitement.
-
-[Sidenote: 1678.]
-
-Perhaps, in the history of the civilized world, there never occurred
-a period when the passions of men were more deeply moved, than in
-the autumn of the year 1678, when England was startled from side to
-side by the following extraordinary story. The Jesuits had formed a
-project for the conversion of Great Britain to the Roman Catholic
-faith; and £10,000 had been procured to assist in carrying out their
-plans. With this project was blended a conspiracy to assassinate the
-King, who was to be poisoned by the Queen’s physician; failing which,
-he was to be shot with bullets; and, if that did not succeed, he was
-to be stabbed with a large knife. With a feeble attempt at wit it was
-said, if he would not become R.C., a Roman Catholic, he should be no
-longer C.R., Charles Rex. Twenty thousand Catholics in London were to
-rise within twenty-four hours, and cut the throats of the Protestant
-inhabitants; eight thousand were to take up arms in Scotland; and, of
-course, in Ireland the professors of the ancient religion, possessed
-of enormous influence, meant to have it all their own way. The Crown
-was to be offered to the Duke of York, upon certain conditions; and
-if James refused, then, it was elegantly said, “to pot he must
-go also.” Amongst other means certain Jesuits were instructed to
-“carry themselves like Nonconformist ministers, and to preach to the
-disaffected Scots, the necessity of taking up the sword for the defence
-of liberty of conscience.” Seditious preachers and catechists were
-to be sent out, and directed when and what to preach in private and
-public conventicles, and field meetings. The Society in London intended
-to knock on the head Dr. Stillingfleet and Matthew Pool, for writing
-against them; and Croft, Bishop of Hereford, was doomed to death as
-an apostate. A second conflagration in the City of London formed an
-element in this scheme of wholesale destruction; and, in anticipation
-of the success of the design, the Pope had prepared a list of the
-priests to succeed the Bishops and other dignitaries, who were to be so
-speedily swept away. The author of this intelligence was the notorious
-Titus Oates, who professed to have picked it up at St. Omer’s, at
-Valladolid, at Burgos, and at a tavern in the Strand, where, owing to
-his pretended conversion and zeal in the Catholic service, the Jesuits
-had entrusted him with their deepest secrets.
-
-The first communication of the story staggered everybody. The King did
-not know what to make of it. Danby, though inclined to use anything
-he could for party purposes, hardly credited this amazing revelation.
-Yet, incredible as it may appear, no means seem to have been used at
-the outset to sift the matter to the bottom.[1] Therefore the tale came
-to be looked at as credible, and, when Oates, on Michaelmas Eve, came
-before the Council, and began his unprecedented story, he found ready
-listeners. The items which he specified, with names and dates minutely
-mentioned, certainly wore a plausible appearance; and, presently, two
-circumstances occurred, which, at the time, obtained for his reports
-all but universal credence.
-
-[Sidenote: POPISH PLOT.]
-
-The first of these circumstances was the sudden death of a magistrate,
-Sir Edmondbury Godfrey, to whom Oates had made some of his statements
-before divulging the whole to the Council. This magistrate was found
-dead in a ditch near Primrose Hill, with a sword plunged in his body,
-and marks of strangulation on his neck. A cry instantly rose, and ran
-through London and the country, that Sir Edmondbury, who was famed for
-his Protestant zeal, had been murdered by the Papists on account of his
-receiving Oates’ deposition. The plot, it was argued, must be real, or
-such a deed would not have been committed by the Roman Catholics. What
-could the object of the murder be, but to take revenge on the exposers
-of the conspiracy? The next circumstance which aided the prevalent
-belief is found in the discovery of certain letters, in the handwriting
-of one Coleman, addressed to Père la Chaise--the famous Jesuit, who
-has given his name to the Cemetery at Paris--in which letters,
-unmistakable allusions occur to designs for overthrowing Protestantism
-in this country; and Coleman’s plans were at once identified with the
-plot related by Titus Oates.[2]
-
-[Sidenote: 1678.]
-
-[Sidenote: POPISH PLOT.]
-
-Believed by Parliament, not only by the Country party, but by the
-Court party as well, believed also by the Ministers of State, and
-by the dignitaries of the Church, the plot came to be regarded by
-almost everybody as an unquestionable fact. The higher circles
-would not tolerate any doubt of Oates’ veracity; even Burnet, with
-all his Protestantism, inasmuch as he hesitated to accept Oates’
-evidence, raised against himself “a great clamour:” and the Earl of
-Shaftesbury, who threw himself with all his energy and eloquence into
-the prosecution, declared “that all those who undermined the credit
-of the witnesses were to be looked on as public enemies.”[3] In the
-lower circles a conviction of the truthfulness of the accuser, and
-of the guilt of the accused, prevailed to the last degree; and the
-narrative related to the Council and the House of Commons, circulated
-amongst eager and credulous groups, in thousands of chimney corners
-during those autumn evenings. The King and the Duke of York seemed not
-to believe what other people admitted. Yet the former felt obliged to
-act as if he did. The reader who remembers the agitation attending
-the Popish aggression more than twenty years ago, must not take even
-that as a measure of the feeling awakened in 1678: perhaps nothing we
-have ever seen could be a parallel to what our fathers experienced
-at that time. Even the heavens were imagined to sympathize in the
-abounding alarm: a fog, after Godfrey’s death, gave to the day on
-which it occurred the name of _Black Sunday_; and a respectable
-Nonconformist speaks of it growing so dark, all on a sudden, about
-eleven in the forenoon, that ministers could not read their notes in
-their pulpits without the help of candles,--no uncommon occurrence,
-one would think, in the month of November. Not a house, he informs us,
-could be found unfurnished with arms, nor did anybody go to bed without
-apprehensions of something tragical which might happen before the next
-morning.[4] People gave the martyred magistrate--for so they considered
-Godfrey--a public funeral, after having for two days publicly exhibited
-his wounded remains in his own house. An immense crowd followed him to
-the grave, the corpse being preceded by seventy-two clergymen in their
-robes; and, on its arrival at the church of St. Martin’s-in-the-Fields,
-the Incumbent, Dr. Lloyd, afterwards Bishop of St. Asaph, delivered
-a sermon in honour of the slain confessor. A Protestant festival had
-long been kept on the 17th of November, Queen Elizabeth’s birthday;
-and this year an effigy of the Pope with the Devil whispering in his
-ear--and models of Godfrey’s dead body, and of Romish Bishops and
-priests in mitres and copes--were carried through the streets, to
-inflame to the highest pitch the prevalent indignation against the
-Church of Rome. Daniel Defoe was then a mere boy, and looked with
-wonder upon what passed before him; and, in after years, told how old
-City blunderbusses were burnished anew; how hats and feathers, and
-shoulder belts, and other military gear, came into fashion again; how
-the City train-bands appeared rampant, and how soldiers disturbed
-meeting-houses, even murdering people, under pretence that they would
-not stand at their command.[5] Justice, or injustice, showed itself
-swift in apprehending Roman Catholics. Two thousand suspected persons
-are said to have been imprisoned, the houses of Roman Catholics were
-searched for arms, and it is computed that as many as 30,000 recusants
-were driven to a distance of ten miles from Whitehall. Within little
-more than two months of the first whisper of the conspiracy, Stayley,
-a banker, accused of sharing in it, died on the gallows at Tyburn, and
-Coleman perished on the scaffold about a week afterwards.[6] Three more
-victims followed the next month, all of them to the last declaring
-their innocence. Oates at the same time went about dressed in gown and
-cassock, wearing a large hat with a silk band and rose, and attended by
-guards to secure him from Popish violence. Lodgings at Whitehall were
-assigned for his use; he received a pension of £1,200 per annum, and
-was welcomed at the houses of the rich and great.[7] A large number of
-pamphlets containing accounts of the plot issued from the press, whilst
-pulpits rung with impassioned declamation against Popery and rebellion.
-
-[Sidenote: 1678.]
-
-Amongst papers belonging to the Secretary of State at that period are
-memoranda of strange rumours--one that the progress in rebuilding St.
-Paul’s Cathedral was suspended, from fear lest it should become a
-Popish Church. There is also a note, that the Prince of Orange should
-be written to, or that some communication should be made to him,
-through the Ambassador at his Court, or through Sir W. Temple, to
-prevent the publication in Holland of a remonstrance, and of a hellish
-libel, “destructive to the Royal authority, and the fundamental laws
-of the nation.” The same Collection includes a letter to the Bishop of
-London from some zealous Protestant, proposing an attack on the City of
-Rome, “on that side where the Vatican Palace stands, and bringing away
-the library.”[8]
-
-[Sidenote: POPISH PLOT.]
-
-Reviewing the whole of this history, I may remark, that Titus Oates
-was an utterly worthless character, and that his statements are not
-entitled to the smallest belief. He had been an Anabaptist under
-Cromwell, had become an orthodox clergyman at the Restoration, had
-professed himself a Catholic on the Continent, had been admitted
-to Jesuit colleges, and had then abjured Popery on his return to
-England. All this while he conducted himself in so abominable a
-manner as repeatedly to incur expulsion from the positions in which
-he was placed. His tale was as absurd and incredible as his conduct
-was infamous; yet, notwithstanding this circumstance, it is by no
-means surprising that at the time, the story with its most improbable
-details should be believed--for Englishmen were filled with alarm at
-the Romanism of the Royal family, at the manifest signs of revived
-activity in this island by the Jesuits, at the obvious alliance between
-spiritual and political despotism, and at the then suspected, and to
-us, well-known intrigues which were being carried on to overthrow
-the Protestantism of this country,--and they were therefore prepared
-to be the dupes of Protestant credulity. An excitement of many years’
-accumulation now existed, and rumours and lies of all sorts were as
-sparks sprinkled over heaps of gunpowder. As we criticize the evidence
-of the plot, it will not stand for a single second. Yet, however we may
-at first smile or sneer at the matter, on second thoughts, we shall
-see that people only did what, probably, we should have done under
-the influence of strong Protestant convictions, sharpened by terrible
-memories, and goaded by equally terrible apprehensions. It would be
-monstrous enough for us now to behave as did our ancestors, but we must
-judge of their character in that emergency by the standard of their own
-age, and according to the conditions of their own circumstances.
-
-[Sidenote: 1678.]
-
-Godfrey’s death is one of those mysteries permitted by Providence to
-baffle our investigation, and to remain inscrutable secrets to the
-end of time, stimulating a belief in the revelations and judgments
-of eternity. Whichever hypothesis be adopted--that of murder or that
-of suicide--grave exceptions to it may be taken. The supposition of
-his having destroyed himself may be shown to be ridiculous, and also
-no sufficient motive for a Papist to murder him can be assigned: the
-argument, that the drops of melted wax found on the clothes of the
-dead man must have been dropped by Papists, _because_ they are so
-notorious for using wax candles, is ridiculous enough; yet, as in the
-case of the plot, so in the case of the death brought into connection
-with it, we do not wonder at the prevalent idea. All the circumstances
-and antecedents of the time, the whole spirit of the age, together with
-the tendencies of human nature, the readiness of men under a pressing
-excitement to rush to conclusions, to interpret suspicious incidents
-as demonstrations of guilt, must be taken into account as we reflect
-upon the common opinion found at that period. Believing Oates’ tale,
-and knowing both the Protestant zeal of Godfrey, and the consequences
-to the Catholics of the explosion of the plot, zealots of the day
-consistently attributed the crime of murder to the same persons to whom
-they attributed the crime of treason.[9]
-
-[Sidenote: POPISH PLOT.]
-
-After all, there was a plot, not indeed to murder the King, but to
-restore Popery. Coleman’s letters render this a fact beyond all
-question, when we find him declaring “We have here a mighty work upon
-our hands, no less than the conversion of three kingdoms, and by that
-perhaps the subduing of a pestilent heresy, which has domineered
-over great part of this northern world a long time. There never
-was such hopes of success since the death of Queen Mary, as now in
-our days.”[10] The designs and intrigues brought to light in this
-correspondence harmonize with the purpose and spirit of the treaty
-between Charles and Louis; and, therefore, we cannot wonder at the
-reluctance of Charles and his brother to enter upon an inquiry into
-the business, since however false might be the charge of contemplated
-regicide, they knew too much, not to be aware that awkward facts
-respecting French, Papal, and Jesuit schemes could be brought into
-broad daylight, by searching to the bottom of this business. And it is
-not unlikely that Oates might have heard at St. Omer’s, and at other
-places, things uttered by some disciples of Ignatius Loyola, indicating
-dark designs upon English religion and upon English liberty, which he
-exaggerated immensely, and dressed up in the most frightful colours for
-purposes of his own.
-
-[Sidenote: 1678.]
-
-Leaving this plot with its mysteries, falsehoods, and alarms, and
-turning once more to the proceedings of Parliament, we find that the
-sixteenth session opened on the 21st of October, just at the crisis
-when the storm raised by Oates had reached its height. The King’s
-speech touched lightly on the subject. Lord Chancellor Finch noticed
-it with guarded phraseology, but the House of Commons at once resolved
-upon an address for removing Popish recusants from the Metropolis,
-and having appointed a Committee to inquire into Godfrey’s murder,
-they also agreed with the Lords to request His Majesty to proclaim a
-national fast.
-
-In 1673 an Act had been passed excluding Roman Catholics from all
-places of profit and trust; now a Bill was introduced to exclude
-them from Parliament and from the Councils of the Sovereign.[11] By
-help of the existing panic, the Bill made its way with ease; and
-what is remarkable, in this measure the obligation to receive the
-sacrament is not mentioned--an omission doubtless intended for the
-benefit of Dissenters, whose sympathy and assistance were just then
-valued by persons who had been accustomed before to treat them with
-violence--but a strong declaration to the effect that Romish worship
-is idolatrous was imposed, together with the Oaths of Allegiance and
-Supremacy. When this Bill reached the House of Lords, Gunning, Bishop
-of Ely, objected to the description and treatment of Romish worship
-as idolatrous; yet his arguments on this point being met by Barlow,
-Bishop of Lincoln, Gunning--although he said he could not himself adopt
-the new declaration--after it became law, followed the example of his
-brethren.[12]
-
-[Sidenote: PARLIAMENT.]
-
-The Lords looked with little favour upon a Bill which, by disqualifying
-Papists from sitting in Parliament, would deprive some of their own
-order of hereditary rights; notwithstanding goaded by the Commons, and
-encouraged by the King, they at last without opposition passed the
-measure, providing in it an exception on behalf of the Duke of York.
-This exception displeased the Commons, who, above all things, desired
-to remove a Roman Catholic prince from the government of the country;
-and, therefore, when the Bill returned to them with its amendments, it
-had to meet the most strenuous opposition from the Country party. High
-words were followed not only, as in the Long Parliament, by storms of
-outcries and by menaces of violence, but by actual blows; and after
-a singularly angry debate, the proviso passed only by a majority of
-two, and the Royal assent was given to the whole Bill with very great
-reluctance.[13]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
-
-[Sidenote: PROTESTANT OPPOSITION.]
-
-The fall of the Earl of Danby is to be attributed to an artful
-contrivance by the French Court; which, from revenge against him for
-his real enmity, accomplished his ruin, by pretending that he was a
-friend. By means of Montague--who laid before the House of Commons
-despatches, written to him by the Minister, most unwillingly, but at
-the King’s command--Louis XIV. established against Danby, charges
-of intrigues with France for obtaining money, quite sufficient to
-extinguish for ever all the credit which he had ever had with his own
-countrymen. His plea of unwillingness to enter into his master’s policy
-with regard to France, although true, proved inadequate to save him
-from impeachment by the Commons, who acted upon the constitutional
-principle--that the King’s Ministers are responsible for what they
-perform in the King’s name. Danby, though made a victim of revenge,
-and in truth, suffering “not on account of his delinquency, but on
-account of his merits,” had put himself in such a false position, that
-Parliament could do no otherwise than demand his removal from office.
-How far the extreme step of impeachment can be justified is another
-question; and, at all events, the charge of his being Popishly affected
-is truly absurd. The accusation of his concealing the Popish plot,
-of suppressing the evidence, and of discountenancing the witnesses,
-could not be made even plausible, for though he had been sceptical at
-first respecting the story told by Oates, as any sensible man might
-well be, he had afterwards fully committed himself to the proceedings
-against the accused Papists; yet perhaps there is some truth in an
-amusing passage written by one who cherished strong prejudices against
-him:--“The Earl of Danby thought he could serve himself of this plot
-of Oates, and accordingly endeavoured at it; but it is plain that he
-had no command of the engine, and instead of his sharing the popularity
-of nursing it, he found himself so intrigued that it was like a wolf
-by the ears: he could neither hold it nor let it go, and for certain
-it bit him at last, just as when a barbarous mastiff attacks a man, he
-cries ‘poor cur,’ and is pulled down at last.”[14]
-
-The resolution of the Commons on the 19th of December, 1678, to impeach
-the Lord Treasurer, was followed by a prorogation on the 30th, and a
-dissolution on the 24th of January, 1679; this Parliament having then
-sat for the long space of eighteen years.
-
-[Sidenote: 1679.]
-
-The King immediately summoned a new Parliament, to meet at the end of
-forty days; and again, as in 1661, a general election took place under
-circumstances of immense excitement. Protestants believed the cause of
-the Reformation to be in imminent danger from the Popish tendencies
-of the King, from the avowed Romanism of the Duke of York, from the
-intrigues of France, and from the want of principle in public men.
-Therefore, multitudes rushed to the poll with the idea, that only
-by voting for unmistakable and zealous Protestants, could they save
-England from being dragged back to the condition in which she was
-found before the Reformation. Thousands of horsemen rode into cities
-and county towns to record their names in favour of the Established
-Church. People had to sleep in market-places, to lie like sheep around
-market crosses.[15] Candidates were chaired at midnight with the bray
-of trumpets and a blaze of torches; but with all this Protestant
-enthusiasm, elections could not be carried without bribery, treating,
-and corruption. Horses were demanded in proportion to the number of
-electors; there occurred an enormous consumption of beer, bread, and
-cakes at Norwich; and as for the Knight of the Shire of Surrey, “they
-ate and drank him out near to £2,000, by a most abominable custom.”[16]
-Popular candidates pledged to oppose the Court against Popery succeeded
-almost everywhere.
-
-Scarcely had the shouts which hailed these returns died away, when a
-remarkable interview took place between certain dignitaries of the
-Church and the Popish heir to the throne.
-
-As the Duke of York’s religious opinions had increasingly attracted the
-attention and excited the alarm of the nation at large, the rulers of
-the Church shared in the anxiety, and were very desirous, if possible,
-to see him reclaimed from the Roman communion. The origin of a project,
-with the view of accomplishing this purpose, is ascribed to the new
-Archbishop of Canterbury.
-
-[Sidenote: PROTESTANT OPPOSITION.]
-
-Upon the death of Sheldon, William Sancroft, at the time Prolocutor
-to the Lower House of Convocation, was elevated to the primacy, for
-reasons differently stated by different persons. Probably, in this
-case, the reason is to be found in his unambitious spirit and in his
-amiable disposition, as suggested by Dryden:
-
- “Zadoc the priest, whom, shunning power and place,
- His lowly mind advanced to David’s grace.”
-
-If it was supposed that he would become the pliant tool of the Monarch;
-events at the Revolution contradicted the idea, and the circumstances
-now to be described show that the Archbishop, after his exaltation,
-determined to act as a zealous Protestant. He, with his aged brother,
-Morley, of Winchester, and not without the consent of the King,
-obtained an audience from His Royal Highness, and delivered to him
-an address on the subject of reconversion. Sancroft spoke of the
-Church of England as most afflicted, a lily amongst thorns, bearing
-on her body the marks of the Lord Jesus--the scars of old, and the
-impressions of new wounds. But the greatest amongst the multitude of
-her sorrows was, the speaker said, that the Duke should forsake her
-fellowship, after the education which he had received, and after the
-solemn charge which his dying father gave his elder brother, touching
-the duty of everlasting fidelity to the Established Church. The Duke
-was described by the Primate as the bright morning and evening star,
-which arose and set with the sun, but he had withdrawn his light; and
-now the two Bishops, who had undertaken to plead with him in the cause
-of Protestantism, assured His Royal Highness of their intercessions on
-his behalf, and asked whether, with his noble and generous heart, he
-would throw back these prayers? They inquired, if those to whom he had
-surrendered himself, had not renounced reason and common sense, and
-really taught him to put out his own eyes, that they might lead him
-whither they would? His case did not seem hopeful to his Protestant
-advisers, yet they declared that they had too good an opinion of his
-understanding, to believe that he would sell himself at so cheap a
-rate. Nothing of such moment as religion was to be huddled up in a
-dark and implicit manner. It was his duty to “prove all things, and
-hold fast that which is good.” The prelates offered their assistance,
-referred to plain texts and obvious facts “in a hundred books,” and
-then concluded their address with this syllogism: “That Church which
-teacheth and practiseth the doctrines destructive of salvation is
-to be relinquished. But the Church of Rome teacheth and practiseth
-doctrines destructive of salvation. Therefore the Church of Rome is to
-be relinquished.”[17]
-
-[Sidenote: 1679.]
-
-This speech, in which compliments and reproofs oddly struggle with each
-other, and which ends with a logical formula, perfectly impotent under
-the circumstances, bears upon it traces of Sancroft’s ornate but feeble
-style of thought and expression. It produced no effect; and the Royal
-auditor, after saying that it would be presumptuous, in an illiterate
-man like himself, to enter into controversial disputes with persons of
-learning, politely dismissed the Bishops, pleading that the pressure
-of business prevented further discussion.[18] The strain of remark on
-the one side, the mode of reply on the other, and the interchange of
-courtesies between the two parties, present a striking contrast to the
-conversations between John Knox and the Duke’s great-grandmother. The
-Archbishop of Canterbury appears much more amiable than the Scotch
-Presbyterian Reformer; and James is much more prudent than Mary Queen
-of Scots: but how tame and lifeless appears all the smooth eloquence
-of the Primate, compared with the burning words of the Elijah-like
-Presbyterian; and how unimpressible is the saturnine Prince, compared
-with the modern Jezebel, who wept and stormed at Holyrood.
-
-[Sidenote: SANCROFT.]
-
-No doubt can exist of Sancroft’s sincere opposition to Popery. Wilkins,
-in his _Concilia_, gives, in addition to Royal proclamations on
-that subject, a letter written by the Primate to the Bishop of London,
-dated April 9, 1681, in which he requires that the three canons against
-Popish recusants, agreed upon in the Synod of London in 1605, namely,
-the 65th, the 66th, and the 114th, should be put in use, considering,
-he says, in language then so current on that topic, “how acceptable
-a service it will be to Almighty God, to assist His Majesty’s pious
-purpose herein; and, on the other side, how severe a punishment, the
-last canon of the three appoints, to those who shall neglect their duty
-herein.”[19] It is remarkable, that after the death of Sheldon, we
-find in Wilkins, no more documents enforcing the execution of the laws
-against Nonconformists; an omission which indicates the very different
-disposition of the new occupant of the see, from that which had been
-manifested by his predecessor.
-
-[Sidenote: 1678–80.]
-
-In the affairs of his own Church, Sancroft endeavoured to effect some
-useful reforms and improvements. Considerable laxity prevailed in the
-admission of candidates to holy orders, testimonials to character
-being often signed as a mere form, without sufficient knowledge of
-the persons in whose favour they were given. To check this injurious
-practice, Sancroft, in the month of August, 1678,[20] sent directions
-to his suffragans, that thenceforth such recommendations should be
-more carefully prepared, should contain fuller particulars, and
-should be more cautiously used. The poverty of vicarages, and other
-small ecclesiastical benefices, still continued: the augmentation of
-them was an old remedy, the failure of schemes for the purpose an old
-disappointment. Even the Act in relation to this matter in 1676, had
-been carried into only partial execution; and, therefore, many of the
-difficulties, so long complained of by the clergy, still remained.
-Consequently, Sancroft, in the year 1680, sent an appeal to the Bishops
-of his province, urging strongly the application of the Act; and
-requiring every Bishop, Dean, and Archdeacon to send particulars of
-all the augmentations made by them or their predecessors.[21] What he
-recommended to others he practised himself, for he liberally improved
-many of the livings in his gift. The chronic disease of the Church
-forced itself on the Archbishop’s attention: many unsuitable persons
-being appointed to benefices, and private advantage taking precedence
-of public welfare, among the motives deciding the administration
-of patronage. As a cure to some extent, Charles issued a warrant,
-constituting the Archbishop, the Bishop of London, and four laymen
-proper and competent judges of men deserving to be preferred, and
-forbidding the Secretary of State to apply to the Royal fountain of
-favour, for the bestowment of ecclesiastical preferments, without first
-communicating with this council of reference.[22] What share Sancroft
-had in the origin or the execution of the plan we do not know; but
-the object was one which, from what we learn of his character, would
-commend itself to his judgment. The practice of simony continued,
-and an Archdeacon of Lincoln, convicted of that offence in the
-ecclesiastical court, petitioned the King for pardon;--upon the
-petition being referred to Sancroft, he replied that the crime of
-which the man had been convicted, was “a pestilence that walketh in
-darkness,” and that if he were saved from punishment, the markets of
-Simon Magus would be more frequented than ever.[23]
-
-[Sidenote: TEMPLE.]
-
-After the impeachment and imprisonment of the Earl of Danby, in spite
-of Royal endeavours to screen him, His Majesty being then left without
-an adviser, sent for Sir William Temple, and appointed him Secretary
-of State, in the room of Coventry. This ingenious politician proposed,
-that there should be a Council, consisting of thirty members, fifteen
-of them to be Officers of State, chosen by the King; the other
-fifteen, popular leaders of the two Houses. The idea was, to blend
-the Government and the Opposition together, or, rather, to prevent
-the existence of any opposition at all.[24] The Council of statesmen
-formed on this model included, on the one hand, Essex, Sunderland,
-and Halifax--men attached to Court interests, in favour with the
-King, and suspected by the people; and on the other hand, the Earl
-of Shaftesbury, a leading spirit of the old Cabal, now an extreme
-opponent of the Court policy, and Lord William Russell, an eminently
-zealous Protestant, and popular Member of the House of Commons. The
-last two names are interwoven from the beginning, with the popular plan
-for setting aside the Duke of York--the first three Ministers being
-entirely opposed to it, and advocating the legitimate succession, with
-certain safeguards for the protection of Protestantism. This division
-of opinion in the Council reflected and magnified itself in the
-divisions of Parliament.
-
-[Sidenote: 1679.]
-
-Parliament met in March. The King and such Ministers as agreed with
-him, proposed terms of compromise in reference to the succession.
-The Chancellor, in April, stated that His Majesty was willing to
-distinguish a Popish from a Protestant successor; and so to limit the
-authority of the latter in reference to the Church, that all benefices
-in the gift of the Crown should be conferred in such a manner as to
-ensure the appointment of pious and learned Protestants.[25] Other
-restrictions of a political kind were proposed, which, as Charles said,
-would “pare the nails” of a Popish King.
-
-The Exclusion Bill was carried by the Commons in the month of May, but
-the effect was neutralized by a sudden prorogation of Parliament before
-the month had expired.[26] Parliament being dissolved by proclamation
-on the 12th of July, a new one was called for the following October.
-
-[Sidenote: DANGERFIELD’S PLOT.]
-
-The fourth Parliament of Charles II. met in October, 1679, and, after
-repeated prorogation, assembled for the despatch of business in
-October, 1680. Another informer just at that time rose to notoriety,
-whose name deserves to be coupled with that of Oates. Dangerfield is
-represented as a handsome young man, whom profligacy and debt brought
-within the walls of Newgate, where he was visited by a Roman Catholic
-woman named Cellier, one “who had a great share of wit, and was
-abandoned to lewdness.”[27] The man professed to become a convert to
-her religion, and, through the influence of his new friend with persons
-at Court, obtained an introduction to the Duke of York, into whose ears
-he poured tales of treason. This time a plot was attributed to the
-Presbyterians, who, according to Dangerfield, were raising forces to
-overthrow the Government. James gave the man twenty guineas; Charles
-ordered an additional reward of forty. The adventurer, finding his
-trade so gainful, determined to push his object further. He lodged an
-information at the Custom House against Colonel Mansel, a Presbyterian,
-whom he charged with being the quarter-master of the army of revolt;
-but the revenue officers, on searching his house, found not what they
-expected, but only a bundle of papers behind the bed. The papers
-were plainly treasonable; not less plainly did they bear signs of
-forgery. The accused traced home the infamous trick to the unprincipled
-informer. Dangerfield, once more committed to Newgate, not for debt,
-but for something worse, now changed his story, and declared that, at
-the instigation of Cellier and Lady Powis, who had become mixed up in
-the affair, he had engaged in a sham plot, as a cover for a real one.
-Though no Presbyterian conspiracy existed, there was, he affirmed, a
-Popish one, and a proof of the former being a fiction might be obtained
-from a bundle of papers secreted in a meal tub. The meal was searched,
-the papers were found; they demonstrated the artifice, and the trumpery
-contrivance has gained a place in history under the title of the “Meal
-Tub Plot.” Powis and Cellier were now, in their turn, imprisoned.
-The grand jury ignored the bill against the former, and the latter
-obtained an acquittal at the Old Bailey. Dangerfield received a pardon;
-yet, though all three at the time escaped the penalties of the law,
-Dangerfield subsequently received a cruel whipping for the crime of
-perjury.[28] This miserable creature has been represented either as a
-tool employed by the Catholics to retaliate upon the friends of Titus
-Oates, or as a tool employed by the friends of Titus Oates to decoy
-Catholics into an attempt at injuring the Presbyterians. The former is
-the Protestant, the latter the Catholic hypothesis. Neither of them
-seems satisfactory; the latter is almost incredible. At all events,
-every reader must see that tissues of lies were woven in those days as
-unaccountably and as plentifully as spiders’ webs in autumn nights.
-
-[Sidenote: 1680.]
-
-Whilst these plots were common talk, and indignation against Romanism
-was fomented in a thousand ways, the Corporation of Bristol made the
-following presentment:--
-
-[Sidenote: EXCLUSION BILL.]
-
-We lament that “at this time more heats and animosities should be
-fomented among us, than hath been since His Majesty’s most happy
-restoration, which gives us just cause to suspect, however such men
-cover themselves under the umbrage of zeal and religion, that they are
-influenced by Jesuitical principles. For the Jesuits have not a fairer
-prospect of bringing us under the tyranny of Rome, than by continuing
-and carrying on of differences among ourselves. _Divide et impera_
-is their maxim. From this evil spirit and principle this city hath been
-represented as ill inclined to His Majesty’s person and Government,
-our worthy mayor, a person of unquestionable loyalty to the King, and
-of exemplary zeal for the Church, [being] traduced as fanatically
-disposed, and all those true sons of the Church of England who have any
-moderation towards Dissenting Protestants, to be more dangerous to the
-Church than the Papists themselves, when we cannot but think that a
-hearty union among all Protestants is now more than ever necessary to
-preserve us from our open and avowed enemy.”[29]
-
-Union amongst Protestants at such a time seemed to be dictated by
-reason and policy, but Churchmen who looked with neighbourly kindness
-upon Nonconformists were apt to be suspected of laxity of principle and
-a want of zeal; and the very paper from which I have given an extract
-is endorsed as a “seditious presentment.”
-
-[Sidenote: 1680.]
-
-In the month of October, the Exclusion Bill reappeared and passed,
-all the argument and eloquence of the members from day to day,
-through long sittings, being devoted to this question. Interwoven
-with the debate from beginning to end, like dark threads in shot
-silk, are references to the recent Popish plot and its attendant
-circumstances. Whilst treated as a legal and political question,[30]
-its ecclesiastical bearings were most prominent and most vital, in the
-estimation of zealous Protestants both within and outside the walls
-of Parliament.[31] The central point in this controversy, whatever
-might be its political relations, and however it might be mixed up
-with party interests, was of a religious nature. Had the Church not
-been united with the State, had all Christian congregations been left
-to their own resources, and been exempt from Government control,
-the case would have been very different, though even then religious
-considerations would have certainly become mixed up with the question;
-but, as it was, with such an interlacing between things political and
-things ecclesiastical, with the King as supreme temporal Ruler of the
-Church, and Defender of the Faith, to have a Roman Catholic placed in
-that position justly appeared to Protestants not merely as inexpedient,
-but as totally unreasonable and absurd. The ecclesiastical argument
-formed the stronghold of the exclusion policy, and its opponents
-could by no sophistry overturn it. Still they had much to say. They
-praised the Duke as a man of ability, who had fulfilled important naval
-duties, and deserved well of his country. The attempt to set such a
-man aside, a man with so much decision of purpose, and with so many
-friends, they contended, would incur the risk of plunging Great Britain
-into another civil war. And beyond all personal and national reasons
-against his exclusion, they took the high ground--so dear to the Stuart
-race--of the Divine right of kings, and denounced the attempt to
-deprive the heir apparent of his crown as nothing short of robbery and
-wickedness.[32]
-
-[Sidenote: EXCLUSION BILL.]
-
-The Bill carried in the House of Commons met an adverse fate in the
-House of Lords. Shaftesbury did his utmost for its support, and the
-Country party amongst the peers gallantly rallied around him, but after
-a telling speech from the Earl of Halifax, the measure was defeated by
-63 against 30. The division took place at the then late hour of eleven
-o’clock at night, the King being present, and the whole being described
-as “one of the greatest days ever known in the House of Lords.”[33]
-In the large majority against the second reading, appeared no less
-than fourteen Bishops, who, for the course they adopted, were charged
-with tearing “out the bowels of their Mother the Church.” They upheld
-the doctrine of Divine right, in opposition to the Protestant zeal
-of the day, which looked in a different direction, and they thought
-that limitations, such as the King and the Court party were willing to
-impose upon the legitimate successor to the crown, would suffice to
-preserve the Reformed Church in its integrity and its supremacy.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
-
-To prevent breaking the continuity of the narrative, an incident has
-been passed over requiring some notice.
-
-Upon the 2nd of May, 1680, Dr. Stillingfleet preached a sermon before
-the Lord Mayor and Aldermen of the City of London, and the Judges
-and Sergeants-at-law. The subject of discourse being “The Mischief
-of Separation,” he treated his audience with an invective against
-Dissenters as schismatics, who had rent the Church in twain; and he
-represented them as reduced to this dilemma--“that though the really
-conscientious Nonconformist is justified in not worshipping after the
-prescribed forms of the Church of England, or rather would be criminal
-if he did so, yet he is not less criminal in setting up a separate
-assembly.”[34] Victims so impaled were in a wretched condition, and
-no one can wonder that they made an effort to extricate themselves.
-They did so with success, and if not always with perfect good temper,
-nobody can severely blame them for that. Owen wrote with “great gravity
-and seriousness.” Baxter was very “particular, warm, and close.” Alsop
-briskly turned upon the preacher “his own words and phrases.”[35]
-Stillingfleet’s _Irenicum_, published in 1659, had shown that
-no form of Church government could be _jure divino_, a position
-of which his opponents now took advantage, whilst they failed not to
-ply the _argumentum ad hominem_. “A person of quality” sent to
-John Howe the printed sermon, enclosing with it severe remarks. Howe,
-with calm impartiality, such as nettles a partisan of either extreme
-more than any stinging attacks can do, immediately expressed his
-intention “of defending the cause of the Nonconformists against the
-Dean, and then of adding something in defence of the Dean against his
-correspondent.”[36] The reply which he produced is one of the most
-beautiful specimens of controversy in existence. Stillingfleet was
-subdued when he read it, and confessed that Howe discoursed “more like
-a gentleman than a Divine, without any mixture of rancour, or any sharp
-reflections, and sometimes with a great degree of kindness towards him,
-for which, and his prayers for him, he heartily thanked him.”[37]
-
-[Sidenote: TILLOTSON.]
-
-The year proved unfortunate for the consistency of Divines of the
-Liberal school, for Tillotson also committed himself. Preaching a
-sermon at Court he maintained the monstrous position “that no man is
-obliged to preach against the religion of his country, though a false
-one, unless he has the power of working miracles.” “It is a pity your
-Majesty slept,” observed a Courtier at the close of the service, “for
-we have had the rarest piece of Hobbism that ever you heard in your
-life.” “Odsfish!” rejoined Charles, “he shall print it then.” Howe once
-more came forward with reproof and expostulation. He regretted that
-the Dean should have pleaded “the Popish cause against the Fathers of
-the Reformation;” and as the Nonconformist was riding with his friend
-to see Lady Falconbridge at Sutton Court, he so touched the heart of
-the Church dignitary, that the latter bursting into tears, confessed
-that it “was the unhappiest thing which had for a long time happened to
-him;” and pleaded in excuse of his great error, the haste with which he
-had prepared his discourse, and the alarm produced in his mind by the
-spread of Popery.[38]
-
-[Sidenote: 1680.]
-
-[Sidenote: COMPREHENSION.]
-
-Perhaps these circumstances had some influence in producing another
-useless attempt at comprehension at the close of the year 1680,
-inasmuch as we shall find Howe in consultation with the two Divines
-just mentioned touching the subject. Howe met Bishop Lloyd at
-Tillotson’s house.[39] The Bishop asked what would satisfy the
-Nonconformists, if an attempt should be made to adjust the differences
-between them and the Church. Howe observed “as all had not the same
-latitude, he could only answer for himself.” What concessions, he was
-further asked, would, in his opinion, satisfy the scruples of the
-greater number--for, added Lloyd, “I would have the terms so large
-as to comprehend the most of them.” Howe declared that he thought “a
-very considerable obstacle would be removed, if the law were so framed
-as to enable ministers to attempt parochial reformation.” “For that
-reason,” said the Bishop, “I am for abolishing the lay Chancellors as
-being the great hindrance to such reformation.”[40] The next evening
-Howe and Bates, with Tillotson, met at the Deanery of St. Paul’s, where
-Stillingfleet had provided a handsome entertainment for his visitors.
-Lloyd, though expected, did not join the party, being prevented by
-a division in the House of Lords, upon the Exclusion Bill. Whatever
-the bearing of these circumstances might be upon what followed, there
-appeared in Parliament three days afterwards (November 18) a scheme of
-comprehension.
-
-The second reading of the Bill, embodying the scheme, occasioned a
-debate, which went over well-worn topics, and presents no points of
-interest.
-
-The measure emanated from the Episcopalian party in the House of
-Commons; but the Presbyterian members, to the amazement of every one,
-did not promote it. They knew it could not be carried in the House of
-Lords; and the clergy, as Kennet confesses, were “no further in earnest
-than as they apprehended the knife of the Papists” to be near their
-throats.[41]
-
-The Bill dropped--what else could be expected, there being on one side
-no earnestness in making the offer, and on the other no disposition to
-accept it?[42]
-
-[Sidenote: 1680–81.]
-
-With the Bill founded on the principle of comprehension another was
-brought forward, based on the principle of toleration. It proposed to
-exempt Protestant Dissenters “from the penalties of certain laws.”[43]
-The measure made way through the House of Commons, and it forced itself
-through the House of Lords;[44] but because distasteful to the King on
-account of its limiting toleration to Protestant Nonconformists, it was
-put aside by some contemptible trick, when other Bills were presented
-for the Royal assent.[45]
-
-On the day of the prorogation, the Commons by a formal resolution
-pronounced the prosecution of Protestant Dissenters to be a
-grievance to the subject, a detriment to the Protestant interest, an
-encouragement to Popery, and a danger to the kingdom’s peace.[46]
-However strange it is to find such a resolution in the Journals, after
-a Bill had been carried through the two Houses to the same effect a few
-days before, the fact may be explained by the circumstance that the
-Commons had become aware of the foul play practised on these cherished
-measures. It seems incredible, but such was the factious spirit
-existing, that the Court and High Church party--who were prepared to
-vindicate, or to wink at all kinds of excesses in the despotism of the
-Crown--positively objected to the resolution, as an unconstitutional
-method of invalidating Acts of Parliament.[47]
-
-[Sidenote: OXFORD PARLIAMENT.]
-
-Charles II. dissolved his fourth Parliament on the 18th of January,
-1681, and summoned a fifth to meet at Oxford on the 21st of March.[48]
-This fifth Parliament opened amidst great excitement. The members for
-London, who had sat before, received the thanks of the citizens for
-searching into the Popish plot, and for supporting the Comprehension,
-the Toleration, and the Exclusion Bills. They rode to the City
-on the banks of the Isis, attended by a large body of horsemen,
-with ribbons stuck in their hats, displaying the watchwords, “No
-Popery--No Slavery.” Other members received similar addresses, and
-proceeded to the scholastic halls,--for the occasion transferred into
-senate-houses,--stirred by the conviction that a great political and
-ecclesiastical crisis had arisen. Met by the King with gracious but
-hollow sayings of the accustomed stamp, Parliament did not pass over
-the recent breach of decency committed in reference to the Toleration
-Bill, and reflections not more sharp than just were uttered by Liberal
-members. It was said, that those who charged the Country party with
-being Republicans were Revolutionists themselves, like thieves in a
-crowd, crying “Gentlemen, have a care of your pockets;”[49] that if
-Bills could be so thrown away the Commons vainly spent their time in
-passing them, and that what had been done inflicted a heavy blow on
-the English Constitution. The Commons requested a conference with the
-Lords, and took up the subject with spirit, declaring, as recorded in
-the _Lords’ Journals_, an intention to search out the accomplices
-in the piece of impudent knavery, which had just been practised on
-their own House.[50] Another Bill of Exclusion made its appearance, and
-another debate on Popery arose; but a dissolution within one week put
-an end to all Parliamentary inquiry, and extinguished all Parliamentary
-discussion.
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-Amidst much false alarm, and much popular folly, there existed a
-reasonable antipathy to the superstition and intolerance of Rome; the
-return of Papal ascendancy being, at that moment, no unreasonable
-object of fear; for with it would have inevitably arrived a new reign
-of civil and spiritual despotism. Protestantism on the one side, and
-Popery on the other, stood face to face in irreconcilable conflict; and
-during the storm which raged from one end of the Island to the other,
-there came into play two famous party watchwords, which, though in our
-time they have become nearly superseded, are not yet wholly swept out
-of existence. It is curious to notice that “Whig” and “Tory”--names
-then and since appropriated to political uses--had a religious origin:
-Whig being the title coined to fit the Presbyterian Covenanters of
-Scotland, suspected of anti-Monarchical principles; and “Tory” being
-meant to designate the Roman Catholic Irishmen, who seized the property
-of English settlers, and whose religion was considered most favourable
-to despotism.
-
-[Sidenote: EXCLUSION BILL.]
-
-Whilst, in these days of enlightenment and of perfectly altered
-circumstances, we can see how, without sacrificing universal religious
-liberty, we can protect ourselves against the danger of Papal
-ascendancy and despotism, should that danger again threaten us, it
-is proper to take into account the whole case respecting the conduct
-of our ancestors in the last two Stuart reigns, and to remember that
-they dreaded such broad toleration, because they apprehended it would
-lead to the supremacy of Romanism; and they could not see how it was
-possible, in this case, to concede liberty without opening a gate
-for the entrance of injustice. There was wisdom in the end they kept
-in view, though there was error in the method they employed for its
-attainment.
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-It is ridiculous to look upon the Earl of Shaftesbury as the Æolus
-who let loose the anti-Papal winds. He doubtless availed himself of
-the public favour to accomplish ends of his own, and the elevation
-of the Duke of Monmouth to the honour of legitimacy and heirship was
-with him a favourite idea, equally absurd and mischievous; but the
-desire, prevalent for a time, of cutting off the entail of the crown
-from the King’s brother, was no creation of a single person, but the
-offspring of public sentiment, and the outgrowth of years on years.
-Indignation against Popery, and the support of an Exclusion Bill,
-intimately connected as cause and effect, were two distinct things: but
-although the former continued in unabated force, the latter dwindled
-away, and the nation came to acquiesce, so far as the succession to
-the throne was concerned, in the policy of the Court. The reasons
-are easily assigned. Popular falsehoods respecting the Popish plots
-exploded in disgrace, and honest folks saw they had been deceived
-by knaves. From dislike to Rome, her doctrines, her polity, and her
-worship, some diseased secretions, which had gathered over feeling,
-came to be rubbed off. Romanists had been found less desperate plotters
-than had been dreamed. Limitations upon the descent of the crown
-appeared more efficacious than they had done before. The probability
-of another Civil War, if James were excluded, alarmed many; personal
-sympathy with a Sovereign required to perform so unnatural an act as
-that of disinheriting a brother, prevailed with more; and perhaps,
-considering the Royal ages, the uncertainty of the contemplated
-emergency influenced most. In this last respect, a manifest difference
-exists between the policy of an Exclusion Bill founded on a contingency
-which might never occur, and the policy of a Revolution based upon
-the despotic proceedings of an actual King. That these reasons proved
-effective is plain; whether they were valid and wise is another
-point. The sequel showed a Revolution to be inevitable. To have
-anticipated the event of 1688 might have saved England some trouble
-and much suffering; but England has always been slow to depart from
-constitutional principles, and has always loved to stand as long as
-possible “in the old ways.” The conflict which opened in 1643 had been
-put off until it could be put off no longer: and the men of the second
-half of the seventeenth century were, as it regarded an unwillingness
-to come to extremities, just like their fathers of the first. What
-really followed the departure from the scheme of Exclusion justified
-some of the worst fears of its supporters. The Duke was restored to his
-former position, and carried things with a high hand.[51]
-
-[Sidenote: KING’S DECLARATION.]
-
-After the dissolution of Parliament at Oxford, the King, by the advice
-of Halifax, published a Declaration, explaining the reasons which
-induced him to take that critical step. He charged the Commons with
-arbitrary orders; with bringing forward accusations on mere suspicion;
-with unconstitutional votes, especially in support of resolutions
-condemning the persecution of Dissenters, according to law; with
-obstinacy in the matter of the Exclusion Bill; with a design of
-changing the government of the realm; and with a determination to set
-and keep at variance the two Houses of Legislature.[52] In short, he
-managed, as his father had done, only with more dexterity, to cover and
-defend his own unconstitutional purposes, by throwing all blame on the
-Houses of Parliament.
-
-Immediately afterwards, Archbishop Sancroft received a Royal command
-to require the public reading of the Declaration in all and every the
-churches and chapels within the province of Canterbury, at the time of
-Divine service, upon some Lord’s Day, with all convenient speed. If we
-may here believe Burnet, Sancroft, at a meeting of Council, moved that
-this order should be given; remembering the habits of the Historian
-of his _Own Times_, I can scarcely trust his statement, without
-confirmation from some other quarter. Yet, if Sancroft did not suggest,
-he certainly did not resist the publication of this document--as he
-did the publication of another at a later period; and, because he
-received the order for its publication, and the publication followed
-accordingly, he must bear the responsibility of having sanctioned a
-procedure, which really made the Church an approving herald to the
-nation, of the King’s despotic policy.[53]
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-High Churchmen took the opportunity of presenting to the Throne the
-most obsequious and abject addresses. Our princes, said they, derive
-not their title from the people, but from God; to Him alone they are
-accountable: and it belongs not to subjects either to create or to
-censure, but only to honour and obey their Sovereign. They besought
-His Majesty to accept the tender of their hearts and hands, their
-lives and fortunes. These dearest sacrifices they abjectly laid down
-at Royal feet.[54] It was about the same time that Morley, Bishop of
-Winchester, declared:--“If ever it might be said of any--it may now
-most emphatically be said of us: Happy are the people that are in such
-a case.” We have “a Government pretending to no power at all above the
-King, nor to no power under the King neither, but from him, and by him,
-and for him--a Government enjoining active obedience to all lawful
-commands of lawful authority; and passive obedience when we cannot obey
-actively, forbidding and condemning all taking up of arms, offensive or
-defensive, by subjects of any quality.”[55]
-
-The King’s Declaration was compared by a writer of later date,
-reflecting upon it, to the olive branch brought by the dove into the
-ark,--an indication of peace, of the abatement of popular excitement,
-and of the stability of laws and religion, like the dove which had
-found _ubi pedem figeret_. Warming with his subject, he calls the
-Declaration “that great vision of the _Lex terræ_” long wrapped in
-mists, but now revealed; and likens the addresses called forth to the
-seamen’s shout on approaching land, after a stormy voyage.[56] Some of
-the Tory party went mad with joy at the triumph of despotism.
-
-[Sidenote: LOYAL ADDRESSES.]
-
-There were not wanting utterances of a very different order. A
-well-known publication, entitled, _The Conformist’s Plea for the
-Nonconformists, in four parts, by a Beneficed Minister, and a regular
-Son of the Church of England_, bears the date of 1681, and at the
-time made much stir. The author dwells upon the sufferings of his
-Dissenting brethren--their hard case, their equitable proposals, their
-ministerial qualifications, their peaceable behaviour, their orthodoxy
-as tested by the doctrinal articles of the Church--and the injury
-inflicted on that Church by their exclusion. “Some reverend sons of
-the Church,” he remarked, with a good deal of common sense, “in love
-to peace, and fear of enemies, have earnestly called and exhorted
-the Dissenting ejected brethren, to come and unite, to come into the
-present Constitution, as safest, as strongest, as best, &c. But if
-they could not come in at the narrow door eighteen years ago, and the
-door as narrow still as it was then, and there be the same cross-bars
-laid across, as were then to keep them out, to what purpose is the
-exhortation? Is there a great storm a coming? they think that Christ
-is the same ship, and they are as safe as any other. They may clearly
-plead, they could have conformed at first upon better worldly terms
-than now; they might have saved what they have lost, and got their
-share with others; to come now to conform, when all places are full,
-and not enow for numerous expectants, and when there is nothing for
-them without tedious waiting; and if their judgments and consciences
-could not enter then, how can they now?”[57]
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-Wit is not wanting, when he asks:--“But how did these Master-Builders
-proceed in the Government of their New Reformed Church? It seemed to be
-built no larger than to contain one family, the genuine sons of such
-fathers; there was but one narrow door of admission to it, a strong
-lock upon it, and the sole power of the keys was in trusty hands, and
-the sword in the hand of a friend, there was no outward apartment in it
-to entertain strangers, or belonging to it; but some got a false key to
-the door, as many call it, a key of a larger sense; and when some got
-in, more crowded in; and so the Latitudinarian in charity, came in with
-the Latitudinarian in discipline, to the no little grief of some who do
-not like their company. The fathers keep above stairs, and now and then
-come down among us, and send their officers to visit us, and have their
-watch renewed every year to tell tales of us; and they that are without
-doors, cry, If there be any love in our Governors to Christ, and His
-divided flock, that we would but widen the door, and reform but ill
-customs; but we say, we cannot help ourselves or them, for the law will
-have it so.”[58]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
-
-For the credit of humanity, it should be repeated that occasional
-lulls occurred in the storm of persecution during this infamous reign.
-Intolerant laws sank into desuetude, and merciful, or rather righteous
-magistrates, neglected, or tempered their execution. Considerable
-ingenuity sometimes appears in their methods of evasion. A Justice of
-the Peace would ask certain informers whether they could swear that, in
-a certain case, there was “a pretended, colourable, religious exercise,
-in other manner than according to the liturgy and practice of the
-Church of England,” and would caution them to consider that, if they
-swore in the affirmative, they must know exactly what the liturgy and
-the Church really were. He would also demand whether the informers were
-present all the time during which the service lasted, for if they were
-not, how could they be sure the Common Prayer was not used? An instance
-is not wanting in which such an ingenious Justice dismissed both
-parties, and sent the case to counsel for opinion, who decided that he
-had done quite right.[59]
-
-[Sidenote: 1677–80.]
-
-During the year 1677, and for two or three years afterwards,
-Nonconformists suffered less troubles than they had done before, owing
-in part to the death of Archbishop Sheldon, in part to the prevalent
-fear of Popery, and in part to the change of Ministry in 1679, and the
-ascendancy of Shaftesbury in His Majesty’s Councils.[60]
-
-About the year 1680 the Duke of Buckingham, like Shaftesbury,
-exceedingly ambitious of popularity, and apt to bid high for the
-prize by professing great liberality of opinion, made overtures to
-the Nonconformists to become their advocate. It being signified
-to John Howe, that this nobleman wished to see him, the Divine
-took an opportunity of calling at the sumptuous residence of the
-dissolute peer, and, after some conversation, His Grace hinted that
-“the Nonconformists were too numerous and powerful to be any longer
-neglected; that they deserved regard, and that, if they had a friend
-near the throne, who possessed influence with the Court generally, to
-give them advice in critical emergencies, and to convey their requests
-to the Royal ear, they would find it much to their advantage.” There
-could be no mistake as to the meaning of all this; yet, at the moment
-of offering himself as the political adviser of the Nonconformists,
-Buckingham was pursuing that course of flagrant vice which has brought
-everlasting infamy upon his name. Howe replied, with great simplicity,
-“that the Nonconformists, being an avowedly religious people, it
-highly concerned them, should they fix on any one for the purpose
-mentioned, to choose some one who would not be ashamed of _them_,
-and of whom _they_ might have no reason to be ashamed; and
-that, to find a person in whom there was a concurrence of those two
-qualifications, was exceedingly difficult.”[61] This answer ended the
-business.
-
-[Sidenote: RENEWED PERSECUTIONS.]
-
-But whatever might be the temporary relief then tacitly granted, or
-the patronage and protection then virtually offered to Dissenters,
-a manifest change occurred in their circumstances after the Oxford
-dissolution of 1681. The causes of this change require attention.
-
-Sir William Temple’s Utopian scheme had broken down. However plausible
-on paper, it had proved a failure in practice. Shaftesbury and Russell
-could not work with Temple and Halifax; and in the spring of 1681 the
-three former had disappeared from the Board, so also had Salisbury,
-Essex, and Sunderland,--the management of affairs being chiefly in the
-hands of Halifax, of Lord Radnor, of Hyde, created Lord Rochester, and
-of the Secretaries of State, Jenkins and Conway.
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-Halifax is described as a man of great wit, which he often employed
-upon the subject of religion. “He confessed he could not swallow down
-everything that Divines imposed on the world; he was a Christian in
-submission, he believed as much as he could, and he hoped that God
-would not lay it to his charge if he could not digest iron as an
-ostrich did, nor take into his belief things that must burst him.”
-Accustomed to run on in conversation after this fashion, he excited a
-suspicion of his being an atheist, a charge which he utterly denied;
-betraying at the same time, in the midst of sickness, some kind and
-degree of spiritual feeling, whilst at other tunes he would profess
-a philosophical contempt of the world, and call the titles of rank
-rattles to please children.[62] The colouring of his mind was better
-than the drawing. He admired justice and liberty in theory,--he gave
-them up for places and titles in practice.[63] With little or no
-principle of any kind, he answered Dryden’s description--
-
- “Jotham of piercing wit and frequent thought,
- Endued by nature, and by learning taught
- To move assemblies; but who only tried
- The worse awhile, then chose the better side.”
-
-The last line is scarcely true, but he well merited the name of
-Trimmer,[64] his constancy being confined to his warfare with the
-Church of Rome. Radnor, if we are to believe Burnet, was morose and
-cynical, learned but intractable, just in the administration of
-affairs, yet vicious under the appearance of virtue.[65] The gossip of
-the Court called him “an old snarling, troublesome, peevish fellow;”
-and even Clarendon speaks of him as of “a sour and surly nature, a
-great _opiniâtre_, and one who must be overcome before he would
-believe that he could be so.”[66] Of the Earl of Rochester, it is
-remarked by Roger North, “His infirmities were passion, in which he
-would swear like a cutter, and the indulging himself in wine. But his
-party was that of the Church of England, of whom he had the honour,
-for many years, to be accounted the head.”[67] But North, it must
-be remembered, was a man of violent prejudices, and his judgment of
-contemporaries must be estimated accordingly.
-
-[Sidenote: MEN IN POWER.]
-
-Lord Conway was a mere official, devoted rather to pleasure than
-business; and Sir Leoline Jenkins was an assiduous Secretary and a good
-lawyer. According to Burnet’s report, he was “set on every punctilio
-of the Church of England to superstition, and was a great asserter of
-the Divine right of monarchy, and was for carrying the prerogative
-high.”[68] Nonconformists could not expect any mercy or much justice
-from men like these.
-
-A fiery zeal for Protestantism continued in the month of September,
-1681, when an address was presented to the Lord Mayor of London from
-20,000 apprentices, touching the “devilish plots carried on by the
-Papists.”[69] But before that time, the excitement which had been
-produced by Oates’ informations, and which had promoted the progress of
-Exclusion measures, began to subside, and a reaction in many quarters
-set in against the supporters of both.[70]
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-Burnet speaks of “a great heat raised against the clergy” in 1679: of
-Nonconformists behaving very indecently, and of the press, in which
-they had a great hand, becoming licentious against the Court and the
-clergy; but he does not specify what publications are meant. The only
-remarkable one mentioned by Calamy as appearing that year, is “A short
-and true account of the several advances the Church of England hath
-made towards Rome--or a model of the grounds upon which the Papists
-for these hundred years have built their hopes and expectations, that
-England would e’er long return to Popery, by Dr. Du Moulin, sometime
-History Professor of Oxford.”[71] Upon reading this book, it strikes
-me, that the sting is stronger in the title-page, than in the contents;
-it makes out a case as to Romanist tendencies against Laud and his
-party, rather than against contemporary Churchmen. At all events,
-alarm existed at the time--although a book like Du Moulin’s will not
-account for it--lest a new revolution should break out resembling that
-which occurred at the beginning of the Long Parliament. “The Bishops
-and clergy, apprehending that a rebellion, and with it the pulling
-the Church to pieces, was designed, set themselves, on the other
-hand, to write against the late times, and to draw a parallel between
-the present times and them; which was not decently enough managed
-by those who undertook the argument, and who were believed to be
-set on and paid by the Court.” Burnet’s statement is very loose, for
-without mentioning any book on the subject, by any Bishop,--although
-he might have cited what Morley, Bishop of Winchester, wrote soon
-afterwards,--he alludes to the writings of a layman, Roger L’Estrange,
-who richly deserves his severest condemnation. That man did more than
-any one to turn the tide of indignation into a new channel. People
-“seemed now to lay down all fears and apprehensions of Popery, and
-nothing was so common in their mouths, as the year ’41, in which the
-late Wars begun” (they did not begin till ’42,) “and which seemed now
-to be near the being acted over again. Both city and country were full
-of many indecencies that broke out on this occasion.”[72] Revolutionary
-designs were charged upon the Whig party generally; and Nonconformists
-unjustly came in for a large share of suspicion.
-
-[Sidenote: STEPHEN COLLEDGE.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-The first-fruit of this reaction appears in the discovery of a
-pretended new plot against the life of the King, arranged to be
-executed during his stay in the City of Oxford. The person made the
-scape-goat of the offence was Stephen Colledge, who had acquired some
-notice as a violent Protestant, and who had mixed himself up with
-Oates and the other witnesses against the convicted Papists. Colledge
-being indicted at the Old Bailey, had no true Bill found against him.
-Political opinions then influenced Jurymen to an extent which shocks
-us now that everything is done to banish prejudice from our Courts of
-Justice; and therefore the Ministers of the Crown, who managed this
-prosecution, after being baffled by the Whigs, who formed the panel in
-London, determined to carry the case down to Oxford, where they could
-empanel a number of Tories.[73] A true bill being found at last, Chief
-Justice North tried the prisoner; and, on that occasion, behaved in
-such an infamous manner, that it was thought probable, if he had lived
-to see another Parliament, he might have been impeached.[74] Nothing
-which any lawyer would now consider treasonable, could be proved
-against Colledge; yet he was convicted, condemned, and executed. The
-fate of this man excited a great degree of interest at the time, he
-being considered a rebel by one party, and a martyr by another. Letters
-written to the Secretary of State after Colledge’s death indicate the
-eager desire of the former to establish his guilt;[75] and, if we may
-credit other letters, Nonconformists showed much sympathy with the
-sufferer. One writer thought it very credible, that the Presbyterians
-at Lewes did, against the execution of Colledge, keep a very strict
-fast; and it was supposed they of Chichester did the like, but the
-circumstance wanted confirmation. Another correspondent the same month
-reported that the general discourse in that Cathedral City turned upon
-the man’s innocence, and described how much he had been wronged, and
-how his blood would cry for vengeance against the rogues who took away
-his life.[76] It is a strange circumstance, but it illustrates the
-irrational feeling of the moment, that some people, who were hounding
-this poor fellow on to the gallows, called him a Papist, and some
-called him an Anabaptist. At Colledge’s execution the Sheriff evinced
-much anxiety to know whether he belonged to the Presbyterians, to the
-Independents, or to the Church of England. Colledge--after having
-previously declared that he never had been a Papist--replied, that
-before the Restoration, he was a Presbyterian; that since then he had
-conformed to the Episcopal Church, until he saw so much persecution of
-Dissenters; and that, afterwards, he had attended Presbyterian meetings
-“and others very seldom.” Yet he had not forsaken the Establishment
-altogether; for, only three weeks before his apprehension, he had
-attended the ministry of Dr. Tillotson. He wished for union, and
-lamented that some of the Church of England preached that the
-Presbyterians were worse than the Papists, although he was certain they
-were not men of vicious lives.
-
-[Sidenote: STEPHEN COLLEDGE.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-It is plain, from his own words, that at the time of his being charged
-with treason, Colledge was identified with Nonconformity; and, in a
-letter written by some one (not known) to the Bishop of London, July
-11, 1681, it is stated, that just then Nonconformists were building
-several meeting-houses; and that, after the acquittal of Colledge by
-the Grand Jury in London, these people grew increasingly impudent.
-Before his execution, there came to him in Oxford gaol--“a fanatic,
-desiring to pray with him, but being not permitted, unless he would
-use the Liturgy of the Church of England, he refused.”[77] We learn
-that the poor man received “the Blessed Sacrament” from Dr. Hall, to
-whom he made confession.[78] That confession, or a large portion of
-it, is preserved; and, in substance, it corresponds with his speech
-at the gallows. He acknowledged in his confession, that he might, on
-some occasions, have “uttered words of indecency, not becoming his duty
-concerning the King or his Council”; and, if so, he begged their pardon,
-and in his speech he admitted that he had arms in his possession; but,
-said he, “they were for our own defence in case the Papists should
-make any attempt upon us by way of massacre.” Both in his confession
-and speech, he stoutly denied, that he had entered into any plot; nor
-did any sufficient evidence of such a thing come out on his trial.
-From the confession, it further appeared, that on the Sunday before
-his execution, the messenger who brought word respecting the day on
-which he was to die, assured him he might even then save his life, if
-he would only confess who was the cause of his coming to Oxford. He
-persisted in maintaining, that his coming was entirely of his own
-accord, and without any treasonable intention whatever.[79]
-
-[Sidenote: REACTION.]
-
-At Colledge’s trial, Dugdale and Turbeville, formerly co-witnesses of
-Titus Oates, appeared against him, whilst Oates himself took Colledge’s
-part, and vilified his old associates. The wretched combination against
-the Roman Catholics now broke up: the conspirators were quarrelling,
-the house divided against itself could not stand, the Nonconformist,
-who in his Protestant zeal had mixed himself up with discreditable
-people, now appeared as the victim, his own eagerness to sweep away
-religionists whom he disliked, had stimulated his enemies to imitation;
-and, as we conclude this singular history, it is impossible to forget
-the words of Divine wisdom--“With what measure ye mete, it shall be
-measured to you again.”
-
-The same reaction which destroyed the Protestant Joiner, struck
-down another person who declared himself the Protestant Earl.[80]
-Shaftesbury, after the dissolution of the Royal Parliament, being
-accused of entering into a conspiracy against the King, found himself
-within the gloomy walls of London Tower. His spirits and wit did not
-forsake him; and when accosted by one of the Popish lords, whom he
-had been instrumental in sending there not long before, he replied,
-“that he had been lately indisposed with an ague, and was come to
-take some Jesuit’s powder.” Everything which ingenuity, prompted by
-malice, could suggest was done to injure in public estimation the late
-popular nobleman, and to prejudice his trial. The clergy inveighed
-against him as “the Apostle of Schism;” and the Catholics called him
-“the Man of Sin.” By the Tories he was styled “Mephistopheles,” and
-“the Fiend;” and by Dryden he was satirized in his _Absalom and
-Ahitophel_. The Bill at the Old Bailey having been ignored, the
-popular favourite prosecuted his accusers; and would, if he could, have
-raised an insurrection against the Government. Finding that enterprise
-impossible, he escaped to Holland, and died there in February, 1683,
-enjoying the hospitality of the Republic, which he had threatened
-to overthrow. “_Carthago_,” was their generous and graceful
-retort--“_non adhuc deleta, Comitem de Shaftesbury in gremio suo
-recipere vult_.”[81]
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-[Sidenote: RENEWED PERSECUTION.]
-
-The reaction went on, and began to sweep like a storm over the
-Dissenting Churches. The _State Papers_, after having for
-some years failed to supply illustrations of the condition of
-Nonconformity, again present a pile of informations and letters,
-proving the renewed activity of spies, and opening a fresh loop-hole
-through which we can discover the warfare going on against “the
-fanatics.” It is but just to the Government, to say, that as far
-as can be discovered from these records, this persecuting activity
-originated with individuals of the Tory and High Church party, who were
-continually writing to Sir Leoline Jenkins, informing him of political
-disaffection and of religious discontent. Loyal addresses streamed
-in from counties and towns, communications arrived respecting plots
-and disaffection, and complaints were also made of the non-execution
-of laws against Nonconformists.[82] All the way through, the object
-was to represent Nonconformists as disloyal, as traitors to their
-Prince, and as wishing to bring back the days of the Republic. So
-numerous, it is said, were these disaffected fanatics, that they
-swarmed everywhere,--none were safe from their influence. A question
-arose, whether even some of the King’s messengers were not “Meeters
-at Conventicles,” or, at least, persons who kept correspondence with
-such as went there.[83] Yet, amidst this chaos of informations, not the
-slightest hint appears of anything like _proof_ of the existence
-of a Nonconformist plot; and, indeed, for the most part, the narratives
-furnished are of the idlest description, some of them written by very
-illiterate persons.
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-Mixed up with complaints about the Nonconformists are discreditable
-allusions to Churchmen, who, for their moderation and liberality,
-were suspected of being no better than schismatics. Rumours reached
-Northampton that Dr. Conant had been made Prebendary of Worcester, much
-to the wonder “of those who knew what, lately as well as formerly, his
-actions had been;” but these rumours were contradicted, “much to the
-satisfaction of all who had any kindness to the King or Church.”[84]
-
-Waspish informers, buzzing about the ears of men of office, would under
-any circumstances have been annoying. Liberally-minded men--or rather
-men respecting the rights of conscience--whilst keeping their eyes
-open to detect dangers threatening the State, would have crushed, or
-at least have brushed away the troublesome insects; but the persons
-now in power were of a different character. Their known temper as
-high Churchmen and as high Tories encouraged the tribe to renew that
-infamous occupation, which happily had been gone now for some few
-years; and when these reports reached the Secretary, he not only
-graciously received them, but with his colleagues proceeded to take
-active measures against the suspected parties.
-
-[Sidenote: RENEWED PERSECUTION.]
-
-The names of the accused, the nature of the accusation, and allusions
-to the harvest of gain incident upon their conviction, are sufficient
-to prove how idle, and how much worse than idle, were the charges of
-disaffection. The _State Papers_ supply proofs of the interference
-of Government to remove obstacles out of the way of magistrates and
-officers, who found it difficult to clothe their acts with a semblance
-of legality.[85] Public documents exhibit the further activity of the
-Court in the same direction at the close of this year. His Majesty
-in Council ordered the Lord Mayor and Aldermen of London, and also
-the magistrates of Middlesex, to use their utmost endeavours for the
-suppression of Conventicles. The last-mentioned body, in the following
-January (1682), having previously ordered a return of the ministers
-and hearers in Dissenting assemblies, now desired that the Bishop of
-London would direct his officers to employ the utmost diligence for the
-excommunication of persons who deserved such penalty, and to publish
-the fact of their excommunication, so that no one of them might be
-“admitted for a witness, or returned upon juries, or capable of suing
-for any debt.”[86]
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-A striking instance of the treatment of Nonconformists is supplied in
-the history of Nathaniel Vincent, brother of Thomas Vincent, whose
-ministerial labours have been already noticed. This ejected clergyman
-came to London soon after the great fire, and preached amidst the ruins
-to large multitudes. Occupying a Conventicle in Southwark, he was
-dragged out of the pulpit by the hair of his head, and, at a subsequent
-period, he suffered imprisonment in the Marshalsea, and the Gatehouse,
-where he was denied the use of pen, ink, and paper.[87] In an
-information, dated the 18th of December, the writer, after mentioning
-other places, describes a visit he paid to Vincent’s place of worship,
-when that minister hearing of the informer’s approach, slipped away,
-and left his congregation singing David’s psalms. The more the Justices
-talked, and the more they exhorted the people to disperse, the louder
-the people continued to sing. Churchwardens, overseers, and constables,
-all refused to give the names of the Conventiclers, pretending they
-did not know who they were. A friend of Vincent’s, writing the next
-day, speaks of him as a man of equal standing in the University with
-most of the Conformists in Southwark, holding doctrines accordant
-with the Articles, constantly praying for the King, and accustomed on
-Christmas Day to make a collection for the poor of the parish of St.
-Olaves.[88] And in a further information we discover a curious scrap
-of intelligence respecting his place of worship:--“Almost every seat
-that adjoins to the sides of the Conventicle has a door, like the sally
-port of a fire ship, to make escape by, and in each door is a small
-peep-hole, like to taverns’ and alehouses’ doors, to ken the people
-before they let them in.” The author of the document proceeds to relate
-how the Marshalls dispersed these congregations, how officers were
-appointed to visit other meeting-houses, and how an old woman hoped
-they would “rot in hell” for having disturbed her.[89]
-
-[Sidenote: NATHANIEL VINCENT.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1682.]
-
-We learn from another source that a Justice once entered the meeting
-during one of Vincent’s sermons, and commanded him in the King’s name
-to come down, to which the minister replied he was there by command of
-the King of kings, and had resolved to proceed with the service.[90]
-The enforcement upon him of a fine of £20 proving impracticable, an
-indictment followed, under the Act of the 35th of Elizabeth. Upon
-the Sunday preceding the day of his trial, he preached to his flock
-from the words, “Only let your conversation be as it becometh the
-gospel of Christ: that whether I come and see you, or else be absent,
-I may hear of your affairs, that ye stand fast in one spirit, with
-one mind striving together for the faith of the gospel.” “There was a
-numerous auditory, insomuch that the people were ready to tread one
-upon another, and some hundreds went away that could not come near to
-hear him.” “In these sermons,” as further stated in the records of
-Vincent’s Church, “he earnestly pressed us to hold fast our profession,
-and to be steadfast in the cause of Christ. The 4th of January, before
-Mr. Vincent went to his trial, there was a solemn day of fasting
-and prayer kept at his own meeting-place, to seek the Lord on his
-behalf. On the 8th, there was a whole night spent in prayer. On the
-9th he went to Dorking, and had his trial on the 10th, when he was
-not suffered to speak in his own defence, but was found guilty of the
-indictment, and was committed prisoner to the Marshalsea, in Southwark,
-for three months, and then, if he would not conform according to that
-statute, he was to adjure the realm or suffer death.” The Church,
-deprived of their pastor, was much harassed by their enemies; and we
-are informed, that on “the 10th day of this month, being Saturday,
-one Justice Balsh, a silk throwster by trade, and a very bitter enemy
-to the Lord’s people living in Spitalfields, having sent word to the
-other Justices of the Peace, his brethren that lived in those parts,
-that he would meet them very early the next morning, to disturb the
-Whigs at their meeting-places (for so they called Dissenters at that
-time), about eight of the clock at night, died suddenly in his chair,
-and never spake a word.” “The 11th, we met in Aldersgate-street at a
-cloth-worker’s, where Mr. Biggin, the minister, had but just begun
-prayer, but we were disturbed by the train-bands.” “April 1st, we met
-at Mr. Russell’s, in Ironmonger-lane, where Mr. Lambert administered
-to us the ordinance of the Lord’s Supper, and _we sung a psalm with
-a low voice_.”[91] This touching circumstance calls to mind two
-parallels--one in the history of the Huguenots, when they crept into
-their place of worship muffled up, and sang in suppressed tones one
-of Marot’s psalms; and the other in the history of the persecuted
-Christians of Madagascar, who when they secretly assembled for Divine
-service, were wont to sing in whispers.
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION.]
-
-In November, informers broke into the house of Dr. Annesley, and
-distrained his goods for “several latent convictions;”[92] and, a
-month afterwards the same people entered his meeting-house and broke
-the seats in pieces; after which disturbance, worship was for a time
-suspended.[93] Others were treated in a similar manner.[94] The
-Bishop of London received orders from Court to require a return of
-all parishioners who did not attend church and receive the sacrament,
-several of whom were cited to appear in the spiritual court, but “the
-Bishop, and divers of his most conspicuous clergy, in the matter of
-persecution, carried themselves with great discretion and candour.”[95]
-A warrant, however, came out for the apprehension of Dr. Bates; and a
-little later, constables were posted at the doors of the “most known
-meeting-places in the City, so that there were few sermons in them, at
-least at the usual hours.”[96]
-
-[Sidenote: 1682.]
-
-In December fifty warrants for distresses in Hackney were signed;
-one for the sum of £500, the others of different amounts, making
-up altogether £1,400. Soon afterwards, 200 documents of the same
-kind were served upon certain inhabitants of the town of Uxbridge
-and its neighbourhood on account of their attending the proscribed
-Conventicles.[97] At the same time, it is recorded that “on the Lord’s
-Day the Dissenters were in some places in the City kept out, but in
-most they met, though they varied hours; few were actually disturbed,
-but the difficulties upon them were great.”[98]
-
-Whilst the London informers utterly failed to supply a shadow of proof
-that the Nonconformists were engaged in any treasonable designs, other
-informers in distant parts of the country strove, with a like want of
-evidence, to attach to their Dissenting neighbours the most infamous
-suspicions. A clergyman at Kirk Newton had been assaulted by burglars,
-who broke open his stable and stole two mares. Immediately a letter
-was despatched to the Duke of Newcastle, signed by three persons--who
-said, “We must conclude these men to be some fanatics or sent by them;”
-the Vicar being “a zealous man for the Church of England and a loyal
-person,” the circumstance calls for “some speedy course to suppress
-such insolences.”[99]
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION.]
-
-About Midsummer there came another batch of papers for the Secretary’s
-examination, supplying the names of ministers in the Borough of
-Southwark, their respective meeting-houses and the number of their
-hearers.[100] The illness from which the King just then was suffering,
-it is said, produced a great excitement amongst Dissenters, and a
-few days after the arrival of the last of these despatches at the
-Secretary’s office, the Lord Mayor of London issued a proclamation,
-in which he alluded to tumults occasioned by putting the law into
-execution against Conventicles.[101]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
-
-[Sidenote: DUKE OF MONMOUTH.]
-
-Readers of English history will remember the important political part
-played in the last years of Charles’ reign, by his illegitimate son,
-the Duke of Monmouth. When public feeling ran so high against the Duke
-of York, and so many Protestants were zealous for the Exclusion Bill,
-some amongst the latter favoured certain pretensions to the crown
-which had been put forward on behalf of his nephew. The pretensions
-were founded upon the alleged existence of a black box containing a
-contract of marriage between the King and the Duke’s mother, Lucy
-Walters, which black box made no small stir throughout the country in
-the year 1680.[102] Two years afterwards, when the Popish plot had
-ceased to alarm the public, and when the Duke of York’s prospects had
-begun to brighten, Monmouth endeavoured to revive his popularity, and
-to reinforce his claims by a progress in the North of England, during
-which journey he assumed a degree of state proper only to an heir
-apparent. Attended by a hundred horsemen,--fifty of whom rode before
-and fifty behind--he occupied a space in the midst of the cavalcade,
-mounted on a noble charger, and bowing with royal condescension to the
-crowds, who rent the air with shouts, “A Monmouth, a Monmouth, and no
-York!” Bells fired from the church steeples, and musketry roared from
-gates and ramparts, as the gay procession entered town after town.
-He might be found at fairs and races, rousing the men and wooing the
-women, and in town halls dining with the burgesses; always affecting
-royal etiquette, and actually going so far as to touch for the King’s
-evil. His movements closely watched, were duly reported to the
-Secretary of State by persons ill-affected towards the bold aspirant,
-including Shakerley, Governor of Chester Castle, who industriously
-wrote, day after day, minute descriptions of all Monmouth did in that
-old city,--a city in which, it may be recollected, Nonconformists had
-been found to be very numerous some years before.[103]
-
-[Sidenote: 1682.]
-
-According to reports, the whole company of horsemen who rode with
-the Duke into Chester did not exceed 150, most of them being noted
-Dissenters. They came shouting, with a company of rabble on foot, whom
-they had induced to join them by providing drink. The bells rang,
-except at the Cathedral and St. Peter’s; and there were some bonfires.
-The Duke went first to the Mayor’s house, where he lodged; and, after
-a short stay there, he repaired to an inn, where he and his companions
-sat down at the ordinary, the chaplain being Dr. Fogg, one of the
-prebendaries. The Duke proceeded to the Cathedral, where he heard a
-sermon not very pleasant to him or to his associates. The same writer
-complains of the rabble making a riot, breaking into the Church of St.
-Peter’s, forcing open the steeple door, and ringing the bells, amongst
-the rest the fire bell. “Another company,” he adds, “at a bonfire, made
-by a great Presbyterian, broke the glass windows of an honest Churchman
-opposite.” Two or three days later, after accustomed healths, such
-as “Confusion to Popery, and to those that would not be enemies to
-the Duke of York,” Monmouth’s party expressed great displeasure at a
-sermon preached before His Grace, in the choir of the Cathedral; and,
-in general, uttered loud exclamations against the clergy. Having, it is
-said, spit their venom that way, without one syllable of opposition,
-they fell to magnifying the last Parliament, and to commending their
-votes.[104]
-
-At such times as I am describing, people exist who are possessed by
-an inordinate love of writing, and of publishing what they write, and
-whose pens resemble the sting of wasps, and of other still more ignoble
-insects. Pamphleteers of this kind wrote against Dissenters, some
-whose malignity was greater than their wit, some whose wit kept pace
-with their malignity. Sir Roger L’Estrange, perhaps, may be reckoned
-as the most gifted, the most formidable, the most unscrupulous, and
-the most fierce of this tribe of tormentors. He had narrowly escaped
-being executed as a spy during the Civil Wars,--he had been shut up in
-Newgate for several years; and now the memory of his sufferings made
-him perfectly savage in his attacks upon those whom he identified with
-his former enemies. He perpetually rang changes upon the miseries of
-the year ’41, which he accused the popular party of having determined
-to revive. In his _Foxes and Firebrands_, and in his _Citt and
-Bumkin_, he vilified and lampooned all men of liberal opinions,
-whether those opinions happened to be ecclesiastical or political.
-Nonconformists were fools and rebels, and their toleration was
-inconsistent with order and peace. By abuse of one kind, he sought
-to force them into the Church, and then, when they had entered, he
-by another kind of abuse endeavoured to drive them out. Outside they
-were traitors, inside they were trimmers, so that it was impossible
-such people as L’Estrange could ever be pleased, let the conduct of
-Nonconformists be what it might. His career as a party writer, which
-began after the Restoration, attained its highest point at the period
-we have reached; and as a reward for his services to the cause of
-despotism, he obtained from his Royal master the honour of knighthood,
-an honour more than counterbalanced by the almost universal execration
-of posterity.[105]
-
-[Sidenote: ROYAL DESPOTISM.]
-
-Charles, in playing the despot, went on from bad to worse. Municipal
-corporations, whose freedom is always of primary importance to the
-interests of this country, were then still more intimately connected
-with our national liberties than at present--for not only was the
-administration of justice in cities and boroughs lodged in their hands,
-not only were juries in Middlesex returned by the City Sheriffs, but
-the right of election for members of Parliament rested, in a number of
-cases, not with the citizens and burgesses generally, but with those
-who were mayors, aldermen, and common councilmen. In many large places,
-especially London, the Corporation opposed the Court; and therefore
-no representatives subservient to the Crown could be expected to
-come from such a quarter. The King, relying upon legal advisers, who
-preferred cunning to equity, determined to try whether he could not
-deprive his subjects of their municipal rights by the process of _quo
-warranto_.[106] The attempt, made in the Metropolis first, so far
-succeeded, that the Court of King’s Bench gave judgment against the
-Corporation; and,--although it allowed the Corporation to retain its
-privileges, under certain restrictions,--from that time the capital of
-the kingdom remained powerless in the hands of the sovereign.
-
-[Sidenote: 1683.]
-
-[Sidenote: LORD W. RUSSELL.]
-
-Constitutional methods of expressing public opinion being suspended,
-there were men whom desperation drove to think of the patriot’s last
-resort. They talked of war. Shaftesbury, whose erratic ability and
-eloquence sometimes helped the cause of liberty, had disappeared from
-the stage of public affairs, and had, as we have seen, gone over to
-Holland, where he died. But his restless brain, employed in concocting
-schemes of insurrection, which at the time came to nothing, had left
-behind, amongst many Englishmen with whom he had been associated,
-seeds of discontent, ready to grow into acts of violence. The seeds
-did grow, and the harvest proved “a heap in the day of grief, and of
-desperate sorrow.” The Rye House Plot is well known. With any design
-of assassinating the King, Sidney and Russell--who came within the
-complications of a plan for forcibly resisting the despotism of
-Government--had nothing to do. Nothing could be more idle than to talk,
-as some did, of certain ministers--Owen, Mead, and Griffiths--being
-engaged in revolutionary designs. The King, when Mead had been
-summoned, ordered him to be discharged; but Sidney and Russell, it
-cannot be contradicted, were present at conversations turning upon the
-subject of an appeal to arms in the cause of freedom. These illustrious
-men were, as all readers of English history know, tried,[107]
-condemned, and executed; and as the story of Russell’s last moments
-belongs to the religious annals of our country, it claims some space on
-these pages.[108]
-
-[Sidenote: 1683.]
-
-[Sidenote: LORD W. RUSSELL.]
-
-In prison he devoted most of his time to meditation, receiving his
-death-warrant with calmness, and anticipating his departure with
-hope. Six or seven times, upon the last morning of his life (July
-21), he engaged in prayer; and, on parting from Lord Cavendish, urged
-upon that nobleman the importance of personal piety: then, winding
-up his watch, he remarked--that he had done with time, and was going
-to eternity. As the mourning coach, which conveyed him to the place
-of execution, turned the corner by Little Queen Street, he remarked,
-“I have often turned to the other hand with great comfort (alluding
-to the proximity of Southampton Square, where he resided), but now
-I turn to this with greater.” As he saw some persons weeping, and
-others manifesting disrespect, he appreciated the commiseration of the
-former, and evinced no resentment at the conduct of the latter. He sang
-“within himself,” scarcely articulating words, observing, he hoped
-soon to sing better; and, as he looked upon the dense throng around
-him, he expressed the hope of soon beholding nobler multitudes. As
-he entered Lincoln’s Inn Fields, observing it rained, he said to his
-friends in the coach, “this may do you hurt that are bare-headed;” and
-as he caught sight of the familiar place he exclaimed, in allusion to
-his early days, “this has been to me a place of sinning, and God now
-makes it the place of my punishment.” Having expressed wonder at the
-crowds assembled, he placed in the Sheriff’s hand a long paper, and
-declared at the same time, that he had never intended to plot against
-the King’s life or reign. After praying that God would preserve His
-Majesty and the Protestant religion, he expressed an earnest wish that
-all Protestants would love one another, and not by mutual animosities
-open a way for the re-entrance of Popery. In the paper just mentioned,
-he avowed his attachment to the Church of England, and expressed a
-desire that Conformists would be less severe, and that Dissenters would
-be less scrupulous. He said he had always been ready to venture his
-life for his country and his religion; and he avowed his sincerity and
-earnestness in supporting the Bill of Exclusion, as the best means of
-defending the Crown and the Church: he forgave his enemies, although
-he thought killing by forms and subtilties of law to be “the worst
-sort of murder.” When he had knelt down, Tillotson, who with Burnet
-stood by him on the scaffold, offered intercession on his behalf. The
-sufferer then unfastened his dress, took off his outer garment, bared
-his neck, and laid it on the block, without change of countenance. The
-executioner, to ensure his aim, touched him with the axe, but he did
-not shrink; and after two strokes Russell’s soul went where vindictive
-passions could not follow him.[109]
-
-It has been justly remarked that when his memory ceases to be an object
-of veneration “it requires no spirit of prophecy to foretell that
-English liberty will be fast approaching to its final consummation;”
-and we may add, that no less a Christian than a patriot, he has left
-behind a name as dear to English Christians as it is to English
-patriots.
-
-We have seen the spirit which prevailed two years before--we have
-proofs of its continuance in connection with the last days of Lord
-William Russell. That nobleman tenaciously held the principle, that in
-some cases it was lawful to resist Government by force. But Churchmen,
-who, at the Revolution, in practice approved, if they did not in theory
-uphold the doctrine, condemned it at this early period not only as
-impolitic, but as irreligious. Tillotson wrote to Russell just before
-his execution a letter, in which he said that Christianity plainly
-discountenanced the resistance of authority, that in the same law
-which establishes our religion, it is declared to be unlawful, under
-any pretence whatsoever, to take up arms; and that his Lordship’s
-opinion was contrary to the doctrine of all Protestant Churches. He
-also pronounced the same opinion to be an offence of a heinous nature,
-calling “for a very particular and deep repentance.”[110]
-
-[Sidenote: 1683.]
-
-Tillotson, in this letter, committed himself to the doctrine of passive
-obedience; and its publication, without any subsequent denial or
-recantation, places him before the world as upholding one main-prop
-of the Stuart despotism. Burnet also, by his conduct at the time,
-lent his influence to the same side; for, with characteristic haste,
-and with that inaccuracy, into which haste so often betrayed him, he
-rushed from Russell’s cell at Newgate, saying, that he had converted
-his noble friend, who declared his satisfaction in that point to which
-Tillotson’s letter relates. Such conduct indicated sympathy at the
-time with the opinions in the letter now mentioned; and, therefore, it
-involves Burnet in the same responsibility with Tillotson. Russell,
-however, soon undeceived both his advisers, insisting that the notion
-which he had of the laws, and of the English Government, differed from
-that of the two Divines. He died a martyr to the faith, which placed
-the Crown of England on the head of the Prince of Orange, whose claims
-Tillotson and Burnet afterwards vindicated, and whose conduct they ever
-delighted to eulogize.
-
-When Churchmen, of moderation and liberality, acted in this way, what
-could be expected from Churchmen of a different order? The University
-of Oxford having collected from the writings of Puritans, from
-Independents, and from political philosophers, sentences which plainly,
-or by implication, justified under certain circumstances resistance
-to Government, decreed by a vote of Convocation, such propositions to
-be false, seditious, and impious,--and most of them also heretical and
-blasphemous, infamous to the Christian religion, and destructive of all
-good government in Church and State. The books containing such opinions
-were forbidden to be read, and ordered to be burnt.[111]
-
-[Sidenote: CONTROVERSY.]
-
-At this juncture it happened that Nonconformists were silent, as
-respected political and ecclesiastical controversy, except that John
-Howe published a beautiful sermon on the question, “What may most
-hopefully be attempted to allay animosities among Protestants, that
-our divisions may not be our ruin?” Owen had been overtaken by his
-last illness, and Baxter had become tired of disputation. Many of his
-brethren were suffering from persecution; and those who were not,
-could have controverted the political doctrines of the Church only by
-incurring the risk of losing their property, their liberty, or their
-life. The Government did everything it could to prevent the expression
-of liberal opinions. The quiet habits of most Dissenters, the
-cultivation of calm endurance, especially by Quakers, and by others in
-a less conspicuous manner, served to promote this remarkable silence--a
-silence which, compared with the subsequent Revolution, resembles the
-smoothness of the torrent on the edge of the abyss. Nor should it be
-forgotten that men who comprehended the dangers of the hour felt,
-notwithstanding, immense perplexity as to what they ought to say or do;
-since Charles II. pertinaciously professed the greatest moderation,
-and declared a love for Parliaments and for the liberties of his
-country,--thus by cunning and artifice, showing as great a proficiency
-in king-craft as ever his father had done.
-
-[Sidenote: 1683.]
-
-A little more than one month after Lord William Russell’s execution,
-Dr. John Owen, whose illness we just now mentioned, entered his rest.
-He closed his days in the little village of Ealing, where he possessed
-an estate. In his seclusion he wrote _The Glory of Christ_.
-Transported by his theme he poured forth reflections like “a sea of
-glass mingled with fire,” and in conversation with his friends devoutly
-expressed his hopes and desires. “I am going,” he said, “to Him, whom
-my soul has loved; or rather who has loved me with an everlasting love,
-which is the whole ground of all my consolation. I am leaving the ship
-of the Church in a storm, but while the Great Pilot is in it the loss
-of a poor under-rower will be inconsiderable. Live and pray, and hope
-and wait patiently, and do not despond: the promise stands invincible
-that He will never leave us nor forsake us.” The first sheet of his
-last book had passed through the press, under the superintendence of
-Mr. Payne, an eminent Dissenting minister at Saffron Walden; and as
-he informed Owen of the circumstance the latter exclaimed “I am glad
-to hear it; but, O! brother Payne, the long-wished-for day is come at
-last, in which I shall see that glory in another manner than I have
-ever done, or was capable of doing in this world.”[112] As the dying
-man inherited a strong constitution, he had much to endure when the
-last struggle came, and the attendants upon his dying bed were deeply
-affected, both by the intensity of his pains and the brightness of his
-peace. In silence, with uplifted eyes and hands, this eminent man left
-the world; and--which is a remarkable coincidence--he did so on St.
-Bartholomew’s Day.
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION.]
-
-Throughout the last three or four years of the reign of Charles II.
-the persecutions carried on against the Nonconformists increased in
-violence; and the cause is to be found, not only in the religious
-character of the victims, but in the political course which they felt
-it their duty to pursue. Indeed the latter in some cases mainly excited
-the party in power. Nonconformists generally had supported members of
-the Opposition, at the last three elections. They were known to be
-advocates of constitutional liberty against the despotic designs of men
-in high places. “Which alone,” observed John Howe--and his testimony
-is most trustworthy--“and not our mere dissent from the Church of
-England in matters of religion, wherein Charles II. was sufficiently
-known to be a Prince of great indifferency, drew upon us, soon after
-the dissolution of the last of those Parliaments, that dreadful storm
-of persecution that destroyed not a small number of lives in gaols, and
-ruined multitudes of families.”[113]
-
-The Presbyterians, who had often received promises of comprehension,
-were persecuted in common with the rest of the Nonconformists. If ever
-a man lived in the world inoffensively, as well as usefully, it was
-Oliver Heywood; yet he did not escape imprisonment. His case exposes
-the wicked intolerance of the rulers far beyond that of some others,
-where partial ignorance of the circumstances might leave room for the
-idea, that a measure of imprudence provoked opposition. No provocation,
-we are sure, could have been given to the authorities of the country
-by this eminently amiable and holy person.
-
-[Sidenote: 1684.]
-
-The case of Thomas Rosewell, a Presbyterian minister, in Rotherhithe,
-differs from that of Heywood; but his treatment was not less unjust.
-Charged with uttering treason in his discourses, the jury, after an
-address from Judge Jeffreys, who presided at the trial, brought him in
-guilty. When the prisoner moved for an arrest of judgment, the King,
-being informed of the circumstances, felt so convinced of the infamous
-character of the witnesses, and of the loyalty of Rosewell, that he
-pardoned him at once.[114]
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION.]
-
-From the evidence elicited during Rosewell’s trial we are enabled to
-form a distinct picture of one of the Nonconformist places of worship
-in those days, and of several interesting circumstances connected with
-the services. The place in which he preached was situated in Salisbury
-Street, Rotherhithe, near the preacher’s dwelling, and consisted of
-a tenement or tenements, so altered as to adapt the building for
-accommodating a large number of people. “The rooms were but of a low
-height.” “There was a low parlour, and a little room up six steps;”
-and where the preacher stood “was a large room and a garret.” He stood
-“in the door-case of that room, that the sound might go up and down.”
-The chamber was hung with sad-coloured paper, and a sad-coloured bed
-was in the room. Upon the left hand of the speaker “was a chest of
-sweet wood, and a little cabinet upon it; and a glass over that; and
-upon the right hand, on the side of the chimney, was a closet.” Three
-or four hundred people commonly attended--some “people of quality;”
-and a “store of watermen and seamen” from Deptford, Rotherhithe, and
-thereabouts. There were shutters in the windows, and the sun came in,
-and Rosewell was afraid lest the people that went by should hear him.
-Upon the occasion in question, at first there was not light enough let
-into the apartment, and he desired that one part of the shutters should
-be opened; then he requested that half might be shut again, for fear he
-should be overheard. The congregation met at seven in the morning, and
-did not break up until a little after two in the afternoon,--a pause
-taking place in the middle, when the preacher went in to dinner, and
-“left us there,” says the witness; “and abundance in the congregation
-ate sweetmeats, or biscuits, or such things.” A man, who was a brazier,
-acted as door-keeper, and was angry at a woman’s “coming with pattens,
-for they made an impression on the ground, and gave notice to others
-that there was company there.” She found out the place only “by dogging
-of people as they went along;” and by inquiries made of certain persons
-“set commonly at a place called Cherry Garden Stairs.”[115]
-
-[Sidenote: 1684.]
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION.]
-
-Thomas Delaune, a Baptist schoolmaster, and a person of considerable
-learning, appears as an eminent sufferer in those dark days. He
-published _A Plea for the Nonconformists_, in answer to a sermon
-entitled _A Scrupulous Conscience_, published by Dr. Benjamin
-Calamy, Rector of St. Lawrence Jewry. Delaune simply endeavoured to
-prove that certain observances in the Episcopal establishment more
-resembled what is found in the Popish Communion than what is found
-in primitive antiquity. The publication being treated as a criminal
-offence, the author was committed to Newgate in November, 1683, and
-indicted for “a false, seditious, and scandalous libel concerning
-the Lord the King and the Book of Common Prayer.” The Jury, imbued
-with the spirit of the age, found him guilty, after which the Judge
-sentenced him to pay a fine of one hundred marks, to be kept a
-close prisoner until he paid the money, and to find security for
-good behaviour during twelve months afterwards. Delaune remained in
-confinement fifteen months, at the end of which time nature broke down
-under hardship and suffering. The poor man died, and it is shocking
-to add, his wife and two small children also expired during the same
-period within the walls of Newgate.[116] In the same prison Francis
-Bampfield, a Baptist minister, and an Oxford man, who had suffered
-repeatedly for his Nonconformity, perished in the month of February,
-1684.[117] Of all sects, perhaps, the Quakers suffered most. Their
-meetings were disturbed by drums and fiddles; women were insulted,
-their hoods and scarfs torn, and little boys were beaten or whipped
-with a cat-o’-nine-tails. Seven hundred Friends were reported as being
-imprisoned in the year 1683.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
-
-At the time when English gaols were filled with Nonconformists, and
-English citizens were driven into exile, the English Sovereign offered
-an asylum to Protestant refugees from France; thus, at the same moment,
-persecuting his own conscientious subjects, and befriending those
-like-minded, who suffered from the tyranny of Louis XIV.
-
-[Sidenote: FRENCH PROTESTANTS.]
-
-After the Edict of Nantes, in 1591, had formally guaranteed to the
-Huguenots liberty of worship, vexatious interferences with their
-religious rights goaded them to resistance, and revived those political
-and military combinations which had proved so mischievous to the French
-Reformation. But, before the middle of the seventeenth century, the
-French Protestants became a purely religious community. The Count
-d’Harcourt bore witness to their loyalty in the well-known words, “the
-Crown tottered on the King’s head, but you have fixed it there:” and
-Cardinal Mazarin testified to their good conduct, when he said, “I
-have no cause to complain of the little flock,--if they browse on bad
-herbage, at least they do not stray away.”[118] The latter illustrious
-statesman, although a religious enemy, was a political protector of his
-Protestant countrymen; and, soon after his death in 1661, they became
-fully aware of the loss which they had sustained. His Royal master
-determined to govern alone, at the very moment when he became more than
-ever the slave of the Church; and, gathering up the reins entirely
-within his own hands, he sought to atone for his immoralities by the
-extirpation of heretical opinions. The conversion of the French King
-was a change from courtly gallantries to religious persecution,--from
-sensuality to intolerance,--from vice to crime. It is impossible to
-say, in how many districts he interdicted the exercise of the Reformed
-religion; how many places of worship he razed; how many schools he
-suppressed; how many Protestant endowments he confiscated for Roman
-Catholic purposes. Ordinances, declarations, decrees, and other acts of
-Council swiftly followed one after another, striking the heretics with
-blow upon blow.[119]
-
-In 1681, Louis began his atrocious system of dragonnading, which
-consisted in billeting ten or twelve military brigands in a Protestant
-family, with authority to do anything short of murder, for the
-conversion of its members to Popery. Curés shouted to these new
-apostles, “Courage, gentlemen, it is the will of the King.”[120]
-Horsemen fastened crosses to the ends of their musquetoons, and
-compelled people to kiss them. They whipped their victims, they smote
-them on the face, they dragged them about by the hair of their heads,
-and drove them to church as they might drive so many cattle.
-
-[Sidenote: 1681.]
-
-In the middle of the seventeenth century, French exiles had established
-themselves in different parts of England. A French Church had been
-founded at Winchelsea in 1560, at Canterbury in 1561, at Norwich in
-1564, with others at Southampton, Glastonbury, and Rye. A Church at
-Sandtoft, Lincolnshire, dated from 1634; in the Savoy, from 1641; in
-Dover, from 1646; in Marylebone, 1656; not to mention others.[121] The
-Dragonnades, in 1681, sent at once a new and unprecedented wave of
-emigration across the Channel.
-
-[Sidenote: FRENCH PROTESTANTS.]
-
-Charles II., who did not blush to receive a pension from Louis XIV.
-for betraying the interests of his country, now came forward in
-favour of the fugitives--from good nature, or through advice, or
-in order to please the English Protestants, perhaps from all three
-motives combined. By an edict, signed at Hampton Court, on the 28th
-of July, 1681, he declared that he felt obliged by his honour and
-his conscience, to succour the people who were fleeing into exile.
-He therefore accorded them letters of naturalization, with all the
-privileges necessary for the exercise of such trades as would not
-injure the interests of his kingdom. He engaged that he would ask
-the next Parliament to naturalize all who should seek refuge in
-this island, and in the meantime he exempted them from all imposts
-to which his other subjects were not liable. He authorized them
-to send their children to the public schools and Universities. He
-ordered all his officers, both civil and military, to receive them
-wherever they landed, to give them passports gratuitously, and to
-furnish such relief as might be necessary for them to travel to their
-destination. He also instructed the Commissioners of the Treasury, and
-of the Customs, to let the strangers pass free, with their furniture,
-their merchandize, and their instruments of trade; and, further, he
-encouraged charitable persons to assist those who were in want. He
-also commissioned the Archbishop of Canterbury and the Bishop of
-London to receive their requests and present them to him. To this
-edict there succeeded, before long, an order in Council which granted
-naturalization to eleven hundred and fifty-four fugitives;[122] and
-boat after boat arrived freighted with these sufferers. Such sympathy
-with the persecuted, however just, appears very inconsistent. About
-a hundred years earlier, the Jesuits had turned the tables on the
-intolerant Lutherans and Calvinists of the empire, by saying that
-Catholic sovereigns had as much right to deny religious liberty as
-Protestant ones;[123] and Louis could have taken sufficient ground for
-retorting upon Charles after the same fashion. Reports were circulated
-to the discredit of the refugees--and were met, on the other hand, by
-friendly certificates from Incumbents and Churchwardens, testifying
-of them as “sober, harmless, innocent people, such as served God
-constantly and uniformly, according to the usage and custom of the
-Church of England.”[124] In 1682, Charles issued briefs to the clergy
-to make collections for the new comers; and, in this beneficent work,
-Tillotson, Dean of Canterbury, took part. Beveridge, then a Prebendary
-in Canterbury Cathedral, from some mistaken scruple--or from coolness
-towards a foreign Church--objected to reading the brief, as contrary to
-the rubric. This circumstance brought out Tillotson’s well-known reply,
-“Doctor, Doctor, charity is above rubrics.”[125]
-
-[Sidenote: 1682.]
-
-The persecutions of these French Protestants, their arrival on our
-shores, and the kindness with which they were received, are not
-mentioned here simply because they are incidents of a religious
-character locally connected with our own country, but for another
-and more forcible reason. These persecutions had become a staple of
-conversation in many an English home; and many an English heart had
-palpitated with deep sympathy, as stories of violence and suffering
-had fallen on the ear. Each fresh gust of intolerance, as it broke on
-France, had stirred the feelings of English Puritans, scarcely less
-than the feelings of French Protestants living on this side Dover
-Straits. And the revival of oppression, after the death of Mazarin,
-could not fail to inspire indignation in the breasts of multitudes
-within our shores when the anti-Popery agitation burst out afresh.
-The sight of the fugitives, their tales of horrid barbarity, of
-patient endurance, and of romantic adventure, would reinvigorate
-the Protestantism of our fathers, and largely contribute to that
-fixed resolve, which defied the contrivances of Charles and James,
-and ended in what has been ever since esteemed the _Glorious_
-Revolution.[126]
-
-[Sidenote: THE CABINET.]
-
-It was natural for foreign Protestants to look to England for help in
-more ways than one. The Archbishop of Canterbury received a letter
-from Dr. Covel, chaplain at the Hague to the Princess of Orange, urging
-the formation of a public League in defence of European Protestantism.
-Sancroft did not possess the courage and heroism to promote such a
-measure, had it been wise; but he did possess the sagacity and prudence
-to see that the object desired was not wise; and, in addition to those
-qualities, he displayed, in the answer to his correspondent, a large
-measure of Protestant sympathy and devout feeling.[127]
-
-The prospects of Protestantism became darker and darker. The Act for
-excluding Papists from office was for a while cunningly evaded by
-Charles, who placed the whole business of the Admiralty in the hands of
-his brother, the Duke of York, he himself signing all official papers
-in that department:--at last, this shadowy pretence he cast aside, and
-boldly invited James to a seat at the Council-table--a step which even
-one of his Tory supporters acknowledged “became the subject of much
-talk, and was deemed to be a breach of one of the most solemn and most
-explicit Acts of Parliament.”[128] Two other persons, at the same time
-Members of the Council, ought to be noticed. One was Lord Chief Justice
-Jeffreys, too infamous a character to require anything more than the
-mention of his name; and Lord Keeper Guilford, who, whilst hating
-Jeffreys with a bitter hatred, in some respects resembled him. The part
-which these men took at this time in relation to Papists and Protestant
-Nonconformists, and the manner of their conducting ecclesiastical
-business, are illustrated by the following incident.
-
-[Sidenote: 1684.]
-
-It was the fashion to hold Cabinet meetings on Sunday nights. One
-Sunday morning, the Duke of York asked Guilford to assist him in a
-business which would that evening be brought before His Majesty.
-Guilford thought that certain Courtiers just then looked at him with
-remarkable gravity, as if something important was about to come on the
-carpet; but he did not discover its nature until after the meeting
-had commenced. Jeffreys had returned fresh from a Northern tour, and
-had brought with him reports of large numbers of Papists convicted of
-being recusants, and, after placing on the table rolls containing their
-names, he rose from his chair, and proceeded to say:--
-
-[Sidenote: CABINET MEETING.]
-
-“I have a business to lay before your Majesty, which I took notice
-of in the North, and which will deserve your Majesty’s royal
-commiseration. It is the case of numberless numbers of your good
-subjects, that are imprisoned for recusancy. I have the list of them
-here, to justify what I say. They are so many that the great gaols
-cannot hold them without their lying one upon another.” Then, to use
-the language of Roger North, “he let fly his tropes and figures about
-rotting and stinking in prisons;” and concluded his speech with a
-motion that His Majesty be requested to discharge “these poor men,”
-and restore them to “liberty and air.”[129] Such a motion from such
-a man will be at once understood. It could have been made only to
-please his Royal master, and that master’s brother. If selfishness
-influenced Jeffreys in making the proposal, selfishness influenced
-Guilford in opposing it; for, on the one hand, any such pardon as that
-now proposed, must pass the Great Seal of which he was keeper; and by
-affixing this to such an unpopular instrument, he might bring himself
-into trouble with his friends. On the other hand, by refusal he might
-incur a forfeiture of office, and have to give place to his most odious
-enemy. After the Lord Keeper had sat silent awhile, expecting some
-of the Lords in the Protestant interest, as Halifax and Rochester,
-to speak,--he rose and addressed the King, entreating that the Chief
-Justice might declare, whether all the persons named in these rolls
-were actually in prison or not. His Lordship replied that he did not
-imagine any one could suspect that to be his meaning, but that they
-were under sentence of commitment, and were liable to be taken up by
-any peevish Sheriff or Magistrate. North then proceeded to attack all
-Sectaries. They were a turbulent people, he said, and always stirring
-up sedition; and, if they did so when they were obnoxious to the
-laws, what would they not do, if His Majesty gave them a discharge
-at once? Was it not better that his enemies should live under some
-disadvantages, and be obnoxious to His Majesty’s pleasure, who might,
-if they were turbulent and troublesome, inflict the penalties of the
-law upon them? As to the Roman Catholics, if there were any persons to
-whom the King would extend the favour of a pardon, let it be particular
-and express. After all, the disadvantage they were under, was but the
-payment of some fees to officers, which was compensated for by their
-enjoying exemption from serving in chargeable offices.[130]
-
-[Sidenote: 1684.]
-
-Guilford thought that in this way he outwitted his adversary, and
-accounted his manœuvre the most memorable act which he had ever
-performed. The report shows, that from personal inclination, or from a
-wish to gratify the King, and the Duke of York, he evinced especial
-hatred to Protestant Nonconformists in general, when he recommended
-mercy to some Popish recusants in particular; and, whatever might be
-his motive on the occasion, the speech which he delivered, and his
-entire relation of this Cabinet secret, discloses to us very plainly
-the characters of the men who then guided public affairs, and the
-contemptible feelings which influenced their conduct.
-
-One Nonconformist sufferer at that time demands a passing notice.
-William Jenkyn, of St. John’s, Cambridge, ejected from the Vicarage
-of Christ’s Church, London, where he had been exceedingly popular,
-was, on September the 2nd, 1684, seized by a soldier,--he being at the
-very time engaged in prayer with his friends. Refusing to take the
-Oxford Oath, he was committed to prison; and to a petition for release
-founded on a medical certificate that his health would be endangered
-by confinement, no answer could be obtained but this,--“Jenkyn shall
-be a prisoner as long as he lives.” As his end drew near, he said to
-those around him, “Why weep ye for me? Christ lives; He is my friend,
-a friend born for adversity, a friend that never dies.” “May it please
-your Majesty,” remarked a nobleman, when he heard of his death, “Jenkyn
-has got his liberty.” “Aye,” rejoined Charles, “who gave it him?”
-“A greater than your Majesty, the King of Kings.” The Confessor was
-followed to Bunhill Fields, by a procession of a hundred and fifty
-coaches. Even gay Courtiers looked sad, and the reckless King seemed
-concerned. “L’Estrange,” in his _Observator_, “alone set up a howl
-of savage exultation, laughed at the weak compassion of the Trimmers,
-proclaimed that the blasphemous old impostor had met with a most
-righteous punishment, and vowed to wage war not only to the death, but
-after death, with all the mock saints and martyrs.”[131]
-
-[Sidenote: CHARLES’ COURT.]
-
-Nor should it be forgotten, that whilst Nonconformists were suffering
-all kinds of hardships, the King and his Court were indulging in
-unbridled licentiousness, so that the contrast drawn by the poet of the
-mysteries of Providence then appeared in our own country as vividly as
-it ever did in any part of the world:--
-
- “The good man’s share
- In life was gall and bitterness of soul;
- . . . . . . . While luxury
- In palaces lay straining her low thought,
- To form unreal wants, and heaven-born truths
- And moderation fair, wore the red marks
- Of superstition’s scourge.”
-
-Imagination, as we read the history of the later Stuarts, ever and
-anon places before us side by side the confessor’s dungeon and the
-voluptuary’s chamber. The scenes which the Count de Grammont depicts,
-the characters which he draws, and the intrigues which he unravels;
-the entire want of moral principle, the absence of common shame, the
-bare-aced profligacy, the devices to excite and gratify the lowest
-passions, which he, who had lived at Court and shared in its pleasures,
-so graphically and yet so complacently portrays, make us blush for our
-race. The reaction from the simple manners and severe virtues of the
-Commonwealth was tremendous. Courage, or rather an irritable sense of
-honour, leading the gallant to wreak revenge upon any who offended him,
-came to be the chief virtue of Cavalier Courtiers. Vices and crimes
-were treated as petty foibles: beauty, liveliness, and wit alone were
-counted meritorious; and “the manners of Chesterfield united with the
-morals of Rochefoucault.” The Count’s book is indeed a reflection of
-the age--elegant in style, but licentious in character--a veil of
-embroidered gauze cast over a putrescent corpse.
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-In the midst of this depravity death suddenly appeared. Art has
-portrayed two scenes at Whitehall which point a moral never to be
-forgotten. The one represents the Sunday night when Evelyn saw
-inexpressible profaneness, gambling, and dissoluteness--the King
-sitting and toying with his concubines, the French boy singing love
-songs, and the Courtiers playing basset with a bank of 2,000 guineas
-piled up on the table. The other exhibits what was witnessed a few
-days afterwards in the anterooms of the chamber where the Royal
-Sybarite awaited the summons of the Almighty; noblemen and ladies,
-with heartless etiquette, performing their Court attendance; prelates
-at a distance, hoping for an opportunity to administer to him the last
-offices of that Church, which had called the dying man its Defender,
-whilst, as he is in the act of renouncing communion with it, a delicate
-hand is seen extended from behind a timorously opened door, to receive
-a glass of water to assist in swallowing the wafer, laid upon the
-Royal tongue by a disguised priest. These pictures[132] illustrate the
-mutability of earthly grandeur, and the righteous retribution of God
-upon a life spent in sin. Charles II. died on the 6th of February,
-1685,--within three weeks of William Jenkyn.
-
-[Sidenote: DEATH OF CHARLES.]
-
-Very confused and contradictory accounts are given of the circumstances
-connected with this event; but there is enough of what is perfectly
-credible, to show that Charles died in a state of reconciliation with
-the Church of Rome. The Duke of York, his brother, who watched him to
-the last moment, states that two Protestant Bishops read by his bedside
-the service of the Visitation of the Sick, and that one of them, Ken,
-Bishop of Bath and Wells, after receiving from the sick man a faint
-acknowledgment of sorrow for his sins, pronounced absolution, and
-offered him the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, which was declined. But
-the Duke makes no mention of the pathetic strain in which that prelate
-addressed the King, or of the faithful exhortation addressed by the
-Archbishop of Canterbury.
-
-The Duke further relates that he arranged for the clandestine
-introduction to the chamber, of a Benedictine Monk, who had aided
-Charles’ escape after the battle of Worcester; that when the room had
-been cleared of all, except the Earl of Bath and Lord Feversham, the
-priest, brought up into a private closet by a back pair of stairs, was
-taken to the bedside; and that, after confession, he administered the
-last rites of the Popish Communion--that the expiring man uttered pious
-ejaculations, lifting up his hands and crying, “Mercy, sweet Jesus,
-mercy,” till the priest gave him extreme unction--that as the host was
-presented, he raised himself up, and said “Let me meet my Heavenly Lord
-in a better posture than lying on my bed.” But the Duke says not a word
-of Charles’ blessing his natural children, and the rest of the persons
-present; nor of any one begging the Royal benediction, calling the King
-the father of them all.
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-Yet these circumstances are related by others, as well as the utterance
-of the words, “Do not let poor Nelly starve;” and Charles’ reply to
-the Queen’s message asking forgiveness. “She ask my pardon, poor
-woman?--I ask hers with all my heart.” James, in his _Memoirs_, is
-evidently intent upon one thing, to show that Charles died a sincere
-Papist, which we can well believe from what we know of his previous
-history.[133]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-James II. met his Privy Councillors within an hour after his brother’s
-death, on the 6th of February; and, upon taking his seat at the head
-of the Council-table, he delivered an extempore speech, which was
-afterwards written down from memory by Finch, the Solicitor-General.
-According to his report, the King declared “I shall make it my
-endeavour to preserve this Government both in Church and State, as
-it is now by law established. I know the principles of the Church of
-England are for monarchy, and the members of it have showed themselves
-good and loyal subjects; therefore I shall always take care to defend
-and support it.”[134] In explanation of this promise, coupled with so
-dubious a compliment to the English Church, James afterwards, in his
-own _Memoirs_, states that Finch worded “the speech as strong
-as he could,” and, in the hurry, it was allowed to pass “without
-reflection;” that he might have more clearly expressed himself had
-he used the words “he _never would endeavour to alter_ the
-established religion,” instead of the words “he would endeavour _to
-preserve_ it;” and that he said he would support and defend the
-_professors_ of it, not the _religion_ itself. He further
-remarks, that no one could expect he would “make a conscience of
-supporting what, in his conscience, he thought erroneous;”--that all he
-meant, or could be expected, or was understood to say, was, simply that
-he would not molest the members of the Protestant Church.[135] Read in
-the light of such sophistry, the speech,--certainly at the time taken
-to mean one thing, though the concealed intention of the King was to
-do quite another,--shows that James must have possessed even a larger
-share than his elder brother, of the inherent duplicity of the Stuart
-race. Yet, unlike his brother, he evinced unmistakeable frankness in
-the profession of religion; for on leaving the Council he immediately
-proceeded with the Queen to the little Roman Catholic Chapel in St.
-James’, leaving the door open during Divine service, that any one might
-see him at worship there.[136] On Holy Thursday, accompanied by his
-guards and gentlemen pensioners, he received the sacrament; and on
-Easter Sunday he publicly appeared at mass--the Knights of the Garter,
-in their collars, attending him, both as he went, and as he returned.
-The Duke of Norfolk, who carried the Sword of State, however, stopped
-at the chapel door, upon which His Majesty immediately observed to him,
-“My Lord, your father would have gone further.” His Grace promptly
-replied, “Your Majesty’s father would not have gone so far.” James not
-only commanded an account to be published of Charles’ conforming in his
-last moments to the Church of Rome, but he himself published two papers
-professedly written by his brother, in favour of its doctrines. These
-he showed to Sancroft, Archbishop of Canterbury, who said, “That he did
-not think the late King had been so learned in controversy, but that
-the arguments in the papers were easy to refute.” James desired him
-to confute them if he could. Sancroft satisfied himself with politely
-answering, “It ill became him to enter into a controversy with his
-Sovereign.”[137]
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES II.]
-
-Plenty of gossip was circulated by lip and pen respecting the conduct
-of His Majesty and his sympathizing friends at this important
-juncture;--of which gossip a specimen is furnished in a letter, dated
-February 24, 1685, which, after being taken out of the post-bag,
-instead of reaching the person addressed, found its destination among
-the Secretary of State’s papers--to be transferred in the nineteenth
-century to the Record Office:--
-
-“It can be no news to acquaint you of His Majesty declaring himself
-a Papist and going daily to public mass. Neither can I choose but
-commend the prudence and honesty of several great and worthy lords,
-who have already assured His Majesty, that they have been a long time
-past Papists in their hearts, and prayed His Majesty’s leave to declare
-themselves Papists, that they might be in a capacity to serve His
-Majesty at the holy altar. But His Majesty, it seems, very prudently
-commanded them to contain themselves till after the sitting of
-Parliament, and commended their holy zeal, and gave them many thanks,
-with great assurances of his favour, &c. We are also very well assured,
-from very good hands, that they are already under great apprehensions,
-in that God Almighty appears so early against them; since one of the
-first magnitude, Beauford [the Duke of Beaufort], has very lately, with
-great consternation of soul, declared themselves all undone by His
-Majesty’s too forward, and ungovernable zeal, in so soon and so openly
-declaring himself: for, said he, had His Majesty been pleased but
-to have dissembled himself till a Parliament had been called, we had
-been sure to have got through, whereas now I tremble to think of the
-dreadful blow an heretical Parliament may give us.”
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-In accordance with his unequivocal profession of Romanism, James
-complained to the Protestant Bishops of the declamations against Popery
-in the pulpits of the Church; and at his coronation, on the 23rd of
-April,[138] he declined to receive the sacrament, or to take any part
-in the responses, although his Catholic Queen did so devoutly. The
-King’s Romanism being demonstrated from the beginning of his reign,
-there appears exquisite _naïveté_ or satirical shrewdness, in
-the address presented by the Quakers to him on his accession: “We are
-told that thou are not of the persuasion of the Church of England, no
-more than we; therefore we hope thou wilt grant us the same liberty
-which thou allowest thyself; which doing, we wish thee all manner of
-happiness.”
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES II.]
-
-The Ministry of the late King were not dismissed by his successor,
-but alterations were made in the allotment of offices. Rochester was
-appointed Lord Treasurer and Prime Minister. Halifax had to give up
-the Privy Seal, and become President of the Council. Ormond was removed
-from Dublin, where he had been Viceroy, to Whitehall, where he was to
-act as Lord Steward; and Godolphin exchanged his post at the Treasury
-for Chamberlainship to the Queen. Sunderland continued Secretary of
-State; and Guilford retained the Great Seal; but Jeffreys--Lord Chief
-Justice of the King’s Bench, and now made a Peer of Parliament,--with
-a seat in the Cabinet, superseded, in political power, the Lord
-Keeper. The men who chiefly influenced the councils of the Sovereign,
-were Rochester, Sunderland, and Godolphin, and, in some respects, the
-infamous Jeffreys.
-
-The Tories welcomed the accession of James with immense enthusiasm;
-they presented addresses of extravagant loyalty, and in the elections
-for the new Parliament, exerted themselves with a zeal which provoked
-the remark of one of their own party. Elections “were thought to be
-very indirectly carried on in most places. God grant a better issue
-of it than some expect.” “The truth is, there were many of the new
-members whose elections and returns were universally censured.”[139]
-When Parliament assembled, the King repeated, exactly, his reported
-declaration respecting the Established Church; thus confirming the
-false impression which his words were sure to produce, and this, too,
-notwithstanding the acknowledgment which he records respecting it
-in his _Memoirs_. “The Lords and Commons,” says the Bishop of
-Norwich, “hummed joyfully, and loudly, at those parts of the speech
-which concerned our religion, and the established Government.”[140]
-The House of Commons, resolving itself into a Grand Committee of
-Religion, determined to “stand by His Majesty” in the defence of the
-Reformed faith, and to beg him to “publish a proclamation, putting the
-laws in execution against all Dissenters whatsoever from the Church of
-England.”[141]
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-Perhaps the object of these resolutions was to embarrass the
-Government, to disturb the alliance between the King and the High
-Church party, and to decoy the Tories into an act, by which they
-would commit themselves, and run the risk of breaking with the
-Court. Certainly the resolutions tended to lay open to persecution,
-directly and distinctly, not only Protestant Nonconformists,--whom
-the Government and the Court, as well as the High Church party, were
-anxious to repress,--but also Roman Catholics, whom the High Church
-party wished to crush, the Court stood prepared to favour, and the
-Government were ready to tolerate, for the sake of pleasing their
-Royal Master. It has been suggested, that a reluctance in the majority
-of the House to trouble Protestant Dissenters just then, produced a
-reaction respecting the resolutions, but there is no foundation for
-this idea; whereas, it is perfectly plain, that the King and the
-Queen were exceedingly annoyed by the proceedings in the Commons’
-House, and ordered the Court members to oppose them.[142] To crush
-Protestant Nonconformists was a thing which, taken by itself, James
-would have been very glad to do, but to persecute the members of
-his own Church, was a thing from which he very naturally recoiled.
-Obsequiousness to the Crown, in this case, triumphed over zeal against
-Popery; and the House underwent the mortification of eating its own
-words, and revoking the resolutions which had been passed in Committee,
-by declaring it would rest satisfied with His Majesty’s repeated
-declaration, to support the religion of the Church of England, as by
-law established.[143]
-
-[Sidenote: BAXTER’S TRIAL.]
-
-The disposition of the Government towards Protestant Dissenters appears
-in the trial of Richard Baxter. Three weeks after the King’s accession,
-this distinguished minister was committed to the King’s Bench, for a
-Paraphrase on the New Testament, which he published. On the 18th of
-May, being then unwell, he moved for an allowance of further time, in
-order to prepare his defence; but in reply to this very reasonable
-application, Jeffreys, the Chief Justice, who by his behaviour on the
-Bench whilst trying the venerable prisoner, has secured for himself
-everlasting infamy, savagely growled out, “I will not give him a
-minute’s time more, to save his life.” “Yonder stands Oates in the
-pillory, and he says he suffers for the truth, and so says Baxter; but
-if Baxter did but stand on the other side of the pillory with him, I
-would say, two of the greatest rogues and rascals in the kingdom stood
-there.”[144] Twelve days afterwards, Baxter appeared at the bar in
-Guildhall, with his friends Sir Henry Ashurst, Dr. Bates, Dr. Sharp,
-and Dr. Moore[145] attending by his side; when Jeffreys indulged in
-that coarse, vulgar, and well-known rhetoric, a single specimen of
-which is sufficient for our purpose. “What ailed the old blockhead, the
-unthankful villain, that he would not conform? Was he wiser or better
-than other men? He hath been ever since, the spring of the faction. I
-am sure he hath poisoned the world with his linsey-woolsey doctrine.
-Hang him! this one old fellow hath cast more reproach upon the
-constitution and discipline of our Church, than will be wiped off this
-hundred years; but I’ll handle him for it; for, by God, he deserves to
-be whipped through the City.”
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-An eye-witness states, that during this abuse, he himself could
-but smile sometimes,--notwithstanding his own tears, and those of
-others,--when he saw the Judge imitate “our modern pulpit drollery,”
-and drive “on furiously, like Hannibal over the Alps, with fire and
-vinegar, pouring all the contempt and scorn upon Baxter, as if he had
-been a link-boy or knave.”[146] After the Judge had secured a verdict
-from the Jury, the prisoner wrote a letter to the Bishop of London, to
-intercede in his behalf. Whether the latter complied with this request,
-we do not know; but there is reason to believe that Jeffreys wished to
-see the Puritan whipped at the cart-tail, and that the prevention of
-the punishment is to be attributed to the interference of his brother
-Justices, who might well think it mad and brutal to treat after such
-a fashion a man of the highest reputation, and one who had declined
-a mitre. But the aged Divine did not escape being fined five hundred
-marks, and condemned to imprisonment until he paid the sum. As he
-declined to do it, he remained in the King’s Bench until the 24th of
-November, 1686, when he obtained release by warrant, upon giving
-sureties for his good behaviour.
-
-[Sidenote: REBELLION.]
-
-Scarcely had James ascended the throne, when one rebellion broke out in
-Scotland, followed by the trial and execution of the Earl of Argyle;
-and another broke out in the West of England, followed by the trial and
-execution of the Duke of Monmouth. The latter aspiring to the Crown,
-issued an absurd manifesto, took the title of King, and entered in
-Royal state the Town of Bridgewater. This conduct could not be endured,
-and, consequently, an Army marched against the Pretender, and defeated
-him at Sedgemoor.
-
-Mew, the warlike prelate of Winchester, who had fought both for Charles
-I. and Charles II., employed his coach-horses in dragging the King’s
-artillery to the field. Fell, Bishop of Oxford, assisted in organizing
-a body of volunteers for the King’s service; whilst, at the same time,
-Ken, whose loyalty is beyond suspicion, affected by the sight of
-mutilated bodies left to rot by the roadside, remonstrated against the
-cruelty of the officers; and, with an exemplary benevolence, visited
-and relieved, at Wells and other places, those who had been taken
-prisoners. The Church of England had made loud protestations of loyalty
-to King James; but the Protestant Nonconformists, whose constitutional
-loyalty in general cannot be impeached, were compromised, in the
-estimation of some, by the part which a few of them took in Monmouth’s
-rebellion. This unfavourable opinion received encouragement from
-sympathy with Dissenters, expressed for selfish purposes, by the
-unfortunate Duke himself, whose career could bring nothing but
-discredit on his friends; probably, these circumstances sharpened the
-severity of the persecution which marked the earlier part of James’
-reign.
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-Two Nonconformists suffered death from an innocent connection with some
-incidents in the rebellion.
-
-Mrs. (sometimes called Lady) Alicia Lisle stood at the bar in the City
-of Winchester, before Judge Jeffreys, charged with having concealed,
-after the battle of Sedgemoor, a Presbyterian minister named Hicks,
-and another man named Nelson. With Nelson there is reason to believe
-she had no acquaintance; but, respecting Hicks, she confessed that as
-there were warrants out, to apprehend all Nonconformist clergymen, she
-certainly wished to save him from apprehension. It was an office of
-Christian kindness, which this good woman fulfilled for one in sorrow,
-who professed with her a common faith; yet this perfectly innocent,
-and, as she imagined, laudable deed, being construed into an act of
-treason, the Jury, though they expressed their dissatisfaction with the
-evidence, were bullied by the Judge into a verdict of guilty. Jeffreys
-declared the evidence to be as plain as possible, and that upon it he
-would have convicted his own mother. The aged matron, weighed down
-under a load of more than seventy years, suffered from fits, and could
-hear but imperfectly; yet, throughout her trial, she evinced a singular
-calmness and serenity, and, save when overcome by drowsiness, exhibited
-altogether a dignified deportment truly astonishing. Her behaviour on
-the scaffold comported with her bearing in court; and, in the course
-of a speech which she delivered to the Sheriff, she freely forgave
-her enemies, and expressed a desire to possess her soul in patience.
-Jeffreys had condemned her to be burnt, but the King commuted her
-sentence, and this unfortunate lady perished at the block.
-
-[Sidenote: ELIZABETH GAUNT.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-The other sufferer was Elizabeth Gaunt, a person in humble
-circumstances, and a member of a Baptist Church. The charge against her
-resembled that brought against Mrs. Lisle--namely, the harbouring of
-a person supposed to have been concerned in the Rye House conspiracy.
-This man had professed himself to be a Nonconformist,--certainly he
-proved himself a worthless villain, by becoming King’s evidence against
-the woman who, to save his life, had jeopardized her own. It did
-not appear that she knew that he had any share in the plot, or that
-his name had been mentioned in any proclamation; want of evidence,
-however, little affected the issue of a trial in those days, and this
-poor person, without being permitted to call witnesses in her defence,
-received a verdict of guilty, and the sentence of death. The miserable
-favour which had been shown to the sufferer of higher rank reached not
-so humble an individual; she had to die at the stake. Gathering round
-her the materials of torture, that she might the sooner expire, she
-remarked, that charity as well as faith was a part of her religion;
-that her crime, at worst, was the feeding an enemy; so she hoped she
-should find her reward in Him, for whose sake she did this service, how
-unworthy soever the person might be who had made such an ill return for
-it. She rejoiced that God had honoured her to be the first who suffered
-by fire in this reign, and that her suffering would prove a martyrdom
-for that religion which was all love.[147] “Thus,” to use the words of
-Sir James Mackintosh, “was this poor and uninstructed woman supported
-under a death of cruel torture, by the lofty consciousness of suffering
-for righteousness, and by that steadfast faith in the final triumph of
-justice, which can never visit the last moments of the oppressor.”[148]
-There have been many martyrs for faith, but these women were martyrs
-for charity, and their meek heroism in the hour of death seems worthy
-of the cause for which they suffered. Such examples illustrate that
-power of endurance, with which the Almighty has inspired the heart
-of woman. Strong in the midst of apparent feebleness, she bears up
-under trials sufficient to crush minds of the hardest texture; thus
-resembling those delicate flowers which grow in Alpine regions--
-
- “Leaning their cheeks against the thick-ribbed ice,
- And looking up with brilliant eyes to Him
- Who bids them bloom, unblanched, amid the waste
- Of desolation.”
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION RENEWED.]
-
-The persecution of Dissenters, commenced before the breaking out of
-Monmouth’s rebellion, continued to rage, with additional vehemence,
-after the rebellion had been extinguished. The trade of the informer
-revived. The spiritual courts overflowed with causes. Ministers were
-seized, their houses searched, their rooms and closets broken open,
-and ransacked. The shopkeeper was taken from his business, the farmer
-from his homestead, husbands were separated from their wives, and
-parents from their children. The rich were mulcted in heavy fines,
-or bribes were wrung from them by informers--a present of wine or a
-few gold pieces being often sacrificed to these harpies, for the sake
-of escaping imprisonment. The loss of liberty is always an object of
-terror, but in those days it appeared with horrible aggravations--for
-dungeons were covered with filth of the most loathsome description;
-gaolers and turnkeys exercised despotic power, and extorted exorbitant
-fees; prisoners of all kinds were crowded together to suffocation;
-fever and pestilence were engendered and nourished; and numbers
-perished before their trial. It may seem incredible, but it is
-nevertheless a fact, that Ellwood the Quaker, and the friend of Milton,
-when immured in Newgate for his religion, saw the quarters of those
-who had been executed for treason placed close to the prisoners’
-cells, and their heads tossed about like foot-balls.[149] The fear of
-punishment under such circumstances induced Nonconformists, in their
-worship, to return to those methods of secrecy and concealment which
-have been already described. Some proved faithless to their profession,
-and sought refuge from intolerant cruelty, in the bosom of the
-Establishment: on the other hand, there were not wanting Episcopalians,
-who seeing humanity outraged, professedly in support of the Church to
-which they belonged, left it in disgust, and cast in their lot with the
-sufferers for conscience’ sake.
-
-[Sidenote: 1685.]
-
-[Sidenote: PERSECUTION RENEWED.]
-
-The storm continued for two years; and as it terminated the series
-under the Stuarts, it seems to have been the worst--in this respect
-resembling the persecution under the Emperor Diocletian. The Quakers
-stated, in their petition to King James, that there had been of late
-above one thousand five hundred Friends in prison, of whom one thousand
-three hundred and eighty-three remained unreleased. Three hundred
-and fifty had died in gaol, since the year 1660; nearly one hundred
-of them since the year 1680. William Penn reckoned that altogether,
-more than five thousand perished for the sake of religion;[150] and
-Jeremy White is said to have collected a list of sixty thousand, who
-had suffered in some way or other for conscientious opinions. Making
-a large abatement from such rumours, there must have been an enormous
-extent of imprisonment, exile, extortion, oppression, and misery
-inflicted during those two reigns to account for such a rumour having
-been listened to for a moment.[151] Sulpicius Severus, speaking of the
-persecution under Diocletian, remarked, that Christians never achieved
-a more glorious victory than when they could not be subdued by years of
-slaughter. And, in the same spirit, Neal observes, that Nonconformists
-did not decrease, amidst all the engines of intolerance which were
-worked against them; their continuance and increase being attributed to
-their firmness of character, their practical and awakening ministry,
-their severe morality, their domestic religion, their able and learned
-ministers, the disgust excited by the conduct of their adversaries,
-and the reaction produced by carrying Tory principles to an unbearable
-extreme. In statements of this kind an author’s eye is wont to rest
-mainly on fines, imprisonments, and violent assaults. But there were
-other persecutions which Nonconformists had to endure. Much is made,
-by our High Church brethren, of the persecution which lingers amidst
-legal toleration. They point to attacks in the newspapers, to slander
-privately circulated, to innuendo and defamation, to irritation and
-annoyance in subtle forms; but no social persecution complained of in
-the present day, can be compared with what Nonconformists, in addition
-to fines, imprisonments, and brutal treatment, had to endure, when such
-a Christian gentleman and scholar as John Howe scarcely dared to walk
-the streets. In the library of Canterbury Cathedral is a large volume
-of MS. plays, recitations, and performances, in the reign of Charles
-II., wherein Roman Catholics and Nonconformists of all kinds are
-lampooned and abused with a vast deal more of coarseness than wit. Such
-things impressively indicate what the state of social feelings must
-have been at the time towards all who were not included within the pale
-of the Establishment.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
-
-[Sidenote: COURT INTRIGUES.]
-
-Important changes occurred in the Cabinet towards the close of 1685.
-Halifax, President of the Council--but no favourite with the King on
-account of his opposition to Roman Catholicism, the repeal of the
-Test Act, and the Royal foreign policy--was dismissed in the month
-of October. In December he was succeeded by Sunderland, who, from
-having conformed to Roman Catholic ceremonies at the commencement of
-the reign, and from having encouraged his Master in anti-Protestant
-proceedings, had succeeded in securing and retaining his good opinion.
-There existed a violent Popish party at Court, consisting of the Earl
-of Castelmaine, husband to one of Charles’ mistresses,[152] of Henry
-Jermyn, created Lord Dover by James II., of the Earl of Tyrconnel,
-and of another Irishman, named White. These persons promoted measures
-as rash as they were violent, and in so doing acted in concert with
-a few Jesuits who dwelt in England, at the head of whom was Father
-Petre. The Order at that time had come into collision with the Pontiff,
-Innocent XI. They were now in a state of alliance with the French
-King, who resisted Ultramontane pretensions, rather than in a state
-of obedience to the occupant of St. Peter’s Chair. Then, as it has
-happened at other times, parties in a Church which boasts of unity,
-were engaged in carrying on the most opposite intrigues: the Jesuits
-counselling the English King to set the liberties and wishes of his
-subjects at defiance, and to play the despot out-and-out; while the
-Roman Court advised him to preserve caution, and to keep within the
-lines of the British Constitution. Sunderland united with the Jesuits,
-and the other extreme Roman Catholic politicians, in encouraging the
-Monarch to follow those ways which ultimately led to his downfall. The
-Minister, to strengthen his own position, embraced the King’s religion.
-He had before conformed to Catholic rites, but now he professed himself
-a decided convert, giving to James the credit of having effected
-the change. After the elevation of Sunderland came the dismissal of
-Rochester, who had long been a Trimmer, as well as an adviser of
-moderation. To recover the good opinion of the King and Queen he
-professed to be open to conviction, courted Popish advocates, and
-listened to controversies between Divines of the opposite Church--but,
-at last, this cunning intriguer thought it the safest plan not to go
-over to Rome.[153]
-
-[Sidenote: 1686.]
-
-James, encouraged in his extreme folly, rushed headlong to utter
-ruin. It was not because he had become a Roman Catholic, it was not
-simply because he sought to promote the interests of the Church which
-he had espoused; it was because, in seeking to accomplish that end,
-he violated the Constitution of his country. His despotism, not his
-religion, was the immediate cause of his losing a throne. He violated
-the law--that most sacred palladium in the eyes of an Englishman.
-
-Having commenced the practice of granting dispensations to certain
-individuals before the reign of persecution came to an end, he
-was sometimes found pursuing a course which placed him and some
-chiefs of the Church in apparently contradictory positions, whilst,
-notwithstanding, they were, for awhile, promoting the same end.
-
-“You may see,” says a contemporary Diarist, “somewhat remarkable in
-this last week’s account--the Hierarchy so severely prosecuting the
-Dissenters, and the Crown’s granting dispensations to them under seal.
-Cross winds sometimes raise waves that break the force of one another,
-and the ship is thereby preserved--sometimes they presage a tempest
-that destroys it, when those winds centre in a dangerous quarter.
-The Hierarchists have not appeared in the prosecution of one Papist
-this Assizes, nor Sessions, upon the strictest inquiries that can be
-made; but they say the only way to prevent Popery is to prosecute the
-penal laws against the Protestant Dissenters, and, which is somewhat
-mysterious, the best way to prevent Popery is not to prosecute
-Papists.”[154]
-
-Calamy refers to the Royal exercise of a dispensing power, and to the
-sending out of injunctions by the Bishops for the presentment of all
-such as did not receive the Lord’s Supper at Easter.[155]
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES’ POLICY.]
-
-In the Journal just quoted, an entry occurs a little earlier, showing
-the indignity with which the Monarch treated some of his suppliants,
-and the fruitlessness, occasionally, of their humble applications. The
-Anabaptists presented an address for “His Majesty’s gracious pardon,”
-when “they were kept long on their knees, while His Majesty showed
-the petition to several about him, at which they were very merry;” and
-the Quakers, who had petitioned for liberty, received “only a verbal
-order for impunity,” and were, nevertheless, still “disturbed and
-punished.”[156]
-
-Such were the floating stories of treatment experienced by the
-persecuted sects; and, if I may be permitted further to use the MS.
-from which our knowledge of these impressions is derived, I will
-extract the following passage which vividly reflects the perplexity
-some Dissenters felt at this time, in consequence of endeavours made to
-obtain their consent to measures of toleration, including Papists as
-well as themselves.
-
-“The great inquiry now is, whether persons will not only use, but
-thankfully accept of and vigorously endeavour after universal liberty,
-by taking off the penal laws, and incapacitating laws against Papists;
-if the Dissenters do not comply, they will incur the displeasure of the
-Court, and the Court will destroy them. And, on the other hand, the
-Church also, if these laws continue in being, or at least the Church
-and the Court, will unite, and thereby utterly destroy them. And if
-they do comply, they will first verify the imputation, the Church lays
-upon them, as if they favoured Popery; and say, ‘they themselves are
-the only pillars of the Protestant religion, you see the Dissenters
-betray and give it up.’ Secondly, they may probably be dragooned by the
-Court, when they have helped to take the laws off from the Papists, and
-thereby weaken the Protestant interest. Thirdly, and lastly, in time to
-come, the Church may call them to an account, and be severe upon them
-for their compliance.”[157]
-
-James’ policy of granting indulgence reached its culminating point in
-the famous Declaration, published on the 4th of April, 1687.
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The document presented signs of righteous toleration, and viewed
-superficially it exhibits a favourable contrast with the policy then
-pursued in France. France and England seemed bent upon adopting
-contrary lines of policy. When Elizabeth had supported ecclesiastical
-despotism, Henry IV., by the Edict of Nantes, had proclaimed himself a
-friend of religious liberty: now, as Louis XIV. drove from the French
-shores his Protestant subjects, by striving to dragoon them out of
-their religion, James II. talked to the English people graciously
-touching freedom of conscience.
-
-But what was the real design of it all? Fully to answer this question
-we must carefully look at the line of policy which he previously
-pursued towards Popery, towards the Church of England, and towards
-Protestant Dissent. And here it should be premised, that the crushing
-of Monmouth’s rebellion in England, and of Argyle’s rebellion in
-Scotland, had swept away for a time all opposition to James’ title
-and authority,--had consolidated his power, and had encouraged him to
-attempt the experiment of ruling the nation as an absolute monarch: and
-let it also be remembered, that his despotic designs were intimately
-connected with his ecclesiastical polity.
-
-His object with regard to Popery seems to have been, by a succession of
-bold attempts, to give it not only toleration, but an establishment in
-this country,--at least, an establishment upon terms of equality with
-the Protestant Church.[158]
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES’ POLICY.]
-
-The Judges, in the case of Sir Edward Hales, having decided in favour
-of the King’s dispensing power; and having also given it as their
-opinion, that the laws of England were the King’s laws, that it was an
-inseparable branch of his prerogative to dispense with penal statutes,
-and that of the reasons for doing so in particular cases he was sole
-Judge;--James immediately proceeded by Letters Patent, dated May the
-3rd, 1686, to authorize Edward Sclater to retain his benefice, after he
-had, on the previous Palm Sunday, confessed his conversion to Romanism
-by attending Mass. He also allowed Obadiah Walker, a clergyman who had
-long secretly leaned to Popery, and now openly avowed his conversion,
-to retain his position and emoluments as Master of University College,
-Cambridge. By a still bolder stroke, the King dashed down the barriers
-which guarded admission to the Establishment, and conferred the Deanery
-of Christ Church upon John Massey,--a Roman Catholic priest, possessing
-neither learning nor ability,--who instantly decked an altar in the
-usual way for the celebration of Mass.
-
-The two sees of Chester and Oxford fell vacant in 1686. James appointed
-to the one Thomas Cartwright, Dean of Ripon, a worthless sycophant,
-who might be expected to do anything to please his master; and to the
-other, Samuel Parker, already well known to the reader for his violent
-Tory and High Church publications.[159] “I wished,” says the King to
-the Papal Nuncio, Adda, “to appoint an avowed Catholic, but the time is
-not come. Parker is well inclined to us, he is one of us in feeling,
-and, by degrees, he will bring round his clergy.”[160]
-
-[Sidenote: 1686.]
-
-Whilst James secured for his purpose tools of this description he
-did whatever he could to silence the voice of controversy against the
-Church of his affections. He caused the Lord Treasurer to reprove
-Sherlock, and to stop his pension for preaching against Popery;[161]
-and he wrote to Compton, the Bishop of London, commanding him to
-suspend the Rector of St. Giles, Dr. Sharp, who had engaged in a
-pulpit contest with a Roman Catholic priest. This last interference
-involved consequences more mischievous than itself. It had long been
-in the mind of the Sovereign to revive the Court of High Commission,
-as an efficient agent for the control of the clergy. To any one else,
-the Act of Charles II., confirming the abolition of that Court by
-the Long Parliament, would have been an insurmountable barrier, yet
-despising such reasons as would have guided other men, James gradually
-brought himself to the determination of re-establishing that odious
-tribunal. The lawyers told him that what he proposed would be found to
-be unconstitutional. His Ministers shrunk from committing themselves
-to so perilous an act, but Sharp’s affair fixed his decision. Compton,
-son of the Royalist Earl of Northampton, himself once an officer of the
-Guards, had with something of a soldier’s gallantry and dash, opposed
-the Government, from his seat in the House of Lords; and when receiving
-the King’s command for the suspension of Sharp, he had declined to
-take that step without a trial of the denounced clergyman, and had
-also, by mere private influence, arranged for his submitting to a
-period of silence. This conduct on the part of the prelate provoked the
-King to end his hesitation, and to revive the very Court, which had
-been a chief cause of his father’s ruin. The New Commission conferred
-an indefinite spiritual jurisdiction, in this case the more dangerous
-from its being indefinite.[162]
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES’ POLICY.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1686.]
-
-It was to cover England and Wales; it was to be for the reform of
-all abuses, contrary to the ecclesiastical laws of the realm. It
-gave authority to summon before it such ecclesiastical persons of
-every degree as should offend in any of the particulars mentioned,
-and punish them accordingly, by depriving them of their preferment,
-and by inflicting ecclesiastical censures and penalties. It brought
-within its scope _suspected_ persons to be proceeded against, “as
-the nature and quality of the offence, or suspicion in that behalf”
-should require. It prescribed summary excommunication and deprivation
-for all persons, who should be obstinate or disobedient; and it
-brought within the control of the Commissioners, the Universities,
-Cathedrals, Collegiate Churches, Colleges, and all ecclesiastical
-Corporations whatever, with the power of obtaining and examining
-all kinds of documents touching those foundations. This formidable
-instrument was addressed to seven Commissioners, four laymen, and three
-Bishops. Jeffreys, now Lord Chancellor, was President, and with him
-were associated the Lord Treasurer, the Lord President, and the Chief
-Justice of the King’s Bench. The three Bishops named were Sancroft, of
-Canterbury; Crew, of Durham; and Sprat, of Rochester. The Primate at
-once saw the illegality of the measure, yet had not firmness enough
-to do more than excuse himself, on the ground of ill-health, from
-attending the Board. This engine, contrived for the widest action,
-was precipitately brought into play, to meet the particular emergency
-of Compton’s case. The Commissioners summoned him before them upon
-the charge, that he had not suspended the obnoxious Rector according
-to Royal command. First, Compton objected to the tribunal itself as
-illegal, an objection which the Commissioners instantly overruled.
-Instead of persevering in that objection, and thus commencing at once
-a constitutional struggle, which was both imminent and necessary,
-the Bishop quietly gave way, and proceeded to plead that he had, in
-fact, complied with His Majesty’s injunctions. To have suspended
-Sharp formally, he contended would have been illegal; to prevent
-Sharp from preaching, he represented as the only thing possible
-under the circumstances. This line of defence reflects no honour
-upon the defendant, it simply sheltered him from personal injury,
-without raising any question of principle. It virtually surrendered
-the liberties of the Church, and appears altogether unworthy of the
-occasion. Nor did it avail for the protection of the accused. The
-Commissioners pronounced him guilty, and for his “disobedience and
-contempt” suspended him from his Episcopal office, permitting him,
-however, to retain his revenues and his residence. The Bishop of
-Peterborough, with the Bishops of Durham and Rochester, were directed
-to execute the sentence.
-
-As at St. James’, so at Whitehall, the King provided a Roman Catholic
-Chapel.[163] He encouraged the fitting up of a similar place of
-worship at the residence of an Englishman in London, who acted as Envoy
-for the Elector Palatine. The Benedictines established themselves at
-St. James’, the Franciscans in Lincoln’s Inn Fields, the Jesuits at the
-Savoy, and the Carmelites in the City; and Roman Catholics are accused
-of having seized some of the parish churches in Lancashire.[164]
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES’ POLICY.]
-
-The religious orders of Rome, arrayed in their distinguishing costumes,
-now appeared in the streets of the Metropolis,--a sight which must have
-shocked the old Puritans--but in such exhibitions the King greatly
-rejoiced, prematurely exulting “that his capital had the appearance of
-a Catholic city.”[165]
-
-If the facts adduced be not sufficient to indicate the King’s
-intentions, any remaining doubts must be dispelled by turning to his
-private correspondence. The letters of the last two years of his reign
-serve the same purpose as the letters of Charles I. in the year 1646.
-They fully reveal his private designs, whatever, on certain occasions,
-he might publicly declare. They repeatedly refer to the “establishment”
-of the Catholic religion--which means, in the judgment of one of the
-calmest of critics, that he “meditated no less than to transfer to his
-own religion the privileges of an Established Church.”[166] What is
-now so manifest from this correspondence, Halifax, Nottingham, and
-Danby, perceived at the time, and though they differed from each other
-on many points they agreed on this.
-
-[Sidenote: 1686.]
-
-Sunderland thoroughly engaged himself on behalf of the interests of
-Popery, and communicated, without reserve, the Royal intentions to
-Barillon, the French representative at the Court of St. James’. “This
-minister,” wrote Barillon to Louis XIV., “said to me, I do not know
-if they see things in France as they are here, but I defy those who
-see them near, not to know, that the King, my master, has nothing so
-much at heart as to establish the Catholic religion; that he cannot,
-even according to good sense and right reason, have any other end;
-that without it he will never be in safety, and always exposed to the
-indiscreet zeal of those who will heat the people against the Catholic
-religion as long as it is not fully established.”[167] Another fact at
-the time is significant. The oath administered to Privy Councillors
-included the words, “I shall to my utmost defend all jurisdictions,
-pre-eminencies, and authorities, granted to His Majesty, and annexed
-to his Crown by Act of Parliament, or otherwise, against all foreign
-Princes, Persons, Prelates, States, or Potentates.” But this part
-of the oath, it is stated, was by the Royal order expunged from the
-Council-book.[168] In addition to all these circumstances, James
-availed himself of the religious sympathies of the Irish people, to
-establish a Roman Catholic hierarchy amongst them, assigning to the
-Primate a revenue of £2,000 a year, and he authorized the clergy to
-wear in public the habits belonging to their order.[169]
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES’ POLICY.]
-
-It must be confessed that the King met with much in the preaching of
-the Protestant clergy to encourage his fondest hopes. A Chaplain to the
-Bishop of Ely maintained the immaculate holiness of the Virgin, and the
-necessity for seeking her intercession. Also, a Popish priest, in a
-sermon at Court, proclaimed himself as an ambassador sent from heaven
-to admonish the King to extirpate heresy, and to plant in the kingdom
-the true grace of God.[170]
-
-Encouragement of another kind presented itself. Conversions to Popery
-became numerous. The Earl of Peterborough and the Earl of Salisbury
-both embraced the faith patronized by royalty; the first described as
-a worn-out Courtier, the second as a worn-out sensualist. Sir Ellis
-Leighton, brother of the good Archbishop of that name, recanted the
-Protestantism of his youth; and Sir Christopher Milton, a Judge,
-brother of John Milton, the poet, if he did not do the same thing,
-at any rate scrupled to communicate with the Church of England, in
-consequence of Popish leanings. The lady of Sir Thomas Grosvenor, “the
-Elizabeth Ebury, who brought the Westminster estates into his family,”
-and the Lady Theophila, wife of Robert Nelson, both joined the Papal
-communion; and Samuel Pepys, tells us in his _Diary_, that he
-did not press his wife to attend the parish church, lest she should
-“declare herself a Catholic.” Dryden, the poet, a man who perhaps cared
-little about religion, Wycherley, the licentious dramatist, Haines, an
-utterly worthless adventurer, and Tindal, who afterwards wrote against
-Christianity, also seceded from the Church of the Reformation to the
-Church of the Council of Trent.[171]
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The fact being proved that James intended to re-establish Popery, and
-received encouragement to do so, little need be said respecting his
-purpose in reference to the Protestant Episcopal Church. It follows
-that he must have designed, through placing a rival and ambitious
-power by its side, to overthrow its supremacy, if not to destroy its
-existence. Such policy was alike ungrateful and treacherous. It was
-_ungrateful_--for if the Presbyterians placed Charles II. upon
-the throne, the Episcopalians secured the succession to James II.; and
-amongst the most effective supporters of his arbitrary authority were
-those Anglicans who had preached passive obedience and non-resistance.
-And it was _treacherous_--for repeatedly he had declared, that he
-would make it his endeavour to defend and support the Church of England.
-
-[Sidenote: JAMES’ POLICY.]
-
-Perhaps the actual discouragement which the prelates and clergy
-received at the hands of him who had sworn to support them, and the
-imminent perils which stared them in the face, roused the rather
-inanimate Archbishop of Canterbury to attempt some little reform in
-the Establishment. He, with the concurrence of the Bishops of his
-province, issued Articles for some better regulations in the mode
-of admitting candidates to the cure of souls, since many abuses
-and uncanonical practices had lately crept in.[172] The Articles,
-however, did not amount to anything remarkable, and what might be
-their practical effect does not appear. If preventing the introduction
-of Roman Catholic priests into the Church, or discouraging in it all
-Romanizing tendencies, came within the designs of the Primate and his
-brethren, no signs of it can be traced in the Articles themselves;
-but there were other ways in which Anglican zeal against Popery at
-that time made itself visible. Forbidden to preach against Popery,
-the clergy employed their pens. Amongst four hundred and fifty-seven
-controversial pamphlets which issued from the press--including those
-written on both sides--may be mentioned Wake’s and Dodwell’s answers
-to Bossuet; Clagett and Williams’ replies to Gother, author of _The
-Papist Represented and Misrepresented_; Stillingfleet’s attack upon
-Godden’s _Dialogues_; and Sherlock’s answer to Sabran, the Jesuit.
-Atterbury, Smalridge, Tenison, and Tillotson, also took part in the
-controversy. A noble set of writings, Calamy remarks, was now published
-by Church Divines against the errors of Rome; and he endeavours to
-explain the causes of that comparative silence which the Dissenters
-maintained upon a subject in which they were so deeply interested. It
-is pleaded by him, that they had written largely on the subject before,
-their own people were not much in danger, if they did not write, they
-preached upon Popery, they were satisfied to see the work well done by
-others, and some who wished to publish had little chance of being read,
-public attention being engrossed by distinguished Churchmen.[173] Some
-of these excuses carry a measure of force; Nonconformists had not been
-deficient in exposing the fallacies of Romanism, and the pulpit was now
-employed when the press was inactive, but other parts of the defence
-are more ingenious than valid; and it must be confessed, that clear and
-distinct argumentative attacks upon the common foe of Protestantism
-from the Dissenting point of view, coupled with the assertion of civil
-liberty on behalf of all religionists, so far as the doctrine was then
-understood, would have been more worthy of the Nonconformist cause at
-that critical juncture.
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The policy of James respecting the Protestant Establishment, thus
-nobly resisted by some of its members, together with his policy
-towards Romanism, will help the reader to understand his designs upon
-Protestant Nonconformity. He could not but be aware of its deadly
-opposition to his own religion; its evangelical creed, its popular
-discipline, and its simple worship, must have inspired his deepest
-dislike; and, whatever professions of charity and forbearance he
-might offer at times, the same feelings which created his enmity to a
-Protestant Establishment, must necessarily have created in him also
-enmity to Protestant Dissent.
-
-His threefold policy thus throws light upon the Declaration of
-Indulgence published in 1687. That Declaration could not proceed from
-sound views of religious freedom, or from a generous desire to relieve
-Protestant sufferers, it must have been designed immediately to help,
-and ultimately to establish, Roman Catholicism in England. According
-to the terms of the Declaration, the King wished that all his subjects
-had been members of the Catholic Church, but such not being the case,
-he respected the rights of conscience, promising to protect those of
-his subjects who belonged to the Church of England; he also resolved
-to suspend the laws for the punishment of Nonconformity, and therefore
-granted liberty of worship to all who did not encourage political
-disaffection. The Oaths of Supremacy and Allegiance, and the Tests
-and Declarations, mentioned in the 25th and 30th of his brother’s
-reign, were to be no longer enforced; and ample pardon was extended to
-all Nonconformist recusants, for all acts contrary to the penal laws
-respecting religion.
-
-[Sidenote: DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.]
-
-That James simply wished to promote his own religion, and did not
-care for what is meant by religious freedom, is clear from the
-French ambassador’s account of the liberty which the King conceded to
-the people of Scotland; for the diplomatist, writing to his master,
-states that the measure, debated for several days, created much
-difficulty, and that he would by no means allow to Scotch Protestants
-the extensive right of worship which he granted to Scotch Roman
-Catholics.[174] The same writer, a little earlier, told the French
-Sovereign that His Britannic Majesty heard with pleasure a recital of
-the wonderful progress with which God had blessed the efforts of the
-former for the conversion of the Huguenots, there being no example of
-a similar thing happening at any time, or in any country, with so much
-promptitude.[175] It is absurd to represent a man who thus approved
-of conversion by violence as a friend to religious liberty. It should
-also be remembered that there was no little duplicity involved in the
-conduct of the English Monarch at this time, for just after the above
-communication had been privately made to the Court at Versailles, he
-issued letters patent to the Bishops, authorizing a collection on
-behalf of the exiles.
-
-How was the Declaration received?
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The Catholics expressed their satisfaction with it; and whilst they
-gladly availed themselves of the professed benefit, they felt pleasure
-in seeing liberty extended to all sects without exception, by a prince
-of their own communion.[176] Politicians, who understood and cared for
-the liberties of their country, however glad they might be to see
-different forms of religion tolerated, could not help being alarmed
-by so daring an exercise of the Royal prerogative, which if conceded,
-would imperil the Constitution, break down the safeguards of law, and
-place the destinies of the nation for evil, as well as for good, in
-the hands of a despotic sovereign. Members of the Church of England,
-in this hour of its need, said kind things of the Nonconformists,
-whom they had persecuted before, and spoke of legal securities for
-freedom of worship; yet they viewed with the utmost alarm this exercise
-of absolute power, and saw in it only a confirmation of their worst
-fears, that, under a pretence of general liberty, the Monarch sought to
-destroy the ascendancy of Protestantism. The selfishness, which blended
-with their fears, and the compunctions which mingled with their alarm,
-did not diminish the reasonableness of their apprehension.
-
-[Sidenote: DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.]
-
-Some Bishops, however, distinguished themselves by a line of conduct
-different from that pursued by their brethren. Durham, Rochester,
-Peterborough, Oxford, and Chester, being invited to meet the Lord
-Chancellor and the Earl of Sunderland, the latter told them how
-acceptable to His Majesty would be an address of thanks. Three of them
-at once signed such an address. Rochester hesitated, but complied;
-Peterborough decidedly refused. Chester reported that the four who
-signed altered their first paper, which gave thanks for the Declaration
-as a whole, into a second, which acknowledged only the King’s promise
-to protect the Church; and it is further reported that when the Bishop
-of Durham presented the document to the King, His Majesty said, “I
-expected this sooner from you of the Church of England, and also now,
-that it would have come much fuller than what it is. Can you find
-nothing to give thanks for, but that one clause which relates to
-yourselves? Have you no sense of that kindness others have received
-thereby? Methinks you might have given thanks, at least, for that ease
-and relief your Protestant brethren have received by it.”[177]
-
-Those who prepared such cautious addresses found it difficult to obtain
-signatures, even when requested to sign, by diocesans favourable to the
-proceeding. The subject seems to have been most carefully canvassed
-by the superior as well as by the inferior clergy; for I find in the
-library of the Cambridge University a long paper, containing the
-reasons of the Bishops for and against subscription to an Oxford
-address. Amongst the reasons for subscription, as offered by the
-Chancellor, are these--that it might continue the King’s favour,
-whereas the omission might irritate the Treasury to call upon the £500
-bonds of first-fruits at full worth; and that it would testify unity
-with and submission to the Bishops who required the address, and who,
-perhaps, expected it upon the canonical obedience of the clergy, there
-being nothing in the document _præter licitum et honestum_. On
-the other side, amongst other things, it is alleged that it would be
-superfluous to thank His Majesty for continuing legal rights; and it
-is remarked, respecting the Declaration, and the aspect of it upon
-the Established Episcopal Church, “As to the free exercise of our
-religion, it necessarily holds us among the various sects, under the
-Toleration, who for that favour in suspending the laws have led the way
-to such addresses, depending for protection upon no legal statutes, but
-entirely upon the sovereign pleasure and indulgence which at pleasure
-is revocable.”[178]
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The manner in which Nonconformists received the measure requires to be
-more fully explained.
-
-One class, not so fanatical as to refuse the liberty offered, objected
-notwithstanding, and that strongly, to the dispensing power; and,
-after much deliberation, they declined to present to the King any
-acknowledgment. This class included Richard Baxter and John Howe:
-Baxter refusing to join in offering thanks; Howe, wavering at first,
-but at last becoming so decided respecting the matter, as to move and
-carry a resolution against going to Court upon the occasion.
-
-[Sidenote: DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.]
-
-Another class remains, including Vincent Alsop and Stephen Lobb; the
-former being drawn into “some high flights” of loyal flattery in return
-for a Royal pardon granted to his son; the latter showing himself
-contemptibly obsequious in his approaches to the King, and receiving
-in consequence the appellation of the “Jacobite Independent.” Of the
-favourable addresses then presented, one from the Anabaptists in and
-about the City of London came first:[179] One from the Presbyterians
-in the same neighbourhood came next. This, whilst giving thanks for
-the Indulgence, expressed a hope that the two Houses of Parliament
-would concur in the measure.[180] The Quakers said the Declaration did
-the less surprise them, because it was what some of them had known to
-be the principle of the King long before he came to the throne.[181]
-In some of these compositions very eulogistic terms appear. The loyal
-subjects of the Congregational persuasion in Ipswich, and other towns
-of Suffolk, displayed a curiously rhetorical style. “The shields of
-the earth,” said they, “belong unto God, He hath made you a covering
-cherub to us, under whose refreshing shadow we promise ourselves
-rest.”[182] The Dissenters of Malden in Essex spoke of the great
-service God designed to accomplish by His Majesty, “the blossoming
-whereof is now made visible in your celebrated wisdom, in hapning
-(_sic_) upon the most melodious harp to charm all evil spirits,
-that many other princes had no skill to use.”[183] Some Dissenters, in
-and about the City of London, exceeded their brethren in extravagance.
-“Your Majesty,” they declared, “hath distinguished and set the bounds
-of your own dominion from that of heaven itself. You have given to God
-and man their due, and yet preserved your own right.”[184] Who were the
-persons engaged in drawing up these adulatory compositions, by what
-kind of people, and by how many they were signed, we have no method of
-ascertaining; but it is more than probable, that Court agents employed
-the most insinuating arts to secure their production. Addresses to
-the King were for a twelvemonth all the fashion. They were presented
-by all sorts of people, who vied with each other in most absurd
-expressions of loyalty. The Company of Cooks were pre-eminent in their
-laudations, and praised the Indulgence as resembling the Almighty’s
-manna, which suited every man’s palate; and they declared “that
-men’s different gustos might as well be forced, as their different
-apprehensions about religion.”[185] In some cases the compliments of
-the subject were matched by the complaisance of the Sovereign; and in
-answer to a Presbyterian address he professed he had no other design
-than toleration, and “hoped to see the day when the people should have
-a _Magna Charta_ for liberty of conscience, as well as for the
-protection of their property.”
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The Yarmouth Congregational Church Book bears witness to the effect
-produced by the Declaration just afterwards:--“It was ordered by the
-Church, that the Meeting-house should be made clean, and shutters be
-made for the upper windows, which was accordingly done by many of
-our maid-servants.” This curious minute affords an example of busy
-scenes of religious zeal, such, probably, as occurred in many towns
-and villages. The humble conventicle was repaired, the interior was
-cleansed and fitted up for a public assembly, and many a heart beat
-with joy at signs which promised they should once more “sit under their
-vine and fig-tree, none daring to make them afraid.”
-
-About the same time Evelyn remarks:--“There was a wonderful concourse
-of people at the Dissenters’ meeting-house in this parish, and the
-parish church (Deptford) left exceeding thin. What this will end in,
-God Almighty only knows; but it looks like confusion, which I pray God
-avert.”[186]
-
-[Sidenote: DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.]
-
-The Dissenters generally, whilst they accepted James’ Indulgence, saw
-through his designs. Not only did they oppose the King’s claim to
-dispense with laws, but many of them also, through fear of Popery,
-resisted the repeal of the Test Act; choosing rather to suffer
-exclusion from civil offices than open a door for the admission of
-Papists. Some indeed, who advocated occasional conformity (that is
-communicating at times with Episcopalians in the celebration of the
-Lord’s Supper), suffered no personal inconvenience from the Test Act,
-and therefore advocated its continuance. Among them was Sir John
-Shorter, the Presbyterian Lord Mayor of London, in the year 1687; he
-preferred occasional attendance at Church during his mayoralty, to
-an acceptance of the suspected benefits offered by the Indulgence.
-Considering such cases, one cannot help seeing, that if such persons
-confined conformity to their year of office, they laid themselves open
-to the charge of sacrificing their principles for personal ends.
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The King, at this period, regarded the famous Quaker, William Penn, as
-his particular friend and supporter. The Admiral, his father, had been
-a favourite with James when Duke of York; that favour he transferred
-after the Admiral’s death, to the pious son. The Royal regard--added to
-the Quaker’s wealth and rank, his personal character, social qualities,
-and active habits--made him one of the most important and influential
-men of his day, and the early gathering of suitors at the door of
-his mansion at Kensington, resembled the resort of clients to some
-popular Roman patrician. Penn has been charged with involving himself
-in dishonourable transactions with the maids of honour for the purchase
-of a Royal pardon for girls at Taunton, who presented a banner to
-Monmouth; and also with attempting to bribe the Fellows of Magdalen
-College, Oxford, to submit to the King in certain illegal proceedings
-which we shall hereafter describe. But it appears in a very high
-degree probable, that the Penn, who acted as a pardon-broker for the
-Taunton young ladies was not Penn the Quaker: and the charge against
-the latter, in reference to the business at Magdalen College, is not
-established, even after the cleverest special pleading employed for the
-purpose.[187] But Penn certainly did all he could to support James in
-his policy of Indulgence, and to persuade Nonconformists to accept its
-benefits. As an Englishman this excellent person could not have had
-a clear understanding of the constitutional question involved in the
-measure; as a Nonconformist he showed a want of wisdom in countenancing
-the dispensing power; and he is to be reckoned as one of that class
-whose humanity, whose benevolence, and whose desire to secure present
-liberty under critical circumstances, are wont to interfere with their
-perception of fundamental principles and of ultimate results. Nor can
-any one, even with the greatest admiration of his eminent virtues,
-and of his conscientious adherence to his religion in the midst of
-persecution, regard him as free from infirmities. It may be fairly
-suspected that, with his courteous manners, he blended, in spite of his
-Quaker usages, a measure of obsequiousness to Royalty, that gratified
-by Royal attention, this Courtier Friend felt disposed to go further
-than other conscientious men could do in promoting Royal designs, and
-that a little spice of personal vanity was sprinkled over the better
-qualities of this very estimable person.
-
-[Sidenote: WILLIAM KIFFIN.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-Upon a different character from Penn, James wasted his acts in vain.
-William Kiffin has been mentioned already as the victim of a scandalous
-forgery. This and other attempts upon his safety he overcame. Indeed,
-he was charged with designs upon the life of Charles II., a charge
-too absurd to be prosecuted, yet it exposed him to some degree of
-temporary inconvenience. Although not himself accused of complicity in
-the Rye House Plot, or in the Monmouth Rebellion, his family suffered
-from both--a son-in-law being tried for his connection with the first,
-and two grandsons, handsome youths, pious, and of great promise,
-being executed for their share in the second. Kiffin still continued
-a preacher of the Gospel in the Baptist denomination, as well as a
-prosperous merchant in the City of London, and it is curious to notice
-how this twofold character is indicated in his portrait: a Puritan
-skull-cap covers his head, whilst long curly locks flow from under it,
-and a richly embroidered lace collar covers his breast, with a loose
-cloak gracefully wrapped round his shoulders. His wealth and position
-in the City, together with his influence amongst Nonconformists,
-rendered him a person worthy of being conciliated. Upon his coming
-to Court, in obedience to the Royal command, the King told him that
-his name had been put down as an alderman in the new Charter. “Sire,”
-he replied, “I am a very old man, and have withdrawn myself from all
-kind of business for some years past, and am incapable of doing any
-service in such an affair, to your Majesty or the City--besides,
-Sire,” he continued, the tears running down his cheeks, “the death of
-my grandsons gave a wound to my heart, which is still bleeding, and
-never will close, but in the grave.” “Mr. Kiffin,” returned James, “I
-shall find a balsam for that sore.” The marble-hearted[188] monarch
-had no conception of such deep sorrow as filled Kiffin’s breast; and
-Kiffin showed himself proof against all attempts upon his political
-and ecclesiastical integrity. He felt obliged nominally to accept the
-aldermanship; but, after holding it for a few months, without meddling
-much in civic affairs, he obtained a discharge from his troublesome
-office.[189]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The audacious zeal of James in the support of Popery reached its
-climax in the summer of 1687. Monsignor Ferdinando D’Adda, described
-by a Jesuit as a mere boy, a fine showy fop, to make love to the
-ladies,[190] after having for some time privately acted as Papal
-Nuncio, had, in the spring of this year, been publicly consecrated at
-Whitehall, titular Archbishop of Amasia. He had immediately afterwards
-been received in his archiepiscopal vestments by the Sovereign of
-England, who, in the presence of the Court, prostrated himself before
-the Italian prelate to receive his benediction. The prelate being thus
-prepared by his new dignity, the King determined that he should be
-publicly received as an ambassador from His Holiness; and he caused
-arrangements to be accordingly made for his reception in that capacity
-at Windsor Castle, on the 3rd of July. At the Whitehall reception
-of the Archbishop, the Spanish Ambassador had warned James against
-being priest-ridden, when the latter asked, “Is it not the usage in
-Spain that Kings consult their Confessors?” “Yes, Sire,” replied the
-Minister, “and hence it is that our affairs go so badly.” In prospect
-of the Windsor ceremonial, the Duke of Somerset received orders to
-be in attendance to introduce the dignitary. He begged to be excused,
-lest compliance should be construed into a breach of law. “Do you not
-know,” said James, “that I am above the law?” “Your Majesty may be,”
-rejoined the Duke, “but I am not.” This nobleman being dismissed for
-his frankness, people remarked in gossip, that a Duke of Somerset “had
-put out the Pope, and now the Pope had put out the Duke.” “It would
-have been more remarkable,” said Sir John Bramston, “if the Duke had
-brought him in.”[191]
-
-[Sidenote: PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.]
-
-These little incidents would have sufficed, under the circumstances, to
-make prudent men pause, but they produced no effect upon the imprudent
-King. When the day arrived, the Nuncio started from his lodgings in
-Windsor, clothed in purple, with a gold crucifix hanging at his breast,
-seated in a coach, accompanied by the Duke of Grafton and Sir Charles
-Cotterel. He was preceded by Knight Marshal’s men on horseback, and
-by twelve footmen--“their coats being all of a dark grey coloured
-cloth, with white and purple lace.” Altogether the train consisted of
-thirty-six carriages, with six horses each, two of the carriages being
-filled with priests--but some were sent empty, to increase the pomp of
-the procession; and amongst such equipages were those of the Bishops
-of Durham and Chester. The party alighted in the outer court, and went
-upstairs into St. George’s Hall, where the King and Queen, seated upon
-two chairs under a canopy, received the Papal emissary with great
-reverence. The effect upon the English people may be conjectured. Great
-multitudes had been attracted by a show, such as had not been witnessed
-until now, since the Accession of Elizabeth. Windsor overflowed, and
-for want of room in inns and houses, people of quality had to sit in
-their coaches almost all the day.[192] But they were shocked by the
-spectacle; and the indignation of the inhabitants of the little town
-upon the public celebration of mass in Wolsey’s Chapel rose to such a
-height, that they riotously assailed the building, and left it in a
-state of miserable dilapidation. The feeling thus expressed extended
-over the country; Protestant anger almost everywhere arose, and James
-himself, when too late, saw the extreme folly of his conduct. It might
-be supposed that the Pontiff and the Papal Court would be delighted
-to hear of the Nuncio’s pageant, yet this was not the case. At Rome
-the proceedings met with condemnation. They accorded with the daring
-policy of the Jesuits, who were masters at Court, but not with the more
-cautious measures of the Papacy, at that time in collision with the
-order which had proved such a prop to the Papal chair.
-
-Innocent XI. refused to gratify James in a matter which he had much at
-heart. James wished to procure a mitre for a Jesuit, named Petre, but
-as the elevation of the dignitary to the Episcopate was contrary to the
-rules of the Order, James sought for him a red hat. But neither mitre
-nor hat could be obtained. The circumstance mortified the Monarch, and
-it certainly appeared as a very ungrateful return for all his devotion
-to the interests of Rome; but he resolved to give Petre a seat at the
-Privy Council table, for which, indeed, he had designed the mitre or
-the hat to serve as a preparation. He meant to pave the way to the
-civil distinction of his Roman Catholic favourites, by first obtaining
-for them ecclesiastical honours; and when the nation heard that a
-Jesuit had been made a Privy Councillor, the wrath excited by the
-public recognition of Archbishop D’Adda increased tenfold.
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-Parliament had shown nothing like independence in reference to either
-ecclesiastical or political affairs, and had resembled a French Bed of
-Justice, convened to register Royal decrees; yet James dissolved it
-on the 4th of July, the very day succeeding the Nuncio’s reception.
-The despotic King now took affairs entirely into his own hands, and
-speedily rushed headlong to destruction. Two events completed the
-catastrophe--his attack upon the liberties of Cambridge and Oxford, and
-his second Declaration of Indulgence. These events at the same instant
-accomplished his own fall, and saved the Protestantism of England.
-
-The law expressly provided, that none should be admitted to a Degree
-in either University who did not take the Oath of Supremacy and the
-Oath of Obedience. James had sent a mandate to Cambridge for Alban
-Francis, a Benedictine monk, to be created Master of Arts, although the
-monk was prevented by his religion from taking these oaths. Upon his
-refusing to be sworn, the University authorities refused to obey the
-mandate; consequently the High Commission summoned the two Chancellors
-and the Senate to appear before them at Westminster, upon the 21st
-of April. Dr. John Peachell, who then held the Vice-Chancellorship,
-with eight representatives of the Senate, including Isaac Newton,
-Fellow of Trinity, and Professor of Mathematics, answered the summons:
-and on meeting the Board, were treated by Jeffreys, who presided
-over the Commissioners, with an amount of insolence scarcely less
-than that which he had exhibited at the trial of Richard Baxter. He
-soundly rated Dr. Peachell; and when another more courageous person
-attempted to speak, he cried out, “That young gentleman expects to be
-Vice-Chancellor--when you are, Sir, you may speak, but till then it
-will become you to forbear.” Peachell had to suffer the loss of his
-office, and his emoluments, and the members of the Senate had to endure
-the vulgar insults of the minion who dismissed them, exclaiming, “I
-shall say to you what the Scripture says, and rather because most of
-you are Divines: ‘Go your way and sin no more, lest a worse thing come
-unto you.’”[193]
-
-[Sidenote: PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-The proceedings at Oxford are still more remarkable. A vacancy occurred
-in the highest office in Magdalen College. Notwithstanding the
-vested power of the Fellows to choose a President, Royal letters of
-nomination had been sometimes sent; and, as in deference to Royalty,
-such letters of nomination had been accepted and obeyed, precedents
-could be pleaded in this instance for the interference of the King.
-He recommended Anthony Farmer, a man who laboured under the threefold
-disqualification, of not being a moral character, of not being a
-Protestant Churchman, and of neither being, nor ever having been, a
-Fellow either of Magdalen or New College. The last circumstance, on
-statutory grounds alone, sufficed to exclude this nominee. The Fellows,
-of course, objected to him, and requested His Majesty to recommend
-another person. The election had been fixed for the 13th of April.
-The day arrived, without a further nomination from the Crown. At an
-adjourned meeting on the 15th, no notice having been taken of their
-request, the Fellows proceeded to make their election, and their choice
-fell on Dr. John Hough, a person of high reputation, whose firmness
-throughout the following troubles, have won for him a lasting renown.
-In June the Fellows were summoned to appear before the Commission, at
-Whitehall, to answer for what they had done. Jeffreys, the King’s evil
-star--whose conduct, both on the Bench and at the Council Board, must
-be pronounced one of the greatest curses, and whose appointment to the
-custody of the Great Seal must be held as one of the greatest crimes
-of this inglorious reign--badgered the deputation sent from Oxford
-to represent the College, as he had before badgered the deputation
-sent from Cambridge. “Who is this man?” he asked, as Dr. Fairfax
-raised a question touching the validity of the Commission. “Pray, what
-commission have you to be so impudent in Court? This man ought to be
-kept in a dark room. Why do you suffer him without a guardian? Why did
-not you bring him to me to beg him? Pray, let the officers seize him.”
-Hough’s election was declared void, and Fairfax was suspended from his
-Fellowship;[194] but the nomination of such a man as Farmer was too
-outrageous to be pursued any further, even by the impudent despotism
-which had already defied law and order to an intolerable extent.
-
-[Sidenote: PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.]
-
-In August, James nominated to the Presidency of Magdalen, Parker,
-Bishop of Oxford, with whose character the reader is already
-acquainted. His unpopularity with Protestants had now been increased
-by the publication not only of his reasons for abrogating the test
-introduced to exclude Papists, but by his excusing the doctrines
-of Transubstantiation, and his vindicating the Romanists from the
-charge of idolatry. To nominate Parker offended the University for
-two reasons. No vacancy, in fact, existed, since Hough could claim
-office by virtue of his College election; besides, the Bishop had never
-been a Fellow of either of the Colleges specified in the Statutes.
-In September the King himself visited Oxford, determined to subdue
-the refractory body. The interview has been often described; the
-following account, substantially the same as that given in the _State
-Trials_[195] is preserved in MS. in the Record Office.
-
-“The Lord Sunderland sent orders to the Fellows of Magdalen College to
-attend the King on Sunday last, at eleven o’clock, or at three in the
-afternoon.
-
-“They waited accordingly. Dr. Pudsey, Speaker.
-
-“_K._--‘What’s your name? Are you Dr. Pudsey?’
-
-“_Dr. P._--‘Yes, may it please your Majesty.’
-
-“_K._--‘Did you receive my letter?’
-
-“_Dr. P._--‘Yes, Sir, we did.’
-
-“_K._--‘Then you have not dealt with me like gentlemen: you have
-done very uncivilly by me, and undutifully.’
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-“Then they all kneeled down, and Dr. Pudsey offered a petition,
-containing the reasons of their proceedings, which His Majesty refused
-to receive, and said, ‘You have been a stubborn and turbulent College.
-I have known you to be so this twenty-six years. You have affronted me
-in this. Is this your Church of England loyalty? One would wonder to
-find so many Church of England men in such a business. Go back, and
-show yourselves good members of the Church of England. Get ye gone;
-know I am your King, and I command you to be gone. Go and admit the
-Bishop of Oxon, Head-Principal--(what do you call it) of your College.’
-
-“One standing by said ‘President.’
-
-“_K._--‘I mean President of the College. Let him know that
-refuses it. Look to’t. They shall find the weight of their Sovereign’s
-displeasure.’
-
-“The Fellows went away, and being gone out were recalled.
-
-“_K._--‘I hear you have admitted a Fellow of your College since ye
-received my inhibition. Is this true? Have you not admitted Mr. Holden,
-Fellow?’
-
-“_Dr. P._--‘I think he was admitted Fellow, but we conceive--.’
-The Dr. hesitating, another said, ‘May it please Your Majesty, there
-was no new election or admission since Your Majesty’s inhibition, but
-only the consummation of a former election. We always elect to one
-year’s probation, then the person elected is received or rejected for
-ever.’
-
-“_K._--‘The consummation of a former election! It was downright
-disobedience, and is a fresh aggravation. Get you gone home, and
-immediately repair to your Chapel, and elect the Bishop of Oxon, or
-else you must expect to feel the heavy hand of an angry King.’
-
-“The Fellows offered their petition again, on their knees.
-
-“_K._--‘Get ye gone, I will receive nothing from you till you have
-obeyed me, and elected the Bishop of Oxford.’
-
-“Upon which they went directly to their Chapel, and Dr. Pudsey
-proposing whether they would obey the King and elect the Bishop, they
-answered every one in his order; they were always willing to obey His
-Majesty in all things that lay in their power, as any of the rest of
-His Majesty’s subjects, but the electing of the Bishop of Oxford being
-directly contrary to their Statutes, and to the positive oath they had
-taken, they could not apprehend it in their power to obey him in this
-matter. Only Mr. Dobson, who had publicly prayed for Dr. Hough, the
-undoubted President, answered doubtingly, he was ready to obey in every
-thing he could. And Mr. Charrochi, a Papist, that he was for obeying in
-that.”[196]
-
-[Sidenote: PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1687.]
-
-James found this a much more troublesome business than he had expected;
-and in October he thought it necessary to send to Oxford a Special
-Commission to endeavour to reduce Magdalen College to obedience. Forty
-years before this, when the Parliamentary army had taken possession of
-the University, Puritan Commissioners had visited the City to eject
-from office the loyal Episcopalians; and now, Commissioners of a far
-different character, and escorted by troops of cavalry, appeared in
-the same place, to eject men of the same stamp as had been ejected
-in 1647. Traditions of the past must have risen before Hough and his
-companions; and as they compared their own treatment by the King, with
-the treatment of Dr. Oliver by the Parliament, they must have felt
-the aggravated cruelty and injustice which they had to endure in the
-present instance; for, before it was a warfare of one Church against
-another Church--now opposition came not only from a Monarch sworn by
-law to support the Establishment, but from a prelate who was bound by
-his most religious vows to do the same; Cartwright, Bishop of Chester,
-being one of the Commissioners on the occasion. Conscientious Churchmen
-suffered persecution from the powers they had long honoured even to
-excess: they could, in this instance, as in so many others at the
-same period, complain both of treachery and ingratitude, if there be
-any obligations arising from oaths on the one side, or any obligations
-arising from loyalty on the other. What the King’s Commissioners
-did, and how the President and Fellows of Magdalen behaved, are well
-represented by the chisel of Roubiliac upon the famous sarcophagus
-to the memory of Hough, in Worcester Cathedral, and are succinctly
-described in the well-known words which form the inscription upon that
-work of art. “Having adjourned till the afternoon, the President came
-again into the Court, and having desired to speak a few words, they all
-took off their hats, and gave him leave; whereupon he said, ‘My Lords,
-you were pleased this morning to deprive me of my place of President
-of this College; I do hereby protest against all your proceedings, and
-against all that you have done, or hereafter shall do, in prejudice of
-me and my right, as illegal, unjust, and null; and, therefore, I appeal
-to my Sovereign Lord the King, in his Courts of Justice.’”[197]
-
-The sequel of the affair, briefly told, was this. Hough was deposed,
-and deprived; and Parker was installed by proxy, only two members
-of the College, however, taking part in the ceremony. The humblest
-officers resented the insult put upon the noble foundation--porter,
-butler, and blacksmith, all refused to execute the commands they
-received to disturb the President elected by the Fellows, and to
-acknowledge the President nominated by the Crown. The ejection of
-the Fellows who supported Hough speedily followed. All were deprived
-of their income. But men of the same, or of other Colleges would not
-accept the vacant fellowships; the excitement raised at Oxford spread
-over the country, and subscriptions poured in from various quarters,
-for the support of the deposed Collegians. Parker died in the midst of
-the struggle; and then, to make bad worse, James designated a Roman
-Catholic Bishop, Bonaventura Giffard, as head of this Protestant
-institution. Twelve Romanists became Fellows--whilst Protestants,
-applying for fellowship, met with rejection. These proceedings
-agitated the whole country. Churchmen considered it as an attack upon
-the Establishment, Nonconformists as an attack upon Protestantism,
-politicians as an attack on chartered liberty, and people, who did
-not care for religion or politics, as an attack on the rights of
-property.[198]
-
-[Sidenote: NEW DECLARATION.]
-
-The King renewed the Declaration of Indulgence in April, 1688; and on
-the 4th of May issued an order that it should be read in all churches,
-and that the Bishops should see the order obeyed. He intended to test
-the obedience of the clergy; and he placed them in the dilemma of
-exposing themselves to his displeasure, or of degrading themselves
-by compliance with his arbitrary command. Crew of Durham, Barlow
-of Lincoln, Cartwright of Chester, Wood of Lichfield and Coventry,
-Walters of St. David’s, and Sprat of Rochester, presented addresses
-of thanks to the Sovereign for his promise to maintain the Church as
-by law established. The Chester clergy issued an address, maintaining
-that they were bound by “statute law, the rubric of their liberty,”
-to publish what the King or the Bishop required; and Herbert Croft,
-who still presided over the see of Hereford, read the Declaration,
-justifying his conduct, and recommending it as an example by the
-Scripture words, “Submit yourselves to every ordinance of man for the
-Lord’s sake, whether it be to the king as supreme, or unto governors as
-unto them that are sent by him.”[199]
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-A meeting of the clergy was held in London, including Tillotson,
-Stillingfleet, Patrick, Sherlock, and other well-known men. They
-canvassed arguments for and against compliance, the latter being
-reinforced by an assurance conveyed to the meeting, in a note from some
-Nonconformists, who said that “instead of being alienated from the
-Church they would be drawn closer to her, by her making a stand for
-religion and liberty.”[200] Fowler, another distinguished clergyman,
-declared that whatever the majority might decide he was determined
-not to read the Declaration.[201] His speech encouraged the waverers,
-and an unanimous resolution of refusal resulted from the discussion.
-A paper to that effect rapidly received signatures from eighty-five
-London Incumbents. This meeting was held on the 23rd of May.
-
-A more important meeting still had been held on the 18th of the same
-month, at Lambeth Palace. Then also Tillotson, Stillingfleet, Patrick,
-and Sherlock were present, together with Grove, Rector of St. Mary’s
-Undershaft, and Tenison, Vicar of St. Martin’s. But the most important
-personages taking part on that occasion were Compton, Bishop of London,
-then under suspension; Sancroft, Archbishop of Canterbury, also under
-the King’s displeasure; and the six Bishops, who, with Sancroft, make
-the _seven_ so illustrious in English History. The six included
-Turner, Bishop of Ely; Lake, Bishop of Chichester;[202] White, Bishop
-of Peterborough; Trelawny, Bishop of Bristol; Ken, Bishop of Bath and
-Wells; and Lloyd, Bishop of St. Asaph. The last two alone require
-particular notice.
-
-[Sidenote: BISHOP KEN.]
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-Thomas Ken, Bishop of Bath and Wells, the openness of whose countenance
-corresponded with the simplicity of his character,[203] is the best
-known of all the seven. A Wykehamist, and an Oxonian, he took orders in
-the Church just after the Restoration, and became Fellow of Winchester
-College, and Chaplain to the Bishop. In his former capacity he refused
-to admit to his lodgings Nell Gwynn, the mistress of Charles II.,
-when she accompanied her lover on a visit to the romantic old city;
-and it is to the honour of the erring King, that, instead of showing
-resentment for this high-principled act, he rewarded with a mitre the
-virtues of the pure-hearted clergyman.[204] People suspected that, in
-consequence of a journey he made to the City of Rome, Ken had become
-tinged with Popery; but though ascetic in his habits, a High Churchman
-in principle, and decidedly “Catholic” in feeling, his protest from the
-pulpit against the errors of Rome, and his resistance of the policy
-of James, is sufficient to clear him from any suspicion of that kind:
-James did not personally dislike him, and listened to what he had to
-say on behalf of sufferers in the Monmouth Rebellion. His popularity
-appears to have been very great. Evelyn speaks of the crowd to hear
-him at St. Martin’s, as “not to be expressed, nor the wonderful
-eloquence of this admirable preacher;” and again at Whitehall, the
-same Diarist speaks of the Holy Communion after the Morning Service
-being interrupted by “the rude breaking in of multitudes, zealous
-to hear the second sermon to be preached by the Bishop of Bath and
-Wells.”[205] On that occasion Ken applied the story of the persecution
-of the Church of Judah, by the Babylonians, to the peculiar position
-of the Church of England; and he so powerfully urged the congregation
-to cling to the reformed faith, that they could scarcely refrain
-from an audible response. Sent for by James, and reproved for his
-boldness, Ken quietly replied “that if His Majesty had not neglected
-his own duty of being present, his enemies had missed the opportunity
-of accusing him.” But the Bishop’s wide fame rests mainly on his
-Morning, Evening, and Midnight Hymns, respecting which, it has been
-truly said, had he endowed three hospitals, he might have been less a
-benefactor to posterity.[206] Nor should we overlook the interest which
-he took in the young, his manual of prayer for Wykeham’s scholars, his
-establishment of parish schools, and his zeal for catechizing.[207]
-
-[Sidenote: BISHOP LLOYD.]
-
-William Lloyd, Bishop of St. Asaph, took a leading part in the
-proceedings of the seven. He had been ordained by Bishop Brownrigg, in
-the time of the Commonwealth, and had been made Dean of Ripon at the
-Restoration. In 1676 he had obtained the vicarage of St. Martin’s,
-Westminster; and amidst the excitement of the Popish plots had
-distinguished himself by his Protestant zeal. He had preached Godfrey’s
-funeral sermon, and had been indefatigable in his endeavours to elicit
-evidence in support of the accusations by Titus Oates.[208] Decidedly
-a party man, although sincere and honest, he showed himself apt
-practically to adopt the principle, that the end sanctifies the means,
-and to betray feelings of a kind which, though sometimes attributed
-exclusively to Papists, are rather the bad qualities of human
-nature.[209] He combined, with his Protestant activities, a fondness
-for prophetical studies, dwelling much upon the predicted downfall of
-Babylon, and bringing to bear upon his Biblical and other researches
-a considerable amount of learning, not always under the control of a
-sober judgment. Promoted in the year 1680 to the see of St. Asaph,
-he endeavoured to reduce the Dissenters to conformity by means of
-argument and friendly influence; and where he failed to convince he won
-respect.[210]
-
-Such were the Bishops engaged in the Lambeth Conference, and it ended
-in the drawing up of a petition to the King, in which the petitioners
-professed that their objection to publish the Declaration did not arise
-from disloyalty to the King, nor from any want of due tenderness to
-Dissenters, in relation to whom they were willing to come to such a
-temper as should be thought fit, when the subject should be considered,
-and settled in Parliament and Convocation; but such a dispensing power
-as he now exercised had been by Parliament pronounced illegal.[211]
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-[Sidenote: THE SEVEN BISHOPS.]
-
-Of the disposition of the petitioners to obey the commands of the King,
-so far as their conscience allowed, there can be no doubt; for some at
-least of the Bishops had maintained, or countenanced, the doctrine of
-passive obedience and non-resistance. Nor did they consider themselves
-as now acting inconsistently with that doctrine,--inasmuch as they
-distinguished between active and passive obedience, and refused only
-an active compliance with authority, which they had never held to be
-binding in cases where conscience interposed to the contrary. They
-would not do what the King commanded, but they would, as Confessors,
-patiently accept the consequences, should all constitutional and
-legal defence of themselves prove in vain. They would countenance no
-forcible resistance, they would not sanction taking up arms against His
-Majesty, and they would oppose the accession to the throne of any other
-claimants, however supported by the nation, so long as the anointed
-prince continued to live; and hence the attitude which they assumed as
-nonjurors. Respecting their conduct on this occasion, I must, without
-a grain of sympathy in their opinions, say, that they did not act so
-inconsistently as is supposed. But if justice requires this to be
-said, it requires also something more. As it regards Sancroft his
-conduct must be pronounced inconsistent. For although he now refused
-to read the Royal Declaration it appears that in the Prayer Book of
-Cosin,--amongst MS. suggestions, where it is said that nothing is to
-be read in church, but by direction of the Ordinary,--Sancroft had
-added the significant words “_or the King’s order_:”[212] and,
-moreover, he had recommended, or approved, at a recent period, the
-publishing of Royal declarations by the clergy in service-time.[213]
-As it regards the seven Bishops generally, in their relation to
-Dissenters, they now declared that they did not resist the Royal
-demand from any want of tenderness to them,--a plea which would have
-been valid had they all shown a tolerant and charitable spirit, but
-they had not done so. It is notorious that persecution had continued
-nearly up to the time of the first Declaration; and this, too, with the
-connivance or encouragement of some of the Bishops. The Bishop of St.
-Asaph, indeed, had distinguished himself by his moderation, Ken had
-not manifested a persecuting temper, but Sancroft, though appearing
-to advantage in comparison with Sheldon, cannot be defended from a
-charge of intolerance, for a letter exists, in which, after alluding to
-Conventicles at Bury and Ipswich, he expresses His Majesty’s pleasure,
-that effectual care should be taken for the suppression of unlawful
-assemblies.[214]
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-The altered and improved tone of Sancroft on the subject of
-Nonconformity just after the trial of the seven will be noticed in its
-proper place;[215] but certainly the language which the seven now
-employed looked too much as if introduced to serve a purpose. Their
-expressed objection to the Royal proceedings as unconstitutional, and
-as fraught with perilous consequences to the liberties of the country,
-and their implied maintenance of the authority of Parliament as the
-conservator of national freedom deserve, however, an Englishman’s
-gratitude; although here again, it is provoking to remember, that
-the current teaching of the High Church school, to which some of the
-prelates belonged, had been such as to exalt the power of Kings far
-above the power of Parliaments. The ostensible ground of defence, that
-the Declaration and the order were unconstitutional, gave the Bishops
-the appearance of being confessors in the cause of civil liberty,
-but this is a view of their character entirely contradicted by their
-previous career. The real ground of their conduct, no doubt, is to be
-discovered in their alarm at the King’s patronage of Roman Catholicism,
-in their persuasion that the Indulgence, which they were commanded to
-publish, had been contrived for that end, and in their conviction, that
-by active compliance with the Royal mandate at this crisis, they would
-be betraying the Church of England, and degrading their own character.
-
-[Sidenote: THE SEVEN BISHOPS.]
-
-The seven Bishops just described or mentioned, signed the petition. On
-the evening of the day on which they performed that momentous act, six
-of them crossed the water, to seek an interview with the King,--the
-Archbishop not accompanying them, because he had been forbidden access
-to Court. The prelates were admitted after ten o’clock to the Royal
-bedchamber, and then into the King’s closet,[216] where the Bishop of
-St. Asaph, dropping on his knees, presented the petition. The King
-exclaimed, “This is my Lord of Canterbury’s own hand.” “Yes, Sir,” said
-the Bishops, “it is his own hand.” “What,” cried His Majesty, in a
-furious tone, “the Church of England against my dispensing power? The
-Church of England! They that always preached it.” The prelates told him
-they never preached any such thing, but only obedience and suffering
-when they could not obey.[217] “This,” added James, as he folded up the
-paper, “is a great surprise to me; here are strange words--I did not
-expect this from you. This is a standard of rebellion.” The Bishops
-rejoined--“That they had adventured their lives for His Majesty, and
-would lose the last drop of their blood rather than lift up a finger
-against him.” The King repeated, “I tell you this is a standard of
-rebellion; I never saw such an address.” The Bishop of Bristol burst
-into an exclamation, “Rebellion, Sir! I beseech your Majesty, do not
-say so hard a thing of us. For God’s sake do not believe we are, or
-can be guilty of a rebellion. It is impossible that I, or any of my
-family should be so. Your Majesty cannot but remember that you sent me
-down into Cornwall to quell Monmouth’s rebellion, and I am as ready to
-do what I can to quell another, if there were occasion.” The Bishop
-of Chichester backed his Episcopal brother by saying, “Sir, we have
-quelled one rebellion, and will not raise another;” and the rest, after
-professing their loyalty, continued their objections. James, insisting
-upon the rebellious tendency of the document demanded that he should
-be obeyed, and have the Declaration published; but, he said, if he
-altered his mind he would let them know.[218] The conversation ended,
-and they retired. Now the Archbishop had written the petition himself,
-that he might prevent its being published, but in some way a copy
-of it got abroad, and being fast multiplied, the paper the very same
-evening in which it reached the hands of His Majesty reached also the
-hands of hundreds, and perhaps thousands of the people. Afterwards it
-received the signatures of the Bishops of London, Norwich, Gloucester,
-Salisbury, Winchester, and Exeter, who were not present at the earlier
-meetings.
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-The Declaration was read at Whitehall “by one of the choir, who used
-to read the chapters.”[219] It was read in Westminster Abbey; but
-there arose so great a noise, that nobody could hear it, and at the
-end of the publication none remained present, except the prebends, the
-choristers, and the Westminster scholars. The number of instances in
-which it was published in London is reckoned by Burnet and Kennet at
-seven, and by Clarendon at four.[220] In dioceses, where the Bishops
-ordered the clergy to comply, the command met with only limited
-obedience; within the diocese of Norwich, not more than three or four
-parishes, out of about twelve hundred, heard a single word of the
-document; and a story is told of an incumbent, who informed his people,
-that he had been enjoined to read, but they were not compelled to
-hear, and, therefore, he suggested that they should retire, whilst he
-repeated the proclamation within empty walls.
-
-[Sidenote: THE SEVEN BISHOPS.]
-
-The following singular letter by Barlow, the Bishop of Lincoln,
-indicates at once the difficulty felt by his clergy, and his own
-lukewarmness in the matter. Addressing a correspondent, he says:--
-
-“Sir,--I received yours, and all that I have time to say (the
-messenger which brought it making so little stay here) is only this.
-By His Majesty’s command, I was required to send that Declaration to
-all churches in my diocese, in obedience whereto I sent them. Now the
-same authority which requires me to send them, requires you to read
-them. But whether you should, or should not read them, is a question
-of that difficulty, in the circumstances we now are, that you can’t
-expect that I should so hastily answer it, especially in writing. The
-two last Sundays, the clergy in London were to read it, but, as I am
-informed, they generally refused. For myself I shall neither persuade
-nor dissuade you, but leave it to your prudence and conscience,
-whether you will, or will not read it; only this I shall advise, that,
-after serious consideration, you find that you cannot read it, but
-_reluctante vel dubitante conscientiâ_, in that case, to read it
-will be your sin, and you to blame for doing it. I shall only add, that
-God Almighty would be so graciously pleased to bless and direct you so,
-that you may do nothing in this case, which may be justly displeasing
-to God, or the King, is the prayer of your loving friend, and brother,
-
- THOS. LINCOLN.”[221]
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-After a short delay, the King resolved to prosecute the Bishops
-for a misdemeanour. Having received a summons to appear before the
-Privy Council, they spent the interval in conference, being greatly
-cheered by expressions of sympathy from many friends of the highest
-distinction. After an audience with the King on the 8th of June, the
-Lord Chancellor announced the Royal pleasure to proceed against the
-accused according to law; and so soon as the warrants for commitment
-had been issued, the intelligence spread through London like
-wildfire,--people flocking in multitudes to see these venerable persons
-led out of court under the custody of a guard. Popular love of liberty,
-and zeal for religion, blazed up at once, and the spectators, including
-soldiers, fell down on their knees, to implore Episcopal benedictions.
-With these benedictions the Bishops united exhortations, that the
-people would fear God, and honour the King, and keep the peace; and no
-sooner had the prisoners entered within the precincts of the Tower,
-than they repaired to the chapel, to return thanks for that which the
-Almighty had counted them worthy to endure.[222] The next day numbers
-flocked to offer them service, and to express their thanks for such
-heroic behaviour, and amongst other visitors came ten Nonconformist
-ministers--a circumstance which so offended the King, that he summoned
-four of them to his presence, when they respectfully answered, that
-they could not help adhering to the Right Reverend prisoners, as men
-who were constant to the Protestant faith. Even the soldiers who kept
-guard expressed sympathy, in their own rude way, toasting the Bishops
-with brimming cups; and when rebuked for this by their captain, they
-said, they were doing it at that instant, and would continue to do so,
-until the Bishops were set free.[223]
-
-[Sidenote: THE SEVEN BISHOPS.]
-
-The Nonconformists had reason to expect that they would be required to
-read the Declaration in their meeting-houses; but one of their number,
-Mr. Morice, used all the means in his power to prevent the issue of
-such an order, and in this he succeeded. The Nonconformists, however,
-were pressed to get up congratulatory addresses: which they declined to
-do, for reasons which they stated in the following awkward terms:--
-
-“None,” said they, “will offer it of condition, or quality, and so we
-shall be greatly diminished and lessened, by offering it, by persons of
-a little figure or that are not known to be ours.
-
-“Our enemies and friends will greatly dislike it and heinously censure
-us for it.
-
-“We shall become suspected, and so lose our interest in our great
-friends, both as to their private and public capacity.
-
-“The inconsideration of those that occasion the debate of an address
-is the only reason that can be suggested for it, as a deference to the
-King.
-
-“The report, or common talk of it, will be to our great advantage if we
-do it not, and will greatly strengthen our influence both upon enemies
-and friends, and in truth our influence is now full as great upon our
-enemies, as it used to be upon our friends.
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-“Lastly, we are absolutely [and indeed so they seem to be] for
-liberty by a law, but we are utterly against letting Papists into the
-Government, and of this the King has often had and should have a clear
-understanding and be fully possessed with it, that he may not have any
-colour afterwards to say we deceived.”[224]
-
-Some few towns and corporations presented addresses of thanks to the
-King for the Declaration, and amongst them one from the “Old Dissenting
-officers and soldiers of the County of Lincoln;”[225] but the most
-numerous, as well as the most respectable of the Nonconformists,
-objected to such a course, and Baxter publicly in his pulpit
-extolled the Bishops. “The whole Church,” says the Papal Nuncio in
-his correspondence, “espouses the cause of the Bishops. There is no
-reasonable expectation of a division among the Anglicans, and our hopes
-from the Nonconformists are vanished.”[226]
-
-[Sidenote: THE SEVEN BISHOPS.]
-
-On the 15th of June, Sancroft and his brethren were brought from the
-Tower to the Court of King’s Bench; as their barge floated along the
-Thames, they were greeted with applauses and with prayers, and on their
-reaching Westminster, noblemen and gentlemen accompanied them into
-Court. Of the immense concourse of people who received them on the bank
-of the river and followed them to the bar, the greater part fell upon
-their knees, wishing them happiness and asking their blessing; and as
-the Archbishop laid his hands on the heads of those that were nearest,
-telling them to be firm in their faith, the people cried out that all
-should kneel, and tears were seen to flow from the eyes of many.[227]
-Westminster Hall has raised its huge form many a time, like an old rock
-out of the bosom of the sea, as crowds of excited people have gathered
-under its shadow: on this occasion the ocean of heads was more immense
-than ever, whilst surges of indignant and sympathetic feeling rose and
-rolled and broke every moment. All London seemed to be on the spot,
-and the spirit of the nation seemed to be there concentrated. Upon
-the prelates being desired to plead, the Archbishop was permitted to
-read a short paper, claiming sufficient time for preparing an answer;
-but the plea was rejected as a device for delay. The accused pleaded
-“Not guilty,” in the usual form, and the trial was fixed for that
-day fortnight. When the prisoners were admitted to bail on their own
-recognizance, the people took the circumstance as a triumph, and set no
-bounds to their boisterous joy. Huzzas rent the air, the Abbey bells
-rung, and people thronged the way the Bishops went, lighting bonfires,
-maltreating Roman Catholics, and execrating the other prelates who
-yielded to the Royal will.
-
-On the 29th of June the trial took place in Westminster Hall. One of
-the most worthless men that ever sat on the bench, Lord Chief Justice
-Wright, the _protégé_ of the infamous Jeffreys, presided, and
-with him were associated three puisne Judges--Holloway, Powell, and
-Allybone, a Roman Catholic. Strangely enough, Sawyer and Finch,
-two lawyers who had been State prosecutors under Charles II., and
-had conducted the proceedings against Lord William Russell, now
-appeared on the side of the prosecuted; whilst Williams, a Whig,
-now Solicitor-General, with Powys, the Attorney-General, conducted
-the prosecution. This confusion of parties led to attacks and
-recriminations which afforded such amusement to bystanders and so
-provoked their raillery, that the Court with difficulty suppressed
-demonstrations of censure or applause. Numerous noblemen sat by the
-Judges, scrutinizing their acts, and the Chief Justice looked, we are
-told, as “if all the peers present had halters in their pockets.”
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-The information having been read, the first thing was to prove the
-handwriting of the Bishops, a point not to be established without
-considerable difficulty. The Counsel for the defence raised the
-question,--Had the paper been signed in the County of Middlesex,
-where the venue had been laid? This could not be proved, inasmuch as
-Sancroft, during the whole business, had remained in his Palace at
-Lambeth. The case, so far, legally broke down, when the Crown lawyers
-changed their ground, contending, that the libel, if not written,
-had been published in Middlesex, by the delivery of it into the
-King’s hands,--a circumstance proved by the testimony of Sunderland,
-Lord President of the Council. It now remained for the advocates of
-the Bishops to defend the document. This they proceeded to do, by
-representing that, whereas their right reverend clients stood accused
-of having published a “false, malicious, and seditious libel” against
-the King, nothing could be further from deserving such epithets than
-the paper which they had presented, it being couched in the most
-respectful terms, and presented in the most private manner. It merely
-asked relief from compliance with a demand which distressed their
-consciences. Every subject had the right of petition, and Bishops ought
-not to be deprived of this common privilege, they being principally
-charged with the care and execution of laws concerning the Church’s
-welfare; but the main stress of the defence rested on the illegality of
-dispensing with penal laws.[228]
-
-[Sidenote: THE SEVEN BISHOPS.]
-
-The managers of the prosecution urged, that the King was entitled to
-the prerogative which he claimed; that what took place in the years
-1662 and 1672 did not amount to any authoritative decision on the
-subject, but merely expressed the opinion of Parliament, to which
-His Majesty, under the circumstances, gave way, without a permanent
-surrender of his regal power. The libel of the Bishops was malicious
-and full of sedition, casting the greatest reflection on the
-Government. The tendency of their conduct was to inflame the public
-mind, and, though they had the right of petition, it could be no excuse
-for publishing a reproachful and scandalous attack upon the King’s
-Majesty. The Chief Justice, in summing up, pronounced the petition
-to be libellous; Justice Allybone took the same view; but the other
-two, Holloway and Powell, dissented from such a judgment,--an act of
-independence which cost them their seats on the Bench as soon as the
-term was over.[229] Evening had come, when the exhausted Jury retired
-to consider their verdict. They remained closeted all night without
-fire or candle, but basins of water and towels were furnished for their
-use. At about three o’clock in the morning, so it is reported, they
-were overheard in vehement debate with one another; and, at six, they
-sent word they had come to a conclusion, upon which, the prisoners
-being brought into Court, the foreman pronounced the verdict--“_Not
-Guilty_.” The effect was electric, the joy of the multitude
-burst out in a triumphant shout; “one would have thought,” said the
-Earl of Clarendon, who was present, “the Hall had cracked.” Now, as
-before, the people on their knees made a lane from the King’s Bench
-to beg a blessing as the Bishops passed; the crowd shook hands with
-the Jurymen, crying, “God bless you, and prosper your families, you
-have saved us all to-day;” noblemen flung money out of their coach
-windows for the mob to drink the health of the King, the Bishops,
-and the Jury; churches were crowded with people to pour forth their
-gratitude to God, for the delivery of His servants; and the prelates
-themselves, immediately after their acquittal, went to Whitehall
-Chapel, and thence proceeded to their respective homes, followed by
-the acclamations of delighted multitudes. An illumination succeeded in
-the evening, seven candles,--the middle one longer than the others,
-representing the Primate,--gleamed in thousands of windows; bells
-rang, bonfires blazed, rockets and squibs burst in all directions,
-the populace burnt an effigy of the Pope dressed in pontificals, as
-he appears in his chair at St. Peter’s, and Protestant demonstrations
-of various kinds continued all that night, until the church bells on
-Sunday morning called the people to worship and to rest. The joy of
-London repeated itself in the provinces, and vainly did the authorities
-forbid the outburst of gladness which rolled from shore to shore.
-
-[Sidenote: 1688.]
-
-James was at Hounslow, reviewing the troops, when, on hearing a great
-noise, he asked what was the matter: “Nothing but the soldiers shouting
-for the acquittal of the Bishops.” “Call you that nothing,” he might
-well ask, and then insanely added, “but so much the worse for them.” It
-certainly proved so much the worse for him.
-
-The popularity of the seven Bishops in 1688, appears in striking
-contrast with the unpopularity of the thirteen Bishops in 1642. There
-had been a number of circumstances, operating from the period of
-the Restoration, which contributed to the favourable impression now
-produced. The reaction against the rigours of Puritan rule, and the
-reverence, as well as the resentments kindled by clerical sufferings,
-the effect of the abolition of the Star Chamber and of the High
-Commission Court, the cessation of that troublesome zeal for ritualism,
-which had so harassed the country in the days of Laud, and the firm
-hold which the Episcopal Church had taken on the majority of the
-nation--these circumstances, and others, probably prepared for that
-gush of enthusiasm which greeted the Bishops on the day of their trial.
-
-[Sidenote: THE SEVEN BISHOPS.]
-
-Also, a change had come over the clergy. In 1677, they supported
-absolutism; then their opposition was chiefly directed against
-Protestant Nonconformity, and their resistance of the encroachments
-of Popery seemed lukewarm: but, before 1688, they opened their
-eyes to the intolerance of Romanism, and to the dark omens of its
-establishment in England. Alarmed at the impending evil, they warmly
-engaged in controversy, and many of them, seeing that the united
-strength of all Protestants had become needful to meet the emergency,
-proceeded to alter their conduct towards their long-despised Dissenting
-brethren. Convinced at last of the mischiefs connected with arbitrary
-rule, whatever subtle theories some might have respecting passive
-obedience and non-resistance, they now opposed, under the pressure of
-circumstances, the despotic policy of the Crown. Some saw the folly of
-their former course in exalting the Royal prerogative, with the idea of
-thereby defending the Church; now they discovered the unconstitutional
-power which they had conceded to the Sovereign to be an instrument
-capable of inflicting mischief on themselves. The ghost which they had
-raised, they now sought to lay; the monster which they had created or
-nourished, they now strove to crush. Ten years had produced a change in
-the clergy; and the change in the clergy had made them popular with the
-nation.
-
-[Sidenote: 1689.]
-
-One great cause of the popularity of the Bishops may be found in the
-men themselves, in their unmistakeable honesty of purpose, in their
-zeal for Constitutional Government, in their professions of liberality
-towards other Protestant denominations, and certainly not a little,
-in their social virtues and their Christian piety. Their advocacy
-of the Reformed faith carried all its disciples along with them,
-their readiness to suffer for the Established religion inspired with
-affection the bosom of Churchmen, and their overtures of reconciliation
-touched the hearts of Nonconformists. The release of the Bishops
-proved a proud day for the Church of England, and the man must be of a
-cynical temper and of narrow sympathies, who cannot enter warmly into
-the triumphs of that occasion. Notwithstanding, historical justice
-requires, and the utmost generosity does not forbid us to remember the
-treatment which Nonconformists for twenty-seven years had endured at
-the hands of the English priesthood, through their steady refusal the
-whole of that time, to grant or to encourage either comprehension or
-liberty. Nor can we forget the prevalence of thorough irreligion, of
-frivolous scepticism, of downright immorality, and of disgusting vice,
-which blackened the last two Stuart reigns, and which the Church did
-so little to overcome or to diminish. Her laxity and time-serving, her
-want of missionary earnestness and love, her neglect of faithful and
-pointed preaching, and of pastoral diligence, her indifference to the
-education and well-being of the lower classes, at the time of which we
-treat, are in conspicuous contrast to her activity in these respects
-at the present day. There are few of her most devoted sons who would
-think of vindicating her from the reproaches now expressed, however
-they may value her formularies, rejoice in her Constitution, and join
-in celebrating the ovation of her seven Bishops.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
-
-Up to this point, we have been engaged in watching the course of
-affairs within the bounds of the Establishment, and in pointing out its
-relations to Nonconformity; it remains for us to examine the growth of
-Nonconformity itself, in the principal varieties of its manifestation.
-
-Presbyterianism underwent a change. The ejected ministers, who had
-adopted that system, continued to cleave to the idea of an Established
-Church, and it was long before they gave up all hopes of some
-comprehensive scheme, which, whilst retaining a modified Episcopacy,
-should provide for the removal of their own well-known scruples. They
-manifested an indisposition to enter upon any proceedings which could
-be termed denominational; yet, preaching the Gospel appeared to them an
-employment which they ought on no account to relinquish, for they felt
-that they had received a Divine commission, and that it would be at
-their peril to draw back from its fulfilment. The personal satisfaction
-also which they experienced in the discharge of their vocation, and
-the eagerness of people to listen to their voices, deepened the
-consciousness of a necessity laid upon them. But, at first, they only
-preached in their own houses, in the hall of a friend’s mansion, in
-some sequestered forest nook, or in the retirement of a mountain dell.
-Like the seventy disciples, like the brethren scattered abroad upon the
-persecution of Stephen, like the witnesses of the Middle Ages, like
-Wycliffe’s friars, like the early Methodists, they simply attempted
-to kindle and keep alight the flame of spiritual piety. Two years
-after the Act of Uniformity had been passed, although some ministers
-then “were vehement for an entire separation” from the Establishment,
-others, including Baxter, Bates, and Heywood, advocated attendance
-at the parish church--in this respect acting in the same manner as
-John Wesley did, at least for some time after the institution of
-Methodism. Yet coming events cast their shadows before them. At the
-end of 1666, Oliver Heywood baptized a child at Halifax, a significant
-incident; and, in 1672, the same patriarch of the “old Dissent” “kept
-a solemn day at Bramhope,” when old Mr. Holdsworth “administered
-the Supper.”[230] By degrees, and almost unconsciously, the worthy
-Heywood--and he may be taken as the specimen of a class--made advances
-towards a determined position outside the enclosure fenced in by law.
-Celebrating the Lord’s Supper, besides administering Baptism, could
-not be consistently repeated many times, without involving other acts,
-inevitably preparing for the institution of distinctive and separate
-Churches. Admission to the Lord’s table rendered some religious
-oversight of the communicants necessary, and practically, what
-amounted to a distinct Christian society, would begin to exist before
-such an existence became clearly recognized even by those engaged in
-its creation. When, in the year 1672, the Declaration of Indulgence
-afforded liberty of action, cautious and hesitating men, who had
-felt their way, availed themselves of the Royal concession to pursue,
-practically, the legitimate consequences of their prior proceedings.
-A minister gathered together such godly neighbours as sympathized in
-his views; and such persons, owning him as their rightful pastor,
-entered into covenant--as it was called--“to believe and practise
-what truths and duties,” he should make manifest to them, “to be the
-mind of God.”[231] According to the Presbyterian theory, the minister
-in the order of nature, and generally in the order of time, takes
-precedence of the Church; he does not spring from the Church, but the
-Church has its root and beginning in him; nor does the origin of his
-ministerial power rest in the people, his vocation is bestowed upon
-him directly from above; and this idea of the origin and relation of
-the Christian ministry we may see worked out in the history of English
-Presbyterianism.
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-To build upon the platforms of the Westminster Assembly and the Long
-Parliament, had become impossible. It was a hopeless thing to think
-of forming classes, of meeting in synods, and of exercising parish
-discipline, such as had been the ideal of twenty or thirty years
-before--of instituting schools of virtue and religion in towns and
-villages, where the pastor should have the rod of the magistrate to
-enforce the belief of truth, and the practice of goodness. Perhaps,
-choice without necessity, through what had been taught by experience
-after the Restoration, would have led some Presbyterian pastors
-to abandon certain portions of their earlier cherished schemes of
-parochial order and discipline.
-
-No deacons, having authority together with the minister, existed in
-Presbyterian Churches, and the control of affairs rested chiefly, if
-not entirely, with one presiding person, except where there might
-be a plurality of pastors. The question of individual admission to
-fellowship was decided by the wisdom and the care of the presbyter
-or bishop, not by the deliberation or vote of the Church; and the
-decision and administration of discipline would naturally fall into
-the same hands as those which had opened the door of entrance to the
-enjoyment of ecclesiastical privileges. One of the last things which
-the Presbyterians accomplished, in reference to their separate and
-permanent existence as a religious body, appears, indeed, one of the
-first things essential to that existence. The ordination of others to
-succeed in the ministry must be reckoned a primary measure, requisite
-for the existence of Nonconformist Churches; yet it seems not to have
-been until the year 1672, that any Presbyterian orders were conferred
-after the Restoration. The first solemn act of this description, with
-which I am acquainted, was performed in Manchester, at a house in
-Deans’-gate, by five presbyters; and it is worthy of notice that those
-so ordained were not novitiates, but persons who had been engaged for
-several years in preaching the Gospel.[232] Subsequently, several
-instances of ordination occur, but the ceremony continued, up to the
-time of the Revolution, to be observed in private. As in the days of
-the Commonwealth, so still, a careful examination of the candidates
-preceded the service: Latin themes, and theological debates in the
-same language were required, and after a confession of faith had been
-made by the young minister, there followed the imposition of hands,
-and a solemn ordination-prayer, the right hand of fellowship being
-afterwards given to him in token of his admission to the ministerial
-brotherhood.[233]
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-The form of Church government, approved at Westminster, 1645,
-had declared that “it is agreeable to the Word of God, and very
-expedient, that such as are to be ordained ministers, be designed
-to some particular Church, or other ministerial charge;”[234] but
-from this rule the Presbyterians deviated after the Restoration,
-perhaps not so much from any change in judgment, as from a change in
-circumstances--scattered flocks and unsettled times rendering a general
-provision for perpetuating the ministry alone convenient or practicable.
-
-In these ways innovations arose upon the old Presbyterian system, but
-a more important change occurred in the gradual leavening of the whole
-body with a more tolerant spirit. Presbyterians had persecuted “the
-sects,” or had connived at their persecution, but now, often having
-to share with them in the endurance of sorrow, they came to regard
-them with brotherly kindness and charity. The principle of religious
-liberty had once filled them with alarm, their own freedom for a long
-while could not satisfy their wishes, but they now came to see, that
-their return to the Establishment being precluded by insurmountable
-barriers, they must make common cause with those who were in a like
-position with themselves, and the liberty which they had learned to
-value, they must also learn to concede. The discipline of circumstances
-has played no small part in the education of mankind. Great principles
-have, indeed, on rare occasions, flashed on minds of the highest
-order with a kind of inspiration; but, in the cases of most men, the
-knowledge of truths lying below the surface, has but slowly arisen, and
-gradually dawned. Now and then some momentous doctrine has been struck
-out as by fire--resembling the _fusile_ process, when a bronze
-statue is cast, and at once it comes from the mould complete--but
-commonly the acquisition of important principles may be compared to the
-hewing of marble, and the carving of oak, by a patient, laborious, and
-oft-repeated application of the chisel.
-
-The history of Congregationalism after the Restoration is a history of
-development. Between Presbyterianism and an Establishment there are
-strong affinities; but there are insuperable difficulties connected
-with the maintenance of Congregational order in a parish, and the only
-real kind of Congregational Church, formed by any incumbent under the
-Commonwealth, had to be practically severed from the legal position
-which he held as a parochial clergyman. When, therefore, upon the fall
-of Cromwell’s Broad Church, the bark of Congregationalism was cut
-completely adrift from its State moorings, it was, so far as intervals
-of peace would allow, left to make its way, under God’s blessing, by
-the efforts of the rowers whom it carried on board.
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-Independents and Baptists are included under the general denomination
-of Congregationalists. Independents retired into obscurity for a
-while after the Restoration. The doors of buildings where they had
-been wont to assemble were nailed up; the pastors were driven out;
-flocks were scattered; the administration of ordinances could not take
-place; and meetings could not be held, as the still existing records
-of communities, which had been prosperous under the Commonwealth,
-bear ample witness. There is reason to believe that the Independents
-had diminished in number. The Court influence in their favour, which
-they enjoyed so long as the Protector, Oliver, lived, would die when
-he died; and those who had joined their company, so long as the sun
-shone on their side of the street, and who had walked with them in
-silver slippers, would forsake their old companions, and go another way
-when the path was overshadowed, and the silver slippers were changed
-for spiked sandals. The political antecedents of the Independents as
-a party, their allegiance to Oliver Cromwell, the sympathy of many
-of them in Republican ideas, and their supposed complicity in the
-execution of Charles I., combined to make them exceedingly unpopular
-with the Royalists, whilst their democratic notions of Church
-government appeared most offensive to Episcopalians; consequently, to
-maintain a position under so much odium, and to withstand the steady
-fire of persecution, required a degree of faith, and a measure of
-decision, not very common in this world, where the love of ease and the
-sacrifice of principle too frequently set the fashion.
-
-The principles of Congregationalism, however, proved their vitality,
-and although assemblies of Church-members were unfrequent, or were
-altogether discontinued for a while, the identity of Churches was
-preserved, and whenever an opportunity presented itself, the scattered
-ones gladly re-united in the pleasant fellowship after which they
-yearned.
-
-Congregational principles had received a definite expression in the
-Savoy Declaration. The Independents had petitioned Oliver Cromwell
-for permission to hold a synod, which he had reluctantly conceded.
-After his death, they assembled on the 29th of September, and having
-conferred together, reached certain theological and ecclesiastical
-conclusions, which they published to the world.[235] To their
-confession, which is substantially the same as the Westminster
-Confession of Faith, they added a clear outline of ecclesiastical
-order; and, whereas the _covenants_ or mutual agreements into
-which Congregationalists had entered at the formation of their
-Churches, in the time of the Civil Wars, generally contained some
-references to further light breaking in upon them from God’s Word, we
-discover, in the Savoy Declaration, no language whatever of that kind,
-and it seems to be assumed in the document that Congregationalism, as
-to the knowledge of its principles, had by that period attained to
-something like completeness.
-
-The following were fundamental propositions.
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-A particular Church consists of officers and members: the Lord Christ
-having given to His called ones--united in Church order--liberty and
-power to choose persons fitted by the Holy Ghost to be over them in
-the Lord. The officers appointed by Christ to be chosen, and set apart
-by the Church, are pastors, teachers, elders, and deacons. The way
-appointed by Christ for the calling of any person unto the office of
-pastor, teacher, or elder, in a Church, is that he be chosen thereunto
-by the common suffrage of the Church itself, and solemnly set apart
-by fasting and prayer, with the imposition of hands of the eldership
-of that Church, if there be any before constituted therein; and of
-a deacon, that he be chosen by the like suffrage, and set apart by
-prayer, and the like imposition of hands; and those who are so chosen,
-though not set apart after that manner, are rightly constituted
-ministers of Jesus. The work of preaching is not so peculiarly confined
-to pastors and teachers, but that others also, gifted and fitted by
-the Holy Ghost, and approved by the people, may publicly, ordinarily,
-and constantly perform it. Ordination alone, without election or
-consent of the Church, doth not constitute any person a Church officer.
-A Church furnished with officers, according to the mind of Christ, hath
-full power to administer all His ordinances; and where there is want of
-any one or more officers, those that are in the Church may administer
-all the ordinances proper to those officers whom they do not possess;
-but where there are no teaching-officers at all, none may administer
-the seals, nor can the Church authorize any so to do. Whereas the Lord
-Jesus Christ hath appointed and instituted, as a means of edification,
-that those who walk not according to the rules and laws appointed by
-Him be censured in His name and authority: every Church hath power in
-itself to exercise and execute all those censures appointed by Him.
-The censures appointed by Christ are admonition and excommunication;
-and whereas some offences may be known only to some, those to whom
-they are so known must first admonish the offender in private; in
-public offences, and in case of non-amendment upon private admonition,
-the offence being related to the Church, the offender is to be duly
-admonished, in the name of Christ, by the whole Church through the
-elders, and if this censure prevail not for his repentance, then he is
-to be cast out by excommunication, with the consent of the members.
-
-These particulars respecting a Declaration of Faith but little known,
-indicate the opinions entertained by the Independents, not only at the
-time of the Restoration, but, with some modification, afterwards; and
-here it may be added that if, in the theory of Presbyterianism, the
-minister, as to the order of existence, precedes the Church, in the
-theory of Congregationalism, the Church, in that same order, precedes
-the minister; and in this significant fact may be found a key to some
-important differences between the two systems.
-
-Besides those rules, which had reference to the internal order of
-the Churches, there were these three, relative to their dimensions,
-their co-operation, and the catholicity of their fellowship. For the
-avoiding of differences, for the greater solemnity in the celebration
-of ordinances, and for the larger usefulness of the gifts and graces
-of the Holy Ghost, saints, living within such distances as that they
-can conveniently assemble for Divine worship, ought rather to join in
-one Church for their mutual strengthening and edification than to set
-up many distinct societies. In cases of difficulties or differences,
-it is according to the mind of Christ, that many Churches holding
-communion together do by their managers meet in a synod or council, to
-consider and give advice; howbeit, these synods are not intrusted with
-any Church power, properly so called, or with any jurisdiction over the
-Churches. Such reforming Churches as consist of persons sound in the
-faith, and of conversation becoming the Gospel, ought not to refuse
-the communion of each other, so far as may consist with their own
-principles respectively, though they walk not in all things according
-to the same rules of Church order.[236]
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-It will be seen upon comparing the account of Independency with the
-account just given of Presbyterianism, that the Independents differed
-from their brethren (1) in their mode of admitting members,--for
-the Presbyterians left that responsibility entirely in the hands of
-the minister, and the Independents placed it entirely in the hands
-of the Church; (2) in their method of exercising discipline,--for,
-in the one case, such exercise followed the minister’s authority,
-and, in the other case, it followed the popular voice;[237] (3) in
-the relation of pastor and people,--for Presbyterians considered
-the first to be placed over the second by the presbyters engaged in
-ordination, but the Independents looked upon the second as validly
-appointing the first to office, the essence of the call, according to
-their judgments, consisting in the election of the Church; and (4)
-in the manner of ordination,--fasting, and prayer, and imposition of
-hands were recognized by Presbyterians as parts of the one rite, but
-though fasting and prayer were generally observed in the ordination
-of Independent ministers, the imposition of hands was omitted in some
-cases.
-
-The conclusions at the Savoy were not ecclesiastical canons, but simply
-united opinions. They had no binding force. They aspired to no higher
-character than that of counsel and advice. How far they were studied,
-or how frequently they guided the proceedings of Congregationalists,
-I cannot say, but they may be considered as embodying the ideas of
-Congregationalism, which were most common amongst the early advocates
-of the system. The principle laid down with regard to the extent
-of a Church is in conformity with the practice adopted under the
-Commonwealth, when the multiplication of distinct societies was avoided
-as much as possible, and, except when the number of worshippers
-demanded a different course, it was the rule not to have more than
-one Congregational community in one place; and it would seem that the
-multiplication of small assemblies, which afterwards became frequent,
-resulted from the pressure of circumstances--persecution, or inability
-to obtain extensive accommodation rendering division absolutely
-necessary. Conferences in the form, but without the authority, of
-synods were held by Congregationalists under the Protectorate, and
-the cessation of them afterwards, except upon a small scale, may be
-easily accounted for, without supposing the occurrence of any change
-of opinion upon the subject. Willingness to receive Presbyterians into
-communion, and a disposition to unite with Presbyterian fellowships,
-distinctly appear in the history of those times. It is recorded,
-respecting Heywood’s Church, in the year 1672, that Independents were
-willing to acknowledge Presbyterians, and Presbyterians were willing
-to acknowledge Independents; “and a special season was appointed for
-communicating together in the Lord’s Supper. Both parties went away
-abundantly satisfied.”[238]
-
-Both Presbyterians and Independents adopted the practice of adult and
-of pædo-baptism by sprinkling. According to the Westminster Confession,
-“not only those that do actually profess faith in and obedience unto
-Christ, but also the infants of one or both believing parents are to
-be baptized.” John Owen remarks, as to the subjects of the rite--“The
-question is not whether all infants are to be baptized or not. For,
-according to the will of God, some are not to be baptized, even such
-whose parents are strangers from the covenant.”[239] Baxter adopted the
-same view.[240] So did Goodwin, but he considered that the child of a
-godly person, though not in fellowship with any Church, was entitled to
-the ordinance.[241]
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-Of the importance of a baptismal dedication of infants, Presbyterians
-and Independents held decided views. Some of the former spoke of the
-nature and advantages of the sacrament in terms which would be greatly
-modified by their successors,[242] even as the latter confined its
-administration within narrower limits than many of the former.
-
-The Baptists resembled the Independents in Church polity, except as
-it regards baptism. They were specially singled out for attack by the
-High Church party, and their extraordinary sufferings have never been
-forgotten by their successors. They could not but be winnowed by the
-winds of persecution. Forty-six Baptist Churches are said to have been
-in existence in London in the year 1646. The number of them represented
-at an assembly held in 1689 is but eleven.[243] Supposing the first of
-these statements to be exaggerated, and the second to be inadequate,
-allowing that in the former estimate some small groups of worshippers
-were counted as Churches, although not organized as such, and that
-there might be more Baptist Churches in London than were represented in
-the assembly held after the Restoration; further, taking into account
-the fact that the erection of larger places of worship, after liberty
-had been conceded, would absorb the fragmentary assemblies common when
-oppression was rife; still, the comparison even of these loose returns
-would indicate that the fact of the case is in accordance with the
-probability, and that Baptists, like Independents, declined somewhat
-in numerical power.
-
-Baptist Churches sprung out of Independent ones, as before, so after
-the days of Cromwell. For instance, in the year 1633, a number of
-Baptists in London, who had been members of an Independent Church,
-swarmed, and settled down into a distinct Baptist community,[244] and
-in 1667 a Baptist member of the Independent Church in Norwich withdrew
-from that society, and entered upon the task “of building another house
-for God.”[245]
-
-In the records of early Independency we meet with allusions to
-messengers appointed to take part in conferences between those Churches
-and others of the same denomination. A like practice existed among the
-Baptists, who seem to have gone beyond their brethren in the number and
-importance of such conferences.
-
-The Baptists were divided into Particular and General. The Particular
-Baptists were those who held the doctrine of particular redemption.
-
-Upon comparing the doctrinal part of the confession of the Particular
-Baptists, published in the years 1677 and 1689, with the doctrinal
-part of the confession of the Westminster Divines, it will be found
-to resemble it--differing in this respect from an earlier confession
-of faith, published by seven Baptist Churches in 1644 and 1646. That
-earlier confession presents a statement of doctrinal belief much
-shorter, couched in different terms, and arranged in a different
-order.[246] The Predestinarianism expressed by the Baptists in 1677
-and 1689, is not less decided than the Predestinarianism of the
-Confession of 1644 and 1646, but in neither of these confessions can I
-find the doctrine of reprobation. The omission in the last confession,
-of the Westminster Article on that subject, is very significant.
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-The Article on the _nature_ of baptism in the Baptist Confession
-of 1677 differs but slightly from the Articles on the same subject
-in the Westminster Confession, and in the Savoy Declaration; but,
-of course, there is a great difference from these, in the Article
-touching the _subjects_ of baptism, and the _mode_ of its
-administration. The Baptist Confession says, “Those who do actually
-profess repentance towards God, faith in and obedience to our Lord
-Jesus Christ are the only proper subjects of this ordinance. The
-outward element to be used in this ordinance is water, wherein the
-party is to be baptized in the name of the Father, and of the Son,
-and of the Holy Ghost. Immersion or dipping of the person in water is
-necessary to the due administration of the ordinance.”
-
-The General Baptists, whose early history can be reviewed more
-conveniently when we have passed the Revolution, were those who,
-resembling their brethren in other respects, held Anti-Calvinistic
-sentiments, and preached the doctrine of general redemption. Some of
-the Churches of this denomination kept Saturday as a day of rest and
-worship, and were on that account called Seventh Day Baptists. They
-seem to have been very strict in their ecclesiastical discipline, and
-to have drawn around them very closely the bonds of fellowship. Not
-only were formal letters of dismissal from one Church to another given
-when members removed to a new residence--as was a common practice
-amongst all Congregationalists--but an instance is at hand of “an
-epistle of commendation,” written in a very primitive style, being
-given to a person on the point of travelling to some distant part of
-the country.
-
-The document is signed by Francis Bampfield, a well-known ejected
-minister,[247]--who died in Newgate,--and also by his deacons. They
-thus jointly express their fraternal affection: “To any Church of our
-Lord Jesus Christ, to whom our brother may come, who are one with us
-in the faith of our Lord Jesus Christ, and in the order of the Gospel
-of God keeping the holy Sabbath. Our brother, having occasion to visit
-your parts, and being unacquainted with the faces of the saints in your
-parts, was desirous of a testimony from us, which we are desirous to
-give unto you, that he may be watched over, and made a partaker of the
-privileges of Christ’s house. For he is a brother, and faithful, who
-also hath been as a living member amongst us, in varieties of cases in
-which he hath been tried. Therefore receive him as you would receive
-any of us, and as we would receive you in the Lord, who commend him and
-you to the grace of God, and subscribe ourselves in behalf of the rest,
-&c.”[248]
-
-Baptists were not only divided into Particular and General, as it
-respects doctrine; they were distinguished as Strict and Open with
-respect to communion. In the Confession of 1677 the distinction as to
-discipline is thus represented--“The known principles and the state of
-the consciences of us that have agreed in this confession is such, that
-we cannot hold Church communion with any other than baptized believers,
-and Churches constituted of such; yet some other of us have a greater
-liberty, and freedom in our spirits that way.”
-
-Kiffin and Thomas Paul were advocates of strict communion; Jessy,
-Tombes, and Bunyan were advocates of open communion.[249]
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-The records of the Baptist Church assembling in Broadmead, Bristol,
-furnish a complete history of its Christian fellowship. The mode
-of admission is fully described. Candidates gave an account of the
-work of God upon their souls before the whole congregation. Three
-are on one occasion mentioned as giving satisfaction, but two of the
-brethren desired further time to discourse with one Mary Skinker
-about her principles, whether she was sound in the doctrine of the
-Gospel, concerning the person and human nature of Christ our Lord; and
-time also to discourse with one Elizabeth Jordan somewhat further,
-for their satisfaction concerning the truth of the work of grace
-upon her soul. Persons, “hoped to be in the truth,” were baptized in
-the river Frome--this was done once, amidst frost and snow, and a
-sharp, piercing wind, so that a wet handkerchief was frozen round the
-neck of one of the women; although one person was sick, and another
-had tooth-ache, and a third had sprained his leg, and a fourth was
-consumptive, the Lord, it is said, “to declare His power, did, as it
-were, work a miracle, to give a precedent to others,” lest, from the
-coldness of the season, they should fear to do His will. He preserved
-them all, and not so much as one was ill; each was the better for
-being baptized, and all were alive ten years afterwards to speak of the
-Lord’s goodness, and have it recorded in the Church Book. Discipline
-was rigidly maintained. Letters were written to members suspected of
-improper conduct, and the answers they returned of confession, or
-denial, or excuse, are carefully preserved. Instances of answers to
-prayer are recorded--one of a bachelor, who fell distracted, so that he
-was forced to be bound to his bed, but after days of prayer the Lord
-cast out, “as it were, three spirits, visible to be seen”--a spirit of
-uncleanness for rage and blasphemy, a spirit of horror and fear, and a
-spirit of shame and dumbness. Allusion is made to the occurrence of a
-fiery apparition on the north-west side of the City, like a boy’s kite,
-with a fiery oval head, and a long white tail. These records abound in
-stories of persecution and disturbance; but whatever may be thought
-of the superstitious tinge, so apparent in the character of these
-simple-hearted and pious people, every reader must be touched by the
-following entries:--
-
-“On the 2nd of July [1682], Lord’s Day, our pastor preached in another
-place in the Wood. Our friends took much pains in the rain, because
-many informers were ordered out to search, and we were in peace, though
-there were near twenty men and boys in search.” “On the 16th brother
-Fownes first, and brother Whinnell after, preached under a tree, it
-being very rainy.” “On the 13th [of August] our pastor preached in the
-Wood, and afterwards broke bread at Mr. Young’s in peace. But Hellier
-and the rest were busy that day, and shut up the gates, and kept watch
-at the Weir, and behind St. Philip’s in the morning, to prevent any
-going out, and in the evening to catch them coming in, and took up
-several in the evening as vagrants on the Lord’s Day, and sent some to
-Newgate, and some to Bridewell, watching till seven in the evening for
-that purpose.” “On the 20th met above Scruze Hole, in our old place,
-and heard brother Fownes preach twice in peace. Brother Terrill had
-caused workmen to make banks on the side of the hill to sit down on,
-several of them like a gallery. And there we met also on the 27th in
-peace. And both days we sang a psalm in the open wood.”[250] No doubt
-if other Congregational Church books, Baptist and Pædo-baptist, had
-been as minute and copious in detail, and had been as safely handed
-down to us as the Broadmead Records have happily been, we should have
-found in them somewhat similar information, touching different kinds of
-Independent communities.
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-The history of the Quakers, throughout the period under review, is a
-history of spiritual life, of intense suffering, of calm endurance, of
-inflexible adherence to principle, of heroic zeal, of indefatigable
-activity, and of large success, both as to the increase of numbers,
-and the moral improvement of mankind. It is also a history of organic
-ecclesiastical development. So spiritual an impulse worked out a
-graduated system of co-operation and discipline. Quakers differed
-from the Presbyterians, from the Independents, and from the Baptists
-in doctrinal opinions, and they also rejected the celebration of
-sacraments, which all the others reverentially observed; but in
-ecclesiastical government the Quakers were much less unlike the
-Presbyterians than the other two denominations. Quakers’ Societies
-were not distinct Churches, independent of each other, but they formed
-one large spiritual aggregate, the various parts being united, not
-only in sympathy and general action, but in certain definite social
-arrangements. In respect to corporate unity, Quakers attained to a
-perfection at which the Presbyterians of the Commonwealth aimed in
-vain, and which the Presbyterians of the Restoration never attempted.
-After the first few years of struggle and suffering, Quakerism
-consolidated itself into the following shape, as described by Sewell,
-the historian of the sect:--
-
-“As to Church government, both for looking to the orderly conversation
-of the members, and for taking care of the poor, and of indigent widows
-and orphans, and also for making inquiry into marriages solemnized
-among them, they have particular meetings, either weekly, or every
-two weeks, or monthly, according to the greatness of the Churches.
-They have also quarterly meetings in every county, where matters are
-brought that cannot well be adjusted in the particular meetings. To
-these meetings come not only the ministers and elders, but also other
-members, that are known to be of sober conversation; and what is
-agreed upon there is entered into a book belonging to the meeting.
-Besides these meetings, a general annual assembly is kept at London
-in the Whitsun Week so-called, not for any superstitious observation
-the Quakers have for that more than any other time, but because that
-season of the year best suits the general accommodation. To this yearly
-meeting, which sometimes lasteth four, five, or more days, are admitted
-such as are sent from all Churches of that Society in the world, to
-give an account of the state of the particular Churches, which from
-some places is done only by writing, and from that meeting is sent a
-general epistle to all the Churches, which commonly is printed, and
-sometimes particular epistles are also sent to the respective Churches.
-By which it may be known every year in what condition the Churches
-are, and in the said epistle generally is recommended a godly life and
-conversation, and due care about the education of children. If it
-happen that the poor anywhere are in want, then that is supplied by
-others who have in store, or sometimes by an extraordinary collection.”
-
-[Sidenote: DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.]
-
-He supplies the following particulars respecting another subject:--
-
-“In their method of marriage they also depart from the common way,
-for in the Old Testament they find not that the joining of a couple
-in marriage ever was the office of a priest, nor in the Gospel any
-preacher among Christians appointed thereto. Therefore it is their
-custom, that when any intend to enter into marriage, they first having
-the consent of parents or guardians, acquaint the respective men’s
-and women’s meetings of their intention, and after due inquiry, all
-things appearing clear, they in a public meeting solemnly take each
-other in marriage, with a promise of love and fidelity, and not to
-leave one another before death separates them. Of this a certificate
-is drawn, mentioning the names and distinctions of the persons thus
-joined, which, being first signed by themselves, those then that are
-present sign as witnesses. In the burying of their dead they mind
-decency, and endeavour to avoid all pomp, and the wearing of mourning
-is not approved among them, for they think that the mourning which is
-lawful may be showed sufficiently to the world by a modest and grave
-deportment.”[251]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
-
-After tracing the political history of the Church, and the development
-of Nonconformity in different directions, I proceed to gather up a
-number of facts illustrative of the worship and social religious life
-of England after the Restoration.
-
-I. The injuries done to cathedrals during the Civil Wars were repaired,
-and such partitions as had been erected to adapt them for Nonconformist
-use were removed.
-
-Seth Ward, first as Dean, afterwards as Bishop of Exeter, improved the
-cathedral of that diocese. The same may be said respecting Salisbury,
-to which he was translated. That cathedral had been kept in repair
-during the Commonwealth, at whose expense no one knew, for the workmen
-engaged upon it were wont to reply to inquirers, “They who employ us
-well pay us--trouble not yourselves to inquire who they are. Whoever
-they are they do not desire to have their names known.” But Ward
-increased the beauty of the building, for he paved the cloisters and
-choir, the latter with black and white marble.[252]
-
-[Sidenote: CHURCHES.]
-
-Hacket persevered in his labours at Lichfield until the sacred edifice
-reached its completion. He raised money “by bare-faced begging,” and no
-gentleman lodged or baited in the City whom he did not visit, that he
-might solicit contributions towards the object so dear to his heart.
-North, who says this, also remarks, that the Bishop adorned the choir
-so “completely and politely,” that he had never seen a “more laudable
-and well-composed structure.” He also mentions the Cathedral of York as
-“stately,” only “disgraced by a wooden roof.” Durham too is described
-by the same pen as most ancient, with the “marks of old ruin;” and of
-that, and of York Minster, the judge says that “the gentry affect to
-walk there to see and be seen.”[253] Dr. John Barwick, who, for his
-loyalty, was first rewarded by the bestowment upon him of the Deanery
-of Durham, exerted himself vigorously during the short time that he
-held that office, in the reparation of the cathedral and the prebendal
-houses.[254] And when removed to the Deanery of St. Paul’s he evinced
-equal zeal in promoting the restoration of that edifice. The rebuilding
-of it after the fire was a great undertaking, and called forth the
-strenuous efforts of Sancroft, who succeeded Barwick in the Deanery.
-To him, as much as to any one, posterity owes the adoption of Sir
-Christopher Wren’s design, after abortive attempts had been made to
-build anew upon the old foundations. Sancroft’s correspondence with the
-architect indicates his interest in the preparation of the plans; the
-passing of the Coal Act, by which funds were secured, was promoted by
-his exertions, and amongst the voluntary subscribers the Dean’s name
-is conspicuous.[255] The first stone was laid in 1675, and ten years
-afterwards the edifice had so far advanced that the walls of the choir
-and side-aisles were completed, and the porticoes and pillars of the
-dome were finished.
-
-The style of architecture adopted in new ecclesiastical structures was
-debased Grecian; of which a specimen may be found at Northampton, in
-All Saints’ Church, with its Ionic columns supporting a balustrade, in
-the centre of which--symbolical of the worship of royalty--stands the
-statue of Charles II., who gave towards the building a large quantity
-of timber. The pencil of Sir Godfrey Kneller was employed upon pictures
-of Moses and Aaron for the decoration of the altar-piece; there, and
-in several cathedrals and large churches, remained until of late,
-hideous examples of the wooden screens and galleries of the period. In
-connection with this allusion to ecclesiastical carpentry, it is not
-impertinent to notice that there is a paper in the Record Office, dated
-February 18th, 1677, thanking Williamson for a new pulpit just erected
-at Bridekirk, “gilded with gold and silver for its better adornment,
-and all covered over with a brownish ointment.” The churchwardens ask
-for a new pulpit-cloth and cushion. Sculptured sepulchres of the same
-age, now, after a complete revolution in public taste, excite as much
-ridicule as they then excited admiration; yet long before it was said,
-“Princes’ images on their tombs do not lie, as they were wont, seeming
-to pray to Heaven; but with their hands under their cheeks, as if they
-died of the tooth-ache. They are not carved with their eyes fixed upon
-the stars; but, as their minds were wholly bent upon the world, the
-self-same way they seem to turn their faces.”[256]
-
-[Sidenote: CHURCHES.]
-
-The ornaments of the church, like its architecture and its sculpture,
-expressed the taste of the day. An altar “especially adorned, the white
-marble enclosure curiously and richly carved,”--flowers and garlands,
-the work of Grinling Gibbons,--purple velvet fringed with gold, with
-the letters I H S richly embroidered,--sacramental plate valued at
-£200--these are notable objects which, in the new church of St. James,
-Westminster, erected at that time, called forth admiring words from
-the eminent Anglican John Evelyn.[257] They indicate a feeling totally
-at variance with mediæval Catholicism; and nowhere does it appear
-that in those days vases of flowers, or painted banners, or other
-accompaniments of mediæval Ritualism, were in any case employed. On the
-contrary, a keen jealousy of Romanism extensively prevailed, and it may
-be discovered very plainly in the following passage, extracted from a
-contemporary diary:--“The Church of Allhallows, Barking, in London, was
-presented for innovations, as bowing to the East, and for the picture
-of the Angel Gabriel over the altar. It came to a trial, Monday, March
-1st, and the picture was brought into the Court; and the minister that
-caused it to be set up submitted to the Court, and the picture must be
-set up no more, and so the business ends.”[258]
-
-In Articles of Visitation we meet with minute inquiries respecting
-parish churches; but many of the old fabrics must have been in a
-miserable condition, if we may judge from complaints made in the
-diocese of Winchester; it being said that “some in late times were
-totally ruined and demolished, and those of them still standing were
-much decayed and out of repair.” The Bishop, in pursuance of an Act
-of Parliament, united some of the parishes, “for the encouragement of
-able ministers to undertake the care of them.”[259] The cost expended
-on the church at Euston, in Suffolk, is mentioned as “most laudable,”
-in contrast with other Houses of God in that county, which resembled
-thatched cottages rather than “temples in which to serve the Most
-High.”[260] Even cathedrals were badly furnished, and in sorry repair.
-“Are the uncomely forms,” asks the Bishop of Durham, in 1668, “and
-coarse mats, lately used at the administration of the Holy Communion,
-for such persons as usually resort thither, without the rails, taken
-away; and others more comely put in their place, and decently covered,
-as heretofore hath been accustomed? And are the partitions on each hand
-of these forms, under the two arches of the church next the said rails,
-well framed in joiners’ work, and there set up for the better keeping
-out of the wind and cold, which otherwise do many times molest and
-annoy the communicant?”[261]
-
-[Sidenote: WORSHIP.]
-
-It was required that in every parish church there should be a stone
-font; a comely pulpit, with a decent cloth or cushion; a carpet of
-silk, or some decent stuff, on the communion-table during service; and
-a fair cloth for the celebration of the Lord’s Supper; also a cup and
-flagon of silver, chests for alms and for registers; and it was also
-ordered that in churches there should be placed the Book of Canons, a
-Book of Offices for the 30th of January, the 29th of May, and the 5th
-of November, a copy of _Jewel’s Apology_ well and fairly bound,
-and a record--in which strange preachers should write their names in
-the presence of churchwardens. Notwithstanding the careful and repeated
-inquiries made respecting such matters in Articles of Visitation, it is
-highly probable that they were often neglected.[262]
-
-II. From the buildings and their furniture we turn to the worship,
-including its vestments and mode of celebration. Whatever may be the
-exact meaning of the rubric prefixed to the Order of Morning Prayer,
-chasubles and other priestly attire used in the second year of King
-Edward, were not worn after the Restoration, nor did any of the
-Anglican prelates attempt to enforce their use. Copes, according to
-the Twenty-fourth Canon, were prescribed to be worn by the principal
-ministers at the Holy Communion in cathedrals; but in other churches
-ministers were to read the Divine service, and administer the
-sacraments, in a decent and comely surplice with sleeves, and wearing
-University hoods according to their degrees. With such an arrangement
-the visitation articles of the prelates are in accordance. Croft,
-Bishop of Hereford, that very low Churchman, took care to express his
-decided approbation “of a pure white robe on the minister’s shoulders,”
-emblematical of the purity of heart which became the service.[263]
-
-Wind instruments were, for a time used in some cathedral choirs, but
-they soon gave place to organs; and the boys failed not to bring “a
-fair book of the anthem and service, and sometimes the score,” to
-distinguished strangers.[264]
-
-Baptism was performed according to the Prayer Book, and a public
-administration of it in the case of those who had passed the age of
-childhood sometimes attracted considerable notice. The following
-anecdote on this subject occurs in a letter:--“Mr. John Harrington
-(whose father was some time since one of the serjeants-at-arms to His
-Majesty) had his boy baptized in the church; he being about fifteen
-years old, and not baptized before, and the son of a Nonconformist. To
-see which the church was fuller than it useth to be at other times; he
-having God-fathers and God-mothers according to the ceremony of the
-Church.”[265]
-
-The Lord’s Supper was administered from the table placed by the wall,
-at the east end of the church, in accordance with Laudian precedents,
-in spite of the rubrical direction that it “shall stand in the body
-of the church, or in the chancel; where morning and evening prayers
-are appointed to be said.” In some churches, the Communion Service, on
-non-communion days, was read from the desk, it being alleged, “that it
-was indecent to go to the altar and back, with the surplice still on,
-to the homily or sermon”--a reason which implies that the surplice was
-worn in the pulpit, even by those who read the Communion Service in the
-desk. Clergymen left the desk, after the second lesson, to baptize in
-the font at the west end of the church.[266]
-
-[Sidenote: WORSHIP.]
-
-On special occasions, cathedrals witnessed extraordinary
-processions--as when Judges, with the Sheriffs and their officers,
-attended at Assize sermons; or when a Mayor and Aldermen, clothed in
-municipal robes, with their gold chains, marched or rode thither,
-through streets of quaint architecture, to celebrate festivals civic
-or sacred. A Royal visit eclipsed all mere annual pageants; and it is
-related that when Charles II., in the year 1671, visited the City of
-Norwich, as the guest of Lord Henry Howard, afterwards Duke of Norfolk,
-His Majesty went to the grand old Norman temple in the Close--the pride
-of the City--and was “sung into the church with an anthem; and when he
-had ended his devotion at the east end of the church, where he kneeled
-on the hard stone, he went to the Bishop’s palace [then occupied by
-Reynolds], and was there nobly entertained.”[267]
-
-St. George’s Chapel, Windsor, became the scene of peculiar solemnities.
-The Feast of St. George was there celebrated in 1662; and the knights
-elect were constrained to receive their investiture below, in the
-choir, yet directly under their proper stalls, because of “the great
-concourse of people which at that time had flocked to Windsor (greedy
-to behold the glory of that solemnity, which for many years had been
-intermitted), and rudely forced not only into and filled the lower row
-of stalls, but taken up almost the whole choir.” Two years afterwards,
-at the Feast of St. George, there was an anthem, composed for the
-solemnity, accompanied by the organ and other instrumental music; this
-was the first time that instrumental music was introduced into the
-Royal chapel.[268]
-
-Pompous funerals had taken place during the Commonwealth, particularly
-in Westminster Abbey. Funerals more pompous still occurred in the same
-national edifice, with a splendour surpassing what might be exhibited
-elsewhere. Monk, Duke of Albemarle, in 1670, was conveyed “by the
-King’s orders, with all respect imaginable,” in a long procession;
-and within the sacred walls the remains were met by the Dean and
-Prebendaries, who wore copes; and, in connection with the service,
-offerings were made at the altar.[269]
-
-On Easter Day, at the Royal Chapel, when the Bishop of Rochester
-preached before the King, and the sacrament followed, “there was
-perfume burnt before the office began.”[270]
-
-The Restoration brought with it much irreverence in religion. The
-worship at Lichfield was performed “with more harmony and less
-huddle” than in any church in England, except in St. Paul’s at a
-later period;[271] a laudable exception proving a disgraceful rule.
-Complaints were officially made, by a circular letter in the name of
-Archbishop Sheldon, respecting the slovenly performance of sacred
-duties by Deans, Canons, and other dignitaries. Reading the service and
-administering the sacraments had been neglected by such persons, as if
-they had been offices beneath their importance, to be performed only
-by Vicars or petty Canons.[272] Croft, Bishop of Hereford, complains
-that “such dirty nasty surplices as most of them wear, and especially
-the singers in cathedrals (where they should be most decent), is rather
-an imitation of their dirty lives,” and had given his “stomach such a
-surfeit of them” as that he had almost an aversion to them all; and
-he adds, “I am confident, had not this decent habit been so indecently
-abused, it had never been so generally loathed.”[273] And Trelawny,
-of Bristol, laments, in reference to the united parishes of Elberton
-and Littleton, “I never saw so ill churches, or such ill parishioners.
-In one the sacrament has not been administered since the Restoration,
-in the other very seldom; and all the plate is but a small silver
-bowl, and that is kept at a Quaker’s house, with my late orders to the
-contrary.”[274] In Articles of Visitation by the Bishop of Lincoln, it
-is asked whether churchwardens took care that people should not stand
-idle, or talk together in the church-porch, or walk in the church-yard
-during the time of sacred offices, or lean or lay their hats on the
-communion-table; and whether no minstrels, morrice-dancers, dogs,
-hawks, or hounds were brought into the church to the disturbance of the
-congregation.[275]
-
-[Sidenote: WORSHIP.]
-
-Neglect on the part of ecclesiastical officers was accompanied by
-irreverence on the part of people in general; in all of which may be
-traced--beyond the result of certain Puritan extravagances during the
-Civil War--the effect of educational habits which date as far back as
-the Reformation, and even earlier still, when worn-out superstitions
-produced contempt. In some cases during the reign of Charles II.
-impious frivolity and brutal ignorance are apparent. A curious
-example of this is furnished in the letter of a Canon Residentiary at
-York, written February 12th, 1673, and preserved amongst the State
-Papers:--“On Sundays and holidays (when the young people of the town
-are afloat), 400 or 500 would walk, talk, and do much worse things,
-to the great disturbance of Divine service (not to mention other
-aggravations), that nothing could be heard, though with all, I have
-used such temper and moderation in it, that nothing hath at any time
-been done against any of them, further than to urge them either to go
-in to prayers, or to go out of the church, unless sometimes I have
-catched at a rude boy’s hat, and kept it till the end of the prayers,
-and given it him (with a chiding) again. Howbeit, this, it seems,
-so exasperated the youth of the town, that yesterday (being Shrove
-Tuesday) they, in time of Divine service, broke open the church doors
-(which I had caused to be shut), and when (after service ended) I was
-going to my house, they so affronted and abused me, that Captain Henry
-Wood, and sundry other officers of the garrison, who were walking in
-the church, were forced not only to come, but to send for two files
-of musketeers, to my rescue.” The writer then relates that, after the
-soldiers had left, the mob attacked his house, broke his windows, and
-did damage to the extent of £40; and would possibly have set fire to
-his house, had they not been restrained by the military. The Lord Mayor
-of the City refused to interfere, as the church-yard was not within his
-liberty.
-
-[Sidenote: REVENUES.]
-
-III. Episcopal revenues were unequally distributed.[276] The Bishop
-of Durham received, in 1670 and afterwards, an annual income of
-£3,280; previously to which his resources were so limited, that it was
-computed not more than £1,500 remained after he had paid subsidies
-and first-fruits. Durham House, in the Strand, had been seized by
-Queen Elizabeth; although reclaimed by the Bishop upon her death, it
-never again became the episcopal residence; but Aukland Palace, which
-used to be to Durham what Croydon used to be to Lambeth, remained in
-the Bishops’ possession, and furnished an opportunity for the richest
-hospitalities. Ely Place, where Shakespeare’s “good strawberries”
-grew in the garden, with its vineyard, meadow, and orchard, had
-been appropriated to Sir Christopher Hatton by Queen Elizabeth; yet
-Bishop Laney had possession of the palace, and died there in 1675.
-The Bishops of Carlisle had long lost Worcester House, in the Strand;
-and the prelates of Winchester had leased out “their very fair
-house well repaired” (in Southwark), which had “a large wharf and
-landing-place,” to occupy a mansion in the suburb of Chelsea.[277] The
-provincial palaces of the Bishops surpassed those which they had in
-the Metropolis, and were well-known centres of social attraction and
-entertainment. Whilst lamentations were poured forth by some over the
-robbery and spoliation of sees, so that it was said a mean gentleman of
-£200 in land yearly would not exchange his worldly state and condition
-with divers Bishops,[278]--Burnet speaks of the extravagance of the
-class generally, and represents them as a bad pattern “to all the
-lower dignitaries, who generally took more care of themselves than
-of the Church.” It is a fact, however, which it would be unjust not
-to mention, that many of the Bishops were large contributors to the
-repairs of sacred buildings, and to other ecclesiastical objects.
-Cosin, for instance, expended the income of the first seven years of
-his episcopacy in the improvement of property belonging to the see of
-Durham, and in establishing various charitable foundations.
-
-The see of Bristol was extremely poor, and Hereford yielded only
-£800 a year.[279] Yet Brian Duppa, after his translation to the see
-of Winchester, which he held but a year and a half, is reported to
-have received in fines as much as £50,000. Out of this large amount,
-however, he remitted £30,000 to his tenants, and expended £16,000 in
-acts of charity.[280] Morley disposed of almost all his income in
-benefactions. Sheldon’s gifts were computed at upwards of £66,000.[281]
-
-[Sidenote: REVENUES.]
-
-Palaces, deaneries, and prebendal houses, like cathedrals and churches,
-had suffered in the wars. Their reparation, and the business connected
-with raising funds for the purpose, largely occupied the attention of
-the restored possessors. Hacket, so successful in the re-edification
-of his cathedral, failed to complete the re-edification of his palace,
-and left the work to his successor, who shamefully neglected it; but
-it should be remembered that the restoration of the palaces at Exeter
-and Salisbury are amongst the good deeds ascribed to Seth Ward.[282]
-Sancroft procured an Act of Parliament which enabled him to lease
-out shops and tenements in St. Paul’s Churchyard, upon condition of
-expending £2,500, before September 30th, 1673, in building a commodious
-deanery; and the Privy Council, after noticing, in their minutes, that
-the houses of the Dean and Prebendaries of Winchester, in the late
-rebellion, were totally demolished, and the greatest part of two
-other houses likewise pulled down, and three only left standing on the
-old foundations, very ruinous and out of repair, gave orders, with a
-view to facilitate the rebuilding, that there should be a repeal of
-the clauses in the statutes of the Church “which concern succession
-in vacant prebends, and the reparation of deans’ and prebends’
-houses.”[283] Large demands were made upon Chapter revenues, not only
-for repairs, but for Royal presents and charities; and some cathedral
-stalls furnished little emolument to their occupants: so that, speaking
-of a prebend, Croft of Hereford says, “This thing, though small
-(worth not above £80 per annum) is the best and only considerable
-thing in my gift, my bishopric being as wretched in this--to my great
-discomfort--as in the revenue.”[284] Deans and Canons could not vie
-with Bishops in hospitality, but the comforts of life were amply
-provided and enjoyed in snug and cozy abodes, within the limits of the
-cathedral close: and North mentions the good ale and small beer brewed
-from South Country malt, and supplied from the Prebend’s cellars to his
-relative the Judge, when visiting the City of Carlisle.[285]
-
-In the year 1663 it was computed that there were 12,000 church livings,
-of which 3,000 were impropriate, and 4,165 were sinecures without
-resident clergymen. Considering the small means possessed by some
-distinguished clergymen, we are not surprised at the eager applications
-with which they beset Secretary Williamson, whenever vacancies occurred
-in ecclesiastical posts of a promising kind. Sometimes bribes were
-offered to promote success, as appears from a letter written to
-Williamson by a clergyman named Gregory, who sought a stall in a
-cathedral. He said he had a friend near the Earl of Clarendon; but, the
-Earl’s interest failing, he desired the Secretary to procure a grant
-of the next prebend in either of the places he referred to; and he
-promised gladly, upon the passing of the seal, to gratify his friend
-with one hundred pieces. A living in any county, if considerable, would
-be no less welcome, though the simoniacal oath deterred the writer
-from anything more than an indefinite engagement. He could answer for
-it, that his Lordship of Gloucester would give him such a character as
-showed him deserving of the preferment desired.[286]
-
-[Sidenote: REVENUES.]
-
-To pass from this shot so skilfully but so illegally fired into the
-ecclesiastical preserves of the State--whether it brought anything
-into the hands of this ministerial poacher is not worth inquiry--we
-light upon other examples, in abundance, of clergymen patiently waiting
-and eagerly asking for the bestowment of patronage. The Rector of
-Meonstoke, Hampshire, informed the influential man at head-quarters
-that he had just fulfilled his course of preaching in the Cathedral
-Church of Chichester as a minor prophet, which rendered him capable of
-advancement to a residentiary’s place, if he could obtain an election.
-There was a place vacant, and he now solicited the Secretary’s interest
-with the Dean, who was Clerk of the Closet,--as he would not deny
-such an important personage anything,--and the petitioner was sure
-that a certain Canon he mentions would agree with the Dean; and both
-together could overrule the Chapter, which at that time consisted of
-them and two others. The latter, indeed, were stiffly resolved for a
-Mr. Sefton, and the Dean had thoughts of the thing for himself; but
-the writer presumed the Dean would get loose to it when he understood
-it was below him. Should he, however, continue in such inclination, the
-petitioner asked that he might be the Dean’s successor. The place would
-be a preferment to the suppliant Rector, who considered he would not
-be unacceptable to the Church and City, and it would redeem him from
-the desolate condition he was in by the death of his dear Betty.[287]
-Again, Bishop Reynolds appointed Dr. Mylles to be his Chancellor in
-the diocese of Norwich, by patent under his Episcopal seal dated 13th
-of September, 1661. The Chancellor requested the Dean and Chapter to
-confirm the patent, which they refused to do, without assigning any
-reason for their refusal. He accordingly applied to the King, and
-prayed that he would be graciously pleased to enforce the needful
-confirmation of the patent by the proper ecclesiastical authorities. In
-urging upon His Majesty this petition, Dr. Mylles notices an objection
-made to him, on the ground of his having been on the side of the
-Parliament in the late troubles. To remove the objection, he asserts
-that he had never disobliged any of the King’s friends; that when he
-discovered Cromwell’s designs, he quitted the army; that he was ejected
-from the University at Oxford for declining to take the Engagement;
-that he had served under the Duke of Albemarle, and had helped to
-bring in the King. This petition was backed by Rushworth, who pleaded,
-amongst other things, in his client’s favour, that at private meetings,
-where he thought he might speak without danger, he had not hesitated to
-contribute counsel and advice towards His Majesty’s restoration, which
-had produced upon Lord Fairfax, and other considerable persons, a good
-effect.[288]
-
-To cite another case:--“Most honoured Sir,”--wrote Dr. Fell,
-Vice-Chancellor of Oxford, to Williamson, immediately after the
-death of Dr. William Fuller, who had been translated from Limerick
-to Lincoln,--“it is a privilege our people here take to themselves
-to bestow all bishoprics before the King disposes of them; and they,
-having, upon the first news of the vacancy of Lincoln, made the Provost
-to be the successor, went on, in the same method of liberality, to
-bestow his places; and upon Sunday night one of the most popular
-Bachelors in Divinity that we have in town came to me upon that errand,
-signifying his concern on behalf of the Master of Pembroke; and on
-Monday several others, of other houses, made the same application.
-I told them all, that first it was very indecent to begin a canvass
-before a place was actually void, and probably a considerable time
-would pass before there would be a vacancy; besides, they should
-consider that Dr. Tully might justly pretend to the place, and, if
-he did, would not fail of being assisted by his friends.” To move on
-behalf of Dr. Hall, he goes on to say, might be a great unkindness
-to him, since he did not appear as a candidate, nor probably would
-like to have his name brought in question; besides, it would create a
-competition and disturbance in the University; and therefore he had
-desired his friends not to proceed in the matter.[289] Dr. Tully,
-referred to in this letter--an eminent Divine and Controversialist,
-of whom notice will be taken in our review of the theology of the
-period--was not an unconcerned spectator of the changes occurring at
-the time, and the excitement which they produced; and I find amongst
-the State Papers the following exquisite specimen of the characteristic
-flattery of the age preserved in a letter which he wrote, on Holy
-Thursday, to his friend at Court:--“Right Honourable,--Having no way
-else to express the sense of my greatest obligations to you, I beg
-you will commiserate so far as to accept this renewal of my heartiest
-acknowledgments. I hasten to make it, not for fear I should forget your
-favours (I know that to be next impossibility), but to shun the pain
-of delay, from the weight and pressure of them. It is some ease to a
-grateful mind, under such a load of obligations, to air itself in the
-field where they grow. Most honoured Sir, amongst all the rest of your
-noble kindnesses to me, I must single that out of the crowd, which
-made you unkind (I had almost said, unnatural) to yourself, to let me
-know how much you are my friend. I can but thank you, and tell stories
-at home and abroad of your goodness to me, and heartily pray for the
-increase of all honour to you, with a long enjoyment, and the reward at
-last of a blessed immortality.”[290]
-
-[Sidenote: REVENUES.]
-
-These well-timed compliments were not in vain; for, though Tully did
-not obtain any preferment in consequence of the death of the Bishop
-of Lincoln, he was immediately afterwards promoted to the Deanery of
-Ripon, upon the death of Dr. John Neile.
-
-Dr. Barlow, a well-known Oxford man, and an eager aspirant for a
-bishopric, obtained the see of Lincoln, and wrote on the 29th of May,
-as mentioned already, to his friend, the Secretary, stating that fees,
-first-fruits, and other charges cost him £1,500 or £2,000 before he
-could receive a penny from the bishopric. “I was never in debt,” he
-says, “yet borrow I must, and, to enable me to repay honestly, I mean
-to stay here (as others I see do in the like case) till a little after
-Lady-day next. My College and Margaret Lecture I can (without any
-dispensation) keep, and perform the duties of both till then.”[291]
-
-Amidst the turnings of the preferment-wheel at that time, Dr. Hall,
-referred to in Vice-Chancellor Fell’s letter, was elected to the
-Margaret professorship, vacated at length by Barlow’s resignation.
-
-In July of the same year, 1675, another letter reached Whitehall,
-upon a similar subject. “It is thought here,” wrote Dr. John Wallis,
-the celebrated Mathematician at Oxford, “that the Bishop of Worcester
-is either dead, or at least not likely to subsist long, which will
-give occasion of alterations. If that or any other occasion give you
-opportunity of doing a kindness to your servant, or my son, I believe
-His Majesty would be very ready to grant, if we knew what to ask. I
-have signified to Dr. Conant by his son your good thoughts of him.” We
-must now terminate these illustrations.
-
-IV. By an easy transition we pass from ecclesiastical revenues to
-ecclesiastical courts. Both the Archidiaconal and the Consistorial
-resumed their activity after the Restoration, and before them were
-brought numerous charges of delinquency, respecting clergymen
-and laymen. It would be beyond my purpose to enter into the
-_penetralia_ of these intricate proceedings; it will be sufficient
-to notice the nature of some of the accusations on which individuals
-were arraigned, as illustrative of the social life of the period. Yet
-before doing so I must notice two circumstances, which require more
-attention than they have received from historians. The first is this:--
-
-[Sidenote: ECCLESIASTICAL COURTS.]
-
-By the Act of the 13th Charles II. cap. 12, which restored the
-jurisdiction of the ordinary Ecclesiastical Courts, but abolished
-that of the extraordinary High Commission Court, it was expressly
-provided that there should no longer be any administration of the
-_ex-officio_ oath, by which persons were compelled to accuse, or
-to purge themselves of any criminal matter. But as it has been recently
-remarked, whilst the letter of this enactment seems to have been so
-far observed, that an accused clergyman or other person, liable to
-deprivation, could not be obliged to answer on oath as to the truth
-of the charge,--the spirit of the enactment, in certain other cases,
-was violated to a great extent. For, in the administration of articles
-to a defendant in a cause of correction, the practice was to charge
-the commission of the offence on the ground of public “fame,” without
-specific evidence, and to require the defendant to answer on oath, who,
-if he failed to do so, was treated as having admitted the truth of the
-allegation. Thus, instead of the burden of proving guilt being thrown
-on the accuser, the burden of establishing innocence seems to have
-rested on the accused, and he became liable to be called upon to make
-“canonical purgation;” _i.e._, “to declare on oath that he was not
-guilty of the offence, and to produce a certain number of witnesses,
-as ‘compurgators,’ to swear that they believed his declaration to be
-true.”[292] This circumstance shows, in what a limited degree the
-Act of Charles II., restoring the ecclesiastical courts, diminished
-even oppressive tendencies; how, whilst it altered them in form,
-it left scope for the exercise of their former spirit, and how they
-remained instruments of injustice and cruelty, to be used by those who
-were malignantly or resentfully disposed. At the same time we should
-carefully weigh the number and the nature of the appeals made from the
-judgment of the lower to the decision of the higher authority. To this
-I will presently direct attention.
-
-The second circumstance is that the High Court of Delegates was
-restored upon the return of Charles II. This court, which had from
-ancient times received secular appeals, acquired, in the reign of
-Henry VIII., the power of deciding ecclesiastical appeals from all
-ordinary ecclesiastical tribunals in England and Wales.[293] It
-appears that the only court not within its appellate jurisdiction
-was the Court of High Commission. Cases of doctrine, and cases of
-discipline, unsatisfactorily litigated in the lower courts, came up
-before this tribunal of delegates for final review and decision.
-The constitution of the court was remarkable. Although exercising a
-supreme ecclesiastical jurisdiction, the lay element preponderated.
-Of the fifty-one Commissions between 1660 and 1688, two were composed
-of Bishops and Civilians; eighteen included Bishops, Judges, and
-Civilians; one contained Peers, Bishops, Judges, and Civilians; eleven
-of the Commissions were directed to Civilians only, and nineteen
-to Judges and Civilians.[294] It may be added that soon after the
-Restoration the use of Latin was resumed in their proceedings. The
-fact, with regard to the strong infusion of laical power into the
-constitution of this important court, not only throws an instructive
-light upon the relations of Church and State, but it proves that for
-none of the acts of this court, at that time under consideration,
-whether righteous or unrighteous, are the clergy to be held entirely
-responsible; with some of them they had nothing whatever to do.
-
-[Sidenote: ECCLESIASTICAL COURTS.]
-
-It is to the Parliamentary Returns of the appeals made to the
-delegates, that we are indebted for the knowledge of the following
-ecclesiastical causes:--
-
-A clergyman, named Slader, Rector of Birmingham, had been brought
-before the Court of Arches on an appeal from the Consistory of
-Lichfield, and finally his case came before the Court of Delegates,
-by which court he was decreed to be sequestered _ab officio suo
-clericali_. He stood charged with having forged letters of
-orders, with disaffection to the King, with preaching amongst the
-Quakers, railing in the pulpit at the parishioners, and indulging in
-swearing, gaming, perjury, and incest. Some of these charges were
-very scandalous, but to them were added others of a most curious and
-extraordinary description,--for this man was accused of practising
-jugglery, of pretending, on one occasion, to cut off his son’s head,
-and to set it on again, and of “taking money for the sight thereof.”
-One Dr. Meades was deprived, on an appeal from the Arches, and from
-the Consistory of Winchester, for non-residence, neglect of duty,
-allowing the vicarage to fall into decay, and for not having read the
-Thirty-Nine Articles within the time prescribed by law, after his
-institution and induction. William Woodward, Rector of Trotterscliffe,
-Kent, was charged with “having uttered various profane and blasphemous
-speeches, _e.g._, that the Lord’s Prayer was not commanded to be
-used; that the Church of England might as well be called the Church
-of Rome; that he had attained such perfection that he could not sin;
-and that one William Francklin, a ropemaker, who had lived with him,
-was the Christ and Saviour.” Sentence of deprivation was ultimately
-pronounced in this case.[295] Theophilus Hart, in the diocese of
-Peterborough, was corrected, punished, and condemned in costs, for not
-conforming in the exercise of his clerical office: he did not baptize
-infants with the sign of the cross, he did not catechise the young, and
-he omitted many parts of the services prescribed by the Book of Common
-Prayer. Woodward and Hart seem to be the only clergymen during this
-period who appealed to the delegates in proceedings carried on against
-false doctrine. One Clewer, Vicar of Croydon, figures in local history
-as a very disgraceful person; he was tried and burnt in the hand at the
-Old Bailey for stealing a silver cup. His case came before the Court
-of Appeal, and the deprivation previously pronounced by the Court of
-Arches received confirmation.[296]
-
-The laity, as well as the clergy, being subject to the ecclesiastical
-tribunals, causes relating to the former, after being tried elsewhere,
-were finally adjudicated by the delegates. One man was proceeded
-against for having three children unbaptized, and for not receiving
-the Lord’s Supper; a second, for absence from public worship; a third,
-for not keeping in repair the chancel of the parish church; and a
-fourth, for contempt of the law, and ecclesiastical jurisdiction, in
-teaching boys without having obtained any faculty or license.[297]
-Ancient forms of Church discipline sometimes followed conviction. A
-party, charged in the Consistory Court of Norwich with defamation, was
-sentenced to do penance in the parish church of Darsham, by repeating,
-after the minister, words of confession and contrition.[298]
-
-[Sidenote: ECCLESIASTICAL COURTS.]
-
-As to the number of appeals there may be reckoned up forty-five during
-a little more than a century, between the year 1533--the date of the
-commencement of the ecclesiastical power of the court--and the year
-1641, the period of its temporary suppression. There were forty-six
-between the date of its re-establishment, in 1660, and the year of the
-Revolution, 1688. This would look as if more dissatisfaction was felt
-with the judgment of the lower ecclesiastical authority during this
-twenty-eight years after the Restoration, than during the hundred and
-eight years before the outbreak of the Parliament struggle with Charles
-I. Hence it might be inferred that the grievances of ecclesiastical
-rule increased in the reign of Charles II.; but this would not be a
-fair deduction, because the High Commission Court, which had been by
-far the most oppressive tribunal for spiritual causes, and which had
-been exempted from the supervision of the Court of Delegates, remained
-no longer in existence; and thereby a large amount of injustice was
-prevented. Forty-five appeals in twenty-eight years from all the
-ecclesiastical courts of England and Wales do not form a large number,
-and would seem to show that trials in ecclesiastical cases must have
-been much less numerous than when the High Commission existed in
-full play. Very few cases of appeal touching Dissenters appear in
-the records of the Court of Delegates. Dissenters, of course, were
-subject to trouble and annoyance from Archidiaconal and Consistorial
-authorities, but the main sorrows of Nonconformity, under the last two
-Stuarts’ reign, arose from the operation of Statute Law, as found in
-the Uniformity, Conventicle, and Five Mile Acts.
-
-Amongst instances of discipline exercised by Bishops upon the clergy,
-there occurred one so striking and curious that it deserves particular
-mention. Dr. Lloyd, who held the see of Peterborough from 1679 to
-1685, and was thence transferred to Norwich, seems to have been
-extraordinarily strict in the discharge of his episcopal functions,
-and to have visited offending ministers with public punishment. In
-accordance with his habitual zeal for purity in the faith and morals
-of the Church, he required the following recantation to be read in his
-cathedral by the person whose name is mentioned, and whose case is thus
-described:--“I, Thomas Ashenden, being deeply sensible of the foul
-dishonour I have done to our most holy religion, and the great scandal
-I have given by a late profane abuse of the Lord’s Prayer, the Creed,
-and the Ten Commandments, which I wrote and caused to be published,
-do here, in the presence of God, and of His ministers, and of this
-congregation, most heartily bewail, with unfeigned sorrow, both that
-notorious offence, and also all my other sins, which betrayed me into
-it, most humbly begging forgiveness of God, and of his Church, whose
-heaviest censures I have justly deserved. And as I earnestly desire
-that none of my brethren (much less our holy function or the Church)
-may be the worse thought of by any, by reason of my miscarriages, so I
-do faithfully promise, by God’s grace, to endeavour to behave myself
-hereafter so religiously in my place and calling, that I may be no more
-a discredit to them. In which resolution that I may persist, I beg and
-implore the assistance of all your prayers, and desire withal, that
-this my retractation and sincere profession of repentance, may be made
-as public as my crimes have been, that none may be tempted hereafter to
-do evil by my example.”[299]
-
-[Sidenote: NONCONFORMIST PLACES OF WORSHIP.]
-
-V. There existed, in different parts of the country, buildings
-entirely set apart for Nonconformist worship. Some of them were barns
-and warehouses adapted to the purpose, and in Norwich the refectory
-and dormitory of the old Blackfriars’ Convent, which, after the
-Restoration, had been turned into granaries for the City corn, were
-fitted up by permission of the Court of Mayoralty, for the use of
-the Presbyterian and Independent Congregationalists: also the old
-Leather Hall, in Coventry, a gloomy but spacious room, fitted up with
-galleries, was used for Nonconformist religious service.[300] A large
-meeting-house was erected in Zoar Street, Southwark, not far from
-the spot occupied by the summer theatre of Shakespeare, and within
-that building John Bunyan attracted immense congregations. “If there
-were but one day’s notice given,” his friend, Charles Doe, remarks,
-“there would be more people come together to hear him preach than
-the meeting-house could hold. I have seen, to hear him preach, by my
-computation, about 1,200 at a morning lecture, by seven o’clock, on
-a working-day, in the dark winter time. I also computed about 3,000
-that came to hear him one Lord’s Day, at London, at a town’s-end
-meeting-house [in Zoar Street], so that half were fain to go back again
-for want of room, and then himself was fain at a back-door to be pulled
-almost over people to get upstairs to his pulpit.”[301] Mill Hill
-Chapel, at Leeds, was built during the period of Indulgence, being the
-first edifice erected by Dissenters “_more ecclesiastico_ with
-arches.”[302] A meeting-house at Yarmouth is described as measuring
-fifty-eight feet one way, and sixty feet another, with a gallery
-quite round close to the pulpit, with six seats in it, one behind the
-other, and all accommodation possible for the reception of people
-below.[303] The “fanatic party” at Margate is referred to as building a
-“conventicle house” when it was illegal to do so, and as making great
-haste to get it up in spite of His Majesty’s proclamation.[304]
-
-In some cases, so favourably inclined were the parish authorities,
-that they allowed Nonconformists to meet in the Church. At Southwold,
-every fourth Sunday, the incumbent and the Dissenting ministers both
-conducted Divine service under the same roof. The first who came took
-precedence, and after he had pronounced the Benediction, his neighbour
-began another service in his own way.
-
-The liberty of using a parish church was also enjoyed by the
-Nonconformists of Waltham-le-Willows, a small village in Suffolk,
-and in connection with this arrangement there occurred a ludicrous
-circumstance. On one occasion when Mr. Salkeld, the Congregational
-minister, occupied the pulpit, Sir Edmund Bacon, of Redgrave, and
-Sir William Spring, of Packenham, being greatly scandalized at what
-they deemed a profanation of the edifice, came, with other country
-gentlemen, and planted themselves at the church-doors. Sir Edmund
-wished to compel the minister immediately to desist, but Sir William
-thought it more seemly to wait until the minister had finished his
-discourse. A noisy altercation consequently arose in the church-yard
-between the two gentlemen, when, upon the former becoming outrageously
-violent, his friend observed, “We read, Sir Edmund, that the devil
-entered into a herd of swine, and, upon my word, I think he is not got
-out of the Bacon yet.”[305]
-
-[Sidenote: RELIGIOUS STATISTICS.]
-
-VI. Perhaps this is as convenient a place as any to inquire into the
-relative number of Conformists and Nonconformists, towards the end of
-the period, embraced in this History.
-
-The population of England towards the close of the seventeenth
-century, has been computed by Lord Macaulay at rather more than five
-millions.[306] He bases his estimate upon calculations made by King,
-Lancaster Herald, in 1696; upon returns consulted by William III.,
-and upon conclusions drawn in the preface to the population returns
-of 1831. I find the estimate of about five millions confirmed by the
-author of _The Happy Future State of England_, published in 1688,
-who states an approximate number as the result of returns reported
-in a survey made by the Bishops in 1676.[307] Of these five millions
-and a half, or so, the Conformists formed an immense majority. In
-the returns which came under William’s eye, and in the report of the
-Bishops’ survey,--which seems to have been all but identical with
-them,--the Conformists, above sixteen years of age, in the province of
-Canterbury are put down at 2,123,362. York yields 353,892, making a
-total of 2,477,254. Against these are reckoned the following number of
-Nonconformists above sixteen years of age:--93,151 in the province of
-Canterbury, and 15,525 in the province of York--forming a gross amount
-of 108,676. The Conformists to the Nonconformists here are as 22⅘ to 1.
-The author I have just mentioned represents the Nonconformists as on
-the decline; and no doubt they were, during the reigns of Charles II.
-and James II., much fewer than they had been under the Commonwealth;
-but there is reason to believe, from their subsequent history, they
-were on the increase before the period of the Revolution. The same
-writer speaks of them, in the gross, as consisting of artizans and
-retail traders in corporations,[308] and probably the bulk of them
-would be found amongst the humbler classes; but it is to be remembered
-that some county families, including noble ones, to say nothing of
-old army officers, and rich citizen merchants, continued still within
-the ranks of Dissent. It is interesting and instructive to ponder the
-following particulars appended to the returns brought under the notice
-of William III., and certainly not prepared in any friendly spirit.
-Many persons left the Church upon the late Indulgence, who before did
-frequent it. The inquires made (I presume those of 1676 are referred
-to) caused many to frequent church. Walloons chiefly made up the number
-of Dissenters in Canterbury, Sandwich, and Dover. Presbyterians were
-divided; some of them not being wholly Dissenters, but occasionally
-going to church. A considerable number of Nonconformists belonged to
-no particular sect. Of those who attended church many did not receive
-the sacrament. There were in Kent about thirty heretics, called
-Muggletonians; the rest were Presbyterians, Anabaptists, Independents,
-and Quakers, in about equal numbers. The heads and preachers of the
-several factions had taken a large share in the Great Rebellion.[309]
-
-[Sidenote: PREACHING.]
-
-I may add that the Papists altogether are reckoned in the same document
-at 13,856. It was thought that they had increased in consequence of the
-Indulgence, and that the Jesuits had been very active up to the time of
-the plot, when they amounted to 1,800. After the excitement created by
-Oates’ business they are said to have considerably diminished.[310]
-
-VII. The contrasts between Churchmen and Nonconformists already
-described, suggest another of a corresponding kind. Divine service in
-the Establishment, especially as conducted in cathedrals, in Royal
-chapels, and in large churches, would present an imposing appearance,
-such as never could belong to worship conducted in a conventicle. And
-a social prestige pertained to the Episcopalian priest, now forfeited
-by the Nonconformist preacher. Baxter, Owen, and Howe could not but
-feel the change which had come over their external circumstances since
-the day when, from high places--Westminster Abbey and St. Paul’s, for
-example--they had addressed _ex cathedra_ the _élite_ of
-Puritan intelligence and rank.
-
-The form of sermons, whether composed by Anglicans or Puritans,
-continued after the Restoration to be that which we may call textual,
-rather than topical, and Sanderson, who survived that crisis, broke
-up what he had to say upon a text into a perplexing arrangement of
-divisions and subdivisions; so far he resembled Andrewes, the great
-preacher of the reign of James I. This practice did not form the
-peculiarity of a class. It had been borrowed from the schoolmen, and
-came to be adopted alike by those who were most Protestant and those
-who were most Catholic. As it was with the teachers, so it was with
-the taught; the people, no doubt, liked this method, and acquired a
-habit of threading the mazes of a lengthened homily through all its
-numerical departments, with an expertness resembling that of modern
-schoolboys who perform such wonderful evolutions in mental arithmetic.
-Tastes began to change before the Revolution. Even Dr. Donne, in the
-beginning of the century, broke somewhat through technical trammels,
-and indulged in sonorous periods, flowing out into ample paragraphs;
-and Baxter himself, slave as he often was to scholastic fashions, would
-often burst into a strain of impassioned rhetoric which carried him
-page over page without a single break. South may be mentioned as a
-distinguished instance of departure from the old style, and Bates may
-be named also as an example, so far, of the same class. Sermons were
-very long. Some compositions, indeed, bearing that name, but extending
-to the dimensions of a considerable treatise, were never delivered at
-all. They were intended to be read, not heard. This was the case with
-some compositions from the pens of Baxter and Barrow: but anecdotes
-related respecting the latter Divine, show the enormous length to which
-he sometimes carried his oral addresses. Once, before he preached in
-Westminster Abbey, the Dean requested him to be short. He showed the
-sermon to that dignitary, who, finding it consisted of two parts,
-requested him to deliver only one of them. Barrow did so, yet that
-occupied an hour and a half in the delivery. Upon another occasion,
-he “enlarged” so much, that the vergers who were anxious to show to
-impatient visitors “the tombs and effigies of the Kings and Queens in
-wax,” “caused the organ to be struck up against him, and would not
-give over playing till they had blowd him down.” His Spital sermon
-lasted three hours and a half; what the Lord Mayor and Aldermen thought
-of it we do not know; but we are informed that the preacher, when
-asked if _he_ felt tired, replied, that “he began to be weary of
-standing so long.”[311] Barrow’s case, no doubt, is an extreme one; but
-although he exceeded what might be common, it is plain enough from the
-specimens of pulpit eloquence belonging to that age, that they usually
-were such as would exhaust the patience of modern congregations.
-
-[Sidenote: PREACHING.]
-
-An amusing story is related of Barrow’s preaching, soon after the
-Restoration, at St. Lawrence Jewry. His “aspect pale, meagre, and
-unpromising, slovenly and carelessly dressed, his collar unbuttoned,
-and his hair uncombed,” so alarmed the congregation that a spectator
-declares, “there was such a noise of pattens of serving maids and
-ordinary women, and of unlocking of pews, and cracking of seats, caused
-by the younger sort hastily climbing over them, that I thought all the
-congregation were mad.” An apprentice accosted him when all was over,
-saying, “Sir, be not dismayed, for I assure you ’twas a good sermon.”
-When asked what he thought of the congregation running away, Barrow
-answered--“I thought they did not like me or my sermon, and I have no
-reason to be angry with them for that.” “But what was your opinion
-of the apprentice?” “I take him,” replied he, “to be a very civil
-person, and if I could meet with him I’d present him with a bottle of
-wine.” Some of the parishioners afterwards called on Dr. Wilkins, the
-Incumbent, to expostulate with him for allowing one “who looked like
-a starved Cavalier to preach in his pulpit.” Baxter, happening to
-be in the Vicar’s house when the parishioners arrived, Wilkins said:
-“The person you thus despise, I assure you, is a pious man, an eminent
-scholar, and an excellent preacher, for the truth of the latter, I
-appeal to Mr. Baxter, here present, who heard the sermon you so vilify,
-I am sure you believe Mr. Baxter is a competent judge.” Baxter praised
-the sermon, and the parishioners ended by requesting that Barrow might
-preach again. But he was not disposed to appear any “more on that
-stage.”[312]
-
-As to the mode of delivering sermons, some Nonconformists, as well as
-Churchmen, read from a MS., and Dr. Charnock is described as having
-used an eye-glass to assist his sight.[313] Of Baxter, it is said in
-the funeral sermon by his friend and assistant Sylvester--“He was a
-person wonderful at extemporate preaching, for _having once left his
-notes behind him_, he was surprised into extemporate thoughts upon
-(as I remember) Heb. iv. 15, ‘For we have not an High Priest, &c.’
-Whereon he preached to very great satisfaction unto all that heard him;
-and when he came down from the pulpit, he asked me if I was not tired?
-I said, With what? He said, With his extemporate discourse. I told him,
-that had he not declared it, I believe none could have discovered it.
-His reply to me was, that he thought it very needful for a minister
-to have a body of divinity in his head.” Clarkson, in his funeral
-sermon for Dr. Owen, remarks that he seldom used notes. Of Dr. Bates,
-Howe observes, that faithful to the example and traditions of their
-Puritan fathers, “his sermons, wherein nothing could be more remote
-from ramble, he constantly delivered from his memory, and hath sometime
-told me, with an amicable freedom, that he partly did it, to teach some
-that were younger to preach without notes.”[314] Bull, however,--in
-this respect anticipating Addison,--advised young Divines not at
-first to preach their own sermons, but to provide themselves with the
-compositions of approved authors, or to read to their congregations
-either one of the authorized Homilies or a chapter selected from _The
-Whole Duty of Man_.[315] The old Puritan practice of taking down
-sermons continued to be very common; and, if we may notice so trivial
-a matter as pulpit costume, it is amusing to add an odd story told of
-a Royal chaplain, who preached before the King at Newmarket, “in a
-long periwig and holland sleeves, according to the then fashion for
-gentlemen,” at which His Majesty was so scandalized that he commanded
-the Chancellor of the University to put in execution the statutes
-respecting decency in apparel.[316]
-
-[Sidenote: SUPERSTITION.]
-
-VIII. Superstition still prevailed. Though the zeal for witchfinding
-diminished, rumours of witchcraft continued in circulation. People
-in Worcestershire said, that if certain witches had not been taken
-up, the King would never have returned to England. From Lancashire, a
-stronghold of the infernal sisterhood, one of the correspondents of the
-Secretary of State wrote an account of a woman who confessed, that she,
-and her father and her mother, “each rode on a black cat to Warrington,
-nine miles off, and that the cats sucked her mother till they sucked
-blood.” He states, however, that he had “little faith in this, though
-given on oath.”[317]
-
-Wise and good men, especially Divines and lawyers, clung as firmly
-as ever to the old belief of the power of necromancy. Baxter pursued
-his inquiries into the subject; and Sir Matthew Hale, at the Bury
-Assizes, in March, 1664, observed, touching a witch case, that he
-made no doubt there were such creatures, and appealed to Scripture in
-proof of the fact.[318] On that occasion, Sir Thomas Browne, gave it
-as his opinion, that the parties named in the indictment as sufferers,
-were really bewitched. It is proper to remember, with respect to such
-superstitions, that, at that time, things were worse in France than in
-England. Witchcraft, divination, raising apparitions, and consulting
-the stars, were so common there in 1679, that a Commission was
-appointed, called the “Chambre Ardente,” to inquire into such cases.
-
-The Royal touch for curing the King’s Evil was again sought and
-bestowed. A minute religious ceremonial, almost incredible to us,
-accompanied the act. His Majesty sat in a chair of state. One of the
-Clerks of the Closet stood on his right hand, holding as many gold
-angels, everyone tied to a riband of white silk, as there were patients
-to be touched. A chaplain read in the 16th chapter of the Gospel of
-Mark from the 14th verse to the end. The _chirurgeon_ presented
-the diseased; and making three reverences, they knelt down together
-before the King, the chaplain repeating the words: “They shall lay
-their hands on the sick, and they shall be healed.” His Majesty then
-touched the cheeks of the persons brought to be cured; after which, the
-chaplain read the first chapter of John as far as the 15th verse; and,
-as the words were pronounced, “That was the true light, which lighteth
-every man that cometh into the world,” the King suspended round the
-neck of each person one of the gold angels, handed to him by the clerk.
-Other passages of Scripture followed, a prayer was offered, and the
-ceremony ended with the King’s washing his hands.[319] Numerous were
-the applications made for the Royal touch, to which, no doubt, the
-obtaining of a gold angel operated as a motive, no less than the hope
-of receiving a sovereign cure.
-
-[Sidenote: SUPERSTITION.]
-
-I add a further illustration of the superstition of the age, not
-amongst the ignorant, but the educated. Rectors of parishes requested
-the Secretary of State to procure His Majesty’s touch for parishioners
-who were troubled with the malady. When Charles II. went to Newmarket,
-Sir Thomas Browne wrote to Sergeant Knight, and sent certificates for
-divers afflicted persons who were going from Norwich to be touched by
-the King. No fewer than 92,107 persons were asserted by the eminent
-physician, just named, to have passed through this ceremony between the
-years 1660 and 1683. One woman is said to have been cured of blindness
-by these wonderful means; and greater marvel still, a man is reported
-to have been cured of Nonconformity by witnessing the effect of the
-Royal fingers upon his child!--he expressed his thanks in this method:
-“Farewell to all Dissenters, and to all Nonconformists; if God can put
-so much virtue into the King’s hand as to heal my child, I’ll serve
-that God and that King so long as I live with all thankfulness.” An
-example of other absurd beliefs is found in a statement made to the
-Secretary of State, about a salmon which came up to the River Avon,
-on a Christmas Day. It was represented as being so religious, that it
-allowed itself to be touched by a staff, whereas at other times it is
-said, “Salmon are so shy that they endure not the least shadow.” “If
-any one made a prey of these quiet _Christian fish_ they came to
-an unfortunate end.”[320]
-
-Samuel Hartlib, in his correspondence with Dr. Worthington, of
-Cambridge, raised a question respecting angelic apparitions: “For
-long-bearded, good angels,” he says, “or lady-angels of true light,
-they do indeed cross all the old records of antiquity, whether Gentile
-or Jewish, neither Mercury, nor Gabriel, appeared otherwise than in
-prime of youthful vigour.”[321] The Cambridge scholar inclined to the
-idea, that angels might appear in long beards, and told his friend a
-story of a stranger, who knocked at a sick man’s door, and directed him
-to make use of two red sage leaves, and one blood-wort leaf, steeped
-in beer for three days,--and to live for a month in fresh country air.
-“Several circumstances,” he gravely added, “made it probable that he
-who came was a good angel, and if so, that he appeared as a grave old
-man, very tall and straight, of a very fresh colour, his hair as white
-as wool, and his beard broad and very white.” This old man, believed to
-be an angelic visitant, wore new shoes, tied with black ribbons.[322]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
-
-IX. Family life amongst the Nonconformists, in the reign of the later
-Stuarts, framed itself after the Puritan model; and in the memoirs
-of Oliver Heywood and Philip Henry, windows are open through which
-we discover their domestic habits. Saint Bartholomew’s Day became a
-solemn fast in commemoration of the ejectment,--sometimes held in
-fellowship with a neighbouring minister or ministers,--when “the
-Lord helped His servants, with strong cries, many tears, and mighty
-workings to acknowledge sin, accept of punishment, and implore
-mercy.”[323] Sometimes, when none but the family were present, each
-person prayed in turn, the minister, the wife, the two sons, and the
-maid, beginning with the youngest. Heywood, in his _Diary_,
-alludes to a particular friend--“a solid, gracious, useful, peaceable,
-tender-hearted Christian,” with whom he had “many a sweet day of
-prayer; and,” he says, “a few days before he died, we were at a
-private fast together in Ovenden-wood; and, oh! oh! how melting and
-affectionate was his heart for his children, a son and daughter, both
-here this day!” At another time, the same minister speaks of a private
-fast with two of his brethren, “about a special business, and our
-judgment was desired in an intricate matrimonial case, which seems
-something dark.”[324]
-
-It is said of Thomas Aquinas that he had “the gift of tears;” and his
-weeping at church is mentioned amongst the signs of his saintship. The
-same gift seems to have been possessed by this Nonconformist family.
-When Heywood’s two sons devoted themselves to the work of the Christian
-ministry, and a solemn domestic service of worship celebrated the
-event, as one of the ministers read the 48th chapter in Genesis, and
-came to the words, “The angel which redeemed me from all evil, bless
-the lads,” tears stopped him; all wept. He says in prayer “God helped
-all;” and he adds: “God wrought strangely in my heart; oh! what a flood
-of tears, what pleadings with God! I can scarce remember the like.”
-At night again, they prayed, “sobbing and weeping,” like David and
-Jonathan, “until David exceeded.”[325]
-
-Loyalty to the Stuarts beat in the bosoms of these Nonconformists,
-notwithstanding the treatment which they received; for we learn that,
-in the month of May, Mr. Heywood, his children, and his servant,
-spent several days with Mr. Angier at Denton, one of which days was
-the anniversary of Charles’ return, when there was a service in which
-Heywood took part.[326]
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-They had their family meetings. Nathaniel Heywood, with his wife and
-his sons, visited Oliver; and the brother and uncle felt it a comfort
-to have “these three couples of Heywoods to meet together”--“a rising
-generation, all very hopeful.”[327] We fancy how they talked that April
-time--in the oak parlour, as the window was thrown open, during a burst
-of sunshine, after a shower which had drenched the fruit-blossoms and
-the rose-buds. We may guess the topics from incidents in connection
-with the Stanley family: Nathaniel might relate the story of his
-being taken by a party of soldiers, while preaching in the chapel at
-Bickerstaff, when Lady Stanley, who attended the service, came out of
-her gallery, and placed herself near the pulpit door, hoping to overawe
-their spirits and obstruct their designs; and how, when he attended the
-sessions at Wigan, Lady Stanley came with her husband, and others, to
-speak on behalf of the persecuted clergyman.[328] And Oliver might be
-led to recur, by the force of association, to the visit of himself and
-Mr. Angier to Sir Thomas Stanley of Alderley, when, being requested
-to pray in that large family, the first morning he was tempted to
-study and speak “handsome words from respect to the company;” but,
-reflecting to whom he prayed, and that it was no trifling matter, he
-set himself to the exercise in serious earnestness, and God helped him
-to speak devoutly, with respect to the state of their souls.[329] The
-hospitalities of Broad Oak were the praise of all the country round.
-The dwelling stood by the roadside, and any one travelling that way
-met with a cordial welcome at the bright fire-side, where the silenced
-Presbyter, Philip Henry, exemplified the virtues of a Bishop, “like
-Abraham sitting at his tent-door in quest of opportunities to do good.
-If he met with any poor near his house and gave them alms in money,
-yet he would bid them go to his door besides, for relief there. He was
-very tender and compassionate towards poor strangers and travellers,
-though his charity and candour were often imposed upon by cheats and
-pretenders.”[330] “This man,” says a competent witness, “(ever since
-I knew him, and whilst I was his neighbour) was careful to rise early
-on Sunday mornings, to spend a considerable portion of his time in his
-private devotions and preparations, then to come down and call his
-family together, and, after some short, preparatory prayer, to sing
-a Psalm (commonly the 100th), and then read some part of the sacred
-Scripture, and expound it very largely and particularly, and at last
-kneel down with all his family and pray devoutly; with particular
-references to the day and duties of it, and the minister that was to
-officiate. After which a short refection for breakfast, he made haste
-to church, and took care that all his family that could be spared,
-should go in due time likewise: sometime he was before the preacher,
-and often before the rest of the congregation; (as once particularly,
-when I gave them a sermon in that place, he and I walked together
-a considerable time before the people came;) he behaved himself
-reverently and very gravely in the church during the service; stood
-up commonly at prayers, and always, in my time, wrote a sermon after
-the minister. When the morning service was ended, he commonly invited
-the minister to dine with him, who seldom refused; and many others,
-who either lived at a distance, as Mrs. Hanmer, Sir Job Charleton’s
-daughter, married to a Justice of Peace in that country, or else
-such as were poor and needy. His discourse homewards was sweet and
-spiritual; at table it was seasoned as well as his meat; edifying,
-and yet pleasant, and taking; never wild or offensive. After meat and
-thanks returned, they commonly (I think constantly) before departure
-from table, sung the 23rd Psalm. Sometime after, when the servants
-had dined, he propounded to such guests as he thought in prudence he
-should not be too free with, to retire into the parlour for a while,
-till he had attended upon his family, repeated over the sermon and
-prayed with them; after which he returned to his guests again, and
-having entertained them with some short discourse, he retired awhile
-himself, and by and by, called upon his family to go to church. After
-evening service and sermon ended, he retired again till six o’clock
-(then called for prayers, catechised, took an account of children and
-servants of what they remembered at church, which accounts were given
-sometimes very largely and particularly), sung a Psalm, kneeled down to
-prayers (which consisted more of praise and benediction than at other
-times), and at last, his children kneeling down before him (to beg his
-blessing), he blessed them all, and concluded the service of the day
-with the 123rd Psalm; save that after supper, he retired for about
-half-an-hour more into his study before bed-time. Sometimes after the
-public service ended at church, he gave some spiritual instructions,
-and preached in his house to as many as would come to hear him; and
-in his last years, when the Incumbents grew careless in providing
-supplies for two or three neighbouring churches and chapels, and the
-people cried out for lack of vision, he set up a constant ministration
-and preaching at home, never taking anything by way of reward for his
-pains, unless with a purpose to give it away to those who were in
-greater necessities.”[331]
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-That a sad colour tinged the joys of the Nonconformists must be
-confessed. How their Anglo-Saxon gravity might become more grave,
-and the light which sparkled over the home-life of their neighbours,
-might, in their own case, be darkened,--we see plainly enough when
-we recollect the perils which brooded over them even in seasons of
-calm, and the cruel interruptions which they suffered in the cloudy
-and dark day. Heywood speaks of officers sweeping away his chests,
-his tables, his chairs, his bed,--in short all his goods, except a
-cupboard and a few seats; and the same person was, for holding a
-religious meeting, imprisoned in York Castle.[332] How could such men,
-with all their tenderness, help being stern in their faith, and solemn
-in their pleasures? If genial they could not be light-hearted. They
-did not weep, as their enemies often said of them that they did, with
-a hypocritical whine; nor did they laugh, as some of their enemies
-really did, with affected glee,--their tears and smiles were genuine
-as the rain and the sunshine from heaven. Life was not to them, as
-to some others, a gay comedy,--it had in it a tragic cast; yet they
-never regarded it as a drama acted on the stage, but always as a real,
-earnest battle, fought in the open field, under the eye of God.
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-Let us pass from the homes of Oliver Heywood and the two Henrys to
-the mansion of a Nonconformist nobleman already noticed--Philip Lord
-Wharton, the good Lord Wharton, as he is called, to distinguish him
-from a descendant of a far different character. In the pleasant
-village of Woburn, in Buckinghamshire, situated on the river Wick, a
-tributary to the Thames,--which in its course through a delightful
-district, turns the wheel of many a paper mill,--there stands, under
-the shadow of richly-wooded hills, and adorned by a stately row
-of poplars, a goodly house; connected with which are stables and
-fish-ponds, pertaining to a far nobler residence which once occupied
-the site. The estate, before it came into the possession of the
-Whartons, exhibited much magnificence, of the feudal stamp, containing
-a palace for the Bishops of Lincoln, and a chapel with a small cell
-adjoining, called Little Ease,--where Thomas Chase, of Amersham, was,
-in 1506, privately strangled for heresy, and where Thomas Harding,
-of Chesham, was confined in 1532, previously to his being burnt at
-the stake. This ancient and stately house became a great place of
-resort for Nonconformist Divines. Manton and Bates, Howe and Owen,
-were often entertained under the hospitable roof, and the shadows of
-these departed ones still pleasantly haunt the spot, as the Puritan
-residents of the neighbourhood conduct strangers through the gardens,
-and relate to them the legends of the old dwelling. There--during one
-of the severe attacks of his fatal malady--Owen wrote his last and
-justly admired letters to his Church; and there, under the operation
-of the Five Mile Act--the house being above that distance from High
-Wycombe--the Nonconformists of the neighbouring town used to assemble
-for worship. The chapel formed a convenient place for the purpose; and
-within its walls the voices of eminent Divines, Owen and Howe, for
-example, might be often heard. Thither came Puritans from Wycombe and
-Farnham, and Langley and other places; and one can see them in the
-dress of the period, with their steeple-crowned hats, and their short
-cloaks, coming down the hill-side, or crossing the green--not in large
-groups, but singly, stealthily picking their way to avoid observation,
-a peasant from a neighbouring farm wading on foot, a burgess from the
-good town of Wycombe, riding his little cob. When the service was
-over on Sunday forenoon, and the Wycombe people and other folks from
-Marlow and Beaconsfield, and stragglers from a greater distance, were
-putting on their hats and cloaks, and preparing to unfasten their nags
-and to turn homewards, the noble host would invite the people, in
-Buckinghamshire phraseology, “to stop and take a sop in the pan,” that
-they might avail themselves of the privilege of attending worship again
-in the afternoon.[333]
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-The curious and quaint structure of Hoghton Tower, in the County of
-Lancaster, is also connected with the Nonconformist memories of the
-seventeenth century; for there Howe preached a part of his sublime
-discourse concerning “The Redeemer’s dominion over the invisible
-world.” And from the exquisitely tender dedication prefixed to it, we
-gather that it was occasioned by the death of the eldest son of Sir
-Charles and Lady Hoghton, to whom the tower belonged. The dedication
-indicates that the bereaved parents had sprung from “religious and
-honourable families, favoured of God, valued and beloved in the
-countries where He had planted them;” and that their early homes had
-been “both seats of religion and of the worship of God, the resorts
-of His servants; houses of mercy to the indigent, of justice to the
-vicious, of patronage to the sober and virtuous; of good example to
-all about them.” Addressing her ladyship, the preacher says: “Madam,
-who could have a more pleasant retrospect upon former days, than you?
-recounting your Antrim delights; the delight you took in your excellent
-relations, your garden delights, your closet delights, your Lord’s Day
-delights! But how much a greater thing is it to serve God in your
-present station, as the mother of a numerous and hopeful offspring;
-as the mistress of a large family; where you bear your part, with your
-like-minded consort, in supporting the interest of God and religion,
-and have opportunity of scattering blessings round about you.”[334]
-The graceful allusions, which the author makes to the family circle
-at Hoghton, brings before us a domestic picture, which may serve as
-a pendant to that of Broad Oak, the accessories of a Nonconformist
-minister’s household being alone exchanged for those of a baronet.
-From the title and dedication of another sermon by the same Divine,
-“Self-dedication discoursed in the anniversary thanksgiving of a
-person of honour for a great deliverance,”--namely, the preservation
-from death by a fall from a horse of “John, Earl of Kildare, Baron of
-Ophalia, first of his order in the kingdom of Ireland,”--we gather that
-it was a Puritan practice to celebrate distinguished family mercies
-by annual religious solemnities. Two sermons by the same writer on the
-words, “Yield yourselves unto God,” are inscribed “To the much-honoured
-Bartholomew Soame, Esq., of Thurlow, and Susanna his pious consort;”
-with the notice, that one day in the previous summer the author
-preached the sermons under their roof.[335] The circumstance shows,
-that sometimes elaborate addresses, fitted for public audiences, were
-carefully prepared for a small number of persons, such as could be
-accommodated within the entrance-hall, or in one of the apartments of a
-country gentleman’s house.
-
-In some Nonconformist families, as was quite natural, romantic
-incidents occurred. Major-General Lambert, who figured prominently in
-connection with Cromwell, and who was kept a prisoner in the days of
-Charles II., had a son very unlike himself as it regards religion.
-This gentleman became acquainted with the widow of Charles Nowel of
-Merely--a lady who was of the family of Lister, of Arnoldsbiggen. The
-union with her first husband had been a runaway match, contracted in a
-covered walk within her father’s grounds; after which the bridegroom
-fell into the water, and was drowned, in returning home with the
-license of marriage in his pocket, so that he and she never met again.
-Young Lambert married this ill-fated maiden-widow; and then it turned
-out that the tastes of the couple were utterly unlike--he much addicted
-to pleasure, she against it; he going to church at Kirkby, Malham-dale,
-she walking every Sunday to the Dissenting meeting-house at Winterburn.
-His father, the Major-General, wrote a letter, rebuking him for his
-extravagance; and his wife invited Mr. Frankland, the Nonconformist
-pastor, to come and preach in Craven, with a view to his benefit;
-this the gay sportsman at first opposed. But a change came over him;
-he himself invited Oliver Heywood to be his guest, and showed him his
-pictures--“he being an exact limner:” one would hope he also became a
-penitent Christian. Lambert was seized with palsy in January, 1676,
-about which time his mother died in Plymouth Castle.[336]
-
-During the first three centuries of the history of Christianity, and
-the more than ten persecutions which annalists have numbered, the
-professors of the Divine faith had to suffer, far beyond what the laws
-in their utmost severity could inflict. Imperial rescripts carried out
-to the letter, or magisterial commands going further, were terrible
-beyond description; and popular fury shouting, “The Christians to the
-lions,” became more cruel still. But another source of suffering, to
-minds of sensibility exceeding the rest in the bitterness of anguish
-which it produced, was when the husband persecuted the wife, and the
-father the child. Tertullian tells us that there were many such cases.
-The annals of the Church of the Restoration afford parallels in this
-last, as in other respects, to the records of older times.
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-Agnes Beaumont, the daughter of a Bedfordshire yeoman, lost her mother
-when very young. Her father sometimes went to hear the preaching of
-John Bunyan, but he afterwards conceived a strong antipathy to that
-famous minister. The girl manifested religious feeling, and joined
-Bunyan’s Church, when a lawyer, who had wished to marry her for the
-sake of her father’s property, became her inveterate foe. But the
-daughter remained faithful to her convictions; and this circumstance
-so provoked her father’s irritable temper, that he opposed her going
-to hear the favourite preacher any more. On a particular occasion,
-however, she extorted his consent to attend once. It was the depth of
-winter. Weary of wading through the mud, and overtaken by Bunyan riding
-on his way to the place of worship, she was reluctantly permitted by
-him to sit, pillion-fashion, behind him on horseback, when the two
-were met by a clergyman, who immediately invented a scandalous report
-respecting the minister and the maid. Agnes, after attending the
-meeting, found the door of her house barred against her admission.
-“Who is there?” asked Beaumont, as she knocked. “’Tis I, father, come
-home wet and dirty: pray let me in.” “Where you have been all day, you
-may go at night,” was the answer from the other side of the bolted
-entrance. She went and sought shelter in a barn. The morning brought no
-relenting to the heart of her unnatural parent; and he declared that
-she should not enter the house, unless she promised never to go to a
-meeting again so long as he lived. “Father,” she answered, “my soul is
-of too much worth to do this. Can you stand in my stead, and answer
-for me at the great day? If so, I will obey you in this demand, as I
-do in all other things.” Much painful excitement followed. At last,
-fearful of being disobedient, the young woman promised never to go to
-a conventicle as long as he lived, without his consent. This softened
-him a little, and they were reconciled; but as she reflected upon her
-promise, it struck her that she had been unfaithful to her conscience,
-and she passed through great spiritual distress. Soon afterwards
-Beaumont fell ill, and retired to rest. His daughter, hearing him
-moaning in his chamber, rushed to his assistance, and found him struck
-with death. Fatal disease had been brought on, most likely by violence
-of temper; and the poor girl, through the villany of her pretended
-lover, now had to face the accusation of having murdered her parent.
-Though, on the coroner’s inquest, her innocence was established, her
-implacable enemy perseveringly maintained, that she had privately
-confessed the crime, the object of which was to marry Bunyan, who had
-a wife living at that very time; the villain also, without one atom of
-evidence, charged her with committing arson.[337] More of revenge than
-persecution entered into the conduct of this man; yet, for a while,
-Agnes Beaumont, for her religious constancy, endured the most violent
-parental anger, probably not uncommon in those days, and akin to that
-which fell upon many a pure-minded maiden in Carthage or in Rome.
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-The domestic and private life of the Established clergy and
-their friends, as they appear in the biographies and gossiping
-literature of the day, assume a rather different aspect from that
-of the Nonconformists. Such a dignitary as Reynolds, who had been a
-Presbyterian, would no doubt preserve, in his palace at Norwich, many
-of the Puritan habits of the Commonwealth--would gather around him,
-as far as possible, a godly household, in sympathy with him in his
-spiritual tastes--would continue to converse much after the fashion of
-by-gone days--and with the adoption of the Episcopalian formularies in
-the cathedral and chapel, would connect, in more retired devotion, the
-use of extemporaneous prayer, and of Scripture exposition. And such
-a parish pastor as Gurnall would, in a similar way, continue Puritan
-usages in his quiet parsonage at Lavenham. We must look elsewhere for
-characteristic habits and customs of the Episcopalian stamp. Of an
-Anglican prelate, enjoying his palace, and engaged in his diocese, a
-good specimen is afforded by the memoirs of Seth Ward, the Bishop of
-Salisbury.[338]
-
-He was renowned for hospitality. The clergy, even the meanest curates,
-were welcome at his table; and people of quality, travelling between
-London and Exeter, stopped at the Wiltshire city, and dined at the
-palace. He was a hearty entertainer, we are told, assuring his guests
-that he accounted himself but a steward, and pressing upon them the
-enjoyment of the fare which he plentifully provided. He would not ask,
-“Will you drink a glass of wine?” says his biographer, with amusing
-minuteness; but he would call for a bottle, and drink himself, and then
-offer it to his friends. The poor were relieved at his gates. He had
-a band of weekly pensioners; and when he went out for a walk in the
-streets or on the plains, he gave money to all who solicited alms; and
-when children saw him in his coach or on horseback, they would rush
-from their play, to shout, in expectation of a largess, “The Bishop is
-coming.” Being a capital horseman, he would ride twenty miles before
-dinner, and not mind following the hounds, if he “by chance chopt upon”
-them. After dinner and “a dish or two of coffee or tea,” as soon as the
-bell “tilled,”--to use the Salisbury phrase,--he called for his robes,
-and went to church, taking with him his visitors.[339]
-
-Of another kind of dignitary an example is afforded in the memoirs of
-the Honourable and Reverend Dr. John North. He was Clerk of the Closet
-to Charles II.; possessing “a very convenient lodging in Whitehall,
-upon the parade of the Court, near the presence-chamber,” where his
-table was provided from the Royal kitchen, and he enjoyed the company
-of His Majesty’s chaplains. People who had nothing else to do, would
-say to one another--so North’s brother reports--“Come, shall we go
-and spend half-an-hour with Mr. Clerk of the Closet?” but when they
-went with the expectation of getting “a glass of wine or ale,” the
-wary Divine, by the advice of an old Courtier, would not offer so
-much as “small beer in hot weather,” lest he should be overdone with
-visitors. In consequence of this prudent determination, he lived “like
-a hermit in his cell, in the midst of the Court, and proved the title
-of a foolish French writer, _La Solitude de la Cour_.” “Divers
-persons,” however, particularly ladies, “far from Papists,” were wont
-to repair to this spiritual officer for a different purpose, thinking
-“auricular confession, though no duty, a pious practice,” and seeking
-“to ease their minds” by means of that Anglo-Catholic custom. He did
-“the office of a pastor or _parochus_ of the Court,” somewhat
-after the fashion of the mediæval Clerks of the Closet, who were,
-in fact, Court confessors. “And I have heard him say,” proceeds his
-brother, “that, for the number of persons that resided in the Court,
-a place reputed a centre of all vice and irreligion, he thought there
-were as many truly pious and strictly religious as could be found in
-any other resort whatsoever; and he never saw so much fervent devotion,
-and such frequent acts of piety and charity, as his station gave
-him occasion to observe there. It often falls out that extremes are
-conterminous, and, as contraries, illustrate each other: so here virtue
-and vice.”[340] We are glad to hear such testimony, and, when we think
-of Evelyn and Margaret Godolphin, we cannot altogether doubt it; but,
-as this Court Divine lived in a cell, he could not know much of what
-went on around him in the Court.
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-Noble families observed the duties of domestic worship; and, from
-the same source as that from which the last illustration is drawn,
-it appears how the household of the princely Duke of Beaufort, at
-Badminton, attended to this practice. There was breakfast in the
-Duchess’ gallery, which opened into the gardens, where perhaps a deer
-was to be killed; and half-an-hour after eleven in the forenoon the
-bell rang to prayers; and at six in the evening the best company went
-into an aisle in the church, where the Duke and Duchess could see if
-all the family were present. Her Grace had divers gentlewomen with her,
-commonly engaged upon “embroidery and fringe-making; for all the beds
-of state were made and finished in the house.”[341]
-
-Instead of extemporary effusions, Episcopalians used the daily prayers
-of the Church, or selections from them. On special occasions the
-minister of the parish performed the office; and an amusing instance
-occurs of the neglect of this custom on the part of a gentleman who
-had the honour of entertaining the Judges on the Western Circuit. “He
-himself got behind the table in his hall, and read a chapter, and then
-a long-winded prayer, after the Presbyterian way. The Judges took it
-very ill, but did not think fit to affront him in his own house. Next
-day”--who the narrator is may be guessed--“when we came early in the
-morning to Exeter, all the news was that the Judges had been at a
-conventicle, and the Grand Jury intended to present them and all their
-retinue for it; and much merriment was made upon that subject.”[342]
-
-Devout Anglicans attended strictly to the private duties of religion.
-They kept fasts and festivals in their own houses, as well as at
-church; and in their morning and evening devotions they used portions
-of the Common Prayer, or forms supplied by Taylor and Andrewes. They
-read the sermons of those Divines, and of Sanderson and others; perhaps
-also the annotations of Hammond or some kindred expositor. At a later
-period, _The Whole Duty of Man_ became a very popular book with
-the class of persons now described.
-
-I conclude these illustrations of Anglo-Catholic life with the account
-of the death of an Anglo-Catholic young lady:--
-
-“Upon Thursday, the 1st of February, my most dearly beloved daughter
-Grimston fell sick of small-pox.
-
-“She had, from the beginning of her sickness to the last period of her
-breath, an understanding very entire, and so perfect a patience that
-her demeanour towards them who were about her was not only holy, but
-cheerful too.
-
-[Sidenote: FAMILY LIFE.]
-
-“She received the sentence of death with the greatest tranquillity
-of soul that is imaginable, and sent for Mr. Frampton (the household
-chaplain to the Master of the Rolls, in whose house she died). To him
-she made an excellent confession of her faith and life, and opened all
-the burdens of her spirit, wherein were found no heavier matters than
-a few angry words spoken seven years since, and some small errors of
-that nature. But [there followed] a most solemn repentance for all
-transgressions, whether remembered or forgotten. This being done,
-she did, with great devotion, receive the blessed sacrament, and the
-absolution of the Church. Before she composed herself to die, she
-first took a most kind and comfortable leave of her dear husband--who,
-from the beginning of her sickness till the hour of her death, never
-left her chamber--praying God to bless him, and that he might never
-find the want of her. Then she recommended her little girl to my wife,
-entreating her to take her into her family, if it might not be too
-great a trouble, and desiring her not to weep, for she was happy. She
-remembered almost every relation she had in the world by name, and
-offered up a particular prayer for them. I had never seen her after
-the second day of her sickness; but she prayed most devoutly for me,
-and desired all that were present to tell me from her, that, if prayer
-were made in heaven, she would never cease to pray for me there so long
-as I lived here: an expression so amazing from a child, and withal so
-piercing, that, in the midst of all my spiritual joys, I feel a sorrow
-great enough to break my heart if I would give way to it. For within a
-few minutes after these words uttered, she surrendered up her blessed
-soul into the hands of God Almighty, who, by the assistance of His
-most blessed Spirit, had prepared and fitted her for Himself. And now
-she hath left her dear husband, and his family, and mine, as full of
-mourning and lamentation for the want of her as can possibly consist
-with Christian patience and submission. On Monday next she is carried
-from hence to her grave, in St. Michael’s Church, near Gorhambury.”[343]
-
-X. As during the Commonwealth, so after the Restoration, different
-opinions were entertained respecting the observance of Sunday.
-Puritans were not all of one mind upon that matter. Extreme men argued
-thus:--“If honest labour be forbidden, much more honest recreations;
-for recreation is but the means to prepare and fit men for labour;
-therefore, if labour, which is the end of recreation, be forbidden,
-much more recreation, which is but the means to labour.”[344] But
-Baxter, who was himself strict in the observance of the day, and who
-then walked for his health _privately_, lest he “should tempt
-others to sin,” observed, with great moderation, “The body must be kept
-in that condition (as far we can) that is fittest for the service of
-the soul: a heavy body is but a dull and heavy servant to the mind,
-yea, a great impediment to the soul in duty, and a great temptation to
-many sins.” “When the sights of prospects, and beautiful buildings,
-and fields, and countries, or the use of walks, or gardens, do tend to
-raise the soul to holy contemplation, to admire the Creator, and to
-think of the glory of the life to come (as Bernard used his pleasant
-walks), this delight is lawful, if not a duty where it may be had.” Of
-music and moderate feasting he says, when they “promote the spiritual
-service of the day, they are good and profitable.”[345]
-
-[Sidenote: OBSERVANCE OF THE SABBATH.]
-
-Owen, perhaps, was more strict in his views of Sabbath observance
-than Baxter; yet he spoke of its being no small mistake that men have
-laboured more to multiply directions about external duties than to
-direct a due sanctification of the day according to the spirit and
-genius of Gospel obedience; and he did not deny that some, measuring
-others by themselves, tied people up unto such long tiresome duties,
-and rigid abstinences from refreshments, as clogged their minds, and
-turned the whole service of the day into a wearisome bodily exercise
-which profiteth little.[346]
-
-Between Puritans and Anglicans a great difference continued upon the
-Sunday question. Jeremy Taylor, speaking of persons who objected to
-have meat dressed upon the Lord’s Day, or to use an innocent, permitted
-recreation, says--“When such an opinion makes a sect, and this sect
-gets firm, confident, and zealous defenders, in a little time it will
-dwell upon the conscience as if it were a native there, whereas it
-is but a pitiful inmate, and ought to be turned out of doors.”[347]
-Thorndike denied the obligation of the Fourth Commandment upon any but
-the Jewish people; he based the authority for the Lord’s Day on the
-Apostolic custom of the Church, and he disapproved of the Sabbatarian
-strictness of the Puritans.[348] Sanderson pleaded for recreations,
-“walking and discoursing” for “men of liberal education;” but for
-the “ruder sort of people,” “shooting, leaping, pitching the bar,
-and stool-ball,” rather than “dicing and carding.” “These pastimes,”
-he said, were to be used “in godly and commendable sort,” with great
-moderation, at seasonable times, not during Divine service, nor at
-hours appointed by the master of the house for private devotion, but
-so as to make men fitter for God’s service during the rest of the
-day, and all this was to be done, not doubtingly, _for whatsoever
-is not of faith is sin_; nor uncharitably, for in this, “as in all
-indifferent things, a wise and charitable man will, in godly wisdom,
-deny himself many times the use of that liberty, which, in a godly
-charity, he dare not deny to his brother.”[349] Although the _Book
-of Sports_ had lost its authority, its spirit revived after the
-Restoration, and amusements in accordance with its provisions were
-encouraged, in some cases, without any checks or any religious teaching
-of the kind adopted by Sanderson. Cosin, indeed, in a sermon upon
-Sunday observance, quotes a remark by Augustine, which condemns all
-vain and idle pastimes--“Some people keep holy day for the devil, and
-not for God, and should be better employed, labouring and ploughing
-in their fields, than so to spend the day in idleness and vanity,
-and women should better bestow their time in spinning of wool, than
-upon the Lord’s Day to lose their time leaping and dancing, and other
-such wantonness.”[350] Borough magistrates enforced the observance
-of the Sabbath; not only were corporations, attired in their gowns,
-required to attend church, morning and afternoon, but all masters were
-ordered to cause their apprentices to be at Divine service at the
-same time.[351] In the houses of such as disliked Puritanism, scenes
-of levity, if not dissipation, often desecrated the holy hours. After
-attendance at church, time was spent in a manner at variance with the
-previous devotions.
-
-[Sidenote: RECREATIONS.]
-
-Pious Anglicans after the Restoration loved the first day of the
-week with all the fervour of George Herbert;--and what some of them
-said with reference to recreations, shocking as it appeared to
-Puritans, proceeded not from a desire of self-indulgence, but from
-a consideration of weakness in other people,--still, the Sabbath
-remained the Puritans’ peculiar treasure. They put on it the highest
-price. To them it seemed the jewel and crown, the bloom and flower
-of the week, the torch which lighted up its dark days, the sunshine
-which from eternity streamed down on the waters of time. Unwisdom,
-sinking into superstition, betrayed itself in the strictness of their
-conduct, provoking ridicule, and producing reaction; but it should
-not be overlooked that it was from their great love to the festival,
-that they were so careful to frame rules for its preservation. Some
-treated Puritan habits as pitiable, and regarded the men as insanely
-melancholy, but the latter esteemed themselves objects for envy rather
-than commiseration, since in their own hearts they made the Sabbath “a
-delight, the holy of the Lord, and honourable.”
-
-XI. The idea of “a Christian year,” a sanctification of the seasons
-of nature by Gospel memories, is undeniably beautiful. This theory of
-time, adopted by the Church of England, reappeared at the Revolution,
-and days which mark the progress of the old earth’s journeys round
-the sun were stamped anew with sacred names, and entwined with the
-history of the Redeemer and His Apostles. Christmas celebrated the
-Incarnation, and Epiphany the infant appearance of Jesus to the Magi at
-Bethlehem, with subsequent manifestations of His glory; Lent was the
-spring period, set apart for fasting and prayer, preparatory to the
-commemoration of Divine mercy in the atonement of Christ. Palm Sunday
-is not recognized in the English Prayer Book. On the Sunday before
-Easter no reference occurs to our Lord’s entrance into Jerusalem in
-the proper Lessons, the Epistle, or the Gospel. But Easter itself,
-after the sorrows of Good Friday, is a high and holy festival, when
-the Church breaks out into songs of joy because of the Resurrection
-of her Lord. At the close of the forty days following, come Rogation
-Week, with Holy Thursday, and then Whitsuntide--a season associated
-with Christ’s Ascension, and culminating in the celebration of
-Pentecost. Trinity Sunday crowns the whole, and invites the faithful to
-contemplate the comprehensive, the fundamental, the mysterious doctrine
-of a distinction in the Godhead. The character and history of St. John
-the Baptist, and of the Apostles, St. Matthias, St. Peter, St. James,
-St. Bartholomew, St. Matthew, St. Simon and St. Jude, St. Andrew,
-St. Thomas, are in succession bound up with certain days, the series
-terminating in the festival of All Saints.[352]
-
-[Sidenote: RECREATIONS.]
-
-With these seasons, observed from ancient times, various recreations
-had become connected in the middle ages. Many of them survived the fall
-of Popery, and with exceptions and changes, came once more, at the
-Restoration, into general fashion and indulgence. To say the least,
-they brought around sacred things the strangest and most incongruous
-associations. Some, indeed, were very much worse than strange and
-incongruous. Christmas Eve shone with the blaze of the Yule log, and
-its bountiful accompaniments of good cheer. The Christmas carol echoed
-through the family hall with gay music from the minstrels’ gallery.
-The Christmas hobby-horse cut strange capers, and Christmas-boxes
-were given freely to young and old. The Lord of misrule, the foot
-plough, and the sword dance, Yule doughs, mince-pies, Christmas-pies
-and plum-puddings added to the tide of fellowship and pleasure at
-that mid-winter season. All the glories of Twelfth night, which threw
-old men and old women, as well as little children, into ecstasies
-of merriment, were engrafted on the feast of Epiphany. Easter
-holidays, Easter liftings, Easter eggs, and all sorts of Easter fun,
-gathered in strange, grotesque, often revolting, contrast round the
-professed acknowledgment of the greatest of the redemptive miracles
-of Christianity. Rogation Week, with Ascension Day in its centre, had
-long been the chosen time for sacred processions and litanies, and now
-again in England, on the Monday, Tuesday, and Wednesday of that week,
-parochial perambulations revived; charity children carried flowers;
-the clergy with singing men and boys, all in sacred vestments, and
-with churchwardens and parishioners, beat the bounds of the parish,
-and under Gospel oaks, and other Gospel trees, the Incumbent read the
-Gospel, according to an old custom, in which had originated these
-familiar appellations. The idea of such perambulations, sanctioned by
-the Church, was--that processional worship should be offered to the
-Almighty, that thanks should be given to Him for the promise of a good
-crop, or that prayer should be offered for His mercy on the prospect of
-a bad harvest. But the gathering together of all sorts of idle people,
-and the habit of drinking which obtained amongst them, led to most
-deplorable excesses.
-
-Superstitious and absurd practices cropped up profusely on St.
-Mark’s Eve. With St. John’s Day was coupled the use, in decoration,
-of the birch, the lily, and St. John’s wort, and at night bonfires
-illuminated the villages of “Merrie England.” St. Peter’s Day had
-similar illuminations; St. James’ Day was a time for eating oysters,
-and Allhallow Even was devoted to nut-cracking, apple-catching, and the
-ancient game of quintain. The feasts of the consecration of churches
-degenerated into rush bearings, hoppings, and all kinds of rustic
-amusements, in which, as Bishop Hall observed in his _Triumph of
-Pleasure_ “you may well say no Greek can be merrier than they.”
-
-The theory was to unite the remembrance of Christian facts and
-Christian names with particular seasons in the lives of men, to
-interlink religion with social intercourse, to recognize recreation
-as a human necessity, to hallow it with Christian influences, and to
-allow joy, on account of the events recorded in the Gospel, to express
-itself in innocent festivities. But nobody can fail to see that if
-this was the theory, the practice did not correspond with it, for the
-history of the amusements common in England at these festivals after
-the Restoration, as before, abounds in proofs of revelry and riot, most
-unseemly in the estimation of sober Christians. A distinction ought
-to be made between the use of festivities at Christmas, Easter, and
-other seasons, and their abuse; between what is harmful and what is
-innocent; and also it must be allowed that, whilst Churchmen, in the
-days of which we speak, mingled recreation with religion, some of them
-also mingled the spirit of religion with recreation, and condemned
-all vicious indulgence; but the fact still remains, that amongst the
-lower classes, and the upper as well, in cities and towns, and in rural
-districts, a large amount of social demoralization existed under the
-cover of Christian symbols, and in union with professedly Christian
-observances. This fact should not be overlooked in an Ecclesiastical
-History of England.
-
-[Sidenote: RECREATIONS.]
-
-Different ideas respecting amusements are marked badges of religious
-denominations, and one of the dangers of all Puritanism is a tendency
-to separate between recreation and religion, and to regard them as if
-antagonistic, from mistaken views of the condition and necessities
-of human nature; views which ignore one side of the mind of man, and
-narrow the range of social sympathies. Some good men of the Puritan
-class did, in consequence, look sourly on several very innocent
-sorts of pleasure; but the morbid, ungenial restriction of feeling,
-ascribed to the Puritans in general, has been greatly exaggerated, and
-to some extent, so far as it really existed, an excuse may be found
-for it in the persecuting treatment which they, as a body, received
-from those who were foremost in promoting the revival of old English
-customs. The distinctive amusements of the Church festivals the Puritan
-disliked, condemned, and opposed. Indeed, many disliked, condemned,
-and opposed the festivals themselves, from a strong conviction that
-they were superstitious in their origin, their character, and their
-tendency. They devoutly believed in the events which those festivals
-commemorated, and thought that they should be remembered, not at
-particular seasons, but all the year round. Their idea of the festivals
-was not such as to redeem the recreations which had clustered round
-them; and the recreations themselves were, to their religious and moral
-tastes, exceedingly offensive.
-
-After all which has been said to the contrary, however, numbers of the
-Puritans--under the later Stuarts, under the earlier ones, and under
-the Commonwealth--were genial and even “facetious”--to use a word
-applied to some of their best men--full of pleasantness, and by no
-means averse to certain English amusements. Many demonstrations of joy
-they made in common with their neighbours. Feasting and sending gifts
-to one another, the ringing of bells, making bonfires, and sounding
-trumpets, with thundering of ordnance on great national occasions, had
-been recommended in so many words from the chief pulpit of Manchester,
-by the chief Presbyterian minister of that City. If Puritans objected
-to drinking healths, some had no objections to see the street-conduits
-running with claret. Anti-prelatists, like prelatists before, and
-Nonconformists, like Conformists after the Restoration, indulged in the
-sports of fishing and shooting; they followed the hounds, and they went
-a hawking.
-
-Cock-fighting is an old English amusement, especially at Shrove-tide,
-and, strange as it may seem, an eminent Puritan minister, Henry
-Newcome, allowed his boys, when that season came round, to “shoot
-at the cock.” He amusingly expresses in his diary a fear lest the
-youngsters should come to mischief in so dangerous a game, and
-therefore prayed to God that He would preserve them, as he thankfully
-acknowledges God was pleased to do; and he mentions that on one
-occasion he had particular reason to be alarmed, since what was meant
-for the cock threatened danger to the boy, for “Daniel’s hat on his
-head was shot through with an arrow.” Yet the careful and devout
-father never indicates an apprehension of there being anything wrong
-in the game itself.[353] Nonconformists condemned card-playing, and
-other games of chance, but if the late Nonconformists resembled their
-Presbyterian predecessors, they amused themselves with balls and
-billiards. The game of shuffle-board was a Royal amusement, and a
-board for playing the game is mentioned in an inventory of the goods
-belonging to Charles I., which were seized at Ludlow Castle. Boards
-of this description had lines drawn across them at one end, and the
-players stood at the other, the object being to push or _shove_
-flat pieces of metal across the lines, without causing them to fall off
-the board. Newcome liked to play this game, as appears from his diary,
-only he was afraid of taking “too great a latitude in such mirth,” and
-thought it his duty to let some “savoury thing” fall at the time, and
-if he cracked a jest, he considered himself as thereby incurring a debt
-for an equal amount of serious discourse. The Presbyterian minister,
-who tells these stories of himself, was a young man at the time to
-which he thus refers, and he lived beyond the Revolution, but it is
-very probable that in after years he continued cautiously to practise
-his early favourite amusement. There is, however, no reason to believe
-that his taste in this respect, and his habit of indulging in it, is to
-be taken as a specimen of Nonconformists’ recreation in general.
-
-[Sidenote: CHARITIES.]
-
-XII. The charities revived or established after the Restoration,
-springing from the benevolent spirit of Christianity, call for some
-notice. Visiting the venerable hospital of St. Mary, in the City
-of Chichester, with its spacious hall, spanned by an arched roof,
-and its rows of tiny rooms built on either side, as if in a covered
-street, with its chapel and altar table, and other provisions
-for Episcopalian worship on Sundays and week-days, and with its
-old-fashioned men and women finding rest in their declining days,
-after the toils and troubles of life; or visiting the like venerable
-hospital of Bishopgate, in the City of Norwich, with somewhat similar
-arrangements, we see the kind of place in which benevolent people loved
-to shelter the aged and the infirm in the days of Charles II. After the
-banishment--during the Commonwealth--of the ancient religious services,
-and of the old spirit of these quaint retreats--not, however, to the
-violation of the charitable purposes of the foundation--those services
-took possession of them again at the Restoration. The same may be said
-of numerous almshouses in different parts of the country.
-
-New ones of a similar description were established. Bishop Ward’s
-College of Matrons, for the maintenance of ten widows of orthodox
-clergymen, may be mentioned as an instance. He disliked it to be called
-an hospital, it being intended for those who were well descended,
-and had lived in good reputation. He purchased land in the Close at
-Salisbury, on which to erect the buildings, and the Cathedral being
-so near, they were required to attend worship there, both morning
-and evening. The same prelate endowed an hospital at Buntingford,
-in Hertfordshire, the place of his birth, for ten aged men, each to
-receive ten pounds a year.
-
-Some persons, in founding almshouses, required that all the inmates
-should “be conformed to the Church of England, according to the
-Thirty-Nine Articles,” and placed under the ban of exclusion all such
-as should not profess, or follow the Protestant religion, or should
-absent themselves from the parish or castle church without cause.[354]
-Others devised bequests in a more catholic spirit, providing “that poor
-boys may be instructed in the principles of the Protestant religion,
-and in the fear of the Lord, and also to read and to write, and to cast
-up accounts, that so they may be blessed in their souls as well as in
-their bodies, and may be a blessing to their masters, and may for ever
-have cause to bless God for the fatherly care” of the Mayor on their
-behalf.[355]
-
-[Sidenote: CHARITIES.]
-
-The name of a singular kind of person, who signalized himself by his
-beneficence, may also be introduced.
-
-An epitaph on a tomb-stone in the Chapel of Jesus’ College, Cambridge,
-records his deeds:--“Tobias Rustat, Yeoman of the Robes to King Charles
-II., whom he served with all duty and faithfulness in his adversity
-as well as prosperity, both at home and abroad. The greatest part of
-the estate he gathered by God’s blessing, the King’s favour, and his
-industry, he disposed in his lifetime in works of charity, and found
-the more he bestowed upon churches, hospitals, universities, and
-colleges, and upon poor widows and orphans of orthodox ministers, the
-more he had at the year’s end. Neither was he unmindful of his kindred
-and relations in making them provision out of what remained. He died a
-bachelor the 15th day of March, in the year of our Lord 1693, aged 87.”
-
-Dr. Sutcliffe, in the reign of James I., founded and built a college
-at Chelsea “principally for the maintenance of the true Catholic,
-Apostolic, and Christian faith, and next, for the practice, setting
-forth, and increase of true and sound learning against the pedantry,
-sophistries and novelties of the Jesuits, and others, the Pope’s
-factors and followers; and, thirdly, against the treachery of the
-Pelagians, and Arminians, and others, that draw towards Popery and
-Babylonian slavery, endeavouring to make a rent in God’s Church,
-and a peace between heresy and God’s true faith--between Christ and
-Antichrist.”[356] Although patronized by the King, this indefinite
-scheme for maintaining truth in a controversial age came to nothing,
-and Charles II. appropriated the ground occupied by the college to
-the famous Royal Hospital for superannuated soldiers. Everybody is
-familiar with the imposing edifice near the banks of the Thames, and
-with the stories about Nell Gwynn’s influence, in the establishment
-of the foundation, but it is not generally known, that a number of
-persons, besides the King, took part in the work, and that it is really
-a monument of national as well as of Royal munificence.
-
-Tillotson, in one of his sermons, commemorates the benevolence of a
-London merchant:--
-
-“He (Mr. Gouge) set the poor of St. Sepulchre’s parish (where he was
-a minister) to work at his own charge. He bought flax and hemp for
-them to spin; when spun he paid them for their work, and caused it
-to be wrought into cloth, which he sold as he could, himself bearing
-the whole loss. This was a very wise and well-chosen way of charity,
-and in the good effect of it, a much greater charity; than if he had
-given to those very persons (freely and for nothing) so much as he made
-them earn by their work, because, by this means, he rescued them from
-two most dangerous temptations--idleness and poverty. This course, so
-happily devised and begun by Mr. Gouge, gave, it may be, the first hint
-to that useful and worthy citizen, Mr. Thos. Firman, of a much larger
-design, which has been managed by him some years in this city, with
-that vigour and good success, that many hundreds of poor children,
-and others, who lived idle before, unprofitable both to themselves
-and the public, now maintain themselves, and are also some advantage
-to the community. By the assistance and charity of many excellent and
-well-disposed persons, Mr. Firman is enabled to bear the unavoidable
-loss and charge of so vast an undertaking, and by his own forward
-inclination to charity, and unwearied diligence and activity, is fitted
-to sustain and go through the incredible pains of it.”[357]
-
-[Sidenote: CHARITIES.]
-
-Such instances of Christian benevolence are quite as worthy of being
-recorded in ecclesiastical history as the strifes of controversy, and
-the changes of government, and it may therefore be added in reference
-to “the useful and worthy citizen, Mr. Firman,” just mentioned, that,
-although he was a person of singular and heterodox opinions, he
-distinguished himself above many who condemned his errors; and left
-behind him a name for active and unwearied charity, which entitles
-him to a place in the same honourable list with Howard, Fry, and
-Peabody. The details of his beneficence are minutely recorded in his
-interesting life: besides establishing a linen manufactory entirely
-for the employment and benefit of poor spinners, he visited prisons,
-and redeemed poor debtors; he was a zealous supporter of Christ’s and
-St. Thomas’ Hospitals; he largely gave away Bibles, good books, and
-catechisms; he diligently helped the French Refugees; he evinced a deep
-interest in the sufferings and relief of the persecuted Irish, and he
-was an eminent contributor to the wants of the poor.[358]
-
-Nor were missionary efforts altogether neglected. Sir Leoline
-Jenkins--who, in 1680, succeeded Sir William Coventry as Secretary of
-State--was touched by the large amount of spiritual destitution amongst
-the Navy and in the Colonies, and with a view to the supplying of it,
-he instituted two fellowships in Jesus’ College, Oxford, the holders of
-which should go out to sea as Chaplains of the Fleet, or proceed to
-“His Majesty’s foreign plantations, there to take upon them a cure of
-souls.”
-
-In July, 1649, an ordinance had been passed by the Long Parliament for
-the propagation of the Gospel in New England. A collection for the
-object having been made in every parish, a large sum was realized in
-consequence. With this money certain lands were purchased of Colonel
-Beddingfield, a Roman Catholic Royalist, the annual proceeds of which
-were to be devoted to the mission. But after the Restoration, the
-Colonel seized back the property for his own use, and it was only after
-legal proceedings,--in which Clarendon, as Lord Chancellor, behaved
-most equitably,--that it was recovered by the trustees. Charles II.
-granted the Society a new Charter of Incorporation, of which Robert
-Boyle became president; and Mr. Ashurst, an influential and pious
-citizen, and alderman of London, who had been treasurer before,
-reaccepted that important post. Richard Baxter took an active part in
-the proceedings at home, and John Eliot, a missionary to the Indians,
-carried on its operations abroad. Letters are preserved which passed
-between the illustrious Divine and the illustrious Evangelist, and
-from one written by the former we learn that, although, from reasons
-connected with the peculiar character of the times, numbers were
-unwilling to leave England just then to embark in this new expedition
-of religious zeal, many would have been glad to have gone amongst
-“Persians, Tartarians, and Indians,” to preach the Gospel, had they
-but understood the language. Hints respecting universal language--a
-dream which occupied the thoughts of Wilkins, the Bishop of Chester,
-and inspired George Dalgarno’s _Ars Signorum_--occur in Eliot’s
-letters, showing that he leaned towards the Hebrew tongue as the
-all-comprehensive vehicle of instruction--the tongue which, he said,
-will be spoken in heaven, and which, by its “trigramical foundation,”
-is “capable of a regular expatiation into millions of words, no
-language like it.” Baxter was strongly excited by the deplorable
-destitution of the Gospel, but it inspired more of despair than of
-hope; it paralyzed rather than stimulated effort. “He that surveyeth
-the present state of the earth, and considereth, that scarcely a sixth
-part is Christian, and how small a part of them are reformed, and how
-small a part of them have much of the power of godliness, will be ready
-to think that Christ hath called almost all His chosen, and is ready
-to forsake the earth, rather than that He intendeth us such blessed
-days below as we desire. We shall have what we would, but not in this
-world.”[359] There are also several letters from Eliot to Boyle,
-written with touching simplicity--reports, in fact, of the missionary
-work in New England--in which the apostle to the Indians addresses
-the President of the Society as a right honourable, deeply learned,
-abundantly charitable, and constant, nursing father.[360]
-
-[Sidenote: CHARITIES.]
-
-Boyle devoted to the New England mission, £300 a year during his life,
-and, by his will, bequeathed a legacy of £100; and although several
-persons of distinction were nominally connected with the scheme, he was
-its moving-spring, its power and life. The meetings for the transaction
-of its affairs, which he commonly attended, were held at Alderman
-Ashurst’s residence in London--the first board of foreign missions in
-Protestant England, and the first mission-house of that kind in its
-enterprising metropolis. Missionary operations on a much larger scale
-were commenced after the Revolution.
-
-XIII. I have recorded several incidents which occurred in the
-Universities. Nothing like a history of those great institutions comes
-within the purpose of this work, nor is there any need to describe
-their state after the Restoration, as in former volumes I described it
-before that event:--because, during the Commonwealth, the Universities
-were extraordinarily circumstanced, but at the Restoration they
-returned to their normal condition, in which they have continued ever
-since. A few notices, however, indicative of the studies and habits of
-the members, may be appropriately included within this chapter.
-
-Sancroft conveys an unfavourable impression of the state of things
-at Cambridge in the year 1663:--“It would grieve you to hear of our
-public examinations; the Hebrew and Greek learning being out of fashion
-everywhere, and especially in the other Colleges, where we are forced
-to seek our candidates for fellowships; and the rational learning they
-pretend to, being neither the old philosophy, nor steadily any one of
-the new. In fine, though I must do the present society right, and say,
-that divers of them are very good scholars, and orthodox (I believe)
-and dutiful both to King and Church; yet methinks I find not that old
-genius and spirit of learning generally in the College that made it
-once so deservedly famous; nor shall I hope to retrieve it any way
-sooner, than by your directions who lived here in the most flourishing
-times of it.”[361]
-
-Not only would the transition from Puritan to Anglican occasion
-inconvenience, but a transition also occurred from the study of the
-old to the study of the new philosophy,--from Aristotle to Plato,
-and from the pursuit of metaphysics to the investigation of physical
-science. Lucas founded a professorship of Mathematics in the year 1663,
-to which office Barrow was the first appointed, and in his inaugural
-address, he eulogizes that department of knowledge which he was about
-to teach.[362]
-
-[Sidenote: UNIVERSITIES.]
-
-Another great change at Cambridge, consequent upon the Restoration, is
-seen in the decline of Calvinistic theology, the return of Anglican
-opinions, and especially the progress of the Latitudinarian schools of
-Divinity, described in a subsequent portion of this work. Turning to
-less important matters, it may be observed that Royal mandates became
-too common, and provoked refusals from the College authorities. Dr.
-Cudworth, Master of Christ’s, politely apologized for declining an
-order for the election of a son of Sir Richard Fanshaw, as a Fellow,
-pleading that “since the Restoration, their little College had received
-and obeyed ten Royal letters; and even received a manciple imposed
-by letter, though it was a thing never known before.” “When mandates
-are so plentifully granted they cannot possibly be all obeyed.”[363]
-North set himself decidedly against these mandates, as most mischievous
-abuses, and contrived by pre-elections to obviate their occurrence.
-“Out of the several years, four or five one under another, he caused
-to be pre-elected into fellowships scholars of the best capacities
-in the several years; which made it improbable another election
-should come about in so many years then next ensuing, for until all
-these elections were benefited there could be no vacancy, and that
-broke the course of mandates whilst he lived.” North was a High Tory,
-an advocate of absolute monarchy, a severe disciplinarian, and an
-austere man in his personal habits. Although his opinions accorded
-with those prevalent in the University, his conduct as the Head of
-a College made him unpopular; and it happened, one evening,--when
-sitting in his dining-room by the fire, the chimney being opposite to
-the windows, looking out into the great quadrangle,--that a stone was
-sent from the court through the window. He was “inwardly vexed, and
-soon after, the discourse fell upon the subject of people’s kicking
-against their superiors in government, who preserves them as children
-are preserved by parents; and then he had a scroll of instances, out of
-Greek history, to the same purpose, concluding that no conscientious
-magistrate can be popular, but in lieu of that, he must arm himself
-with equanimity.” He differed at times from the senior fellows, and
-at a meeting for business, when eight of them had determined to have
-their own way, and carry a point on which they had previously agreed,
-one of them attempted to effect his object by saying, “Master, since
-you will not agree, we must rise, and break up the meeting.” “Nay,” he
-replied, “that you shall not do, for I myself will rise and be gone
-first.”[364] This brought them round. The relation of such an incident
-gives an idea of the High Church Don at Cambridge much better than any
-general description, and throws amusing light on the social life of the
-University.
-
-The election of a new Chancellor was then, as it generally is, an
-exciting event for the University men, and every kind of influence
-was brought to bear upon the success of the respective competitors.
-In 1671, the Duke of Buckingham entered into a contest with the Earl
-of Arlington, for the enjoyment of the honour, and obtained the
-prize; Williamson, the Secretary of State, having without effect
-canvassed on the opposite side. Leading men apologized to him for not
-supporting his candidate, of which an instance appears in the following
-communication:--
-
-[Sidenote: UNIVERSITIES.]
-
- “For Joseph Williamson, Esq., Whitehall.--Sir,--My worthy
- friend,--This morning, about seven, I received the favour of
- your letter sent me by Dr. Turner, of St. John’s, and Dr.
- Cudworth our Master received another from you to the same
- effect. But we were so far engaged before, having been visited
- (as we call it here, for the Duke of Buckingham) on Sunday or
- Monday last, and the inclinations of the University lay so
- against an Oxford man (you know our academical humour) that
- no good could be done so late for my Lord Arlington, but the
- Duke was chosen this day with a _nemine contradicente_. You
- know, dear Sir, my personal obligations to you are such, and
- peculiarly in my expectancy for the professorship, that you
- might command not only my own suffrage, but all the friends I
- could make if it had been in time.
-
- “Believe me to be your much obliged and humble Servant,
-
- JOHN CARR.
-
- “CHRIST’S COLL., CAMBRIDGE,
- _May 11, 1671_.”
-
-There are other letters amongst the _State Papers_ on the same
-subject, including one from Dr. Cudworth, to Williamson, excusing
-himself for supporting the Duke instead of the Earl.
-
-Charles II. visited Cambridge on the 4th of October in the same year,
-and the whole body of students wearing academical habits, according to
-their several degrees, lined the streets as His Majesty visited the
-various buildings. He was received by the new Chancellor and the other
-authorities, who presented him with a “fair Bible,” accompanied by a
-short speech from the public orator. The King visited the University’s
-libraries and the Colleges of Trinity and St. John, and after dining at
-Trinity he saw a comedy acted there, with which he expressed himself
-well pleased.[365] In 1674, the Duke of Monmouth succeeded the Duke of
-Buckingham in the Chancellorship, and in that year we find the former
-sending a curious communication to the Eastern University.
-
-By His Majesty’s desire he noticed the liberty which several persons in
-holy orders had taken to wear their own hair and perukes of an unusual
-and unbecoming length, and rebuked them for it, strictly enjoining
-that all such, who professed the study of Divinity, should wear their
-hair in a manner more suitable to the gravity and sobriety of their
-profession. He also blamed them in His Majesty’s name for reading
-sermons, and commanded that preaching from MS., which took a beginning
-with the disorders of the late times, should be wholly laid aside,
-and that preachers should deliver their sermons, both in Latin and
-English, by memory or without book, as being a way of preaching which
-His Majesty judged most agreeable to the use of all foreign Churches,
-to the former custom of the University, and the nature and intention of
-the holy exercise itself.[366] These injunctions were anticipated at
-Oxford, where James, Duke of Ormond, continued Chancellor from 1669 to
-1688.
-
-[Sidenote: UNIVERSITIES.]
-
-“It is not long since,” writes Dr. Ralph Bathurst, President of
-Trinity, “we had notice of the Duke of Monmouth’s letter, written
-by His Majesty’s command, to the University of Cambridge, against
-_long hair_ and the _reading of sermons_. It was here thought
-advisable to obviate the like reproof to ourselves, by an early
-compliance with His Majesty’s desires, though we think ourselves much
-more blameless than they, especially in the last particular. To this
-end, I have this day published a programme, the copy whereof I have
-made bold to send you.”[367]
-
-With this amusing insight into academic life, may be coupled another
-of earlier date. Williamson, Secretary of State, presented to Queen’s
-College, a silver trumpet and two pairs of banners. Thanks were
-returned by Dr. Thomas Barlow, in the name of the Society, and the gift
-was described as “most welcome, not only for its cost and curiosity,
-but for its congruity to them who by statute are to be called to dinner
-with a trumpet, though fitter for him to give than for a poor College
-to receive, to call them to a mess of pottage and twopenny commons. It
-will be used on all solemn days, but at other times their old brass
-trumpet will serve the turn.” In another letter, it is remarked,
-“The Provost, and all the company, highly extol them, and are very
-grateful for them. The trumpet was long sounded in the quadrangle,
-wine was drunk through the hall, and venison pasties were at every
-table, there being a whole buck from Lady Foster, of Aldermaston,”
-besides Williamson’s from Woodstock.[368] Old Christmas and Candlemas
-customs were revived, and the senior undergraduates amused themselves
-at night before the charcoal fires by bringing in the freshmen, and
-making them “sit down on a form in the middle of the hall, joining to
-the declaimer’s desk,”--where they were required to “speak some pretty
-apothegm, or make a jest or bull;” and if the thing were not done
-cleverly, the unhappy wight was punished by the seniors, who would
-“_tuck_ him--that is set the nail of their thumb to his chin, just
-under the lip, and by the help of their other fingers under the chin,
-they would give him a mark which sometimes would produce blood.”[369]
-A picturesque usage occurred on Holy Thursday, when the Fellows of New
-College walked to Bartholomew’s Hospital, which was decked with fruit
-for the occasion, and then, after reading the Scriptures, and the
-singing of hymns, they offered silver to be divided amongst poor men;
-then they proceeded to Stockwell, where, after reading the epistle and
-gospel for the day, the Fellows in “the open place, like the ancient
-Druids, echoed and warbled out from the shady arbours, melodious
-melody, consisting of several parts, then most in fashion.”[370]
-
-[Sidenote: UNIVERSITIES.]
-
-The conduct of persons who from time to time acted the part of
-_Terræ filius_, had been complained of under the Commonwealth;
-it continued to be complained of after the Restoration. The excesses
-into which these lawless students were wont to run, with other
-corresponding extravagances, appear to have reached their greatest
-height in 1669, at the opening of the Sheldon theatre. South once, as
-University orator, delivered a long oration, in which he satirically
-inveighed against Cromwell, the Fanatics, the Royal Society, and the
-new philosophy:--and then pronounced encomiums upon the Archbishop,
-the building, the Vice-Chancellor, the Architect, and the Decorator,
-concluding with execrations, cast upon Fanatics, Conventicles, and
-Comprehension, “damning them _ad inferos, ad Gehennam_.” At the
-same Commemoration, the _Terræ filius_ gave so general offence,
-that Dr. Wallis says: “I believe the University hath thereby lost more
-reputation than they have gained by all the rest.” “The excellent
-Lady,” he adds, “which your letter mentions, was, in the broadest
-language represented as guilty of those crimes, of which, if there were
-occasion, you would not stick to be her compurgator.”[371]
-
-Complaints of the same kind were made years afterwards. The Bishop of
-Oxford, writing December 14, 1684, complains:--“The _Terræ filii_
-in this place have of late taken to themselves such licenses as were
-altogether intolerable, their scurrilous discourses passing not only
-the bounds of decency but of common humanity, so that it was necessary
-for the University to oppose sharp remedies to so prevailing an
-evil.”[372]
-
-Within eighteen months of the date of the Oxford decree for burning
-the books of Milton and others, there occurred another Act conceived
-in the same spirit. Lord Sunderland wrote to the Bishop of Oxford, Dr.
-John Fell, complaining of John Locke,--“He being,” remarks the Bishop
-in reply, “as your Lordship is truly informed, a person who was much
-trusted by the late Earl of Shaftesbury, and who is suspected to be
-ill-affected to the Government, I have for divers years had an eye upon
-him, but so close has his guard been on himself, that after several
-strict inquiries, I may confidently affirm that there is not any man in
-the College, however familiar with him, who has heard him speak a word
-either against, or so much as concerning the Government.” Yet, although
-Locke was so extremely cautious, the Bishop professed the greatest
-zeal in seeking his expulsion, and, after describing what he himself
-meant to do, adds: “If this method seem not effectual or speedy enough,
-and His Majesty, our founder and visitor, shall please to command his
-immediate remove, upon the receipt thereof, directed to the Dean and
-Chapter, it shall accordingly be executed.” A warrant, immediately
-despatched by Sunderland, signified the King’s pleasure, that John
-Locke should be removed from his student’s place, to which the Bishop
-obsequiously replied: “I hold myself bound in duty to signify to your
-Lordship that His Majesty’s command for the expulsion of Mr. Locke from
-this College is fully executed.”[373] This disgraceful deed originated,
-it is true, with the Sovereign, but the part taken by the Bishop, and
-the Dean and Chapter of Christchurch, with the silent acquiescence of
-the University, demonstrates what must have been the political and
-ecclesiastical atmosphere of the place at that time.
-
-We here terminate these somewhat rambling notices of the
-ecclesiastical, the religious, and the academic life of the period;
-and proceed to notice, in the next chapter, a very important subject
-connected with the state of the English Churches, which has not
-received from historians the attention it requires.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
-
-Theological science is a growth; and to its growth, as developed in our
-own day, the labours of a long line of students have contributed. The
-_genesis_ of doctrinal opinion is a subject worthy of much more
-careful research than it has yet received. To find out how particular
-dogmas have been broached and modified, how they have originated and
-been unfolded, goes far to fix their truth or their falsehood; and
-any man who would thoroughly understand the theology of this country,
-must study carefully the chief authors of theological literature
-in the seventeenth century. Andrewes, Donne, Jackson, Thorndike,
-Taylor, Pearson, and Bull--More, Smith, Cudworth, and Barrow--Goodwin,
-Owen, Baxter, Howe, and Charnock--were all eminent Divines of that
-period--all, in different degrees, erudite scholars--all hard
-thinkers; and although they belonged to schools of thought differing
-in important respects, inasmuch as they read each other’s books, and
-answered each other’s arguments, they could not but influence each
-other’s minds. To ponder and to compare them is an exercise helpful
-to a theological thinker in his search after truth. Unless we believe
-in the infallibility of our own Church, whatever that Church may
-be--unless we also believe our own Church to have collected every
-part of theological truth, to have examined it under every possible
-aspect, and to have secured the best possible point of view--all of us
-who engage in sacred studies are bound not to confine ourselves to the
-perusal of authors who belong to the way of thinking which prevails in
-our own denomination. Rome has her _Index Expurgatorius_, and in
-this she is perfectly consistent. Protestantism, whilst it condemns
-the Romanist prohibition of inquiry, is excessively inconsistent, if
-it encourages similar exclusiveness on the part of its own disciples,
-or allows a wider circle of reading only for controversial purposes.
-The narrowness of theological schools, and the bigotry of religious
-sects, is very much owing to a limited acquaintance with books, and
-to a prejudiced feeling against what is read when accustomed limits
-are overstepped. And in reference to the authors of the seventeenth
-century, it cannot be fairly denied--after all which may justly be
-said touching the dryness and prolixity of their dissertations--that a
-depth, thoroughness, and power may be found in some of these men which
-we miss, with a few exceptions, in Divines of our own day.
-
-As the writings of which I speak, together with other influences, have
-served to produce phases of religious thought amongst ourselves, so
-amongst them, the writings of earlier theologians, together with other
-influences, served to produce the characteristic peculiarities of their
-religious thought. We are apt to underrate the _number_ of ways in
-which thinking is affected; and we often forget that a simple result
-may proceed from most complex and composite causes. Many people imagine
-that the climate of a country is determined entirely by position in
-point of latitude--that every mile nearer the pole it must be colder,
-and every mile nearer the equator it must be warmer; whereas numerous
-and diversified agencies interfere with climate, and produce wonderful
-curves in the isothermal lines. So, many people imagine that one
-cause--the study of the Bible--solely determines theological opinion;
-whereas, forces of all descriptions--even climate and scenery, race
-and language, laws and memories, especially early education, domestic
-life, books, friendships, and idiosyncrasies--have a share in the
-result. Divines two centuries ago might not, any more than ourselves,
-be conscious of the diversified and subtle operations to which they
-were subjected; but that circumstance does not interfere with the fact
-itself.
-
-[Sidenote: THEOLOGY.]
-
-There had been four broad lines of theological opinion long before
-the middle of the seventeenth century, as there have been four broad
-lines running on ever since. In the second century and onward we
-meet with _patristic orthodoxy_, the great facts and principles
-of Christianity taught by the Apostles being illustrated and
-defended, especially in the Nicene age, by thoughtful men, who, in
-the use of their natural faculties, by the blessing of Almighty God,
-explained and established much which is true; not, however, without
-an admixture of something which was false. In the third century
-we meet with _Alexandrian philosophy_, which, by a natural
-tendency, aimed at bringing the intellectual culture of the age
-into connection with the Gospel; and therefore dwelt much upon the
-reasonableness of Christianity, and the points of affinity between
-it and certain forms of human opinion. In the fourth century we find
-_dogmatic Evangelicalism_ gathered up by Augustine, and woven
-into a distinctive system of Christian thought. At the same time the
-element of _Mysticism_ appears at work, preparing for a vigorous
-expression of itself during the middle ages. Throughout those ages
-these four currents are traceable, generic resemblances, being marked,
-of course, by specific varieties. At the Reformation two of these,
-the Nicene and the Augustinian, are manifest enough in the English
-Protestant Church, both struggling against Rome; each also struggling
-with the other. The traces of Alexandrianism and of Mysticism, after
-disappearing for awhile, become distinctly visible in the seventeenth
-century.
-
-It is impossible not to connect the Anglican development of that period
-with the faith, the polity, and the worship of the Nicene age, and the
-Puritan doctrines of the same period, with the theology and spiritual
-life of Augustine. Nor can there be any doubt that the so-called
-Latitudinarianism (I use the word in its historical sense) of the
-Cambridge school comes in lineal succession to that of Alexandria. And
-if Mysticism, as existing amongst Quakers, be not capable of showing
-distinct historical links of connection with previous thinking, it
-is plain that its elements had existed long before: a fact, indeed,
-insisted upon by its more erudite exponents.[374] Anglicans, Puritans,
-Latitudinarians, and Mystics were all of ancient lineage, although
-some were unacquainted with, and might even be prejudiced against,
-their ancestry. Besides, as already indicated, there were other and
-more immediate influences at work. The ecclesiastical revolutions and
-conflicts under Elizabeth and the Stuarts, the traditions of domestic
-life, parental and school education, the atmosphere pervading social
-circles, and especially the constitution of individual minds--these
-served to shape systems which stood in direct and determined conflict
-with one another. Nor let it be forgotten that, though divers factors
-of religious thought may be enumerated, others exist which lie too deep
-for discovery and analysis, even by the most subtle inquirers. If it
-be true generally that we have no complete science of history, it is
-eminently true of the history of theological opinion. There is mystery
-in all growth, for there is mystery in all life; and it is idle to
-suppose that, at least in this world, we shall ever arrive at a perfect
-philosophy of the progress or activity of mind, in reference to that
-which is at once, of all subjects, the most practical and the most
-mysterious.
-
-[Sidenote: THEOLOGY.]
-
-It will assist the reader in understanding what follows, to observe
-that, whilst all the theologians to be described appealed to Scripture,
-each class had its own standard and principles of interpretation; and
-that, whilst all professed to take the Bible as a whole, each selected
-from it some favourite parts. The Anglicans, professedly as well as
-actually, adopted the teaching of the first four or five centuries as
-a guide to the meaning of Holy Writ. They looked upon that period as
-the purest and ripest age of Christian wisdom, and concluded that the
-Church of after-days has been, and is, bound to adhere to the faith
-and order then established. The Puritans had no such idea of patristic
-teaching, but contended for the full right of private judgment. Some
-of the Fathers they valued and loved, particularly Augustine; yet
-without attaching any special authority even to him. They professed
-to come to the sacred oracles with unbiassed minds, and it is one of
-their characteristic notions that the Holy Spirit, bestowed upon devout
-seekers, remains alone the unerring Expositor of His own Word. The
-Latitudinarians had their favourite authors, particularly of the Greek
-philosophical school; and although they did not adopt the opinions of
-the Puritans as to the teaching of the Spirit, any more than did the
-Anglicans, yet, in common with both of them, they were prepared to seek
-Divine assistance in the study of the sacred volume. What, however,
-they mainly relied upon was their own reason. The Quakers, in their
-turn, extolled the inward light, the illumination of Christ’s Spirit,
-as explaining and supplementing the written Word. The Fathers, the Holy
-Spirit, human reason, and the inward light, were the interpreters to
-which different classes of Scripture students looked for help in their
-momentous investigations. In connection with this difference another
-presents itself. The Anglicans insisted upon those parts of Scripture
-which relate to the Holy Trinity, the Incarnation, and the Atonement,
-and to the ordinances of baptism and the Lord’s Supper. They used the
-priesthood and rites of Judaism for the support of their own views
-regarding sacerdotal ministrations. Diocesan episcopacy and Apostolical
-succession they endeavoured to deduce from the New Testament; but they
-were obliged to rest principally upon patristic records for what they
-believed and taught upon these subjects.
-
-[Sidenote: THEOLOGY.]
-
-Passages relating to justification by faith, to the election of grace,
-and to the adoption of believers, do not stand out in their writings,
-as do the other class of passages to which I have referred. In this
-respect the Anglicans differed from the Puritans. By the latter,
-texts bearing upon the topics now mentioned, in connection with other
-texts touching the Divinity of our Lord, and the Holy Trinity, and
-the satisfaction made by Christ upon the cross, were most abundantly
-cited, illustrated, and enforced. The Puritans regarded such texts
-as distinctive of the Gospel--as rendering it a suitable message of
-redemption and love to sinful men. I scruple not to say that I warmly
-sympathize with them in this last respect. The Gospel is glad tidings
-of great joy to all people: this is the pith of the blessed message,
-“Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners.” “His name shall
-be called Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins.”
-But whilst I admire and honour the Puritans for their attachment to
-evangelic truth, I cannot conceal my conviction that they too, in their
-turn, are chargeable with one-sidedness. They had their favourite
-verses, and, in some instances, dwelt upon them to the neglect of
-others, and without fully considering the general current of Scripture
-instructions--which current is really still more important and decisive
-than particular sentences, which are apt to be looked at apart from
-their connection. Some of the Puritan Divines did not sufficiently
-consider those passages which recognize in the Atonement an element
-of moral power over the human soul; or those passages which present
-justification and sanctification, in their inseparable relation, as
-two sides of one and the same redemption; or those passages which
-teach the power of the human will, the free agency of man, and his
-personal responsibility; or those passages which unfold the sweet and
-beautiful fatherhood of Almighty God. The reaction produced by the
-errors of Popery in identifying sanctification with justification, in
-overlooking the free grace of the Gospel, and in fostering notions of
-human merit, drove the Puritans into extreme antagonistic positions,
-where the forensic idea of righteousness too often overshadowed the
-moral idea, and an inevitable and resistless fatalism took the place of
-Divine parental government at once merciful and righteous. Some of the
-Puritans, indeed, lie less open to such exceptions than did others, as
-will appear in the subsequent analysis of their works.
-
-The Latitudinarians also had their favourite portions of hallowed
-Writ, raising the moral teaching of the New Testament, and what they
-considered the large and liberal views of humanity given in the Bible,
-above the doctrinal sentences which so much occupied the attention of
-Anglicans on the one hand, and above those which equally occupied the
-attention of Puritans on the other. To Latitudinarians, Christianity
-seemed more an ethical than a doctrinal system; and in their writings
-evangelic truth shines with a very subdued and chilly kind of
-illumination.
-
-The Quakers, too, had their favourite verses, and were continually
-insisting upon those which, as they thought, supported the idea of an
-inward light.
-
-What has now been imperfectly advanced in relation to predominant lines
-of thinking in the seventeenth century is to be accepted only in a
-general sense. One writer differed so much from another, that, whilst
-resemblances exist, mere general statements respecting them are likely
-to mislead, unless they are checked and modified by a careful review of
-individual opinions.
-
-Such a review is now to be attempted, with a full conviction of its
-very great difficulties.
-
-[Sidenote: THEOLOGY.]
-
-Taking the period between the opening of the Long Parliament and the
-Revolution (1640–1688), I might divide it into two epochs--the one
-extending as far as the end of the Commonwealth, the other beginning
-at that crisis. Modes of thought of the kind just pointed out can
-be traced along the whole course, abreast of each other. The two
-antagonistic systems are Anglicanism and Puritanism; and from 1640
-to 1660, Puritanism is seen in the ascendant, as a reaction against
-Anglicanism; and from 1660 to 1688, Anglicanism is in the ascendant,
-as a reaction against Puritanism. No doubt some slight differences
-obtained between the Anglicanism of the first twenty years and the
-Anglicanism of the last twenty-eight, and the same may be said of the
-Puritanism of the first and second of those generations; but there
-is no necessity for breaking the history into two parts, since the
-general identity of each system is preserved throughout the whole
-period, and all the leading representatives lived and studied, and
-most of them acted and wrote, both before and after the Restoration;
-besides, to separate their later from their earlier works would destroy
-the unity of this narrative, and create confusion in the reader’s
-mind. The Latitudinarians appeared at Cambridge before the death of
-Oliver Cromwell, and at that period began to produce some effect upon
-theological speculation and religious life; but it was not until
-afterwards that their characteristic tendencies became fully apparent.
-Quaker Mysticism took its rise in the midst of the Commonwealth era,
-and continued its course, with increasing power, up to the hour of
-the Revolution. Therefore to cut in two the theological history of
-this half century would be inconvenient; and although the plan which
-I adopt is open to objection, I shall select examples of the teaching
-throughout that period, without adopting any chronological subdivision.
-I shall begin with the Anglicans, then notice the Latitudinarians,
-then touch upon the Quaker Mystics, and end with the Puritans. My
-endeavour will be to state them as fairly as I can; not to indulge in
-vague generalization, but to give their own words and turns of thought
-whenever it is possible; and, by references as well as citations,
-to supply the means of rectifying any mistakes into which I may
-unfortunately happen to fall. In stating arguments on different sides,
-I shall endeavour to guard against colouring reports of opinion with my
-own predilections or prejudices. At the same time, I shall not refrain
-from occasionally indicating, in a few words, my own belief; for no man
-who has deep convictions touching these subjects, however he may strive
-to write with impartiality about various parties, will dare to write
-with indifference upon what he conceives to be vital truths. Moreover,
-it appears to me very important to notice certain circumstances in
-the lives of these authors; for it is quite clear to my mind, that we
-cannot accurately understand the history of theology, or duly estimate
-theological opinions, apart from the biography of the theologians
-themselves.
-
-Herbert Thorndike first claims attention. He possessed a mind which
-was singularly acute and comprehensive. He had trained himself to the
-practice of subtle reasoning, yet he generally gives, in his writings,
-indications of no small measure of what Englishmen call common sense;
-and, on every page, he exhibits those rich and varied treasures of
-theological learning which a quiet life of study alone can enable any
-one to accumulate. It cannot be denied that the formal method employed
-in his arguments is often quite unimpeachable; yet, whilst logical in
-reasoning, he is illogical in arrangement; and his discursive habits
-of thought often tempt him into zigzag courses, and lead him to double
-his path, and retrace his steps, and come back to some point which the
-reader concludes the author had finished. And to this serious defect
-he adds another: his crabbed and crooked style presents the most
-infelicitous collocation of words, perhaps, to be found in English
-literature, many of his sentences needing to be translated into some
-plainer form before they can be understood. What a contrast, in point
-of style, does the student find, when, leaving the majestic diction of
-Hooker, or the flowing rhythm of Jackson, he turns to the perusal of
-Thorndike’s paragraphs! Yet, in spite of drawbacks, Thorndike deserves
-to be carefully studied. No other theologian of his age, or, indeed, of
-any other, has wrought out the Anglican theory with such elaboration
-and completeness. The disciples of that system find in his books an
-arsenal of defence; and its opponents should examine carefully his
-positions, if they would overthrow the citadel in which Divines of his
-order are wont to entrench themselves. But he ought not to be studied
-simply for controversial purposes: any large-minded student, with
-sympathy for God’s truth wherever found, may derive great advantage
-from many parts of this good man’s writings.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--THORNDIKE.]
-
-In common with some other Divines of that day, he passed through a
-change of opinion, and that at an early period of life. He went to
-Cambridge with no strong theological bias of any kind, and entered
-Trinity College at a time when that College was accused neither of
-Puritan nor of Romanizing tendencies. But he thought less unfavourably
-of Calvinism at the commencement of his studies than he did during his
-subsequent career. At first he did not, without some qualification,
-condemn the doctrine of final perseverance; also he then opposed other
-parts of the system upon grounds which he afterwards abandoned, as not
-sufficiently distinct and fundamental. He was also far less severe when
-controverting the arguments of Nonconformists in the former than in the
-latter period of his life.[375] Patristic studies, to a large extent,
-most likely produced the change which he experienced; and his ejectment
-from his Fellowship at Trinity by the Presbyterians would naturally
-serve to increase his growing distaste for their distinguishing tenets.
-
-The book in which he unfolds his scheme of divinity was written before
-the Restoration, and bears the title of _An Epilogue to the Tragedy
-of the Church of England_ (1659): a title which provoked the
-criticisms of his friends, especially afterwards, when the book proved
-to be a prologue to that Church’s revival. The work contains _The
-Principles of Christian Truth_; _The Covenant of Grace_; and
-_The Laws of the Church_.
-
-In laying down the principles of Christian truth, Thorndike, as an
-Anglican, somewhat startles his reader by his first position, that
-reason is to decide controversies of faith[376]--a form of words which,
-taken alone, certainly conveys an idea very different from what the
-writer intends. Any rationalistic interpretation is prevented by what
-follows. He proceeds, indeed, to explain that neither the private
-teaching of the Spirit of God to the individual soul on the one
-hand, nor the authority of the Church in relation to men in general
-on the other, can be the ground of believing. But, on that account,
-he does not enthrone human reason. He adds, that there is obscurity
-in Scripture, all truth being in it _not explicitly_ but only
-_implicitly_; and he argues that whilst the Bible is sufficient in
-one sense, it is not so in another, and that it therefore needs such
-interpretation as is supplied by the traditions of the Church.[377]
-The use of reason (or reasoning) in matters of faith is resolved by
-him into this--that by it “all undertake to persuade all,” and its
-only scope is in the examination of evidence. Yet what are commonly
-called the evidences of Christianity are very much overlooked in
-Thorndike’s writings. There are numerous incidental allusions to the
-opinions of Herbert and Hobbes. Sometimes these writers are grappled
-with; but reliance on reasoning is abandoned when, by this Divine,
-outlawry is maintained to be “the penalty of the Leviathan, and all
-that have or may follow him either into apostasy or atheism.”[378]
-Thorndike, indeed, touches on both the external and internal proofs of
-revealed religion, but he nowhere, that I can find, thoroughly and at
-length discusses the matter. I may here observe, in passing, that he
-speaks with approval of the way in which the Jewish Doctors resolve
-inspiration into different degrees.[379] But the interpretation of
-Christianity is, in his view, the office of the Church. The Church,
-he maintains, is a permanent teacher, its permanence depending upon
-Apostolical succession, and its tuition finding expression in the
-decisions of Councils and in the writings of Fathers; the authority of
-the latter being explained as not arising out of personal qualities of
-learning and holiness, but out of ecclesiastical position. Tradition
-limits the interpretation of Holy Writ; but this principle “pretends
-not any general rule for the interpretation of Scripture, even in those
-things which concern the rule of faith, but infers a prescription
-against anything that can be alleged out of Scripture, that, if it
-may appear contrary to that which the whole Church hath received
-and held from the beginning, it cannot be the true meaning of that
-Scripture which is alleged to prove it.” At the same time Thorndike
-says, that the power of the Church limits the tradition of Apostles
-only in matters of ceremony and order, such as are indifferent in
-themselves; changes in circumstances, and in the usages of society,
-rendering changes of that nature necessary and unavoidable: a
-conclusion equivalent to the well-known one that the Church hath
-power, within certain bounds, to decree rites and ceremonies. Heresy,
-Thorndike defines as consisting in the denial of something necessary
-to salvation; and schism to consist in a departure from the unity
-of the Church, whether from heresy, or from any other cause. Upon
-these principles--which he defends at great length, not without
-many discursions, and sometimes in a manner which it is difficult to
-follow--Thorndike declares the Church of England to have laid her deep
-foundations; and her main position is by him asserted to be, that,
-repudiating all pretensions to infallibility, she owns tradition to be
-her guide, and requires that “no interpretation of the Scriptures be
-alleged contrary to the consent of the Fathers.”[380]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--THORNDIKE.]
-
-The covenant of grace is examined by this Divine at great length; and,
-if I may be allowed the attempt, I would give an outline of his method
-somewhat as follows:--
-
-I. The _condition_ of that covenant is the contract of baptism,
-and that contract is identical with justifying faith. Such faith is not
-simply credence, or trust, or persuasion--it is not merely the belief
-of a Divine testimony, or a reliance upon a Divine person--nor is it a
-conviction that one is already justified and predestinated to life; but
-is an acceptation of Christianity, “embracing and professing it” as a
-whole. Faith, as enjoined by St. Paul and St. James, and as exemplified
-in the lives of the Hebrew patriarchs, is essentially practical; and
-when the former Apostle puts faith in opposition to works, he means
-the works of Jewish law, and not the works of Gospel precept. Faith
-is rooted “in the affection of the will, not in the perfection of the
-understanding.” Yet good works are entirely the production of Divine
-grace.[381] Though the Fathers are free to acknowledge, with St.
-Paul, the doctrine of justification by faith alone, they are, on the
-other side, so copious in attributing the promises of the Gospel to
-Christian obedience, that it may be truly said, there is not one of
-them from whom sufficient authority may not be drawn in favour of it: a
-concurrence which amounts to a tradition of the whole Church upon this
-important point.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--THORNDIKE.]
-
-II. The _necessity_ of the covenant of grace arises out of
-original sin, which is confessed by David and St. Paul, which consists
-in concupiscence, and which cleaves to every man by his first birth,
-the birth of a carnal nature.[382]
-
-III. The _Mediator_ of the covenant is the Divine Christ, the
-Angel of the Lord, whose apparitions of old “were prefaces to the
-Incarnation”--the Word, who was in the beginning, by whom all things
-were created, and who was made flesh. He is “the great God,” with St.
-Paul; the “true God,” with St. John; the “only Lord God,” with St.
-Jude. Scripture abounds in proofs of His Godhead. To the full meaning
-of these titles, as expressed by other texts in equivalent terms, the
-early Church’s belief in Christ’s Divinity, and the writings of the
-ante-Nicene Fathers, Ignatius, Justin, Irenæus, Clement, and Origen,
-bear concurrent witness. The fact of a Trinity in the Godhead is
-fully and clearly stated in Scripture. The admission of the mystery
-is reconcilable with reason; but no one can explain the secrets of
-the Divine nature, and it is only rational that, on such a subject,
-we should submit to the teaching of revelation. “All dispute about
-essence, and persons, and natures, and all the terms whereby either the
-Scriptures express themselves in this point, or the Church excludes
-the importunities of heresies from the true sense of the Christian
-faith, improves no man’s understanding an inch in this mystery. The
-service it does, is to teach men the language of the Church, by
-distinguishing that sense of several sayings which is, and that which
-is not, consistent with the faith. And if any man hereupon proceed, by
-discourse upon the nature of the subject, to infer what is and what is
-not such, his understanding is unsufferable.”[383]
-
-IV. The _method_ of the covenant is gracious. All its provisions
-depend entirely upon the grace of Christ. But salvation is not through
-any Divine predestination of the will of man. God determines not
-what the moral acts of His creatures shall be in themselves, but
-only the practical results of them. The soul is free from necessity,
-though not from bondage; and the doctrine of the predetermination
-of the human will is not the root but the rooting up of freedom and
-of Christianity. Nothing formally determines the will of man, but
-his own act. Predestination to the enjoyment of grace is absolute,
-but predestination to the enjoyment of glory is conditional, and has
-respect to character. The end _to_ which God predestinates is
-not the end _for_ which He predestinates. Grace is the reward of
-the right use of grace. Upon this entire subject, the tradition of
-the Church runs counter to Predestinarianism, to Arminianism, and to
-Pelagianism.[384]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--THORNDIKE.]
-
-Thorndike says, in reference to Calvinism: “It seems that God’s
-predestination must of force appoint salvation to them that are to be
-saved, in the first place; from thence proceeding to design the way and
-order by which the person designed to it may be induced of his own free
-choice to accept the means of it. This slight mistake,” he observes,
-“seems to have been the occasion of many horrible imaginations, which
-even Christian Divines have had, of God’s design from everlasting to
-create the most part of men on purpose to glorify Himself by condemning
-them to everlasting torments, though in consideration of the sins which
-they shall have done.” “The mistake is,” he remarks, “that the end of
-the creature by God’s appointment, is taken for God’s end, which though
-it be His end because He appointeth it for His creature, yet it is not
-any end that He seeks for Himself.” God, being of Himself sufficient
-for Himself, can have no end upon human beings. He is personally
-disinterested. Nothing accrues to Him, nothing is lost by Him; all
-the gain or loss is by the creature; and, having given a moral law to
-intelligent beings, He will abide by that law, and bestow happiness
-upon them accordingly.
-
-Salvation is through the satisfaction of Christ, who, by His
-propitiatory sacrifice perfected in death, paid the ransom of human
-souls. He expiates our sin by bearing the punishment of it, and we are
-reconciled to God by the Gospel in consideration of Christ’s obedience.
-This is taught by the sacrifices according to the law, by the prophet
-Isaiah, and in the New Testament. Socinus is altogether in error,
-and the doctrine that Divine grace rests on a satisfaction made for
-guilt is the doctrine of the Catholic Church. Yet neither according to
-Scripture nor according to patristic teaching, are our sins imputable
-to Christ, or His sufferings imputable to us: the latter are but the
-meritorious causes of the Christian covenant, and the promises of the
-Gospel depend upon His active as well as His passive obedience. Yet
-though all this be true--though salvation is now actually conveyed only
-through the work of Christ--yet God might have reconciled man to
-Himself in some other way.[385]
-
-Salvation is not secured by a decree of perseverance, but the saying of
-the schoolman is true--_Deus neminem deserit, nisi desertus_, God
-leaves no man that leaves not Him first; and, though the assurance of
-salvation is not included in the act of justifying faith, it follows as
-the consequence of it.[386]
-
-Finally, with respect to the covenant of grace, salvation is
-not through obedience to the original law of God--for that is
-impossible--but through the fulfilment of evangelical precepts. The
-fulfilment, if not perfect, may be acceptable, for there are venial as
-well as mortal offences; and if, among men, friendship long exercised
-suffers not a man who stands upon his credit to break with his friend
-upon ordinary offences, we see the reason why God so often helps His
-ancient people in respect of that covenant, which they, for their
-parts, had made void and forfeited; and therefore how much more He
-obligeth Himself to pass by these failures and weaknesses which
-Christians endeavour to overcome, although they cannot fully do it.[387]
-
-Thorndike describes not so much salvation itself as the means of
-salvation. He nowhere endorses the dogma of Trent which confounds
-justification with sanctification; neither does he clearly distinguish
-between these two blessings. In his writings much may be found upon
-justifying faith, little upon justification as a distinct theological
-idea; and what little may be discovered is by no means explicit.[388]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--THORNDIKE.]
-
-Such is a very condensed account of Thorndike’s scheme of salvation by
-grace. Yet enough is seen to show the theological student how closely
-this Anglican Divine in some points touches upon the creed of the
-Romish Church, how now and then he even crosses the line; and the fact
-is made still more clear by his distinctions between matters of precept
-and matters of counsel,--by his notions of Christian perfection,--by
-his stating that the backslider’s recovery of God’s grace is a work of
-labour and time,--by his doctrine of the efficacy of penance,--and by
-the position, that there is a sense in which the works of Christians
-may be regarded as satisfying justice with regard to sin, and as
-meriting heaven.[389]
-
-What Thorndike advances respecting the laws of the Church must be
-reported with still more brevity. The Church is founded upon the duty
-of communicating in Divine offices, particularly in the sacrament of
-the Eucharist, wherein, with the elements, Christ Himself is present,
-not simply through the living faith of the recipient, but because of
-the true profession of Christianity in the Church; nevertheless, the
-invisible faithfulness of the heart, in making good or in resolving
-to make good the said profession, makes the receiving of it effectual
-to the spiritual eating and drinking of Christ’s body and blood.
-Which Eucharist also, according to the New Testament and the Fathers,
-Thorndike maintains, may be accounted a sacrifice, first as to the
-oblation of the bread and wine; secondly, as to the offering of prayer;
-thirdly, as to the consecration of the elements, whereby they become
-a propitiatory and impetratory offering; and fourthly, as to the
-presenting to God of the bodies and souls of the receivers. He argues
-for the baptism of infants, on the grounds, that there is no other
-cure for original sin; that the children of Christians are holy, and
-may be made disciples; and that the effect of circumcision under the
-law inferreth the effect of baptism under the Gospel. This third book
-also treats of penance, extreme unction, marriage, government, and,
-in particular, of the Papal supremacy, and of the Presbyterian and
-Independent schemes; of the days, places, forms, and subject matter of
-Divine service; of the state of souls after death; of prayer to saints,
-and image worship; of monachism, and the celibacy of the clergy; and,
-lastly, of the relation of the ecclesiastical and civil powers. In some
-cases this Divine draws a pretty broad distinction between what he
-holds as Catholic views and the views which are held by the Church of
-Rome; but in other cases the difference is so refined that it becomes
-almost imperceptible. No doubt Thorndike may, on technical grounds,
-be vindicated from the charge of Romanism proper; and it may be said
-that, in his defence of prayers for the dead, he follows Ussher; and
-that, in his doctrine respecting the Eucharist, he symbolizes with
-Cosin and with Bramhall, with Hammond and Taylor and Ken.[390] Between
-him and many clergymen of the Established Church in the present day
-a strong resemblance exists; but certainly, in the judgment of other
-theologians, whose opinions will be stated hereafter, and in the
-judgment of such as may be deemed their successors, the tendency of
-Thorndike’s teaching is decidedly towards Rome; and, whatever may
-be the distinction drawn between the Catholicism taught by him, and
-the Catholicism of the Council of Trent, that distinction, in some
-particulars, although comprehended by metaphysical Divines, is scarcely
-to be discerned by plain English understandings.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--BULL.]
-
-George Bull may be placed next to Herbert Thorndike. Bull was admitted
-into Exeter College, Oxford, two years before the imposition of the
-Engagement. That Act, in 1649, ejected him; in consequence of which he
-became a student in the house of a Presbyterian Rector. The Puritan
-influence in the rectory, however, became neutralized by the Rector’s
-son, through whose friendship the young student came to study Hooker,
-Hammond, Taylor, Grotius, and Episcopius. The father foresaw the
-result, and, looking at it from his own point of view, would often say,
-“My son will corrupt Mr. Bull.”[391]
-
-Bull has not, like Thorndike, bequeathed any treatise on systematic
-Divinity in general, nor has he propounded views of the extreme kind,
-which the former has done in his _Laws of the Church_; but between
-Bull’s two great works and certain aspects of Thorndike’s teaching
-there is a considerable resemblance.
-
-The first great work produced by him is his _Harmonia Apostolica_,
-published in 1670, in which he propounds his views upon justification.
-His general method is to examine the Scriptures in the light of
-patristic teaching; and, adopting the same principles of interpretation
-as Thorndike, he arrives at similar conclusions. He is quite as
-learned as the contemporary of his earlier days, and he is far more
-lucid and methodical in his mode of treatment; for he can be easily
-followed, and he can be clearly understood. Also, he is much more
-cautious in his statements, and he carefully strives to save himself
-from misapprehension. He attributes salvation entirely to Christ’s
-meritorious obedience, of which obedience Christ’s death was the
-consummation and completion. Bull maintains that this obedience
-satisfied Divine justice, that this alone is the efficacious cause
-of eternal life; and he constantly insists that no man can, without
-Divine grace, and the assistance of the Holy Spirit, as flowing from
-the precious side of the Crucified One, perform the conditions of the
-covenant.
-
-He further distinctly states, as the result of a careful examination
-of Scripture, “that the word justification, in this subject, has
-the meaning of a judicial term, and signifies the act of God as
-a Judge, according to the merciful law of Christ, acquitting the
-accused, pronouncing him righteous, and admitting him to the reward
-of righteousness, that is, eternal life.”[392] But, though adopting
-the _forensic_ view of justification, and thus moving in the
-same line as Martin Luther, Bull differs from the German Reformer in
-this very important respect--that, instead of taking law to mean law
-apart from the Gospel, he explains it to mean law as incorporated in
-the Gospel; for he says, “It must be ever observed, as an undeniable
-truth, that Christ, in His sermon, not only explained the moral law,
-but also laid it down as His own, and required its observance, assisted
-by the grace of the Gospel, from all Christians, as a condition of His
-covenant indispensably necessary.” It is this view of the law which
-lies at the foundation of Bull’s theory of justification. Consistently
-with it, he reduces his argument to this syllogistic form--“Whoever
-is acquitted by the law of Christ must necessarily fulfil that law;
-but by faith alone, without works, no one fulfils the law of Christ;
-therefore by faith alone, without works, no one is acquitted by the law
-of Christ.”[393]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--BULL.]
-
-Having arrived at such a conclusion from the study of the Epistle
-of St. James, then comes the _pinch_: how is such a conclusion
-to be reconciled with the teaching of St. Paul? The learned author,
-after hastily disposing of other methods of reconciliation, prepares
-for defending his own, by laying down the principle that St. Paul’s
-teaching is to be explained by St. James’ and not St. James’ by
-St. Paul’s; our critic believing, with Augustine, that St. James
-wrote after St. Paul--an assumption contradicted by modern Biblical
-criticism. Bull, then, asserts, that faith, to which justification
-“is attributed by St. Paul, is not to be understood as one single
-virtue, but denotes the whole condition of the Gospel covenant--that
-is, comprehends in one word all the works of Christian piety.”
-“Assuredly,” he adds, “it is clearer than light itself, that the
-faith to which St. Paul attributes justification is only that which
-worketh by love, which is the same as a new creature, which, in short,
-contains in itself the observance of the commandments of God.” In
-order to get over the great objection arising from the plain words
-of St. Paul, that “a man is justified by faith, _without the deeds
-of the law_,” this controversialist attempts to show, that the
-works which St. Paul excludes from justification are not all kinds of
-works, but works of a certain description only,--namely, works of the
-Mosaic law, and works of the natural law, works done in obedience to
-the Jewish ritual, and works done by the force of nature. Bull then
-proceeds to dwell at considerable length upon the Apostle’s argument
-from the universality of sin, and the weakness of the law; and, as the
-result, he presents two deductions--first, that the Apostle entirely
-excludes from justification only those works which are performed by the
-aid of the Mosaic, and of the natural law, without the grace of the
-Gospel; secondly, that the Apostle’s argument, so far from taking away
-from justification the necessity of good works, proves that the true
-righteousness of works is absolutely necessary to justification, and
-that the Gospel is the only efficacious method by which any man can be
-brought to practise such righteousness.[394]
-
-The coincidence of Bull’s teaching with Thorndike’s, as to the grounds
-of faith, appears in the following passage:--
-
-“God knows the secrets of my heart; so far am I from the itch of
-originality in theological doctrines, ... that whatever are sanctioned
-by the consent of Catholic Fathers and ancient Bishops, though my own
-small ability attain not to them, yet I will embrace them with all
-reverence. In truth I had already learned, by no few experiments, in
-writing my _Harmony_, while yet a young man, what now in my mature
-age I am most thoroughly persuaded of, that no one can contradict
-Catholic consent, however he may seem to be countenanced for a while by
-some passages of Scripture wrongly understood, and by the illusions of
-unreal arguments, without being found in the end to have contradicted
-both Scripture and sound reason. I daily deplore and sigh over the
-unbridled license of prophesying which obtained for some years in this
-our England, ... under the tyranny of what some considered a wretched
-necessity. In a word, my hearty desire is this, Let the ancient customs
-and doctrines remain in force.”[395]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--BULL.]
-
-The publication of the _Harmonia Apostolica_ occasioned much
-controversy. Answers appeared, written by Charles Gataker, son of
-Thomas Gataker, one of the Westminster Divines; by Joseph Truman,--who,
-though refusing to conform as a clergyman to the Established Church,
-remained in it as a lay communicant; by Dr. Thomas Tully, Principal
-of St. Edmund’s Hall, Oxford, a man of high reputation for learning
-and ability; and by John Tombes, the Anti-pædobaptist,--who, like
-Truman, declined ministerial conformity, but at least occasionally
-practised communion. Truman differed from Bull less than did the other
-combatants. Not to be wearisome, I would merely state, that his part
-in the dispute mainly turned upon the question, What is grace? Bull,
-in Truman’s estimation, regarding it as a bestowment of spiritual
-power, to be improved or misimproved, according to the will of the
-recipient; Truman, who in this respect anticipated the opinions of
-modern Calvinists, representing grace as a Divine influence securing
-the obedience of the will to the Gospel of Christ. He highly commended
-that sober sentiment of the great Bishop Sanderson, who, confessing
-his own disability to reconcile the consistency of grace and free-will
-in conversion, and being sensible that they must both be maintained,
-tells us, he ever held it “the more pious and safe way, to place
-the grace of God in the throne, where we think it should stand, and
-so to leave the will of man to shift for the maintenance of its own
-freedom, as well as it can, than to establish the power and liberty
-of free-will at its height, and then to be at a loss how to maintain
-the power and efficacy of God’s grace.”[396] Gataker, Tully, and Tombes
-were, what might be termed, High Calvinists. The first maintained, in
-opposition to the Author of the _Harmonia_, as it appears from his
-reply,--that remission of sins is entirely extraneous to justification,
-that there are conditions in the Gospel covenant which are not
-conditions of Gospel justification, that repentance is a condition of
-the Gospel joined by Christ with faith, but it is not a condition of
-justification, and that we are justified by the imputed righteousness
-of Christ.[397] Tully treated Bull as an innovator; and after alluding
-to Socinians and Papists, insinuated that he belonged to those, “who
-perfidiously serving the interests of one or other of these parties,
-shamelessly take to themselves the title of sons of the Church of
-England.”[398] Tully contended for justification by faith alone; and,
-injudiciously adding to the Scriptural argument the authority of the
-Fathers, which he maintained to be in his favour, laid himself open to
-the attacks of his opponent, who criticised his citations, and turned
-against him testimonies from Irenæus, Origen, Cyprian, Hilary, Basil,
-and Ambrose. The judgment of the Church of England, and of the Reformed
-Churches on the Continent, also came under debate in this department
-of the controversy; Bull and his antagonists each claiming patristic
-witnesses on his own side. Also the doctrine of the saint’s final
-perseverance, and the limitation of the efficacy of the atonement to
-the elect, were points asserted by Tully and denied by Bull. Tombes’
-book seems to have been of a more discursive kind than the rest; and
-to have aimed at answering not only the _Harmonia_, but also
-_Aphorisms_, written by Richard Baxter, whose name we find much
-mixed up in this controversy;--and by an alliteration very agreeable
-to the taste of that day, associated with the names of Bull and
-Bellarmine. Bull’s name is provocative of puns; and we find the author,
-in his preface to the _Examen Censuræ_, commenting on Tombes in
-the following manner, which shows the kind of attack to which Tombes
-had descended:--“He,” says our author, “need not fear the horns and
-stamping of the Bull (such is his wit, which foreigners will scarcely
-understand, Englishmen will smile at) since the Bull has long since
-learnt to despise all such barking animals.”[399] In an age when the
-amenities of literature were unknown, when Milton and Salmasius were
-abusing one another with a virulence which astonishes a modern reader,
-we cannot wonder at finding very bad passions manifested in the field
-of theological controversy. Bull, doubtless, was a learned and pious
-man, but his polemical writings show that he was deeply imbued with
-the violent polemical spirit of the times; yet, violent as may be the
-spirit of controversy in the modern Church, where can we find anything
-so fierce, so truly savage, as Tertullian’s attack on Marcion, at the
-opening of the first Book?
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--BULL.]
-
-The _Defensio Fidei Nicenæ_ (1685) was written not to establish,
-by proofs from Scripture, the doctrine of Christ’s Divinity, but to
-show that the opinions of the ante-Nicene Fathers upon the subject,
-were in harmony with those expressed in the Creed of the first
-Œcumenical Council. This purpose Bull formed, in consequence of an
-attack upon those Fathers, by the learned Jesuit Petavius, and the use
-made of that attack, for ends opposed to his, by Arians and Socinians.
-The most perfect success on the part of the Anglican advocate would
-not, in the estimation of Divines of the Puritan school, be conclusive
-evidence of our Lord’s Deity, nor would his failure shake their faith;
-but the importance which he attached to the question, appears from the
-immense labour which he devoted to it. To him, as an Anglo-Catholic,
-the inquiry into what the early Church believed and taught appeared
-one of vital interest; and into his chosen task he threw the treasures
-of a vast erudition, and, if not powers of the highest order,
-certainly a decisive will and an extraordinarily active and patient
-inquisitiveness. Parts of his argument, it must be confessed, seem
-unsatisfactory. For he deals with his patristic authorities, as we
-do with the Holy Scriptures. Whilst we reasonably assume that the
-latter are always consistent, and therefore endeavour to harmonize
-_apparent_ discrepancies, he assumes the same with regard to the
-writings of the Fathers. Hence he attempts to reconcile contradictory
-passages in the same author, and also contradictory passages in
-different authors. Moreover, upon a presumption of the perfect unity
-of patristic opinions, and of a thoroughly logical apprehension of
-subjects on the part of the Fathers, he sometimes educes proofs not
-from what they plainly say in so many words, but from what their
-language may be made to imply, when analyzed and manipulated with the
-utmost sagacity and skill. Loyal men standing at the bar have been
-unjustly arraigned for constructive treason. In controversy men of the
-soundest opinion have been unrighteously charged with constructive
-heresy. On the other hand, Bull’s method of criticism serves sometimes
-to vindicate opinions open to suspicion, and so to throw around
-doubtful points the halo of a constructive orthodoxy.[400]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--HEYLYN.]
-
-There is a good deal of special pleading in Bull’s _Defence of the
-Nicene Creed_. Nevertheless he has, in my opinion, clearly and
-fully established his main point, that a belief in the Divinity of our
-blessed Lord was common in the ante-Nicene Church. Bull’s views, as
-they are expressed in these works, are coincident as far as they go
-with those of Thorndike on the same subjects, but Bull leaves unvisited
-many fields which Thorndike traversed from end to end. Before leaving
-this eminent theologian it may be interesting to notice that he was
-one of those who in this country, in the seventeenth century, revived
-the ancient and scriptural distinction between soul and spirit; yet
-he so united the Spirit of God with the spirit of man that his theory
-amounts to a sort of _tetrachomy_. I may add--Hammond, in his
-_Paraphrase_ (1 Thess. v. 23), and Jackson _On the Creed_,
-also insisted upon a distinction between soul and spirit.[401]
-
-Another investigator, or rather champion, more comprehensive in his
-way than Bull, even going beyond Thorndike in variety of discussion,
-is Peter Heylyn, inferior to them both in all respects. Educated at
-Oxford, partly under a Puritan tutor, he, within three years after
-his ordination as a deacon, expressed such extreme ecclesiastical
-opinions, that he was denounced by Prideaux, the Regius Professor of
-Divinity, as _Bellarminian_ and _Pontifician_: these very
-opinions, however, recommended him to the favour of Laud, at the time
-Bishop of Bath and Wells.
-
-Heylyn, in his _Theologia Veterum_, gives what he calls “the sum
-of Christian theology, positive, philological, and polemical, contained
-in the Apostles’ Creed, or reducible to it.” Drawing his outline from
-the Creed, which he pronounces to be written by the Apostles, and to
-be all but canonical, he falls, though at a distance, into the wake
-of Dean Jackson: the eloquence of that great Divine it was impossible
-for Heylyn to reach; his candour and practical habit of mind, he had
-no disposition to cherish. In his preface, Heylyn declares himself
-an English Catholic,--keeping to the doctrines, rules, and forms of
-government established in the Church of England; and beyond those
-bounds, regulating “his liberty by the traditions of the Church, and
-the universal consent of the ancient Fathers.” The authority of the
-Church, in this writer’s opinion, includes the exposition of Scripture,
-the determination of controversies and the ordering of ceremonies; and
-he never misses an opportunity of upholding the rank and reputation of
-the Fathers. Heretics greatly excite his wrath, yet he admits, that
-neither all nor any who are merely schismatics, exclude themselves
-from the Catholic pale; but, speaking of Presbyterians and Popery,
-he remarks, the last is the lovelier error: better the Church be all
-head, than no head at all.[402] The antiquity and importance of fasts
-and festivals he strenuously maintains; the forgiveness of sin he
-connects with baptism; and he advocates both confession to a priest,
-and sacerdotal absolution. He is orthodox respecting the doctrines of
-the Trinity and the Atonement. The article upon Christ’s descent into
-hell, he discusses at length; and informs us, in his preface, that his
-inquiries into this mysterious subject led him to an exposition of the
-whole Creed. Pearson says cautiously that Christ’s soul “underwent the
-condition of the souls of such as die, and being.[403] He died in the
-similitude of a sinner, His soul went to the place where the souls of
-men are kept who die for their sins, and so did wholly undergo the
-law of death.” But Heylyn maintains that hell in the Creed means “the
-place of torments;” and that the soul of Christ as really descended
-there as His body entered the grave. The indication of these points
-will suffice to show the stamp of Heylyn’s theology, and the place to
-be assigned him among Anglican Divines. His talents were considerable,
-his learning does him credit; but he is so full of prejudice and party
-spirit that, whilst he has incurred odium from opponents, he can never
-win admiration even from friends.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--TAYLOR.]
-
-Jeremy Taylor is better known and more renowned for the rhythm of
-his rhetorical diction, the exuberance and felicity of his poetical
-illustrations, and the inexhaustible stores of his varied knowledge,
-than for Biblical scholarship, or for the depth, wisdom, and soundness
-of his theological reasonings. Yet he was a learned, painstaking, and
-diligent Divine, as well as a surprisingly eloquent and persuasive
-preacher: and though he has left behind him no body of divinity, there
-are some points distinctive of the Anglican school which he has
-treated with especial fulness; and, whilst faithful to its theology
-as a whole, there are portions of it which he has handled after a
-manner of his own. The influence of his patristic studies may be traced
-throughout his works; and the patronage of Archbishop Laud, and his
-friendship with Christopher Davenport--a learned and able Franciscan
-friar--were not likely to be altogether without effect upon so
-sensitive a nature as that of young Jeremy Taylor.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--TAYLOR.]
-
-He has much to say upon baptismal regeneration. In baptism, according
-to his teaching, we are admitted to the kingdom of Christ, we are
-presented unto Him, we are consigned with His sacrament, and we enter
-into His militia. It is also an adoption into the covenant, and a new
-birth. In it, all our sins are pardoned. “The catechumen descends,”
-he says,--following the words of Bede,--“into the font a sinner, he
-arises purified; he goes down the son of death, he comes up the son of
-the resurrection; he enters in, the son of folly and prevarication, he
-returns the son of reconciliation; he stoops down the child of wrath,
-and ascends the heir of mercy; he was the child of the devil, and
-now he is the servant and the son of God.” Baptism not only pardons
-past sins, but puts us into a state of pardon for time to come. It
-is a sanctification by the spirit of grace. It is the suppletory of
-original righteousness. Its effects are illumination, new life, and
-a holy resurrection. In short, by baptism we are saved. After having
-thus, in the most unqualified way, exhausted, one might suppose, all
-which imagination could conceive of the efficacy of the rite, Taylor
-says, there is less need to descend to temporal blessings, or rare
-contingencies, or miraculous events, or probable notices of things
-less certain; and then he speaks of miraculous cures effected by the
-baptismal water, and of the appointment of an angel guardian to each
-baptized person--which, indeed, he does not insist upon, although it
-seems to him “hugely probable.” Resuming a poetical theology, he adds,
-in patristic phraseology, that baptism is a new birth, “a chariot
-carrying us to God, the great circumcision, a circumcision made without
-hands, the key of the kingdom, the _paranymph_ of the kingdom,
-the earnest of our inheritance, the answer of a good conscience, the
-robe of light, the sacrament of a new life, and of eternal salvation,
-Ἄριστον μὲν ὕδωρ.”[404] Perhaps no one ever hung so many wreaths of
-flowers around the font as Taylor did; and if we were to take the
-highly coloured words which he uses by themselves, we should say, that
-his teaching on the subject was calculated to lull his disciples, if
-they had been only baptized, into a state of most deceptive and fearful
-self-security. But then, we know that other parts of his writings are
-of the most pungent and heart-searching description, destructive of
-all self-delusion, and, in some respects, ministering to a spirit of
-bondage, rather than to a spirit of presumptuous hope. The truth is,
-that much of the air of the old economy is breathed over Taylor’s
-views of the new dispensation. At times it blows with a chilling
-gust. We lack, in the garden of his rhetoric, the genial warmth of an
-evangelical summer; and in his language respecting sacraments, he shows
-a fondness for what St. Paul calls, “beggarly elements.” It should be
-noticed, in connection with his doctrine of baptism, that, though, in
-his _Liberty of Prophesying_, he deals gently with Anabaptists,
-no one could hold more strongly than did he the doctrine of infant
-baptism.
-
-The doctrine of the Lord’s Supper is expressed in less figurative
-terms, but with the same excess of description, and, as his admiring
-biographer admits, with some incautiousness in the use of terms. He
-says:--“The doctrine of the Church of England, and generally of the
-Protestants, in this article, is,--that after the minister of the holy
-mysteries hath rightly prayed, and blessed or consecrated the bread
-and the wine, the symbols become changed into the body and blood of
-Christ, after a sacramental, that is, in a spiritual real manner:
-so that all that worthily communicate, do by faith receive Christ
-really, effectually, to all the purposes of His passion: the wicked
-receive not Christ, but the bare symbols only; but yet to their hurt,
-because the offer of Christ is rejected, and they pollute the blood
-of the covenant, by using it as an unholy thing. The result of which
-doctrine is this: It is bread, and it is Christ’s body. It is bread
-in substance, Christ in the sacrament; and Christ is as really given
-to all that are truly disposed, as the symbols are; each as they can;
-Christ as Christ can be given; the bread and wine as they can; and to
-the same real purposes, to which they are designed; and Christ does as
-really nourish and sanctify the soul, as the elements do the body. It
-is here, as in the other sacraments: for as the natural water becomes
-the laver of regeneration; so here, bread and wine become the body
-and blood of Christ; but, there and here too, the first substance is
-changed by grace, but remains the same in nature.”[405]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--TAYLOR.]
-
-Taylor is one of the last men to whom we are to look for cautious
-and qualified statements. He had a mind of that order which “moveth
-altogether if it move at all.” He could say nothing by halves;--and,
-no doubt, his glowing periods require qualification. But, when
-all possible allowance has been made, the passage just quoted
-conveys something which is very much like the Lutheran doctrine of
-consubstantiation. Yet, strange to say, the same author, who holds that
-there is a real change in the Lord’s Supper, interprets our Lord’s
-words, “This is my body”--to mean no more than this: “it figuratively
-represents my body:” and he denies that the passage in the sixth
-chapter of John, often urged in support of the doctrine of the real
-presence, has anything to do with the Lord’s Supper.[406]
-
-In his notion of original sin, he deviates from Anglican as well
-as Puritan standards. The superiority of Adam before the fall, in
-Taylor’s opinion, consisted in certain superadded qualifications which
-he forfeited by the first sin--and he thought that men now come into
-the world, not with any evil taint or tendency, not with anything
-of corruption or degeneracy, but simply without those superadded
-qualifications. He says of human sinfulness, that “a great part is a
-natural impotency, and the other is brought in by our own folly.” He
-imputes it, in great part, to the “many _concurrent_ causes of
-evil which have influence upon communities of men; such as are evil
-examples, the similitude of Adam’s transgression, vices of princes,
-wars, impurity, ignorance, error, false principles, flattery, interest,
-fear, partiality, authority, evil laws, heresy, schism, spite and
-ambition, natural inclination, and other principiant causes, which
-proceeding from the natural weakness of human constitution, are the
-fountain and proper causes of many consequent evils.”[407] His
-doctrine has in it altogether a strong taint of Pelagianism; and what
-he says of “concurrent causes,” is pronounced by Bishop Heber--a mild
-critic and a moderate Divine--to be “neither good logic nor good
-divinity.”
-
-No one can be more definite and precise than Jeremy Taylor in his
-doctrine of the sacraments, but he shows elsewhere a remarkable leaning
-to what is general and vague. What he means exactly by original
-sin--how he distinguished it from actual sin, and what effect he
-believed the sin of Adam to have upon his posterity, it is difficult
-to say; and the same and even greater indefiniteness is manifest in
-his views of the doctrine of justification. Indeed, here he avowedly
-eschews all precision of language. He differs from Thorndike and Bull,
-not only in not defining justification as they do, but in not defining
-it at all, and he speaks almost pettishly on the subject.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--TAYLOR.]
-
-“That no man should fool himself by disputing about the philosophy of
-justification, and what causality faith hath in it, and whether it be
-the act of faith that justifies, or the habit? Whether faith as a good
-work, or faith as an instrument? Whether faith as it is obedience, or
-faith as it is an access to Christ? Whether as a hand or as a heart?
-Whether by its own innate virtue, or by the efficacy of the object?
-Whether as a sign, or as a thing signified? Whether by introduction,
-or by perfection? Whether in the first beginnings, or in its last and
-best productions? Whether by inherent worthiness, or adventitious
-imputations? _Uberiùs ista quæso_ (that I may use the words of
-Cicero): _hæc enim spinosiora, prius, ut confitear me cogunt, quam ut
-assentiar_: these things are knotty, and too intricate to do any
-good; they may amuse us, but never instruct us; and they have already
-made men careless and confident, disputative and troublesome, proud and
-uncharitable, but neither wiser nor better. Let us, therefore, leave
-these weak ways of troubling ourselves or others, and directly look to
-the theology of it, the direct duty, the end of faith, and the work of
-faith, the conditions and the instruments of our salvation, the just
-foundation of our hopes, how our faith can destroy our sin, and how it
-can unite us unto God, how by it we can be made partakers of Christ’s
-death, and imitators of His life. For since it is evident, by the
-premises, that this article is not to be determined or relied upon by
-arguing from words of many significations, we must walk by a clearer
-light; by such plain sayings and dogmatical propositions of Scripture,
-which evidently teach us our duty, and place our hopes upon that
-which cannot deceive us, that is, which require obedience, which call
-upon us to glorify God, and to do good to men, and to keep all God’s
-commandments with diligence and sincerity.”[408]
-
-This kind of teaching cuts away the ground entirely from under
-scientific theology, treating it as a work of supererogation, or
-as an utter impossibility, and at the same time reducing religion
-to the observance of certain commands. Yet this passionate protest
-against dogma has hardly escaped the writer’s pen, when he proceeds
-to construct that against which he protests, and lays down logically,
-“two propositions, a negative and an affirmative.” The negative is: By
-faith only a man is not justified; the affirmative, By works also a man
-is justified. He says “that obedience is the same thing with faith,
-and that all Christian graces are parts of its bulk and constitution,
-is also the doctrine of the Holy Ghost, and the grammar of Scripture,
-making faith and obedience to be terms coincident, and expressive of
-each other.”[409]
-
-Having expressed this theological idea in a double form, he immediately
-abandons the theological element; and proceeds to declaim, with his
-accustomed vigour and variety, upon the common truth, which all
-Divines, Calvinist and Arminian, maintain--that no man enjoys the
-blessing of justification, apart from a life of Christian obedience.
-After a careful perusal of the whole discourse, the reader feels that
-the theological question of justification by faith, or by works, or by
-both, has really not been touched by the author, although much that
-is of practical value has been said on the necessity of holiness.
-The essential defect of the treatment is an omission to explain what
-justification means; hence the loose and ambiguous employment of the
-term throughout, and its application most frequently to the idea of
-salvation as a whole. In one place, after having repeatedly used
-the two words, as bearing different significations, Taylor says:
-“So that now we see that justification and sanctification cannot be
-distinguished, but as words of art, signifying the various steps of
-progression in the same course: they may be distinguished in notion and
-speculation, but never when they are to pass on to material events, for
-no man is justified but he that is also sanctified.”[410] It is very
-noticeable, by a critical reader who will take the trouble to analyze
-Taylor’s sentences, how much he is in the habit of playing fast and
-loose with the meaning of words.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--TAYLOR.]
-
-The same habit of thought--avoiding and even protesting against
-definite statements of certain doctrines--appears in the _Liberty of
-Prophesying_ and in the _Nature of Faith_. The duty of faith,
-he remarks, is complete in believing the Articles of the Apostles’
-Creed,--“All other things are implicitly in the belief of the Articles
-of God’s veracity, and are not necessary in respect of the constitution
-of faith to be drawn out, but may there lie in the bowels of the great
-Articles, without danger to any thing or any person, unless some other
-accident or circumstance makes them necessary.”[411] “This is the great
-and entire complexion of a Christian’s faith, and since salvation is
-promised to the belief of this creed [I believe that Jesus Christ
-is the Son of God] either a snare is laid for us with a purpose to
-deceive us--or else nothing is of prime and original necessity to be
-believed but this Jesus Christ our Redeemer.”[412] Bearing in mind the
-distinction between religion and theology;--and it is to the former
-that Taylor seems to refer in his treatise on Faith,--the doctrine,
-in substance, may be accepted as sound. But turning to the _Liberty
-of Prophesying_ where also the standard raised is the Apostles’
-Creed, the question, as his biographer remarks, “becomes much more
-difficult, if, as Taylor seems to have meant, and as is implied in
-the very title of his discourse, we extend this same principle to
-the admission of persons into the public ministry.”[413] In other
-words, to treat Theology, which ought to be thoroughly understood by
-Christian teachers, as if it were entirely comprehended within the
-first simple primitive creed,--as if that creed, regarded as seminally
-containing all Christian doctrine, and as actually drawn out by the
-study of Scripture, and devout reflection into theological particulars,
-were a sufficient standard of orthodoxy for those who are teachers
-of others,--betrays a manner of thinking in which scarcely a second
-Anglican teacher could be found to agree. There and elsewhere the
-Bishop would seem to have found his way within Latitudinarian lines.
-
-Taylor is a strenuous advocate for an Episcopal Church--yet even here
-he breaks bounds, and has exposed himself to the correction, if not
-the censure, of Episcopalian critics. Departing from Hooker’s method
-in his _Ecclesiastical Polity_, he endorses the Puritan idea,
-that a precise form of government is laid down in Scripture; and
-then he proceeds to say, that “the government of the Church is in
-_immediate_ order to the good and benison of souls.” The first of
-these peculiar opinions, his biographer pronounces unwise, the second
-untrue, and both as going too far,--the one as proving too much, the
-other as an exaggerated conception of what is not to be ranked amongst
-things of the first importance,--for the sincere word and the means of
-grace are alone _immediately_ necessary to salvation.[414] Mere
-government, according to Hooker, rests amongst the non-essentials of
-Christianity; and any change therein is to change the way of safety,
-no otherwise than as “a path is changed by altering only the uppermost
-face thereof, which, be it laid with gravel, or set with grass, or
-paved with stone, remaineth still the same path.”[415] A further
-example of running to an extreme of strictness in reference to Church
-polity, after so much latitude, and even looseness in relation to
-Christian doctrine, is found in Taylor’s assumption of facts touching
-Episcopal orders. It is an assumption, says Heber, “in which he is
-neither borne out by antiquity, nor the tenor of the Gospel history,
-when he finds in the Apostles, during the abode of their Lord on earth,
-the first Bishops, and in the seventy-two disciples, whom Christ also
-selected from His followers, the first presbyters of His Church.”[416]
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--COSIN.]
-
-Amongst Anglican theologians Cosin requires particular attention.
-The history of his opinions is somewhat peculiar. In early life, his
-sermons, and especially his devotional writings, betray a strong
-leaning towards Roman Catholicism. In later life it is otherwise.
-His second series of _Notes on the Prayer Book_, indicates a
-controversial tone opposing the Anglican to the Roman view, which
-does not appear in the first series. After his son became a Papist,
-the father assumed a more decided attitude towards the Papal Church;
-but it does not so much appear that Cosin’s own views of doctrine
-altered, as that, during the earlier part of his life, he dwelt on
-points of agreement, and during the latter, on points of difference,
-between himself and Rome.[417] Every one, however, must see that such
-a change was a very great one, and involved much more than at first
-sight is visible. Cosin’s two principal contributions to theological
-literature are his _Scholastic History of the Canon of the Holy
-Scriptures_ and his _History of Transubstantiation_. The
-former, which is a work of very great learning and ability is directed
-entirely against the decisions of the Council of Trent, as to the
-canonicity of Apocryphal Books; and the author patiently goes over
-the whole field of Church literature, from the Apostolic age to the
-Reformation, showing that the books in question were never accepted by
-the Church, as inspired authorities. The stores of learning displayed
-in this history are of great value to the general student; and in any
-revival of this old controversy with Romanist theologians, Cosin’s work
-will be of eminent service on the Protestant side. The _History of
-the Canon_ appeared in 1657, during Cosin’s exile. The _History
-of Transubstantiation_ was, about the same time, written in Latin,
-although not published until 1675. A year afterwards, an English
-translation came out, executed by Luke de Beaulieu. The origin of the
-book is a key to its character. When Charles II., in his wanderings,
-reached Cologne, and there “visited a neighbouring potent prince of
-the Empire of the Roman persuasion,” he met with certain Jesuits, who
-accused the English Church of heretical opinions touching the sacrament
-of the Lord’s Supper. That Church, said they, “holds no real, but
-only a kind of imaginary presence of the body and blood of Christ;”
-whereas Rome holds the sacred mystery of all ages,--to wit, that the
-whole substance of the bread and wine is changed into the substance of
-Christ’s body and blood. Cosin, being asked to vindicate the Church
-“from the calumny,” and plainly to declare what is her doctrine of
-the real presence, complied with the request; and the result is, that
-throughout his book, he labours to establish the doctrine of a _real
-presence_ of the body and blood of the Redeemer in the bread and
-wine;--but at the same time, denies and demolishes the doctrine of a
-_transubstantiation_ of the elements. As to the latter point, what
-he says resolves itself into an argument for the continued presence,
-not merely of the material _accidents_, but of the material
-_substance_. The bent of the author’s mind, and the necessary
-conditions of the author’s argument, looked at from the Anglican point
-of view, may be seen in his copious citations from the Fathers and
-schoolmen; and the purpose of those citations is to show that the
-_real_ presence, as he expresses it, is the ancient doctrine of
-Christendom; and that the dogma of Transubstantiation is an invention
-of the twelfth century. Theologians of the Puritan stamp, if disposed
-to avail themselves of the distinctive reasoning of this distinguished
-scholar against Rome, would not follow the patristic and scholastic
-teaching on its positive side, to which he showed so much deference;
-but would rather represent very much of it--by its incautious
-phraseology, and its mystic sentiment--as preparing for the definite
-error which Cosin so earnestly denounced. Some of them would say,
-that the extreme doctrine of the spiritual presence of the body and
-blood of Christ in the bread and wine is as mischievous, in respect to
-superstition, as the doctrine of Transubstantiation itself. They would
-also say that Anglicans attach an undue importance to the continued
-existence and _presence_ of the material substance of bread and
-wine, an importance which is scarcely perceptible to others who differ
-from them; for if the bodily presence of Christ in the sacrament be
-admitted, arguments in support of the continued substantial presence
-of bread and wine as well, only issue in some consubstantial theory,
-between which and the transubstantial one, there is little to choose,
-in the estimation of most English Protestants. And further, they would
-allege that whilst the Roman dogma is in itself incredible and absurd,
-it is in its terms intelligible; but that the High Anglican dogma is
-unintelligible in terms and incredible in itself, so far as its import
-can be divined. To the Puritan mind, the distinction maintained by
-Cosin and others between a real presence and a transubstantiation is
-of little importance, and quite incomprehensible; but to the Anglican
-mind, it is perfectly clear, and of the highest moment.[418] That I
-distinctly perceive. Without entering into the controversy, I may be
-allowed to add, that the belief of the spiritual presence of Christ’s
-body in the elements is one thing, and the deep and devout belief of
-a real and a special presence of Christ Himself with His people in
-the Lord’s Supper, is another. There is nothing whatever to prevent
-a modern disciple of the Puritans from consistently maintaining
-the latter. For my own part, I would maintain it with the utmost
-earnestness.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICANS.--MORLEY.]
-
-Next to Cosin let us take Morley. Morley lived to a great age, and
-had a high reputation for theological learning before the Civil Wars,
-as well as after the re-establishment of Episcopacy, being well
-versed in the logic of the schools, and proving himself a formidable
-controversialist. That he was a Calvinist is distinctly stated by
-Wood and Burnet; but I cannot find that he published anything upon
-the subject. Besides his controversy with Baxter, which turns upon
-political and ecclesiastical questions, we possess certain treatises
-written by him before and since the Restoration, in which he undertakes
-fully to make known his judgment concerning the Church of Rome, and
-most of those doctrines which fall into controversy betwixt her and
-the Church of England. The reader is disappointed to find, that
-these Treatises consist only of _A short Conference with a Jesuit
-at Brussels_; An Argument against Transubstantiation; A Sermon
-preached at Whitehall; Correspondence with Father Cressey; A Letter
-to the Duchess of York; and two Latin Epistles, relating to Prayers
-for the Dead, and the Invocation of Saints. Three points alone in the
-Romanist controversy are discussed. The treatment of these, however,
-indicate deep learning and great skill. Morley plies with much success
-the argument against Transubstantiation, “drawn from the evidence and
-certainty of sense,”--maintaining his convincing argument with the
-dexterity of a practised logician, so as to parry most successfully all
-the objections of Roman Catholic antagonists. He decidedly opposes the
-Popish doctrine of purgatory,--but he vindicates prayers for the dead,
-in the way in which they were offered in the early Church, and as by
-modern Anglicans they are still encouraged to be offered; that is, for
-the rest of the soul, the resurrection of the body, and the plenitude
-of redemption at the last day.[419] Whatever may be the propriety of
-praying for the dead in such a qualified sense as this, Morley contends
-that there is no ground on which to rest the doctrine of the Invocation
-of Saints. That doctrine he overthrows by an appeal to Scripture; and
-then he proceeds, after the Anglican method, to examine the writings of
-the Fathers, and to show that they do not justify the Popish dogma and
-its associated practices.
-
-The writings of so eminent a man as Archbishop Bramhall ought not to
-be wholly passed over, even in this limited and superficial sketch. He
-did not write any comprehensive treatise on theology in general, or on
-any doctrine in particular; but whilst the other Divines named, with
-one exception, guarded what they believed to be the citadel of truth,
-this learned prelate of Ireland defended what he regarded as some
-of the outworks of Anglican Christianity. He strove, in his _Just
-Vindication of the Church of England_ (1654), to repel the charge
-of schism, alleged by the Romanists; and, in his _Consecration and
-Succession of Protestant Bishops_, to rebut the Nag’s Head fable
-(1658). So far his battle was with Rome. He dealt blows of another
-kind in his treatises “Against the English Sectarie” (1643–1672), and
-included within his polemical tasks a “Defence of true liberty from
-antecedent and extrinsical necessity” (1655); “Castigations of Mr.
-Hobbes’ Animadversions” (1658); and “The Catching of Leviathan or the
-Great Whale” (1653). In the quaint pleasantry of the age, he spoke of
-using three harping irons, one for its heart, a second for its chine,
-and a third for its head,--meaning by these images, the religious,
-political, and rational aspects of the work. He further described this
-monster as neither fish nor flesh, but the combination of a man, with
-a whale--“not unlike Dagon, the idol of the Philistines.”[420] The
-Malmsbury philosopher was reckoned the most dangerous enemy of the
-day to the true interests of the Christian religion, and Bramhall, in
-writing against him, acted the part of one anxious to expose a covert
-and to crush a seminal infidelity.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
-
-Those Divines whom I have already imperfectly described, may be
-characterized as High Anglicans. There remains for consideration, a
-second class, whom I venture to denominate semi-Anglicans.
-
-Sanderson’s fame as a theologian rests mainly upon his treatment of
-casuistical questions, and upon his noble volume of sermons. The latter
-compositions (1659–1674), which exhibit great vigour, compass, and
-patience of thought, expressed in massive but tedious eloquence,--are
-chiefly practical; but also, they here and there reveal doctrinal
-opinions, and, together with the reports of his friends, and extracts
-from his MSS., indicate some of the leading points in the preacher’s
-system of divinity. He affords an instance of that change of opinion
-which we find to have been so common at the time. In early life, having
-adopted the sublapsarian scheme, he afterwards renounced it, “as well
-as the supralapsarian, which he could never fancy.”[421] To use his
-own words, “We must acknowledge the work of both (grace and free-will)
-in the conversion of a sinner. And so, likewise, in all other events
-the consistency of the infallibility of God’s foreknowledge at least
-(though not with any absolute but conditional predestination), with
-the liberty of man’s will and the contingency of inferior causes and
-effects.”[422] He made strong objections to some leading points in
-Twiss’ _Vindiciæ Gratiæ_, a book written against Arminius. But one
-of the characteristic principles held by the Divines of the school, to
-which Sanderson in earlier life belonged, he seems to have retained
-to the last, for he expresses, in one of his sermons, published by
-himself not long before his death, the following account of Christian
-faith:--“The word faith is used to signify, that theological virtue or
-gracious habit, whereby we embrace with our minds and affections the
-Lord Jesus Christ as the only-begotten Son of God and alone Saviour of
-the world, casting ourselves wholly upon the mercy of God through His
-merits for remission and everlasting salvation. It is that which is
-commonly called a lively or justifying faith; whereunto are ascribed
-in Holy Writ those many gracious effects, of purifying the heart,
-adoption, justification, life, joy, peace, salvation, &c. Not as to
-their proper and primary cause, but as to the instrument, whereby we
-apprehend and apply Christ, whose merits and Spirit are the true causes
-of all those blessed effects.”[423]
-
-The life of Sanderson requires us to consider him as sympathizing in
-some respects with Anglican Divines, but their distinguishing dogmas
-are not at all conspicuous in his sermons.
-
-[Sidenote: HAMMOND.]
-
-Hammond, the friend of Sanderson,[424]--associated with him scarcely
-less in doctrinal opinions and ecclesiastical sympathies, than in the
-closest intimacy and warmest affection,--has been described as one--
-
- “Whose mild persuasive voice
- Taught us in trials to rejoice
- Most like a faithful dove,
- That by some ruined homestead builds,
- And pours to the forsaken fields
- His wonted lay of love.”
-
-And the calm, tender strain of his theology harmonizes with the spirit
-which the poet has thus so touchingly characterized. Like Sanderson,
-Hammond is more practical than scientific. Like Sanderson, he shines
-with richer lustre as a Christian casuist, than as a systematic
-Divine. In his _Practical Catechism_, however, he appears to advantage
-both as an evangelical moralist and a doctrinal teacher: it contains
-expositions of the Creed, of the Ten Commandments, and of the Sermon
-on the Mount. Exhibitions of principle are skilfully interwoven with
-the enforcement of precepts; moderation is blended with orthodoxy;
-and in his conclusions touching the critical points of theology which
-we have selected as tests for elucidating distinctive opinion, he
-closely approaches his beloved companion Sanderson. With Hammond
-faith is the _condition_ of justification; he scruples to call it the
-_instrument_, lest he should ascribe to it any undue efficiency;[425]
-but in faith he includes the germ of all Christian obedience, all
-Christian virtue; he describes it as a cordial, sincere, giving up
-oneself to God, particularly to Christ, firmly to rely on all His
-promises, and faithfully to obey all His commands. Hammond broadly
-distinguishes justification from sanctification,--defining the first
-as God’s covering or pardoning our iniquities, His being so reconciled
-unto us sinners, that He determines not to punish us eternally;--and
-the second, as the infusion of holiness into our hearts, the turning
-of the soul to Himself. Into the relation between the two blessings,
-and the order of their bestowment--which of them is conferred first--he
-enters, with a subtlety of analysis unusual in the Anglican school;
-and whilst, with exemplary candour, he suggests what he allows to be
-an orthodox rendering of the Puritan doctrine of justification before
-sanctification, he himself prefers to place the latter first in the
-order of time; yet, in doing this, he so qualifies his statement as not
-to alarm even the Puritan, who ventures upon this abstruse, perplexing,
-and not very profitable path of speculative inquiry. Hammond believed
-that justification flows from the mediatorial priesthood of the Lord
-Jesus; but he distinctly denied that the Redeemer’s active obedience is
-imputed to men.[426]
-
-[Sidenote: PEARSON.]
-
-Pearson’s _Exposition of the Creed_ (1659) is a well-known
-theological treatise. He implicitly pursues an Anglican course, citing
-the Fathers in support of his positions; but he nowhere distinctly
-defines what authority he attaches to them, or, indeed, formally lays
-down as a principle that they are his guides at all. Pearson must
-have been moderate in his ecclesiastical views, or he could not have
-pursued the course he did during the Commonwealth; and his position as
-Lecturer at St. Clement’s, Eastcheap, and the association into which
-he would necessarily be brought with his Puritan brethren, might have
-the effect of widening his sympathies, and of preventing, in his case,
-those controversial asperities which embitter the writings of extreme
-Anglicans. In his article on the Church, he refers to its unity, its
-perpetuity, its holiness, and its Catholicity, meaning apparently by
-the Church the aggregate of Christian professors, whether they be
-good or bad.[427] Under the last head, he touches upon the authority
-of the Church in the following brief remark:--“They call the Church
-of Christ the Catholic Church, because it teacheth all things which
-are necessary for a Christian to know, whether they be things in
-heaven or things in earth, whether they concern the condition of man
-in this life, or in the life to come. As the Holy Ghost did lead the
-Apostles into all truth, so did the Apostles leave all truth unto
-the Church, which teaching all the same, may be well called Catholic
-from the universality of necessary and saving truths retained in it.”
-Even this scarcely amounts to an assertion of Church authority in
-the Anglican sense; it might be explained consistently with Puritan
-principles, it never would have satisfied Thorndike or Heylyn, or even
-Bull. To baptism, however, Pearson attributes great efficacy, coupling
-it, as Heylyn and others do, with the article on _Forgiveness of
-Sins_, according to the teaching of the Nicene and other Creeds.
-Unlike Thorndike, he does not propound any theory of justification in
-connection with baptism; nor does he, any more than Heylyn, dwell on
-the subject of justification in any way: he confines himself to the
-idea of remitting sins, which perhaps, in his opinion, is equivalent
-to justification. He uses strong expressions in speaking of the
-Atonement,--referring to “the punishment which Christ, who was our
-surety, endured,” as “a full satisfaction to the will and justice of
-God.” “It was a price given to redeem”--something “laid down by way
-of compensation.” “Although God be said to remit our sins by which
-we were captivated, yet He is never said to remit the price, without
-which we had never been redeemed, neither can He be said to have
-remitted it, because He did require it and receive it.” A Calvinist
-could scarcely have marked the point more strongly. Pearson also says
-“that Christ did render God propitious unto us by His blood--that is,
-His sufferings unto death--who before was offended with us for our
-sins; and this propitiation amounted to reconciliation, that is, a
-kindness after wrath. We must conceive that God was angry with mankind
-before He determined to give our Saviour; we cannot imagine that God,
-who is essentially just, should not abominate iniquity.” Pearson’s
-definition of faith is very different from Thorndike’s. It is a habit
-of the intellectual part of man, and therefore of itself invisible;
-and to believe is a spiritual act, and consequently “immanent and
-internal, and known to no man but him that believeth.” We find in
-Pearson’s exposition none of those peculiarly High Church views in
-which Thorndike and Heylyn so much delighted; and, what is very
-remarkable, as far as I can find, he only in a cursory way mentions the
-Lord’s Supper. Certainly he does not dwell upon it in any part of his
-treatise.[428]
-
-Pearson’s common sense, mastery of learning, clearness of thought,
-perspicuity of style, and directness of reasoning, have secured and
-will retain for him a high place amongst English theological teachers.
-His orderly arrangement of topics, and his compact and forcible method
-of expression, render him popular with all students of his school
-of theology; and there are few points on which they can consult him
-without finding what they want in a shape convenient for use. Those
-who differ from him may read him with advantage; and they will discover
-that, for the most part, his faults are only defects which may be
-supplied by repairing to other sources of information.
-
-[Sidenote: BARROW.]
-
-Isaac Barrow devoted long years to the study of mathematics, for
-which he has acquired high renown; and he travelled in Turkey, and
-resided twelve months in Constantinople, where he read the whole of
-Chrysostom’s works near the spot upon which many of his sermons were
-delivered--a course of reading which must have been of immense service
-to him as an expounder of Christian morality. His favourite scientific
-studies left upon his mind a stamp of precision and order, apparent
-in his writings; and his familiarity with Greek patristic eloquence
-may be traced in the stately flow of his copious diction. His theology
-lies close to the boundary line between Anglicanism and the Divinity
-of the Cambridge school. After holding a mathematical professorship at
-Cambridge, he devoted the remainder of his life to theology, in which
-he achieved a reputation equal to that which he had won in the pursuit
-of science.
-
-In his sermons on the Creed, instead of confining himself, as Pearson
-and Heylyn have done, to the exposition of Christian truth, he
-carefully employs himself in constructing defences of the faith. He
-begins his task with an exposure of the unreasonableness of infidelity,
-and with an assertion of the perfectly rational nature of belief
-in the Gospel. He afterwards dwells, at length, upon proofs of the
-existence of God; upon the Divinity and excellence of the Christian
-religion, as compared with the impiety and imposture of Paganism and
-Mahometanism, and the imperfection of Judaism; and upon the evidence
-that Jesus is the true Messias. Thus Barrow appears as a Christian
-advocate. He habitually bases his arguments upon Scripture texts, but
-he also habitually weaves into these arguments threads of reason, so
-as to commend what he advances to the understanding of his readers,
-ever avoiding what is mystical, or merely imaginative. Yet he does not
-neglect the dogmas of revelation, but brings many of them out with a
-clearness and precision which has been overlooked by some critics.
-His disquisition upon the nature of faith is as exhaustive as that of
-any Puritan, and will be found a wearisome piece of reading by some
-modern students. He dwells much upon the difficulties of faith, and
-upon the moral virtue involved in overcoming them; and when we compare
-his opinions with those of Thorndike and Bull, we discover in him a
-general similarity to them, in connection with shades of difference.
-In common with Thorndike, he resolutely opposes the idea that faith
-consists in any belief of our being pardoned, or in any assurance of
-salvation, or in any persuasion that a true Christian cannot fall
-from grace. His representations of the virtuousness of evangelical
-belief are obviously in harmony with that writer’s statements; and
-he also, in accordance with them, associates faith and the baptismal
-covenant, saying, “Faith is nothing else but a hearty embracing
-Christianity, which first exerteth itself by open declaration and
-avowal in baptism.”[429] Barrow, however, of all men, requires to be
-judged, not by isolated expressions, but by a comparison of one part
-of his teaching with another. Turning, then, to the following passage,
-which is complete in itself, and which I quote as an example of his
-diffuse and affluent style, we meet with an account of Christian faith,
-such as would scarcely have satisfied the demands of Thorndike’s
-baptismal theology:--“By this faith (as to the first and primary sense
-thereof) is understood the being truly and firmly persuaded in our
-minds that Jesus was what He professed Himself to be, and what the
-Apostles testified Him to be, the Messias, by God designed, foretold,
-and promised to be sent into the world, to redeem, govern, instruct,
-and save mankind, our Redeemer and Saviour, our Lord and Master, our
-King and Judge, the great High Priest, and Prophet of God--the being
-assured of these and all other propositions connexed with these;
-or, in short, the being thoroughly persuaded of the truth of that
-Gospel which was revealed and taught by Jesus and His Apostles. That
-this notion is true, those descriptions of this faith, and phrases
-expressing it, do sufficiently show; the nature and reason of the
-thing doth confirm the same, for that such a faith is, in its kind
-and order, apt and sufficient to promote God’s design of saving us,
-to render us capable of God’s favour, to purge our hearts, and work
-that change of mind which is necessary in order to the obtaining God’s
-favour, and enjoying happiness; to produce that obedience which God
-requires of us, and without which we cannot be saved: these things
-are the natural results of such a persuasion concerning those truths;
-as natural as the desire and pursuit of any good doth arise from the
-clear apprehension thereof, or as the shunning of any mischief doth
-follow from the like apprehension; as a persuasion that wealth is to
-be got thereby makes the merchant to undergo the dangers and pains of
-a long voyage (verifying that, _Impiger extremos currit mercator ad
-Indos, Per mare pauperiem fugiens, per saxa, per ignes_); as the
-persuasion that health may thereby be recovered, engages a man not only
-to take down the most unsavoury potions, but to endure cuttings and
-burnings (_ut valeas, ferrum patieris et ignes_); as a persuasion
-that refreshment is to be found in a place, doth effectually carry
-the hungry person thither; so a strong persuasion that the Christian
-religion is true, and the way of obtaining happiness, and of escaping
-misery, doth naturally produce a subjection of heart and an obedience
-thereto; and accordingly we see the highest of those effects, which the
-Gospel offers or requires, are assigned to this faith, as results from
-it, or adjuncts thereof.”[430]
-
-[Sidenote: BARROW.]
-
-The strong moral power attributed to faith places Barrow’s description
-of it in nearly strict coincidence with the teaching of Bishop
-Bull upon the same subject. Yet from Thorndike, and from other
-Anglo-Catholic Divines, with exceptions already pointed out, Barrow
-differs in his definite and sharp distinction between holiness and
-justification. No Puritan could more precisely mark off the latter
-from the former. Admitting, he says, that whoever is justified is also
-endued with some measure of intrinsic righteousness--“avowing willingly
-that such a righteousness doth ever accompany the justification St.
-Paul speaketh of--yet that sort of righteousness doth not seem implied
-by the word justification, according to St. Paul’s intent, in those
-places where he discourseth about justification by faith, for that such
-a sense of the word doth not well consist with the drift and efficacy
-of his reasoning, nor with divers passages in his discourse.”[431] But
-to the distinction he so clearly makes he attributes less importance
-than many theologians are wont to do.
-
-[Sidenote: BARROW.]
-
-Although Barrow does not copiously discuss the doctrine of the
-Atonement--although he dwells chiefly on the moral effects of
-Christ’s death--yet he uses very strong expressions as to the effect
-of our Lord’s sacrifice upon the Divine government, speaking of it
-as “appeasing that wrath of God which He naturally beareth toward
-iniquity, and reconciling God to men, who by sin were alienated
-from Him, by procuring a favourable disposition and intentions of
-grace toward us.” “Christ died, removing thereby that just hatred
-and displeasure.” “The non-imputation of our sins is expressed as
-a singular effect, an instance, an argument of His being in mind
-reconciled and favourably disposed towards us.”[432]
-
-In five sermons, entirely devoted to the subject, this Divine asserts
-and explains the doctrine of universal redemption, saying that
-salvation is made attainable, and is really tendered unto all, upon
-feasible and equal conditions; and that a competency of grace is
-imparted to every man, qualifying him to do what God requires.[433]
-
-His account of the Divinity and personality of the Holy Spirit is the
-same as is generally given by orthodox teachers. As to the work of the
-third Person in the Trinity, Barrow’s line of thought coincides more
-with Anglican than with Puritan writers. Besides much of a general
-character upon the Spirit’s assistance, in the thirty-fourth sermon
-on the Creed, Barrow remarks--“It hath been the doctrine constantly
-with general consent delivered in and by the Catholic Church, that
-to all persons by the holy mystery of baptism duly initiated into
-Christianity, and admitted into the communion of Christ’s body, the
-grace of the Holy Spirit is communicated, enabling them to perform the
-conditions of piety and virtue which they undertake.”[434]
-
-Barrow appears to have been a Low Churchman, and, in the fragment he
-has left us upon “the holy Catholic Church,” omits those assertions
-respecting ecclesiastical authority which were the joy of Thorndike and
-Heylyn. He explains the different senses in which the word “Church”
-is used in the New Testament; and, in its larger sense, applies to
-it the epithets “holy” and “Catholic,” winding up all he has to say
-with practical remarks which commend themselves to candid Christians
-of all denominations.[435] It may be added that, in his discourse
-concerning _The unity of the Church_, he opposes the idea of any
-such ecclesiastical authority as is contended for either by Papists or
-Anglo-Catholics.
-
-The _Treatise of the Pope’s Supremacy_, from the same pen--too
-long to be described--places the author amongst the chief defenders
-of Protestantism, and deserves the eulogium of Tillotson,--what “many
-others have handled before, he hath exhausted.” The student can
-find arguments against the assumptions of Rome nowhere so fully and
-powerfully stated as on Barrow’s pages. Those arguments are, perhaps,
-like Saul’s armour, too cumbrous for the Davids of the present day;
-but there are in Barrow’s armoury stones from the brook for simple
-shepherds, as well as spears and shields for veteran warriors.
-
-The feeling of Barrow towards the Romish Church is plain from what
-has now been said, and it is desirable, before we leave the opinions
-of the Anglicans, to inquire what their feeling generally was upon
-this subject; and also how they expressed themselves in reference to
-Protestant communities.
-
-[Sidenote: OPINIONS RESPECTING POPERY.]
-
-Thorndike calls the Romish a true but corrupt Church, in which
-salvation may be obtained, although it be clogged with difficulty. It
-is not Antichrist. It is not formally idolatrous; yet, after referring
-to its abuses, he says, “to live under them, and to yield conformity to
-them, is a burden unsufferable for a Christian to undergo: to approve
-them by being reconciled to the Church that maintains them is a scandal
-incurable and irreparable.”[436]
-
-Bishop Bull observes, referring to certain doctrines held by Romanists,
-“I look upon it as a wonderful both just and wise providence of God,
-that He hath suffered the Church of Rome to fall into such gross errors
-(which otherwise it is scarce imaginable how men in their wits that
-had not renounced not only the Scriptures, but their reason, yea and
-their senses too, could be overtaken with), and to determine them for
-articles of faith.”[437]
-
-Heylyn concedes to Rome the character of a true Church; yet after
-referring to the argument for image worship, he remarks:--“Though
-perhaps some men of learning may be able to relieve themselves by
-these distinctions; yet I can see no possibility how the common
-people, who kneel and make their prayers directly to the image itself,
-without being able to discern where the difference lieth between their
-_proprie_ and _improprie_, or _per se_ and _per accidens_, can be
-excused from palpable and downright _idolatry_.”[438]
-
-The same writer, describing the Reformation, and contending for the
-continuity of the English Church, reflects, by implication, severely
-upon its previously Romanized state:--“Whereas, the case, if rightly
-stated, is but like that of a sick and wounded man, that had long lain
-weltering in his own blood, or languishing under a tedious burden
-of diseases, and afterwards by God’s great mercy, and the skilful
-diligence of honest chirurgeons and physicians, is at the last restored
-to his former health.”[439]
-
-Taylor is much more decided in his condemnation of Rome:--“Now let any
-man judge whether it be not our duty, and a necessary work of charity,
-and the proper office of our ministry, to persuade our charges from
-the ‘immodesty of an evil heart,’ from having a ‘devilish spirit,’
-from doing that ‘which is vehemently forbidden by the Apostle,’ from
-‘infidelity and pride;’ and, lastly, from that ‘eternal woe which is
-denounced’ against them that add other words and doctrines than what
-is contained in the Scriptures, and say, ‘_Dominus dixit_, the
-Lord hath said it,’ and He hath not said it. If we had put these severe
-censures upon the Popish doctrine of tradition, we should have been
-thought uncharitable; but, because the holy fathers do so, we ought to
-be charitable, and snatch our charges from the ambient flame.”[440]
-
-Bramhall, whose Protestantism went further than that of Thorndike
-or Heylyn, says:--“That Church which hath changed the apostolical
-creed, the apostolical succession, the apostolical regiment, and
-the apostolical communion, is no apostolical, orthodox, or Catholic
-Church. But the Church of Rome hath changed the apostolical creed, the
-apostolical succession, the apostolical regiment, and the apostolical
-communion. Therefore the Church of Rome is no apostolical, orthodox, or
-Catholic Church.”[441]
-
-[Sidenote: RESPECTING UNEPISCOPAL CHURCHES.]
-
-In reference to Protestant communities abroad, the same writer
-expresses his opinion thus:--
-
-“I cannot assent that either all or any considerable part of the
-Episcopal Divines in England do unchurch either all or most part of
-the Protestant Churches. No man is hurt but by himself. They unchurch
-none at all, but leave them to stand or fall to their own master. They
-do not unchurch the Swedish, Danish, Bohemian Churches, and many other
-Churches in Polonia, Hungaria, and those parts of the world who have
-an ordinary, uninterrupted succession of pastors--some by the names of
-Bishops, others under the name of Seniors, unto this day. (I meddle
-not with the Socinians.) They unchurch not the Lutheran Churches in
-Germany, who both assert Episcopacy in their confessions, and have
-actual superintendents in their practice, and would have Bishops, name
-and thing, if it were in their power.... Episcopal Divines do not deny
-those Churches to be true Churches, wherein salvation may be had. We
-advise them, as it is our duty, to be circumspect for themselves, and
-not to put it to more question, whether they have ordination or not, or
-desert the general practice of the Universal Church for nothing, when
-they may clear it if they please. Their case is not the same with those
-who labour under invincible necessity.... This mistake proceedeth from
-not distinguishing between the true nature and essence of a Church,
-which we do readily grant them, and the integrity or perfection of a
-Church, which we cannot grant them, without swerving from the judgment
-of the Catholic Church.”[442]
-
-“Wheresoever, in the world,” observes Cosin, “Churches bearing the
-name of Christ profess the true, ancient, and Catholic religion and
-faith, and invocate and worship, with one mouth and heart, God the
-Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost, if from actual communion
-with them I am now debarred, either by the distance of regions, or
-the dissensions of men, or any other obstacle; nevertheless, always
-in my heart, and soul, and affection, I hold communion and unite with
-them--that which I wish especially to be understood of the Protestant
-and well-reformed Churches. For the foundations being safe, any
-difference of opinion or of ceremonies--on points circumstantial, and
-not essential, nor repugnant to the universal practice of the ancient
-Church, in other Churches (over which we are not to rule)--we in a
-friendly, placid, and peaceable spirit, may bear, and therefore ought
-to bear.”[443]
-
-Morley is cautious:--“Our Church is not so liberal of her anathemas
-as [Rome] is. We are sure our Church is truly apostolical, and that
-for government and discipline, as well as doctrine. Whether the
-Christian congregations in other Protestant countries be so or no,
-_Ætatem habent, respondeant pro semetipsis et Domino suo stent
-vel cadent_. In the mean time our Church hath declared, that no
-man shall be accounted or taken to be a lawful Bishop, Priest or
-Deacon in the Church of England, or suffered to exercise any of those
-sacred functions, except he be called, tried, examined, and admitted
-thereunto, according unto the form hereafter following; or unless he
-had formerly Episcopal consecration, or ordination.”[444]
-
-[Sidenote: RESPECTING UNEPISCOPAL CHURCHES.]
-
-Of Nonconformists, Thorndike speaks in distinct and decided terms.
-Presbyterians, Independents, and Baptists, are guilty of schism.
-This he asserts over and over again; and of his opinion respecting
-schism, he leaves us in no doubt. Schism may, indeed, be unjust on
-both sides,--a favourite idea with Thorndike;--and it may be such as
-that salvation may be had on both sides; but this lenient view of the
-subject, he expresses only in relation to the differences between the
-Eastern and the Western Churches, between the Church of England and
-the Church of Rome. Schism, as committed by Nonconformists, he ever
-represents in the darkest colours. Presbyterian baptism, he affirms, to
-be no baptism. Their service is an imposture; in opposing Episcopacy,
-and setting up their synods, they erect altar against altar. It is mere
-equivocation to call their congregations Churches, and their ordinances
-sacraments. It was unwarrantable, he maintains, under the Commonwealth,
-to communicate with Presbyterians and Independents; although the moral
-impossibility of communing with them could not justify communing with
-Papists. The theory of the Independents he holds to be more suitable
-to Christianity than that of the Presbyterians, but he says it is
-impracticable, without Scriptural authority, and not less free from
-schism.[445] He counts the doctrine of justification, as he supposed
-it to be held by some Nonconformists, no other than a dreadful heresy,
-worse even than the Romanist doctrine of justification. Yet we find, in
-one place, this cold gleam of charity:--“I confess, as afore I allowed
-the Church of Rome some excuse from the unreasonableness of their
-adversaries; so here, considering the horrible scandals given by that
-communion in standing so rigorously upon laws so visibly ruinous to the
-service of God, and the advancement of Christianity, and the difficulty
-of finding that mean in which the truth stands between the extremes
-(as our Lord Christ between the thieves, saith Tertullian), I do not
-proceed to give the salvation of poor souls for lost, that are carried
-away with the pretence of reformation in the change that is made, even
-to hate, and persecute, by word or by deed, those who cannot allow it.”
-The book in which this passage occurs was published in 1659.
-
-Anabaptists, Thorndike pronounces to be schismatics, if not
-heretics:--“As for the ground of that opinion, which moves them
-to break up the seal of God, marked upon those that are baptized
-unto the hope of salvation upon the obligation of Christianity, by
-baptizing them anew, to the hope of salvation, without the obligation
-of Christianity; whether they are to be counted heretics therefore or
-not, let who will dispute. This, I may justly infer, they take as sure
-a course to murder the souls of those whom they baptize again, as of
-those whom they let go out of the world unbaptized.”[446]
-
-As Thorndike is more full and explicit in the statement of his
-views respecting the schism which he believed to be involved in
-Nonconformity, so also he goes beyond some other Anglicans in
-denouncing its principles, and censuring its professors. Perhaps
-certain writers of his class might think less unjustly, and more
-charitably, of Dissenters; yet none of them, consistently with their
-own Church notions, could regard Independent societies as Churches,
-whatever favourable opinion they might entertain of individual members.
-
-Anything like intercommunion with communities not Episcopalian,
-seems, in the estimation of such a man as Thorndike, utterly out of
-the question; and therefore by him, and by those who think with him,
-the Episcopal Church of England is placed in an entirely isolated
-position, in reference to the rest of Protestant Christendom, except
-where Bishops are retained; such instances being few and doubtful.
-
-[Sidenote: THE PRAYER BOOK.]
-
-Cosin, in his _Confession_, declares very strongly against
-sectaries and fanatics, amongst whom he ranks “not only the
-Separatists, the Anabaptists, and their followers, alas, too, too
-many, but also the New Independents and Presbyterians of our country,
-a kind of men hurried away with the spirit of malice, disobedience,
-and sedition, who by a disloyal attempt (the like whereof was never
-heard since the world began) have, of late, committed so many great
-and execrable crimes, to the contempt and despite of religion, and the
-Christian faith: which, how great they were, without horror cannot be
-spoken or mentioned.”[447]
-
-Connected with love for the Anglican Church, with dislike of the
-Papacy, and with alienation from unepiscopal communities, there existed
-a strong attachment to the formularies of faith, and of worship,
-contained in the Book of Common Prayer. That Book was used in secret
-during the Commonwealth; and before being reviewed in 1662--indeed
-previously to the Restoration--it received comment and eulogy from the
-pen of Hamon L’Estrange,--who published, in 1659, an elaborate and
-learned work on _The Alliance of Divine Offices_, in which he
-compared other Liturgies with that of the Church of England since the
-Reformation. His book is based upon the study of Whitgift and Hooker,
-who had answered Cartwright’s objections to the Anglican services, and
-who had convinced the author that they did not lie open to the charge
-of unlawfulness, but were of a nature to command obedience. L’Estrange
-also studied the previous records, as he calls them, of the first six
-centuries; the result being a conviction, that the noblest parts of
-the Liturgy were used by the Primitive Church, before a Popish Mass
-had ever been said; and that an admirable harmony obtained, even in
-external rites, between the Church of England and the ancient Fathers.
-This volume did not reach a second edition before the year 1690; but
-until it was supplemented or superseded by later works, it continued
-to be the chief authority on the subject, and has been, in our own
-time, thought worthy of republication in the library of Anglo-Catholic
-Theology.
-
-A new publication appeared, partly in 1651, and partly in 1662, bearing
-upon the Anglican controversy with Puritanism, of too important a
-character to be passed over in silence. The first five books of
-Hooker’s _Ecclesiastical Polity_, had long been the admiration
-of Episcopalian Churchmen,--the rest of the treatise, supposed to
-be lost, remaining to them an object of desire. At the periods now
-mentioned, there came to light the last three books of this great work
-as possessed by posterity.
-
-[Sidenote: HOOKER’S WORKS.]
-
-The sixth book, included in the part which issued from the press in
-1651, is, according to the title, a disquisition upon ecclesiastical
-power and the question of lay eldership; but the reader does not
-proceed many pages before he finds the disquisition going off in a
-tangent, from the subject of Church jurisdiction, to pursue inquiries
-relative to the Popish dogmas of confession and penance. Such a method
-of composition is so unlike that of “the judicious Hooker,” that there
-can be no doubt his last accomplished Editor is right in concluding,
-that we have here some compositions from the author’s pen not intended
-for insertion in the _Ecclesiastical Polity_. Notes remain
-showing that he had drawn up a plan for this department of his task,
-which would have methodically and pertinently disposed of it, but no
-MS. has been discovered filling up the carefully-digested outline. It
-has been suspected that the Puritan relatives of the Church champion
-in Elizabeth’s reign were guilty of foul play in this matter, and
-that after destroying most of the genuine copy, they vamped up the
-mutilated remainder with dissertations selected from other papers. Such
-a thing may be possible, but certainly it is not proved. I can find
-no satisfactory positive evidence in support of the suspicion,[448]
-and it is quite unaccountable how, if the Puritan manglers of his MSS.
-had made away with what related to lay eldership, they should leave in
-existence a long Essay, containing a lengthened defence of Episcopal
-order. This defence, which appeared in 1662, under the Editorship
-of Gauden, who does not say where he obtained it, presents abundant
-internal proof of its genuineness, showing nevertheless the absence
-of that careful revision and correction, which the Author would have
-bestowed, had he lived to complete his own publication. It forms the
-seventh book.
-
-In the fourth and fifth chapters there is a discussion of the main
-point, “whence it hath grown that the Church is governed by Bishops.”
-In the fifth, Hooker says:--
-
-“It was the general received persuasion of the ancient Christian
-world, that _Ecclesia est in Episcopo_, ‘the outward being of a
-Church consisteth in the having of a Bishop.’ That where colleges of
-presbyters were, there was at the first, equality amongst them, St.
-Jerome thinketh it a matter clear: but when the rest were thus equal,
-so that no one of them could command any other as inferior unto him,
-they all were controllable by the Apostles, who had that Episcopal
-authority abiding at the first in themselves, which they afterwards
-derived unto others. The cause wherefore they under themselves
-appointed such Bishops as were not every where at the first, is said to
-have been those strifes and contentions, for remedy whereof, whether
-the Apostles alone did conclude of such a regiment, or else they
-together with the whole Church judging it a fit and a needful policy,
-did agree to receive it for a custom; no doubt but being established
-by them on whom the Holy Ghost was poured in so abundant measure for
-the ordering of Christ’s Church, it had either Divine appointment
-beforehand, or Divine approbation afterwards, and is in that respect to
-be acknowledged the ordinance of God, no less than that ancient Jewish
-regiment, whereof though Jethro were the deviser, yet after that God
-had allowed it, all men were subject unto it, as to the polity of God,
-and not of Jethro.”
-
-In the course of the entire argument respecting Episcopacy, Hooker
-changes his standing again and again; sometimes taking higher,
-and sometimes lower ground; now insisting upon the Divine origin
-of Diocesan Bishops, and then, supposing their origin not to be
-immediately Divine, attempting to show the inherent authority of the
-Church to determine its own frame of government, and to establish the
-sufficiency of such evidence as may be drawn from patristic sources.
-
-[Sidenote: HOOKER’S WORKS.]
-
-The eighth book treats of the Royal supremacy in ecclesiastical
-matters, and is intended as a reply to certain Puritan objections
-brought against the form of that supremacy as established by the laws
-of the land. It is a curious circumstance that one chapter contains a
-vindication of the title, “Supreme Head of the Church;”[449] although
-this did not remain the parliamentary title of the sovereign, according
-to the statute of supremacy in the first year of Elizabeth’s reign: and
-such being the fact, it may be inferred, that Hooker used the title as
-an equivalent to the statutable appellation of “Supreme Governor in all
-spiritual and ecclesiastical causes.”
-
-Hooker’s vindication of the Royal supremacy contains a course of
-elaborate reasoning in support of the prerogative with regard to Church
-assemblies, and Church legislation, the appointing of Bishops, and
-the jurisdiction of Ecclesiastical Courts. Finally, he discusses the
-Royal exemption from ecclesiastical censure, as well as from all other
-kinds of judicial power. This topic is handled with much caution, and
-some reticence, and the chapter in which it is considered remains
-in an unfinished state. I have not lighted upon any controversial
-publications arising out of the appearance of these recovered writings,
-but I notice that Kennet says, Bishop Gauden “doth, with great
-confidence, use diverse arguments to satisfy the world that the three
-books joined to the five genuine books of the said Mr. Hooker are
-genuine, and penned by him, notwithstanding those poisonous assertions
-against the regal power, which are to be found therein.”[450] To what
-in particular the closing words refer is not plain; they can scarcely
-point to a fragment on the limits of obedience, which Gauden attached
-to the eighth book, but which Keble transfers to an Appendix, since the
-author there enforces subjection to civil governors as a conscientious
-duty. It is not a little remarkable, that Thorndike makes no use either
-of the earlier or later editions of the _Ecclesiastical Polity_.
-
-The Anglican Divines included distinguished sermon writers. They
-followed in the wake of Andrewes and Donne, whom they resembled in
-their theology, from whom they differed in their style. Like the
-Puritans after the Reformation, they were generally cut off from public
-preaching during the Interregnum; but they wrote sermons, and some
-abroad had liberty to preach,--as for example Cosin, who, at Paris,
-during his exile, delivered several discourses, which are included in
-his works. The chief of them were prepared for the festivals of the
-Church, and treat of the Nativity, the Resurrection, and the Ascension:
-subjects which are handled sometimes in a cold orthodox manner,
-sometimes with forcible and original reasoning, and now and then with
-strokes of vigorous eloquence. It is remarkable that we have no sermons
-by Cosin, written after the Restoration; and indeed there is a general
-paucity of homiletic literature by members of the Episcopal bench for
-twenty years before the Revolution.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICAN SERMON WRITERS.]
-
-The Irish bench supplied one brilliant sermon-writer--whose
-compositions in that department are above all praise. Jeremy Taylor’s
-theology has been already considered, space here only permits the
-remark that his theology appears in his sermons, that he is the
-true Anglican throughout, and that all his opinions are there
-arrayed in robes of bewitching grace and splendour. His practical
-works,--for example _The Life of Christ_ and _Holy Living
-and Dying_,--may be classed with his discourses; and abound in
-rich specimens of that golden eloquence--stamped with an Anglican
-mint-mark--which he was wont copiously to issue from the pulpit.
-Sanderson’s sermons are exhaustive treatises, in which the homiletic
-character sometimes fades, but orthodox doctrine is always implied;
-the casuistry of Christian experience is handled sometimes in almost
-a Puritan spirit, and Christian ethics are ever treated in a clear,
-manly, incisive style. Barrow’s sermons are also treatises, many of
-them most decidedly doctrinal, orthodox and argumentative. But, of all
-these Divines, it may be said--not excepting Jeremy Taylor, who exerts
-a charm of another kind--that they lack the evangelical unction, the
-softness and fragrance of which is felt to be suffused over the Puritan
-homilies.
-
-Controversy tinges more or less most of the sermons of that period;
-but, for invective, Dr. South has won an unenviable notoriety. No one
-can admire more than I do, the good sense and masculine style of this
-author. There are sermons of his which are perfect models of pulpit
-address; but on reading others, who but must feel that perhaps there
-never was another man who _could_ so well enforce the truths
-of Christianity, who also _did_ so flagrantly violate their
-spirit. He never misses, or rather, he never fails to make, when he
-had any pretence for it, an opportunity of attacking his Puritan
-contemporaries; although he must have lived on terms of civility with
-them when at Oxford. As in a sermon by Chrysostom, preached at Antioch,
-one scarcely ever gets to the end, without finding him rebuking
-swearers, so South in his sermons preached at Westminster Abbey, and in
-other places, rarely concludes without assailing English schismatics,
-who were not less bad in his eyes, than were the most profane Syrians
-in the eyes of the orator of the Eastern Church. Men destitute of
-South’s power manifested a similar temper, vilifying the Nonconformists
-“as far more dangerous enemies than the Papists;”[451] and thus,
-in the treatment of opponents, they imitated and even exceeded the
-worst polemical vices of such men as Vicars and Edwards, under the
-Commonwealth.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICAN CRITICS.]
-
-Before the Restoration there appeared a book on practical piety, which
-attained to an extraordinary degree of popularity. Every one has heard
-of the _Whole Duty of Man_; and most people given to religious
-reading have met with a treatise bearing that title; probably on
-examination it has proved to be what is entitled, the _New Whole
-Duty of Man_, a work proceeding on different principles from the
-original treatise--only the name of which it bears, only the form
-of which it imitates.[452] The original treatise, from the pen of
-an anonymous author,[453] bears a commendatory letter, written by
-Dr. Hammond, a circumstance which alone would suggest our ranking
-it amongst the productions of the Anglican school of theology. Its
-contents justify our doing so. It proceeds upon the theory, so largely
-illustrated by Thorndike, that by baptism men are brought into a
-gracious covenant with God; and that men become, not by merit, but by
-mercy, entitled to the blessings promised in the Gospel. A Christian
-life is the fulfilment of vows and obligations incurred in baptism.
-The book recognizes the doctrines of the Trinity, the Divinity of
-our Lord, the Atonement, and other related truths under Anglican
-forms of expression; but the stress of the work, indeed every page,
-except a few at the beginning, consists in an inculcation of human
-duty, considered under a threefold aspect--so common once in the
-pulpits of the Establishment--our duty towards God, our duty towards
-ourselves, and our duty towards one another. All the precepts of
-devotion, of virtue, and of beneficence are ranged under these heads.
-The great motives to godliness and goodness are not overlooked; but
-the proportion in which they are exhibited is very small compared with
-the space allotted to a prescriptive treatment of the subject. Of the
-fulness and variety of the practical advice given no one can complain;
-but the scanty reference to the distinctive doctrines of the Gospel,
-will be acknowledged by most Divines as a serious defect. The defect
-is explained, but not justified by the circumstance, that the book is
-a reaction against a theological tendency, needing to be checked--“the
-fanatics were shamefully regardless of good works, and preached up
-faith as all-sufficient.”
-
-The _Whole Duty of Man_ has been more condemned and more praised
-than it deserves. It presents a large amount of moral advice, but it
-lacks the main motive power which produces Christian virtue; and as
-to style, it is hard and unattractive from beginning to end, utterly
-lacking tenderness, and exhibiting practical religion only in a _dry
-light_.
-
-Some of the Anglican Divines zealously devoted themselves to Biblical
-criticism. In the matter of exegesis, the Puritans achieved much; but
-they looked with suspicion upon all attempts to amend the sacred text.
-In this department, certain of their theological opponents laid their
-own age and posterity under immense obligation. Bryan Walton, perhaps,
-is not to be numbered with Anglicans; and amongst his most efficient
-helpers, was Lightfoot, more of a Latitudinarian than an Anglican,--but
-Castell and Pocock, Herbert Thorndike, and Alexander Huish, if not
-Thomas Hyde and Samuel Clark,[454] all of them eminent scholars, were
-more or less Anglican, certainly they were all Episcopalian, in their
-views; and it is to them, assisted by Oliver Cromwell, who permitted
-the paper for the purpose to be imported duty free, that we owe the
-English Polyglott,--which competent judges have pronounced superior to
-its more splendid predecessors, published on the Continent. Castell was
-enthusiastically devoted to critical studies, to which he sacrificed
-his property, his time, and his energies, with small reward, in the way
-of Church preferment. His _Lexicon Heptaglotton_ is a monument of
-astonishing learning, and worthy of being associated with his friend’s
-Polyglott Bible.
-
-After the Restoration, an idea was entertained of printing the famous
-Alexandrian MS., which had been sent as a present to Charles I. from
-the Greek Patriarch Cyrillus; and the editorship was to have been
-entrusted to Dr. Smith, an Oxford scholar, to whom Charles II. promised
-a Canonry at Windsor or Westminster for his labour; but the design was
-abandoned. Dr. John Fell, Bishop of Oxford, published, in 1675, an
-edition of the Greek New Testament, with various readings, taken from
-Walton and others; his object being to show the substantial correctness
-of the received text, and how little its integrity is affected by the
-numerous lections accumulated by an industrious collation of MSS.
-
-[Sidenote: ANGLICAN CRITICS.]
-
-To these critics must be added the well-known commentator Dr. Hammond,
-who, instead of following the Fathers and the Reformers in their
-schemes of mystical interpretation, struck out a path for himself, and
-sought to illustrate the grammatical sense of the sacred writings.
-He studied the Hellenistic dialect, compared Greek MSS., examined
-ancient manners and customs, and employed the opinions of the Gnostics
-to elucidate references in the Epistles to early heresies. This is
-very remarkable in an Anglican Divine, and it indicates what some
-who sympathized with him in other respects might have regarded as
-a rationalistic tendency--certainly they would have so regarded it
-in any one not belonging to themselves. Hammond’s _Paraphrase and
-Annotations_, published in 1659, may be taken as constituting
-an epoch in the history of exegesis; the more so on account of his
-influence, for his name stood so high with the Episcopalian clergy,
-“that he naturally turned the tide of interpretation his own way.”[455]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
-
-Four eminent Divines, who have made a deep mark on English literature,
-now claim attention, coming, as they do, from their complexion of
-thought, and from their characteristic opinions, between the Anglicans
-just reviewed, and the Latitudinarians who remain to be noticed.
-
-William Chillingworth was one of those clever, hard-headed men in whom
-the reasoning faculty predominates over imagination and sentiment, and
-who are thoroughly at home in the exercises of logic, subjecting the
-opinions of opponents to a subtle analysis, and entrenching themselves
-behind carefully-constructed outworks of argumentative defence. The
-skill which, as an engineer, he displayed at the siege of Gloucester,
-in framing engines to storm the place, was of a piece with the skill
-which he exhibited in attacking what he believed to be forms of error
-and superstition.[456] He is best known by his great work, _The
-Religion of Protestants a Safe Way to Salvation_; and it is evident
-that he had derived advantages, as an assailant of the Roman Church,
-from the acquaintance with it which he had formed during the period of
-his connection with that community.
-
-[Sidenote: LIBERAL ORTHODOX.--CHILLINGWORTH.]
-
-His famous dictum, “The Bible, and the Bible alone, is the religion of
-Protestants”--the lever with which he sought to upheave and overthrow
-the tenets of Popery--placed him in a theological position distinct
-from that which was occupied by Anglicans; for, though they were
-ready enough to appeal to Scripture against Rome, they also appealed
-to Christian antiquity against Puritanism. Chillingworth’s method of
-reasoning betrayed an absence of sympathy with High Church Divines in
-their reverence for the early Fathers, and showed how he fixed his
-religious opinions solely upon the basis of the written revelation,
-as interpreted by reason. And at the same time, by largely insisting
-upon the principle that the Apostles’ Creed contains all necessary
-points of mere belief,[457] and by the disposition which he manifested
-to recognize as little doctrinal meaning upon disputed points as
-possible in the articles of that early Christian confession, he not
-only separated himself from Anglicans, but he separated himself from
-Puritans. He was reticent upon evangelical subjects, respecting which
-the latter delighted to speak; and from his desire to comprehend people
-of considerable dogmatic divergency within the pale of the Church, he
-incurred reproaches from those last named, and was stigmatized by them,
-not only as an Arminian, but as a Socinian. No definite idea of his
-opinions upon some important parts of Divine truth can be gathered from
-his writings. It is plain that he loved a large liberty in all kinds
-of thinking, and set a higher value upon a religious temper, a devout
-spirit, a Catholic disposition, and a moral life, than upon orthodoxy
-of sentiment, or forms of worship, or methods of ecclesiastical
-government and discipline.
-
-Chillingworth, a native of the City, and an ornament of the University
-of Oxford, died in 1644. Eight years afterwards, the English Church
-lost another Divine, an ornament of the University of Cambridge, who,
-though very different in many respects from Chillingworth, may be
-classed with him in the same division of liberal Divines.
-
-[Sidenote: LIBERAL ORTHODOX.--SMITH.]
-
-John Smith possessed a mind in which the mystical element mingled
-itself with an intense energy of reflection, a habit of calm thought,
-and an imagination which employed itself, not in painting individual
-objects, but in dyeing, with rich tints of colour, abstract and
-immutable ideas. His mental training had been in the Greek Academy.
-He had long sat as a loving disciple at the feet of Plato, and had
-conversed with the earlier and later Platonists. The reader of
-Smith’s works will, in every page, discover traces of his peculiar
-culture, as well as of his peculiar endowments. His _Select
-Discourses_, published in 1660, take a wide range, embracing the
-true method of attaining Divine knowledge; the errors that grow up
-beside it--superstition on the one hand, atheism on the other; the
-immortality of the soul, which is the subject, and the existence and
-nature of God, who is the Author and object of religion; and prophecy,
-which Smith treats as the way whereby revealed truth is dispensed
-and conveyed, rather than as a proof whereby it is established. The
-discourses upon the difference between an evangelical and legal
-righteousness, upon the excellency and nobleness of true religion, and
-upon a Christian’s conflict with and conquest over Satan, exhibit the
-author’s characteristic views of doctrinal, ethical, and experimental
-Divinity. The first only requires particular notice here. “The law was
-the ministry of death, and in itself an external and lifeless thing;
-neither could it procure or beget that Divine life and spiritual form
-of godliness, in the souls of men, which God expects from all the
-heirs of glory, nor that glory which is only consequent upon a true
-Divine life.” Whereas, on the other side, the Gospel is set forth “as
-a mighty efflux and emanation of life and spirit, freely issuing forth
-from an omnipotent source of grace and love, as that true, God-like,
-vital influence whereby the Divinity derives itself into the souls
-of men, enlivening and transforming them into its own likeness, and
-strongly imprinting upon them a copy of its own beauty and goodness;
-like the spermatical virtue of the heavens, which spreads itself
-freely upon this lower world, and, subtily insinuating itself into
-this benumbed, feeble, earthly matter, begets life and motion in
-it. Briefly, it is that whereby God comes to dwell in us, and we in
-Him.”[458]
-
-Particular passages may mislead as to the general character of an
-author’s teaching; but there is a ring in these words, indicating at
-once the kind of metal of which Smith’s theology is made. It is of the
-same substance throughout. “The righteousness of faith,” he says, “and
-the righteousness of God, is a Christ-like nature in a man’s soul, or
-Christ appearing in the minds of men by the mighty power of His Divine
-Spirit, and thereby deriving a true participation of Himself to them.”
-And in accordance with this, and showing at the same time the author’s
-shrinking from definite and precise forms of dogmatic statement, such
-as may be found in Anglicans on the one side, and in Puritans on
-the other, he observes that the Gospel “was not brought in, only to
-refine some notions of truth that might formerly seem discoloured and
-disfigured by a multitude of legal rites and ceremonies; it was not to
-cast our opinions concerning the way of life and happiness only into a
-new mould and shape in a pedagogical kind of way; it is not so much a
-system and body of saving Divinity, but the spirit and vital influx of
-it, spreading itself over all the powers of men’s souls, and quickening
-them into a Divine life; it is not so properly a doctrine that is
-wrapt up in ink and paper as it is _vitalis scientia_, a living
-impression made upon the soul and spirit.”[459] Another name challenges
-attention.
-
-The ever-memorable John Hales, pronounced by Pearson to have had “as
-great a sharpness, quickness, and subtlety of wit as ever this or
-perhaps any nation bred,” had been a Calvinist; but he said, that at
-the Synod of Dort, which he attended, he bid John Calvin good-night.
-He had certainly what might be termed very broad views of Christian
-faith; for he remarked, “The Church is like Amphiaraus, she hath no
-device, no word in her shield; mark and essence with her are all one,
-and she hath no other note but to be.”[460] This was a statement which
-removed him to an equal distance from both Anglicans and Puritans; and
-one sentence from a sermon by Hales is sufficient to show how widely
-his teaching as to the way of salvation differed from all preachers
-of the latter class. “The water of baptism, and the tears of true
-repentance, creatures of themselves weak and contemptible, yet through
-the wonderful operation of the grace of God annext unto them, are able,
-were our sins as red as twice-dyed scarlet, to make them as white as
-snow.”[461] Hales was as orthodox as a man could be on the subject of
-the Trinity;[462] and, in his masterly sermon on Christian omnipotency,
-plainly asserts the power and sufficiency of Divine grace.[463]
-
-[Sidenote: LIBERAL ORTHODOX.--FARINDON.]
-
-Hales died in 1656, and was followed to the grave two years afterwards
-by his attached friend Anthony Farindon, both of them being members
-of the University of Oxford. Farindon was far more evangelical than
-Hales and Chillingworth. He had not the mystical turn of mind which
-is so marked in John Smith, nor was he so manifestly a Platonist.
-Altogether his habits of thought are much more on a level with common
-understandings.
-
-The distance which severed Farindon from the Anglicans comes out in
-the following passage:--“And now, if we look into the Church, we shall
-find that most men stand in need of a ‘yea, rather.’ ... _Felix
-sacramentum!_ ‘Blessed sacrament of baptism!’ ... It is true; but
-there is ... ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they that have put on Christ.’
-‘Blessed sacrament of the Lord’s Supper.’ It is true; but, ‘Yea,
-rather; blessed are they that dwell in Christ.’ ‘Blessed profession
-of Christianity!’ ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they that are Christ’s.’
-‘Blessed cross!’ The Fathers call it so. ‘Yea, rather; blessed are
-they that have crucified their flesh, with the affections and lusts.’
-‘Blessed Church!’ ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they who are members of
-Christ.’ ‘Blessed Reformation!’ ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they that
-reform themselves.’”[464]
-
-Nor is the distinction between Farindon and the Puritans much less
-visible, when he remarks, with regard to the act of justification,
-“What mattereth it whether I believe or not believe, know or not
-know, that our justification doth consist in one or more acts, so
-that I certainly know and believe that it is the greatest blessing
-that God can let fall upon His creature, and believe that by it I am
-made acceptable in His sight, and, though I have broken the law,
-yet shall be dealt with as if I had been just and righteous indeed?
-whether it be done by pardoning all my sins, or imputing universal
-obedience to me, or the active and passive obedience of Christ?”
-“And as in justification, so in the point of faith by which we are
-justified, what profit is there so busily to inquire whether the nature
-of faith consisteth in an obsequious assent, or in the appropriation
-of the grace and mercy of God, or in a mere fiducial apprehension and
-application of the merits of Christ?”[465] It would be difficult to
-point out, in the writings of this theologian, a precise definition
-either of justification or of faith, and equally difficult to point
-out any statement adverse to those views of salvation by grace in
-which all evangelic Christians agree. He finds fault with Augustine
-for confounding justification with sanctification, and separates
-himself from the Anglican, though not so widely as from the Romanist,
-when he stigmatizes as “an unsavoury tenet” the doctrine, “that
-justification is not a pronouncing, but a making one righteous; that
-inherent holiness is the formal cause of justification; and that we
-may redeem our sins, and purchase forgiveness, by fasting, almsdeeds,
-and other good works.” Deficient in definiteness upon these points,
-Farindon is clear in reference to the Trinity, the Incarnation, and
-the Atonement. He expounds them in an orthodox way, yet he does not
-dwell upon them so frequently, and at such length, as his Anglican
-and Puritan contemporaries. He is no Calvinist; without entering into
-lengthened controversy on the five points, he shows his great dislike
-to Calvin’s views.[466] He holds decidedly that Christ died for all
-men; and with caustic reasoning, shows that, when it is said, “God
-so loved the world,” it cannot mean, He so loved the elect.[467] His
-Arminianism is perhaps nearly, if not quite, as evangelical as that of
-our Wesleyan brethren, but he lacks the fervour with which they set
-forth the verities of Christianity in relation to the deepest wants of
-man. Puritans could scarcely apply the moral lessons of the Gospel to
-the hearts of men on grounds more evangelic than those presented by
-Farindon; but we miss in his sermons a penetrating fire like that of
-John Owen, and a melting pathos like that of Richard Baxter.
-
-[Sidenote: CAMBRIDGE SCHOOL.]
-
-The way is now open for viewing that division of thinkers who
-distinguished themselves, after the Restoration, by the breadth of
-their opinions. They followed in the steps of those whom we have now
-described, but in some particulars they went far beyond them. In a
-former volume I touched upon the Cambridge school of theologians; it
-remains for me to trace the subsequent development and progress of
-their peculiarities. They early received the name of Latitudinarians,
-and in 1662 their name had passed into everybody’s mouth, although its
-explicit meaning, it was said, remained as great a mystery as the order
-of the Rosicrucians. Some spoke of them as holding dangerous opinions,
-others defended them; but all which people in general knew seemed to be
-that the new school of thinkers mostly belonged to the University of
-Cambridge, and that they mostly followed the new philosophy.
-
-A contemporary--one of their number--describes them in the first place
-as attached to the liturgy of the Church of England; and as admiring
-its solemnity, gravity, and primitive simplicity, together with its
-freedom both from affected phrases, and from any mixture of vain
-and doubtful opinions. They also, he says, believed “that it is the
-greatest check to devotion which can be, to hear men mix their private
-opinions with their public prayers,”--and they expressed themselves
-strongly against extempore devotions. As for rites and ceremonies,
-they approved what is called “the virtuous mediocrity of the Reformed
-Episcopal Church,” between the “meretricious gaudiness” of Rome, and
-“the squalid sluttery” of the fanatics. They contended that “so long as
-we live in this region of mortality, we must make use of such external
-helps” as the Church has thought fitted for the ends of worship.
-According to the same authority, they were averse to Presbyterianism
-and to Independency; and were decided supporters of Episcopal order. As
-for the doctrines of the Church, the Latitudinarians cordially adhered
-to the Thirty-nine Articles, to the three Creeds, and to any doctrine
-held by the Church, “unless absolute reprobation be one, which they do
-not think themselves bound to believe.” Great reverence is attributed
-to them, for the genuine monuments of the ancient Fathers, those
-especially of the first and purest age; and the writer then meets the
-charge of their hearkening too much to reason. For reason, he says,
-“is that faculty, whereby a man must judge of everything; nor can a
-man believe anything except he have some reason for it, whether that
-reason be a deduction from the light of nature, and those principles
-which are the candle of the Lord, set up in the soul of every man that
-hath not wilfully extinguished it, or a branch of Divine revelation
-in the oracles of Holy Scripture; or the general interpretation of
-genuine antiquity, or the proposal of our own Church consentaneous
-thereto; or lastly, the result of some or all of these: for he that
-will rightly make use of his reason, must take all that is reasonable
-into consideration. And it is admirable to consider how the same
-conclusions do naturally flow from all these several principles; and
-what in the faithful use of the faculties that God hath given, men have
-believed for true, doth excellently agree with that revelation that
-God hath exhibited in the Scripture, and the doctrine of the ancient
-Church with them both. Thus the freedom of our wills, the universal
-intent of Christ’s death, and sufficiency of God’s grace, the condition
-of justification, and many other points of the like nature, which have
-been almost exploded in these latter degenerate ages of the world, do
-again begin to obtain, though with different persons upon different
-accounts: some embrace them for their evidence in Scripture, others
-for the concurrent testimony of the primitive Church for above four
-hundred years; others for the reasonableness of the things themselves,
-and their agreement both with the Divine attributes, and the easy
-suggestions of their own minds. Nor is there any point in Divinity,
-where that which is most ancient doth not prove the most rational, and
-the most rational the ancientest; for there is an eternal consanguinity
-between all verity; and nothing is true in Divinity, which is false
-in Philosophy, or on the contrary; and therefore what God hath joined
-together, let no man put asunder.”[468]
-
-[Sidenote: CAMBRIDGE SCHOOL.]
-
-The account is that of a partizan, who evidently wishes to make
-Latitudinarianism stand well in the estimation of all sorts of
-Churchmen; and therefore he strives to paint its teachers in colours
-of orthodoxy, and he charily remarks that they will be “generally
-suspected to be for liberty of conscience.”
-
-Baxter, in 1665, speaks of the same school, as Platonists, or
-Cartesians, and of many of them as Arminians, with this addition, that
-they had more charitable thoughts than others of the salvation of
-heathens and infidels; and that some of them agreed in the opinions
-of Origen, about the pre-existence of souls.[469] Burnet says that
-they “read Episcopius much,”[470] respecting whose works Thorndike
-affirmed, that in them “the faith of the Holy Trinity is made an
-indifferent thing,” and the doctrine of original sin is “turned out of
-doors,”[471]--a sweeping accusation which has been called in question,
-yet it would be difficult to establish the orthodoxy of Episcopius
-on the Trinity, in the sense attached to that term by writers like
-Thorndike. No doubt there were heterodox tendencies in the writings
-of Episcopius and his school; but in this respect some of the later
-Remonstrants went beyond their master.
-
-[Sidenote: FOWLER.]
-
-The writer who most fully expounded the tenets of the Latitudinarians
-as a whole was Edward Fowler, who hesitated to conform in 1662, but who
-became afterwards Rector of Allhallows, Bread Street, and finally was
-elevated to the see of Gloucester. In his work _On the Principles and
-Practices of Certain Moderate Divines of the Church of England_,
-published in 1679, he professes truly to represent and defend them, and
-every page bears witness to the fact of their having been adopted by
-this author. He strongly maintains the eternal and immutable grounds
-of morality, against the pernicious principle which had been urged by
-some Calvinists, that the entire basis of virtue is to be found in the
-will of God, and vindicates the prominence given by the new teachers to
-the reasonableness of Christianity. Though the supernatural origin of
-the Gospel, and the Divine authority of its doctrines, are implied, and
-even distinctly acknowledged in the volume, yet the impression given by
-it altogether is such as to place the duty of accepting Christianity
-mainly upon the ground of its being a rational system. The production
-of faith is described as a process of reasoning, with regard to which
-the inward testimony of the Spirit is resolved “ordinarily” into a
-blessing on the use of means, _i.e._, the consideration of the
-motives He hath given us to believe.[472]
-
-Another passage may be quoted, indicating the view of the writer upon a
-question which proves a touchstone of theological sentiment.
-
-The Latitudinarians “are very careful so to handle the doctrine
-of justifying faith, as not only to make obedience to follow it,
-but likewise to include a hearty willingness to submit to all
-Christ’s precepts in the nature of it; and to show the falsity and
-defectiveness of some descriptions of faith, that have had too general
-an entertainment, and still have. This they look upon themselves
-as greatly obliged to do, as being well aware, of what dangerous
-consequence some received notions of that grace are, and that not a few
-that have imbibed them, have so well understood their true and natural
-inferences, as to be thereby encouraged to let the reins loose to all
-ungodliness.”[473]
-
-Fowler affirms that those who are sincerely righteous, and from an
-inward living principle allow themselves in no known sin, nor in
-the neglect of any known duty, which is to be truly, evangelically
-righteous, shall be dealt with and rewarded, in and through Christ,
-as if they were perfectly and in a strict legal sense so. Entering
-essentially into Fowler’s notion of faith is the idea of its being the
-germ of Christian virtue: and, as it regards the connection between
-faith and justification, he believes that the receiving of Christ
-as Lord is a prerequisite to the obtaining of Christ as Redeemer.
-He defines justifying faith in these words:--“A grace of the Holy
-Spirit, whereby a man being convinced of his sin and miserable estate
-in regard of it, and an all-sufficiency in Christ to save from both,
-receives Him as He is tendered in the Gospel, or according to his three
-offices of Prophet, Priest, and King;” and,--which is important to
-the understanding of Fowler’s views,--he adds, “That act of receiving
-Christ as Lord, is to go before that of receiving Him as a Priest;
-for we may not rely upon Him for salvation, till we are willing to
-yield obedience to Him.”[474] In all this, and in much more, may
-be recognized a striving after some way of thoroughly meeting the
-two sides of that redemption from evil, which in the Gospel is ever
-represented as one. Whilst some theologians made holiness the result
-of faith in a Divine salvation, which salvation was treated by them
-as identical with justification, and others considered holiness as
-an essential part of it,--Fowler leaned in the direction of making
-holiness the means of salvation; and the tendency to adopt a _via
-media_ further appears in his attempt to steer a middle course
-between Calvinism and Arminianism:--He remarks, “That there is such
-a thing as distinguishing grace, whereby some persons are absolutely
-elected, by virtue whereof they shall be (having potent and infallible
-means prepared for them) irresistibly saved. But that others, that are
-not in the number of those singular and special favourites, are not
-at all in a desperate condition, but have sufficient means appointed
-for them to qualify them for greater or less degrees of happiness, and
-have sufficient grace offered to them some way or other, and some time
-or other; and are in a capacity of salvation either greater or less,
-through the merits of Jesus Christ; and that none of them are damned,
-but those that wilfully refuse to co-operate with that grace of God,
-and will not act in some moral suitableness to that power they have
-received.”[475]
-
-[Sidenote: FOWLER.]
-
-Universal redemption,--by which is signified the universal
-applicability of our Lord’s atoning sacrifice,--is strenuously
-maintained by this Divine;[476] and he speaks hopefully of the future
-state, through Christ, of virtuous heathens.
-
-Passing to Church questions, the same writer expresses a preference
-for Episcopacy, but does not unchurch unepiscopal societies; he
-holds Erastian views of the power of the civil magistrate; and
-strangely denies, that liberty of conscience forms a part of Christian
-liberty. He would concede to every man liberty of opinion, but not
-the liberty of persuading others to adopt his opinion; so that this
-scheme, ecclesiastically considered, runs at last into the doctrine
-of intolerance. Throughout Fowler’s works an anti-Puritan feeling
-is predominant; and his allusions to Nonconformists are by no means
-friendly.[477]
-
-Wilkins, the moderate and liberal Bishop of Chester, belonged to
-the same class with Fowler. Known chiefly by his scientific works,
-he, nevertheless, deserves notice as one of the early defenders of
-natural religion against the attacks and the innuendoes of sceptics
-and infidels. The authors who have been just mentioned passed over
-the evidences of religion and plunged at once into the discussion of
-doctrines; but Wilkins saw that there is much outside Christianity
-which needed defence, for the subsequent preservation of the palladium
-of the faith. He is to be reckoned amongst the first to expound those
-more general and fundamental truths which, in the next century,
-occupied so much attention, and were esteemed bulwarks of revelation.
-He wrote upon the principles and duties of natural religion; but
-only twelve chapters of the book on the subject were completed by
-himself; the rest being prepared from the Bishop’s MSS., by his
-friend Tillotson. Cumberland’s _De legibus Naturæ Disquisitio
-Philosophica_ (1672) is scarcely a theological treatise, it being a
-pioneer in the dangerous region of utilitarian ethics; but Cumberland
-may properly be reckoned as belonging to the Latitudinarians, for his
-speculations are more or less intimately related to what is generally
-regarded as the religion of nature in its alliance with the religion of
-revelation.
-
-[Sidenote: CUDWORTH.]
-
-A chief--if not the very first place--amongst the opponents of atheism
-and immorality, must be adjudged to Ralph Cudworth, whose learning
-and ability have reflected so much lustre on the Cambridge school.
-His _Intellectual System_ is left unfinished, and reminds us of
-costly preparations for palatial buildings which have never risen
-above a few layers of marble blocks. With such a comparison, however,
-a contrast is suggested; for whilst the substructions referred to, may
-be monuments of the folly, condemned in the Gospel, of him who begins
-to build and is not able to finish,--Cudworth’s treatise shows it was
-from no want of power that he left his work incomplete. Of the five
-chapters of the first and only book of the _Intellectual System_,
-the fourth and fifth are by very far the longest, and these are devoted
-to Theology. It comes not within my province to make an attempt at
-deciding upon the place of honour due to Cudworth in the temple of
-fame, to report his speculations, or to repeat his critical estimates
-of different philosophers; my duty is simply to call attention to the
-two chapters, in which he ventures to trace a resemblance between the
-Trinity of Plato and the Trinity of Scripture, and argues also against
-Atheism. Respecting the latter, Cudworth had stated in his second
-chapter, the various reasonings of the ancient fatalists, whose system
-he characterized as “a gigantical and titanical attempt to dethrone
-the Deity,”--“Atheism openly swaggering under the glorious appearance
-of wisdom and philosophy.” In the fourth chapter, where he speaks of
-the Trinity, he explains Platonic ideas, attempting to show, that
-notwithstanding the difference between them and the ideas in Scripture,
-the three hypostases of the Platonists were Homoousian, Coessential,
-and Consubstantial. He touches upon the opinions of the Fathers, and
-expounds the views of Athanasius, who supposes that the three Divine
-hypostases “make up one entire Divinity, after the same manner as the
-fountain and the stream make up one entire river; or the root, and
-the stock, and the branches, one entire tree.” Cudworth contends that
-the Christian Trinity, though a mystery, is more agreeable to reason
-than the Platonic; and that there is no absurdity at all in supposing
-“the pure soul and body of the Messiah to be made a living temple or
-Shechinah-image or statue of the Deity.”[478] The bent of the author’s
-mind, and the tendency of the school to which he belonged, is seen
-throughout this part of his design, which is not to place the doctrine
-of the Trinity on a scriptural basis, but to establish and illustrate
-its perfect reasonableness, and to point out coincidences between it
-and some of the best guesses, or most satisfactory conclusions, of
-thinkers who never enjoyed the advantages of revelation. In harmony
-with this, is the fact of his noting, in the midst of his speculations,
-the following errors:--“The first, of those who make Christianity
-nothing but an Antinomian Plot against real righteousness, and, as
-it were, a secret confederacy with the Devil. The second, of those
-who turn that into matter of mere notion and opinion, dispute and
-controversy, which was designed by God only as a contrivance, machine,
-or engine to bring men effectually to a holy and godly life.”[479]
-
-[Sidenote: CUDWORTH.]
-
-The fifth chapter is devoted to “a particular confutation of all the
-atheistic grounds,” which confutation covers 270 folio pages. The two
-principal objections which he combats are, that, either men have no
-idea of God at all, or else, none but such as is compounded and made up
-of impossible and contradictory notions; whence these Atheists would
-infer Him to be an inconceivable nothing, and that, as nothing could
-come from nothing, it may be concluded, that whatever substantially
-or really is, was from all eternity of itself unmade, or uncreated by
-any Deity. The answering of these objections--in a course of argument
-which combines great learning with metaphysical acuteness--leads
-Cudworth to introduce proofs of the Divine existence drawn from final
-causes, as in the subjoined passage, which is quoted as one of the
-most familiar and popular forms of reasoning to be found in this
-recondite treatise:--“It is no more possible, that the fortuitous
-motion of dead and senseless matter, should ever from itself be taught
-and necessitated to produce such an orderly and regular system as the
-frame of this whole world is, together with the bodies of animals, and
-constantly to continue the same; than that a man perfectly illiterate
-and neither able to write nor read, taking up a pen into his hand, and
-making all manner of scrawls, with ink upon paper, should at length be
-taught and necessitated by the thing itself, to write a whole quire of
-paper together, with such characters, as being decyphered by a certain
-key, would all prove coherent philosophic sense.” Or to take another
-instance:--“This is no more possible than that ten or a dozen persons,
-altogether unskilled in music, having several instruments given them,
-and striking the strings or keys thereof, any how as it happened,
-should, after some time of discord and jarring, at length be taught and
-necessitated, to fall into most exquisite harmony, and continue the
-same uninterruptedly for several hours together.”[480]
-
-Cudworth directed his studies chiefly to the foundations of religion
-and morality. Neither from his published works, nor, it would appear,
-from his unpublished MSS., in the British Museum, can any definite
-system of Biblical doctrine be gathered. The general colouring of his
-theological views, however, may be inferred from the very title of one
-of his printed treatises: “_Deus Justificatus_; or the Divine
-Goodness vindicated and cleared against the assertors of absolute and
-inconditionate Reprobation.”
-
-[Sidenote: CAMBRIDGE.--CRITICS.]
-
-Edward Stillingfleet, who has claimed our attention both as a healer
-and a stirrer up of strife, although not a doctrinal controversialist,
-demands some notice as a writer on Christian evidences. His broad
-and moderate churchmanship at the period of the Restoration, and
-his sympathy also at that time with the Latitudinarian Divines of
-Cambridge,--where he was educated and obtained a Fellowship at St.
-John’s in 1653,--entitle him to a place amongst them in the early
-part of his life.[481] It was in the year 1662, that he published his
-“_Origines Sacræ_; or Rational Account of the Christian Faith,
-as to the Truth and Divine Authority of the Scripture.” His learning,
-acuteness, logical ability, and lawyer-like habit of thought eminently
-fitted him for controversy, and these talents are signally displayed
-in the book now mentioned. The first part is occupied with an exposure
-of the obscurity, defect, and uncertainty of heathen histories, and of
-heathen chronology. In the treatment of this subject, he so completely
-undermines the credibility of all ancient history, except what is in
-Scripture, that he unwittingly precludes the proper use of the former
-in certain instances as a corroboration of the latter. He does not with
-thorough care distinguish between insufficiency and a complete want of
-authority. In the second book, he dwells on the knowledge, fidelity,
-and integrity of Moses; and upon the proofs of a Divine inspiration of
-the prophets from the fulfilment of their prophecies; but in this part
-of his work, he does not so much anticipate the details of the modern
-argument, as unfold the principles upon which he conceived the argument
-should rest. The evidence from miracles is also exhibited. The third
-book, to which the title of _Origines_ particularly points, treats
-of the being of God, and the origin of the universe,--of evil--of the
-nations of the earth--and of the Heathen Mythology. In connection with
-the origin of nations, he vindicates the Scripture history of the
-Deluge, and falls into harmony with modern geologists, by confessing
-that he sees no necessity from Scripture, to assert, that the flood
-spread itself over the whole surface of the earth.[482]
-
-Before proceeding further with the current of theological opinion, let
-me pause for a moment to mention the names of men who, in the service
-of Biblical learning, may perhaps be justly classed with the Divines
-now under review. Lightfoot, the Erastian, published, between 1644 and
-1664, a Harmony of the Gospels, a Commentary upon the Acts, and Notes
-upon St. Paul’s Epistles to the Romans and Corinthians, besides _Horæ
-Hebraicæ, et Talmudicæ_, and other Exercitations of a similar kind.
-All his books exhibit Rabbinical lore applied to the elucidation of the
-Holy Scriptures; and he is not only the first of our English Divines to
-break up new ground decidedly and extensively in this field, but he
-actually tills the soil to such a degree, that none of his successors
-in the same path of industry are equal to this master-workman. Besides
-his own volumes, he has contributed to the interests of Biblical
-scholarship, by largely assisting Walton in his Polyglott, and Poole in
-his Synopsis.
-
-Simon Patrick--numbered by Burnet among the Latitudinarians--wrote
-Commentaries upon the Old Testament, as far as the Book of
-Esther,--these were published between the years 1694 and 1705,--but at
-an earlier date, between 1678 and 1681, he wrote Paraphrases of Job
-and the Psalms, of Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, and the Song of Solomon. He
-united reverence with learning, and brevity with accuracy; and avoiding
-the method of citing a number of opinions, which only perplex the
-reader, he gives his own in a style which is clear, and with arguments
-which are forcible.[483]
-
-There is another person entitled to honourable mention, which perhaps
-may be as fittingly introduced here as anywhere: for, though he cannot
-be identified with the Latitudinarian school, neither can he in any
-proper sense be pronounced either Anglican or Puritan. Dr. James Ussher
-occupies a niche of his own in the temple of theological literature.
-His broad sympathies seem to fix his place at least near to those
-scholars who have just been described. As to time, his publications
-take their place between the beginning of the works of Lightfoot and
-the beginning of the works of Patrick. Ussher differed from them both.
-He was far superior to the last in learning; but I should infer, from
-what is said of him, that in some respects--certainly in the Rabbinical
-department of study--he was inferior to Lightfoot as a Biblical critic.
-In the learning which relates to sacred chronology he had no rival.
-
-[Sidenote: CAMBRIDGE.--SCIENCE.]
-
-At the close of this chapter, in which so much has been said respecting
-the free thought of the Cambridge school, and just as we are on the
-point of noticing its wider developments, I would seize the opportunity
-of saying a few words in relation to views of science entertained by
-more advanced theological inquirers. Aristotle remained a favourite
-philosophical teacher with the supporters of old-fashioned orthodoxy.
-The “new learning,” as the investigation of physical phenomena after
-the Baconian method, came to be termed, inspired an immense degree of
-suspicion in the minds of a large number of clergymen, who fancied
-they could detect in it tendencies to Popery, or Socinianism,--they
-scarcely knew which; and the infant Royal Society, then beginning “to
-knock at the door where truth was to be found, although it was left for
-Newton to force it open,”[484] expressed a good deal of indignation
-on account of its supposed arrogance. It received such treatment as
-falls to the lot of a pert and conceited child, and old people shook
-their heads as they prognosticated the end of such folly after a little
-experience. Gunning, Bishop of Ely, Barlow, Bishop of Lincoln, and
-South, when orator at the University of Oxford, denounced these new
-studies as most mischievous; and Henry Stubbe, an intense admirer of
-Aristotle, raved against the scientific associates with a violence
-which was perfectly absurd.[485] That jealousy of science, which is
-not yet extinguished, then burnt with greater fury than it does now;
-and the Divines who united the inductive study of nature with the more
-immediate duties of their profession, had to sustain the brunt of a
-fierce battle. Seth Ward, Bishop of Salisbury, and Wilkins, Bishop
-of Chester, whilst theologically at variance, were scientifically in
-unison, and occupied the front rank in the clerical army on the side of
-intellectual advancement. But the person most zealous and laborious in
-the defence of the new philosophy was Joseph Glanvill, Rector of Bath,
-and Chaplain in Ordinary to Charles II., a writer of great ability, who
-had at his command a racy vigorous English style. It is amusing to find
-him employing the doctrine of a pre-existence of souls as the key to
-unlock the grand mysteries of Providence, and defending the possibility
-and real existence of witches and apparitions; still more amusing to be
-told by him that Adam needed neither spectacles nor telescope, for his
-naked eyes saw as much of the celestial world as we can discover with
-all the advantages of art.[486] Nevertheless the tone of his philosophy
-on the whole was decidedly sceptical; more so than Descartes, more so
-than Malebranche.
-
-[Sidenote: CAMBRIDGE.--SCIENCE.]
-
-Glanvill, who was a Fellow of the Royal Society, and acted as its
-Secretary, described and vindicated its character and proceedings, as a
-noble institution, vouchsafed to the modern world for the communication
-and increase of knowledge, according to the pregnant suggestion of
-Lord Bacon, that many heads and hands should unite in making and
-recording scientific observations, thus gathering up the facts which
-lie scattered in “the vast champaign of nature,” and bringing them
-into a common store.[487] But a notice of the way in which Glanvill
-defended the religious temper and tendencies of the experimental
-philosophy is more to our purpose; and I may, therefore, state that
-he executed his task in an ingenious and lively performance which is
-well worth the attention of certain people in the present day. He shows
-that God is to be praised in all His works--that His works are to be
-studied by those that would praise Him for them--that the study of
-nature in relation to God is very serviceable to religion--and that
-the ministers and professors of religion ought not to discourage, but
-promote the knowledge of the ways and works of its Author. He not only
-points out the connection between science and natural religion, but
-proves how true philosophy may be a friend of revelation, since it is
-a maxim of reason, that whatsoever God saith is to be believed, though
-we cannot apprehend the manner of it or tell how the thing should
-be.[488] No heterodoxy lurked under the advocacy of this scientific
-Divine, for he applied his principle to the Trinity and Incarnation,
-as being defensible on the same grounds as the existence of matter
-and motion. He moves nearer to the controversies of our own time, and
-indeed takes up a position in the midst of existing strifes, when he
-challenges the imputation, that philosophy teaches doctrines contrary
-to the Word of God. He meets it by saying, philosophy teaches many
-things which are not revealed in Scripture, for the design of Scripture
-is to teach religion, not science; no tenet ought to be exploded
-because some statements in the Divine oracles seem not to comport with
-it, natural objects being popularly described in the Old Testament;
-and the free experimental philosophy which the author pursued, and
-undertook to recommend, ventured, he said, on no peremptory and
-dogmatical assertions opposed to Divine authority, but confined itself
-to probabilities, where religion and the Scriptures are not at all
-concerned.[489] In many of his remarks, Glanvill anticipates the line
-of defence adopted by modern religious philosophers; and whilst he
-evinces a freedom of inquiry into natural phenomena which proves that
-he had burst the trammels of ancient prejudices, he also indicates a
-profound reverence for the Bible, and never allows his scepticism to
-utter a syllable inconsistent with belief in Divine revelation. I may
-add, that he published a discourse upon the agreement between reason
-and religion, against infidelity, scepticism, and fanaticisms of all
-sorts. It is apparent, from what he says, that he had no sympathy with
-Puritanism, but he had a great respect for Richard Baxter.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
-
-
-The term Latitudinarian, both as a term of praise and a term of
-reproach, intended by friends to signify that a man was liberal,
-intended by enemies to denote that he was heterodox, came to be applied
-to thinkers holding very different opinions. Amongst the Divines, often
-placed under the generic denomination, very considerable diversities of
-sentiment existed. Indeed, the name is so loosely used as to be given
-to some persons whose orthodoxy is above all just suspicion--to others
-not only verging upon but deeply involved in considerable error. When
-we examine the essence of Latitudinarianism, and find that it consisted
-in the elevation of morals above dogmas, in the assertion of charity
-against bigotry, in abstinence from a curious prying into mysteries,
-yet in the culture of a spirit of free investigation, we see that
-there might be lying concealed under much which is truly excellent,
-elements of a different description. Scepticism might nestle under
-all this virtue, and all this tolerance--under this love of what is
-reasonable, and this habit of liberal inquiry. Faith, in that which is
-most precious, might live in amicable alliance with the distinctive
-Latitudinarian temper, or scepticism might secretly nestle beneath its
-wings.
-
-From the beginning of the movement, some who took part in it,
-betrayed a want of sympathy in those strong Gospel convictions, which
-are of supreme importance, and in connection with it there were
-entertained, at an early period of its history, curious speculations
-respecting the pre-existence of souls, the salvation of the heathen,
-and the state of the body at the resurrection. Though some of these
-speculations were only fanciful, and others were capable of an orthodox
-construction, they certainly indicated a mental tendency very apt to
-resent the restraints of the Church’s faith, and to run into devious,
-if not dangerous paths. It was more than possible for this habit of
-rational and free inquiry to slip from under the control of its better
-principles, and to assume forms of even a disastrous kind.
-
-[Sidenote: LATITUDINARIANISM.]
-
-We cannot help recognizing in the movement, one wave amongst many then
-foaming and breaking over the wide ocean of human thought. Resistance
-to the strict Calvinistic theory appeared and increased in the French
-Protestant Church. In the academy of Saumur speculations were rife,
-undermining the doctrines of imputation and original sin, and pointing
-to the idea of universal grace.[490] A similar tendency existed in
-Switzerland, not so manifest but yet operative; for the _Formula
-Consensus_ adopted in 1675 to exclude Divines, who were not sound
-in the faith of Geneva, met with violent opposition, and had to be
-softened down, and explained away. Against orthodox Lutheranism, as
-expounded in its symbolical books, there had appeared in Germany,
-in the first half of the century, a scheme in support of union and
-toleration resting on the basis of the Apostles’ Creed, such a
-proposal being pronounced by opponents to be _Syncretism_ or a
-“_Lying medley_;” and in the second half of the same century may
-be traced the rise of Pietism under Spener, who, although an orthodox
-believer, exalted spiritual life above theological belief.[491]
-Even the Roman Catholic Church throbbed with inquisitive impulses
-perilous to the blind rule which it upheld. The theology of Jansenism,
-whilst, under one aspect, it appears as an assertion of orthodox
-Augustinianism,--under another aspect reveals itself as a protest
-against authority; and the sentiment of Quietism, with its spiritual
-ardour, tended to the depreciation of what is dogmatical. The Port
-Royalists and Madame Guyon were, in fact, falling into a current which
-they did not comprehend. Biblical criticism was looking the same
-way. It carried in its bosom elements both of faith and scepticism.
-Inquiries into the state of the sacred text alarmed many of the
-learned and the good; and Hermeneutical Canons were being followed,
-which, while soundly Protestant, imperilled ideas venerable for their
-antiquity.[492] Historical criticism exposed ancient falsehoods. The
-spuriousness of the Isidorian Decretals, for ages the stronghold of
-Papal despotism, was demonstrated by the Protestant Controversialist
-Blondel, and was acknowledged even by the Catholic Canonist Contius.
-The abandonment of the scholastic method of reasoning, the triumph of
-modern philosophy in the Universities of Europe, the formation of a
-fresh secular literature, and the critical study of history in general,
-with the explosion of old fables and superstitions, were all signs of
-the times, conveying the impression that a new epoch was at hand in
-the history of human intelligence.
-
-Philosophy abroad placed itself at the head of these tendencies. Even
-Descartes, the Christian, in seeking a basis for positive belief,
-started with a doubt; Spinoza, the Jew, his disciple in some respects,
-found his goal in pantheism.[493] The Malmesbury philosopher, Hobbes,
-and, still earlier, Lord Herbert of Cherbury, in their free-thinking
-speculations, long before any great movement took place at Cambridge,
-not only laid religion open to the inroads of infidelity, but aided and
-abetted attacks upon its citadel: Herbert, by denying the necessity of
-a Scripture revelation, Hobbes by representing Christianity as resting
-on a foundation, which no reasonable man can tolerate for a moment.
-Thus widely, for good and for evil, free thought was at work in Europe.
-Some saw in it a rising storm, which would tear every vessel from its
-moorings; others believed it to be the breaking up of a winter’s frost,
-and the melting down of icebergs, which had long chilled the whole
-intellectual atmosphere. For my own part, I am convinced that there was
-both evil and good in all this activity, of which the effect may be
-traced in the history of intellectual inquiry ever since. It is felt
-in the controversies of the present day; and he is the wise man who
-strives to distinguish between the precious and the vile, to separate
-the one from the other, and in the noble service of truth to abstain
-from any alliance with error.
-
-[Sidenote: MILTON’S OPINIONS.]
-
-In this notice of the progress of free inquiry one great thinker should
-be mentioned, whose fame as a poet has so eclipsed the reputation
-of his genius in other respects, that he is rarely remembered in
-the character of a theologian, although he really was one. In that
-capacity he combined, perhaps, beyond any man of his age, peculiarities
-drawn from two schools, with neither of which could he be identified.
-In the very title of John Milton’s _Treatise on Christian Doctrine,
-compiled from the Holy Scriptures alone_, there is a Puritan-like
-renunciation of the Anglican doctrine of patristic authority: his
-inquiry touches only what the Bible teaches, and he professes, as many
-others have done, without allowing for educational and constitutional
-influences, to draw all his conclusions immediately and impartially
-from Holy Writ. He might free himself from Church trammels of all
-kinds; nevertheless even he could not deliver his mind from all
-predilections and prejudgments; and when in his old age he sat down to
-read the Bible, Milton, no more than other men, could bring to it a
-_tabula rasa_ ready to receive nothing but unbiassed impressions
-from the Divine oracles.
-
-The Latitudinarianism of Milton--how far influenced by the spirit
-of free thought existing at Cambridge I cannot say--appears in his
-doctrine of the Son of God; yet it modestly presents itself, and it
-by no means reaches a Socinian conclusion. In contradiction to the
-title of his Treatise he approaches this mysterious subject, through
-the medium of certain metaphysical postulates, and teaches that the
-Son, produced by generation, is neither co-eternal, nor co-essential,
-and that His existence “was no less owing to the decree and will of
-the Father, than His priesthood or kingly power, or His resuscitation
-from the dead.” Milton overlooks, or virtually denies, the distinction
-in the Nicene Creed, “begotten and not made;” when he says, “nothing
-can be more evident than that God, of His own will, _created or
-generated_, or produced the Son before all things;” and again,
-whilst professing to discard reason in such matters, and to follow
-the doctrine of Holy Scripture exclusively, he proceeds to insist
-metaphysically upon the unity of God, and to confine that unity to
-the nature of the Father. According to this idea, he interprets a
-number of texts, respecting the union of Christ with the Father, as
-meaning no more than that the Father and the Son are one in purpose.
-Milton examines, _seriatim_, the texts adduced in proof of the
-absolute Divinity of the Redeemer, and sets them aside one by one, with
-a calmness only now and then ruffled by a slight breeze of anger--in
-striking contrast with the Neptune-like storms of controversy which he
-raises in most of his polemical works. The negative side of his theory
-of the nature of the Son is sufficiently clear; not so the positive
-side. He is not a Trinitarian. He is not a Socinian. Is he an Arian?
-If so, he belongs to the class nearest to orthodoxy, for all which he
-denies is the co-eternity, and the co-existence of the Son, whilst he
-expressly attributes to Him, Omnipresence, Omniscience, Omnipotence,
-and universal Authority, as well as Divine works, and Divine honours.
-His Editor, Dr. Sumner, remarks, that Milton ascribes to the Son
-as high a share of Divinity as was compatible with the denial of
-his self-existence, and eternal generation, his co-equality, and
-co-essentiality with the Father.[494]
-
-Milton devotes a chapter to the doctrine of predestination, which he
-defines as being not particular but universal:--none are predestinated
-or elected irrespectively of character (_e.g._, Peter is not
-elected as Peter, or John as John, but inasmuch as they are believers,
-and continue in their belief); and thus, he says, the general decree of
-election becomes personally applicable to each particular believer,
-and is ratified to all who remain steadfast in the faith.
-
-[Sidenote: MILTON’S OPINIONS.]
-
-Milton’s sympathy with Puritanism appears in his views of redemption,
-regeneration, repentance, justification, and adoption. In his chapter
-on saving faith he describes it as a full persuasion produced in us
-through the gift of God, whereby we believe, on the sole authority
-of the promise itself, that all things are ours, whatsoever he has
-promised us in Christ, and especially the grace of eternal life.[495]
-
-The spirit of free inquiry, at a later period, ran into decided
-Arianism and Socinianism: at the time of which I am now speaking,
-tendencies in that direction were at work in different quarters.
-When, under the Commonwealth, Philip Nye said that “to his knowledge
-the denying of the Divinity of Christ was a growing opinion;”--when
-Edwards said, it had found an entrance into some of the Independent
-Churches;--when Owen said, “The evil is at the door, there is not a
-city, a town, scarce a village in England wherein some of this poison
-is not poured forth;”--these writers might be under the influence of
-uncharitableness, or of false alarm--both are common in seasons of
-excitement--but when Parliament resolved, in the year 1652, to seize
-and burn all copies of the Racovian Catechism, that fact forces us to
-conclude that the Catechism must have been in circulation, and that the
-tenets which it expressed were being propagated.
-
-John Biddle, who under the Commonwealth Government suffered much
-in consequence of his opinions, may be considered the father of
-Socinianism. Being a man of blameless life, the persecutions that he
-underwent awaken our sympathy; and it is highly probable, that the
-treatment which he received, although intended to reclaim him from
-his errors, only served to drive him further from orthodoxy. He took
-high ground as to free inquiry; but professed to exercise it simply
-in getting at the meaning of Scripture; and he exhorted people “to
-lay aside for a while, controversial writings, together with those
-prejudicate opinions that have been instilled into the memory and
-understanding, and closely to apply themselves to the search of the New
-Testament.” At first he declared, “I believe, that our Saviour Jesus
-Christ is truly God, by being truly, really, and properly united to
-the only Person of the Infinite and Almighty Essence;”--this position,
-instead of being employed by his opponents as an admission, sufficient
-to keep him, if consistent, within the bounds of evangelical faith,
-excited their suspicions, and led to fresh controversy, and fresh
-persecution. Although he continued to use orthodox language, he made it
-more and more a vehicle for conveying unorthodox ideas. His opinions
-and modes of expression are equally peculiar.
-
-For example, one of the positions which he lays down is this:--“I
-believe that there is One principal Minister of God and Christ,
-principally sent from heaven to sanctify the Church, who, by reason
-of His eminency, and intimacy with God, is singled out of the number
-of the other heavenly ministers, or angels, and comprised in the Holy
-Trinity, being the third Person thereof, and that this Minister of God
-and Christ is the Holy Spirit.” Further, he observes, “the Trinity
-which the Apostle Paul believed, consisteth of One God, One Lord, and
-One Spirit, but not of three Persons in One God.” And he proceeds
-even to adduce the usual arguments for the personality of the Holy
-Spirit:--a doctrine which he admits throughout a singular Tract,
-published by him at an earlier period.
-
-[Sidenote: BIDDLE.]
-
-In another article of faith, he avers, “I believe that Jesus Christ,
-to the intent He might be a brother, and have a fellow-feeling of our
-infirmities, and so become the more ready to help us (the consideration
-whereof is the greatest encouragement to piety that can be imagined),
-hath no other than a human nature; and, therefore, in the very nature,
-is not only a Person (since none but a human person can be our
-brother), but also our Lord, yea, our God.”
-
-His use of the word Trinity, which it seems he never dropped, he
-explains by saying, that the Trinity which the Apostle Peter (Acts ii.
-36) believed, consisteth of God the Father, of the Man Jesus Christ our
-Lord, and of the Holy Spirit, the gift of God through our Lord Jesus
-Christ.[496]
-
-In Biddle’s Catechism, which John Owen couples with the Racovian,
-and elaborately answers in his _Vindiciæ Evangelicæ_,[497] the
-author so far from explaining away the language of Holy Writ, pushes
-its literal interpretation, respecting one subject at least, in a
-very bold, rude fashion, to such an extreme, that he attributes to
-the Almighty, a bodily and visible shape, with human affections and
-passions. Consequently, he objected to the terms _infinite and
-incomprehensible_, as forms of speech not used in Scripture, and not
-applicable to the Supreme Being. Tertullian, it may here be noticed,
-ascribed corporeality to God, but he seems to have meant by it nothing
-more than substance and personality.[498]
-
-A very different man from Biddle,--one whom from his absurd manner
-of talking, we should suspect had in him a touch of insanity,--was
-Daniel Scargill, Fellow of Corpus Christi, Cambridge. In 1669, he
-formally and publicly, before the University, recanted the following
-opinions which he had formerly maintained: that all right of dominion
-is founded only in power--that moral righteousness is based on the law
-of the Magistrate--that the authority of Scripture rests on the same
-foundation--that whatsoever the Civil Government commanded is to be
-obeyed, although it may be contrary to Divine laws, and “that there is
-a desirable glory in being, and in being reputed an Atheist--which I
-implied when I expressly affirmed that I gloried to be an Hobbist and
-an Atheist.” These retractions indicate the previous entertainment of
-most extraordinary errors.
-
-In the next chapter I shall examine the mysticism of the Quakers before
-I proceed to the theology of the Puritans.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
-
-
-George Fox was the father of Quakerism, but to William Penn belongs the
-distinction of being the first logical expounder of its principles.
-
-William Penn was the son of Admiral Penn. When only twelve years old
-he began “to listen to the voice of God in his soul:” and when a
-student at Oxford he suffered fines and expulsion for his incipient
-Nonconformity. His father, incensed by these religious peculiarities,
-turned him into the streets, but this did not in the least degree
-destroy his convictions; and subsequently, European travel, and
-education, which it might have been expected would dissipate his
-impressions, left them as deep as ever, combined with an accession of
-intelligence, and an acquisition of graceful manners which rendered him
-the admiration of polite society. He had learned to handle the rapier,
-with all the skill of a French gentleman, yet he remained imbued with
-“a deep sense of the vanity of the world, and the irreligiousness
-of its religions.” “Further,” to use his own language, “God, in His
-everlasting kindness, guided my feet in the flower of my youth, when
-about two-and-twenty years of age. Religion is my crime, and my
-innocence,--it makes me a prisoner to malice, but my own freeman.”
-When the fashionable world laughed at the rumour of the accomplished
-William Penn becoming a Quaker, such ridicule did not move his purpose,
-he only showed more steadfastness of conviction, and avowed his
-adoption of Quaker habits by going to Court with his hat on. When the
-Bishop of London menaced him with imprisonment, “My prison shall be my
-grave,” the youth replied. When Charles sent Stillingfleet to talk with
-him, the youthful Dissenter, through that Divine, returned an answer
-to every threat--“The Tower is to me the worst argument in the world.”
-This was in 1668, the year in which he published his _Truth Exalted,
-or a Testimony to Rulers, Priests, and Bishops_; and the same year,
-and in consequence of this same book, he was actually confined as a
-prisoner within the gloomy walls of the old Norman fortress, where he
-remained seven months; and where he wrote his _No Cross, No Crown,
-or Several Sober Reasons against Hat Worship, Titular Respect, You
-to a single person, with the Apparel and Recreations of the Times,
-in Defence of the poor despised Quakers, against the practice and
-objections of their adversaries_. The title is modified in later
-editions.
-
-[Sidenote: QUAKERS.--WILLIAM PENN.]
-
-The old Admiral paid his son’s fines, and on his deathbed, in altered
-tones, observed to him, “Son William, if you and your friends keep to
-your plain way of preaching and living, you will make an end of the
-priests.” Now possessed of his father’s fortune, he surprised people
-by his religious eccentricities. “You are an ingenious gentleman,”
-said a magistrate before whom he was brought, “you have a plentiful
-estate, why should you render yourself unhappy by associating with
-such a simple people?” “I prefer,” said he, “the honestly simple to
-the ingeniously wicked;” this was in 1670, when committed to Newgate,
-under the Conventicle Act, for preaching to “a riotous and seditious
-assembly,”--that is to say, for preaching to a company of Friends, who
-met for worship in the open-air; and from Newgate, he addressed to
-Parliament and the people of England, a plea for liberty of conscience,
-saying, if the efforts of the Quakers cannot obtain “the olive branch
-of toleration, we bless the providence of God, resolving by patience
-to outweary persecution, and by our constant sufferings, to obtain
-a victory, more glorious than our adversaries can achieve by their
-cruelties.”[499]
-
-These incidents in his early life were obviously connected with his
-religious opinions. Far less imbued with the element of mysticism
-than was the founder of the sect, this eminent disciple appears no
-less earnest in the advocacy of his opinions; and he works them out
-with a facility of reasoning, a compass of knowledge, and a force
-and glow of diction, in which the reader cannot but recognize, in
-connection with his natural ability, the fruits of his Oxford culture.
-A comparison between the writings of Fox and Penn, as it regards mental
-peculiarities, is interesting and instructive, showing the original
-and creative genius of the one, and the effect of academical training
-upon the other: in the enjoyment of a spiritual education, not of this
-world, they were much alike.
-
-The fundamental principle of Quaker theology is found in the doctrine
-of the inward light; and to the exposition and establishment of that
-doctrine, William Penn devotes himself in his work, entitled _The
-Christian a Quaker_ (1674). He explains the light as being not
-something metaphorical, nor yet the mere spirit or reason of man, but
-Christ, “that glorious Sun of Righteousness and heavenly luminary
-of the intellectual or invisible world, represented of all outward
-resemblances, most exactly by the great sun of this sensible and
-visible world; that as this natural light ariseth upon all, and
-gives light to all about the affairs of this life, so that Divine
-light ariseth upon all and gives light to all that will receive the
-manifestations of it about the concerns of the other life.” That light
-manifests sin, and reveals duty. It saved from Adam’s day, through
-the holy patriarchs’ and prophets’ time down to Christ; amongst the
-Jews as proved from Scripture, amongst the Gentiles, as proved from
-their own literature. Under this division, Penn quotes largely from
-the _Stromata_ of Clement of Alexandria, adopting his quotations
-as genuine and trustworthy. The primitive Fathers expressed themselves
-in accordance with this doctrine; and amongst the heathen there were
-men of virtuous lives, who taught the indispensableness of virtue to
-life eternal. The author contends that the latter foresaw the coming
-of Christ, and curiously adds, that their refusing to swear proves the
-sufficiency of the inward light.[500] In the support of these opinions,
-Penn appeals to the authority of Scripture, and employs a large amount
-of general reasoning.
-
-[Sidenote: QUAKERS.--WILLIAM PENN.]
-
-Although the inward light be _the_ rule,[501] Holy Scripture is _a_
-rule, and one authoritative and binding on those who possess it. Hence,
-whilst ever appealing to reason in his theological arguments, Penn
-habitually refers to Scripture as an inspired revelation from God, of
-great importance in determining religious controversy. The distinction
-which he makes, and the place which he assigns to the Bible had better
-be given in his own words:--“_A_ rule, and _the_ rule are two things.
-By _the_ rule of faith and practice I understand the living, spiritual,
-immediate, Omnipresent, discovering, ordering Spirit of God; and by _a_
-rule I apprehend some instrument, by and through which, this great
-and universal rule may convey its directions. Such a subordinate,
-secondary, and declaratory rule, we never said several parts of
-Scripture were not, yet we confess the reason of our obedience is not
-merely because they are there written (for that were legal) but because
-they are the eternal precepts of the Spirit in men’s consciences,
-there repeated and declared.”[502] This is the key which unlocks
-Penn’s theological system; and it is remarkable, how the controversy
-between the old Quakers and their contemporaries, turned mainly upon
-a question, agitated in the present day by thinkers very unlike the
-Quakers in many respects.
-
-The two rules thus defined were regarded by this writer as requiring
-the rejection of the Anglican doctrine of the Trinity, and of the
-Puritan doctrines respecting Christ’s Atonement, as a satisfaction
-offered to God, and respecting the imputation of Christ’s
-righteousness.[503]
-
-In consequence of what he said touching the Trinity, Penn was charged
-with not believing in the Divinity of Christ, and indeed was sent to
-prison on that account; but he clearly avows in his apology, entitled,
-_Innocency with her Open Face_, that Christ is God; for, he
-observes, if none can save or be properly styled a Saviour, but God,
-and yet Christ is said to save, and is properly called a Saviour, it
-must needs follow that Christ the Saviour is God. The strongest passage
-I have noticed in the writings of Penn in relation to the atonement is
-the following:--“That as there was a necessity that ‘One should die for
-the people,’ so, whoever, then or since, believed in Him, had and have
-a seal or confirmation of the remission of their sins in His blood;
-and that blood--alluding to the custom of the Jewish sacrifices--shall
-be an utter blotting out of former iniquities, carrying them as into a
-land of forgetfulness.”
-
-The prominence which this Quaker Divine justly gave to the truth, that
-Christ saves _from_ sin, is not associated with such ideas of
-justification as accord with Puritan standards. According to his own
-view, holiness is an integral part of that justification, which he
-seems to identify with man’s entire salvation.[504]
-
-Penn, no doubt, misunderstood both Anglicans and Puritans, and in some
-cases his disputes turned very much upon the meaning of words, yet
-no one who attentively studies his works, can help seeing that there
-were real and momentous differences between the Quakers and their
-fellow Christians. Quakers, absorbed by their inward experiences, did
-not attach the importance which is due to the historical and dogmatic
-instructions of the sacred volume. Not that Quakers denied what is
-historical, but they often, like early mystical expositors--Origen, for
-example--overlaid it with fanciful meanings. Not that they neglected
-all dogmatic teaching, but they failed to bring out clearly some of the
-truths revealed in the New Testament, especially in the writings of the
-Apostle Paul. The bright side of Quakerism lies in the marked elevation
-of the moral above the intellectual, of the spiritual above the formal,
-of the Divine above the human, of the work of God above the work of
-man: and it is as a corollary from the master principle of the whole
-system, the principle of the inner light, rather than as a deduction
-from reason or from expediency, or even from Scripture, that there is
-contained in Quaker literature such a distinct enunciation of men’s
-right, universally, to the freedom of religious speech and of religious
-worship.[505]
-
-[Sidenote: QUAKERS.--WILLIAM PENN.]
-
-Liberty, in William Penn’s estimation, was identical with Christianity.
-Persecution he held to be thoroughly anti-Christian. Judging people
-by their conduct, not by their creed, esteeming meekness and charity
-as fruits of the Spirit, inseparable from true religion, he looked
-upon all persecutors, whether Churchmen or Separatists, whether sound
-or heterodox, as alienated from their Maker, and as enemies to their
-race.[506]
-
-William Penn had an opportunity such as no other person amongst the
-authors we are now describing ever possessed, of testing his theory of
-religion and morals.
-
-After travelling with George Fox over the Continent upon religious
-service, and after finding all hopes of liberty crushed at home, Penn
-in 1681 resolved to cross the Atlantic, and in America to realize the
-bright dreams which had entertained his imagination from a boy--dreams
-of “a free Colony for all mankind.” He landed on the banks of the
-Delaware, to try “the holy experiment.” Tradition tells of his
-receiving the enfeoffment of the territory, by delivery of earth and
-water to him, as he stood surrounded by Swedes, Dutch, and English, in
-the Court House of the Colonial town of Newcastle; and of his ascending
-the river, fringed with pine trees, to the spot where was to rise the
-City of Philadelphia, and of his treaty with the Indians under the
-autumn-tinted elm tree of Shakamaxon. “We meet,” he said to his new
-neighbours, the red-complexioned children of the forest, “on the broad
-pathway of good faith and good will, no advantage shall be taken on
-either side, but all shall be openness and love. I will not call you
-children, for parents sometimes chide their children too severely; nor
-brothers only, for brothers differ. The friendship between you and me,
-I will not compare to a chain, for that the rains might rust, or the
-falling tree might break. We are the same, as if one man’s body were
-to be divided into two parts, we are all one flesh and blood.” Never
-had there been in the wild regions of the earth such colonizing as
-that before. “We will live,” said the red men, “in love with William
-Penn and his children, as long as the moon and the sun shall endure.”
-God was the sole witness of that covenant. Its only memorials were the
-strings of wampun which these covenanters hung up in their huts, and
-the shells they counted over upon a piece of bark; yet whilst other
-treaties amongst civilized Europeans have been torn into shreds as soon
-as they have been sealed, this has remained inviolate. “We have done
-better,” could the Colonists say, “than if, with the proud Spaniards,
-we had gained the mines of Potosi. We may make the ambitious heroes
-whom the world admires, blush for their shameful victories. To the
-poor dark souls round about us we teach their rights as men.” Penn
-visited the natives in their cabins, partook of their roasted acorns,
-laughed and played with the frolicksome, and spoke to them of God. “The
-poor savage people believed in God, and the soul, without the aid of
-metaphysics.”
-
-The infant city, the Philadelphia, which in 1683 “consisted of three or
-four little cottages,” grew and spread, hollow trees were succeeded by
-houses. The chestnut, the walnut, and the ash were cut down for the use
-of the emigrants, roads were made, boys and girls played in the streets
-of this new Jerusalem, and the kindly-hearted Quaker, with his genial
-good-humoured face, with his broad-brimmed hat, his long neckcloth, and
-his drab attire, might be seen patting their heads with fatherly love.
-
-William Penn, as a theologian, wrote books. William Penn, as a
-Christian philanthropist and statesman, did a work which surpassed his
-books. “How happy must be a community instituted on their principles,”
-said Peter the Great, speaking of the Quakers. “Beautiful,” cried
-Frederic the Great; “it is perfect, if it can endure.” It has endured.
-
-[Sidenote: QUAKERS.--BARCLAY.]
-
-Robert Barclay, a Scotch Friend, the son of Colonel David Barclay, of
-an ancient family, and of Catherine Gordon, of the ducal house of that
-name, published his famous _Apology_ in 1676, two years after
-Penn had published _The Christian a Quaker_. With nothing like
-the flowing style of his English contemporary, he had a more robust
-understanding, a keener conception of what he meant to say, a still
-more logical method of treatment, and, without any show of learning,
-perhaps he had a deeper amount of scholarship, obtained during his
-education and residence in France. Barclay affords the student a great
-advantage wanting in Penn; whereas, in the case of Penn, we have to
-search through several treatises, extending to five volumes, in order
-to ascertain the beliefs which he inculcated, in Barclay they are
-brought together in their proper relation and proportions, and are
-compactly yet fully expressed. A remarkable coincidence of opinion
-appears between the two writers, although the intimacy between them
-does not seem to have commenced until after Barclay had written his
-_Apology_.
-
-He strikes the same key-note as does his friend. The inward light is
-the true foundation of knowledge, and the Scriptures are not to be
-esteemed the principal ground of truth and knowledge, the primary rule
-of faith and manners. He maintains that there is universal redemption
-by Christ, and that the saving spiritual light enlighteneth every man.
-Christ is in all men a supernatural light or seed, beyond reason, above
-conscience, _Vehiculum Dei_: yet there is a great difference
-between Christ in the wicked, and Christ in the saints. He is quenched
-and crucified in the one; He is cherished and obeyed in the other.[507]
-
-[Sidenote: QUAKERS.--BARCLAY.]
-
-Barclay speaks of an outward redemption wrought for man by Christ in
-His crucified body, whereby we are made capable of salvation, and of
-an inward redemption wrought within us by the Spirit of Christ. “The
-first,” he says, “is the redemption performed and accomplished by
-Christ for us, in His crucified body, without us; the other is the
-redemption wrought by Christ in us, which no less properly is called
-and accounted a redemption than the former. The first, then, is that
-whereby a man as he stands in the fall, is put into a capacity of
-salvation, and hath conveyed unto him a measure of that power, virtue,
-spirit, life, and grace, that was in Christ Jesus, which, as the
-free gift of God, is able to counterbalance, overcome, and root out
-the evil seed, wherewith we are naturally, as in the fall, leavened.
-The second is that whereby we witness and know this pure and perfect
-redemption in ourselves, purifying, cleansing, and redeeming us from
-the power of corruption, and bringing us into unity, favour, and
-friendship with God. By the first of these two, we that were lost
-in Adam are so far reconciled to God by the death of His Son, while
-enemies, that we are put into a capacity of salvation, having the glad
-tidings of the Gospel of peace offered unto us; and God is reconciled
-unto us in Christ. By the second, we witness this capacity brought
-into act; whereby receiving, and not resisting, the purchase of His
-death, to wit, the light, Spirit, and grace of Christ revealed in
-us, we witness and possess, a real, true, and inward redemption from
-the power and prevalency of sin; and so come to be truly and really
-redeemed, justified, and made righteous, and to a sensible union and
-friendship with God. Thus He died for us, that He might redeem us from
-all iniquity; and thus we know Him, and the power of His resurrection,
-and the fellowship of His sufferings, being made conformable to His
-death. This last follows the first in order, and is a consequence of
-it, proceeding from it, as an _effect_ from its _cause_; for,
-as none could have enjoyed the last, without the first had been (such
-being the will of God); so also can none now partake of the first, but
-as he witnesseth the last. Wherefore, as to us, they are both causes of
-our justification; the first the _procuring efficient_, the other
-the _formal cause_.”[508]
-
-Although in Barclay’s proposition concerning justification, he seems
-verbally to distinguish between that privilege and holiness of
-character, yet he really confounds them together. Nor does he scruple
-to style good works meritorious “in a qualified sense.” He takes care,
-however, distinctly to ascribe human salvation to the merit of the
-Lord Jesus Christ. In another proposition, he expresses his faith
-in perfection, defining it as a freedom from actual sinning, yet
-admitting a growth of goodness which, however, involves a possibility
-of sin.[509] The Calvinistic doctrine of perseverance he distinctly
-denies; and in the remainder of the treatise he unfolds the well-known
-Quaker views concerning the ministry, Divine worship, the sacraments,
-the power of the magistrate, and social intercourse.
-
-There is remarkable breadth in the Quaker scheme of theology, it has
-singular affinities to other systems; and hence, in addition to its
-inherent amiable and loving spirit--which from the beginning rose above
-its fierce antagonism to existing Churches--the hold it has frequently
-gained upon the sympathies of Christians of different communions.
-Its relationship to all mystical forms of Christianity is obvious at
-a glance. Not less real is the resemblance between it and certain
-aspects of Latitudinarianism on the one side, and of Anglicanism on
-the other. The Quaker, like the Latitudinarian, dwells chiefly on the
-moral and spiritual side of the Gospel, eschews dogmatical teaching,
-sees a heavenly Teacher in every human soul, and looks for religious
-instruction beyond what written texts convey. He also, like the
-Anglican, treats Scripture as insufficient, taken alone; it is to both
-a rule, a supreme rule, but not the only one. The Quaker finds in his
-own breast the supplemental voice which the Anglican seeks in the
-ancient Church.
-
-There were at that period other Mystics besides the Quakers. Indeed,
-our English theological literature of the seventeenth century is much
-richer in sentiment, speculation, and imagery of this kind, than many
-well-informed persons suppose.
-
-[Sidenote: OTHER MYSTICS.--SALTMARSH.]
-
-John Saltmarsh’s “_Sparkles of Glory_, or some beams of the
-Morning Star, wherein are many discoveries as to truth and peace, to
-the establishment and pure enlargement of a Christian in spirit and
-truth,” is a book of considerable power, written in a compact and
-lucid style, such as one rarely finds in works of this description.
-The author--without condemning water baptism, or the divers organized
-ministries of the Churches, or the institutes of Episcopacy,
-Presbyterianism, and Independency, as the Quakers were wont to do, but
-rather counting them as mere forms, full of weakness and defect, yet
-to be tolerated, as having subordinate and preparatory uses--dwells
-chiefly upon the passage from lower ministrations to higher, and
-expatiates with much delight upon the mystery of true Christian liberty
-from God, upon the glorious discoveries of the Spirit to the soul, and
-upon the revelation of Christ in us. The history of Christ’s life and
-death, with the new relationships in which those stupendous events
-place mankind to the Divine Being, and the grand doctrines embodied
-in the ancient Church creeds, are little, if at all, noticed in this
-mystical treatise. Religion is resolved entirely into the experience
-of a spiritual life. Personal responsibility, moral obligation, and
-individual duties, are not the subjects which attract the writer’s
-attention, his one chief idea throughout being, that the Christian
-soul is the passive, quiet, trustful recipient of grace and love.
-The highest prayer is a spiritual revelation. “All that we pray--and
-not the Spirit of God in us, not that spirit of prayer spoken of
-in Scripture--is but the spirit of man praying, which is but the
-cry of the creature, or a natural complaining for what we want, as
-the Ninevites, and the children and beasts of that city, all cried
-unto the Lord.” “That which is the pure, spiritual, comprehensive
-principle of a Christian is this:--That all outward administrations,
-whether as to religion, or to natural, civil, and moral things, are
-only the visible appearances of God, as to the world, or in this
-creation; or the clothing of God, being such forms and dispensations
-as God puts on amongst men to appear to them in: this is the garment
-the Son of God was clothed with down to the feet, or to His lowest
-appearance. And God doth not fix Himself upon any one form or outward
-dispensation, but at His own will and pleasure comes forth in such
-and such an administration, and goes out of it, and leaves it, and
-takes up another. And this is clear in all God’s proceedings with the
-world, both in the Jewish Church and State, and Christians now. And
-when God is gone out, and hath left such or such an administration,
-of what kind soever it is, be it religious, moral, or civil, such an
-administration is a desolate house, a temple whose veil is rent, a
-sun whose light is darkened; and to worship it then, is to worship an
-idol, an image, a form, without God, or any manifestation of God in
-it, save to him who (as Paul saith) knows an idol to be nothing. The
-pure, spiritual, comprehensive Christian, is one who grows up with God
-from administration to administration, and so walks with God in all his
-removes and spiritual increasings and flowings; and such are weak and
-in the flesh who tarry behind, worshipping that form or administration
-out of which God is departed.”[510]
-
-[Sidenote: OTHER MYSTICS.--STERRY.]
-
-Peter Sterry, one of Cromwell’s chaplains, is described as “a
-high-flown mystical Divine.” After being first much abused and then
-long neglected, he has of late been named with honour in high literary
-quarters. _The Rise, Race, and Royalty of the Kingdom of God in the
-Soul of Man_, is a publication in which the characteristics of the
-author’s mind and teaching may be fully seen. It consists of a series
-of sermons upon the words, “Except ye be converted, and become as
-little children, ye shall not enter into the kingdom of heaven;” the
-rise to the kingdom being conversion, the race to the kingdom being
-a life like that of little children, and the royalty itself being
-composed of the two states of present grace and future glory. The
-practice of minutely dividing and subdividing a discourse, until it
-becomes a thing of shreds and patches, is pushed in this instance to
-an intolerable extreme; and the breaking up of sentences into distinct
-paragraphs, with the carrying on of different sets of numbers from page
-to page, render the perusal of the book a tremendous task. Upon reading
-it, I find that the mysticism which it exhibits is of another order
-than that found in the pages of Saltmarsh. The substance of Saltmarsh’s
-thought is saturated with the spirit of mysticism, the whole nature and
-scope of his theology is mystical from head to foot; but the mysticism
-of Sterry strikes one as pertaining more to his imaginative forms of
-conception and modes of expression than to anything else. His doctrines
-of conversion and of religious life, of Christian experience, duty, and
-hope, are of the usual evangelical type, but his ideas are ever dressed
-in mystical phraseology. He quotes texts of Scripture in abundance, and
-then commonly runs out into some strain of allegorical interpretation.
-I will quote one passage, which, whilst a specimen of his style, is
-more than ordinarily impregnated with mysticism in the substance of the
-thought:--
-
-“God comes into our nature, as the root of each single person. Here
-He becomes our Jesus, making Himself a new seed; out of this seed He
-brings forth a new image of Divinity, by which He breaks through the
-image of the devil and nature, brings forth man out of them, brings
-them into subjection to this growing beauty. As the fuel is dissolved
-into smoke, and the smoke again breaks up into flame, so the image of
-the devil riseth up out of the image of nature, shaking that to dust,
-as it riseth: the image of God, again, sprouts forth in the midst of
-the devil’s image, first spoiling, then triumphing over, and in both.
-
-“God through nature, as the root, grows up into single persons, as the
-branches. Then as the shades of night fly away before the ascending
-day, so,--as this Divine seed our Jesus sends forth itself in an image
-of beauty through our souls,--the image of darkness and death sinks
-down into its own place, and principle.”[511]
-
-To Sterry’s book on _The Kingdom of God_ an introduction is
-prefixed, written by Jeremy White, who had been chaplain to Oliver
-Cromwell, and who lived in private after the Restoration, preaching but
-occasionally. White sympathized in the mysticism of Sterry, and, in
-the following beautiful passage, uttered truths well worth the serious
-consideration of all spiritually-minded people, especially of those who
-are disposed to undervalue, perhaps to ridicule, thoughts imbued with
-mystic elements:--
-
-“Who among us is yet able to comprehend all the distinct ages and
-growths of good minds; to understand the various improvements,
-measures, and attainments, the several capacities, languages, and
-operations which are peculiar to those ages and growths? It is
-impossible for us to set the bounds to spiritual things, to stint that
-spirit in ourselves or others which is a fountain of Divine light and
-life in all regenerated souls, continually sending forth new streams,
-and running along with a fresh succession of waters without any stop or
-limit. We are too proud to understand the condescensions, too low to
-take the height, too shallow to fathom the depth, too narrow to measure
-the breadth, too short to reach the length of the Divine truth and
-goodness, and the various communications of themselves to us. We cannot
-assign the highest or the lowest state of saints whilst they are here
-below. We cannot say, All above this is fancy, whimsey, dream, and
-delusion; all below that is common, carnal, formal, and superstitious.
-As we ought not, then, to despise and contemn that which is below,
-so let us not censure and condemn that which is above us. Blessed be
-God, all good souls, in the midst of their greatest distances from one
-another here below, do all meet in the Divine comprehension above. We
-are all enfolded in the Divine arms, we are all encircled in the Divine
-love. That has breadth, and length, and depth, and height enough to
-reach and hold us all. And if we cannot yet receive and embrace each
-other in our several ages, growths, measures, and attainments, it is
-because we have little, low, dark, narrow, and contracted hearts, feel
-but little of the love of Christ, and are no more filled with that
-Spirit which is the spring, the centre, the circle, the band to all
-good spirits in heaven and on earth.”
-
-Jeremy White was a follower of Origen in his views of the ultimate
-safety and happiness of the whole universe, and he wrote a
-book,--published after his death,--the title of which sums up his
-theory: he calls it “_The Restoration of all Things_, or a
-vindication of the goodness and grace of God, to be manifested at last,
-in the recovery of the whole creation out of their fall.”
-
-[Sidenote: OTHER MYSTICS.--SIR HENRY VANE.]
-
-Sir Henry Vane is numbered amongst English Mystics, but he was more of
-the mystical philosopher than the mystical theologian, and the same
-may be said, to some extent, of Henry More; but the profession of the
-latter, as a clergyman, naturally directed his attention to Divinity
-properly so called, and how his mystical views influenced his religious
-life and character, will be shown in a subsequent portion of this
-volume.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
-
-
-The proofs of Christianity were noticed by Anglican Divines. Embedded
-in the rich quarry of Jeremy Taylor’s _Ductor Dubitantium_, may
-be found an able and eloquent summary of the external and internal
-evidences; and Hammond, in his _Reasonableness of Christian
-Religion_, points out the ground upon which men embrace it “in the
-gross, all of it together,” after which he descends in detail to the
-survey and vindication of those particular branches of Christianity
-which appeared to men at that time to be least supported. And it may be
-mentioned, as an illustration of the changing fashions of scepticism,
-that the points here considered by Hammond were--objections to God’s
-disposition of providence, founded on the prosperity of injustice and
-the calamities of innocence; and the exceptions taken to Christ’s
-commands because He enjoins the duty of taking up the cross--points
-which certainly would not engross the attention of Christian advocates
-in the present day.
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.]
-
-The evidences of our holy religion were more largely discussed by
-writers of the Latitudinarian school, as already described; and they
-also received pre-eminent attention from Puritan authors. Authors of
-that class were amongst the first keenly to discern the signs of the
-times in the direction of scepticism, amongst the first to combat
-the rising evil. Devoted to the study of the Sacred Volume, they also
-devoted themselves to the examination of the basis of its Divine
-claims. One reason why the Cambridge and Puritan Divines paid more
-attention to this branch of study might be, that they thought so much
-more of Christianity than of the Church, so much more of the former as
-a system of truth, than of the latter as a scheme of government; and
-further, which is only another particular effect of the same general
-cause, they were under the influence of an individualizing power, which
-is one of the secrets of Protestantism, and which makes each person
-feel so strongly his own responsibility for the creed which he adopts.
-In this respect especially, the Puritan differed from the Anglican, who
-might be said to receive his Christianity from the Church, rather than
-his Church from Christianity.
-
-Two distinguished Puritan writers exhibit the proofs of natural
-religion,--and two others the proofs of revealed religion.
-
-Cudworth’s great work was published in 1678; but nine years before
-that time, Theophilus Gale presented to the world treatises containing
-arguments against atheism. _The Court of the Gentiles_--as the
-expansion of the title shows--is “a discourse touching the original of
-human literature, both philology and philosophy, from the Scriptures
-and Jewish Church, in order to a demonstration of the perfection of
-God’s Word and Church light, the imperfection of nature’s light, and
-mischief of vain philosophy, the right use of human learning, and
-especially, sound philosophy.” The title-page describes and exhibits
-the whole work as a defence of religion. The author’s idea is that the
-philosophy of the ancients, so far as it is true, constitutes an outer
-court, leading to the Holy of Holies in the Word of God. All which is
-valuable in classic writings, according to Gale, had been derived from
-the chosen people. Pagan ignorance and folly arose from the obstinacy
-of the human mind in forsaking Divine oracles. The inventiveness of
-the human intellect added to the mischief, and the degradation of
-the heathen, proves the need of the Gospel. In this frame-work of
-evidence, built up in four parts, Gale inserts one book--the second
-of the fourth part upon Atheism, and the existence of the Deity, in
-which,--professedly following Plato, but often adding much to the
-force of his master’s reasoning,--he demonstrates the being of a God
-from universal consent--from a subordination of second causes to the
-first, from a _prime Motor_; from the order of the universe; from
-the connate idea of God in the soul; and from moral arguments founded
-upon conscience and a natural sense of religion. In his reasoning he
-anticipates Cudworth, and will bear honourable comparison with his
-great successor.
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.]
-
-The first part of Howe’s _Living Temple_ appeared in 1676. In it
-he proves the “existence of God and His conversableness with men.” His
-first argument is the same as Gale’s,[512] the consent of mankind;
-but Howe does not appear to be indebted to his predecessor for this
-mode of treating his subject. Common consent, Howe extends from God’s
-existence to God’s conversableness,--in other words, to religious
-worship; he quotes from Plutarch in proof of its universality, it
-being characteristic of the age to cite an ancient classic in proof of
-a statement of fact, which we should test by our own experience and
-observation. Howe anticipates the _Demonstration_ contrived by
-Samuel Clarke, and engages in a strain of reasoning beyond that of
-either Gale or Cudworth.[513] He argues that since something exists
-now, something must always have existed, unless we admit, that at one
-period or another, something sprung out of nothing. When he proceeds to
-prove the intelligence of this Eternal and uncaused Being, he enters
-upon the _à posteriori_ path, which Gale and Cudworth, and indeed
-the ancients, traversed to some extent, but in which the moderns have
-gone so far beyond them. It is worthy of remark, that the ingenious
-reference of Paley to a watch, as illustrating the indication of
-design in nature is found in Howe; and to him also belongs the credit
-of including among the proofs of Divine purpose, the constitution of
-the human mind, as well as the organization of matter,--a department
-in natural theology the neglect of which by many was lamented by Lord
-Brougham. I may add, that when Howe demands of the atheist, whether,
-if he will reject all the preceding evidence for the existence of God,
-there are any conceivable methods by which the fact of the Divine
-existence could be certified,--he opens another spring of thought on
-this subject, as original as it is profound. After establishing the
-truth of the Divine existence, Howe resumes his argument for the Divine
-conversableness; and after ingeniously overthrowing the Epicurean
-theory, he deduces from what he has said, that God is such a Being as
-can converse with men, and he asserts His omniscience, His omnipotence,
-His immensity, and His unlimited goodness.
-
-There is another work by John Howe of singular eloquence--_The Vanity
-of Man as Mortal_--in which the author suggests arguments for the
-soul’s immortality, of a kind which only occur to minds of a superior
-order. The works just noticed relate to natural religion.
-
-John Owen and Richard Baxter wrote upon the evidences of revealed
-religion.
-
-In 1659, the former published _The Divine Original of the
-Scriptures_. He bases his argument chiefly on the _light_
-and _efficacy_ of Divine truth,--a branch of reasoning too much
-neglected in after times, but vigorously renewed in our own day. Light,
-from its very nature, he says, not only makes other things visible,
-but itself manifest. So Scripture has a self-evidencing power, a power
-beyond that of miracles. And as there are _innate_ arguments in
-the Bible of its Divine original and authority, so also it exerts an
-influence which confirms those arguments. Owen’s forms of expression
-suffice to show that, whilst as to the points and bearing of his
-arguments, he anticipates modern turns of thought, the details of his
-logic bear an unmistakeably Puritan impress. But he passes out of
-the range of evidence into the domains of dogmatic theology, when he
-proceeds to dwell upon the conviction of the Bible being the Word of
-God as the result of a twofold efficacy of the Spirit--that efficacy
-consisting in a Divine communication of spiritual light, enabling the
-mind to discern the majesty and authority of Revelation, and also in
-the Divine inspiration of a sense or taste for the truths revealed.[514]
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.]
-
-Owen, in his book upon _The Holy Spirit_, published at a later
-period, speaks of the nature of inspiration as not leaving the sacred
-writers to “the use of their natural faculties, their minds or
-memories, to understand, and remember the things spoken by Him, and so
-declare them to others. But He himself acted [upon] their faculties,
-making use of them to express His words, not their own conceptions.”
-This Divine reduces the modes of revelation mentioned in Scripture to
-three heads--voices, dreams, and visions, with the accidental adjuncts
-of symbolical actions and local imitations.[515]
-
-Owen wrote his defence of revelation in the year 1659, before the end
-of the Commonwealth;--at a still earlier period in 1655, when Oliver
-Cromwell was on the throne, before any of the authors now mentioned
-had published a word upon the subject, Richard Baxter produced his
-_Unreasonableness of Infidelity_. It is thrown into the form of
-the Spirit’s witness to the truth of Christianity, so far reminding
-us of John Owen’s later work. Baxter, however, assigns a much higher
-place to the evidential force of miracles than did his contemporary;
-and, instead of dwelling upon the Spirit’s influence, in and through
-the Holy Scriptures, he resolves the Spirit’s witness into the
-miraculous operations of the first age. Baxter proceeds to show that
-the evangelists did not deceive the world, but that they published
-undoubted truths,--and that we have received their writings without
-any considerable corruption. Having gone thus far in a path much
-trodden since, he strangely turns aside to insist upon the doctrine of
-everlasting punishment, and to explain the nature of the sin against
-the Holy Ghost. He then refers to tradition, to the creed, to church
-ordinances, to the succession of religion, to the preservation of
-MSS., to the writings of Divines, to the laws of the Roman Empire,
-and the like, as evidences of the history of the New Testament. He
-writes, in rather a vague and confused way, upon a subject afterwards
-elaborated by Lardner and Paley, but to him belongs the distinction of
-having first entered this new field. He grapples with the objection
-to miracles, but not as Campbell afterwards did. The ground he takes
-somewhat resembles that of Bishop Douglas, when the Bishop compares
-with the miracles of Scripture, those recorded by Augustine and other
-Fathers.
-
-Baxter’s treatise did not satisfy its author; and, in 1667, he added
-_Reasons for the Christian Religion_. In this book, he treats of
-religion, both natural and supernatural, describing man as “a living
-wight having an active power, an understanding to guide it, and a will
-to command it,”--and pointing out the relations in which he stands
-to the Creator, as his Owner, his Governor, and his Benefactor. The
-difficulties of religious duty, a future life of retribution, the
-intrinsical evils and righteous penalties of sin, the present miserable
-state of the world, and the mercy of God, all come within the scope
-of Baxter’s observations, and are presented in the light of nature
-and of reason. In the second part the Author points out the need of
-Revelation, refers to the several religions existing in the world,
-illustrates the nature and “congruities” of Christianity, and proves
-the Divine mission of our Lord, by prophecy, by His character, by
-His miracles, and by His renovation of men. Confirmatory proofs, and
-collateral arguments follow, touching the historical grounds on which
-we believe in miracles, and unfolding certain curious considerations
-which tend to show that the world is not eternal.
-
-The extrinsical and intrinsical difficulties of the Christian
-faith, altogether amounting to the number of forty, are resolved
-_seriatim_, and the refutation is extended over nearly one hundred
-pages, concluding with a long and devout address to the Deity--somewhat
-after the manner of Augustine’s confessions--in which the Puritan
-Presbyter pours out his soul in strains not less devout and eloquent
-than those of the patristic Bishop.
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.]
-
-In 1672 Baxter returned to the subject, and published _More Reasons
-for the Christian Religion and No Reason against it_, in which he
-answers the _De Veritate_[516] of Lord Herbert, the first of our
-English deistical writers. The author dedicates his work to Sir Henry
-Herbert, a relative of the philosopher, and makes a graceful allusion
-to Sir Henry’s brother,--the “excellently holy, as well as learned and
-ingenious,” Mr. George Herbert. Baxter also wrote two treatises on the
-Immortality of man’s soul, the nature of it, and of other spirits. And
-also a most singular production, entitled, “The certainty of the world
-of spirits fully evinced by unquestionable histories of apparitions,
-and witchcraft’s operations, voices, &c.--proving the immortality
-of souls, the malice and misery of devils, and the damned, and the
-blessedness of the justified--written for the conviction of Sadducees
-and Infidels.” This treatise was not printed until the year 1691--a
-short time before Baxter’s death,--but its illustrations and arguments
-are akin to those which, forty years earlier, he had introduced into
-his incomparable _Saint’s Everlasting Rest_.
-
-Baxter leads the van of the great army of our Christian _Apologists_
-as they have been infelicitously termed. The armour which the veteran
-wore was made after the fashion of the times--the weapons which he
-wielded, and which he had forged, are some of them not such as would
-be serviceable now, and all of them, as used by him, are unsuited to
-our methods of defence; his wisdom also, it must be admitted, was
-occasionally defective in his modes of attack, yet no small honour
-is due to the man who was the first to enter the lists in English
-literature against the infidelity of his day.
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN THEOLOGY.]
-
-Turning to the doctrinal views of the Puritan school, I shall first
-notice certain points of resemblance between them and the opinions of
-Anglican Divines. The former, as well as the latter, insisted upon the
-doctrines of the Trinity, the Deity of our Lord, and the Divinity and
-personality of the Holy Spirit--nor could any disciple of the Nicene
-faith more firmly hold the eternal generation of the Son of God than
-did some of them.[517] Also, they firmly held the doctrine of original
-sin. At the same time, in common with the Low Church or Latitudinarian
-writers, they eschewed appeals to the Fathers as invested with any
-special authority, adopting more or less a spirit of free inquiry
-which gradually led some of them to relax a little their doctrinal
-strictness; and they went beyond their last-mentioned contemporaries
-in anti-sacerdotal and anti-sacramental views. They present marked
-characteristics of their own. They all appeal to the Scriptures, not
-only as the supreme, but as the exclusively accessible tribunal to
-which theological controversy could be brought; yet, it should be
-noticed in passing, that many of them studied patristic literature with
-great diligence, especially certain portions in harmony with their
-own opinions and tastes. There is also this peculiarity attaching to
-them as a class, that they do not, as Thorndike, work out a covenant
-of grace founded upon baptism,[518]--although they occasionally allude
-to that sacrament in a way which is surprising to some of their
-descendants; nor did they, as Jackson, as Heylyn, as Pearson, or as
-Barrow, follow the creeds of the Church in their theological inquiries.
-Baxter especially valued the Apostles’ Creed, but Puritan Divines did
-not adopt that, or any other of the ancient symbols, as a formula for
-the order of their own thoughts. Not that they broke away altogether
-from the habit of beginning with God the Great Cause, and descending
-to man His creature, subject, and fallen child; not that they adopted
-an _à posteriori_ method, beginning with man as a degenerate and
-guilty being, and rising up to God whom man has offended, and who alone
-can be the Author of his salvation,--a method which is adopted by some
-theological thinkers of our own time. In commencing their systematic
-ideas of theology with God, and coming down to man, the Puritans
-followed the traditional order of studious thoughtfulness upon such
-high themes. Goodwin resolved all Divine knowledge into the knowledge
-of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; but still it was
-not to the Creed as a textual authority, it was not to its clauses, one
-by one, that he or any of his brethren referred, as direction posts
-along the sacred way. Their wont was to select some one principle as
-a centre, and then to cluster round it kindred theological ideas, the
-various parts being woven into one harmonious whole. In this respect,
-they differed both from Anglicans and from Latitudinarians, who were
-not accustomed to the use of such a graduated scale of doctrine,
-who did not attach to what are termed _Evangelical_ truths, so
-much relative importance. Certainly, the themes which the Puritans
-most devoutly cherished, were not those to which either Anglicans
-or Latitudinarians chiefly turned. Puritan theology, because it is
-more experimental than Anglican theology,--because it deals more with
-the spiritual consciousness of Divine relations, with the position
-and acts of the human soul towards the Divine Lord and Redeemer,--is
-thought by some to be less dogmatic than Anglican theology; by which
-is meant, that it deals less with those Divine fundamental facts,
-which are distinctly recognized in the Creeds, and which, whether men
-believe them or not, are absolute and unchangeable realities. But this
-apprehension is a mistake. Puritanism, indeed, does insist much upon
-what is experimental and practical in theology; it looks at Divine
-persons, at their attributes and dispensations in reference to man’s
-wants, and character, and conduct; it treats revelation rather as a
-light to walk by, than as a light to look at,--which is wise--but it
-does not throw into a distance, it does not place on the remote horizon
-of its view the doctrines respecting Father, Son, and Holy Spirit,
-taught in the Scriptures, and upheld by the early Church.
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN THEOLOGY.]
-
-The Puritans broke with the Anglicans--not upon the doctrines of the
-Creeds, but upon other points. They broke with them as Reformers
-had broken with Romanists on the question--What are the true means
-of grace? Clerical orders and sacraments, said the Church of Rome.
-Apostolical succession and sacraments, said the Anglican Church of
-England; but the Anglican Church of England controverted the doctrine
-of the Church of Rome as to the number, the nature, the form and the
-efficacy of the sacraments. The Puritans went much further than the
-Anglicans in this direction, and denied the Anglican views of the
-ministry and the sacraments. The Anglican watchwords were,--_orders_,
-_sacraments_, _faith_, _grace_. The Puritan watchwords were--_the
-Bible_, _grace_, _truth_, _faith_. Both parties believed that men are
-saved by grace through faith; but the one connected the salvation
-chiefly with sacraments, the other with truth.
-
-In considering the theology of the Puritans, we ought carefully to
-notice differences amongst them, and I shall therefore subdivide them
-into three classes--the _Calvinistic_, the _Arminian_, and
-the _Intermediate_. I begin with the Calvinists, and shall select
-Thomas Goodwin and John Owen.
-
-The influence exerted by Perkins and other Puritan teachers and
-friends in the University of Cambridge upon the mind of Goodwin when
-a student, his remarkable conversion, the effect of his residence in
-Holland, and of his association there, with Dutch Divines, and with
-“English Dissenting brethren,” are visible in his opinions. Three main
-stand-points come out sharply in the phases of Goodwin’s theology.
-
-The first is _Faith_. In his treatise on that subject he discusses
-(1) the object of faith, including the mercies in God’s nature, the
-Person and work of the Lord Jesus Christ, and the riches of free grace
-as declared and proposed in the Gospel covenant; (2) the acts of faith
-in the understanding, the affections and the will, respecting which
-he distinguishes between justifying faith in general, and the faith
-of assurance; and (3) the properties of faith, its excellence and
-use--good works, he says, so far from being slighted by the exaltation
-of belief, are really promoted in a pre-eminent degree by the influence
-of that principle. It is apparent at once, that in this way a complete
-scheme of theology is arranged with faith for a pivot on which the
-entire circle of thought is made to move. Accordingly, we find
-introduced into this elaborate treatise, nearly, if not quite, all the
-doctrines comprised within the writer’s evangelical creed. There are
-abundant descriptions of faith, of what it is, and of what it does,
-but we do not discover any compact definition of it in any part of the
-volume. Goodwin alludes to it as sealed in the understanding, in the
-heart, and in the will,--a description which might seem comprehensive
-enough to take in all which Thorndike or Bull has advanced on the
-subject; but Goodwin’s way of working out the idea is very different
-from theirs, and whilst they are chiefly intent upon preserving the
-interests of Christian morality, he, although not neglectful of them,
-is principally engaged in exalting the glories of sovereign grace.
-According to his theology, faith is commanded by God, it influences
-all the graces--but it is the meanest and lowest of them all, and it
-is merely and altogether a passive principle. It should be carefully
-noticed, as amongst the marked features of Goodwin’s teaching:--not,
-however, peculiar to him, but common to Puritan Divines--that although
-he enumerates many objects of faith, by far the most prominent one is
-Christ Himself, as the great propitiation for sin.[519]
-
-[Sidenote: GOODWIN.]
-
-Another stand-point of Goodwin’s is _Election_. He argues for the
-necessity of this--saying, that without it “Christ had died in vain,
-and not saved a man,” and had been in heaven alone to lament that He
-had come short in this work. Goodwin dwells upon the order of God’s
-decrees touching election and reprobation, and upon the end to which
-the elect are ordained, even a supernatural union with God, and the
-communication of Himself to their souls. The infinity of God’s electing
-grace is a special theme of this writer’s meditations, in which,
-amongst other points most repulsive to moderate Calvinists, he insists
-upon a vast disproportion between the elect and the rest--rejoicing
-not, as one would suppose, in the thought, that the saved immensely
-outnumber the lost, but in the thought, that the paucity of men who
-enjoy any privilege magnifies it the more. He speaks of the infinite
-number of those laid aside in a fallen condition, in comparison with
-the very few elected out of them, as enhancing the grace of election.
-He contends for the perfect freedom of election, and the absence in it
-of all reference to merit or worthiness; for its intimate connection
-with effectual calling, which he unfolds at length; and for the
-doctrine of final perseverance, which follows from the doctrine he has
-previously laid down. It is remarkable that he employs a whole book
-in showing that election in its ordinary course runs from believing
-parents to their posterity; that the covenant of grace is entailed
-upon the children of believers, and that God most usually makes them
-His choice. He is careful practically to apply his views to Christian
-parents on the one hand, and to their children on the other.[520]
-
-The doctrine of reprobation is connected by Goodwin with the
-doctrine of election; it is described as being its dark shadow. If
-Goodwin was not a supralapsarian, he was, next to that, the highest
-predestinarian a man could be.[521] It is marvellous how, with all
-his thoughtfulness, he could have overlooked the question of moral
-government and human responsibility, in connection with some of his
-speculations; and it is distressing to find that one so zealous for
-what he deemed the glory of Divine grace, could lay his scheme of
-theology open to the charge of its robbing God of the attributes of
-justice and righteousness.
-
-Goodwin does not, in his treatise on election, or in his other
-writings, give prominence to the dogma of particular redemption; but he
-distinctly affirms in one place that the elect alone are redeemed;[522]
-and his whole system of theology proceeds on the principle, that the
-death of Christ was a ransom for the salvation of the elect. He presses
-to the utmost extreme the ideas of suretyship, and of debt-paying;
-and refers to the sinner’s liability as met by the sufferings of
-the Saviour, and to the sinner’s bonds as for ever cancelled by the
-Redeemer’s resurrection. To such an extent does the author carry his
-notion of the identification of the Lord with His people as their
-surety, that he positively declares Christ by imputation was made the
-greatest sinner that ever was--for the sins of all God’s chosen met in
-Him![523]
-
-The last stand-point of Goodwin, which I have space to notice, is
-_Regeneration_. In his treatise, entitled _The Work of the Holy
-Ghost in our Salvation_, Regeneration is the theme throughout the
-volume. Its necessity, its nature, and its cause are illustrated in
-every variety of form and phrase; and it is noteworthy that no allusion
-is made to the ordinance of baptism in connection with it, nor is any
-opportunity lost of placing this spiritual change in relation to the
-Divine decrees and electing love.[524]
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN OWEN.]
-
-Were it not that my proper business is to present, as succinctly
-as possible, the doctrinal views of the Puritans, I should most
-earnestly combat some of Goodwin’s theological positions, and point
-out the tremendous consequences which they involve--admitting, at
-the same time, the redeeming elements, which may be found in his
-ofttimes wearisome method of instruction. I will only say, that when
-he wandered into what appear to me not only perilous but pernicious
-regions of thought, he did but stumble in the midst of fields into
-which Augustine had gone before, and where Jonathan Edwards followed
-afterwards. Happily, such men are inconsistent, and whilst sacrificing
-the righteousness of God in one way, they contend for it most zealously
-in another.
-
-Owen’s works may be appropriately coupled with Goodwin’s. Their
-literary defects and their religious excellencies are not dissimilar.
-In each the reader is wearied with refinements and perplexed by
-multiplied divisions; in neither can be found any graces of style,
-any delectable flow of words, any rhythm of diction, any wealth of
-expression; in both are presented signs of profound reflection, of
-patient inquiry, of logical acumen, and also, beyond all these, proofs
-of intense evangelical piety.
-
-Owen goes over very much of the ground which is occupied by Goodwin,
-and he is scarcely less rigid in his predestinarianism. It is
-instructive to compare with the point of view selected by Goodwin
-that which is chosen by Owen. Owen’s treatise on the _Doctrine of
-Justification_ (1677) should be examined by the side of Goodwin’s
-work on the _Objects and Acts of Justifying Faith_. Owen
-describes justifying faith “as the heart’s approbation of the way of
-justification and salvation of sinners by Jesus Christ;” he omits,
-and vindicates the omission of any definition of this spiritual
-act: but he is singularly full in his account of the Divine side of
-justification, dwelling at great length upon its forensic nature,
-and its basis in the imputed righteousness of the Redeemer. The last
-point is wrought out with pre-eminent distinctness. It occurs at the
-beginning--it is resumed in the middle--it is enforced at the end of
-the book. The idea of Christ’s imputed righteousness is considered by
-many evangelical Divines as at the best a theoretical key to explain
-the fact of justification, rather than as an essential element of the
-doctrine. Some hold the fact without accepting the explanation, not
-finding it to be a key at all. But the state of opinion was widely
-different in Owen’s day, the whole atmosphere of controversy was
-different; he and others identified imputation with justification, and
-fought for it as for the hearth of truth, as for the altar of God. They
-deemed the interests of Protestantism, the security of the doctrines
-of grace, and the welfare of Christ’s Church at stake in this one
-doctrinal dispute.
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN OWEN.]
-
-Owen agrees substantially with Goodwin, but he is more cautious; and
-he more frequently qualifies his statements. He says men may really be
-saved by that grace which doctrinally they question, and they may be
-justified by the imputation of that righteousness, which, in opinion,
-they deny to be imputed. He shrinks from affirming what Goodwin affirms
-as to the identification of Christ with the sinner.[525] It may again
-be observed, that throughout, Owen looks more intently at the Divine
-act of the sinner’s justification than at the human act by which
-the justification is secured. His views on the whole are coincident
-with Goodwin’s as to the Divine decrees; but he exhibits them less
-prominently in reference to the doctrine of election than in reference
-to the doctrine of particular redemption. The Atonement is a central
-point in his thoughts; and it is in a treatise respecting the death and
-satisfaction of Christ, that his clearest statements on the tenet of
-election can be found.[526]
-
-It was usual with most of the Puritan Divines, in harmony with the
-order of thought pursued in the Westminster formularies, to start with
-the doctrine of the Divine decrees; to regard, as the foundation of
-all theology, the idea of God having resolved to save a certain number
-of human beings; and to view all the processes of redeeming love, as
-simply designed to accomplish that resolution. They did not deny the
-responsibility of all men in a certain sense, and they were ready to
-maintain the righteousness of God, as they understood it, against any
-who dared to impugn that righteousness. But generally they did not look
-at the moral government of God as dealing with mankind in general, on
-common grounds of justice, love, and mercy; they did not regard the
-Gospel as a gracious law for a fallen race; they did not consider it
-as alike the duty and the privilege of every sinful child of Adam, to
-accept the offer of eternal life through Jesus Christ our Lord. There
-is a deeper _theological_ difference between ancient and modern
-Calvinists than some suppose--a difference appearing even more in the
-order, the relations, and the turns of thought touching salvation, than
-in any scientific mode of expressing it. But there remains a strong
-_religious_ resemblance between the two classes. What most of the
-old doctrinal Puritans put first as the premises leading to certain
-conclusions, many of what may be called the new doctrinal Puritans
-put last, as a conclusion drawn from certain premises. In a careful
-study of the whole Bible, as a revelation of God’s government of the
-whole world, they find passages which relate to mysterious operations
-of grace upon human minds; and after a careful analysis of all human
-and secondary causes, at work in the world’s history, or at work in
-private experience, they discover rightly, in my opinion, a residuum
-which points to what is not human, but Divine and absolute; and in this
-they recognize the mysterious sovereign grace of God. Further, in those
-passages of Scripture which speak of an election, a predestination,
-and a purpose before the world began, they see a statement of the
-fact, that what God does in time He from eternity meant to do; that
-the knowledge and mercy, that the wisdom and the will of the Infinite
-and Eternal One, must have been ever the same as they are now. And
-also, the present disciples of this Puritan faith, like the former,
-delight to dwell upon the cause and character of salvation, more even
-than upon its consequences in their own experience and hopes; and they
-are not weary, and I hope never will be, of adoring the Divine love,
-righteousness, and power in which their redemption originated, and on
-which it must for ever rest.
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN OWEN.]
-
-Owen enters fully into the nature of the death of Christ, and insists
-upon its having been a price or ransom, a sacrifice and a satisfaction.
-He contends that it was a punishment for sin properly so called; and
-that the covenant between the Father and the Son was the ground and
-foundation of the penal sufferings from which redemption flows. Nor
-does he confine himself to the citation and enforcement of Scripture
-texts in support of these opinions. He supplies a dissertation on
-Divine justice--in which, from the consent of mankind, as appears
-in the testimony of the heathen, and the power of conscience, from
-the prevalence of sacrifices, and from the works of providence,--he
-concludes that Divine justice is a vindicating justice, and that the
-non-punishment of sin would be contrary to the glory of that justice.
-He examines and answers the objections of Socinus, and the main drift
-of the whole treatise is to establish the indispensable necessity of
-the satisfaction of Christ for the salvation of sinners.
-
-In his _Salus Electorum Sanguis Jesu_, a work published so early
-as 1648, Owen connects the Atonement with the Divine decrees. He points
-out what he conceives to be the false and supposed ends of the death
-of Christ, and unfolds his reasons for a belief in the doctrine of
-particular redemption.[527] He admits that the sacrifice of Christ was
-of infinite worth and dignity, sufficient in itself for the redeeming
-of all and every man, if it had pleased the Lord to employ it to that
-purpose; but the main drift of the Essay is to prove that it did not
-please the Lord so to employ it.[528] Whatever may be thought of the
-logical consequences of Owen’s positions in reference to election and
-particular redemption, it would be extreme injustice--and the same
-remark may be applied to Goodwin and others--to charge him or them with
-any connivance at Antinomianism, an error which they regarded with the
-utmost abhorrence, and opposed with not a whit less of zeal than burns
-intensely in their writings, when they are subjecting Arminianism to a
-process of destructive criticism.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
-
-
-We have noticed a change in the Church of England, from prevalent
-Calvinism, during the reign of Elizabeth, for prevalent Arminianism,
-during the latter part of the reign of James I. A corresponding change
-occurred in the history of several eminent Divines of the seventeenth
-century: Bishop Andrewes, Dean Jackson, Bishop Davenant, Archbishop
-Ussher, John Hales, of Eton, and Dr. Sanderson, are conspicuous
-examples. Another instance, more remarkable in some respects, is
-found in the life of John Goodwin--now less known to fame than the
-celebrated Churchmen just mentioned, and yet a man who, in his own
-day, attracted not less attention than did they; and whose works for
-vigour, ingenuity, argument, and eloquence deserve to rank high amongst
-theological productions, in an age when theology bore its richest
-fruit. The names now grouped together belong to men who, from first
-to last, retained more or less of Anglican predilections, and after
-the commencement of the Stuart period, Anglicanism and anti-Calvinism
-appear in close alliance; but John Goodwin, unlike the other converts,
-began his career under the influence of that description of religious
-feeling which forms so important an element in Puritanism, and he
-retained that feeling to the end of life. Although he became an
-Arminian, and renounced opinions identified with doctrinal Puritanism,
-his Arminianism did not destroy the unction and ardour which were
-characteristic of his earlier creed. His Arminianism presents some
-striking differences from that of both the Anglican and Latitudinarian
-schools; it is animated by an evangelical spirit, and it is wrought
-out, in connection with evangelical principles, akin to those which
-appear prominently in the Arminianism of our Wesleyan brethren. Like
-them, this eminent predecessor of theirs maintained strenuously the
-doctrine of human depravity, of justification by faith, of the work of
-the Holy Spirit, of the new birth, and of sanctification.
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN GOODWIN.]
-
-Before John Goodwin abandoned Calvinism he repudiated the doctrine
-of the imputed righteousness of Christ as held by the Calvinists of
-his own day. Yet he concedes almost all for which modern Calvinists
-would contend, when he remarks that a believer may “be said to be
-clothed with the righteousness of Christ, and yet the righteousness of
-Christ itself may not be his clothing, but only that which procured
-his clothing to him. So Calvin calls the clothing of righteousness,
-wherewith a believer is clad in his justification, _Justitiam morte,
-et resurrectione Christi, acquisitam_--a righteousness procured by
-the death and resurrection of Christ.”[529]
-
-Goodwin, in his _Redemption Redeemed_, earnestly insists upon
-the broad view of the effect of the Atonement,--“that there is a
-possibility, yea a fair and gracious possibility, for all men without
-exception, considered as men, without and before their voluntary
-obduration by actual sinning to obtain actual salvation by His death;
-so that, in case any man perisheth, his destruction is altogether
-from himself, there being as much, and as much intended, in the death
-of Christ to and towards the procuring of his salvation, as there is
-for procuring the salvation of any of those who come to be actually
-saved.”[530]
-
-The great moot point between the old-fashioned Calvinists and their
-opponents is treated by this intensely-evangelical Arminian in such a
-way in his concessions, that he approaches rather closely to modern
-Calvinism, without conceding the whole for which the advocates of the
-latter system would stipulate.[531]
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN GOODWIN.]
-
-John Goodwin’s object was, whilst magnifying the grace of God, to
-preserve what is demanded by the personality, the free agency, and
-the responsibility of man. He so clearly explains his opinion and so
-carefully fences it round, he so distinctly asserts the Divine origin
-of salvation in every individual, and so vigilantly repels every idea
-of indigenous rectitude in human nature, suffering from the fall, that
-no one can charge his creed with any Pelagian or even semi-Pelagian
-taint. So far as that point is concerned, Goodwin’s opinion might
-have received the approval of Augustine, and it ought to have passed
-muster with the second Councils of Milevis and Orange. Whether the
-keen Catholic theologians of the fourth and fifth centuries, in their
-jealousy for orthodox opinion, would have endorsed the following
-sentence is another question: “That the act of believing whensoever it
-is performed, is at so low a rate of efficiency from a man’s self, that
-suppose the act could be divided into a thousand parts, nine hundred,
-ninety, and nine of them are to be ascribed unto the free grace of God,
-and only one unto man. Yea, this one is no otherwise to be ascribed to
-man, than as supported, strengthened, and assisted by the free grace of
-God.”
-
-Goodwin was a person who thought for himself, and looked at a subject
-on more sides than one, and was as zealous to maintain the freeness
-of Divine grace as any Divine could be; consequently, we find him
-expressing himself, so as to appear, in the eyes of opponents,
-logically inconsistent, although he had a way of his own by which to
-defend himself against the imputation. Although he distinctly denies
-the Calvinistic doctrine of predestination, yet he maintains, when
-stating his own opinion on the subject, that predestination does not
-depend on the foresight of faith, or righteousness. “For though it
-be supposed,” he says, “that God decreeth to elect, and accordingly
-actually electeth all that believe and none other; yet this, at no hand
-proveth, either that His purpose, or the execution hereof, proceed in
-their origination, from the faith of such persons foreseen, no nor from
-the foresight of their faith: though this be more tolerable than the
-other. There is nothing in the nature of faith, nor in God’s foresight
-of faith, in what persons soever, that hath in it any generative virtue
-of any such purpose in God.”
-
-There were other Puritans who adopted Arminian views. John Horne, Vicar
-of Allhallows, Lynn--a learned man of most exemplary and primitive
-piety who was ejected in 1662--previously published a book entitled,
-“The open door for Man’s approach to God; or, a vindication of the
-Record of God concerning the extent of the death of Christ.”[532]
-Tobias Conyers, Minister of St. Ethelbert’s, London, also one of the
-ejected clergy, accused of being “schismatical and heretical,”--but
-who seems to have been a man of high character, and of a catholic
-spirit,--published, in 1657, a translation of a work by Arminius, under
-the title of “The Just Man’s Defence, or the Royal Conquest.”[533]
-Of George Lawson, Rector of More, in Shropshire, who animadverted
-upon Baxter’s _Aphorisms of Justification_, Baxter himself
-remarks,--after eulogizing him as almost the ablest man whom he knew
-in England,--“He was himself near the Arminians, differing from them
-only in the point of perseverance as to the confirmed, and some little
-matters more.” He published (1659) an excellent sum of divinity, called
-_Theopolitica_.[534]
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN GOODWIN.]
-
-The position of these Divines, especially of John Goodwin, amongst the
-religious thinkers of that age, is remarkable and significant, and
-deserves much more attention than it has ever received. The common
-notion is that the Puritan movement, in its theological character, was
-essentially Calvinistic, that Calvinism constituted its life and soul;
-and, moreover, that evangelical opinions in general,--understanding
-by them those views of the Gospel which rest on a keen appreciation
-of its precious and saving character,--necessarily involve ideas
-of Divine predestination, akin to those which were entertained by
-the great Genevan Reformer. Both the disciples and the opponents of
-that illustrious man have, in many cases, adopted or countenanced
-this conception. But the writers we have just described show us that
-it is a mistake. Here were men Puritan in spirit, Puritan in their
-characteristic religiousness, Puritan in their habits and modes of
-life, who, so far from being imbued with the distinctive sentiments of
-John Calvin on the subject of the Divine purposes and decrees, utterly
-repudiated them, and spent an immense amount of time and thought
-upon their confutation. They believed in justification by faith, in
-conversion to God, in the gracious work of the Holy Spirit upon the
-human soul, and in the riches of Divine mercy manifested throughout the
-salvation of men, as firmly and deeply as did any of those who most
-fervently proclaimed the doctrines of election, effectual calling, and
-perseverance. Neither their philosophy, nor their logic, nor their
-religion, led them to identify the one class of ideas with the other.
-And, if the discussion were proper in a work like this, it would
-not be difficult to show, that the motive power in Puritanism--that
-which made it such a well-spring of life and energy to multitudes of
-Englishmen--consisted not in high notions of predestination, where such
-notions were entertained, but in those articles of evangelical belief
-which can unite devout Calvinists and devout Arminians in the bonds
-of a common experience, and in the inheritance of the same hope. And,
-if anything further were needful to prove that the Puritan spirit can
-exist and thrive apart from Calvinistic theology, it is sufficient to
-point to the Wesleyans of the present day, than whom none are more
-decided in their opposition to predestinarianism, none are more zealous
-in preaching salvation by grace, and none are more inspired with the
-life and glow of a warm-hearted piety.
-
-Anti-Calvinistic zeal, however, often took an anti-Puritanical form,
-and by assaults which were made upon predestinarian principles, the
-interests of evangelical religion were very seriously compromised.
-
-[Sidenote: “FUR PRÆDESTINATUS.”]
-
-A Latin tract, entitled _Fur Prædestinatus_, made some noise at
-the time of its publication, and has received the commendation of
-literary and theological critics. The _Fur Prædestinatus_ was
-printed in London in 1651. D’Oyley, simply on the ground of general
-rumour, ascribes the tract to Sancroft, and prints it in his life.
-Hallam accepts the rumour, adding, “It is much the best proof of
-ability that the worthy Archbishop ever gave.” Birch says, in his
-_Memoirs of Tillotson_, that Sancroft joined with Mr. George
-Davenport, and another of his friends, in composing this satire upon
-Calvinism. But Jackson, in his _Life of John Goodwin_, affirms
-that the tract was in existence many years before Sancroft was capable
-of such a production. He adds, it was circulated in Holland, at the
-early part of the seventeenth century, and was thought to have been
-written by Henry Slatius. It is a dialogue between a condemned thief
-and a Calvinistic minister, in which it is attempted to be shown,
-that not only the doctrine of predestination but also the doctrine of
-justification by faith is marked by an immoral tendency, and several
-quotations from Luther and Zwingle, as well as from Calvin, Beza,
-and others, are pressed into the service. It exhibits, no doubt,
-some cleverness, and from the narrow view of the Atonement which
-is introduced, as held by some distinguished evangelical Divines,
-consequences are drawn which it would be difficult logically to repel.
-Yet most persons will acknowledge, that conducting controversy,
-dialogue fashion, is more easy for an author than it is satisfactory
-to a reader; and that, in this controversy especially, allusions to
-all sorts of authors can with ease be unfairly brought together, so as
-to impart a specious appearance to allegations which on a thorough
-scrutiny are found to be perfectly untrue. Certainly, Luther and Calvin
-never dreamt of entertaining such views as are put into the lips of the
-criminal and of his spiritual adviser--and they would have crushed,
-with a force of logic too much for a stronger man than the writer now
-under review, whoever he might be, the sophisms which are employed in
-the _Fur Prædestinatus_, to the discredit of that which Reformers
-held to be the scriptural doctrines of Divine grace.
-
-Two eminent Puritans remain for consideration, and they may be regarded
-as maintaining an intermediate position between High Calvinists and
-Evangelical Arminians.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
-
-
-[Sidenote: BAXTER.]
-
-Few persons could have been subjected in early life to a greater
-variety of influence than Richard Baxter. His father having been a
-gambler, became, before the birth of his illustrious son, a pious man,
-and trained up his offspring in godly discipline. Whilst over his home
-a religious atmosphere diffused itself, the people in the village spent
-the greater part of most Sundays in dancing round the Maypole. After
-four successive curates of worthless character, there followed a grave
-and eminent man who expected to be made a Bishop. Having been placed
-under each of them at school, Richard afterwards had for his tutor a
-Royalist chaplain, who did all in his power to make the youth hate
-Puritanism. Baxter’s religious impressions were deepened by reading the
-works of a Jesuit, which an evangelical Protestant had revised, and by
-the perusal of evangelical books from the pens of Sibbs and Perkins.
-The youth’s first associations in life were with the Episcopal Church,
-and he was then a Conformist in practice and principle. He studied
-Richard Hooker, and did not come in contact with Nonconformists, until
-just before he attained his majority. He spent, as a young man, a month
-at Whitehall, with the chance of becoming a courtier. Accident brought
-him within an inch of the grave, and he suffered so much from illness,
-that at twenty he had the symptoms of fourscore. No classic, no
-mathematician, he plunged into the study of logic and metaphysics, and
-soon formed an intimate acquaintance with Aquinas and Scotus, Durandus
-and Ockham. He had omnivorous habits of reading, and it is curious
-to notice the variety of authors whom he cites or enumerates. He was
-a self-taught man, and when Anthony Wood inquired of him by letter,
-whether he had been educated at Oxford, Baxter replied, “As to myself,
-my faults are no disgrace to any University, for I was of none: I have
-little but what I had out of books, and inconsiderable helps of country
-tutors. Weakness and pain helped me to study how to die: that set me
-on studying how to live; and that set me on studying the doctrine
-from which I must fetch my motives and comforts; and beginning with
-necessaries, I proceeded to the lesser integrals by degrees, and now am
-going to see that which I have lived and studied for.”[535]
-
-By bearing in mind these remarkable facts, we shall be assisted in
-accounting for some peculiarities of opinions in this remarkable man.
-There was a manifold character in his theology corresponding with the
-manifold influences which moulded his religion, and we may trace the
-effects of his education in both the excellencies and defects of his
-numerous writings. In a literary point of view, they are strikingly
-different from those of Thomas Goodwin and John Owen. He is, in
-his doctrinal discussions, often as tedious as they, and sometimes
-more provoking with his endless distinctions, but, in the practical
-application of his theological principles, he exerts a charm which
-neither of those contemporaries could ever rival. His masculine
-style, just the outgrowth of his thought, just the natural skin, pure
-and transparent, which covers it, has been the admiration of popular
-readers and practised critics. It has been praised by Addison and
-Johnson; it has been felt and appreciated by thousands of unlettered
-people. We detect in Baxter, no rhetorical tricks, no striving to shine
-for the sake of shining, no waving of the scarlet flag, no “taking out
-his vocabulary for an airing:” and yet for fullness of expression,
-for a rich flow of words, for occasional felicity of diction, for
-poetry in prose, he surpasses all his compeers, except Jeremy Taylor:
-and in directness, force, and genuine fervour, as to a glowing heat
-of the affections, which is more intense than the eloquence of the
-imagination, as to words which come rolling out like balls of white
-fire, the great Church orator must give place to the Nonconformist
-Divine. If immense popularity, if the possession of a spell which
-can hold fast minds of all orders, be a test of genius, then Baxter
-must be allowed to have possessed it in a high degree. In activity of
-thought and in keenness of perception, in the grasp of his knowledge
-and in the retentiveness of his memory, in dialectic skill and in
-logical fencing, Baxter is acknowledged to have had no superior, if
-any equal, in his own day, and he would have been worthy of a lot
-amongst the mediæval schoolmen, to whose list of doctors his might
-have added another characteristic name. But such qualities have their
-disadvantages. In this instance, they led their possessor to travel
-over such an immense field of inquiry, to meddle with so many topics,
-to dispute with so many men, to make so many distinctions without any
-difference, at least such as less acute minds can discern, that it is
-difficult to gather together and harmonize his opinions, and to say on
-certain points what he believed, and what he did not. It is easy for
-a man of one-sided views to be consistent; but who that loves truth
-for the truth’s sake, and wishes to see as much of it as is possible
-in this world of imperfect knowledge, will value consistency of that
-kind? Baxter was not one-sided, but strove to look at every subject
-on its many sides, if it has many; and to reconcile aspects of truth
-which to hasty and prejudiced thinkers seem contradictory. Hence he
-has given occasion to the charge of inconsistency. His opinions have
-been a battle-ground for critics ever since he left the world; and
-in this respect he has attained a position honourable in one point
-of view, dubious in another--like that of Origen. A great thinker, a
-great debater, an eloquent expounder of his own convictions, he has
-been pronounced a heretic by some members of his own Church, and his
-orthodoxy has been endorsed by members of Churches not his own. It
-is a curious illustration of the difficulty of deciding what were
-Baxter’s sentiments on some intricate subjects, that his most copious
-and intelligent biographer should first say, that he was neither
-a Calvinist, nor an Arminian--should next assert his claims to be
-considered a faithful follower of the Synod of Dort,--and should
-finally pronounce this verdict: “Baxter was probably such an Arminian
-as Richard Watson, and as much a Calvinist as the late Dr. Edward
-Williams.”
-
-[Sidenote: BAXTER.]
-
-After such a verdict, I cannot hope successfully to thread the mazes
-of Baxter’s theology. Yet there are a few conclusions which appear
-to me undeniable. He took a Calvinistic view of the Divine decrees.
-Several passages, probably, might be found in his writings apparently
-inconsistent with the Genevan doctrine, but what convinces me that
-he held it substantially, is not so much his confession, that he
-accepted the decisions of the Synod of Dort (upon which his biographer
-just mentioned insists), for Baxter sometimes interpreted statements
-after a manner of his own,--as the fact that in his treatise _On
-Conversion_, when dealing with such as say, “Those that God will
-save shall be saved, whatsoever they be, and those that He will damn,
-shall be damned,”--instead of cutting the matter short, as an Arminian
-would do, by denying the Calvinistic dogma altogether, our Divine goes
-on to guard against the abuses of that dogma; and to argue that people
-should act in relation to the decrees of Grace, as they do respecting
-the decrees of Providence. He finishes by saying just what Calvinists
-say,--“God hath not ordinarily decreed the end without the means, and
-if you will neglect the means of salvation it is a certain mark that
-God hath not decreed you to salvation.”[536]
-
-Baxter’s opinions of the efficacy of Christ’s death resemble those of
-John Goodwin, rather than those of Thomas Goodwin. For he remarks,
-“God hath made a universal deed of gift of Christ and life to all
-the world, on condition that they will but accept the offer. In this
-testament or promise, or act of oblivion, the sins of all the world
-are conditionally pardoned, and they are conditionally justified, and
-reconciled to God.”[537]
-
-[Sidenote: BAXTER.]
-
-Baxter seems to have believed that whilst those who are ultimately
-saved, are saved by the sovereign and gracious purpose of the
-Almighty--in other words, by Divine election--there is a provision
-made by the mediation of Christ, sufficient for the wants of all men,
-and of which all men, if they pleased, could avail themselves; and in
-this respect his views do not materially differ from those expressed
-by Dr. Edward Williams, in his treatise on _The Divine Equity and
-Sovereignty_; or from those taught by Andrew Fuller in several of
-his publications. A somewhat similar _via media_ was pursued by
-Amyraut, the French Divine. Yet it is, I believe, not an uncommon
-impression that Baxter went beyond this, and supposed that whilst some
-are elected to eternal life by a special Divine decree, others are
-saved through a general provision of Divine grace. I do not pretend to
-have read all Baxter’s works: but in those with which I am acquainted,
-I find no trace of such an opinion, neither does it appear in Orme’s
-careful summary of Baxter’s theological writings. It is a curious
-fact, however, that an idea of the kind attributed to the Puritan was
-expressed, at the Council of Trent, by a Papist, Ambrosius Catarinus,
-of Siena,[538] and that a similar idea is exhibited in the writings of
-Fowler, the Latitudinarian.[539]
-
-Baxter did not adopt the doctrine of imputation held by Thomas Goodwin
-and John Owen. He remarks:--
-
-“Most of our ordinary Divines say, that Christ did as properly obey
-in our room or stead, as He did suffer in our stead, and that in
-God’s esteem, and in point of law, we were in Christ’s obeying and
-suffering, and so, in Him we did both perfectly fulfil the commands
-of the law by obedience, and the threatenings of it by bearing the
-penalty; and thus (say they) is Christ’s righteousness imputed to
-us (viz.)--His passive righteousness for the pardon of our sins and
-delivering us from the penalty, His active righteousness for the making
-of us righteous, and giving us a title to the Kingdom--and some say
-the habitual righteousness of His human nature, instead of our own
-habitual righteousness--yea, some add the righteousness of the Divine
-nature also. This opinion (in my judgment) containeth a great many of
-mistakes.”[540]
-
-Faith, Baxter explains as “both a general trust in God’s revelations
-and grace, and a special trust in Jesus Christ,” adding, “I have oft
-proved this justifying faith to be no less than our unfeigned taking
-Christ for our Saviour, and becoming true Christians according to
-the tenour of the baptismal covenant.” The characteristic nature of
-Christian faith he further represents as consisting of trust in a
-personal Saviour, inclusive of an assenting trust by the understanding;
-a consenting trust by the will; and a practical trust by the executive
-powers.[541] The linking of the exercises of faith upon three faculties
-in human nature may be observed both in Goodwin and in Owen; but Baxter
-seems to have proceeded further than they in carrying out the practical
-relations of faith, and in this respect to have occupied ground not
-unlike that of Thorndike.[542]
-
-[Sidenote: HOWE.]
-
-Howe’s Puritanism might almost be said to have reached him by descent;
-but his extraordinary thoughtfulness, and his singular originality,
-require us to believe, that far from blindly accepting the inheritance,
-he carefully investigated the whole subject, and became a Puritan from
-conviction. His father, appointed to the incumbency of Loughborough
-by Archbishop Laud, afterwards displeased his patron, by refusing to
-comply with his requirements, and was consequently ejected. The father
-took the son to Ireland, whence he was driven back by the rebellion;
-after which, John Howe, before he proceeded to Oxford, went to
-Cambridge, and there, from the “Platonic tincture” of his mind, became
-associated with Cudworth, More, and John Smith, from whom his Platonic
-tastes received the highest culture. The great Pagan theologue,
-however, exerted a more powerful influence upon his sympathizing
-disciple, than did any of these under-masters; for Howe carefully read
-Plato for himself. He had “conversed closely with the heathen moralists
-and philosophers; had perused many of the writings of the schoolmen,
-and several systems and common places of the Reformers. Above all,
-he had compiled for himself a system of theology, from the Sacred
-Scriptures alone: a system which, as he was afterwards heard to say, he
-had seldom seen occasion to alter.”[543]
-
-His defects of style have robbed him of that meed of honour to which
-as a theologian he is entitled. He exhibits an utter neglect of the
-art of composition, like a man of great wealth, thoroughly careless
-about his attire, and falls into a habit of writing most inharmonious
-periods, perhaps for want of a musical ear. His frequent poverty of
-expression, and his numerous and intricate subdivisions, are failings
-in their effect vastly heightened by the unaccountably strange method
-of punctuation which he adopted himself, or left his printer to adopt
-for him.[544] Yet his works present, in numerous instances, the most
-felicitous phrases and the choicest epithets, and only less frequently
-does he, under the inspiration of his genius, pour forth sonorous
-sentences, with an organ-like swell, in keeping with the magnificent
-ideas which they were employed to convey. After all Howe’s drawbacks, I
-have often risen from the perusal of his works with feelings similar to
-those of a traveller, who, at the end of his journey, charmed with the
-remembrance of the scenes he has visited, forgets the ruggedness of the
-road, and the inconvenience of his conveyance, however unpleasant they
-might have been at the moment they were experienced. The originality
-and compass of Howe’s mind, and the calmness and moderation of his
-temper, must ever inspire sympathy, and awaken admiration in reflective
-readers: his Platonic and Alexandrian culture commends him to the
-philosophical student, and the practical tendency of his religious
-thinking endears him to all Christians. His works contain no treatises
-on Faith, on Justification, on Election, or Particular Redemption.
-Though essentially evangelical, Howe’s writings are pervaded by a tone
-of thought which varies from that which is predominant in Puritan
-literature: and I may add that, as in Baxter, so in Howe, yet not from
-exactly the same cause, or in the same measure, heresy hunters, if
-their scent be keen, may discover passages open to exception.
-
-[Sidenote: HOWE.]
-
-In the _Blessedness of the Righteous_, when describing those
-who bear that character, instead of dwelling upon justification by
-the imputed righteousness of Christ, after the manner of Goodwin or
-Owen, Howe exhibits chiefly the moral view of religion, that “it
-can be understood to be nothing but the impress of the Gospel upon
-a man’s heart and life; a conformity in spirit and practice to the
-revelation of the will of God in Jesus Christ; a collection of graces
-exerting themselves in suitable actions and deportments towards God
-and man.” Calamy justly says that Howe “did not consider religion
-so much a system of doctrines, as a Divine discipline to reform the
-heart and life.” He carries out the idea of Christianity being a law,
-“with evangelical mitigations and indulgences.” He speaks of the law
-of faith, and insists upon that part of the Gospel revelation which
-contains and discovers our duty--what we are to be and do, in order
-to our blessedness.[545] Some of his expressions would scarcely have
-been used by the two Divines we have just mentioned; yet, without
-going into a theological discussion on the question, I may observe,
-that Howe certainly believed most firmly in all which is essential to
-the doctrine of justification by faith, and disposed of the opposite
-doctrine in a summary way by saying, “To suppose the law of works, in
-its own proper form and tenor, to be still obliging, is to suppose all
-under hopeless condemnation, inasmuch as all have sinned.” The spirit
-of his teaching throughout must be remembered, in order that we may
-qualify, somewhat, certain expressions which seem to look favourably
-towards such schemes as were advocated by Thorndike and Bull. The
-drift of Howe’s theology was different from theirs, notwithstanding an
-occasional resemblance of phraseology; and whilst I admit that some
-of his passages on this subject require to be carefully guarded, and
-others are open to exception, I must say that he did immense service
-to the cause of Gospel truth, first, by insisting upon the present
-dispensation of the Divine will as a form of moral and righteous
-government for men in general, not simply an expedient for gathering
-together the elect; and, next, by insisting upon the responsibility of
-man, as well as upon the freeness of the grace of God. In my opinion,
-Howe brought out--and Baxter did the same--phases of truth in relation
-to man as a responsible being, as a subject morally accountable to the
-universal Governor of the world, too much neglected by many of their
-Puritan brethren.
-
-[Sidenote: HOWE.]
-
-The comprehensiveness of Howe’s mind, the harmony of his own spiritual
-life, and the essentially practical character of his instructions,
-appear in his _Carnality of Religious Contention_, especially in
-the following passage relative to the two great blessings of the Gospel
-which he distinguishes whilst he unites them:--In fine, therefore, the
-Apostle “makes it his business to evidence to them that both their
-justification and their sanctification must be conjoined, and arise
-together out of one and the same root,--Christ Himself,--and by faith
-in Him, without the works of the law, as that which must vitally unite
-them with Him; and that thereby they should become actually interested
-in all His fulness--that fulness of righteousness which was to be found
-only in Him, and nowhere but in Him; and withal, in that fulness of
-spirit and life and holy influence, which also was only in Him; so as
-that the soul, being united by this faith with Christ, must presently
-die to sin and live to God. And at the same time, when He delivered a
-man from the law as dead to it, He became to him a continual living
-spring of all the duty which God did by His holy rule require and call
-for, and render the whole life of such a man a life of devotedness to
-God.”[546]
-
-The Popish theory of justification, which confounds it with personal
-righteousness, and the approaches made in that direction by Anglican
-Divines, drove the Puritans to an opposite extreme; and the distinction
-they sometimes make between justification and sanctification amounts
-almost to a separation; but Howe--following St. Paul, who seems never
-to have thought of the one without having in his mind at the same time
-the thought of the other--whilst distinguishing between them, justly
-presents the two as _conjoint_ blessings, “arising together out of
-one and the same root,” or as being, in reality, two harmonious aspects
-of one simple salvation.
-
-Howe nowhere maintains the doctrine of particular redemption, but
-he exhibits the expiatory sacrifice of Christ with great clearness,
-and introduces an argument to the effect “that to account for the
-sufferings of the perfectly holy and innocent Messiah is made
-abundantly more difficult by denying the Atonement.”[547]
-
-In his _Redeemer’s Tears wept over Lost Souls_, he does not
-enter at all into the Predestinarian controversy--a circumstance which
-distinguishes him from High Calvinistic theologians, who would not
-have failed largely to discuss the question of the Divine decrees,
-together with the Divine foreknowledge. But Howe rigorously confines
-himself to a solution of that broad difficulty which presses equally
-upon Arminians and Calvinists, supposing that both believe, as they
-generally do, that God is omniscient, and that man is responsible.
-The author’s simple purpose is to vindicate the Divine sincerity and
-wisdom, in employing methods of moral persuasion with His intelligent
-and accountable creatures, when He discerns beforehand that they will
-prove of no avail, in offering invitations of mercy which He knows will
-never be accepted, and in urging admonitions and rebukes to which He
-foresees many will turn an unlistening ear and an obdurate heart. The
-reticence of Howe, in this and in other parts of his writings, upon
-subjects which present a fascinating attraction to speculative minds,
-however incapable they may be of grappling with the objects towards
-which they are so irresistibly drawn, is worthy of special notice, and
-indicates a resemblance between him, in this respect, and Robert Hall,
-who regarded Howe with intense admiration.
-
-One of the characteristic imperfections of that age in relation
-to theology is found in the endeavour to define and explain many
-things which are utterly beyond the reach of human comprehension.
-Anglican and Puritan, in almost equal degrees, boldly ventured into
-regions of speculation, and mistook for solid ground what really is
-but cloud-land. Metaphysical conclusions of their own were by their
-imagination transformed into Divine verities; and they often overlooked
-the grand distinction between what revelation plainly teaches, and what
-can be only inferred from its teaching. John Howe is singularly free
-from all presumptuous intermeddling with subjects which lie beyond the
-ken of mortals; and, although versed in the highest philosophy, beyond
-many of his contemporaries--and, indeed, because he was thoroughly
-imbued with the purest spirit of philosophy--he knew when to stop in
-his path of inquiry, and how to distinguish between the wisdom of God
-and the reasonings of man.
-
-[Sidenote: BAXTER AND HOWE.]
-
-Both Baxter and Howe were pre-eminently earnest in their endeavours
-to promote the moral righteousness of Christians, and to exhibit its
-production in human character and human life as the grand aim of the
-Gospel of Jesus. Other Puritans, more Calvinistic in their modes of
-thinking, inculcated holiness with emphasis and effect, and might
-imply, throughout their instructions, that pardon and justification
-were means to an end, that end being the conformity of the saints to
-the will of God and the image of Christ; but no teacher of that class
-impresses my mind with the positive conviction of such being the true
-order of the great redemptive process, to the same extent, and with
-the same depth, as do the two theologians now under review. They most
-effectually relieve at least their part in Puritan Divinity from the
-charge, and from the suspicion, of subordinating that which is moral in
-religion to that which is speculative, that which is personal to that
-which is relative, that which is practical to that which is emotional.
-They give the true perspective in theology, and place subjects of
-belief in their position one towards another, more accurately perhaps
-than any of their contemporaries. They exhibit the sinner’s forgiveness
-and acceptance with God, and his adoption into the Divine family of
-the Church, and his heirship of celestial felicities, not as the
-ultimatum of Christian object and desire, but as spiritual conditions
-and circumstances essential to the growth and maturity of that moral
-and God-like life which is begotten in the human soul at the hour of
-the new birth by the Holy Spirit. No one, who reflects upon a scheme
-of theology constructed after this type, can regard it as defective in
-moral power, or as betraying the interests of perfect righteousness.
-To place righteousness in the position of an end, rather than in the
-relation of means to an end, must be to exalt and glorify it. Those
-who impugn the whole system of evangelical belief as derogatory to
-the moral character of religion, and who _therefore_ insist upon
-moral duties as the means of attaining eternal life, do really dethrone
-Christian righteousness from its Divine supremacy, and turn it into a
-prudential expedient for promoting one’s own advantage, by making it a
-series of stepping-stones or a flight of stairs by which men may climb
-from the borders of perdition to the threshold of heaven. It is they
-who dishonour--of course unintentionally--the nature and claims of
-Gospel righteousness, not teachers like Baxter and Howe, who, refusing
-to look at that righteousness merely or mainly as means to an end, as
-price paid for a treasure, or as service done for reward, represent
-it as the goal of all endeavour, the prize of the Christian race, the
-richest gift of Divine love, and the brightest diamond in the crown of
-salvation.
-
-[Sidenote: BAXTER AND HOWE.]
-
-A word may be added indicative of the literary and intellectual niche
-which the names of these distinguished men deserve to occupy. Dr.
-Arnold said of the Church Divines of the seventeenth century, “I
-cannot find in any of them a really great man.”[548] Without adopting
-the opinion so expressed, I am constrained to say that we can find
-little of what may be called genius in some of the most renowned. No
-one could ascribe that high gift to Thorndike, with all his stores of
-learning and powers of reflection. No one would think of ascribing it
-to Bull or Pearson. Nor, if we include Puritans, can it be attributed
-in any high degree to Goodwin or Owen. Perhaps not one of the whole
-class of theological writers at the time, able as they were, could
-be justly esteemed the equal of that magnificent moral philosopher
-and theologian in the days of Queen Elizabeth, Richard Hooker, or the
-compeer even of Thomas Jackson, whose power, learning, and eloquence so
-brightly adorned the Church in the reign of James I. Jeremy Taylor, no
-doubt, had received Heaven’s gift of genius in the form of imagination,
-and a power of musical expression in prose such as no one else could
-rival, not even John Milton; but, in my opinion, the two theologians of
-that age who possessed most of original power were Richard Baxter and
-John Howe.
-
-Moreover, there was in both of these men a breadth of human
-sympathy--always closely allied to the highest order of
-intellect--which redeemed them from the narrowness of some of their
-contemporaries. Baxter and Howe evinced none of the restricted
-Churchmanship which blinded the Anglicans to all goodness not seen in
-their own communion; and none of the exclusive Calvinism which made
-some Puritans virtually shut up God’s love to a few like themselves,
-and hand over to reprobation the remainder of the race. Baxter,
-although not an accomplished scholar, was a man of wide and varied
-reading, and had a decided taste for history, politics, and especially
-metaphysics, as well as for theology; and Howe, who seems to have known
-much more of Greek than his friend, was at home amongst the ancient
-masters of philosophy, and perhaps with none of his brethren, except
-Theophilus Gale, was Plato such an intimate acquaintance, and such a
-thorough favourite. It has been justly remarked that the man who is
-only a theological scholar is a very poor one.[549] The remark may
-detract from the reputation of some of the Puritans, but not from the
-reputation of the two Divines we have last described.
-
-Before I close this imperfect survey of the theology of the Puritans,
-it is desirable to bring together, in some distinct form, the
-characteristics of their teaching in reference to certain points which
-have not been noticed in the foregoing detailed account of their
-opinions.
-
-Here we notice first what they say upon the nature of sacraments.
-
-Goodwin and Owen refer to the subject of baptism incidentally, the
-former speaking of it as the sign of salvation, and as the sealing of
-our calling, our justification, our renewal, and our union with Christ;
-the latter alluding to it chiefly for the purpose of denying that it
-has the regenerating or purifying power ascribed to it by Catholics.
-But he says a cleansing in profession and signification accompanies
-baptism, when it is rightly administered.[550]
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN VIEWS OF SACRAMENTS.]
-
-Baxter enters at large upon the subject, and discusses, in reference
-to it, such questions as are particularly interesting to Catholics;
-and one question at least--“Is baptism by laymen or women lawful in
-cases of necessity?”--he answers after a manner resembling that of
-the highest Anglican. He denies that there can be such necessity,
-yet he does not absolutely pronounce lay baptism a nullity; although
-he adds, If the baptizer “were in no possession or pretence of the
-office, I would be baptized again if it were my case; because I should
-fear that what is done in Christ’s name by one that notoriously had
-no authority from Him to do it, is not owned by Christ as His deed,
-and so is a nullity.”[551] Again, he remarks, “All that the minister
-warrantably baptizeth are sacramentally regenerate, and are, _in foro
-ecclesiæ_, members of Christ, and children of God, and heirs of
-heaven.” “Therefore it is not unfit that the minister call the baptized
-regenerate and pardoned members of Christ, and children of God, and
-heirs of heaven, supposing that _in foro ecclesiæ_ they were the
-due subjects of baptism.” What so subtle a dialectician exactly meant
-by some things he said upon this subject, I do not undertake to say;
-but certainly Baxter showed, like Thorndike, a strong disposition to
-connect the functions of faith with a baptismal covenant. Baxter’s
-theory was one which, upon a comparison of his theology in general
-with that of Thorndike, must have materially differed from it; and
-the qualifications introduced by the former in immediate connection
-with the sentences quoted--which qualifications I have deferred citing
-until now, in order that their force may be more clearly seen--must
-be considered, if we would avoid misapprehending the drift of his
-sentiments. “It is only those that are sincerely delivered up in
-covenant to God in Christ, that are spiritually and really regenerate,
-and are such as shall be owned for members of Christ and children of
-God _in foro cœli_.”[552] Those readers who are familiar with the
-controversy on baptismal regeneration will see at once that Baxter’s
-statements, with his qualifications, may be so explained as to point
-to a condition of Divine privilege, possibilities, and opportunities,
-rather than to anything else. He further made a distinction between
-some baptized children and others; a distinction which seems to
-shift the conveyance of spiritual benefit from the rite itself to
-the relation sustained by the child to a godly parent. “Not,” he
-says, “that all the baptized, but that all the baptized seed of true
-Christians are pardoned, justified, adopted, and have _a title
-to_ the Spirit and salvation.”[553] And in his _Now or Never_
-(published in 1663), there occurs a very strong passage against
-baptismal regeneration as held by some Episcopalians.[554]
-
-Howe touches upon the subject of baptism in his _Living Temple_,
-and speaks of it as a taking on of Christ’s badge and cognizance,
-as the fit and enjoined sign and token of becoming Christians, and
-as a federal rite by which remission of sin is openly confirmed and
-sealed.[555]
-
-Dr. Jacomb, in his treatise on _Holy Dedication_, uses, as already
-noticed, very strong expressions relative to the nature and effects of
-the ordinance; and I may observe that generally the writings of the
-Puritans on the whole subject are pervaded by a mystic and sacramental
-tone such as would not evoke the sympathies of their religious
-descendants.
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN VIEWS OF SACRAMENTS.]
-
-The Lord’s Supper, Dr. Goodwin exhibits, in opposition to the Catholic
-view, not as a commemorative sacrifice to God, but as a remembrance of
-His sacrifice to men; and he says that by it the intention on God’s
-part is to represent the whole work of Christ; and the intention on
-our part is to show it forth, and to signify our personal interest
-in the benefits of His death.[556] Neither in Owen nor in Howe, so
-far as I can find, is there anything indicative of their opinions
-on the nature of the Lord’s Supper; but Baxter writes copiously
-upon this theme. According to him, the _consecration_ of the
-sacrament respects God the Father, and makes it the representative
-body and blood of Christ, whilst, in such consecration, the Church
-offers the elements to be accepted of God for this sacred use; the
-_commemoration_ of the sacrament respects God the Son, and He is
-in it, “in effigy,” still crucified before the Church’s eyes, and by it
-the faithful show the Father that sacrifice in which they trust; and
-the _communication_ of the sacrament respects God the Holy Ghost,
-as being that Spirit given in the flesh and blood for the quickening of
-the soul.[557] The same author, in his _Dying Thoughts_, remarks,
-with reference to the Real Presence, “When we dispute against them
-that hold transubstantiation and the ubiquity of Christ’s body, we do
-assuredly conclude that sense is judge, whether there be real bread and
-wine present or not; but it is no judge, whether Christ’s spiritual
-body be present or not, no more than whether an angel be present. And
-we conclude that Christ’s body is not infinite or immense, as is His
-Godhead; but, what are its dimensions, limits or extent, and where it
-is absent, far be it from us to determine, when we cannot tell how far
-the sun extendeth, its secondary substance, or emanant beams; nor well
-what locality is as to Christ’s soul, or any spirit, if to a spiritual
-body.”[558] It is strange indeed to hear a Puritan speaking thus; his
-language has almost a patristic and Anglican sound. Some mysterious
-presence of the body of Christ in the material elements on the altar
-was believed by the orthodox Fathers; and Origen regarded that body
-as being ethereal and ubiquitous, and capable of assuming different
-forms: even the judicious Hooker supposed that the human substance of
-Christ is universally present “after a sort, by being nowhere severed
-from that which everywhere is present.” It is easier to employ definite
-expressions on this subject, and others of a similar kind, than to form
-definite notions corresponding with the expressions; and it appears
-to me very hard to say exactly what either Origen or Hooker meant by
-the language which they employed on this subject. Certainly Baxter
-expresses no decided opinion as to the presence of Christ’s body in
-the sacrament; but he admits such a presence to be not impossible, and
-thus opens the door for such unsatisfactory speculations as those in
-which Origen and Hooker indulged. Baxter, from his scholastic habits of
-thought, and from his familiarity with Catholic as well as Protestant
-theologians, was led, on the subject of baptism and the Lord’s
-Supper--especially the latter--to adopt a much more mystical form of
-belief than his Puritan brethren were wont to entertain.[559]
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN CONTROVERSY WITH POPERY.]
-
-In connection with the subject of sacraments, it is pertinent to
-inquire what were the opinions of these Divines in reference to the
-ministry and ordination. Baxter, as might be expected, discusses the
-question in his usual scholastic manner. His views on baptism, as just
-stated, indicate that he attached much importance to clerical order;
-and he alludes to the power conveyed from Christ to the individual
-minister, of which power he says neither the electors nor the ordainers
-are the donors; they are only the instruments of designing an apt
-recipient, and of delivering the possession of office. This position
-involves a denial of the High Church doctrine of orders, and this
-doctrine Baxter still farther denies, when he concludes that imposition
-of hands is not essential to ordination, but is simply a decent, apt,
-and significant sign. Ordination, however, he holds to be needful;
-for, without this key, the office of the ministry and the doors of the
-Church would be thrown open to heretics and self-conceited persons.
-The power of ordination he believes to be vested in the senior pastors
-of the Church, and the people’s call, or consent, he does not regard
-as necessary to the minister’s reception of office in general, but
-only to his pastoral relation. He admits that laymen may preach,
-as did Origen and Constantine, but he cautiously restricts their
-preaching to their families, or within “proper bounds.” What he had
-witnessed in the army had given the good man a great horror of the
-license claimed by lay orators on religious subjects; and, no doubt,
-recollections of some of his military antagonists came before his
-mind when he laid down the law, that lay teachers must not presume to
-go beyond their abilities, especially in matters dark and difficult.
-He also forbids them to thrust themselves into public meetings, and
-proudly and schismatically to set themselves up against their lawful
-pastors.[560] Baxter’s Presbyterianism appears throughout his treatment
-of these subjects--subjects respecting which Goodwin, Owen, and Howe
-are silent. But it is not to be inferred from this circumstance that
-they were indifferent to order in the ministry and the Church. What
-the Independents determined respecting these matters, in the Savoy
-Declaration, we have seen in a previous chapter.
-
-Next to the Puritan treatment of the sacraments and the ministry comes
-the Puritan share in the anti-Popish controversy. Although none of
-the Divines now under consideration took so prominent a part in it
-as did Cosin, Bramhall, and Barrow,--although none of them, on this
-subject, published books which have become so famous as some written
-by their brethren,--yet of their intense opposition to Romanism there
-is not the shadow of a doubt. They might not have the same reasons for
-wielding anti-Papal weapons which their Anglican contemporaries had,
-who, by the charges of Romanizing tendencies brought against them,
-were compelled to stand up in self-defence.[561] Still, expressions
-of horror at the very thought of Rome are numerous enough in the
-works of the Puritans, and some of them couched their thoughts on the
-subject in the strongest phraseology. Nor were there wanting treatises
-expressly upon the errors of Romanism from Puritan hands. Owen, at the
-suggestion of Lord Clarendon, it is said, wrote his _Animadversions
-on Fiat Lux_; a work which so pleased His Lordship that he declared
-the writer had more merit than any English Protestant of that period,
-and offered him preferment if he would conform. Baxter went beyond
-Owen in the laborious defence of the Reformed against the Tridentine
-Church; for he published altogether nearly twenty books and pamphlets
-in this department of polemical literature, leaving “no one point in
-the extensive field untouched,” and supplying “a complete library on
-Popery.”[562]
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN ECCLESIASTICAL CONTROVERSY.]
-
-In addition to what has been said on the subject in other portions of
-this History, a passing notice must be taken of the ecclesiastical
-controversies carried on by the Puritans against the High Church party.
-During the Civil Wars, and under the Protectorate, unsparing attacks
-were made upon Prelacy, modified schemes of Episcopacy were proposed,
-Presbyterianism was upheld in books and pamphlets almost innumerable,
-and between that system of Church government and Congregationalism the
-warfare continued fierce and incessant. The Presbyterian contended
-against the Prelatist for the original identity of Bishops and
-elders, and for the scriptural authority of their own scheme of rule
-and discipline. He contended against the Congregationalist for the
-right and the duty of reducing England to a state of ecclesiastical
-uniformity, based upon the decisions of the Westminster Assembly, and
-defended by the employment of magisterial power. The Congregationalist
-contended against the Presbyterian for the liberty of gathering
-Independent Churches, and of maintaining Independent discipline--and
-for the toleration, within certain limits, of all Christian sects. Of
-course, after the Restoration, although the main differences continued
-as before, and ecclesiastical disputes, essentially the same, were
-carried on--differences in the treatment of these questions necessarily
-arose, and changes in polemics on all sides became inevitable. When
-the garrison within the castle walls are mastered and turned out by
-the besiegers--when those who were besiegers become the garrison, and
-those who formed the garrison become besiegers, the tactics of each
-party will undergo alteration. Whilst Presbyterians or Independents, or
-both, were in the ascendant, Episcopalians had to assume an offensive
-attitude. They were, in fact, for the time being, Dissenters from
-the Established religion of the country, and had, as such, to make
-good their position as best they might. But when Prelacy had been
-reestablished, its friends no longer needed the kind of battering-rams
-which they had used very uncomfortably for about twenty years, they
-would simply buckle on their defensive armour, and fence with their
-weapons as in days of old. The other party had now to attack those
-who were in power, and to draw their lines of circumvallation around
-the fortress of intolerance, whilst they steadily defended themselves
-against the charge of schism, and earnestly contended for liberty and
-the rights of conscience. Baxter, in his _Plea for Peace_, argued
-against Conformity on the ground of its unjust impositions,--such as
-the expression of “assent and consent” to all things contained in the
-Prayer Book, canonical subscription, re-ordination in the case of
-Presbyterians, and the oath against seeking any change in Church or
-State.
-
-The right of imposing things indifferent was a point which met with
-much consideration in books as well as in the Savoy discussions.
-Respecting this subject, the reader cannot do better than ponder an
-extract from Sanderson, in favour of imposing such things, and another
-from Baxter, against all impositions of the kind.
-
-“The liberty of a Christian,” says the Anglican, “to all indifferent
-things, is in the mind and conscience, and is then infringed, when
-the conscience is bound and straightened, by imposing upon it an
-opinion of doctrinal necessity. But it is no wrong to the liberty of
-a Christian man’s conscience, to bind him to outward observance for
-order’s sake, and to impose upon him a necessity of obedience. Which
-one distinction of doctrinal and obediential necessity well weighed,
-and rightly applied, is of itself sufficient to clear all doubts on
-this point. For, to make all restraint of the outward man in matters
-indifferent, an impeachment of Christian liberty, what were it else,
-but even to bring flat Anabaptism and anarchy into the Church; and to
-overthrow all bond of subjection and obedience to lawful authority?
-I beseech you consider, wherein can the immediate power and authority
-of fathers, masters, and other rulers over their inferiors consist; or
-the due obedience of inferiors be shown towards them, if not in these
-indifferent and arbitrary things. For, things absolutely necessary, as
-commanded by God, we are bound to do, whether human authority require
-them or no; and things absolutely unlawful, as prohibited by God, we
-are bound not to do, whether human authority forbid them or no. There
-are none other things left then, wherein to express properly the
-obedience due to superior authority than these indifferent things.”[563]
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN ECCLESIASTICAL CONTROVERSY.]
-
-Turn from the Anglican to the Puritan:--“I confess,” he says, “it is
-lawful for me to wear a helmet on my head in preaching; but it were
-not well if you would institute the wearing of a helmet, to signify
-our spiritual militia, and then resolve that all shall be silenced
-and imprisoned during life that will not wear it. It is lawful for
-me to use spectacles, or to go on crutches; but will you therefore
-ordain that all men shall read with spectacles, to signify our
-want of spiritual sight, and that no man shall go to church but on
-crutches, to signify our disability to come to God of ourselves. So,
-in circumstantials, it is lawful for me to wear a feather in my hat,
-and a hay-rope for a girdle, and a hair-cloth for a cloak: but if you
-should ordain that if any man serve God in any other habit, he shall
-be banished, or perpetually imprisoned, or hanged; in my opinion, you
-did not well: especially, if you add that he that disobeyeth you must
-also incur everlasting damnation. It is in itself lawful to kneel when
-we hear the Scriptures read, or when we sing psalms; but yet it is not
-lawful to drive all from hearing and singing, and lay them in prison
-that do it not kneeling. And why men should have no communion in the
-Lord’s Supper that receive it not kneeling, or in any one commanded
-posture, and why men should be forbidden to preach the Gospel that wear
-not a linen surplice, I cannot imagine any such reason as will hold
-weight at the bar of God.”[564]
-
-Owen was particularly active and vigorous in defending Nonconformity,
-in pleading its rights, and in expounding his own views of Church
-polity. In the year 1667, he published several tracts, the design
-of which was to promote peaceable obedience to the civil enactments
-of government; to show the injustice and impolicy of subjecting
-conscientious and useful men to suffering, on account of their
-religious sentiments; to expose the unconstitutional nature of the
-proceedings against them by informers and secret emissaries; to unfold
-his ideas of the nature and benefits of toleration in former ages, and
-in other lands; to vindicate it from various charges; and to point out
-the folly of attempting to settle the peace of the country on the basis
-of religious conformity.[565]
-
-At a later period, in 1681, Owen published his _Enquiry into
-the Original, Nature, Institution, Power, Order, and Communion of
-Evangelical Churches_, in which he maintains that “unless men by
-their voluntary choice, and consent, out of a sense of their duty
-unto the authority of Christ, in His institutions, do enter into a
-Church-state, they cannot, by any other ways or means, be so framed
-into it, as to find acceptance with God therein.”
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN ECCLESIASTICAL CONTROVERSY.]
-
-A Church he defines to be--“An especial society or congregation of
-professed believers, joined together according unto his mind, with
-their officers, guides, or rulers whom he hath appointed; which do or
-may meet together for the celebration of all the ordinances of Divine
-worship, the professing and authoritatively proposing the doctrine of
-the Gospel, with the exercise of the discipline prescribed by himself,
-unto their own mutual edification, with the glory of Christ, in the
-preservation and propagation of His kingdom in the world.”[566]
-
-But with all this zeal in defence of particular forms of government,
-the great Puritan Divines expressed the utmost charity towards all
-Reformed Churches at home and abroad. The schismatical sentiments of
-Anglicans, who cut off Presbyterians and Independents from communion,
-and expressed hopes of their salvation in only cautious, faltering
-terms, find no echo in the writings of their antagonists. It was the
-main business of Baxter’s life to unite together Christians of all
-kinds; for this he wrote numerous books, to this he devoted his best
-years; and if Owen came behind him in this respect, he has, as in a
-nut-shell, summed up most truly the cause of all disunion:--
-
-“Men fall to judging and censuring each other as to their interest
-in Christ, or their eternal condition. By what rule? The Everlasting
-Gospel? The Covenant of Grace? No, but of the disciples: ‘Master, they
-follow not with us.’ They that believe not our opinion, we are apt to
-think believe not in Jesus Christ; and because we delight not in them,
-that Christ does not delight in them. This digs up the roots of love;
-weakens prayer; increases evil surmises; which are of the works of
-the flesh, genders strife and contempt, things that the soul of Christ
-abhors.”[567]
-
-Able as the Puritans might be in controversy, they appear to much
-greater advantage in their experimental and practical instructions.
-And here it ought to be noticed, that whilst the conforming Puritans
-did not number amongst them any great scientific Divines, they
-included well-known names of another class. Bishop Hall, by no
-means an ecclesiastical Puritan, sympathized a good deal with the
-doctrinal Puritans in their distinctive views, and still more in their
-evangelical spirit; and this British Seneca, as he is called, always
-wrote upon moral and practical subjects with the unction characteristic
-of the best kind of Puritanism. Thomas Fuller, chiefly known as an
-Historian, employed his matchless wit in the enforcement of religious
-duties, after a manner which bore much of a Puritan stamp, whilst it
-fascinated and edified all parties. Dr. Reynolds, the Puritan Bishop
-of Norwich, wrote books which were once of considerable celebrity,
-and which contain a great deal of evangelical sentiment and practical
-piety. The _Christian Armour_, by Gurnal, the Puritan Incumbent
-of Framlingham, is perhaps as popular as ever--exhibiting as it does,
-amidst much perverted ingenuity of arrangement and a vitiated style
-of expression, a surprising amount of spiritual truth and of genuine
-wisdom. The Nonconformists, however, outpeer their brethren in this
-department of literature. John Bunyan has a niche of his own in the
-temple of literary fame, where the image of his genius has been crowned
-with chaplets woven by the noblest hands. Other Puritan authors of
-that age have contributed to the wealth of our spiritual literature.
-In proof of which I need only mention Owen’s ideal of Christian
-character, in his _Mortification of Sin_, and his _Spiritual
-Mindedness_; Baxter’s encouragement for believers, in his _Saint’s
-Everlasting Rest_; his warnings to the ungodly, in his _Now
-or Never_; and Howe’s solace for mourners, in _The Redeemer’s
-Dominion over the Invisible World_.
-
-[Sidenote: PRACTICAL PURITAN THEOLOGY.]
-
-Alleine’s _Alarm to the Unconverted_--of which it was stated
-in 1775 that 20,000 copies had been sold, and 50,000 more under the
-title of _The Sure Guide to Heaven_--is one of those books which
-are eminently adapted to awaken deep spiritual convictions. Bates’
-_Spiritual Perfection Unfolded and Enforced_--to mention no other
-book by this estimable author--is written in his characteristic silvery
-style: and, if there be sometimes an “abrupt dismissal of a train of
-thought,” “these breaks in the veins of valuable ore do not appear
-to be ever very material, and are rarely perceptible except to the
-eye of a closely-reflecting and examining reader.” But the religious
-excellencies of the volume surpass those which are literary, and if
-Alleine’s _Alarm_ be calculated to arrest the godless, Bates’
-_Spiritual Perfection_ is equally fitted to guide and edify the
-godly. The titles of Brooks’ Treatises indicate the quaint kind of
-talent which he possessed:--“A Box of Precious Ointment”--“An Ark for
-God’s Noahs”--“A Golden Key to open hidden Treasures”--“Apples of Gold
-in Pictures of Silver.” “Many of his sentences are proverbs newly
-coined, shrewd, humorous, and Saxon; and they are provided with an
-alliterative jingle, which, like a sheep-bell, keeps a good saying from
-being lost in the wilderness.” It is impossible to read his writings
-without respecting his character as well as admiring his ingenuity;
-and whilst he exhibits more originality than Bates, like him he is
-a teacher fitted to instruct Christian people and to comfort their
-hearts under the troubles of life.
-
-Flavel is entitled to occupy a niche, not far from that which is filled
-by John Bunyan; not that he possessed the inventiveness of the Great
-Dreamer, yet, like him, he delighted to use similitudes, and did it
-successfully. His _Husbandry Spiritualized_--suggested by his
-walks through pleasant farms in Dorset and Devon; and his _Navigation
-Spiritualized_, arising from observations on sea-faring life, whilst
-he resided in the picturesque town of Dartmouth, are full of sweet and
-healthy allegories.
-
-Less known than Flavel, but somewhat akin to him in natural and
-spiritual taste, was Isaac Ambrose, whose work, entitled _Looking to
-Jesus_, is full of pleasant illustrations, drawn from the scenes of
-nature amidst which he delighted to ramble, especially “the sweet woods
-of Widdicre,” on the banks of the Darwen, where in a little hut, to
-which he annually repaired, this Puritan hermit, for the time, spent
-hour after hour in meditation and prayer.
-
-John Spencer, in his _Things New and Old_; Robert Cawdray, in his
-_Treasury of Similes_; and Benjamin Keach, in his _Key to open
-Scripture Metaphors_;--also belong to the same class of authors as
-Flavel.[568]
-
-[Sidenote: PRACTICAL PURITAN THEOLOGY.]
-
-Many of the practical treatises published in the seventeenth century
-consisted of courses of sermons, and partook largely of the diffuse
-style proper to the pulpit; also many of the sermons of that day are in
-fact practical treatises. We see this fashion of treating Divinity in
-the works of Taylor and Barrow, and still more strikingly in the works
-of Owen, Baxter, and Howe. Casuistry, now neglected by Protestants,
-was then much studied by theologians of all schools. Taylor’s _Ductor
-Dubitantium_, and Baxter’s _Christian Directory_, are worthy of
-a chief place on the shelf of a library appropriated to works of this
-description. The characters of the men, and the peculiarities of the
-different schools of theological thought to which they belonged, may be
-traced in these volumes, and there is truth in the remark of one well
-read in all kinds of theological literature,--“Both may be consulted
-occasionally with profit and advantage; but if resorted to as oracles,
-they will frequently be found as unsatisfactory as the responses of the
-Delphic tripod.”[569]
-
-As, in common with devoted Conformists, Dissenting preachers “watched
-for souls,” the means they pursued for the accomplishment of their
-end bore a stamp indicating their distinctive theological principles.
-One peculiarity in the mode of preaching adopted by the Anglican,
-and an opposite peculiarity in the mode of preaching adopted by the
-Puritan, grew--as differences always must--out of different systems
-of Divinity maintained by the two parties. The first, regarding the
-ordinance of baptism as lying at the root of Christianity, and looking
-upon all who had undergone the holy rite, as regenerated Christians,
-addressed their congregations at large--those congregations being
-composed almost entirely of the baptized--as members of the mystical
-body of Christ, as people already in fellowship with the Redeemer, and
-as needing only to be awakened to a sense of their privileges, and of
-their responsibility, and to be stimulated to the discharge of their
-duties. The Puritan, on the contrary, regarding spiritual consciousness
-as at the bottom of all spiritual life, and looking upon those who
-were destitute of such consciousness, as dead in trespasses and sins,
-laboured at making people feel the need of that new birth which our
-Lord inculcated upon Nicodemus. The tone of the Anglican harp is heard
-sweetly in Jeremy Taylor’s _Rule and Exercises of Holy Living and
-Dying_. The Puritan trumpet waxes loud in Baxter’s _Call to the
-Unconverted_.
-
-The office of expositor was necessarily, to some extent, combined
-with that of preacher. Puritan homilies were chiefly expository, and
-Puritan expositions were chiefly homiletic. Biblical criticism, in the
-precise sense of the word, was not studied then so thoroughly as it is
-in the present day; but looking at the critical literature produced
-by Puritans, in comparison with that which was produced by other
-scholars, those who come in the line of succession after the former
-have no reason to be ashamed of their predecessors. Thomas Gataker
-the younger, Incumbent of Rotherhithe, who died in 1654, was one of
-the first scholars of his age, and applied his extensive and profound
-learning to Biblical investigations. He was somewhat erratic in certain
-of his conclusions, but in the defence of them he displayed both
-erudition and ingenuity. In his work on the style of the New Testament,
-he overthrew the positions of Sebastian Pfochenius, who maintained the
-classical purity of the Scripture Greek; and in establishing the fact
-of Hebraistic peculiarities in apostolic writings, he anticipated the
-opinions of modern scholars, and also entered upon original inquiries
-respecting the origin of languages.[570] Pool’s _Synopsis_,
-published between 1669 and 1674, with the _Annotations_, which
-appeared in 1683, present, in an accurate and well-digested form,
-the principal results of all the learning which had then been
-applied to the investigation of the Old and New Testament. And Owen’s
-_Exposition of the Epistles to the Hebrews_ is a rare monument
-of erudition:--considering the age in which it was written, it is
-equal if not superior to anything on the same subject which has been
-composed since. Still, its value as a series of devout and practical
-meditations far surpasses its exegetical worth, and that which is a
-pre-eminent quality in Owen is a pre-eminent quality in his brethren.
-Thomas Goodwin, if not equal in Biblical scholarship to John Owen, does
-not come very far behind him. His exposition of a part of the Epistle
-to the Ephesians is a noble production; but the chief excellence of
-Goodwin, like that of the other “Atlas of Independency,” lies in his
-clearness, sagacity, comprehensiveness, and point, as a practical and
-experimental expositor. Burroughs on Hosea; Caryl on Job; Greenhill
-on Ezekiel; Manton on James, Jude, the 119th Psalm, the Lord’s
-Prayer, and the 53rd chapter of Isaiah,--and the list could be easily
-enlarged,--are commentaries, in which the critical element appears
-faint, when compared with the theological and hortatory characteristics.
-
-[Sidenote: PURITAN EXPOSITORS.]
-
-As Divines, as expositors, and preachers, the Puritans showed a
-wonderful acquaintance with the Bible and with the human heart, for
-they apply the one to the other with singular skill, force, and pathos.
-No doubt they were deficient in taste, and sometimes worried their
-metaphors to death, and handled their flowers till they dropped to
-pieces, and are open to all kinds of criticism from modern masters of
-science. No doubt, also, we in our day have many advantages over them
-in reading the Bible; for, owing to helps now familiar, we acquire a
-keener insight into ancient Eastern life than any of these worthies
-could ever attain. They had no works in those days like that of
-Conybeare and Howson; yet they had a pre-eminent gift in bringing
-to bear, for spiritual and practical purposes, the daily life of
-patriarchs and Apostles upon the daily life of the people to whom
-they preached, and for whom they wrote. Travellers often gaze with
-interest upon those frescoes in the churches of Florence and other
-Italian cities, in which the stories of Scripture are rendered into
-landscapes and figures, derived from streets and gardens, and costumes
-and faces, with which the artist happened to be familiar in the place
-where he dwelt. And who that has seen them has not been struck with
-the stained glass windows in Germany, grotesquely portraying Scripture
-scenes and incidents under forms borrowed from German dwellings and
-German people? So at times, when reading the homely applications of
-Bible stories in Puritan writers, are we not reminded of these works of
-art; do we not feel that amidst a great deal which provokes criticism,
-and which may make one smile, there is in the Puritan writer, as in
-the mediæval painter, an instinct of truth, and an insight into the
-connection between the Bible and common life, most profound, most keen,
-most admirable? As the wickedness of old is still reproduced, and as
-the enemies of Christ are the same in spirit whether dressed like
-Jewish priests or as Saxon burgomasters,--so the devotion and piety
-of ancient and sacred times may transmigrate into the souls, and be
-embodied in the habits of modern citizens. But of all the excellencies
-of Puritan divinity, this is the chief,--that it exhibits clearly, and
-with warmth and love, with light and fire, the distinctive doctrines of
-Christianity--the Fatherhood of God, the Divinity, the mediation, the
-priesthood, and the sacrifice of the Lord Jesus Christ, the agency of
-the Holy Spirit, the freeness of salvation, the way of acceptance with
-God through faith, and the new birth and sanctification of the human
-soul, through the efficacious operations of Divine grace.
-
-[Sidenote: COMPARISON.]
-
-Thus I have attempted to give an outline of the opinions which
-divided the English Christendom of the latter half of the seventeenth
-century. In citing passages from various authors I am fully aware how
-fallacious quotations are when taken by themselves; at the best they
-are insufficient for the formation of a judgment. The old illustration
-of a brick taken out of a house as a specimen of the structure scarcely
-applies to the subject; yet no judicious student of literature will
-rely upon passages extracted from an author, detached from their
-connection and separated from the leading idea and spirit of his work.
-Those which are employed in these pages have been chosen on account of
-their being not mere blocks lying upon the surface, but the croppings
-up of characteristic strata, penetrating deeply, and spreading far
-beneath the surface of the ground upon which they appear.
-
-How do we acquire a correct knowledge of the opinions of the Fathers?
-Not by looking at quotations alone, but by analyzing their writings,
-by tracing out their trains of thought, by measuring the space which
-they devote to particular topics, by arranging together their favourite
-texts, by examining their references to tradition and the Church, as
-well as to Scripture, and by endeavouring to detect their sympathies
-and predilections; it is in the same way that I have endeavoured,
-not so well as I could wish, to read the Divines of the seventeenth
-century, and the result is such as the reader finds imperfectly stated
-in the pages of this volume.
-
-What was indicated at the beginning of our survey may, in other words,
-be expressed at the close. In the Anglican teaching we find what is
-doctrinal, what is ethical, and what is emotional; we see the orthodox
-dogmas of Christianity, the indisputable morals of Christianity, and
-the spiritual experience of Christianity; but these are introduced in
-different proportions, the third less than the second, perhaps the
-second less than the first. Yet not in any of these do we detect the
-characteristic stamp of Anglican sentiment so much as in the belief of
-one catholic Church preserving this truth, inculcating this morality,
-and cultivating this experience, and in the idea of an organized unity,
-with its ministers, sacraments, and ordinances, receiving, enjoying,
-and dispensing God’s gifts of grace. In the Latitudinarian teaching,
-there is not much which can be called experimental, there is more of
-what is theological, but the principal feature is undoubtedly moral.
-Quakerism has its exposition of dogmas and its enforcement of duties;
-it has its creed and its forms as have other systems of Christianity;
-but it is in its mystical element that we discover the key to unlock
-the secrets of its power. Puritanism has its Church organizations,
-Presbyterian, and Independent,--it has its moral teaching, for it is
-decidedly practical, yet in neither of these do we reach its most
-prominent distinction. That consists both in its doctrinal zeal, and
-in its experimental tone, and in the last more than the first; for the
-dogmatical difference between John Goodwin[571] and Thomas Goodwin,
-between the Arminian and the Calvinist, seems lost when we ponder
-the fellowship of these souls in the same peculiar kind of emotional
-ardour, which glows with a coloured light, easily distinguishable from
-such fires as burn in Anglican, in Latitudinarian, or in Mystic lamps
-before the altar of the one God, in the one temple of His redeemed
-Church.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
-
-
-Doctrinal, expository, and homiletic literatures exhibit the divergent
-theological opinions of Christian men; but psalms, hymns and spiritual
-songs reveal the sensibilities of the devout, as they converge towards
-the common centre of all religious trust and hope and love. More of
-unity is possible in the worship of praise than in any other kind of
-worship. What on one side is deemed superstition, what on another is
-regarded as sectarianism, may sometimes taint the expression of pious
-thought and feeling in verse; but an immense number of compositions
-in English hymnology are altogether free from defects of either of
-these kinds, and are fitted to convey, with propriety, the sentiments
-of people who differ widely from each other whenever they enter the
-region of polemics. Broad Church and Low Church, the Anglican, the
-Evangelical, and the Nonconformist, on some occasions find it easy to
-combine in the service of song, and to adopt with common joy and love,
-the same strains of sweetness and purity which form a consentaneous
-_Cardiphonia_, a blended utterance of many hearts.[572]
-
-Before approaching the subject of hymnology proper, a few words may
-be introduced in relation to a kind of poetry which closely resembles
-it. It would be foreign to my purpose to say anything critical of the
-grand religious epics of John Milton, known by every one: they belong
-to the realms of imagination, and scarcely come, except in some of
-the songs which they include, within those precincts of Christian
-affection where the humble hymn-writer makes his home. Nor can I
-take up Joseph Beaumont’s _Pysche or Love’s Mystery, displaying
-the intercourse betwixt Christ and the Soul_, which was published
-in 1648, and is known by very few; since its length, extending to
-40,000 lines, baffles all attempts at description, and its blending
-of Pagan fables with Bible facts, often takes it out of the circle of
-religious poetry altogether. Benlowes’ poem, entitled _Theophila, or
-Love’s Sacrifice_, published in 1652, is of a different character:
-his verses come more within the range of modern sympathies, whilst
-their quaintness of style leave no doubt as to the age in which they
-were written. Such compositions can scarcely be called devotional;
-but verses flowed from certain pens, at the time I speak of, which,
-although not meant for public or private worship, did very charmingly
-embody the aspirations of Christian men. Some of them, it is true, had
-a tinge of peculiarity, derived from ecclesiastical or theological
-preferences, but the general stamp of these compositions was such as
-to commend them to many outside the circle to which they particularly
-belonged. For instance: Richard Crashaw, a clergyman, who had been
-Master of the Temple, and who died in 1652, wrote _An Ode prefixed to
-a Prayer Book_, in which, imbued with an Anglican admiration of that
-volume, he beautifully says:--
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
- “It is an armory of light,
- Let constant use but keep it bright,
- You’ll find it yields
- To holy hands and humble hearts,
- More swords and shields
- Than sin hath snares, or hell hath darts.
-
- Only be sure,
- The hands are pure,
- That hold these weapons, and the eyes,
- Those of Christians, meek, and true,
- Wakeful, wise;
- Here is a friend shall fight for you;
- Hold but this book before your heart,
- Let prayer alone to play its part.
- O, but the heart
- That studies this high art,
- Must be a sure housekeeper,
- And yet no sleeper.
-
- Of all this store
- Of blessings, and ten thousand more,
- (If, when He come
- He find the heart from home),
- Doubtless He will unload
- Himself some other where,
- And pour abroad
- His precious things
- On the fair soul whom first He meets,
- And light around him with His wings.”
-
-When the Anglican wrote these words, such of them as express admiration
-of the Common Prayer would not command the sympathy of certain
-Puritans; other Puritans, however, with a measure of qualification,
-could share in that sympathy; and all, one would think, might enter
-cordially into such feelings, as are expressed, generally, by the
-largest portion of the Ode, in reference to the pleasures and duties of
-devotion.
-
-Whatever there might be restrictive of sympathy under one form in
-the verses from which I have just made a selection, nothing of the
-kind, under any form, can be found to exist in Henry More’s _Sonnet
-on Religion_; for that exhibits the widest breadth of Christian
-fellowship, and embraces within the range of its regards the devout
-members of all communities. The Anglican and the Evangelical, the
-Broad Churchman and the Mystic, might consistently adopt the following
-sentiment:--
-
- “The true religion sprung from God above,
- Is like her fountain--full of charity;
- Embracing all things with a tender love,
- Full of good will, and meek expectancy;
- Full of true justice and sure verity,
- In heart and voice; free, large, even infinite;
- Not wedged in straight particularity,
- But grasping all in her vast active sprite--
- Bright Lamp of God, that men would joy in
- Thy pure light.”
-
-More died in 1687. The same year Edmund Waller passed away, singing
-the following lines, which complete and crown his _Divine Poems_;
-lines which indicate faith in the life and immortality brought to light
-by the Gospel, and which convey aspirations breathed by Christians of
-every Church and creed:--
-
- “The seas are quiet when the winds are o’er;
- So calm are we when passions are no more:
- For then we know how vain it was to boast
- Of fleeting things, so certain to be lost.
-
- Clouds of affection from our younger eyes
- Conceal that emptiness which age descries:
- The soul’s dark cottage, battered and decayed,
- Lets in new lights through chinks that time has made.
-
- Stronger by weakness, wiser, men become,
- As they draw nearer to their eternal home,
- Leaving the old, both worlds at once they view,
- That stand upon the threshold of the new.”
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
-Francis Quarles had a place assigned him in the _Dunciad_, by
-Alexander Pope, but is by Campbell admitted into “the laurelled
-fraternity,” and has lately recovered somewhat of his original renown.
-He wrote a paraphrase of the Book of Ecclesiastes, which was published
-in 1645, just after his death, but the _Emblems_, for which he is
-still so celebrated, appeared as early as 1635; and, although earlier
-than our period, may be noticed here in passing, because they seem
-to have been largely read for fifty years, or so, after their first
-publication. They strikingly reflect the poetical taste, most popular,
-under the Commonwealth, and amongst a large number of religious
-people for some time afterwards. Quarles furnishes an example of the
-combination of pictorial devices with the printed text. He tells his
-readers at the outset, “Before the knowledge of letters, God was known
-by hieroglyphics,” and then asks, “Indeed, what are the heavens, the
-earth, nay every creature, but hieroglyphics and emblems of His glory?”
-
-Leaving this border land of religious poetry--which, although in the
-seventeenth century large in itself, appears small in comparison with
-religious prose, and, for the most part, inferior in its literary
-pretensions--we enter the province of hymnology proper, where we
-find much to interest us. Yet here we must remember, that within the
-era prescribed in these chapters, we do not reach what may be called
-the land of Beulah in the regions of English sacred song. Before we
-can approach that region, we must pass over another half century.
-The position of hymnology in the history of our literature since the
-Reformation is a little remarkable. Hymnology was late before it
-appeared in any thing like vigorous efflorescence, and in this respect
-it exhibits a contrast to what we notice with regard to poetical
-literature in earlier times and other respects. Poetry came before
-philosophy in Greece. Homer composed his Iliad and Odyssey long ere
-Plato wrote his Dialogues. Something of the same order meets us in
-the succession of authorship when we turn to the Biblical and sacred
-literature of our own country in the middle ages. Versification rose
-into life much earlier than prose. Between the metrical paraphrase
-of Scripture by Cædmon, the Whitby monk, and the theology of the
-Anglo-Norman schoolmen, five centuries elapsed; the prose translations
-and treatises of Wycliffe came two centuries later still. Romantic and
-dramatic poetry took the lead at the close of the sixteenth century.
-Spencer and Shakespere are a little in advance of Raleigh and Bacon.
-But when we look at our religious literature since the Reformation,
-we notice an inversion of such order. The Church under Elizabeth and
-the earlier Stuarts produced prose theology in abundance, some of it
-of a high order; but it yielded comparatively few verses strictly
-religious. The Augustan age of divinity is comparatively poor in the
-hymnal department, poorer in quality than it is in quantity. When,
-however, doctrinal divinity had declined in the eighteenth century, and
-the most intellectual theologians were those who defended the outworks
-of Christian evidence, and no such men as Thorndike, Bull and Pearson
-appeared among Churchmen; and no Divines equal to Owen, Baxter, and
-Howe could be found in the ranks of Nonconformity,--hymn-writers arose
-in greater numbers, and with sweeter notes, than at any earlier season.
-We must not anticipate them, but confine ourselves to the scanty
-collections of psalms and hymns contributed between the commencement of
-the Civil Wars and the epoch of the Revolution.
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
-First we shall glance at books simply intended for use in public
-worship. New versions of the Psalms were early prepared by Rous and
-Barton--the first was published in 1641, the second in 1644. The
-Psalter, with titles and collects, attributed to Jeremy Taylor,
-appeared in the same year, and afterwards ran through several editions.
-“The Psalms of David from the New Translation of the Bible, turned into
-metre by Henry King,” Bishop of Chichester between 1641 and 1669--James
-I.’s “king of preachers,” and who to his fame as a preacher added some
-reputation as a poet--issued from the press under the Commonwealth,
-in 1651 or 1654. In the following year, the Rev. John White published
-“David’s Psalms in metre, agreeable to the Hebrew;” and it may be
-mentioned, as an indication of the alliance of instrumental music with
-psalmody under the Protectorate, that on the 22nd of November, 1655,
-according to a printed quarto sheet still in existence, there were
-select Psalms of a new translation, arranged to be “sung in verse, and
-chorus, of five parts, with symphonies of violins, organ, and other
-instruments.” The Psalms were paraphrased and turned into English
-verse by Thomas Garthwaite in 1664, by Dr. Samuel Woodford in 1667,
-and by Miles Smyth in 1668. In 1671 there came out “Psalms and Hymns,
-in solemn music, in four parts, on the common tunes to Psalms in metre
-used in parish churches, by John Playford;” and in 1679, “A Century
-of Select Psalms in verse, for the use of the Charter House, by Dr.
-John Patrick.” J. Chamberlayne Gent, Richard Goodridge, and Simon Ford
-added, before the Revolution, volumes of paraphrases; and in the year
-of that great event, we find another volume, bearing the title of
-“The whole Book of Psalms, as they are now sung in the churches, with
-the singing notes of time and tune to every syllable, never before
-done in England, by T. M.” These are the principal, if not all the
-Psalm-books, produced from the opening of the Commonwealth to the
-legal establishment of toleration. Public worship was, from the time
-of passing the Act of Uniformity, until its modification under William
-III., forbidden by constitutional law to be celebrated anywhere but in
-the churches and chapels of the Establishment; and therefore it was for
-them expressly, and for them alone, that the various translations and
-editions of the Psalter were designed. Specimens of these productions
-need not be given, as they are more or less close and unpoetical
-renderings in rhyme of the Book of Psalms.
-
-Besides these publications, translations of particular Psalms appeared
-in detached forms. John Milton translated several. Some, indeed, are
-only classical renderings of the thoughts contained in those sacred
-compositions; but under date April, 1648, we find, under his hand,
-“Nine of the Psalms, done into metre, wherein all, but what is in
-a different character, are the very words of the text, translated
-from the original.” This method of versification put such chains on
-the wings of poetry that it was impossible for it to do otherwise
-than stretch them with awkwardness; yet, notwithstanding such an
-incumbrance, there may be noticed a few movements in the bard’s verses
-which are free and graceful. The paraphrase of the 136th Psalm, which
-he wrote in his fifteenth year, contains strokes of magnificent
-diction, and expresses adoration and praise in some of its very highest
-strains. Milton, as a boy, there struck a key-note which must lead off
-a chorus of Divine music wherever it is heard:--
-
- “Let us, with a gladsome mind,
- Praise the Lord, for He is kind;
- For His mercies aye endure,
- Ever faithful, ever sure.
- Who by His wisdom did create
- The painted heavens, so full of state;
- Who did the solid earth ordain
- To rise above the watery plain;
- Who, by His all-commanding might,
- Did fill the new-made world with light,
- And caused the golden-tressed sun
- All the day long his course to run.”
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
-Paraphrases of the Psalms were attempted by distinguished poets who
-rarely touched on sacred themes. John Oldham, for example, who died in
-1683, composed a number of elaborate lines upon the 137th Psalm, but
-they contain as little of devotion as they do of harmony and rhythm. I
-am not aware that Dryden clothed any of the Psalms in English numbers,
-but he translated the _Te Deum_, and wrote a hymn for St. John’s
-Eve. These pieces are little known, and scarcely strike the chords of
-devotion; but there is a rich, full, Divine spirit in his rendering of
-the _Veni Creator Spiritus_, such as floods the soul with heavenly
-desires:--
-
- “Creator Spirit, by whose aid
- The world’s foundations first were laid,
- Come visit every pious mind;
- Come pour Thy joys on human kind;
- From sin and sorrow set us free,
- And make Thy temples worthy Thee.”
-
-George Wither, the Puritan poet, who died in 1667, wrote hymns and
-songs of the Church; and amongst translations of the Lord’s Prayer,
-perhaps there never was one so compact, and so closely adhering to the
-original, as his:--
-
- “Our Father, which in heaven art,
- We sanctify Thy name;
- Thy kingdom come; Thy will be done,
- In heaven and earth the same:
- Give us this day our daily bread;
- And us forgive Thou so,
- As we, on them that us offend,
- Forgiveness do bestow.
- Into temptation lead us not,
- But us from evil free:
- For Thine the kingdom, power, and praise,
- Is, and shall ever be.”
-
-I proceed now to notice a few original productions. Jeremy Taylor wrote
-hymns, which he describes as “celebrating the mysteries and chief
-festivals of the year, according to the manner of the ancient Church;
-fitted to the fancy and devotion of the younger and pious persons: apt
-for memory, and to be joined to their other prayers.” In much of his
-poetry we miss the exquisite rhythm of his prose; nor can there be said
-to be in it much of that Divine power, or that human pathos, which
-kindles devotion in Christian bosoms. The first hymn for Christmas Day
-is perhaps the best of all:--
-
- “Mysterious truth! that the self-same should be
- A Lamb, a Shepherd, and a Lion too!
- Yet such was He
- Whom first the shepherds knew,
- When they themselves became
- Sheep to the Shepherd-Lamb.
- Shepherd of men and angels,--Lamb of God,
- Lion of Judah,--by these titles keep
- The wolf from Thy endangered sheep.
- Bring all the world into Thy fold;
- Let Jews and Gentiles hither come
- In numbers great, that can’t be told;
- And call Thy lambs, that wander, home.”
-
-These lines are thrown into a form which partakes of the nature of
-an ode more than that of a hymn: certainly they are altogether unfit
-for Divine worship, and the same remark may be made of all the verses
-printed in Taylor’s works.
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
-Robert Herrick, who comes within our range of time--for he died about
-1674--wrote a beautiful litany to the Holy Spirit, which bears a
-lyrical character suitable for psalmody, and contains the following
-earnest cries:--
-
- “In the hour of my distress,
- When temptations me oppress,
- And when I my sins confess,
- Sweet Spirit, comfort me!
-
- When I lie within my bed,
- Sick in heart and sick in head,
- And with doubts discomforted,
- Sweet Spirit, comfort me!
-
- When the house doth sigh and weep,
- And the world is drown’d in sleep,
- Yet mine eyes the watch do keep,
- Sweet Spirit, comfort me!
-
- When, God knows, I’m tost about,
- Either with despair, or doubt,
- Yet before the glass be out,
- Sweet Spirit, comfort me!
-
- When the judgment is reveal’d,
- And that open’d which was seal’d,
- When to Thee I have appeal’d,
- Sweet Spirit, comfort me!”
-
-Although Richard Baxter has been always so renowned as a prose writer,
-his poetry was for a long time neglected; but of late one of his
-lyrical compositions has obtained a very extensive popularity. There
-is in it a quaint beauty, which evokes our admiration of the author’s
-piety, beyond the praise which we bestow upon the freshness and
-originality of his mind. It is a specimen of that devout confidence
-in God which so thoroughly inspired the best religiousness of the
-seventeenth century; it furnishes an incentive to pure and hallowed
-affections, in every bosom, and it possesses some of the best
-qualities of a Christian hymn:--
-
- “Lord, it belongs not to my care,
- Whether I die or live:
- To live and serve Thee is my share,
- And this Thy grace must give.
- If life be long, I will be glad
- That I may long obey:
- If short, yet why should I be sad,
- That shall have the same pay?
-
- If death shall bruise this springing seed,
- Before it comes to fruit,
- The will with Thee goes for the deed,
- Thy life was in the root.
- Long life is a long grief and toil,
- And multiplieth faults:
- In long wars he may have the foil,
- That ’scapes in short assaults.
-
- Christ leads me through no darker rooms
- Than He went through before;
- He that unto God’s kingdom comes,
- Must enter by this door.
- Come, Lord! when grace has made me meet
- Thy blessed face to see;
- For if Thy work on earth be sweet,
- What must Thy glory be?
-
- Then shall I end my sad complaints,
- And weary, sinful days;
- And join with the triumphant saints,
- That sing Jehovah’s praise.
- My knowledge of that life is small,
- The eye of faith is dim;
- But ’tis enough that Christ knows all,
- And I shall be with Him.”
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
-John Mason, who died in 1694--father of him who wrote the _Treatise
-on Self-Knowledge_--was a very superior hymnologist. Between the
-verses just quoted from Richard Baxter, and the following, taken from
-a hymn by Mason, entitled _Surely I come quickly_, there is a
-remarkable resemblance:--
-
- “And dost Thou _come_, my dearest Lord?
- And dost Thou _surely_ come?
- And dost Thou _surely quickly_ come?
- Methinks I am at home!
-
- My Jesus is gone up to heaven
- To get a place for me;
- For ’tis His will that where He is,
- There should His servants be.
-
- Canaan I view from Pisgah’s top,
- Of Canaan’s grapes I taste;
- My Lord, who sends unto me here,
- Will send for me at last.
-
- I have a God that changeth not,
- Why should I be perplext?
- My God, that owns me in this world,
- Will own me in the next.
-
- Go fearless, then, my soul, with God
- Into another room:
- Thou, who hast walked with Him here,
- Go, see thy God at home.”
-
-Flourishing between the age of Quarles and Watts, Mason attained a
-style which is described by Montgomery as “a middle tint between the
-raw colouring of the former and the daylight tint of the latter. His
-talent is equally poised between both, having more vigour and more
-versatility than that of either his forerunner or his successor.”[573]
-His merit as a hymn-writer--extraordinary for the age in which he
-lived--seems to have been appreciated by Pope, Watts, and the Wesleys,
-who studied and copied him; but he was much neglected for a long time,
-to be reinstated in popular favour of late years.
-
-Mason’s _Song of Praise for the Evening_ is now well known, but,
-in its modern form, we miss the middle stanza of the original:--
-
- “Now from the altar of my heart
- Let incense-flames arise:
- Assist me, Lord, to offer up
- Mine evening sacrifice.
- Awake, my love; awake, my joy;
- Awake, my heart and tongue;
- Sleep not when mercies loudly call,
- Break forth into a song.
-
- Man’s life’s a book of history;
- The leaves thereof are days;
- The letters mercies closely joined;
- The title is Thy praise.
- This day God was my Sun and Shield,
- My Keeper and my Guide;
- His care was on my frailty shewn,
- His mercies multiply’d.
-
- Minutes and mercies multiply’d
- Have made up all this day:
- Minutes came quick; but mercies were
- More fleet and free than they.
- New time, new favour, and new joys,
- Do a new song require:
- Till I shall praise Thee as I would,
- Accept my heart’s desire.”
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
-Amongst the anonymous poetry of that period there is a hymn of the
-sacred ballad type, so singularly touching to my mind, so expressive
-of that admiration of Christ which lies at the heart of all Christian
-piety, and so much less known than it ought to be, that I venture to
-introduce several of its stanzas:--
-
- “There was a King of old,
- That did in Jewry dwell;
- Whether a God, or Man, or both,
- I’m sure I love Him well.
-
- Love Him! why, who doth not?
- Did ever any wight
- Not goodness, beauty, sweetness, love--
- Not comfort, love, and light?
-
- None ever did, or can;
- But here’s the cause alone
- Why He of all few lovers finds,
- Because He is not known.
-
- There are so many fair,
- He’s lost among the throng;
- Yet they that seek Him nowhere else
- May find Him in a song.
-
- This God, Man, King, and Priest
- Almighty was, yet meek:
- He was most just, yet merciful;
- The guilty did Him seek.
-
- He never any failed
- That sought Him in their need:
- He never quenched the smoking flax,
- Nor brake the bruised reed.
-
- He was the truest Friend
- That ever any tried,
- For whom He loved He never left,
- For them He lived and died.
-
- And if you’d know the folk
- That brought Him to His end,
- Read but His title--you shall find
- Him styled the sinner’s Friend.
-
- His life all wonder was,
- But here’s a wonder more,
- That He, who was all life and love,
- Should be beloved no more.
-
- I’ll love Him while I live;
- To those that be His foes,
- Though I them hate, I’ll wish no worse
- Than His dear love to lose.”
-
-Benjamin Keach, the author of _Tropologia; a Key to open Scripture
-Metaphors and Types_, was a zealous hymnologist. This Baptist
-minister vindicated the practice of singing against the objections
-of some of his brethren, in a curious book printed in 1661 under the
-title of _Breach repaired in good Worship, or singing Psalms proved
-to be an Ordinance of Christ_. Having written _The Glorious
-Lover, a Divine Poem_, in 1679, he published, in 1691, a volume
-entitled _Spiritual Melody_, containing “Psalms and Hymns from
-the Old and New Testament,” and also _The Bread revived in God’s
-Worship, or singing of Psalms, Hymns, and Spiritual Songs proved to be
-an Holy Ordinance_. These were followed, in 1696, by _The Feast
-of Fat Things full of Marrow_. In referring to hymns of this date,
-however, we pass over our boundary line, yet, if I may trespass so far,
-I would select a copy of verses composed by Keach as a specimen of
-the extraordinary doggerel which he considered fit for congregational
-worship. It is not to be taken as a specimen of the worship which was
-actually celebrated in Nonconformist chapels before the Revolution;
-for Keach’s book, as it appears from what I have just said, was
-not published until afterwards, and the state of psalmody amongst
-Dissenters must be reserved for future consideration. It, however,
-indicates a certain taste, or a want of taste altogether, which in some
-quarters might be found during the period covered by our present survey.
-
- “If saints, O Lord, do season all
- Amongst whom they do live,
- Salt all with grace, both great and small,
- They may sweet relish give.
-
- And, blessed be Thy glorious name!
- In England salt is found,
- Some savoury souls who do proclaim
- Thy grace, which doth abound.
-
- But O the want of salt, O Lord!
- How few are salted well!
- How few are like to salt indeed!
- Salt Thou Thy Israel!
-
- Now sing, ye saints who are this salt,
- And let all seasoned be
- With your most holy gracious lives;
- Great need of it we see.
-
- The earth will else corrupt and stink;
- O salt it well, therefore,
- And live to Him that salted you,
- And sing for evermore.”
-
-[Sidenote: POETRY.]
-
-Certainly this is not one of the hymns fitted to convey the devotion
-of the united Church; but I suppose we must take it for granted, that
-there existed people, at the time when it was written, who could sing
-it with gravity. It is impossible to mark absolutely the point of
-separation between what demands some respect, if it do not inspire
-reverence, from that which excites ridicule, and even contempt. So much
-depends upon education, association, and habit, in religious matters,
-that we may here truly apply the adage of one man’s meat being another
-man’s poison. People who laugh at Keach’s metaphors and hymns perhaps
-indulge in forms of worship which appear excessively ludicrous to
-religionists of his order. The devoutness of some people may feed on
-aliment which would produce only revulsion in others; and let us hope
-that the good folks who were taught to conduct services of song after
-this very peculiar fashion could nevertheless make melody in their
-hearts unto the Lord. At all events, Keach’s _Saints the Salt of the
-Earth_ is a specimen of one kind of hymnology which the seventeenth
-century produced.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
-
-
-We have completed the circle of theological schools. Many illustrations
-of religious character and experience growing out of the principles
-now explained, or rather, in some cases, producing sympathy with them,
-have been already exhibited. To give completeness to the task I have
-undertaken, it is desirable that there should be added some other
-biographical illustrations, and that they should be brought together in
-immediate connection with the forms of opinion to which they belong.
-
-I may again begin with the Anglicans, and as the examples of the class
-hitherto have been clerical, I shall now select examples from the laity.
-
-[Sidenote: ISAAK WALTON.]
-
-Isaak Walton deserves to be taken first. Disliking “the active
-Romanists,” averse, perhaps still more, to the “restless
-Nonconformists,” he would rank himself as “one of the passive and
-peaceable Protestants;” but the Anglican tincture of his Protestantism
-is visible in the whole of his writings. Without giving to the
-world any theological treatise, or entering into any ecclesiastical
-controversy, he has diffused his religious sentiments with singular
-sweetness and purity over his works, so as to leave no doubt respecting
-their distinctive colour. How far the influence of his parentage and
-education might contribute to the formation of his character we do not
-know; but no doubt the natural bent of his mind, his taste for quiet
-contemplation, his reverence for antiquity, his disposition to submit
-to authority, his faculty of imagination, and his taste for music, had
-prepared him for those paths of faith and worship in which, through a
-long life, he loved to walk. In addition to this, we should remember
-his early, as well as his later friendships, with certain distinguished
-members of the Anglican communion.
-
-In his Elegy on Dr. Donne, he exclaims--
-
- “Oh do not call
- Grief back by thinking on his funeral,
- Forget he loved me--
- Forget his _powerful preaching_, and forget
- I am his _convert_:”--
-
-words which indicate the writer’s spiritual obligation to that eminent
-orator. Walton’s marriage with his first wife brought him into “happy
-affinity” with the descendants of Archbishop Cranmer; and to this
-circumstance is attributed the origin of Walton’s _Life of Hooker_. The
-marriage with his second wife--half-sister to Bishop Ken--placed him,
-in his latter days, upon intimate terms with that holy prelate. Morley,
-Sanderson, and King were amongst his endeared associates.
-
-Walton’s _Lives_ give us glimpses of himself: for he is one of
-those artists who introduce their own portrait in a corner of their
-pictures. Of all his heroes, Bishop Sanderson was the man respecting
-whom he knew most; and, at the close of his memoir, Walton touchingly
-reveals his own spiritual aspiration:--“’Tis now too late to wish that
-my _life_ may be like his, for I am in the eighty-fifth year of my
-age; but I humbly beseech Almighty God, that my _death_ may; and
-do as earnestly beg of every reader to say, Amen.--‘Blessed is the man
-in whose spirit there is no guile.’” (Psalm xxxii. 2.)
-
-His _Complete Angler, or the Contemplative Man’s Recreation_,
-is a mirror of his life. His moral and religious sympathies are seen
-gleaming over his pages from beginning to end; and as the revelation
-of an inner life, the first part by himself should be compared with
-the second part by Cotton; we see at once that he was not born to be a
-reformer, that he was not one of those who can grapple with falsehood
-and corruption, and that if all had resembled him, England’s destiny
-would have been humiliating indeed,--we feel that in his case absence
-from any active part in the controversies of his time, can be regarded
-neither as a virtue nor as a vice, neither as censurable nor as
-admirable, but simply as the operation of a natural tendency.
-
-Being what he was, he loved the quiet nooks and corners of human
-experience and interest, and in every place manifested purity,
-gentleness, meekness, and charity; as he wandered along the banks
-of the Lea, or sat in the fishing house beside the Dove, Scripture
-thoughts, like flowers, bright and sweet, entwined about the
-trellis-work of his cherished recreations; sacred thoughts, of the
-quaintest kind, gathered round his rod, and his fish-hooks, and that
-“most honest, ingenuous, quiet, and harmless art of angling.” “Evil
-communications, which corrupt good manners,” filled him with sadness.
-“Such discourse,” he observes, in one of his walks, “as we heard last
-night, it infects others, the very boys will learn to talk and swear
-as they heard mine host, and another of the company that shall be
-nameless; I am sorry the other is a gentleman, for less religion will
-not save their souls than a beggar’s; I think more will be required at
-the last great day.” He counted every misery he missed a new mercy,
-was thankful for health, competence, and a quiet conscience, and dwelt,
-with sympathetic joy, on the character of the meek man who has no
-“turbulent, repining, or vexatious thoughts,” who possesses what he has
-“with such a quietness as makes his very dreams pleasing both to God
-and himself.” “When,” he says in another place, “I would beget content,
-and increase confidence in the power, and wisdom, and providence of
-Almighty God, I will walk the meadows of some gliding stream, and there
-contemplate the lilies that take no care, and those very many other
-various little living creatures, that are not only created, but fed,
-man knows not how, by the goodness of the God of nature, and therefore
-trust in Him. This is my purpose, and so ‘let everything that hath
-breath praise the Lord;’ and let the blessing of St. Peter’s Master be
-with mine.”
-
-Walton, at his death--amidst the great frost of 1683--could not but
-enter that world of perfect harmony to which his thoughts and desires
-had so often ascended as he listened to the nightingale. “He that at
-midnight, when the very labourer sleeps securely, should hear, as I
-have very often, the clear airs, the sweet descants, the natural rising
-and falling, the doubling and redoubling of her voice, might well be
-lifted above earth, and say; Lord, what music hast thou provided for
-the saints in Heaven, when thou affordest bad men such music on earth?”
-We now turn to another and somewhat different type of the same school.
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN EVELYN.]
-
-John Evelyn lost his mother when he had reached his fifteenth year;
-and her beautiful memory, as of one “whose constitution inclined to a
-religious melancholy, or pious sadness,” seemed to have remained with
-him all his days, giving that plaintiveness to his piety, which, as a
-richly-coloured thread, appears interwoven with the brightest joys
-of his calm yet active life. He records her death with reverential
-affection, and how she summoned her children around her, and expressed
-herself in a manner so heavenly, with instructions so pious and
-Christian, as made them strangely sensible of the extraordinary loss
-then becoming imminent:--after which, she gave to each a ring, with
-her blessing. Evelyn lost his father at twenty-one; and again he
-minutely relates the tale of his sorrow, how, at night, they followed
-the mourning hearse to the church at Wotton, where, after a sermon and
-funeral oration by the minister, the ashes of the husband were mingled
-with those of the wife. “Thus,” he adds, “we were bereft of both our
-parents, in a period when we[574] most of all stood in need of their
-counsel and assistance, especially myself, of a raw, vain, uncertain,
-and very unwary inclination; but so it pleased God to make trial of my
-conduct in a conjuncture of the greatest and most prodigious hazard
-that ever the youth of England saw; and, if I did not, amidst all this,
-impeach my liberty nor my virtue with the rest who made shipwreck of
-both, it was more the infinite goodness and mercy of God, than the
-least providence or discretion of mine own, who now thought of nothing
-but the pursuit of vanity, and the confused imaginations of young
-men.”[575]
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN EVELYN.]
-
-The mercy of Providence, the truths of Christianity, and the grace of
-the Holy Spirit, kept him amidst his extensive travels, amidst his
-intercourse with men of different countries and classes, and especially
-amidst the temptations of fashionable society at a period when such
-as frequented courts were commonly addicted to vice. Notwithstanding
-the great moral peril to which Evelyn stood exposed, he preserved a
-pure mind and a virtuous reputation. He loved the Episcopal Church
-of England with a jealous affection,--finding in her liturgy what
-was congenial with his spiritual taste; deriving nourishment for
-his spiritual sensibilities from the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper
-administered according to her ritual; and, in short, living in the
-culture of those habits which are distinctive of Anglican piety.
-He did not, indeed, refuse to attend his parish church during the
-Commonwealth, and to hear a Presbyterian or Independent minister;
-but this proceeded from prudence rather than from sympathy. Evelyn’s
-Catholic feeling shrank from Puritanism; his charity leaned towards
-Roman Catholics. It is with regard to such that he says:--“For the
-rest we must commit to Providence the success of times and mitigation
-of proselytical fervours, having for my own particular a very great
-charity for all who sincerely adore the blessed Jesus, our common and
-dear Saviour, as being full of hope that God (however the present zeal
-of some, and the scandals taken by others at the instant [present]
-affliction of the Church of England may transport them), will at
-last compassionate our infirmities, clarify our judgments, and make
-abatement for our ignorances, superstructures, passions, and errors of
-corrupt times and interests, of which the Romish persuasion can no way
-acquit herself, whatever the present prosperity and secular polity may
-pretend. But God will make all things manifest in His own time, only
-let us possess ourselves in patience and charity. This will cover a
-multitude of imperfections.”[576]
-
-Like other persons of his cast of sentiment, like the nuns at Gidding
-eulogized by Isaak Walton and condemned by the Puritans, like the
-Anglican sisterhoods of the present day, Evelyn had a liking for a
-semi-monastic life; and in the year 1659, when affairs were unsettled
-in England, he proposed to Robert Boyle, an elaborate plan for an
-establishment of this description. There was to be a house erected
-in the midst of a tall wood, and “opposite to the house, towards the
-wood, should be erected a pretty chapel; and at equal distances, even
-within the flanking walls of the square, six apartments or cells
-for the members of the society, and not contiguous to the pavilion;
-each whereof should contain a small bedchamber, an outward room,
-a closet, and a private garden, somewhat after the manner of the
-Carthusians.”[577] There was to be maintained at the public charge
-a “chaplain well qualified.” There were to be prayers in the chapel
-morning and evening; and a weekly fast and communion once every
-fortnight or month at least, with divers arrangements for study and
-recreations. The scheme came to nothing, but it shows the bent of its
-author’s inclinations. Whatever may be thought of them, one impression
-only can be justly derived from reading on the white marble, covering
-his tomb, in Wotton Church, the record of his death:--“He fell asleep
-the 27th day of February, 170⅚, being the 86th year of his age, in
-full hope of a glorious resurrection, through faith in Jesus Christ.
-Living in an age of extraordinary events and revolutions, he learnt (as
-himself asserted) this truth--which, pursuant to his intention, is here
-declared--‘_That all is vanity which is not honest, and that there is
-no solid wisdom but in real piety_.’”[578]
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN EVELYN.]
-
-The cast of Evelyn’s religion is further illustrated in that of his
-friend Margaret Blagge,[579] afterwards the wife of Sidney Godolphin.
-When he heard some distinguished persons speaking of her, he fancied
-she was “some airy thing that had more wit than discretion.” But,
-making a visit to Whitehall with his wife, he fell in with the youthful
-maid of honour, and “admired her temperance, and took especial notice,
-that, however wide or indifferent the subject of their discourse
-was amongst the rest, she would always direct it to some religious
-conclusion, and so temper and season her replies, as showed a gracious
-heart, and that she had a mind wholly taken up with heavenly thoughts.”
-Their acquaintance was ratified by a quaint solemnity; after a formal
-solicitation, that he would look upon her thenceforth as his child,
-she took a sheet of paper, upon which Evelyn had been carelessly
-sketching the shape of an altar, and wrote these words: “Be this
-a symbol of inviolable friendship: Margaret Blagge, 16th October,
-1672;” and underneath, “For my brother E----.” Something of romance
-is visible in the singular attachment which this girl formed for her
-amiable and pious friend; and it issued in his guiding her affairs,
-in his increasing her wisdom, and in his ripening her piety. Never at
-home amidst the gaieties of Whitehall, Margaret, after seven years’
-experience, felt that she could no longer endure living at Court, and
-therefore earnestly sought, and at length, with difficulty, obtained
-Royal permission to retire. On a Sunday night, after most of the
-company were departed, Evelyn waited on her down to her chamber, which
-she had no sooner entered, than falling on her knees, she blessed God,
-as for a signal deliverance: “She was come,” she said, “out of Egypt,
-and was now in the way to the land of promise.” Tears trickled down
-her cheeks, “like the dew of flowers, making a lovely grief,” as she
-parted from one of the ladies who had a spirit kindred to her own. She
-found a home with Lady Berkeley, and what she especially sought, time
-for meditation and prayer; indeed the love of seclusion so increased,
-that she manifested a strong tinge of asceticism. Evelyn, in this
-respect more sober-minded, availed himself of his influence, and
-with success, to persuade her to renounce a celibate life, to which
-she seemed strongly disposed; and she came to see that union with a
-virtuous and religious person, would tend rather to promote than to
-retard her spiritual progress. Accordingly, she was married privately
-in the Temple Church, on the 16th of May, being Ascension Day, “both
-the blessed pair receiving the Holy Sacrament, and consecrating the
-solemnity with a double mystery;”[580] but, in a letter written shortly
-after, she showed what continued to be the main bent of her mind. “I
-have this day,” she says, addressing Evelyn, “thought your thoughts,
-wished I dare say your wishes, which were, that I might every day sit
-looser and looser to the things of this world; discerning as every day
-I do, the folly and vanity of it; how short all its pleasures, how
-trifling all its recreations, how false most of its friendships, how
-transitory everything in it; and on the contrary, how sweet the service
-of God, how delightful the meditating on His Word, how pleasant the
-conversation of the faithful, and, above all, how charming prayer, how
-glorious our hopes, how gracious our God is to all His children, how
-gentle His corrections, and how frequently, by the first invitations of
-His Spirit, He calls us from our low designs to those great and noble
-ones of serving Him, and attaining eternal happiness.”[581]
-
-[Sidenote: MARGARET GODOLPHIN.]
-
-Margaret Godolphin became an exemplary matron. She instructed her
-servants, she cultivated domestic religion, she breathed towards
-everybody a kind considerate spirit, and with all this condescension as
-a mistress, she blended the utmost devotion and tenderness as a wife.
-She also assisted the poor, and in the spirit of Elizabeth Fry, visited
-the hospital and the prison: and Evelyn could produce a list of above
-thirty, restrained for debts in several prisons, which she paid and
-compounded for at once; and another list of no fewer than twenty-three
-poor creatures whom she clad at one time. She employed “most part of
-Lent in working for poor people, cutting out and making waistcoats and
-other necessary coverings, which she constantly distributed amongst
-them, like another Dorcas, spending much of her time, and no little
-of her money, in relieving, visiting, and inquiring of them out. And
-whilst she was thus busy with her needle, she would commonly have one
-or other read by her, through which means and a happy memory, she
-had almost the whole Scriptures by heart, and was so versed in Dr.
-Hammond’s _Annotations_ and other practical books, controversies,
-and cases, as might have stocked some who pass for no small Divines:
-not to mention sundry Divine penitential and other hymns, breathing of
-a spirit of holiness, and such as showed the tenderness of her heart,
-and wonderful love to God.”[582]
-
-Within a few days after the birth of her only child, she expired,
-September 9, 1678, in the twenty-fifth year of her age, and she lies
-buried in the church of Breague, in Cornwall: her tomb reminding us of
-the pillar over Rachel’s grave.
-
-As in the Court of Arcadius, we meet with the pious Olympias in
-contrast with the Empress Eudoxia, and her ladies,--so, in the Court
-of Charles II., we discover a Margaret Godolphin in contrast with a
-Castelmaine and a Gwynn.
-
-[Sidenote: SIR MATTHEW HALE.]
-
-There are, in every age, Christians whom it would be difficult
-to connect with one particular school of theological sentiment,
-because they have sympathies with all good men, and do not adopt
-the peculiarities of any class. Such a person was Sir Matthew Hale.
-No ecclesiastical history of the period--unless written upon some
-miserable sectarian principle--could be considered complete which did
-not include a reference to so eminently excellent a man. His parents
-dying when he was very young, he became dependent for his education
-upon a relative who was a Puritan minister, and this circumstance
-may account for some points in his character which present a rather
-Puritanical appearance. After being addicted to the gaieties of youth,
-he was, whilst at Oxford, _converted_, in heart and life, as the
-result, partly at least, of an affecting circumstance which occurred
-at a convivial meeting when he was present. A boon-companion fell
-down in a state of death-like insensibility, when Hale, overwhelmed
-with remorse and pity, retired into another room, and, prostrating
-himself before God, asked forgiveness for his own sins, and interceded
-earnestly for the restoration of his friend. A sudden spiritual
-crisis like that, when the soul is suddenly fused, and poured into a
-new mould, is sure to be remembered afterwards, and to influence all
-subsequent religious feeling. As it has been justly said, a man no
-more forgets the moral deliverance it involves, than he forgets an
-escape from shipwreck,[583] and therefore Hale’s conversion gave a
-marked evangelical impress to his subsequent experience. He glorified
-the riches of Divine grace, and delighted “in studying the Mystery
-of Christ.” He found in God an overflowing fulness which fills up
-the intensest gaspings and outgoings of the soul, a fulness which
-continues to eternity, ever increasing gratitude, adoration, and
-love. Throughout a course of remarkable diligence in business, this
-illustrious Judge manifested no less fervour of spirit. Prayer “gave a
-tincture of devotion” to his secular employments--it was “a Christian
-chemistry converting those acts which are materially natural and civil,
-into acts truly and formally religious, whereby all life is rendered
-interpretatively a service to Almighty God.” It was a sun which “gave
-light in the midst of darkness, a fortress that kept safe in the
-greatest danger, that never could be taken unless self-betrayed,”--a
-“Goshen to, and within itself, when the rest of the world, without and
-round about a man, is like an Egypt for plagues and darkness.” “To
-lose this,” Hale went on to say, “is, like Samson, to lose the lock
-wherein next to God our strength lieth.” Such expressions as these
-have a Puritanical sound in the ears of many, and there are other
-things noticeable in his memoirs in harmony with such expressions:--for
-it is stated, as very probable, that he took the Solemn League and
-Covenant, it is certain that he did not approve of the rigours of the
-Act of Uniformity, and he severely condemned the conduct of many of the
-clergy. He had also the deepest reverence for the Sabbath, he cherished
-an intense aversion to Romanism, he cultivated, with great respect,
-a friendship with Richard Baxter--to whom he acknowledged himself
-under great theological obligations--and, if we may mention so minute
-a circumstance, which however is significant--“in common prayer, he
-behaved himself as others, saving that to avoid the differencing of the
-Gospels from the Epistles, and the bowing at the name of Jesus, from
-the names Christ, Saviour, God, &c., he would use some equality in his
-gestures and stand up at the reading of all God’s Word alike.” These
-facts separate him from the Anglo-Catholic division of the Church of
-England, yet they are not sufficient to identify him with the fully
-developed, and sharply defined Puritan party. For he did not use such
-religious language in conversation, as satisfied them--they considered
-him too reticent on spiritual subjects;--and, as Baxter says, those
-that took no men for religious, who frequented not private meetings,
-regarded him simply, as “an excellently righteous man.” Baxter himself
-seems to have wished, that Hale had been a little more communicative
-on spiritual matters, instead of confining himself in conversation to
-what is philosophical in religion. The Divine remarks, respecting the
-Judge:--“At last I understood that his averseness to hypocrisy made him
-purposely conceal the most of such of his practical thoughts and works
-as the world now findeth by his Contemplations and other writings.”
-In some respects, Sir Matthew sympathized with the Latitudinarian
-school--for, like them, he believed, “that true religion consisteth
-in great plain necessary things, the life of faith and hope, the love
-of God and man, an humble self-denying mind, with mortification of
-worldly affection--and that the calamity of the Church, and withering
-of religion hath come from proud and busy men’s additions, that cannot
-give peace to themselves and others by living in love and quietness on
-this Christian simplicity of faith and practice, but vex and turmoil
-the Church with these needless and hurtful superfluities.”[584] Nor
-did he believe in any divinely authorized form of ecclesiastical
-government; although he greatly preferred, on grounds of expediency,
-the Episcopalian polity to any other. Yet these points of affinity
-do not justify us in numbering him with the Latitudinarians any more
-than with the Puritans, because there was in him more of evangelical
-sentiment, more of attachment to dogmatic truth, and more of spiritual
-fervour, than belonged to the former description of thinkers. He
-counted amongst his religious friends, the High Churchman, Seth Ward,
-Bishop of Salisbury, as well as the Broad Churchman, Wilkins, Bishop
-of Chester, and the Low Churchman, Richard Baxter, who refused to be a
-Bishop at all. It suggests rebuke to all bigoted partizans, to remember
-that a layman of the latter half of the seventeenth century most
-renowned for his wisdom, justice, charity and piety, was one of whom it
-is equally true that he can be claimed by no particular party, and yet
-can be claimed by all single-minded Christians.
-
-[Sidenote: HENRY MORE.]
-
-It is little more than a nominal departure from the purpose of
-selecting lay examples in this chapter, to introduce Dr. Henry More, as
-another distinctive type of the spiritual life of the period--inasmuch
-as he was a clergyman in little more than name, and constantly eschewed
-public office. For after being appointed to a stall at Gloucester, he
-quickly resigned it to another person, and a deanery, a provostship,
-and two bishoprics he successively refused. Retirement and study were
-his delight. He has been commonly numbered amongst the members of the
-Cambridge school, but he--and there were others of that school more
-or less like him--ought to be regarded as a most decided Mystic. As
-an Eton boy, when wandering in the quaint old quadrangle, or in the
-beautiful playing fields, with his head on one side, and kicking the
-stones with his feet, he had, he says, a deep consciousness of the
-Divine presence; and believed that no deed, or word, or thought could
-be hidden from the Invisible yet All-seeing One. He early conceived
-an antipathy to Calvinism, in which he had been educated, and plunged
-himself, to use his own words, “head over ears” into the study of
-philosophy. He forsook Aristotle for Plato, and found a most congenial
-teacher in John Tauler, whose deep spiritual thoughts he drank in with
-avidity.
-
-He was a philosopher, a friend of Cudworth, and a correspondent
-with Descartes. Imagination largely influenced his opinions, and in
-his enthusiastic reveries,--under the influence of which, he seemed
-unconscious of the outer world, and fancied himself to be living in
-a trance,--he conceived that he possessed an ethereal body, which
-“exhaled the perfume of violets.” Yet, Mystic as he was, he could
-criticise other Mystics, and find just the same fault with them, which
-others of a different turn of mind would find with him.
-
-More says of Jacob Behmen:--He, “I conceive is to be reckoned in the
-number of those whose imaginative faculty has the pre-eminence above
-the rational: and though he was an holy and good man, his natural
-complexion, notwithstanding, was not destroyed, but retained its
-property still; and therefore his imagination, being very busy about
-Divine things, he could not, without a miracle, fail of becoming an
-enthusiast.”
-
-It is further curious to couple with this, More’s opinion of the
-Quakers:--“To tell you my opinion of that sect which are called
-Quakers, though I must allow that there may be some amongst them
-good and sincere-hearted men, and it may be nearer to the purity of
-Christianity for the life and power of it than many others; yet, I am
-well assured, that the generality of them are prodigiously melancholy,
-and some few perhaps possessed with the devil.”[585]
-
-As his philosophy is poetical so his poetry is philosophical; and his
-_Psychozoia, or Life of the Soul_, puzzles, if it does not weary
-its readers: yet it leaves the impression that he “believed the magic
-wonders which he sung;” and it has been well compared to a grotto,
-“whose gloomy labyrinths we might be curious to explore, for the
-strange and mystic associations they excite.”[586]
-
-His philosophy and his poetry touched his religion, and he was wont
-to speak in language very different from that of the Anglican on the
-one hand, and from that of the Puritan on the other. “The oracle of
-God,” he remarked, “is not to be heard but in His Holy Temple, that is
-to say in a good and holy man thoroughly sanctified.” “This or such
-like rhapsodies,” he observes, relative to his _Dialogues_, “do I
-often sing to myself in the silent night, or betimes in the morning,
-at break of day, subjoining always, that of our Saviour, as a suitable
-_Epiphonema_ to all, ‘Abraham saw my day afar, and rejoiced at
-it.’ At this window, I take breath, while I am choked and stifled with
-the crowd, and stench of the daily wickedness of this present evil
-world; and am almost wearied out with the tediousness and irksomeness
-of this my earthly pilgrimage.”[587] More felt deeply the sins and
-sorrows which he could not remove, yet a strain of holy peace ran
-through such melancholy; and it was doubtless from experience that
-he exclaimed--“Even the most miserable objects in this present life
-cannot divest him (the good man) of his happiness, but rather modify
-it, the sweetness of his spirit being melted into a kindly compassion
-in the behalf of others, whom, if he be able to help, it is a greater
-accession to his joy; and if he cannot, the being conscious to himself
-of so sincere a compassion, and so harmonious and suitable to the
-present state of things, carries along with it some degree of pleasure,
-like mournful notes of music, exquisitely well fitted to the sadness
-of the ditty.”[588] Yet More’s life was not all sentiment; he was
-charitable to the needy, and “his chamber door was an hospital.”
-
-His death was like his life, holy, peaceful, happy; and even in
-his last hours, he could not help expressing his Christian hope in
-philosophical language--uttering the beautiful words of Cicero, which
-come so near the Gospel, “_O præclarum illum diem_,” &c., and
-declaring that he was going to join that blessed company, with whom, in
-a quarter of an hour, he would be as familiar as if he had known them
-for years.[589]
-
-[Sidenote: SIR THOMAS BROWNE.]
-
-Our notice of the phases of religious life in the Church of England
-would be defective, did we omit all reference to a distinguished,
-but eccentric individual, who has left his mark upon our religious
-literature. Eccentricity is sometimes the main distinction of a man’s
-religious life, and even in such cases there may be no room to doubt
-the genuineness of personal piety; but in the instance to which we now
-refer, there were distinguishing qualities of another and a worthier
-nature. Sir Thomas Browne was charged with being a Quaker, on what
-ground it is difficult to say; and a Roman Catholic, although the
-Pope honoured his _Religio Medici_ with a place in the _Index
-Expurgatorius_; and an atheist, whilst all his writings bear witness
-to his reverence for the Divine Being.
-
-Dr. Johnson has vindicated the character of this remarkable person
-by referring to passages in which he says, that he was of the belief
-taught by our Saviour, disseminated by the Apostles, authorized by
-the fathers, and confirmed by the martyrs; that though paradoxical in
-philosophy, he loved in Divinity to keep the beaten road, and pleased
-himself with the idea; that he had no taint of heresy, schism, or
-error.[590] But a more satisfactory vindication is supplied in his
-memorable resolutions, never to let a day pass “without calling upon
-God in a solemn formed prayer seven times within the compass thereof,”
-after the example of David and Daniel; always to magnify God, in the
-night, on his “dark bed when he could not sleep,” and to pray in all
-places where privacy invited--in any house, highway, or street; to
-know no street or passage in the City of Norwich, where he lived,
-which might not witness that he remembered God and his Saviour in it;
-never to miss the sacrament upon the accustomed days; to intercede
-for his patients, for the minister after preaching, and for all
-people in tempestuous weather, lightning and thunder, that God would
-have mercy upon their souls, bodies, and goods; and “upon sight of
-beautiful persons, to bless God in His creatures, to pray for the
-beauty of their souls, and to enrich them with inward graces to be
-answerable unto the outward; upon sight of deformed persons, to send
-them inward graces, and enrich their souls, and give them the beauty
-of the resurrection.”[591] A dash of eccentricity is obvious in these
-his pious regulations for the government of life, such as might be
-expected in the author of the _Hydriotaphia_ and the _Garden
-of Cyrus_; but there is no reason whatever to question their
-perfect sincerity, or to suspect his affection towards the Church of
-England--with respect to which he said that he was a sworn subject to
-her faith, subscribing unto her Articles, and endeavouring to observe
-her constitutions.[592]
-
-[Sidenote: SIR THOMAS BROWNE.]
-
-We notice with deep regret an absence in his writings of all reference
-to certain important evangelical doctrines, and only a slight allusion
-to others. Besides this grave omission, we find a positive statement
-of opinions generally pronounced to be heterodox, namely, that the
-soul sleeps with the body until the last day, that the damned will at
-last be released from torture, and that prayers may be offered for the
-dead; and these opinions he implies he had entertained himself, but
-he insists in his own characteristic style, that he never maintained
-them with pertinacity; that without the addition of new fuel, “they
-went out insensibly of themselves;” and that they were not heresies
-in him, but bare errors, and single lapses of the understanding,
-without a joint depravity of the will. “Those,” he remarks, “have not
-only depraved understandings, but diseased affections, which cannot
-enjoy a singularity without a heresy, or be the author of an opinion,
-without they be of a sect also.”[593] Browne entertained comprehensive
-and liberal views of the extent of salvation, saying, that though
-“the bridge is narrow, the passage strait unto life--yet those who do
-confine the Church of God either to particular nations, Churches, or
-families, have made it far narrower than our Saviour ever meant it.”
-“There must be therefore more than one St. Peter. Particular Churches
-and sects usurp the gates of heaven, and turn the key against each
-other, and thus we go to heaven against each other’s wills, conceits,
-and opinions, and, with as much uncharity as ignorance, do err, I
-fear, in points not only of our own, but one another’s salvation.”
-He professes a consciousness of there being, not only in philosophy,
-but in Divinity, “sturdy doubts and boisterous objections, wherewith
-the unhappiness of our knowledge too nearly acquainted us;” and
-declares that, after having in his earlier years, “read all the books
-against religion, he was in the latter part of his life, averse from
-controversies.”[594]
-
-We dismiss the character of Sir Thomas Browne by quoting the following
-passage, with which he concludes his _Religio Medici_, and
-which taken alone is sufficient to show the devoutness of the man’s
-spirit:--“Bless me in this life with but the peace of my conscience,
-command of my affections, the love of Thyself, and my dearest friends,
-and I shall be happy enough to pity Cæsar! These are, O Lord, the
-humble desires of my most reasonable ambition, and all I dare call
-happiness on earth, wherein I set no rule or limit to Thy hand or
-providence. Dispose of me according to the wisdom of Thy pleasure. Thy
-will be done, though in my own undoing.”[595]
-
-[Sidenote: COUNTESS OF WARWICK.]
-
-The Countess Dowager of Warwick--seventh daughter of Richard, first
-Earl of Cork--died in 1678, and remained in the Church of England to
-the close of her life. Her education, her conversion, her abstinence,
-her inward beauty, her love to souls, her family government, together
-with her justice and prudence, have been duly celebrated by Samuel
-Clarke, in his _Lives of Sundry Eminent Persons_; and her Diary,
-extensively circulated of late years, has made this lady very widely
-known. “She was neither of Paul, or of Apollos, or of Cephas, but only
-of Christ. Her name was Christian, and her surname Catholic. She had
-a large and unconfined soul, not hemmed in or pounded up within the
-circle of any man’s name.” She bountifully relieved both Conformist
-and Nonconformist ministers; but she “very inoffensively regularly and
-devoutly observed the orders of the Church of England, in its liturgy
-and public service, which she failed not to attend twice a day, with
-exemplary reverence. Yet was she far from placing religion in ritual
-observances.”[596]
-
-“She needed neither borrowed shades, nor reflexious lights, to
-set her off, being personally great in all natural endowments and
-accomplishments of soul and body, wisdom, beauty, favour, and virtue.
-Great by her tongue, for never woman used one better, speaking so
-gracefully, promptly, discreetly, pertinently, holily, that I have
-often admired the edifying words that proceeded from her mouth. Great
-by her pen, as you may (_ex pede Herculem_) discover by that
-little taste of it, the world hath been happy in, the hasty fruit of
-one or two interrupted hours after supper, which she professed to me,
-with a little regret, when she was surprised with its sliding into
-the world without her knowledge, or allowance, and wholly beside her
-expectation. Great, by being the greatest mistress and promotress,
-not to say the foundress and inventress of a new science--the art of
-obliging; in which she attained that sovereign perfection, that she
-reigned over all their hearts with whom she did converse. Great in
-her nobleness of living and hospitality. Great in the unparalleled
-sincerity of constant, faithful, condescending friendship, and for
-that law of kindness which dwelt in her lips and heart. Great in
-her dexterity of management. Great in her quick apprehension of the
-difficulties of her affairs, and where the stress and pinch lay, to
-untie the knot, and loose and ease them. Great in the conquest of
-herself. Great in a thousand things beside, which the world admires as
-such: but she despised them all, and counted them but loss and dung in
-comparison of the fear of God, and the excellency of the knowledge of
-Christ Jesus.”[597]
-
-Before concluding this review of different forms assumed by personal
-religion in the national Church, at least one word is due to a
-remarkable instance of conversion, in the case of the Earl of
-Rochester, whose deep repentance and Christian faith, after a career
-of reckless vice, have been made familiar to the world through the
-memoir of him written by Bishop Burnet. Nor should Ley, Earl of
-Marlborough, less known to posterity, be entirely overlooked; for,
-after having contemned religion, he was “brought to a different sense
-of things, upon real conviction, even in full health, some time before
-he was killed in the sea-fight at Southold Bay, 1665.”[598] Neither
-can I omit all notice of that quiet, unobtrusive piety which in those
-days adorned some in the higher walks of life; for example, “the
-Lord Crew,” of whom, in a contemporary diary, it is said,--“Friday,
-December 12th, 1679. The Lord Crew died, who had been very eminent in
-his age for holiness and charity; and at, and in his death, for useful
-and suitable instructions to those about him, and for well-grounded
-peace, and solid comfort for himself.”[599] Much of the religion in
-the Church of England, however, bore a very different impress. Many
-were of the same type as William Cavendish, the loyal Marquis of
-Newcastle, of whom Clarendon says: “He loved monarchy, as it was the
-foundation and support of his own greatness; and the Church, as it
-was well constituted for the splendour and security of the Crown; and
-religion, as it cherished and maintained that order and obedience that
-was necessary to both; without any other passion for the particular
-opinions which were grown up in it, and distinguished it into parties,
-than as he detested whatsoever was like to disturb the public
-peace.”[600]
-
-[Sidenote: THEOLOGICAL DIVERGENCES.]
-
-These notices of persons, all of them members of the Church of
-England, present great differences of character. As amongst the
-Divines described in a former chapter, we observed, in connection with
-their maintenance of the established Episcopal order and government,
-their use of the same formularies, and their subscription to the same
-standards of faith, a wide divergence of theological belief, and the
-indications of a considerable diversity of religious sentiment; so
-amongst the laity, as might be expected from the circumstance of no
-subscription being exacted in their case, we discover a still greater
-divergence of belief, and a still greater variety of sentiment. Not to
-speak here of that deep inner life, existent in the Church of Christ
-under various outward forms, to which I shall refer hereafter, I may
-observe now that the only manifest resemblance amongst those who have
-just been indicated, consisted in the uniformity of their worship,
-and in their submission to the same kind of Church government. The
-High Church, the Low Church, and the Broad Church of the nineteenth
-century find their historical parallels in the seventeenth, although
-by no means in the same measure of development; and if legal questions
-touching Church matters were not raised at that time as they are at
-present, the same radical differences between one section and another
-existed then as now.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
-
-
-[Sidenote: JOHN BURNYEAT.]
-
-A characteristic specimen of Quakers’ piety is furnished in the
-following narrative, extracted from a volume of their biographies:--
-
-“John Burnyeat was born in the parish of Lows-water, in the county of
-Cumberland, about the year 1631. And when it pleased God to send His
-faithful servant George Fox, with other of the messengers of the Gospel
-of peace and salvation, to proclaim the day of the Lord in the county
-of Cumberland and north parts of England, this dear servant of Christ
-was one that received their testimony, which was in the year 1653,
-when he was about twenty-two years of age; and through his waiting in
-the light of Jesus Christ, unto which he was turned, he was brought
-into deep judgment and great tribulation of soul, such as he had not
-known in all his profession of religion, and by this light of Christ
-was manifested all the reproved things, and so he came to see the body
-of death and power of sin which had reigned in him, and felt the guilt
-thereof upon his conscience, so that he did possess the sins of his
-youth. ‘Then,’ said he, ‘I saw that I had need of a Saviour to save
-from sin, as well as the blood of a sacrificed Christ to blot out sin,
-and faith in His name for the remission of sins; and so being given up
-to bear the indignation of the Lord, because of sin, and wait till
-the indignation should be over, and the Lord in mercy would blot out
-the guilt that remained (which was the cause of wrath), and sprinkle
-my heart from an evil conscience, and wash our bodies with pure water,
-that we might draw near to Him with a true heart in the full assurance
-of faith, as the Christians of old did (Heb. x. 22).’ Thus did this
-servant of the Lord, with many more in the beginning, receive the truth
-(as more at large may be seen in the journal of his life) in much fear
-and trembling, meeting often together, and seeking the Lord night and
-day, until the promises of the Lord came to be fulfilled, spoken of by
-the prophet Isaiah, chap. xlii. 7, and xlix. 9, and lxi. 3; and some
-taste of the oil of joy came to be witnessed, and a heavenly gladness
-extended into the hearts of many, who in the joy of their souls broke
-forth in praises unto the Lord, so that the tongue of the dumb (which
-Christ, the healer of our infirmities, did unloose) began to speak
-and utter the wonderful things of God. And great was the dread and
-glory of that power, that one meeting after another was graciously and
-richly manifested amongst them, to the breaking and melting many hearts
-before the Lord. Thus being taught of the Lord, according to Isaiah
-liv. 13, John vi. 45, they became able ministers of the Gospel, and
-instructors of the ignorant in the way of truth, as this our friend
-was one, who after four years’ waiting, mostly in silence, before he
-did appear in a public testimony, which was in the year 1657, being at
-first concerned to go to divers public places of worship, reproving
-both priests and people for their deadness and formality of worship,
-for which he endured sore beating with their staves and Bibles, &c.,
-and imprisonment also in Carlisle Gaol, where he suffer’d twenty-three
-weeks’ imprisonment for speaking to one priest Denton, at Briggham.
-After he was at liberty, he went into Scotland, in the year 1658,
-where he spent three months, travelling both north and west. His work
-was to call people to repentance from their lifeless hypocritical
-profession and dead formalities, and to turn to the true light of
-Jesus Christ in their hearts, that therein they might come to know the
-power of God, and the remission of sins, &c. And in the year 1659 he
-travelled to Ireland, and preached the truth and true faith of Jesus in
-many parts of that nation.”[601]
-
-Of the piety of Puritan Nonconformists several examples have already
-appeared; but it is proper to add a few more.
-
-[Sidenote: JOSEPH ALLEINE.]
-
-Joseph Alleine was born in 1634. As a child, whilst living in Devizes,
-the sieges and battles of the Civil Wars made him familiar with the
-question then being fought out, both by the sword and the pen; and as
-he heard gun answering gun, and saw the flashes “through the chinks of
-his father’s barred and shuttered windows,” and as he read fly-leaves
-which were then distributed far and wide, ideas were entering his
-mind which shaped the Puritanism of his whole after-life. He went to
-Oxford when that University had fallen into the hands of the Army, and
-just before the time when Oliver Cromwell became Chancellor. There he
-distinguished himself by his diligence, often rising at four o’clock
-in the morning, and prolonging his studies beyond midnight; and he
-added to the exhaustion of toil, the mortification of fasting; for he
-often gave away his “commons” at least once a day. In the year 1655
-he became minister at Taunton, as assistant to George Newton, the
-minister of St. Mary’s; and there he married: a long love-letter, which
-he wrote to the lady of his affections, still remains, as a specimen
-of the grave courtship of Puritan suitors. Having been ordained
-according to Presbyterian order, his activity as a pastor rivalled
-his assiduity as a student. What he did as a catechist long remained
-amongst the traditions of the town. “In this work, his course was to
-draw a catalogue of the names of the families in each street, and so
-to send a day or two before he intended to visit them. Those that sent
-slight excuses, or did obstinately refuse his message, he would speak
-some affectionate words to them, or, if he saw cause, denounce the
-threatenings of God against them that despise His ministers, and so
-departed; and after would send letters to them so full of love as did
-overcome their hearts, and they did many of them afterwards receive him
-into their houses. Herein was his compassion shown to all sorts, both
-poor and rich.” All this may be regarded as not only characteristic of
-Alleine, but of the class to which he belonged; for there was nothing
-about which the Presbyterians were more anxious than the culture of
-domestic religion. Alleine’s preaching also stood in high repute, the
-judgment in his discourses being likened to “a pot of manna,”--the
-fancy to “Aaron’s rod that budded,”--and the fervour to “a live coal
-from off the altar.” His public career of labour, usefulness, and
-honour, in the town of Taunton, reached its close at the general
-ejectment of 1662, to the common grief of himself and his parishioners.
-Alleine’s habits of indefatigable toil could not be repressed by the
-Act of Uniformity, and he still preached, ordinarily in some weeks six
-or seven times, in others ten or fourteen. Such a zealous evangelist
-could not escape the hand of the law; and in the year 1663 he was
-sent a prisoner to Ilchester Gaol. He remained in confinement a year
-all but three days. The vigilance of his gaoler could not have been
-strict, for he had “very great meetings, week-days and Sabbath-days,
-and many days of humiliation and thanksgiving. The Lord’s days many
-hundreds came.” Alleine held conferences, wrote to his old flock,
-taught children, circulated catechisms, and, during the chaplain’s
-illness, discharged his duties, exerting himself to such a degree that
-he would keep on his clothes all night, and allow himself to sleep only
-one or two hours. After his liberation, his indomitable perseverance
-in preaching, and in other religious efforts, brought him again into
-trouble: indeed, it is said, “he was far more earnest than before,”
-although that appears impossible. A second imprisonment followed in the
-year 1666. In the June of 1667, he was again liberated; but excessive
-labour, severe self-mortification, and the vexations and sorrows of
-imprisonment, had broken down his constitution. “It was impossible,”
-observed Dr. Annesley, “that anguish like his could continue long, and
-at last his sufferings for Christ hurried him to heaven in a fiery
-chariot.” When conveyed in a horse-litter to Bath--then called the
-“King’s Bathe,” a mere maze of five hundred houses--“the doctors were
-amazed to behold such a wasted object, professing they never saw the
-like, much wondering how he was come alive; and, on his appearance
-at the Bathe, some of the ladies were affrighted, as though death
-had come amongst them.” The Puritan was much grieved by “the oaths,
-drinking, and ungodly carriage of the persons of quality there;” and he
-failed not to reprove them for their misconduct. “His way was first to
-converse of things that might be taking with them; for, being furnished
-by his studies for any company, he did use his learning for such ends,
-and by such means hath caught many souls.” He caused himself to be
-carried in a chair to visit schools and almshouses; he persuaded
-teachers to adopt the Assembly’s Catechism as a class-book; and on a
-Sunday he gathered sixty or seventy children together at his lodgings,
-and he also paid daily visits to the poor.
-
-The Puritan impress rests on all Alleine’s labours, on all his
-self-denial, on all his social intercourse, and on much of his
-suffering. The same may be said of his last moments. We are told
-that the night before he died, about nine o’clock, he brake out with
-an audible voice, speaking for _sixteen hours_ together, and
-did cease but a little space now and then all the afternoon. About
-three o’clock in the afternoon he had some conflict with Satan, for
-he uttered these words:--“Away, thou foul fiend, thou enemy of all
-mankind, thou subtle sophister: art thou come now to molest me--now I
-am just going--now I am so weak, and death upon me? Trouble me not,
-for I am none of thine! I am the Lord’s; Christ is mine, and I am
-His; His by covenant. I have sworn myself to be the Lord’s, and His
-I will be. Therefore begone!” These last words he repeated often.
-Thus his covenanting with God was the method he used to expel the
-devil and all his temptations. In November, 1668, he died, and was
-buried in the chancel of St. Mary’s, Taunton, under a brass plate with
-this inscription: _Hic jacet Dominus Josephus Alleine holocaustum
-Tauntonensis et Deo et vobis_.[602]
-
-[Sidenote: THOMAS EWINS.]
-
-Thomas Ewins, a Baptist minister at Bristol, was mentioned in a former
-volume, as a man of great natural power: the character of his life also
-deserves commemoration. The records of the Broadmead Church, which
-have already supplied us with many illustrations, afford us touching
-memorials of this good man’s piety. When his flock were about to
-meet for prayer on his behalf, during his final illness, he addressed
-to them the following letter, which indicates at once the close and
-confidential religious relations in which he stood to them, and the
-deep spirituality of the pastor’s character:--“Dear brother,” he says,
-addressing one of the ruling elders, “understanding that some friends
-intend to become suitors at the throne of grace this day on my behalf,
-I think good to send these few lines for information, to acquaint you
-that being weak, I cannot conveniently be with you, but hope I shall
-meet you with some few sighs and groans to Him that heareth prayer;
-first, that the God of all grace and health will command health and
-cure to the soul and body, chiefly to that soul of all soul maladies,
-unbelief, and all the fruits thereof; and also to the body, for the
-cure of those maladies which unfit for work and service, especially
-melancholy, and the fruits thereof; and that God will, of His infinite
-riches of grace and mercy, bestow a double portion of His blessed
-Spirit both upon me and upon the whole congregation, and that we may
-obtain more of the blessed spirit of adoption, and all the fruits
-thereof. Amen. Which is all at present from your weak brother, Thomas
-Ewins. The Lord give you much of His presence, and grant that His ear
-may be open to your prayers.”
-
-[Sidenote: THOMAS EWINS.]
-
-He had been declining very fast, and had kept his chamber nearly five
-months when he sent this letter. The end was at hand; and his departure
-and character are thus recorded in these simple and beautiful annals:--
-
-“Our pastor, brother Ewins, having lain a great while weak, he departed
-this life in the second month, 1670, having faithfully served his Lord
-and Master, Jesus Christ, near towards twenty years in this city,
-in the work of the ministry; preaching clearly the gospel of free
-grace, by faith in Jesus Christ, wherein he laboured abundantly, in
-the public (places), and in his particular charge--the congregation;
-and also would go and preach to the poor people in their almshouses
-at Michael’s Hill, and Lawford’s Gate almshouse, once a fortnight, in
-the morning; and in those times of liberty, would, for some convenient
-seasons, set up a lecture, and preach at Bedminster and other places.
-And at other times, during the winter long evenings, would keep an
-expository lecture or meeting at T’Ewins’ Church, and sometimes at
-Leonard’s Church, besides his constant public preaching, as he was one
-of the city lecturers, every third day, Tuesday, at Nicolas Church,
-and every fifth day (Thursday) at the Church meeting of Conference,
-and twice every Lord’s Day constantly; besides many times a word to
-the Church, after that those who were not members were departed, upon
-the Lord’s Day, in the evening, at the Church’s select meeting. Thus,
-as one unwearied to serve the Lord Jesus, he took all opportunities,
-doing good; insomuch that many ministers did admire him for his great,
-diligent labours, and that he had always variety of matter; which,
-though he had not the original tongues, yet God did endue him with
-great grace, and a quick understanding in the things of God, and (in)
-the Gospel of our Lord Jesus, to the winning and converting many souls
-to Christ, and building and binding up the broken-hearted. He was a
-man full of self-denial, and subduing his natural temper; so that he
-walked very lovely and holy in his conversation, showing patience
-where it required, and meekness toward all men; visiting all his
-members carefully, and searching into the state of their souls; and
-by some ministers that were his familiars (it was) observed and said,
-they never saw him over merry nor over sad, but given to prayer and
-almsdeeds. He was interred in James’s Yard, the 29th day of the second
-month, April, _anno Domini_, 1670, accompanied with many hundreds
-to the grave, the like funeral not seen long before in Bristol. He left
-so good a savour behind for faithfulness to God and humility towards
-man, that his very chief persecutor, Sir John Knight, said, He did
-believe he was gone to heaven.”[603]
-
-[Sidenote: OWEN STOCKTON.]
-
-Owen Stockton was born at Chichester in 1630, his father being a
-Prebendary of the Cathedral in that city. The father died when the
-son was only seven years old; the mother then removed to Ely, and, as
-the boy was looking into a copy of _Foxe’s Acts and Monuments_,
-chained to the wall of one of the parish churches, he was so affected
-by what he read, that he begged his friends to obtain at least a part
-of the work for his private use. Having secured his object, he spent
-the vacant hours which other children devoted to play, in eagerly
-perusing the martyrology; and he thus imbibed the strong Protestant
-and Puritan spirit, which influenced his whole after-life. On being
-sent to Cambridge he enjoyed the instruction of Dr. Henry More as his
-tutor, and being only sixteen years old, and of small stature, the
-tiny gownsman attracted general attention as he walked the streets.
-When he accompanied some of his fellow-students into the presence of
-Charles I., to express their loyalty, the King gave him a “gracious
-benediction,” saying, “Here is a little scholar indeed, God bless
-him.” Stockton devoted himself to study; and coming up to London for
-awhile, he attended the Gresham Lectures and the library of Sion
-College, and availed himself of the City bookstalls. After receiving
-his degree of Master of Arts, he “exercised his gifts” in villages
-around the University, and also became a catechist in his own college.
-His ordination to the full work of the University occurred in London
-in the year 1655; and on the Sunday following, he preached at the
-Charterhouse. “In the afternoon”--so runs the quaint memoir of this
-worthy--“one put up a bill to him, wherein the person that put it up
-acknowledged, that he had long lain under the guilt of a known sin, and
-was convinced of it by the morning sermon, and desired prayers to God
-for help against it.” Upon receiving an invitation to become the Town
-Lecturer at Colchester, Stockton accepted that office, adding to it the
-voluntary task of preaching every Sunday morning in St. James’ Church;
-and, until he was ejected in 1662, his labours were abundant, winning
-for him honourable renown amongst the Essex Puritans.
-
-He removed to Chattisham in Suffolk, where he not only continued
-to preach privately, but in the absence of the Incumbent, once a
-fortnight, he had, in spite of his Nonconformity, freedom to occupy
-the pulpit of the parish church. He enjoyed a like privilege in
-neighbouring villages. His doing so being illegal, as soon as the
-vigilance of his enemies succeeded the connivance of his friends,
-Stockton felt himself exposed to peril. “It being a time of danger,”
-he wrote in his diary, April 16th, 1665,--“as to the keeping of my
-meeting-service, many soldiers being in the town, I being dubious
-whether I should admit the people to come or no,--when I considered
-that Christ took it as an act of love to feed His sheep--that he
-exposed Himself to death to save me, I being under a sense of the
-comfort that the Lord had given me in the morning,--in my meditation on
-1 Timothy i. 15, I was willing to adventure myself upon the providence
-of God.” In this case, it would appear, that the alarm was unnecessary.
-It certainly proved so in another instance, and the incident may be
-mentioned, as illustrative of the double trials of the period,--the
-fightings without producing fears within:--“As I was exercising in my
-family, in the afternoon, several of my friends being with me, I had
-word sent me that Sir J(ohn) S(haw), the Recorder; the Mayor, Thomas
-Wade; and Justices, would come down to my house. Whereupon I, being
-near the end of my exercise, concluded with a short prayer. After I
-(had) done, and dismissed the people, one of the constables came to me
-and told me he was sent to dissolve my meeting, and had some kind of
-trembling upon him when he spoke to me, and said he blessed God that
-had given him an heart to come sometimes himself, and his wife, to my
-meetings, so that instead of doing me any hurt, he gave glory to God
-for giving him an heart to be present.”[604]
-
-Stockton was reported at Lambeth in the year 1669, for holding a
-“conventicle in Colchester with George Done.” He also preached at
-Manningtree, Marks Tay, and Ipswich. In the year 1672, Stockton
-took out a license to be “a Presbyterian and Independent teacher in
-Grayfriars House, in St. Nicholas Parish,” in the county town of
-Suffolk. These were halcyon days for men like him: and again his
-ministry became his whole business. Besides conducting Sunday services,
-including two sermons, several expositions, and catechetical exercises,
-he “preached a lecture at Ipswich, on the week day, once a fortnight;
-and, scarce a week passed, but he preached at some other lecture,
-or funeral, besides keeping of private fasts, which he frequently
-practised both at home and abroad.”[605]
-
-[Sidenote: OWEN STOCKTON.]
-
-Not only Stockton’s ministerial work, but his spiritual life also, is
-fully described in his Diary. His conversion, which took place when
-he was young, he tells us was not preceded by any “notable workings
-of the spirit of bondage,” or followed “by those ravishing joys which
-some have felt.” He feared his humiliation was not deep enough; but
-he received full satisfaction from a passage in a sermon, which he
-heard preached by that worthy and excellent servant of Jesus Christ,
-Mr. Richard Vines, then Master of Pembroke Hall. Phraseology of this
-kind indicates the kind of theology and of spiritual life which gave
-a stamp to the character of Owen Stockton: and the whole of the Diary
-bears the same religious complexion. He entered into a solemn covenant
-with God, and he set down at large the evidences of his faith and
-of his pardon,--of his being one of God’s servants, and having an
-interest in Jesus Christ,--of the Divine love to his soul, and of
-his possession of eternal life. No Anglican or Latitudinarian could
-have dealt with questions of personal religion after the manner which
-Stockton adopted. His accounts of providences, and of dreams, are
-tinged with superstition. The analysis which he gives of his motives
-for doing certain things; and his statement of cases of casuistry--as
-for example, whether it was lawful to write a letter, even of spiritual
-advice, on the Lord’s Day, and his long list of reasons for and
-against courses of conduct which he specifies--indicate a morbid
-conscientiousness, and a habit of keen and irritating introspection
-far beyond that self-examination which the Scriptures recommend. Yet,
-accompanying these infirmities, there appear a strong conviction of the
-realities of the invisible world, a tenacious grasp of the doctrines
-of grace, and a deep tone of devotion, a thorough consecration to the
-service of God, and a burning zeal for the glory of Christ, and for
-the welfare of souls. The manner in which his death is described
-harmonizes with the rest of his biography, and accurately describes
-what he professed:--“Discharging his dying office by grave exhortations
-and encouragement to serious religion and suffering for it, which
-he especially applied to his only child; owning and professing his
-Nonconformity to the last, as judging himself obliged thereto in
-conscience towards God; blessing God for His invaluable gift of Jesus
-Christ to the children of men; blessing God, who had called him to the
-honourable employment of the ministry of the Gospel, and had enabled
-him to be faithful therein, and encouraged him with His presence and
-blessing under all the difficulties thereof; blessing God, who had
-lifted him up above the fear of death; rejoicing in the peace and
-testimony of a good conscience, and hope of the glory of God, after ten
-or eleven days’ conflict with his disease (which, after some hope of
-recovery, very suddenly and unexpectedly seized his head), he quietly
-slept in the Lord, September 10th, 1680, in the one and fiftieth year
-of his age.”[606]
-
-[Sidenote: DR. JACOMB.]
-
-Another of the ejected ministers--one who survived the two excellent
-persons just described, and who is much better known than either of
-them--ought to be noticed before concluding this selection from the
-roll of Puritan names. Dr. Thomas Jacomb has been mentioned already, as
-a man who took a prominent part in the ecclesiastical affairs of his
-age. His biographers speak of his zeal for the glory of his Master,
-of his love to the souls of men, and of his constancy and diligence
-in ministerial work. He suffered much from cancer in the mouth; but
-when pain became tolerable, preaching acted as an anodyne; and, at
-all times, reflection upon the Divine goodness afforded him relief. He
-manifested much compassion, charity, and beneficence, and was moderate
-in his Nonconformity--“rather desiring to have been comprehended in the
-National Church, than to have separated from it.” His last illness is
-described as very distressing, and he said to an intimate friend--“I
-am using the means, but I think my appointed time is come. If my life
-might be serviceable to convert or build up one soul I should be
-content to live; but if God hath no more work for me to do, here I am,
-let Him do with me as He pleaseth.” On another occasion, he observed:
-“It will not be long before we meet in Heaven, never to part more: and
-there we shall be perfectly happy; there neither your doubts and fears,
-nor my pains shall follow us; nor our sins, which is best of all.” He
-longed to be above, and said with some regret--“Death flies from me; I
-make no haste to my Father’s house.”[607] Dr. Jacomb expired under the
-roof of the Countess of Exeter, March 27, 1687.
-
-Burnet affords a pleasant sketch of an eminent Puritan layman, Sir
-Harbottle Grimston, Speaker of the House of Commons in the Convention
-Parliament, and afterwards Master of the Rolls; and in connection with
-this sketch occurs an equally pleasant notice of his exemplary wife.
-
-“He gave yearly great sums in charity, discharging many prisoners by
-paying their debts. He was a very pious and devout man, and spent
-every day at least an hour in the morning, and as much at night, in
-prayer and meditation. And even in winter, when he was obliged to be
-very early on the bench, he took care to rise so soon, that he had
-always the command of that time, which, he gave to those exercises.
-He was much sharpened against Popery; but had always a tenderness to
-the Dissenters, though he himself continued still in the communion
-of the Church. His second wife, whom I knew, was niece to the great
-Sir Francis Bacon: and was the last heir of that family. She had all
-the high notions for the Church and the Crown, in which she had been
-bred; but was the humblest, the devoutest, and best tempered person I
-ever knew of that sort. It was really a pleasure to hear her talk of
-religion; she did it with so much elevation and force. She was always
-very plain in her clothes; and went oft to jails, to consider the wants
-of the prisoners, and relieve, or discharge them; and by the meanness
-of her dress she passed but for a servant trusted with the charities
-of others. When she was travelling in the country, as she drew near
-a village, she often ordered her coach to stay behind till she had
-walked about it, giving orders for the instruction of the children, and
-leaving liberally for that end. With two such persons I spent several
-of my years very happily.”[608]
-
-[Sidenote: UNITY OF SPIRITUAL LIFE.]
-
-Without repeating what I have said in a former volume, respecting
-the varieties of spiritual life, I would observe, that it is of very
-great importance to distinguish between religion and theology: between
-spiritual life in man, and the philosophy of its causes, its nature,
-and its modes of operation. The philosophy of that life is of a far
-higher description than any other branch of science in relation to
-either material things or the human mind. Christian personal religion,
-when complete and satisfactory, must rest upon the study of Divine
-Revelation--this is the supreme authority for the religious beliefs of
-all to whom it comes--without which those beliefs are as the shifting
-sands and as the changeful clouds. It is of immense moment to search
-out the truth amidst various theories, and theological theories are
-to some minds an intellectual necessity, which it is idle to deny and
-foolish to ignore. Nor should the fact be overlooked that creeds--the
-creeds of the early Church--may serve as guards and preservers of the
-Church’s faith; as lines which have been drawn, after sounding the
-channels of Christian thought, to guard us against shoals towards which
-we are apt to be driven, as buoys which may help to preserve us from
-shipwreck, and as landmarks which may continue to secure for us the
-precious inheritance of truth bequeathed by Christ.[609] But at the
-same time these theories and these creeds should be distinguished from
-religion itself; and beyond all doubt, the religion of the soul, in a
-multitude of cases, is much less influenced by definite theological
-opinions on certain points than many persons are disposed to admit.
-Theology is oftener determined by religion, than religion is determined
-by theology. Hence the trite maxim that some men are better than their
-creeds and some are worse.
-
-Christianity teaches, that faith in Christ is essential to religion in
-the case of all those to whom the Gospel comes, by which faith is meant
-trust in Him as the Divine Redeemer of souls. It further teaches that
-love to God is essential to religion, which love is to be expressed
-in worship and obedience. Finally, it teaches that morality is
-essential to religion, which morality includes all the pure, exalted,
-comprehensive, and noble virtues inculcated in the Scriptures. This
-threefold kind of religion may be found in cases where, what many
-may deem, erroneous views on various points are entertained; and it
-may be absent in cases where no such erroneous views exist. Religion
-does not centre in intellectual opinions, but in the affections of the
-heart, and the volitions of the will. Consequently, we have been able
-to trace, with more or less distinctness, the presence and power of
-real piety in all the great schools of theological thought, which have
-come under our review. We recognize amongst men of different creeds,
-of different forms of worship, of different ecclesiastical polities,
-members of the one Holy Catholic Church, because we discover in them
-that faith, devotion, and morality, which are the constituent elements
-of true religion. It is remarkable how, in these respects, Christians
-of various communions, such as I have attempted to portray, resemble
-each other. They have not been able to repeat the same theological
-confession: but under a sense of sin, in the great exigencies of their
-existence, in the hour of death, and looking forward to the day of
-judgment, they have rested upon the only _Name_ given under heaven
-whereby we can be saved. They could not unite in the same symbolic
-rites, but there are hymns of praise and supplication in which they
-have all been enabled to express the devoutness of their spiritual
-life. They could not co-operate in ecclesiastical action, but each in
-his own sphere could and did engage in deeds of Christian justice,
-zeal, and charity.
-
-I am not writing the history of any sect, but of Christ’s Church
-in England during the latter half of the seventeenth century, and
-therefore I have endeavoured to make these pages reflect, as far as
-possible, the many coloured types of moral and spiritual beauty, with
-which the Spirit of truth and love adorned and blessed our land at that
-eventful period.
-
-
-
-
- APPENDIX.
-
-
- No. I.--See Vol. I., p. 60.
-
-I find in the Record Office a very curious letter, dated
-Llanothyng,[610] the 8th of April, and addressed to Linwell Chapman.
-There is placed in the same bundle in which I discovered it a fairly
-transcribed copy. As the contents are remarkable, I shall give a full
-description of them, and supply a few extracts.
-
-The letter purports to come from more persons than one, and it
-commences by expressing their joy on account of suffering for Christ’s
-sake, their spirits being borne up by the fury of the adversary, by the
-patience dispensed to the godly, and the great spirit of prayer poured
-out, together with active faith in the most precious promises. They
-had sent messengers to their brethren, all over the nation, including
-three to South Wales, exhorting them to stand by the good old cause,
-once the most precious in the eyes of the saints. They mention “Dr.
-Owen, that precious servant of Christ,” as having had a sinecure in
-their neighbourhood, and as having sent them word “that he doubted
-not of good issue.” “We hope very speedily,” they proceed, “to give
-you a good account when that discontented part of the army we expect
-is come up, to countenance us until we can get together. We have laid
-out £10,000 in arms, and distributed most of them; we have raised such
-a jealousy here between the Cavaliers and Presbyterians as opens us
-a wider door than otherwise could be expected; and, indeed, were we
-considerable, the Presbyterians would close with us, upon any terms,
-rather than undergo an intolerable yoke under an implacable enemy.”
-The writers refer to an attempt upon “Charles Stewart,” which, they
-heard, “did not succeed in the way intended, but there was another
-way more successful.” They afterwards state,--“Mr. Kiffin, and Mr.
-Cockam, Mr. Hudson, Mr. M. the Committee-man, and Mr. Feake, write to
-us of securing the General and the Parliament about the 6th of May,
-to which they say all the congregations in London agree, except Mr.
-Caryles and Mr. Griffiths. Mr. Nie [Nye] doth great service in it, we
-hear. Mr. Brooks is very willing. Mr. Barker is, they say, indifferent.
-Indeed Sir Harry Vane is a man that seems to be born for such a time as
-this. He will come up, we hear, to head us; for we shall rise first,
-being furthest off.” After further explanation of their policy, they
-continue: “This we know, that we shall be (the Lord assisting us), a
-month hence, so considerable, coming towards London, that most of your
-Londoners must draw out, and then you have your opportunity. We hope
-you have received the arms, ammunitions, &c. V. A. L. was appointed to
-bring from C. to B., and then to D., where your carts were to meet him.
-What use you may make of the training day at London we leave to your
-discretion. Would we were rid of all the carnal and self-interested men
-on our side, and we doubt not but to do well. Mr. Thomas, the bearer
-hereof, will tell you how far we prevailed upon the Irish Brigade, and
-pray do you tell him how far you prevailed upon your London forces. The
-report of their being to be disbanded makes much for us here; what it
-doth there we know not. Col. Okey is very successful, and it’s believed
-his agitation may produce what may make both their ears tingle. Whether
-Mr. Powell, Mr. Mostyn, and Mr. Lloyd, be come up to you, we hear not.
-When they come, we doubt not they will put life in the cause. Mr.
-Jessey, with the brethren of Swan Alley, Mr. Rogers, Mr. Spilsbury,
-&c., are very zealous. And it’s good to be zealous in a good matter.
-Mr. Row, of Westminster, hath been very instrumental in a late design.
-The Lord strengthen the hands of such faithful souls. I pray, let us
-hear what the brethren of Gloucestershire intend to do. Mr. Helme, of
-Winchcombe, is diligent, spending himself and being spent among the
-neighbouring congregations if they be not already at London.” (The
-congregations referred to were either Independents or Baptists.) The
-writers further state that they heard a piece was “coming out on the
-character of the wretched villain Monk,” and an account of his plots.
-They advised that the first work should be to secure the militia and
-gentry, seize several of the Welsh castles, and be at Gloucester by
-the 12th of May, and tempt the General out. “Let the Quakers,” the
-letter goes on to say, “have the knottiest piece, for they are resolute
-in performing, though but rash in advising. It were to be wished the
-House had some bones to pick, that they might determine nothing until
-the 12th of May.” The writers then ask, whether the Long Parliament
-members, under whose authority they and their friends were acting,
-would sit at Shrewsbury as a place of rendezvous; that would be the
-safest place. They refer to Scotland, adding, “If it may be, it were
-well all places were at once disordered by a common alarm, while one
-place is chiefly aimed at. We expect Sir Arthur here suddenly, and
-then, when a convenient number of the old Parliament and army are met,
-we declare. The declaration is already agreed on.” ... “We are apt to
-believe that every honest man of all interests will acquiesce in it.
-Verily some Presbyterians, upon their late experience, are ready to
-hear and submit to the reason of it, when proposed to them. The press
-is free enough for it, there being no restraint upon that as yet.” The
-letter concludes with an exhortation to prosecute the design on the
-Tower, the House, and the head-quarters.
-
-Besides this letter, there is another dated a few days earlier,
-addressed to Master Evan Thomas Taylor, relating to the same subject,
-but not containing any important information.
-
-When I first lighted upon the letter of the 8th of April, 1660, with
-the actual outbreak under Lambert, in the same month, fresh in my
-mind, I was startled at the sight of these extraordinary statements,
-and began to think that they supplied new and important information
-respecting Republican movements going on at that confused period. A
-little reflection, however, sufficed to raise very considerable doubts
-as to whether much reliance could be placed upon several parts of the
-letter of the 8th, in which mere rumours are related, and accounts
-are given of what was going on at a distance. Further consideration
-made me suspicious as to the origin of the papers altogether. For
-the fabrication of letters said to be intercepted, and containing
-treasonable matter, was no uncommon device in those days, of which a
-signal instance is furnished in our notice of William Kiffin (Vol.
-I., p. 211). Besides, there are certain things about these professed
-communications from Wales, which the more I thought of them the more
-suspicious they appeared,--such as the statement respecting Dr.
-Owen, the expenditure of so large a sum as £10,000 by poor Welshmen
-in procuring arms, the reference made to Quakers as engaged in
-military movements, and the engagement of all the Congregational
-Churches in London, with two exceptions, in a plot to secure Monk and
-the Parliament. The more I considered these circumstances the more
-incredible they looked. Impressed with very strong doubts, I applied to
-my kind friend, the late Mr. John Bruce, whose judgment on the point I
-felt would be most valuable.
-
-He gave the following opinion:--“I have looked at the letters dated 4th
-and 8th of the 2nd month of 1660, and the copy of the latter, which is
-endorsed in the handwriting of the Secretary, Sir Joseph Williamson.
-That they are all of the period assigned to them is, I think, pretty
-certain, but whether they are genuine or fabricated is a question not
-easily answered.
-
-“It seems to me probable that the two letters were written by the same
-hand, the writing of the letter of the 4th being a feigned hand. That
-of the 4th was intended to contain that of the 8th, which is rather
-strange, and the oddity is increased by the circumstance, that in
-that of the 4th there is an allusion to that of the 8th as if it were
-already written:--‘Pray tell Mr. Chapman, which I forgot to write.’
-
-“The letter of the 8th, purporting to be dated at ‘Llanothyng,’ a
-place I do not know; that of the 4th at ‘Llanvaire,’ I suppose in
-Monmouthshire. The former mentions ‘Dr. Owen, that precious servant
-of Christ,’ as having had a ‘sinecure here.’ If this be John Owen, it
-seems very like a blunder.
-
-“Probably many other strangenesses might be discovered upon a close
-study of the letters, but that which in my mind makes most against the
-genuineness of the letter of the 8th, is the enormous improbability
-that any one would have sent a letter in such manner as this has been
-forwarded, which disclosed a plot to kill the King and other members of
-the Royal Family, and implicated in movements connected with it, not
-one or two persons only, but all the most conspicuous persons of the
-Republican party. The letter is in this respect so overdone as on that
-account alone to be a subject of very great suspicion. But, supposing
-it possible that a man could be found who was fool enough to write such
-a letter, I cannot believe that it would have been transmitted in the
-careless, half-open way in which these have been sent to Master Thomas
-in Quart-Pot Alley, Philpot Lane--if that be the address.
-
-“My present impression is that these letters are not genuine, but if
-anything turns upon a point, or you are about to publish an opinion, I
-should like to reconsider the question.”
-
-A little while afterwards, Mr. Bruce wrote the following:--“I
-have looked again at the letters said to have been intercepted,
-and am more and more convinced they are not genuine. Contents,
-handwriting--everything--is against them. They are not papers upon
-which any one ought to found an historical conclusion.
-
-“Mr. Hardy came in just as I was putting up the bundle which contains
-these letters. I took them out and asked him what he thought of them.
-He shook his head, and pronounced them to be most suspicious-looking
-papers.”
-
-After such an opinion, confirmatory of my own strong doubts, I could
-not think of using these documents in the text, but, as curiosities, I
-have transferred them to this Appendix.
-
-
- No. II.--Vol. I., p. 244.
-
-The following important Memorandum from W. J. Thoms, Esq., House of
-Lords, on the MS. Prayer Book attached to the Act of Uniformity, 1662,
-occurs in the Appendix to the Minutes of Evidence taken before the
-Royal Commission on Ritual:--
-
-“In the course of a conversation with the Dean of Westminster on
-Tuesday week (30th July), after calling my attention to a pamphlet of
-Mr. Hull on the subject of the supposed loss of the Book of Common
-Prayer attached to the Act of Uniformity, the Dean expressed a wish to
-see the tower (formerly a portion of the Abbey) in which the original
-Acts of Parliament were till lately kept, the rooms in the Victoria
-Tower where the Acts are now deposited, and the Act of Uniformity
-itself. I promised to make the necessary arrangements for his doing so,
-on the following Thursday (1st August).
-
-“My attention having been called by the Dean to the Prayer Book before
-alluded to, when settling with the person who arranges the Acts in the
-Victoria Tower to be in the way at the time the Dean had appointed to
-come, I spoke to him about the book; and he then told me, that when the
-Acts were removed, he had found, among other books, MS. Journals, &c.,
-a Manuscript Prayer Book, which he had handed over to the Chief Clerk,
-Mr. Smith. I at once felt satisfied that that was the book respecting
-which there seems to have been so much mistaken anxiety; but the
-accidental absence of Mr. Smith prevented my then examining the book;
-and until I had seen it, and positively ascertained the fact, I thought
-it better, in case I should prove mistaken, not to mention to the Dean
-that the book was in Mr. Smith’s custody.
-
-“Mr. Smith, who came to me in the Library a few minutes after the Dean
-had left, at once said the Prayer Book was in his custody, showed it to
-me, and I communicated the fact on the same evening to the Dean.
- “WILLIAM J. THOMS.
-
- “LIBRARY, HOUSE OF LORDS,
- “_8th August, 1867_.”
-
-“An inspection of this MS. Prayer Book has proved to the Commissioners
-that the ‘Order for Morning and Evening Prayer daily to be said and
-used throughout the year,’ is identical in all respects with that which
-is ordinarily prefixed to the Book of Common Prayer.”
-
-It would be beyond my purpose to attempt a description of these
-books--indeed no full and correct idea of their appearance and contents
-could be supplied except by a _fac-simile_ reprint of them, which
-I hope will be some day published--but in the meanwhile I will present
-the reader with a transcript of the list of alterations inserted at the
-beginning of the MS. volume. This copy was carefully compared with the
-original by Mr. Thoms and myself.
-
-With the MS. volume now in the Library of the House of Lords, there
-is also a copy of the Prayer Book, printed by Robert Barker, in 1636,
-containing alterations of the text made with a pen in a very neat hand,
-believed to be that of Sancroft. I have been permitted to inspect these
-volumes on three occasions; and there are two instances of alterations
-made in the printed copy, and in the MS. book, so curious, and indeed
-important, that I will transfer them to these pages.
-
-The first relates to a passage at the end of the service for the public
-baptism of infants. In the printed book it stands thus:--
-
- #children ~persons~ w^{ch} are dying#
- “It is certain by God’s Word, that ~children being~ baptized, ~have~
-
- #before they committ actuall sinne are#
- ~all things necessary for their salvation, and be~ undoubtedly saved.”
-
-The MS. book presents the same sentence thus:--
-
- “It is certain by God’s Word, that children which are baptized, dyeing
- before they commit actuall sin, are undoubtedly saved.”
-
-The second instance relates to the last rubric prefixed to the
-Communion service. In the printed book it stands thus:--
-
- “The table at the communion
- time having a fair white linnen
- cloth upon it shall stand in the
-
- #body of the church or in the#
- ~body of the church or in the~
-
- #chancell where morning ~prayer~ and#
- “Most convenient place in the ~chancell where morning and~
- upper end of y^e chancel (or
- of y^e body of y^e church #evening prayer are appointed to be#
- where thereis no chancel.” ~evening prayer be appointed to be~
-
- #said.#
- ~said.~
-
- [611]#at#
- And the priest standing ~at~ the
-
- #~part~ side#
- north ~side~ of the table, shall say
- north side of the table, shall say
-
- #the#
- the Lord’s Prayer with ~the~ collect
- following” [MS., y^e people
- kneeling.]
-
-In the MS. book it appears thus:--
-
- “The table at the Communion time having a fair white linen cloth
-
- #of the church, or#
- upon it, shall stand in the body[612] ~or convenient place~ in the
-
- #where Morning and Evening Prayer are appointed to be said.#
- ~upper end of the~ chancel ~or of the body of the church where there is
- no chancel.~
-
- #side#
- And the priest standing at[613] the north ~part~ of the table, shall say
- the Lord’s Prayer with the Collect followeing, the people kneeling.”
-
-
- LIST OF ALTERATIONS PREFIXED.
-
- OLD. NEW.
-
- _Litany._
-
- Bishops, Pastors, & Ministers. Bishops, Priests, & Deacons.
-
- _Collect._
-
- The 3d Sunday in Advent A larger & more proper inserted.
-
- _For Christmas-day._
-
- this day. as at this time [as also in y^e
- preface at y^e Communion].
-
- _For Easter Tuesday_ is put _For Low Easter_.
- _For Whitsunday._
-
- upon this day. as at this time.
-
- y^e Epistle. For y^e Epistle [as often as it is
- not taken out of an Epistle].
-
- _Communion._
-
- Overnight or else in y^e at least some time y^e day before.
- morning before y^e beginning
- of morning prayer, or
- immediately after.--_Rubrick._
-
- in y^e body of y^e Church or in y^e most convenient place in
- in y^e Chancel. y^e upper end of y^e Chancel, or
- of y^e body of y^e Church where
- there is no Chancel.
-
- north side. north part.
-
- Bishops Pastor & Curates Bishops and Curates.
-
- The 1st & 2d Exhortations are altered and fitted for timely
- notice & preparation to y^e
- Communion.
-
- In y^e 3rd Exhortations this is left out.
- Clause [If any of you be a
- blasphemer of God, an
- hinderer, &c.]
-
- These words [before this omitted.
- Congregation]
-
- Before y^e Confession for by one of y^e Ministers.
- these words [either by one
- of them or else by y^e
- Minister.]
-
- In y^e 2d prayer after in y^e mysticall body of thy Son.
- Receiving for [in
- thy mysticall body]
-
- In y^e last Rubrick but one omitted as needlesse now.
- these words [And y^e Parish
- shall be discharged of such
- sums of money or other
- dutyes w^{ch} hitherto they
- have payed for y^e same by
- order of their houses.
-
-
- _Baptisme._
-
- didst sanctify y^e flood in y^e River Jordan didst sanctify
- Jordan & all other waters. water.
-
- dost thou forsake? _Ans._ I doest thou in y^e name of this
- forsake. this Child renounce? _Ans._ I
- renounce.
-
-
- _Private Baptisme._
-
- This Demand [whether thinke omitted.
- you y^e Childe to be
- lawfully & perfectly
- baptized]
-
-
- _Confirmation._
-
- In y^e Rubrick for these set before y^e Catechisme until
- words [untill such time as such time as he be confirmed,
- he can say y^e Catechisme or be ready and desirous to be
- & be confirmed] these confirmed.
-
-
- _Catechisme._
-
- y^e King and his Ministers. y^e King and all that are put in
- authority under him.
-
- Water, wherein y^e person Water, wherein y^e person is
- baptized is dipped, or baptized, in y^e name, &c.
- sprinkled in it, In y^e
- name, &c.
-
- Yea they doe performe them Because they promise them both
- both by their sureties, who by their sureties, which promise.
- promise and vow them both
- in their names.
-
-
- _Matrimony._
-
- Thes words [In Paradise] omitted.
-
- depart. do part.
-
- Children’s Children unto y^e Children, Christianly & virtuously
- 3d & 4th generation. brought up.
-
- loving & amiable to her amiable, faithfull & obedient to
- husband as Rachel--wise as her husband.
- Rebecca--faithfull &
- obedient as Sara.
-
- The new married persons, the It is convenient y^t y^e new
- same day of their marriage, married persons should receive
- must receive y^e Communion. y^e Communion at y^e time of y^r
- marriage or at y^e first
- opportunity after y^e marriage.
-
-
- _Visitation of y^e Sick._
-
- In y^e Psalme y^e 5 last verses omitted
-
-
- _Buriall._
-
- Y^e Lesson read before they goe to y^e grave.
-
- eyes. eares.
-
- of resurrection. of y^e resurrection.
-
- this our brother. omitted.
-
- them that be elected. y^e faithfull.
-
-
- _Churching._
-
- For Psalme 121 116 or 127.
-
- w^{ch} hast delivered. wee give thee hearty thanks for
- that thou hast vouchsafed to
- deliver.
-
- in her vocation. omitted.
-
-NOTE y^t All y^e Epistles & Gospels & most of y^e Sentences of
-Scripture are put in y^e last Translation of y^e Bible.
-
- * * * * *
-
-These are all y^e materiall alterations--y^e rest are onely verball, or
-y^e changeing of some Rubricks for y^e better performing of y^e service
-or y^e new moulding some of y^e Collects.
-
-
- ADDITIONS.
-
- OLD. NEW.
-
- deliver us from evil, for thine is y^e Kingdome, y^e power
- & ye glory for ever and ever
- [here and in some other places].
-
- Praise ye the Lord. _Ans._ The Lord’s name be praised.
-
-
- _Litany._
-
- privy conspiracy & rebellion.
-
- heresy & schisme
-
- To y^e Prayer in time of another prayer added.
- Dearth
-
-
- _In y^t of Plague._
-
- Almighty God, w^{ch} in thy didst send a plague upon thine
- wrath owne people in y^e wildernesse,
- for their obstinate rebellion
- against Moses and Aaron, and also
-
- didst then accept of an atonement and
-
- Two Prayers for y^e Ember-weekes.
-
- A Thanksgiving for restoring
- publique peace.
-
- A Prayer for y^e Parliament.
-
-
- _Collects._
-
- A Collect for y^e 6 Sunday
- after the Epiphany
-
- Epistle 1 S. John, 3. 1.
-
- Gospel S. Matt. 24. 23.
-
- A Collect for Easter Eve.
-
- An Antheme on Easter day,
- I Cor. 5. 7.
-
-
- _Communion._
-
- In y^e 3d Rubrick added Provided y^t every Minister so
- repelling any as is specified, in
- this or in y^e next preceding
- Paragraph of this Rubrick shall
- be obliged to give an account of
- y^e same to y^e Ordinary within
- 14 days after at y^e furthest, &
- y^e Ordinary shall proceede
- against y^e offending person
- according to y^e Canon.
-
- the Lord thy God who brought thee out of y^e land of
- Egypt, out of y^e house of
- bondage.
-
- In y^e prayer for whole state
- of Christs Church--
-
- to accept our almes and oblations.
-
- adversity. And wee also blesse thy holy name
- for all thy servants departed
- this life in thy faith & fear,
- beseeching thee to give us grace
- so to follow their good examples
- that w^{th} them wee may be
- partakers of thy heavenly
- Kingdome.
-
- draw neere in full assurance of faith.
-
- At y^e prayer of consecration Marginall notes, directing y^e
- Action of y^e Priest.
-
-
- _Baptisme._
-
- A fourth demand added here & Wilt thou then obediently keepe
- in private Baptisme Gods holy Will & Commandments,
- & walke in y^e same all
- y^e dayes of thy life? _Ans._ I
- will.
-
- In y^e prayer after y^e Sanctify this Water to y^e mysticall
- demands after these words washing away of sin.
- [y^e supplications of thy
- Congregation] added
-
- A marginall note added Here shall y^e Priest make a crosse
- upon y^e childes forehead.
-
- At y^e end of y^e Rubrick is It is certaine by Gods word that
- added this Declaration persons w^{ch} are baptized, dying
- before they committ actuall sin,
- are undoubtedly saved.
-
- An Office for baptizing such added.
- as are of riper yeeres.
-
-
- _Confirmation._
-
- Then shall y^e Bishop say, Doe you
- here in y^e presence of G^d & of
- this Congregation &c. And
- every one shall audibly answer,
- I doe.
-
- After y^e words of Y^e L^d be w^{th} you. _Ans._ And
- Confirmation added w^{th} thy spirit.
-
- Y^e Lords Prayer.
-
- After y^e Collect Another prayer added.
-
-
- _Visitation of y^e Sick._
-
- for ever. _Ans._ Spare us good Lord.
-
- Y^e 2d prayer enlarged.
-
- A Commendatory Prayer.
-
- A Prayer for a Sick Child.
-
- A Prayer when there appears small
- hope of recovery.
-
- A Commendatory at y^e point of
- death.
-
- A Prayer for persons troubled in
- minde.
-
-
- _Buriall._
-
- After they are come into y^e Church,
- shall be read one or both these
- Psalms, 30, 90.
-
- Everlasting Glory through Jesus Christ our Lord.
-
- At the End Y^e Grace of our L^d Jesus Christ
- &c.
-
-
- _Commination._
-
- In y^e last prayer after in y^e merits & mediation of thy
- [look upon us] blessed Son Jesus Christ our
- L^d. Amen.
-
- Then shall y^e Minister alone say,
- Y^e Lord blesse us, & keepe us,
- y^e L^d lift up y^e light of his
- countenance upon us & give us
- peace, now and for ever more.
- Amen.
-
-
- No. III.--Vol. I., p. 180.
-
-Points in which the Prayer Book, according to _Cardwell’s Conferences_,
-was modified in 1662, in compliance with the recommendation of the
-Puritans.
-
-This list of alterations has been given me by my kind friend, Dr.
-Swainson.
-
-Page 314. _Lord’s Prayer._ The Doxology was added at the beginning of
-Morning and Evening Prayer, in the Post-Communion service, and in the
-Churching of women.
-
-Page 315. _Plain tune._ Altered.
-
-„ 316. Collect for Christmas Day. _This day_ altered.
-
-„ 316. „ „ Whit Sunday. „ „ altered.
-
-„ 317. Very many of the Collects were altered.
-
-„ 317. “Time assigned not sufficient.” Rubric altered.
-
-„ 317. The next Rubric was altered too, though insufficiently.
-
-Page 318. [The preface asked for was inserted in the written book which
-we saw in the Library of the House of Lords, and then erased.[614]]
-
-Page 319, line 10. Exhortation altered; the words are read now on the
-Sunday before the administration, and not “at the Communion.”
-
-Page 319, line 30. The confession is now appointed to be made “by one
-of the Ministers,” not by one of the people.
-
-Page 320, line 11, &c. The words “this day” altered, “as at this time.”
-
-Page 320, line 17, &c. This is interesting. My note from the MS. book
-is this. The words there ran, “that our sinful bodies and souls may be
-made clean by his body, and washed through his most precious blood.”
-This would have pleased the Puritan party. It was however altered
-_back_.
-
-Page 321, line 1. Thus it was in accordance with the wishes of the
-same party that the marginal directions were added in the prayer of
-Consecration.
-
-Page 322, line 15. The Rubric was added with alterations, not however
-affecting the point at issue.
-
-Page 324, line 5. Expressions altered. (Query, sufficiently?)
-
-„ 324, „ 18. “Doest thou forsake?” The words were altered, but not as
-the Puritans desired.
-
-Page 325, line 10. Unless by _a lawful_ minister. (Altered
-accordingly.)
-
-„ 325, „ 13. [No part is reiterated.]
-
-„ 327, „ 1. Altered. Note the praise of that part of the catechism
-which concerns the doctrine of the Sacraments.
-
-Page 327, line 20. [Rubrick was altered, whether satisfactorily, I
-question.]
-
-Page 327, line 32. The words “are come to a competent age,” were added,
-and another rubric limiting the children to be presented, to those whom
-_the Curate shall think fit_.
-
-Page 328, line 23. Altered slightly.
-
-„ 329, „ 30. Altered.
-
-„ 330, „ 31. _Depart._ Altered to “Do part.”
-
-„ 331, „ 13. Omitted.
-
-„ 331, „ 18. Altered.
-
-„ 331, „ 30. Altered.
-
-„ 333, „ 14. Altered. “Resurrection” into “the resurrection.”
-
-„ 333, „ 22. Altered.
-
-„ 334, „ 1–9. Altered.
-
-„ 334, „ 11. The Psalm 121 altered.
-
- _So much for details._
-
-I will make a few more notes in the _same direction_:--
-
-The prayer, “O God, whose nature and property,” altered as recommended
-in 1641. (_Cardwell_, page 277, line 10.)
-
-Thanksgiving added. (_Cardwell_, page 309, line 30.)
-
-New Translation used in Gospels and Epistles. (_Cardwell_, page 307,
-line 4, &c.)
-
-“Portion of Scripture appointed for the Epistles.” (_Cardwell_, page
-308, line 13.)
-
-The first Rubric in the Burial Service, “Here it is to be noted, &c.,”
-would clearly gratify the Puritans.
-
-The position of the woman at churching was altered. (_Cardwell_, page
-334.)
-
-
- No. IV.--Vol. I. chap. x.
-
-The following is a copy of the Act of Uniformity taken from the Rolls
-by a clerk connected with the House of Lords. All the passages printed
-within brackets, with a broader margin or underlined, are amendments
-upon the Bill in its original form, and notified accordingly in the
-original.
-
-[Sidenote: 14 C. 2, Chap 4.]
-
- _An Act for the Uniformity of Publique Prayers and
- Administration of Sacraments other Rites Ceremonies and for
- establishing the form of making ordaining and consecrating
- Bishops Priests and Deacons in the Church of England._
-
-[Sidenote: I. Recital of Act of Uniformity under Elizabeth.]
-
-Whereas in the first yeare of the late Queene Elizabeth there was one
-uniforme Order of Comon Service and Prayer and of the Administration
-of Sacraments rites and Ceremonies in the Church of England (agreeable
-to the word of God and usage of the primitive Church) compiled by the
-Reverend Bishopps and Clergy set forth in one Booke entituled the Booke
-of Comon prayer and Administration of Sacraments and other Rites and
-Ceremonies in the Church of England and enjoyned to be used by Act
-of Parliament holden in the said first yeare of the said late Queene
-entituled An Act for the Uniformity of Comon prayer and Service in
-the Church and Administration of the Sacraments very comfortable to
-all good people desirous to live in Christian conversation and most
-profitable to the Estate of this Realme upon the which the Mercy Favour
-and Blessing of Almighty God is in no wise so readily and plentifully
-poured as by Comon prayers due useing of the Sacraments and often
-preaching of the Gospell with Devotion of the Hearers And yet this
-notwithstanding a great number of people in divers parts of this Realm
-following their own sensualitie and liveing without knowledge and due
-feare of God do willfully and schismatically abstaine and refuse to
-come to theire Parish Churches and other publique places where Comon
-Prayer Administration of the Sacraments and preaching of the word of
-God is used upon the Sundayes and other dayes ordained and appointed
-to be kept and observed as Holy dayes. And whereas by the great and
-scandalous neglect of Ministers in using the said order or Liturgy so
-set forth and enjoined as aforesaid great mischeefs inconveniences
-during the times of the late unhappy troubles have arisen and grown
-and many people have been led into Factions and Schismes to the
-great decay and scandall of the Reformed Religion of the Church of
-England and to the hazard of many souls [Sidenote: Amendment.] [For
-prevention whereof in time to come for setling the Peace of the Church
-and for allaying the present distempers which the indisposition of
-the time hath contracted. [Sidenote: The King’s declaration 25th
-October 1660.] The King’s Majestie according to His Declaration of
-the five and twentieth of October One thousand six hundred and sixty
-granted His [Sidenote: Commission for Conference.] Comission under
-the Great Seale of England to severall Bishopps and other Divines to
-review the Booke of Comon prayer and to prepare such alterations and
-additions as they thought fitt to offer. [Sidenote: Convocation.] And
-afterwards the Convocations of both the provinces of Canterbury and
-Yorke being by His Majesty called and assembled and now sitting His
-Majestie hath beene pleased to authorize and require the presidents of
-the said Convocations and other the Bishopps and Clergy of the same
-to review the said Booke of Comon prayer and the booke of the forme
-and manner of the making and consecrating of [Sidenote: V. Penalty
-of refusing.] Bishops Preists and Deacons. And that after mature
-consideration they should make such additions and alterations in the
-said Bookes respectively as to them should seem meet and convenient
-and should exhibit and present the same to His Majesty in writing for
-his further allowance or confirmation since which time upon full and
-mature deliberation they the said President Bishops and Clergy of both
-provinces have accordingly reviewed the said Bookes and have made some
-alterations which they thinke fitt to be inserted to the same and some
-additionall prayers to the said booke of Comon prayer to be used upon
-proper and emergent occasions. And have exhibited and presented the
-same unto His Majestie in writing in one Booke entituled the Booke of
-Comon Prayer and Administration of the Sacraments and other rites and
-Ceremonies of the Church according to the use of the Church of England
-togeather with the psalter or Psalmes of David pointed as they are
-to be sung or said in Churches and (the) forme and manner of making
-ordaining and consecrating of Bishopps Preists and Deacons All which
-His Majesty haveing duly considered hath fully approved and allowed the
-same and recomended to this present Parliament that the said bookes of
-Comon prayer and of the forme of ordination and consecration of Bishops
-priests and Deacons with the alterations and additions which have beene
-soe made and psented to His Majesty by the said Convocations be the
-Booke which shall be appointed to be used by all that officiate in all
-Cathedrall and Collegiate Churches and Chappells and in all Chappells
-of Colledges and Halls in both the Universities and the Colledges of
-Eaton and Winchester and in all Parish Churches and Chappells within
-the Kingdome of England Dominion of Wales and Toune of Berwick upon
-Tweed and by all that make or consecrate Bishops Preists or Deacons in
-any of the said places under such sanctions and penalties as the Houses
-of parliament shall thinke fitt] [Sidenote: II. Religion advanced by
-Uniform worship.] Now in regard that nothing conduceth more to the
-setling of the Peace of this Nation (which is desired of all good
-men) nor to the honour of our Religion and the propagation thereof
-than an universall agreement in the publique worshipp of Almighty God
-and to the intent that every person within this Realme may certainely
-knowe the rule in which he is to comforme in publique worship and
-administration of Sacraments [_and other rites and ceremonies of the
-Church of England and the manner how and by whom Bishops Preists and
-Deacons are and ought to be made ordained and consecrated_]. Be it
-enacted by the Kings most Excellent Majestie by the advice and with
-the consent of the Lords [_Spirituall and Temporall and of the_]
-Comons in this present parliament assembled and by the authority of
-the same That all and singular Ministers in any Cathedrall Collegiate
-or Parish Church or Chappell or other place of publique worship within
-this Realme of England Dominion of Wales and Toun of Berwick upon
-Tweed shall be bound to say and use the morning prayer Evening prayer
-Celebracon and administracon of both the Sacraments and all other the
-publique and Comon prayer in such order and forme as is menconed in the
-[_said_] booke annexed and joyned in this present Act and intituled
-The Booke of Comon prayer and administration of the Sacraments and
-other rites and Ceremonies of the Church [_according to the use of the
-Church_] of England [_togeather with the psalter or Psalmes of David
-pointed as they are to be sung or said in Churches and (the) forme
-or manner of making ordaining and consecrating of Bishops Preists &
-Deacons_] And that the Morning and Evening prayers therein contained
-shall upon every Lords day and upon all other [_dayes and_] occasions
-and att the times therein appointed be openly and solemnly read by all
-and every minister or Curate in every Church Chappell or other place of
-publique worshipp within this Realme of England and places aforesaid
-[Sidenote: III. All ministers to declare assent to Book of Common
-Prayer.] And to the end that uniformity in the publique worshipp of
-God (which is so much desired) may be speedily effected bee it farther
-Enacted by the authority aforesaid That every parson vicar or other
-Minister whatsoever who now hath and enjoyeth any Ecclesiasticall
-Benefice or promotion within this Realme of England or places aforesaid
-shall in the Church Chappell or place of publique worshipp belonging
-to his said benefice or promotion upon some Lords day before the Feast
-of Saint Bartholomew which shall be in the yeare of our Lord God One
-thousand six hundred sixty and two openly publiquely and solemnly read
-the morning and Evening prayer appointed to be read by and according
-to the said Booke of Comon prayer att the times thereby appointed and
-after such reading thereof shall openly and publiquely before the
-congregation there assembled declare his unfeigned assent & consent
-to the use of all things in the said booke contained and prescribed
-[Sidenote: Amendment.] [in these words and no other. I, A. B doe
-declare my unfaigned assent [Sidenote: IV. Form of Declaration.] and
-consent to all and everything contained and prescribed in and by the
-booke intituled The booke of Comon Prayer and Administration of the
-Sacraments and other rites and ceremonies of the Church according to
-the use of the Church of England togeather with the psalter or psalmes
-of David poynted as they are to be sung or said in Churches and the
-form or manner of making ordaining and consecrating of [Sidenote:
-V. Penalty of refusing.] Bishops Preists and Deacons] And that all
-and every such person who shall (without some lawfull impediment to
-be allowed and approved of by the Ordinary of the place) neglect or
-refuse to doe the same within the time aforesaid (or in case of such
-impediment) within one moneth after such impediment removed shall
-(ipso facto) be deprived of all his spirituall promotions And that
-from thenceforth it shall be lawfull to and for all patrons and donors
-of all and singuler the said Spiritual promotions or of any of them
-according to theire respective rights and titles to present or collate
-to the same as though the person or persons so offending or neglecting
-were dead. [Sidenote: VI. Declaration to be made in all cases of
-promotion.] And bee it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that
-every person whoe shall hereafter be presented or collated or put
-into any Ecclesiastical Benefice or promotion within this Realme of
-England and places aforesaid shall in the Church Chappell or place of
-publiq worshipp belonging to his said benefice or promotion within two
-moneths next after that he shall be in the actuall possession of the
-said Ecclesiastical benefice or promotion upon some Lords day openly
-publiquely and solemnly read the morning and Evening prayers appointed
-to be read by and according to the said booke of Comon prayer att the
-times thereby appointed and after such reading thereof shall openly
-and publiquely before the Congregation there assembled declare his
-unfeigned assent and consent to the use of all things therein contained
-and prescribed [_according to the forme before appointed_] And that
-all and every such person who shall (without some lawful impediment
-to be allowed and approved by the ordinary of the place) neglect or
-refuse to doe the same within the time aforesaid (or in case of such
-impediment within one moneth after such impediment removed) shall
-[ipso facto] be deprived of all his said Ecclesiasticall Benefices and
-promotions And that from thenceforth it shall and may be lawfull to and
-for all patrons and Donors of all and singuler the said Ecclesiastical
-Benefices and promotions or any of them (according to theire respective
-rights and titles) to present or collate to the same as though the
-person or persons so offending or neglecting were dead [Sidenote: VII.
-Amendment Incumbents to read the Common Prayer once a month.] [And
-be it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that in all places
-where the proper Incumbent of any parsonage or vicaridge or Benefice
-with Cure doth reside on his living and keepe a Curate the Incumbent
-himselfe in person (not haveing some lawful impediment to be allowed
-by the Ordinary of the place) shall once (at the least) in every
-moneth openly and publiquely read the Comon prayers and service in
-and by the said Booke prescribed and (if there be occasion) administer
-each of the sacraments and other rites of the Church in the parish
-Church or Chappell of or belonging to the same parsonage vicarage or
-benefice in such order manner and forme as in and by the said booke is
-appointed upon pain to forfeit the sum of five pounds to the use of the
-poore of the Parish for every offence upon conviction by confession
-or proofe of two credible witnesses upon Oath before two Justices of
-the peace of the County City or Toun Corporate where the offence shall
-be comitted (which Oath the said Justices are hereby impowered to
-administer) and in default of payment within ten dayes to be levied
-by distresse and sale of the goods and chattells of the offender by
-the warrant of the said Justices by the Church Wardens or Overseers
-of the poore of the said Parish rendring the surplusage to the party
-[Sidenote: VIII. Deans and Canons, &c., shall subscribe declaration
-following.]And be it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that
-every Deane Canon and prebendary of every Cathedrall or Collegiate
-Church and all Masters and other Heads Fellowes Chaplaines and Tutors
-of or in any Colledge Hall House of Learning or Hospitall and every
-publique professor and Reader in either of the Universities and in
-every Colledge elsewhere and every parson viccar curate lecturer and
-every other person in Holy Orders and every Schoolmaster keeping any
-publique or private Schools and every person instructing or teaching
-any youth in any House or private family as a Tutor or Schoolmaster
-who upon the first day of May which shall be in the yeare of our Lord
-God One thousand six hundred sixty two or at any time thereafter
-shall be Incumbent or have possession of any Deanry Canonry Prebend
-Mastershipp Headshipp Fellowshipp Professors place or Readers place
-Parsonage vicarage or any other Ecclesiasticall Dignity or promotion
-or of any Curates place Lecture or School or shall instruct or teach
-any youth as Tutor or Schoolmaster shall before the Feast day of St.
-Bartholomew which shall be in the yeare of our Lord One thousand six
-hundred sixty two or at or before his or theire respective admission to
-the Incumbent or have possession aforesaid subscribe the Declaration
-or acknowledgement following scilicet.--I, A, B, do declare that it
-is not lawfull upon any pretence whatsoever to take Armes against the
-King and that I do abhorr that traiterous position of taking [Sidenote:
-IX. The declaration of non-resistance and repudiating the Covenant.]
-Armes by his Authority against his person or against those that are
-commissionated by him And that I will conforme to the Liturgy of the
-Church of England as it is now by Law established And I do declare
-that I do hold there lies no obligacon upon me or on any other person
-from the Oath comonly called the Solemne League and Covenant [_to
-endeavour any change or alteration of Government either in Church or
-State_] [Sidenote: X. Penalty for not subscribing.] And that the same
-was in itselfe an unlawfull Oath and imposed upon the subjects of this
-Realme against the knowne lawes and liberties of this Kingdome.--Which
-said Declaration and acknowledgment shall be subscribed by every of the
-said Masters and other Heads fellowes Chaplaines and Tutors of or in
-any Colledge Hall or House of Learning and by every publique professor
-and Reader in either of the Universities before the Vice-Chancellor
-of the respective Universities for the time being, or his Deputy And
-the said Declaration or acknowledgment shall he subscribed before the
-respective Archbishopp Bishopp or Ordinary of the Diocesse by every
-other person hereby enjoyned to subscribe the same upon pain that all
-and every of the persons aforesaid failing in such subscription shall
-loose and forfeit such respective Deanery Canonry Prebend Mastershipp
-headshipp fellowshipp Professors place Readers place parsonage
-viccarage Ecclesiasticall Dignity or promotion Curates place Lecture
-and School and shall be utterly disabled and (ipso facto) deprived
-of the same And that every such respective Deanry Canonry Prebend
-Mastership headship fellowship Professors place Readers place parsonage
-viccarage Ecclesiasticall Dignity or promotion Curates place lecture
-and schools shall be void as if such person so failing were naturally
-dead.--[Sidenote: XI. Schoolmasters in private houses included.] And if
-any Schoolmaster or other person instructing or teaching youth in any
-private House or family as a Tutor or Schoolmaster shall instruct or
-teach any youth as a Tutor or Schoolmaster before licence obtained from
-his respective Archbishop Bishop or Ordinary of the Diocesse according
-to the Lawes and Statutes of this Realme (for which he shall pay twelve
-pence onely) and before such subscription and acknowledgement made
-as aforesaid then every such Schoolmaster and other instructing and
-teaching as aforesaid shall for the first offence suffer three moneth
-imprisonment without baile or mainprize and for every second and other
-such offence shall suffer three months imprisonment without baile or
-mainprize and alsoe forfeit to his Majesty the sume of five pounds
-And after such subscription made every such Parson Viccar Curate and
-Lecturer shall procure a Certificate under the hand and seal of the
-respective Archbishop Bishop or Ordinary of the Diocese (whoe are
-hereby enjoyned and required upon demaund to make and deliver the
-same) and shall publickly and openly read the same togeather with the
-declaration or acknowledgement aforesaid upon some Lords day within
-three moneths then next following in his Parish Church where he is to
-officiate in the presence of the Congregation there assembled in the
-time of Divine Service upon pain that every person failing therein
-shall loose such Parsonage Viccarage or Benefice Curates place or
-Lecturers place respectively and shall be utterly disabled (ipso
-facto) deprived of the same And that the said Parsonage Viccarage or
-Benefice Curates place or Lecturers place shall be void as if he was
-naturally dead Provided alwaies that from and [Sidenote: XII. Omissions
-in declaration after 25 March, 1682.] after the twenty fifth day of
-March which shall be in the yeare of our Lord God one thousand six
-hundred eighty two there shall be omitted in the said Declaration or
-Acknowledg^{t.} so to be subscribed and read these words following
-scilicet.--And I do declare that I do hold there lies no obligacon
-on me or any other person from the Oath comonly called the Solemne
-League and Covenant to endeavour any change or alteration of Government
-either in Church or State and that the same was in itselfe an unlawfull
-Oath and imposed upon the Subjects of this Realme against the knowne
-lawes and liberties of this Kingdome So as none of the persons
-aforesaid shall from thence forth be at all obliged to subscribe or
-read that part of the said declaration or acknowledgement [Sidenote:
-XIII. Persons not episcopally ordained incapable of ecclesiastical
-preferment.] Provided alwaies and be it Enacted that from and after
-the feast of St. Bartholomew which shall be in the yeare of our Lord
-One thousand six hundred sixty and two no person who now is Incumbent
-and in possession of any Parsonage Vicarage or Benefice and who is
-not already in Holy Orders by Episcopall Ordination or shall not
-before the said feast day of St. Bartholomew be ordained Preist or
-Deacon according to the forme of Episcopall Ordination shall have
-hold or enjoye the said Parsonage Vicarage Benefice with Cure or
-other Ecclesiasticall Promotion within this Kingdome of England or
-the Dominion of Wales [_or town of Berwick upon Tweed_] but shall be
-utterly disabled and (ipso facto) deprived of the same And all his
-Ecclesiastical promotions shall be void as if he was naturally dead.
-And be it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that no person
-whatsoever shall thenceforth [Sidenote: XIV. And of administering
-sacraments.] (_be capable to bee admitted to any parsonage vicarage
-benefice or other Ecclesiastical Promotion or Dignity whatsoever
-nor shall_) presume to consecrate and administer the Holy Sacrament
-of the Lords Supper before such time as he shall be ordained Preist
-according to the forme and manner in and by the said booke prescribed
-unlesse he have formerly beene made Preist by Episcopall Ordination
-upon pain to forfeit for every offence the sum of one hundred pounds
-one moyety thereof to the Kings Majesty the other moyety thereof to
-be equally divided betweene the poore of the parish where the offence
-shall be comitted and such person or persons as shall sue for the same
-by Action of debt bill plaint or information in any of His Majesties
-Courts of Record wherein no essoine protection or wager of law shall
-be allowed and to be disabled from taking or being admitted into the
-order of Preist by the space of one whole yeare then next following
-[Sidenote: XV. Exception on behalf of foreigners.] Provided that the
-penalties in this Act shall not extend to the forreiners or aliens of
-the forrein Reformed Churches allowed or to be allowed by the Kings
-Majestie his heires and successors in England [Sidenote: XVI. Cases of
-voidance or deprivation.] Provided alwaies that no title to conferre
-or present by lapse shall accrewe by any avoydance or deprivation
-(ipso facto) by vertue of this Statute but after six moneths after
-notice of such voidance or deprivation given by the Ordinary to the
-patron or such sentence of deprivation openly and publiquely read in
-the Parish Church of the Benefice Parsonage or Vicarage becomeing void
-or whereof the Incumbent shall be deprived by vertue of this Act.
-[Sidenote: XVII. No other form of prayer to be publicly used.] And be
-it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that no form or order of
-Comon prayers administracon of Sacraments rites or Ceremonies shall
-be openly used in any Church Chappell or other publique place of or
-in any Colledge or Hall in either of the Universities the Colledges
-of Westminster Winchester or Eaton or any of them other than what is
-pscribed and appointed to be used in and by the said booke And that
-the present Governour or Head of every Colledge or Hall in the said
-Universities and of the said Colledges of Westminster Winchester and
-Eaton within one moneth after the feast of S^{t.} Bartholomew which
-shall be in the yeare of our Lord One thousand six hundred sixty and
-two And every Governour or Head of any of the said Colledges or Halls
-hereafter to be elected or appointed within one moneth next after
-his Election or Collation and admission into the same Government or
-Headship shall openly and publiquely in the Church Chappell or other
-publique place of the same College or Hall and in the psence of the
-fellowes and Sckolars of the same or the greater part of them then
-resident subscribe [Sidenote: Subscription to Articles.] unto the nine
-and thirty Articles of Religion mentioned in the Statute made in the
-thirteenth yeare of the Reigne of the late Queene Elizabeth And unto
-the said booke and declare his unfeigned assent and consent unto and
-approbation of the said Articles and of the same booke and to the use
-of all the prayers rites and ceremonies formes and orders in the said
-Booke prescribed and contained according to the form aforesaid And
-that all such Governours or Heads of the said Colledges and Halls or
-any of them as are or shall be in Holy Orders shall once (at least) in
-every quarter of the yeare (not having a lawfull impediment) openly and
-publiquely read the Morning prayer and service in and by the said booke
-appointed to be read in the Church Chappell or other publique place of
-the same Colledge or Hall upon pain to loose and be suspended of and
-from all (the) benefitts and profitts belonging to the same Government
-or headshipp by the space of six moneths by the Visitor or visitors of
-the same Colledge or hall And if any Governour or head of any Colledge
-or Hall suspended for not subscribing unto the said Articles and booke
-or for not reading of the Morning prayer and service as aforesaid shall
-not att or before the end of six moneths next after such suspension
-subscribe unto the said Articles and booke and declare his consent
-thereunto as aforesaid or read the Morning prayer and service as
-aforesaid then such Government or headshipp shall be (ipso facto) void.
-[Sidenote: XVIII. Who may use the service in Latin.] Provided alwaies
-that it shall and may be lawful to use the Morning and Evening prayer
-and all other prayers and service prescribed in and by the said booke
-in the Chappells or other publique places of the respective Colledges
-and Halls in both the Universities in the Colledges of Westminster
-Winchester and Eaton and in the Convocations of the Clergies of either
-province in Latine any thing in this Act contained to the contrary
-notwithstanding.]
-
-[Sidenote: XIX. Amendment Lecturers.]
-
-And be it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid [that no person
-shall be or be received as a Lecturer or permitted suffered or allowed
-to preach as a Lecturer or to preach or read any Sermon or Lecture
-in any Church Chappell or other place of publique worshipp within
-this Realme of England or the Dominion of Wales and Towne of Berwick
-upon Tweed unless he be first approved and thereunto licensed by the
-Archbishopp of the province or Bishopp of the Diocesse or (in case the
-See be void) by the Guardian of the Spiritualities under his Seale and
-shall in the psence of the same Archbishop or Bishop or Guardian read
-the nine and thirty Articles of Religion mentioned in the Statute of
-the thirteenth yeare of the late Queene Elizabeth with declaration of
-his unfeigned assent to the same And] that every person and persons
-whoe nowe is or hereafter shall bee (_licensed_) assigned (or)
-appointed or received as a Lecturer to preach upon any day of the weeke
-in any Church Chappell or place of publique worship within this Realme
-of England or places aforesaid the first time he preacheth (before his
-Sermon) shall openly publiquely and solemnly read the Comon prayers
-and service in and by the said booke appointed to be read for that
-time of the day and then and there publiquely and openly declare his
-assent unto and approbation of the said booke and to the use of all
-the prayers rites and ceremonies formes and orders therein contained
-and prescribed according to the forme before appointed in this Act
-[Sidenote: Amendment.] And alsoe shall upon the first lecture day [of
-every moneth afterwards so long as he continues lecturer or preacher
-there at the place appointed for his said lecture or sermon before his
-said Lecture or Sermon openly publiquely and solemnly read the Common
-prayers and service in and by the said booke appointed to be read for
-that time of the day at which the said lecture or sermon is to be
-preached and after such reading thereof shall openly and publiquely
-before the Congregation there assembled declare his unfeigned assent
-and consent unto and approbation of the said booke and to the use of
-all the prayers rites and ceremonies forms and orders therein contained
-and prescribed according to the forme aforesaid] and that all and every
-such person and persons who shall neglect or refuse to do the same
-shall from thenceforth be disabled to preach the said or any other
-lecture or sermon in the said or any other Church Chappell or place
-of publique worshipp untill such time as he (_and they_) shall openly
-publiquely and solemnly read the (_Common_) prayers (_and service
-appointed_) by the said booke and conform in all points to the things
-therein appointed and prescribed (_according to the purport true intent
-and meaning of this Act_) [Sidenote: XX. Amendment. In Cathedral or
-Collegiate Churches.][Provided alwaies that if the said Sermon or
-Lecture be to be preached or read in any Cathedrall or Collegiate
-Church or Chappell it shall be sufficient for the said Lecturer openly
-at the time aforesaid to declare his assent and consent to all things
-contained in the said booke according to the form aforesaid] [Sidenote:
-XXI. Penalty for preaching by persons disabled.] And be it further
-Enacted by the authority aforesaid That if any person who is by this
-Act disabled to preach any Lecture or Sermon shall during the time
-that he shall continue and remaine so disabled preach any Sermon or
-Lecture that then for every such offence the person and persons so
-offending shall suffer three monthes imprisonment in the Comon Goal
-without baile or mainprize and that any two Justices of the Peace
-of any County of this Kingdome and places aforesaid and the Maior
-or other Cheife Magistrate of any City or Town Corporate within the
-same upon Certificate from the Ordinary of the place made to him or
-them of the offence committed (_shall and are hereby required_) to
-committ the person or persons so offending to the Gaol of the same
-County City or Town Corporate accordingly [Provided alwaies and be it
-further [Sidenote: XXII. Amendment. Common Prayer to be read before
-every lecture.] Enacted by the authority aforesaid that at all and
-every time and times when any Sermon or Lecture is to be preached the
-Comon Prayers and Service in and by the said Booke appointed to be
-read for that time of the day shall be openly publiquely and solemnely
-read by some Preist or Deacon in the Church Chappell or place of
-publique Worship where the said Sermon or Lecture is to be preached
-before such Sermon or Lecture be preached and that the Lecturer then
-to preach shall be present at the reading thereof [Sidenote: XXIII.
-Proviso touching Universities.] Provided neverthelesse that this Act
-shall not extend to the University-Churches in the Universities of
-this Realme or either of them when or at such times as any Sermon or
-Lecture is preached or read in the same Churches or any of them for
-or as the publique University-Sermon or Lecture but that the same
-Sermons and Lectures may be preached or read in such sort and manner
-as the same have been heretofore preached or read this Act or anything
-herein conteyned to the contrary thereof in any wise notwithstanding.]
-[Sidenote: XXIV. Former laws for uniformity confirmed.] And bee it
-further Enacted by the authority aforesaid That the severall good Lawes
-and Statutes of this Realme which have been formerly made and are
-now in force for the uniformity of Prayer and administration of the
-Sacraments within this Realme of England and places aforesaid shall
-stand in full force and strength to all intents and purposes whatsoever
-for the establishing and confirming of the [_said booke entitled the_]
-booke of Comon Prayer and administration of the Sacraments [_and
-other rites and ceremonies of the Church according to y^e use of
-y^e Church of England together with the Psalter or Psalmes of David
-pointed as they are to be sung or said in Churches and the forme or
-manner of making ordeyning and consecrating of Bishops Preists and
-Deacons_] herein before menconed to bee joyned and annexed to this
-Act And shall be applyed practised and put in use for the punishing
-of all offences contrary to the said Lawes with relation to the Booke
-aforesaid and no other Provided alwayes [Sidenote: XXV. Prayers for the
-King, &c.]And bee it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid That
-in all those Prayers Letanyes and Collects which doe any way relate
-to the King Queene or Royal Progeny the names be altered and changed
-from time to time and fitted to the present occasion according to the
-direccon of lawfull authority. [Sidenote: XXVI. Copies of Prayer Book
-to be provided in all parishes &c.] Provided also and be it Enacted
-by the authority aforesaid that a true printed Copy of the said
-Booke entituled the Booke of Comon Prayer and Administration of the
-Sacraments and other rites and ceremonyes of the Church according to
-the use of the Church of England togeather with the Psalter or Psalmes
-of David pointed as they are to be sung or said in Churches and the
-forme [_and manner_] of making ordeyning and consecrating of Bishops
-Preists and Deacons shall at the costs and charges of the parishioners
-of every parish church and chappelry cathedrall church colledge and
-hall be attained and gotten before the Feast day of Saint Bartholomew
-in the yeare of our Lord one thousand Sixe hundred sixty and two upon
-paine of forfeiture of three pounds by the moneth for so long time
-as they shall thenafter be unprovided thereof by every Parish or
-Chappelry Cathedrall Church Colledge and Hall making default therein.
-[Sidenote: XXVII. Translation of Common Prayer into Welsh.] Provided
-alwayes and bee it Enacted by the authority aforesaid That the Bishops
-of Hereford St. David’s Asaph Bangor and Landaph and their successors
-shall take such order among themselves for the soules health of the
-flocks comitted to their charge within Wales That the Booke hereunto
-annexed be truly and exactly translated [_into the British or Welsh
-Tongue and that the same so translated_] and being by them or any
-three of them at the least viewed perused and allowed bee imprinted
-to such number at least so that one of the said Books so translated
-and imprinted may be had for every Cathedrall Collegiate and Parish
-Church and Chappell of Ease in the said respective Diocesses and
-places in Wales where the Welsh is comonly spoken or used before the
-first day of May one thousand six hundred sixty five And that from and
-after the imprinting and publishing of the said Booke so translated
-the whole Divine Service shall be used and said by the Ministers and
-Curates throughout all Wales within the said Diocesses where the Welsh
-Tongue is comonly used in the Brittish or Welsh Tongue in such manner
-and forme as is prescribed according to the Booke hereunto annexed
-to be used in the English Tongue differing nothing in any order or
-forme from the said English Booke For which Booke so translated and
-imprinted the Churchwardens of every of the said Parishes shall pay
-out of the parish money in their hands for the use of the respective
-Churches and be allowed the same on their account And that the said
-Bishops and their successors or any three of them at the least shall
-sett and appoynt the price for which the said Booke shall be sold And
-one other Booke of Comon Prayer in the English tongue shall be bought
-and had in every Church throughout Wales in which the Booke of Comon
-Prayer in which is to bee had by force of this Act before the first
-day of May one thousand six hundred sixty and fower and the same Booke
-to remaine in such convenient places within the said Churches that
-such as understand them may resort at all convenient tymes to read
-and peruse the same. And alsoe such as doe not understand the sayd
-language may by conferring both tongues together the sooner attaine
-to the knowledge of the English Tongue Any thing in this Act to the
-contrary notwithstanding And untill printed Copies of the said booke
-soe to bee translated may bee had and provided The forme of Comon
-Prayer established by Parlyament before the making of this Act shall
-be used as formerly in such parts of Wales where the English Tongue is
-not comonly understood [Sidenote: XXVIII. “Sealed books” to be obtained
-and kept.] And to the end that the true and perfect copies of this Act
-and the said booke hereunto annexed may be safely kept and perpetually
-preserved and for the avoyding of all disputes for the tyme to come Bee
-it therefore Enacted by the authority aforesaid that the respective
-Deanes and Chapters of every Cathedrall or Collegiate Church within
-England and Wales shall at their proper costs and charges before the
-Twentie fifth day of December one thousand six hundred sixty and two
-obtaine under the Greate Seale of England a true and perfect printed
-Copie of this Act and of the said booke annexed hereunto to bee by
-the said Deanes and Chapters and their successors kept and preserved
-in safety for ever and to bee allso produced and shewed forth in any
-Court of Record as often as they shall bee thereunto lawfully required
-and also there shall bee delivered true and perfect Copies of this Act
-and of the same booke into the respective Courts at Westminster and
-into the Tower of London to be kept and preserved for ever among the
-Records of the said Courts and the Records of the Tower to be alsoe
-produced and shewed forth in any Court as neede shall require which
-sayd books soe to be exemplyfied under the Great Seale of England shall
-be examined by such persons as the King’s Majestie shall appoint under
-the Great Seale of England for that purpose and shall bee compared
-with the originall booke hereunto annexed and shall have power to
-correct and amend in writing any error comitted by the Printer in
-the printing of the same booke or of any thing therein conteyned and
-shall certifie in writing under their hands and seales or the hands
-and seales of any three of them at the end of the same booke that
-they have examined and compared the same booke and finde it to bee
-a true and perfect copie which said bookes and every one of them so
-exemplyfied under the Greate Seale of England as aforesaid shall be
-deemed taken adjudged and expounded to bee good and available in the
-law to all intents and purposes whatsoever and shall be accounted as
-good Records as this booke it selfe hereunto annexed any law or custome
-to the contrary in any wise notwithstanding [Sidenote: XXIX. Proviso
-for King’s Professor of Law at Oxford.]Provided also that this Act or
-any thing therein conteyned shall not be prejudiciall or hurtfull unto
-the King’s Professor of the Law within the University of Oxford for or
-concerning the Prebend of Shipton within the Cathedrall Church of Sarum
-united and annexed unto the place of the same King’s Professor for the
-time being by the late King James of blessed memory Provided alwaies
-that whereas the sixe and thirtieth Article of the [Sidenote: XXX.
-Proviso concerning Art. 36.] nine and thirty Articles agreed upon by
-the Archbishops and Bishops of both Provinces and the whole Cleargy in
-the Convocation holden at London in the yeare of our Lord One thousand
-five hundred sixty two for the avoyding of diversities of opinions
-and for establishing of consent touching true Religion is in these
-words following (vizt.) “That the Book of Consecration of Archbishops
-and Bishops and ordeyning of Preistes and Deacons lately set forth
-in the time of King Edward the Sixth and confirmed at the same time
-by Authority of Parliament doth conteyne althings necessary to such
-Consecration and ordeyning Neither hath it any thing that of it selfe
-is superstitious and ungodly: And therefore whosoever are consecrated
-or Ordered according to the Rites of that Booke since the second yeare
-of the aforenamed King Edward unto this time or hereafter shall be
-consecrated or ordered according to the same rites. Wee decree all such
-to be rightly orderly and lawfully consecrated and ordered.” [Sidenote:
-XXXI. Subscription to extend to form of Consecrating Bishops, &c.] It
-be Enacted And Be it therefore Enacted by the authority aforesaid That
-all subscriptions hereafter to be had or made unto the said Articles by
-any Deacon Preist or Ecclesiasticall person or other person whatsoever
-who by this Act or any other Law now in force is required to subscribe
-unto the said Articles shall be construed and taken to extend and
-shalbe applyed (for and touching the s^d sixe and thirtieth Article)
-unto the Booke conteyning the forme and manner of making ordeyning
-and consecrating of Bishops Preists and Deacons in this Act mentioned
-in such sort and manner as the same did heretofore extend unto the
-Booke set forth in the time of King Edward the Sixth mentioned in the
-said six and thirtieth Article anything in the s^d Article or in any
-Statute Act or Canon heretofore had or made to the contrary thereof
-in any wise notwithstanding [Sidenote: XXXII. Form to be used till
-Bartholomew’s Day, 1662.] Provided also that the Booke of Comon Prayer
-and Administration of the Sacraments and other rites and ceremonyes of
-this Church of England together with the forme and manner of ordeyning
-and consecrating Bishops Preists and Deacons heretofore in use and
-respectively established by Act of Parliament in the first and eighth
-years of Queen Elizabeth shalbe still used and observed in the Church
-of England untill the Feast of Saint Bartholomew which shall be in the
-yeare of our Lord God one thousand six hundred sixty and two.
-
-
- No. V.--Vol. I., p. 261.
-
-Letters patent on parchment are attached to the sealed books. A copy of
-the letter is given in Stephens’ edition of the Prayer Book, published
-by the Ecclesiastical History Society.
-
-After reciting the Act of Uniformity, it is said, “And whereas the
-printed copy of the Act of Parliament, and Book aforesaid hereunto
-annexed, hath been duly examined by the persons, whose names are
-thereunto subscribed, in pursuance of our Commission to them and others
-in that behalf directed. Now know ye, that, we according to the form
-and effect of the said Act of Parliament, and in accomplishment of
-the intent thereof, in this behalf, have inspected the said examined
-copy of the Act of Parliament and Book aforesaid, and have caused the
-same to be hereunto annexed, and to be exemplified under the Great
-Seal of England. In witness, &c.,----; signed Barker.” No copy of the
-Commission is supplied, nor the names of the Commissioners.
-
-In the sealed books alterations are made by the pen of the
-Commissioners to bring them into accordance with the copy of the book
-attached to the Act. Most of these are quite unimportant. For example:--
-
-1. _In the titles of the services_, “_The_” is prefixed to the word
-collect.
-
-2. _In the headings of the pages_, “_Trinity Sunday XXIII_” is altered
-into “_The XXIII Sunday after Trinity_.”
-
-“_Whitsun Munday_” into “_Munday in Whitsun Week_.”
-
-It is important to notice, that the title “_The Creed of St.
-Athanasius_” was printed originally, in the sealed books, on the top
-of the page over the creed; it was then struck out by the Commissioners.
-
-3. _In the text of prayers_:
-
-In the sentences at beginning of morning prayer, it was printed, “Hide
-thy face from my sins, and blot out _all_ my iniquities:” “_all_” was
-struck out. “Forgiveness” was altered into “Forgivene_sses_.”
-
-In the clause of the Lord’s Prayer “Thine is the kingdom _and_ the
-power and the glory,” the first “_and_” is cancelled.
-
-In the Absolution, “Wherefore _let us beseech Him_,” is changed into
-“Wherefore _beseech we Him_.”
-
-In the sealed book at Chichester, Dr. Swainson pointed out to me in
-Psalm xc. verse 8, as used in the Burial Service, _light_ corrected
-into _sight_; and in verse 12 _so_ into _O_. Some of our modern Prayer
-Books retain the _O_, but have given up the _sight_.
-
-4. _In the Rubric_, at the end of the Communion Service, the words,
-“_for the whole state of Christ’s Church militant here on earth_,” are
-inserted, by the Commissioners, in some sealed books, after an erasure
-of the original printed words.
-
-Many of the alterations cannot be corrections of the printer’s errata.
-They evidently indicate changes of words made in the original copy
-after the printing of the books which were used as sealed copies.
-
-In the Appendix to the first Report of the Royal Commission on Ritual
-will be found remarks upon the sealed copy at Ely.
-
-It is strange that the printers of Prayer Books do not bring them into
-correspondence with the sealed books, which alone contain the legally
-correct formularies of the Church.
-
-
- No. VI.--Vol. I., p. 282.
-
-The number of the ejected is a vexed question. We possess at present
-unsatisfactory data; and I fear that we shall never obtain such a
-knowledge of facts as will enable us to reach a precise conclusion.
-The Ecclesiastical Registers of the country might seem to afford great
-hope of being sufficient to decide the controversy; but, to say nothing
-of the labour of searching them, unfortunately when the work has been
-begun, in some cases, from the imperfection of the records, it has
-yielded little or no fruit.
-
-Some years ago I attempted searching the records of the See of London,
-in St. Paul’s Cathedral; but from the state of the records at that time
-the attempt proved unsuccessful.
-
-The friendly kindness of the Dean of Chichester, and Canon Swainson,
-afforded me every facility for examining the Archives in the
-Cathedral. The latter assisted me in examining the Registers; to our
-disappointment they were found defective for 1662. But as this Work
-was passing through the press, Canon Swainson communicated to me some
-valuable information, which will be subjoined to this note. At present
-our conclusions must rest upon the lists of names which have been
-published by Calamy and Palmer; and upon such general statements as are
-furnished by writers who were living at the time when the ejectment
-took place.
-
-Calamy, in his second volume, undertakes to give an “Account of the
-ministers who were ejected or _silenced_ after the Restoration
-of King Charles II.” In his second, and two following volumes, he
-includes ministers, lecturers, masters and fellows of colleges,
-and schoolmasters. Palmer, in his _Nonconformist Memorial_,
-describes those whom he registers as “Ejected or _silenced_
-after the Restoration, particularly by the Act of Uniformity.” These
-important distinctions are often overlooked; and it is imagined that
-all the names collected together, are the names of clergymen who were
-removed from their livings on Bartholomew’s Day. Such an imagination
-is contradicted by facts. In agreement with the indication given on
-the title pages of our two principal authorities, we discover in
-these biographical sketches a number of incumbents who were displaced
-before the Uniformity Act was passed, most of them in consequence of
-Episcopalian clergymen having returned to claim their sequestered
-livings. Cases of this kind appear in the present History. Those
-ministers who thus lost their benefices clearly ought to be arranged in
-a class by themselves. Having set them aside, there remain others who,
-according to all accounts, did not forfeit their emoluments through
-the operation of the new Act. They consisted of such clergymen as,
-through Episcopal connivance, or from some other cause, continued to
-hold their benefices; they were comparatively few in number, and the
-benefices of most were of inconsiderable value. We are then to add
-another class, described as simple candidates for the ministry, who
-therefore possessed no livings from which they could be driven. Also we
-must separate the cases of persons who, though mentioned amongst the
-ejected, did not quit the Church until after St. Bartholomew’s Day;
-some of whom were not ministers in the Establishment at that time. The
-exceptional cases of the last three kinds, such as were connived at,
-such as were only candidates, and such as did not quit the Church until
-afterwards, so far as I can see, are altogether below fifty. I may have
-overlooked some.
-
-What would be the total number of the persons who, although included
-in the general list of sufferers, did not surrender their incumbencies
-on St. Bartholomew’s Day, I am at a loss to determine. The information
-given in many cases is so incomplete, that it does not show when and
-how the persons mentioned were removed. In more than five hundred
-instances bare names occur, and in many more so little is added as to
-be next to nothing. Most of the persons named were probably in some way
-or other losers for conscience’ sake; but I am not aware of any means
-by which all those among them who left the Establishment before the
-24th of August of 1662, can be separated from those who were ejected on
-that day.
-
-If we refer to general statements, we find Baxter saying, in his
-_Petition for Peace_ presented to the Bishops with the proposed
-reformation of the Liturgy, at the Savoy Conference, “_Some_
-hundreds of able, holy, faithful ministers, are of late cast
-out.”[615] He also speaks in the _Rejoinder_ of “_several_
-hundreds.”[616] These statements were made in 1661, more than a year
-before the Uniformity Act came into operation. Taking the indefinite
-_several_ hundreds at the lowest reasonable computation, and
-remembering, that during the intermediate year more Nonconformists
-would be “cast out,” we can scarcely reckon the ejected, before St.
-Bartholomew’s Day, 1662, at less than six hundred. Hook’s letter
-written in the month of March, 1663, alludes to the number of the
-ejected on St. Bartholomew’s Day as 1,600, and says “as many had been
-removed before.” This, no doubt, is an exaggeration; but it would seem
-to suggest, at least, that the number previously removed bore a large
-proportion to the number ultimately ejected. To the six hundred, or
-so, ejected before the Uniformity Act came into effect, let there be
-added two or three hundred more,--which would be a very large allowance
-for such exceptional cases as I have indicated, and for the great
-uncertainty respecting the five hundred bare names in the lists of
-“the ejected and _silenced_,”--and we thus reach a total of some
-eight or nine hundred, who may be admitted to have suffered more or
-less in consequence of the Restoration, but who must not be considered
-as undergoing ejectment on Bartholomew’s Day. The last and the longest
-list of sufferers, before and upon the 24th of August, 1662, put all
-together, is that furnished by Palmer, amounting to 2,231,--a list
-evidently prepared with much care. He mentions a MS. “Index eorum
-Theologorum Aliorumque No. 2,257, qui propter Legem Uniformitatis, Aug.
-24, A. D. 1662, ab Ecclesia Anglicana secesserunt.” Calamy’s
-entire list reckons 2,190. Making the largest allowable deduction for
-those deprived before Bartholomew’s Day--that of nine hundred as just
-suggested--then the number of those who were deprived on that day would
-amount to about 1,200. I do not see how more than that number could
-have been then displaced. I am induced to believe there were scarcely
-so many.
-
-But whilst the distinctions and abatements which I have just made are
-demanded with a view to some accurate conclusion, it is to be borne
-in mind that the whole body of Nonconformist ministers, including
-the ejected, the candidates for the ministry, and all who had been
-accustomed in any way to preach the Gospel, were _silenced_ by
-the Act. They could no longer any of them preach in a place of public
-worship. Therefore if we include the silenced, I should think that
-Baxter is rather under than above the mark in saying, “When Bartholomew
-Day came, about one thousand eight hundred, or two thousand ministers
-were silenced and cast out.”--_Life and Times_, ii. 385. After
-all, no bare statistics, no enumeration of figures, can ever represent
-the amount of trial, sorrow, and loss inflicted upon conscientious men
-at that lamentable era in our ecclesiastical history.
-
-Palmer, following Calamy, gives a large number of names of clergymen
-who “afterwards conformed.” It may be inferred that amongst these were
-not a few who passed through considerable conflict of mind before they
-did so.
-
-What was the exact number of the clergy just after the Act of
-Uniformity I cannot ascertain. Chamberlayne says, in his _Present
-State of England_, ed. 1692, that there were 9,700 rectors and
-vicars, besides dignitaries and curates--p. 189. In another place, he
-says:--“The whole number of the clergy of England are in all, first,
-two archbishops, twenty-four bishops, twenty-six deans of cathedral and
-collegiate churches, 576 prebendaries, 9,653 rectors and vicars, and
-about so many more, with curates, and others in Holy Orders.”--Part
-ii., 19. But this estimate must be greatly in excess of the actual
-number.
-
-The communication from Dr. Swainson is as follows:--
-
-“Let me inform you that I have found a book in our muniment-room which
-to a certain extent supplies the place of the Episcopal Registers of
-Henry King, who was restored to his see with the Restoration. The
-Registers, you know, are reported as lost. This book is the book
-of subscriptions to the three articles of the 36th Canon, and the
-declaration against the Solemn League and Covenant. With the assistance
-of a friend I have analysed the former, and the enclosed paper contains
-the result. But I must notice that it gives no intimation as to the
-number of clergymen who returned to the livings from which they were
-banished during the Commonwealth, nor of the Presbyterians and others
-who were then ejected from their homes; it only gives the livings into
-which _new_ incumbents were installed; and I think you will agree
-with me that the number is very small. At the same time my attention
-has been drawn to the large number of ordinations of deacons in the
-first two years after the book commences. My impression is that a
-Presbyterian or Independent minister in legal possession of a living
-might retain it by the Act of Uniformity, if he accepted deacon’s
-orders. Thus we should have in the first three years twenty-three more
-vacancies than in the last three of the period before us; and in the
-first three years one hundred and eight men ordained deacons, in the
-last three fourteen or fifteen. I infer that, of these one hundred and
-eight a large proportion conformed and retained their preferment. My
-friend notices a large ordination in 1673. Eighteen priests and sixteen
-deacons on Trinity Sunday; eight priests and eleven deacons in Advent.”
-The enclosed paper states, “The book of subscriptions commences on 2nd
-November, 1662, and the last subscription is dated on 22nd September,
-1678, thus it includes a period of sixteen years. I have no reason
-to suppose that it is imperfect. On analysing it, the subscriptions
-describe, that the subscriber is about to be admitted (1) to some
-rectory, vicarage, or cure of souls; (2) to a prebend or dignity in the
-cathedral; (3) to ‘Presbyteratus ordinen;’ (4) to deacon’s orders.
-There are a few who are about to be licensed to preach, and about four
-in the sixteen years who come to qualify themselves to keep school. The
-number of vacancies in rectories, vicarages, and places with cure of
-souls thus indicated in the several years are:--
-
- November 1, 1662 to October 31, 1663 19
- „ „ 1664 26
- „ „ 1665 14
- „ „ 1666 16
- „ „ 1667 18
- „ „ 1668 20
- „ „ 1669 12
- „ „ 1670 10
- „ „ 1671 20
- „ „ 1672 13
- „ „ 1673 16
- „ „ 1674 16
- „ „ 1675 9
- „ „ 1676 8
- „ „ 1677 15
- „ „ 1678 13
-
-making a total of 245 in 16 years, or an average of 15¼ per annum.
-
-“The number of vacancies in the first three years is thus fifty-nine;
-in the last three, thirty-six. Taking the last figures as representing
-the number from ordinary causes, we have an overplus of twenty-three
-due to extraordinary causes, _i.e._, nonconformity, in the first
-three years. The number of men ordained deacons in the first three
-years was one hundred and seven; in the last three years, fifteen.
-Therefore the overplus of ninety-two ordained in the first three years
-was due to extraordinary causes; the question is what these causes were?
-
-“N.B.--Eighty-three men were ordained priests during the same first
-three years. The number of benefices in the diocese of Chichester is
-_now_ (1869) 330.”
-
-
- No. VII.--Vol. I., p. 314.
-
-Of the informer’s _Note Book_, preserved in the Record Office, I have
-an entire copy in my possession, made by the late Mr. Clarence Hopper,
-and from it I give the following extracts:--
-
-“_Brokes_ (Pastor)--Meets at Mr. Shaw’s, sailmaker, in Tower Wharf,
-sometimes at one Palmer’s Wise, [_sic_] and Holmes’s, who dwell all in
-the fields on the left hand, near Moorgate, where the quarters hang;
-where there is suspected some persons of note lie dormant, viz., Col.
-Danvers, Col. Gledman, Mr. Wollaston. The field is named ‘Phines-berry’
-(Finsbury).”
-
-“_Caitnesse._--A Scotchman intimately acquainted with Lawrye the
-merchant (his old maid knows much of him). He dwells a little beyond
-Ratcliffe Church, hard by Gun Alley, next door to a shoemaker’s.
-Brother-in-law to Mr. Roe (formerly minister), a schoolmaster in
-Christchurch, within the Cloisters can tell of Caitnesse. Several of
-the Lord General’s old soldiers know Caitnesse; he knows Lieut.-Col.
-Desborough and Ellison.”
-
-“_Duckenfield._--They are 3 brothers all officers in the Army. Col.
-Jo Duckenfield, a stout fellow, now in Ireland, 1663, married an
-Exchange-woman, commanded the Foot at Winnington-bridge, 1659. Major
-Wm. Duckenfield in Ireland, 1663, married Franklin’s daughter, over
-against Salisbury House, an Exchange-man. Col. Rob. Duckenfield
-married Fleetwood’s sister, and hath an estate at Duckenfield Hall, in
-Cheshire, all 3 dangerous fellows.”
-
-“_Forbes._--Formerly in Gloucester, a Scottishman. Caitnes. Rawdon. His
-wife’s mother lives near Henley-upon-Thames, in Bucks. When in town,
-lodges behind Abchurch, going into Sherburne Lane from Cannon Street,
-upon the right hand, beyond the church; his landlord keeps a shop in
-Pope’s Head Alley. Enquire of Henley Coach, where it stands, for Mr.
-Forbes. His sister is an apothecary’s wife, over against Warwick House,
-in Holborn; and at Mr. Johnston’s, in Gr. Inne Lane, &c.”
-
-“_Thomas Goodwine_ (pastor).--Dwells in the fields, on the left hand
-near Moorgate, where the quarters stand, and meets often with Dr.
-Owen.”--(_Vide O._)
-
-“_Mrs. Homes_, at the Red Lion, a grocer’s shop, in St. Laurence Lane,
-is the great patroness of the worst of people now in London, and Ewell
-in particular. (Mrs. Holond Com. his wife), and Mr. Sheldon, prisoner
-in the Tower, who married Holond’s daughter; Mrs. Homes, now or lately,
-paid and discharged the rent for the house, which Thomas Goodwin lies
-in, at Bone Hill, beyond the Artillery Ground, near Cherry Tree Alley.
-She has a great estate; and spends it among those that lie in wait
-to disturb the peace of the kingdom. She is a frequent visitor of
-the prisons, and encourages and confirms those that are in greatest
-opposition to the Government. Her chief servant is called Browne,
-who ’tis thought, was one of the Rump Parliament. Her cash-keeper
-confessed, that, in six weeks after her husband died, she gave away
-£800. ’Tis no wonder, for she gains, with her money, several from the
-Church daily and under pretence of charity, corrupts many poor and
-wanting people.”
-
-“_Jessey_, meets often at one Thomas Goodwine’s, and Dr. Owen’s in the
-fields, near to Moorgate, where the quarters hang; (pastor). The said
-Jessey meets also at the Lady Hartups, at Newington, Harfordshire, dead
-1663.”
-
-“_Harwood_, Jo., a merchant at Mile-end Green, a factious dangerous
-Independent; and the common factor for all the merchants trading
-especially to New England; who uses constantly to cover and disguise,
-the ships, goods, and persons, of those of that opinion in their
-voyages and passages, so as the officers of the Customs, &c., at
-Gravesend, and other places, are, by his interest and money, corrupted
-to slip the oaths, which otherwise ought to be tendered to all persons
-going out, &c.”
-
-“_Knowles_, an Anabaptist minister, a good scholar, and a leading man,
-now in Amsterdam, maintained by the churches; and one Thibalds (his
-elder), in Tower Street, corresponds with him, (to him Mr. Riggs was
-recommended by Thibalds.) Knowles dwells in Wapping.”
-
-“_Meade_, Pastor of the Independent Church, meets twice a week with
-Greenhill at Ratcliffe, and Stepney.”
-
-“_Dr. Owen_ (_Pastor_), dwells in the fields, on the left hand near
-Moorgate, where the quarters hang, and meets often with Goodwine.”
-
-“_Robinson_ (Andrew), a Scotts Quaker, dangerous young fellow; carries
-letters between London and Edinburgh; comes frequently to Mr. Lawrye’s.”
-
-“_Sprig_, a minister, and great creature of the late usurper’s. Mr.
-Johnson knows him intimately. Sprig is a great acquaintance of Sir Hen.
-Vane’s and Ludlow’s.”
-
-
- No. VIII.--Vol. I., p. 319.
-
-In connection with the narrative on this page, and others elsewhere of
-the same kind, I would request the reader to bear in mind what I have
-remarked on p. 102. of this volume.
-
-After the printing of the anecdote respecting Mr. Ince, a very
-interesting little book, entitled _The Church at Birdbush_, has
-come under my notice, from which I extract the following passages
-in reference to the story I have related:--“This striking narrative
-has sometimes been repudiated as a fiction. The evidence for its
-credibility seems, however, to be stronger than the supposition of its
-falsehood. The fact that the individual on whose authority it rests,
-had spent much time and labour in collecting authentic accounts of
-the period to which it refers, and that before the year 1705, he had
-lived at Shaftesbury, where, from its proximity to the scene of its
-occurrence, this event would be the theme of general conversation,
-is a fair argument in proof of its validity. Assuming then, in the
-absence of proof to the contrary, that the principal points in this
-striking incident are true, there are connected circumstances which
-require that some additional remarks should be made. The _date_ of the
-occurrence of this remarkable event has been a matter of conflicting
-statement. While the _Nonconformist’s Memorial_ fixes it at ‘not long
-after the year 1662,’ a writer in the _Evangelical Magazine_ for 1798,
-states it to have taken place ‘soon after the Toleration Act passed
-in 1689.’ Perhaps the precise year cannot be fixed, and yet, from an
-incidental remark in the life of the Rev. T. Rosewell, given in the
-_Nonconformist’s Memorial_, we may arrive at a satisfactory conclusion.
-His biographer says, ‘After leaving Lady Hungerford’s family, he was
-invited, in 1672, into that of Mr. Grove, at Ferne, where Mr. Ince
-lived, where he spent some months much to his comfort.’ By this it is
-evident that the event referred to happened before the year 1672. A
-second disputed point is, the apparent improbability of Mr. Ince being
-unknown at Ferne, after having been Rector of the adjoining parish
-for fourteen years or more. It should be remembered, that some few
-years, at least, elapsed between his ejectment at Donhead, and his
-being employed on the before-named estate. Time would of course leave
-its impressions on the form which would otherwise have been easily
-recognized. Besides, it is attested that he had hired himself to the
-‘employment of tending sheep;’ and the shepherd’s dress, connected
-with the effects of prison usage, and of the other circumstances of
-trial to which he had been exposed, may all have combined to conceal
-his true profession as a minister of Christ, until the time fixed in
-the Infinite Mind arrived for its discovery. His ‘appearance’ was that
-which surprised Mr. Grove, when he contrasted it with his ‘language
-and manner.’ The last sentence of the statement obviously requires
-correction. The _Meeting-house_ referred to, was _not_ erected on the
-estate at Ferne, nor by Mr. Grove.”
-
-
- No. IX.--Vol. I., p. 374.
-
-I have adopted the common account of Cecil’s signing Edward VI.’s
-Instrument of Succession as a witness. It is endorsed by Mr.
-Froude.--(_Hist._, v. 509). But I ought to add, that Tytler, in his
-_England under the Reigns of Edward VI. and Mary_, discredits the
-story which rests on a statement made by Roger Alford, twenty years
-afterwards, who on Cecil’s authority, and at his request, was trying
-to make out a case in favour of his master. Cecil’s signature occurs
-in the midst of many names appended to the document, not at all in
-the way of witness; and Tytler thinks, that Cecil had determined to
-retain his place, whatever sacrifice it might cost him. It did cost him
-dear--“for he was driven by it to falsehood, to evasion, and to little
-subterfuges, from which every upright mind would have recoiled.”--(Vol.
-ii. 175.) In a defence of himself, written in his own hand, for the eye
-of Queen Mary, and which Tytler has printed (vol. ii. 192), he says
-nothing of having signed the instrument as a witness.
-
-It appears further, from an examination by Tytler, of some of Cecil’s
-papers in the Record Office, that in the reign of Queen Mary he
-conformed to the established religion by attending mass.--(Vol. ii.
-443.) Yet it is remarkable that although regarded kindly at court,
-he never held office under the Popish Sovereign; and is distinctly
-described as “a heretic” by the Count de Feria, writing in 1558.--(p.
-499). Whatever his compliances at the time, there must have been enough
-in his conduct to indicate that he was an unwilling Conformist, and
-that he was in heart a Protestant. Still, in respect to religious
-profession in the earlier part of life, he is seen to disadvantage when
-compared with Clarendon.
-
-
- No. X.--Vol. II., p. 88.
-
-Lord Macaulay mentions in his _History of England_, a broadside which
-he had seen, and which is printed in Somers’ _Tracts_. The author,
-as he says, was a Roman Catholic, having access to good sources of
-information, and although no name but one is given at length, the
-initials are intelligible except in a single instance. The Duke of York
-is said to have been reminded of his duty to his brother by P. M. A. C.
-F., which mysterious letters puzzled his Lordship as they had done Sir
-Walter Scott, who edited Somers’ _Collection_. Plausible conjectures
-as to their meaning occurred at the same time to Macaulay and others,
-and though the conviction continued in his mind, that the true solution
-had not been suggested, he was inclined to read the initials thus:
-“Père Mansuete, a Cordelier Friar.” A Cordelier of that name was James’
-Confessor.
-
-After all, the shrewd conjecture was correct. The following paper,
-mentioned in my Preface, settles the question. It is substantially the
-same as the paper printed in _Somers_ (Scott’s Edition, viii. 428),
-but the verbal differences are considerable, and the P. M. A. C. F. is
-identified as Père Mansuete, a Cordelier Friar, Confessor to the Duke.
-
-I print the MS. at length, as it will be interesting for the historical
-student to compare it with the broad sheet reprinted by Somers:--
-
-“On Munday 2^d of February Candlemas day the King rose early, said he
-had not slept well. About 7 a clock comeing from his private devotions
-out of his Closett, fell downe so that he was dead for foure hours
-in an Apoplecticke fitt: with losse of 16 ounces of blood and other
-applications came to his sences againe: Great hopes of his recovery
-till Thursday one a clocke. But at 5 the Doctors being come before the
-Councill declared he was in great danger. On Friday a quarter before
-12 he departed. God have mercy upon his soule. _P. M. a C. ffryar C_
-to the Duke upon the Doctors first telling him of the State of the K.
-told him that now was the time to take care of his soule and that it
-was his duty to tell him so. The D. with this admonition went unto the
-King and told it, The K. answered O Brother how long have I wished but
-now help me: He said he would have Father Hudd:[617] who preserved him
-in the tree, and now hoped he would preserve his soule; H was sent
-for to bring all necessaries for a dying man: not having the B: S. by
-him, H mett one of the Q^s P,[618] told him the occasion, desiring
-his assistance to procure it and bring it to the back staires. The
-King having notice that Mr. Hudd: waited desired to be in private with
-his Brother. All the Bpps and Nobles goeing out, the D latching the
-dore, the L^{de} P. B. and F.[619] were goeing out also, the D told
-them they might stay, the Kg seeing Father cryed out: Almighty God
-what good planet governes me that all my life is wonders and miracles
-when I O Lord consider my infancy, my exile, my escape at Wor’ster my
-preservation in the tree by this good Father and now to have him againe
-to be the Preserver of my Soule, O’ Lord my wonderfull Restauration,
-the great danger of the late Conspiracy and last of all to be raised
-from death and to have my soule preserved by the assistance of this
-good Father whom I see that thou O Lord hast created for my good: the D
-and E^{s,}[620] withdrew into the Closett, they were private for some
-time, after which the D and E^{s} entred againe, the Father remaining
-comforting and praying with him, He said, if I am worthy of it, Pray
-lett me have it, the Father said he exspected it and offered to
-proceed with the extreeme unction, The King said, with all my heart:
-the D and the L^{ds} assisting at the time M^{r.} Hudd: being called
-to the doore received the B: S: he desired the Kg to compose himselfe
-to receive. the King would rise, he was perswaded to the Contrary,
-Let me meet my heavenly father in a better posture then lying thus,
-being overruled they pray, amongst other the Father repeated an Act
-of Contrition, the King desired him to repeate it againe, saying it
-word by word after him, Received with the greatest expressions of
-devotion imaginable: This being ended they proceeded in the Prayer de
-Recommendacöne animæ, that being done, the King desired a repetition of
-the Act of Contrition once more, Lord Good God when my Lips faile let
-my heart speake these words eternally.
-
-“The Bishops and Lords entred againe and perswaded the King to remember
-his last end and to endeavour to make a good end. He said he had
-thought on it and made his peace with God. Asking him whether he would
-receive, he said he would not, he persisting in extolling the Queene
-and Duke said he was not sorry to leave the world leaving so good a
-brother to rule behind him.”
-
-
- No. XI.--Vol. II., p. 148.
-
-Macaulay, speaking of the disobedience of the London clergy to the
-Royal order, says:--“Samuel Wesley, the father of John and Charles
-Wesley, a curate in London, took for his text that day the noble
-answer of the three Jews to the Chaldean tyrant, ‘Be it known unto
-thee, O King, that we will not serve thy gods, nor worship the
-golden image which thou hast set up.’” The historian quotes as his
-authority Southey’s _Life of Wesley_. The story has been repeated
-again and again. Unfortunately, in reference to Wesley, it cannot be
-true. He was ordained in deacon’s orders the 17th of August, 1688,
-about three months after the issuing of the order: and the only
-foundation for the story seems to be a poem by the younger Wesley,
-written “upon a clergyman lately deceased,” the Rev. John Berry, the
-poet’s father-in-law, and published four years before Samuel Wesley’s
-death.--See _The Mother of the Wesleys_, by the Rev. John Kirk, p. 58.
-
-
- No. XII.--Vol. II., chap. xiv.
-
- ANGLICAN VIEWS ON THE RELATIONS OF CHURCH AND STATE.
-
-In the review of Anglican opinions in the 14th chapter I have scarcely
-entered upon what is understood by the Church and State question. I am
-not able to supply, from the works of Bull, Pearson, Cosin, Heylyn,
-Barrow, and others, any satisfactory catena of passages bearing on this
-point, or to report any definite theory, or any sustained arguments of
-theirs in relation to it. Their theological writings treat of other
-themes. Thorndike, indeed, has a good deal to say of the State, as
-well as of the Church, and speaks, on the one hand, of the State being
-in subjection to the Church, of the State being bound to protect the
-Church, and of the State being justified in inflicting penalties for
-religion when the latter interferes with civil peace. On the other
-hand, he speaks of kings being justified in reforming the Church, even
-against the ecclesiastical order. (Reference to these passages will
-be found in the index to the Oxford Edition of Thorndike.) Yet I can
-find in Thorndike no precise theory of Church and State relations.
-Jeremy Taylor treats of ecclesiastical laws and power; he insists on
-the concurrence in them of the civil authorities, and that kings are
-bound to keep the Church’s laws; yet he denies that Christian princes
-can be lawfully excommunicated. (_Works_, xiii. 583–616.) Bramhall
-alludes to the Royal nomination and investiture of bishops in England
-as approved by ancient canons and constitutions (part iv. dis. 6);
-and Sanderson goes so far as to declare, that the king hath power, if
-he shall see cause, to suspend any bishop from the execution of his
-office, and to deprive him utterly of his dignity. (_Episcopacy not
-prejudicial_, s. iii. 33.) Morley’s extravagant views of the Royal
-prerogative have been noticed. On the whole it appears that after the
-Restoration, High Churchmanship manifested itself more in theological
-doctrine, than in either ritualism or in ecclesiastical supremacy.
-Looking at the whole history of the period between the Restoration and
-the Revolution, we see in the ascendant that which is commonly meant by
-the word Erastianism. Indications of this are afforded by the manner
-in which the Act of Uniformity was carried; by the utter inactivity
-of Convocation after the year 1664,--for it did scarcely more than
-formally assemble from time to time,--and by the notions of the Royal
-supremacy so generally maintained, and so plainly expressed, not only
-by Bishop Morley but by the two Universities.
-
-
- No. XIII.--Vol. II., p. 93.
-
-“On the 19th of May, 1685, the King (about 11 a clock in the morning)
-came to the House of Peers in his royal robes, and with his crown off
-his head, being attended with the great officers of state, and having
-placed himself on his throne, the Usher of the Black Rod, Sir Thomas
-Duppa, was sent to bring up the Commons to the bar of the Lords’ House.
-
-The Commons being come, the Lord Keeper standing behind the Chair of
-State (from whence he usually speaks to the two Houses) acquainted the
-Commons that his Majesty had commanded him to tell them that it was his
-royal pleasure, that they should go down to the Lower House, and choose
-their speaker, and present him at 4 of the clock in the afternoon, to
-his Majesty at the bar of the Lords’ House, for his approbation.
-
-The Lord Keeper acquainted the Lords and Commons at the same time, that
-they should, in the mean time, apply themselves to take the oaths of
-allegiance and supremacy and the test, as the law requires, and when
-that was done in both Houses, his Majesty would then acquaint them with
-the reasons why he called them to Parliament.
-
-Thereupon the Commons withdrew, and went down to their own House, and
-(as I have been informed) forthwith chose Sir John Trevor to be their
-speaker.
-
-In the mean time, the Lords went about the taking of the oath of
-allegiance, and supremacy, and the test; and in the first place, the
-Lord Keeper took the oaths and test singly; and then the Lords in their
-order, beginning with the Barons, and ending at the Archbishop of
-Canterbury.
-
-When that business was over, the Lords called to go to prayers, and
-the Bishop of Bath and Wells read prayers, he being Junior Bishop.
-When prayers were ended, the Lords that were lately created by new
-patents, were introduced, according to the usual solemnity, that is to
-say, the Lord Keeper went below the bar, and being attended with the
-Usher of the Black Rod, and Sir W. Dugdale, King at Arms, and the Lord
-Marshall, and the Lord Great Chamberlain, and two other Barons (for
-Barons introduce Barons, and Earls do introduce Earls, &c.), the patent
-was carried by my Lord Keeper, and laid at his Majesty’s footstool, at
-the throne, he kneeling; and then he took his patent up, and carried it
-to his side upon the Woolsack, and then delivered it to the Clerk of
-the Parliament, who read it, and after the reading of it, he was, by
-the Lords and Officers aforesaid, brought to his seat upon the Barons’
-bench, from thence he went to his place upon the woolsack, which is his
-seat as Speaker to the Lords’ House.
-
-The rest of the Lords were introduced in the same manner, only they
-went out of the House to bring in their patents; and so did the Earl
-Marshall, and the Lord Great Chamberlain, and Sir William Dugdale, and
-the Usher of the Black Rod go out of the House to fetch them in; but
-the Lord Keeper did not go out of the House, because he being Speaker,
-ought not to be absent from the House, while its sitting, and that is
-the reason why he did not go out.
-
-The Lords that were introduced were these:--First, Lord Keeper; second,
-Lord Treasurer; third, Lord President; fourth, Duke of Beaufort; three
-Earls, _i.e._, Earl Maclesfield, Earl Berkley, Earl Nottingham; three
-Viscounts, Viscount Hatton, Viscount Weymouth, Viscount Townsend. The
-Barons that were introduced were Dartmouth, Stawell, Churchill, Wemen;
-there were more, but I do not now remember their names, but I will
-hereafter insert them.
-
-Then all those Lords that were introduced took the oath of allegiance
-and supremacy, and the test; and so went into their seats. And this was
-about 3 of the clock in the afternoon.
-
-Then the Lord Privy Seal moved the House in the behalf of the three
-Popish Lords, that were upon bail to appear at the bar of the Lords’
-House the first day of the Parliament, and he produced a petition
-from them, which was read; and in it they set forth, that they were
-impeached of high treason, and imprisoned for five years, and upwards,
-upon the single testimony of Titus Oates, who was found guilty of
-perjury by several indictments, and they prayed to be set at liberty,
-with reparation of their honours.
-
-Then the Earl of Chesterfield moved the House in behalf of the Earl of
-Danby, and told their Lordships that he had a petition from the Earl of
-Danby, and prayed it might be read; and it was ordered to be read by
-the Clerk. The purport of his petition was to shew to the Lords, that
-he had been impeached and imprisoned for above four years, merely upon
-suggestion, without oath, and prayed their Lordships’ favour for his
-enlargement.
-
-This petition of the Earl of Danby was more modest than the other
-Lords’ petition, which made the Lord Keeper observe, and say to the
-House, that the prayer of the Earl of Danby’s petition was different
-from the prayer of the Popish Lords’ petition; for they desired to be
-enlarged forthwith with reparation. And the Earl of Danby prayed either
-to have his trial, or to renew his bail, or to have such directions as
-their Lordships should think meet in his case.
-
-The Lord Keeper’s intimation was not taken well by my Lord Danby’s
-friends; and therefore the Earl of Chesterfield, Lord High Chamberlain,
-and others stood, and moved successively, that the Earl of Danby’s
-case was the same with the Popish Lords, _i.e._, imprisonment and
-impeachment without oath, and therefore the remedy was the same.
-
-Upon these motions, the House came to this resolution and order,
-_i.e._, they ordered that the Lords should be called in, and stand
-at the bar, to whom the Lord Keeper said that the House had read their
-petition, and had given order to record or enter the appearance, and
-that they should withdraw, and attend the House the first time they sat
-after this day, to know the further pleasure of the House as to their
-petitions.
-
-The Lord Butler moved in behalf of the Earl of Tyrone, and he appeared
-at the bar, and had the same answer as the other Lords, viz., to attend
-at the next sitting day.
-
-When this was done the House adjourned during pleasure, and the King
-withdrew into the Prince’s lodgings for a quarter of an hour, and
-the Lords went to the adjacent rooms to refresh themselves; and in a
-quarter of an hour the King returned into the House, and the Lords into
-their places, and then the House was resumed.
-
-Thereupon the King withdrew, and presently came in his robes, and his
-crown upon his head, attended with the officers of state and heralds
-as aforesaid, and sat on his throne, and then the Usher of the Black
-Rod went down to call the Commons, who forthwith, with Sir John Trevor,
-their Speaker, attended at the bar of the House, and said (having made
-their bows or _congé_ of reverence) that the Commons assembled in
-Parliament had made choice of him for their Speaker, and that he was
-sensible of his great disabilities to undergo that weighty task, and
-thereupon prayed his Majesty, that he would graciously be pleased to
-command the House of Commons to go down and choose another Speaker.
-
-The King having heard his disabling harangue, whispered the Lord
-Keeper; and then the Lord Keeper (from behind the Chair of State) said,
-“Sir John Trevor, the King hath commanded me to tell you, that he is
-well apprised of your parts and zeal to serve him, and the Commons,
-and therefore he approves of their choice, and admits you to be the
-Speaker.”
-
-Then the Speaker, in a short speech (read out of his paper, which was
-the first time that I observed a Speaker read any speech) expressed
-his thankfulness for his Majesty’s good opinion of him, and his parts,
-and promised to do his duty zealously and loyally, and then prayed
-(after the usual manner) that the Commons might have (1) their freedom
-of speech and (2) freedom from arrest, and (3) access to his Majesty to
-deliver their addresses, &c.
-
-Again the King called to the Lord Keeper, and spake privately to him;
-and then the Lord Keeper told the Speaker, that the King had granted
-their petitions; and so the Commons and the Speaker were dismissed. And
-when the company was withdrawn, and the House clear of the people that
-thronged there, the doors were shut, and then the Lord Lovelace called
-to the Clerk to be sworn, and tendered himself to take the test.
-
-But the Lord Keeper said that by the order of the House he should have
-offered himself to do that business in the morning after prayers, and
-therefore he could not be sworn that day.
-
-Then the House called to adjourn, and they did adjourn, that is, the
-Lord Keeper as Speaker adjourned the House until Friday, at nine of the
-clock in the morning.
-
-
- _Friday 22 May, 1685._
-
-The Lords met in their House, and in their robes that day. In the
-Lords’ House there was a canopy of state for the Queen Consort set up
-in the Lords’ House, near the Archbishop’s seat. The Queen came into
-the House about ten of the clock, and was in the House, while the House
-went to prayers.
-
-In the same seat with her, that is with the Queen, sat the Prince of
-Denmark, and the Princess Anne, his consort.
-
-About eleven of the clock, the King came to the House in his robes and
-attended as aforesaid, and sat upon his throne. And immediately the
-Commons, with their Speaker, came to the bar of the Lords’ House, at
-which time the King made a gracious speech, which is in print, and it
-is his first speech to the Parliament. The Lords and Commons hummed
-joyfully and loudly at those parts of it which concerned our religion,
-and the established government.
-
-When the King’s speech was ended, the Commons went down to their own
-House, where, as I have been told, they forthwith voted the King’s
-revenue to be settled upon him for life.
-
-The Lords, after reading an order _pro formâ_, chose committees for
-receiving and trying of petitions, committees for privileges and for
-the journal book.
-
-The next thing was a motion made by the Lord Newport, and seconded by
-others, against several Lords that were minors or under 21 years, who
-would sit in the Lords’ House against the order of the House.
-
-In fine, the minor Lords were ordered to withdraw, and told that they
-were not to sit there until they attained 21 years of age.
-
-Then the Lords took unto consideration the petition of the imprisoned
-Lords, and after a warm debate, they came to the question about
-vacating an order of the House made anno 1678 about the continuance
-of impeachments after the dissolution of Parliament. The question was
-carried for the vacating of that order, and by that means the three
-Lords were _ipso facto_ set at liberty.
-
-Its observable that there was not above nine Lords in the negative, and
-there was above 80 in the affirmative at the question.
-
-The same day there was a bill brought in and read against clandestine
-marriages, and then the House adjourned; only they voted thanks to the
-King for his gracious speech, and attended the King at the banquetting
-house, with the House of Commons, to give their thanks at 4 o’clock
-that day.
-
-
- _Saturday 23 of May._
-
-The House met about ten of the clock, and after prayers, as is usual,
-some orders, _pro formâ_, were read, and then some Lords were sworn.
-
-Then several petitions for appeals from decrees in chancery were read
-and admitted.
-
-Then the bill against clandestine marriages was read 2nd time and
-committed.
-
-The House fell upon consideration of Argyle’s declaration, which was
-by his Majesty’s order communicated to the House. It was a treasonable
-declaration, inviting his friends and vassals to take arms and oppose
-the King, whom he traitorously called a tyrant and usurper in that
-wicked paper.
-
-The House returned thanks to his Majesty for imparting that matter unto
-the Lords, and they declared Argyle to be a traitor, and that they
-would be ready with their lives and fortunes to stand by his Majesty
-in the defence of his person, crown and dignity against that traitor
-and all his enemies. And they sent a message to the Commons for their
-concurrence in that vote, who sent answer that they did readily concur.
-
-Then an address was made to the King by the Lords of the White Staves,
-to know when both Houses might wait upon his Majesty, to give him
-thanks for communicating unto them, the designs of Argyle, and to
-present their declaration upon the subject matter of his traiterous
-declaration.
-
-The King’s answer was, that he would be waited upon at 5 of the clock
-in the afternoon in the banquetting house.
-
-Then the house adjourned till Monday.
-
-Both houses attended the King at the banquetting house at 5 of the
-clock on Saturday.
-
-[This journal is all in the Bishop of Norwich’s (Dr. Lloyd) own
-hand.]”--_MS. in the University Library, Cambridge._
-
-
- No. XIV.--Vol. II., p. 139.
-
-James, towards the close of the year 1687, contemplated the calling of
-a Parliament. There is a collection of papers in the Bodleian Library,
-Oxford, to which my attention has been directed by the learned and
-courteous librarian, the Rev. Mr. Coxe, containing interrogations,
-addressed to Justices of the Peace and others, as to whether persons
-were likely to be returned who would pledge themselves to vote for
-taking off the tests and penal laws respecting religion. The following
-extract from a letter by John Eston, dated Bedford, November 22, 1687,
-is very curious:--“My Lord,--Since your honour spake with me at Bedford
-I have conferred with the heads of the Dissenters, and particularly
-with Mr. Margetts and Mr. Bunyon, whom your Lordship named to me. The
-first of these was Judge Advocate in the Army under the Lord General
-Monk, when the late King was restored; the other is the pastor to the
-dissenting congregation in this town. I find them all to be unanimous
-for electing only such members of Parliament as will certainly vote
-for repealing all the tests and penal laws touching religion, and they
-hope to steer all their friends and followers accordingly; so that if
-the Lord Lieutenant will cordially assist with his influence over the
-Church party, there cannot be in human reason any doubt of our electing
-two such members.” Again, December 6, 1687, the same writer says:--“The
-Dissenters are firm for us, but the Churchmen are implacable against
-us.”--_MSS., Vol. I., Penal Laws of Test._
-
-
-
-
- INDEX.
-
-
- Abney, i. 431
-
- Acts, Indemnity and Oblivion, i. 126
- Uniformity, 187, 229, 245–255
- Effects of the Act, 261, 270
- Conventicle, 322–327, 388
- Five Mile, 345–354
- Test, 425–428
- For better observance of Lord’s Day, 465
- For Improvement of Small Livings, 467
-
- Adams, Alderman, i. 148
-
- Adda, D’, Papal Nuncio, ii. 109, 129, 132
-
- Albemarle, Duke of, _see_ Monk
-
- Alleine, Joseph, i. 264
- His Writings, ii. 443
- His spiritual life, 494–497
-
- Allybone, one of the Judges at the Bishops’ Trial, ii. 153, 155
-
- Alsop, Vincent, ii. 122
-
- Ambrose, Isaac, ii. 444
-
- Andrewes, Bishop, i. 219; ii. 259, 328, 406
-
- Angier, John, i. 291, 484; ii. 218
-
- Anglesea, Earl of, i. 114
-
- Annesley, Dr., i. 363, 394; ii. 57, 496
-
- Ann Hyde, Duchess of York, i. 452
-
- Argyle, Earl of, his Trial and Execution, ii. 97
-
- Arlington, Lord, _see_ Sir Henry Bennet
-
- Arminianism, ii. 397, 406–413
-
- Army, Discontent of, i. 22, 42
- Petitions, 23, 25
- Violence against Richard, 24
- Difficulty in managing it, 67
- Meets the King at Blackheath, 76
- Disbanding of Old Army, 86
- Its Religious Character, 88
-
- Ash, i. 100, 101, 102
-
- Ashby, i. 64
-
- Ashenden, Thomas, ii. 204
-
- Ashley, _see_ Sir A. A. Cooper
-
- Ashurst, Sir Henry, ii. 95, 248
-
- Atkins, Robert, i. 278
-
- Atkins, Sir Robert, i. 379
-
- Aubony, Lord, i. 51
-
- Aubrey, i. 474
-
- Axtell, i. 126
-
- Aylesbury, Countess of, ii. 57
-
-
- Bacon, Lord, i. 254; ii. 506
-
- Bacon, Sir Edmund, ii. 206
-
- Bagshawe, Edward, i. 293
-
- Balsh, Justice, ii. 56
-
- Bampfield, Francis, ii. 75, 174
-
- Baptists, i. 9, 10, 138, 144, 395
- Overtures made by them to Charles, 31
- Forbidden to meet in large numbers, 143
- Not represented at Savoy Conference, 195
- Amongst the ejected, 281
- Persecution of them, 296
- Laws against them, 321
- Their Sufferings, ii. 73, 171
- Treatment of them by James II., 106
- Their Churches, 171
- Particular and General, 172
- Their Confession of Faith, 172
- Strict and Open, 174
- Broadmead Records, 175, 497–500
- Accused of Schism, 320
-
- Barclay, David, ii. 377
-
- Barclay, Robert, his Friendship with Penn, ii. 377
- Similarity in their Writings, 377
- His Theological Teaching, 378–380
-
- Barillon, ii. 114
-
- Barkstead, Colonel John, i. 256
-
- Barlow, Bishop of Lincoln, i. 379; ii. 192, 197
- His Account of Scheme of Comprehension, i. 381–385
-
- Barrow, Dr. Isaac, ii. 251, 395, 436
- His Long Sermons, 211
- His Travels and Studies, 311
- His Theology, 311–315
- His Defence of Protestantism, 316
- His Sermons, 329
-
- Bartholomew’s Day, i. 278–282
-
- Barton, ii. 457
-
- Barwick, Dr., i. 125, 174
-
- Barwick, Dr. John, i. 156, 225
- His Correspondence with Clarendon, 36
- Goes to Breda, 71
- His Exertions in Restoration of Cathedrals, ii. 181
-
- Basire, Isaac, i. 481
-
- Bates, Dr., i. 120, 168, 187, 191, 283, 302, 381, 439; ii. 29, 223
- Commissioner at the Savoy, i. 156, 165, 170
- His Farewell Sermons, 271
- Takes Oath of Non-resistance, 349
- Warrant for his Apprehension, ii. 57
- At Baxter’s Trial, 95
- His Sermons, 212
- His _Spiritual Perfection_, 443
-
- Bathurst, Dr. Ralph, ii. 255
-
- Baxter, Richard, i. 52, 58, 168, 259, 340, 362, 391, 449, 485, 503;
- ii. 26, 122, 214
- Preaches in St. Paul’s, i. 63
- His appointment as Chaplain at Court, 100
- His Address to Charles, 101
- Present at Sion College, 102
- Vindicates his Policy, 106
- His Petition to the King, 107
- At Worcester House, 115
- Buys the King’s Declaration, 117
- Receives the Offer of a Bishopric, 118
- Declines it, 119
- Complains of Letters being Intercepted, 145
- Leader of Presbyterians in Conference, 156, 164–166
- His Objections to the Prayer Book, 170
- His Reformed Liturgy, 180–182
- Composes Rejoinder to Bishops’ Answers, 183
- At Savoy Conference, 185–188
- His Account of his Brother Commissioners, 189
- Described by his Opponents, 190
- His Account of Conference presented to the King, 191
- Leaves the Establishment, 262
- Disapproves of Declaration of Indulgence, 298
- His Independence after being Ejected, 318
- Refuses to take Oath of Non-resistance, 351
- Charged with keeping an Unlawful Conventicle, 393
- His Imprisonment, 394
- Refuses a Pension, 410
- Overtures made to him respecting Comprehension, 438
- Tires of Disputation, ii. 69
- His Trial, 95
- Imprisonment, 96
- Release, 97
- His Views on Baptism, 170
- His Preaching, 210–212
- His Views on Observance of the Sabbath, 234
- His Interest in Missionary Work, 248
- His Writings on the Evidences of Revealed Religion, 391–394
- Incidents in his Early Life, 414
- His Theology, 415–420
- Resemblance between his Teaching and Howe’s, 427
- His Views on Baptism, 430
- On the Lord’s Supper, 432
- On the Ministry, 434
- His share in Anti-Popish Controversy, 436
- Works on Union, 441
- _Christian Directory_, and other Works, 445, 446
- His _Hymns_, 461
-
- Beamish, John, i. 409
-
- Beaufort, Duke of, ii. 91, 231
-
- Beaufort, Duchess of, ii. 231
-
- Beaulieu, Luke de, ii. 300
-
- Beaumont, Agnes, ii. 227
-
- Beaumont, Joseph, ii. 452
-
- Beddingfield, Colonel, ii. 248
-
- Behmen, Jacob, ii. 483
-
- Behn, Aphara, i. 356
-
- Bellarmine, ii. 285
-
- Bendish, Mrs., i. 431
-
- Benlowes, ii. 452
-
- Bennet, Sir Henry, Lord Arlington, i. 123; ii. 253
- Secretary of State, i. 293, 308, 336, 391
- Member of the Cabal, 401, 425
- Relinquishes his Secretaryship, 434
-
- Berry, Major-General, i. 430
-
- Bertie, Peregrine, i. 348
-
- Beveridge, ii. 79
-
- Biddle, John, the Father of Socinianism, ii. 365
- His Catechism, 367
-
- Biggin, ii. 56
-
- Billingsley, Nicholas, i. 291
-
- Birch, Colonel, i. 153, 379, 380, 386, 418
-
- Bishops, i. 83, 148, 248, 284, 463; ii. 204
- Censured by Hyde, i. 36
- Their Loyal Address, 71
- Nine of the Old Régime, 97
- Appointment of New Bishops, 98
- Answer to Proposals made by Presbyterians, 105
- At Worcester House, 114
- New Bishops Consecrated, 131
- At Savoy Conference, 156, 165, 184–188
- Convocation, 173
- Answers to Presbyterians’ Exceptions, 179
- Bill for Restoring them to Upper House, 197
- Take their Seats in Parliament, 209
- Their Revision of Prayer Book, 213, 219–222, 248
- Dioceses in Confusion, 226
- Issue Articles of Visitation, 289
- Effects of their Opposition to King’s Declaration, 300
- Deaths amongst them, 306
- Accounts of some of them, 470–504
- Manner of receiving James’ Declaration, ii. 120–122
- Lambeth Conference, 140
- The _Seven_, 140
- Their Petition, 144
- King’s Displeasure, 147
- Sent to the Tower, 150
- Trial, 153
- Acquittal, 155
- Revenues, 190
- Survey, 207
-
- Blackmore, i. 283
-
- Blagge, Margaret, _see_ Godolphin
-
- Blagge, ii. 475
-
- Blake, i. 273
-
- Blandford, Dr. Walter, i. 494
-
- Bloworth, Sir Thomas, i. 148
-
- Boscawen, Hugh, i. 153, 155
-
- Bowen, i. 432, 433, 442
-
- Bowles, Edward, i. 44, 277
-
- Boyle, Robert, ii. 248, 249
-
- Braham, Richard, i. 157
-
- Bramhall, i. 37; ii. 278, 318, 436
- Appointed Archbishop of Armagh, i. 133
- His Death, 307
- His Writings, ii. 303, 304
-
- Bramston, Sir John, ii. 130
-
- Brewster, i. 432
-
- Brideoake, Dr. Ralph, i. 501
-
- Bridge, i. 29
-
- Bridgeman, Chief Justice, i. 284, 348
- Lord Keeper, 380, 403
-
- Bridgeman, Dr., i. 207
-
- Bridgwater, Earl of, i. 231
-
- Bristol, Earl of, i. 86, 198, 298, 426
-
- Broderick, i. 22
-
- Broghill, Lord, i. 16, 23, 100
-
- Brooks, ii. 443
-
- Brown, Sir Richard, i. 148
-
- Browne, Sir Thomas, i. 287; ii. 214, 215
- His Religious Life, 485
- His Eccentricity, 486
- His Writings, 488
-
- Brownrigg, Bishop of Exeter, i. 37; ii. 142
-
- Buckingham, Duke of, i. 73, 75, 77, 86, 230, 245, 427, 434, 457
- Favours Toleration, 352
- A member of the Cabal, 401
- Raises Recruits, 457
- His Speech for a New Parliament, 461
- Committed to the Tower, 462
- Liberated, 462
- His Overtures to Nonconformists, ii. 40
- Chancellor of Cambridge, 253, 254
-
- Bull, Bishop of St. David’s, i. 492; ii. 213, 317, 424, 429
- His _Harmonia Apostolica_, 279–282
- Answers to his Book, 283
- His Violent Polemical Spirit, 285
- His _Defensio Fidei Nicenæ_, 285
- His Teaching compared with Barrow’s, 314
-
- Bunyan, John, i. 138, 316, 409, 414; ii. 175, 205, 227
-
- Burleigh, Cecil, Lord, Comparison between him and Lord Clarendon,
- i. 373
-
- Burnet, i. 256, 258, 392, 410; ii. 4, 67, 191
-
- Burnyeat, John, ii. 492–494
-
- Burret, Dr., i. 222
-
- Busby, Dr., i. 264
-
-
- Cabal Ministry, i. 400–403, 416, 434
-
- Calamy, Dr. Benjamin, ii. 74
-
- Calamy, Dr. Edmund, i. 58, 63, 68, 100, 169, 283, 302
- His Funeral Sermon for Ash, 277
- Offered a Bishopric, 120
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156, 164, 170, 183
-
- Calamy, Dr. (Historian), ii. 117
-
- Calvinism, ii. 274, 397–405, 406, 408, 410
-
- Campbell, ii. 392
-
- Care, Henry, ii. 123
-
- Carlile, Lawson, i. 416
-
- Carr, Colonel, i. 364
-
- Carr, John, ii. 253
-
- Cartwright, Thomas, Bishop of Chester, ii. 109, 137, 139, 323
-
- Carver, Richard, i. 412
-
- Caryl, i. 194, 363, 394
-
- Case, i. 68, 69
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156
-
- Castell, ii. 332
-
- Castelmaine, Earl of, ii. 104
-
- Cathedrals, Injuries Repaired, ii. 180
- Furniture, 184
- Processions, 186
- Worship, 188
-
- Catherine of Braganza, Queen of Charles II., i. 268, 275, 276, 294,
- 450
-
- Cavendish, William, Marquis of Newcastle, ii. 490
-
- Cawdray, ii. 444
-
- Cellier, ii. 21
-
- Chaise, Père la, ii. 3
-
- Chamberlayne, ii. 457
-
- Chandler, John, i. 290
-
- Charles I., i. 84
- Churches named in his honour, 177
- Alexandrian MS. sent to him by Cyrillus, ii. 332
-
- Charles II., i. 6, 43, 51, 86, 124, 141, 191, 213, 321, 336, 369,
- 392, 424, 435, 441, 457; ii. 2, 10, 18, 45, 141, 187, 245, 300
- Suggestions made to him by his friends, i. 53, 54
- His Letters to Monk and the Commons, 60, 61
- Proclaimed King, 63
- Invited back without conditions, 65–67
- Presbyterian Deputation visit him at the Hague, 68
- His Attachment to the Liturgy, 69
- His Character and Opinions, 73, 74
- Lands at Dover, 75
- Addresses presented to him, 77–80
- His Counsellors, 83
- His Speech to the two Houses, 95
- Appoints Commission to compose Differences in Ecclesiastical
- Affairs, 96
- Baxter’s Address to him, 101
- Presbyterian Proposals, 104
- Baxter’s Petition, 107
- At Worcester House, 114–116
- His new Declaration, 117
- Opens New Parliament, 154
- Coronation, 161, 166, 167
- Cabinet Meetings, 201
- Speeches at Opening of Parliaments, 209, 416; ii. 31
- Sanctions Revised Copy of Prayer Book, i. 229
- Aims at a Dispensing Power, 232
- Gives Assent to Uniformity Bill, 245
- Head of Roman Catholic Party who concur in the Act, 252
- Unpopularity of his Government, 267, 268
- His Marriage, 275
- Presbyterians’ Petition, 283
- At Hampton Court, 284
- Holds a Council, 284
- His Declaration of Indulgence, 296, 303, 403–408
- Toleration towards Colonists, 311
- His Disapproval of Dutch War, 344
- Interest in Sufferers by Fire, 359
- Empty Exchequer, 367
- Anxious for Union amongst Protestants, 386
- Grants an Audience to Presbyterians, 390
- His Interviews with Carver and Moore, 412
- Releases Quakers from Prison, 414
- His Popularity Declines, 417
- Gives Assent to Test Act, 427
- Withdraws Declaration of Indulgence, 428
- His Desire for Absolutism, 437
- Suspected of being a Romanist, 450
- Signs a Treaty with Louis XIV., 451
- Proposes Terms of Compromise in reference to Succession, ii. 20
- His Illness, 59
- His despotism, 63
- His Proficiency in Kingcraft, 69
- Offers an Asylum to French Refugees, 76
- Invites his Brother to seat at Council-table, 81
- His Licentiousness, 85
- Scenes at Whitehall, 86
- His Death, 87
- Touches for King’s Evil, 214
- His Visit to Cambridge, 253
-
- Charlton, Sergeant, i. 241, 243
-
- Charnock, Dr., ii. 212
-
- Charrochi, ii. 137
-
- Chase, Thomas, ii. 223
-
- Chaworth, Dr., i. 222
-
- Chelsea College and Hospital, ii. 245
-
- Chillingworth, William, his Theological Opinions, ii. 334–336
-
- Churches, Architecture, ii. 182
- Furniture, 183
- Vestments and Manner of Worship, 185
-
- Churchill, Lord, ii. 128
-
- Clagett, ii. 117
-
- Clare, Sir Ralph, i. 52
-
- Clarendon, _see_ Hyde
-
- Clark, Samuel, the Episcopalian, ii. 332
-
- Clarke, Samuel, the Puritan, i. 121, 349; ii. 332
- Commissioner at Savoy Conference, i. 156, 165, 170
-
- Clarkson, David, i. 409
-
- Clergy, i. 89, 90, 261; ii. 194
- Their Petitions, i. 99, 321
- Taxation, 329
- Their conduct during the Plague, 336
- Their Miserable Condition, 505
- Ignorance, 507
- Costume, 509
- Character, 510
- Articles of Visitation, 509–512
- Writings against Errors of Church of Rome, ii. 117
- Change in them, 157
- Ecclesiastical Tribunals, 201
- Discipline exercised on them by Bishops, 204
- Private Life, 228
-
- Cleveland, Duchess of, i. 500
-
- Clewer, ii. 202
-
- Cleypole, Lord, i. 18
-
- Clifford, Sir Thomas, i. 401, 427, 429, 434
-
- Coffee Houses, i. 443
-
- Colbert, i. 397, 420, 429
-
- Coleman, ii. 3, 6, 9
-
- Colledge, Stephen, his Trial and Execution, ii. 45–49
-
- Collinges, Dr., ii. 56
-
- Collins, Dr., i. 156
-
- Colonies, Ecclesiastical Policy towards them, i. 310, 311
- Spiritual Destitution, ii. 247
- Missionary Work, 248
-
- Compton, ii. 110, 140
-
- Commons, House of, i. 23, 24, 468
- Members excluded by Pride restored, 48
- Solemn League and Covenant reappears, 50
- Letter from the King, 60
- Conference with the Lords, 62
- Debate on Church’s Settlement, 88
- Bill founded on King’s Declaration, 121–124
- Uniformity Bill, 187, 201, 204, 229–244
- Their Intolerance, 250
- Zeal for the Established Church, 303
- Bills against Papists and Nonconformists, 304
- Bill for better Observance of the Sabbath, 305
- Their Opposition to Measures for Comprehension, 386
- Bill for Reviving Conventicle Act, 388
- Country Party Predominant, 418
- Exclusion Bill, 469; ii. 20
- Complain of Trick on Toleration Bill, 30, 32
- Grand Committee of Religion, 93
- James II. annoyed with their Proceedings, 94
-
- Conant, Dr., i. 156, 288; ii. 52, 198
-
- Convocation, i. 158
- Writs drawn up, 159
- Election of Members, 168
- First Meeting since 1640, 173–178
- Resume their Deliberation, 213–222
- Subscribe Book of Common Prayer, 223
- Accomplish no Alterations in the Canons, 226
- Power diminishes, 331
-
- Conway, Lord, i. 141; ii. 41, 43
-
- Conyers, Tobias, ii. 410
-
- Cooper, Sir Anthony Ashley, Earl of Shaftesbury, i. 34, 56, 86,
- 416, 437; ii. 4, 33, 41
- A Member of the Cabal, i. 401
- Lord Chancellor, 403, 426
- Dismissed from Office, 434
- Desires a Dissolution of Parliament, 460
- Supports the Duke of Buckingham, 462
- Committed to the Tower, 462
- Obtains his Liberty, 462
- Accused of entering into a Conspiracy against the King, ii. 50
- His Imprisonment, 50
- Dies in Holland, 50
- Effects of his Schemes, 64
-
- Cooper, Dr., i. 156
-
- Corbet, John, i. 378
-
- Cosin, Dr. John, i. 37, 97, 114, 159, 222, 231, 248, 290, 406; ii.
- 236, 278, 320, 436
- Consecrated Bishop of Durham, i. 131
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156, 163, 184, 188
- Described by Baxter, 189
- His Notes on the Prayer Book, 219, 221
- Account of him, 478–481
- Improves the See of Durham, ii. 191
- His Theological Opinions, 299–301
- Declares against Sectaries, 323
- Preaches abroad, 328
-
- Cotterel, Sir Charles, ii. 130
-
- Court of Wards, i. 97
- Of Delegates, ii. 200
- High Commission, 200
- Arches, 201
-
- Covel, Dr., ii. 81
-
- Coventry, Thomas, i. 64
-
- Coventry, Sir W., i. 418, 419, 420, 423; ii. 247
-
- Crabb, John, i. 294
-
- Crabb, Nathaniel, i. 211
-
- Crabb, Peter, i. 294
-
- Cradock, i. 439
-
- Crashaw, Richard, ii. 452
-
- Cressey, Hugh Paulin, i. 453
-
- Crew, Bishop of Durham, ii. 111, 139
-
- Crew, Lord, ii. 490
-
- Crisp, Sir Nicholas, i. 148
-
- Croft, Herbert, Bishop of Hereford, i. 306, 503; ii. 2, 139, 188,
- 192, 193
- Publishes _Naked Truth_, i. 447–449
- Account of him, i. 487; ii. 2
-
- Crofton, Zachary, i. 150, 394
-
- Cromwell, Henry, i. 17
-
- Cromwell, Oliver, i. 49, 85, 347
- Confusion after his Death, 5, 6
- His Acts set aside, 21
- His Corpse disinterred and hanged at Tyburn, 130
-
- Cromwell, Richard, i. 20, 26, 140
- Is acknowledged Protector, 15
- His Tolerance, 16
- Calls a Parliament, 17
- His Opening Speech, 18
- Is personally Popular, 22
- Summons a Council, 23
- Is forced to dissolve Parliament, 24
- Retires into Private Life, 27
- Rumour of attempt to restore him, 354
-
- Cudworth, Dr. Ralph, ii. 251, 253
- His Intellectual System, 349–352, 387
-
- Culpepper, Nicholas, i. 85
-
- Cyrillus, ii. 332
-
-
- Dalgarno, George, ii. 248
-
- Danby, Earl of (_see_ Osborne)
-
- Dangerfield’s Plot, ii. 21, 22
-
- Davenant, Bishop, ii. 406
-
- Davenport, ii. 412
-
- Declaration of Indulgence, i. 296–301, 403–408
- Debate on Declaration, 418
- Withdrawn, 428
- James II.’s Declaration, ii. 118–125
-
- Defoe, Daniel, ii. 5
-
- Delaune, Thomas, ii. 73
-
- Denham, Thomas, i. 313
-
- Derby, Countess of, i. 501
-
- Derby, Earl of, i. 353, 501
-
- Desborough, Colonel John, i. 22, 23, 430
-
- Dillingham, i. 225
-
- Dobson, ii. 137
-
- Dod, i. 484
-
- Dodwell, ii. 117
-
- Doe, Charles, ii. 205
-
- Dolben, John, Bishop of Rochester, i. 478, 498, 499
-
- Donne, Dr., ii. 210, 328, 469
-
- Doolittle, Thomas, i. 363, 408
-
- Douglas, Bishop, ii. 392
-
- Drake, Commissioner at the Savoy, i. 156
-
- Dryden, ii. 115, 459
-
- Dugdale, ii. 49
-
- Duppa, Bishop of Salisbury, i. 37, 98
- Translated to Winchester, 131
- His Death, 306
- Expends large Sums in Charity, ii. 192
-
- Dutch, i. 344, 366, 402
- Defeated by the English Fleet, 355
- Alarm the Nation again, 366
-
-
- Earle (or Erle), John, Dean of Westminster, i. 156, 160
- Bishop of Salisbury, 491
-
- Ebury, Elizabeth, ii. 115
-
- Edwards, Jonathan, ii. 401
-
- Eliot, John, Missionary to the Indians, ii. 248, 249
-
- Ellwood, ii. 101
-
- Episcopalians, i. 5, 34, 39, 52, 53, 77, 93, 94, 161, 292
- Their violence in Elections for New Parliament, 57
- Their Joy at prospect of King’s return, 71
- Recovery of their sway in Parliament, 88
- Their Refusal to make Concessions to the Presbyterians, 105
- Differences between the two Parties, 107–112
- Their Scheme of Comprehension, 381–383
- Secure the Succession to James II., ii. 116
- His Treachery towards them, 116
- Their Cathedrals and Churches, 180–185
- Revenues, 190–198
- Ecclesiastical Courts, 198–205
- Their numbers as compared with Nonconformists, 207
- Contrasts in Preaching, 209
- Their Observance of the Sabbath, 235
- Recreations, 237
- Charities, 243
- Examples of the Teaching of High Anglicans, 268–303
- Semi-Anglicans, 305–311
- Sermon Writers, 328
- Critics, 331
- Liberal Orthodox, 335
- Latitudinarians, 341
- Points of Resemblance between them and the Puritan Divines, 394
- Points of Difference, 396
- Biographical Sketches of Anglicans, 468–491
-
- Essex, Earl of, ii. 19
-
- Evans, George, ii. 49
-
- Evelyn, John, i. 38, 43, 91, 277; ii. 86, 124, 142, 183, 231
- Biographical Sketch of him, 471–474
- His Friendship with Margaret Godolphin, 475–477
-
- Ewins, Thomas, ii. 497, 500
-
-
- Fairfax, Lord, i. 313
-
- Fairfax, Dr., ii. 134
-
- Fairfull, Archbishop of Glasgow, i. 227
-
- Falconbridge, Lord, i. 23, 27
-
- Falconbridge, Lady, ii. 28
-
- Falkland, i. 67
-
- Fanshaw, Sir Richard, ii. 251
-
- Farindon, Anthony, his Theological Teaching, ii. 339–341
-
- Farmer, Anthony, ii. 133
-
- Faucet, John, i. 433
-
- Feake, i. 140
-
- Featley, Dr. Daniel, i. 91
-
- Fell, John, Bishop of Oxford, ii. 196, 257, 332
-
- Ferne, Dr. Henry, Dean of Ely, i. 175
- Promoted to the Bishopric of Chester, 225
-
- Feversham, Lord, ii. 87
-
- Fiennes, i. 16
-
- Fifth Monarchy Men, i. 5, 41, 140, 144, 325
-
- Finch, Sir Heneage, i. 435, 437; ii. 234
-
- Finch, Sir John, i. 141
-
- Fire of London, i. 357–362
-
- Firman, Thomas, ii. 246
-
- Flavel, John, his _Husbandry Spiritualized_, i. 318; ii. 444
-
- Fleetwood, i. 17, 22, 26, 48, 430
- His Power, 25, 34
-
- Fogg, Dr., i. 288; ii. 61
-
- Ford, i. 65
-
- Ford, Sir Richard, i. 148
-
- Ford, Simon, ii. 457
-
- Foster, Lady, ii. 256
-
- Foulke, Alderman, i. 148
-
- Fownes, ii. 176
-
- Fox, George, i. 258, 415
- Petitions Charles for Release of Quakers, 275
- The Father of Quakerism, ii. 369
-
- Frampton, ii. 233
-
- Francis, Alban, ii. 132
-
- Francklin, ii. 201
-
- Frankland, ii. 226
-
- Franklin, i. 363
-
- French Protestants, ii. 76–81
-
- Frewen, Accepted, Bishop of Lichfield and Coventry, i. 98
- Promoted to the Archbishopric of York, 131
- Member of Savoy Conference, 156, 165
- His Death, 495
- Authorship of _Whole Duty of Man_ ascribed to him, ii. 330
-
- Fuller, Andrew, ii. 419
-
- Fuller, Dr. Thomas, i. 479; ii. 442
-
- Fuller, Dr. William, ii. 196
-
- Fulwood, i. 103
-
-
- Gale, Theophilus, his Writings on Evidences of Natural Religion,
- ii. 387
-
- Garroway, i. 418, 421
-
- Garthwaite, Thomas, ii. 457
-
- Gasches, i. 52
-
- Gataker, ii. 283, 284, 446
-
- Gauden, John, i. 58, 114, 140, 150, 160, 230, 474
- Consecrated Bishop of Exeter, 131, 132
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156, 163
- Described by Baxter, 189
- His Death, 306
-
- Gaunt, Elizabeth, her Trial and Execution, ii. 98–100
-
- Germain, St., i. 458
-
- Gibbons, Grinling, ii. 189
-
- Giffard, Bonaventura, ii. 139
-
- Gifford, i. 439
-
- Glanvill, Joseph, ii. 356
-
- Glemham, Henry, Bishop of St. Asaph, i. 499
-
- Gloucester, Duke of, i. 75, 77
-
- Glynne, John, i. 152, 153
-
- Godden, i. 117
-
- Godfrey, Sir Edmondbury, ii. 3, 5, 8
-
- Godolphin, Sidney, ii. 475
-
- Godolphin, Margaret, ii. 231
- Her Piety, 475–478
-
- Goodridge, Richard, ii. 457
-
- Goodwin, John, ii. 418
- An Arminian, ii. 407
- His Theological Opinions, 407, 409, 410, 450
-
- Goodwin, Dr. Thomas, i. 294, 363; ii. 418, 419, 450
- His Views on Baptism, ii. 170
- Stand-points in his Theology: _Faith_, 397
- _Election_, 398
- _Regeneration_, 400
- His Works compared with Owen’s, 401
- His Views on Baptism, 430
- On the Lord’s Supper, 432
- His Commentaries, 447
-
- Gordon, Catherine, ii. 377
-
- Gother, John i. 453; ii. 117
-
- Gough, Major-General, i. 259, 260
-
- Gouge, ii. 246
-
- Gower, Dr., i. 489
-
- Gower, Sir Thomas, i. 313
-
- Graffen, i. 150
-
- Grafton, Duke of, ii. 130
-
- Greathead, Thomas, i. 312
-
- Greene, i. 283
-
- Gregory, ii. 194
-
- Greenhill, ii. 447
-
- Grenville, Sir John, i. 60
-
- Griffin, i. 211
-
- Griffith, Bishop of St. Asaph, i. 290, 499
-
- Griffiths, i. 363; ii. 65
-
- Grimston, Mrs., her death, ii. 232
-
- Grimston, Sir Harbottle, i. 61; ii. 232
- Speaker of Convention Parliament, i. 58
- Member of New Parliament, 153
- Sketch of his Life, 506
-
- Grindal, Bishop, i. 217, 254
-
- Grosvenor, Sir Thomas, ii. 115
-
- Grotius, ii. 279
-
- Grove, i. 319; ii. 140
-
- Guilford, _see_ North
-
- Gunning, Peter, Bishop of Ely, i. 115, 220, 449, 502; ii. 11, 355
- At Savoy Conference, i. 156, 163, 187
- Described by Baxter, 189
- His Intolerance, 397
- His Death and Character, 489
-
- Gurnal, i. 288; ii. 442
-
- Gwynn, Nell, ii. 87, 141, 246
-
-
- Hacker, i. 126, 202
-
- Hacket, John, Bishop of Lichfield, i. 156, 248, 502
- Account of him, 481–483
- Labours in Restoration of his Cathedral, 481; ii. 180
-
- Hagger, i. 476
-
- Haines, ii. 115
-
- Hale, Sir Matthew, i. 62, 68, 124, 202, 380; ii. 214
- Draws up Comprehension Bill, i. 384
- Sketch of his Life, ii. 478–481
-
- Hales, Sir Edward, ii. 108
-
- Hales, John, his Theological Teaching, ii. 338, 406
-
- Halifax, Viscount, ii. 19, 93, 104
- His Character, 41
- A “Trimmer,” 42
-
- Hall, George, Bishop of Chester, i. 263, 306
-
- Hall, Dr., ii. 196, 198
-
- Hamilton, Bishop of Galloway, i. 227
-
- Hammond, Dr., i. 52; ii. 278, 330, 386
- His Intimacy with Sanderson, 306
- His Doctrinal Opinions, 307
- His _Practical Catechism_, 307
- His _Paraphrase_ and _Annotations_, 287, 333
-
- Hampden, i. 67
-
- Hanmer, Mrs., ii. 220
-
- Harcourt, Count D’, ii. 76
-
- Harcourt, Sir Philip, i. 464
-
- Harding, Thomas, ii. 223
-
- Hardy, i. 58
- Preaches before the King at the Hague, 70
-
- Hardy, Matthew, i. 199
-
- Harrington, John, ii. 186
-
- Harrison, Major-General, i. 5
- His Trial and Execution, 128
-
- Hart, Theophilus, ii. 202
-
- Hartlib, Samuel, ii. 216
-
- Hartopp, Sir John, i. 430
-
- Haselrig, Sir Arthur, i. 5, 17, 20, 25, 34, 58, 126
-
- Hatton, Sir Christopher, ii. 191
-
- Havers, Henry, ii. 102
-
- Hawes, Richard, i. 292
-
- Haywood, Dr., i. 170
-
- Heber, Bishop, ii. 294, 299
-
- Hellier, ii. 176
-
- Henchman, Dr. Humphrey, i. 222, 290, 491
- His appointment to the Bishopric of Salisbury, 131
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156
- Described by Baxter, 189
- His Translation to the Bishopric of London, 492
- His Death, 493
-
- Henrietta, Maria, i. 84, 268
-
- Henrietta, Duchess of Orleans, i. 451
-
- Henry, Philip, i. 65, 138, 206, 207, 409, 512
- His Difficulty with regard to Act of Uniformity, 263, 264
- His Refusal to take Oath of Non-Resistance, 352
- His Hospitality, ii. 219
- His Home Life, 200
-
- Henshaw, Joseph, Bishop of Peterborough, i. 493
-
- Herbert, Sir Henry, ii. 393
-
- Herbert, Lord, ii. 393
-
- Herbert, George, ii. 237, 393
-
- Hermann, Archbishop of Cologne, i. 216
-
- Herrick, Robert, ii. 461
-
- Heylyn, Dr. Peter, i. 112, 131, 158, 161; ii. 309, 316, 317, 395
- Commissioner at the Savoy, i. 156
- His Theology, ii. 288, 289
-
- Heyricke, i. 283
-
- Heywood, Nathaniel, i. 431; ii. 218
-
- Heywood, Oliver, i. 207, 351, 409; ii. 160, 226
- His Imprisonment, 71
- Family Meeting, 218
-
- Hickeringhill, i. 505
-
- Hicks, ii. 98
-
- Hobbes, The Malmesbury Philosopher, ii. 270, 304, 362
-
- Hoghton, Sir Charles, ii. 224
-
- Hoghton, Lady, ii. 224
-
- Holcroft, Francis, i. 316
-
- Holden, ii. 136
-
- Holdsworth, ii. 160
-
- Holles (or Hollis), i. 58, 86, 114
-
- Holloway, one of the Judges at Baxter’s trial, ii. 153, 155
-
- Hook, William, i. 286, 301, 302
-
- Hooker, Richard, ii. 268, 277, 429
- His _Ecclesiastical Polity_, 298, 324, 328, 434
-
- Hookes, Ellis, i. 415
-
- Horne, John, ii. 409
-
- Horton, Dr., i. 156, 288
-
- Hough, Dr. John, ii. 133–138
-
- Howard, Lord, i. 23, 187
-
- Howe, John, i. 26, 138, 194; ii. 29, 71, 103, 122, 223, 224, 426
- His Difficulties with respect to the Act of Uniformity, i. 264
- In Lord Massarene’s Family, 317
- Defends cause of Nonconformists, ii. 27
- Expostulates with Tillotson, 27
- His Interview with the Duke of Buckingham, 40
- His Sermon on Controversy, 69
- His Writings on Evidences of Natural Religion, 388–390
- His Puritanism, 421
- His System of Theology, 421
- Resemblance between his Teaching and Baxter’s, 427
- His Original Power, 429
- His Views on Baptism, 432
-
- Hubberthorn, Richard, i. 275
-
- Huish, Alexander, ii. 332
-
- Hyde, Edward, Earl of Clarendon, i. 31, 71, 86, 95, 101, 105, 154,
- 159, 198, 231, 299, 311, 328; ii. 248
- His Correspondence with Dr. Barwick, i. 36–38
- Prime Minister, 83
- His Attachment to Episcopal Church, 84
- Proposes a Meeting between the Court and Presbyterians, 114
- His Desire for the Restoration of the Establishment, 125
- His Interview with Presbyterians, 190
- Answerable for the Severity of the Act of Uniformity, 250
- Opposes King’s Declaration, 300
- Disapproves of Dutch War, 344
- Resigns the Great Seal, 368
- His Impeachment, 369
- His Letter to his Daughter, 370
- His Character, 371
- Comparison between him and Lord Burleigh, 373, 374
- His object, the Establishment of the Episcopal Church and
- Crushing of Dissent, 374
-
- Hyde, Laurence, Earl of Rochester, ii. 41, 43
- Appointed Lord Treasurer, 92
- Dismissed from Office, 105
-
- Hyde, Dr. Alexander, i. 491
-
- Hymnology, ii. 451
-
-
- Ince, i. 319
-
- Independents, during the Protectorate, i. 9
- Their Meetings, 29
- Lose their Political Influence, 48, 193
- Their Address to the King, 79
- Protest against Vernier’s Insurrection, 144
- Their Ejection, 281
- Their Hopes revive at King’s Declaration, 297
- Return Thanks for Indulgence, 408
- Their Numbers diminished, ii. 164
- Their Declaration of Faith, 166–168
- compared with Presbyterians, 168–170
- With Baptists, 171
- Accused of Schism, 320
-
- Ingoldsby, i. 59, 60
-
- Innocent XI., ii. 104–131
-
- Ireland, i. 37
- Consecration of Irish Bishops, 133
- James II. establishes a Roman Catholic Hierarchy in Ireland,
- ii. 114
-
- Ireton, Henry, i. 130
-
- Ironside, Gilbert, Bishop of Bristol, i. 494
-
- Isle of Man, i. 134
-
-
- Jackson, Commissioner at the Savoy, i. 156
-
- Jacomb, Dr. Thomas, i. 120, 317
- Commissioner at the Savoy Conference, 156, 165, 170, 187
- His Farewell Sermon, 272
- Preaches in London after the Fire, 363
- His Views on Baptism, 432
- His Death, 505
-
- James, Duke of York, afterwards James II., i. 75, 304, 328, 425;
- ii. 11, 21, 101
- Supports Provisions for Uniformity, i. 252
- Approves of Dutch War, 344
- His Energy at the time of the Fire, 359
- Pleads on behalf of Clarendon, 368
- Becomes a Roman Catholic, 452
- His Interview with Bishops, ii. 15
- Exclusion Bill, 20, 23, 25
- Bill dropped, 33
- Becomes a Member of the Council, 81
- Present at Death of Charles, 87
- Meets his Privy Councillors, 89
- His Duplicity, 90
- Declares himself a Roman Catholic, 90
- His Coronation, 92
- His Annoyance with proceedings of House of Commons, 94
- Violates the Constitution of his Country, 105
- His Treatment of the Persecuted Sects, 106
- His Declaration of Indulgence, 107, 119–125
- His Policy, 108–118
- His Attempt to establish Popery, 113–118
- Receives D’Adda as the Pope’s Ambassador, 129
- His anxiety for Promotion of Romanists, 131
- Dissolves Parliament, 132
- His Attack on the Universities, 132
- Visits Oxford, 135
- His Second Declaration, 139
- His Displeasure with the _Seven_ Bishops, 147
- Prosecutes them for a Misdemeanour, 149
-
- Jeffreys, Judge, ii. 72, 98, 111, 132, 134
- A Member of the Council, 81
- Proposes Release of Popish Recusants, 82
- His Political Power, 93
- His Behaviour at Baxter’s Trial, 95
-
- Jenkins, Sir Leoline, ii. 41, 43, 51, 59, 247
-
- Jenkyn, William, ii. 84
-
- Jermyn, Henry, ii. 104
-
- Jessy, i. 211; ii. 175
-
- Jews, Bill for their Suppression, i. 19
-
- Jones, Colonel Philip, i. 16
-
- Jordan, Elizabeth, ii. 175
-
- Juxon, Dr., Bishop of London, i. 97, 174
- His Translation to Canterbury, 131
- Crowns and anoints Charles II., 160, 167
- His Death, 307
-
-
- Keach, Benjamin, ii. 444
- His Hymns, 465, 467
-
- Keeling, Sergeant, i. 202, 203, 349
-
- Ken, Thomas, Bishop of Bath and Wells, ii. 87, 97, 278, 469
- One of the _Seven_ Bishops, 141, 145
-
- Kiffin, William, i. 211, 212; ii. 127, 175
-
- Kildare, John, Earl of, ii. 225
-
- Killegrew, Sir William, i. 54
-
- King, Lancaster Herald, ii. 207
-
- King, Henry, Bishop of Chichester, i. 98; ii. 457
- Commissioner at the Savoy, i. 156, 160
-
-
- Lake, Bishop of Chichester, one of the _Seven_ Bishops, ii. 140, 147
-
- Lamb, Philip, i. 274
-
- Lambert, i. 33, 44, 87, 126
- Dissolves Remains of Long Parliament, 39, 40
- His Outbreak, 58
- Taken Prisoner, 59
- His Son, ii. 225
-
- Laney, Dr. Benjamin, i. 503
- Appointed Bishop of Peterborough, 132
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156
- Translated to Lincoln, then to Ely, 488; ii. 191
-
- Latitudinarians, their Theology, ii. 262
- At Cambridge, 267, 341–344
- Expounders of their Tenets, 344–354
- Term Latitudinarian applied to holders of very different
- Opinions, 359–369
-
- Lauderdale, a Member of the Cabal, i. 401, 427, 434
-
- Lawson, George, ii. 410
-
- Lee, Sir Thomas, i. 418
-
- Leighton, Bishop of Dunblaine, i. 227
-
- Leighton, Sir Ellis, ii. 115
-
- Lenthall, i. 42, 126
-
- Lesley, Henry, i. 133
-
- L’Estrange, Hamon, i. 181; ii. 323
-
- L’Estrange, Sir Roger, i. 269; ii. 45, 62, 84
-
- Letters intercepted, i. 145, 151
-
- Lewis, i. 58
-
- Ley, Earl of Marlborough, ii. 490
-
- Lightfoot, Dr., i. 156, 288
- His Biblical learning, ii. 353
-
- Lisle, Lady Alicia, her Trial and Execution, ii. 98
-
- Littleton, Sir Charles, i. 145
-
- Lloyd, William, Bishop of St. Asaph, i. 500; ii. 5, 28
- One of the _Seven_ Bishops, 141, 142, 146
-
- Lloyd, William, Bishop of Llandaff, i. 132
- Translated to Peterborough, and then to Norwich, 502; ii. 28, 204
-
- Lobb, Stephen, ii. 122
-
- Locke, John, i. 292, 422
- Expelled from Oxford, ii. 257
-
- Lords, House of, Charles’ Letter from Breda, i. 61
- Conferences between the two Houses, 62
- Bill for restoring Prelates, 198, 199
- Uniformity Bill, 204
- Bill for repealing Statutes concerning Jesuits and
- Nonconformists, 205
- Pretended Plots reported, 210
- Appoint Committee for Revision of Prayer Book, 219
- Uniformity Bill, 229, 230, 232, 235, 241
- Less intolerant than the Commons, 250
- Bills against Papists and Nonconformists not sanctioned by them,
- 304
- Disapprove of Exclusion Bill, ii. 11
-
- Louis XIV., i. 355, 397, 420, 429; ii. 12, 76, 114
- His Treaty with Charles II., i. 451
-
- Love, Alderman, i. 148, 419, 421
-
- Lucy, Bishop of St. David, i. 132
-
- Ludlow, Edmund, i. 5, 20
- Supports Republicanism, 58
- Flies to Vevay, 258
-
- Luzancy, i. 458
-
- Lye, Thomas, i. 278
-
-
- Manchester, Earl of, i. 58, 85, 100, 114, 283, 380
-
- Mansel, Colonel, ii. 21
-
- Manton, Dr., i. 16, 18, 68, 115, 120, 283, 302, 394, 408, 439;
- ii. 223
- Commissioner at the Savoy, i. 156, 190
- Preaches in London after the Fire, 362
- His account of Interview between the King and Presbyterians, 390
- His Imprisonment, 397
- His Commentaries, ii. 447
-
- Markham, Major, i. 367
-
- Marten, Henry, tried as a Regicide, i. 129
- Dies in Prison, 130, 232
-
- Martindale, Adam, i. 119
-
- Marvell, Andrew, i. 222
- His Satires, 446, 449, 464
-
- Mary of Modena, Queen of James II., i. 452; ii. 90, 92
-
- Mason, John, ii. 462–464
-
- Massarene, Lord, i. 317
-
- Massey, John, ii. 109
-
- Maynard, Sir John, i. 145, 152, 153, 203
-
- Mazarin, i. 58; ii. 76
-
- Mead, William, i. 398
-
- Meades, Dr., ii. 201
-
- Meal Tub Plot, ii. 21, 22
-
- Meres, Sir Thomas, i. 418, 420; ii. 94
-
- Mew, Bishop of Winchester, ii. 97
-
- Middleton, Sir Thomas, i. 33, 34
-
- Milles, Isaac, i. 510
-
- Milton, John, ii. 285, 452
- His Lament for the Commonwealth, i. 47
- His Theological Opinions; ii. 362–365
- His Translation of Psalms, 458
-
- Milton, Sir Christopher, brother of the Poet, ii. 115
-
- Mompesson, i. 341
-
- Monk, i. 68, 77, 114, 141, 230, 245, 475
- His Military Power, 44
- Believed to be a Republican, 45
- Issues Writs for re-filling Parliament, 46
- Addresses Parliament, 48
- Declares his devotion to Charles, 56
- His Character, 56
- Hastens the Restoration, 62
- Meets the King at Dover, 75
- Invested with the Order of the Garter, 76
- Created Duke of Albemarle, 86
- His Burial in Westminster Abbey, ii. 187
-
- Monk, Nicholas, Bishop of Hereford, i. 306, 487
-
- Monmouth, Duke of, ii. 33, 49
- His pretensions to the Crown, 60, 62
- His Execution, 97
- Chancellor of Cambridge in 1674, 254
-
- Moore, Thomas, i. 413–415
-
- More, Henry, his Mysticism, ii. 385, 454
- His Religious Life and Character, 482–485
-
- Morley, Dr., i. 52, 169, 231, 245, 248, 435, 437, 502; ii. 15, 320
- Appointed Bishop of Worcester, i. 131
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156, 163
- Preaches at Coronation, 160, 167
- Described by Baxter, 189
- Bishop of Winchester from 1662 to 1684, 435, 477
- His Inconsistencies, 439
- His Old Age, 478
- His _Vindication_; ii. 36
- Expends Money in Charity, 192
- His Theological Learning, 302
-
- Morrice, Secretary, i. 122, 124
-
- Morton, Bishop of Durham, i. 388, 487
-
- Moulin, Lewis du, ii. 44, 102
-
- Muggletonians, ii. 208
-
- Mylles, Dr., ii. 195
-
- Mystics, ii. 262, 369–385, 482
-
-
- Neile, Dr. John, ii. 197
-
- Nelson, Robert, ii. 115
-
- Nelson, Lady Theophila, ii. 115
-
- Neville, i. 19
-
- Newcastle, Duke of, ii. 58
-
- Newcome, Henry, i. 65, 353; ii. 242
-
- Newcomen, Commissioner at the Savoy, i. 156, 165, 170
-
- Newton, George, i. 274; ii. 494
-
- Newton, Isaac, ii. 132
-
- Nicholas, Sir Edward, i. 85, 123, 124, 293
-
- Nicholas, John, i. 157
-
- Nicholson, William, Bishop of Gloucester, i. 492
-
- Nonconformists, i. 57, 144, 149, 207, 292, 384
- Their Sufferings, 135–138
- Accused of being Disaffected, 210
- Act of Uniformity, 255
- Effects of the Act, 261
- Their Farewell Sermons, 271–275, 278, 279
- Their Ejectment, 278, 282, 286
- Bills against them, 304
- Their Assemblies treated as Revolutionary, 308
- Nonconformists in the Colonies, 311
- Informers against them, 313
- Their Places of Worship, 314–316
- Ejected Ministers, 316–320, 336, 362
- Their Sufferings from Conventicle Act, 322–327, 388
- From Five Mile Act, 345–354
- New Conventicle Act, 395–398
- A change in feeling towards them, 400
- Declaration of Indulgence affected them, 404
- Receive Pecuniary Assistance from the Crown, 411
- Measures for their Relief, 421–424
- How affected by Test Act and Cancelling of Declaration, 429
- Their changeful Fortunes, 442
- Their dislike of Romanism, 454
- Conformist’s Plea for them, ii. 37
- Duke of Buckingham’s Overtures to them, 40
- Renewed Persecution of them, 41, 50–59, 71–75, 100–103
- Disposition of Government towards them, 95
- Their manner of receiving James’ Declaration, 122–128
- Their Places of Worship, 205
- Relative number of Conformists and Nonconformists, 207
- Contrasts in Preaching, 209
- Family Life, 217–226
- Family Persecution, 227
- Accused of Schism, 320
- Their Observance of the Sabbath, 234
- Recreations, 241
-
- Nonconformity, its growth, i. 375–377; ii. 159–179
-
- Norfolk, Duke of, ii. 90
-
- North, Dr. John, ii. 230, 251
-
- North, Roger, ii. 181, 193
-
- North, Sir Francis, Baron Guilford, ii. 46, 81–84
-
- Northumberland, Earl of, i. 229, 294
-
- Nowell, Charles, ii. 226
-
- Nye, Philip, i. 45, 91, 194, 297
-
-
- Oates, Thomas, i. 312
-
- Oates, Titus, his Extravagant Stories, ii. 6, 7, 49, 95, 143
-
- Okey, Colonel, i. 60, 256
-
- Oldham, John, ii. 459
-
- Ormond, Duke of, i. 84, 86, 114, 284; ii. 93, 255
-
- Ormond, Lady, i. 141
-
- Orrery, Earl of, i. 438
-
- Osborne, Thomas, Earl of Danby, i. 348
- Minister of Charles II., i. 434; ii. 2
- His Policy, 435, 436, 463
- His Fall, ii. 2
- His Impeachment, 13, 19
-
- Osmund, Bishop of Salisbury, i. 214
-
- Outram, i. 439
-
- Overall, Bishop, i. 219
-
- Overton, Major-General, i. 21
-
- Owen, Dr. John, i. 18, 29, 45, 194, 411, 430, 433; ii. 26, 65, 212,
- 222, 365, 367, 419
- His Opinion on the Power of Magistrates and Maintenance of
- Ministers, i. 30, 31
- His removal from Deanery of Christ Church, 50
- Means of Support after his Ejection, 316
- His Refusal to take Oath of Non-Resistance, 351
- His loyal Address, 408;
- His Answer to Parker’s Attack on Nonconformists, 446
- His Illness, ii. 69, 223
- His Death, 70
- His Views on Baptism, 170, 430
- On the Observance of the Sabbath, 235
- His Writings on the Evidences of Revealed Religion, 390
- His Works compared with Thomas Goodwin’s, 401
- His Treatise on the _Doctrine of Justification_, 401
- His Views on Election and Particular Redemption, 403–405
- His Defence of Nonconformity, 440
- His Commentaries, 447
-
- Oxford, _see_ Universities
-
-
- Packington, Sir John, i. 145, 212
-
- Packington, Lady, ii. 330
-
- Palmer, i. 309
-
- Parker, Samuel, his Attack on Nonconformists, i. 444–447
- Appointed to the Bishopric of Oxford, ii. 109
- Nominated President of Magdalen, 134–138
-
- Parliament, i. 38, 303, 361
- Opening of Richard Cromwell’s Parliament, i. 18
- Debates, 19–24
- Its Dissolution, 24
- Members of Long summoned to resume their places, 24
- Its Dissolution by Lambert, 39
- Again restored, 42
- Convention Parliament, 57
- Letter to the King, 63
- Ecclesiastical proceedings, 88–95
- Acts of Indemnity and Oblivion, 126
- Elections for a New Parliament, 147–152
- Assembles, 154
- Order League and Covenant to be burnt, 196
- Bill against Quakers, 197
- For restoring Prelates, 197
- For governing Corporations, 199
- For Restoration of Ecclesiastical Courts, 200
- Parliament Reassembles, 209
- Reports respecting Plots, 212
- Conventicle Acts, 322–327, 396
- At Oxford during the Plague, 343
- Five Mile Act, 345–354
- Debate on Declaration, 418
- Relief Bill, 421-424
- Test Act, 425
- Cancel Declaration, 429
- New Test, 436
- Comprehension, 438–440
- Debate on a Dissolution, 461
- Four Lords sent to the Tower, 462
- Bills against Popery, 463
- Act for Better Observance of Lord’s Day, 465
- For Repeal of the law _De Hæretico Comburendo_, 467
- Exclusion Bill, ii. 10
- Parliament Dissolved, 13
- Third Parliament Meets and Dissolves, 20
- Fourth Parliament, 20
- Dangerfield’s Plot, 21
- Exclusion Bill, 23–25
- Bill for Comprehension, 29
- Bill for Toleration laid aside by a trick, 30
- Fifth Parliament, 31
- Exclusion Bill, 32
- Assembling of James II.’s Parliament, 93
- Its Dissolution, 132
- Parliamentary Returns, 201
-
- Pascal, Blaise, i. 277, 455
-
- Patrick, Dr. John, ii. 457
-
- Patrick, Simon, i. 338; ii. 140, 354
-
- Paul, Thomas, ii. 175
-
- Paul, William, Bishop of Oxford, i. 490
-
- Paul’s, St., i. 357; ii. 181
-
- Payne, ii. 70
-
- Peachell, Dr. John, ii. 132
-
- Pearce, Dr. Thomas, i. 174
-
- Pearson, John, Bishop of Chester, i. 175, 485, 503; ii. 289
- Commissioner at Savoy Conference, i. 156, 163
- Described by Baxter, 189
- His Theological Teaching, ii. 308, 311
-
- Peirce, Sir Edmond, i. 204
-
- Pell, i. 221
-
- Pembroke, Earl of, i. 230
-
- Penn, William, i. 129, 398; ii. 101, 125
- Charges against him, 126
- Incidents in his Early Life, 369
- His Exposition of the Doctrine of Inward Light, 371-374
- Travels with Fox, 375
- His Colony in America, 375
- His Intimacy with Barclay, 377
-
- Pennington, Isaac, i. 129
-
- Pepys, Samuel, i. 47, 68, 258, 271, 340, 380–386; ii. 115
-
- Perinchief, Dr., i. 378
-
- Peterborough, Earl of, i. 115
-
- Peters, Hugh, i. 45
- His Execution, 128
-
- Petre, Father, ii. 104, 131
-
- Pett, Sir Peter, i. 292, 484
-
- Petties, Sir John, i. 432
-
- Piers, or Pearce, Bishop of Bath and Wells, i. 97
-
- Pierrepoint, i. 58
-
- Plague, The, i. 333, 343
-
- Plots, Rumours of, i. 292–295, 312
- Popish, ii. 1-10
- Meal Tub, 21
- Rye House, 64
-
- Pocock, ii. 332
-
- Pokanoket, Indian Chief, i. 260
-
- Pool (or Poole), Matthew, his _Synopsis_, i. 410; ii. 354, 446
-
- Pory, Dr., i. 177
-
- Powell, one of the Judges at the Bishops’ Trial, ii. 153, 155
-
- Powis, Lady, ii. 21
-
- Powys, ii. 153
-
- Prayer Book, Reintroduced, i. 91
- Commission for Revising it, 155
- Exceptions taken to the Liturgy, 170–173
- Bishops’ Answers to Exceptions, 179
- Baxter’s Additions, 180–182
- Discussions on Liturgy, 184, 187
- Search for Edward’s Prayer Book, 201
- Its Revision, 213
- History of the Book, 214–219
- Alterations made, 220–222
- Adopted and Subscribed, 223
- Revised Copy sanctioned by the King, 229
- Attached to Act of Uniformity, 244
- Revised Edition published, 260
- Episcopalians’ Attachment to it, ii. 323
-
- Presbyterianism, i. 68, 88
- Its Revival, 20
- Re-established as the National Religion, 49
- Innovations in the Old System, ii. 159–163
- Differences between Independency and Presbyterianism, 168
- Resemblances, 170
-
- Presbyterians, during the Protectorate, i. 5, 8, 10
- In Richard Cromwell’s Parliament, 17
- Their Loyalty to the Stuarts, 33
- Their Rising put down by Republicans, 33
- Contend for Solemn League, 41
- Power again in their hands, 48
- Principal Instruments in Charles’ Restoration, 51
- Their Influence over Monk, 51
- Union between them and Episcopalians thought to be possible, 53
- Their wish to control the King, 55
- Their Efforts in Elections for a New Parliament, 57
- Deputation visit Charles at the Hague, 68
- Their Intolerance, 69
- Are kept in Suspense, 83
- Their Clergy Displaced, 89
- Chaplains appointed at Court, 100
- Meetings at Sion College, 102–107
- Their anxiety for Union, 102
- Their Proposals, 103
- Defend their Proposals, 106
- Receives a Draft of Royal Declaration, 107
- Difference between the two parties, 107–112
- Divines at Worcester House, 115
- Present an Address to the King, 120
- Change in their Affairs, 125
- Numerous in Convention Parliament, 147
- Not well represented in New Parliament, 152
- Commissioners at Savoy Conference, 155
- Their Exceptions to Liturgy, 172–173
- Their Rejoinder to Bishops’ Answers, 183
- Their Debate with Bishops, 184–187
- Interview with Clarendon, 190
- Their Attachment to the Covenant, 237
- Their Conduct with regard to the Act of Uniformity, 263
- Their Petition for Redress, 283
- Some Conform, 288
- Some remain in the Establishment without Conforming, 290
- Disapprove of Declaration, 298
- Scheme of Comprehension as Modified by them, 383
- Their Interview with the King, 390
- Differ in their Opinion of the Declaration, 406
- Their Desire for _Accommodation_, 439
- Persecuted, ii. 71
- Become more Tolerant, 163
- Thorndike accuses them of Schism, 320
-
- Pride, Thomas, i. 130
-
- Prideaux, Bishop of Worcester, ii. 288
-
- Prynne, William, i. 24, 43, 89, 121, 153, 455
-
- Psalms, New Versions, ii. 457–459
-
- Pudsey, Dr., ii. 135
-
- Puritanism, Failure of Puritanism as a Political Institution, i. 1-6
- Its Ecclesiastical Aspect, 7–11
- Its Spiritual Aspect, 11-13
-
- Puritans, ii. 262–265
- Their Works on Evidences, 386–394
- Points of Resemblance between them and the Anglican Divines, 394
- Points of Difference, 396
- Divided into Three Classes:
- Calvinistic, 397;
- Arminian, 406–413;
- Intermediate, 414
- Their Opinions on the Nature of Sacraments, 430
- On the Ministry and Ordination, 434
- Their Controversies, 435
- Practical Theology, 442–446
- Expositors, 446
- Examples of their Piety, 494–505
-
-
- Quakers, opposed to Union of Church and State, i. 9
- Bill for their Suppression, 19
- Their Sufferings, 137, 138; ii. 75, 101
- Forbidden to meet in large numbers, i. 143
- Bill against them, 197
- Released from Gaol, 275
- Persecuted, 296
- Suffer under Conventicle Act, 398
- Released from Prison, 413
- James II.’s Treatment of them, 107
- Differ from other Nonconformists in Doctrinal Opinions, 177
- Their Form of Church Government, 177, 178
- Their Method of Marriage, 179
- Their Doctrines, 264, 266
- Penn an Expounder of their Principles, 369
- His Exposition of the Doctrine of the Inward Light, 371, 374
- Barclay, 377
- His Theological Teaching, 378–380
- John Burnyeat, 492, 494
-
- Quarles, Francis, his Emblems, ii. 455
-
- Querouaille, Duchess of Portsmouth, i. 451
-
-
- Racovian Catechism, ii. 365, 367
-
- Radnor, Lord, ii. 41
-
- Rainbow, Dr. Edward, i. 493
-
- Rawlinson, i. 156
-
- Reeve, Dr., i. 208
-
- Republicans, i. 5, 21, 22, 33, 34, 40
-
- Reresby, Sir John, i. 458
-
- Reynolds, Dr., i. 18, 50, 68, 191, 220, 230, 245, 290; ii. 229
- Appointed Chaplain at Court, i. 100
- At Worcester House, 115
- Accepts a Bishopric, 119
- Member of Conference, 155, 164, 170, 183
- His Peculiar Position, 179
- Described by Baxter, 189
- His Character, 485
- His Writings, ii. 442
-
- Richardson, Dr., i. 312
-
- Richmond, Duke of, i. 245
-
- Roberts, Bishop of Bangor, i. 97
-
- Robinson, Sir John, i. 148
-
- Rochester, Earl of, _see_ Laurence Hyde
-
- Rochester, Earl of, _see_ Wilmot
-
- Rogers, i. 140
-
- Roman Catholics, i. 19, 78, 363, 404, 460; ii. 113, 117
- Their Concurrence in Act of Uniformity, i. 251
- Their Prospects brighten, 298
- Bills against them, 304, 361
- How affected by Test Act, 425, 429
- Their Hopes in the Royal Family, 450
- Their Zeal in making Converts, 453
- Proclamations concerning them, 456
- Popish Books Seized, 459
- Bills against Popery, 303, 463–465
- Titus Oates’ Popish Plot, ii. 1-9
- Suspected Persons Apprehended, 6
- Exclusion Bill, 10
- At Court, 104
- Their Numbers increase, 115
- Their Satisfaction with James II.’s Declaration, 119
- Their Promotion, 131
- Their Numbers, 209
-
- Rosewell, Thomas, ii. 72, 123
-
- Roughed, Josias, i. 409
-
- Rous, Lady, i. 318
-
- Rous, ii. 457
-
- Royalists, i. 43, 66, 151
-
- Rupert, Prince, i. 142
-
- Rushworth, ii. 195
-
- Russel, Lord William, i. 418; ii. 20, 41, 153
- Joins in an Attempt to resist the Despotism of Government, 64
- His Trial and Execution, 65–67
-
- Rustat, Tobias, ii. 245
-
- Rutherford, Lord, i. 293
-
- Rye House Plot, ii. 64
-
- Rymer, Ralph, i. 313
-
- Ryves, Dr. Bruno, i. 91
-
-
- Sabran, ii. 117
-
- Salisbury, Earl of, i. 462; ii. 115
-
- Salkeld, ii. 206
-
- Saltmarsh, John, his _Sparkles of Glory_, ii. 380–383
-
- Samwayes, Dr., i. 213
-
- Sancroft, i. 93, 132, 221, 225; ii. 90, 192, 330
- Assists Pell to Revise the Calendar, i. 221
- Created Archbishop of Canterbury, ii. 14
- His Interview with the Duke of York, 15
- His Opposition to Popery, 17
- Sanctions the Publication of King’s Declaration, 35
- His Inconsistency with regard to Declaration, 145
- One of the Seven Bishops who signed the Petition, 140, 146, 150
- His Trial, 153
- His Acquittal, 155
- His Interest in Rebuilding of St. Paul’s, 181
-
- Sanderson, Bishop of Lincoln, i. 156, 187, 231, 248; ii. 283, 406,
- 438
- His Death, i. 306
- His Manner of Preaching, ii. 209
- His Approval of Sabbath Pastimes, 235
- His Doctrinal Opinions, 305
- His Intimacy with Hammond, 306
- And with Isaak Walton, 469
-
- Saville, Sir George, i. 366
-
- Savoy Conference, i. 155, 163–167, 170–173, 179–188
-
- Savoy Palace, i. 162
-
- Sawyer, ii. 153
-
- Scargill, Daniel, ii. 368
-
- Scattergood, i. 225
-
- Sclater, Edward, ii. 109
-
- Scotch, their Anxiety for an Exclusive Presbyterian Establishment,
- i. 68
- Their Religious Rising, 363
- Cruelty to them, 364
- Their Rebellion, ii. 97
-
- Scott, i. 20, 58
-
- Severne, Thomas, i. 284
-
- Shaftesbury, Earl of, _see_ Sir A. A. Cooper
-
- Shakerley, Sir Geoffry, i. 367; ii. 61
-
- Sharp, Dr., Agent in London of Scotch Presbyterians, i. 63, 68–69,
- 94
-
- Sharp, Dr., ii. 110, 112
-
- Shaw, Sir John, ii. 502
-
- Shaw, Samuel, i. 342
-
- Sheldon, Dr. Gilbert, i. 99, 122, 170, 221, 231, 248, 285, 296,
- 330, 331, 334, 348, 397, 415, 502; ii. 145, 188
- His Appointment to the Bishopric of London, i. 131
- Master of the Savoy, 157
- Officiates at Coronation of Charles II., 160
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156, 163
- President of Convocation, 174
- His Appointment to Archbishopric of Canterbury, 308
- His Exertions during the Plague, 337
- His Inquiries respecting Conventicles, 392
- His Circular on Education, 402
- His Death and Character, 470–473
- His Expenditure of Large Sums in Charity, ii. 192
-
- Sherlock, Dr., ii. 110, 117, 140
-
- Shorter, Sir John, ii. 125
-
- Sibthorpe, Dr., i. 131
-
- Sidney, Algernon, i. 344
- His Trial and Execution, ii. 64, 65
-
- Sidney, Henry, ii. 92
-
- Skinker, Mary, ii. 175
-
- Skinner, Bishop of Oxford, i. 37, 97
- Translated to Worcester, 491
-
- Slader, ii. 201
-
- Slatius, Henry, ii. 412
-
- Smalridge, ii. 117
-
- Smith, Dr., ii. 332
-
- Smith, John, ii. 421
- His Theological Teaching, 336–338
-
- Smith, Thomas, i. 93
-
- Smyth, Miles, ii. 457
-
- Soame, Bartholomew, ii. 225
-
- Solemn League and Covenant, i. 50, 89, 235–237
- Publicly Burnt, 196
-
- Somerset, Duke of, ii. 130
-
- South, ii. 257, 329
-
- Southampton, Earl of, i. 85, 86, 124, 300, 347
-
- Sparrow, Dr., Commissioner at the Savoy i. 156
-
- Spencer, John, ii. 444
-
- Spragg, Sir Edward, i. 416
-
- Sprat, Bishop of Rochester, ii. 111, 139
-
- Spring, Sir William, ii. 206
-
- Sprint, i. 478
-
- Spurstow, Dr., i. 100, 115, 156
-
- Stayley, ii. 6
-
- Stanley, Thomas, i. 342
-
- Stanley, Lady, ii. 219
-
- Stanley, Sir Thomas, ii. 219
-
- Steel, i. 261
-
- Sterne, Richard, Bishop of Carlisle, i. 132
- At Savoy Conference, 156, 493
- Described by Baxter, 189
- Translated to Archbishopric of York, 493, 497
- His Imprisonment, 495
-
- Sterry, Peter, ii. 382
-
- Stillingfleet, Edward, i. 117, 385, 410, 439; ii. 2, 114, 140, 370
- His Disapproval of Act of Uniformity, i. 292
- His Sermon on “The Mischief of Separation,” ii. 26
- Entertains Howe, Bates, and Tillotson, 29
- His Theological Opinions, 352
-
- Stockton, Owen, i. 340; ii. 500–504
-
- Strode, John, ii. 51
-
- Stubbe, Henry, ii. 355
-
- Suffolk, Earl of, i. 167
-
- Sunderland, ii. 19, 93, 104, 135
-
- Sutcliffe, Dr., ii. 245
-
- Sylvester, his Funeral Sermon for Baxter, ii. 212
-
-
- Taswell, William, i. 358
-
- Tattersall, Nicholas, i. 412
-
- Taylor, Jeremy, ii. 235, 278, 318, 386, 416, 429, 457
- Nominated to Diocese of Down and Connor, i. 133
- Preaches Funeral Sermon for Bramhall, 307
- His Theology; ii. 289–297
- Advocates an Episcopal Church, 298
- A brilliant Sermon Writer, 328
- His Writings, 445, 446
- His Hymns, 460
-
- Temple, Sir William, appointed Secretary of State, ii. 19, 41
-
- Tenison, Archbishop of Canterbury, i. 243; ii. 117
- When Vicar of St. Marten’s, ii. 140
- Founds the Tenison Library, i. 508
-
- Terrill, ii. 177
-
- Thompson, Alderman, i. 148
-
- Thorndike, Herbert, i. 112; ii. 235, 316, 332, 395, 424, 431
- His _Epilogue_, i. 34–36; ii. 269
- At Savoy Conference, i. 156
- Member of Convocation, 170, 222, 227, 248
- His _True Principle of Comprehension_, 385
- His Theological Learning, ii. 268
- His Principles of Christian Truth, 270
- His Scheme of Salvation by Grace, 272–277
- Laws of the Church, 277–279
- His teaching compared with Bull’s, 287
- With Taylor’s, 294
- With Pearson’s, 309
- Barrow’s, 314
- His opinion of Nonconformists, 320
-
- Thurloe, Secretary, i. 55
-
- Tillotson, i. 184, 439; ii. 29, 47, 79, 117, 140, 246, 316, 348
- His Letter to Baxter, i. 440
- His Inconsistency, ii. 27
- Reproved by Howe, 28
- Attends Russell on the Scaffold, 67
-
- Tilsey, i. 291
-
- Tindal, ii. 115
-
- Tombes, John, i. 317; ii. 283, 285
-
- Tomkyns, i. 378
-
- Tompson, Sir John, i. 430
-
- Tompson, Lady, i. 430
-
- Tongue, ii. 9
-
- Tory, Origin of Term, ii. 32
-
- Trelawny, Bishop of Bristol, ii. 141, 147, 189
-
- Truman, Joseph, ii. 283
-
- Tuckney, Dr., i. 155, 489
-
- Tully, Dr. Thomas, ii. 196, 283, 284
-
- Turbeville, ii. 49
-
- Turner, Bishop of Ely, ii. 140
-
- Turner, Sir Edward, i. 155
-
- Turner, Sir James, i. 363
-
- Tyrconnel, Earl of, ii. 104
-
-
- Uniformity (_see_ Act)
-
- Universities, their Petitions to Parliament, i. 92
- Changes at Oxford and Cambridge, 93
- Puritan Power at Cambridge, 93
- James II.’s Attack on their Liberties, ii. 132
- Proceedings at Cambridge, 132
- Proceedings at Oxford, 133–139
- Studies and Habits of Members, 250–258
-
- Ussher, Dr. James, i. 100; ii. 278, 406
- His Biblical Learning, 354
-
-
- Vane, Sir Henry, i. 5, 20, 21, 26, 49, 126, 140, 202
- Member of Richard’s Parliament, 17
- Member of New Council of State, 25
- His Trial, 257
- His Mysticism, 256; ii. 385
- His Execution, i. 258
-
- Vane, Lady, i. 366
-
- Venner, his Insurrection, i. 140–144
-
- Vernon, Alderman, i. 64
-
- Vic, Sir Henry de, i. 124
-
- Vincent, Nathaniel, ii. 54–56
-
- Vincent, Thomas, i. 338, 339; ii. 54
-
- Vincent, William, i. 148
-
- Vines, Richard, ii. 503
-
- Visitation, Articles of, ii. 183–185, 189
-
-
- Wade, Thomas, ii. 502
-
- Wake, ii. 117
-
- Wakerley, i. 313
-
- Wales, i. 19, 137
-
- Walker, Obadiah, ii. 109
-
- Waller, Edmund, ii. 454
-
- Wallis, Dr. John, i. 115, 156, 170, 288; ii. 198
-
- Walters, Lucy, ii. 60
-
- Walters, ii. 139
-
- Walton, Bryan, Bishop of Chester, i. 131, 156
- His Death, 306
- His Polyglott, ii. 332, 354
-
- Walton, Isaak, ii. 468–471
-
- Ward, Seth, Bishop of Exeter, afterwards Bishop of Salisbury,
- i. 264, 348, 385, 395, 478, 483, 502; ii. 192, 356
- His Intolerance, i. 397, 435–437
- Account of him, 474–476
- Improves Exeter Cathedral, ii. 180
- His Hospitality, 229
-
- Warmestry, Dr., i. 157
-
- Warner, Bishop of Rochester, i. 98, 490
- Commissioner at the Savoy, 156, 160
-
- Warwick, Countess of, ii. 488, 489
-
- Watson, Richard, ii. 417
-
- Whalley, Edward, Major-General, i. 23, 259, 260
-
- Wharton, Philip, Lord, i. 126, 230, 231, 313, 347; ii. 71
- Supports the Duke of Buckingham, i. 461
- Committed to the Tower, 462
- Released, 462
- His House a resort of Nonconformist Divines, ii. 223
-
- Whig, Origin of Term, ii. 32
-
- Whinnel, ii. 176
-
- White, Jeremy, ii. 101, 384
-
- White, Bishop of Peterborough, ii. 141
-
- White, John, ii. 457
-
- Whitehead, George, i. 414
-
- Whitelocke, i. 25, 45
-
- Whitford, John, i. 91
-
- _Whole Duty of Man_, ii. 330
-
- Wilde, i. 120
-
- Wilkins, Dr. John, Bishop of Chester, i. 16, 264, 380, 385, 396,
- 503; ii. 248, 356
- Account of him, i. 483–485
- His Theological teaching, ii. 348
-
- Wilkinson, Lady Vere, i. 430
-
- Williams, Dr. Edward, ii. 417, 419
-
- Williams, Solicitor-General, ii. 153
-
- Williamson, Joseph, Esq. (afterwards knighted), i. 365, 367, 410,
- 432, 442, 456; ii. 182, 193, 253, 255
-
- Wilmot, John, Earl of Rochester; ii. 490
-
- Windsor, Lord, i. 145
-
- Wiquefort, De, Dutch Minister, i. 231, 232, 267
-
- Witchcot, i. 439
-
- Wither, George, ii. 459
-
- Wood, Captain Henry, ii. 190
-
- Wood, Thomas, Bishop of Lichfield and Coventry, i. 500; ii. 139
-
- Woodbridge, i. 156
-
- Woodford, Dr. Samuel, ii. 457
-
- Woodhead, Abraham, i. 453; ii. 330
-
- Woodward, William, ii. 201
-
- Worcester House, i. 114
-
- Worth, Dr., i. 103
-
- Wren, Bishop of Ely, i. 37, 97, 488, 502
-
- Wren, Sir Christopher, ii. 181
-
- Wright, Chief Justice, ii. 153–155
-
- Wyche, Sir Cyril, i. 243
-
- Wycherley, ii. 115
-
- Wylde, Recorder, i. 148
-
-
- Yarrington, Captain, i. 212
-
- York, Duke of (_see_ James II.)
-
- Young, ii. 176
-
-
-Vol. I.
-
- Page 34, line 28, _Henry_, should be _Herbert_.
- „ 160, „ 7, _Convocation_ „ _Coronation_.
- „ 181, „ 6, _Hammond_ „ _Hamon_.
- „ 277, „ 11, _Edward_ „ _Edmund_.
-
-
-UNWIN BROTHERS, PRINTERS, BUCKLERSBURY, LONDON.
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] _Burnet_, _Rapin_, _Hume_, and _Lingard_, give numerous
-particulars, but the account I have presented is drawn from _A True
-Narrative of the Horrid Plot and Conspiracy of the Popish Party against
-the Life of His Majesty, the Government, and the Protestant Religion_,
-by Titus Oates himself, published 1679.
-
-In the Dedication there is a sentiment expressed worthy of a better
-man. “It is a false suggestion,” says Oates, “which such tempters use,
-that a King that rules by will is more great and glorious than a King
-that rules by law:--the quality of the retinue best proves the state
-of the lord; the one being but a king of slaves, while the other, like
-God, is a king of kings and hearts.”
-
-I have before me a narrative of “the horrid Popish plot,” by Capt.
-W. Bedloe, 1679; another by Miles Prance, 1679; and a collection of
-letters relating to it published by order of the House of Commons,
-1681. Oates’ narrative, which, though dated the 27th of September,
-1678, was not published until the following April, contains a digested
-statement, in eighty-one items, of all the particulars which he had
-alleged.
-
-[2] The letters are published in the collection just named. Some are in
-_Rapin_, iii. 171.
-
-[3] _History of his Own Time_, i. 434.
-
-[4] _Life of Calamy_, i. 83.
-
-[5] Defoe quoted in _Knight’s Hist. of England_, iv. 335.
-
-[6] Stayley was executed November 26th, Coleman December 3rd.
-
-[7] In the _Moneys for Secret Services_, published by the Camden
-Society, are numerous entries of sums paid to Oates and others.
-Curious references to Oates’ character as an impostor, may be found in
-_Reresby’s Memoirs_, 239, and _North’s Lives_, i. 325.
-
-[8] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._, 1678, November 1, December
-(without further date), and December 28. It would divert attention from
-the main current of this history to go fully into Oates’ plot. The
-historical student will find a bundle of papers bearing on the subject
-under date 1678, and further papers on the same subject under 1679,
-January to June.
-
-[9] Lord Keeper North “was of opinion that the fiction of the
-Popish Plot did not arise from the accident of Tongue’s and Oates’
-informations, but from a preconcerted design.” The reasons are given in
-a MS. of North’s, printed in _Dalrymple’s Memoirs_, ii. app. 320. That
-the plot was _invented_ by Shaftesbury there seems no sufficient ground
-for believing. See _Campbell’s Lives of Lord Chancellors_, iv. 197.
-
-[10] _Rapin_, iii. 172. Evelyn says, “For my part I look on Oates as a
-vain insolent man, puffed up with the favour of the Commons, for having
-discovered something really true, more especially as detecting the
-dangerous intrigue of Coleman, proved out of his own letters, and of
-a general design which the Jesuited party of the Papists ever had and
-still have, to ruin the Church of England.”--_Diary_, ii. 140.
-
-[11] _Commons’ Journals_, October 28. “The Oath of Supremacy was
-already taken by the Commons, though not by the Lords; and it is a
-great mistake to imagine that Catholics were legally capable of sitting
-in the Lower House before the Act of 1679” (1678).--_Hallam’s Const.
-Hist._, ii. 121.
-
-[12] _Burnet_, _Hist. of his Own Times_, i. 436.
-
-[13] _Journals_, Nov. 21 and 30; _Lingard_, xii. 151, 152. Reresby
-says, (_Memoirs_, 230), “In April, 1680, I went to London to solicit
-some business at Court, but the application of all men being to the
-Duke, who quite engrossed the King to himself, His Highness had but
-little leisure to give ear to, or assist his friends.”
-
-[14] _North’s Lives_, i. 340.
-
-[15] _Sir Thomas Browne’s Works_, i. 241. This relates to a second
-election for Norwich in the month of May, the first having been set
-aside. It illustrates both the excitement and the custom of the times.
-The general election took place in February.
-
-[16] _Evelyn’s Diary_, ii. 136.
-
-[17] Quoted in _D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft_, i. 165–176.
-
-[18] _Life of James II._, i. 539.
-
-[19] _Wilkins_, iv. 606.
-
-[20] _Ibid._, iv. 600.
-
-[21] _Wilkins_, iv. 605; _Sancroft’s Life by D’Oyley_, i. 186.
-
-[22] _Wilkins_, iv. 607.
-
-[23] _Tanner MSS._, 32, 208; _Life of Sancroft_, i. 204. D’Oyley
-conjecturally assigns this document to the reign of Charles, but he is
-not sure it may not belong to the reign of James.
-
-[24] Sir W. Temple, in his _Memoirs_, part iii., gives an account of
-the plan and working of this Council. His object was to enable the
-Crown to manage the Commons, by making the Crown, as far as possible,
-independent of the Commons. After noticing the wealth of the Council
-in revenues of land or offices as amounting to £300,000 per annum,
-whilst that of the House of Commons seldom exceeded £400,000, he
-adds, “And authority is observed much to follow land, and, at the
-worst, such a Council might, out of their own stock, and upon a pinch,
-furnish the King so far as to relieve some great necessity of the
-Crown.”--_Temple’s Works_, vol. i. 414. He says (436) he told the Duke
-of York, “he might always reckon upon me as a legal man, and one that
-would always follow the Crown as became me.” These passages seem to be
-overlooked by some historians, in estimating the nature and objects of
-Temple’s scheme.
-
-[25] April 30, 1679.--_Parl. Hist._ iv. 1128.
-
-[26] The Habeas Corpus Act was passed during the spring of 1679.
-
-[27] _Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time_, i. 475.
-
-[28] “The information of Dangerfield, delivered at the bar of the
-Commons, the 26th of October, 1680.” _Lords’ Journals_, Nov. 15, 1680.
-_State Trials._ _Burnet_, i. 475 and 637. _Lingard_, xii. 227, _et
-seq._ Dangerfield died from a blow, struck whilst he was being whipped.
-
-[29] Dated August 25. Received September 1.--_State Papers._
-
-[30] _Parl. Hist._ iv. 1162, _et seq._ Again let me refer the reader to
-Fox, _Hist. of James_ ii., p. 311, for some admirable remarks on this
-whole question, politically considered.
-
-[31] _Sommers’ Tracts_ i. 97.
-
-[32] _Parl. Hist._ iv. 1197, _et seq._; _Rapin_, iii. 198, _et seq._
-
-[33] _Reresby’s Memoirs_, 234. He says that the speech of Halifax, “so
-all confessed, influenced the House, and persuaded them to throw out
-the Bill.” The debate took place on the 15th of November.
-
-[34] _Rogers’ Life of Howe_, 181.
-
-[35] _Calamy’s Life of Baxter_, 354.
-
-[36] _Rogers’ Life of Howe_, 183.
-
-[37] _Ibid._, 187.
-
-[38] “Tillotson’s conduct on this occasion places his amiable character
-in the fairest light. One can hardly regret that he committed
-a fault for which he so nobly atoned, and which has furnished
-us with so impressive an example of ingenuousness, candour, and
-humility.”--_Rogers’ Life of Howe_, 190.
-
-[39] There were two Bishop Lloyds at the time; one of Norwich, the
-other of St. Asaph, consecrated October 3, 1680. It was most likely the
-latter. We shall meet with him as one of the seven Bishops committed to
-the Tower in 1688.
-
-[40] _Life of Howe_, 191, 192.
-
-[41] _Kennet_ quoted in _Neal_, iv. 496.
-
-[42] Dec. 30, 1680. “The Commons have before them a Bill of
-comprehension and a Bill for indulgence. The latter is proposed very
-full and clear, requiring nothing but subscription to Thirty-six
-Articles, and taking a test against Popery. This hath been read twice,
-and is before the Committee. The former moreover requires the use of
-Common Prayer, and, I think, as proposed even relapses almost all other
-things that almost anybody scruples. This has been read twice and
-passed the Committee. Opinions about these Bills are various. All that
-I have heard of, who desire comprehension, desire indulgence also for
-others, though multitudes desire indulgence that most fervently oppose
-comprehension. This begets great misunderstandings.”--_Entring Book,
-Morice MSS._, Dr. Williams’ Library.
-
-On the 24th of December a clergyman was charged before the House of
-Commons with saying that the Presbyterians were such as the very devil
-blushed at, and were as bad as Jesuits, and otherwise denying the
-Popish plot, throwing the same on Protestants. It was resolved that he
-should be impeached.--_Journals._
-
-[43] Both read the first time Dec. 16.--_Journals._ The Bill for
-toleration was read a second time Dec. 24.
-
-[44] The Lords desired the concurrence of the Commons in the amendments
-which they had made to this relief Bill Jan. 3. See _Journals_ of both
-Houses.
-
-[45] _Burnet_ (i. 495) says the Clerk of the Crown withdrew it from the
-table by the King’s particular order.
-
-[46] _Journals_, Jan. 10, 1681. Eachard, Rapin, Burnet, and Calamy
-quote or mention two resolutions on this subject, as passed at the same
-time by the Commons--the first, that the Act of Elizabeth and James
-against Popish recusants ought not to be extended against Protestant
-Dissenters--the second, that which has just been noticed. It is the
-only one respecting toleration, recorded in the Journals for that day.
-
-[47] I have, in the history of this whole affair, followed the
-Journals; and they show the inaccuracy, more or less of _Burnet_,
-_Eachard_, and _Neal_. Even what Sir William Jones says in his
-_Vindication_ (_Parl. Hist._ iv. _Appendix_) is scarcely consistent
-with the records of the Houses.
-
-[48] “The Court was at Christ Church, and the Commons sat in the
-schools, but were very much straitened for room, there being a very
-great concourse of members.” “Many of the discontented members, of both
-Houses, came armed, and more than usually attended; and it was affirmed
-there was a design to have seized the King, and to have restrained him
-till he had granted their petitions.”--_Reresby’s Memoirs_, 243, 245.
-
-[49] March 24, _Parl. Hist._ iv. 1308.
-
-[50] _Lords’ Journals_, March 26.
-
-[51] _Reresby’s Memoirs_, 290.
-
-[52] _Lingard_, xii. 281.
-
-[53] _Burnet_, i. 500; _D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft_, i. 252. The King’s
-letter to Sancroft is dated April 11, 1681.
-
-[54] Address from the University of Cambridge. _Wilkins_, iv. 607;
-_State Papers, Charles II. Dom._ 1681, May 16. I have pretty closely
-adhered to the words used in the addresses.
-
-[55] _Bishop of Winchester’s Vindication_, 394, 410. This work was
-published in 1683, but the author says that it was written a year
-before. Probably the above passage may belong to 1681.
-
-[56] Preface to _The Happy Future State of England_, published 1688.
-
-[57] _The Conformist’s Plea for Nonconformists_, 7.
-
-[58] _The Conformist’s Plea for the Nonconformists_, 34. _The Life of
-Julian the Apostate_ also made a great noise at that time.
-
-[59] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._, 1677.
-
-[60] There is a remarkable absence of information in Sir Joseph
-Williamson’s papers of this date, preserved in the Record Office.
-Several letters, written at this time by the informer Bowen, of
-Yarmouth, upon local matters, contain no allusion to the Nonconformists
-there. The Histories of Nonconformists silently bear witness to this
-fact. Neal, Crosby, and Sewel, under these years, say little or
-nothing of persecution. It must not, however, be inferred that it was
-then unknown, for it is stated in the Church Book of Guildhall-street
-Chapel, Canterbury, that Mr. Durant, the pastor, and some of his
-congregation, in 1679, “fled for refuge to Holland, and some forsook
-the Church and fell off--_Timpson’s Church Hist. of Kent_, 307.
-
-[61] _Rogers’ Life of Howe_, 180.
-
-[62] _Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Times_, i. 267, 268, 476.
-
-[63] _Earl Russell’s Life of Lord William Russell_, 159.
-
-[64] Macaulay describes the manner in which Halifax endeavoured to
-vindicate his trimming. _Hist._, i. 254. The following quotation from
-Halifax is characteristic:--
-
-“Why,” he asks, “after we have played the fool with throwing _Whig_
-and _Tory_ at one another, as boys do snowballs, should we grow angry
-at a new name, which by its signification might do as much to put
-us into our wits, as the other has done to put us out of them. This
-innocent word _Trimmer_ signifies no more than this, that if men are
-together in a boat, and one part of the company would weigh it down on
-one side, another would make it lean as much the contrary; it happens
-that there is a third opinion of those who conceive it would do as
-well if the boat went even, without endangering the passengers. Now
-’tis hard to imagine by what figure in language, or by what rule in
-sense, this comes to be a fault, and it is much more a wonder it should
-be thought a heresy.” By a common fallacy, Halifax applies what is
-true of one thing to another thing very different. Too many miserably
-act respecting religion on the same principle as Halifax adopted in
-relation to politics.
-
-[65] _Burnet_, i. 266.
-
-[66] _Memoirs of Count de Grammont_, vol. ii. 112; _Clarendon_, 503.
-
-[67] _Lives_, ii. 57.
-
-[68] _Burnet_, i. 482.
-
-[69] Printed document. _State Papers, Dom._, 1681, Sept. 2.
-
-[70] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._, 1681, Aug. 25, Sept. 2. There
-are several very curious papers relative to Oates, which I have copied,
-but have not space to insert.
-
-The Prevaricator at Cambridge at the commencement of 1680, referred to
-the plot. The reference seems to have been very brief and unimportant,
-but it gave concern in high quarters. A letter was written to the
-Vice-Chancellor, by direction of the Bishop of London, complaining
-of the Prevaricator turning the plot into ridicule, that it would
-be brought before Parliament “to the reproach of the government of
-the Universities, if not to strike at the Universities themselves,
-unless it be timely prevented by a severe animadversion.”--_Cambridge
-Portfolio_, 242.
-
-[71] _Life of Baxter_, 349. The book is dated 1680, and the author,
-Lewis du Moulin, recanted his reflections on the Divines of the Church
-of England, the same year.
-
-[72] _Burnet_, i. 461.
-
-[73] There is a letter from the Lieutenant of the Tower in the Record
-Office, _Dom. Charles II._, August 5, 1681, in which the writer
-describes how the prisoner was to be conveyed to Oxford “in a coach
-with ten or twelve of the warders on horseback, with carabines.”
-
-[74] _Burnet_, i. 505. Colledge was tried on the 17th and 18th of
-August. The trial is reported at full length in a folio pamphlet of 102
-pages published by authority, 1681. Colledge defended himself, examined
-witnesses and made speeches. It is plain that under the circumstances,
-with such judges, the poor fellow stood no chance.
-
-[75] September 1, 1681, Oxon. Letter from Thomas Hyde states that just
-before the execution of Colledge, he had denied having written certain
-letters, but that when he heard these letters had been intercepted, he
-acknowledged them.
-
-There are several letters respecting Colledge; amongst other papers
-is the following:--September 30, 1681. “Deposition of Benjamin Wyche
-of the parish of Saint Andrew’s, Holborn, London, Apothecary. This
-deponent saith that being in Richards’ coffee-house near Temple
-Bar, soon after His Majesty had dissolved the Parliament sitting at
-Westminster, amongst other company in the room, Mr. Colledge was one
-whom (upon discourse of the Parliament being then dissolved) he this
-deponent, heard uttering these words, ‘_Well I see what it will come
-to, we must e’en draw our swords, and fight it out again_,’ or words to
-that effect.--_Ben Wyche._”
-
-“_Jurat coram me.--L. Jenkins._”
-
-[76] The first letter is dated Sept. 21. In the second letter, in the
-same bundle, the day of the month is not given. The letter is numbered
-164. Another paper in the Record Office, dated August 20, 1681, reports
-that the Countess of Rochester said “Colledge was a Papist to her
-knowledge, and had been so for a long time.” There are other statements
-to the same effect. Thomas Hyde (September 1, 1681) writing from
-Oxford, says that Colledge would not acknowledge what religion he was
-of, but that “he was of the Anabaptists.”
-
-[77] It is added “this fanatic’s name was formerly Bishop, but being
-a hater of bishops changed his name into Marten; and because he
-is by that name known for a notorious villain he hath changed it
-again.”--_Dom. Charles II._
-
-[78] _Ibid._, August 27, 24.
-
-[79] The confession, of which a portion is missing, bears date August
-24, 1681. _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._ The dying speech is in MS.
-in the same collection dated August 31. It was published as a distinct
-tract, 1681; also it is printed in _The Dying Speeches and Behaviour
-of several State Prisoners_. Ed. 1720. The reason for his being called
-the Protestant Joiner he thus describes:--“The Duke of Monmouth called
-me to him, and told me he had heard a good report of me, and that I
-was an honest man, and one that may be trusted: and they did not know
-but their enemies, the Papists, might have some design to serve them
-as they did in King James’s time by gunpowder, or any other way; and
-the Duke with several Lords and Commons did desire me to use my utmost
-skill in searching all places suspected by them, which I did perform:
-and from thence I had as I think, the popular name of _The Protestant
-Joiner_, because they had entrusted me, before any man in England to do
-that office.”--_Dying Speeches_, 387.
-
-[80] There is amongst the _State Papers_, one dated November 26, 1681,
-_Dom. Charles II._, by George Evans, who complains that there was a
-bonfire on Cornhill, and that gentlemen were stopped in their coaches
-and required to drink Lord Shaftesbury’s health. This was on the
-occasion of the Grand Jury ignoring the bill against him. There are a
-number of documents relating to Shaftesbury under the year 1681.
-
-[81] _Campbell’s Lives of the Chancellors_, iv. 229. Lord Campbell has
-not done justice to Shaftesbury. It should be remarked to Shaftesbury’s
-honour, Earl Russell says, “that though in the secret of every party,
-he never betrayed any one: and that the purity of his administration
-of justice is allowed even by his enemies.”--_Life of Lord William
-Russell_, 61.
-
-[82] From a mass of illustrations I select the following in reference
-to the last point:--
-
-_Dom. Charles II._, 1681, Sept. 9. “I was interrupted,” says the
-Archdeacon of Durham, “in the execution of my office, as I was
-officiating in my own church, by a very bold and insolent fanatic,
-who though indicted at our last assizes, escaped punishment--to the
-great contempt, I hear, of God’s house and service--I am sure to the
-great trouble of the clergy, who fear it may go very hard with them,
-in the execution of their offices, when so great a violence offered
-to the Archdeacon should go unpunished. Since a Churchman can expect
-to meet with no more favour from a lay judicatory, I am forced to fly
-to the ecclesiastical courts, where this person stands presented, for
-disturbing the minister in time of Divine service, and I think no
-ecclesiastical judge can be of the same mind with the jury, that what
-was done between the Nicene Creed and the sermon, was not done in time
-of Divine service, upon which point he was found not guilty, to the
-admiration [wonder] of those that understood the rubric.”
-
-John Strode, of Rye, writes, September 13, “that the new Mayor chosen
-by the fanatics refused to grant warrants according to the Act of
-Parliament, pretending some frivolous thing.”
-
-[83] November 7, 1681.
-
-[84] _Dom. Charles II._, 1681, November 15. I find, dated November
-25, “The names of such Nonconformists who being presented in the
-Attorney-General’s name, are actually served with subpœnas returnable
-on Monday last:--
-
- “John Collins, D.D.
- “John Owen, D.D.
- “Samuel Annesley, D.D.
- “Thomas Jacomb, D.D.
- “Thomas Watson.
- “Matthew Meade.
- “Robert Fergusson.
- “Edmund Calamy.
- “Thomas Doolittle.
- “Samuel Slater.
- “Nicholas Blackley.
-
-“Sir,
-
-“There are two informations filed against every one of the above-named
-Nonconformist ministers, _i.e._, one on the Statute for not repairing
-to Church, upon which they forfeit £20 per mensem. This information is
-laid for twenty months. The other is on the Oxford Act, prohibiting
-Nonconformist ministers, &c., to reside within five miles of any
-corporation, upon the penalty of £40. So that the penalties against the
-persons above-named, if recovered, and not remitted, will amount to the
-sum of £4,840.
-
- “Yours,
-
- “WM. SHERMAR”
-
-[85] The Minutes of Council show that the Mayors of Plymouth and
-Reading were directed to put the Oxford Act in execution against the
-preachers in Conventicles.--December 2. The constables of the East
-Riding of Yorkshire refused to disturb meetings.--_State Papers_,
-bundle 260, No. 474. The magistrates at Hickes’ Hall complain that the
-laws respecting Conventicles had been long silent.--December 10.
-
-[86] _Echard_, _Neal_, iv. 507.
-
-[87] _Calamy’s Continuation_, 137.
-
-[88] _State Papers_, Dec. 19.
-
-[89] _State Papers_, 1682, February 15.
-
-[90] _Calamy’s Continuation_, 139.
-
-[91] I copied these extracts many years ago from the old Church books,
-now unfortunately lost. In the State Paper Office, under date of the
-2nd February, 1682, there is a long report of the political sentiments
-of people in different parts of Norfolk, in which report,--besides
-mention of the Anabaptists and the Quakers worshipping under one
-roof, and of a clergyman in the Commission of the Peace, an itinerant
-Justice, “who rides all the circuit, and makes disturbances wherever
-he comes by his pragmaticalness and unskilfulness in the laws”--a
-reference is made to Dr. Collinges, a very respectable Presbyterian
-minister at Norwich, and it is suggested, “were he removed, it is
-probable many of that sect would fall off.”
-
-[92] _Morice MSS., Entring Book_, i., 1682, November 21.
-
-[93] December 30.
-
-[94] December 14.
-
-[95] November 30, December 7.
-
-[96] December 14, February 6, 1682–3. “On Monday, in the Common Pleas,
-some citizens were cited, because they did not receive the sacrament at
-Easter by their minister, the Churchwardens saying they believed that
-they did not receive it then. But because the process saith not what
-Easter it was, and because there was no sacrament at their church the
-last Easter; and further, because the Churchwardens do but believe they
-did not receive it, therefore a prohibition was granted unless cause be
-shown to the contrary.”
-
-The Countess of Aylesbury was informed against for being at a
-Conventicle.--March 15, 1684.
-
-[97] December 14, 1682; March, 1683.
-
-[98] Much trouble and suffering arose from fear; and many
-congregations, after apprehending disturbance, were allowed to worship
-in peace. This I learn from the _Entring Book_, 1683, January, in the
-_Morice MSS._ (in Dr. Williams’ Library,) from which the passage in the
-text is taken.
-
-[99] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._, February 21, 1682.
-
-[100] The Presbyterians are reckoned altogether at 5,420; the Baptists,
-&c., at 4,250.
-
-[101] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._, 1682, June 2, 16, 20. On the
-9th of December, the following queries were submitted to Secretary
-Jenkins:--
-
-“Whether, at a time when the Dissenters in shoals transport themselves
-beyond sea, to the apparent throwing up of many farms throughout
-England, and a dearth of servants, it may not be thought reasonable to
-prohibit such a transportation occasioned by a sullen humour?
-
-“2. Whether, at this time, when the Dissenters calumniate the
-Government with a connivance at debaucheries, while themselves are
-vigorously prosecuted about matters of religion, it may not be thought
-reasonable to revive His Majesty’s proclamation against profane cursing
-and swearing and other debaucheries?
-
-“3. Whether the prosecution against Dissenters ought not to be
-prosecuted to excommunication, for not coming to church and receiving
-the Sacrament, in Corporations especially,--thereby to incapacitate
-them from being elected, or electors of, members of Parliament?”
-
-[102] There are many documents connected with this subject amongst the
-_State Papers_, 1680, January to June.
-
-[103] _State Papers, Dom._, 1682, September 11, 13, 16. There is also
-a letter describing the Duke’s visit to Chichester, and the insults
-offered to the Bishop’s chaplain. February 24, 1683.
-
-[104] It is said (Sept. 18) the Duke had not the encouragement which
-Dissenters expected.
-
-[105] L’Estrange was a censor of the press. In the Record Office, _Dom.
-Charles II._, may be found Williamson’s authority to “Roger L’Estrange,
-surveyor of the press, to act as one of his deputies in the licensing
-of books,” dated Whitehall, February 5, 1674–5.
-
-In 1684 L’Estrange commenced a periodical entitled _The Observator_,
-which he carried on until 1687. He there upholds the Royal dispensing
-power, and ridicules Protestant excitements, the right to liberty
-of conscience, the Long Parliament, and Nonconformists of all
-kinds, pronouncing Dissent a political schism. He published the
-paper irregularly, sometimes twice, sometimes thrice a week. It is
-written after the manner of a dialogue between _The Observator_ and
-its opponents. I have met with three or four large volumes of the
-publication, in the library of Trinity College, Cambridge. They justify
-the strong language I have used.
-
-[106] _State Trials_, 1683. The judgment was that the franchise and
-liberty of the City of London should be taken and seized into the
-King’s hands.
-
-[107] The Act for annulling Russell’s attainder, in the first year of
-William and Mary, justly declared that “he was, by undue and illegal
-return of jurors, having been refused his lawful challenge to the said
-jurors, for want of freehold, and by partial and unjust constructions
-of law, wrongfully convicted, attainted, and executed for high treason.”
-
-[108] The charges against Russell and Sidney, of being engaged in
-negotiations with the French Court, and of the latter receiving pay
-from that quarter, belong to the political history of England. I must
-refer the reader to _Hallam_, _Mackintosh_, and especially to _Earl
-Russell’s Life of Lord William Russell_. Supposing that Sidney accepted
-money from France, I am not at all disposed to regard his conduct so
-leniently as do the first two of the above-named writers; but, after
-pondering what Earl Russell says, I feel some doubt respecting the
-truth of Barillon’s reports, and the accuracy of his accounts. As
-to Lord William Russell’s conduct, his biographer says it “was not
-criminal, but it would be difficult to acquit him of the charge of
-imprudence.”--p. 107.
-
-[109] “Much discourse hath been about the apparition of Lord William
-Russell’s ghost in Southampton square, July 27 (1683), about twelve
-o’clock at night.”--_Entring Book, Morice MSS._, Dr. Williams’ Library.
-The above notice of Russell’s execution is almost entirely drawn up
-from Earl Russell’s life of this illustrious person, 337, _et seq._
-
-[110] _Tillotson’s Life_, 109.
-
-[111] _Collier_, ii. 903. Filmer’s writings were most in vogue with the
-partisans of despotism. See _Hallam’s Const. Hist._, ii. 156, on the
-subject.
-
-[112] _Orme’s Life of Owen._
-
-[113] _Howe’s Case of Protestant Dissenters; Life_, 247. In a letter
-which Howe wrote in the year 1685 from the Continent, when he was
-travelling with Philip Lord Wharton, to escape the persecution of
-the times, he uses the following words, which indicate, more than
-any laboured description, the reign of terror he had left behind
-him in England:--“The anger and jealousies of such as I never had a
-disposition to offend, have of later times _occasioned persons of my
-circumstances_ very seldom to walk the streets.”--_Life by Rogers_, 225.
-
-[114] The trial is published in a volume edited by Samuel Rosewell,
-1718. The trial took place in the months of October and November, 1684.
-In the _Memoir_ there is an account of his apprehension and first
-appearance before Jeffreys at his house in Aldermanbury. Rosewell, lest
-he should commit himself before witnesses, answered Jeffreys in Latin.
-The Judge flew into a passion, and told him, he supposed he could not
-utter another sentence in the same language to save his neck. Rosewell
-did not give him the lie, but thought it better to give his next answer
-in Greek. “The Judge seemed to be thunderstruck upon this.”--p. 47.
-
-[115] _Trial of Rosewell_, p. 52, _et seq._ Speaking of the latter part
-of the reign of Charles II. Mrs. Mary Churchman says, “Persecution now
-came on apace, the Dissenters could have no meetings but in woods and
-corners. I, myself, have seen our companies often alarmed with drums
-and soldiers; every one was fined five pounds a month for being in
-their company.”--_Abstract of the Gracious Dealings of God, &c._, by
-Samuel James, 74.
-
-[116] I have gathered this account entirely from Delaune’s pamphlets on
-the subject, which were collected and published in a volume in the year
-1704. The controversy had been mixed up with a reference to Calamy’s
-invitation to private Christians, to consult their pastors in their
-religious difficulties; and to Nonconformists also to hear both sides;
-which--by a wide stretch of interpretation--Delaune construed into a
-public challenge to an answer in print. It had been further complicated
-with reproaches, because Calamy did not intercede for the sufferer, or
-visit him in prison. Defoe says, “It was very hard such a man, such a
-Christian, and such a scholar, and on such an occasion should starve
-in a dungeon; and the whole body of Dissenters in England, whose cause
-he died for defending, should not raise him £66 13s. 4d. to save his
-life.” A modern Baptist historian justly says, “We would not mitigate
-this crime an atom; but it is right to suggest that Mr. Delaune may
-have interdicted the payment of the fine.”--_Evans’ English Baptists_,
-ii. 337. Delaune, I suspect, was one of those men who, in the judgment
-of an opposite class, are said to court martyrdom.
-
-[117] _Neal_, iv. 521.
-
-[118] _De Felice_, _Hist. of the Protestants of France_, 261.
-
-[119] “The King of France uses the Huguenots with inexpressible
-severity, takes away very many of their children by force, and puts
-them into Popish convents, and has published an edict for taking away
-one half of their churches that remain throughout all the provinces,
-and has actually begun to execute it in Normandy.”--_Morice’s Diary_,
-December 2, 1679. For a minute record of proceedings against the French
-Protestants, see _Histoire Chronologique de L’Eglise Protestante de
-France, par C. Drion_, ii.
-
-[120] _Elie Benoit Hist. de L’Edit de Nantes_, iv. 479.
-
-[121] _Hist. des Réfugiés Protestants, par Weiss_, i. 265–267.
-
-[122] _Hist. des Réfugiés Protestants, par Weiss_, i. 268.
-
-[123] _Coxe’s House of Austria_, ii. 352.
-
-[124] _State Papers_, 1682, quoted in _Smiles’ Huguenots_. I have found
-several other documents on the same subject in the Record Office.
-The Mayor and Aldermen of Bristol, on the 2nd of January 1682, oddly
-enough, proposed that fines levied on Dissenters should be applied to
-the relief of French Protestants.--_State Papers, Dom. Charles II._
-
-[125] _Life of Tillotson, by Birch_, 131.
-
-[126] I find an illustration of the number of refugees who arrived in
-London, in a curious book I have elsewhere cited, _The Happy Future
-State of England_, published in 1688. It is there noticed (p. 122),
-that they had lately come, and filled 800 of the empty new-built houses
-of London.
-
-[127] The letter is dated January 2, 1684.--_Life of Sancroft_, i. 197.
-
-[128] _Reresby’s Memoirs_, 290.
-
-[129] _North’s Lives_, ii. 70.
-
-[130] Abridged from _North’s Lives_, ii. 72.
-
-[131] _Palmer’s Nonconformist Memorial_, i. 100; _Observator_, January
-29 and 31, 1685; _Macaulay_, i. 407.
-
-[132] By Ward.
-
-[133] _James’ Memoirs_, by Clarke, i. 747–9. See _Macaulay_, ii. 13,
-for authorities respecting the death of Charles. In the appendix to
-this volume will be found a copy of the recently discovered MS., which
-solves a riddle referred to by Macaulay.
-
-[134] _Gazette_, 2006.
-
-[135] _James’ Memoirs_, by Clarke, ii. 4.
-
-[136] _Ibid._, ii. 6.
-
-[137] _Dalrymple’s Memoirs_, i. 109. I do not find that this
-circumstance is referred to by D’Oyley in his _Life of Sancroft_.
-
-[138] As to the coronation, it is observed in a _Diary_ amongst the
-_Morice MSS._ in Dr. Williams’ library, under date April 25, “Far above
-one-half of the nobility made excuses, for one reason or another, and
-were absent.” “The noblemen were rather more than the ladies.”
-
-Amongst the _Baker MSS._, Cambridge University Library, marked 40–2,
-are notes concerning the Coronation Office by Archbishops Laud and
-Sancroft, with the Coronation Office at large, used by Archbishop
-Sancroft.
-
-“During the coronation of James, the crown not being properly fitted
-to his head, tottered. Henry Sidney, Keeper of the Robes, afterwards
-so famous for the mischiefs he brought upon James, kept it once from
-falling off, and said, with pleasantry to him, ‘This is not the first
-time our family has supported the Crown.’ This trifle was much remarked
-and talked of at the time; a sure mark that the minds of the people
-were under unusual agitations.”--_Dalrymple’s Memoirs_, i. 112.
-
-[139] _Evelyn._ 1685, May 10, 22.
-
-[140] From a MS. in the University Library, Cambridge. See _Appendix_
-to this volume.
-
-[141] It was proposed in Committee that the word _Reformed_ religion
-should be inserted in the address, for the word _Protestant_ was
-excepted against. Sir Thomas Meres said, “The word Protestant had been
-used in a good sense by well-meaning persons, but time and use change
-the nature of words. As knave formerly was an honourable title, but now
-signified a very ill man.”--_Entring Book_, June 4.--_Morice MSS._
-
-[142] Compare _Eachard_, _Kennet_, _Reresby_, _Barillon_, and _Fox_.
-
-[143] See _Commons’ Journals_, May 27; _Parl. Hist._, iv. 1358.
-
-“Lest the last words of this resolution should not make sufficient
-impression on James, the Speaker, when he presented the Revenue Bill,
-remarked, that the Commons had passed that Bill, without joining any
-Bill to it for the security of their religion, though _that was dearer
-to them than their lives_.”--_Dalrymple’s Memoirs_, i. 133.
-
-[144] _Orme’s Life of Baxter_, 359.
-
-[145] The appearance of Sharp and Moore is mentioned in the _Morice
-MSS._
-
-[146] _Baxter MSS._, Dr. Williams’ Library. Quoted by Orme, _Life of
-Baxter_, 363–366.
-
-[147] _Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time_, i. 649. For a report of the
-proceedings against Alicia Lisle and Elizabeth Gaunt, see _State
-Trials_, iv. 105, _et esq._
-
-[148] _Hist. of the Revolution_, 31.
-
-[149] _Mackintosh’s Hist. of Revolution_, 159, where authorities are
-given.
-
-[150] _Ibid._, 160; _Neal_, iv. 552, 554.
-
-[151] The story told about _White’s MS._ in _Neal_, iv. 555, does not
-appear to me at all probable.
-
-When persecution was at its height, extraordinary cases of escape
-occurred. Many a wonderful story is told of deliverances vouchsafed to
-suffering Dissenters, of which the following anecdote is a conspicuous
-example. Henry Havers, of Catherine Hall, Cambridge, had been ejected
-from the Rectory of Stambourne in Essex. Receiving friendly warning
-of an attempt to apprehend him, and finding the pursuers on his
-track, he sought refuge in a malt-house, and crept into the kiln.
-Immediately afterwards, he observed a spider fixing the first line of
-a large and beautiful web, across the narrow entrance. The web being
-placed directly between him and the light, he was so much struck with
-the skill of the insect weaver, that, for a while, he forgot his
-own imminent danger; but, by the time the network had crossed and
-re-crossed the mouth of the kiln in every direction, the pursuers
-came to search for their victim. He listened as they approached, and
-distinctly overheard one of them say, “It’s no use to look in _there_,
-the old villain can never be there. _Look at that spider’s web, he
-could never have got in there without breaking it._” Giving up further
-search, they went to seek him elsewhere, and he escaped out of their
-hands.
-
-A similar narrative I find related in reference to Du Moulin, the
-French Protestant. It is impossible, after the lapse of two centuries,
-to ascertain the exact truth of such accounts. That incidents of the
-kind occurred I have no doubt; but whether they are attributed to the
-right persons, and are quite accurate in minute details, may admit of
-question.
-
-[152] Castlemaine wrote an apology for the Catholics.--_Butler’s
-English Cath._, iii. 47.
-
-[153] I must refer to the pages of Macaulay and others, for the
-politics of the period. Of the theological debates in the presence
-of the King and the Earl of Rochester, there is a curious account in
-_Patrick’s Autobiography_, 107.
-
-[154] _Entring Book_, 1686, July 17, _Morice MSS._
-
-[155] _Abridgment_, 374.
-
-[156] _Entring Book_, 1686, June 26, _Morice MSS._
-
-[157] _Ibid._, 1687, Jan. 1.
-
-[158] Compare, as to James’ designs, _Fox’s Hist. of James II._,
-332; _Hallam’s Const. Hist._ ii. 212; and _Mackintosh’s Hist. of
-Revolution_, chap. v.
-
-[159] Articles were exhibited against them “too scandalous to be
-repeated.” _Burnet’s Own Time_, i. 696; _D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft_,
-i. 237. Sancroft consecrated these two worthless men at Lambeth Palace,
-the 17th October, 1686, from fear of a _premunire_.
-
-[160] _Clarendon’s Correspondence_, i. 258.
-
-[161] “At Tonbridge Wells, this last summer, some company of condition,
-dining with Dr. Sherlock, amongst others the Doctor himself, talking
-of the great changes that had been in men and things these late years,
-even in his time, who was not old. Saith Mrs. Sherlock, his wife (who
-is a very brisk, sharp gentlewoman), ‘a greater instance thereof cannot
-be given, than yourself Doctor, for I have known you set up for a
-Sectary, a Presbyterian, a Papist, a Church of England man, but you
-never nickt your time right, nor turned seasonably, but when those
-respective interests were falling, and what you will turn to next,
-no man living knows. If ever I become a Papist, call me a knave,’
-whereupon the company smiled.”--_Entring Book_, 1686, August 9, _Morice
-MSS._
-
-[162] Printed in _State Trials_, iv. 243.
-
-[163] See _Evelyn’s Diary_, December 29, 1686.
-
-[164] The last of these facts comes to light in the _State Papers,
-Dom._ 1687, August 21.
-
-[165] _Mackintosh’s Hist. of Revolution_, 207.
-
-[166] _Ibid._, 209. Mackintosh cites proofs from letters written by the
-King, the Queen, the Nuncio, and the French Minister.
-
-In the _Entring Book_, _Morice MSS._, it is remarked, under date 1686,
-November 7--“The King told the Archbishop of York he depended upon his
-vote to take off the Test, and other penal laws from the Papists, for
-he remembered his lordship was against the making of the Test. The
-Archbishop answered, he hoped His Majesty would excuse him in that,
-and leave him to give his vote according to his judgment. It was true
-he _was_ against the imposing of the Test, but the case was altered;
-for then the Papists’ interest was so little, that he thought it not
-(as others did) then necessary, but now the Papists’ interest did so
-preponderate, that he thought it necessary to keep it on.”
-
-[167] _Dalrymple’s Memoirs_, ii. 175.
-
-[168] _Ibid._, i. 166.
-
-[169] _Ibid._, 157.
-
-[170] _Entring Book_, January 9, _Morice MSS._
-
-[171] _Macaulay_, ii. 337, 453; _Secretan’s Life of Nelson_, 24.
-
-[172] _Concilia_, iv. 612.
-
-[173] _Abridgment_, 373.
-
-[174] April 19/29, 1686. Quoted in _Macaulay_, ii. 375.
-
-[175] October 4, 1685. _Dalrymple_, ii. 177.
-
-[176] _Lingard_, xiii. 105. In the _Entring Book, Morice MSS._, under
-date 1687, January 8, there are allusions to the anti-Jesuitical
-Papists, as uneasy at present proceedings--fearing lest by an
-ill-understanding between the King and the Prince of Orange, there
-should come a revolution, and Roman Catholics should be destroyed. It
-was still treason to be reconciled to the Church of Rome; and Papists
-might be convicted now by law, though twenty years after the fact. It
-was asked, if the King pardoned their past conversion, would not the
-continuance of their fellowship with the Romish Church be a continuance
-of treason?
-
-[177] All this information I gather from the _Morice MSS., Entring
-Book_, 1687, April 30; May 14, 28.
-
-[178] _Transcripts of Digby MSS._, D.d., iii. 64, 57.
-
-[179] _London Gazette_, April 14.
-
-[180] _Ibid._, April 28.
-
-[181] _Ibid._, April 30.
-
-[182] _London Gazette_, June 11.
-
-Lord Macaulay is very severe upon Lobb. He certainly disgraced himself;
-but Wilson, in his _Dissenting Churches_ (iii. 436), puts the whole
-case so as to modify the reader’s judgment. What may be said in
-palliation of Alsop’s conduct may be seen in _Calamy_ (_Account_, ii.
-488); but really Alsop’s address to James (see _Somers’ Tracts_, i.
-236) is inexcusable. Alsop accepted an Alderman’s gown, and was called
-Alderman Alsop. His Lordship mentions also Henry Care and Thomas
-Rosewell amongst the tools of the Court. As to Henry Care, I cannot
-find that he was a Nonconformist minister; and as to Thomas Rosewell,
-there is not one word in the _State Trials_, or in his _Life_ by his
-son, or in _Calamy’s Account_ (the references made in his Lordship’s
-notes), to justify his statement in the text about Rosewell’s services
-being “secured.” No doubt much was done to court the Dissenters at this
-time, but the picture in _Macaulay’s Hist._ (ii. 474), is too highly
-coloured.
-
-[183] _London Gazette_, July 9.
-
-[184] _Ibid._, August 18.
-
-[185] _Dalrymple_, i. 169.
-
-[186] _Diary_, April 10, 1687.
-
-[187] It appears to me that no impartial person, who reads Macaulay’s
-defence of his own charges against Penn, in the last edition of the
-_History of England_, can fail to see how unsatisfactory are the
-arguments which he employs. The subject has been discussed afresh in
-the Spring number of the _Quarterly Review_ for 1868.
-
-[188] When the sister of these youths presented a petition on their
-behalf, while waiting in the ante-chamber for admission to the Royal
-presence, Lord Churchill, standing near the chimney-piece, said,
-“Madam, I dare not flatter you with any such hopes, for that marble
-is as capable of feeling compassion as the King’s heart.”--_Kiffin’s
-Life_, quoted in _Wilson_.
-
-[189] _Wilson’s Dissenting Churches_, i. 403–31.
-
-[190] _Clarendon’s Correspondence_, ii. 506.
-
-[191] _Autobiography of Sir John Bramston._--_Camden Society_, p. 280.
-
-[192] _Autobiography of Sir John Bramston_, and _A Full and True
-Relation_ of the Entry, reprinted in _Somers’ Tracts_, 2nd Edition.
-
-[193] _State Trials_, iv. 250.
-
-[194] _State Trials_, 258, _et seq._ “Dr. Fairfax is a very modest,
-quiet-tempered man, of very few words, loves to be concerned in no
-public business, and offered great violence to his own temper, to
-appear now; but he has other apprehensions of the danger the Church
-and State are in, than formerly he had, and so is far more tender
-to the Dissenters for these last ten or twelve years than he was
-before.”--_Entring Book_, June 11. _Morice MSS._
-
-[195] Vol. iv. 265, _et seq._
-
-[196] _State Papers, Dom. James II._ 1867, Sept. 9.
-
-[197] _Life of James II._, ii. 120.
-
-[198] “Penn went the progress with His Majesty, and earnestly pressed
-the King to let the business of Oxford fall; for, he said, it would
-prejudice his designs and purposes more than his Declaration had
-advanced them.”--_Entring Book_, Sept. 3, _Morice MSS._
-
-[199] _Neal_, iv. 588.
-
-[200] _Mackintosh_, 246.
-
-[201] See notice of Fowler’s writings in a subsequent chapter.
-
-[202] Salmon, in his _Lives_, p. 212, states that Lake was useful in
-the Church in maintaining order and decency, and tells a story of what
-he did on a Shrove Tuesday, when Archdeacon of Cleveland. He went from
-his seat in the choir, and pulled off the hats of a noisy mob, who
-afterwards insulted him, and attacked his house.
-
-[203] _Granger_, iv. 290.
-
-[204] _Life of Ken_, by a Layman, 142. An entry appears in the list of
-contributors to the rebuilding of St. Paul’s. “January 26, 1684/5. Dr.
-Thomas Ken, Lord Bishop of Bath and Wells, in lieu of his consecration
-dinner and gloves, £100.” _Ibid._, 148.
-
-[205] _Diary_, 1687, March 20; 1688, April 1. This sermon for its
-circumstances, ingenuity, eloquence, and power was one of the most
-remarkable ever preached.
-
-[206] _Hawkins’ Life of Ken_, 17, 99.
-
-[207] _Life of Ken_, by a Layman, 62, 207.
-
-[208] _Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time_, i. 424, 429, 434, 446.
-
-[209] See Burnet’s account of Lloyd’s conduct in reference to
-Turbervill’s evidence against Lord Stafford. _Hist. of his Own Time_,
-i. 488. Neither Lloyd nor Burnet appear to advantage in this business.
-
-[210] _Philip Henry’s Life_, by Matthew Henry. Edited by Williams, p.
-152. For particulars and remarks respecting Lloyd see _Wood, Burnet,
-Salmon, Mackintosh’s Hist. of Revolution, Wharton’s Life_ in _Appendix
-to D’Oyley’s Sancroft_, and _Rees’ Nonconformity in Wales_. There
-were two other Bishops of the same name. The following extract in the
-_Entring Book_, 1686, September 25, _Morice MSS._, refers to Dr. Lloyd,
-Bishop of Norwich: “He, at his first going down thither, gave great
-encouragement to religion, and set up evening exercises in his family
-upon the Lord’s Days, in the evening, and explained _The Whole Duty of
-Man_, and prayed and carried himself very respectfully to all. But of
-late, he has set a day for all Dissenters to come to the Sacrament,
-and if they do not come, then he will proceed against them with all
-severity. Many of his own way always had and still have bad thoughts of
-him.” The other Lloyd was Bishop of St. David’s, 1686–7.
-
-[211] _D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft_, i. 263.
-
-[212] _Calamy’s Life_, i. 198.
-
-[213] _Perry’s Hist. of the Church of England_, ii. 510.
-
-[214] _State Papers_, 1682/3, Feb. 23.
-
-[215] The significant Articles which he sent out to the clergy in July,
-1688, will be considered in the next volume in connection with the
-ecclesiastical history of the Revolution.
-
-[216] _State Trials_, iv. 362. _Gutch Collect. Curiosa_, i. 335.
-
-[217] _Patrick’s Autobiography_, 134.
-
-[218] _D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft_, i. 265–268.
-
-[219] _Evelyn_, ii. 285, May 20, 1688.
-
-[220] _Mackintosh_, 252. He observes, “perhaps the smaller number
-refers to parochial clergy and the larger to those of every
-denomination.” We are not aware that other denominations did read it.
-
-[221] Buckden, May 29, 1688, _Baker MSS._, Cambridge University Library.
-
-[222] In _James’s Memoirs_, ii. 158, the foolish step of committing
-the Bishops is attributed to Jeffrey’s influence, and it is added,
-“When the veil was taken off,” the King “owned it to have been a fatal
-counsel.”
-
-[223] _Reresby’s Memoirs_, 347.
-
-“Sir Edward Hales, Lieutenant of the Tower, invited the Bishops to
-dine on Lord’s Day; but being to receive the sacrament that day, they
-desired to be excused. He sent them half a buck, and knowing that they
-would be at church on Lord’s Day, being now sufferers, he, on Saturday
-night, told Dr. Hawkins he had an express command to deliver to him
-from the King, to read the Declaration in the Tower Church the next
-Lord’s Day following. Hawkins, after expressing the most abject kind of
-loyalty, refused.”--_Entring Book_, 1688, June 9, _Morice MSS._
-
-[224] _Entring Book_, 1688, June 9, _Morice MSS._
-
-[225] _Gazette_, May 3.
-
-[226] _Mackintosh’s Hist. of the Revolution_, 253; also, _Ibid._,
-_D’Adda_, 1/11 June.
-
-[227] _D’Adda_, 15/22 June; _Mackintosh_, 262.
-
-[228] _State Trials_, iv; _D’Oyley_, i. 297. The first part of the
-defence was entrusted to Sawyer. That part which related to the
-dispensing power was in the hands of Finch.
-
-[229] _Reresby_, 348. A letter of Barillon (12 Juillet) leaves no room
-for doubt as to the reason of their discharge.
-
-[230] _Hunter’s Life of Oliver Heywood_, 163, 187, 219.
-
-[231] _Life of Oliver Heywood_, 235.
-
-[232] _Hunter’s Life of Heywood_, 244.
-
-[233] _Hunter’s Life of Heywood_, 285–6.
-
-[234] _Neal_, iii. 600.
-
-[235] For preparations made in Oliver’s lifetime with a view to this
-meeting, see _Church of the Commonwealth_, 514. For a notice of the
-place of meeting, see the third volume of this history (_Church of the
-Restoration_, i.).
-
-[236] The Savoy Declaration is printed in _Hanbury’s Memorials_. Most
-of the passages I have given are abridged.
-
-[237] Mather remarks, “There is no Congregational man, but he reports
-to the Church something of what the person desiring communion with them
-has related to him, which the Presbyterian does not, only declares his
-own satisfaction, and giveth the brethren a liberty to object against
-the conversation of the _admittendi_.”--_Magnalia_, ii. 61. Such
-reports may be found in the _Choice Experience of Mrs. Rebecca Combe,
-and Mrs. Gertrude Clarkson_, printed in _An Abstract of the Gracious
-Dealings of God, &c._, by Samuel James.
-
-[238] _Life of Heywood_, 238.
-
-[239] _Works_, xxi. 547.
-
-[240] _Works_, v. 46.
-
-[241] _Works_, xi. 452.
-
-[242] Some very high views and strong expressions may be found in
-_Jacomb’s Dedication_, 136.
-
-[243] _Baillie’s Letters and Journals._ _Gould’s Introduction to the
-Report of St. Mary’s Norwich Chapel Case_ cxiv. _et seq._
-
-[244] I refer to what Crosby says of Mr. Spilsbury’s Church (i. 148;
-iii. 41). A number seceded from Mr. Jessy’s Church in 1638, 1641, and
-1643, and became Baptists before he did.--_Crosby_, i. 310.
-
-[245] _Gould_, xxviii.
-
-[246] See generally upon this subject _Underhill’s Confessions of
-Faith_, and _Gould’s Introduction to St. Mary’s Case_. The latter
-writer, who has carefully studied the subject, says, “The history of
-the Baptists in England has yet to be written.”
-
-[247] See p. 75 of this vol.
-
-[248] _State Papers_, 1676, April 8. Appended to this document is an
-unsigned letter, addressed to the same person, whose name was Warner,
-expostulating with him for absenting himself from communion, because he
-was dissatisfied with the writer.
-
-[249] The history of the controversy is itself a subject of
-controversy. I cannot notice it. The question is ably argued on both
-sides in the _Report of St. Mary’s Norwich Chapel Case_. The character
-and limits of this work prevent me from entering more fully into
-Baptist affairs. The most learned representatives of that denomination
-seem to be dissatisfied with all the books which relate their own
-history.
-
-[250] _Broadmead Records_, 189–221, 458, 459.
-
-[251] _Hist. of Friends_, ii. 448 and 442.
-
-[252] _Pope’s Life of Ward._
-
-[253] _North’s Lives_, i. 296, 279.
-
-[254] _Barwick’s Life_, 302. I find the following in the Cambridge
-University Library:--“Negotium Consecrationis Sacelli palatio
-Episcopali Norw. pertinentis.”
-
-“May 16, 1672. The chapel was built and adorned at Bp. Reynolds’
-expense, having been demolished in the Civil War. Consecration of the
-reading-desk, pulpit, and altar. Sermon by Jno. Conant, D.D., the
-Bishop’s son-in-law, the Bishop being disabled by illness.”--_Baker
-MSS._, 40, 5. Cat. v. 478.
-
-[255] _D’Oyley’s Life_, i. 145. Reynolds, Bishop of Norwich, zealously
-assisted.--_Blomefield_, i. 585.
-
-[256] _Webster’s Poetical and Dramatic Works_, i. 274. _Duchess of
-Malfey_, a tragedy published in 1623.
-
-[257] _John Evelyn’s Diary._ 1684, Dec. 7.
-
-[258] _Entring Book_, March 3, 1681, _Morice MSS._
-
-[259] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._ Entry of Ecclesiastical
-business. 1670, July 27.
-
-[260] _Evelyn._ 1677, Sept. 10.
-
-[261] _Cosin’s Works_, iv. 381.
-
-[262] _Articles of Visitation_, in Appendix to Report of the Commission
-on Ritual. Most of these requirements were in compliance with the
-Canons of 1603.
-
-[263] _Naked Truth._ _Somers’ Tracts_, iii. 346.
-
-[264] _Lives of North_, i. 279.
-
-[265] _State Papers._ Osborne to Williamson, March 27, 1675.
-
-[266] _Lathbury’s Convocation_, 309.
-
-[267] _Blomefield’s Norwich_, i. 413.
-
-[268] _Ashmole’s Order of the Garter_, 357, 542.
-
-[269] _Sandford’s Funeral of Monk._
-
-[270] _Evelyn._ 1684, March 30.
-
-In Sancroft’s form of “Dedication and Consecration of a Church or
-Chapel, 1685,” this direction is found:--“So likewise, when a censer is
-presented and received, they say, ‘While the King sitteth at his table,
-my spikenard sendeth forth the smell thereof,’” &c. In the _MS. Life of
-Ashmole_, Ashmole Museum, Oxford, he says--1675, Jan. 6--“I wore the
-chain of gold sent me from the King of Denmark before the King in his
-proceeding to the chapel to offer gold, frankincense, and myrrh.”
-
-[271] _North’s Lives_, i. 296.
-
-[272] _Wilkins’ Concilia_, iv. 590. June 4, 1670.
-
-[273] _Naked Truth._ _Somers’ Tracts_, iii. 347.
-
-[274] From an autograph letter addressed to Sancroft, shown in 1862 at
-an exhibition of autographs in the Institution of the Incorporated Law
-Society. See Catalogue.
-
-[275] _Articles_ of Fuller, Bishop of Lincoln, 1671. Appendix to Second
-Report of Commission on Ritual, 641.
-
-[276] They are computed by the writer of _The Future Happy State of
-England_ (109) as having amounted, in 1660, to between £300,000 and
-£500,000 a year. The annual revenue of the whole nation he puts down at
-eight millions.
-
-[277] _Stowe._
-
-[278] _Chamberlayne’s Angliæ Notitia._
-
-[279] _Wood_, iv. 311. There is in the Record Office (1678, May) a
-petition from Croft, Bishop of Hereford, in which he says the bishopric
-is not worth, in rents, £700 a year. In sixteen years he had not raised
-£2,000 in fines. There is also a letter from Bishop Barlow (Oxford, May
-29, 1675), in which he writes, “Fees, first-fruits, &c., will cost me
-£2,000 or £1,500 before I shall receive a penny from the bishopric.”
-
-[280] _Granger’s Lives_, iii. 235.
-
-[281] Notice of Morley in _Life of Ken_, 138, and _Le Neve_, 192.
-According to another computation, Sheldon gave away £72,000.
-
-[282] _Life, by Pope_, 57–63.
-
-[283] _Life of Sancroft_, i. 147. _State Papers--Entring Book._
-Ecclesiastical business, 1670–4. 1670, 13th June.
-
-[284] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._ 1678, May.
-
-[285] _North’s Lives_, i. 289.
-
-[286] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._ 1667, Sept. 30.
-
-[287] Dec. 18, 1669.
-
-[288] March 12, 1672.
-
-[289] _State Papers_, April 27, 1675.
-
-[290] _Dom. Charles II._ April, 1675.
-
-[291] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._ Wood says (_Ath. Ox._ iv. 334),
-“On the 22nd of April, 1675, being the very day that Dr. Fuller, Bishop
-of Lincoln, died, after several discussions that passed between His
-Majesty, and certain persons of honour then present, concerning the
-person to be preferred, Dr. Barlow was introduced into the presence of
-His Majesty, and had the grant of that see, and forthwith kissed His
-Majesty’s hand for the same.” Coventry and Williamson were his friends.
-
-[292] Parliamentary Return on _Ecclesiastical Appeals_, ordered by
-the House of Commons April 3, 1868, p. xxviii.--_Oughton’s Ordo
-Judiciorum_, vol. i. 219, _et seq._
-
-[293] Act of 25th Henry VIII., c. 19, 1533.--_Parl. Return_, p. iii.
-
-[294] _Parl. Return_, p. xxx.
-
-[295] There were two Commissions on this case: the first contained four
-Bishops and ten laymen--the second, five Bishops and ten laymen.
-
-[296] There are papers relating to him in the Record Office.--_Dom.
-Charles II._, 1673, October.
-
-[297] The cases are given in the _Parliamentary Return_; they are
-numbered:--53, William Duncke; 74, Edward Hirst (there are three other
-cases for not resorting to parish church, 53, 70, and 76;) 78, Catherine
-Gounter; 82, Jonathan Rutter. Duncke and Rutter were excommunicated.
-
-[298] _Return_, p. viii.
-
-[299] _Salmon’s Lives of the Bishops_, 310.
-
-[300] I am not sure of the date in the 17th century when the Hall was
-so used. A fine copy of _Baxter’s Christian Directory_ is preserved in
-Dr. Williams’ Library, and is said to have been chained to some part of
-the porch of the great meeting-house in the City of Coventry.
-
-[301] _Offor’s Life of Bunyan, Works_, iii. lxix.
-
-[302] _Thoresby._
-
-[303] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._, 1674, Nov. 4.
-
-[304] _State Papers, Dom. Charles II._, 1674, Feb. 12.
-
-[305] I find these anecdotes in a _MS. History of the Suffolk
-Churches_, by the Rev. T. Harmer, author of _Observations on Scripture_.
-
-[306] _History of England_, i. 294.
-
-[307] The author, however, considers that the Bishops’ survey came
-far below the mark,--he mentions a conjectural estimate of eight
-millions.--_Happy Future, &c._, 116.
-
-[308] _Happy Future, &c._, 281.
-
-[309] _Dalrymple’s Memoirs_, Appendix, ii. 12.
-
-[310] _Happy Future, &c._, 150.
-
-[311] _Pope’s Life of Ward_, 148.
-
-[312] _Pope’s Life of Ward_, 148.
-
-[313] James II. said at Oxford, “he heard many of them used notes in
-their sermons, but none of his Church ever did.”--_Wood_, quoted in
-_Southey’s Common-Place Book_, iii. 496. The early Puritans greatly
-disliked read sermons. See _Hooker (Keble)_, ii. 107.
-
-[314] _Howe’s Works_, vi. 295.
-
-[315] _Life_, 419. This was Bull’s advice after he became a Bishop in
-1705.
-
-[316] _Wood, Ath. Ox._--Ed. Bliss. iv. 619.--See at the end of chapter
-xii. the Chancellor’s injunctions.
-
-[317] _Worcester MS._ 1660, May 14. _State Papers_, 1666, Jan. 30.
-
-[318] _Williams’ Life of Hale_, 106.
-
-[319] _Kennet’s Register_, 154.
-
-[320] These instances are gathered from the _State Papers_ and the
-works of Sir Thomas Browne.
-
-[321] _Diary and Correspondence of Dr. John Worthington_, i. 360,
-August 20, 1661. Samuel Hartlib was the son of a Polish refugee who
-lived in Prussia. He came to England in 1630, and devoted his time
-and fortune to the promotion of literature and science. Milton speaks
-highly of him in his _Treatise on Education_. Hartlib was reduced to
-poverty soon after the Restoration.
-
-[322] _Worthington’s Reply_, ii., Sept. 12, 1661.
-
-[323] _Hunter’s Life of Heywood_, 162.
-
-[324] _Hunter’s Life of Heywood_, 219, 252, 204.
-
-[325] _Ibid._, 254.
-
-[326] _Ibid._, 192.
-
-[327] _Ibid._, 277.
-
-[328] _Hunter’s Life of Heywood_, 276.
-
-[329] Dean Stanley informs me, that his father, the Bishop of Norwich,
-delighted to relate this anecdote of the connection between his
-ancestors and Oliver Heywood.
-
-[330] _Life of Philip Henry_, 120.
-
-[331] _Turner’s Hist. of Remarkable Providences_, ch. lxv. p. 80.
-
-[332] _Life of Heywood_, 215, 331.
-
-[333] For the knowledge of this tradition, I am indebted to Mr. Parker,
-of Wycombe.
-
-[334] _Howe’s Works_, ii. 362, 369.
-
-[335] _Ibid._, iv. 3, 47.
-
-[336] _Life of Heywood_, 290.
-
-[337] From an account entitled _The Singular Experience and Great
-Sufferings of Mrs. Agnes Beaumont_, printed in _An Abstract of the
-Gracious Dealings of God, &c._ Edited by Samuel James. 4th Edit., 1774,
-p. 83.
-
-[338] _Life by Dr. Pope._
-
-[339] _Pope’s Life of Ward._
-
-[340] _North’s Lives_, iii. 323, 324.
-
-[341] _Ibid._, i. 275.
-
-[342] _North’s Lives_, i. 242.
-
-[343] Heneage Finch to his sister.--_State Papers_, Feb. 10, 1671/2.
-
-[344] _Sabbatum Redivivum_, ii. 37.
-
-[345] _Works_, iii. 102. Baxter’s doctrine was that the Jewish Sabbath
-was abrogated, and that the Lord’s Day was instituted by Divine
-authority.--_Works_, xiii. 369, _et seq._ According to Orme, there is
-only another writer of the same period with Baxter who takes just the
-same view of the subject, and almost the same ground. He alludes to
-_Warren’s Jews’ Sabbath Antiquated_, 1659.
-
-[346] _Exposition of the Hebrews_, ii. 453.
-
-[347] _Taylor’s Works_, xii. 437.
-
-[348] _Thorndike’s Works_, vi. 73; iv. 483–507.
-
-[349] Cases of Conscience, _Sanderson’s Works_, v. 15.
-
-[350] _Cosin’s Works_, i. 188.
-
-[351] _Annals of Windsor_, ii. 404.
-
-[352] Hooker paints the sacred year in magnificent colours.--Book V.,
-c. lxx., s. 8.
-
-[353] _Newcome’s Diary._
-
-[354] Reeve’s Charity at Windsor is an example.--_Annals of Windsor_,
-ii. 370.
-
-[355] _Blomefield_, i. 412.
-
-[356] _Faulkener’s History of Chelsea_, 153.
-
-[357] Tillotson’s funeral sermon for Mr. Gouge, 62–64.
-
-[358] _Life of Thomas Firman, late Citizen of London_, 1698.
-
-Wesley prefaces the life of Firman in the _Arminian Magazine_ with
-these words: “I was exceedingly struck at reading the following
-life, having long settled it in my mind that the entertaining wrong
-notions concerning the Trinity was inconsistent with real piety.
-But I cannot argue against matter of fact. I dare not deny that Mr.
-Firman was a pious man, although his notions of the Trinity were quite
-erroneous.”--_Southey’s Life of Wesley_, ii. 68.
-
-[359] _Life and Times_, pt. ii. 296–7.
-
-[360] _Birch’s Life of Boyle_, Appendix. The New England Company is
-still in existence. I hope to be able to give some account of its
-proceedings in a future volume.
-
-[361] The College referred to was Emmanuel.--_D’Oyley’s Life of
-Sancroft_ i. 128.
-
-[362] “The gradual exclusion of mental by physical science from
-the circle of ‘philosophy’ as defined in the Cambridge Schools,
-belongs to the first half of the 18th, not of the 17th century,”
-says the author of _Thorndike’s Life_, but he justly adds that in
-the 17th century ancient philosophy and languages were yielding “to
-the continually-increasing influence of mathematics and natural
-philosophy.”--_Works_, vi. 166.
-
-[363] _State Papers, Dom._, 1667, Cal. 301.
-
-[364] _North’s Lives_, iii. 362–367.
-
-[365] _Cooper’s Annals_, iii. 549.
-
-[366] Dated Oct. 8, 1674.--_Wilkins’ Concilia_, iv. 594. Letters
-referring to Monmouth’s election as Chancellor, may be found amongst
-the _State Papers_, (1674,) and a characteristic one from the Duke,
-accepting this office in Lambeth Library, _Tenison MSS._ 674, fol. 5.
-
-[367] Printed Copy of the programme in Latin:--“Quod se unusquisque,
-post sex hebdomodas abhinc numerandas, coram Academicis Concionem, sive
-Anglice, sive Latine habiturus, Illam, more majorum, a principio ad
-finem, memoriter recitare tenebitur; ita ut, vel non omnino, vel saltem
-perraro, nec nisi carptim, et stringente oculo, librum consulere opus
-habeat.”--_State Papers, Dom._, 1674, Nov. 24.
-
-[368] _Dom. Charles II._ 1666, Aug. 16, 17. There is a curious letter,
-dated 1677, July 23, written by Joseph Addison’s father, Launcelot
-Addison, begging preferment.
-
-[369] _Autobiography of A. Wood_, quoted _Oxoniana_, ii. 23.
-
-[370] _Ibid._, 89.
-
-[371] Letter from Dr. Wallis, July, 1669, _Neal_, iv. 423.
-
-[372] _State Papers._
-
-[373] The letters are dated 1684, Nov. 6, 8, 12, 16, _Oxoniana_, ii.
-205–210.
-
-[374] See the Writings of William Penn.
-
-[375] _Life, Works_, vi. 176, _et seq._
-
-[376] _Works_, ii. 15.
-
-[377] _Ibid._, ii. 88–100.
-
-[378] _Ibid._, v. 488.
-
-[379] _Works_, i. 118; iii. 246.
-
-[380] Vol. ii. 424, 409, 471, 564.
-
-[381] Vol. iii. 68, 80, 128. It is well to recollect, all through this
-account of the Anglo-Catholic view of faith, what is the doctrine of
-Roman Catholics upon the subject--“Jam vero Catholici agnoscunt quidem
-vocabulum fidei, in divinis literis non semper uno, et eodem modo sumi
-... tamen fidem historicam, et miraculorum, et promissionum, unam et
-eandem esse docent, atque illam unam non esse proprie notitiam, aut
-fiduciam, sed assensum certum, atque firmissimum, ob auctoritatem primæ
-veritatis; et hanc unam esse fidem justificantem.”--_Bellarmin, De
-Justificatione_, c. iv.
-
-[382] Vol. iii. 173, 355.
-
-[383] Vol. iii. 313.
-
-[384] _Ibid._, 393, 496.
-
-[385] Vol. iii. 541-547; chap. xxviii.–xxx.
-
-[386] _Ibid._, 649.
-
-[387] _Ibid._, 660.
-
-[388] Any one who wishes to verify this may do so by consulting the
-useful index to the Oxford Edition of _Thorndike’s Works_. It is
-interesting and instructive, in connection with the study of Thorndike,
-to read the deeply thoughtful sermon on Justification by Hooker
-(_Works_, iii.). The divergence between them is manifest. Thorndike
-could not consistently hold Hooker’s clear view of justification, as
-distinguished from holiness. It may not be amiss here to observe that
-the doctrine of justification by faith, though tenaciously held by the
-Puritans, was not held by them alone. It was maintained by Reformers
-who opposed Puritanism, and by some Roman Catholics before the Council
-of Trent. There were anti-Lutherans who so far agreed with Luther.
-Whether they were consistent is another question.
-
-[389] Vol. iii. 695.
-
-[390] _Life of Thorndike_, 224, 253.
-
-[391] _Nelson’s Life of Bull_, 24.
-
-[392] _Harmonia Apostolica_, 10.
-
-[393] _Harmonia Apostolica_, 21, 22.
-
-[394] _Harmonia Apostolica_, 58, 71, 76, 87–166.
-
-[395] This quotation is taken from the _Tracts for the Times_, iv. 63.
-The words in _Bull’s Apology_, sect. i., are not closely followed.
-
-[396] _Nelson’s Life of Bull_, 191.
-
-[397] _Bull’s Exam. Cens., &c._, Oxford Edit., 38–91.
-
-[398] _Ibid._, 228.
-
-[399] Preface to _Exam. Cens._
-
-[400] See for example his defence of Origen, _Def. Fid._, i. 190, 196,
-200. Notice, also, what Hallam says of Bull, _Introduction to Lit._,
-iv. 152. Hooker (in the _Eccl. Polity_, book v. s. 42) speaks of the
-Deity of our Lord Jesus Christ--the co-equality and co-eternity of the
-Son with the Father--as contained but not opened in the former Creed
-(the Apostles’). I would call attention to a pregnant remark of that
-great Divine:--“Howbeit, because this Divine mystery is more true than
-plain, divers having framed the same to their own conceits and fancies,
-are found in their expositions thereof more plain than true.”--_Ibid._,
-s. 52. May I add, that he seems to forget his own remarks in s. 56.
-
-[401] _Bull’s State of Man_, ii. 96; _Jackson_, iii. 117; _Ellicott’s
-Destiny of the Creature_, 172.
-
-[402] _Theologia Veterum_, 407.
-
-[403] The word _being_ is used by Pearson and Heylyn in the same way as
-we use the word _since_. The quotation is from p. 251, in the 12th fol.
-edit. of _Pearson’s Exposition_. For Heylyn’s opinions, see _Theol.
-Vet._, 255. The contrast between the tone of Pearson and Heylyn is very
-striking.
-
-[404] _Works_, ii. 241-255.--_Life of Christ_, first published in 1649,
-afterwards “with additionals,” 1653.
-
-[405] _Taylor’s Works_, ix. 424.--_Real Presence_, 1654.
-
-[406] See Sect. iii. iv. v. vi. of the _Real Presence_, ix. 436, _et
-seq._
-
-[407] _Taylor’s Works_, i., p. ccxxviii.
-
-[408] _Taylor’s Works_, vi. 271. _Sermons._
-
-[409] _Taylor’s Works_, ii. 323.--_Life of Christ._
-
-[410] _Ibid._, vi. 279.--_Sermons._
-
-[411] _Taylor’s Works_, vii. 444.--_Liberty of Prophesying_, 1647.
-
-[412] _Ibid._, 445.
-
-[413] _Works_, i. ccxi.
-
-[414] _Life_, clxxxiii.
-
-[415] _Hooker’s Works_, book iii., sect. 3.
-
-[416] _Life_, clxxxv.
-
-[417] _Cosin’s Works_, vol. v., pref. xix.
-
-[418] _Bingham_, in his _Antiquities_ (v. 358, _et seq._), expends
-much learning upon proofs that the Fathers believed in the continued
-substantial presence of bread and wine. In _Hooker_, there is a
-clear description of the Anglican view as distinguished from other
-views.--_Eccl. Polity_, v.c. lv., &c.
-
-[419] “Nam multi ex antiquissimis patribus, ut Justinus Martyr,
-Tertullianus, Clemens Romanus, Lanctantius, Victorinus Martyr, et alii,
-non putabant animas justorum hinc recta ad cœlos ire: sed in sinu
-Abrahæ, vel in aliquo alio refrigerii loco usque ad ultimi judicii
-diem detineri; adeoque interea Beatificæ visionis, seu perfectæ
-felicitatis, ex Dei promissione et Christi merito illis debitæ,
-expertes esse. Quare cum sic judicarent non abs re erat Deum illorum
-nomine orare, ut maturaret illum diem, quem coronandis Sanctis suis in
-plenitudine Redemptionis destinâsset.”--_Epistolaris Dissertatio_, &c.,
-18.--Compare _Tracts for the Times_, No. 72.
-
-[420] _Works_, Oxford Edit., iv. 507.--Preface to the “Catching of
-Leviathan,”--this preface is very clever and amusing.
-
-[421] _Walton’s Lives: Pierce’s Letter._ For an account of
-Sublapsarianism, &c., see _Burnet_ on the _Articles_, xvii.
-
-[422] _Walton’s Lives_: Pierce’s letter, 52.
-
-[423] _Sermons_, 60.
-
-[424] Some account has been given of Hammond in the _Church of the
-Commonwealth_. A letter, from which a quotation is inserted on p. 333,
-has been incorrectly supposed to refer to him. Hammond was unmarried.
-
-[425] _Practical Catechism_ (published in 1662), p. 78. Oxford Edit.,
-1847.
-
-[426] _Practical Catechism_, 34, 79, 25. His minor Theological Works
-are controversial.
-
-[427] _Exposition_, 337, 345.
-
-[428] _Exposition_, 348, 364, 365, 366.
-
-[429] _Works_, ii. 85, 117, 131.
-
-[430] _Works_, ii. 113.
-
-[431] _Ibid._, 128.
-
-[432] _Works_, ii. 337.
-
-[433] _Ibid._, 13, 15.
-
-[434] _Ibid._, 16.
-
-[435] _Works_, ii. 533.
-
-[436] _Thorndike’s Works_, ii. 4; iv. 910.
-
-[437] _Bull’s Works_, ii. 187.
-
-[438] _Theologia Veterum_, 450.
-
-[439] _Theologia Veterum_, 417.
-
-[440] _Preface to Dissuasive from Popery._--_Works_, x., cxviii.
-
-[441] _Works_, i. 72.
-
-[442] _Bramhall’s Vindication of Grotius_, quoted in _Tracts for the
-Times_, No. 74.
-
-[443] _Cosin’s Latin Confession._--_Works_, iv. 525.
-
-[444] _Treatises._ _Answer to Father Cressy_, 31.
-
-[445] _Thorndike’s Works_, v. 20; i. 622, 530.
-
-[446] _Works_, iv. 923, 173.
-
-[447] _Cosin’s Works_, iv. 527.
-
-[448] Hallam speaks of the testimony brought forward as consisting of
-“vague and self-contradictory stories, which gossiping compilers of
-literary anecdote can easily accumulate.”--_Const. Hist._, i. 216.
-
-[449] Compare this with what I have said in vol. iii., p. 81.
-
-[450] _Register_, 386.
-
-[451] _Thoresby’s Diary_, i. 61.
-
-[452] I have before me the 20th edition of the _New Whole Duty of Man_,
-authorized by the King’s most excellent Majesty, in which there is
-a decided attack made upon the old _Whole Duty of Man_. Some of the
-author’s criticisms are scarcely fair.
-
-[453] The first edition was published 1659. In Aubrey’s _Letters_, ii.
-125–134 there is an interesting discussion respecting the authorship
-of the book. It has been ascribed to Lady Packington, to Archbishop
-Frewen, to Archbishop Sancroft, and to Woodhead, who, after the
-Restoration, became a Roman Catholic.
-
-[454] He is to be distinguished from Samuel Clarke, the Puritan.
-Walton’s Polyglott is noticed in _Ecclesiastical Hist._, vol. ii.
-
-[455] _Hallam_, _Introduction_, &c., iv. 149. See note to this chapter
-in the Appendix. It is too long for insertion here.
-
-[456] See vol. i. of this history for particulars in Chillingworth’s
-life.
-
-[457] Chap. iv.
-
-[458] _John Smith’s Select Works_, 333.
-
-[459] _John Smith’s Select Works_, 344, 349.
-
-[460] _Golden Remains_, 157.
-
-[461] _Ibid._, 95.
-
-[462] _Ibid._, 257.
-
-[463] _Ibid._, 114.
-
-[464] _Farindon’s Sermons_, iii. 171.
-
-[465] _Farindon’s Sermons_, iii. 285, 286.
-
-[466] _Ibid._, 562.
-
-[467] _Farindon’s Sermons_, i. 71.
-
-[468] _Phenix_, ii. 505.
-
-[469] _Life and Times_, ii. 386.
-
-[470] _Hist. of his Own Times_, i. 188.
-
-[471] _Works_, v. 316.
-
-[472] _The Principles and Practices of Certain Moderate Divines of the
-Church of England_, by Edward Fowler, 89.
-
-[473] _Ibid._, 114.
-
-[474] _The Principles and Practices of Certain Moderate Divines of the
-Church of England_, 126, 161.
-
-[475] _The Principles and Practices of Certain Moderate Divines of the
-Church of England_, 213, 228.--Compare with this extract what is said
-hereafter respecting the opinions of Richard Baxter.
-
-[476] _A Discourse of Christian Liberty_, Sect. II. chap. viii.
-
-[477] Sect. III., chap. xv.; see also chap. xiii. _Fowler’s Discourse
-on the Principles of certain Moderate Divines, &c._, was published
-1679. In 1671, he published _The Design of Christianity_, in which
-he dwelt upon the restoration of righteousness in man as the chief
-purpose of the Gospel. He was answered in the following year by
-John Bunyan. The reply is entitled, “A defence of the doctrine of
-justification by faith in Christ Jesus; showing true Gospel holiness
-flows from thence; or Mr. Fowler’s pretended _Design of Christianity_,
-proved to be nothing more, than to trample under foot the blood of
-the Son of God; and the idolizing of man’s own righteousness: as also
-how while he pretends to be a minister of the Church of England, he
-overthroweth the wholesome doctrine contained in the 10th, 11th, and
-13th of the Thirty-nine Articles of the same, and that he falleth in
-with the Quaker and Romanist against them.” The bad temper of the book
-is indicated in this long title. Bunyan points out Fowler’s defects,
-and defends important doctrines which Fowler impugns; but he deals in
-a good deal of fierce and coarse invective. In this respect, Fowler
-equalled him, when he published a rejoinder.
-
-[478] _Intellectual System_, 61, 597, 619.
-
-[479] _Ibid._, 191.
-
-[480] _Intellectual System_, 676.--We may gather from the passage,
-how Cudworth would have treated the Darwinian hypotheses of natural
-selection and struggle for life.
-
-[481] _Burnet_, i. 189, includes him when describing the
-Latitudinarians.
-
-[482] _Origines Sacræ_, 539.
-
-[483] _Kitto’s Cycl., Art. Patrick._--It is many years ago since I
-consulted Patrick, but my impressions are of the kind stated above.
-Of Lightfoot’s learning I am not a competent judge, but I follow the
-current of opinion as I find it in the best critics.
-
-[484] _Whewell’s Inductive Sciences_, ii. 112.
-
-[485] See _Letters by Stubbe_, in _Birch’s Life of Boyle_, 189–200.
-
-[486] See his _Lex Orientalis_, _Sadducismus Triumphans_, and _Vanity
-of Dogmatizing_, Ed. 1661.
-
-[487] _Plus Ultra_, 88.--Glanvill answered Stubbe’s attack. No love was
-lost between them; most bitterly did they abuse one another.
-
-[488] In the _Plus Ultra_, p. 141, is a passage which might have been
-written by a modern controversialist.
-
-[489] _Philosophia Pia_, particularly pp. 81 and 119. This treatise
-and others, published under new titles, may be found in his volume of
-_Essays_, published in 1676. He was addicted to the habit of reprinting
-old treatises under new titles. There is, in Dr. Williams’ Library, a
-good collection of Glanvill’s works, including the first and second
-editions of _The Vanity of Dogmatizing_, now very scarce.
-
-[490] _Joshua de la Place_ (_Placæus_) died 1655; _Claude Pagon_, 1685.
-They were leaders in this direction.
-
-[491] Spener commenced his ministry in 1662, and died in 1705.
-
-[492] See Andrew Rivet, _Isagoge_, &c., 1627, xx. “Nullum esse hominum
-cœtum, nullum hominem quantacunque dignitate polleat, qui sensus
-Scripturæ aut controversiarum fidei, sit judex supremus et judici
-infallibalis.”
-
-[493] Descartes died 1650; Spinoza, 1677.
-
-[494] _Christian Doctrine_, translated by Sumner, 85–89, 135.
-
-[495] Chap. xiv.-xxiii. One of the most extraordinary charges which
-party spirit ever created was that of Milton being a Papist.
-
-[496] _Biddle’s Confession of Faith touching the Holy Trinity._
-
-[497] _Works_, viii. 83, _et seq._ In the Lambeth Library, Tenison
-MSS., 673, is a curious volume containing “Original papers, which a
-cabal of Socinians in London offered to present to the Ambassadors of
-the King of Fez and Morocco, when he was taking leave of England in
-1682.” The agent of the Socinians is said to have been Monsieur de
-Verze.
-
-[498] _De Carne Christo._--_Adv. Prax._, c. vii.
-
-[499] Quoted in _Bancroft’s Hist. of the United States_, ii. 373.
-
-[500] _Works_, i. 150, 151, 157, 167, 209, 215, 231.
-
-[501] _A Discourse of the General Rule of Faith and
-Practice._--_Works_, i. 294.
-
-[502] _Works_, i. 310.
-
-[503] See his _Sandy Foundation_.--_Works_, i.
-
-[504] _Works_, i. 62, 262, 267.
-
-[505] See Penn’s _Great Case of Liberty of Conscience_, published
-1670.--_Works_, iii.
-
-[506] See _Truth Exalted_.--_Works_, i.
-
-[507] _Third Proposition concerning the Scriptures._ See pp. 142–146,
-204.
-
-[508] _Apology_, 204 (abridged).
-
-[509] _Ibid._, 207, 226, 241.
-
-[510] _Sparkles of Glory_, 145, 200.
-
-[511] _Sterry’s Sermons_, 17.
-
-[512] Gale insists upon the sense of religion in barbarous
-nations.--Part iv., 238.
-
-[513] _Howe’s Works_, iii. 37. He refers to Cudworth. See remarks on
-the argument in _Rogers’ Life of Howe_, 368.
-
-[514] _Works_, iv. 416, _et seq._
-
-[515] _Works_, ii. 144, _et. seq._--I have, in speaking of Thorndike,
-mentioned the distinction which he makes between degrees of
-inspirations. But that was a turn of thought which seems to have been
-rarely taken in those days. I have searched Pearson, and Taylor, and
-Goodwin, and even Baxter, besides others, in vain for any indication
-of their having contemplated any such controversy on the subject as
-exists in our day. The complete inspiration of the Bible was believed.
-The Lutheran theologians of the seventeenth century maintained the
-inspiration of every word, and also that the Hebrew vowel points are
-original.--_Hagenbach Hist. of Doctrine_, ii. 231.
-
-[516] _Herbert’s De Veritate_ was published in 1624.
-
-[517] For the doctrine of the Eternal Generation, see _Goodwin’s
-Works_, v. 547; _Owen’s Works_, viii. 112, 291. For the doctrine of
-the Trinity: _Goodwin_, iv. 231; _Owen_, ii. 64, 175; _Orme’s Life of
-Baxter_, 470.
-
-[518] See Howe’s mode of speaking about the covenant in contrast with
-Thorndike’s.--_Works_, iii. 448.
-
-[519] _Works_, viii. 4, 257, 459, 546; ii. 234; viii. 288.
-
-[520] _Works_, ix. _Discourse of Election._
-
-[521] See _Ibid._, 154, 160, 344. He mentions a good woman, who said
-to her wicked son, “Well, I shall one day rejoice that thou shalt be
-damned, and take part with the glory of God therein.” The conviction of
-so high a grace in her soul he declares was the means of breaking the
-man’s heart, and converting him.
-
-Such things had been said by the schoolmen. Thomas Aquinas, in his
-_Summa_ (pt. iii. sup. quest. 94, art. i.), alludes to the bliss of the
-saved being increased by the sight of the lost.
-
-[522] _Works_, iii. 15.
-
-[523] _Ibid._, iii. 15; iv. 64, 9.
-
-[524] Vol. VI. bk. ii.
-
-[525] _Owen’s Works_, xi. 203, 209.
-
-[526] _Owen’s Works_, ix. 198.
-
-[527] _Works_, v. 325 _et seq._ They are sixteen in number, and
-are stated in such a way that it is impossible to condense them
-satisfactorily.
-
-[528] _Ibid._, 267, 308, 318.
-
-[529] _Imputatio Fidei_ (1642), pp. 7, 17. Nothing can exceed the
-clearness and precision with which the whole case is stated at the
-beginning of the Treatise.
-
-[530] _Redemption Redeemed_, (1651), 433.--This point he pursues at
-great length in chapters v., viii., xvi., xx. He argues, that if Christ
-died _sufficiently_ for all, He died _intentionally_ for all.--p. 95.
-Although I agree with Goodwin, so far as to believe that Christ died
-for all men, I may observe that sometimes his reasonings against the
-Calvinistic doctrine of election, as for instance in chap. xviii. sec.
-4 and 7, are as unsatisfactory as they are intricate. He frequently
-attributes to his opponents implications in argument, and consequences
-of doctrine, which they would indignantly repudiate. It is a common
-vice in controversy.
-
-[531] _Ibid._ Preface.
-
-[532] _Calamy’s Account_, 484. _Cont._ 632.
-
-[533] _Ibid._, 35.
-
-[534] _Baxter’s Life and Times_, i. 107.
-
-[535] _Ath. Ox._ iv. 784. Even Wood seems to have been a little touched
-by this beautiful statement, for after calling Baxter the late pride
-of the Presbyterians, he remarks, “he very civilly returned me this
-answer.”
-
-[536] _Works_, vii. 312, 315.--_Treatise on Conversion_, 1657. The
-first chapter of the _Saint’s Everlasting Rest_, published in 1649, is
-Calvinistic.
-
-[537] _Ibid._, viii. 119. He says, however, in his _End of Doctrinal
-Controversies_, published in 1691 (p. 160): “Christ died for all, but
-not for all alike, or equally; that is, He intended good to all, but
-not an equal good, with an equal intention.” See also extracts from his
-_Catholic Theology_ (1675), _Orme’s Life of Baxter_, p. 477. In the
-Appendix to _Baxter’s Aphorisms_ (1649), there are Animadversions on
-Owen’s views of Redemption.
-
-[538] _Polano’s History of the Council of Trent_, 212.
-
-[539] See p. 347 of this volume.
-
-[540] _Aphorisms of Justification_, 44.
-
-[541] _Works_, xviii. 503.
-
-[542] It is interesting here to observe, that as the Anglicans differed
-from the Romanists, so did the later Puritans from the Reformers, as
-to the nature of faith. “Quid est fides? Est non tantum notitia qua
-firmiter assentior omnibus, quæ Deus nobis in verbo suo patefecit,
-sed etiam certa fiducia, a Spiritu Sancto, per Evangelium in corde
-meo accensa, qua in Deo acquiesco, certò statuens, non solum aliis,
-_sed mihi quoque remissionem peccatorum, eternam justitiam et vitam,
-donatam esse_, idque gratis ex Dei misericordia propter unius Christi
-meritum.”--_Cat. Rel. Christ. quæ in Eccl. et Scholis Palitinatus_, p.
-8. Bull, in his _Harmonia Ap._, Diss. I., cap. iv. s. 6, attributes
-this doctrine of personal assurance as the essence of faith, to the
-Reformers generally. Owen admits, “Many great Divines at the first
-Reformation, did (as the Lutherans generally yet do) thus make the
-mercy of God in Christ, and thereby the forgiveness of our own sins,
-to be the proper object of justifying faith, as such.”--_Justification
-by Faith._--_Works_, xi. 104. Owen’s idea of justifying faith did
-not include assurance. As we have noticed already, Goodwin’s, at
-any rate, was much more comprehensive. The Romanists regarded faith
-as _Credence_; the Reformers as _Assurance_; the Anglicans and the
-Latitudinarians as _Obedience_; the Puritans as _Reliance_.
-
-[543] _Rogers’ Life of Howe_, 21.
-
-[544] The new edition of _Howe’s Works_, published by the Tract
-Society, has done much, not only to make them accessible to the public,
-but to make the reading of them more easy and pleasant. Professor
-Rogers, by an improved punctuation and arrangement of paragraph, has
-provided the latter advantage. The work of an Editor is too often
-in the present day mere pretence, but in this case there has been
-an amount of painstaking, which renders these volumes, in point of
-accuracy, worthy of a place by the side of _Keble’s Hooker_.
-
-[545] _Works_, i. 30, _et seq._ _The Blessedness of the Righteous_ was
-published in 1668.
-
-[546] _Howe’s Works_, iv. 322.
-
-[547] _Rogers’ Life of Howe_, 389.
-
-[548] _Life of Arnold_, ii. 67.
-
-[549] The remark, I believe, was made by the late Bishop of Lichfield.
-
-[550] _Goodwin’s Works_, iv. 41; ix. 82, 362. _Owen’s Works_, ii. 247,
-513.
-
-[551] _Works_, v. 364.
-
-[552] _Ibid._, v. 46; _Christian Directory_, 1673.
-
-[553] _Works_, v. 346.
-
-[554] _Ibid._, vii. 517.
-
-[555] _Howe’s Works_, iii. 460.
-
-[556] _Goodwin’s Works_, vii. 311.
-
-[557] _Baxter’s Works_, iv. (_Christian Directory_), 315.
-
-[558] _Works_, xviii. 301.
-
-[559] _Baxter’s Works_, v. 346. Compare _Origen_, _cont. Celsum_;
-_Hooker_, _Eccl. Polity_, ii. 310; and _Thorndike’s Works_, iv. 39.
-
-[560] _Baxter’s Works_, v. 287, _et seq._, 400.
-
-[561] Compare this with what has been said at p. 117.
-
-[562] _Orme’s Life of Baxter_, 659.
-
-[563] _Sermons_, 12.
-
-[564] _Orme’s Life of Baxter_, 589. These passages I have before
-referred to.
-
-[565] _Orme’s Life of Owen_, 234.
-
-[566] _Works_, xx. 74, 113.
-
-[567] _Works_, xvi. 256.
-
-[568] I confine myself here to books published before the Revolution,
-and of course must omit numbers worthy of mention.
-
-[569] _Orme’s Baxter_, 552.
-
-[570] Brook gives an account of the book in his _Lives of the
-Puritans_, iii. 213.
-
-[571] It is a significant fact that John Goodwin’s work on _The Spirit_
-is included in Nicholl’s series of _Puritan Divines_.
-
-[572] I cannot but refer, and that with sincere pleasure, to a Sunday
-evening spent at Pontresina, in the Engadine, the summer before last,
-when, together with a Nonconformist friend, I united in such a service,
-with representatives of different sections of the Establishment.
-
-[573] _The Christian Poet._
-
-[574] Himself and his brothers.
-
-[575] _Diary_, i. 15.
-
-[576] Memoir prefixed to _Diary_, p. xviii.
-
-[577] Memoir prefixed to _Silva_, i. 15.
-
-[578] My rule has been to select characters who died before the
-Revolution, but it is necessary to notice Evelyn’s life in connection
-with Margaret Godolphin; and although he survived the Revolution so
-many years, he may fairly be taken as a type of religious life before
-that period. A MS. by him was published in the year 1850, in two
-volumes, entitled, _A Rational Account of the True Religion_. The first
-volume treats of natural theology. In the second, besides a description
-of Judaism, primitive Christianity, and the decadence and corruption
-of religion, Evelyn “professes to explain the true doctrines of Holy
-Scripture and of the Church of England.” The chief interest attaching
-to the work will be found to consist in its value “as an impartial
-interpretation of her Articles and her Liturgy; conveyed too in a
-manner which shows he was not propounding new views, but merely stating
-them as understood by her members in his time.”--p. xi. In other
-words, Evelyn explains the doctrines of the Church of England from an
-Anglo-Catholic point of view. The book indicates the intelligence and
-devoutness of the author.
-
-[579] One of the Blagge family was Gentleman of the Privy Chamber to
-Henry VIII., and a great favourite with the King, who, for some reason,
-called him his pig. “He was a Sacramentarian; and when Wriothesley and
-Gardiner, in 1546, commenced their persecution on the Statute of the
-Six Articles, Blagge was clapped up in Newgate, and, after a hurried
-trial, condemned to be burnt. But the moment the King heard of it, he
-rated the Chancellor for coming so near him, even to his privy chamber,
-and commanded him instantly to draw out a pardon. On his release,
-Blagge flew to thank his master, who, seeing him, cried out, ‘Ah, my
-_pig_, are you here safe again?’ ‘Yes, Sire,’ said he, ‘and if your
-Majesty had not been better than your Bishops, your _pig_ had been
-_roasted_ ere this time.’”--_Tytler’s England under Edward VI. and
-Mary_, i. 146.
-
-[580] _The Life of Mrs. Godolphin_, by Evelyn, edited by the Bishop of
-Oxford. p. 104. The year of the marriage is not given.
-
-[581] _Ibid._, 106.
-
-[582] _The Life of Mrs. Godolphin_, 176.
-
-[583] Paley.
-
-[584] These quotations from Hale’s writings are found in his _Life_ by
-Sir J. B. Williams. See also _Life_ by Burnet.
-
-[585] These passages are taken from a work entitled _Mastix_.
-
-[586] _Campbell’s Essay on Poetry_, 245.
-
-[587] _More’s Dialogues._
-
-[588] _Ward’s Life of More_ gives a full account of this excellent man.
-See also _Willmot’s Lives of the Poets_.
-
-[589] See the thought expanded in More’s _Letters on Several Subjects_.
-
-[590] _Sir T. Browne’s Works_, i. liv.
-
-[591] _Ibid._, iv. 420.
-
-[592] _Ibid._, ii. 6.
-
-[593] _Sir T. Browne’s Works_, ii. 12.
-
-[594] _Ibid._, ii. 27, 81, 82; i. xlvii.
-
-[595] _Sir T. Browne’s Works_, ii. 117.
-
-[596] _Lives_, ii. 172.
-
-[597] _Aubrey’s Letters_, ii. 255.
-
-[598] _Birch’s Tillotson_, 75.
-
-[599] _Morice MSS., Ent. Book_.
-
-[600] _Clarendon, Hist._, 493.
-
-[601] _Tomkins’ Piety Promoted_, quoted in _Pattison’s Rise and
-Progress of Religious Life in England_, 248.
-
-[602] See _Stanford’s Life of Alleine_.
-
-[603] _Broadmead Records_, 97.
-
-[604] _Stockton MSS., Diary_, Dr. Williams’ Library.
-
-[605] _Life_, 43.
-
-[606] _Life_, 24, 26, 59, 147. Stockton bequeathed £500 and his
-valuable library to Gonville and Caius College.
-
-[607] _Calamy._
-
-[608] _Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time_, i. 381.
-
-[609] Such illustrations occur in Dr. Swainson’s valuable Hulsean
-Lectures on _The Creeds of the Church_, 58.
-
-[610] There is, in Glamorganshire, an extra-parochial district called
-Llan-vethin.
-
-[611] _At_ was first struck out, and _on_ written over it, then _on_
-was altered into _at_.
-
-[612] Appears as if _midst_ had been altered into _body_.
-
-[613] _On_ altered into _at_.
-
-[614] I examined the books once with Dr. Swainson, and once with the
-Dean of Westminster.
-
-[615] _Documents_, 177.
-
-[616] I find this stated by Dr. Vaughan, and I have no doubt of its
-correctness; but in looking over the _Rejoinder_, I cannot lay my
-finger on the passage.
-
-[617] Father Huddlestone.
-
-[618] The Queen’s Priests.
-
-[619] Petre, Bath, and Feversham.
-
-[620] In the Somers’ copy it is “‘the Duke and Lords’ withdrew into the
-closet for the space of an hour and a half.”
-
-
-Transcriber’s Note:
-
-1. Obvious printer’s, spelling and punctuation errors have been
-silently corrected.
-
-2. Superscripts are represented using the caret character, e.g. D^r. or
- wh^{ch}.
-
-3. Italics are shown as _xxx_.
-
-4. Bold print is shown as =xxx=.
-
-5. Where appropriate, original spelling has been retained.
-
-6. The INDEX has been added to the Table of Contents.
-
-7. Struck out text is shown as ~xxx~.
-
-8. Smaller font is shown as #xxx#.
-
-9. Where necessary the sidenotes have been placed inside the text of
- the paragraph. In other places the page header text has been turned
- into sidenotes.
-
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY OF
-ENGLAND, THE CHURCH OF THE RESTORATION, VOL. 2 OF 2 ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/67413-0.zip b/old/67413-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 92fb0da..0000000
--- a/old/67413-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67413-h.zip b/old/67413-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 0ced1d4..0000000
--- a/old/67413-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67413-h/67413-h.htm b/old/67413-h/67413-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index afc4db7..0000000
--- a/old/67413-h/67413-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,28511 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- Ecclesiastical History of England - The Church of the Restoration Vol. II, by John Stoughton&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2,h3,h4 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
- font-weight: normal;
-}
-
-h1 {line-height: 2em;}
-
-h2 {font-size: 120%;}
-
-h3 {font-size: 100%;}
-
-.subhed { display: block; margin-top: 1em; font-size: 100%; font-weight: normal; }
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
- text-indent: 1.2em;
-}
-
-.p-left {text-indent: 0em; }
-
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.p6 {margin-top: 6em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-hr.r15 {width: 15%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 42.5%; margin-right: 42.5%;}
-
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-
-ul { list-style-type: none; }
-li.i1 {text-indent: 1em;}
-li.i2 {text-indent: 2em;}
-li.i3 {text-indent: 3em;}
-
-div.parent { text-align: center; }
-ul.left { display: inline-block; text-align: left;
- list-style-type: none; }
-
-.inline {display: inline-block; text-indent:0;}
-
-.strikethrough {text-decoration: line-through;}
-
-.hangingindent {
- padding-left: 2em ;
- text-indent: -2em ;}
-
-.hangingindent1 {
- padding-left: 3em ;
- text-indent: -2em ;}
-
-.hangingindent2 {
- padding-left: 4em ;
- text-indent: -2em ;}
-
-
-table {
-margin: auto;
-width:auto;
-border: 0;
-border-spacing: 0;
-border-collapse: collapse; }
-
-td {
-padding: .05em .2em .2em 2.5em;
-border: .1em none white;
-text-align: left;
-text-indent: -1em; }
-
-td.header {
-padding: 1.5em .2em .2em .2em;
-text-align: center;
-text-indent: 0em;
-font-size: 100%; }
-
-td.header1 {
-padding: .2em .2em .2em .2em;
-text-align: center;
-text-indent: 0em;
-font-size: 100%; }
-
-td.chn {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-right: 1em; }
-
-td.cht {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 1em;
-text-indent: -1em;}
-
-td.cht2 {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 2em;
-padding-top: 0em;
-text-indent: 0em;}
-
-td.cht3 {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 1em;
-padding-top: 0em;
-text-indent: 0em;}
-
-td.right1 {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 3em;
-text-indent: -1em;}
-
-td.right2 {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 1em;}
-
-td.pag {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: bottom;
-padding-left: 4em;}
-
- td.ctr {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
- padding-top: 0em;
- vertical-align: top; }
-
- td.ctr1 {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
- padding-top: 0em;
- padding-left: 0em;
- vertical-align: top; }
-
-td.chn {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-right: 1em; }
-
-
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- text-indent: 0;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- font-size: 90%;}
-
-.sidenote, .sni {
- width: 32%;
- padding-bottom: .5em;
- padding-top: .5em;
- padding-left: .5em;
- padding-right: .5em;
- margin-left: 1em;
- float: right;
- clear: right;
- margin-top: 1em;
- font-size: smaller;
- color: black;
- background: #eeeeee;
- border: 1px dashed;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .sidenote {float: right;}
-
-.sni {text-indent: -.5em;}
-
-.sidenote hr {margin: 0 0 .2em 0; visibility: hidden;}
-
-
-p.drop-cap {
-text-indent: 0em; }
-
-p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
-float: left;
-margin: 0em 0em 0em 0em;
-font-size: 250%;
-line-height:0.85em;
-}
-@media handheld
-{
- p.drop-cap:first-letter
- {
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;
- }
-}
-
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.r2 {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 2em;}
-
-.r4 {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 4em;}
-
-.left2 {text-align: left;
- margin-left: 2em;}
-
-.left4 {text-align: left;
- margin-left: 4em;}
-
-.xs { font-size: x-small;}
-
-.sm { font-size: small;}
-
-.smaller {font-size: 90%; }
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnotes {border: 1px dashed;}
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration:
- none;
-}
-
-.poetry-container
-{
-text-align: center;
-font-size: 90%;
-}
-
-.poetry
-{
-display: inline-block;
-text-align: left;
-margin-left: 2.5em;
-line-height: 100%;
-}
-
-@media handheld
-{
- .poetry
- {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- }
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza
-{
-margin: 1em 0em 1em 1em;
-}
-
-.poetry .ileft {margin-left: -.4em;}
-.poetry .ih {margin-left: .5em;}
-.poetry .i1 {margin-left: 1em;}
-.poetry .i2 {margin-left: 2em;}
-.poetry .i3 {margin-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .i4 {margin-left: 4em;}
-.poetry .i6 {margin-left: 6em;}
-.poetry .i8h {margin-left: 8.5em;}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Ecclesiastical History of England, The Church of the Restoration, Vol. 2 of 2, by John Stoughton</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Ecclesiastical History of England, The Church of the Restoration, Vol. 2 of 2</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: John Stoughton</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: February 16, 2022 [eBook #67413]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Emmanuel Ackerman, Karin Spence and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY OF ENGLAND, THE CHURCH OF THE RESTORATION, VOL. 2 OF 2 ***</div>
-
-
-<h1><span class="smaller">ECCLESIASTICAL</span><br />
-
-HISTORY OF ENGLAND.</h1>
-
-<p class="p2 center p-left"><b>The Church of the Restoration.</b></p>
-
-<p class="center p-left p4 xs">BY</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">JOHN STOUGHTON, D.D.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left p4 sm">IN TWO VOLUMES&mdash;VOL. II.</p>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo003" >
- <img
- class="p2"
- src="images/illo003.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<p class="center p-left p2"><span class="sm"><b>London:</b></span><br />
-HODDER AND STOUGHTON,<br />
-<span class="sm">27, PATERNOSTER ROW, E.C.</span><br />
-<span class="xs">MDCCCLXX.</span></p>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo004" >
- <img
- class="p2"
- src="images/illo004.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_iii">[iii]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table summary="contents">
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER I.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Popish Plot</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_1">1</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Titus Oates</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_2">2</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Coleman</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_3">3</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Act for Excluding Roman Catholics</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_10">10</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER II.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Fall of Danby</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_12">12</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">New Parliament</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_13">13</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">The Duke of York and the Bishops</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_14">14</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Archbishop Sancroft</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_17">17</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Dangerfield’s Plot</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_21">21</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Exclusion Bill</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_23">23</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER III.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Stillingfleet</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_26">26</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Howe and Tillotson</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_27">27</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Scheme of Comprehension</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_29">29</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Toleration Bill</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_30">30</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Oxford Parliament</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_31">31</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Exclusion Bill</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_32">32</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">King’s Declaration</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_35">35</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER IV.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Duke of Buckingham and Howe</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_40">40</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Men in Power&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Halifax</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_41">41</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Rochester</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_43">43</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Conway and Jenkins</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_43">43</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Trial of Colledge</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_45">45</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Fall of Shaftesbury</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_49">49</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Persecution of Nonconformists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_50">50</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Vincent</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_54">54</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Annesley and Bates</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_57">57</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER V.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Duke of Monmouth</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_60">60</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Royal Despotism</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_63">63</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Rye House Plot</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_64">64</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Lord Russell</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_65">65</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Death of Owen</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_70">70</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Persecution of Nonconformists&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Heywood</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_71">71</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Rosewell</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_72">72</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Delaune</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_73">73</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Bampfield</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_75">75</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER VI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">French Protestants</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_76">76</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Cabinet Meetings</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_82">82</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">William Jenkyn</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_84">84</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Charles’ Court</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_85">85</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Scenes at Whitehall</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_86">86</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Death of Charles II.</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_87">87</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER VII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">James II.</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_89">89</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Alterations in the Ministry</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_92">92</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Trial of Baxter</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_95">95</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Monmouth’s Rebellion</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_97">97</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Alicia Lisle</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_98">98</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Elizabeth Gaunt</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_99">99</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Persecution of Nonconformists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_100">100</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER VIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Changes in the Cabinet</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_104">104</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Court Intrigues</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_105">105</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">James’ Policy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_106">106</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Declaration of Indulgence</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_118">118</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Penn</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_125">125</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Kiffin</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_127">127</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER IX.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">The Papal Nuncio</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_129">129</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Promotion of Romanists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_131">131</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Proceedings at the Universities</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_132">132</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">New Declaration</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_139">139</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">The Seven Bishops</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_140">140</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Prosecution</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_149">149</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Trial</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_153">153</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Acquittal</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_155">155</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER X.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Development of Nonconformity</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_159">159</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Presbyterians</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_159">159</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Form of Church Government</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_160">160</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Independents</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_164">164</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Confession of Faith</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_166">166</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Baptists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_171">171</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Confession of Faith</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_172">172</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Quakers</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_177">177</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Form of Church Government</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_178">178</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Cathedrals</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_180">180</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Churches</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_182">182</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Worship</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_185">185</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Ecclesiastical Revenues</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_190">190</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Ecclesiastical Courts</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_198">198</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Nonconformist Places of Worship</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_205">205</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Relative number of Conformists and Nonconformists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_207">207</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Contrasts in Preaching</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_209">209</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Superstition</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_213">213</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Family Life amongst Nonconformists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_217">217</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Family Life amongst Episcopalians</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_228">228</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Observance of the Sabbath</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_234">234</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Festivals</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_237">237</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Recreations</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_238">238</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Charities</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_243">243</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Missions</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_247">247</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Universities</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_250">250</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Theology</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_259">259</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Anglicans&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Thorndike</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_268">268</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Bull</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_279">279</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Heylyn</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_287">287</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Taylor</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_289">289</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Cosin</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_299">299</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Morley</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_302">302</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Bramhall</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_303">303</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XIV.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Anglicans&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Sanderson</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_305">305</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Hammond</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_306">306</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Pearson</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_308">308</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Barrow</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_311">311</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Opinions respecting Popery</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_316">316</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Opinions respecting Unepiscopal Churches</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_318">318</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">The Prayer Book</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_323">323</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Hooker’s Works</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_324">324</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Anglican Sermon Writers</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_328">328</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Critics</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_331">331</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XV.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Liberal Orthodox&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Chillingworth</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_334">334</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Smith</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_336">336</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Hales</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_338">338</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Farindon</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_339">339</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Fowler</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_344">344</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Wilkins</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_348">348</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Cudworth</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_349">349</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Stillingfleet</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_352">352</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Critics&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Lightfoot</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_353">353</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Patrick</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_354">354</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Science</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_355">355</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XVI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Latitudinarians</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_359">359</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Milton</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_363">363</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Biddle</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_365">365</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Scargill</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_368">368</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XVII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Quakers&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Penn</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_369">369</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Barclay</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_377">377</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Other Mystics&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Saltmarsh</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_380">380</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Sterry</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_382">382</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Sir Henry Vane</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_385">385</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XVIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Puritan Works on Evidences</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_386">386</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Gale</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_387">387</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Howe</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_389">389</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Owen</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_390">390</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Baxter</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_392">392</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Puritan Theology</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_394">394</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Thomas Goodwin</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_397">397</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Owen</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_401">401</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XIX.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">John Goodwin</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_406">406</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Horne</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_409">409</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Conyers&mdash;Lawson</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_410">410</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2"><i>Fur Prædestinatus</i></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_412">412</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XX.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Baxter</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_414">414</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Howe</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_421">421</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Puritan Views on Sacraments and the Ministry</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_430">430</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Controversy with Papists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_435">435</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Ecclesiastical Controversy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_437">437</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Practical Theology</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_442">442</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Expositors</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_446">446</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XXI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Poetry</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_451">451</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2"></td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_455">455</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XXII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Illustrations of Religious Character&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Isaak Walton</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_468">468</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">John Evelyn</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_471">471</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Margaret Godolphin</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_475">475</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Sir Matthew Hale</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_478">478</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Dr. Henry More</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_482">482</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Sir Thomas Browne</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_485">485</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Countess of Warwick</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_488">488</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">CHAPTER XXIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Illustrations of Religious Character&mdash;(<i>Continued</i>)&mdash;</td>
- <td class="pag"></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">John Burnyeat</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_492">492</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Joseph Alleine</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_494">494</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Thomas Ewins</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_497">497</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Owen Stockton</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_500">500</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Dr. Thomas Jacomb</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_504">504</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2" colspan="2">Sir Harbottle Grimston</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_505">505</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">Unity of Spiritual Life</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_506">506</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header" colspan="3">APPENDIX.</td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">I.</td>
- <td class="cht">Letter referring to Projected Insurrection.</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_509">509</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">II.</td>
- <td class="cht">Prayer Book attached to the Act of Uniformity.</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_513">513</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">III.</td>
- <td class="cht">Alterations in Prayer Book in compliance with the Recommendation of the Puritans</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_521">521</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">IV.</td>
- <td class="cht">Act of Uniformity</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_522">522</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">V.</td>
- <td class="cht">Sealed Books</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_536">536</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">VI.</td>
- <td class="cht">Number of the Ejected</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_538">538</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">VII.</td>
- <td class="cht">Informer’s Note Book</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_542">542</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">VIII.</td>
- <td class="cht">Accuracy of Anecdote respecting Peter Ince</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_544">544</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">IX.</td>
- <td class="cht">Cecil, Lord Burleigh</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_545">545</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">X.</td>
- <td class="cht">MS. respecting the Death of Charles II.</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_546">546</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">XI.</td>
- <td class="cht">Story about Samuel Wesley</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_548">548</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">XII.</td>
- <td class="cht">Anglican Views on the Relations of Church and State</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_549">549</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">XIII.</td>
- <td class="cht">MS. Journal of Parliamentary Proceedings, by Lloyd, Bishop of Norwich</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_550">550</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="chn">XIV.</td>
- <td class="cht">Extract from MS. Vol. in the Bodleian Library respecting John Bunyan</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_555">555</a></td>
- </tr>
-
-<tr>
- <td class="cht" colspan="2">INDEX</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_556">556</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">[1]</span></p>
-<h2>CHAPTER I.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">We resume the thread of our History, and return to notice the progress
-of the anti-Popish excitement.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1678.</div>
-
-<p>Perhaps, in the history of the civilized world, there never occurred
-a period when the passions of men were more deeply moved, than in
-the autumn of the year 1678, when England was startled from side to
-side by the following extraordinary story. The Jesuits had formed a
-project for the conversion of Great Britain to the Roman Catholic
-faith; and £10,000 had been procured to assist in carrying out their
-plans. With this project was blended a conspiracy to assassinate the
-King, who was to be poisoned by the Queen’s physician; failing which,
-he was to be shot with bullets; and, if that did not succeed, he was
-to be stabbed with a large knife. With a feeble attempt at wit it was
-said, if he would not become R.C., a Roman Catholic, he should be no
-longer C.R., Charles Rex. Twenty thousand Catholics in London were to
-rise within twenty-four hours, and cut the throats of the Protestant
-inhabitants; eight thousand were to take up arms in Scotland; and, of
-course, in Ireland the professors of the ancient religion, possessed
-of enormous influence, meant to have it all their own way. The Crown
-was to be offered to the Duke of York, upon certain conditions; and
-if James refused, then, it was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">[2]</span> elegantly said, “to pot he must
-go also.” Amongst other means certain Jesuits were instructed to
-“carry themselves like Nonconformist ministers, and to preach to the
-disaffected Scots, the necessity of taking up the sword for the defence
-of liberty of conscience.” Seditious preachers and catechists were
-to be sent out, and directed when and what to preach in private and
-public conventicles, and field meetings. The Society in London intended
-to knock on the head Dr. Stillingfleet and Matthew Pool, for writing
-against them; and Croft, Bishop of Hereford, was doomed to death as
-an apostate. A second conflagration in the City of London formed an
-element in this scheme of wholesale destruction; and, in anticipation
-of the success of the design, the Pope had prepared a list of the
-priests to succeed the Bishops and other dignitaries, who were to be so
-speedily swept away. The author of this intelligence was the notorious
-Titus Oates, who professed to have picked it up at St. Omer’s, at
-Valladolid, at Burgos, and at a tavern in the Strand, where, owing to
-his pretended conversion and zeal in the Catholic service, the Jesuits
-had entrusted him with their deepest secrets.</p>
-
-<p>The first communication of the story staggered everybody. The King did
-not know what to make of it. Danby, though inclined to use anything
-he could for party purposes, hardly credited this amazing revelation.
-Yet, incredible as it may appear, no means seem to have been used at
-the outset to sift the matter to the bottom.<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> Therefore the tale came
-to be looked at as credible, and,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[3]</span> when Oates, on Michaelmas Eve, came
-before the Council, and began his unprecedented story, he found ready
-listeners. The items which he specified, with names and dates minutely
-mentioned, certainly wore a plausible appearance; and, presently, two
-circumstances occurred, which, at the time, obtained for his reports
-all but universal credence.</p>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">POPISH PLOT.</div>
-
-<p>The first of these circumstances was the sudden death of a magistrate,
-Sir Edmondbury Godfrey, to whom Oates had made some of his statements
-before divulging the whole to the Council. This magistrate was found
-dead in a ditch near Primrose Hill, with a sword plunged in his body,
-and marks of strangulation on his neck. A cry instantly rose, and ran
-through London and the country, that Sir Edmondbury, who was famed for
-his Protestant zeal, had been murdered by the Papists on account of his
-receiving Oates’ deposition. The plot, it was argued, must be real, or
-such a deed would not have been committed by the Roman Catholics. What
-could the object of the murder be, but to take revenge on the exposers
-of the conspiracy? The next circumstance which aided the prevalent
-belief is found in the discovery of certain letters, in the handwriting
-of one Coleman, addressed to Père la Chaise&mdash;the famous Jesuit, who
-has given his name to the Cemetery at Paris&mdash;in which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[4]</span> letters,
-unmistakable allusions occur to designs for overthrowing Protestantism
-in this country; and Coleman’s plans were at once identified with the
-plot related by Titus Oates.<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1678.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POPISH PLOT.</div>
-
-<p>Believed by Parliament, not only by the Country party, but by the
-Court party as well, believed also by the Ministers of State, and
-by the dignitaries of the Church, the plot came to be regarded by
-almost everybody as an unquestionable fact. The higher circles
-would not tolerate any doubt of Oates’ veracity; even Burnet, with
-all his Protestantism, inasmuch as he hesitated to accept Oates’
-evidence, raised against himself “a great clamour:” and the Earl of
-Shaftesbury, who threw himself with all his energy and eloquence into
-the prosecution, declared “that all those who undermined the credit
-of the witnesses were to be looked on as public enemies.”<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> In the
-lower circles a conviction of the truthfulness of the accuser, and
-of the guilt of the accused, prevailed to the last degree; and the
-narrative related to the Council and the House of Commons, circulated
-amongst eager and credulous groups, in thousands of chimney corners
-during those autumn evenings. The King and the Duke of York seemed not
-to believe what other people admitted. Yet the former felt obliged to
-act as if he did. The reader who remembers the agitation attending
-the Popish aggression more than twenty years ago, must not take even
-that as a measure of the feeling awakened in 1678: perhaps nothing we
-have ever seen could be a parallel to what our fathers experienced
-at that time. Even the heavens were imagined<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[5]</span> to sympathize in the
-abounding alarm: a fog, after Godfrey’s death, gave to the day on
-which it occurred the name of <i>Black Sunday</i>; and a respectable
-Nonconformist speaks of it growing so dark, all on a sudden, about
-eleven in the forenoon, that ministers could not read their notes in
-their pulpits without the help of candles,&mdash;no uncommon occurrence,
-one would think, in the month of November. Not a house, he informs us,
-could be found unfurnished with arms, nor did anybody go to bed without
-apprehensions of something tragical which might happen before the next
-morning.<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> People gave the martyred magistrate&mdash;for so they considered
-Godfrey&mdash;a public funeral, after having for two days publicly exhibited
-his wounded remains in his own house. An immense crowd followed him to
-the grave, the corpse being preceded by seventy-two clergymen in their
-robes; and, on its arrival at the church of St. Martin’s-in-the-Fields,
-the Incumbent, Dr. Lloyd, afterwards Bishop of St. Asaph, delivered
-a sermon in honour of the slain confessor. A Protestant festival had
-long been kept on the 17th of November, Queen Elizabeth’s birthday;
-and this year an effigy of the Pope with the Devil whispering in his
-ear&mdash;and models of Godfrey’s dead body, and of Romish Bishops and
-priests in mitres and copes&mdash;were carried through the streets, to
-inflame to the highest pitch the prevalent indignation against the
-Church of Rome. Daniel Defoe was then a mere boy, and looked with
-wonder upon what passed before him; and, in after years, told how old
-City blunderbusses were burnished anew; how hats and feathers, and
-shoulder belts, and other military gear, came into fashion again; how
-the City train-bands appeared rampant, and how soldiers disturbed
-meeting-houses, even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[6]</span> murdering people, under pretence that they would
-not stand at their command.<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> Justice, or injustice, showed itself
-swift in apprehending Roman Catholics. Two thousand suspected persons
-are said to have been imprisoned, the houses of Roman Catholics were
-searched for arms, and it is computed that as many as 30,000 recusants
-were driven to a distance of ten miles from Whitehall. Within little
-more than two months of the first whisper of the conspiracy, Stayley,
-a banker, accused of sharing in it, died on the gallows at Tyburn, and
-Coleman perished on the scaffold about a week afterwards.<a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> Three more
-victims followed the next month, all of them to the last declaring
-their innocence. Oates at the same time went about dressed in gown and
-cassock, wearing a large hat with a silk band and rose, and attended by
-guards to secure him from Popish violence. Lodgings at Whitehall were
-assigned for his use; he received a pension of £1,200 per annum, and
-was welcomed at the houses of the rich and great.<a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> A large number of
-pamphlets containing accounts of the plot issued from the press, whilst
-pulpits rung with impassioned declamation against Popery and rebellion.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1678.</div>
-
-<p>Amongst papers belonging to the Secretary of State at that period are
-memoranda of strange rumours&mdash;one that the progress in rebuilding St.
-Paul’s Cathedral was suspended, from fear lest it should become a
-Popish Church. There is also a note, that the Prince of Orange should
-be written to, or that some communication should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[7]</span> be made to him,
-through the Ambassador at his Court, or through Sir W. Temple, to
-prevent the publication in Holland of a remonstrance, and of a hellish
-libel, “destructive to the Royal authority, and the fundamental laws
-of the nation.” The same Collection includes a letter to the Bishop of
-London from some zealous Protestant, proposing an attack on the City of
-Rome, “on that side where the Vatican Palace stands, and bringing away
-the library.”<a id="FNanchor_8" href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POPISH PLOT.</div>
-
-<p>Reviewing the whole of this history, I may remark, that Titus Oates
-was an utterly worthless character, and that his statements are not
-entitled to the smallest belief. He had been an Anabaptist under
-Cromwell, had become an orthodox clergyman at the Restoration, had
-professed himself a Catholic on the Continent, had been admitted
-to Jesuit colleges, and had then abjured Popery on his return to
-England. All this while he conducted himself in so abominable a
-manner as repeatedly to incur expulsion from the positions in which
-he was placed. His tale was as absurd and incredible as his conduct
-was infamous; yet, notwithstanding this circumstance, it is by no
-means surprising that at the time, the story with its most improbable
-details should be believed&mdash;for Englishmen were filled with alarm at
-the Romanism of the Royal family, at the manifest signs of revived
-activity in this island by the Jesuits, at the obvious alliance between
-spiritual and political despotism, and at the then suspected, and to
-us, well-known intrigues which were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[8]</span> being carried on to overthrow
-the Protestantism of this country,&mdash;and they were therefore prepared
-to be the dupes of Protestant credulity. An excitement of many years’
-accumulation now existed, and rumours and lies of all sorts were as
-sparks sprinkled over heaps of gunpowder. As we criticize the evidence
-of the plot, it will not stand for a single second. Yet, however we may
-at first smile or sneer at the matter, on second thoughts, we shall
-see that people only did what, probably, we should have done under
-the influence of strong Protestant convictions, sharpened by terrible
-memories, and goaded by equally terrible apprehensions. It would be
-monstrous enough for us now to behave as did our ancestors, but we must
-judge of their character in that emergency by the standard of their own
-age, and according to the conditions of their own circumstances.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1678.</div>
-
-<p>Godfrey’s death is one of those mysteries permitted by Providence to
-baffle our investigation, and to remain inscrutable secrets to the
-end of time, stimulating a belief in the revelations and judgments
-of eternity. Whichever hypothesis be adopted&mdash;that of murder or that
-of suicide&mdash;grave exceptions to it may be taken. The supposition of
-his having destroyed himself may be shown to be ridiculous, and also
-no sufficient motive for a Papist to murder him can be assigned: the
-argument, that the drops of melted wax found on the clothes of the
-dead man must have been dropped by Papists, <i>because</i> they are so
-notorious for using wax candles, is ridiculous enough; yet, as in the
-case of the plot, so in the case of the death brought into connection
-with it, we do not wonder at the prevalent idea. All the circumstances
-and antecedents of the time, the whole spirit of the age, together with
-the tendencies of human nature, the readiness of men under a pressing
-excitement to rush to conclusions,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[9]</span> to interpret suspicious incidents
-as demonstrations of guilt, must be taken into account as we reflect
-upon the common opinion found at that period. Believing Oates’ tale,
-and knowing both the Protestant zeal of Godfrey, and the consequences
-to the Catholics of the explosion of the plot, zealots of the day
-consistently attributed the crime of murder to the same persons to whom
-they attributed the crime of treason.<a id="FNanchor_9" href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POPISH PLOT.</div>
-
-<p>After all, there was a plot, not indeed to murder the King, but to
-restore Popery. Coleman’s letters render this a fact beyond all
-question, when we find him declaring “We have here a mighty work upon
-our hands, no less than the conversion of three kingdoms, and by that
-perhaps the subduing of a pestilent heresy, which has domineered
-over great part of this northern world a long time. There never
-was such hopes of success since the death of Queen Mary, as now in
-our days.”<a id="FNanchor_10" href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> The designs and intrigues brought to light in this
-correspondence harmonize with the purpose and spirit of the treaty
-between Charles and Louis; and, therefore, we cannot wonder at the
-reluctance of Charles and his brother to enter upon an inquiry into
-the business, since however false might be the charge of contemplated
-regicide, they knew too much, not to be aware that awkward facts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[10]</span>
-respecting French, Papal, and Jesuit schemes could be brought into
-broad daylight, by searching to the bottom of this business. And it is
-not unlikely that Oates might have heard at St. Omer’s, and at other
-places, things uttered by some disciples of Ignatius Loyola, indicating
-dark designs upon English religion and upon English liberty, which he
-exaggerated immensely, and dressed up in the most frightful colours for
-purposes of his own.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1678.</div>
-
-<p>Leaving this plot with its mysteries, falsehoods, and alarms, and
-turning once more to the proceedings of Parliament, we find that the
-sixteenth session opened on the 21st of October, just at the crisis
-when the storm raised by Oates had reached its height. The King’s
-speech touched lightly on the subject. Lord Chancellor Finch noticed
-it with guarded phraseology, but the House of Commons at once resolved
-upon an address for removing Popish recusants from the Metropolis,
-and having appointed a Committee to inquire into Godfrey’s murder,
-they also agreed with the Lords to request His Majesty to proclaim a
-national fast.</p>
-
-<p>In 1673 an Act had been passed excluding Roman Catholics from all
-places of profit and trust; now a Bill was introduced to exclude
-them from Parliament and from the Councils of the Sovereign.<a id="FNanchor_11" href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> By
-help of the existing panic, the Bill made its way with ease; and
-what is remarkable, in this measure the obligation to receive the
-sacrament is not mentioned&mdash;an omission doubtless intended for the
-benefit of Dissenters, whose sympathy and assistance were just then
-valued by persons who had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[11]</span> been accustomed before to treat them with
-violence&mdash;but a strong declaration to the effect that Romish worship
-is idolatrous was imposed, together with the Oaths of Allegiance and
-Supremacy. When this Bill reached the House of Lords, Gunning, Bishop
-of Ely, objected to the description and treatment of Romish worship
-as idolatrous; yet his arguments on this point being met by Barlow,
-Bishop of Lincoln, Gunning&mdash;although he said he could not himself adopt
-the new declaration&mdash;after it became law, followed the example of his
-brethren.<a id="FNanchor_12" href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PARLIAMENT.</div>
-
-<p>The Lords looked with little favour upon a Bill which, by disqualifying
-Papists from sitting in Parliament, would deprive some of their own
-order of hereditary rights; notwithstanding goaded by the Commons, and
-encouraged by the King, they at last without opposition passed the
-measure, providing in it an exception on behalf of the Duke of York.
-This exception displeased the Commons, who, above all things, desired
-to remove a Roman Catholic prince from the government of the country;
-and, therefore, when the Bill returned to them with its amendments, it
-had to meet the most strenuous opposition from the Country party. High
-words were followed not only, as in the Long Parliament, by storms of
-outcries and by menaces of violence, but by actual blows; and after
-a singularly angry debate, the proviso passed only by a majority of
-two, and the Royal assent was given to the whole Bill with very great
-reluctance.<a id="FNanchor_13" href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[12]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER II.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROTESTANT OPPOSITION.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The fall of the Earl of Danby is to be attributed to an artful
-contrivance by the French Court; which, from revenge against him for
-his real enmity, accomplished his ruin, by pretending that he was a
-friend. By means of Montague&mdash;who laid before the House of Commons
-despatches, written to him by the Minister, most unwillingly, but at
-the King’s command&mdash;Louis XIV. established against Danby, charges
-of intrigues with France for obtaining money, quite sufficient to
-extinguish for ever all the credit which he had ever had with his own
-countrymen. His plea of unwillingness to enter into his master’s policy
-with regard to France, although true, proved inadequate to save him
-from impeachment by the Commons, who acted upon the constitutional
-principle&mdash;that the King’s Ministers are responsible for what they
-perform in the King’s name. Danby, though made a victim of revenge,
-and in truth, suffering “not on account of his delinquency, but on
-account of his merits,” had put himself in such a false position, that
-Parliament could do no otherwise than demand his removal from office.
-How far the extreme step of impeachment can be justified is another
-question; and, at all events, the charge of his being Popishly affected
-is truly absurd. The accusation of his concealing the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[13]</span> Popish plot,
-of suppressing the evidence, and of discountenancing the witnesses,
-could not be made even plausible, for though he had been sceptical at
-first respecting the story told by Oates, as any sensible man might
-well be, he had afterwards fully committed himself to the proceedings
-against the accused Papists; yet perhaps there is some truth in an
-amusing passage written by one who cherished strong prejudices against
-him:&mdash;“The Earl of Danby thought he could serve himself of this plot
-of Oates, and accordingly endeavoured at it; but it is plain that he
-had no command of the engine, and instead of his sharing the popularity
-of nursing it, he found himself so intrigued that it was like a wolf
-by the ears: he could neither hold it nor let it go, and for certain
-it bit him at last, just as when a barbarous mastiff attacks a man, he
-cries ‘poor cur,’ and is pulled down at last.”<a id="FNanchor_14" href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a></p>
-
-<p>The resolution of the Commons on the 19th of December, 1678, to impeach
-the Lord Treasurer, was followed by a prorogation on the 30th, and a
-dissolution on the 24th of January, 1679; this Parliament having then
-sat for the long space of eighteen years.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1679.</div>
-
-<p>The King immediately summoned a new Parliament, to meet at the end of
-forty days; and again, as in 1661, a general election took place under
-circumstances of immense excitement. Protestants believed the cause of
-the Reformation to be in imminent danger from the Popish tendencies
-of the King, from the avowed Romanism of the Duke of York, from the
-intrigues of France, and from the want of principle in public men.
-Therefore, multitudes rushed to the poll with the idea, that only
-by voting for unmistakable and zealous Protestants, could they save
-England from being dragged back to the condition in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[14]</span> which she was
-found before the Reformation. Thousands of horsemen rode into cities
-and county towns to record their names in favour of the Established
-Church. People had to sleep in market-places, to lie like sheep around
-market crosses.<a id="FNanchor_15" href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> Candidates were chaired at midnight with the bray
-of trumpets and a blaze of torches; but with all this Protestant
-enthusiasm, elections could not be carried without bribery, treating,
-and corruption. Horses were demanded in proportion to the number of
-electors; there occurred an enormous consumption of beer, bread, and
-cakes at Norwich; and as for the Knight of the Shire of Surrey, “they
-ate and drank him out near to £2,000, by a most abominable custom.”<a id="FNanchor_16" href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a>
-Popular candidates pledged to oppose the Court against Popery succeeded
-almost everywhere.</p>
-
-<p>Scarcely had the shouts which hailed these returns died away, when a
-remarkable interview took place between certain dignitaries of the
-Church and the Popish heir to the throne.</p>
-
-<p>As the Duke of York’s religious opinions had increasingly attracted the
-attention and excited the alarm of the nation at large, the rulers of
-the Church shared in the anxiety, and were very desirous, if possible,
-to see him reclaimed from the Roman communion. The origin of a project,
-with the view of accomplishing this purpose, is ascribed to the new
-Archbishop of Canterbury.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROTESTANT OPPOSITION.</div>
-
-<p>Upon the death of Sheldon, William Sancroft, at the time Prolocutor
-to the Lower House of Convocation, was elevated to the primacy, for
-reasons differently stated by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[15]</span> different persons. Probably, in this
-case, the reason is to be found in his unambitious spirit and in his
-amiable disposition, as suggested by Dryden:</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Zadoc the priest, whom, shunning power and place,</div>
- <div>His lowly mind advanced to David’s grace.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p class="p-left">If it was supposed that he would become the pliant tool of
-the Monarch; events at the Revolution contradicted the idea, and the
-circumstances now to be described show that the Archbishop, after his
-exaltation, determined to act as a zealous Protestant. He, with his
-aged brother, Morley, of Winchester, and not without the consent of the
-King, obtained an audience from His Royal Highness, and delivered to
-him an address on the subject of reconversion. Sancroft spoke of the
-Church of England as most afflicted, a lily amongst thorns, bearing
-on her body the marks of the Lord Jesus&mdash;the scars of old, and the
-impressions of new wounds. But the greatest amongst the multitude of
-her sorrows was, the speaker said, that the Duke should forsake her
-fellowship, after the education which he had received, and after the
-solemn charge which his dying father gave his elder brother, touching
-the duty of everlasting fidelity to the Established Church. The Duke
-was described by the Primate as the bright morning and evening star,
-which arose and set with the sun, but he had withdrawn his light; and
-now the two Bishops, who had undertaken to plead with him in the cause
-of Protestantism, assured His Royal Highness of their intercessions on
-his behalf, and asked whether, with his noble and generous heart, he
-would throw back these prayers? They inquired, if those to whom he had
-surrendered himself, had not renounced reason and common sense, and
-really taught him to put out his own eyes, that they might lead him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[16]</span>
-whither they would? His case did not seem hopeful to his Protestant
-advisers, yet they declared that they had too good an opinion of his
-understanding, to believe that he would sell himself at so cheap a
-rate. Nothing of such moment as religion was to be huddled up in a
-dark and implicit manner. It was his duty to “prove all things, and
-hold fast that which is good.” The prelates offered their assistance,
-referred to plain texts and obvious facts “in a hundred books,” and
-then concluded their address with this syllogism: “That Church which
-teacheth and practiseth the doctrines destructive of salvation is
-to be relinquished. But the Church of Rome teacheth and practiseth
-doctrines destructive of salvation. Therefore the Church of Rome is to
-be relinquished.”<a id="FNanchor_17" href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1679.</div>
-
-<p>This speech, in which compliments and reproofs oddly struggle with each
-other, and which ends with a logical formula, perfectly impotent under
-the circumstances, bears upon it traces of Sancroft’s ornate but feeble
-style of thought and expression. It produced no effect; and the Royal
-auditor, after saying that it would be presumptuous, in an illiterate
-man like himself, to enter into controversial disputes with persons of
-learning, politely dismissed the Bishops, pleading that the pressure
-of business prevented further discussion.<a id="FNanchor_18" href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> The strain of remark on
-the one side, the mode of reply on the other, and the interchange of
-courtesies between the two parties, present a striking contrast to the
-conversations between John Knox and the Duke’s great-grandmother. The
-Archbishop of Canterbury appears much more amiable than the Scotch
-Presbyterian Reformer; and James is much more prudent than Mary Queen
-of Scots: but how tame<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[17]</span> and lifeless appears all the smooth eloquence
-of the Primate, compared with the burning words of the Elijah-like
-Presbyterian; and how unimpressible is the saturnine Prince, compared
-with the modern Jezebel, who wept and stormed at Holyrood.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SANCROFT.</div>
-
-<p>No doubt can exist of Sancroft’s sincere opposition to Popery. Wilkins,
-in his <i>Concilia</i>, gives, in addition to Royal proclamations on
-that subject, a letter written by the Primate to the Bishop of London,
-dated April 9, 1681, in which he requires that the three canons against
-Popish recusants, agreed upon in the Synod of London in 1605, namely,
-the 65th, the 66th, and the 114th, should be put in use, considering,
-he says, in language then so current on that topic, “how acceptable
-a service it will be to Almighty God, to assist His Majesty’s pious
-purpose herein; and, on the other side, how severe a punishment, the
-last canon of the three appoints, to those who shall neglect their duty
-herein.”<a id="FNanchor_19" href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a> It is remarkable, that after the death of Sheldon, we
-find in Wilkins, no more documents enforcing the execution of the laws
-against Nonconformists; an omission which indicates the very different
-disposition of the new occupant of the see, from that which had been
-manifested by his predecessor.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1678–80.</div>
-
-<p>In the affairs of his own Church, Sancroft endeavoured to effect some
-useful reforms and improvements. Considerable laxity prevailed in the
-admission of candidates to holy orders, testimonials to character
-being often signed as a mere form, without sufficient knowledge of
-the persons in whose favour they were given. To check this injurious
-practice, Sancroft, in the month of August, 1678,<a id="FNanchor_20" href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a> sent directions
-to his suffragans, that thenceforth such recommendations should be
-more carefully<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[18]</span> prepared, should contain fuller particulars, and
-should be more cautiously used. The poverty of vicarages, and other
-small ecclesiastical benefices, still continued: the augmentation of
-them was an old remedy, the failure of schemes for the purpose an old
-disappointment. Even the Act in relation to this matter in 1676, had
-been carried into only partial execution; and, therefore, many of the
-difficulties, so long complained of by the clergy, still remained.
-Consequently, Sancroft, in the year 1680, sent an appeal to the Bishops
-of his province, urging strongly the application of the Act; and
-requiring every Bishop, Dean, and Archdeacon to send particulars of
-all the augmentations made by them or their predecessors.<a id="FNanchor_21" href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a> What he
-recommended to others he practised himself, for he liberally improved
-many of the livings in his gift. The chronic disease of the Church
-forced itself on the Archbishop’s attention: many unsuitable persons
-being appointed to benefices, and private advantage taking precedence
-of public welfare, among the motives deciding the administration
-of patronage. As a cure to some extent, Charles issued a warrant,
-constituting the Archbishop, the Bishop of London, and four laymen
-proper and competent judges of men deserving to be preferred, and
-forbidding the Secretary of State to apply to the Royal fountain of
-favour, for the bestowment of ecclesiastical preferments, without first
-communicating with this council of reference.<a id="FNanchor_22" href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a> What share Sancroft
-had in the origin or the execution of the plan we do not know; but
-the object was one which, from what we learn of his character, would
-commend itself to his judgment. The practice of simony continued,
-and an Archdeacon of Lincoln, convicted of that offence in the
-ecclesiastical<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[19]</span> court, petitioned the King for pardon;&mdash;upon the
-petition being referred to Sancroft, he replied that the crime of
-which the man had been convicted, was “a pestilence that walketh in
-darkness,” and that if he were saved from punishment, the markets of
-Simon Magus would be more frequented than ever.<a id="FNanchor_23" href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">TEMPLE.</div>
-
-<p>After the impeachment and imprisonment of the Earl of Danby, in spite
-of Royal endeavours to screen him, His Majesty being then left without
-an adviser, sent for Sir William Temple, and appointed him Secretary
-of State, in the room of Coventry. This ingenious politician proposed,
-that there should be a Council, consisting of thirty members, fifteen
-of them to be Officers of State, chosen by the King; the other
-fifteen, popular leaders of the two Houses. The idea was, to blend
-the Government and the Opposition together, or, rather, to prevent
-the existence of any opposition at all.<a id="FNanchor_24" href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a> The Council of statesmen
-formed on this model included, on the one hand, Essex, Sunderland,
-and Halifax&mdash;men attached to Court interests, in favour with the
-King, and suspected by the people; and on the other hand, the Earl
-of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[20]</span> Shaftesbury, a leading spirit of the old Cabal, now an extreme
-opponent of the Court policy, and Lord William Russell, an eminently
-zealous Protestant, and popular Member of the House of Commons. The
-last two names are interwoven from the beginning, with the popular plan
-for setting aside the Duke of York&mdash;the first three Ministers being
-entirely opposed to it, and advocating the legitimate succession, with
-certain safeguards for the protection of Protestantism. This division
-of opinion in the Council reflected and magnified itself in the
-divisions of Parliament.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1679.</div>
-
-<p>Parliament met in March. The King and such Ministers as agreed with
-him, proposed terms of compromise in reference to the succession.
-The Chancellor, in April, stated that His Majesty was willing to
-distinguish a Popish from a Protestant successor; and so to limit the
-authority of the latter in reference to the Church, that all benefices
-in the gift of the Crown should be conferred in such a manner as to
-ensure the appointment of pious and learned Protestants.<a id="FNanchor_25" href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a> Other
-restrictions of a political kind were proposed, which, as Charles said,
-would “pare the nails” of a Popish King.</p>
-
-<p>The Exclusion Bill was carried by the Commons in the month of May, but
-the effect was neutralized by a sudden prorogation of Parliament before
-the month had expired.<a id="FNanchor_26" href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> Parliament being dissolved by proclamation
-on the 12th of July, a new one was called for the following October.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DANGERFIELD’S PLOT.</div>
-
-<p>The fourth Parliament of Charles II. met in October, 1679, and, after
-repeated prorogation, assembled for the despatch of business in
-October, 1680. Another informer<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[21]</span> just at that time rose to notoriety,
-whose name deserves to be coupled with that of Oates. Dangerfield is
-represented as a handsome young man, whom profligacy and debt brought
-within the walls of Newgate, where he was visited by a Roman Catholic
-woman named Cellier, one “who had a great share of wit, and was
-abandoned to lewdness.”<a id="FNanchor_27" href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> The man professed to become a convert to
-her religion, and, through the influence of his new friend with persons
-at Court, obtained an introduction to the Duke of York, into whose ears
-he poured tales of treason. This time a plot was attributed to the
-Presbyterians, who, according to Dangerfield, were raising forces to
-overthrow the Government. James gave the man twenty guineas; Charles
-ordered an additional reward of forty. The adventurer, finding his
-trade so gainful, determined to push his object further. He lodged an
-information at the Custom House against Colonel Mansel, a Presbyterian,
-whom he charged with being the quarter-master of the army of revolt;
-but the revenue officers, on searching his house, found not what they
-expected, but only a bundle of papers behind the bed. The papers
-were plainly treasonable; not less plainly did they bear signs of
-forgery. The accused traced home the infamous trick to the unprincipled
-informer. Dangerfield, once more committed to Newgate, not for debt,
-but for something worse, now changed his story, and declared that, at
-the instigation of Cellier and Lady Powis, who had become mixed up in
-the affair, he had engaged in a sham plot, as a cover for a real one.
-Though no Presbyterian conspiracy existed, there was, he affirmed, a
-Popish one, and a proof of the former being a fiction might be obtained
-from a bundle of papers secreted in a meal tub.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[22]</span> The meal was searched,
-the papers were found; they demonstrated the artifice, and the trumpery
-contrivance has gained a place in history under the title of the “Meal
-Tub Plot.” Powis and Cellier were now, in their turn, imprisoned.
-The grand jury ignored the bill against the former, and the latter
-obtained an acquittal at the Old Bailey. Dangerfield received a pardon;
-yet, though all three at the time escaped the penalties of the law,
-Dangerfield subsequently received a cruel whipping for the crime of
-perjury.<a id="FNanchor_28" href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a> This miserable creature has been represented either as a
-tool employed by the Catholics to retaliate upon the friends of Titus
-Oates, or as a tool employed by the friends of Titus Oates to decoy
-Catholics into an attempt at injuring the Presbyterians. The former is
-the Protestant, the latter the Catholic hypothesis. Neither of them
-seems satisfactory; the latter is almost incredible. At all events,
-every reader must see that tissues of lies were woven in those days as
-unaccountably and as plentifully as spiders’ webs in autumn nights.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1680.</div>
-
-<p>Whilst these plots were common talk, and indignation against Romanism
-was fomented in a thousand ways, the Corporation of Bristol made the
-following presentment:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EXCLUSION BILL.</div>
-
-<p>We lament that “at this time more heats and animosities should be
-fomented among us, than hath been since His Majesty’s most happy
-restoration, which gives us just cause to suspect, however such men
-cover themselves under the umbrage of zeal and religion, that they are
-influenced by Jesuitical principles. For the Jesuits have not a fairer
-prospect of bringing us under the tyranny of Rome, than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[23]</span> by continuing
-and carrying on of differences among ourselves. <i>Divide et impera</i>
-is their maxim. From this evil spirit and principle this city hath been
-represented as ill inclined to His Majesty’s person and Government,
-our worthy mayor, a person of unquestionable loyalty to the King, and
-of exemplary zeal for the Church, [being] traduced as fanatically
-disposed, and all those true sons of the Church of England who have any
-moderation towards Dissenting Protestants, to be more dangerous to the
-Church than the Papists themselves, when we cannot but think that a
-hearty union among all Protestants is now more than ever necessary to
-preserve us from our open and avowed enemy.”<a id="FNanchor_29" href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a></p>
-
-<p>Union amongst Protestants at such a time seemed to be dictated by
-reason and policy, but Churchmen who looked with neighbourly kindness
-upon Nonconformists were apt to be suspected of laxity of principle and
-a want of zeal; and the very paper from which I have given an extract
-is endorsed as a “seditious presentment.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1680.</div>
-
-<p>In the month of October, the Exclusion Bill reappeared and passed,
-all the argument and eloquence of the members from day to day,
-through long sittings, being devoted to this question. Interwoven
-with the debate from beginning to end, like dark threads in shot
-silk, are references to the recent Popish plot and its attendant
-circumstances. Whilst treated as a legal and political question,<a id="FNanchor_30" href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a>
-its ecclesiastical bearings were most prominent and most vital, in the
-estimation of zealous Protestants both within and outside the walls
-of Parliament.<a id="FNanchor_31" href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> The central point in this controversy, whatever
-might be its<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[24]</span> political relations, and however it might be mixed up
-with party interests, was of a religious nature. Had the Church not
-been united with the State, had all Christian congregations been left
-to their own resources, and been exempt from Government control,
-the case would have been very different, though even then religious
-considerations would have certainly become mixed up with the question;
-but, as it was, with such an interlacing between things political and
-things ecclesiastical, with the King as supreme temporal Ruler of the
-Church, and Defender of the Faith, to have a Roman Catholic placed in
-that position justly appeared to Protestants not merely as inexpedient,
-but as totally unreasonable and absurd. The ecclesiastical argument
-formed the stronghold of the exclusion policy, and its opponents
-could by no sophistry overturn it. Still they had much to say. They
-praised the Duke as a man of ability, who had fulfilled important naval
-duties, and deserved well of his country. The attempt to set such a
-man aside, a man with so much decision of purpose, and with so many
-friends, they contended, would incur the risk of plunging Great Britain
-into another civil war. And beyond all personal and national reasons
-against his exclusion, they took the high ground&mdash;so dear to the Stuart
-race&mdash;of the Divine right of kings, and denounced the attempt to
-deprive the heir apparent of his crown as nothing short of robbery and
-wickedness.<a id="FNanchor_32" href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EXCLUSION BILL.</div>
-
-<p>The Bill carried in the House of Commons met an adverse fate in the
-House of Lords. Shaftesbury did his utmost for its support, and the
-Country party amongst the peers gallantly rallied around him, but after
-a telling speech from the Earl of Halifax, the measure was defeated<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[25]</span> by
-63 against 30. The division took place at the then late hour of eleven
-o’clock at night, the King being present, and the whole being described
-as “one of the greatest days ever known in the House of Lords.”<a id="FNanchor_33" href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a>
-In the large majority against the second reading, appeared no less
-than fourteen Bishops, who, for the course they adopted, were charged
-with tearing “out the bowels of their Mother the Church.” They upheld
-the doctrine of Divine right, in opposition to the Protestant zeal
-of the day, which looked in a different direction, and they thought
-that limitations, such as the King and the Court party were willing to
-impose upon the legitimate successor to the crown, would suffice to
-preserve the Reformed Church in its integrity and its supremacy.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[26]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER III.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">To prevent breaking the continuity of the narrative, an incident has
-been passed over requiring some notice.</p>
-
-<p>Upon the 2nd of May, 1680, Dr. Stillingfleet preached a sermon before
-the Lord Mayor and Aldermen of the City of London, and the Judges
-and Sergeants-at-law. The subject of discourse being “The Mischief
-of Separation,” he treated his audience with an invective against
-Dissenters as schismatics, who had rent the Church in twain; and he
-represented them as reduced to this dilemma&mdash;“that though the really
-conscientious Nonconformist is justified in not worshipping after the
-prescribed forms of the Church of England, or rather would be criminal
-if he did so, yet he is not less criminal in setting up a separate
-assembly.”<a id="FNanchor_34" href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a> Victims so impaled were in a wretched condition, and
-no one can wonder that they made an effort to extricate themselves.
-They did so with success, and if not always with perfect good temper,
-nobody can severely blame them for that. Owen wrote with “great gravity
-and seriousness.” Baxter was very “particular, warm, and close.” Alsop
-briskly turned upon the preacher “his own words and phrases.”<a id="FNanchor_35" href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a>
-Stillingfleet’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[27]</span> <i>Irenicum</i>, published in 1659, had shown that
-no form of Church government could be <i>jure divino</i>, a position
-of which his opponents now took advantage, whilst they failed not to
-ply the <i>argumentum ad hominem</i>. “A person of quality” sent to
-John Howe the printed sermon, enclosing with it severe remarks. Howe,
-with calm impartiality, such as nettles a partisan of either extreme
-more than any stinging attacks can do, immediately expressed his
-intention “of defending the cause of the Nonconformists against the
-Dean, and then of adding something in defence of the Dean against his
-correspondent.”<a id="FNanchor_36" href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a> The reply which he produced is one of the most
-beautiful specimens of controversy in existence. Stillingfleet was
-subdued when he read it, and confessed that Howe discoursed “more like
-a gentleman than a Divine, without any mixture of rancour, or any sharp
-reflections, and sometimes with a great degree of kindness towards him,
-for which, and his prayers for him, he heartily thanked him.”<a id="FNanchor_37" href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">TILLOTSON.</div>
-
-<p>The year proved unfortunate for the consistency of Divines of the
-Liberal school, for Tillotson also committed himself. Preaching a
-sermon at Court he maintained the monstrous position “that no man is
-obliged to preach against the religion of his country, though a false
-one, unless he has the power of working miracles.” “It is a pity your
-Majesty slept,” observed a Courtier at the close of the service, “for
-we have had the rarest piece of Hobbism that ever you heard in your
-life.” “Odsfish!” rejoined Charles, “he shall print it then.” Howe once
-more came forward with reproof and expostulation. He regretted that
-the Dean should have pleaded “the Popish cause against the Fathers of
-the Reformation;” and as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[28]</span> the Nonconformist was riding with his friend
-to see Lady Falconbridge at Sutton Court, he so touched the heart of
-the Church dignitary, that the latter bursting into tears, confessed
-that it “was the unhappiest thing which had for a long time happened to
-him;” and pleaded in excuse of his great error, the haste with which he
-had prepared his discourse, and the alarm produced in his mind by the
-spread of Popery.<a id="FNanchor_38" href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1680.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">COMPREHENSION.</div>
-
-<p>Perhaps these circumstances had some influence in producing another
-useless attempt at comprehension at the close of the year 1680,
-inasmuch as we shall find Howe in consultation with the two Divines
-just mentioned touching the subject. Howe met Bishop Lloyd at
-Tillotson’s house.<a id="FNanchor_39" href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a> The Bishop asked what would satisfy the
-Nonconformists, if an attempt should be made to adjust the differences
-between them and the Church. Howe observed “as all had not the same
-latitude, he could only answer for himself.” What concessions, he was
-further asked, would, in his opinion, satisfy the scruples of the
-greater number&mdash;for, added Lloyd, “I would have the terms so large
-as to comprehend the most of them.” Howe declared that he thought “a
-very considerable obstacle would be removed, if the law were so framed
-as to enable ministers to attempt parochial reformation.” “For that
-reason,” said the Bishop, “I am for abolishing the lay Chancellors as
-being the great<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[29]</span> hindrance to such reformation.”<a id="FNanchor_40" href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a> The next evening
-Howe and Bates, with Tillotson, met at the Deanery of St. Paul’s, where
-Stillingfleet had provided a handsome entertainment for his visitors.
-Lloyd, though expected, did not join the party, being prevented by
-a division in the House of Lords, upon the Exclusion Bill. Whatever
-the bearing of these circumstances might be upon what followed, there
-appeared in Parliament three days afterwards (November 18) a scheme of
-comprehension.</p>
-
-<p>The second reading of the Bill, embodying the scheme, occasioned a
-debate, which went over well-worn topics, and presents no points of
-interest.</p>
-
-<p>The measure emanated from the Episcopalian party in the House of
-Commons; but the Presbyterian members, to the amazement of every one,
-did not promote it. They knew it could not be carried in the House of
-Lords; and the clergy, as Kennet confesses, were “no further in earnest
-than as they apprehended the knife of the Papists” to be near their
-throats.<a id="FNanchor_41" href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Bill dropped&mdash;what else could be expected, there being on one side
-no earnestness in making the offer, and on the other no disposition to
-accept it?<a id="FNanchor_42" href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[30]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1680–81.</div>
-
-<p>With the Bill founded on the principle of comprehension another was
-brought forward, based on the principle of toleration. It proposed to
-exempt Protestant Dissenters “from the penalties of certain laws.”<a id="FNanchor_43" href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a>
-The measure made way through the House of Commons, and it forced itself
-through the House of Lords;<a id="FNanchor_44" href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a> but because distasteful to the King on
-account of its limiting toleration to Protestant Nonconformists, it was
-put aside by some contemptible trick, when other Bills were presented
-for the Royal assent.<a id="FNanchor_45" href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a></p>
-
-<p>On the day of the prorogation, the Commons by a formal resolution
-pronounced the prosecution of Protestant Dissenters to be a
-grievance to the subject, a detriment to the Protestant interest, an
-encouragement to Popery, and a danger to the kingdom’s peace.<a id="FNanchor_46" href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a>
-However strange it is to find such a resolution in the Journals, after
-a Bill had been carried through the two Houses to the same effect a few
-days before, the fact may be explained by the circumstance that the
-Commons had become aware of the foul play practised on these cherished
-measures. It seems incredible, but such was the factious spirit
-existing, that the Court and High Church party&mdash;who were prepared to
-vindicate, or to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[31]</span> wink at all kinds of excesses in the despotism of the
-Crown&mdash;positively objected to the resolution, as an unconstitutional
-method of invalidating Acts of Parliament.<a id="FNanchor_47" href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OXFORD PARLIAMENT.</div>
-
-<p>Charles II. dissolved his fourth Parliament on the 18th of January,
-1681, and summoned a fifth to meet at Oxford on the 21st of March.<a id="FNanchor_48" href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a>
-This fifth Parliament opened amidst great excitement. The members for
-London, who had sat before, received the thanks of the citizens for
-searching into the Popish plot, and for supporting the Comprehension,
-the Toleration, and the Exclusion Bills. They rode to the City
-on the banks of the Isis, attended by a large body of horsemen,
-with ribbons stuck in their hats, displaying the watchwords, “No
-Popery&mdash;No Slavery.” Other members received similar addresses, and
-proceeded to the scholastic halls,&mdash;for the occasion transferred into
-senate-houses,&mdash;stirred by the conviction that a great political and
-ecclesiastical crisis had arisen. Met by the King with gracious but
-hollow sayings of the accustomed stamp, Parliament did not pass over
-the recent breach of decency committed in reference to the Toleration
-Bill, and reflections not more sharp than just were uttered by Liberal
-members. It was said, that those who charged the Country party with
-being Republicans were Revolutionists themselves, like<span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[32]</span> thieves in a
-crowd, crying “Gentlemen, have a care of your pockets;”<a id="FNanchor_49" href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a> that if
-Bills could be so thrown away the Commons vainly spent their time in
-passing them, and that what had been done inflicted a heavy blow on
-the English Constitution. The Commons requested a conference with the
-Lords, and took up the subject with spirit, declaring, as recorded in
-the <i>Lords’ Journals</i>, an intention to search out the accomplices
-in the piece of impudent knavery, which had just been practised on
-their own House.<a id="FNanchor_50" href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a> Another Bill of Exclusion made its appearance, and
-another debate on Popery arose; but a dissolution within one week put
-an end to all Parliamentary inquiry, and extinguished all Parliamentary
-discussion.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>Amidst much false alarm, and much popular folly, there existed a
-reasonable antipathy to the superstition and intolerance of Rome; the
-return of Papal ascendancy being, at that moment, no unreasonable
-object of fear; for with it would have inevitably arrived a new reign
-of civil and spiritual despotism. Protestantism on the one side, and
-Popery on the other, stood face to face in irreconcilable conflict; and
-during the storm which raged from one end of the Island to the other,
-there came into play two famous party watchwords, which, though in our
-time they have become nearly superseded, are not yet wholly swept out
-of existence. It is curious to notice that “Whig” and “Tory”&mdash;names
-then and since appropriated to political uses&mdash;had a religious origin:
-Whig being the title coined to fit the Presbyterian Covenanters of
-Scotland, suspected of anti-Monarchical principles; and “Tory” being
-meant to designate the Roman Catholic Irishmen, who seized the property
-of English<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[33]</span> settlers, and whose religion was considered most favourable
-to despotism.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">EXCLUSION BILL.</div>
-
-<p>Whilst, in these days of enlightenment and of perfectly altered
-circumstances, we can see how, without sacrificing universal religious
-liberty, we can protect ourselves against the danger of Papal
-ascendancy and despotism, should that danger again threaten us, it
-is proper to take into account the whole case respecting the conduct
-of our ancestors in the last two Stuart reigns, and to remember that
-they dreaded such broad toleration, because they apprehended it would
-lead to the supremacy of Romanism; and they could not see how it was
-possible, in this case, to concede liberty without opening a gate
-for the entrance of injustice. There was wisdom in the end they kept
-in view, though there was error in the method they employed for its
-attainment.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>It is ridiculous to look upon the Earl of Shaftesbury as the Æolus
-who let loose the anti-Papal winds. He doubtless availed himself of
-the public favour to accomplish ends of his own, and the elevation
-of the Duke of Monmouth to the honour of legitimacy and heirship was
-with him a favourite idea, equally absurd and mischievous; but the
-desire, prevalent for a time, of cutting off the entail of the crown
-from the King’s brother, was no creation of a single person, but the
-offspring of public sentiment, and the outgrowth of years on years.
-Indignation against Popery, and the support of an Exclusion Bill,
-intimately connected as cause and effect, were two distinct things: but
-although the former continued in unabated force, the latter dwindled
-away, and the nation came to acquiesce, so far as the succession to
-the throne was concerned, in the policy of the Court. The reasons
-are easily assigned. Popular falsehoods respecting the Popish plots
-exploded in disgrace, and honest folks saw<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[34]</span> they had been deceived
-by knaves. From dislike to Rome, her doctrines, her polity, and her
-worship, some diseased secretions, which had gathered over feeling,
-came to be rubbed off. Romanists had been found less desperate plotters
-than had been dreamed. Limitations upon the descent of the crown
-appeared more efficacious than they had done before. The probability
-of another Civil War, if James were excluded, alarmed many; personal
-sympathy with a Sovereign required to perform so unnatural an act as
-that of disinheriting a brother, prevailed with more; and perhaps,
-considering the Royal ages, the uncertainty of the contemplated
-emergency influenced most. In this last respect, a manifest difference
-exists between the policy of an Exclusion Bill founded on a contingency
-which might never occur, and the policy of a Revolution based upon
-the despotic proceedings of an actual King. That these reasons proved
-effective is plain; whether they were valid and wise is another
-point. The sequel showed a Revolution to be inevitable. To have
-anticipated the event of 1688 might have saved England some trouble
-and much suffering; but England has always been slow to depart from
-constitutional principles, and has always loved to stand as long as
-possible “in the old ways.” The conflict which opened in 1643 had been
-put off until it could be put off no longer: and the men of the second
-half of the seventeenth century were, as it regarded an unwillingness
-to come to extremities, just like their fathers of the first. What
-really followed the departure from the scheme of Exclusion justified
-some of the worst fears of its supporters. The Duke was restored to his
-former position, and carried things with a high hand.<a id="FNanchor_51" href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[35]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">KING’S DECLARATION.</div>
-
-<p>After the dissolution of Parliament at Oxford, the King, by the advice
-of Halifax, published a Declaration, explaining the reasons which
-induced him to take that critical step. He charged the Commons with
-arbitrary orders; with bringing forward accusations on mere suspicion;
-with unconstitutional votes, especially in support of resolutions
-condemning the persecution of Dissenters, according to law; with
-obstinacy in the matter of the Exclusion Bill; with a design of
-changing the government of the realm; and with a determination to set
-and keep at variance the two Houses of Legislature.<a id="FNanchor_52" href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a> In short, he
-managed, as his father had done, only with more dexterity, to cover and
-defend his own unconstitutional purposes, by throwing all blame on the
-Houses of Parliament.</p>
-
-<p>Immediately afterwards, Archbishop Sancroft received a Royal command
-to require the public reading of the Declaration in all and every the
-churches and chapels within the province of Canterbury, at the time of
-Divine service, upon some Lord’s Day, with all convenient speed. If we
-may here believe Burnet, Sancroft, at a meeting of Council, moved that
-this order should be given; remembering the habits of the Historian
-of his <i>Own Times</i>, I can scarcely trust his statement, without
-confirmation from some other quarter. Yet, if Sancroft did not suggest,
-he certainly did not resist the publication of this document&mdash;as he
-did the publication of another at a later period; and, because he
-received the order for its publication, and the publication followed
-accordingly, he must bear the responsibility of having sanctioned a
-procedure, which really made the Church an approving herald to the
-nation, of the King’s despotic policy.<a id="FNanchor_53" href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[36]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>High Churchmen took the opportunity of presenting to the Throne the
-most obsequious and abject addresses. Our princes, said they, derive
-not their title from the people, but from God; to Him alone they are
-accountable: and it belongs not to subjects either to create or to
-censure, but only to honour and obey their Sovereign. They besought
-His Majesty to accept the tender of their hearts and hands, their
-lives and fortunes. These dearest sacrifices they abjectly laid down
-at Royal feet.<a id="FNanchor_54" href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a> It was about the same time that Morley, Bishop of
-Winchester, declared:&mdash;“If ever it might be said of any&mdash;it may now
-most emphatically be said of us: Happy are the people that are in such
-a case.” We have “a Government pretending to no power at all above the
-King, nor to no power under the King neither, but from him, and by him,
-and for him&mdash;a Government enjoining active obedience to all lawful
-commands of lawful authority; and passive obedience when we cannot obey
-actively, forbidding and condemning all taking up of arms, offensive or
-defensive, by subjects of any quality.”<a id="FNanchor_55" href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a></p>
-
-<p>The King’s Declaration was compared by a writer of later date,
-reflecting upon it, to the olive branch brought by the dove into the
-ark,&mdash;an indication of peace, of the abatement of popular excitement,
-and of the stability of laws and religion, like the dove which had
-found <i>ubi pedem figeret</i>. Warming with his subject, he calls the
-Declaration “that great vision of the <i>Lex terræ</i>” long wrapped in
-mists, but now revealed; and likens the addresses called forth to the
-seamen’s shout on approaching land,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[37]</span> after a stormy voyage.<a id="FNanchor_56" href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a> Some of
-the Tory party went mad with joy at the triumph of despotism.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LOYAL ADDRESSES.</div>
-
-<p>There were not wanting utterances of a very different order. A
-well-known publication, entitled, <i>The Conformist’s Plea for the
-Nonconformists, in four parts, by a Beneficed Minister, and a regular
-Son of the Church of England</i>, bears the date of 1681, and at the
-time made much stir. The author dwells upon the sufferings of his
-Dissenting brethren&mdash;their hard case, their equitable proposals, their
-ministerial qualifications, their peaceable behaviour, their orthodoxy
-as tested by the doctrinal articles of the Church&mdash;and the injury
-inflicted on that Church by their exclusion. “Some reverend sons of
-the Church,” he remarked, with a good deal of common sense, “in love
-to peace, and fear of enemies, have earnestly called and exhorted
-the Dissenting ejected brethren, to come and unite, to come into the
-present Constitution, as safest, as strongest, as best, &amp;c. But if
-they could not come in at the narrow door eighteen years ago, and the
-door as narrow still as it was then, and there be the same cross-bars
-laid across, as were then to keep them out, to what purpose is the
-exhortation? Is there a great storm a coming? they think that Christ
-is the same ship, and they are as safe as any other. They may clearly
-plead, they could have conformed at first upon better worldly terms
-than now; they might have saved what they have lost, and got their
-share with others; to come now to conform, when all places are full,
-and not enow for numerous expectants, and when there is nothing for
-them without tedious waiting; and if their judgments and consciences
-could not enter then, how can they now?”<a id="FNanchor_57" href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[38]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>Wit is not wanting, when he asks:&mdash;“But how did these Master-Builders
-proceed in the Government of their New Reformed Church? It seemed to be
-built no larger than to contain one family, the genuine sons of such
-fathers; there was but one narrow door of admission to it, a strong
-lock upon it, and the sole power of the keys was in trusty hands, and
-the sword in the hand of a friend, there was no outward apartment in it
-to entertain strangers, or belonging to it; but some got a false key to
-the door, as many call it, a key of a larger sense; and when some got
-in, more crowded in; and so the Latitudinarian in charity, came in with
-the Latitudinarian in discipline, to the no little grief of some who do
-not like their company. The fathers keep above stairs, and now and then
-come down among us, and send their officers to visit us, and have their
-watch renewed every year to tell tales of us; and they that are without
-doors, cry, If there be any love in our Governors to Christ, and His
-divided flock, that we would but widen the door, and reform but ill
-customs; but we say, we cannot help ourselves or them, for the law will
-have it so.”<a id="FNanchor_58" href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[39]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">For the credit of humanity, it should be repeated that occasional
-lulls occurred in the storm of persecution during this infamous reign.
-Intolerant laws sank into desuetude, and merciful, or rather righteous
-magistrates, neglected, or tempered their execution. Considerable
-ingenuity sometimes appears in their methods of evasion. A Justice of
-the Peace would ask certain informers whether they could swear that, in
-a certain case, there was “a pretended, colourable, religious exercise,
-in other manner than according to the liturgy and practice of the
-Church of England,” and would caution them to consider that, if they
-swore in the affirmative, they must know exactly what the liturgy and
-the Church really were. He would also demand whether the informers were
-present all the time during which the service lasted, for if they were
-not, how could they be sure the Common Prayer was not used? An instance
-is not wanting in which such an ingenious Justice dismissed both
-parties, and sent the case to counsel for opinion, who decided that he
-had done quite right.<a id="FNanchor_59" href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1677–80.</div>
-
-<p>During the year 1677, and for two or three years afterwards,
-Nonconformists suffered less troubles than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[40]</span> they had done before, owing
-in part to the death of Archbishop Sheldon, in part to the prevalent
-fear of Popery, and in part to the change of Ministry in 1679, and the
-ascendancy of Shaftesbury in His Majesty’s Councils.<a id="FNanchor_60" href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a></p>
-
-<p>About the year 1680 the Duke of Buckingham, like Shaftesbury,
-exceedingly ambitious of popularity, and apt to bid high for the
-prize by professing great liberality of opinion, made overtures to
-the Nonconformists to become their advocate. It being signified
-to John Howe, that this nobleman wished to see him, the Divine
-took an opportunity of calling at the sumptuous residence of the
-dissolute peer, and, after some conversation, His Grace hinted that
-“the Nonconformists were too numerous and powerful to be any longer
-neglected; that they deserved regard, and that, if they had a friend
-near the throne, who possessed influence with the Court generally, to
-give them advice in critical emergencies, and to convey their requests
-to the Royal ear, they would find it much to their advantage.” There
-could be no mistake as to the meaning of all this; yet, at the moment
-of offering himself as the political adviser of the Nonconformists,
-Buckingham was pursuing that course of flagrant vice which has brought
-everlasting infamy upon his name. Howe replied, with great simplicity,
-“that the Nonconformists,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[41]</span> being an avowedly religious people, it
-highly concerned them, should they fix on any one for the purpose
-mentioned, to choose some one who would not be ashamed of <i>them</i>,
-and of whom <i>they</i> might have no reason to be ashamed; and
-that, to find a person in whom there was a concurrence of those two
-qualifications, was exceedingly difficult.”<a id="FNanchor_61" href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a> This answer ended the
-business.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RENEWED PERSECUTIONS.</div>
-
-<p>But whatever might be the temporary relief then tacitly granted, or
-the patronage and protection then virtually offered to Dissenters,
-a manifest change occurred in their circumstances after the Oxford
-dissolution of 1681. The causes of this change require attention.</p>
-
-<p>Sir William Temple’s Utopian scheme had broken down. However plausible
-on paper, it had proved a failure in practice. Shaftesbury and Russell
-could not work with Temple and Halifax; and in the spring of 1681 the
-three former had disappeared from the Board, so also had Salisbury,
-Essex, and Sunderland,&mdash;the management of affairs being chiefly in the
-hands of Halifax, of Lord Radnor, of Hyde, created Lord Rochester, and
-of the Secretaries of State, Jenkins and Conway.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>Halifax is described as a man of great wit, which he often employed
-upon the subject of religion. “He confessed he could not swallow down
-everything that Divines imposed on the world; he was a Christian in
-submission, he believed as much as he could, and he hoped that God
-would not lay it to his charge if he could not digest iron as an
-ostrich did, nor take into his belief things that must burst him.”
-Accustomed to run on in conversation after this fashion, he excited a
-suspicion of his being an atheist, a charge which he utterly denied;
-betraying at the same time, in the midst of sickness, some kind and
-degree of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[42]</span> spiritual feeling, whilst at other tunes he would profess
-a philosophical contempt of the world, and call the titles of rank
-rattles to please children.<a id="FNanchor_62" href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a> The colouring of his mind was better
-than the drawing. He admired justice and liberty in theory,&mdash;he gave
-them up for places and titles in practice.<a id="FNanchor_63" href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a> With little or no
-principle of any kind, he answered Dryden’s description&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Jotham of piercing wit and frequent thought,</div>
- <div>Endued by nature, and by learning taught</div>
- <div>To move assemblies; but who only tried</div>
- <div>The worse awhile, then chose the better side.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>The last line is scarcely true, but he well merited the name of
-Trimmer,<a id="FNanchor_64" href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a> his constancy being confined to his warfare with the
-Church of Rome. Radnor, if we are to believe Burnet, was morose and
-cynical, learned but intractable, just in the administration of
-affairs, yet vicious under the appearance of virtue.<a id="FNanchor_65" href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a> The gossip of
-the Court called him “an old snarling, troublesome, peevish fellow;”
-and even Clarendon speaks of him as of “a sour<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[43]</span> and surly nature, a
-great <i>opiniâtre</i>, and one who must be overcome before he would
-believe that he could be so.”<a id="FNanchor_66" href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a> Of the Earl of Rochester, it is
-remarked by Roger North, “His infirmities were passion, in which he
-would swear like a cutter, and the indulging himself in wine. But his
-party was that of the Church of England, of whom he had the honour,
-for many years, to be accounted the head.”<a id="FNanchor_67" href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a> But North, it must
-be remembered, was a man of violent prejudices, and his judgment of
-contemporaries must be estimated accordingly.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MEN IN POWER.</div>
-
-<p>Lord Conway was a mere official, devoted rather to pleasure than
-business; and Sir Leoline Jenkins was an assiduous Secretary and a good
-lawyer. According to Burnet’s report, he was “set on every punctilio
-of the Church of England to superstition, and was a great asserter of
-the Divine right of monarchy, and was for carrying the prerogative
-high.”<a id="FNanchor_68" href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a> Nonconformists could not expect any mercy or much justice
-from men like these.</p>
-
-<p>A fiery zeal for Protestantism continued in the month of September,
-1681, when an address was presented to the Lord Mayor of London from
-20,000 apprentices, touching the “devilish plots carried on by the
-Papists.”<a id="FNanchor_69" href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a> But before that time, the excitement which had been
-produced by Oates’ informations, and which had promoted the progress of
-Exclusion measures, began to subside, and a reaction in many quarters
-set in against the supporters of both.<a id="FNanchor_70" href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[44]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>Burnet speaks of “a great heat raised against the clergy” in 1679: of
-Nonconformists behaving very indecently, and of the press, in which
-they had a great hand, becoming licentious against the Court and the
-clergy; but he does not specify what publications are meant. The only
-remarkable one mentioned by Calamy as appearing that year, is “A short
-and true account of the several advances the Church of England hath
-made towards Rome&mdash;or a model of the grounds upon which the Papists
-for these hundred years have built their hopes and expectations, that
-England would e’er long return to Popery, by Dr. Du Moulin, sometime
-History Professor of Oxford.”<a id="FNanchor_71" href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a> Upon reading this book, it strikes
-me, that the sting is stronger in the title-page, than in the contents;
-it makes out a case as to Romanist tendencies against Laud and his
-party, rather than against contemporary Churchmen. At all events,
-alarm existed at the time&mdash;although a book like Du Moulin’s will not
-account for it&mdash;lest a new revolution should break out resembling that
-which occurred at the beginning of the Long Parliament. “The Bishops
-and clergy, apprehending that a rebellion, and with it the pulling
-the Church to pieces, was designed, set themselves, on the other
-hand, to write against the late times, and to draw a parallel between
-the present times and them; which was not decently enough managed
-by those who undertook the argument, and who were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[45]</span> believed to be
-set on and paid by the Court.” Burnet’s statement is very loose, for
-without mentioning any book on the subject, by any Bishop,&mdash;although
-he might have cited what Morley, Bishop of Winchester, wrote soon
-afterwards,&mdash;he alludes to the writings of a layman, Roger L’Estrange,
-who richly deserves his severest condemnation. That man did more than
-any one to turn the tide of indignation into a new channel. People
-“seemed now to lay down all fears and apprehensions of Popery, and
-nothing was so common in their mouths, as the year ’41, in which the
-late Wars begun” (they did not begin till ’42,) “and which seemed now
-to be near the being acted over again. Both city and country were full
-of many indecencies that broke out on this occasion.”<a id="FNanchor_72" href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a> Revolutionary
-designs were charged upon the Whig party generally; and Nonconformists
-unjustly came in for a large share of suspicion.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">STEPHEN COLLEDGE.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>The first-fruit of this reaction appears in the discovery of a
-pretended new plot against the life of the King, arranged to be
-executed during his stay in the City of Oxford. The person made the
-scape-goat of the offence was Stephen Colledge, who had acquired some
-notice as a violent Protestant, and who had mixed himself up with
-Oates and the other witnesses against the convicted Papists. Colledge
-being indicted at the Old Bailey, had no true Bill found against him.
-Political opinions then influenced Jurymen to an extent which shocks
-us now that everything is done to banish prejudice from our Courts of
-Justice; and therefore the Ministers of the Crown, who managed this
-prosecution, after being baffled by the Whigs, who formed the panel in
-London, determined to carry the case down to Oxford, where they could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[46]</span>
-empanel a number of Tories.<a id="FNanchor_73" href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a> A true bill being found at last, Chief
-Justice North tried the prisoner; and, on that occasion, behaved in
-such an infamous manner, that it was thought probable, if he had lived
-to see another Parliament, he might have been impeached.<a id="FNanchor_74" href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a> Nothing
-which any lawyer would now consider treasonable, could be proved
-against Colledge; yet he was convicted, condemned, and executed. The
-fate of this man excited a great degree of interest at the time, he
-being considered a rebel by one party, and a martyr by another. Letters
-written to the Secretary of State after Colledge’s death indicate the
-eager desire of the former to establish his guilt;<a id="FNanchor_75" href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a> and, if we may
-credit other letters, Nonconformists showed much sympathy with the
-sufferer. One writer thought it very credible, that the Presbyterians
-at Lewes did, against the execution of Colledge, keep a very strict
-fast; and it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[47]</span> was supposed they of Chichester did the like, but the
-circumstance wanted confirmation. Another correspondent the same month
-reported that the general discourse in that Cathedral City turned upon
-the man’s innocence, and described how much he had been wronged, and
-how his blood would cry for vengeance against the rogues who took away
-his life.<a id="FNanchor_76" href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a> It is a strange circumstance, but it illustrates the
-irrational feeling of the moment, that some people, who were hounding
-this poor fellow on to the gallows, called him a Papist, and some
-called him an Anabaptist. At Colledge’s execution the Sheriff evinced
-much anxiety to know whether he belonged to the Presbyterians, to the
-Independents, or to the Church of England. Colledge&mdash;after having
-previously declared that he never had been a Papist&mdash;replied, that
-before the Restoration, he was a Presbyterian; that since then he had
-conformed to the Episcopal Church, until he saw so much persecution of
-Dissenters; and that, afterwards, he had attended Presbyterian meetings
-“and others very seldom.” Yet he had not forsaken the Establishment
-altogether; for, only three weeks before his apprehension, he had
-attended the ministry of Dr. Tillotson. He wished for union, and
-lamented that some of the Church of England preached that the
-Presbyterians were worse than the Papists, although he was certain they
-were not men of vicious lives.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">STEPHEN COLLEDGE.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>It is plain, from his own words, that at the time of his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[48]</span> being charged
-with treason, Colledge was identified with Nonconformity; and, in a
-letter written by some one (not known) to the Bishop of London, July
-11, 1681, it is stated, that just then Nonconformists were building
-several meeting-houses; and that, after the acquittal of Colledge by
-the Grand Jury in London, these people grew increasingly impudent.
-Before his execution, there came to him in Oxford gaol&mdash;“a fanatic,
-desiring to pray with him, but being not permitted, unless he would
-use the Liturgy of the Church of England, he refused.”<a id="FNanchor_77" href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a> We learn
-that the poor man received “the Blessed Sacrament” from Dr. Hall, to
-whom he made confession.<a id="FNanchor_78" href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a> That confession, or a large portion of
-it, is preserved; and, in substance, it corresponds with his speech
-at the gallows. He acknowledged in his confession, that he might, on
-some occasions, have “uttered words of indecency, not becoming his duty
-concerning the King or his Council;” and, if so, he begged their pardon,
-and in his speech he admitted that he had arms in his possession; but,
-said he, “they were for our own defence in case the Papists should
-make any attempt upon us by way of massacre.” Both in his confession
-and speech, he stoutly denied, that he had entered into any plot; nor
-did any sufficient evidence of such a thing come out on his trial.
-From the confession, it further appeared, that on the Sunday before
-his execution, the messenger who brought word respecting the day on
-which he was to die, assured him he might even then save his life, if
-he would only confess who was the cause of his coming to Oxford. He
-persisted in maintaining, that his coming was entirely<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[49]</span> of his own
-accord, and without any treasonable intention whatever.<a id="FNanchor_79" href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REACTION.</div>
-
-<p>At Colledge’s trial, Dugdale and Turbeville, formerly co-witnesses of
-Titus Oates, appeared against him, whilst Oates himself took Colledge’s
-part, and vilified his old associates. The wretched combination against
-the Roman Catholics now broke up: the conspirators were quarrelling,
-the house divided against itself could not stand, the Nonconformist,
-who in his Protestant zeal had mixed himself up with discreditable
-people, now appeared as the victim, his own eagerness to sweep away
-religionists whom he disliked, had stimulated his enemies to imitation;
-and, as we conclude this singular history, it is impossible to forget
-the words of Divine wisdom&mdash;“With what measure ye mete, it shall be
-measured to you again.”</p>
-
-<p>The same reaction which destroyed the Protestant Joiner, struck
-down another person who declared himself the Protestant Earl.<a id="FNanchor_80" href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a>
-Shaftesbury, after the dissolution<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[50]</span> of the Royal Parliament, being
-accused of entering into a conspiracy against the King, found himself
-within the gloomy walls of London Tower. His spirits and wit did not
-forsake him; and when accosted by one of the Popish lords, whom he
-had been instrumental in sending there not long before, he replied,
-“that he had been lately indisposed with an ague, and was come to
-take some Jesuit’s powder.” Everything which ingenuity, prompted by
-malice, could suggest was done to injure in public estimation the late
-popular nobleman, and to prejudice his trial. The clergy inveighed
-against him as “the Apostle of Schism;” and the Catholics called him
-“the Man of Sin.” By the Tories he was styled “Mephistopheles,” and
-“the Fiend;” and by Dryden he was satirized in his <i>Absalom and
-Ahitophel</i>. The Bill at the Old Bailey having been ignored, the
-popular favourite prosecuted his accusers; and would, if he could, have
-raised an insurrection against the Government. Finding that enterprise
-impossible, he escaped to Holland, and died there in February, 1683,
-enjoying the hospitality of the Republic, which he had threatened
-to overthrow. “<i>Carthago</i>,” was their generous and graceful
-retort&mdash;“<i>non adhuc deleta, Comitem de Shaftesbury in gremio suo
-recipere vult</i>.”<a id="FNanchor_81" href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RENEWED PERSECUTION.</div>
-
-<p>The reaction went on, and began to sweep like a storm over the
-Dissenting Churches. The <i>State Papers</i>, after having for
-some years failed to supply illustrations of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[51]</span> condition of
-Nonconformity, again present a pile of informations and letters,
-proving the renewed activity of spies, and opening a fresh loop-hole
-through which we can discover the warfare going on against “the
-fanatics.” It is but just to the Government, to say, that as far
-as can be discovered from these records, this persecuting activity
-originated with individuals of the Tory and High Church party, who were
-continually writing to Sir Leoline Jenkins, informing him of political
-disaffection and of religious discontent. Loyal addresses streamed
-in from counties and towns, communications arrived respecting plots
-and disaffection, and complaints were also made of the non-execution
-of laws against Nonconformists.<a id="FNanchor_82" href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a> All the way through, the object
-was to represent Nonconformists as disloyal, as traitors to their
-Prince, and as wishing to bring back the days of the Republic. So
-numerous, it is said, were these disaffected fanatics, that they
-swarmed everywhere,&mdash;none were safe from their influence. A question
-arose, whether even some of the King’s messengers<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[52]</span> were not “Meeters
-at Conventicles,” or, at least, persons who kept correspondence with
-such as went there.<a id="FNanchor_83" href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a> Yet, amidst this chaos of informations, not the
-slightest hint appears of anything like <i>proof</i> of the existence
-of a Nonconformist plot; and, indeed, for the most part, the narratives
-furnished are of the idlest description, some of them written by very
-illiterate persons.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>Mixed up with complaints about the Nonconformists are discreditable
-allusions to Churchmen, who, for their moderation and liberality,
-were suspected of being no better than schismatics. Rumours reached
-Northampton that Dr. Conant had been made Prebendary of Worcester, much
-to the wonder “of those who knew what, lately as well as formerly, his
-actions had been;” but these rumours were contradicted, “much to the
-satisfaction of all who had any kindness to the King or Church.”<a id="FNanchor_84" href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a></p>
-
-<p>Waspish informers, buzzing about the ears of men of office, would under
-any circumstances have been annoying.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[53]</span> Liberally-minded men&mdash;or rather
-men respecting the rights of conscience&mdash;whilst keeping their eyes
-open to detect dangers threatening the State, would have crushed, or
-at least have brushed away the troublesome insects; but the persons
-now in power were of a different character. Their known temper as
-high Churchmen and as high Tories encouraged the tribe to renew that
-infamous occupation, which happily had been gone now for some few
-years; and when these reports reached the Secretary, he not only
-graciously received them, but with his colleagues proceeded to take
-active measures against the suspected parties.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RENEWED PERSECUTION.</div>
-
-<p>The names of the accused, the nature of the accusation, and allusions
-to the harvest of gain incident upon their conviction, are sufficient
-to prove how idle, and how much worse than idle, were the charges of
-disaffection. The <i>State Papers</i> supply proofs of the interference
-of Government to remove obstacles out of the way of magistrates and
-officers, who found it difficult to clothe their acts with a semblance
-of legality.<a id="FNanchor_85" href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a> Public documents exhibit the further activity of the
-Court in the same direction at the close of this year. His Majesty
-in Council ordered the Lord Mayor and Aldermen of London, and also
-the magistrates of Middlesex, to use their utmost endeavours for the
-suppression of Conventicles. The last-mentioned body, in the following
-January (1682), having previously ordered a return of the ministers
-and hearers in Dissenting assemblies, now desired that the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[54]</span> Bishop of
-London would direct his officers to employ the utmost diligence for the
-excommunication of persons who deserved such penalty, and to publish
-the fact of their excommunication, so that no one of them might be
-“admitted for a witness, or returned upon juries, or capable of suing
-for any debt.”<a id="FNanchor_86" href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>A striking instance of the treatment of Nonconformists is supplied in
-the history of Nathaniel Vincent, brother of Thomas Vincent, whose
-ministerial labours have been already noticed. This ejected clergyman
-came to London soon after the great fire, and preached amidst the ruins
-to large multitudes. Occupying a Conventicle in Southwark, he was
-dragged out of the pulpit by the hair of his head, and, at a subsequent
-period, he suffered imprisonment in the Marshalsea, and the Gatehouse,
-where he was denied the use of pen, ink, and paper.<a id="FNanchor_87" href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a> In an
-information, dated the 18th of December, the writer, after mentioning
-other places, describes a visit he paid to Vincent’s place of worship,
-when that minister hearing of the informer’s approach, slipped away,
-and left his congregation singing David’s psalms. The more the Justices
-talked, and the more they exhorted the people to disperse, the louder
-the people continued to sing. Churchwardens, overseers, and constables,
-all refused to give the names of the Conventiclers, pretending they
-did not know who they were. A friend of Vincent’s, writing the next
-day, speaks of him as a man of equal standing in the University with
-most of the Conformists in Southwark, holding doctrines accordant
-with the Articles, constantly praying for the King, and accustomed on
-Christmas Day to make a collection for the poor of the parish of St.
-Olaves.<a id="FNanchor_88" href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[55]</span> And in a further information we discover a curious scrap
-of intelligence respecting his place of worship:&mdash;“Almost every seat
-that adjoins to the sides of the Conventicle has a door, like the sally
-port of a fire ship, to make escape by, and in each door is a small
-peep-hole, like to taverns’ and alehouses’ doors, to ken the people
-before they let them in.” The author of the document proceeds to relate
-how the Marshalls dispersed these congregations, how officers were
-appointed to visit other meeting-houses, and how an old woman hoped
-they would “rot in hell” for having disturbed her.<a id="FNanchor_89" href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">NATHANIEL VINCENT.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1682.</div>
-
-<p>We learn from another source that a Justice once entered the meeting
-during one of Vincent’s sermons, and commanded him in the King’s name
-to come down, to which the minister replied he was there by command of
-the King of kings, and had resolved to proceed with the service.<a id="FNanchor_90" href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a>
-The enforcement upon him of a fine of £20 proving impracticable, an
-indictment followed, under the Act of the 35th of Elizabeth. Upon
-the Sunday preceding the day of his trial, he preached to his flock
-from the words, “Only let your conversation be as it becometh the
-gospel of Christ: that whether I come and see you, or else be absent,
-I may hear of your affairs, that ye stand fast in one spirit, with
-one mind striving together for the faith of the gospel.” “There was a
-numerous auditory, insomuch that the people were ready to tread one
-upon another, and some hundreds went away that could not come near to
-hear him.” “In these sermons,” as further stated in the records of
-Vincent’s Church, “he earnestly pressed us to hold fast our profession,
-and to be steadfast in the cause of Christ. The 4th of January, before
-Mr. Vincent went to his trial, there was a solemn day of fasting
-and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[56]</span> prayer kept at his own meeting-place, to seek the Lord on his
-behalf. On the 8th, there was a whole night spent in prayer. On the
-9th he went to Dorking, and had his trial on the 10th, when he was
-not suffered to speak in his own defence, but was found guilty of the
-indictment, and was committed prisoner to the Marshalsea, in Southwark,
-for three months, and then, if he would not conform according to that
-statute, he was to adjure the realm or suffer death.” The Church,
-deprived of their pastor, was much harassed by their enemies; and we
-are informed, that on “the 10th day of this month, being Saturday,
-one Justice Balsh, a silk throwster by trade, and a very bitter enemy
-to the Lord’s people living in Spitalfields, having sent word to the
-other Justices of the Peace, his brethren that lived in those parts,
-that he would meet them very early the next morning, to disturb the
-Whigs at their meeting-places (for so they called Dissenters at that
-time), about eight of the clock at night, died suddenly in his chair,
-and never spake a word.” “The 11th, we met in Aldersgate-street at a
-cloth-worker’s, where Mr. Biggin, the minister, had but just begun
-prayer, but we were disturbed by the train-bands.” “April 1st, we met
-at Mr. Russell’s, in Ironmonger-lane, where Mr. Lambert administered
-to us the ordinance of the Lord’s Supper, and <i>we sung a psalm with
-a low voice</i>.”<a id="FNanchor_91" href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a> This touching circumstance calls to mind<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[57]</span> two
-parallels&mdash;one in the history of the Huguenots, when they crept into
-their place of worship muffled up, and sang in suppressed tones one
-of Marot’s psalms; and the other in the history of the persecuted
-Christians of Madagascar, who when they secretly assembled for Divine
-service, were wont to sing in whispers.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION.</div>
-
-<p>In November, informers broke into the house of Dr. Annesley, and
-distrained his goods for “several latent convictions;”<a id="FNanchor_92" href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a> and, a
-month afterwards the same people entered his meeting-house and broke
-the seats in pieces; after which disturbance, worship was for a time
-suspended.<a id="FNanchor_93" href="#Footnote_93" class="fnanchor">[93]</a> Others were treated in a similar manner.<a id="FNanchor_94" href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a> The
-Bishop of London received orders from Court to require a return of
-all parishioners who did not attend church and receive the sacrament,
-several of whom were cited to appear in the spiritual court, but “the
-Bishop, and divers of his most conspicuous clergy, in the matter of
-persecution, carried themselves with great discretion and candour.”<a id="FNanchor_95" href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a>
-A warrant, however, came out for the apprehension of Dr. Bates; and a
-little later, constables were posted at the doors of the “most known
-meeting-places in the City, so that there were few sermons in them, at
-least at the usual hours.”<a id="FNanchor_96" href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[58]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1682.</div>
-
-<p>In December fifty warrants for distresses in Hackney were signed;
-one for the sum of £500, the others of different amounts, making
-up altogether £1,400. Soon afterwards, 200 documents of the same
-kind were served upon certain inhabitants of the town of Uxbridge
-and its neighbourhood on account of their attending the proscribed
-Conventicles.<a id="FNanchor_97" href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a> At the same time, it is recorded that “on the Lord’s
-Day the Dissenters were in some places in the City kept out, but in
-most they met, though they varied hours; few were actually disturbed,
-but the difficulties upon them were great.”<a id="FNanchor_98" href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a></p>
-
-<p>Whilst the London informers utterly failed to supply a shadow of proof
-that the Nonconformists were engaged in any treasonable designs, other
-informers in distant parts of the country strove, with a like want of
-evidence, to attach to their Dissenting neighbours the most infamous
-suspicions. A clergyman at Kirk Newton had been assaulted by burglars,
-who broke open his stable and stole two mares. Immediately a letter
-was despatched to the Duke of Newcastle, signed by three persons&mdash;who
-said, “We must conclude these men to be some fanatics or sent by them;”
-the Vicar being “a zealous man for the Church of England and a loyal
-person,” the circumstance calls for “some speedy course to suppress
-such insolences.”<a id="FNanchor_99" href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION.</div>
-
-<p>About Midsummer there came another batch of papers for the Secretary’s
-examination, supplying the names of ministers in the Borough of
-Southwark, their respective<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[59]</span> meeting-houses and the number of their
-hearers.<a id="FNanchor_100" href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a> The illness from which the King just then was suffering,
-it is said, produced a great excitement amongst Dissenters, and a
-few days after the arrival of the last of these despatches at the
-Secretary’s office, the Lord Mayor of London issued a proclamation,
-in which he alluded to tumults occasioned by putting the law into
-execution against Conventicles.<a id="FNanchor_101" href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[60]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER V.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">DUKE OF MONMOUTH.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Readers of English history will remember the important political part
-played in the last years of Charles’ reign, by his illegitimate son,
-the Duke of Monmouth. When public feeling ran so high against the Duke
-of York, and so many Protestants were zealous for the Exclusion Bill,
-some amongst the latter favoured certain pretensions to the crown
-which had been put forward on behalf of his nephew. The pretensions
-were founded upon the alleged existence of a black box containing a
-contract of marriage between the King and the Duke’s mother, Lucy
-Walters, which black box made no small stir throughout the country in
-the year 1680.<a id="FNanchor_102" href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a> Two years afterwards, when the Popish plot had
-ceased to alarm the public, and when the Duke of York’s prospects had
-begun to brighten, Monmouth endeavoured to revive his popularity, and
-to reinforce his claims by a progress in the North of England, during
-which journey he assumed a degree of state proper only to an heir
-apparent. Attended by a hundred horsemen,&mdash;fifty of whom rode before
-and fifty behind&mdash;he occupied a space in the midst of the cavalcade,
-mounted on a noble<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[61]</span> charger, and bowing with royal condescension to the
-crowds, who rent the air with shouts, “A Monmouth, a Monmouth, and no
-York!” Bells fired from the church steeples, and musketry roared from
-gates and ramparts, as the gay procession entered town after town.
-He might be found at fairs and races, rousing the men and wooing the
-women, and in town halls dining with the burgesses; always affecting
-royal etiquette, and actually going so far as to touch for the King’s
-evil. His movements closely watched, were duly reported to the
-Secretary of State by persons ill-affected towards the bold aspirant,
-including Shakerley, Governor of Chester Castle, who industriously
-wrote, day after day, minute descriptions of all Monmouth did in that
-old city,&mdash;a city in which, it may be recollected, Nonconformists had
-been found to be very numerous some years before.<a id="FNanchor_103" href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1682.</div>
-
-<p>According to reports, the whole company of horsemen who rode with
-the Duke into Chester did not exceed 150, most of them being noted
-Dissenters. They came shouting, with a company of rabble on foot, whom
-they had induced to join them by providing drink. The bells rang,
-except at the Cathedral and St. Peter’s; and there were some bonfires.
-The Duke went first to the Mayor’s house, where he lodged; and, after
-a short stay there, he repaired to an inn, where he and his companions
-sat down at the ordinary, the chaplain being Dr. Fogg, one of the
-prebendaries. The Duke proceeded to the Cathedral, where he heard a
-sermon not very pleasant to him or to his associates. The same writer
-complains of the rabble making a riot, breaking into the Church of St.
-Peter’s, forcing open the steeple door, and ringing the bells,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[62]</span> amongst
-the rest the fire bell. “Another company,” he adds, “at a bonfire, made
-by a great Presbyterian, broke the glass windows of an honest Churchman
-opposite.” Two or three days later, after accustomed healths, such
-as “Confusion to Popery, and to those that would not be enemies to
-the Duke of York,” Monmouth’s party expressed great displeasure at a
-sermon preached before His Grace, in the choir of the Cathedral; and,
-in general, uttered loud exclamations against the clergy. Having, it is
-said, spit their venom that way, without one syllable of opposition,
-they fell to magnifying the last Parliament, and to commending their
-votes.<a id="FNanchor_104" href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a></p>
-
-<p>At such times as I am describing, people exist who are possessed by
-an inordinate love of writing, and of publishing what they write, and
-whose pens resemble the sting of wasps, and of other still more ignoble
-insects. Pamphleteers of this kind wrote against Dissenters, some
-whose malignity was greater than their wit, some whose wit kept pace
-with their malignity. Sir Roger L’Estrange, perhaps, may be reckoned
-as the most gifted, the most formidable, the most unscrupulous, and
-the most fierce of this tribe of tormentors. He had narrowly escaped
-being executed as a spy during the Civil Wars,&mdash;he had been shut up in
-Newgate for several years; and now the memory of his sufferings made
-him perfectly savage in his attacks upon those whom he identified with
-his former enemies. He perpetually rang changes upon the miseries of
-the year ’41, which he accused the popular party of having determined
-to revive. In his <i>Foxes and Firebrands</i>, and in his <i>Citt and
-Bumkin</i>, he vilified and lampooned all men of liberal opinions,
-whether those opinions happened to be ecclesiastical or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[63]</span> political.
-Nonconformists were fools and rebels, and their toleration was
-inconsistent with order and peace. By abuse of one kind, he sought
-to force them into the Church, and then, when they had entered, he
-by another kind of abuse endeavoured to drive them out. Outside they
-were traitors, inside they were trimmers, so that it was impossible
-such people as L’Estrange could ever be pleased, let the conduct of
-Nonconformists be what it might. His career as a party writer, which
-began after the Restoration, attained its highest point at the period
-we have reached; and as a reward for his services to the cause of
-despotism, he obtained from his Royal master the honour of knighthood,
-an honour more than counterbalanced by the almost universal execration
-of posterity.<a id="FNanchor_105" href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ROYAL DESPOTISM.</div>
-
-<p>Charles, in playing the despot, went on from bad to worse. Municipal
-corporations, whose freedom is always of primary importance to the
-interests of this country, were then still more intimately connected
-with our national liberties than at present&mdash;for not only was the
-administration of justice in cities and boroughs lodged in their hands,
-not only were juries in Middlesex returned by the City Sheriffs, but
-the right of election for members of Parliament rested, in a number of
-cases, not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[64]</span> with the citizens and burgesses generally, but with those
-who were mayors, aldermen, and common councilmen. In many large places,
-especially London, the Corporation opposed the Court; and therefore
-no representatives subservient to the Crown could be expected to
-come from such a quarter. The King, relying upon legal advisers, who
-preferred cunning to equity, determined to try whether he could not
-deprive his subjects of their municipal rights by the process of <i>quo
-warranto</i>.<a id="FNanchor_106" href="#Footnote_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a> The attempt, made in the Metropolis first, so far
-succeeded, that the Court of King’s Bench gave judgment against the
-Corporation; and,&mdash;although it allowed the Corporation to retain its
-privileges, under certain restrictions,&mdash;from that time the capital of
-the kingdom remained powerless in the hands of the sovereign.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1683.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LORD W. RUSSELL.</div>
-
-<p>Constitutional methods of expressing public opinion being suspended,
-there were men whom desperation drove to think of the patriot’s last
-resort. They talked of war. Shaftesbury, whose erratic ability and
-eloquence sometimes helped the cause of liberty, had disappeared from
-the stage of public affairs, and had, as we have seen, gone over to
-Holland, where he died. But his restless brain, employed in concocting
-schemes of insurrection, which at the time came to nothing, had left
-behind, amongst many Englishmen with whom he had been associated,
-seeds of discontent, ready to grow into acts of violence. The seeds
-did grow, and the harvest proved “a heap in the day of grief, and of
-desperate sorrow.” The Rye House Plot is well known. With any design
-of assassinating the King, Sidney and Russell&mdash;who came within the
-complications of a plan for forcibly resisting<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[65]</span> the despotism of
-Government&mdash;had nothing to do. Nothing could be more idle than to talk,
-as some did, of certain ministers&mdash;Owen, Mead, and Griffiths&mdash;being
-engaged in revolutionary designs. The King, when Mead had been
-summoned, ordered him to be discharged; but Sidney and Russell, it
-cannot be contradicted, were present at conversations turning upon the
-subject of an appeal to arms in the cause of freedom. These illustrious
-men were, as all readers of English history know, tried,<a id="FNanchor_107" href="#Footnote_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a>
-condemned, and executed; and as the story of Russell’s last moments
-belongs to the religious annals of our country, it claims some space on
-these pages.<a id="FNanchor_108" href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1683.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LORD W. RUSSELL.</div>
-
-<p>In prison he devoted most of his time to meditation, receiving his
-death-warrant with calmness, and anticipating his departure with
-hope. Six or seven times, upon the last morning of his life (July
-21), he engaged in prayer; and, on parting from Lord Cavendish, urged
-upon that nobleman the importance of personal piety: then, winding
-up his watch, he remarked&mdash;that he had done with time, and was going
-to eternity. As the mourning coach, which conveyed him to the place
-of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[66]</span> execution, turned the corner by Little Queen Street, he remarked,
-“I have often turned to the other hand with great comfort (alluding
-to the proximity of Southampton Square, where he resided), but now
-I turn to this with greater.” As he saw some persons weeping, and
-others manifesting disrespect, he appreciated the commiseration of the
-former, and evinced no resentment at the conduct of the latter. He sang
-“within himself,” scarcely articulating words, observing, he hoped
-soon to sing better; and, as he looked upon the dense throng around
-him, he expressed the hope of soon beholding nobler multitudes. As
-he entered Lincoln’s Inn Fields, observing it rained, he said to his
-friends in the coach, “this may do you hurt that are bare-headed;” and
-as he caught sight of the familiar place he exclaimed, in allusion to
-his early days, “this has been to me a place of sinning, and God now
-makes it the place of my punishment.” Having expressed wonder at the
-crowds assembled, he placed in the Sheriff’s hand a long paper, and
-declared at the same time, that he had never intended to plot against
-the King’s life or reign. After praying that God would preserve His
-Majesty and the Protestant religion, he expressed an earnest wish that
-all Protestants would love one another, and not by mutual animosities
-open a way for the re-entrance of Popery. In the paper just mentioned,
-he avowed his attachment to the Church of England, and expressed a
-desire that Conformists would be less severe, and that Dissenters would
-be less scrupulous. He said he had always been ready to venture his
-life for his country and his religion; and he avowed his sincerity and
-earnestness in supporting the Bill of Exclusion, as the best means of
-defending the Crown and the Church: he forgave his enemies, although
-he thought killing by forms and subtilties of law to be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[67]</span> “the worst
-sort of murder.” When he had knelt down, Tillotson, who with Burnet
-stood by him on the scaffold, offered intercession on his behalf. The
-sufferer then unfastened his dress, took off his outer garment, bared
-his neck, and laid it on the block, without change of countenance. The
-executioner, to ensure his aim, touched him with the axe, but he did
-not shrink; and after two strokes Russell’s soul went where vindictive
-passions could not follow him.<a id="FNanchor_109" href="#Footnote_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a></p>
-
-<p>It has been justly remarked that when his memory ceases to be an object
-of veneration “it requires no spirit of prophecy to foretell that
-English liberty will be fast approaching to its final consummation;”
-and we may add, that no less a Christian than a patriot, he has left
-behind a name as dear to English Christians as it is to English
-patriots.</p>
-
-<p>We have seen the spirit which prevailed two years before&mdash;we have
-proofs of its continuance in connection with the last days of Lord
-William Russell. That nobleman tenaciously held the principle, that in
-some cases it was lawful to resist Government by force. But Churchmen,
-who, at the Revolution, in practice approved, if they did not in theory
-uphold the doctrine, condemned it at this early period not only as
-impolitic, but as irreligious. Tillotson wrote to Russell just before
-his execution a letter, in which he said that Christianity plainly
-discountenanced the resistance of authority, that in the same law
-which establishes our religion, it is declared to be unlawful, under
-any pretence whatsoever,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[68]</span> to take up arms; and that his Lordship’s
-opinion was contrary to the doctrine of all Protestant Churches. He
-also pronounced the same opinion to be an offence of a heinous nature,
-calling “for a very particular and deep repentance.”<a id="FNanchor_110" href="#Footnote_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1683.</div>
-
-<p>Tillotson, in this letter, committed himself to the doctrine of passive
-obedience; and its publication, without any subsequent denial or
-recantation, places him before the world as upholding one main-prop
-of the Stuart despotism. Burnet also, by his conduct at the time,
-lent his influence to the same side; for, with characteristic haste,
-and with that inaccuracy, into which haste so often betrayed him, he
-rushed from Russell’s cell at Newgate, saying, that he had converted
-his noble friend, who declared his satisfaction in that point to which
-Tillotson’s letter relates. Such conduct indicated sympathy at the
-time with the opinions in the letter now mentioned; and, therefore, it
-involves Burnet in the same responsibility with Tillotson. Russell,
-however, soon undeceived both his advisers, insisting that the notion
-which he had of the laws, and of the English Government, differed from
-that of the two Divines. He died a martyr to the faith, which placed
-the Crown of England on the head of the Prince of Orange, whose claims
-Tillotson and Burnet afterwards vindicated, and whose conduct they ever
-delighted to eulogize.</p>
-
-<p>When Churchmen, of moderation and liberality, acted in this way, what
-could be expected from Churchmen of a different order? The University
-of Oxford having collected from the writings of Puritans, from
-Independents, and from political philosophers, sentences which plainly,
-or by implication, justified under certain circumstances<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[69]</span> resistance
-to Government, decreed by a vote of Convocation, such propositions to
-be false, seditious, and impious,&mdash;and most of them also heretical and
-blasphemous, infamous to the Christian religion, and destructive of all
-good government in Church and State. The books containing such opinions
-were forbidden to be read, and ordered to be burnt.<a id="FNanchor_111" href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CONTROVERSY.</div>
-
-<p>At this juncture it happened that Nonconformists were silent, as
-respected political and ecclesiastical controversy, except that John
-Howe published a beautiful sermon on the question, “What may most
-hopefully be attempted to allay animosities among Protestants, that
-our divisions may not be our ruin?” Owen had been overtaken by his
-last illness, and Baxter had become tired of disputation. Many of his
-brethren were suffering from persecution; and those who were not,
-could have controverted the political doctrines of the Church only by
-incurring the risk of losing their property, their liberty, or their
-life. The Government did everything it could to prevent the expression
-of liberal opinions. The quiet habits of most Dissenters, the
-cultivation of calm endurance, especially by Quakers, and by others in
-a less conspicuous manner, served to promote this remarkable silence&mdash;a
-silence which, compared with the subsequent Revolution, resembles the
-smoothness of the torrent on the edge of the abyss. Nor should it be
-forgotten that men who comprehended the dangers of the hour felt,
-notwithstanding, immense perplexity as to what they ought to say or do;
-since Charles II. pertinaciously professed the greatest moderation,
-and declared a love for Parliaments and for the liberties of his
-country,&mdash;thus by cunning and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[70]</span> artifice, showing as great a proficiency
-in king-craft as ever his father had done.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1683.</div>
-
-<p>A little more than one month after Lord William Russell’s execution,
-Dr. John Owen, whose illness we just now mentioned, entered his rest.
-He closed his days in the little village of Ealing, where he possessed
-an estate. In his seclusion he wrote <i>The Glory of Christ</i>.
-Transported by his theme he poured forth reflections like “a sea of
-glass mingled with fire,” and in conversation with his friends devoutly
-expressed his hopes and desires. “I am going,” he said, “to Him, whom
-my soul has loved; or rather who has loved me with an everlasting love,
-which is the whole ground of all my consolation. I am leaving the ship
-of the Church in a storm, but while the Great Pilot is in it the loss
-of a poor under-rower will be inconsiderable. Live and pray, and hope
-and wait patiently, and do not despond: the promise stands invincible
-that He will never leave us nor forsake us.” The first sheet of his
-last book had passed through the press, under the superintendence of
-Mr. Payne, an eminent Dissenting minister at Saffron Walden; and as
-he informed Owen of the circumstance the latter exclaimed “I am glad
-to hear it; but, O! brother Payne, the long-wished-for day is come at
-last, in which I shall see that glory in another manner than I have
-ever done, or was capable of doing in this world.”<a id="FNanchor_112" href="#Footnote_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a> As the dying
-man inherited a strong constitution, he had much to endure when the
-last struggle came, and the attendants upon his dying bed were deeply
-affected, both by the intensity of his pains and the brightness of his
-peace. In silence, with uplifted eyes and hands, this eminent man left
-the world; and&mdash;which is a remarkable coincidence&mdash;he did so on St.
-Bartholomew’s Day.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[71]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION.</div>
-
-<p>Throughout the last three or four years of the reign of Charles II.
-the persecutions carried on against the Nonconformists increased in
-violence; and the cause is to be found, not only in the religious
-character of the victims, but in the political course which they felt
-it their duty to pursue. Indeed the latter in some cases mainly excited
-the party in power. Nonconformists generally had supported members of
-the Opposition, at the last three elections. They were known to be
-advocates of constitutional liberty against the despotic designs of men
-in high places. “Which alone,” observed John Howe&mdash;and his testimony
-is most trustworthy&mdash;“and not our mere dissent from the Church of
-England in matters of religion, wherein Charles II. was sufficiently
-known to be a Prince of great indifferency, drew upon us, soon after
-the dissolution of the last of those Parliaments, that dreadful storm
-of persecution that destroyed not a small number of lives in gaols, and
-ruined multitudes of families.”<a id="FNanchor_113" href="#Footnote_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Presbyterians, who had often received promises of comprehension,
-were persecuted in common with the rest of the Nonconformists. If ever
-a man lived in the world inoffensively, as well as usefully, it was
-Oliver Heywood; yet he did not escape imprisonment. His case exposes
-the wicked intolerance of the rulers far beyond that of some others,
-where partial ignorance of the circumstances might leave room for the
-idea, that a measure of imprudence provoked opposition. No provocation,
-we are sure, could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[72]</span> have been given to the authorities of the country
-by this eminently amiable and holy person.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1684.</div>
-
-<p>The case of Thomas Rosewell, a Presbyterian minister, in Rotherhithe,
-differs from that of Heywood; but his treatment was not less unjust.
-Charged with uttering treason in his discourses, the jury, after an
-address from Judge Jeffreys, who presided at the trial, brought him in
-guilty. When the prisoner moved for an arrest of judgment, the King,
-being informed of the circumstances, felt so convinced of the infamous
-character of the witnesses, and of the loyalty of Rosewell, that he
-pardoned him at once.<a id="FNanchor_114" href="#Footnote_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION.</div>
-
-<p>From the evidence elicited during Rosewell’s trial we are enabled to
-form a distinct picture of one of the Nonconformist places of worship
-in those days, and of several interesting circumstances connected with
-the services. The place in which he preached was situated in Salisbury
-Street, Rotherhithe, near the preacher’s dwelling, and consisted of
-a tenement or tenements, so altered as to adapt the building for
-accommodating a large number of people. “The rooms were but of a low
-height.” “There was a low parlour, and a little room up six steps;”
-and where the preacher stood “was a large room and a garret.” He stood
-“in the door-case of that room, that the sound might go up and down.”
-The chamber was hung with sad-coloured paper, and a sad-coloured bed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[73]</span>
-was in the room. Upon the left hand of the speaker “was a chest of
-sweet wood, and a little cabinet upon it; and a glass over that; and
-upon the right hand, on the side of the chimney, was a closet.” Three
-or four hundred people commonly attended&mdash;some “people of quality;”
-and a “store of watermen and seamen” from Deptford, Rotherhithe, and
-thereabouts. There were shutters in the windows, and the sun came in,
-and Rosewell was afraid lest the people that went by should hear him.
-Upon the occasion in question, at first there was not light enough let
-into the apartment, and he desired that one part of the shutters should
-be opened; then he requested that half might be shut again, for fear he
-should be overheard. The congregation met at seven in the morning, and
-did not break up until a little after two in the afternoon,&mdash;a pause
-taking place in the middle, when the preacher went in to dinner, and
-“left us there,” says the witness; “and abundance in the congregation
-ate sweetmeats, or biscuits, or such things.” A man, who was a brazier,
-acted as door-keeper, and was angry at a woman’s “coming with pattens,
-for they made an impression on the ground, and gave notice to others
-that there was company there.” She found out the place only “by dogging
-of people as they went along;” and by inquiries made of certain persons
-“set commonly at a place called Cherry Garden Stairs.”<a id="FNanchor_115" href="#Footnote_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1684.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION.</div>
-
-<p>Thomas Delaune, a Baptist schoolmaster, and a person of considerable
-learning, appears as an eminent sufferer in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[74]</span> those dark days. He
-published <i>A Plea for the Nonconformists</i>, in answer to a sermon
-entitled <i>A Scrupulous Conscience</i>, published by Dr. Benjamin
-Calamy, Rector of St. Lawrence Jewry. Delaune simply endeavoured to
-prove that certain observances in the Episcopal establishment more
-resembled what is found in the Popish Communion than what is found
-in primitive antiquity. The publication being treated as a criminal
-offence, the author was committed to Newgate in November, 1683, and
-indicted for “a false, seditious, and scandalous libel concerning
-the Lord the King and the Book of Common Prayer.” The Jury, imbued
-with the spirit of the age, found him guilty, after which the Judge
-sentenced him to pay a fine of one hundred marks, to be kept a
-close prisoner until he paid the money, and to find security for
-good behaviour during twelve months afterwards. Delaune remained in
-confinement fifteen months, at the end of which time nature broke down
-under hardship and suffering. The poor man died, and it is shocking
-to add, his wife and two small children also expired during the same
-period within the walls of Newgate.<a id="FNanchor_116" href="#Footnote_116" class="fnanchor">[116]</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[75]</span> In the same prison Francis
-Bampfield, a Baptist minister, and an Oxford man, who had suffered
-repeatedly for his Nonconformity, perished in the month of February,
-1684.<a id="FNanchor_117" href="#Footnote_117" class="fnanchor">[117]</a> Of all sects, perhaps, the Quakers suffered most. Their
-meetings were disturbed by drums and fiddles; women were insulted,
-their hoods and scarfs torn, and little boys were beaten or whipped
-with a cat-o’-nine-tails. Seven hundred Friends were reported as being
-imprisoned in the year 1683.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[76]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VI.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">At the time when English gaols were filled with Nonconformists, and
-English citizens were driven into exile, the English Sovereign offered
-an asylum to Protestant refugees from France; thus, at the same moment,
-persecuting his own conscientious subjects, and befriending those
-like-minded, who suffered from the tyranny of Louis XIV.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FRENCH PROTESTANTS.</div>
-
-<p>After the Edict of Nantes, in 1591, had formally guaranteed to the
-Huguenots liberty of worship, vexatious interferences with their
-religious rights goaded them to resistance, and revived those political
-and military combinations which had proved so mischievous to the French
-Reformation. But, before the middle of the seventeenth century, the
-French Protestants became a purely religious community. The Count
-d’Harcourt bore witness to their loyalty in the well-known words, “the
-Crown tottered on the King’s head, but you have fixed it there:” and
-Cardinal Mazarin testified to their good conduct, when he said, “I
-have no cause to complain of the little flock,&mdash;if they browse on bad
-herbage, at least they do not stray away.”<a id="FNanchor_118" href="#Footnote_118" class="fnanchor">[118]</a> The latter illustrious
-statesman, although a religious enemy, was a political protector of his
-Protestant<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[77]</span> countrymen; and, soon after his death in 1661, they became
-fully aware of the loss which they had sustained. His Royal master
-determined to govern alone, at the very moment when he became more than
-ever the slave of the Church; and, gathering up the reins entirely
-within his own hands, he sought to atone for his immoralities by the
-extirpation of heretical opinions. The conversion of the French King
-was a change from courtly gallantries to religious persecution,&mdash;from
-sensuality to intolerance,&mdash;from vice to crime. It is impossible to
-say, in how many districts he interdicted the exercise of the Reformed
-religion; how many places of worship he razed; how many schools he
-suppressed; how many Protestant endowments he confiscated for Roman
-Catholic purposes. Ordinances, declarations, decrees, and other acts of
-Council swiftly followed one after another, striking the heretics with
-blow upon blow.<a id="FNanchor_119" href="#Footnote_119" class="fnanchor">[119]</a></p>
-
-<p>In 1681, Louis began his atrocious system of dragonnading, which
-consisted in billeting ten or twelve military brigands in a Protestant
-family, with authority to do anything short of murder, for the
-conversion of its members to Popery. Curés shouted to these new
-apostles, “Courage, gentlemen, it is the will of the King.”<a id="FNanchor_120" href="#Footnote_120" class="fnanchor">[120]</a>
-Horsemen fastened crosses to the ends of their musquetoons, and
-compelled people to kiss them. They whipped their victims, they smote
-them on the face, they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[78]</span> dragged them about by the hair of their heads,
-and drove them to church as they might drive so many cattle.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1681.</div>
-
-<p>In the middle of the seventeenth century, French exiles had established
-themselves in different parts of England. A French Church had been
-founded at Winchelsea in 1560, at Canterbury in 1561, at Norwich in
-1564, with others at Southampton, Glastonbury, and Rye. A Church at
-Sandtoft, Lincolnshire, dated from 1634; in the Savoy, from 1641; in
-Dover, from 1646; in Marylebone, 1656; not to mention others.<a id="FNanchor_121" href="#Footnote_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a> The
-Dragonnades, in 1681, sent at once a new and unprecedented wave of
-emigration across the Channel.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FRENCH PROTESTANTS.</div>
-
-<p>Charles II., who did not blush to receive a pension from Louis XIV.
-for betraying the interests of his country, now came forward in
-favour of the fugitives&mdash;from good nature, or through advice, or
-in order to please the English Protestants, perhaps from all three
-motives combined. By an edict, signed at Hampton Court, on the 28th
-of July, 1681, he declared that he felt obliged by his honour and
-his conscience, to succour the people who were fleeing into exile.
-He therefore accorded them letters of naturalization, with all the
-privileges necessary for the exercise of such trades as would not
-injure the interests of his kingdom. He engaged that he would ask
-the next Parliament to naturalize all who should seek refuge in
-this island, and in the meantime he exempted them from all imposts
-to which his other subjects were not liable. He authorized them
-to send their children to the public schools and Universities. He
-ordered all his officers, both civil and military, to receive them
-wherever they landed, to give them passports gratuitously,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[79]</span> and to
-furnish such relief as might be necessary for them to travel to their
-destination. He also instructed the Commissioners of the Treasury, and
-of the Customs, to let the strangers pass free, with their furniture,
-their merchandize, and their instruments of trade; and, further, he
-encouraged charitable persons to assist those who were in want. He
-also commissioned the Archbishop of Canterbury and the Bishop of
-London to receive their requests and present them to him. To this
-edict there succeeded, before long, an order in Council which granted
-naturalization to eleven hundred and fifty-four fugitives;<a id="FNanchor_122" href="#Footnote_122" class="fnanchor">[122]</a> and
-boat after boat arrived freighted with these sufferers. Such sympathy
-with the persecuted, however just, appears very inconsistent. About
-a hundred years earlier, the Jesuits had turned the tables on the
-intolerant Lutherans and Calvinists of the empire, by saying that
-Catholic sovereigns had as much right to deny religious liberty as
-Protestant ones;<a id="FNanchor_123" href="#Footnote_123" class="fnanchor">[123]</a> and Louis could have taken sufficient ground for
-retorting upon Charles after the same fashion. Reports were circulated
-to the discredit of the refugees&mdash;and were met, on the other hand, by
-friendly certificates from Incumbents and Churchwardens, testifying
-of them as “sober, harmless, innocent people, such as served God
-constantly and uniformly, according to the usage and custom of the
-Church of England.”<a id="FNanchor_124" href="#Footnote_124" class="fnanchor">[124]</a> In 1682, Charles issued briefs to the clergy
-to make collections for the new comers; and, in this beneficent work,
-Tillotson, Dean of Canterbury, took part. Beveridge, then a Prebendary
-in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[80]</span> Canterbury Cathedral, from some mistaken scruple&mdash;or from coolness
-towards a foreign Church&mdash;objected to reading the brief, as contrary to
-the rubric. This circumstance brought out Tillotson’s well-known reply,
-“Doctor, Doctor, charity is above rubrics.”<a id="FNanchor_125" href="#Footnote_125" class="fnanchor">[125]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1682.</div>
-
-<p>The persecutions of these French Protestants, their arrival on our
-shores, and the kindness with which they were received, are not
-mentioned here simply because they are incidents of a religious
-character locally connected with our own country, but for another
-and more forcible reason. These persecutions had become a staple of
-conversation in many an English home; and many an English heart had
-palpitated with deep sympathy, as stories of violence and suffering
-had fallen on the ear. Each fresh gust of intolerance, as it broke on
-France, had stirred the feelings of English Puritans, scarcely less
-than the feelings of French Protestants living on this side Dover
-Straits. And the revival of oppression, after the death of Mazarin,
-could not fail to inspire indignation in the breasts of multitudes
-within our shores when the anti-Popery agitation burst out afresh.
-The sight of the fugitives, their tales of horrid barbarity, of
-patient endurance, and of romantic adventure, would reinvigorate
-the Protestantism of our fathers, and largely contribute to that
-fixed resolve, which defied the contrivances of Charles and James,
-and ended in what has been ever since esteemed the <i>Glorious</i>
-Revolution.<a id="FNanchor_126" href="#Footnote_126" class="fnanchor">[126]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE CABINET.</div>
-
-<p>It was natural for foreign Protestants to look to England for help in
-more ways than one. The Archbishop of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[81]</span> Canterbury received a letter
-from Dr. Covel, chaplain at the Hague to the Princess of Orange, urging
-the formation of a public League in defence of European Protestantism.
-Sancroft did not possess the courage and heroism to promote such a
-measure, had it been wise; but he did possess the sagacity and prudence
-to see that the object desired was not wise; and, in addition to those
-qualities, he displayed, in the answer to his correspondent, a large
-measure of Protestant sympathy and devout feeling.<a id="FNanchor_127" href="#Footnote_127" class="fnanchor">[127]</a></p>
-
-<p>The prospects of Protestantism became darker and darker. The Act for
-excluding Papists from office was for a while cunningly evaded by
-Charles, who placed the whole business of the Admiralty in the hands of
-his brother, the Duke of York, he himself signing all official papers
-in that department:&mdash;at last, this shadowy pretence he cast aside, and
-boldly invited James to a seat at the Council-table&mdash;a step which even
-one of his Tory supporters acknowledged “became the subject of much
-talk, and was deemed to be a breach of one of the most solemn and most
-explicit Acts of Parliament.”<a id="FNanchor_128" href="#Footnote_128" class="fnanchor">[128]</a> Two other persons, at the same time
-Members of the Council, ought to be noticed. One was Lord Chief Justice
-Jeffreys, too infamous a character to require anything more than the
-mention of his name; and Lord Keeper Guilford, who, whilst hating
-Jeffreys with a bitter hatred, in some respects resembled him. The part
-which these men took at this time in relation to Papists and Protestant
-Nonconformists, and the manner of their conducting ecclesiastical
-business, are illustrated by the following incident.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[82]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1684.</div>
-
-<p>It was the fashion to hold Cabinet meetings on Sunday nights. One
-Sunday morning, the Duke of York asked Guilford to assist him in a
-business which would that evening be brought before His Majesty.
-Guilford thought that certain Courtiers just then looked at him with
-remarkable gravity, as if something important was about to come on the
-carpet; but he did not discover its nature until after the meeting
-had commenced. Jeffreys had returned fresh from a Northern tour, and
-had brought with him reports of large numbers of Papists convicted of
-being recusants, and, after placing on the table rolls containing their
-names, he rose from his chair, and proceeded to say:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CABINET MEETING.</div>
-
-<p>“I have a business to lay before your Majesty, which I took notice
-of in the North, and which will deserve your Majesty’s royal
-commiseration. It is the case of numberless numbers of your good
-subjects, that are imprisoned for recusancy. I have the list of them
-here, to justify what I say. They are so many that the great gaols
-cannot hold them without their lying one upon another.” Then, to use
-the language of Roger North, “he let fly his tropes and figures about
-rotting and stinking in prisons;” and concluded his speech with a
-motion that His Majesty be requested to discharge “these poor men,”
-and restore them to “liberty and air.”<a id="FNanchor_129" href="#Footnote_129" class="fnanchor">[129]</a> Such a motion from such
-a man will be at once understood. It could have been made only to
-please his Royal master, and that master’s brother. If selfishness
-influenced Jeffreys in making the proposal, selfishness influenced
-Guilford in opposing it; for, on the one hand, any such pardon as that
-now proposed, must pass the Great Seal of which he was keeper; and by
-affixing this to such an unpopular<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[83]</span> instrument, he might bring himself
-into trouble with his friends. On the other hand, by refusal he might
-incur a forfeiture of office, and have to give place to his most odious
-enemy. After the Lord Keeper had sat silent awhile, expecting some
-of the Lords in the Protestant interest, as Halifax and Rochester,
-to speak,&mdash;he rose and addressed the King, entreating that the Chief
-Justice might declare, whether all the persons named in these rolls
-were actually in prison or not. His Lordship replied that he did not
-imagine any one could suspect that to be his meaning, but that they
-were under sentence of commitment, and were liable to be taken up by
-any peevish Sheriff or Magistrate. North then proceeded to attack all
-Sectaries. They were a turbulent people, he said, and always stirring
-up sedition; and, if they did so when they were obnoxious to the
-laws, what would they not do, if His Majesty gave them a discharge
-at once? Was it not better that his enemies should live under some
-disadvantages, and be obnoxious to His Majesty’s pleasure, who might,
-if they were turbulent and troublesome, inflict the penalties of the
-law upon them? As to the Roman Catholics, if there were any persons to
-whom the King would extend the favour of a pardon, let it be particular
-and express. After all, the disadvantage they were under, was but the
-payment of some fees to officers, which was compensated for by their
-enjoying exemption from serving in chargeable offices.<a id="FNanchor_130" href="#Footnote_130" class="fnanchor">[130]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1684.</div>
-
-<p>Guilford thought that in this way he outwitted his adversary, and
-accounted his manœuvre the most memorable act which he had ever
-performed. The report shows, that from personal inclination, or from a
-wish to gratify the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[84]</span> King, and the Duke of York, he evinced especial
-hatred to Protestant Nonconformists in general, when he recommended
-mercy to some Popish recusants in particular; and, whatever might be
-his motive on the occasion, the speech which he delivered, and his
-entire relation of this Cabinet secret, discloses to us very plainly
-the characters of the men who then guided public affairs, and the
-contemptible feelings which influenced their conduct.</p>
-
-<p>One Nonconformist sufferer at that time demands a passing notice.
-William Jenkyn, of St. John’s, Cambridge, ejected from the Vicarage
-of Christ’s Church, London, where he had been exceedingly popular,
-was, on September the 2nd, 1684, seized by a soldier,&mdash;he being at the
-very time engaged in prayer with his friends. Refusing to take the
-Oxford Oath, he was committed to prison; and to a petition for release
-founded on a medical certificate that his health would be endangered
-by confinement, no answer could be obtained but this,&mdash;“Jenkyn shall
-be a prisoner as long as he lives.” As his end drew near, he said to
-those around him, “Why weep ye for me? Christ lives; He is my friend,
-a friend born for adversity, a friend that never dies.” “May it please
-your Majesty,” remarked a nobleman, when he heard of his death, “Jenkyn
-has got his liberty.” “Aye,” rejoined Charles, “who gave it him?”
-“A greater than your Majesty, the King of Kings.” The Confessor was
-followed to Bunhill Fields, by a procession of a hundred and fifty
-coaches. Even gay Courtiers looked sad, and the reckless King seemed
-concerned. “L’Estrange,” in his <i>Observator</i>, “alone set up a howl
-of savage exultation, laughed at the weak compassion of the Trimmers,
-proclaimed that the blasphemous old impostor had met with a most
-righteous punishment, and vowed to wage war not only to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[85]</span> death, but
-after death, with all the mock saints and martyrs.”<a id="FNanchor_131" href="#Footnote_131" class="fnanchor">[131]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHARLES’ COURT.</div>
-
-<p>Nor should it be forgotten, that whilst Nonconformists were suffering
-all kinds of hardships, the King and his Court were indulging in
-unbridled licentiousness, so that the contrast drawn by the poet of the
-mysteries of Providence then appeared in our own country as vividly as
-it ever did in any part of the world:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i4">“The good man’s share</div>
- <div>In life was gall and bitterness of soul;</div>
- <div class="i4">......While luxury</div>
- <div>In palaces lay straining her low thought,</div>
- <div>To form unreal wants, and heaven-born truths</div>
- <div>And moderation fair, wore the red marks</div>
- <div>Of superstition’s scourge.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>Imagination, as we read the history of the later Stuarts, ever and
-anon places before us side by side the confessor’s dungeon and the
-voluptuary’s chamber. The scenes which the Count de Grammont depicts,
-the characters which he draws, and the intrigues which he unravels;
-the entire want of moral principle, the absence of common shame, the
-bare-aced profligacy, the devices to excite and gratify the lowest
-passions, which he, who had lived at Court and shared in its pleasures,
-so graphically and yet so complacently portrays, make us blush for our
-race. The reaction from the simple manners and severe virtues of the
-Commonwealth was tremendous. Courage, or rather an irritable sense of
-honour, leading the gallant to wreak revenge upon any who offended him,
-came to be the chief virtue of Cavalier Courtiers. Vices and crimes
-were treated as petty foibles: beauty, liveliness, and wit<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[86]</span> alone were
-counted meritorious; and “the manners of Chesterfield united with the
-morals of Rochefoucault.” The Count’s book is indeed a reflection of
-the age&mdash;elegant in style, but licentious in character&mdash;a veil of
-embroidered gauze cast over a putrescent corpse.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p>In the midst of this depravity death suddenly appeared. Art has
-portrayed two scenes at Whitehall which point a moral never to be
-forgotten. The one represents the Sunday night when Evelyn saw
-inexpressible profaneness, gambling, and dissoluteness&mdash;the King
-sitting and toying with his concubines, the French boy singing love
-songs, and the Courtiers playing basset with a bank of 2,000 guineas
-piled up on the table. The other exhibits what was witnessed a few
-days afterwards in the anterooms of the chamber where the Royal
-Sybarite awaited the summons of the Almighty; noblemen and ladies,
-with heartless etiquette, performing their Court attendance; prelates
-at a distance, hoping for an opportunity to administer to him the last
-offices of that Church, which had called the dying man its Defender,
-whilst, as he is in the act of renouncing communion with it, a delicate
-hand is seen extended from behind a timorously opened door, to receive
-a glass of water to assist in swallowing the wafer, laid upon the
-Royal tongue by a disguised priest. These pictures<a id="FNanchor_132" href="#Footnote_132" class="fnanchor">[132]</a> illustrate the
-mutability of earthly grandeur, and the righteous retribution of God
-upon a life spent in sin. Charles II. died on the 6th of February,
-1685,&mdash;within three weeks of William Jenkyn.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEATH OF CHARLES.</div>
-
-<p>Very confused and contradictory accounts are given of the circumstances
-connected with this event; but there is enough of what is perfectly
-credible, to show that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[87]</span> Charles died in a state of reconciliation with
-the Church of Rome. The Duke of York, his brother, who watched him to
-the last moment, states that two Protestant Bishops read by his bedside
-the service of the Visitation of the Sick, and that one of them, Ken,
-Bishop of Bath and Wells, after receiving from the sick man a faint
-acknowledgment of sorrow for his sins, pronounced absolution, and
-offered him the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, which was declined. But
-the Duke makes no mention of the pathetic strain in which that prelate
-addressed the King, or of the faithful exhortation addressed by the
-Archbishop of Canterbury.</p>
-
-<p>The Duke further relates that he arranged for the clandestine
-introduction to the chamber, of a Benedictine Monk, who had aided
-Charles’ escape after the battle of Worcester; that when the room had
-been cleared of all, except the Earl of Bath and Lord Feversham, the
-priest, brought up into a private closet by a back pair of stairs, was
-taken to the bedside; and that, after confession, he administered the
-last rites of the Popish Communion&mdash;that the expiring man uttered pious
-ejaculations, lifting up his hands and crying, “Mercy, sweet Jesus,
-mercy,” till the priest gave him extreme unction&mdash;that as the host was
-presented, he raised himself up, and said “Let me meet my Heavenly Lord
-in a better posture than lying on my bed.” But the Duke says not a word
-of Charles’ blessing his natural children, and the rest of the persons
-present; nor of any one begging the Royal benediction, calling the King
-the father of them all.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p>Yet these circumstances are related by others, as well as the utterance
-of the words, “Do not let poor Nelly starve;” and Charles’ reply to
-the Queen’s message asking forgiveness. “She ask my pardon, poor<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[88]</span>
-woman?&mdash;I ask hers with all my heart.” James, in his <i>Memoirs</i>, is
-evidently intent upon one thing, to show that Charles died a sincere
-Papist, which we can well believe from what we know of his previous
-history.<a id="FNanchor_133" href="#Footnote_133" class="fnanchor">[133]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[89]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">James II. met his Privy Councillors within an hour after his brother’s
-death, on the 6th of February; and, upon taking his seat at the head
-of the Council-table, he delivered an extempore speech, which was
-afterwards written down from memory by Finch, the Solicitor-General.
-According to his report, the King declared “I shall make it my
-endeavour to preserve this Government both in Church and State, as
-it is now by law established. I know the principles of the Church of
-England are for monarchy, and the members of it have showed themselves
-good and loyal subjects; therefore I shall always take care to defend
-and support it.”<a id="FNanchor_134" href="#Footnote_134" class="fnanchor">[134]</a> In explanation of this promise, coupled with so
-dubious a compliment to the English Church, James afterwards, in his
-own <i>Memoirs</i>, states that Finch worded “the speech as strong
-as he could,” and, in the hurry, it was allowed to pass “without
-reflection;” that he might have more clearly expressed himself had
-he used the words “he <i>never would endeavour to alter</i> the
-established religion,” instead of the words “he would endeavour <i>to
-preserve</i> it;” and that he said he would support and defend the
-<i>professors</i> of it, not the <i>religion</i> itself. He further
-remarks, that no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[90]</span> one could expect he would “make a conscience of
-supporting what, in his conscience, he thought erroneous;”&mdash;that all he
-meant, or could be expected, or was understood to say, was, simply that
-he would not molest the members of the Protestant Church.<a id="FNanchor_135" href="#Footnote_135" class="fnanchor">[135]</a> Read in
-the light of such sophistry, the speech,&mdash;certainly at the time taken
-to mean one thing, though the concealed intention of the King was to
-do quite another,&mdash;shows that James must have possessed even a larger
-share than his elder brother, of the inherent duplicity of the Stuart
-race. Yet, unlike his brother, he evinced unmistakeable frankness in
-the profession of religion; for on leaving the Council he immediately
-proceeded with the Queen to the little Roman Catholic Chapel in St.
-James’, leaving the door open during Divine service, that any one might
-see him at worship there.<a id="FNanchor_136" href="#Footnote_136" class="fnanchor">[136]</a> On Holy Thursday, accompanied by his
-guards and gentlemen pensioners, he received the sacrament; and on
-Easter Sunday he publicly appeared at mass&mdash;the Knights of the Garter,
-in their collars, attending him, both as he went, and as he returned.
-The Duke of Norfolk, who carried the Sword of State, however, stopped
-at the chapel door, upon which His Majesty immediately observed to him,
-“My Lord, your father would have gone further.” His Grace promptly
-replied, “Your Majesty’s father would not have gone so far.” James not
-only commanded an account to be published of Charles’ conforming in his
-last moments to the Church of Rome, but he himself published two papers
-professedly written by his brother, in favour of its doctrines. These
-he showed to Sancroft, Archbishop of Canterbury, who said, “That he did
-not think the late King had been so learned in controversy, but that
-the arguments in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[91]</span> papers were easy to refute.” James desired him
-to confute them if he could. Sancroft satisfied himself with politely
-answering, “It ill became him to enter into a controversy with his
-Sovereign.”<a id="FNanchor_137" href="#Footnote_137" class="fnanchor">[137]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES II.</div>
-
-<p>Plenty of gossip was circulated by lip and pen respecting the conduct
-of His Majesty and his sympathizing friends at this important
-juncture;&mdash;of which gossip a specimen is furnished in a letter, dated
-February 24, 1685, which, after being taken out of the post-bag,
-instead of reaching the person addressed, found its destination among
-the Secretary of State’s papers&mdash;to be transferred in the nineteenth
-century to the Record Office:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“It can be no news to acquaint you of His Majesty declaring himself
-a Papist and going daily to public mass. Neither can I choose but
-commend the prudence and honesty of several great and worthy lords,
-who have already assured His Majesty, that they have been a long time
-past Papists in their hearts, and prayed His Majesty’s leave to declare
-themselves Papists, that they might be in a capacity to serve His
-Majesty at the holy altar. But His Majesty, it seems, very prudently
-commanded them to contain themselves till after the sitting of
-Parliament, and commended their holy zeal, and gave them many thanks,
-with great assurances of his favour, &amp;c. We are also very well assured,
-from very good hands, that they are already under great apprehensions,
-in that God Almighty appears so early against them; since one of the
-first magnitude, Beauford [the Duke of Beaufort], has very lately, with
-great consternation of soul, declared themselves all undone by His
-Majesty’s too forward, and ungovernable zeal, in so soon and so openly
-declaring<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[92]</span> himself: for, said he, had His Majesty been pleased but
-to have dissembled himself till a Parliament had been called, we had
-been sure to have got through, whereas now I tremble to think of the
-dreadful blow an heretical Parliament may give us.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p>In accordance with his unequivocal profession of Romanism, James
-complained to the Protestant Bishops of the declamations against Popery
-in the pulpits of the Church; and at his coronation, on the 23rd of
-April,<a id="FNanchor_138" href="#Footnote_138" class="fnanchor">[138]</a> he declined to receive the sacrament, or to take any part
-in the responses, although his Catholic Queen did so devoutly. The
-King’s Romanism being demonstrated from the beginning of his reign,
-there appears exquisite <i>naïveté</i> or satirical shrewdness, in
-the address presented by the Quakers to him on his accession: “We are
-told that thou are not of the persuasion of the Church of England, no
-more than we; therefore we hope thou wilt grant us the same liberty
-which thou allowest thyself; which doing, we wish thee all manner of
-happiness.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES II.</div>
-
-<p>The Ministry of the late King were not dismissed by his successor,
-but alterations were made in the allotment of offices. Rochester was
-appointed Lord Treasurer and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[93]</span> Prime Minister. Halifax had to give up
-the Privy Seal, and become President of the Council. Ormond was removed
-from Dublin, where he had been Viceroy, to Whitehall, where he was to
-act as Lord Steward; and Godolphin exchanged his post at the Treasury
-for Chamberlainship to the Queen. Sunderland continued Secretary of
-State; and Guilford retained the Great Seal; but Jeffreys&mdash;Lord Chief
-Justice of the King’s Bench, and now made a Peer of Parliament,&mdash;with
-a seat in the Cabinet, superseded, in political power, the Lord
-Keeper. The men who chiefly influenced the councils of the Sovereign,
-were Rochester, Sunderland, and Godolphin, and, in some respects, the
-infamous Jeffreys.</p>
-
-<p>The Tories welcomed the accession of James with immense enthusiasm;
-they presented addresses of extravagant loyalty, and in the elections
-for the new Parliament, exerted themselves with a zeal which provoked
-the remark of one of their own party. Elections “were thought to be
-very indirectly carried on in most places. God grant a better issue
-of it than some expect.” “The truth is, there were many of the new
-members whose elections and returns were universally censured.”<a id="FNanchor_139" href="#Footnote_139" class="fnanchor">[139]</a>
-When Parliament assembled, the King repeated, exactly, his reported
-declaration respecting the Established Church; thus confirming the
-false impression which his words were sure to produce, and this, too,
-notwithstanding the acknowledgment which he records respecting it
-in his <i>Memoirs</i>. “The Lords and Commons,” says the Bishop of
-Norwich, “hummed joyfully, and loudly, at those parts of the speech
-which concerned our religion, and the established Government.”<a id="FNanchor_140" href="#Footnote_140" class="fnanchor">[140]</a>
-The House of Commons, resolving itself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[94]</span> into a Grand Committee of
-Religion, determined to “stand by His Majesty” in the defence of the
-Reformed faith, and to beg him to “publish a proclamation, putting the
-laws in execution against all Dissenters whatsoever from the Church of
-England.”<a id="FNanchor_141" href="#Footnote_141" class="fnanchor">[141]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p>Perhaps the object of these resolutions was to embarrass the
-Government, to disturb the alliance between the King and the High
-Church party, and to decoy the Tories into an act, by which they
-would commit themselves, and run the risk of breaking with the
-Court. Certainly the resolutions tended to lay open to persecution,
-directly and distinctly, not only Protestant Nonconformists,&mdash;whom
-the Government and the Court, as well as the High Church party, were
-anxious to repress,&mdash;but also Roman Catholics, whom the High Church
-party wished to crush, the Court stood prepared to favour, and the
-Government were ready to tolerate, for the sake of pleasing their
-Royal Master. It has been suggested, that a reluctance in the majority
-of the House to trouble Protestant Dissenters just then, produced a
-reaction respecting the resolutions, but there is no foundation for
-this idea; whereas, it is perfectly plain, that the King and the
-Queen were exceedingly annoyed by the proceedings in the Commons’
-House, and ordered the Court members to oppose them.<a id="FNanchor_142" href="#Footnote_142" class="fnanchor">[142]</a> To crush
-Protestant Nonconformists was a thing which, taken by itself, James
-would have been very glad to do, but to persecute the members of
-his own Church, was a thing from which he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[95]</span> very naturally recoiled.
-Obsequiousness to the Crown, in this case, triumphed over zeal against
-Popery; and the House underwent the mortification of eating its own
-words, and revoking the resolutions which had been passed in Committee,
-by declaring it would rest satisfied with His Majesty’s repeated
-declaration, to support the religion of the Church of England, as by
-law established.<a id="FNanchor_143" href="#Footnote_143" class="fnanchor">[143]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BAXTER’S TRIAL.</div>
-
-<p>The disposition of the Government towards Protestant Dissenters appears
-in the trial of Richard Baxter. Three weeks after the King’s accession,
-this distinguished minister was committed to the King’s Bench, for a
-Paraphrase on the New Testament, which he published. On the 18th of
-May, being then unwell, he moved for an allowance of further time, in
-order to prepare his defence; but in reply to this very reasonable
-application, Jeffreys, the Chief Justice, who by his behaviour on the
-Bench whilst trying the venerable prisoner, has secured for himself
-everlasting infamy, savagely growled out, “I will not give him a
-minute’s time more, to save his life.” “Yonder stands Oates in the
-pillory, and he says he suffers for the truth, and so says Baxter; but
-if Baxter did but stand on the other side of the pillory with him, I
-would say, two of the greatest rogues and rascals in the kingdom stood
-there.”<a id="FNanchor_144" href="#Footnote_144" class="fnanchor">[144]</a> Twelve days afterwards, Baxter appeared at the bar in
-Guildhall, with his friends Sir Henry Ashurst, Dr. Bates, Dr. Sharp,
-and Dr. Moore<a id="FNanchor_145" href="#Footnote_145" class="fnanchor">[145]</a> attending by his side; when Jeffreys indulged in
-that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[96]</span> coarse, vulgar, and well-known rhetoric, a single specimen of
-which is sufficient for our purpose. “What ailed the old blockhead, the
-unthankful villain, that he would not conform? Was he wiser or better
-than other men? He hath been ever since, the spring of the faction. I
-am sure he hath poisoned the world with his linsey-woolsey doctrine.
-Hang him! this one old fellow hath cast more reproach upon the
-constitution and discipline of our Church, than will be wiped off this
-hundred years; but I’ll handle him for it; for, by God, he deserves to
-be whipped through the City.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p>An eye-witness states, that during this abuse, he himself could
-but smile sometimes,&mdash;notwithstanding his own tears, and those of
-others,&mdash;when he saw the Judge imitate “our modern pulpit drollery,”
-and drive “on furiously, like Hannibal over the Alps, with fire and
-vinegar, pouring all the contempt and scorn upon Baxter, as if he had
-been a link-boy or knave.”<a id="FNanchor_146" href="#Footnote_146" class="fnanchor">[146]</a> After the Judge had secured a verdict
-from the Jury, the prisoner wrote a letter to the Bishop of London, to
-intercede in his behalf. Whether the latter complied with this request,
-we do not know; but there is reason to believe that Jeffreys wished to
-see the Puritan whipped at the cart-tail, and that the prevention of
-the punishment is to be attributed to the interference of his brother
-Justices, who might well think it mad and brutal to treat after such
-a fashion a man of the highest reputation, and one who had declined
-a mitre. But the aged Divine did not escape being fined five hundred
-marks, and condemned to imprisonment until he paid the sum. As he
-declined to do it, he remained in the King’s Bench until the 24th of
-November,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[97]</span> 1686, when he obtained release by warrant, upon giving
-sureties for his good behaviour.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REBELLION.</div>
-
-<p>Scarcely had James ascended the throne, when one rebellion broke out in
-Scotland, followed by the trial and execution of the Earl of Argyle;
-and another broke out in the West of England, followed by the trial and
-execution of the Duke of Monmouth. The latter aspiring to the Crown,
-issued an absurd manifesto, took the title of King, and entered in
-Royal state the Town of Bridgewater. This conduct could not be endured,
-and, consequently, an Army marched against the Pretender, and defeated
-him at Sedgemoor.</p>
-
-<p>Mew, the warlike prelate of Winchester, who had fought both for Charles
-I. and Charles II., employed his coach-horses in dragging the King’s
-artillery to the field. Fell, Bishop of Oxford, assisted in organizing
-a body of volunteers for the King’s service; whilst, at the same time,
-Ken, whose loyalty is beyond suspicion, affected by the sight of
-mutilated bodies left to rot by the roadside, remonstrated against the
-cruelty of the officers; and, with an exemplary benevolence, visited
-and relieved, at Wells and other places, those who had been taken
-prisoners. The Church of England had made loud protestations of loyalty
-to King James; but the Protestant Nonconformists, whose constitutional
-loyalty in general cannot be impeached, were compromised, in the
-estimation of some, by the part which a few of them took in Monmouth’s
-rebellion. This unfavourable opinion received encouragement from
-sympathy with Dissenters, expressed for selfish purposes, by the
-unfortunate Duke himself, whose career could bring nothing but
-discredit on his friends; probably, these circumstances sharpened the
-severity of the persecution which marked the earlier part of James’
-reign.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[98]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p>Two Nonconformists suffered death from an innocent connection with some
-incidents in the rebellion.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. (sometimes called Lady) Alicia Lisle stood at the bar in the City
-of Winchester, before Judge Jeffreys, charged with having concealed,
-after the battle of Sedgemoor, a Presbyterian minister named Hicks,
-and another man named Nelson. With Nelson there is reason to believe
-she had no acquaintance; but, respecting Hicks, she confessed that as
-there were warrants out, to apprehend all Nonconformist clergymen, she
-certainly wished to save him from apprehension. It was an office of
-Christian kindness, which this good woman fulfilled for one in sorrow,
-who professed with her a common faith; yet this perfectly innocent,
-and, as she imagined, laudable deed, being construed into an act of
-treason, the Jury, though they expressed their dissatisfaction with the
-evidence, were bullied by the Judge into a verdict of guilty. Jeffreys
-declared the evidence to be as plain as possible, and that upon it he
-would have convicted his own mother. The aged matron, weighed down
-under a load of more than seventy years, suffered from fits, and could
-hear but imperfectly; yet, throughout her trial, she evinced a singular
-calmness and serenity, and, save when overcome by drowsiness, exhibited
-altogether a dignified deportment truly astonishing. Her behaviour on
-the scaffold comported with her bearing in court; and, in the course
-of a speech which she delivered to the Sheriff, she freely forgave
-her enemies, and expressed a desire to possess her soul in patience.
-Jeffreys had condemned her to be burnt, but the King commuted her
-sentence, and this unfortunate lady perished at the block.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ELIZABETH GAUNT.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<p>The other sufferer was Elizabeth Gaunt, a person in humble
-circumstances, and a member of a Baptist Church. The charge against her
-resembled that brought against<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[99]</span> Mrs. Lisle&mdash;namely, the harbouring of
-a person supposed to have been concerned in the Rye House conspiracy.
-This man had professed himself to be a Nonconformist,&mdash;certainly he
-proved himself a worthless villain, by becoming King’s evidence against
-the woman who, to save his life, had jeopardized her own. It did
-not appear that she knew that he had any share in the plot, or that
-his name had been mentioned in any proclamation; want of evidence,
-however, little affected the issue of a trial in those days, and this
-poor person, without being permitted to call witnesses in her defence,
-received a verdict of guilty, and the sentence of death. The miserable
-favour which had been shown to the sufferer of higher rank reached not
-so humble an individual; she had to die at the stake. Gathering round
-her the materials of torture, that she might the sooner expire, she
-remarked, that charity as well as faith was a part of her religion;
-that her crime, at worst, was the feeding an enemy; so she hoped she
-should find her reward in Him, for whose sake she did this service, how
-unworthy soever the person might be who had made such an ill return for
-it. She rejoiced that God had honoured her to be the first who suffered
-by fire in this reign, and that her suffering would prove a martyrdom
-for that religion which was all love.<a id="FNanchor_147" href="#Footnote_147" class="fnanchor">[147]</a> “Thus,” to use the words of
-Sir James Mackintosh, “was this poor and uninstructed woman supported
-under a death of cruel torture, by the lofty consciousness of suffering
-for righteousness, and by that steadfast faith in the final triumph of
-justice, which can never visit the last moments of the oppressor.”<a id="FNanchor_148" href="#Footnote_148" class="fnanchor">[148]</a>
-There have been many<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[100]</span> martyrs for faith, but these women were martyrs
-for charity, and their meek heroism in the hour of death seems worthy
-of the cause for which they suffered. Such examples illustrate that
-power of endurance, with which the Almighty has inspired the heart
-of woman. Strong in the midst of apparent feebleness, she bears up
-under trials sufficient to crush minds of the hardest texture; thus
-resembling those delicate flowers which grow in Alpine regions&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Leaning their cheeks against the thick-ribbed ice,</div>
- <div>And looking up with brilliant eyes to Him</div>
- <div>Who bids them bloom, unblanched, amid the waste</div>
- <div>Of desolation.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION RENEWED.</div>
-
-<p>The persecution of Dissenters, commenced before the breaking out of
-Monmouth’s rebellion, continued to rage, with additional vehemence,
-after the rebellion had been extinguished. The trade of the informer
-revived. The spiritual courts overflowed with causes. Ministers were
-seized, their houses searched, their rooms and closets broken open,
-and ransacked. The shopkeeper was taken from his business, the farmer
-from his homestead, husbands were separated from their wives, and
-parents from their children. The rich were mulcted in heavy fines,
-or bribes were wrung from them by informers&mdash;a present of wine or a
-few gold pieces being often sacrificed to these harpies, for the sake
-of escaping imprisonment. The loss of liberty is always an object of
-terror, but in those days it appeared with horrible aggravations&mdash;for
-dungeons were covered with filth of the most loathsome description;
-gaolers and turnkeys exercised despotic power, and extorted exorbitant
-fees; prisoners of all kinds were crowded together to suffocation;
-fever and pestilence were engendered and nourished; and numbers
-perished before their trial. It may seem incredible, but it is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[101]</span>
-nevertheless a fact, that Ellwood the Quaker, and the friend of Milton,
-when immured in Newgate for his religion, saw the quarters of those
-who had been executed for treason placed close to the prisoners’
-cells, and their heads tossed about like foot-balls.<a id="FNanchor_149" href="#Footnote_149" class="fnanchor">[149]</a> The fear of
-punishment under such circumstances induced Nonconformists, in their
-worship, to return to those methods of secrecy and concealment which
-have been already described. Some proved faithless to their profession,
-and sought refuge from intolerant cruelty, in the bosom of the
-Establishment: on the other hand, there were not wanting Episcopalians,
-who seeing humanity outraged, professedly in support of the Church to
-which they belonged, left it in disgust, and cast in their lot with the
-sufferers for conscience’ sake.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1685.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PERSECUTION RENEWED.</div>
-
-<p>The storm continued for two years; and as it terminated the series
-under the Stuarts, it seems to have been the worst&mdash;in this respect
-resembling the persecution under the Emperor Diocletian. The Quakers
-stated, in their petition to King James, that there had been of late
-above one thousand five hundred Friends in prison, of whom one thousand
-three hundred and eighty-three remained unreleased. Three hundred
-and fifty had died in gaol, since the year 1660; nearly one hundred
-of them since the year 1680. William Penn reckoned that altogether,
-more than five thousand perished for the sake of religion;<a id="FNanchor_150" href="#Footnote_150" class="fnanchor">[150]</a> and
-Jeremy White is said to have collected a list of sixty thousand, who
-had suffered in some way or other for conscientious opinions. Making
-a large abatement from such rumours, there must have been an enormous
-extent of imprisonment, exile, extortion, oppression, and misery<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[102]</span>
-inflicted during those two reigns to account for such a rumour having
-been listened to for a moment.<a id="FNanchor_151" href="#Footnote_151" class="fnanchor">[151]</a> Sulpicius Severus, speaking of the
-persecution under Diocletian, remarked, that Christians never achieved
-a more glorious victory than when they could not be subdued by years of
-slaughter. And, in the same spirit, Neal observes, that Nonconformists
-did not decrease, amidst all the engines of intolerance which were
-worked against them; their continuance and increase being attributed to
-their firmness of character, their practical and awakening ministry,
-their severe morality, their domestic religion, their able and learned
-ministers, the disgust excited by the conduct of their adversaries,
-and the reaction produced by carrying Tory principles to an unbearable
-extreme. In statements of this kind an author’s eye is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[103]</span> wont to rest
-mainly on fines, imprisonments, and violent assaults. But there were
-other persecutions which Nonconformists had to endure. Much is made,
-by our High Church brethren, of the persecution which lingers amidst
-legal toleration. They point to attacks in the newspapers, to slander
-privately circulated, to innuendo and defamation, to irritation and
-annoyance in subtle forms; but no social persecution complained of in
-the present day, can be compared with what Nonconformists, in addition
-to fines, imprisonments, and brutal treatment, had to endure, when such
-a Christian gentleman and scholar as John Howe scarcely dared to walk
-the streets. In the library of Canterbury Cathedral is a large volume
-of MS. plays, recitations, and performances, in the reign of Charles
-II., wherein Roman Catholics and Nonconformists of all kinds are
-lampooned and abused with a vast deal more of coarseness than wit. Such
-things impressively indicate what the state of social feelings must
-have been at the time towards all who were not included within the pale
-of the Establishment.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[104]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER VIII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">COURT INTRIGUES.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Important changes occurred in the Cabinet towards the close of 1685.
-Halifax, President of the Council&mdash;but no favourite with the King on
-account of his opposition to Roman Catholicism, the repeal of the
-Test Act, and the Royal foreign policy&mdash;was dismissed in the month
-of October. In December he was succeeded by Sunderland, who, from
-having conformed to Roman Catholic ceremonies at the commencement of
-the reign, and from having encouraged his Master in anti-Protestant
-proceedings, had succeeded in securing and retaining his good opinion.
-There existed a violent Popish party at Court, consisting of the Earl
-of Castelmaine, husband to one of Charles’ mistresses,<a id="FNanchor_152" href="#Footnote_152" class="fnanchor">[152]</a> of Henry
-Jermyn, created Lord Dover by James II., of the Earl of Tyrconnel,
-and of another Irishman, named White. These persons promoted measures
-as rash as they were violent, and in so doing acted in concert with
-a few Jesuits who dwelt in England, at the head of whom was Father
-Petre. The Order at that time had come into collision with the Pontiff,
-Innocent XI. They were now in a state of alliance with the French
-King, who resisted Ultramontane pretensions,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[105]</span> rather than in a state
-of obedience to the occupant of St. Peter’s Chair. Then, as it has
-happened at other times, parties in a Church which boasts of unity,
-were engaged in carrying on the most opposite intrigues: the Jesuits
-counselling the English King to set the liberties and wishes of his
-subjects at defiance, and to play the despot out-and-out; while the
-Roman Court advised him to preserve caution, and to keep within the
-lines of the British Constitution. Sunderland united with the Jesuits,
-and the other extreme Roman Catholic politicians, in encouraging the
-Monarch to follow those ways which ultimately led to his downfall. The
-Minister, to strengthen his own position, embraced the King’s religion.
-He had before conformed to Catholic rites, but now he professed himself
-a decided convert, giving to James the credit of having effected
-the change. After the elevation of Sunderland came the dismissal of
-Rochester, who had long been a Trimmer, as well as an adviser of
-moderation. To recover the good opinion of the King and Queen he
-professed to be open to conviction, courted Popish advocates, and
-listened to controversies between Divines of the opposite Church&mdash;but,
-at last, this cunning intriguer thought it the safest plan not to go
-over to Rome.<a id="FNanchor_153" href="#Footnote_153" class="fnanchor">[153]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1686.</div>
-
-<p>James, encouraged in his extreme folly, rushed headlong to utter
-ruin. It was not because he had become a Roman Catholic, it was not
-simply because he sought to promote the interests of the Church which
-he had espoused; it was because, in seeking to accomplish that end,
-he violated the Constitution of his country. His despotism, not his
-religion, was the immediate cause of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[106]</span> his losing a throne. He violated
-the law&mdash;that most sacred palladium in the eyes of an Englishman.</p>
-
-<p>Having commenced the practice of granting dispensations to certain
-individuals before the reign of persecution came to an end, he
-was sometimes found pursuing a course which placed him and some
-chiefs of the Church in apparently contradictory positions, whilst,
-notwithstanding, they were, for awhile, promoting the same end.</p>
-
-<p>“You may see,” says a contemporary Diarist, “somewhat remarkable in
-this last week’s account&mdash;the Hierarchy so severely prosecuting the
-Dissenters, and the Crown’s granting dispensations to them under seal.
-Cross winds sometimes raise waves that break the force of one another,
-and the ship is thereby preserved&mdash;sometimes they presage a tempest
-that destroys it, when those winds centre in a dangerous quarter.
-The Hierarchists have not appeared in the prosecution of one Papist
-this Assizes, nor Sessions, upon the strictest inquiries that can be
-made; but they say the only way to prevent Popery is to prosecute the
-penal laws against the Protestant Dissenters, and, which is somewhat
-mysterious, the best way to prevent Popery is not to prosecute
-Papists.”<a id="FNanchor_154" href="#Footnote_154" class="fnanchor">[154]</a></p>
-
-<p>Calamy refers to the Royal exercise of a dispensing power, and to the
-sending out of injunctions by the Bishops for the presentment of all
-such as did not receive the Lord’s Supper at Easter.<a id="FNanchor_155" href="#Footnote_155" class="fnanchor">[155]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES’ POLICY.</div>
-
-<p>In the Journal just quoted, an entry occurs a little earlier, showing
-the indignity with which the Monarch treated some of his suppliants,
-and the fruitlessness, occasionally, of their humble applications. The
-Anabaptists presented an address for “His Majesty’s gracious pardon,”
-when “they were kept long on their knees, while His<span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[107]</span> Majesty showed
-the petition to several about him, at which they were very merry;” and
-the Quakers, who had petitioned for liberty, received “only a verbal
-order for impunity,” and were, nevertheless, still “disturbed and
-punished.”<a id="FNanchor_156" href="#Footnote_156" class="fnanchor">[156]</a></p>
-
-<p>Such were the floating stories of treatment experienced by the
-persecuted sects; and, if I may be permitted further to use the MS.
-from which our knowledge of these impressions is derived, I will
-extract the following passage which vividly reflects the perplexity
-some Dissenters felt at this time, in consequence of endeavours made to
-obtain their consent to measures of toleration, including Papists as
-well as themselves.</p>
-
-<p>“The great inquiry now is, whether persons will not only use, but
-thankfully accept of and vigorously endeavour after universal liberty,
-by taking off the penal laws, and incapacitating laws against Papists;
-if the Dissenters do not comply, they will incur the displeasure of the
-Court, and the Court will destroy them. And, on the other hand, the
-Church also, if these laws continue in being, or at least the Church
-and the Court, will unite, and thereby utterly destroy them. And if
-they do comply, they will first verify the imputation, the Church lays
-upon them, as if they favoured Popery; and say, ‘they themselves are
-the only pillars of the Protestant religion, you see the Dissenters
-betray and give it up.’ Secondly, they may probably be dragooned by the
-Court, when they have helped to take the laws off from the Papists, and
-thereby weaken the Protestant interest. Thirdly, and lastly, in time to
-come, the Church may call them to an account, and be severe upon them
-for their compliance.”<a id="FNanchor_157" href="#Footnote_157" class="fnanchor">[157]</a></p>
-
-<p>James’ policy of granting indulgence reached its culminating<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[108]</span> point in
-the famous Declaration, published on the 4th of April, 1687.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The document presented signs of righteous toleration, and viewed
-superficially it exhibits a favourable contrast with the policy then
-pursued in France. France and England seemed bent upon adopting
-contrary lines of policy. When Elizabeth had supported ecclesiastical
-despotism, Henry IV., by the Edict of Nantes, had proclaimed himself a
-friend of religious liberty: now, as Louis XIV. drove from the French
-shores his Protestant subjects, by striving to dragoon them out of
-their religion, James II. talked to the English people graciously
-touching freedom of conscience.</p>
-
-<p>But what was the real design of it all? Fully to answer this question
-we must carefully look at the line of policy which he previously
-pursued towards Popery, towards the Church of England, and towards
-Protestant Dissent. And here it should be premised, that the crushing
-of Monmouth’s rebellion in England, and of Argyle’s rebellion in
-Scotland, had swept away for a time all opposition to James’ title
-and authority,&mdash;had consolidated his power, and had encouraged him to
-attempt the experiment of ruling the nation as an absolute monarch: and
-let it also be remembered, that his despotic designs were intimately
-connected with his ecclesiastical polity.</p>
-
-<p>His object with regard to Popery seems to have been, by a succession of
-bold attempts, to give it not only toleration, but an establishment in
-this country,&mdash;at least, an establishment upon terms of equality with
-the Protestant Church.<a id="FNanchor_158" href="#Footnote_158" class="fnanchor">[158]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES’ POLICY.</div>
-
-<p>The Judges, in the case of Sir Edward Hales, having<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[109]</span> decided in favour
-of the King’s dispensing power; and having also given it as their
-opinion, that the laws of England were the King’s laws, that it was an
-inseparable branch of his prerogative to dispense with penal statutes,
-and that of the reasons for doing so in particular cases he was sole
-Judge;&mdash;James immediately proceeded by Letters Patent, dated May the
-3rd, 1686, to authorize Edward Sclater to retain his benefice, after he
-had, on the previous Palm Sunday, confessed his conversion to Romanism
-by attending Mass. He also allowed Obadiah Walker, a clergyman who had
-long secretly leaned to Popery, and now openly avowed his conversion,
-to retain his position and emoluments as Master of University College,
-Cambridge. By a still bolder stroke, the King dashed down the barriers
-which guarded admission to the Establishment, and conferred the Deanery
-of Christ Church upon John Massey,&mdash;a Roman Catholic priest, possessing
-neither learning nor ability,&mdash;who instantly decked an altar in the
-usual way for the celebration of Mass.</p>
-
-<p>The two sees of Chester and Oxford fell vacant in 1686. James appointed
-to the one Thomas Cartwright, Dean of Ripon, a worthless sycophant,
-who might be expected to do anything to please his master; and to the
-other, Samuel Parker, already well known to the reader for his violent
-Tory and High Church publications.<a id="FNanchor_159" href="#Footnote_159" class="fnanchor">[159]</a> “I wished,” says the King to
-the Papal Nuncio, Adda, “to appoint an avowed Catholic, but the time is
-not come. Parker is well inclined to us, he is one of us in feeling,
-and, by degrees, he will bring round his clergy.”<a id="FNanchor_160" href="#Footnote_160" class="fnanchor">[160]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1686.</div>
-
-<p>Whilst James secured for his purpose tools of this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[110]</span> description he
-did whatever he could to silence the voice of controversy against the
-Church of his affections. He caused the Lord Treasurer to reprove
-Sherlock, and to stop his pension for preaching against Popery;<a id="FNanchor_161" href="#Footnote_161" class="fnanchor">[161]</a>
-and he wrote to Compton, the Bishop of London, commanding him to
-suspend the Rector of St. Giles, Dr. Sharp, who had engaged in a
-pulpit contest with a Roman Catholic priest. This last interference
-involved consequences more mischievous than itself. It had long been
-in the mind of the Sovereign to revive the Court of High Commission,
-as an efficient agent for the control of the clergy. To any one else,
-the Act of Charles II., confirming the abolition of that Court by
-the Long Parliament, would have been an insurmountable barrier, yet
-despising such reasons as would have guided other men, James gradually
-brought himself to the determination of re-establishing that odious
-tribunal. The lawyers told him that what he proposed would be found to
-be unconstitutional. His Ministers shrunk from committing themselves
-to so perilous an act, but Sharp’s affair fixed his decision. Compton,
-son of the Royalist Earl of Northampton, himself once an officer of the
-Guards, had with something of a soldier’s gallantry and dash, opposed
-the Government, from his seat in the House of Lords; and when receiving
-the King’s command for the suspension of Sharp, he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[111]</span> had declined to
-take that step without a trial of the denounced clergyman, and had
-also, by mere private influence, arranged for his submitting to a
-period of silence. This conduct on the part of the prelate provoked the
-King to end his hesitation, and to revive the very Court, which had
-been a chief cause of his father’s ruin. The New Commission conferred
-an indefinite spiritual jurisdiction, in this case the more dangerous
-from its being indefinite.<a id="FNanchor_162" href="#Footnote_162" class="fnanchor">[162]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES’ POLICY.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1686.</div>
-
-<p>It was to cover England and Wales; it was to be for the reform of
-all abuses, contrary to the ecclesiastical laws of the realm. It
-gave authority to summon before it such ecclesiastical persons of
-every degree as should offend in any of the particulars mentioned,
-and punish them accordingly, by depriving them of their preferment,
-and by inflicting ecclesiastical censures and penalties. It brought
-within its scope <i>suspected</i> persons to be proceeded against, “as
-the nature and quality of the offence, or suspicion in that behalf”
-should require. It prescribed summary excommunication and deprivation
-for all persons, who should be obstinate or disobedient; and it
-brought within the control of the Commissioners, the Universities,
-Cathedrals, Collegiate Churches, Colleges, and all ecclesiastical
-Corporations whatever, with the power of obtaining and examining
-all kinds of documents touching those foundations. This formidable
-instrument was addressed to seven Commissioners, four laymen, and three
-Bishops. Jeffreys, now Lord Chancellor, was President, and with him
-were associated the Lord Treasurer, the Lord President, and the Chief
-Justice of the King’s Bench. The three Bishops named were Sancroft, of
-Canterbury; Crew, of Durham; and Sprat,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[112]</span> of Rochester. The Primate at
-once saw the illegality of the measure, yet had not firmness enough
-to do more than excuse himself, on the ground of ill-health, from
-attending the Board. This engine, contrived for the widest action,
-was precipitately brought into play, to meet the particular emergency
-of Compton’s case. The Commissioners summoned him before them upon
-the charge, that he had not suspended the obnoxious Rector according
-to Royal command. First, Compton objected to the tribunal itself as
-illegal, an objection which the Commissioners instantly overruled.
-Instead of persevering in that objection, and thus commencing at once
-a constitutional struggle, which was both imminent and necessary,
-the Bishop quietly gave way, and proceeded to plead that he had, in
-fact, complied with His Majesty’s injunctions. To have suspended
-Sharp formally, he contended would have been illegal; to prevent
-Sharp from preaching, he represented as the only thing possible
-under the circumstances. This line of defence reflects no honour
-upon the defendant, it simply sheltered him from personal injury,
-without raising any question of principle. It virtually surrendered
-the liberties of the Church, and appears altogether unworthy of the
-occasion. Nor did it avail for the protection of the accused. The
-Commissioners pronounced him guilty, and for his “disobedience and
-contempt” suspended him from his Episcopal office, permitting him,
-however, to retain his revenues and his residence. The Bishop of
-Peterborough, with the Bishops of Durham and Rochester, were directed
-to execute the sentence.</p>
-
-<p>As at St. James’, so at Whitehall, the King provided a Roman Catholic
-Chapel.<a id="FNanchor_163" href="#Footnote_163" class="fnanchor">[163]</a> He encouraged the fitting<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[113]</span> up of a similar place of
-worship at the residence of an Englishman in London, who acted as Envoy
-for the Elector Palatine. The Benedictines established themselves at
-St. James’, the Franciscans in Lincoln’s Inn Fields, the Jesuits at the
-Savoy, and the Carmelites in the City; and Roman Catholics are accused
-of having seized some of the parish churches in Lancashire.<a id="FNanchor_164" href="#Footnote_164" class="fnanchor">[164]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES’ POLICY.</div>
-
-<p>The religious orders of Rome, arrayed in their distinguishing costumes,
-now appeared in the streets of the Metropolis,&mdash;a sight which must have
-shocked the old Puritans&mdash;but in such exhibitions the King greatly
-rejoiced, prematurely exulting “that his capital had the appearance of
-a Catholic city.”<a id="FNanchor_165" href="#Footnote_165" class="fnanchor">[165]</a></p>
-
-<p>If the facts adduced be not sufficient to indicate the King’s
-intentions, any remaining doubts must be dispelled by turning to his
-private correspondence. The letters of the last two years of his reign
-serve the same purpose as the letters of Charles I. in the year 1646.
-They fully reveal his private designs, whatever, on certain occasions,
-he might publicly declare. They repeatedly refer to the “establishment”
-of the Catholic religion&mdash;which means, in the judgment of one of the
-calmest of critics, that he “meditated no less than to transfer to his
-own religion the privileges of an Established Church.”<a id="FNanchor_166" href="#Footnote_166" class="fnanchor">[166]</a> What is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[114]</span>
-now so manifest from this correspondence, Halifax, Nottingham, and
-Danby, perceived at the time, and though they differed from each other
-on many points they agreed on this.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1686.</div>
-
-<p>Sunderland thoroughly engaged himself on behalf of the interests of
-Popery, and communicated, without reserve, the Royal intentions to
-Barillon, the French representative at the Court of St. James’. “This
-minister,” wrote Barillon to Louis XIV., “said to me, I do not know
-if they see things in France as they are here, but I defy those who
-see them near, not to know, that the King, my master, has nothing so
-much at heart as to establish the Catholic religion; that he cannot,
-even according to good sense and right reason, have any other end;
-that without it he will never be in safety, and always exposed to the
-indiscreet zeal of those who will heat the people against the Catholic
-religion as long as it is not fully established.”<a id="FNanchor_167" href="#Footnote_167" class="fnanchor">[167]</a> Another fact at
-the time is significant. The oath administered to Privy Councillors
-included the words, “I shall to my utmost defend all jurisdictions,
-pre-eminencies, and authorities, granted to His Majesty, and annexed
-to his Crown by Act of Parliament, or otherwise, against all foreign
-Princes, Persons, Prelates, States, or Potentates.” But this part
-of the oath, it is stated, was by the Royal order expunged from the
-Council-book.<a id="FNanchor_168" href="#Footnote_168" class="fnanchor">[168]</a> In addition to all these circumstances, James
-availed himself of the religious sympathies of the Irish people, to
-establish a Roman Catholic hierarchy amongst them, assigning to the
-Primate a revenue of £2,000 a year, and he authorized the clergy to
-wear in public the habits belonging to their order.<a id="FNanchor_169" href="#Footnote_169" class="fnanchor">[169]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[115]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES’ POLICY.</div>
-
-<p>It must be confessed that the King met with much in the preaching of
-the Protestant clergy to encourage his fondest hopes. A Chaplain to the
-Bishop of Ely maintained the immaculate holiness of the Virgin, and the
-necessity for seeking her intercession. Also, a Popish priest, in a
-sermon at Court, proclaimed himself as an ambassador sent from heaven
-to admonish the King to extirpate heresy, and to plant in the kingdom
-the true grace of God.<a id="FNanchor_170" href="#Footnote_170" class="fnanchor">[170]</a></p>
-
-<p>Encouragement of another kind presented itself. Conversions to Popery
-became numerous. The Earl of Peterborough and the Earl of Salisbury
-both embraced the faith patronized by royalty; the first described as
-a worn-out Courtier, the second as a worn-out sensualist. Sir Ellis
-Leighton, brother of the good Archbishop of that name, recanted the
-Protestantism of his youth; and Sir Christopher Milton, a Judge,
-brother of John Milton, the poet, if he did not do the same thing,
-at any rate scrupled to communicate with the Church of England, in
-consequence of Popish leanings. The lady of Sir Thomas Grosvenor, “the
-Elizabeth Ebury, who brought the Westminster estates into his family,”
-and the Lady Theophila, wife of Robert Nelson, both joined the Papal
-communion; and Samuel Pepys, tells us in his <i>Diary</i>, that he
-did not press his wife to attend the parish church, lest she should
-“declare herself a Catholic.” Dryden, the poet, a man who perhaps cared
-little about religion, Wycherley, the licentious dramatist, Haines, an
-utterly worthless adventurer, and Tindal, who afterwards wrote against
-Christianity, also seceded from the Church of the Reformation to the
-Church of the Council of Trent.<a id="FNanchor_171" href="#Footnote_171" class="fnanchor">[171]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[116]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The fact being proved that James intended to re-establish Popery, and
-received encouragement to do so, little need be said respecting his
-purpose in reference to the Protestant Episcopal Church. It follows
-that he must have designed, through placing a rival and ambitious
-power by its side, to overthrow its supremacy, if not to destroy its
-existence. Such policy was alike ungrateful and treacherous. It was
-<i>ungrateful</i>&mdash;for if the Presbyterians placed Charles II. upon
-the throne, the Episcopalians secured the succession to James II.; and
-amongst the most effective supporters of his arbitrary authority were
-those Anglicans who had preached passive obedience and non-resistance.
-And it was <i>treacherous</i>&mdash;for repeatedly he had declared, that he
-would make it his endeavour to defend and support the Church of England.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JAMES’ POLICY.</div>
-
-<p>Perhaps the actual discouragement which the prelates and clergy
-received at the hands of him who had sworn to support them, and the
-imminent perils which stared them in the face, roused the rather
-inanimate Archbishop of Canterbury to attempt some little reform in
-the Establishment. He, with the concurrence of the Bishops of his
-province, issued Articles for some better regulations in the mode
-of admitting candidates to the cure of souls, since many abuses
-and uncanonical practices had lately crept in.<a id="FNanchor_172" href="#Footnote_172" class="fnanchor">[172]</a> The Articles,
-however, did not amount to anything remarkable, and what might be
-their practical effect does not appear. If preventing the introduction
-of Roman Catholic priests into the Church, or discouraging in it all
-Romanizing tendencies, came within the designs of the Primate and his
-brethren, no signs of it can be traced in the Articles themselves;
-but there were other ways in which Anglican zeal against Popery<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[117]</span> at
-that time made itself visible. Forbidden to preach against Popery,
-the clergy employed their pens. Amongst four hundred and fifty-seven
-controversial pamphlets which issued from the press&mdash;including those
-written on both sides&mdash;may be mentioned Wake’s and Dodwell’s answers
-to Bossuet; Clagett and Williams’ replies to Gother, author of <i>The
-Papist Represented and Misrepresented</i>; Stillingfleet’s attack upon
-Godden’s <i>Dialogues</i>; and Sherlock’s answer to Sabran, the Jesuit.
-Atterbury, Smalridge, Tenison, and Tillotson, also took part in the
-controversy. A noble set of writings, Calamy remarks, was now published
-by Church Divines against the errors of Rome; and he endeavours to
-explain the causes of that comparative silence which the Dissenters
-maintained upon a subject in which they were so deeply interested. It
-is pleaded by him, that they had written largely on the subject before,
-their own people were not much in danger, if they did not write, they
-preached upon Popery, they were satisfied to see the work well done by
-others, and some who wished to publish had little chance of being read,
-public attention being engrossed by distinguished Churchmen.<a id="FNanchor_173" href="#Footnote_173" class="fnanchor">[173]</a> Some
-of these excuses carry a measure of force; Nonconformists had not been
-deficient in exposing the fallacies of Romanism, and the pulpit was now
-employed when the press was inactive, but other parts of the defence
-are more ingenious than valid; and it must be confessed, that clear and
-distinct argumentative attacks upon the common foe of Protestantism
-from the Dissenting point of view, coupled with the assertion of civil
-liberty on behalf of all religionists, so far as the doctrine was then
-understood, would have been more worthy of the Nonconformist cause at
-that critical juncture.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[118]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The policy of James respecting the Protestant Establishment, thus
-nobly resisted by some of its members, together with his policy
-towards Romanism, will help the reader to understand his designs upon
-Protestant Nonconformity. He could not but be aware of its deadly
-opposition to his own religion; its evangelical creed, its popular
-discipline, and its simple worship, must have inspired his deepest
-dislike; and, whatever professions of charity and forbearance he
-might offer at times, the same feelings which created his enmity to a
-Protestant Establishment, must necessarily have created in him also
-enmity to Protestant Dissent.</p>
-
-<p>His threefold policy thus throws light upon the Declaration of
-Indulgence published in 1687. That Declaration could not proceed from
-sound views of religious freedom, or from a generous desire to relieve
-Protestant sufferers, it must have been designed immediately to help,
-and ultimately to establish, Roman Catholicism in England. According
-to the terms of the Declaration, the King wished that all his subjects
-had been members of the Catholic Church, but such not being the case,
-he respected the rights of conscience, promising to protect those of
-his subjects who belonged to the Church of England; he also resolved
-to suspend the laws for the punishment of Nonconformity, and therefore
-granted liberty of worship to all who did not encourage political
-disaffection. The Oaths of Supremacy and Allegiance, and the Tests
-and Declarations, mentioned in the 25th and 30th of his brother’s
-reign, were to be no longer enforced; and ample pardon was extended to
-all Nonconformist recusants, for all acts contrary to the penal laws
-respecting religion.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.</div>
-
-<p>That James simply wished to promote his own religion, and did not
-care for what is meant by religious freedom,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[119]</span> is clear from the
-French ambassador’s account of the liberty which the King conceded to
-the people of Scotland; for the diplomatist, writing to his master,
-states that the measure, debated for several days, created much
-difficulty, and that he would by no means allow to Scotch Protestants
-the extensive right of worship which he granted to Scotch Roman
-Catholics.<a id="FNanchor_174" href="#Footnote_174" class="fnanchor">[174]</a> The same writer, a little earlier, told the French
-Sovereign that His Britannic Majesty heard with pleasure a recital of
-the wonderful progress with which God had blessed the efforts of the
-former for the conversion of the Huguenots, there being no example of
-a similar thing happening at any time, or in any country, with so much
-promptitude.<a id="FNanchor_175" href="#Footnote_175" class="fnanchor">[175]</a> It is absurd to represent a man who thus approved
-of conversion by violence as a friend to religious liberty. It should
-also be remembered that there was no little duplicity involved in the
-conduct of the English Monarch at this time, for just after the above
-communication had been privately made to the Court at Versailles, he
-issued letters patent to the Bishops, authorizing a collection on
-behalf of the exiles.</p>
-
-<p>How was the Declaration received?</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The Catholics expressed their satisfaction with it; and whilst they
-gladly availed themselves of the professed benefit, they felt pleasure
-in seeing liberty extended to all sects without exception, by a prince
-of their own communion.<a id="FNanchor_176" href="#Footnote_176" class="fnanchor">[176]</a> Politicians, who understood and cared for
-the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[120]</span> liberties of their country, however glad they might be to see
-different forms of religion tolerated, could not help being alarmed
-by so daring an exercise of the Royal prerogative, which if conceded,
-would imperil the Constitution, break down the safeguards of law, and
-place the destinies of the nation for evil, as well as for good, in
-the hands of a despotic sovereign. Members of the Church of England,
-in this hour of its need, said kind things of the Nonconformists,
-whom they had persecuted before, and spoke of legal securities for
-freedom of worship; yet they viewed with the utmost alarm this exercise
-of absolute power, and saw in it only a confirmation of their worst
-fears, that, under a pretence of general liberty, the Monarch sought to
-destroy the ascendancy of Protestantism. The selfishness, which blended
-with their fears, and the compunctions which mingled with their alarm,
-did not diminish the reasonableness of their apprehension.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.</div>
-
-<p>Some Bishops, however, distinguished themselves by a line of conduct
-different from that pursued by their brethren. Durham, Rochester,
-Peterborough, Oxford, and Chester, being invited to meet the Lord
-Chancellor and the Earl of Sunderland, the latter told them how
-acceptable to His Majesty would be an address of thanks. Three of them
-at once signed such an address. Rochester hesitated, but complied;
-Peterborough decidedly refused. Chester reported that the four who
-signed altered their first paper, which gave thanks for the Declaration
-as a whole, into a second, which acknowledged only the King’s promise
-to protect the Church; and it is further reported that when the Bishop
-of Durham presented the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[121]</span> document to the King, His Majesty said, “I
-expected this sooner from you of the Church of England, and also now,
-that it would have come much fuller than what it is. Can you find
-nothing to give thanks for, but that one clause which relates to
-yourselves? Have you no sense of that kindness others have received
-thereby? Methinks you might have given thanks, at least, for that ease
-and relief your Protestant brethren have received by it.”<a id="FNanchor_177" href="#Footnote_177" class="fnanchor">[177]</a></p>
-
-<p>Those who prepared such cautious addresses found it difficult to obtain
-signatures, even when requested to sign, by diocesans favourable to the
-proceeding. The subject seems to have been most carefully canvassed
-by the superior as well as by the inferior clergy; for I find in the
-library of the Cambridge University a long paper, containing the
-reasons of the Bishops for and against subscription to an Oxford
-address. Amongst the reasons for subscription, as offered by the
-Chancellor, are these&mdash;that it might continue the King’s favour,
-whereas the omission might irritate the Treasury to call upon the £500
-bonds of first-fruits at full worth; and that it would testify unity
-with and submission to the Bishops who required the address, and who,
-perhaps, expected it upon the canonical obedience of the clergy, there
-being nothing in the document <i>præter licitum et honestum</i>. On
-the other side, amongst other things, it is alleged that it would be
-superfluous to thank His Majesty for continuing legal rights; and it
-is remarked, respecting the Declaration, and the aspect of it upon
-the Established Episcopal Church, “As to the free exercise of our
-religion, it necessarily holds us among the various<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[122]</span> sects, under the
-Toleration, who for that favour in suspending the laws have led the way
-to such addresses, depending for protection upon no legal statutes, but
-entirely upon the sovereign pleasure and indulgence which at pleasure
-is revocable.”<a id="FNanchor_178" href="#Footnote_178" class="fnanchor">[178]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The manner in which Nonconformists received the measure requires to be
-more fully explained.</p>
-
-<p>One class, not so fanatical as to refuse the liberty offered, objected
-notwithstanding, and that strongly, to the dispensing power; and,
-after much deliberation, they declined to present to the King any
-acknowledgment. This class included Richard Baxter and John Howe:
-Baxter refusing to join in offering thanks; Howe, wavering at first,
-but at last becoming so decided respecting the matter, as to move and
-carry a resolution against going to Court upon the occasion.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.</div>
-
-<p>Another class remains, including Vincent Alsop and Stephen Lobb; the
-former being drawn into “some high flights” of loyal flattery in return
-for a Royal pardon granted to his son; the latter showing himself
-contemptibly obsequious in his approaches to the King, and receiving
-in consequence the appellation of the “Jacobite Independent.” Of the
-favourable addresses then presented, one from the Anabaptists in and
-about the City of London came first:<a id="FNanchor_179" href="#Footnote_179" class="fnanchor">[179]</a> One from the Presbyterians
-in the same neighbourhood came next. This, whilst giving thanks for
-the Indulgence, expressed a hope that the two Houses of Parliament
-would concur in the measure.<a id="FNanchor_180" href="#Footnote_180" class="fnanchor">[180]</a> The Quakers said the Declaration did
-the less surprise them, because it was what some of them had known to
-be the principle of the King long before he came to the throne.<a id="FNanchor_181" href="#Footnote_181" class="fnanchor">[181]</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[123]</span>
-In some of these compositions very eulogistic terms appear. The loyal
-subjects of the Congregational persuasion in Ipswich, and other towns
-of Suffolk, displayed a curiously rhetorical style. “The shields of
-the earth,” said they, “belong unto God, He hath made you a covering
-cherub to us, under whose refreshing shadow we promise ourselves
-rest.”<a id="FNanchor_182" href="#Footnote_182" class="fnanchor">[182]</a> The Dissenters of Malden in Essex spoke of the great
-service God designed to accomplish by His Majesty, “the blossoming
-whereof is now made visible in your celebrated wisdom, in hapning
-(<i>sic</i>) upon the most melodious harp to charm all evil spirits,
-that many other princes had no skill to use.”<a id="FNanchor_183" href="#Footnote_183" class="fnanchor">[183]</a> Some Dissenters, in
-and about the City of London, exceeded their brethren in extravagance.
-“Your Majesty,” they declared, “hath distinguished and set the bounds
-of your own dominion from that of heaven itself. You have given to God
-and man their due, and yet preserved your own right.”<a id="FNanchor_184" href="#Footnote_184" class="fnanchor">[184]</a> Who were the
-persons engaged in drawing up these adulatory compositions, by what
-kind of people, and by how many they were signed, we have no method of
-ascertaining; but it is more than probable, that Court<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[124]</span> agents employed
-the most insinuating arts to secure their production. Addresses to
-the King were for a twelvemonth all the fashion. They were presented
-by all sorts of people, who vied with each other in most absurd
-expressions of loyalty. The Company of Cooks were pre-eminent in their
-laudations, and praised the Indulgence as resembling the Almighty’s
-manna, which suited every man’s palate; and they declared “that
-men’s different gustos might as well be forced, as their different
-apprehensions about religion.”<a id="FNanchor_185" href="#Footnote_185" class="fnanchor">[185]</a> In some cases the compliments of
-the subject were matched by the complaisance of the Sovereign; and in
-answer to a Presbyterian address he professed he had no other design
-than toleration, and “hoped to see the day when the people should have
-a <i>Magna Charta</i> for liberty of conscience, as well as for the
-protection of their property.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The Yarmouth Congregational Church Book bears witness to the effect
-produced by the Declaration just afterwards:&mdash;“It was ordered by the
-Church, that the Meeting-house should be made clean, and shutters be
-made for the upper windows, which was accordingly done by many of
-our maid-servants.” This curious minute affords an example of busy
-scenes of religious zeal, such, probably, as occurred in many towns
-and villages. The humble conventicle was repaired, the interior was
-cleansed and fitted up for a public assembly, and many a heart beat
-with joy at signs which promised they should once more “sit under their
-vine and fig-tree, none daring to make them afraid.”</p>
-
-<p>About the same time Evelyn remarks:&mdash;“There was a wonderful concourse
-of people at the Dissenters’ meeting-house in this parish, and the
-parish church (Deptford)<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[125]</span> left exceeding thin. What this will end in,
-God Almighty only knows; but it looks like confusion, which I pray God
-avert.”<a id="FNanchor_186" href="#Footnote_186" class="fnanchor">[186]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DECLARATION OF INDULGENCE.</div>
-
-<p>The Dissenters generally, whilst they accepted James’ Indulgence, saw
-through his designs. Not only did they oppose the King’s claim to
-dispense with laws, but many of them also, through fear of Popery,
-resisted the repeal of the Test Act; choosing rather to suffer
-exclusion from civil offices than open a door for the admission of
-Papists. Some indeed, who advocated occasional conformity (that is
-communicating at times with Episcopalians in the celebration of the
-Lord’s Supper), suffered no personal inconvenience from the Test Act,
-and therefore advocated its continuance. Among them was Sir John
-Shorter, the Presbyterian Lord Mayor of London, in the year 1687; he
-preferred occasional attendance at Church during his mayoralty, to
-an acceptance of the suspected benefits offered by the Indulgence.
-Considering such cases, one cannot help seeing, that if such persons
-confined conformity to their year of office, they laid themselves open
-to the charge of sacrificing their principles for personal ends.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The King, at this period, regarded the famous Quaker, William Penn, as
-his particular friend and supporter. The Admiral, his father, had been
-a favourite with James when Duke of York; that favour he transferred
-after the Admiral’s death, to the pious son. The Royal regard&mdash;added to
-the Quaker’s wealth and rank, his personal character, social qualities,
-and active habits&mdash;made him one of the most important and influential
-men of his day, and the early gathering of suitors at the door of
-his mansion at Kensington, resembled the resort of clients to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[126]</span> some
-popular Roman patrician. Penn has been charged with involving himself
-in dishonourable transactions with the maids of honour for the purchase
-of a Royal pardon for girls at Taunton, who presented a banner to
-Monmouth; and also with attempting to bribe the Fellows of Magdalen
-College, Oxford, to submit to the King in certain illegal proceedings
-which we shall hereafter describe. But it appears in a very high
-degree probable, that the Penn, who acted as a pardon-broker for the
-Taunton young ladies was not Penn the Quaker: and the charge against
-the latter, in reference to the business at Magdalen College, is not
-established, even after the cleverest special pleading employed for the
-purpose.<a id="FNanchor_187" href="#Footnote_187" class="fnanchor">[187]</a> But Penn certainly did all he could to support James in
-his policy of Indulgence, and to persuade Nonconformists to accept its
-benefits. As an Englishman this excellent person could not have had
-a clear understanding of the constitutional question involved in the
-measure; as a Nonconformist he showed a want of wisdom in countenancing
-the dispensing power; and he is to be reckoned as one of that class
-whose humanity, whose benevolence, and whose desire to secure present
-liberty under critical circumstances, are wont to interfere with their
-perception of fundamental principles and of ultimate results. Nor can
-any one, even with the greatest admiration of his eminent virtues,
-and of his conscientious adherence to his religion in the midst of
-persecution, regard him as free from infirmities. It may be fairly
-suspected that, with his courteous manners, he blended, in spite of his
-Quaker<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[127]</span> usages, a measure of obsequiousness to Royalty, that gratified
-by Royal attention, this Courtier Friend felt disposed to go further
-than other conscientious men could do in promoting Royal designs, and
-that a little spice of personal vanity was sprinkled over the better
-qualities of this very estimable person.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">WILLIAM KIFFIN.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>Upon a different character from Penn, James wasted his acts in vain.
-William Kiffin has been mentioned already as the victim of a scandalous
-forgery. This and other attempts upon his safety he overcame. Indeed,
-he was charged with designs upon the life of Charles II., a charge
-too absurd to be prosecuted, yet it exposed him to some degree of
-temporary inconvenience. Although not himself accused of complicity in
-the Rye House Plot, or in the Monmouth Rebellion, his family suffered
-from both&mdash;a son-in-law being tried for his connection with the first,
-and two grandsons, handsome youths, pious, and of great promise,
-being executed for their share in the second. Kiffin still continued
-a preacher of the Gospel in the Baptist denomination, as well as a
-prosperous merchant in the City of London, and it is curious to notice
-how this twofold character is indicated in his portrait: a Puritan
-skull-cap covers his head, whilst long curly locks flow from under it,
-and a richly embroidered lace collar covers his breast, with a loose
-cloak gracefully wrapped round his shoulders. His wealth and position
-in the City, together with his influence amongst Nonconformists,
-rendered him a person worthy of being conciliated. Upon his coming
-to Court, in obedience to the Royal command, the King told him that
-his name had been put down as an alderman in the new Charter. “Sire,”
-he replied, “I am a very old man, and have withdrawn myself from all
-kind of business for some years past, and am incapable of doing any
-service in such an affair, to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[128]</span> your Majesty or the City&mdash;besides,
-Sire,” he continued, the tears running down his cheeks, “the death of
-my grandsons gave a wound to my heart, which is still bleeding, and
-never will close, but in the grave.” “Mr. Kiffin,” returned James, “I
-shall find a balsam for that sore.” The marble-hearted<a id="FNanchor_188" href="#Footnote_188" class="fnanchor">[188]</a> monarch
-had no conception of such deep sorrow as filled Kiffin’s breast; and
-Kiffin showed himself proof against all attempts upon his political
-and ecclesiastical integrity. He felt obliged nominally to accept the
-aldermanship; but, after holding it for a few months, without meddling
-much in civic affairs, he obtained a discharge from his troublesome
-office.<a id="FNanchor_189" href="#Footnote_189" class="fnanchor">[189]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[129]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER IX.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The audacious zeal of James in the support of Popery reached its
-climax in the summer of 1687. Monsignor Ferdinando D’Adda, described
-by a Jesuit as a mere boy, a fine showy fop, to make love to the
-ladies,<a id="FNanchor_190" href="#Footnote_190" class="fnanchor">[190]</a> after having for some time privately acted as Papal
-Nuncio, had, in the spring of this year, been publicly consecrated at
-Whitehall, titular Archbishop of Amasia. He had immediately afterwards
-been received in his archiepiscopal vestments by the Sovereign of
-England, who, in the presence of the Court, prostrated himself before
-the Italian prelate to receive his benediction. The prelate being thus
-prepared by his new dignity, the King determined that he should be
-publicly received as an ambassador from His Holiness; and he caused
-arrangements to be accordingly made for his reception in that capacity
-at Windsor Castle, on the 3rd of July. At the Whitehall reception
-of the Archbishop, the Spanish Ambassador had warned James against
-being priest-ridden, when the latter asked, “Is it not the usage in
-Spain that Kings consult their Confessors?” “Yes, Sire,” replied the
-Minister, “and hence it is that our affairs go so badly.” In prospect
-of the Windsor ceremonial,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[130]</span> the Duke of Somerset received orders to
-be in attendance to introduce the dignitary. He begged to be excused,
-lest compliance should be construed into a breach of law. “Do you not
-know,” said James, “that I am above the law?” “Your Majesty may be,”
-rejoined the Duke, “but I am not.” This nobleman being dismissed for
-his frankness, people remarked in gossip, that a Duke of Somerset “had
-put out the Pope, and now the Pope had put out the Duke.” “It would
-have been more remarkable,” said Sir John Bramston, “if the Duke had
-brought him in.”<a id="FNanchor_191" href="#Footnote_191" class="fnanchor">[191]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.</div>
-
-<p>These little incidents would have sufficed, under the circumstances, to
-make prudent men pause, but they produced no effect upon the imprudent
-King. When the day arrived, the Nuncio started from his lodgings in
-Windsor, clothed in purple, with a gold crucifix hanging at his breast,
-seated in a coach, accompanied by the Duke of Grafton and Sir Charles
-Cotterel. He was preceded by Knight Marshal’s men on horseback, and
-by twelve footmen&mdash;“their coats being all of a dark grey coloured
-cloth, with white and purple lace.” Altogether the train consisted of
-thirty-six carriages, with six horses each, two of the carriages being
-filled with priests&mdash;but some were sent empty, to increase the pomp of
-the procession; and amongst such equipages were those of the Bishops
-of Durham and Chester. The party alighted in the outer court, and went
-upstairs into St. George’s Hall, where the King and Queen, seated upon
-two chairs under a canopy, received the Papal emissary with great
-reverence. The effect upon the English people may be conjectured. Great
-multitudes had been attracted by a show, such as had not been witnessed
-until now, since the Accession of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[131]</span> Elizabeth. Windsor overflowed, and
-for want of room in inns and houses, people of quality had to sit in
-their coaches almost all the day.<a id="FNanchor_192" href="#Footnote_192" class="fnanchor">[192]</a> But they were shocked by the
-spectacle; and the indignation of the inhabitants of the little town
-upon the public celebration of mass in Wolsey’s Chapel rose to such a
-height, that they riotously assailed the building, and left it in a
-state of miserable dilapidation. The feeling thus expressed extended
-over the country; Protestant anger almost everywhere arose, and James
-himself, when too late, saw the extreme folly of his conduct. It might
-be supposed that the Pontiff and the Papal Court would be delighted
-to hear of the Nuncio’s pageant, yet this was not the case. At Rome
-the proceedings met with condemnation. They accorded with the daring
-policy of the Jesuits, who were masters at Court, but not with the more
-cautious measures of the Papacy, at that time in collision with the
-order which had proved such a prop to the Papal chair.</p>
-
-<p>Innocent XI. refused to gratify James in a matter which he had much at
-heart. James wished to procure a mitre for a Jesuit, named Petre, but
-as the elevation of the dignitary to the Episcopate was contrary to the
-rules of the Order, James sought for him a red hat. But neither mitre
-nor hat could be obtained. The circumstance mortified the Monarch, and
-it certainly appeared as a very ungrateful return for all his devotion
-to the interests of Rome; but he resolved to give Petre a seat at the
-Privy Council table, for which, indeed, he had designed the mitre or
-the hat to serve as a preparation. He meant to pave the way to the
-civil distinction of his Roman Catholic favourites, by first obtaining
-for them ecclesiastical honours; and when the nation heard that a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[132]</span>
-Jesuit had been made a Privy Councillor, the wrath excited by the
-public recognition of Archbishop D’Adda increased tenfold.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>Parliament had shown nothing like independence in reference to either
-ecclesiastical or political affairs, and had resembled a French Bed of
-Justice, convened to register Royal decrees; yet James dissolved it
-on the 4th of July, the very day succeeding the Nuncio’s reception.
-The despotic King now took affairs entirely into his own hands, and
-speedily rushed headlong to destruction. Two events completed the
-catastrophe&mdash;his attack upon the liberties of Cambridge and Oxford, and
-his second Declaration of Indulgence. These events at the same instant
-accomplished his own fall, and saved the Protestantism of England.</p>
-
-<p>The law expressly provided, that none should be admitted to a Degree
-in either University who did not take the Oath of Supremacy and the
-Oath of Obedience. James had sent a mandate to Cambridge for Alban
-Francis, a Benedictine monk, to be created Master of Arts, although the
-monk was prevented by his religion from taking these oaths. Upon his
-refusing to be sworn, the University authorities refused to obey the
-mandate; consequently the High Commission summoned the two Chancellors
-and the Senate to appear before them at Westminster, upon the 21st
-of April. Dr. John Peachell, who then held the Vice-Chancellorship,
-with eight representatives of the Senate, including Isaac Newton,
-Fellow of Trinity, and Professor of Mathematics, answered the summons:
-and on meeting the Board, were treated by Jeffreys, who presided
-over the Commissioners, with an amount of insolence scarcely less
-than that which he had exhibited at the trial of Richard Baxter. He
-soundly rated Dr. Peachell; and when another more courageous<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[133]</span> person
-attempted to speak, he cried out, “That young gentleman expects to be
-Vice-Chancellor&mdash;when you are, Sir, you may speak, but till then it
-will become you to forbear.” Peachell had to suffer the loss of his
-office, and his emoluments, and the members of the Senate had to endure
-the vulgar insults of the minion who dismissed them, exclaiming, “I
-shall say to you what the Scripture says, and rather because most of
-you are Divines: ‘Go your way and sin no more, lest a worse thing come
-unto you.’”<a id="FNanchor_193" href="#Footnote_193" class="fnanchor">[193]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>The proceedings at Oxford are still more remarkable. A vacancy occurred
-in the highest office in Magdalen College. Notwithstanding the
-vested power of the Fellows to choose a President, Royal letters of
-nomination had been sometimes sent; and, as in deference to Royalty,
-such letters of nomination had been accepted and obeyed, precedents
-could be pleaded in this instance for the interference of the King.
-He recommended Anthony Farmer, a man who laboured under the threefold
-disqualification, of not being a moral character, of not being a
-Protestant Churchman, and of neither being, nor ever having been, a
-Fellow either of Magdalen or New College. The last circumstance, on
-statutory grounds alone, sufficed to exclude this nominee. The Fellows,
-of course, objected to him, and requested His Majesty to recommend
-another person. The election had been fixed for the 13th of April.
-The day arrived, without a further nomination from the Crown. At an
-adjourned meeting on the 15th, no notice having been taken of their
-request, the Fellows proceeded to make their election, and their choice
-fell on Dr. John Hough, a person of high reputation, whose firmness
-throughout<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[134]</span> the following troubles, have won for him a lasting renown.
-In June the Fellows were summoned to appear before the Commission, at
-Whitehall, to answer for what they had done. Jeffreys, the King’s evil
-star&mdash;whose conduct, both on the Bench and at the Council Board, must
-be pronounced one of the greatest curses, and whose appointment to the
-custody of the Great Seal must be held as one of the greatest crimes
-of this inglorious reign&mdash;badgered the deputation sent from Oxford
-to represent the College, as he had before badgered the deputation
-sent from Cambridge. “Who is this man?” he asked, as Dr. Fairfax
-raised a question touching the validity of the Commission. “Pray, what
-commission have you to be so impudent in Court? This man ought to be
-kept in a dark room. Why do you suffer him without a guardian? Why did
-not you bring him to me to beg him? Pray, let the officers seize him.”
-Hough’s election was declared void, and Fairfax was suspended from his
-Fellowship;<a id="FNanchor_194" href="#Footnote_194" class="fnanchor">[194]</a> but the nomination of such a man as Farmer was too
-outrageous to be pursued any further, even by the impudent despotism
-which had already defied law and order to an intolerable extent.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.</div>
-
-<p>In August, James nominated to the Presidency of Magdalen, Parker,
-Bishop of Oxford, with whose character the reader is already
-acquainted. His unpopularity with Protestants had now been increased
-by the publication not only of his reasons for abrogating the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[135]</span> test
-introduced to exclude Papists, but by his excusing the doctrines
-of Transubstantiation, and his vindicating the Romanists from the
-charge of idolatry. To nominate Parker offended the University for
-two reasons. No vacancy, in fact, existed, since Hough could claim
-office by virtue of his College election; besides, the Bishop had never
-been a Fellow of either of the Colleges specified in the Statutes.
-In September the King himself visited Oxford, determined to subdue
-the refractory body. The interview has been often described; the
-following account, substantially the same as that given in the <i>State
-Trials</i><a id="FNanchor_195" href="#Footnote_195" class="fnanchor">[195]</a> is preserved in MS. in the Record Office.</p>
-
-<p>“The Lord Sunderland sent orders to the Fellows of Magdalen College to
-attend the King on Sunday last, at eleven o’clock, or at three in the
-afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>“They waited accordingly. Dr. Pudsey, Speaker.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>K.</i>&mdash;‘What’s your name? Are you Dr. Pudsey?’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Dr. P.</i>&mdash;‘Yes, may it please your Majesty.’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>K.</i>&mdash;‘Did you receive my letter?’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Dr. P.</i>&mdash;‘Yes, Sir, we did.’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>K.</i>&mdash;‘Then you have not dealt with me like gentlemen: you have
-done very uncivilly by me, and undutifully.’</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>“Then they all kneeled down, and Dr. Pudsey offered a petition,
-containing the reasons of their proceedings, which His Majesty refused
-to receive, and said, ‘You have been a stubborn and turbulent College.
-I have known you to be so this twenty-six years. You have affronted me
-in this. Is this your Church of England loyalty? One would wonder to
-find so many Church of England men in such a business. Go back, and
-show yourselves good members of the Church of England.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[136]</span> Get ye gone;
-know I am your King, and I command you to be gone. Go and admit the
-Bishop of Oxon, Head-Principal&mdash;(what do you call it) of your College.’</p>
-
-<p>“One standing by said ‘President.’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>K.</i>&mdash;‘I mean President of the College. Let him know that
-refuses it. Look to’t. They shall find the weight of their Sovereign’s
-displeasure.’</p>
-
-<p>“The Fellows went away, and being gone out were recalled.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>K.</i>&mdash;‘I hear you have admitted a Fellow of your College since ye
-received my inhibition. Is this true? Have you not admitted Mr. Holden,
-Fellow?’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Dr. P.</i>&mdash;‘I think he was admitted Fellow, but we conceive&mdash;.’
-The Dr. hesitating, another said, ‘May it please Your Majesty, there
-was no new election or admission since Your Majesty’s inhibition, but
-only the consummation of a former election. We always elect to one
-year’s probation, then the person elected is received or rejected for
-ever.’</p>
-
-<p>“<i>K.</i>&mdash;‘The consummation of a former election! It was downright
-disobedience, and is a fresh aggravation. Get you gone home, and
-immediately repair to your Chapel, and elect the Bishop of Oxon, or
-else you must expect to feel the heavy hand of an angry King.’</p>
-
-<p>“The Fellows offered their petition again, on their knees.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>K.</i>&mdash;‘Get ye gone, I will receive nothing from you till you have
-obeyed me, and elected the Bishop of Oxford.’</p>
-
-<p>“Upon which they went directly to their Chapel, and Dr. Pudsey
-proposing whether they would obey the King and elect the Bishop, they
-answered every one in his order; they were always willing to obey His
-Majesty in all things that lay in their power, as any of the rest of
-His Majesty’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[137]</span> subjects, but the electing of the Bishop of Oxford being
-directly contrary to their Statutes, and to the positive oath they had
-taken, they could not apprehend it in their power to obey him in this
-matter. Only Mr. Dobson, who had publicly prayed for Dr. Hough, the
-undoubted President, answered doubtingly, he was ready to obey in every
-thing he could. And Mr. Charrochi, a Papist, that he was for obeying in
-that.”<a id="FNanchor_196" href="#Footnote_196" class="fnanchor">[196]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PROMOTION OF ROMANISTS.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1687.</div>
-
-<p>James found this a much more troublesome business than he had expected;
-and in October he thought it necessary to send to Oxford a Special
-Commission to endeavour to reduce Magdalen College to obedience. Forty
-years before this, when the Parliamentary army had taken possession of
-the University, Puritan Commissioners had visited the City to eject
-from office the loyal Episcopalians; and now, Commissioners of a far
-different character, and escorted by troops of cavalry, appeared in
-the same place, to eject men of the same stamp as had been ejected
-in 1647. Traditions of the past must have risen before Hough and his
-companions; and as they compared their own treatment by the King, with
-the treatment of Dr. Oliver by the Parliament, they must have felt
-the aggravated cruelty and injustice which they had to endure in the
-present instance; for, before it was a warfare of one Church against
-another Church&mdash;now opposition came not only from a Monarch sworn by
-law to support the Establishment, but from a prelate who was bound by
-his most religious vows to do the same; Cartwright, Bishop of Chester,
-being one of the Commissioners on the occasion. Conscientious Churchmen
-suffered persecution from the powers they had long honoured even to
-excess: they could, in this instance,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[138]</span> as in so many others at the
-same period, complain both of treachery and ingratitude, if there be
-any obligations arising from oaths on the one side, or any obligations
-arising from loyalty on the other. What the King’s Commissioners
-did, and how the President and Fellows of Magdalen behaved, are well
-represented by the chisel of Roubiliac upon the famous sarcophagus
-to the memory of Hough, in Worcester Cathedral, and are succinctly
-described in the well-known words which form the inscription upon that
-work of art. “Having adjourned till the afternoon, the President came
-again into the Court, and having desired to speak a few words, they all
-took off their hats, and gave him leave; whereupon he said, ‘My Lords,
-you were pleased this morning to deprive me of my place of President
-of this College; I do hereby protest against all your proceedings, and
-against all that you have done, or hereafter shall do, in prejudice of
-me and my right, as illegal, unjust, and null; and, therefore, I appeal
-to my Sovereign Lord the King, in his Courts of Justice.’”<a id="FNanchor_197" href="#Footnote_197" class="fnanchor">[197]</a></p>
-
-<p>The sequel of the affair, briefly told, was this. Hough was deposed,
-and deprived; and Parker was installed by proxy, only two members
-of the College, however, taking part in the ceremony. The humblest
-officers resented the insult put upon the noble foundation&mdash;porter,
-butler, and blacksmith, all refused to execute the commands they
-received to disturb the President elected by the Fellows, and to
-acknowledge the President nominated by the Crown. The ejection of
-the Fellows who supported Hough speedily followed. All were deprived
-of their income. But men of the same, or of other Colleges would not
-accept the vacant fellowships; the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[139]</span> excitement raised at Oxford spread
-over the country, and subscriptions poured in from various quarters,
-for the support of the deposed Collegians. Parker died in the midst of
-the struggle; and then, to make bad worse, James designated a Roman
-Catholic Bishop, Bonaventura Giffard, as head of this Protestant
-institution. Twelve Romanists became Fellows&mdash;whilst Protestants,
-applying for fellowship, met with rejection. These proceedings
-agitated the whole country. Churchmen considered it as an attack upon
-the Establishment, Nonconformists as an attack upon Protestantism,
-politicians as an attack on chartered liberty, and people, who did
-not care for religion or politics, as an attack on the rights of
-property.<a id="FNanchor_198" href="#Footnote_198" class="fnanchor">[198]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">NEW DECLARATION.</div>
-
-<p>The King renewed the Declaration of Indulgence in April, 1688; and on
-the 4th of May issued an order that it should be read in all churches,
-and that the Bishops should see the order obeyed. He intended to test
-the obedience of the clergy; and he placed them in the dilemma of
-exposing themselves to his displeasure, or of degrading themselves
-by compliance with his arbitrary command. Crew of Durham, Barlow
-of Lincoln, Cartwright of Chester, Wood of Lichfield and Coventry,
-Walters of St. David’s, and Sprat of Rochester, presented addresses
-of thanks to the Sovereign for his promise to maintain the Church as
-by law established. The Chester clergy issued an address, maintaining
-that they were bound by “statute law, the rubric of their liberty,”
-to publish what the King or the Bishop required; and Herbert Croft,
-who still presided over the see of Hereford,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[140]</span> read the Declaration,
-justifying his conduct, and recommending it as an example by the
-Scripture words, “Submit yourselves to every ordinance of man for the
-Lord’s sake, whether it be to the king as supreme, or unto governors as
-unto them that are sent by him.”<a id="FNanchor_199" href="#Footnote_199" class="fnanchor">[199]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p>A meeting of the clergy was held in London, including Tillotson,
-Stillingfleet, Patrick, Sherlock, and other well-known men. They
-canvassed arguments for and against compliance, the latter being
-reinforced by an assurance conveyed to the meeting, in a note from some
-Nonconformists, who said that “instead of being alienated from the
-Church they would be drawn closer to her, by her making a stand for
-religion and liberty.”<a id="FNanchor_200" href="#Footnote_200" class="fnanchor">[200]</a> Fowler, another distinguished clergyman,
-declared that whatever the majority might decide he was determined
-not to read the Declaration.<a id="FNanchor_201" href="#Footnote_201" class="fnanchor">[201]</a> His speech encouraged the waverers,
-and an unanimous resolution of refusal resulted from the discussion.
-A paper to that effect rapidly received signatures from eighty-five
-London Incumbents. This meeting was held on the 23rd of May.</p>
-
-<p>A more important meeting still had been held on the 18th of the same
-month, at Lambeth Palace. Then also Tillotson, Stillingfleet, Patrick,
-and Sherlock were present, together with Grove, Rector of St. Mary’s
-Undershaft, and Tenison, Vicar of St. Martin’s. But the most important
-personages taking part on that occasion were Compton, Bishop of London,
-then under suspension; Sancroft, Archbishop of Canterbury, also under
-the King’s displeasure; and the six Bishops, who, with Sancroft, make
-the <i>seven</i> so illustrious in English History. The six included
-Turner, Bishop of Ely; Lake, Bishop of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[141]</span> Chichester;<a id="FNanchor_202" href="#Footnote_202" class="fnanchor">[202]</a> White, Bishop
-of Peterborough; Trelawny, Bishop of Bristol; Ken, Bishop of Bath and
-Wells; and Lloyd, Bishop of St. Asaph. The last two alone require
-particular notice.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BISHOP KEN.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p>Thomas Ken, Bishop of Bath and Wells, the openness of whose countenance
-corresponded with the simplicity of his character,<a id="FNanchor_203" href="#Footnote_203" class="fnanchor">[203]</a> is the best
-known of all the seven. A Wykehamist, and an Oxonian, he took orders in
-the Church just after the Restoration, and became Fellow of Winchester
-College, and Chaplain to the Bishop. In his former capacity he refused
-to admit to his lodgings Nell Gwynn, the mistress of Charles II.,
-when she accompanied her lover on a visit to the romantic old city;
-and it is to the honour of the erring King, that, instead of showing
-resentment for this high-principled act, he rewarded with a mitre the
-virtues of the pure-hearted clergyman.<a id="FNanchor_204" href="#Footnote_204" class="fnanchor">[204]</a> People suspected that, in
-consequence of a journey he made to the City of Rome, Ken had become
-tinged with Popery; but though ascetic in his habits, a High Churchman
-in principle, and decidedly “Catholic” in feeling, his protest from the
-pulpit against the errors of Rome, and his resistance of the policy
-of James, is sufficient to clear him from any suspicion of that kind:
-James did not personally dislike him, and listened to what he had to
-say on behalf of sufferers in the Monmouth Rebellion. His popularity
-appears to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[142]</span> have been very great. Evelyn speaks of the crowd to hear
-him at St. Martin’s, as “not to be expressed, nor the wonderful
-eloquence of this admirable preacher;” and again at Whitehall, the
-same Diarist speaks of the Holy Communion after the Morning Service
-being interrupted by “the rude breaking in of multitudes, zealous
-to hear the second sermon to be preached by the Bishop of Bath and
-Wells.”<a id="FNanchor_205" href="#Footnote_205" class="fnanchor">[205]</a> On that occasion Ken applied the story of the persecution
-of the Church of Judah, by the Babylonians, to the peculiar position
-of the Church of England; and he so powerfully urged the congregation
-to cling to the reformed faith, that they could scarcely refrain
-from an audible response. Sent for by James, and reproved for his
-boldness, Ken quietly replied “that if His Majesty had not neglected
-his own duty of being present, his enemies had missed the opportunity
-of accusing him.” But the Bishop’s wide fame rests mainly on his
-Morning, Evening, and Midnight Hymns, respecting which, it has been
-truly said, had he endowed three hospitals, he might have been less a
-benefactor to posterity.<a id="FNanchor_206" href="#Footnote_206" class="fnanchor">[206]</a> Nor should we overlook the interest which
-he took in the young, his manual of prayer for Wykeham’s scholars, his
-establishment of parish schools, and his zeal for catechizing.<a id="FNanchor_207" href="#Footnote_207" class="fnanchor">[207]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BISHOP LLOYD.</div>
-
-<p>William Lloyd, Bishop of St. Asaph, took a leading part in the
-proceedings of the seven. He had been ordained by Bishop Brownrigg, in
-the time of the Commonwealth, and had been made Dean of Ripon at the
-Restoration. In 1676 he had obtained the vicarage of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[143]</span> St. Martin’s,
-Westminster; and amidst the excitement of the Popish plots had
-distinguished himself by his Protestant zeal. He had preached Godfrey’s
-funeral sermon, and had been indefatigable in his endeavours to elicit
-evidence in support of the accusations by Titus Oates.<a id="FNanchor_208" href="#Footnote_208" class="fnanchor">[208]</a> Decidedly
-a party man, although sincere and honest, he showed himself apt
-practically to adopt the principle, that the end sanctifies the means,
-and to betray feelings of a kind which, though sometimes attributed
-exclusively to Papists, are rather the bad qualities of human
-nature.<a id="FNanchor_209" href="#Footnote_209" class="fnanchor">[209]</a> He combined, with his Protestant activities, a fondness
-for prophetical studies, dwelling much upon the predicted downfall of
-Babylon, and bringing to bear upon his Biblical and other researches
-a considerable amount of learning, not always under the control of a
-sober judgment. Promoted in the year 1680 to the see of St. Asaph,
-he endeavoured to reduce the Dissenters to conformity by means of
-argument and friendly influence; and where he failed to convince he won
-respect.<a id="FNanchor_210" href="#Footnote_210" class="fnanchor">[210]</a></p>
-
-<p>Such were the Bishops engaged in the Lambeth Conference,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[144]</span> and it ended
-in the drawing up of a petition to the King, in which the petitioners
-professed that their objection to publish the Declaration did not arise
-from disloyalty to the King, nor from any want of due tenderness to
-Dissenters, in relation to whom they were willing to come to such a
-temper as should be thought fit, when the subject should be considered,
-and settled in Parliament and Convocation; but such a dispensing power
-as he now exercised had been by Parliament pronounced illegal.<a id="FNanchor_211" href="#Footnote_211" class="fnanchor">[211]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SEVEN BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>Of the disposition of the petitioners to obey the commands of the King,
-so far as their conscience allowed, there can be no doubt; for some at
-least of the Bishops had maintained, or countenanced, the doctrine of
-passive obedience and non-resistance. Nor did they consider themselves
-as now acting inconsistently with that doctrine,&mdash;inasmuch as they
-distinguished between active and passive obedience, and refused only
-an active compliance with authority, which they had never held to be
-binding in cases where conscience interposed to the contrary. They
-would not do what the King commanded, but they would, as Confessors,
-patiently accept the consequences, should all constitutional and
-legal defence of themselves prove in vain. They would countenance no
-forcible resistance, they would not sanction taking up arms against His
-Majesty, and they would oppose the accession to the throne of any other
-claimants, however supported by the nation, so long as the anointed
-prince continued to live; and hence the attitude which they assumed as
-nonjurors. Respecting their conduct on this occasion, I must, without
-a grain of sympathy in their opinions, say, that they did not act so
-inconsistently as is supposed. But if<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[145]</span> justice requires this to be
-said, it requires also something more. As it regards Sancroft his
-conduct must be pronounced inconsistent. For although he now refused
-to read the Royal Declaration it appears that in the Prayer Book of
-Cosin,&mdash;amongst MS. suggestions, where it is said that nothing is to
-be read in church, but by direction of the Ordinary,&mdash;Sancroft had
-added the significant words “<i>or the King’s order</i>:”<a id="FNanchor_212" href="#Footnote_212" class="fnanchor">[212]</a> and,
-moreover, he had recommended, or approved, at a recent period, the
-publishing of Royal declarations by the clergy in service-time.<a id="FNanchor_213" href="#Footnote_213" class="fnanchor">[213]</a>
-As it regards the seven Bishops generally, in their relation to
-Dissenters, they now declared that they did not resist the Royal
-demand from any want of tenderness to them,&mdash;a plea which would have
-been valid had they all shown a tolerant and charitable spirit, but
-they had not done so. It is notorious that persecution had continued
-nearly up to the time of the first Declaration; and this, too, with the
-connivance or encouragement of some of the Bishops. The Bishop of St.
-Asaph, indeed, had distinguished himself by his moderation, Ken had
-not manifested a persecuting temper, but Sancroft, though appearing
-to advantage in comparison with Sheldon, cannot be defended from a
-charge of intolerance, for a letter exists, in which, after alluding to
-Conventicles at Bury and Ipswich, he expresses His Majesty’s pleasure,
-that effectual care should be taken for the suppression of unlawful
-assemblies.<a id="FNanchor_214" href="#Footnote_214" class="fnanchor">[214]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p>The altered and improved tone of Sancroft on the subject of
-Nonconformity just after the trial of the seven will be noticed in its
-proper place;<a id="FNanchor_215" href="#Footnote_215" class="fnanchor">[215]</a> but certainly the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[146]</span> language which the seven now
-employed looked too much as if introduced to serve a purpose. Their
-expressed objection to the Royal proceedings as unconstitutional, and
-as fraught with perilous consequences to the liberties of the country,
-and their implied maintenance of the authority of Parliament as the
-conservator of national freedom deserve, however, an Englishman’s
-gratitude; although here again, it is provoking to remember, that
-the current teaching of the High Church school, to which some of the
-prelates belonged, had been such as to exalt the power of Kings far
-above the power of Parliaments. The ostensible ground of defence, that
-the Declaration and the order were unconstitutional, gave the Bishops
-the appearance of being confessors in the cause of civil liberty,
-but this is a view of their character entirely contradicted by their
-previous career. The real ground of their conduct, no doubt, is to be
-discovered in their alarm at the King’s patronage of Roman Catholicism,
-in their persuasion that the Indulgence, which they were commanded to
-publish, had been contrived for that end, and in their conviction, that
-by active compliance with the Royal mandate at this crisis, they would
-be betraying the Church of England, and degrading their own character.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SEVEN BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>The seven Bishops just described or mentioned, signed the petition. On
-the evening of the day on which they performed that momentous act, six
-of them crossed the water, to seek an interview with the King,&mdash;the
-Archbishop not accompanying them, because he had been forbidden access
-to Court. The prelates were admitted after ten o’clock to the Royal
-bedchamber, and then into the King’s closet,<a id="FNanchor_216" href="#Footnote_216" class="fnanchor">[216]</a> where the Bishop of
-St. Asaph, dropping on his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[147]</span> knees, presented the petition. The King
-exclaimed, “This is my Lord of Canterbury’s own hand.” “Yes, Sir,” said
-the Bishops, “it is his own hand.” “What,” cried His Majesty, in a
-furious tone, “the Church of England against my dispensing power? The
-Church of England! They that always preached it.” The prelates told him
-they never preached any such thing, but only obedience and suffering
-when they could not obey.<a id="FNanchor_217" href="#Footnote_217" class="fnanchor">[217]</a> “This,” added James, as he folded up the
-paper, “is a great surprise to me; here are strange words&mdash;I did not
-expect this from you. This is a standard of rebellion.” The Bishops
-rejoined&mdash;“That they had adventured their lives for His Majesty, and
-would lose the last drop of their blood rather than lift up a finger
-against him.” The King repeated, “I tell you this is a standard of
-rebellion; I never saw such an address.” The Bishop of Bristol burst
-into an exclamation, “Rebellion, Sir! I beseech your Majesty, do not
-say so hard a thing of us. For God’s sake do not believe we are, or
-can be guilty of a rebellion. It is impossible that I, or any of my
-family should be so. Your Majesty cannot but remember that you sent me
-down into Cornwall to quell Monmouth’s rebellion, and I am as ready to
-do what I can to quell another, if there were occasion.” The Bishop
-of Chichester backed his Episcopal brother by saying, “Sir, we have
-quelled one rebellion, and will not raise another;” and the rest, after
-professing their loyalty, continued their objections. James, insisting
-upon the rebellious tendency of the document demanded that he should
-be obeyed, and have the Declaration published; but, he said, if he
-altered his mind he would let them know.<a id="FNanchor_218" href="#Footnote_218" class="fnanchor">[218]</a> The conversation ended,
-and they retired. Now the Archbishop had written the petition himself,
-that he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[148]</span> might prevent its being published, but in some way a copy
-of it got abroad, and being fast multiplied, the paper the very same
-evening in which it reached the hands of His Majesty reached also the
-hands of hundreds, and perhaps thousands of the people. Afterwards it
-received the signatures of the Bishops of London, Norwich, Gloucester,
-Salisbury, Winchester, and Exeter, who were not present at the earlier
-meetings.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p>The Declaration was read at Whitehall “by one of the choir, who used
-to read the chapters.”<a id="FNanchor_219" href="#Footnote_219" class="fnanchor">[219]</a> It was read in Westminster Abbey; but
-there arose so great a noise, that nobody could hear it, and at the
-end of the publication none remained present, except the prebends, the
-choristers, and the Westminster scholars. The number of instances in
-which it was published in London is reckoned by Burnet and Kennet at
-seven, and by Clarendon at four.<a id="FNanchor_220" href="#Footnote_220" class="fnanchor">[220]</a> In dioceses, where the Bishops
-ordered the clergy to comply, the command met with only limited
-obedience; within the diocese of Norwich, not more than three or four
-parishes, out of about twelve hundred, heard a single word of the
-document; and a story is told of an incumbent, who informed his people,
-that he had been enjoined to read, but they were not compelled to
-hear, and, therefore, he suggested that they should retire, whilst he
-repeated the proclamation within empty walls.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SEVEN BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>The following singular letter by Barlow, the Bishop of Lincoln,
-indicates at once the difficulty felt by his clergy, and his own
-lukewarmness in the matter. Addressing a correspondent, he says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Sir,&mdash;I received yours, and all that I have time to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[149]</span> say (the
-messenger which brought it making so little stay here) is only this.
-By His Majesty’s command, I was required to send that Declaration to
-all churches in my diocese, in obedience whereto I sent them. Now the
-same authority which requires me to send them, requires you to read
-them. But whether you should, or should not read them, is a question
-of that difficulty, in the circumstances we now are, that you can’t
-expect that I should so hastily answer it, especially in writing. The
-two last Sundays, the clergy in London were to read it, but, as I am
-informed, they generally refused. For myself I shall neither persuade
-nor dissuade you, but leave it to your prudence and conscience,
-whether you will, or will not read it; only this I shall advise, that,
-after serious consideration, you find that you cannot read it, but
-<i>reluctante vel dubitante conscientiâ</i>, in that case, to read it
-will be your sin, and you to blame for doing it. I shall only add, that
-God Almighty would be so graciously pleased to bless and direct you so,
-that you may do nothing in this case, which may be justly displeasing
-to God, or the King, is the prayer of your loving friend, and brother,</p>
-
-<p>
-<span class="smcap">Thos. Lincoln</span>.”<a id="FNanchor_221" href="#Footnote_221" class="fnanchor">[221]</a>
-</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p class="p2">After a short delay, the King resolved to prosecute the Bishops
-for a misdemeanour. Having received a summons to appear before the
-Privy Council, they spent the interval in conference, being greatly
-cheered by expressions of sympathy from many friends of the highest
-distinction. After an audience with the King on the 8th of June, the
-Lord Chancellor announced the Royal pleasure to proceed against the
-accused according to law; and so soon as the warrants for commitment
-had been issued, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[150]</span> intelligence spread through London like
-wildfire,&mdash;people flocking in multitudes to see these venerable persons
-led out of court under the custody of a guard. Popular love of liberty,
-and zeal for religion, blazed up at once, and the spectators, including
-soldiers, fell down on their knees, to implore Episcopal benedictions.
-With these benedictions the Bishops united exhortations, that the
-people would fear God, and honour the King, and keep the peace; and no
-sooner had the prisoners entered within the precincts of the Tower,
-than they repaired to the chapel, to return thanks for that which the
-Almighty had counted them worthy to endure.<a id="FNanchor_222" href="#Footnote_222" class="fnanchor">[222]</a> The next day numbers
-flocked to offer them service, and to express their thanks for such
-heroic behaviour, and amongst other visitors came ten Nonconformist
-ministers&mdash;a circumstance which so offended the King, that he summoned
-four of them to his presence, when they respectfully answered, that
-they could not help adhering to the Right Reverend prisoners, as men
-who were constant to the Protestant faith. Even the soldiers who kept
-guard expressed sympathy, in their own rude way, toasting the Bishops
-with brimming cups; and when rebuked for this by their captain, they
-said, they were doing it at that instant, and would continue to do so,
-until the Bishops were set free.<a id="FNanchor_223" href="#Footnote_223" class="fnanchor">[223]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[151]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SEVEN BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>The Nonconformists had reason to expect that they would be required to
-read the Declaration in their meeting-houses; but one of their number,
-Mr. Morice, used all the means in his power to prevent the issue of
-such an order, and in this he succeeded. The Nonconformists, however,
-were pressed to get up congratulatory addresses: which they declined to
-do, for reasons which they stated in the following awkward terms:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“None,” said they, “will offer it of condition, or quality, and so we
-shall be greatly diminished and lessened, by offering it, by persons of
-a little figure or that are not known to be ours.</p>
-
-<p>“Our enemies and friends will greatly dislike it and heinously censure
-us for it.</p>
-
-<p>“We shall become suspected, and so lose our interest in our great
-friends, both as to their private and public capacity.</p>
-
-<p>“The inconsideration of those that occasion the debate of an address
-is the only reason that can be suggested for it, as a deference to the
-King.</p>
-
-<p>“The report, or common talk of it, will be to our great advantage if we
-do it not, and will greatly strengthen our influence both upon enemies
-and friends, and in truth our influence is now full as great upon our
-enemies, as it used to be upon our friends.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p>“Lastly, we are absolutely [and indeed so they seem to be] for
-liberty by a law, but we are utterly against letting Papists into the
-Government, and of this the King has often had and should have a clear
-understanding and be fully possessed with it, that he may not have any
-colour afterwards to say we deceived.”<a id="FNanchor_224" href="#Footnote_224" class="fnanchor">[224]</a></p>
-
-<p>Some few towns and corporations presented addresses<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[152]</span> of thanks to the
-King for the Declaration, and amongst them one from the “Old Dissenting
-officers and soldiers of the County of Lincoln;”<a id="FNanchor_225" href="#Footnote_225" class="fnanchor">[225]</a> but the most
-numerous, as well as the most respectable of the Nonconformists,
-objected to such a course, and Baxter publicly in his pulpit
-extolled the Bishops. “The whole Church,” says the Papal Nuncio in
-his correspondence, “espouses the cause of the Bishops. There is no
-reasonable expectation of a division among the Anglicans, and our hopes
-from the Nonconformists are vanished.”<a id="FNanchor_226" href="#Footnote_226" class="fnanchor">[226]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SEVEN BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>On the 15th of June, Sancroft and his brethren were brought from the
-Tower to the Court of King’s Bench; as their barge floated along the
-Thames, they were greeted with applauses and with prayers, and on their
-reaching Westminster, noblemen and gentlemen accompanied them into
-Court. Of the immense concourse of people who received them on the bank
-of the river and followed them to the bar, the greater part fell upon
-their knees, wishing them happiness and asking their blessing; and as
-the Archbishop laid his hands on the heads of those that were nearest,
-telling them to be firm in their faith, the people cried out that all
-should kneel, and tears were seen to flow from the eyes of many.<a id="FNanchor_227" href="#Footnote_227" class="fnanchor">[227]</a>
-Westminster Hall has raised its huge form many a time, like an old rock
-out of the bosom of the sea, as crowds of excited people have gathered
-under its shadow: on this occasion the ocean of heads was more immense
-than ever, whilst surges of indignant and sympathetic feeling rose and
-rolled and broke every moment. All London seemed to be on the spot,
-and the spirit of the nation seemed to be there concentrated. Upon
-the prelates being desired to plead, the Archbishop<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[153]</span> was permitted to
-read a short paper, claiming sufficient time for preparing an answer;
-but the plea was rejected as a device for delay. The accused pleaded
-“Not guilty,” in the usual form, and the trial was fixed for that
-day fortnight. When the prisoners were admitted to bail on their own
-recognizance, the people took the circumstance as a triumph, and set no
-bounds to their boisterous joy. Huzzas rent the air, the Abbey bells
-rung, and people thronged the way the Bishops went, lighting bonfires,
-maltreating Roman Catholics, and execrating the other prelates who
-yielded to the Royal will.</p>
-
-<p>On the 29th of June the trial took place in Westminster Hall. One of
-the most worthless men that ever sat on the bench, Lord Chief Justice
-Wright, the <i>protégé</i> of the infamous Jeffreys, presided, and
-with him were associated three puisne Judges&mdash;Holloway, Powell, and
-Allybone, a Roman Catholic. Strangely enough, Sawyer and Finch,
-two lawyers who had been State prosecutors under Charles II., and
-had conducted the proceedings against Lord William Russell, now
-appeared on the side of the prosecuted; whilst Williams, a Whig,
-now Solicitor-General, with Powys, the Attorney-General, conducted
-the prosecution. This confusion of parties led to attacks and
-recriminations which afforded such amusement to bystanders and so
-provoked their raillery, that the Court with difficulty suppressed
-demonstrations of censure or applause. Numerous noblemen sat by the
-Judges, scrutinizing their acts, and the Chief Justice looked, we are
-told, as “if all the peers present had halters in their pockets.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p>The information having been read, the first thing was to prove the
-handwriting of the Bishops, a point not to be established without
-considerable difficulty. The Counsel for the defence raised the
-question,&mdash;Had the paper been signed in the County of Middlesex,
-where the venue had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[154]</span> been laid? This could not be proved, inasmuch as
-Sancroft, during the whole business, had remained in his Palace at
-Lambeth. The case, so far, legally broke down, when the Crown lawyers
-changed their ground, contending, that the libel, if not written,
-had been published in Middlesex, by the delivery of it into the
-King’s hands,&mdash;a circumstance proved by the testimony of Sunderland,
-Lord President of the Council. It now remained for the advocates of
-the Bishops to defend the document. This they proceeded to do, by
-representing that, whereas their right reverend clients stood accused
-of having published a “false, malicious, and seditious libel” against
-the King, nothing could be further from deserving such epithets than
-the paper which they had presented, it being couched in the most
-respectful terms, and presented in the most private manner. It merely
-asked relief from compliance with a demand which distressed their
-consciences. Every subject had the right of petition, and Bishops ought
-not to be deprived of this common privilege, they being principally
-charged with the care and execution of laws concerning the Church’s
-welfare; but the main stress of the defence rested on the illegality of
-dispensing with penal laws.<a id="FNanchor_228" href="#Footnote_228" class="fnanchor">[228]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SEVEN BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>The managers of the prosecution urged, that the King was entitled to
-the prerogative which he claimed; that what took place in the years
-1662 and 1672 did not amount to any authoritative decision on the
-subject, but merely expressed the opinion of Parliament, to which
-His Majesty, under the circumstances, gave way, without a permanent
-surrender of his regal power. The libel of the Bishops was malicious
-and full of sedition, casting the greatest reflection on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[155]</span>
-Government. The tendency of their conduct was to inflame the public
-mind, and, though they had the right of petition, it could be no excuse
-for publishing a reproachful and scandalous attack upon the King’s
-Majesty. The Chief Justice, in summing up, pronounced the petition
-to be libellous; Justice Allybone took the same view; but the other
-two, Holloway and Powell, dissented from such a judgment,&mdash;an act of
-independence which cost them their seats on the Bench as soon as the
-term was over.<a id="FNanchor_229" href="#Footnote_229" class="fnanchor">[229]</a> Evening had come, when the exhausted Jury retired
-to consider their verdict. They remained closeted all night without
-fire or candle, but basins of water and towels were furnished for their
-use. At about three o’clock in the morning, so it is reported, they
-were overheard in vehement debate with one another; and, at six, they
-sent word they had come to a conclusion, upon which, the prisoners
-being brought into Court, the foreman pronounced the verdict&mdash;“<i>Not
-Guilty</i>.” The effect was electric, the joy of the multitude
-burst out in a triumphant shout; “one would have thought,” said the
-Earl of Clarendon, who was present, “the Hall had cracked.” Now, as
-before, the people on their knees made a lane from the King’s Bench
-to beg a blessing as the Bishops passed; the crowd shook hands with
-the Jurymen, crying, “God bless you, and prosper your families, you
-have saved us all to-day;” noblemen flung money out of their coach
-windows for the mob to drink the health of the King, the Bishops,
-and the Jury; churches were crowded with people to pour forth their
-gratitude to God, for the delivery of His servants; and the prelates
-themselves, immediately after their acquittal, went to Whitehall<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[156]</span>
-Chapel, and thence proceeded to their respective homes, followed by
-the acclamations of delighted multitudes. An illumination succeeded in
-the evening, seven candles,&mdash;the middle one longer than the others,
-representing the Primate,&mdash;gleamed in thousands of windows; bells
-rang, bonfires blazed, rockets and squibs burst in all directions,
-the populace burnt an effigy of the Pope dressed in pontificals, as
-he appears in his chair at St. Peter’s, and Protestant demonstrations
-of various kinds continued all that night, until the church bells on
-Sunday morning called the people to worship and to rest. The joy of
-London repeated itself in the provinces, and vainly did the authorities
-forbid the outburst of gladness which rolled from shore to shore.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1688.</div>
-
-<p>James was at Hounslow, reviewing the troops, when, on hearing a great
-noise, he asked what was the matter: “Nothing but the soldiers shouting
-for the acquittal of the Bishops.” “Call you that nothing,” he might
-well ask, and then insanely added, “but so much the worse for them.” It
-certainly proved so much the worse for him.</p>
-
-<p>The popularity of the seven Bishops in 1688, appears in striking
-contrast with the unpopularity of the thirteen Bishops in 1642. There
-had been a number of circumstances, operating from the period of
-the Restoration, which contributed to the favourable impression now
-produced. The reaction against the rigours of Puritan rule, and the
-reverence, as well as the resentments kindled by clerical sufferings,
-the effect of the abolition of the Star Chamber and of the High
-Commission Court, the cessation of that troublesome zeal for ritualism,
-which had so harassed the country in the days of Laud, and the firm
-hold which the Episcopal Church had taken on the majority of the
-nation&mdash;these circumstances, and others, probably<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[157]</span> prepared for that
-gush of enthusiasm which greeted the Bishops on the day of their trial.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE SEVEN BISHOPS.</div>
-
-<p>Also, a change had come over the clergy. In 1677, they supported
-absolutism; then their opposition was chiefly directed against
-Protestant Nonconformity, and their resistance of the encroachments
-of Popery seemed lukewarm: but, before 1688, they opened their
-eyes to the intolerance of Romanism, and to the dark omens of its
-establishment in England. Alarmed at the impending evil, they warmly
-engaged in controversy, and many of them, seeing that the united
-strength of all Protestants had become needful to meet the emergency,
-proceeded to alter their conduct towards their long-despised Dissenting
-brethren. Convinced at last of the mischiefs connected with arbitrary
-rule, whatever subtle theories some might have respecting passive
-obedience and non-resistance, they now opposed, under the pressure of
-circumstances, the despotic policy of the Crown. Some saw the folly of
-their former course in exalting the Royal prerogative, with the idea of
-thereby defending the Church; now they discovered the unconstitutional
-power which they had conceded to the Sovereign to be an instrument
-capable of inflicting mischief on themselves. The ghost which they had
-raised, they now sought to lay; the monster which they had created or
-nourished, they now strove to crush. Ten years had produced a change in
-the clergy; and the change in the clergy had made them popular with the
-nation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1689.</div>
-
-<p>One great cause of the popularity of the Bishops may be found in the
-men themselves, in their unmistakeable honesty of purpose, in their
-zeal for Constitutional Government, in their professions of liberality
-towards other Protestant denominations, and certainly not a little,
-in their social virtues and their Christian piety.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[158]</span> Their advocacy
-of the Reformed faith carried all its disciples along with them,
-their readiness to suffer for the Established religion inspired with
-affection the bosom of Churchmen, and their overtures of reconciliation
-touched the hearts of Nonconformists. The release of the Bishops
-proved a proud day for the Church of England, and the man must be of a
-cynical temper and of narrow sympathies, who cannot enter warmly into
-the triumphs of that occasion. Notwithstanding, historical justice
-requires, and the utmost generosity does not forbid us to remember the
-treatment which Nonconformists for twenty-seven years had endured at
-the hands of the English priesthood, through their steady refusal the
-whole of that time, to grant or to encourage either comprehension or
-liberty. Nor can we forget the prevalence of thorough irreligion, of
-frivolous scepticism, of downright immorality, and of disgusting vice,
-which blackened the last two Stuart reigns, and which the Church did
-so little to overcome or to diminish. Her laxity and time-serving, her
-want of missionary earnestness and love, her neglect of faithful and
-pointed preaching, and of pastoral diligence, her indifference to the
-education and well-being of the lower classes, at the time of which we
-treat, are in conspicuous contrast to her activity in these respects
-at the present day. There are few of her most devoted sons who would
-think of vindicating her from the reproaches now expressed, however
-they may value her formularies, rejoice in her Constitution, and join
-in celebrating the ovation of her seven Bishops.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[159]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER X.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Up to this point, we have been engaged in watching the course of
-affairs within the bounds of the Establishment, and in pointing out its
-relations to Nonconformity; it remains for us to examine the growth of
-Nonconformity itself, in the principal varieties of its manifestation.</p>
-
-<p>Presbyterianism underwent a change. The ejected ministers, who had
-adopted that system, continued to cleave to the idea of an Established
-Church, and it was long before they gave up all hopes of some
-comprehensive scheme, which, whilst retaining a modified Episcopacy,
-should provide for the removal of their own well-known scruples. They
-manifested an indisposition to enter upon any proceedings which could
-be termed denominational; yet, preaching the Gospel appeared to them an
-employment which they ought on no account to relinquish, for they felt
-that they had received a Divine commission, and that it would be at
-their peril to draw back from its fulfilment. The personal satisfaction
-also which they experienced in the discharge of their vocation, and
-the eagerness of people to listen to their voices, deepened the
-consciousness of a necessity laid upon them. But, at first, they only
-preached in their own houses, in the hall of a friend’s mansion, in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[160]</span>
-some sequestered forest nook, or in the retirement of a mountain dell.
-Like the seventy disciples, like the brethren scattered abroad upon the
-persecution of Stephen, like the witnesses of the Middle Ages, like
-Wycliffe’s friars, like the early Methodists, they simply attempted
-to kindle and keep alight the flame of spiritual piety. Two years
-after the Act of Uniformity had been passed, although some ministers
-then “were vehement for an entire separation” from the Establishment,
-others, including Baxter, Bates, and Heywood, advocated attendance
-at the parish church&mdash;in this respect acting in the same manner as
-John Wesley did, at least for some time after the institution of
-Methodism. Yet coming events cast their shadows before them. At the
-end of 1666, Oliver Heywood baptized a child at Halifax, a significant
-incident; and, in 1672, the same patriarch of the “old Dissent” “kept
-a solemn day at Bramhope,” when old Mr. Holdsworth “administered
-the Supper.”<a id="FNanchor_230" href="#Footnote_230" class="fnanchor">[230]</a> By degrees, and almost unconsciously, the worthy
-Heywood&mdash;and he may be taken as the specimen of a class&mdash;made advances
-towards a determined position outside the enclosure fenced in by law.
-Celebrating the Lord’s Supper, besides administering Baptism, could
-not be consistently repeated many times, without involving other acts,
-inevitably preparing for the institution of distinctive and separate
-Churches. Admission to the Lord’s table rendered some religious
-oversight of the communicants necessary, and practically, what
-amounted to a distinct Christian society, would begin to exist before
-such an existence became clearly recognized even by those engaged in
-its creation. When, in the year 1672, the Declaration of Indulgence
-afforded liberty of action,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[161]</span> cautious and hesitating men, who had
-felt their way, availed themselves of the Royal concession to pursue,
-practically, the legitimate consequences of their prior proceedings.
-A minister gathered together such godly neighbours as sympathized in
-his views; and such persons, owning him as their rightful pastor,
-entered into covenant&mdash;as it was called&mdash;“to believe and practise
-what truths and duties,” he should make manifest to them, “to be the
-mind of God.”<a id="FNanchor_231" href="#Footnote_231" class="fnanchor">[231]</a> According to the Presbyterian theory, the minister
-in the order of nature, and generally in the order of time, takes
-precedence of the Church; he does not spring from the Church, but the
-Church has its root and beginning in him; nor does the origin of his
-ministerial power rest in the people, his vocation is bestowed upon
-him directly from above; and this idea of the origin and relation of
-the Christian ministry we may see worked out in the history of English
-Presbyterianism.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>To build upon the platforms of the Westminster Assembly and the Long
-Parliament, had become impossible. It was a hopeless thing to think
-of forming classes, of meeting in synods, and of exercising parish
-discipline, such as had been the ideal of twenty or thirty years
-before&mdash;of instituting schools of virtue and religion in towns and
-villages, where the pastor should have the rod of the magistrate to
-enforce the belief of truth, and the practice of goodness. Perhaps,
-choice without necessity, through what had been taught by experience
-after the Restoration, would have led some Presbyterian pastors
-to abandon certain portions of their earlier cherished schemes of
-parochial order and discipline.</p>
-
-<p>No deacons, having authority together with the minister,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[162]</span> existed in
-Presbyterian Churches, and the control of affairs rested chiefly, if
-not entirely, with one presiding person, except where there might
-be a plurality of pastors. The question of individual admission to
-fellowship was decided by the wisdom and the care of the presbyter
-or bishop, not by the deliberation or vote of the Church; and the
-decision and administration of discipline would naturally fall into
-the same hands as those which had opened the door of entrance to the
-enjoyment of ecclesiastical privileges. One of the last things which
-the Presbyterians accomplished, in reference to their separate and
-permanent existence as a religious body, appears, indeed, one of the
-first things essential to that existence. The ordination of others to
-succeed in the ministry must be reckoned a primary measure, requisite
-for the existence of Nonconformist Churches; yet it seems not to have
-been until the year 1672, that any Presbyterian orders were conferred
-after the Restoration. The first solemn act of this description, with
-which I am acquainted, was performed in Manchester, at a house in
-Deans’-gate, by five presbyters; and it is worthy of notice that those
-so ordained were not novitiates, but persons who had been engaged for
-several years in preaching the Gospel.<a id="FNanchor_232" href="#Footnote_232" class="fnanchor">[232]</a> Subsequently, several
-instances of ordination occur, but the ceremony continued, up to the
-time of the Revolution, to be observed in private. As in the days of
-the Commonwealth, so still, a careful examination of the candidates
-preceded the service: Latin themes, and theological debates in the
-same language were required, and after a confession of faith had been
-made by the young minister, there followed the imposition of hands,
-and a solemn ordination-prayer, the right hand of fellowship being
-afterwards<span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[163]</span> given to him in token of his admission to the ministerial
-brotherhood.<a id="FNanchor_233" href="#Footnote_233" class="fnanchor">[233]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>The form of Church government, approved at Westminster, 1645,
-had declared that “it is agreeable to the Word of God, and very
-expedient, that such as are to be ordained ministers, be designed
-to some particular Church, or other ministerial charge;”<a id="FNanchor_234" href="#Footnote_234" class="fnanchor">[234]</a> but
-from this rule the Presbyterians deviated after the Restoration,
-perhaps not so much from any change in judgment, as from a change in
-circumstances&mdash;scattered flocks and unsettled times rendering a general
-provision for perpetuating the ministry alone convenient or practicable.</p>
-
-<p>In these ways innovations arose upon the old Presbyterian system, but
-a more important change occurred in the gradual leavening of the whole
-body with a more tolerant spirit. Presbyterians had persecuted “the
-sects,” or had connived at their persecution, but now, often having
-to share with them in the endurance of sorrow, they came to regard
-them with brotherly kindness and charity. The principle of religious
-liberty had once filled them with alarm, their own freedom for a long
-while could not satisfy their wishes, but they now came to see, that
-their return to the Establishment being precluded by insurmountable
-barriers, they must make common cause with those who were in a like
-position with themselves, and the liberty which they had learned to
-value, they must also learn to concede. The discipline of circumstances
-has played no small part in the education of mankind. Great principles
-have, indeed, on rare occasions, flashed on minds of the highest
-order with a kind of inspiration; but, in the cases of most men,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[164]</span> the
-knowledge of truths lying below the surface, has but slowly arisen, and
-gradually dawned. Now and then some momentous doctrine has been struck
-out as by fire&mdash;resembling the <i>fusile</i> process, when a bronze
-statue is cast, and at once it comes from the mould complete&mdash;but
-commonly the acquisition of important principles may be compared to the
-hewing of marble, and the carving of oak, by a patient, laborious, and
-oft-repeated application of the chisel.</p>
-
-<p>The history of Congregationalism after the Restoration is a history of
-development. Between Presbyterianism and an Establishment there are
-strong affinities; but there are insuperable difficulties connected
-with the maintenance of Congregational order in a parish, and the only
-real kind of Congregational Church, formed by any incumbent under the
-Commonwealth, had to be practically severed from the legal position
-which he held as a parochial clergyman. When, therefore, upon the fall
-of Cromwell’s Broad Church, the bark of Congregationalism was cut
-completely adrift from its State moorings, it was, so far as intervals
-of peace would allow, left to make its way, under God’s blessing, by
-the efforts of the rowers whom it carried on board.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>Independents and Baptists are included under the general denomination
-of Congregationalists. Independents retired into obscurity for a
-while after the Restoration. The doors of buildings where they had
-been wont to assemble were nailed up; the pastors were driven out;
-flocks were scattered; the administration of ordinances could not take
-place; and meetings could not be held, as the still existing records
-of communities, which had been prosperous under the Commonwealth,
-bear ample witness. There is reason to believe that the Independents<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[165]</span>
-had diminished in number. The Court influence in their favour, which
-they enjoyed so long as the Protector, Oliver, lived, would die when
-he died; and those who had joined their company, so long as the sun
-shone on their side of the street, and who had walked with them in
-silver slippers, would forsake their old companions, and go another way
-when the path was overshadowed, and the silver slippers were changed
-for spiked sandals. The political antecedents of the Independents as
-a party, their allegiance to Oliver Cromwell, the sympathy of many
-of them in Republican ideas, and their supposed complicity in the
-execution of Charles I., combined to make them exceedingly unpopular
-with the Royalists, whilst their democratic notions of Church
-government appeared most offensive to Episcopalians; consequently, to
-maintain a position under so much odium, and to withstand the steady
-fire of persecution, required a degree of faith, and a measure of
-decision, not very common in this world, where the love of ease and the
-sacrifice of principle too frequently set the fashion.</p>
-
-<p>The principles of Congregationalism, however, proved their vitality,
-and although assemblies of Church-members were unfrequent, or were
-altogether discontinued for a while, the identity of Churches was
-preserved, and whenever an opportunity presented itself, the scattered
-ones gladly re-united in the pleasant fellowship after which they
-yearned.</p>
-
-<p>Congregational principles had received a definite expression in the
-Savoy Declaration. The Independents had petitioned Oliver Cromwell
-for permission to hold a synod, which he had reluctantly conceded.
-After his death, they assembled on the 29th of September, and having
-conferred together, reached certain theological and ecclesiastical
-conclusions, which they published to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[166]</span> the world.<a id="FNanchor_235" href="#Footnote_235" class="fnanchor">[235]</a> To their
-confession, which is substantially the same as the Westminster
-Confession of Faith, they added a clear outline of ecclesiastical
-order; and, whereas the <i>covenants</i> or mutual agreements into
-which Congregationalists had entered at the formation of their
-Churches, in the time of the Civil Wars, generally contained some
-references to further light breaking in upon them from God’s Word, we
-discover, in the Savoy Declaration, no language whatever of that kind,
-and it seems to be assumed in the document that Congregationalism, as
-to the knowledge of its principles, had by that period attained to
-something like completeness.</p>
-
-<p>The following were fundamental propositions.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>A particular Church consists of officers and members: the Lord Christ
-having given to His called ones&mdash;united in Church order&mdash;liberty and
-power to choose persons fitted by the Holy Ghost to be over them in
-the Lord. The officers appointed by Christ to be chosen, and set apart
-by the Church, are pastors, teachers, elders, and deacons. The way
-appointed by Christ for the calling of any person unto the office of
-pastor, teacher, or elder, in a Church, is that he be chosen thereunto
-by the common suffrage of the Church itself, and solemnly set apart
-by fasting and prayer, with the imposition of hands of the eldership
-of that Church, if there be any before constituted therein; and of
-a deacon, that he be chosen by the like suffrage, and set apart by
-prayer, and the like imposition of hands; and those who are so chosen,
-though not set apart after that manner, are rightly constituted
-ministers of Jesus. The work of preaching is not so peculiarly confined
-to pastors and teachers, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[167]</span> that others also, gifted and fitted by
-the Holy Ghost, and approved by the people, may publicly, ordinarily,
-and constantly perform it. Ordination alone, without election or
-consent of the Church, doth not constitute any person a Church officer.
-A Church furnished with officers, according to the mind of Christ, hath
-full power to administer all His ordinances; and where there is want of
-any one or more officers, those that are in the Church may administer
-all the ordinances proper to those officers whom they do not possess;
-but where there are no teaching-officers at all, none may administer
-the seals, nor can the Church authorize any so to do. Whereas the Lord
-Jesus Christ hath appointed and instituted, as a means of edification,
-that those who walk not according to the rules and laws appointed by
-Him be censured in His name and authority: every Church hath power in
-itself to exercise and execute all those censures appointed by Him.
-The censures appointed by Christ are admonition and excommunication;
-and whereas some offences may be known only to some, those to whom
-they are so known must first admonish the offender in private; in
-public offences, and in case of non-amendment upon private admonition,
-the offence being related to the Church, the offender is to be duly
-admonished, in the name of Christ, by the whole Church through the
-elders, and if this censure prevail not for his repentance, then he is
-to be cast out by excommunication, with the consent of the members.</p>
-
-<p>These particulars respecting a Declaration of Faith but little known,
-indicate the opinions entertained by the Independents, not only at the
-time of the Restoration, but, with some modification, afterwards; and
-here it may be added that if, in the theory of Presbyterianism, the
-minister, as to the order of existence, precedes the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[168]</span> Church, in the
-theory of Congregationalism, the Church, in that same order, precedes
-the minister; and in this significant fact may be found a key to some
-important differences between the two systems.</p>
-
-<p>Besides those rules, which had reference to the internal order of
-the Churches, there were these three, relative to their dimensions,
-their co-operation, and the catholicity of their fellowship. For the
-avoiding of differences, for the greater solemnity in the celebration
-of ordinances, and for the larger usefulness of the gifts and graces
-of the Holy Ghost, saints, living within such distances as that they
-can conveniently assemble for Divine worship, ought rather to join in
-one Church for their mutual strengthening and edification than to set
-up many distinct societies. In cases of difficulties or differences,
-it is according to the mind of Christ, that many Churches holding
-communion together do by their managers meet in a synod or council, to
-consider and give advice; howbeit, these synods are not intrusted with
-any Church power, properly so called, or with any jurisdiction over the
-Churches. Such reforming Churches as consist of persons sound in the
-faith, and of conversation becoming the Gospel, ought not to refuse
-the communion of each other, so far as may consist with their own
-principles respectively, though they walk not in all things according
-to the same rules of Church order.<a id="FNanchor_236" href="#Footnote_236" class="fnanchor">[236]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>It will be seen upon comparing the account of Independency with the
-account just given of Presbyterianism, that the Independents differed
-from their brethren (1) in their mode of admitting members,&mdash;for
-the Presbyterians left that responsibility entirely in the hands of
-the minister, and the Independents placed it entirely in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[169]</span> hands
-of the Church; (2) in their method of exercising discipline,&mdash;for,
-in the one case, such exercise followed the minister’s authority,
-and, in the other case, it followed the popular voice;<a id="FNanchor_237" href="#Footnote_237" class="fnanchor">[237]</a> (3) in
-the relation of pastor and people,&mdash;for Presbyterians considered
-the first to be placed over the second by the presbyters engaged in
-ordination, but the Independents looked upon the second as validly
-appointing the first to office, the essence of the call, according to
-their judgments, consisting in the election of the Church; and (4)
-in the manner of ordination,&mdash;fasting, and prayer, and imposition of
-hands were recognized by Presbyterians as parts of the one rite, but
-though fasting and prayer were generally observed in the ordination
-of Independent ministers, the imposition of hands was omitted in some
-cases.</p>
-
-<p>The conclusions at the Savoy were not ecclesiastical canons, but simply
-united opinions. They had no binding force. They aspired to no higher
-character than that of counsel and advice. How far they were studied,
-or how frequently they guided the proceedings of Congregationalists,
-I cannot say, but they may be considered as embodying the ideas of
-Congregationalism, which were most common amongst the early advocates
-of the system. The principle laid down with regard to the extent
-of a Church is in conformity with the practice adopted under the
-Commonwealth, when the multiplication of distinct societies was avoided
-as much as possible, and, except<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[170]</span> when the number of worshippers
-demanded a different course, it was the rule not to have more than
-one Congregational community in one place; and it would seem that the
-multiplication of small assemblies, which afterwards became frequent,
-resulted from the pressure of circumstances&mdash;persecution, or inability
-to obtain extensive accommodation rendering division absolutely
-necessary. Conferences in the form, but without the authority, of
-synods were held by Congregationalists under the Protectorate, and
-the cessation of them afterwards, except upon a small scale, may be
-easily accounted for, without supposing the occurrence of any change
-of opinion upon the subject. Willingness to receive Presbyterians into
-communion, and a disposition to unite with Presbyterian fellowships,
-distinctly appear in the history of those times. It is recorded,
-respecting Heywood’s Church, in the year 1672, that Independents were
-willing to acknowledge Presbyterians, and Presbyterians were willing
-to acknowledge Independents; “and a special season was appointed for
-communicating together in the Lord’s Supper. Both parties went away
-abundantly satisfied.”<a id="FNanchor_238" href="#Footnote_238" class="fnanchor">[238]</a></p>
-
-<p>Both Presbyterians and Independents adopted the practice of adult and
-of pædo-baptism by sprinkling. According to the Westminster Confession,
-“not only those that do actually profess faith in and obedience unto
-Christ, but also the infants of one or both believing parents are to
-be baptized.” John Owen remarks, as to the subjects of the rite&mdash;“The
-question is not whether all infants are to be baptized or not. For,
-according to the will of God, some are not to be baptized, even such
-whose parents are strangers from the covenant.”<a id="FNanchor_239" href="#Footnote_239" class="fnanchor">[239]</a> Baxter adopted the
-same view.<a id="FNanchor_240" href="#Footnote_240" class="fnanchor">[240]</a> So did Goodwin, but he considered that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[171]</span> the child of a
-godly person, though not in fellowship with any Church, was entitled to
-the ordinance.<a id="FNanchor_241" href="#Footnote_241" class="fnanchor">[241]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>Of the importance of a baptismal dedication of infants, Presbyterians
-and Independents held decided views. Some of the former spoke of the
-nature and advantages of the sacrament in terms which would be greatly
-modified by their successors,<a id="FNanchor_242" href="#Footnote_242" class="fnanchor">[242]</a> even as the latter confined its
-administration within narrower limits than many of the former.</p>
-
-<p>The Baptists resembled the Independents in Church polity, except as
-it regards baptism. They were specially singled out for attack by the
-High Church party, and their extraordinary sufferings have never been
-forgotten by their successors. They could not but be winnowed by the
-winds of persecution. Forty-six Baptist Churches are said to have been
-in existence in London in the year 1646. The number of them represented
-at an assembly held in 1689 is but eleven.<a id="FNanchor_243" href="#Footnote_243" class="fnanchor">[243]</a> Supposing the first of
-these statements to be exaggerated, and the second to be inadequate,
-allowing that in the former estimate some small groups of worshippers
-were counted as Churches, although not organized as such, and that
-there might be more Baptist Churches in London than were represented in
-the assembly held after the Restoration; further, taking into account
-the fact that the erection of larger places of worship, after liberty
-had been conceded, would absorb the fragmentary assemblies common when
-oppression was rife; still, the comparison even of these loose returns
-would indicate that the fact of the case is in accordance with the
-probability, and that Baptists,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[172]</span> like Independents, declined somewhat
-in numerical power.</p>
-
-<p>Baptist Churches sprung out of Independent ones, as before, so after
-the days of Cromwell. For instance, in the year 1633, a number of
-Baptists in London, who had been members of an Independent Church,
-swarmed, and settled down into a distinct Baptist community,<a id="FNanchor_244" href="#Footnote_244" class="fnanchor">[244]</a> and
-in 1667 a Baptist member of the Independent Church in Norwich withdrew
-from that society, and entered upon the task “of building another house
-for God.”<a id="FNanchor_245" href="#Footnote_245" class="fnanchor">[245]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the records of early Independency we meet with allusions to
-messengers appointed to take part in conferences between those Churches
-and others of the same denomination. A like practice existed among the
-Baptists, who seem to have gone beyond their brethren in the number and
-importance of such conferences.</p>
-
-<p>The Baptists were divided into Particular and General. The Particular
-Baptists were those who held the doctrine of particular redemption.</p>
-
-<p>Upon comparing the doctrinal part of the confession of the Particular
-Baptists, published in the years 1677 and 1689, with the doctrinal
-part of the confession of the Westminster Divines, it will be found
-to resemble it&mdash;differing in this respect from an earlier confession
-of faith, published by seven Baptist Churches in 1644 and 1646. That
-earlier confession presents a statement of doctrinal belief much
-shorter, couched in different terms, and arranged in a different
-order.<a id="FNanchor_246" href="#Footnote_246" class="fnanchor">[246]</a> The Predestinarianism<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[173]</span> expressed by the Baptists in 1677
-and 1689, is not less decided than the Predestinarianism of the
-Confession of 1644 and 1646, but in neither of these confessions can I
-find the doctrine of reprobation. The omission in the last confession,
-of the Westminster Article on that subject, is very significant.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>The Article on the <i>nature</i> of baptism in the Baptist Confession
-of 1677 differs but slightly from the Articles on the same subject
-in the Westminster Confession, and in the Savoy Declaration; but,
-of course, there is a great difference from these, in the Article
-touching the <i>subjects</i> of baptism, and the <i>mode</i> of its
-administration. The Baptist Confession says, “Those who do actually
-profess repentance towards God, faith in and obedience to our Lord
-Jesus Christ are the only proper subjects of this ordinance. The
-outward element to be used in this ordinance is water, wherein the
-party is to be baptized in the name of the Father, and of the Son,
-and of the Holy Ghost. Immersion or dipping of the person in water is
-necessary to the due administration of the ordinance.”</p>
-
-<p>The General Baptists, whose early history can be reviewed more
-conveniently when we have passed the Revolution, were those who,
-resembling their brethren in other respects, held Anti-Calvinistic
-sentiments, and preached the doctrine of general redemption. Some of
-the Churches of this denomination kept Saturday as a day of rest and
-worship, and were on that account called Seventh Day Baptists. They
-seem to have been very strict in their ecclesiastical discipline, and
-to have drawn around them very closely the bonds of fellowship. Not
-only were formal letters of dismissal from one Church to another given
-when members removed to a new residence&mdash;as was a common practice
-amongst all Congregationalists&mdash;but an instance is at hand of “an
-epistle of commendation,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[174]</span> written in a very primitive style, being
-given to a person on the point of travelling to some distant part of
-the country.</p>
-
-<p>The document is signed by Francis Bampfield, a well-known ejected
-minister,<a id="FNanchor_247" href="#Footnote_247" class="fnanchor">[247]</a>&mdash;who died in Newgate,&mdash;and also by his deacons. They
-thus jointly express their fraternal affection: “To any Church of our
-Lord Jesus Christ, to whom our brother may come, who are one with us
-in the faith of our Lord Jesus Christ, and in the order of the Gospel
-of God keeping the holy Sabbath. Our brother, having occasion to visit
-your parts, and being unacquainted with the faces of the saints in your
-parts, was desirous of a testimony from us, which we are desirous to
-give unto you, that he may be watched over, and made a partaker of the
-privileges of Christ’s house. For he is a brother, and faithful, who
-also hath been as a living member amongst us, in varieties of cases in
-which he hath been tried. Therefore receive him as you would receive
-any of us, and as we would receive you in the Lord, who commend him and
-you to the grace of God, and subscribe ourselves in behalf of the rest,
-&amp;c.”<a id="FNanchor_248" href="#Footnote_248" class="fnanchor">[248]</a></p>
-
-<p>Baptists were not only divided into Particular and General, as it
-respects doctrine; they were distinguished as Strict and Open with
-respect to communion. In the Confession of 1677 the distinction as to
-discipline is thus represented&mdash;“The known principles and the state of
-the consciences of us that have agreed in this confession is such, that
-we cannot hold Church communion with any other than baptized believers,
-and Churches constituted of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[175]</span> such; yet some other of us have a greater
-liberty, and freedom in our spirits that way.”</p>
-
-<p>Kiffin and Thomas Paul were advocates of strict communion; Jessy,
-Tombes, and Bunyan were advocates of open communion.<a id="FNanchor_249" href="#Footnote_249" class="fnanchor">[249]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>The records of the Baptist Church assembling in Broadmead, Bristol,
-furnish a complete history of its Christian fellowship. The mode
-of admission is fully described. Candidates gave an account of the
-work of God upon their souls before the whole congregation. Three
-are on one occasion mentioned as giving satisfaction, but two of the
-brethren desired further time to discourse with one Mary Skinker
-about her principles, whether she was sound in the doctrine of the
-Gospel, concerning the person and human nature of Christ our Lord; and
-time also to discourse with one Elizabeth Jordan somewhat further,
-for their satisfaction concerning the truth of the work of grace
-upon her soul. Persons, “hoped to be in the truth,” were baptized in
-the river Frome&mdash;this was done once, amidst frost and snow, and a
-sharp, piercing wind, so that a wet handkerchief was frozen round the
-neck of one of the women; although one person was sick, and another
-had tooth-ache, and a third had sprained his leg, and a fourth was
-consumptive, the Lord, it is said, “to declare His power, did, as it
-were, work a miracle, to give a precedent to others,” lest, from the
-coldness of the season, they should fear to do His will. He preserved
-them all, and not so much as one was ill; each was the better for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[176]</span>
-being baptized, and all were alive ten years afterwards to speak of the
-Lord’s goodness, and have it recorded in the Church Book. Discipline
-was rigidly maintained. Letters were written to members suspected of
-improper conduct, and the answers they returned of confession, or
-denial, or excuse, are carefully preserved. Instances of answers to
-prayer are recorded&mdash;one of a bachelor, who fell distracted, so that he
-was forced to be bound to his bed, but after days of prayer the Lord
-cast out, “as it were, three spirits, visible to be seen”&mdash;a spirit of
-uncleanness for rage and blasphemy, a spirit of horror and fear, and a
-spirit of shame and dumbness. Allusion is made to the occurrence of a
-fiery apparition on the north-west side of the City, like a boy’s kite,
-with a fiery oval head, and a long white tail. These records abound in
-stories of persecution and disturbance; but whatever may be thought
-of the superstitious tinge, so apparent in the character of these
-simple-hearted and pious people, every reader must be touched by the
-following entries:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“On the 2nd of July [1682], Lord’s Day, our pastor preached in another
-place in the Wood. Our friends took much pains in the rain, because
-many informers were ordered out to search, and we were in peace, though
-there were near twenty men and boys in search.” “On the 16th brother
-Fownes first, and brother Whinnell after, preached under a tree, it
-being very rainy.” “On the 13th [of August] our pastor preached in the
-Wood, and afterwards broke bread at Mr. Young’s in peace. But Hellier
-and the rest were busy that day, and shut up the gates, and kept watch
-at the Weir, and behind St. Philip’s in the morning, to prevent any
-going out, and in the evening to catch them coming in, and took up
-several in the evening as vagrants on the Lord’s Day, and sent some to
-Newgate, and some to Bridewell, watching till<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[177]</span> seven in the evening for
-that purpose.” “On the 20th met above Scruze Hole, in our old place,
-and heard brother Fownes preach twice in peace. Brother Terrill had
-caused workmen to make banks on the side of the hill to sit down on,
-several of them like a gallery. And there we met also on the 27th in
-peace. And both days we sang a psalm in the open wood.”<a id="FNanchor_250" href="#Footnote_250" class="fnanchor">[250]</a> No doubt
-if other Congregational Church books, Baptist and Pædo-baptist, had
-been as minute and copious in detail, and had been as safely handed
-down to us as the Broadmead Records have happily been, we should have
-found in them somewhat similar information, touching different kinds of
-Independent communities.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>The history of the Quakers, throughout the period under review, is a
-history of spiritual life, of intense suffering, of calm endurance, of
-inflexible adherence to principle, of heroic zeal, of indefatigable
-activity, and of large success, both as to the increase of numbers,
-and the moral improvement of mankind. It is also a history of organic
-ecclesiastical development. So spiritual an impulse worked out a
-graduated system of co-operation and discipline. Quakers differed
-from the Presbyterians, from the Independents, and from the Baptists
-in doctrinal opinions, and they also rejected the celebration of
-sacraments, which all the others reverentially observed; but in
-ecclesiastical government the Quakers were much less unlike the
-Presbyterians than the other two denominations. Quakers’ Societies
-were not distinct Churches, independent of each other, but they formed
-one large spiritual aggregate, the various parts being united, not
-only in sympathy and general action, but in certain definite social
-arrangements. In respect to corporate<span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[178]</span> unity, Quakers attained to a
-perfection at which the Presbyterians of the Commonwealth aimed in
-vain, and which the Presbyterians of the Restoration never attempted.
-After the first few years of struggle and suffering, Quakerism
-consolidated itself into the following shape, as described by Sewell,
-the historian of the sect:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“As to Church government, both for looking to the orderly conversation
-of the members, and for taking care of the poor, and of indigent widows
-and orphans, and also for making inquiry into marriages solemnized
-among them, they have particular meetings, either weekly, or every
-two weeks, or monthly, according to the greatness of the Churches.
-They have also quarterly meetings in every county, where matters are
-brought that cannot well be adjusted in the particular meetings. To
-these meetings come not only the ministers and elders, but also other
-members, that are known to be of sober conversation; and what is
-agreed upon there is entered into a book belonging to the meeting.
-Besides these meetings, a general annual assembly is kept at London
-in the Whitsun Week so-called, not for any superstitious observation
-the Quakers have for that more than any other time, but because that
-season of the year best suits the general accommodation. To this yearly
-meeting, which sometimes lasteth four, five, or more days, are admitted
-such as are sent from all Churches of that Society in the world, to
-give an account of the state of the particular Churches, which from
-some places is done only by writing, and from that meeting is sent a
-general epistle to all the Churches, which commonly is printed, and
-sometimes particular epistles are also sent to the respective Churches.
-By which it may be known every year in what condition the Churches
-are, and in the said epistle generally is recommended a godly life and
-conversation,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[179]</span> and due care about the education of children. If it
-happen that the poor anywhere are in want, then that is supplied by
-others who have in store, or sometimes by an extraordinary collection.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DEVELOPMENT OF NONCONFORMITY.</div>
-
-<p>He supplies the following particulars respecting another subject:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“In their method of marriage they also depart from the common way,
-for in the Old Testament they find not that the joining of a couple
-in marriage ever was the office of a priest, nor in the Gospel any
-preacher among Christians appointed thereto. Therefore it is their
-custom, that when any intend to enter into marriage, they first having
-the consent of parents or guardians, acquaint the respective men’s
-and women’s meetings of their intention, and after due inquiry, all
-things appearing clear, they in a public meeting solemnly take each
-other in marriage, with a promise of love and fidelity, and not to
-leave one another before death separates them. Of this a certificate
-is drawn, mentioning the names and distinctions of the persons thus
-joined, which, being first signed by themselves, those then that are
-present sign as witnesses. In the burying of their dead they mind
-decency, and endeavour to avoid all pomp, and the wearing of mourning
-is not approved among them, for they think that the mourning which is
-lawful may be showed sufficiently to the world by a modest and grave
-deportment.”<a id="FNanchor_251" href="#Footnote_251" class="fnanchor">[251]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[180]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XI.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">After tracing the political history of the Church, and the development
-of Nonconformity in different directions, I proceed to gather up a
-number of facts illustrative of the worship and social religious life
-of England after the Restoration.</p>
-
-<p>I. The injuries done to cathedrals during the Civil Wars were repaired,
-and such partitions as had been erected to adapt them for Nonconformist
-use were removed.</p>
-
-<p>Seth Ward, first as Dean, afterwards as Bishop of Exeter, improved the
-cathedral of that diocese. The same may be said respecting Salisbury,
-to which he was translated. That cathedral had been kept in repair
-during the Commonwealth, at whose expense no one knew, for the workmen
-engaged upon it were wont to reply to inquirers, “They who employ us
-well pay us&mdash;trouble not yourselves to inquire who they are. Whoever
-they are they do not desire to have their names known.” But Ward
-increased the beauty of the building, for he paved the cloisters and
-choir, the latter with black and white marble.<a id="FNanchor_252" href="#Footnote_252" class="fnanchor">[252]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHURCHES.</div>
-
-<p>Hacket persevered in his labours at Lichfield until the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[181]</span> sacred edifice
-reached its completion. He raised money “by bare-faced begging,” and no
-gentleman lodged or baited in the City whom he did not visit, that he
-might solicit contributions towards the object so dear to his heart.
-North, who says this, also remarks, that the Bishop adorned the choir
-so “completely and politely,” that he had never seen a “more laudable
-and well-composed structure.” He also mentions the Cathedral of York as
-“stately,” only “disgraced by a wooden roof.” Durham too is described
-by the same pen as most ancient, with the “marks of old ruin;” and of
-that, and of York Minster, the judge says that “the gentry affect to
-walk there to see and be seen.”<a id="FNanchor_253" href="#Footnote_253" class="fnanchor">[253]</a> Dr. John Barwick, who, for his
-loyalty, was first rewarded by the bestowment upon him of the Deanery
-of Durham, exerted himself vigorously during the short time that he
-held that office, in the reparation of the cathedral and the prebendal
-houses.<a id="FNanchor_254" href="#Footnote_254" class="fnanchor">[254]</a> And when removed to the Deanery of St. Paul’s he evinced
-equal zeal in promoting the restoration of that edifice. The rebuilding
-of it after the fire was a great undertaking, and called forth the
-strenuous efforts of Sancroft, who succeeded Barwick in the Deanery.
-To him, as much as to any one, posterity owes the adoption of Sir
-Christopher Wren’s design, after abortive attempts had been made to
-build anew upon the old foundations. Sancroft’s correspondence with the
-architect indicates his interest in the preparation<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[182]</span> of the plans; the
-passing of the Coal Act, by which funds were secured, was promoted by
-his exertions, and amongst the voluntary subscribers the Dean’s name
-is conspicuous.<a id="FNanchor_255" href="#Footnote_255" class="fnanchor">[255]</a> The first stone was laid in 1675, and ten years
-afterwards the edifice had so far advanced that the walls of the choir
-and side-aisles were completed, and the porticoes and pillars of the
-dome were finished.</p>
-
-<p>The style of architecture adopted in new ecclesiastical structures was
-debased Grecian; of which a specimen may be found at Northampton, in
-All Saints’ Church, with its Ionic columns supporting a balustrade, in
-the centre of which&mdash;symbolical of the worship of royalty&mdash;stands the
-statue of Charles II., who gave towards the building a large quantity
-of timber. The pencil of Sir Godfrey Kneller was employed upon pictures
-of Moses and Aaron for the decoration of the altar-piece; there, and
-in several cathedrals and large churches, remained until of late,
-hideous examples of the wooden screens and galleries of the period. In
-connection with this allusion to ecclesiastical carpentry, it is not
-impertinent to notice that there is a paper in the Record Office, dated
-February 18th, 1677, thanking Williamson for a new pulpit just erected
-at Bridekirk, “gilded with gold and silver for its better adornment,
-and all covered over with a brownish ointment.” The churchwardens ask
-for a new pulpit-cloth and cushion. Sculptured sepulchres of the same
-age, now, after a complete revolution in public taste, excite as much
-ridicule as they then excited admiration; yet long before it was said,
-“Princes’ images on their tombs do not lie, as they were wont,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[183]</span> seeming
-to pray to Heaven; but with their hands under their cheeks, as if they
-died of the tooth-ache. They are not carved with their eyes fixed upon
-the stars; but, as their minds were wholly bent upon the world, the
-self-same way they seem to turn their faces.”<a id="FNanchor_256" href="#Footnote_256" class="fnanchor">[256]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHURCHES.</div>
-
-<p>The ornaments of the church, like its architecture and its sculpture,
-expressed the taste of the day. An altar “especially adorned, the white
-marble enclosure curiously and richly carved,”&mdash;flowers and garlands,
-the work of Grinling Gibbons,&mdash;purple velvet fringed with gold, with
-the letters I H S richly embroidered,&mdash;sacramental plate valued at
-£200&mdash;these are notable objects which, in the new church of St. James,
-Westminster, erected at that time, called forth admiring words from
-the eminent Anglican John Evelyn.<a id="FNanchor_257" href="#Footnote_257" class="fnanchor">[257]</a> They indicate a feeling totally
-at variance with mediæval Catholicism; and nowhere does it appear
-that in those days vases of flowers, or painted banners, or other
-accompaniments of mediæval Ritualism, were in any case employed. On the
-contrary, a keen jealousy of Romanism extensively prevailed, and it may
-be discovered very plainly in the following passage, extracted from a
-contemporary diary:&mdash;“The Church of Allhallows, Barking, in London, was
-presented for innovations, as bowing to the East, and for the picture
-of the Angel Gabriel over the altar. It came to a trial, Monday, March
-1st, and the picture was brought into the Court; and the minister that
-caused it to be set up submitted to the Court, and the picture must be
-set up no more, and so the business ends.”<a id="FNanchor_258" href="#Footnote_258" class="fnanchor">[258]</a></p>
-
-<p>In Articles of Visitation we meet with minute inquiries respecting
-parish churches; but many of the old fabrics<span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[184]</span> must have been in a
-miserable condition, if we may judge from complaints made in the
-diocese of Winchester; it being said that “some in late times were
-totally ruined and demolished, and those of them still standing were
-much decayed and out of repair.” The Bishop, in pursuance of an Act
-of Parliament, united some of the parishes, “for the encouragement of
-able ministers to undertake the care of them.”<a id="FNanchor_259" href="#Footnote_259" class="fnanchor">[259]</a> The cost expended
-on the church at Euston, in Suffolk, is mentioned as “most laudable,”
-in contrast with other Houses of God in that county, which resembled
-thatched cottages rather than “temples in which to serve the Most
-High.”<a id="FNanchor_260" href="#Footnote_260" class="fnanchor">[260]</a> Even cathedrals were badly furnished, and in sorry repair.
-“Are the uncomely forms,” asks the Bishop of Durham, in 1668, “and
-coarse mats, lately used at the administration of the Holy Communion,
-for such persons as usually resort thither, without the rails, taken
-away; and others more comely put in their place, and decently covered,
-as heretofore hath been accustomed? And are the partitions on each hand
-of these forms, under the two arches of the church next the said rails,
-well framed in joiners’ work, and there set up for the better keeping
-out of the wind and cold, which otherwise do many times molest and
-annoy the communicant?”<a id="FNanchor_261" href="#Footnote_261" class="fnanchor">[261]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">WORSHIP.</div>
-
-<p>It was required that in every parish church there should be a stone
-font; a comely pulpit, with a decent cloth or cushion; a carpet of
-silk, or some decent stuff, on the communion-table during service; and
-a fair cloth for the celebration of the Lord’s Supper; also a cup and
-flagon of silver, chests for alms and for registers; and it was also
-ordered that in churches there should be placed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[185]</span> the Book of Canons, a
-Book of Offices for the 30th of January, the 29th of May, and the 5th
-of November, a copy of <i>Jewel’s Apology</i> well and fairly bound,
-and a record&mdash;in which strange preachers should write their names in
-the presence of churchwardens. Notwithstanding the careful and repeated
-inquiries made respecting such matters in Articles of Visitation, it is
-highly probable that they were often neglected.<a id="FNanchor_262" href="#Footnote_262" class="fnanchor">[262]</a></p>
-
-<p>II. From the buildings and their furniture we turn to the worship,
-including its vestments and mode of celebration. Whatever may be the
-exact meaning of the rubric prefixed to the Order of Morning Prayer,
-chasubles and other priestly attire used in the second year of King
-Edward, were not worn after the Restoration, nor did any of the
-Anglican prelates attempt to enforce their use. Copes, according to
-the Twenty-fourth Canon, were prescribed to be worn by the principal
-ministers at the Holy Communion in cathedrals; but in other churches
-ministers were to read the Divine service, and administer the
-sacraments, in a decent and comely surplice with sleeves, and wearing
-University hoods according to their degrees. With such an arrangement
-the visitation articles of the prelates are in accordance. Croft,
-Bishop of Hereford, that very low Churchman, took care to express his
-decided approbation “of a pure white robe on the minister’s shoulders,”
-emblematical of the purity of heart which became the service.<a id="FNanchor_263" href="#Footnote_263" class="fnanchor">[263]</a></p>
-
-<p>Wind instruments were, for a time used in some cathedral choirs, but
-they soon gave place to organs; and the boys failed not to bring “a
-fair book of the anthem<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[186]</span> and service, and sometimes the score,” to
-distinguished strangers.<a id="FNanchor_264" href="#Footnote_264" class="fnanchor">[264]</a></p>
-
-<p>Baptism was performed according to the Prayer Book, and a public
-administration of it in the case of those who had passed the age of
-childhood sometimes attracted considerable notice. The following
-anecdote on this subject occurs in a letter:&mdash;“Mr. John Harrington
-(whose father was some time since one of the serjeants-at-arms to His
-Majesty) had his boy baptized in the church; he being about fifteen
-years old, and not baptized before, and the son of a Nonconformist. To
-see which the church was fuller than it useth to be at other times; he
-having God-fathers and God-mothers according to the ceremony of the
-Church.”<a id="FNanchor_265" href="#Footnote_265" class="fnanchor">[265]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Lord’s Supper was administered from the table placed by the wall,
-at the east end of the church, in accordance with Laudian precedents,
-in spite of the rubrical direction that it “shall stand in the body
-of the church, or in the chancel; where morning and evening prayers
-are appointed to be said.” In some churches, the Communion Service, on
-non-communion days, was read from the desk, it being alleged, “that it
-was indecent to go to the altar and back, with the surplice still on,
-to the homily or sermon”&mdash;a reason which implies that the surplice was
-worn in the pulpit, even by those who read the Communion Service in the
-desk. Clergymen left the desk, after the second lesson, to baptize in
-the font at the west end of the church.<a id="FNanchor_266" href="#Footnote_266" class="fnanchor">[266]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">WORSHIP.</div>
-
-<p>On special occasions, cathedrals witnessed extraordinary
-processions&mdash;as when Judges, with the Sheriffs and their officers,
-attended at Assize sermons; or when a Mayor and Aldermen, clothed in
-municipal robes, with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[187]</span> their gold chains, marched or rode thither,
-through streets of quaint architecture, to celebrate festivals civic
-or sacred. A Royal visit eclipsed all mere annual pageants; and it is
-related that when Charles II., in the year 1671, visited the City of
-Norwich, as the guest of Lord Henry Howard, afterwards Duke of Norfolk,
-His Majesty went to the grand old Norman temple in the Close&mdash;the pride
-of the City&mdash;and was “sung into the church with an anthem; and when he
-had ended his devotion at the east end of the church, where he kneeled
-on the hard stone, he went to the Bishop’s palace [then occupied by
-Reynolds], and was there nobly entertained.”<a id="FNanchor_267" href="#Footnote_267" class="fnanchor">[267]</a></p>
-
-<p>St. George’s Chapel, Windsor, became the scene of peculiar solemnities.
-The Feast of St. George was there celebrated in 1662; and the knights
-elect were constrained to receive their investiture below, in the
-choir, yet directly under their proper stalls, because of “the great
-concourse of people which at that time had flocked to Windsor (greedy
-to behold the glory of that solemnity, which for many years had been
-intermitted), and rudely forced not only into and filled the lower row
-of stalls, but taken up almost the whole choir.” Two years afterwards,
-at the Feast of St. George, there was an anthem, composed for the
-solemnity, accompanied by the organ and other instrumental music; this
-was the first time that instrumental music was introduced into the
-Royal chapel.<a id="FNanchor_268" href="#Footnote_268" class="fnanchor">[268]</a></p>
-
-<p>Pompous funerals had taken place during the Commonwealth, particularly
-in Westminster Abbey. Funerals more pompous still occurred in the same
-national edifice, with a splendour surpassing what might be exhibited
-elsewhere. Monk, Duke of Albemarle, in 1670, was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[188]</span> conveyed “by the
-King’s orders, with all respect imaginable,” in a long procession;
-and within the sacred walls the remains were met by the Dean and
-Prebendaries, who wore copes; and, in connection with the service,
-offerings were made at the altar.<a id="FNanchor_269" href="#Footnote_269" class="fnanchor">[269]</a></p>
-
-<p>On Easter Day, at the Royal Chapel, when the Bishop of Rochester
-preached before the King, and the sacrament followed, “there was
-perfume burnt before the office began.”<a id="FNanchor_270" href="#Footnote_270" class="fnanchor">[270]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Restoration brought with it much irreverence in religion. The
-worship at Lichfield was performed “with more harmony and less
-huddle” than in any church in England, except in St. Paul’s at a
-later period;<a id="FNanchor_271" href="#Footnote_271" class="fnanchor">[271]</a> a laudable exception proving a disgraceful rule.
-Complaints were officially made, by a circular letter in the name of
-Archbishop Sheldon, respecting the slovenly performance of sacred
-duties by Deans, Canons, and other dignitaries. Reading the service and
-administering the sacraments had been neglected by such persons, as if
-they had been offices beneath their importance, to be performed only
-by Vicars or petty Canons.<a id="FNanchor_272" href="#Footnote_272" class="fnanchor">[272]</a> Croft, Bishop of Hereford, complains
-that “such dirty nasty surplices as most of them wear, and especially
-the singers in cathedrals (where they should be most decent), is rather
-an imitation of their dirty lives,” and had given his “stomach such a
-surfeit of them” as that he had almost an aversion to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[189]</span> them all; and
-he adds, “I am confident, had not this decent habit been so indecently
-abused, it had never been so generally loathed.”<a id="FNanchor_273" href="#Footnote_273" class="fnanchor">[273]</a> And Trelawny,
-of Bristol, laments, in reference to the united parishes of Elberton
-and Littleton, “I never saw so ill churches, or such ill parishioners.
-In one the sacrament has not been administered since the Restoration,
-in the other very seldom; and all the plate is but a small silver
-bowl, and that is kept at a Quaker’s house, with my late orders to the
-contrary.”<a id="FNanchor_274" href="#Footnote_274" class="fnanchor">[274]</a> In Articles of Visitation by the Bishop of Lincoln, it
-is asked whether churchwardens took care that people should not stand
-idle, or talk together in the church-porch, or walk in the church-yard
-during the time of sacred offices, or lean or lay their hats on the
-communion-table; and whether no minstrels, morrice-dancers, dogs,
-hawks, or hounds were brought into the church to the disturbance of the
-congregation.<a id="FNanchor_275" href="#Footnote_275" class="fnanchor">[275]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">WORSHIP.</div>
-
-<p>Neglect on the part of ecclesiastical officers was accompanied by
-irreverence on the part of people in general; in all of which may be
-traced&mdash;beyond the result of certain Puritan extravagances during the
-Civil War&mdash;the effect of educational habits which date as far back as
-the Reformation, and even earlier still, when worn-out superstitions
-produced contempt. In some cases during the reign of Charles II.
-impious frivolity and brutal ignorance are apparent. A curious
-example of this is furnished in the letter of a Canon Residentiary at
-York, written February 12th, 1673, and preserved amongst the State
-Papers:&mdash;“On Sundays and holidays (when the young people of the town
-are afloat), 400 or 500 would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[190]</span> walk, talk, and do much worse things,
-to the great disturbance of Divine service (not to mention other
-aggravations), that nothing could be heard, though with all, I have
-used such temper and moderation in it, that nothing hath at any time
-been done against any of them, further than to urge them either to go
-in to prayers, or to go out of the church, unless sometimes I have
-catched at a rude boy’s hat, and kept it till the end of the prayers,
-and given it him (with a chiding) again. Howbeit, this, it seems,
-so exasperated the youth of the town, that yesterday (being Shrove
-Tuesday) they, in time of Divine service, broke open the church doors
-(which I had caused to be shut), and when (after service ended) I was
-going to my house, they so affronted and abused me, that Captain Henry
-Wood, and sundry other officers of the garrison, who were walking in
-the church, were forced not only to come, but to send for two files
-of musketeers, to my rescue.” The writer then relates that, after the
-soldiers had left, the mob attacked his house, broke his windows, and
-did damage to the extent of £40; and would possibly have set fire to
-his house, had they not been restrained by the military. The Lord Mayor
-of the City refused to interfere, as the church-yard was not within his
-liberty.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REVENUES.</div>
-
-<p>III. Episcopal revenues were unequally distributed.<a id="FNanchor_276" href="#Footnote_276" class="fnanchor">[276]</a> The Bishop
-of Durham received, in 1670 and afterwards, an annual income of
-£3,280; previously to which his resources were so limited, that it was
-computed not more than £1,500 remained after he had paid subsidies
-and first-fruits. Durham House, in the Strand, had been<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[191]</span> seized by
-Queen Elizabeth; although reclaimed by the Bishop upon her death, it
-never again became the episcopal residence; but Aukland Palace, which
-used to be to Durham what Croydon used to be to Lambeth, remained in
-the Bishops’ possession, and furnished an opportunity for the richest
-hospitalities. Ely Place, where Shakespeare’s “good strawberries”
-grew in the garden, with its vineyard, meadow, and orchard, had
-been appropriated to Sir Christopher Hatton by Queen Elizabeth; yet
-Bishop Laney had possession of the palace, and died there in 1675.
-The Bishops of Carlisle had long lost Worcester House, in the Strand;
-and the prelates of Winchester had leased out “their very fair
-house well repaired” (in Southwark), which had “a large wharf and
-landing-place,” to occupy a mansion in the suburb of Chelsea.<a id="FNanchor_277" href="#Footnote_277" class="fnanchor">[277]</a> The
-provincial palaces of the Bishops surpassed those which they had in
-the Metropolis, and were well-known centres of social attraction and
-entertainment. Whilst lamentations were poured forth by some over the
-robbery and spoliation of sees, so that it was said a mean gentleman of
-£200 in land yearly would not exchange his worldly state and condition
-with divers Bishops,<a id="FNanchor_278" href="#Footnote_278" class="fnanchor">[278]</a>&mdash;Burnet speaks of the extravagance of the
-class generally, and represents them as a bad pattern “to all the
-lower dignitaries, who generally took more care of themselves than
-of the Church.” It is a fact, however, which it would be unjust not
-to mention, that many of the Bishops were large contributors to the
-repairs of sacred buildings, and to other ecclesiastical objects.
-Cosin, for instance, expended the income of the first seven years of
-his episcopacy in the improvement of property belonging to the see of
-Durham, and in establishing various charitable foundations.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[192]</span></p>
-
-<p>The see of Bristol was extremely poor, and Hereford yielded only
-£800 a year.<a id="FNanchor_279" href="#Footnote_279" class="fnanchor">[279]</a> Yet Brian Duppa, after his translation to the see
-of Winchester, which he held but a year and a half, is reported to
-have received in fines as much as £50,000. Out of this large amount,
-however, he remitted £30,000 to his tenants, and expended £16,000 in
-acts of charity.<a id="FNanchor_280" href="#Footnote_280" class="fnanchor">[280]</a> Morley disposed of almost all his income in
-benefactions. Sheldon’s gifts were computed at upwards of £66,000.<a id="FNanchor_281" href="#Footnote_281" class="fnanchor">[281]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REVENUES.</div>
-
-<p>Palaces, deaneries, and prebendal houses, like cathedrals and churches,
-had suffered in the wars. Their reparation, and the business connected
-with raising funds for the purpose, largely occupied the attention of
-the restored possessors. Hacket, so successful in the re-edification
-of his cathedral, failed to complete the re-edification of his palace,
-and left the work to his successor, who shamefully neglected it; but
-it should be remembered that the restoration of the palaces at Exeter
-and Salisbury are amongst the good deeds ascribed to Seth Ward.<a id="FNanchor_282" href="#Footnote_282" class="fnanchor">[282]</a>
-Sancroft procured an Act of Parliament which enabled him to lease
-out shops and tenements in St. Paul’s Churchyard, upon condition of
-expending £2,500, before September 30th, 1673, in building a commodious
-deanery; and the Privy Council, after noticing, in their minutes, that
-the houses of the Dean and Prebendaries of Winchester, in the late
-rebellion, were totally demolished, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[193]</span> the greatest part of two
-other houses likewise pulled down, and three only left standing on the
-old foundations, very ruinous and out of repair, gave orders, with a
-view to facilitate the rebuilding, that there should be a repeal of
-the clauses in the statutes of the Church “which concern succession
-in vacant prebends, and the reparation of deans’ and prebends’
-houses.”<a id="FNanchor_283" href="#Footnote_283" class="fnanchor">[283]</a> Large demands were made upon Chapter revenues, not only
-for repairs, but for Royal presents and charities; and some cathedral
-stalls furnished little emolument to their occupants: so that, speaking
-of a prebend, Croft of Hereford says, “This thing, though small
-(worth not above £80 per annum) is the best and only considerable
-thing in my gift, my bishopric being as wretched in this&mdash;to my great
-discomfort&mdash;as in the revenue.”<a id="FNanchor_284" href="#Footnote_284" class="fnanchor">[284]</a> Deans and Canons could not vie
-with Bishops in hospitality, but the comforts of life were amply
-provided and enjoyed in snug and cozy abodes, within the limits of the
-cathedral close: and North mentions the good ale and small beer brewed
-from South Country malt, and supplied from the Prebend’s cellars to his
-relative the Judge, when visiting the City of Carlisle.<a id="FNanchor_285" href="#Footnote_285" class="fnanchor">[285]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the year 1663 it was computed that there were 12,000 church livings,
-of which 3,000 were impropriate, and 4,165 were sinecures without
-resident clergymen. Considering the small means possessed by some
-distinguished clergymen, we are not surprised at the eager applications
-with which they beset Secretary Williamson, whenever vacancies occurred
-in ecclesiastical posts of a promising kind. Sometimes bribes were
-offered to promote<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[194]</span> success, as appears from a letter written to
-Williamson by a clergyman named Gregory, who sought a stall in a
-cathedral. He said he had a friend near the Earl of Clarendon; but, the
-Earl’s interest failing, he desired the Secretary to procure a grant
-of the next prebend in either of the places he referred to; and he
-promised gladly, upon the passing of the seal, to gratify his friend
-with one hundred pieces. A living in any county, if considerable, would
-be no less welcome, though the simoniacal oath deterred the writer
-from anything more than an indefinite engagement. He could answer for
-it, that his Lordship of Gloucester would give him such a character as
-showed him deserving of the preferment desired.<a id="FNanchor_286" href="#Footnote_286" class="fnanchor">[286]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REVENUES.</div>
-
-<p>To pass from this shot so skilfully but so illegally fired into the
-ecclesiastical preserves of the State&mdash;whether it brought anything
-into the hands of this ministerial poacher is not worth inquiry&mdash;we
-light upon other examples, in abundance, of clergymen patiently waiting
-and eagerly asking for the bestowment of patronage. The Rector of
-Meonstoke, Hampshire, informed the influential man at head-quarters
-that he had just fulfilled his course of preaching in the Cathedral
-Church of Chichester as a minor prophet, which rendered him capable of
-advancement to a residentiary’s place, if he could obtain an election.
-There was a place vacant, and he now solicited the Secretary’s interest
-with the Dean, who was Clerk of the Closet,&mdash;as he would not deny
-such an important personage anything,&mdash;and the petitioner was sure
-that a certain Canon he mentions would agree with the Dean; and both
-together could overrule the Chapter, which at that time consisted of
-them and two others. The latter, indeed, were stiffly resolved for a
-Mr. Sefton, and the Dean<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[195]</span> had thoughts of the thing for himself; but
-the writer presumed the Dean would get loose to it when he understood
-it was below him. Should he, however, continue in such inclination, the
-petitioner asked that he might be the Dean’s successor. The place would
-be a preferment to the suppliant Rector, who considered he would not
-be unacceptable to the Church and City, and it would redeem him from
-the desolate condition he was in by the death of his dear Betty.<a id="FNanchor_287" href="#Footnote_287" class="fnanchor">[287]</a>
-Again, Bishop Reynolds appointed Dr. Mylles to be his Chancellor in
-the diocese of Norwich, by patent under his Episcopal seal dated 13th
-of September, 1661. The Chancellor requested the Dean and Chapter to
-confirm the patent, which they refused to do, without assigning any
-reason for their refusal. He accordingly applied to the King, and
-prayed that he would be graciously pleased to enforce the needful
-confirmation of the patent by the proper ecclesiastical authorities. In
-urging upon His Majesty this petition, Dr. Mylles notices an objection
-made to him, on the ground of his having been on the side of the
-Parliament in the late troubles. To remove the objection, he asserts
-that he had never disobliged any of the King’s friends; that when he
-discovered Cromwell’s designs, he quitted the army; that he was ejected
-from the University at Oxford for declining to take the Engagement;
-that he had served under the Duke of Albemarle, and had helped to
-bring in the King. This petition was backed by Rushworth, who pleaded,
-amongst other things, in his client’s favour, that at private meetings,
-where he thought he might speak without danger, he had not hesitated to
-contribute counsel and advice towards His Majesty’s restoration, which
-had produced upon Lord Fairfax, and other considerable persons, a good
-effect.<a id="FNanchor_288" href="#Footnote_288" class="fnanchor">[288]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[196]</span></p>
-
-<p>To cite another case:&mdash;“Most honoured Sir,”&mdash;wrote Dr. Fell,
-Vice-Chancellor of Oxford, to Williamson, immediately after the
-death of Dr. William Fuller, who had been translated from Limerick
-to Lincoln,&mdash;“it is a privilege our people here take to themselves
-to bestow all bishoprics before the King disposes of them; and they,
-having, upon the first news of the vacancy of Lincoln, made the Provost
-to be the successor, went on, in the same method of liberality, to
-bestow his places; and upon Sunday night one of the most popular
-Bachelors in Divinity that we have in town came to me upon that errand,
-signifying his concern on behalf of the Master of Pembroke; and on
-Monday several others, of other houses, made the same application.
-I told them all, that first it was very indecent to begin a canvass
-before a place was actually void, and probably a considerable time
-would pass before there would be a vacancy; besides, they should
-consider that Dr. Tully might justly pretend to the place, and, if
-he did, would not fail of being assisted by his friends.” To move on
-behalf of Dr. Hall, he goes on to say, might be a great unkindness
-to him, since he did not appear as a candidate, nor probably would
-like to have his name brought in question; besides, it would create a
-competition and disturbance in the University; and therefore he had
-desired his friends not to proceed in the matter.<a id="FNanchor_289" href="#Footnote_289" class="fnanchor">[289]</a> Dr. Tully,
-referred to in this letter&mdash;an eminent Divine and Controversialist,
-of whom notice will be taken in our review of the theology of the
-period&mdash;was not an unconcerned spectator of the changes occurring at
-the time, and the excitement which they produced; and I find amongst
-the State Papers the following exquisite specimen of the characteristic
-flattery of the age preserved<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[197]</span> in a letter which he wrote, on Holy
-Thursday, to his friend at Court:&mdash;“Right Honourable,&mdash;Having no way
-else to express the sense of my greatest obligations to you, I beg
-you will commiserate so far as to accept this renewal of my heartiest
-acknowledgments. I hasten to make it, not for fear I should forget your
-favours (I know that to be next impossibility), but to shun the pain
-of delay, from the weight and pressure of them. It is some ease to a
-grateful mind, under such a load of obligations, to air itself in the
-field where they grow. Most honoured Sir, amongst all the rest of your
-noble kindnesses to me, I must single that out of the crowd, which
-made you unkind (I had almost said, unnatural) to yourself, to let me
-know how much you are my friend. I can but thank you, and tell stories
-at home and abroad of your goodness to me, and heartily pray for the
-increase of all honour to you, with a long enjoyment, and the reward at
-last of a blessed immortality.”<a id="FNanchor_290" href="#Footnote_290" class="fnanchor">[290]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">REVENUES.</div>
-
-<p>These well-timed compliments were not in vain; for, though Tully did
-not obtain any preferment in consequence of the death of the Bishop
-of Lincoln, he was immediately afterwards promoted to the Deanery of
-Ripon, upon the death of Dr. John Neile.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Barlow, a well-known Oxford man, and an eager aspirant for a
-bishopric, obtained the see of Lincoln, and wrote on the 29th of May,
-as mentioned already, to his friend, the Secretary, stating that fees,
-first-fruits, and other charges cost him £1,500 or £2,000 before he
-could receive a penny from the bishopric. “I was never in debt,” he
-says, “yet borrow I must, and, to enable me to repay honestly, I mean
-to stay here (as others I see do in the like case) till a little after
-Lady-day next.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[198]</span> My College and Margaret Lecture I can (without any
-dispensation) keep, and perform the duties of both till then.”<a id="FNanchor_291" href="#Footnote_291" class="fnanchor">[291]</a></p>
-
-<p>Amidst the turnings of the preferment-wheel at that time, Dr. Hall,
-referred to in Vice-Chancellor Fell’s letter, was elected to the
-Margaret professorship, vacated at length by Barlow’s resignation.</p>
-
-<p>In July of the same year, 1675, another letter reached Whitehall,
-upon a similar subject. “It is thought here,” wrote Dr. John Wallis,
-the celebrated Mathematician at Oxford, “that the Bishop of Worcester
-is either dead, or at least not likely to subsist long, which will
-give occasion of alterations. If that or any other occasion give you
-opportunity of doing a kindness to your servant, or my son, I believe
-His Majesty would be very ready to grant, if we knew what to ask. I
-have signified to Dr. Conant by his son your good thoughts of him.” We
-must now terminate these illustrations.</p>
-
-<p>IV. By an easy transition we pass from ecclesiastical revenues to
-ecclesiastical courts. Both the Archidiaconal and the Consistorial
-resumed their activity after the Restoration, and before them were
-brought numerous charges of delinquency, respecting clergymen
-and laymen. It would be beyond my purpose to enter into the
-<i>penetralia</i> of these intricate proceedings; it will be sufficient
-to notice the nature of some of the accusations on which individuals
-were arraigned, as illustrative of the social life of the period. Yet
-before doing so I must<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[199]</span> notice two circumstances, which require more
-attention than they have received from historians. The first is this:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ECCLESIASTICAL COURTS.</div>
-
-<p>By the Act of the 13th Charles II. cap. 12, which restored the
-jurisdiction of the ordinary Ecclesiastical Courts, but abolished
-that of the extraordinary High Commission Court, it was expressly
-provided that there should no longer be any administration of the
-<i>ex-officio</i> oath, by which persons were compelled to accuse, or
-to purge themselves of any criminal matter. But as it has been recently
-remarked, whilst the letter of this enactment seems to have been so
-far observed, that an accused clergyman or other person, liable to
-deprivation, could not be obliged to answer on oath as to the truth
-of the charge,&mdash;the spirit of the enactment, in certain other cases,
-was violated to a great extent. For, in the administration of articles
-to a defendant in a cause of correction, the practice was to charge
-the commission of the offence on the ground of public “fame,” without
-specific evidence, and to require the defendant to answer on oath, who,
-if he failed to do so, was treated as having admitted the truth of the
-allegation. Thus, instead of the burden of proving guilt being thrown
-on the accuser, the burden of establishing innocence seems to have
-rested on the accused, and he became liable to be called upon to make
-“canonical purgation;” <i>i.e.</i>, “to declare on oath that he was not
-guilty of the offence, and to produce a certain number of witnesses,
-as ‘compurgators,’ to swear that they believed his declaration to be
-true.”<a id="FNanchor_292" href="#Footnote_292" class="fnanchor">[292]</a> This circumstance shows, in what a limited degree the
-Act of Charles II., restoring the ecclesiastical courts, diminished
-even oppressive tendencies; how, whilst it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[200]</span> altered them in form,
-it left scope for the exercise of their former spirit, and how they
-remained instruments of injustice and cruelty, to be used by those who
-were malignantly or resentfully disposed. At the same time we should
-carefully weigh the number and the nature of the appeals made from the
-judgment of the lower to the decision of the higher authority. To this
-I will presently direct attention.</p>
-
-<p>The second circumstance is that the High Court of Delegates was
-restored upon the return of Charles II. This court, which had from
-ancient times received secular appeals, acquired, in the reign of
-Henry VIII., the power of deciding ecclesiastical appeals from all
-ordinary ecclesiastical tribunals in England and Wales.<a id="FNanchor_293" href="#Footnote_293" class="fnanchor">[293]</a> It
-appears that the only court not within its appellate jurisdiction
-was the Court of High Commission. Cases of doctrine, and cases of
-discipline, unsatisfactorily litigated in the lower courts, came up
-before this tribunal of delegates for final review and decision.
-The constitution of the court was remarkable. Although exercising a
-supreme ecclesiastical jurisdiction, the lay element preponderated.
-Of the fifty-one Commissions between 1660 and 1688, two were composed
-of Bishops and Civilians; eighteen included Bishops, Judges, and
-Civilians; one contained Peers, Bishops, Judges, and Civilians; eleven
-of the Commissions were directed to Civilians only, and nineteen
-to Judges and Civilians.<a id="FNanchor_294" href="#Footnote_294" class="fnanchor">[294]</a> It may be added that soon after the
-Restoration the use of Latin was resumed in their proceedings. The
-fact, with regard to the strong infusion of laical power into the
-constitution of this important court, not only throws an instructive
-light upon the relations of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[201]</span> Church and State, but it proves that for
-none of the acts of this court, at that time under consideration,
-whether righteous or unrighteous, are the clergy to be held entirely
-responsible; with some of them they had nothing whatever to do.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ECCLESIASTICAL COURTS.</div>
-
-<p>It is to the Parliamentary Returns of the appeals made to the
-delegates, that we are indebted for the knowledge of the following
-ecclesiastical causes:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>A clergyman, named Slader, Rector of Birmingham, had been brought
-before the Court of Arches on an appeal from the Consistory of
-Lichfield, and finally his case came before the Court of Delegates,
-by which court he was decreed to be sequestered <i>ab officio suo
-clericali</i>. He stood charged with having forged letters of
-orders, with disaffection to the King, with preaching amongst the
-Quakers, railing in the pulpit at the parishioners, and indulging in
-swearing, gaming, perjury, and incest. Some of these charges were
-very scandalous, but to them were added others of a most curious and
-extraordinary description,&mdash;for this man was accused of practising
-jugglery, of pretending, on one occasion, to cut off his son’s head,
-and to set it on again, and of “taking money for the sight thereof.”
-One Dr. Meades was deprived, on an appeal from the Arches, and from
-the Consistory of Winchester, for non-residence, neglect of duty,
-allowing the vicarage to fall into decay, and for not having read the
-Thirty-Nine Articles within the time prescribed by law, after his
-institution and induction. William Woodward, Rector of Trotterscliffe,
-Kent, was charged with “having uttered various profane and blasphemous
-speeches, <i>e.g.</i>, that the Lord’s Prayer was not commanded to be
-used; that the Church of England might as well be called the Church
-of Rome; that he had attained such perfection that he could not sin;
-and that one William Francklin, a ropemaker,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[202]</span> who had lived with him,
-was the Christ and Saviour.” Sentence of deprivation was ultimately
-pronounced in this case.<a id="FNanchor_295" href="#Footnote_295" class="fnanchor">[295]</a> Theophilus Hart, in the diocese of
-Peterborough, was corrected, punished, and condemned in costs, for not
-conforming in the exercise of his clerical office: he did not baptize
-infants with the sign of the cross, he did not catechise the young, and
-he omitted many parts of the services prescribed by the Book of Common
-Prayer. Woodward and Hart seem to be the only clergymen during this
-period who appealed to the delegates in proceedings carried on against
-false doctrine. One Clewer, Vicar of Croydon, figures in local history
-as a very disgraceful person; he was tried and burnt in the hand at the
-Old Bailey for stealing a silver cup. His case came before the Court
-of Appeal, and the deprivation previously pronounced by the Court of
-Arches received confirmation.<a id="FNanchor_296" href="#Footnote_296" class="fnanchor">[296]</a></p>
-
-<p>The laity, as well as the clergy, being subject to the ecclesiastical
-tribunals, causes relating to the former, after being tried elsewhere,
-were finally adjudicated by the delegates. One man was proceeded
-against for having three children unbaptized, and for not receiving
-the Lord’s Supper; a second, for absence from public worship; a third,
-for not keeping in repair the chancel of the parish church; and a
-fourth, for contempt of the law, and ecclesiastical jurisdiction, in
-teaching boys without having obtained any faculty or license.<a id="FNanchor_297" href="#Footnote_297" class="fnanchor">[297]</a>
-Ancient<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[203]</span> forms of Church discipline sometimes followed conviction. A
-party, charged in the Consistory Court of Norwich with defamation, was
-sentenced to do penance in the parish church of Darsham, by repeating,
-after the minister, words of confession and contrition.<a id="FNanchor_298" href="#Footnote_298" class="fnanchor">[298]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ECCLESIASTICAL COURTS.</div>
-
-<p>As to the number of appeals there may be reckoned up forty-five during
-a little more than a century, between the year 1533&mdash;the date of the
-commencement of the ecclesiastical power of the court&mdash;and the year
-1641, the period of its temporary suppression. There were forty-six
-between the date of its re-establishment, in 1660, and the year of the
-Revolution, 1688. This would look as if more dissatisfaction was felt
-with the judgment of the lower ecclesiastical authority during this
-twenty-eight years after the Restoration, than during the hundred and
-eight years before the outbreak of the Parliament struggle with Charles
-I. Hence it might be inferred that the grievances of ecclesiastical
-rule increased in the reign of Charles II.; but this would not be a
-fair deduction, because the High Commission Court, which had been by
-far the most oppressive tribunal for spiritual causes, and which had
-been exempted from the supervision of the Court of Delegates, remained
-no longer in existence; and thereby a large amount of injustice was
-prevented. Forty-five appeals in twenty-eight years from all the
-ecclesiastical courts of England and Wales do not form a large number,
-and would seem to show that trials in ecclesiastical cases must have
-been much less numerous than when the High Commission existed in
-full play. Very few cases of appeal touching Dissenters appear in
-the records of the Court of Delegates. Dissenters, of course, were
-subject to trouble and annoyance from Archidiaconal<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[204]</span> and Consistorial
-authorities, but the main sorrows of Nonconformity, under the last two
-Stuarts’ reign, arose from the operation of Statute Law, as found in
-the Uniformity, Conventicle, and Five Mile Acts.</p>
-
-<p>Amongst instances of discipline exercised by Bishops upon the clergy,
-there occurred one so striking and curious that it deserves particular
-mention. Dr. Lloyd, who held the see of Peterborough from 1679 to
-1685, and was thence transferred to Norwich, seems to have been
-extraordinarily strict in the discharge of his episcopal functions,
-and to have visited offending ministers with public punishment. In
-accordance with his habitual zeal for purity in the faith and morals
-of the Church, he required the following recantation to be read in his
-cathedral by the person whose name is mentioned, and whose case is thus
-described:&mdash;“I, Thomas Ashenden, being deeply sensible of the foul
-dishonour I have done to our most holy religion, and the great scandal
-I have given by a late profane abuse of the Lord’s Prayer, the Creed,
-and the Ten Commandments, which I wrote and caused to be published,
-do here, in the presence of God, and of His ministers, and of this
-congregation, most heartily bewail, with unfeigned sorrow, both that
-notorious offence, and also all my other sins, which betrayed me into
-it, most humbly begging forgiveness of God, and of his Church, whose
-heaviest censures I have justly deserved. And as I earnestly desire
-that none of my brethren (much less our holy function or the Church)
-may be the worse thought of by any, by reason of my miscarriages, so I
-do faithfully promise, by God’s grace, to endeavour to behave myself
-hereafter so religiously in my place and calling, that I may be no more
-a discredit to them. In which resolution that I may persist, I beg and
-implore the assistance of all your prayers, and desire<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[205]</span> withal, that
-this my retractation and sincere profession of repentance, may be made
-as public as my crimes have been, that none may be tempted hereafter to
-do evil by my example.”<a id="FNanchor_299" href="#Footnote_299" class="fnanchor">[299]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">NONCONFORMIST PLACES OF WORSHIP.</div>
-
-<p>V. There existed, in different parts of the country, buildings
-entirely set apart for Nonconformist worship. Some of them were barns
-and warehouses adapted to the purpose, and in Norwich the refectory
-and dormitory of the old Blackfriars’ Convent, which, after the
-Restoration, had been turned into granaries for the City corn, were
-fitted up by permission of the Court of Mayoralty, for the use of
-the Presbyterian and Independent Congregationalists: also the old
-Leather Hall, in Coventry, a gloomy but spacious room, fitted up with
-galleries, was used for Nonconformist religious service.<a id="FNanchor_300" href="#Footnote_300" class="fnanchor">[300]</a> A large
-meeting-house was erected in Zoar Street, Southwark, not far from
-the spot occupied by the summer theatre of Shakespeare, and within
-that building John Bunyan attracted immense congregations. “If there
-were but one day’s notice given,” his friend, Charles Doe, remarks,
-“there would be more people come together to hear him preach than
-the meeting-house could hold. I have seen, to hear him preach, by my
-computation, about 1,200 at a morning lecture, by seven o’clock, on
-a working-day, in the dark winter time. I also computed about 3,000
-that came to hear him one Lord’s Day, at London, at a town’s-end
-meeting-house [in Zoar Street], so that half were fain to go back again
-for want of room, and then himself was fain at a back-door to be pulled
-almost over people to get upstairs to his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[206]</span> pulpit.”<a id="FNanchor_301" href="#Footnote_301" class="fnanchor">[301]</a> Mill Hill
-Chapel, at Leeds, was built during the period of Indulgence, being the
-first edifice erected by Dissenters “<i>more ecclesiastico</i> with
-arches.”<a id="FNanchor_302" href="#Footnote_302" class="fnanchor">[302]</a> A meeting-house at Yarmouth is described as measuring
-fifty-eight feet one way, and sixty feet another, with a gallery
-quite round close to the pulpit, with six seats in it, one behind the
-other, and all accommodation possible for the reception of people
-below.<a id="FNanchor_303" href="#Footnote_303" class="fnanchor">[303]</a> The “fanatic party” at Margate is referred to as building a
-“conventicle house” when it was illegal to do so, and as making great
-haste to get it up in spite of His Majesty’s proclamation.<a id="FNanchor_304" href="#Footnote_304" class="fnanchor">[304]</a></p>
-
-<p>In some cases, so favourably inclined were the parish authorities,
-that they allowed Nonconformists to meet in the Church. At Southwold,
-every fourth Sunday, the incumbent and the Dissenting ministers both
-conducted Divine service under the same roof. The first who came took
-precedence, and after he had pronounced the Benediction, his neighbour
-began another service in his own way.</p>
-
-<p>The liberty of using a parish church was also enjoyed by the
-Nonconformists of Waltham-le-Willows, a small village in Suffolk,
-and in connection with this arrangement there occurred a ludicrous
-circumstance. On one occasion when Mr. Salkeld, the Congregational
-minister, occupied the pulpit, Sir Edmund Bacon, of Redgrave, and
-Sir William Spring, of Packenham, being greatly scandalized at what
-they deemed a profanation of the edifice, came, with other country
-gentlemen, and planted themselves at the church-doors. Sir Edmund
-wished to compel the minister immediately to desist, but Sir William<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[207]</span>
-thought it more seemly to wait until the minister had finished his
-discourse. A noisy altercation consequently arose in the church-yard
-between the two gentlemen, when, upon the former becoming outrageously
-violent, his friend observed, “We read, Sir Edmund, that the devil
-entered into a herd of swine, and, upon my word, I think he is not got
-out of the Bacon yet.”<a id="FNanchor_305" href="#Footnote_305" class="fnanchor">[305]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RELIGIOUS STATISTICS.</div>
-
-<p>VI. Perhaps this is as convenient a place as any to inquire into the
-relative number of Conformists and Nonconformists, towards the end of
-the period, embraced in this History.</p>
-
-<p>The population of England towards the close of the seventeenth
-century, has been computed by Lord Macaulay at rather more than five
-millions.<a id="FNanchor_306" href="#Footnote_306" class="fnanchor">[306]</a> He bases his estimate upon calculations made by King,
-Lancaster Herald, in 1696; upon returns consulted by William III.,
-and upon conclusions drawn in the preface to the population returns
-of 1831. I find the estimate of about five millions confirmed by the
-author of <i>The Happy Future State of England</i>, published in 1688,
-who states an approximate number as the result of returns reported
-in a survey made by the Bishops in 1676.<a id="FNanchor_307" href="#Footnote_307" class="fnanchor">[307]</a> Of these five millions
-and a half, or so, the Conformists formed an immense majority. In
-the returns which came under William’s eye, and in the report of the
-Bishops’ survey,&mdash;which seems to have been all but identical with
-them,&mdash;the Conformists, above sixteen years of age, in the province of
-Canterbury are put down at 2,123,362. York yields 353,892, making a
-total of 2,477,254. Against<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[208]</span> these are reckoned the following number of
-Nonconformists above sixteen years of age:&mdash;93,151 in the province of
-Canterbury, and 15,525 in the province of York&mdash;forming a gross amount
-of 108,676. The Conformists to the Nonconformists here are as 22⅘ to 1.
-The author I have just mentioned represents the Nonconformists as on
-the decline; and no doubt they were, during the reigns of Charles II.
-and James II., much fewer than they had been under the Commonwealth;
-but there is reason to believe, from their subsequent history, they
-were on the increase before the period of the Revolution. The same
-writer speaks of them, in the gross, as consisting of artizans and
-retail traders in corporations,<a id="FNanchor_308" href="#Footnote_308" class="fnanchor">[308]</a> and probably the bulk of them
-would be found amongst the humbler classes; but it is to be remembered
-that some county families, including noble ones, to say nothing of
-old army officers, and rich citizen merchants, continued still within
-the ranks of Dissent. It is interesting and instructive to ponder the
-following particulars appended to the returns brought under the notice
-of William III., and certainly not prepared in any friendly spirit.
-Many persons left the Church upon the late Indulgence, who before did
-frequent it. The inquires made (I presume those of 1676 are referred
-to) caused many to frequent church. Walloons chiefly made up the number
-of Dissenters in Canterbury, Sandwich, and Dover. Presbyterians were
-divided; some of them not being wholly Dissenters, but occasionally
-going to church. A considerable number of Nonconformists belonged to
-no particular sect. Of those who attended church many did not receive
-the sacrament. There were in Kent about thirty heretics, called
-Muggletonians; the rest were Presbyterians, Anabaptists,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[209]</span> Independents,
-and Quakers, in about equal numbers. The heads and preachers of the
-several factions had taken a large share in the Great Rebellion.<a id="FNanchor_309" href="#Footnote_309" class="fnanchor">[309]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PREACHING.</div>
-
-<p>I may add that the Papists altogether are reckoned in the same document
-at 13,856. It was thought that they had increased in consequence of the
-Indulgence, and that the Jesuits had been very active up to the time of
-the plot, when they amounted to 1,800. After the excitement created by
-Oates’ business they are said to have considerably diminished.<a id="FNanchor_310" href="#Footnote_310" class="fnanchor">[310]</a></p>
-
-<p>VII. The contrasts between Churchmen and Nonconformists already
-described, suggest another of a corresponding kind. Divine service in
-the Establishment, especially as conducted in cathedrals, in Royal
-chapels, and in large churches, would present an imposing appearance,
-such as never could belong to worship conducted in a conventicle. And
-a social prestige pertained to the Episcopalian priest, now forfeited
-by the Nonconformist preacher. Baxter, Owen, and Howe could not but
-feel the change which had come over their external circumstances since
-the day when, from high places&mdash;Westminster Abbey and St. Paul’s, for
-example&mdash;they had addressed <i>ex cathedra</i> the <i>élite</i> of
-Puritan intelligence and rank.</p>
-
-<p>The form of sermons, whether composed by Anglicans or Puritans,
-continued after the Restoration to be that which we may call textual,
-rather than topical, and Sanderson, who survived that crisis, broke
-up what he had to say upon a text into a perplexing arrangement of
-divisions and subdivisions; so far he resembled Andrewes, the great
-preacher of the reign of James I. This practice did not form the
-peculiarity of a class. It had been borrowed from the schoolmen, and
-came to be adopted<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[210]</span> alike by those who were most Protestant and those
-who were most Catholic. As it was with the teachers, so it was with
-the taught; the people, no doubt, liked this method, and acquired a
-habit of threading the mazes of a lengthened homily through all its
-numerical departments, with an expertness resembling that of modern
-schoolboys who perform such wonderful evolutions in mental arithmetic.
-Tastes began to change before the Revolution. Even Dr. Donne, in the
-beginning of the century, broke somewhat through technical trammels,
-and indulged in sonorous periods, flowing out into ample paragraphs;
-and Baxter himself, slave as he often was to scholastic fashions, would
-often burst into a strain of impassioned rhetoric which carried him
-page over page without a single break. South may be mentioned as a
-distinguished instance of departure from the old style, and Bates may
-be named also as an example, so far, of the same class. Sermons were
-very long. Some compositions, indeed, bearing that name, but extending
-to the dimensions of a considerable treatise, were never delivered at
-all. They were intended to be read, not heard. This was the case with
-some compositions from the pens of Baxter and Barrow: but anecdotes
-related respecting the latter Divine, show the enormous length to which
-he sometimes carried his oral addresses. Once, before he preached in
-Westminster Abbey, the Dean requested him to be short. He showed the
-sermon to that dignitary, who, finding it consisted of two parts,
-requested him to deliver only one of them. Barrow did so, yet that
-occupied an hour and a half in the delivery. Upon another occasion,
-he “enlarged” so much, that the vergers who were anxious to show to
-impatient visitors “the tombs and effigies of the Kings and Queens in
-wax,” “caused the organ to be struck up against him, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[211]</span> would not
-give over playing till they had blowd him down.” His Spital sermon
-lasted three hours and a half; what the Lord Mayor and Aldermen thought
-of it we do not know; but we are informed that the preacher, when
-asked if <i>he</i> felt tired, replied, that “he began to be weary of
-standing so long.”<a id="FNanchor_311" href="#Footnote_311" class="fnanchor">[311]</a> Barrow’s case, no doubt, is an extreme one; but
-although he exceeded what might be common, it is plain enough from the
-specimens of pulpit eloquence belonging to that age, that they usually
-were such as would exhaust the patience of modern congregations.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PREACHING.</div>
-
-<p>An amusing story is related of Barrow’s preaching, soon after the
-Restoration, at St. Lawrence Jewry. His “aspect pale, meagre, and
-unpromising, slovenly and carelessly dressed, his collar unbuttoned,
-and his hair uncombed,” so alarmed the congregation that a spectator
-declares, “there was such a noise of pattens of serving maids and
-ordinary women, and of unlocking of pews, and cracking of seats, caused
-by the younger sort hastily climbing over them, that I thought all the
-congregation were mad.” An apprentice accosted him when all was over,
-saying, “Sir, be not dismayed, for I assure you ’twas a good sermon.”
-When asked what he thought of the congregation running away, Barrow
-answered&mdash;“I thought they did not like me or my sermon, and I have no
-reason to be angry with them for that.” “But what was your opinion
-of the apprentice?” “I take him,” replied he, “to be a very civil
-person, and if I could meet with him I’d present him with a bottle of
-wine.” Some of the parishioners afterwards called on Dr. Wilkins, the
-Incumbent, to expostulate with him for allowing one “who looked like
-a starved Cavalier to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[212]</span> preach in his pulpit.” Baxter, happening to
-be in the Vicar’s house when the parishioners arrived, Wilkins said:
-“The person you thus despise, I assure you, is a pious man, an eminent
-scholar, and an excellent preacher, for the truth of the latter, I
-appeal to Mr. Baxter, here present, who heard the sermon you so vilify,
-I am sure you believe Mr. Baxter is a competent judge.” Baxter praised
-the sermon, and the parishioners ended by requesting that Barrow might
-preach again. But he was not disposed to appear any “more on that
-stage.”<a id="FNanchor_312" href="#Footnote_312" class="fnanchor">[312]</a></p>
-
-<p>As to the mode of delivering sermons, some Nonconformists, as well as
-Churchmen, read from a MS., and Dr. Charnock is described as having
-used an eye-glass to assist his sight.<a id="FNanchor_313" href="#Footnote_313" class="fnanchor">[313]</a> Of Baxter, it is said in
-the funeral sermon by his friend and assistant Sylvester&mdash;“He was a
-person wonderful at extemporate preaching, for <i>having once left his
-notes behind him</i>, he was surprised into extemporate thoughts upon
-(as I remember) Heb. iv. 15, ‘For we have not an High Priest, &amp;c.’
-Whereon he preached to very great satisfaction unto all that heard him;
-and when he came down from the pulpit, he asked me if I was not tired?
-I said, With what? He said, With his extemporate discourse. I told him,
-that had he not declared it, I believe none could have discovered it.
-His reply to me was, that he thought it very needful for a minister
-to have a body of divinity in his head.” Clarkson, in his funeral
-sermon for Dr. Owen, remarks that he seldom used notes. Of Dr. Bates,
-Howe observes, that faithful to the example and traditions of their
-Puritan fathers, “his sermons, wherein nothing could be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[213]</span> more remote
-from ramble, he constantly delivered from his memory, and hath sometime
-told me, with an amicable freedom, that he partly did it, to teach some
-that were younger to preach without notes.”<a id="FNanchor_314" href="#Footnote_314" class="fnanchor">[314]</a> Bull, however,&mdash;in
-this respect anticipating Addison,&mdash;advised young Divines not at
-first to preach their own sermons, but to provide themselves with the
-compositions of approved authors, or to read to their congregations
-either one of the authorized Homilies or a chapter selected from <i>The
-Whole Duty of Man</i>.<a id="FNanchor_315" href="#Footnote_315" class="fnanchor">[315]</a> The old Puritan practice of taking down
-sermons continued to be very common; and, if we may notice so trivial
-a matter as pulpit costume, it is amusing to add an odd story told of
-a Royal chaplain, who preached before the King at Newmarket, “in a
-long periwig and holland sleeves, according to the then fashion for
-gentlemen,” at which His Majesty was so scandalized that he commanded
-the Chancellor of the University to put in execution the statutes
-respecting decency in apparel.<a id="FNanchor_316" href="#Footnote_316" class="fnanchor">[316]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SUPERSTITION.</div>
-
-<p>VIII. Superstition still prevailed. Though the zeal for witchfinding
-diminished, rumours of witchcraft continued in circulation. People
-in Worcestershire said, that if certain witches had not been taken
-up, the King would never have returned to England. From Lancashire, a
-stronghold of the infernal sisterhood, one of the correspondents of the
-Secretary of State wrote an account of a woman who confessed, that she,
-and her father and her mother, “each rode on a black cat to Warrington,
-nine miles off, and that the cats sucked her mother till they sucked
-blood.” He states, however, that he had “little faith in this, though
-given on oath.”<a id="FNanchor_317" href="#Footnote_317" class="fnanchor">[317]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[214]</span></p>
-
-<p>Wise and good men, especially Divines and lawyers, clung as firmly
-as ever to the old belief of the power of necromancy. Baxter pursued
-his inquiries into the subject; and Sir Matthew Hale, at the Bury
-Assizes, in March, 1664, observed, touching a witch case, that he
-made no doubt there were such creatures, and appealed to Scripture in
-proof of the fact.<a id="FNanchor_318" href="#Footnote_318" class="fnanchor">[318]</a> On that occasion, Sir Thomas Browne, gave it
-as his opinion, that the parties named in the indictment as sufferers,
-were really bewitched. It is proper to remember, with respect to such
-superstitions, that, at that time, things were worse in France than in
-England. Witchcraft, divination, raising apparitions, and consulting
-the stars, were so common there in 1679, that a Commission was
-appointed, called the “Chambre Ardente,” to inquire into such cases.</p>
-
-<p>The Royal touch for curing the King’s Evil was again sought and
-bestowed. A minute religious ceremonial, almost incredible to us,
-accompanied the act. His Majesty sat in a chair of state. One of the
-Clerks of the Closet stood on his right hand, holding as many gold
-angels, everyone tied to a riband of white silk, as there were patients
-to be touched. A chaplain read in the 16th chapter of the Gospel of
-Mark from the 14th verse to the end. The <i>chirurgeon</i> presented
-the diseased; and making three reverences, they knelt down together
-before the King, the chaplain repeating the words: “They shall lay
-their hands on the sick, and they shall be healed.” His Majesty then
-touched the cheeks of the persons brought to be cured; after which, the
-chaplain read the first chapter of John as far as the 15th verse; and,
-as the words were pronounced, “That was the true light, which lighteth
-every man that cometh into the world,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[215]</span> the King suspended round the
-neck of each person one of the gold angels, handed to him by the clerk.
-Other passages of Scripture followed, a prayer was offered, and the
-ceremony ended with the King’s washing his hands.<a id="FNanchor_319" href="#Footnote_319" class="fnanchor">[319]</a> Numerous were
-the applications made for the Royal touch, to which, no doubt, the
-obtaining of a gold angel operated as a motive, no less than the hope
-of receiving a sovereign cure.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SUPERSTITION.</div>
-
-<p>I add a further illustration of the superstition of the age, not
-amongst the ignorant, but the educated. Rectors of parishes requested
-the Secretary of State to procure His Majesty’s touch for parishioners
-who were troubled with the malady. When Charles II. went to Newmarket,
-Sir Thomas Browne wrote to Sergeant Knight, and sent certificates for
-divers afflicted persons who were going from Norwich to be touched by
-the King. No fewer than 92,107 persons were asserted by the eminent
-physician, just named, to have passed through this ceremony between the
-years 1660 and 1683. One woman is said to have been cured of blindness
-by these wonderful means; and greater marvel still, a man is reported
-to have been cured of Nonconformity by witnessing the effect of the
-Royal fingers upon his child!&mdash;he expressed his thanks in this method:
-“Farewell to all Dissenters, and to all Nonconformists; if God can put
-so much virtue into the King’s hand as to heal my child, I’ll serve
-that God and that King so long as I live with all thankfulness.” An
-example of other absurd beliefs is found in a statement made to the
-Secretary of State, about a salmon which came up to the River Avon,
-on a Christmas Day. It was represented as being so religious, that it
-allowed itself to be touched by a staff, whereas at other times it is
-said,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[216]</span> “Salmon are so shy that they endure not the least shadow.” “If
-any one made a prey of these quiet <i>Christian fish</i> they came to
-an unfortunate end.”<a id="FNanchor_320" href="#Footnote_320" class="fnanchor">[320]</a></p>
-
-<p>Samuel Hartlib, in his correspondence with Dr. Worthington, of
-Cambridge, raised a question respecting angelic apparitions: “For
-long-bearded, good angels,” he says, “or lady-angels of true light,
-they do indeed cross all the old records of antiquity, whether Gentile
-or Jewish, neither Mercury, nor Gabriel, appeared otherwise than in
-prime of youthful vigour.”<a id="FNanchor_321" href="#Footnote_321" class="fnanchor">[321]</a> The Cambridge scholar inclined to the
-idea, that angels might appear in long beards, and told his friend a
-story of a stranger, who knocked at a sick man’s door, and directed him
-to make use of two red sage leaves, and one blood-wort leaf, steeped
-in beer for three days,&mdash;and to live for a month in fresh country air.
-“Several circumstances,” he gravely added, “made it probable that he
-who came was a good angel, and if so, that he appeared as a grave old
-man, very tall and straight, of a very fresh colour, his hair as white
-as wool, and his beard broad and very white.” This old man, believed to
-be an angelic visitant, wore new shoes, tied with black ribbons.<a id="FNanchor_322" href="#Footnote_322" class="fnanchor">[322]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[217]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="p-left">IX. Family life amongst the Nonconformists, in the reign of the later
-Stuarts, framed itself after the Puritan model; and in the memoirs
-of Oliver Heywood and Philip Henry, windows are open through which
-we discover their domestic habits. Saint Bartholomew’s Day became a
-solemn fast in commemoration of the ejectment,&mdash;sometimes held in
-fellowship with a neighbouring minister or ministers,&mdash;when “the
-Lord helped His servants, with strong cries, many tears, and mighty
-workings to acknowledge sin, accept of punishment, and implore
-mercy.”<a id="FNanchor_323" href="#Footnote_323" class="fnanchor">[323]</a> Sometimes, when none but the family were present, each
-person prayed in turn, the minister, the wife, the two sons, and the
-maid, beginning with the youngest. Heywood, in his <i>Diary</i>,
-alludes to a particular friend&mdash;“a solid, gracious, useful, peaceable,
-tender-hearted Christian,” with whom he had “many a sweet day of
-prayer; and,” he says, “a few days before he died, we were at a
-private fast together in Ovenden-wood; and, oh! oh! how melting and
-affectionate was his heart for his children, a son and daughter, both
-here this day!” At another time, the same minister speaks of a private
-fast with two of his brethren, “about a special business,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[218]</span> and our
-judgment was desired in an intricate matrimonial case, which seems
-something dark.”<a id="FNanchor_324" href="#Footnote_324" class="fnanchor">[324]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is said of Thomas Aquinas that he had “the gift of tears;” and his
-weeping at church is mentioned amongst the signs of his saintship. The
-same gift seems to have been possessed by this Nonconformist family.
-When Heywood’s two sons devoted themselves to the work of the Christian
-ministry, and a solemn domestic service of worship celebrated the
-event, as one of the ministers read the 48th chapter in Genesis, and
-came to the words, “The angel which redeemed me from all evil, bless
-the lads,” tears stopped him; all wept. He says in prayer “God helped
-all;” and he adds: “God wrought strangely in my heart; oh! what a flood
-of tears, what pleadings with God! I can scarce remember the like.”
-At night again, they prayed, “sobbing and weeping,” like David and
-Jonathan, “until David exceeded.”<a id="FNanchor_325" href="#Footnote_325" class="fnanchor">[325]</a></p>
-
-<p>Loyalty to the Stuarts beat in the bosoms of these Nonconformists,
-notwithstanding the treatment which they received; for we learn that,
-in the month of May, Mr. Heywood, his children, and his servant,
-spent several days with Mr. Angier at Denton, one of which days was
-the anniversary of Charles’ return, when there was a service in which
-Heywood took part.<a id="FNanchor_326" href="#Footnote_326" class="fnanchor">[326]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>They had their family meetings. Nathaniel Heywood, with his wife and
-his sons, visited Oliver; and the brother and uncle felt it a comfort
-to have “these three couples of Heywoods to meet together”&mdash;“a rising
-generation, all very hopeful.”<a id="FNanchor_327" href="#Footnote_327" class="fnanchor">[327]</a> We fancy how they talked that April
-time&mdash;in the oak parlour, as the window was thrown open, during a burst
-of sunshine, after a shower which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[219]</span> had drenched the fruit-blossoms and
-the rose-buds. We may guess the topics from incidents in connection
-with the Stanley family: Nathaniel might relate the story of his
-being taken by a party of soldiers, while preaching in the chapel at
-Bickerstaff, when Lady Stanley, who attended the service, came out of
-her gallery, and placed herself near the pulpit door, hoping to overawe
-their spirits and obstruct their designs; and how, when he attended the
-sessions at Wigan, Lady Stanley came with her husband, and others, to
-speak on behalf of the persecuted clergyman.<a id="FNanchor_328" href="#Footnote_328" class="fnanchor">[328]</a> And Oliver might be
-led to recur, by the force of association, to the visit of himself and
-Mr. Angier to Sir Thomas Stanley of Alderley, when, being requested
-to pray in that large family, the first morning he was tempted to
-study and speak “handsome words from respect to the company;” but,
-reflecting to whom he prayed, and that it was no trifling matter, he
-set himself to the exercise in serious earnestness, and God helped him
-to speak devoutly, with respect to the state of their souls.<a id="FNanchor_329" href="#Footnote_329" class="fnanchor">[329]</a> The
-hospitalities of Broad Oak were the praise of all the country round.
-The dwelling stood by the roadside, and any one travelling that way
-met with a cordial welcome at the bright fire-side, where the silenced
-Presbyter, Philip Henry, exemplified the virtues of a Bishop, “like
-Abraham sitting at his tent-door in quest of opportunities to do good.
-If he met with any poor near his house and gave them alms in money,
-yet he would bid them go to his door besides, for relief there. He was
-very tender and compassionate towards poor strangers and travellers,
-though his charity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[220]</span> and candour were often imposed upon by cheats and
-pretenders.”<a id="FNanchor_330" href="#Footnote_330" class="fnanchor">[330]</a> “This man,” says a competent witness, “(ever since
-I knew him, and whilst I was his neighbour) was careful to rise early
-on Sunday mornings, to spend a considerable portion of his time in his
-private devotions and preparations, then to come down and call his
-family together, and, after some short, preparatory prayer, to sing
-a Psalm (commonly the 100th), and then read some part of the sacred
-Scripture, and expound it very largely and particularly, and at last
-kneel down with all his family and pray devoutly; with particular
-references to the day and duties of it, and the minister that was to
-officiate. After which a short refection for breakfast, he made haste
-to church, and took care that all his family that could be spared,
-should go in due time likewise: sometime he was before the preacher,
-and often before the rest of the congregation; (as once particularly,
-when I gave them a sermon in that place, he and I walked together
-a considerable time before the people came;) he behaved himself
-reverently and very gravely in the church during the service; stood
-up commonly at prayers, and always, in my time, wrote a sermon after
-the minister. When the morning service was ended, he commonly invited
-the minister to dine with him, who seldom refused; and many others,
-who either lived at a distance, as Mrs. Hanmer, Sir Job Charleton’s
-daughter, married to a Justice of Peace in that country, or else
-such as were poor and needy. His discourse homewards was sweet and
-spiritual; at table it was seasoned as well as his meat; edifying,
-and yet pleasant, and taking; never wild or offensive. After meat and
-thanks returned, they commonly (I think constantly) before departure
-from table,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[221]</span> sung the 23rd Psalm. Sometime after, when the servants
-had dined, he propounded to such guests as he thought in prudence he
-should not be too free with, to retire into the parlour for a while,
-till he had attended upon his family, repeated over the sermon and
-prayed with them; after which he returned to his guests again, and
-having entertained them with some short discourse, he retired awhile
-himself, and by and by, called upon his family to go to church. After
-evening service and sermon ended, he retired again till six o’clock
-(then called for prayers, catechised, took an account of children and
-servants of what they remembered at church, which accounts were given
-sometimes very largely and particularly), sung a Psalm, kneeled down to
-prayers (which consisted more of praise and benediction than at other
-times), and at last, his children kneeling down before him (to beg his
-blessing), he blessed them all, and concluded the service of the day
-with the 123rd Psalm; save that after supper, he retired for about
-half-an-hour more into his study before bed-time. Sometimes after the
-public service ended at church, he gave some spiritual instructions,
-and preached in his house to as many as would come to hear him; and
-in his last years, when the Incumbents grew careless in providing
-supplies for two or three neighbouring churches and chapels, and the
-people cried out for lack of vision, he set up a constant ministration
-and preaching at home, never taking anything by way of reward for his
-pains, unless with a purpose to give it away to those who were in
-greater necessities.”<a id="FNanchor_331" href="#Footnote_331" class="fnanchor">[331]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>That a sad colour tinged the joys of the Nonconformists must be
-confessed. How their Anglo-Saxon<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[222]</span> gravity might become more grave,
-and the light which sparkled over the home-life of their neighbours,
-might, in their own case, be darkened,&mdash;we see plainly enough when
-we recollect the perils which brooded over them even in seasons of
-calm, and the cruel interruptions which they suffered in the cloudy
-and dark day. Heywood speaks of officers sweeping away his chests,
-his tables, his chairs, his bed,&mdash;in short all his goods, except a
-cupboard and a few seats; and the same person was, for holding a
-religious meeting, imprisoned in York Castle.<a id="FNanchor_332" href="#Footnote_332" class="fnanchor">[332]</a> How could such men,
-with all their tenderness, help being stern in their faith, and solemn
-in their pleasures? If genial they could not be light-hearted. They
-did not weep, as their enemies often said of them that they did, with
-a hypocritical whine; nor did they laugh, as some of their enemies
-really did, with affected glee,&mdash;their tears and smiles were genuine
-as the rain and the sunshine from heaven. Life was not to them, as
-to some others, a gay comedy,&mdash;it had in it a tragic cast; yet they
-never regarded it as a drama acted on the stage, but always as a real,
-earnest battle, fought in the open field, under the eye of God.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>Let us pass from the homes of Oliver Heywood and the two Henrys to
-the mansion of a Nonconformist nobleman already noticed&mdash;Philip Lord
-Wharton, the good Lord Wharton, as he is called, to distinguish him
-from a descendant of a far different character. In the pleasant
-village of Woburn, in Buckinghamshire, situated on the river Wick, a
-tributary to the Thames,&mdash;which in its course through a delightful
-district, turns the wheel of many a paper mill,&mdash;there stands, under
-the shadow of richly-wooded hills, and adorned by a stately row
-of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[223]</span> poplars, a goodly house; connected with which are stables and
-fish-ponds, pertaining to a far nobler residence which once occupied
-the site. The estate, before it came into the possession of the
-Whartons, exhibited much magnificence, of the feudal stamp, containing
-a palace for the Bishops of Lincoln, and a chapel with a small cell
-adjoining, called Little Ease,&mdash;where Thomas Chase, of Amersham, was,
-in 1506, privately strangled for heresy, and where Thomas Harding,
-of Chesham, was confined in 1532, previously to his being burnt at
-the stake. This ancient and stately house became a great place of
-resort for Nonconformist Divines. Manton and Bates, Howe and Owen,
-were often entertained under the hospitable roof, and the shadows of
-these departed ones still pleasantly haunt the spot, as the Puritan
-residents of the neighbourhood conduct strangers through the gardens,
-and relate to them the legends of the old dwelling. There&mdash;during one
-of the severe attacks of his fatal malady&mdash;Owen wrote his last and
-justly admired letters to his Church; and there, under the operation
-of the Five Mile Act&mdash;the house being above that distance from High
-Wycombe&mdash;the Nonconformists of the neighbouring town used to assemble
-for worship. The chapel formed a convenient place for the purpose; and
-within its walls the voices of eminent Divines, Owen and Howe, for
-example, might be often heard. Thither came Puritans from Wycombe and
-Farnham, and Langley and other places; and one can see them in the
-dress of the period, with their steeple-crowned hats, and their short
-cloaks, coming down the hill-side, or crossing the green&mdash;not in large
-groups, but singly, stealthily picking their way to avoid observation,
-a peasant from a neighbouring farm wading on foot, a burgess from the
-good town of Wycombe, riding his little cob. When the service was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[224]</span>
-over on Sunday forenoon, and the Wycombe people and other folks from
-Marlow and Beaconsfield, and stragglers from a greater distance, were
-putting on their hats and cloaks, and preparing to unfasten their nags
-and to turn homewards, the noble host would invite the people, in
-Buckinghamshire phraseology, “to stop and take a sop in the pan,” that
-they might avail themselves of the privilege of attending worship again
-in the afternoon.<a id="FNanchor_333" href="#Footnote_333" class="fnanchor">[333]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>The curious and quaint structure of Hoghton Tower, in the County of
-Lancaster, is also connected with the Nonconformist memories of the
-seventeenth century; for there Howe preached a part of his sublime
-discourse concerning “The Redeemer’s dominion over the invisible
-world.” And from the exquisitely tender dedication prefixed to it, we
-gather that it was occasioned by the death of the eldest son of Sir
-Charles and Lady Hoghton, to whom the tower belonged. The dedication
-indicates that the bereaved parents had sprung from “religious and
-honourable families, favoured of God, valued and beloved in the
-countries where He had planted them;” and that their early homes had
-been “both seats of religion and of the worship of God, the resorts
-of His servants; houses of mercy to the indigent, of justice to the
-vicious, of patronage to the sober and virtuous; of good example to
-all about them.” Addressing her ladyship, the preacher says: “Madam,
-who could have a more pleasant retrospect upon former days, than you?
-recounting your Antrim delights; the delight you took in your excellent
-relations, your garden delights, your closet delights, your Lord’s Day
-delights! But how much a greater thing is it to serve God in your
-present station, as the mother of a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[225]</span> numerous and hopeful offspring;
-as the mistress of a large family; where you bear your part, with your
-like-minded consort, in supporting the interest of God and religion,
-and have opportunity of scattering blessings round about you.”<a id="FNanchor_334" href="#Footnote_334" class="fnanchor">[334]</a>
-The graceful allusions, which the author makes to the family circle
-at Hoghton, brings before us a domestic picture, which may serve as
-a pendant to that of Broad Oak, the accessories of a Nonconformist
-minister’s household being alone exchanged for those of a baronet.
-From the title and dedication of another sermon by the same Divine,
-“Self-dedication discoursed in the anniversary thanksgiving of a
-person of honour for a great deliverance,”&mdash;namely, the preservation
-from death by a fall from a horse of “John, Earl of Kildare, Baron of
-Ophalia, first of his order in the kingdom of Ireland,”&mdash;we gather that
-it was a Puritan practice to celebrate distinguished family mercies
-by annual religious solemnities. Two sermons by the same writer on the
-words, “Yield yourselves unto God,” are inscribed “To the much-honoured
-Bartholomew Soame, Esq., of Thurlow, and Susanna his pious consort;”
-with the notice, that one day in the previous summer the author
-preached the sermons under their roof.<a id="FNanchor_335" href="#Footnote_335" class="fnanchor">[335]</a> The circumstance shows,
-that sometimes elaborate addresses, fitted for public audiences, were
-carefully prepared for a small number of persons, such as could be
-accommodated within the entrance-hall, or in one of the apartments of a
-country gentleman’s house.</p>
-
-<p>In some Nonconformist families, as was quite natural, romantic
-incidents occurred. Major-General Lambert, who figured prominently in
-connection with Cromwell, and who was kept a prisoner in the days of
-Charles II.,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[226]</span> had a son very unlike himself as it regards religion.
-This gentleman became acquainted with the widow of Charles Nowel of
-Merely&mdash;a lady who was of the family of Lister, of Arnoldsbiggen. The
-union with her first husband had been a runaway match, contracted in a
-covered walk within her father’s grounds; after which the bridegroom
-fell into the water, and was drowned, in returning home with the
-license of marriage in his pocket, so that he and she never met again.
-Young Lambert married this ill-fated maiden-widow; and then it turned
-out that the tastes of the couple were utterly unlike&mdash;he much addicted
-to pleasure, she against it; he going to church at Kirkby, Malham-dale,
-she walking every Sunday to the Dissenting meeting-house at Winterburn.
-His father, the Major-General, wrote a letter, rebuking him for his
-extravagance; and his wife invited Mr. Frankland, the Nonconformist
-pastor, to come and preach in Craven, with a view to his benefit;
-this the gay sportsman at first opposed. But a change came over him;
-he himself invited Oliver Heywood to be his guest, and showed him his
-pictures&mdash;“he being an exact limner:” one would hope he also became a
-penitent Christian. Lambert was seized with palsy in January, 1676,
-about which time his mother died in Plymouth Castle.<a id="FNanchor_336" href="#Footnote_336" class="fnanchor">[336]</a></p>
-
-<p>During the first three centuries of the history of Christianity, and
-the more than ten persecutions which annalists have numbered, the
-professors of the Divine faith had to suffer, far beyond what the laws
-in their utmost severity could inflict. Imperial rescripts carried out
-to the letter, or magisterial commands going further, were terrible
-beyond description; and popular fury shouting, “The Christians to the
-lions,” became more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[227]</span> cruel still. But another source of suffering, to
-minds of sensibility exceeding the rest in the bitterness of anguish
-which it produced, was when the husband persecuted the wife, and the
-father the child. Tertullian tells us that there were many such cases.
-The annals of the Church of the Restoration afford parallels in this
-last, as in other respects, to the records of older times.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>Agnes Beaumont, the daughter of a Bedfordshire yeoman, lost her mother
-when very young. Her father sometimes went to hear the preaching of
-John Bunyan, but he afterwards conceived a strong antipathy to that
-famous minister. The girl manifested religious feeling, and joined
-Bunyan’s Church, when a lawyer, who had wished to marry her for the
-sake of her father’s property, became her inveterate foe. But the
-daughter remained faithful to her convictions; and this circumstance
-so provoked her father’s irritable temper, that he opposed her going
-to hear the favourite preacher any more. On a particular occasion,
-however, she extorted his consent to attend once. It was the depth of
-winter. Weary of wading through the mud, and overtaken by Bunyan riding
-on his way to the place of worship, she was reluctantly permitted by
-him to sit, pillion-fashion, behind him on horseback, when the two
-were met by a clergyman, who immediately invented a scandalous report
-respecting the minister and the maid. Agnes, after attending the
-meeting, found the door of her house barred against her admission.
-“Who is there?” asked Beaumont, as she knocked. “’Tis I, father, come
-home wet and dirty: pray let me in.” “Where you have been all day, you
-may go at night,” was the answer from the other side of the bolted
-entrance. She went and sought shelter in a barn. The morning brought no
-relenting to the heart of her unnatural parent; and he declared that
-she should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[228]</span> not enter the house, unless she promised never to go to a
-meeting again so long as he lived. “Father,” she answered, “my soul is
-of too much worth to do this. Can you stand in my stead, and answer
-for me at the great day? If so, I will obey you in this demand, as I
-do in all other things.” Much painful excitement followed. At last,
-fearful of being disobedient, the young woman promised never to go to
-a conventicle as long as he lived, without his consent. This softened
-him a little, and they were reconciled; but as she reflected upon her
-promise, it struck her that she had been unfaithful to her conscience,
-and she passed through great spiritual distress. Soon afterwards
-Beaumont fell ill, and retired to rest. His daughter, hearing him
-moaning in his chamber, rushed to his assistance, and found him struck
-with death. Fatal disease had been brought on, most likely by violence
-of temper; and the poor girl, through the villany of her pretended
-lover, now had to face the accusation of having murdered her parent.
-Though, on the coroner’s inquest, her innocence was established, her
-implacable enemy perseveringly maintained, that she had privately
-confessed the crime, the object of which was to marry Bunyan, who had
-a wife living at that very time; the villain also, without one atom of
-evidence, charged her with committing arson.<a id="FNanchor_337" href="#Footnote_337" class="fnanchor">[337]</a> More of revenge than
-persecution entered into the conduct of this man; yet, for a while,
-Agnes Beaumont, for her religious constancy, endured the most violent
-parental anger, probably not uncommon in those days, and akin to that
-which fell upon many a pure-minded maiden in Carthage or in Rome.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>The domestic and private life of the Established clergy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[229]</span> and
-their friends, as they appear in the biographies and gossiping
-literature of the day, assume a rather different aspect from that
-of the Nonconformists. Such a dignitary as Reynolds, who had been a
-Presbyterian, would no doubt preserve, in his palace at Norwich, many
-of the Puritan habits of the Commonwealth&mdash;would gather around him,
-as far as possible, a godly household, in sympathy with him in his
-spiritual tastes&mdash;would continue to converse much after the fashion of
-by-gone days&mdash;and with the adoption of the Episcopalian formularies in
-the cathedral and chapel, would connect, in more retired devotion, the
-use of extemporaneous prayer, and of Scripture exposition. And such
-a parish pastor as Gurnall would, in a similar way, continue Puritan
-usages in his quiet parsonage at Lavenham. We must look elsewhere for
-characteristic habits and customs of the Episcopalian stamp. Of an
-Anglican prelate, enjoying his palace, and engaged in his diocese, a
-good specimen is afforded by the memoirs of Seth Ward, the Bishop of
-Salisbury.<a id="FNanchor_338" href="#Footnote_338" class="fnanchor">[338]</a></p>
-
-<p>He was renowned for hospitality. The clergy, even the meanest curates,
-were welcome at his table; and people of quality, travelling between
-London and Exeter, stopped at the Wiltshire city, and dined at the
-palace. He was a hearty entertainer, we are told, assuring his guests
-that he accounted himself but a steward, and pressing upon them the
-enjoyment of the fare which he plentifully provided. He would not ask,
-“Will you drink a glass of wine?” says his biographer, with amusing
-minuteness; but he would call for a bottle, and drink himself, and then
-offer it to his friends. The poor were relieved at his gates. He had
-a band of weekly pensioners; and when he went out for a walk in the
-streets<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[230]</span> or on the plains, he gave money to all who solicited alms; and
-when children saw him in his coach or on horseback, they would rush
-from their play, to shout, in expectation of a largess, “The Bishop is
-coming.” Being a capital horseman, he would ride twenty miles before
-dinner, and not mind following the hounds, if he “by chance chopt upon”
-them. After dinner and “a dish or two of coffee or tea,” as soon as the
-bell “tilled,”&mdash;to use the Salisbury phrase,&mdash;he called for his robes,
-and went to church, taking with him his visitors.<a id="FNanchor_339" href="#Footnote_339" class="fnanchor">[339]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of another kind of dignitary an example is afforded in the memoirs of
-the Honourable and Reverend Dr. John North. He was Clerk of the Closet
-to Charles II.; possessing “a very convenient lodging in Whitehall,
-upon the parade of the Court, near the presence-chamber,” where his
-table was provided from the Royal kitchen, and he enjoyed the company
-of His Majesty’s chaplains. People who had nothing else to do, would
-say to one another&mdash;so North’s brother reports&mdash;“Come, shall we go
-and spend half-an-hour with Mr. Clerk of the Closet?” but when they
-went with the expectation of getting “a glass of wine or ale,” the
-wary Divine, by the advice of an old Courtier, would not offer so
-much as “small beer in hot weather,” lest he should be overdone with
-visitors. In consequence of this prudent determination, he lived “like
-a hermit in his cell, in the midst of the Court, and proved the title
-of a foolish French writer, <i>La Solitude de la Cour</i>.” “Divers
-persons,” however, particularly ladies, “far from Papists,” were wont
-to repair to this spiritual officer for a different purpose, thinking
-“auricular confession, though no duty, a pious practice,” and seeking
-“to ease their minds” by means of that Anglo-Catholic custom.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[231]</span> He did
-“the office of a pastor or <i>parochus</i> of the Court,” somewhat
-after the fashion of the mediæval Clerks of the Closet, who were,
-in fact, Court confessors. “And I have heard him say,” proceeds his
-brother, “that, for the number of persons that resided in the Court,
-a place reputed a centre of all vice and irreligion, he thought there
-were as many truly pious and strictly religious as could be found in
-any other resort whatsoever; and he never saw so much fervent devotion,
-and such frequent acts of piety and charity, as his station gave
-him occasion to observe there. It often falls out that extremes are
-conterminous, and, as contraries, illustrate each other: so here virtue
-and vice.”<a id="FNanchor_340" href="#Footnote_340" class="fnanchor">[340]</a> We are glad to hear such testimony, and, when we think
-of Evelyn and Margaret Godolphin, we cannot altogether doubt it; but,
-as this Court Divine lived in a cell, he could not know much of what
-went on around him in the Court.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>Noble families observed the duties of domestic worship; and, from
-the same source as that from which the last illustration is drawn,
-it appears how the household of the princely Duke of Beaufort, at
-Badminton, attended to this practice. There was breakfast in the
-Duchess’ gallery, which opened into the gardens, where perhaps a deer
-was to be killed; and half-an-hour after eleven in the forenoon the
-bell rang to prayers; and at six in the evening the best company went
-into an aisle in the church, where the Duke and Duchess could see if
-all the family were present. Her Grace had divers gentlewomen with her,
-commonly engaged upon “embroidery and fringe-making; for all the beds
-of state were made and finished in the house.”<a id="FNanchor_341" href="#Footnote_341" class="fnanchor">[341]</a></p>
-
-<p>Instead of extemporary effusions, Episcopalians used the daily prayers
-of the Church, or selections from them.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[232]</span> On special occasions the
-minister of the parish performed the office; and an amusing instance
-occurs of the neglect of this custom on the part of a gentleman who
-had the honour of entertaining the Judges on the Western Circuit. “He
-himself got behind the table in his hall, and read a chapter, and then
-a long-winded prayer, after the Presbyterian way. The Judges took it
-very ill, but did not think fit to affront him in his own house. Next
-day”&mdash;who the narrator is may be guessed&mdash;“when we came early in the
-morning to Exeter, all the news was that the Judges had been at a
-conventicle, and the Grand Jury intended to present them and all their
-retinue for it; and much merriment was made upon that subject.”<a id="FNanchor_342" href="#Footnote_342" class="fnanchor">[342]</a></p>
-
-<p>Devout Anglicans attended strictly to the private duties of religion.
-They kept fasts and festivals in their own houses, as well as at
-church; and in their morning and evening devotions they used portions
-of the Common Prayer, or forms supplied by Taylor and Andrewes. They
-read the sermons of those Divines, and of Sanderson and others; perhaps
-also the annotations of Hammond or some kindred expositor. At a later
-period, <i>The Whole Duty of Man</i> became a very popular book with
-the class of persons now described.</p>
-
-<p>I conclude these illustrations of Anglo-Catholic life with the account
-of the death of an Anglo-Catholic young lady:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Upon Thursday, the 1st of February, my most dearly beloved daughter
-Grimston fell sick of small-pox.</p>
-
-<p>“She had, from the beginning of her sickness to the last period of her
-breath, an understanding very entire, and so perfect a patience that
-her demeanour towards them who were about her was not only holy, but
-cheerful too.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[233]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FAMILY LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>“She received the sentence of death with the greatest tranquillity
-of soul that is imaginable, and sent for Mr. Frampton (the household
-chaplain to the Master of the Rolls, in whose house she died). To him
-she made an excellent confession of her faith and life, and opened all
-the burdens of her spirit, wherein were found no heavier matters than
-a few angry words spoken seven years since, and some small errors of
-that nature. But [there followed] a most solemn repentance for all
-transgressions, whether remembered or forgotten. This being done,
-she did, with great devotion, receive the blessed sacrament, and the
-absolution of the Church. Before she composed herself to die, she
-first took a most kind and comfortable leave of her dear husband&mdash;who,
-from the beginning of her sickness till the hour of her death, never
-left her chamber&mdash;praying God to bless him, and that he might never
-find the want of her. Then she recommended her little girl to my wife,
-entreating her to take her into her family, if it might not be too
-great a trouble, and desiring her not to weep, for she was happy. She
-remembered almost every relation she had in the world by name, and
-offered up a particular prayer for them. I had never seen her after
-the second day of her sickness; but she prayed most devoutly for me,
-and desired all that were present to tell me from her, that, if prayer
-were made in heaven, she would never cease to pray for me there so long
-as I lived here: an expression so amazing from a child, and withal so
-piercing, that, in the midst of all my spiritual joys, I feel a sorrow
-great enough to break my heart if I would give way to it. For within a
-few minutes after these words uttered, she surrendered up her blessed
-soul into the hands of God Almighty, who, by the assistance of His
-most blessed Spirit, had prepared and fitted her for Himself. And now
-she hath left her dear husband, and his family, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[234]</span> mine, as full of
-mourning and lamentation for the want of her as can possibly consist
-with Christian patience and submission. On Monday next she is carried
-from hence to her grave, in St. Michael’s Church, near Gorhambury.”<a id="FNanchor_343" href="#Footnote_343" class="fnanchor">[343]</a></p>
-
-<p>X. As during the Commonwealth, so after the Restoration, different
-opinions were entertained respecting the observance of Sunday.
-Puritans were not all of one mind upon that matter. Extreme men argued
-thus:&mdash;“If honest labour be forbidden, much more honest recreations;
-for recreation is but the means to prepare and fit men for labour;
-therefore, if labour, which is the end of recreation, be forbidden,
-much more recreation, which is but the means to labour.”<a id="FNanchor_344" href="#Footnote_344" class="fnanchor">[344]</a> But
-Baxter, who was himself strict in the observance of the day, and who
-then walked for his health <i>privately</i>, lest he “should tempt
-others to sin,” observed, with great moderation, “The body must be kept
-in that condition (as far we can) that is fittest for the service of
-the soul: a heavy body is but a dull and heavy servant to the mind,
-yea, a great impediment to the soul in duty, and a great temptation to
-many sins.” “When the sights of prospects, and beautiful buildings,
-and fields, and countries, or the use of walks, or gardens, do tend to
-raise the soul to holy contemplation, to admire the Creator, and to
-think of the glory of the life to come (as Bernard used his pleasant
-walks), this delight is lawful, if not a duty where it may be had.” Of
-music and moderate feasting he says, when they “promote the spiritual
-service of the day, they are good and profitable.”<a id="FNanchor_345" href="#Footnote_345" class="fnanchor">[345]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[235]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OBSERVANCE OF THE SABBATH.</div>
-
-<p>Owen, perhaps, was more strict in his views of Sabbath observance
-than Baxter; yet he spoke of its being no small mistake that men have
-laboured more to multiply directions about external duties than to
-direct a due sanctification of the day according to the spirit and
-genius of Gospel obedience; and he did not deny that some, measuring
-others by themselves, tied people up unto such long tiresome duties,
-and rigid abstinences from refreshments, as clogged their minds, and
-turned the whole service of the day into a wearisome bodily exercise
-which profiteth little.<a id="FNanchor_346" href="#Footnote_346" class="fnanchor">[346]</a></p>
-
-<p>Between Puritans and Anglicans a great difference continued upon the
-Sunday question. Jeremy Taylor, speaking of persons who objected to
-have meat dressed upon the Lord’s Day, or to use an innocent, permitted
-recreation, says&mdash;“When such an opinion makes a sect, and this sect
-gets firm, confident, and zealous defenders, in a little time it will
-dwell upon the conscience as if it were a native there, whereas it
-is but a pitiful inmate, and ought to be turned out of doors.”<a id="FNanchor_347" href="#Footnote_347" class="fnanchor">[347]</a>
-Thorndike denied the obligation of the Fourth Commandment upon any but
-the Jewish people; he based the authority for the Lord’s Day on the
-Apostolic custom of the Church, and he disapproved of the Sabbatarian
-strictness of the Puritans.<a id="FNanchor_348" href="#Footnote_348" class="fnanchor">[348]</a> Sanderson pleaded for recreations,
-“walking and discoursing” for “men of liberal education;” but for
-the “ruder sort of people,” “shooting, leaping, pitching the bar,
-and stool-ball,” rather than “dicing and carding.” “These pastimes,”
-he said, were to be used “in godly and commendable sort,” with great
-moderation, at seasonable times, not during Divine service,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[236]</span> nor at
-hours appointed by the master of the house for private devotion, but
-so as to make men fitter for God’s service during the rest of the
-day, and all this was to be done, not doubtingly, <i>for whatsoever
-is not of faith is sin</i>; nor uncharitably, for in this, “as in all
-indifferent things, a wise and charitable man will, in godly wisdom,
-deny himself many times the use of that liberty, which, in a godly
-charity, he dare not deny to his brother.”<a id="FNanchor_349" href="#Footnote_349" class="fnanchor">[349]</a> Although the <i>Book
-of Sports</i> had lost its authority, its spirit revived after the
-Restoration, and amusements in accordance with its provisions were
-encouraged, in some cases, without any checks or any religious teaching
-of the kind adopted by Sanderson. Cosin, indeed, in a sermon upon
-Sunday observance, quotes a remark by Augustine, which condemns all
-vain and idle pastimes&mdash;“Some people keep holy day for the devil, and
-not for God, and should be better employed, labouring and ploughing
-in their fields, than so to spend the day in idleness and vanity,
-and women should better bestow their time in spinning of wool, than
-upon the Lord’s Day to lose their time leaping and dancing, and other
-such wantonness.”<a id="FNanchor_350" href="#Footnote_350" class="fnanchor">[350]</a> Borough magistrates enforced the observance
-of the Sabbath; not only were corporations, attired in their gowns,
-required to attend church, morning and afternoon, but all masters were
-ordered to cause their apprentices to be at Divine service at the
-same time.<a id="FNanchor_351" href="#Footnote_351" class="fnanchor">[351]</a> In the houses of such as disliked Puritanism, scenes
-of levity, if not dissipation, often desecrated the holy hours. After
-attendance at church, time was spent in a manner at variance with the
-previous devotions.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RECREATIONS.</div>
-
-<p>Pious Anglicans after the Restoration loved the first<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[237]</span> day of the
-week with all the fervour of George Herbert;&mdash;and what some of them
-said with reference to recreations, shocking as it appeared to
-Puritans, proceeded not from a desire of self-indulgence, but from
-a consideration of weakness in other people,&mdash;still, the Sabbath
-remained the Puritans’ peculiar treasure. They put on it the highest
-price. To them it seemed the jewel and crown, the bloom and flower
-of the week, the torch which lighted up its dark days, the sunshine
-which from eternity streamed down on the waters of time. Unwisdom,
-sinking into superstition, betrayed itself in the strictness of their
-conduct, provoking ridicule, and producing reaction; but it should
-not be overlooked that it was from their great love to the festival,
-that they were so careful to frame rules for its preservation. Some
-treated Puritan habits as pitiable, and regarded the men as insanely
-melancholy, but the latter esteemed themselves objects for envy rather
-than commiseration, since in their own hearts they made the Sabbath “a
-delight, the holy of the Lord, and honourable.”</p>
-
-<p>XI. The idea of “a Christian year,” a sanctification of the seasons
-of nature by Gospel memories, is undeniably beautiful. This theory of
-time, adopted by the Church of England, reappeared at the Revolution,
-and days which mark the progress of the old earth’s journeys round
-the sun were stamped anew with sacred names, and entwined with the
-history of the Redeemer and His Apostles. Christmas celebrated the
-Incarnation, and Epiphany the infant appearance of Jesus to the Magi at
-Bethlehem, with subsequent manifestations of His glory; Lent was the
-spring period, set apart for fasting and prayer, preparatory to the
-commemoration of Divine mercy in the atonement of Christ. Palm Sunday
-is not recognized in the English Prayer Book. On the Sunday<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[238]</span> before
-Easter no reference occurs to our Lord’s entrance into Jerusalem in
-the proper Lessons, the Epistle, or the Gospel. But Easter itself,
-after the sorrows of Good Friday, is a high and holy festival, when
-the Church breaks out into songs of joy because of the Resurrection
-of her Lord. At the close of the forty days following, come Rogation
-Week, with Holy Thursday, and then Whitsuntide&mdash;a season associated
-with Christ’s Ascension, and culminating in the celebration of
-Pentecost. Trinity Sunday crowns the whole, and invites the faithful to
-contemplate the comprehensive, the fundamental, the mysterious doctrine
-of a distinction in the Godhead. The character and history of St. John
-the Baptist, and of the Apostles, St. Matthias, St. Peter, St. James,
-St. Bartholomew, St. Matthew, St. Simon and St. Jude, St. Andrew,
-St. Thomas, are in succession bound up with certain days, the series
-terminating in the festival of All Saints.<a id="FNanchor_352" href="#Footnote_352" class="fnanchor">[352]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RECREATIONS.</div>
-
-<p>With these seasons, observed from ancient times, various recreations
-had become connected in the middle ages. Many of them survived the fall
-of Popery, and with exceptions and changes, came once more, at the
-Restoration, into general fashion and indulgence. To say the least,
-they brought around sacred things the strangest and most incongruous
-associations. Some, indeed, were very much worse than strange and
-incongruous. Christmas Eve shone with the blaze of the Yule log, and
-its bountiful accompaniments of good cheer. The Christmas carol echoed
-through the family hall with gay music from the minstrels’ gallery.
-The Christmas hobby-horse cut strange capers, and Christmas-boxes
-were given freely to young and old. The Lord of misrule, the foot
-plough,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[239]</span> and the sword dance, Yule doughs, mince-pies, Christmas-pies
-and plum-puddings added to the tide of fellowship and pleasure at
-that mid-winter season. All the glories of Twelfth night, which threw
-old men and old women, as well as little children, into ecstasies
-of merriment, were engrafted on the feast of Epiphany. Easter
-holidays, Easter liftings, Easter eggs, and all sorts of Easter fun,
-gathered in strange, grotesque, often revolting, contrast round the
-professed acknowledgment of the greatest of the redemptive miracles
-of Christianity. Rogation Week, with Ascension Day in its centre, had
-long been the chosen time for sacred processions and litanies, and now
-again in England, on the Monday, Tuesday, and Wednesday of that week,
-parochial perambulations revived; charity children carried flowers;
-the clergy with singing men and boys, all in sacred vestments, and
-with churchwardens and parishioners, beat the bounds of the parish,
-and under Gospel oaks, and other Gospel trees, the Incumbent read the
-Gospel, according to an old custom, in which had originated these
-familiar appellations. The idea of such perambulations, sanctioned by
-the Church, was&mdash;that processional worship should be offered to the
-Almighty, that thanks should be given to Him for the promise of a good
-crop, or that prayer should be offered for His mercy on the prospect of
-a bad harvest. But the gathering together of all sorts of idle people,
-and the habit of drinking which obtained amongst them, led to most
-deplorable excesses.</p>
-
-<p>Superstitious and absurd practices cropped up profusely on St.
-Mark’s Eve. With St. John’s Day was coupled the use, in decoration,
-of the birch, the lily, and St. John’s wort, and at night bonfires
-illuminated the villages of “Merrie England.” St. Peter’s Day had
-similar illuminations; St. James’ Day was a time for eating<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[240]</span> oysters,
-and Allhallow Even was devoted to nut-cracking, apple-catching, and the
-ancient game of quintain. The feasts of the consecration of churches
-degenerated into rush bearings, hoppings, and all kinds of rustic
-amusements, in which, as Bishop Hall observed in his <i>Triumph of
-Pleasure</i> “you may well say no Greek can be merrier than they.”</p>
-
-<p>The theory was to unite the remembrance of Christian facts and
-Christian names with particular seasons in the lives of men, to
-interlink religion with social intercourse, to recognize recreation
-as a human necessity, to hallow it with Christian influences, and to
-allow joy, on account of the events recorded in the Gospel, to express
-itself in innocent festivities. But nobody can fail to see that if
-this was the theory, the practice did not correspond with it, for the
-history of the amusements common in England at these festivals after
-the Restoration, as before, abounds in proofs of revelry and riot, most
-unseemly in the estimation of sober Christians. A distinction ought
-to be made between the use of festivities at Christmas, Easter, and
-other seasons, and their abuse; between what is harmful and what is
-innocent; and also it must be allowed that, whilst Churchmen, in the
-days of which we speak, mingled recreation with religion, some of them
-also mingled the spirit of religion with recreation, and condemned
-all vicious indulgence; but the fact still remains, that amongst the
-lower classes, and the upper as well, in cities and towns, and in rural
-districts, a large amount of social demoralization existed under the
-cover of Christian symbols, and in union with professedly Christian
-observances. This fact should not be overlooked in an Ecclesiastical
-History of England.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RECREATIONS.</div>
-
-<p>Different ideas respecting amusements are marked badges of religious
-denominations, and one of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[241]</span> dangers of all Puritanism is a tendency
-to separate between recreation and religion, and to regard them as if
-antagonistic, from mistaken views of the condition and necessities
-of human nature; views which ignore one side of the mind of man, and
-narrow the range of social sympathies. Some good men of the Puritan
-class did, in consequence, look sourly on several very innocent
-sorts of pleasure; but the morbid, ungenial restriction of feeling,
-ascribed to the Puritans in general, has been greatly exaggerated, and
-to some extent, so far as it really existed, an excuse may be found
-for it in the persecuting treatment which they, as a body, received
-from those who were foremost in promoting the revival of old English
-customs. The distinctive amusements of the Church festivals the Puritan
-disliked, condemned, and opposed. Indeed, many disliked, condemned,
-and opposed the festivals themselves, from a strong conviction that
-they were superstitious in their origin, their character, and their
-tendency. They devoutly believed in the events which those festivals
-commemorated, and thought that they should be remembered, not at
-particular seasons, but all the year round. Their idea of the festivals
-was not such as to redeem the recreations which had clustered round
-them; and the recreations themselves were, to their religious and moral
-tastes, exceedingly offensive.</p>
-
-<p>After all which has been said to the contrary, however, numbers of the
-Puritans&mdash;under the later Stuarts, under the earlier ones, and under
-the Commonwealth&mdash;were genial and even “facetious”&mdash;to use a word
-applied to some of their best men&mdash;full of pleasantness, and by no
-means averse to certain English amusements. Many demonstrations of joy
-they made in common with their neighbours. Feasting and sending gifts
-to one another, the ringing of bells, making bonfires, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[242]</span> sounding
-trumpets, with thundering of ordnance on great national occasions, had
-been recommended in so many words from the chief pulpit of Manchester,
-by the chief Presbyterian minister of that City. If Puritans objected
-to drinking healths, some had no objections to see the street-conduits
-running with claret. Anti-prelatists, like prelatists before, and
-Nonconformists, like Conformists after the Restoration, indulged in the
-sports of fishing and shooting; they followed the hounds, and they went
-a hawking.</p>
-
-<p>Cock-fighting is an old English amusement, especially at Shrove-tide,
-and, strange as it may seem, an eminent Puritan minister, Henry
-Newcome, allowed his boys, when that season came round, to “shoot
-at the cock.” He amusingly expresses in his diary a fear lest the
-youngsters should come to mischief in so dangerous a game, and
-therefore prayed to God that He would preserve them, as he thankfully
-acknowledges God was pleased to do; and he mentions that on one
-occasion he had particular reason to be alarmed, since what was meant
-for the cock threatened danger to the boy, for “Daniel’s hat on his
-head was shot through with an arrow.” Yet the careful and devout
-father never indicates an apprehension of there being anything wrong
-in the game itself.<a id="FNanchor_353" href="#Footnote_353" class="fnanchor">[353]</a> Nonconformists condemned card-playing, and
-other games of chance, but if the late Nonconformists resembled their
-Presbyterian predecessors, they amused themselves with balls and
-billiards. The game of shuffle-board was a Royal amusement, and a
-board for playing the game is mentioned in an inventory of the goods
-belonging to Charles I., which were seized at Ludlow Castle. Boards
-of this description had lines<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[243]</span> drawn across them at one end, and the
-players stood at the other, the object being to push or <i>shove</i>
-flat pieces of metal across the lines, without causing them to fall off
-the board. Newcome liked to play this game, as appears from his diary,
-only he was afraid of taking “too great a latitude in such mirth,” and
-thought it his duty to let some “savoury thing” fall at the time, and
-if he cracked a jest, he considered himself as thereby incurring a debt
-for an equal amount of serious discourse. The Presbyterian minister,
-who tells these stories of himself, was a young man at the time to
-which he thus refers, and he lived beyond the Revolution, but it is
-very probable that in after years he continued cautiously to practise
-his early favourite amusement. There is, however, no reason to believe
-that his taste in this respect, and his habit of indulging in it, is to
-be taken as a specimen of Nonconformists’ recreation in general.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHARITIES.</div>
-
-<p>XII. The charities revived or established after the Restoration,
-springing from the benevolent spirit of Christianity, call for some
-notice. Visiting the venerable hospital of St. Mary, in the City
-of Chichester, with its spacious hall, spanned by an arched roof,
-and its rows of tiny rooms built on either side, as if in a covered
-street, with its chapel and altar table, and other provisions
-for Episcopalian worship on Sundays and week-days, and with its
-old-fashioned men and women finding rest in their declining days,
-after the toils and troubles of life; or visiting the like venerable
-hospital of Bishopgate, in the City of Norwich, with somewhat similar
-arrangements, we see the kind of place in which benevolent people loved
-to shelter the aged and the infirm in the days of Charles II. After the
-banishment&mdash;during the Commonwealth&mdash;of the ancient religious services,
-and of the old spirit of these quaint retreats&mdash;not,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[244]</span> however, to the
-violation of the charitable purposes of the foundation&mdash;those services
-took possession of them again at the Restoration. The same may be said
-of numerous almshouses in different parts of the country.</p>
-
-<p>New ones of a similar description were established. Bishop Ward’s
-College of Matrons, for the maintenance of ten widows of orthodox
-clergymen, may be mentioned as an instance. He disliked it to be called
-an hospital, it being intended for those who were well descended,
-and had lived in good reputation. He purchased land in the Close at
-Salisbury, on which to erect the buildings, and the Cathedral being
-so near, they were required to attend worship there, both morning
-and evening. The same prelate endowed an hospital at Buntingford,
-in Hertfordshire, the place of his birth, for ten aged men, each to
-receive ten pounds a year.</p>
-
-<p>Some persons, in founding almshouses, required that all the inmates
-should “be conformed to the Church of England, according to the
-Thirty-Nine Articles,” and placed under the ban of exclusion all such
-as should not profess, or follow the Protestant religion, or should
-absent themselves from the parish or castle church without cause.<a id="FNanchor_354" href="#Footnote_354" class="fnanchor">[354]</a>
-Others devised bequests in a more catholic spirit, providing “that poor
-boys may be instructed in the principles of the Protestant religion,
-and in the fear of the Lord, and also to read and to write, and to cast
-up accounts, that so they may be blessed in their souls as well as in
-their bodies, and may be a blessing to their masters, and may for ever
-have cause to bless God for the fatherly care” of the Mayor on their
-behalf.<a id="FNanchor_355" href="#Footnote_355" class="fnanchor">[355]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[245]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHARITIES.</div>
-
-<p>The name of a singular kind of person, who signalized himself by his
-beneficence, may also be introduced.</p>
-
-<p>An epitaph on a tomb-stone in the Chapel of Jesus’ College, Cambridge,
-records his deeds:&mdash;“Tobias Rustat, Yeoman of the Robes to King Charles
-II., whom he served with all duty and faithfulness in his adversity
-as well as prosperity, both at home and abroad. The greatest part of
-the estate he gathered by God’s blessing, the King’s favour, and his
-industry, he disposed in his lifetime in works of charity, and found
-the more he bestowed upon churches, hospitals, universities, and
-colleges, and upon poor widows and orphans of orthodox ministers, the
-more he had at the year’s end. Neither was he unmindful of his kindred
-and relations in making them provision out of what remained. He died a
-bachelor the 15th day of March, in the year of our Lord 1693, aged 87.”</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Sutcliffe, in the reign of James I., founded and built a college
-at Chelsea “principally for the maintenance of the true Catholic,
-Apostolic, and Christian faith, and next, for the practice, setting
-forth, and increase of true and sound learning against the pedantry,
-sophistries and novelties of the Jesuits, and others, the Pope’s
-factors and followers; and, thirdly, against the treachery of the
-Pelagians, and Arminians, and others, that draw towards Popery and
-Babylonian slavery, endeavouring to make a rent in God’s Church,
-and a peace between heresy and God’s true faith&mdash;between Christ and
-Antichrist.”<a id="FNanchor_356" href="#Footnote_356" class="fnanchor">[356]</a> Although patronized by the King, this indefinite
-scheme for maintaining truth in a controversial age came to nothing,
-and Charles II. appropriated the ground occupied by the college to
-the famous Royal Hospital for superannuated soldiers. Everybody is
-familiar with the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[246]</span> imposing edifice near the banks of the Thames, and
-with the stories about Nell Gwynn’s influence, in the establishment
-of the foundation, but it is not generally known, that a number of
-persons, besides the King, took part in the work, and that it is really
-a monument of national as well as of Royal munificence.</p>
-
-<p>Tillotson, in one of his sermons, commemorates the benevolence of a
-London merchant:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“He (Mr. Gouge) set the poor of St. Sepulchre’s parish (where he was
-a minister) to work at his own charge. He bought flax and hemp for
-them to spin; when spun he paid them for their work, and caused it
-to be wrought into cloth, which he sold as he could, himself bearing
-the whole loss. This was a very wise and well-chosen way of charity,
-and in the good effect of it, a much greater charity; than if he had
-given to those very persons (freely and for nothing) so much as he made
-them earn by their work, because, by this means, he rescued them from
-two most dangerous temptations&mdash;idleness and poverty. This course, so
-happily devised and begun by Mr. Gouge, gave, it may be, the first hint
-to that useful and worthy citizen, Mr. Thos. Firman, of a much larger
-design, which has been managed by him some years in this city, with
-that vigour and good success, that many hundreds of poor children,
-and others, who lived idle before, unprofitable both to themselves
-and the public, now maintain themselves, and are also some advantage
-to the community. By the assistance and charity of many excellent and
-well-disposed persons, Mr. Firman is enabled to bear the unavoidable
-loss and charge of so vast an undertaking, and by his own forward
-inclination to charity, and unwearied diligence and activity, is fitted
-to sustain and go through the incredible pains of it.”<a id="FNanchor_357" href="#Footnote_357" class="fnanchor">[357]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[247]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHARITIES.</div>
-
-<p>Such instances of Christian benevolence are quite as worthy of being
-recorded in ecclesiastical history as the strifes of controversy, and
-the changes of government, and it may therefore be added in reference
-to “the useful and worthy citizen, Mr. Firman,” just mentioned, that,
-although he was a person of singular and heterodox opinions, he
-distinguished himself above many who condemned his errors; and left
-behind him a name for active and unwearied charity, which entitles
-him to a place in the same honourable list with Howard, Fry, and
-Peabody. The details of his beneficence are minutely recorded in his
-interesting life: besides establishing a linen manufactory entirely
-for the employment and benefit of poor spinners, he visited prisons,
-and redeemed poor debtors; he was a zealous supporter of Christ’s and
-St. Thomas’ Hospitals; he largely gave away Bibles, good books, and
-catechisms; he diligently helped the French Refugees; he evinced a deep
-interest in the sufferings and relief of the persecuted Irish, and he
-was an eminent contributor to the wants of the poor.<a id="FNanchor_358" href="#Footnote_358" class="fnanchor">[358]</a></p>
-
-<p>Nor were missionary efforts altogether neglected. Sir Leoline
-Jenkins&mdash;who, in 1680, succeeded Sir William Coventry as Secretary of
-State&mdash;was touched by the large amount of spiritual destitution amongst
-the Navy and in the Colonies, and with a view to the supplying of it,
-he instituted two fellowships in Jesus’ College, Oxford, the holders of
-which should go out to sea as Chaplains<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">[248]</span> of the Fleet, or proceed to
-“His Majesty’s foreign plantations, there to take upon them a cure of
-souls.”</p>
-
-<p>In July, 1649, an ordinance had been passed by the Long Parliament for
-the propagation of the Gospel in New England. A collection for the
-object having been made in every parish, a large sum was realized in
-consequence. With this money certain lands were purchased of Colonel
-Beddingfield, a Roman Catholic Royalist, the annual proceeds of which
-were to be devoted to the mission. But after the Restoration, the
-Colonel seized back the property for his own use, and it was only after
-legal proceedings,&mdash;in which Clarendon, as Lord Chancellor, behaved
-most equitably,&mdash;that it was recovered by the trustees. Charles II.
-granted the Society a new Charter of Incorporation, of which Robert
-Boyle became president; and Mr. Ashurst, an influential and pious
-citizen, and alderman of London, who had been treasurer before,
-reaccepted that important post. Richard Baxter took an active part in
-the proceedings at home, and John Eliot, a missionary to the Indians,
-carried on its operations abroad. Letters are preserved which passed
-between the illustrious Divine and the illustrious Evangelist, and
-from one written by the former we learn that, although, from reasons
-connected with the peculiar character of the times, numbers were
-unwilling to leave England just then to embark in this new expedition
-of religious zeal, many would have been glad to have gone amongst
-“Persians, Tartarians, and Indians,” to preach the Gospel, had they
-but understood the language. Hints respecting universal language&mdash;a
-dream which occupied the thoughts of Wilkins, the Bishop of Chester,
-and inspired George Dalgarno’s <i>Ars Signorum</i>&mdash;occur in Eliot’s
-letters, showing that he leaned towards the Hebrew tongue as the
-all-comprehensive vehicle of instruction&mdash;the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[249]</span> tongue which, he said,
-will be spoken in heaven, and which, by its “trigramical foundation,”
-is “capable of a regular expatiation into millions of words, no
-language like it.” Baxter was strongly excited by the deplorable
-destitution of the Gospel, but it inspired more of despair than of
-hope; it paralyzed rather than stimulated effort. “He that surveyeth
-the present state of the earth, and considereth, that scarcely a sixth
-part is Christian, and how small a part of them are reformed, and how
-small a part of them have much of the power of godliness, will be ready
-to think that Christ hath called almost all His chosen, and is ready
-to forsake the earth, rather than that He intendeth us such blessed
-days below as we desire. We shall have what we would, but not in this
-world.”<a id="FNanchor_359" href="#Footnote_359" class="fnanchor">[359]</a> There are also several letters from Eliot to Boyle,
-written with touching simplicity&mdash;reports, in fact, of the missionary
-work in New England&mdash;in which the apostle to the Indians addresses
-the President of the Society as a right honourable, deeply learned,
-abundantly charitable, and constant, nursing father.<a id="FNanchor_360" href="#Footnote_360" class="fnanchor">[360]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CHARITIES.</div>
-
-<p>Boyle devoted to the New England mission, £300 a year during his life,
-and, by his will, bequeathed a legacy of £100; and although several
-persons of distinction were nominally connected with the scheme, he was
-its moving-spring, its power and life. The meetings for the transaction
-of its affairs, which he commonly attended, were held at Alderman
-Ashurst’s residence in London&mdash;the first board of foreign missions in
-Protestant England, and the first mission-house of that kind in its
-enterprising metropolis. Missionary operations on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[250]</span> a much larger scale
-were commenced after the Revolution.</p>
-
-<p>XIII. I have recorded several incidents which occurred in the
-Universities. Nothing like a history of those great institutions comes
-within the purpose of this work, nor is there any need to describe
-their state after the Restoration, as in former volumes I described it
-before that event:&mdash;because, during the Commonwealth, the Universities
-were extraordinarily circumstanced, but at the Restoration they
-returned to their normal condition, in which they have continued ever
-since. A few notices, however, indicative of the studies and habits of
-the members, may be appropriately included within this chapter.</p>
-
-<p>Sancroft conveys an unfavourable impression of the state of things
-at Cambridge in the year 1663:&mdash;“It would grieve you to hear of our
-public examinations; the Hebrew and Greek learning being out of fashion
-everywhere, and especially in the other Colleges, where we are forced
-to seek our candidates for fellowships; and the rational learning they
-pretend to, being neither the old philosophy, nor steadily any one of
-the new. In fine, though I must do the present society right, and say,
-that divers of them are very good scholars, and orthodox (I believe)
-and dutiful both to King and Church; yet methinks I find not that old
-genius and spirit of learning generally in the College that made it
-once so deservedly famous; nor shall I hope to retrieve it any way
-sooner, than by your directions who lived here in the most flourishing
-times of it.”<a id="FNanchor_361" href="#Footnote_361" class="fnanchor">[361]</a></p>
-
-<p>Not only would the transition from Puritan to Anglican occasion
-inconvenience, but a transition also occurred<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[251]</span> from the study of the
-old to the study of the new philosophy,&mdash;from Aristotle to Plato,
-and from the pursuit of metaphysics to the investigation of physical
-science. Lucas founded a professorship of Mathematics in the year 1663,
-to which office Barrow was the first appointed, and in his inaugural
-address, he eulogizes that department of knowledge which he was about
-to teach.<a id="FNanchor_362" href="#Footnote_362" class="fnanchor">[362]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">UNIVERSITIES.</div>
-
-<p>Another great change at Cambridge, consequent upon the Restoration, is
-seen in the decline of Calvinistic theology, the return of Anglican
-opinions, and especially the progress of the Latitudinarian schools of
-Divinity, described in a subsequent portion of this work. Turning to
-less important matters, it may be observed that Royal mandates became
-too common, and provoked refusals from the College authorities. Dr.
-Cudworth, Master of Christ’s, politely apologized for declining an
-order for the election of a son of Sir Richard Fanshaw, as a Fellow,
-pleading that “since the Restoration, their little College had received
-and obeyed ten Royal letters; and even received a manciple imposed
-by letter, though it was a thing never known before.” “When mandates
-are so plentifully granted they cannot possibly be all obeyed.”<a id="FNanchor_363" href="#Footnote_363" class="fnanchor">[363]</a>
-North set himself decidedly against these mandates, as most mischievous
-abuses, and contrived by pre-elections to obviate their occurrence.
-“Out of the several years, four or five one under another, he caused
-to be pre-elected into fellowships scholars of the best capacities
-in the several years; which made it improbable another<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[252]</span> election
-should come about in so many years then next ensuing, for until all
-these elections were benefited there could be no vacancy, and that
-broke the course of mandates whilst he lived.” North was a High Tory,
-an advocate of absolute monarchy, a severe disciplinarian, and an
-austere man in his personal habits. Although his opinions accorded
-with those prevalent in the University, his conduct as the Head of
-a College made him unpopular; and it happened, one evening,&mdash;when
-sitting in his dining-room by the fire, the chimney being opposite to
-the windows, looking out into the great quadrangle,&mdash;that a stone was
-sent from the court through the window. He was “inwardly vexed, and
-soon after, the discourse fell upon the subject of people’s kicking
-against their superiors in government, who preserves them as children
-are preserved by parents; and then he had a scroll of instances, out of
-Greek history, to the same purpose, concluding that no conscientious
-magistrate can be popular, but in lieu of that, he must arm himself
-with equanimity.” He differed at times from the senior fellows, and
-at a meeting for business, when eight of them had determined to have
-their own way, and carry a point on which they had previously agreed,
-one of them attempted to effect his object by saying, “Master, since
-you will not agree, we must rise, and break up the meeting.” “Nay,” he
-replied, “that you shall not do, for I myself will rise and be gone
-first.”<a id="FNanchor_364" href="#Footnote_364" class="fnanchor">[364]</a> This brought them round. The relation of such an incident
-gives an idea of the High Church Don at Cambridge much better than any
-general description, and throws amusing light on the social life of the
-University.</p>
-
-<p>The election of a new Chancellor was then, as it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">[253]</span> generally is, an
-exciting event for the University men, and every kind of influence
-was brought to bear upon the success of the respective competitors.
-In 1671, the Duke of Buckingham entered into a contest with the Earl
-of Arlington, for the enjoyment of the honour, and obtained the
-prize; Williamson, the Secretary of State, having without effect
-canvassed on the opposite side. Leading men apologized to him for not
-supporting his candidate, of which an instance appears in the following
-communication:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">UNIVERSITIES.</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“For Joseph Williamson, Esq., Whitehall.&mdash;Sir,&mdash;My worthy
-friend,&mdash;This morning, about seven, I received the favour of your
-letter sent me by Dr. Turner, of St. John’s, and Dr. Cudworth our
-Master received another from you to the same effect. But we were so
-far engaged before, having been visited (as we call it here, for the
-Duke of Buckingham) on Sunday or Monday last, and the inclinations of
-the University lay so against an Oxford man (you know our academical
-humour) that no good could be done so late for my Lord Arlington, but
-the Duke was chosen this day with a <i>nemine contradicente</i>. You
-know, dear Sir, my personal obligations to you are such, and peculiarly
-in my expectancy for the professorship, that you might command not only
-my own suffrage, but all the friends I could make if it had been in
-time.</p>
-
-<p>“Believe me to be your much obliged and humble Servant,</p>
-
-<p class="smcap r2">John Carr.</p>
-
-<p class="smcap">“Christ’s Coll., Cambridge,<br />
-<span class="left4"><i>May 11, 1671</i>.”</span></p>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>There are other letters amongst the <i>State Papers</i> on the same
-subject, including one from Dr. Cudworth, to Williamson, excusing
-himself for supporting the Duke instead of the Earl.</p>
-
-<p>Charles II. visited Cambridge on the 4th of October<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">[254]</span> in the same year,
-and the whole body of students wearing academical habits, according to
-their several degrees, lined the streets as His Majesty visited the
-various buildings. He was received by the new Chancellor and the other
-authorities, who presented him with a “fair Bible,” accompanied by a
-short speech from the public orator. The King visited the University’s
-libraries and the Colleges of Trinity and St. John, and after dining at
-Trinity he saw a comedy acted there, with which he expressed himself
-well pleased.<a id="FNanchor_365" href="#Footnote_365" class="fnanchor">[365]</a> In 1674, the Duke of Monmouth succeeded the Duke of
-Buckingham in the Chancellorship, and in that year we find the former
-sending a curious communication to the Eastern University.</p>
-
-<p>By His Majesty’s desire he noticed the liberty which several persons in
-holy orders had taken to wear their own hair and perukes of an unusual
-and unbecoming length, and rebuked them for it, strictly enjoining
-that all such, who professed the study of Divinity, should wear their
-hair in a manner more suitable to the gravity and sobriety of their
-profession. He also blamed them in His Majesty’s name for reading
-sermons, and commanded that preaching from MS., which took a beginning
-with the disorders of the late times, should be wholly laid aside,
-and that preachers should deliver their sermons, both in Latin and
-English, by memory or without book, as being a way of preaching which
-His Majesty judged most agreeable to the use of all foreign Churches,
-to the former custom of the University, and the nature and intention of
-the holy exercise itself.<a id="FNanchor_366" href="#Footnote_366" class="fnanchor">[366]</a> These injunctions<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">[255]</span> were anticipated at
-Oxford, where James, Duke of Ormond, continued Chancellor from 1669 to
-1688.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">UNIVERSITIES.</div>
-
-<p>“It is not long since,” writes Dr. Ralph Bathurst, President of
-Trinity, “we had notice of the Duke of Monmouth’s letter, written
-by His Majesty’s command, to the University of Cambridge, against
-<i>long hair</i> and the <i>reading of sermons</i>. It was here thought
-advisable to obviate the like reproof to ourselves, by an early
-compliance with His Majesty’s desires, though we think ourselves much
-more blameless than they, especially in the last particular. To this
-end, I have this day published a programme, the copy whereof I have
-made bold to send you.”<a id="FNanchor_367" href="#Footnote_367" class="fnanchor">[367]</a></p>
-
-<p>With this amusing insight into academic life, may be coupled another
-of earlier date. Williamson, Secretary of State, presented to Queen’s
-College, a silver trumpet and two pairs of banners. Thanks were
-returned by Dr. Thomas Barlow, in the name of the Society, and the gift
-was described as “most welcome, not only for its cost and curiosity,
-but for its congruity to them who by statute are to be called to dinner
-with a trumpet, though fitter for him to give than for a poor College
-to receive, to call them to a mess of pottage and twopenny commons. It
-will be used on all solemn days, but at other times their old brass
-trumpet will serve the turn.” In another letter, it is remarked,
-“The Provost, and all the company, highly extol them, and are very
-grateful for them. The trumpet was long sounded in the quadrangle,
-wine was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">[256]</span> drunk through the hall, and venison pasties were at every
-table, there being a whole buck from Lady Foster, of Aldermaston,”
-besides Williamson’s from Woodstock.<a id="FNanchor_368" href="#Footnote_368" class="fnanchor">[368]</a> Old Christmas and Candlemas
-customs were revived, and the senior undergraduates amused themselves
-at night before the charcoal fires by bringing in the freshmen, and
-making them “sit down on a form in the middle of the hall, joining to
-the declaimer’s desk,”&mdash;where they were required to “speak some pretty
-apothegm, or make a jest or bull;” and if the thing were not done
-cleverly, the unhappy wight was punished by the seniors, who would
-“<i>tuck</i> him&mdash;that is set the nail of their thumb to his chin, just
-under the lip, and by the help of their other fingers under the chin,
-they would give him a mark which sometimes would produce blood.”<a id="FNanchor_369" href="#Footnote_369" class="fnanchor">[369]</a>
-A picturesque usage occurred on Holy Thursday, when the Fellows of New
-College walked to Bartholomew’s Hospital, which was decked with fruit
-for the occasion, and then, after reading the Scriptures, and the
-singing of hymns, they offered silver to be divided amongst poor men;
-then they proceeded to Stockwell, where, after reading the epistle and
-gospel for the day, the Fellows in “the open place, like the ancient
-Druids, echoed and warbled out from the shady arbours, melodious
-melody, consisting of several parts, then most in fashion.”<a id="FNanchor_370" href="#Footnote_370" class="fnanchor">[370]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">UNIVERSITIES.</div>
-
-<p>The conduct of persons who from time to time acted the part of
-<i>Terræ filius</i>, had been complained of under the Commonwealth;
-it continued to be complained of after the Restoration. The excesses
-into which these lawless students were wont to run, with other
-corresponding<span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">[257]</span> extravagances, appear to have reached their greatest
-height in 1669, at the opening of the Sheldon theatre. South once, as
-University orator, delivered a long oration, in which he satirically
-inveighed against Cromwell, the Fanatics, the Royal Society, and the
-new philosophy:&mdash;and then pronounced encomiums upon the Archbishop,
-the building, the Vice-Chancellor, the Architect, and the Decorator,
-concluding with execrations, cast upon Fanatics, Conventicles, and
-Comprehension, “damning them <i>ad inferos, ad Gehennam</i>.” At the
-same Commemoration, the <i>Terræ filius</i> gave so general offence,
-that Dr. Wallis says: “I believe the University hath thereby lost more
-reputation than they have gained by all the rest.” “The excellent
-Lady,” he adds, “which your letter mentions, was, in the broadest
-language represented as guilty of those crimes, of which, if there were
-occasion, you would not stick to be her compurgator.”<a id="FNanchor_371" href="#Footnote_371" class="fnanchor">[371]</a></p>
-
-<p>Complaints of the same kind were made years afterwards. The Bishop of
-Oxford, writing December 14, 1684, complains:&mdash;“The <i>Terræ filii</i>
-in this place have of late taken to themselves such licenses as were
-altogether intolerable, their scurrilous discourses passing not only
-the bounds of decency but of common humanity, so that it was necessary
-for the University to oppose sharp remedies to so prevailing an
-evil.”<a id="FNanchor_372" href="#Footnote_372" class="fnanchor">[372]</a></p>
-
-<p>Within eighteen months of the date of the Oxford decree for burning
-the books of Milton and others, there occurred another Act conceived
-in the same spirit. Lord Sunderland wrote to the Bishop of Oxford, Dr.
-John Fell, complaining of John Locke,&mdash;“He being,” remarks the Bishop
-in reply, “as your Lordship is truly informed, a person who was much
-trusted by the late Earl of Shaftesbury,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">[258]</span> and who is suspected to be
-ill-affected to the Government, I have for divers years had an eye upon
-him, but so close has his guard been on himself, that after several
-strict inquiries, I may confidently affirm that there is not any man in
-the College, however familiar with him, who has heard him speak a word
-either against, or so much as concerning the Government.” Yet, although
-Locke was so extremely cautious, the Bishop professed the greatest
-zeal in seeking his expulsion, and, after describing what he himself
-meant to do, adds: “If this method seem not effectual or speedy enough,
-and His Majesty, our founder and visitor, shall please to command his
-immediate remove, upon the receipt thereof, directed to the Dean and
-Chapter, it shall accordingly be executed.” A warrant, immediately
-despatched by Sunderland, signified the King’s pleasure, that John
-Locke should be removed from his student’s place, to which the Bishop
-obsequiously replied: “I hold myself bound in duty to signify to your
-Lordship that His Majesty’s command for the expulsion of Mr. Locke from
-this College is fully executed.”<a id="FNanchor_373" href="#Footnote_373" class="fnanchor">[373]</a> This disgraceful deed originated,
-it is true, with the Sovereign, but the part taken by the Bishop, and
-the Dean and Chapter of Christchurch, with the silent acquiescence of
-the University, demonstrates what must have been the political and
-ecclesiastical atmosphere of the place at that time.</p>
-
-<p>We here terminate these somewhat rambling notices of the
-ecclesiastical, the religious, and the academic life of the period;
-and proceed to notice, in the next chapter, a very important subject
-connected with the state of the English Churches, which has not
-received from historians the attention it requires.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">[259]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Theological science is a growth; and to its growth, as developed in our
-own day, the labours of a long line of students have contributed. The
-<i>genesis</i> of doctrinal opinion is a subject worthy of much more
-careful research than it has yet received. To find out how particular
-dogmas have been broached and modified, how they have originated and
-been unfolded, goes far to fix their truth or their falsehood; and
-any man who would thoroughly understand the theology of this country,
-must study carefully the chief authors of theological literature
-in the seventeenth century. Andrewes, Donne, Jackson, Thorndike,
-Taylor, Pearson, and Bull&mdash;More, Smith, Cudworth, and Barrow&mdash;Goodwin,
-Owen, Baxter, Howe, and Charnock&mdash;were all eminent Divines of that
-period&mdash;all, in different degrees, erudite scholars&mdash;all hard
-thinkers; and although they belonged to schools of thought differing
-in important respects, inasmuch as they read each other’s books, and
-answered each other’s arguments, they could not but influence each
-other’s minds. To ponder and to compare them is an exercise helpful
-to a theological thinker in his search after truth. Unless we believe
-in the infallibility of our own Church, whatever that Church may
-be&mdash;unless we also believe our own Church to have collected every
-part of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">[260]</span> theological truth, to have examined it under every possible
-aspect, and to have secured the best possible point of view&mdash;all of us
-who engage in sacred studies are bound not to confine ourselves to the
-perusal of authors who belong to the way of thinking which prevails in
-our own denomination. Rome has her <i>Index Expurgatorius</i>, and in
-this she is perfectly consistent. Protestantism, whilst it condemns
-the Romanist prohibition of inquiry, is excessively inconsistent, if
-it encourages similar exclusiveness on the part of its own disciples,
-or allows a wider circle of reading only for controversial purposes.
-The narrowness of theological schools, and the bigotry of religious
-sects, is very much owing to a limited acquaintance with books, and
-to a prejudiced feeling against what is read when accustomed limits
-are overstepped. And in reference to the authors of the seventeenth
-century, it cannot be fairly denied&mdash;after all which may justly be
-said touching the dryness and prolixity of their dissertations&mdash;that a
-depth, thoroughness, and power may be found in some of these men which
-we miss, with a few exceptions, in Divines of our own day.</p>
-
-<p>As the writings of which I speak, together with other influences, have
-served to produce phases of religious thought amongst ourselves, so
-amongst them, the writings of earlier theologians, together with other
-influences, served to produce the characteristic peculiarities of their
-religious thought. We are apt to underrate the <i>number</i> of ways in
-which thinking is affected; and we often forget that a simple result
-may proceed from most complex and composite causes. Many people imagine
-that the climate of a country is determined entirely by position in
-point of latitude&mdash;that every mile nearer the pole it must be colder,
-and every mile nearer the equator it must be warmer; whereas numerous
-and diversified agencies interfere with climate, and produce wonderful
-curves in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">[261]</span> isothermal lines. So, many people imagine that one
-cause&mdash;the study of the Bible&mdash;solely determines theological opinion;
-whereas, forces of all descriptions&mdash;even climate and scenery, race
-and language, laws and memories, especially early education, domestic
-life, books, friendships, and idiosyncrasies&mdash;have a share in the
-result. Divines two centuries ago might not, any more than ourselves,
-be conscious of the diversified and subtle operations to which they
-were subjected; but that circumstance does not interfere with the fact
-itself.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>There had been four broad lines of theological opinion long before
-the middle of the seventeenth century, as there have been four broad
-lines running on ever since. In the second century and onward we
-meet with <i>patristic orthodoxy</i>, the great facts and principles
-of Christianity taught by the Apostles being illustrated and
-defended, especially in the Nicene age, by thoughtful men, who, in
-the use of their natural faculties, by the blessing of Almighty God,
-explained and established much which is true; not, however, without
-an admixture of something which was false. In the third century
-we meet with <i>Alexandrian philosophy</i>, which, by a natural
-tendency, aimed at bringing the intellectual culture of the age
-into connection with the Gospel; and therefore dwelt much upon the
-reasonableness of Christianity, and the points of affinity between
-it and certain forms of human opinion. In the fourth century we find
-<i>dogmatic Evangelicalism</i> gathered up by Augustine, and woven
-into a distinctive system of Christian thought. At the same time the
-element of <i>Mysticism</i> appears at work, preparing for a vigorous
-expression of itself during the middle ages. Throughout those ages
-these four currents are traceable, generic resemblances, being marked,
-of course, by specific varieties. At the Reformation two of these,
-the Nicene<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">[262]</span> and the Augustinian, are manifest enough in the English
-Protestant Church, both struggling against Rome; each also struggling
-with the other. The traces of Alexandrianism and of Mysticism, after
-disappearing for awhile, become distinctly visible in the seventeenth
-century.</p>
-
-<p>It is impossible not to connect the Anglican development of that period
-with the faith, the polity, and the worship of the Nicene age, and the
-Puritan doctrines of the same period, with the theology and spiritual
-life of Augustine. Nor can there be any doubt that the so-called
-Latitudinarianism (I use the word in its historical sense) of the
-Cambridge school comes in lineal succession to that of Alexandria. And
-if Mysticism, as existing amongst Quakers, be not capable of showing
-distinct historical links of connection with previous thinking, it
-is plain that its elements had existed long before: a fact, indeed,
-insisted upon by its more erudite exponents.<a id="FNanchor_374" href="#Footnote_374" class="fnanchor">[374]</a> Anglicans, Puritans,
-Latitudinarians, and Mystics were all of ancient lineage, although
-some were unacquainted with, and might even be prejudiced against,
-their ancestry. Besides, as already indicated, there were other and
-more immediate influences at work. The ecclesiastical revolutions and
-conflicts under Elizabeth and the Stuarts, the traditions of domestic
-life, parental and school education, the atmosphere pervading social
-circles, and especially the constitution of individual minds&mdash;these
-served to shape systems which stood in direct and determined conflict
-with one another. Nor let it be forgotten that, though divers factors
-of religious thought may be enumerated, others exist which lie too deep
-for discovery and analysis, even by the most subtle inquirers. If it
-be true generally that we have no complete science of history, it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">[263]</span> is
-eminently true of the history of theological opinion. There is mystery
-in all growth, for there is mystery in all life; and it is idle to
-suppose that, at least in this world, we shall ever arrive at a perfect
-philosophy of the progress or activity of mind, in reference to that
-which is at once, of all subjects, the most practical and the most
-mysterious.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>It will assist the reader in understanding what follows, to observe
-that, whilst all the theologians to be described appealed to Scripture,
-each class had its own standard and principles of interpretation; and
-that, whilst all professed to take the Bible as a whole, each selected
-from it some favourite parts. The Anglicans, professedly as well as
-actually, adopted the teaching of the first four or five centuries as
-a guide to the meaning of Holy Writ. They looked upon that period as
-the purest and ripest age of Christian wisdom, and concluded that the
-Church of after-days has been, and is, bound to adhere to the faith
-and order then established. The Puritans had no such idea of patristic
-teaching, but contended for the full right of private judgment. Some
-of the Fathers they valued and loved, particularly Augustine; yet
-without attaching any special authority even to him. They professed
-to come to the sacred oracles with unbiassed minds, and it is one of
-their characteristic notions that the Holy Spirit, bestowed upon devout
-seekers, remains alone the unerring Expositor of His own Word. The
-Latitudinarians had their favourite authors, particularly of the Greek
-philosophical school; and although they did not adopt the opinions of
-the Puritans as to the teaching of the Spirit, any more than did the
-Anglicans, yet, in common with both of them, they were prepared to seek
-Divine assistance in the study of the sacred volume. What, however,
-they mainly relied upon was their own<span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">[264]</span> reason. The Quakers, in their
-turn, extolled the inward light, the illumination of Christ’s Spirit,
-as explaining and supplementing the written Word. The Fathers, the Holy
-Spirit, human reason, and the inward light, were the interpreters to
-which different classes of Scripture students looked for help in their
-momentous investigations. In connection with this difference another
-presents itself. The Anglicans insisted upon those parts of Scripture
-which relate to the Holy Trinity, the Incarnation, and the Atonement,
-and to the ordinances of baptism and the Lord’s Supper. They used the
-priesthood and rites of Judaism for the support of their own views
-regarding sacerdotal ministrations. Diocesan episcopacy and Apostolical
-succession they endeavoured to deduce from the New Testament; but they
-were obliged to rest principally upon patristic records for what they
-believed and taught upon these subjects.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>Passages relating to justification by faith, to the election of grace,
-and to the adoption of believers, do not stand out in their writings,
-as do the other class of passages to which I have referred. In this
-respect the Anglicans differed from the Puritans. By the latter,
-texts bearing upon the topics now mentioned, in connection with other
-texts touching the Divinity of our Lord, and the Holy Trinity, and
-the satisfaction made by Christ upon the cross, were most abundantly
-cited, illustrated, and enforced. The Puritans regarded such texts
-as distinctive of the Gospel&mdash;as rendering it a suitable message of
-redemption and love to sinful men. I scruple not to say that I warmly
-sympathize with them in this last respect. The Gospel is glad tidings
-of great joy to all people: this is the pith of the blessed message,
-“Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners.” “His name shall
-be called Jesus, for he shall save his people from their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">[265]</span> sins.”
-But whilst I admire and honour the Puritans for their attachment to
-evangelic truth, I cannot conceal my conviction that they too, in their
-turn, are chargeable with one-sidedness. They had their favourite
-verses, and, in some instances, dwelt upon them to the neglect of
-others, and without fully considering the general current of Scripture
-instructions&mdash;which current is really still more important and decisive
-than particular sentences, which are apt to be looked at apart from
-their connection. Some of the Puritan Divines did not sufficiently
-consider those passages which recognize in the Atonement an element
-of moral power over the human soul; or those passages which present
-justification and sanctification, in their inseparable relation, as
-two sides of one and the same redemption; or those passages which
-teach the power of the human will, the free agency of man, and his
-personal responsibility; or those passages which unfold the sweet and
-beautiful fatherhood of Almighty God. The reaction produced by the
-errors of Popery in identifying sanctification with justification, in
-overlooking the free grace of the Gospel, and in fostering notions of
-human merit, drove the Puritans into extreme antagonistic positions,
-where the forensic idea of righteousness too often overshadowed the
-moral idea, and an inevitable and resistless fatalism took the place of
-Divine parental government at once merciful and righteous. Some of the
-Puritans, indeed, lie less open to such exceptions than did others, as
-will appear in the subsequent analysis of their works.</p>
-
-<p>The Latitudinarians also had their favourite portions of hallowed
-Writ, raising the moral teaching of the New Testament, and what they
-considered the large and liberal views of humanity given in the Bible,
-above the doctrinal sentences which so much occupied the attention<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">[266]</span> of
-Anglicans on the one hand, and above those which equally occupied the
-attention of Puritans on the other. To Latitudinarians, Christianity
-seemed more an ethical than a doctrinal system; and in their writings
-evangelic truth shines with a very subdued and chilly kind of
-illumination.</p>
-
-<p>The Quakers, too, had their favourite verses, and were continually
-insisting upon those which, as they thought, supported the idea of an
-inward light.</p>
-
-<p>What has now been imperfectly advanced in relation to predominant lines
-of thinking in the seventeenth century is to be accepted only in a
-general sense. One writer differed so much from another, that, whilst
-resemblances exist, mere general statements respecting them are likely
-to mislead, unless they are checked and modified by a careful review of
-individual opinions.</p>
-
-<p>Such a review is now to be attempted, with a full conviction of its
-very great difficulties.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>Taking the period between the opening of the Long Parliament and the
-Revolution (1640–1688), I might divide it into two epochs&mdash;the one
-extending as far as the end of the Commonwealth, the other beginning
-at that crisis. Modes of thought of the kind just pointed out can
-be traced along the whole course, abreast of each other. The two
-antagonistic systems are Anglicanism and Puritanism; and from 1640
-to 1660, Puritanism is seen in the ascendant, as a reaction against
-Anglicanism; and from 1660 to 1688, Anglicanism is in the ascendant,
-as a reaction against Puritanism. No doubt some slight differences
-obtained between the Anglicanism of the first twenty years and the
-Anglicanism of the last twenty-eight, and the same may be said of the
-Puritanism of the first and second of those generations; but there
-is no necessity for breaking the history into two parts, since the
-general<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">[267]</span> identity of each system is preserved throughout the whole
-period, and all the leading representatives lived and studied, and
-most of them acted and wrote, both before and after the Restoration;
-besides, to separate their later from their earlier works would destroy
-the unity of this narrative, and create confusion in the reader’s
-mind. The Latitudinarians appeared at Cambridge before the death of
-Oliver Cromwell, and at that period began to produce some effect upon
-theological speculation and religious life; but it was not until
-afterwards that their characteristic tendencies became fully apparent.
-Quaker Mysticism took its rise in the midst of the Commonwealth era,
-and continued its course, with increasing power, up to the hour of
-the Revolution. Therefore to cut in two the theological history of
-this half century would be inconvenient; and although the plan which
-I adopt is open to objection, I shall select examples of the teaching
-throughout that period, without adopting any chronological subdivision.
-I shall begin with the Anglicans, then notice the Latitudinarians,
-then touch upon the Quaker Mystics, and end with the Puritans. My
-endeavour will be to state them as fairly as I can; not to indulge in
-vague generalization, but to give their own words and turns of thought
-whenever it is possible; and, by references as well as citations,
-to supply the means of rectifying any mistakes into which I may
-unfortunately happen to fall. In stating arguments on different sides,
-I shall endeavour to guard against colouring reports of opinion with my
-own predilections or prejudices. At the same time, I shall not refrain
-from occasionally indicating, in a few words, my own belief; for no man
-who has deep convictions touching these subjects, however he may strive
-to write with impartiality about various parties, will dare to write
-with indifference upon what he conceives to be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">[268]</span> vital truths. Moreover,
-it appears to me very important to notice certain circumstances in
-the lives of these authors; for it is quite clear to my mind, that we
-cannot accurately understand the history of theology, or duly estimate
-theological opinions, apart from the biography of the theologians
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Herbert Thorndike first claims attention. He possessed a mind which
-was singularly acute and comprehensive. He had trained himself to the
-practice of subtle reasoning, yet he generally gives, in his writings,
-indications of no small measure of what Englishmen call common sense;
-and, on every page, he exhibits those rich and varied treasures of
-theological learning which a quiet life of study alone can enable any
-one to accumulate. It cannot be denied that the formal method employed
-in his arguments is often quite unimpeachable; yet, whilst logical in
-reasoning, he is illogical in arrangement; and his discursive habits
-of thought often tempt him into zigzag courses, and lead him to double
-his path, and retrace his steps, and come back to some point which the
-reader concludes the author had finished. And to this serious defect
-he adds another: his crabbed and crooked style presents the most
-infelicitous collocation of words, perhaps, to be found in English
-literature, many of his sentences needing to be translated into some
-plainer form before they can be understood. What a contrast, in point
-of style, does the student find, when, leaving the majestic diction of
-Hooker, or the flowing rhythm of Jackson, he turns to the perusal of
-Thorndike’s paragraphs! Yet, in spite of drawbacks, Thorndike deserves
-to be carefully studied. No other theologian of his age, or, indeed, of
-any other, has wrought out the Anglican theory with such elaboration
-and completeness. The disciples of that system find in his books an
-arsenal of defence; and its<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">[269]</span> opponents should examine carefully his
-positions, if they would overthrow the citadel in which Divines of his
-order are wont to entrench themselves. But he ought not to be studied
-simply for controversial purposes: any large-minded student, with
-sympathy for God’s truth wherever found, may derive great advantage
-from many parts of this good man’s writings.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;THORNDIKE.</div>
-
-<p>In common with some other Divines of that day, he passed through a
-change of opinion, and that at an early period of life. He went to
-Cambridge with no strong theological bias of any kind, and entered
-Trinity College at a time when that College was accused neither of
-Puritan nor of Romanizing tendencies. But he thought less unfavourably
-of Calvinism at the commencement of his studies than he did during his
-subsequent career. At first he did not, without some qualification,
-condemn the doctrine of final perseverance; also he then opposed other
-parts of the system upon grounds which he afterwards abandoned, as not
-sufficiently distinct and fundamental. He was also far less severe when
-controverting the arguments of Nonconformists in the former than in the
-latter period of his life.<a id="FNanchor_375" href="#Footnote_375" class="fnanchor">[375]</a> Patristic studies, to a large extent,
-most likely produced the change which he experienced; and his ejectment
-from his Fellowship at Trinity by the Presbyterians would naturally
-serve to increase his growing distaste for their distinguishing tenets.</p>
-
-<p>The book in which he unfolds his scheme of divinity was written before
-the Restoration, and bears the title of <i>An Epilogue to the Tragedy
-of the Church of England</i> (1659): a title which provoked the
-criticisms of his friends, especially afterwards, when the book proved
-to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">[270]</span> be a prologue to that Church’s revival. The work contains <i>The
-Principles of Christian Truth</i>; <i>The Covenant of Grace</i>; and
-<i>The Laws of the Church</i>.</p>
-
-<p>In laying down the principles of Christian truth, Thorndike, as an
-Anglican, somewhat startles his reader by his first position, that
-reason is to decide controversies of faith<a id="FNanchor_376" href="#Footnote_376" class="fnanchor">[376]</a>&mdash;a form of words which,
-taken alone, certainly conveys an idea very different from what the
-writer intends. Any rationalistic interpretation is prevented by what
-follows. He proceeds, indeed, to explain that neither the private
-teaching of the Spirit of God to the individual soul on the one
-hand, nor the authority of the Church in relation to men in general
-on the other, can be the ground of believing. But, on that account,
-he does not enthrone human reason. He adds, that there is obscurity
-in Scripture, all truth being in it <i>not explicitly</i> but only
-<i>implicitly</i>; and he argues that whilst the Bible is sufficient in
-one sense, it is not so in another, and that it therefore needs such
-interpretation as is supplied by the traditions of the Church.<a id="FNanchor_377" href="#Footnote_377" class="fnanchor">[377]</a>
-The use of reason (or reasoning) in matters of faith is resolved by
-him into this&mdash;that by it “all undertake to persuade all,” and its
-only scope is in the examination of evidence. Yet what are commonly
-called the evidences of Christianity are very much overlooked in
-Thorndike’s writings. There are numerous incidental allusions to the
-opinions of Herbert and Hobbes. Sometimes these writers are grappled
-with; but reliance on reasoning is abandoned when, by this Divine,
-outlawry is maintained to be “the penalty of the Leviathan, and all
-that have or may follow him either into apostasy or atheism.”<a id="FNanchor_378" href="#Footnote_378" class="fnanchor">[378]</a>
-Thorndike, indeed, touches on both the external and internal proofs of
-revealed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">[271]</span> religion, but he nowhere, that I can find, thoroughly and at
-length discusses the matter. I may here observe, in passing, that he
-speaks with approval of the way in which the Jewish Doctors resolve
-inspiration into different degrees.<a id="FNanchor_379" href="#Footnote_379" class="fnanchor">[379]</a> But the interpretation of
-Christianity is, in his view, the office of the Church. The Church,
-he maintains, is a permanent teacher, its permanence depending upon
-Apostolical succession, and its tuition finding expression in the
-decisions of Councils and in the writings of Fathers; the authority of
-the latter being explained as not arising out of personal qualities of
-learning and holiness, but out of ecclesiastical position. Tradition
-limits the interpretation of Holy Writ; but this principle “pretends
-not any general rule for the interpretation of Scripture, even in those
-things which concern the rule of faith, but infers a prescription
-against anything that can be alleged out of Scripture, that, if it
-may appear contrary to that which the whole Church hath received
-and held from the beginning, it cannot be the true meaning of that
-Scripture which is alleged to prove it.” At the same time Thorndike
-says, that the power of the Church limits the tradition of Apostles
-only in matters of ceremony and order, such as are indifferent in
-themselves; changes in circumstances, and in the usages of society,
-rendering changes of that nature necessary and unavoidable: a
-conclusion equivalent to the well-known one that the Church hath
-power, within certain bounds, to decree rites and ceremonies. Heresy,
-Thorndike defines as consisting in the denial of something necessary
-to salvation; and schism to consist in a departure from the unity
-of the Church, whether from heresy, or from any other cause. Upon
-these principles&mdash;which he defends at great length,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">[272]</span> not without
-many discursions, and sometimes in a manner which it is difficult to
-follow&mdash;Thorndike declares the Church of England to have laid her deep
-foundations; and her main position is by him asserted to be, that,
-repudiating all pretensions to infallibility, she owns tradition to be
-her guide, and requires that “no interpretation of the Scriptures be
-alleged contrary to the consent of the Fathers.”<a id="FNanchor_380" href="#Footnote_380" class="fnanchor">[380]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;THORNDIKE.</div>
-
-<p>The covenant of grace is examined by this Divine at great length; and,
-if I may be allowed the attempt, I would give an outline of his method
-somewhat as follows:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>I. The <i>condition</i> of that covenant is the contract of baptism,
-and that contract is identical with justifying faith. Such faith is not
-simply credence, or trust, or persuasion&mdash;it is not merely the belief
-of a Divine testimony, or a reliance upon a Divine person&mdash;nor is it a
-conviction that one is already justified and predestinated to life; but
-is an acceptation of Christianity, “embracing and professing it” as a
-whole. Faith, as enjoined by St. Paul and St. James, and as exemplified
-in the lives of the Hebrew patriarchs, is essentially practical; and
-when the former Apostle puts faith in opposition to works, he means
-the works of Jewish law, and not the works of Gospel precept. Faith
-is rooted “in the affection of the will, not in the perfection of the
-understanding.” Yet good works are entirely the production of Divine
-grace.<a id="FNanchor_381" href="#Footnote_381" class="fnanchor">[381]</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">[273]</span> Though the Fathers are free to acknowledge, with St.
-Paul, the doctrine of justification by faith alone, they are, on the
-other side, so copious in attributing the promises of the Gospel to
-Christian obedience, that it may be truly said, there is not one of
-them from whom sufficient authority may not be drawn in favour of it: a
-concurrence which amounts to a tradition of the whole Church upon this
-important point.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;THORNDIKE.</div>
-
-<p>II. The <i>necessity</i> of the covenant of grace arises out of
-original sin, which is confessed by David and St. Paul, which consists
-in concupiscence, and which cleaves to every man by his first birth,
-the birth of a carnal nature.<a id="FNanchor_382" href="#Footnote_382" class="fnanchor">[382]</a></p>
-
-<p>III. The <i>Mediator</i> of the covenant is the Divine Christ, the
-Angel of the Lord, whose apparitions of old “were prefaces to the
-Incarnation”&mdash;the Word, who was in the beginning, by whom all things
-were created, and who was made flesh. He is “the great God,” with St.
-Paul; the “true God,” with St. John; the “only Lord God,” with St.
-Jude. Scripture abounds in proofs of His Godhead. To the full meaning
-of these titles, as expressed by other texts in equivalent terms, the
-early Church’s belief in Christ’s Divinity, and the writings of the
-ante-Nicene Fathers, Ignatius, Justin, Irenæus, Clement, and Origen,
-bear concurrent witness. The fact of a Trinity in the Godhead is
-fully and clearly stated in Scripture. The admission of the mystery
-is reconcilable with reason; but no one can explain the secrets of
-the Divine nature, and it is only rational that, on such a subject,
-we should submit to the teaching of revelation. “All dispute about
-essence, and persons, and natures, and all the terms whereby either the
-Scriptures express themselves in this point, or the Church excludes
-the importunities<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">[274]</span> of heresies from the true sense of the Christian
-faith, improves no man’s understanding an inch in this mystery. The
-service it does, is to teach men the language of the Church, by
-distinguishing that sense of several sayings which is, and that which
-is not, consistent with the faith. And if any man hereupon proceed, by
-discourse upon the nature of the subject, to infer what is and what is
-not such, his understanding is unsufferable.”<a id="FNanchor_383" href="#Footnote_383" class="fnanchor">[383]</a></p>
-
-<p>IV. The <i>method</i> of the covenant is gracious. All its provisions
-depend entirely upon the grace of Christ. But salvation is not through
-any Divine predestination of the will of man. God determines not
-what the moral acts of His creatures shall be in themselves, but
-only the practical results of them. The soul is free from necessity,
-though not from bondage; and the doctrine of the predetermination
-of the human will is not the root but the rooting up of freedom and
-of Christianity. Nothing formally determines the will of man, but
-his own act. Predestination to the enjoyment of grace is absolute,
-but predestination to the enjoyment of glory is conditional, and has
-respect to character. The end <i>to</i> which God predestinates is
-not the end <i>for</i> which He predestinates. Grace is the reward of
-the right use of grace. Upon this entire subject, the tradition of
-the Church runs counter to Predestinarianism, to Arminianism, and to
-Pelagianism.<a id="FNanchor_384" href="#Footnote_384" class="fnanchor">[384]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;THORNDIKE.</div>
-
-<p>Thorndike says, in reference to Calvinism: “It seems that God’s
-predestination must of force appoint salvation to them that are to be
-saved, in the first place; from thence proceeding to design the way and
-order by which the person designed to it may be induced of his own free
-choice to accept the means of it. This slight mistake,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">[275]</span> he observes,
-“seems to have been the occasion of many horrible imaginations, which
-even Christian Divines have had, of God’s design from everlasting to
-create the most part of men on purpose to glorify Himself by condemning
-them to everlasting torments, though in consideration of the sins which
-they shall have done.” “The mistake is,” he remarks, “that the end of
-the creature by God’s appointment, is taken for God’s end, which though
-it be His end because He appointeth it for His creature, yet it is not
-any end that He seeks for Himself.” God, being of Himself sufficient
-for Himself, can have no end upon human beings. He is personally
-disinterested. Nothing accrues to Him, nothing is lost by Him; all
-the gain or loss is by the creature; and, having given a moral law to
-intelligent beings, He will abide by that law, and bestow happiness
-upon them accordingly.</p>
-
-<p>Salvation is through the satisfaction of Christ, who, by His
-propitiatory sacrifice perfected in death, paid the ransom of human
-souls. He expiates our sin by bearing the punishment of it, and we are
-reconciled to God by the Gospel in consideration of Christ’s obedience.
-This is taught by the sacrifices according to the law, by the prophet
-Isaiah, and in the New Testament. Socinus is altogether in error,
-and the doctrine that Divine grace rests on a satisfaction made for
-guilt is the doctrine of the Catholic Church. Yet neither according to
-Scripture nor according to patristic teaching, are our sins imputable
-to Christ, or His sufferings imputable to us: the latter are but the
-meritorious causes of the Christian covenant, and the promises of the
-Gospel depend upon His active as well as His passive obedience. Yet
-though all this be true&mdash;though salvation is now actually conveyed only
-through the work of Christ&mdash;yet<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">[276]</span> God might have reconciled man to
-Himself in some other way.<a id="FNanchor_385" href="#Footnote_385" class="fnanchor">[385]</a></p>
-
-<p>Salvation is not secured by a decree of perseverance, but the saying of
-the schoolman is true&mdash;<i>Deus neminem deserit, nisi desertus</i>, God
-leaves no man that leaves not Him first; and, though the assurance of
-salvation is not included in the act of justifying faith, it follows as
-the consequence of it.<a id="FNanchor_386" href="#Footnote_386" class="fnanchor">[386]</a></p>
-
-<p>Finally, with respect to the covenant of grace, salvation is
-not through obedience to the original law of God&mdash;for that is
-impossible&mdash;but through the fulfilment of evangelical precepts. The
-fulfilment, if not perfect, may be acceptable, for there are venial as
-well as mortal offences; and if, among men, friendship long exercised
-suffers not a man who stands upon his credit to break with his friend
-upon ordinary offences, we see the reason why God so often helps His
-ancient people in respect of that covenant, which they, for their
-parts, had made void and forfeited; and therefore how much more He
-obligeth Himself to pass by these failures and weaknesses which
-Christians endeavour to overcome, although they cannot fully do it.<a id="FNanchor_387" href="#Footnote_387" class="fnanchor">[387]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thorndike describes not so much salvation itself as the means of
-salvation. He nowhere endorses the dogma of Trent which confounds
-justification with sanctification; neither does he clearly distinguish
-between these two blessings. In his writings much may be found upon
-justifying faith, little upon justification as a distinct theological
-idea; and what little may be discovered is by no means explicit.<a id="FNanchor_388" href="#Footnote_388" class="fnanchor">[388]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">[277]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;THORNDIKE.</div>
-
-<p>Such is a very condensed account of Thorndike’s scheme of salvation by
-grace. Yet enough is seen to show the theological student how closely
-this Anglican Divine in some points touches upon the creed of the
-Romish Church, how now and then he even crosses the line; and the fact
-is made still more clear by his distinctions between matters of precept
-and matters of counsel,&mdash;by his notions of Christian perfection,&mdash;by
-his stating that the backslider’s recovery of God’s grace is a work of
-labour and time,&mdash;by his doctrine of the efficacy of penance,&mdash;and by
-the position, that there is a sense in which the works of Christians
-may be regarded as satisfying justice with regard to sin, and as
-meriting heaven.<a id="FNanchor_389" href="#Footnote_389" class="fnanchor">[389]</a></p>
-
-<p>What Thorndike advances respecting the laws of the Church must be
-reported with still more brevity. The Church is founded upon the duty
-of communicating in Divine offices, particularly in the sacrament of
-the Eucharist, wherein, with the elements, Christ Himself is present,
-not simply through the living faith of the recipient, but because of
-the true profession of Christianity in the Church; nevertheless, the
-invisible faithfulness of the heart, in making good or in resolving
-to make good the said profession, makes the receiving of it effectual
-to the spiritual eating and drinking of Christ’s body and blood.
-Which Eucharist also, according to the New Testament and the Fathers,
-Thorndike maintains,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">[278]</span> may be accounted a sacrifice, first as to the
-oblation of the bread and wine; secondly, as to the offering of prayer;
-thirdly, as to the consecration of the elements, whereby they become
-a propitiatory and impetratory offering; and fourthly, as to the
-presenting to God of the bodies and souls of the receivers. He argues
-for the baptism of infants, on the grounds, that there is no other
-cure for original sin; that the children of Christians are holy, and
-may be made disciples; and that the effect of circumcision under the
-law inferreth the effect of baptism under the Gospel. This third book
-also treats of penance, extreme unction, marriage, government, and,
-in particular, of the Papal supremacy, and of the Presbyterian and
-Independent schemes; of the days, places, forms, and subject matter of
-Divine service; of the state of souls after death; of prayer to saints,
-and image worship; of monachism, and the celibacy of the clergy; and,
-lastly, of the relation of the ecclesiastical and civil powers. In some
-cases this Divine draws a pretty broad distinction between what he
-holds as Catholic views and the views which are held by the Church of
-Rome; but in other cases the difference is so refined that it becomes
-almost imperceptible. No doubt Thorndike may, on technical grounds,
-be vindicated from the charge of Romanism proper; and it may be said
-that, in his defence of prayers for the dead, he follows Ussher; and
-that, in his doctrine respecting the Eucharist, he symbolizes with
-Cosin and with Bramhall, with Hammond and Taylor and Ken.<a id="FNanchor_390" href="#Footnote_390" class="fnanchor">[390]</a> Between
-him and many clergymen of the Established Church in the present day
-a strong resemblance exists; but certainly, in the judgment of other
-theologians, whose opinions will be stated hereafter, and in the
-judgment of such as may<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">[279]</span> be deemed their successors, the tendency of
-Thorndike’s teaching is decidedly towards Rome; and, whatever may
-be the distinction drawn between the Catholicism taught by him, and
-the Catholicism of the Council of Trent, that distinction, in some
-particulars, although comprehended by metaphysical Divines, is scarcely
-to be discerned by plain English understandings.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;BULL.</div>
-
-<p>George Bull may be placed next to Herbert Thorndike. Bull was admitted
-into Exeter College, Oxford, two years before the imposition of the
-Engagement. That Act, in 1649, ejected him; in consequence of which he
-became a student in the house of a Presbyterian Rector. The Puritan
-influence in the rectory, however, became neutralized by the Rector’s
-son, through whose friendship the young student came to study Hooker,
-Hammond, Taylor, Grotius, and Episcopius. The father foresaw the
-result, and, looking at it from his own point of view, would often say,
-“My son will corrupt Mr. Bull.”<a id="FNanchor_391" href="#Footnote_391" class="fnanchor">[391]</a></p>
-
-<p>Bull has not, like Thorndike, bequeathed any treatise on systematic
-Divinity in general, nor has he propounded views of the extreme kind,
-which the former has done in his <i>Laws of the Church</i>; but between
-Bull’s two great works and certain aspects of Thorndike’s teaching
-there is a considerable resemblance.</p>
-
-<p>The first great work produced by him is his <i>Harmonia Apostolica</i>,
-published in 1670, in which he propounds his views upon justification.
-His general method is to examine the Scriptures in the light of
-patristic teaching; and, adopting the same principles of interpretation
-as Thorndike, he arrives at similar conclusions. He is quite as
-learned as the contemporary of his earlier days, and he is far more
-lucid and methodical in his mode of treatment;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">[280]</span> for he can be easily
-followed, and he can be clearly understood. Also, he is much more
-cautious in his statements, and he carefully strives to save himself
-from misapprehension. He attributes salvation entirely to Christ’s
-meritorious obedience, of which obedience Christ’s death was the
-consummation and completion. Bull maintains that this obedience
-satisfied Divine justice, that this alone is the efficacious cause
-of eternal life; and he constantly insists that no man can, without
-Divine grace, and the assistance of the Holy Spirit, as flowing from
-the precious side of the Crucified One, perform the conditions of the
-covenant.</p>
-
-<p>He further distinctly states, as the result of a careful examination
-of Scripture, “that the word justification, in this subject, has
-the meaning of a judicial term, and signifies the act of God as
-a Judge, according to the merciful law of Christ, acquitting the
-accused, pronouncing him righteous, and admitting him to the reward
-of righteousness, that is, eternal life.”<a id="FNanchor_392" href="#Footnote_392" class="fnanchor">[392]</a> But, though adopting
-the <i>forensic</i> view of justification, and thus moving in the
-same line as Martin Luther, Bull differs from the German Reformer in
-this very important respect&mdash;that, instead of taking law to mean law
-apart from the Gospel, he explains it to mean law as incorporated in
-the Gospel; for he says, “It must be ever observed, as an undeniable
-truth, that Christ, in His sermon, not only explained the moral law,
-but also laid it down as His own, and required its observance, assisted
-by the grace of the Gospel, from all Christians, as a condition of His
-covenant indispensably necessary.” It is this view of the law which
-lies at the foundation of Bull’s theory of justification. Consistently
-with it, he reduces his argument<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">[281]</span> to this syllogistic form&mdash;“Whoever
-is acquitted by the law of Christ must necessarily fulfil that law;
-but by faith alone, without works, no one fulfils the law of Christ;
-therefore by faith alone, without works, no one is acquitted by the law
-of Christ.”<a id="FNanchor_393" href="#Footnote_393" class="fnanchor">[393]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;BULL.</div>
-
-<p>Having arrived at such a conclusion from the study of the Epistle
-of St. James, then comes the <i>pinch</i>: how is such a conclusion
-to be reconciled with the teaching of St. Paul? The learned author,
-after hastily disposing of other methods of reconciliation, prepares
-for defending his own, by laying down the principle that St. Paul’s
-teaching is to be explained by St. James’ and not St. James’ by
-St. Paul’s; our critic believing, with Augustine, that St. James
-wrote after St. Paul&mdash;an assumption contradicted by modern Biblical
-criticism. Bull, then, asserts, that faith, to which justification
-“is attributed by St. Paul, is not to be understood as one single
-virtue, but denotes the whole condition of the Gospel covenant&mdash;that
-is, comprehends in one word all the works of Christian piety.”
-“Assuredly,” he adds, “it is clearer than light itself, that the
-faith to which St. Paul attributes justification is only that which
-worketh by love, which is the same as a new creature, which, in short,
-contains in itself the observance of the commandments of God.” In
-order to get over the great objection arising from the plain words
-of St. Paul, that “a man is justified by faith, <i>without the deeds
-of the law</i>,” this controversialist attempts to show, that the
-works which St. Paul excludes from justification are not all kinds of
-works, but works of a certain description only,&mdash;namely, works of the
-Mosaic law, and works of the natural law, works done in obedience to
-the Jewish ritual, and works<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">[282]</span> done by the force of nature. Bull then
-proceeds to dwell at considerable length upon the Apostle’s argument
-from the universality of sin, and the weakness of the law; and, as the
-result, he presents two deductions&mdash;first, that the Apostle entirely
-excludes from justification only those works which are performed by the
-aid of the Mosaic, and of the natural law, without the grace of the
-Gospel; secondly, that the Apostle’s argument, so far from taking away
-from justification the necessity of good works, proves that the true
-righteousness of works is absolutely necessary to justification, and
-that the Gospel is the only efficacious method by which any man can be
-brought to practise such righteousness.<a id="FNanchor_394" href="#Footnote_394" class="fnanchor">[394]</a></p>
-
-<p>The coincidence of Bull’s teaching with Thorndike’s, as to the grounds
-of faith, appears in the following passage:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“God knows the secrets of my heart; so far am I from the itch of
-originality in theological doctrines, ... that whatever are sanctioned
-by the consent of Catholic Fathers and ancient Bishops, though my own
-small ability attain not to them, yet I will embrace them with all
-reverence. In truth I had already learned, by no few experiments, in
-writing my <i>Harmony</i>, while yet a young man, what now in my mature
-age I am most thoroughly persuaded of, that no one can contradict
-Catholic consent, however he may seem to be countenanced for a while by
-some passages of Scripture wrongly understood, and by the illusions of
-unreal arguments, without being found in the end to have contradicted
-both Scripture and sound reason. I daily deplore and sigh over the
-unbridled license of prophesying which obtained for some years in this
-our England, ... under the tyranny of what some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">[283]</span> considered a wretched
-necessity. In a word, my hearty desire is this, Let the ancient customs
-and doctrines remain in force.”<a id="FNanchor_395" href="#Footnote_395" class="fnanchor">[395]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;BULL.</div>
-
-<p>The publication of the <i>Harmonia Apostolica</i> occasioned much
-controversy. Answers appeared, written by Charles Gataker, son of
-Thomas Gataker, one of the Westminster Divines; by Joseph Truman,&mdash;who,
-though refusing to conform as a clergyman to the Established Church,
-remained in it as a lay communicant; by Dr. Thomas Tully, Principal
-of St. Edmund’s Hall, Oxford, a man of high reputation for learning
-and ability; and by John Tombes, the Anti-pædobaptist,&mdash;who, like
-Truman, declined ministerial conformity, but at least occasionally
-practised communion. Truman differed from Bull less than did the other
-combatants. Not to be wearisome, I would merely state, that his part
-in the dispute mainly turned upon the question, What is grace? Bull,
-in Truman’s estimation, regarding it as a bestowment of spiritual
-power, to be improved or misimproved, according to the will of the
-recipient; Truman, who in this respect anticipated the opinions of
-modern Calvinists, representing grace as a Divine influence securing
-the obedience of the will to the Gospel of Christ. He highly commended
-that sober sentiment of the great Bishop Sanderson, who, confessing
-his own disability to reconcile the consistency of grace and free-will
-in conversion, and being sensible that they must both be maintained,
-tells us, he ever held it “the more pious and safe way, to place
-the grace of God in the throne, where we think it should stand, and
-so to leave the will of man to shift for the maintenance of its own
-freedom, as well as it can,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">[284]</span> than to establish the power and liberty
-of free-will at its height, and then to be at a loss how to maintain
-the power and efficacy of God’s grace.”<a id="FNanchor_396" href="#Footnote_396" class="fnanchor">[396]</a> Gataker, Tully, and Tombes
-were, what might be termed, High Calvinists. The first maintained, in
-opposition to the Author of the <i>Harmonia</i>, as it appears from his
-reply,&mdash;that remission of sins is entirely extraneous to justification,
-that there are conditions in the Gospel covenant which are not
-conditions of Gospel justification, that repentance is a condition of
-the Gospel joined by Christ with faith, but it is not a condition of
-justification, and that we are justified by the imputed righteousness
-of Christ.<a id="FNanchor_397" href="#Footnote_397" class="fnanchor">[397]</a> Tully treated Bull as an innovator; and after alluding
-to Socinians and Papists, insinuated that he belonged to those, “who
-perfidiously serving the interests of one or other of these parties,
-shamelessly take to themselves the title of sons of the Church of
-England.”<a id="FNanchor_398" href="#Footnote_398" class="fnanchor">[398]</a> Tully contended for justification by faith alone; and,
-injudiciously adding to the Scriptural argument the authority of the
-Fathers, which he maintained to be in his favour, laid himself open to
-the attacks of his opponent, who criticised his citations, and turned
-against him testimonies from Irenæus, Origen, Cyprian, Hilary, Basil,
-and Ambrose. The judgment of the Church of England, and of the Reformed
-Churches on the Continent, also came under debate in this department
-of the controversy; Bull and his antagonists each claiming patristic
-witnesses on his own side. Also the doctrine of the saint’s final
-perseverance, and the limitation of the efficacy of the atonement to
-the elect, were points asserted by Tully and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">[285]</span> denied by Bull. Tombes’
-book seems to have been of a more discursive kind than the rest; and
-to have aimed at answering not only the <i>Harmonia</i>, but also
-<i>Aphorisms</i>, written by Richard Baxter, whose name we find much
-mixed up in this controversy;&mdash;and by an alliteration very agreeable
-to the taste of that day, associated with the names of Bull and
-Bellarmine. Bull’s name is provocative of puns; and we find the author,
-in his preface to the <i>Examen Censuræ</i>, commenting on Tombes in
-the following manner, which shows the kind of attack to which Tombes
-had descended:&mdash;“He,” says our author, “need not fear the horns and
-stamping of the Bull (such is his wit, which foreigners will scarcely
-understand, Englishmen will smile at) since the Bull has long since
-learnt to despise all such barking animals.”<a id="FNanchor_399" href="#Footnote_399" class="fnanchor">[399]</a> In an age when the
-amenities of literature were unknown, when Milton and Salmasius were
-abusing one another with a virulence which astonishes a modern reader,
-we cannot wonder at finding very bad passions manifested in the field
-of theological controversy. Bull, doubtless, was a learned and pious
-man, but his polemical writings show that he was deeply imbued with
-the violent polemical spirit of the times; yet, violent as may be the
-spirit of controversy in the modern Church, where can we find anything
-so fierce, so truly savage, as Tertullian’s attack on Marcion, at the
-opening of the first Book?</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;BULL.</div>
-
-<p>The <i>Defensio Fidei Nicenæ</i> (1685) was written not to establish,
-by proofs from Scripture, the doctrine of Christ’s Divinity, but to
-show that the opinions of the ante-Nicene Fathers upon the subject,
-were in harmony with those expressed in the Creed of the first
-Œcumenical Council. This purpose Bull formed, in consequence of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">[286]</span> an
-attack upon those Fathers, by the learned Jesuit Petavius, and the use
-made of that attack, for ends opposed to his, by Arians and Socinians.
-The most perfect success on the part of the Anglican advocate would
-not, in the estimation of Divines of the Puritan school, be conclusive
-evidence of our Lord’s Deity, nor would his failure shake their faith;
-but the importance which he attached to the question, appears from the
-immense labour which he devoted to it. To him, as an Anglo-Catholic,
-the inquiry into what the early Church believed and taught appeared
-one of vital interest; and into his chosen task he threw the treasures
-of a vast erudition, and, if not powers of the highest order,
-certainly a decisive will and an extraordinarily active and patient
-inquisitiveness. Parts of his argument, it must be confessed, seem
-unsatisfactory. For he deals with his patristic authorities, as we
-do with the Holy Scriptures. Whilst we reasonably assume that the
-latter are always consistent, and therefore endeavour to harmonize
-<i>apparent</i> discrepancies, he assumes the same with regard to the
-writings of the Fathers. Hence he attempts to reconcile contradictory
-passages in the same author, and also contradictory passages in
-different authors. Moreover, upon a presumption of the perfect unity
-of patristic opinions, and of a thoroughly logical apprehension of
-subjects on the part of the Fathers, he sometimes educes proofs not
-from what they plainly say in so many words, but from what their
-language may be made to imply, when analyzed and manipulated with the
-utmost sagacity and skill. Loyal men standing at the bar have been
-unjustly arraigned for constructive treason. In controversy men of the
-soundest opinion have been unrighteously charged with constructive
-heresy. On the other hand, Bull’s method of criticism serves sometimes
-to vindicate opinions<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">[287]</span> open to suspicion, and so to throw around
-doubtful points the halo of a constructive orthodoxy.<a id="FNanchor_400" href="#Footnote_400" class="fnanchor">[400]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;HEYLYN.</div>
-
-<p>There is a good deal of special pleading in Bull’s <i>Defence of the
-Nicene Creed</i>. Nevertheless he has, in my opinion, clearly and
-fully established his main point, that a belief in the Divinity of our
-blessed Lord was common in the ante-Nicene Church. Bull’s views, as
-they are expressed in these works, are coincident as far as they go
-with those of Thorndike on the same subjects, but Bull leaves unvisited
-many fields which Thorndike traversed from end to end. Before leaving
-this eminent theologian it may be interesting to notice that he was
-one of those who in this country, in the seventeenth century, revived
-the ancient and scriptural distinction between soul and spirit; yet
-he so united the Spirit of God with the spirit of man that his theory
-amounts to a sort of <i>tetrachomy</i>. I may add&mdash;Hammond, in his
-<i>Paraphrase</i> (1 Thess. v. 23), and Jackson <i>On the Creed</i>,
-also insisted upon a distinction between soul and spirit.<a id="FNanchor_401" href="#Footnote_401" class="fnanchor">[401]</a></p>
-
-<p>Another investigator, or rather champion, more comprehensive in his
-way than Bull, even going beyond Thorndike in variety of discussion,
-is Peter Heylyn, inferior to them both in all respects. Educated at
-Oxford, partly under a Puritan tutor, he, within three years after
-his ordination as a deacon, expressed such<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">[288]</span> extreme ecclesiastical
-opinions, that he was denounced by Prideaux, the Regius Professor of
-Divinity, as <i>Bellarminian</i> and <i>Pontifician</i>: these very
-opinions, however, recommended him to the favour of Laud, at the time
-Bishop of Bath and Wells.</p>
-
-<p>Heylyn, in his <i>Theologia Veterum</i>, gives what he calls “the sum
-of Christian theology, positive, philological, and polemical, contained
-in the Apostles’ Creed, or reducible to it.” Drawing his outline from
-the Creed, which he pronounces to be written by the Apostles, and to
-be all but canonical, he falls, though at a distance, into the wake
-of Dean Jackson: the eloquence of that great Divine it was impossible
-for Heylyn to reach; his candour and practical habit of mind, he had
-no disposition to cherish. In his preface, Heylyn declares himself
-an English Catholic,&mdash;keeping to the doctrines, rules, and forms of
-government established in the Church of England; and beyond those
-bounds, regulating “his liberty by the traditions of the Church, and
-the universal consent of the ancient Fathers.” The authority of the
-Church, in this writer’s opinion, includes the exposition of Scripture,
-the determination of controversies and the ordering of ceremonies; and
-he never misses an opportunity of upholding the rank and reputation of
-the Fathers. Heretics greatly excite his wrath, yet he admits, that
-neither all nor any who are merely schismatics, exclude themselves
-from the Catholic pale; but, speaking of Presbyterians and Popery,
-he remarks, the last is the lovelier error: better the Church be all
-head, than no head at all.<a id="FNanchor_402" href="#Footnote_402" class="fnanchor">[402]</a> The antiquity and importance of fasts
-and festivals he strenuously maintains; the forgiveness of sin he
-connects with baptism; and he advocates both confession to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">[289]</span> a priest,
-and sacerdotal absolution. He is orthodox respecting the doctrines of
-the Trinity and the Atonement. The article upon Christ’s descent into
-hell, he discusses at length; and informs us, in his preface, that his
-inquiries into this mysterious subject led him to an exposition of the
-whole Creed. Pearson says cautiously that Christ’s soul “underwent the
-condition of the souls of such as die, and being.<a id="FNanchor_403" href="#Footnote_403" class="fnanchor">[403]</a> He died in the
-similitude of a sinner, His soul went to the place where the souls of
-men are kept who die for their sins, and so did wholly undergo the
-law of death.” But Heylyn maintains that hell in the Creed means “the
-place of torments;” and that the soul of Christ as really descended
-there as His body entered the grave. The indication of these points
-will suffice to show the stamp of Heylyn’s theology, and the place to
-be assigned him among Anglican Divines. His talents were considerable,
-his learning does him credit; but he is so full of prejudice and party
-spirit that, whilst he has incurred odium from opponents, he can never
-win admiration even from friends.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;TAYLOR.</div>
-
-<p>Jeremy Taylor is better known and more renowned for the rhythm of
-his rhetorical diction, the exuberance and felicity of his poetical
-illustrations, and the inexhaustible stores of his varied knowledge,
-than for Biblical scholarship, or for the depth, wisdom, and soundness
-of his theological reasonings. Yet he was a learned, painstaking, and
-diligent Divine, as well as a surprisingly eloquent and persuasive
-preacher: and though he has left behind him no body of divinity, there
-are some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">[290]</span> points distinctive of the Anglican school which he has
-treated with especial fulness; and, whilst faithful to its theology
-as a whole, there are portions of it which he has handled after a
-manner of his own. The influence of his patristic studies may be traced
-throughout his works; and the patronage of Archbishop Laud, and his
-friendship with Christopher Davenport&mdash;a learned and able Franciscan
-friar&mdash;were not likely to be altogether without effect upon so
-sensitive a nature as that of young Jeremy Taylor.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;TAYLOR.</div>
-
-<p>He has much to say upon baptismal regeneration. In baptism, according
-to his teaching, we are admitted to the kingdom of Christ, we are
-presented unto Him, we are consigned with His sacrament, and we enter
-into His militia. It is also an adoption into the covenant, and a new
-birth. In it, all our sins are pardoned. “The catechumen descends,”
-he says,&mdash;following the words of Bede,&mdash;“into the font a sinner, he
-arises purified; he goes down the son of death, he comes up the son of
-the resurrection; he enters in, the son of folly and prevarication, he
-returns the son of reconciliation; he stoops down the child of wrath,
-and ascends the heir of mercy; he was the child of the devil, and
-now he is the servant and the son of God.” Baptism not only pardons
-past sins, but puts us into a state of pardon for time to come. It
-is a sanctification by the spirit of grace. It is the suppletory of
-original righteousness. Its effects are illumination, new life, and
-a holy resurrection. In short, by baptism we are saved. After having
-thus, in the most unqualified way, exhausted, one might suppose, all
-which imagination could conceive of the efficacy of the rite, Taylor
-says, there is less need to descend to temporal blessings, or rare
-contingencies, or miraculous events, or probable notices of things
-less certain; and then he speaks of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">[291]</span> miraculous cures effected by the
-baptismal water, and of the appointment of an angel guardian to each
-baptized person&mdash;which, indeed, he does not insist upon, although it
-seems to him “hugely probable.” Resuming a poetical theology, he adds,
-in patristic phraseology, that baptism is a new birth, “a chariot
-carrying us to God, the great circumcision, a circumcision made without
-hands, the key of the kingdom, the <i>paranymph</i> of the kingdom,
-the earnest of our inheritance, the answer of a good conscience, the
-robe of light, the sacrament of a new life, and of eternal salvation,
-Ἄριστον μὲν ὕδωρ.”<a id="FNanchor_404" href="#Footnote_404" class="fnanchor">[404]</a> Perhaps no one ever hung so many wreaths of
-flowers around the font as Taylor did; and if we were to take the
-highly coloured words which he uses by themselves, we should say, that
-his teaching on the subject was calculated to lull his disciples, if
-they had been only baptized, into a state of most deceptive and fearful
-self-security. But then, we know that other parts of his writings are
-of the most pungent and heart-searching description, destructive of
-all self-delusion, and, in some respects, ministering to a spirit of
-bondage, rather than to a spirit of presumptuous hope. The truth is,
-that much of the air of the old economy is breathed over Taylor’s
-views of the new dispensation. At times it blows with a chilling
-gust. We lack, in the garden of his rhetoric, the genial warmth of an
-evangelical summer; and in his language respecting sacraments, he shows
-a fondness for what St. Paul calls, “beggarly elements.” It should be
-noticed, in connection with his doctrine of baptism, that, though, in
-his <i>Liberty of Prophesying</i>, he deals gently with Anabaptists,
-no one<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">[292]</span> could hold more strongly than did he the doctrine of infant
-baptism.</p>
-
-<p>The doctrine of the Lord’s Supper is expressed in less figurative
-terms, but with the same excess of description, and, as his admiring
-biographer admits, with some incautiousness in the use of terms. He
-says:&mdash;“The doctrine of the Church of England, and generally of the
-Protestants, in this article, is,&mdash;that after the minister of the holy
-mysteries hath rightly prayed, and blessed or consecrated the bread
-and the wine, the symbols become changed into the body and blood of
-Christ, after a sacramental, that is, in a spiritual real manner:
-so that all that worthily communicate, do by faith receive Christ
-really, effectually, to all the purposes of His passion: the wicked
-receive not Christ, but the bare symbols only; but yet to their hurt,
-because the offer of Christ is rejected, and they pollute the blood
-of the covenant, by using it as an unholy thing. The result of which
-doctrine is this: It is bread, and it is Christ’s body. It is bread
-in substance, Christ in the sacrament; and Christ is as really given
-to all that are truly disposed, as the symbols are; each as they can;
-Christ as Christ can be given; the bread and wine as they can; and to
-the same real purposes, to which they are designed; and Christ does as
-really nourish and sanctify the soul, as the elements do the body. It
-is here, as in the other sacraments: for as the natural water becomes
-the laver of regeneration; so here, bread and wine become the body
-and blood of Christ; but, there and here too, the first substance is
-changed by grace, but remains the same in nature.”<a id="FNanchor_405" href="#Footnote_405" class="fnanchor">[405]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;TAYLOR.</div>
-
-<p>Taylor is one of the last men to whom we are to look<span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">[293]</span> for cautious
-and qualified statements. He had a mind of that order which “moveth
-altogether if it move at all.” He could say nothing by halves;&mdash;and,
-no doubt, his glowing periods require qualification. But, when
-all possible allowance has been made, the passage just quoted
-conveys something which is very much like the Lutheran doctrine of
-consubstantiation. Yet, strange to say, the same author, who holds that
-there is a real change in the Lord’s Supper, interprets our Lord’s
-words, “This is my body”&mdash;to mean no more than this: “it figuratively
-represents my body:” and he denies that the passage in the sixth
-chapter of John, often urged in support of the doctrine of the real
-presence, has anything to do with the Lord’s Supper.<a id="FNanchor_406" href="#Footnote_406" class="fnanchor">[406]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his notion of original sin, he deviates from Anglican as well
-as Puritan standards. The superiority of Adam before the fall, in
-Taylor’s opinion, consisted in certain superadded qualifications which
-he forfeited by the first sin&mdash;and he thought that men now come into
-the world, not with any evil taint or tendency, not with anything
-of corruption or degeneracy, but simply without those superadded
-qualifications. He says of human sinfulness, that “a great part is a
-natural impotency, and the other is brought in by our own folly.” He
-imputes it, in great part, to the “many <i>concurrent</i> causes of
-evil which have influence upon communities of men; such as are evil
-examples, the similitude of Adam’s transgression, vices of princes,
-wars, impurity, ignorance, error, false principles, flattery, interest,
-fear, partiality, authority, evil laws, heresy, schism, spite and
-ambition, natural inclination, and other principiant causes, which
-proceeding from the natural weakness of human constitution, are the
-fountain<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">[294]</span> and proper causes of many consequent evils.”<a id="FNanchor_407" href="#Footnote_407" class="fnanchor">[407]</a> His
-doctrine has in it altogether a strong taint of Pelagianism; and what
-he says of “concurrent causes,” is pronounced by Bishop Heber&mdash;a mild
-critic and a moderate Divine&mdash;to be “neither good logic nor good
-divinity.”</p>
-
-<p>No one can be more definite and precise than Jeremy Taylor in his
-doctrine of the sacraments, but he shows elsewhere a remarkable leaning
-to what is general and vague. What he means exactly by original
-sin&mdash;how he distinguished it from actual sin, and what effect he
-believed the sin of Adam to have upon his posterity, it is difficult
-to say; and the same and even greater indefiniteness is manifest in
-his views of the doctrine of justification. Indeed, here he avowedly
-eschews all precision of language. He differs from Thorndike and Bull,
-not only in not defining justification as they do, but in not defining
-it at all, and he speaks almost pettishly on the subject.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;TAYLOR.</div>
-
-<p>“That no man should fool himself by disputing about the philosophy of
-justification, and what causality faith hath in it, and whether it be
-the act of faith that justifies, or the habit? Whether faith as a good
-work, or faith as an instrument? Whether faith as it is obedience, or
-faith as it is an access to Christ? Whether as a hand or as a heart?
-Whether by its own innate virtue, or by the efficacy of the object?
-Whether as a sign, or as a thing signified? Whether by introduction,
-or by perfection? Whether in the first beginnings, or in its last and
-best productions? Whether by inherent worthiness, or adventitious
-imputations? <i>Uberiùs ista quæso</i> (that I may use the words of
-Cicero): <i>hæc enim spinosiora, prius, ut confitear me cogunt, quam ut
-assentiar</i>: these<span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">[295]</span> things are knotty, and too intricate to do any
-good; they may amuse us, but never instruct us; and they have already
-made men careless and confident, disputative and troublesome, proud and
-uncharitable, but neither wiser nor better. Let us, therefore, leave
-these weak ways of troubling ourselves or others, and directly look to
-the theology of it, the direct duty, the end of faith, and the work of
-faith, the conditions and the instruments of our salvation, the just
-foundation of our hopes, how our faith can destroy our sin, and how it
-can unite us unto God, how by it we can be made partakers of Christ’s
-death, and imitators of His life. For since it is evident, by the
-premises, that this article is not to be determined or relied upon by
-arguing from words of many significations, we must walk by a clearer
-light; by such plain sayings and dogmatical propositions of Scripture,
-which evidently teach us our duty, and place our hopes upon that
-which cannot deceive us, that is, which require obedience, which call
-upon us to glorify God, and to do good to men, and to keep all God’s
-commandments with diligence and sincerity.”<a id="FNanchor_408" href="#Footnote_408" class="fnanchor">[408]</a></p>
-
-<p>This kind of teaching cuts away the ground entirely from under
-scientific theology, treating it as a work of supererogation, or
-as an utter impossibility, and at the same time reducing religion
-to the observance of certain commands. Yet this passionate protest
-against dogma has hardly escaped the writer’s pen, when he proceeds
-to construct that against which he protests, and lays down logically,
-“two propositions, a negative and an affirmative.” The negative is: By
-faith only a man is not justified; the affirmative, By works also a man
-is justified. He says “that obedience is the same thing with faith,
-and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">[296]</span> that all Christian graces are parts of its bulk and constitution,
-is also the doctrine of the Holy Ghost, and the grammar of Scripture,
-making faith and obedience to be terms coincident, and expressive of
-each other.”<a id="FNanchor_409" href="#Footnote_409" class="fnanchor">[409]</a></p>
-
-<p>Having expressed this theological idea in a double form, he immediately
-abandons the theological element; and proceeds to declaim, with his
-accustomed vigour and variety, upon the common truth, which all
-Divines, Calvinist and Arminian, maintain&mdash;that no man enjoys the
-blessing of justification, apart from a life of Christian obedience.
-After a careful perusal of the whole discourse, the reader feels that
-the theological question of justification by faith, or by works, or by
-both, has really not been touched by the author, although much that
-is of practical value has been said on the necessity of holiness.
-The essential defect of the treatment is an omission to explain what
-justification means; hence the loose and ambiguous employment of the
-term throughout, and its application most frequently to the idea of
-salvation as a whole. In one place, after having repeatedly used
-the two words, as bearing different significations, Taylor says:
-“So that now we see that justification and sanctification cannot be
-distinguished, but as words of art, signifying the various steps of
-progression in the same course: they may be distinguished in notion and
-speculation, but never when they are to pass on to material events, for
-no man is justified but he that is also sanctified.”<a id="FNanchor_410" href="#Footnote_410" class="fnanchor">[410]</a> It is very
-noticeable, by a critical reader who will take the trouble to analyze
-Taylor’s sentences, how much he is in the habit of playing fast and
-loose with the meaning of words.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">[297]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;TAYLOR.</div>
-
-<p>The same habit of thought&mdash;avoiding and even protesting against
-definite statements of certain doctrines&mdash;appears in the <i>Liberty of
-Prophesying</i> and in the <i>Nature of Faith</i>. The duty of faith,
-he remarks, is complete in believing the Articles of the Apostles’
-Creed,&mdash;“All other things are implicitly in the belief of the Articles
-of God’s veracity, and are not necessary in respect of the constitution
-of faith to be drawn out, but may there lie in the bowels of the great
-Articles, without danger to any thing or any person, unless some other
-accident or circumstance makes them necessary.”<a id="FNanchor_411" href="#Footnote_411" class="fnanchor">[411]</a> “This is the great
-and entire complexion of a Christian’s faith, and since salvation is
-promised to the belief of this creed [I believe that Jesus Christ
-is the Son of God] either a snare is laid for us with a purpose to
-deceive us&mdash;or else nothing is of prime and original necessity to be
-believed but this Jesus Christ our Redeemer.”<a id="FNanchor_412" href="#Footnote_412" class="fnanchor">[412]</a> Bearing in mind the
-distinction between religion and theology;&mdash;and it is to the former
-that Taylor seems to refer in his treatise on Faith,&mdash;the doctrine,
-in substance, may be accepted as sound. But turning to the <i>Liberty
-of Prophesying</i> where also the standard raised is the Apostles’
-Creed, the question, as his biographer remarks, “becomes much more
-difficult, if, as Taylor seems to have meant, and as is implied in
-the very title of his discourse, we extend this same principle to
-the admission of persons into the public ministry.”<a id="FNanchor_413" href="#Footnote_413" class="fnanchor">[413]</a> In other
-words, to treat Theology, which ought to be thoroughly understood by
-Christian teachers, as if it were entirely comprehended within the
-first simple primitive creed,&mdash;as if that creed,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">[298]</span> regarded as seminally
-containing all Christian doctrine, and as actually drawn out by the
-study of Scripture, and devout reflection into theological particulars,
-were a sufficient standard of orthodoxy for those who are teachers
-of others,&mdash;betrays a manner of thinking in which scarcely a second
-Anglican teacher could be found to agree. There and elsewhere the
-Bishop would seem to have found his way within Latitudinarian lines.</p>
-
-<p>Taylor is a strenuous advocate for an Episcopal Church&mdash;yet even here
-he breaks bounds, and has exposed himself to the correction, if not
-the censure, of Episcopalian critics. Departing from Hooker’s method
-in his <i>Ecclesiastical Polity</i>, he endorses the Puritan idea,
-that a precise form of government is laid down in Scripture; and
-then he proceeds to say, that “the government of the Church is in
-<i>immediate</i> order to the good and benison of souls.” The first of
-these peculiar opinions, his biographer pronounces unwise, the second
-untrue, and both as going too far,&mdash;the one as proving too much, the
-other as an exaggerated conception of what is not to be ranked amongst
-things of the first importance,&mdash;for the sincere word and the means of
-grace are alone <i>immediately</i> necessary to salvation.<a id="FNanchor_414" href="#Footnote_414" class="fnanchor">[414]</a> Mere
-government, according to Hooker, rests amongst the non-essentials of
-Christianity; and any change therein is to change the way of safety,
-no otherwise than as “a path is changed by altering only the uppermost
-face thereof, which, be it laid with gravel, or set with grass, or
-paved with stone, remaineth still the same path.”<a id="FNanchor_415" href="#Footnote_415" class="fnanchor">[415]</a> A further
-example of running to an extreme of strictness in reference to Church
-polity, after so much latitude, and even looseness in relation to
-Christian doctrine, is found in Taylor’s assumption of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">[299]</span> facts touching
-Episcopal orders. It is an assumption, says Heber, “in which he is
-neither borne out by antiquity, nor the tenor of the Gospel history,
-when he finds in the Apostles, during the abode of their Lord on earth,
-the first Bishops, and in the seventy-two disciples, whom Christ also
-selected from His followers, the first presbyters of His Church.”<a id="FNanchor_416" href="#Footnote_416" class="fnanchor">[416]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;COSIN.</div>
-
-<p>Amongst Anglican theologians Cosin requires particular attention.
-The history of his opinions is somewhat peculiar. In early life, his
-sermons, and especially his devotional writings, betray a strong
-leaning towards Roman Catholicism. In later life it is otherwise.
-His second series of <i>Notes on the Prayer Book</i>, indicates a
-controversial tone opposing the Anglican to the Roman view, which
-does not appear in the first series. After his son became a Papist,
-the father assumed a more decided attitude towards the Papal Church;
-but it does not so much appear that Cosin’s own views of doctrine
-altered, as that, during the earlier part of his life, he dwelt on
-points of agreement, and during the latter, on points of difference,
-between himself and Rome.<a id="FNanchor_417" href="#Footnote_417" class="fnanchor">[417]</a> Every one, however, must see that such
-a change was a very great one, and involved much more than at first
-sight is visible. Cosin’s two principal contributions to theological
-literature are his <i>Scholastic History of the Canon of the Holy
-Scriptures</i> and his <i>History of Transubstantiation</i>. The
-former, which is a work of very great learning and ability is directed
-entirely against the decisions of the Council of Trent, as to the
-canonicity of Apocryphal Books; and the author patiently goes over
-the whole field of Church literature, from the Apostolic age to the
-Reformation, showing that the books in question were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">[300]</span> never accepted by
-the Church, as inspired authorities. The stores of learning displayed
-in this history are of great value to the general student; and in any
-revival of this old controversy with Romanist theologians, Cosin’s work
-will be of eminent service on the Protestant side. The <i>History of
-the Canon</i> appeared in 1657, during Cosin’s exile. The <i>History
-of Transubstantiation</i> was, about the same time, written in Latin,
-although not published until 1675. A year afterwards, an English
-translation came out, executed by Luke de Beaulieu. The origin of the
-book is a key to its character. When Charles II., in his wanderings,
-reached Cologne, and there “visited a neighbouring potent prince of
-the Empire of the Roman persuasion,” he met with certain Jesuits, who
-accused the English Church of heretical opinions touching the sacrament
-of the Lord’s Supper. That Church, said they, “holds no real, but
-only a kind of imaginary presence of the body and blood of Christ;”
-whereas Rome holds the sacred mystery of all ages,&mdash;to wit, that the
-whole substance of the bread and wine is changed into the substance of
-Christ’s body and blood. Cosin, being asked to vindicate the Church
-“from the calumny,” and plainly to declare what is her doctrine of
-the real presence, complied with the request; and the result is, that
-throughout his book, he labours to establish the doctrine of a <i>real
-presence</i> of the body and blood of the Redeemer in the bread and
-wine;&mdash;but at the same time, denies and demolishes the doctrine of a
-<i>transubstantiation</i> of the elements. As to the latter point, what
-he says resolves itself into an argument for the continued presence,
-not merely of the material <i>accidents</i>, but of the material
-<i>substance</i>. The bent of the author’s mind, and the necessary
-conditions of the author’s argument, looked at from the Anglican point
-of view, may be seen in his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">[301]</span> copious citations from the Fathers and
-schoolmen; and the purpose of those citations is to show that the
-<i>real</i> presence, as he expresses it, is the ancient doctrine of
-Christendom; and that the dogma of Transubstantiation is an invention
-of the twelfth century. Theologians of the Puritan stamp, if disposed
-to avail themselves of the distinctive reasoning of this distinguished
-scholar against Rome, would not follow the patristic and scholastic
-teaching on its positive side, to which he showed so much deference;
-but would rather represent very much of it&mdash;by its incautious
-phraseology, and its mystic sentiment&mdash;as preparing for the definite
-error which Cosin so earnestly denounced. Some of them would say,
-that the extreme doctrine of the spiritual presence of the body and
-blood of Christ in the bread and wine is as mischievous, in respect to
-superstition, as the doctrine of Transubstantiation itself. They would
-also say that Anglicans attach an undue importance to the continued
-existence and <i>presence</i> of the material substance of bread and
-wine, an importance which is scarcely perceptible to others who differ
-from them; for if the bodily presence of Christ in the sacrament be
-admitted, arguments in support of the continued substantial presence
-of bread and wine as well, only issue in some consubstantial theory,
-between which and the transubstantial one, there is little to choose,
-in the estimation of most English Protestants. And further, they would
-allege that whilst the Roman dogma is in itself incredible and absurd,
-it is in its terms intelligible; but that the High Anglican dogma is
-unintelligible in terms and incredible in itself, so far as its import
-can be divined. To the Puritan mind, the distinction maintained by
-Cosin and others between a real presence and a transubstantiation is
-of little importance, and quite incomprehensible; but to the Anglican
-mind, it is perfectly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">[302]</span> clear, and of the highest moment.<a id="FNanchor_418" href="#Footnote_418" class="fnanchor">[418]</a> That I
-distinctly perceive. Without entering into the controversy, I may be
-allowed to add, that the belief of the spiritual presence of Christ’s
-body in the elements is one thing, and the deep and devout belief of
-a real and a special presence of Christ Himself with His people in
-the Lord’s Supper, is another. There is nothing whatever to prevent
-a modern disciple of the Puritans from consistently maintaining
-the latter. For my own part, I would maintain it with the utmost
-earnestness.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICANS.&mdash;MORLEY.</div>
-
-<p>Next to Cosin let us take Morley. Morley lived to a great age, and
-had a high reputation for theological learning before the Civil Wars,
-as well as after the re-establishment of Episcopacy, being well
-versed in the logic of the schools, and proving himself a formidable
-controversialist. That he was a Calvinist is distinctly stated by
-Wood and Burnet; but I cannot find that he published anything upon
-the subject. Besides his controversy with Baxter, which turns upon
-political and ecclesiastical questions, we possess certain treatises
-written by him before and since the Restoration, in which he undertakes
-fully to make known his judgment concerning the Church of Rome, and
-most of those doctrines which fall into controversy betwixt her and
-the Church of England. The reader is disappointed to find, that
-these Treatises consist only of <i>A short Conference with a Jesuit
-at Brussels</i>; An Argument against Transubstantiation; A Sermon
-preached at Whitehall; Correspondence with Father Cressey; A Letter
-to the Duchess of York; and two Latin Epistles, relating to Prayers
-for the Dead, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">[303]</span> the Invocation of Saints. Three points alone in the
-Romanist controversy are discussed. The treatment of these, however,
-indicate deep learning and great skill. Morley plies with much success
-the argument against Transubstantiation, “drawn from the evidence and
-certainty of sense,”&mdash;maintaining his convincing argument with the
-dexterity of a practised logician, so as to parry most successfully all
-the objections of Roman Catholic antagonists. He decidedly opposes the
-Popish doctrine of purgatory,&mdash;but he vindicates prayers for the dead,
-in the way in which they were offered in the early Church, and as by
-modern Anglicans they are still encouraged to be offered; that is, for
-the rest of the soul, the resurrection of the body, and the plenitude
-of redemption at the last day.<a id="FNanchor_419" href="#Footnote_419" class="fnanchor">[419]</a> Whatever may be the propriety of
-praying for the dead in such a qualified sense as this, Morley contends
-that there is no ground on which to rest the doctrine of the Invocation
-of Saints. That doctrine he overthrows by an appeal to Scripture; and
-then he proceeds, after the Anglican method, to examine the writings of
-the Fathers, and to show that they do not justify the Popish dogma and
-its associated practices.</p>
-
-<p>The writings of so eminent a man as Archbishop Bramhall ought not to
-be wholly passed over, even in this limited and superficial sketch. He
-did not write any comprehensive treatise on theology in general, or on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">[304]</span>
-any doctrine in particular; but whilst the other Divines named, with
-one exception, guarded what they believed to be the citadel of truth,
-this learned prelate of Ireland defended what he regarded as some
-of the outworks of Anglican Christianity. He strove, in his <i>Just
-Vindication of the Church of England</i> (1654), to repel the charge
-of schism, alleged by the Romanists; and, in his <i>Consecration and
-Succession of Protestant Bishops</i>, to rebut the Nag’s Head fable
-(1658). So far his battle was with Rome. He dealt blows of another
-kind in his treatises “Against the English Sectarie” (1643–1672), and
-included within his polemical tasks a “Defence of true liberty from
-antecedent and extrinsical necessity” (1655); “Castigations of Mr.
-Hobbes’ Animadversions” (1658); and “The Catching of Leviathan or the
-Great Whale” (1653). In the quaint pleasantry of the age, he spoke of
-using three harping irons, one for its heart, a second for its chine,
-and a third for its head,&mdash;meaning by these images, the religious,
-political, and rational aspects of the work. He further described this
-monster as neither fish nor flesh, but the combination of a man, with
-a whale&mdash;“not unlike Dagon, the idol of the Philistines.”<a id="FNanchor_420" href="#Footnote_420" class="fnanchor">[420]</a> The
-Malmsbury philosopher was reckoned the most dangerous enemy of the
-day to the true interests of the Christian religion, and Bramhall, in
-writing against him, acted the part of one anxious to expose a covert
-and to crush a seminal infidelity.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">[305]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIV.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Those Divines whom I have already imperfectly described, may be
-characterized as High Anglicans. There remains for consideration, a
-second class, whom I venture to denominate semi-Anglicans.</p>
-
-<p>Sanderson’s fame as a theologian rests mainly upon his treatment of
-casuistical questions, and upon his noble volume of sermons. The latter
-compositions (1659–1674), which exhibit great vigour, compass, and
-patience of thought, expressed in massive but tedious eloquence,&mdash;are
-chiefly practical; but also, they here and there reveal doctrinal
-opinions, and, together with the reports of his friends, and extracts
-from his MSS., indicate some of the leading points in the preacher’s
-system of divinity. He affords an instance of that change of opinion
-which we find to have been so common at the time. In early life, having
-adopted the sublapsarian scheme, he afterwards renounced it, “as well
-as the supralapsarian, which he could never fancy.”<a id="FNanchor_421" href="#Footnote_421" class="fnanchor">[421]</a> To use his
-own words, “We must acknowledge the work of both (grace and free-will)
-in the conversion of a sinner. And so, likewise, in all other events
-the consistency of the infallibility<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">[306]</span> of God’s foreknowledge at least
-(though not with any absolute but conditional predestination), with
-the liberty of man’s will and the contingency of inferior causes and
-effects.”<a id="FNanchor_422" href="#Footnote_422" class="fnanchor">[422]</a> He made strong objections to some leading points in
-Twiss’ <i>Vindiciæ Gratiæ</i>, a book written against Arminius. But one
-of the characteristic principles held by the Divines of the school, to
-which Sanderson in earlier life belonged, he seems to have retained
-to the last, for he expresses, in one of his sermons, published by
-himself not long before his death, the following account of Christian
-faith:&mdash;“The word faith is used to signify, that theological virtue or
-gracious habit, whereby we embrace with our minds and affections the
-Lord Jesus Christ as the only-begotten Son of God and alone Saviour of
-the world, casting ourselves wholly upon the mercy of God through His
-merits for remission and everlasting salvation. It is that which is
-commonly called a lively or justifying faith; whereunto are ascribed
-in Holy Writ those many gracious effects, of purifying the heart,
-adoption, justification, life, joy, peace, salvation, &amp;c. Not as to
-their proper and primary cause, but as to the instrument, whereby we
-apprehend and apply Christ, whose merits and Spirit are the true causes
-of all those blessed effects.”<a id="FNanchor_423" href="#Footnote_423" class="fnanchor">[423]</a></p>
-
-<p>The life of Sanderson requires us to consider him as sympathizing in
-some respects with Anglican Divines, but their distinguishing dogmas
-are not at all conspicuous in his sermons.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HAMMOND.</div>
-
-<p>Hammond, the friend of Sanderson,<a id="FNanchor_424" href="#Footnote_424" class="fnanchor">[424]</a>&mdash;associated with him scarcely
-less in doctrinal opinions and ecclesiastical<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">[307]</span> sympathies, than in the
-closest intimacy and warmest affection,&mdash;has been described as one&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Whose mild persuasive voice</div>
- <div>Taught us in trials to rejoice</div>
- <div>Most like a faithful dove,</div>
- <div>That by some ruined homestead builds,</div>
- <div>And pours to the forsaken fields</div>
- <div>His wonted lay of love.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p class="p-left">And the calm, tender strain of his theology harmonizes
-with the spirit which the poet has thus so touchingly characterized.
-Like Sanderson, Hammond is more practical than scientific. Like
-Sanderson, he shines with richer lustre as a Christian casuist, than
-as a systematic Divine. In his <i>Practical Catechism</i>, however, he
-appears to advantage both as an evangelical moralist and a doctrinal
-teacher: it contains expositions of the Creed, of the Ten Commandments,
-and of the Sermon on the Mount. Exhibitions of principle are skilfully
-interwoven with the enforcement of precepts; moderation is blended
-with orthodoxy; and in his conclusions touching the critical points of
-theology which we have selected as tests for elucidating distinctive
-opinion, he closely approaches his beloved companion Sanderson. With
-Hammond faith is the <i>condition</i> of justification; he scruples to
-call it the <i>instrument</i>, lest he should ascribe to it any undue
-efficiency;<a id="FNanchor_425" href="#Footnote_425" class="fnanchor">[425]</a> but in faith he includes the germ of all Christian
-obedience, all Christian virtue; he describes it as a cordial, sincere,
-giving up oneself to God, particularly to Christ, firmly to rely on all
-His promises, and faithfully to obey all His commands. Hammond broadly
-distinguishes justification from sanctification,&mdash;defining the first
-as God’s covering or pardoning our iniquities, His being so reconciled
-unto us sinners, that He determines<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">[308]</span> not to punish us eternally;&mdash;and
-the second, as the infusion of holiness into our hearts, the turning
-of the soul to Himself. Into the relation between the two blessings,
-and the order of their bestowment&mdash;which of them is conferred first&mdash;he
-enters, with a subtlety of analysis unusual in the Anglican school;
-and whilst, with exemplary candour, he suggests what he allows to be
-an orthodox rendering of the Puritan doctrine of justification before
-sanctification, he himself prefers to place the latter first in the
-order of time; yet, in doing this, he so qualifies his statement as not
-to alarm even the Puritan, who ventures upon this abstruse, perplexing,
-and not very profitable path of speculative inquiry. Hammond believed
-that justification flows from the mediatorial priesthood of the Lord
-Jesus; but he distinctly denied that the Redeemer’s active obedience is
-imputed to men.<a id="FNanchor_426" href="#Footnote_426" class="fnanchor">[426]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PEARSON.</div>
-
-<p>Pearson’s <i>Exposition of the Creed</i> (1659) is a well-known
-theological treatise. He implicitly pursues an Anglican course, citing
-the Fathers in support of his positions; but he nowhere distinctly
-defines what authority he attaches to them, or, indeed, formally lays
-down as a principle that they are his guides at all. Pearson must
-have been moderate in his ecclesiastical views, or he could not have
-pursued the course he did during the Commonwealth; and his position as
-Lecturer at St. Clement’s, Eastcheap, and the association into which
-he would necessarily be brought with his Puritan brethren, might have
-the effect of widening his sympathies, and of preventing, in his case,
-those controversial asperities which embitter the writings of extreme
-Anglicans. In<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">[309]</span> his article on the Church, he refers to its unity, its
-perpetuity, its holiness, and its Catholicity, meaning apparently by
-the Church the aggregate of Christian professors, whether they be
-good or bad.<a id="FNanchor_427" href="#Footnote_427" class="fnanchor">[427]</a> Under the last head, he touches upon the authority
-of the Church in the following brief remark:&mdash;“They call the Church
-of Christ the Catholic Church, because it teacheth all things which
-are necessary for a Christian to know, whether they be things in
-heaven or things in earth, whether they concern the condition of man
-in this life, or in the life to come. As the Holy Ghost did lead the
-Apostles into all truth, so did the Apostles leave all truth unto
-the Church, which teaching all the same, may be well called Catholic
-from the universality of necessary and saving truths retained in it.”
-Even this scarcely amounts to an assertion of Church authority in
-the Anglican sense; it might be explained consistently with Puritan
-principles, it never would have satisfied Thorndike or Heylyn, or even
-Bull. To baptism, however, Pearson attributes great efficacy, coupling
-it, as Heylyn and others do, with the article on <i>Forgiveness of
-Sins</i>, according to the teaching of the Nicene and other Creeds.
-Unlike Thorndike, he does not propound any theory of justification in
-connection with baptism; nor does he, any more than Heylyn, dwell on
-the subject of justification in any way: he confines himself to the
-idea of remitting sins, which perhaps, in his opinion, is equivalent
-to justification. He uses strong expressions in speaking of the
-Atonement,&mdash;referring to “the punishment which Christ, who was our
-surety, endured,” as “a full satisfaction to the will and justice of
-God.” “It was a price given to redeem”&mdash;something “laid down by way
-of compensation.”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">[310]</span> “Although God be said to remit our sins by which
-we were captivated, yet He is never said to remit the price, without
-which we had never been redeemed, neither can He be said to have
-remitted it, because He did require it and receive it.” A Calvinist
-could scarcely have marked the point more strongly. Pearson also says
-“that Christ did render God propitious unto us by His blood&mdash;that is,
-His sufferings unto death&mdash;who before was offended with us for our
-sins; and this propitiation amounted to reconciliation, that is, a
-kindness after wrath. We must conceive that God was angry with mankind
-before He determined to give our Saviour; we cannot imagine that God,
-who is essentially just, should not abominate iniquity.” Pearson’s
-definition of faith is very different from Thorndike’s. It is a habit
-of the intellectual part of man, and therefore of itself invisible;
-and to believe is a spiritual act, and consequently “immanent and
-internal, and known to no man but him that believeth.” We find in
-Pearson’s exposition none of those peculiarly High Church views in
-which Thorndike and Heylyn so much delighted; and, what is very
-remarkable, as far as I can find, he only in a cursory way mentions the
-Lord’s Supper. Certainly he does not dwell upon it in any part of his
-treatise.<a id="FNanchor_428" href="#Footnote_428" class="fnanchor">[428]</a></p>
-
-<p>Pearson’s common sense, mastery of learning, clearness of thought,
-perspicuity of style, and directness of reasoning, have secured and
-will retain for him a high place amongst English theological teachers.
-His orderly arrangement of topics, and his compact and forcible method
-of expression, render him popular with all students of his school
-of theology; and there are few points on which they can consult him
-without finding<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">[311]</span> what they want in a shape convenient for use. Those
-who differ from him may read him with advantage; and they will discover
-that, for the most part, his faults are only defects which may be
-supplied by repairing to other sources of information.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BARROW.</div>
-
-<p>Isaac Barrow devoted long years to the study of mathematics, for
-which he has acquired high renown; and he travelled in Turkey, and
-resided twelve months in Constantinople, where he read the whole of
-Chrysostom’s works near the spot upon which many of his sermons were
-delivered&mdash;a course of reading which must have been of immense service
-to him as an expounder of Christian morality. His favourite scientific
-studies left upon his mind a stamp of precision and order, apparent
-in his writings; and his familiarity with Greek patristic eloquence
-may be traced in the stately flow of his copious diction. His theology
-lies close to the boundary line between Anglicanism and the Divinity
-of the Cambridge school. After holding a mathematical professorship at
-Cambridge, he devoted the remainder of his life to theology, in which
-he achieved a reputation equal to that which he had won in the pursuit
-of science.</p>
-
-<p>In his sermons on the Creed, instead of confining himself, as Pearson
-and Heylyn have done, to the exposition of Christian truth, he
-carefully employs himself in constructing defences of the faith. He
-begins his task with an exposure of the unreasonableness of infidelity,
-and with an assertion of the perfectly rational nature of belief
-in the Gospel. He afterwards dwells, at length, upon proofs of the
-existence of God; upon the Divinity and excellence of the Christian
-religion, as compared with the impiety and imposture of Paganism and
-Mahometanism, and the imperfection of Judaism; and upon the evidence
-that Jesus is the true Messias. Thus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">[312]</span> Barrow appears as a Christian
-advocate. He habitually bases his arguments upon Scripture texts, but
-he also habitually weaves into these arguments threads of reason, so
-as to commend what he advances to the understanding of his readers,
-ever avoiding what is mystical, or merely imaginative. Yet he does not
-neglect the dogmas of revelation, but brings many of them out with a
-clearness and precision which has been overlooked by some critics.
-His disquisition upon the nature of faith is as exhaustive as that of
-any Puritan, and will be found a wearisome piece of reading by some
-modern students. He dwells much upon the difficulties of faith, and
-upon the moral virtue involved in overcoming them; and when we compare
-his opinions with those of Thorndike and Bull, we discover in him a
-general similarity to them, in connection with shades of difference.
-In common with Thorndike, he resolutely opposes the idea that faith
-consists in any belief of our being pardoned, or in any assurance of
-salvation, or in any persuasion that a true Christian cannot fall
-from grace. His representations of the virtuousness of evangelical
-belief are obviously in harmony with that writer’s statements; and
-he also, in accordance with them, associates faith and the baptismal
-covenant, saying, “Faith is nothing else but a hearty embracing
-Christianity, which first exerteth itself by open declaration and
-avowal in baptism.”<a id="FNanchor_429" href="#Footnote_429" class="fnanchor">[429]</a> Barrow, however, of all men, requires to be
-judged, not by isolated expressions, but by a comparison of one part
-of his teaching with another. Turning, then, to the following passage,
-which is complete in itself, and which I quote as an example of his
-diffuse and affluent style, we meet with an account of Christian faith,
-such as would scarcely<span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">[313]</span> have satisfied the demands of Thorndike’s
-baptismal theology:&mdash;“By this faith (as to the first and primary sense
-thereof) is understood the being truly and firmly persuaded in our
-minds that Jesus was what He professed Himself to be, and what the
-Apostles testified Him to be, the Messias, by God designed, foretold,
-and promised to be sent into the world, to redeem, govern, instruct,
-and save mankind, our Redeemer and Saviour, our Lord and Master, our
-King and Judge, the great High Priest, and Prophet of God&mdash;the being
-assured of these and all other propositions connexed with these;
-or, in short, the being thoroughly persuaded of the truth of that
-Gospel which was revealed and taught by Jesus and His Apostles. That
-this notion is true, those descriptions of this faith, and phrases
-expressing it, do sufficiently show; the nature and reason of the
-thing doth confirm the same, for that such a faith is, in its kind
-and order, apt and sufficient to promote God’s design of saving us,
-to render us capable of God’s favour, to purge our hearts, and work
-that change of mind which is necessary in order to the obtaining God’s
-favour, and enjoying happiness; to produce that obedience which God
-requires of us, and without which we cannot be saved: these things
-are the natural results of such a persuasion concerning those truths;
-as natural as the desire and pursuit of any good doth arise from the
-clear apprehension thereof, or as the shunning of any mischief doth
-follow from the like apprehension; as a persuasion that wealth is to
-be got thereby makes the merchant to undergo the dangers and pains of
-a long voyage (verifying that, <i>Impiger extremos currit mercator ad
-Indos, Per mare pauperiem fugiens, per saxa, per ignes</i>); as the
-persuasion that health may thereby be recovered, engages a man not only
-to take down the most unsavoury potions, but to endure cuttings<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">[314]</span> and
-burnings (<i>ut valeas, ferrum patieris et ignes</i>); as a persuasion
-that refreshment is to be found in a place, doth effectually carry
-the hungry person thither; so a strong persuasion that the Christian
-religion is true, and the way of obtaining happiness, and of escaping
-misery, doth naturally produce a subjection of heart and an obedience
-thereto; and accordingly we see the highest of those effects, which the
-Gospel offers or requires, are assigned to this faith, as results from
-it, or adjuncts thereof.”<a id="FNanchor_430" href="#Footnote_430" class="fnanchor">[430]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BARROW.</div>
-
-<p>The strong moral power attributed to faith places Barrow’s description
-of it in nearly strict coincidence with the teaching of Bishop
-Bull upon the same subject. Yet from Thorndike, and from other
-Anglo-Catholic Divines, with exceptions already pointed out, Barrow
-differs in his definite and sharp distinction between holiness and
-justification. No Puritan could more precisely mark off the latter
-from the former. Admitting, he says, that whoever is justified is also
-endued with some measure of intrinsic righteousness&mdash;“avowing willingly
-that such a righteousness doth ever accompany the justification St.
-Paul speaketh of&mdash;yet that sort of righteousness doth not seem implied
-by the word justification, according to St. Paul’s intent, in those
-places where he discourseth about justification by faith, for that such
-a sense of the word doth not well consist with the drift and efficacy
-of his reasoning, nor with divers passages in his discourse.”<a id="FNanchor_431" href="#Footnote_431" class="fnanchor">[431]</a> But
-to the distinction he so clearly makes he attributes less importance
-than many theologians are wont to do.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BARROW.</div>
-
-<p>Although Barrow does not copiously discuss the doctrine of the
-Atonement&mdash;although he dwells chiefly on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">[315]</span> moral effects of
-Christ’s death&mdash;yet he uses very strong expressions as to the effect
-of our Lord’s sacrifice upon the Divine government, speaking of it
-as “appeasing that wrath of God which He naturally beareth toward
-iniquity, and reconciling God to men, who by sin were alienated
-from Him, by procuring a favourable disposition and intentions of
-grace toward us.” “Christ died, removing thereby that just hatred
-and displeasure.” “The non-imputation of our sins is expressed as
-a singular effect, an instance, an argument of His being in mind
-reconciled and favourably disposed towards us.”<a id="FNanchor_432" href="#Footnote_432" class="fnanchor">[432]</a></p>
-
-<p>In five sermons, entirely devoted to the subject, this Divine asserts
-and explains the doctrine of universal redemption, saying that
-salvation is made attainable, and is really tendered unto all, upon
-feasible and equal conditions; and that a competency of grace is
-imparted to every man, qualifying him to do what God requires.<a id="FNanchor_433" href="#Footnote_433" class="fnanchor">[433]</a></p>
-
-<p>His account of the Divinity and personality of the Holy Spirit is the
-same as is generally given by orthodox teachers. As to the work of the
-third Person in the Trinity, Barrow’s line of thought coincides more
-with Anglican than with Puritan writers. Besides much of a general
-character upon the Spirit’s assistance, in the thirty-fourth sermon
-on the Creed, Barrow remarks&mdash;“It hath been the doctrine constantly
-with general consent delivered in and by the Catholic Church, that
-to all persons by the holy mystery of baptism duly initiated into
-Christianity, and admitted into the communion of Christ’s body, the
-grace of the Holy Spirit is communicated, enabling them to perform the
-conditions of piety and virtue which they undertake.”<a id="FNanchor_434" href="#Footnote_434" class="fnanchor">[434]</a></p>
-
-<p>Barrow appears to have been a Low Churchman, and,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_316">[316]</span> in the fragment he
-has left us upon “the holy Catholic Church,” omits those assertions
-respecting ecclesiastical authority which were the joy of Thorndike and
-Heylyn. He explains the different senses in which the word “Church”
-is used in the New Testament; and, in its larger sense, applies to
-it the epithets “holy” and “Catholic,” winding up all he has to say
-with practical remarks which commend themselves to candid Christians
-of all denominations.<a id="FNanchor_435" href="#Footnote_435" class="fnanchor">[435]</a> It may be added that, in his discourse
-concerning <i>The unity of the Church</i>, he opposes the idea of any
-such ecclesiastical authority as is contended for either by Papists or
-Anglo-Catholics.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Treatise of the Pope’s Supremacy</i>, from the same pen&mdash;too
-long to be described&mdash;places the author amongst the chief defenders
-of Protestantism, and deserves the eulogium of Tillotson,&mdash;what “many
-others have handled before, he hath exhausted.” The student can
-find arguments against the assumptions of Rome nowhere so fully and
-powerfully stated as on Barrow’s pages. Those arguments are, perhaps,
-like Saul’s armour, too cumbrous for the Davids of the present day;
-but there are in Barrow’s armoury stones from the brook for simple
-shepherds, as well as spears and shields for veteran warriors.</p>
-
-<p>The feeling of Barrow towards the Romish Church is plain from what
-has now been said, and it is desirable, before we leave the opinions
-of the Anglicans, to inquire what their feeling generally was upon
-this subject; and also how they expressed themselves in reference to
-Protestant communities.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OPINIONS RESPECTING POPERY.</div>
-
-<p>Thorndike calls the Romish a true but corrupt Church, in which
-salvation may be obtained, although it be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317">[317]</span> clogged with difficulty. It
-is not Antichrist. It is not formally idolatrous; yet, after referring
-to its abuses, he says, “to live under them, and to yield conformity to
-them, is a burden unsufferable for a Christian to undergo: to approve
-them by being reconciled to the Church that maintains them is a scandal
-incurable and irreparable.”<a id="FNanchor_436" href="#Footnote_436" class="fnanchor">[436]</a></p>
-
-<p>Bishop Bull observes, referring to certain doctrines held by Romanists,
-“I look upon it as a wonderful both just and wise providence of God,
-that He hath suffered the Church of Rome to fall into such gross errors
-(which otherwise it is scarce imaginable how men in their wits that
-had not renounced not only the Scriptures, but their reason, yea and
-their senses too, could be overtaken with), and to determine them for
-articles of faith.”<a id="FNanchor_437" href="#Footnote_437" class="fnanchor">[437]</a></p>
-
-<p>Heylyn concedes to Rome the character of a true Church; yet after
-referring to the argument for image worship, he remarks:&mdash;“Though
-perhaps some men of learning may be able to relieve themselves by
-these distinctions; yet I can see no possibility how the common
-people, who kneel and make their prayers directly to the image
-itself, without being able to discern where the difference lieth
-between their <i>proprie</i> and <i>improprie</i>, or <i>per se</i>
-and <i>per accidens</i>, can be excused from palpable and downright
-<i>idolatry</i>.”<a id="FNanchor_438" href="#Footnote_438" class="fnanchor">[438]</a></p>
-
-<p>The same writer, describing the Reformation, and contending for the
-continuity of the English Church, reflects, by implication, severely
-upon its previously Romanized state:&mdash;“Whereas, the case, if rightly
-stated, is but like that of a sick and wounded man, that had long lain
-weltering in his own blood, or languishing under a tedious burden
-of diseases, and afterwards<span class="pagenum" id="Page_318">[318]</span> by God’s great mercy, and the skilful
-diligence of honest chirurgeons and physicians, is at the last restored
-to his former health.”<a id="FNanchor_439" href="#Footnote_439" class="fnanchor">[439]</a></p>
-
-<p>Taylor is much more decided in his condemnation of Rome:&mdash;“Now let any
-man judge whether it be not our duty, and a necessary work of charity,
-and the proper office of our ministry, to persuade our charges from
-the ‘immodesty of an evil heart,’ from having a ‘devilish spirit,’
-from doing that ‘which is vehemently forbidden by the Apostle,’ from
-‘infidelity and pride;’ and, lastly, from that ‘eternal woe which is
-denounced’ against them that add other words and doctrines than what
-is contained in the Scriptures, and say, ‘<i>Dominus dixit</i>, the
-Lord hath said it,’ and He hath not said it. If we had put these severe
-censures upon the Popish doctrine of tradition, we should have been
-thought uncharitable; but, because the holy fathers do so, we ought to
-be charitable, and snatch our charges from the ambient flame.”<a id="FNanchor_440" href="#Footnote_440" class="fnanchor">[440]</a></p>
-
-<p>Bramhall, whose Protestantism went further than that of Thorndike
-or Heylyn, says:&mdash;“That Church which hath changed the apostolical
-creed, the apostolical succession, the apostolical regiment, and
-the apostolical communion, is no apostolical, orthodox, or Catholic
-Church. But the Church of Rome hath changed the apostolical creed, the
-apostolical succession, the apostolical regiment, and the apostolical
-communion. Therefore the Church of Rome is no apostolical, orthodox, or
-Catholic Church.”<a id="FNanchor_441" href="#Footnote_441" class="fnanchor">[441]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RESPECTING UNEPISCOPAL CHURCHES.</div>
-
-<p>In reference to Protestant communities abroad, the same writer
-expresses his opinion thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot assent that either all or any considerable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319">[319]</span> part of the
-Episcopal Divines in England do unchurch either all or most part of
-the Protestant Churches. No man is hurt but by himself. They unchurch
-none at all, but leave them to stand or fall to their own master. They
-do not unchurch the Swedish, Danish, Bohemian Churches, and many other
-Churches in Polonia, Hungaria, and those parts of the world who have
-an ordinary, uninterrupted succession of pastors&mdash;some by the names of
-Bishops, others under the name of Seniors, unto this day. (I meddle
-not with the Socinians.) They unchurch not the Lutheran Churches in
-Germany, who both assert Episcopacy in their confessions, and have
-actual superintendents in their practice, and would have Bishops, name
-and thing, if it were in their power.... Episcopal Divines do not deny
-those Churches to be true Churches, wherein salvation may be had. We
-advise them, as it is our duty, to be circumspect for themselves, and
-not to put it to more question, whether they have ordination or not, or
-desert the general practice of the Universal Church for nothing, when
-they may clear it if they please. Their case is not the same with those
-who labour under invincible necessity.... This mistake proceedeth from
-not distinguishing between the true nature and essence of a Church,
-which we do readily grant them, and the integrity or perfection of a
-Church, which we cannot grant them, without swerving from the judgment
-of the Catholic Church.”<a id="FNanchor_442" href="#Footnote_442" class="fnanchor">[442]</a></p>
-
-<p>“Wheresoever, in the world,” observes Cosin, “Churches bearing the
-name of Christ profess the true, ancient, and Catholic religion and
-faith, and invocate and worship,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320">[320]</span> with one mouth and heart, God the
-Father, God the Son, and God the Holy Ghost, if from actual communion
-with them I am now debarred, either by the distance of regions, or
-the dissensions of men, or any other obstacle; nevertheless, always
-in my heart, and soul, and affection, I hold communion and unite with
-them&mdash;that which I wish especially to be understood of the Protestant
-and well-reformed Churches. For the foundations being safe, any
-difference of opinion or of ceremonies&mdash;on points circumstantial, and
-not essential, nor repugnant to the universal practice of the ancient
-Church, in other Churches (over which we are not to rule)&mdash;we in a
-friendly, placid, and peaceable spirit, may bear, and therefore ought
-to bear.”<a id="FNanchor_443" href="#Footnote_443" class="fnanchor">[443]</a></p>
-
-<p>Morley is cautious:&mdash;“Our Church is not so liberal of her anathemas
-as [Rome] is. We are sure our Church is truly apostolical, and that
-for government and discipline, as well as doctrine. Whether the
-Christian congregations in other Protestant countries be so or no,
-<i>Ætatem habent, respondeant pro semetipsis et Domino suo stent
-vel cadent</i>. In the mean time our Church hath declared, that no
-man shall be accounted or taken to be a lawful Bishop, Priest or
-Deacon in the Church of England, or suffered to exercise any of those
-sacred functions, except he be called, tried, examined, and admitted
-thereunto, according unto the form hereafter following; or unless he
-had formerly Episcopal consecration, or ordination.”<a id="FNanchor_444" href="#Footnote_444" class="fnanchor">[444]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">RESPECTING UNEPISCOPAL CHURCHES.</div>
-
-<p>Of Nonconformists, Thorndike speaks in distinct and decided terms.
-Presbyterians, Independents, and Baptists, are guilty of schism.
-This he asserts over and over again; and of his opinion respecting
-schism, he leaves<span class="pagenum" id="Page_321">[321]</span> us in no doubt. Schism may, indeed, be unjust on
-both sides,&mdash;a favourite idea with Thorndike;&mdash;and it may be such as
-that salvation may be had on both sides; but this lenient view of the
-subject, he expresses only in relation to the differences between the
-Eastern and the Western Churches, between the Church of England and
-the Church of Rome. Schism, as committed by Nonconformists, he ever
-represents in the darkest colours. Presbyterian baptism, he affirms, to
-be no baptism. Their service is an imposture; in opposing Episcopacy,
-and setting up their synods, they erect altar against altar. It is mere
-equivocation to call their congregations Churches, and their ordinances
-sacraments. It was unwarrantable, he maintains, under the Commonwealth,
-to communicate with Presbyterians and Independents; although the moral
-impossibility of communing with them could not justify communing with
-Papists. The theory of the Independents he holds to be more suitable
-to Christianity than that of the Presbyterians, but he says it is
-impracticable, without Scriptural authority, and not less free from
-schism.<a id="FNanchor_445" href="#Footnote_445" class="fnanchor">[445]</a> He counts the doctrine of justification, as he supposed
-it to be held by some Nonconformists, no other than a dreadful heresy,
-worse even than the Romanist doctrine of justification. Yet we find, in
-one place, this cold gleam of charity:&mdash;“I confess, as afore I allowed
-the Church of Rome some excuse from the unreasonableness of their
-adversaries; so here, considering the horrible scandals given by that
-communion in standing so rigorously upon laws so visibly ruinous to the
-service of God, and the advancement of Christianity, and the difficulty
-of finding that mean in which the truth stands between the extremes
-(as our<span class="pagenum" id="Page_322">[322]</span> Lord Christ between the thieves, saith Tertullian), I do not
-proceed to give the salvation of poor souls for lost, that are carried
-away with the pretence of reformation in the change that is made, even
-to hate, and persecute, by word or by deed, those who cannot allow it.”
-The book in which this passage occurs was published in 1659.</p>
-
-<p>Anabaptists, Thorndike pronounces to be schismatics, if not
-heretics:&mdash;“As for the ground of that opinion, which moves them
-to break up the seal of God, marked upon those that are baptized
-unto the hope of salvation upon the obligation of Christianity, by
-baptizing them anew, to the hope of salvation, without the obligation
-of Christianity; whether they are to be counted heretics therefore or
-not, let who will dispute. This, I may justly infer, they take as sure
-a course to murder the souls of those whom they baptize again, as of
-those whom they let go out of the world unbaptized.”<a id="FNanchor_446" href="#Footnote_446" class="fnanchor">[446]</a></p>
-
-<p>As Thorndike is more full and explicit in the statement of his
-views respecting the schism which he believed to be involved in
-Nonconformity, so also he goes beyond some other Anglicans in
-denouncing its principles, and censuring its professors. Perhaps
-certain writers of his class might think less unjustly, and more
-charitably, of Dissenters; yet none of them, consistently with their
-own Church notions, could regard Independent societies as Churches,
-whatever favourable opinion they might entertain of individual members.</p>
-
-<p>Anything like intercommunion with communities not Episcopalian,
-seems, in the estimation of such a man as Thorndike, utterly out of
-the question; and therefore by him, and by those who think with him,
-the Episcopal Church of England is placed in an entirely isolated<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323">[323]</span>
-position, in reference to the rest of Protestant Christendom, except
-where Bishops are retained; such instances being few and doubtful.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THE PRAYER BOOK.</div>
-
-<p>Cosin, in his <i>Confession</i>, declares very strongly against
-sectaries and fanatics, amongst whom he ranks “not only the
-Separatists, the Anabaptists, and their followers, alas, too, too
-many, but also the New Independents and Presbyterians of our country,
-a kind of men hurried away with the spirit of malice, disobedience,
-and sedition, who by a disloyal attempt (the like whereof was never
-heard since the world began) have, of late, committed so many great
-and execrable crimes, to the contempt and despite of religion, and the
-Christian faith: which, how great they were, without horror cannot be
-spoken or mentioned.”<a id="FNanchor_447" href="#Footnote_447" class="fnanchor">[447]</a></p>
-
-<p>Connected with love for the Anglican Church, with dislike of the
-Papacy, and with alienation from unepiscopal communities, there existed
-a strong attachment to the formularies of faith, and of worship,
-contained in the Book of Common Prayer. That Book was used in secret
-during the Commonwealth; and before being reviewed in 1662&mdash;indeed
-previously to the Restoration&mdash;it received comment and eulogy from the
-pen of Hamon L’Estrange,&mdash;who published, in 1659, an elaborate and
-learned work on <i>The Alliance of Divine Offices</i>, in which he
-compared other Liturgies with that of the Church of England since the
-Reformation. His book is based upon the study of Whitgift and Hooker,
-who had answered Cartwright’s objections to the Anglican services, and
-who had convinced the author that they did not lie open to the charge
-of unlawfulness, but were of a nature to command obedience. L’Estrange
-also<span class="pagenum" id="Page_324">[324]</span> studied the previous records, as he calls them, of the first six
-centuries; the result being a conviction, that the noblest parts of
-the Liturgy were used by the Primitive Church, before a Popish Mass
-had ever been said; and that an admirable harmony obtained, even in
-external rites, between the Church of England and the ancient Fathers.
-This volume did not reach a second edition before the year 1690; but
-until it was supplemented or superseded by later works, it continued
-to be the chief authority on the subject, and has been, in our own
-time, thought worthy of republication in the library of Anglo-Catholic
-Theology.</p>
-
-<p>A new publication appeared, partly in 1651, and partly in 1662, bearing
-upon the Anglican controversy with Puritanism, of too important a
-character to be passed over in silence. The first five books of
-Hooker’s <i>Ecclesiastical Polity</i>, had long been the admiration
-of Episcopalian Churchmen,&mdash;the rest of the treatise, supposed to
-be lost, remaining to them an object of desire. At the periods now
-mentioned, there came to light the last three books of this great work
-as possessed by posterity.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HOOKER’S WORKS.</div>
-
-<p>The sixth book, included in the part which issued from the press in
-1651, is, according to the title, a disquisition upon ecclesiastical
-power and the question of lay eldership; but the reader does not
-proceed many pages before he finds the disquisition going off in a
-tangent, from the subject of Church jurisdiction, to pursue inquiries
-relative to the Popish dogmas of confession and penance. Such a method
-of composition is so unlike that of “the judicious Hooker,” that there
-can be no doubt his last accomplished Editor is right in concluding,
-that we have here some compositions from the author’s pen not intended
-for insertion in the <i>Ecclesiastical Polity</i>. Notes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_325">[325]</span> remain
-showing that he had drawn up a plan for this department of his task,
-which would have methodically and pertinently disposed of it, but no
-MS. has been discovered filling up the carefully-digested outline. It
-has been suspected that the Puritan relatives of the Church champion
-in Elizabeth’s reign were guilty of foul play in this matter, and
-that after destroying most of the genuine copy, they vamped up the
-mutilated remainder with dissertations selected from other papers. Such
-a thing may be possible, but certainly it is not proved. I can find
-no satisfactory positive evidence in support of the suspicion,<a id="FNanchor_448" href="#Footnote_448" class="fnanchor">[448]</a>
-and it is quite unaccountable how, if the Puritan manglers of his MSS.
-had made away with what related to lay eldership, they should leave in
-existence a long Essay, containing a lengthened defence of Episcopal
-order. This defence, which appeared in 1662, under the Editorship
-of Gauden, who does not say where he obtained it, presents abundant
-internal proof of its genuineness, showing nevertheless the absence
-of that careful revision and correction, which the Author would have
-bestowed, had he lived to complete his own publication. It forms the
-seventh book.</p>
-
-<p>In the fourth and fifth chapters there is a discussion of the main
-point, “whence it hath grown that the Church is governed by Bishops.”
-In the fifth, Hooker says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“It was the general received persuasion of the ancient Christian
-world, that <i>Ecclesia est in Episcopo</i>, ‘the outward being of a
-Church consisteth in the having of a Bishop.’ That where colleges of
-presbyters were, there was at the first, equality amongst them, St.
-Jerome<span class="pagenum" id="Page_326">[326]</span> thinketh it a matter clear: but when the rest were thus equal,
-so that no one of them could command any other as inferior unto him,
-they all were controllable by the Apostles, who had that Episcopal
-authority abiding at the first in themselves, which they afterwards
-derived unto others. The cause wherefore they under themselves
-appointed such Bishops as were not every where at the first, is said to
-have been those strifes and contentions, for remedy whereof, whether
-the Apostles alone did conclude of such a regiment, or else they
-together with the whole Church judging it a fit and a needful policy,
-did agree to receive it for a custom; no doubt but being established
-by them on whom the Holy Ghost was poured in so abundant measure for
-the ordering of Christ’s Church, it had either Divine appointment
-beforehand, or Divine approbation afterwards, and is in that respect to
-be acknowledged the ordinance of God, no less than that ancient Jewish
-regiment, whereof though Jethro were the deviser, yet after that God
-had allowed it, all men were subject unto it, as to the polity of God,
-and not of Jethro.”</p>
-
-<p>In the course of the entire argument respecting Episcopacy, Hooker
-changes his standing again and again; sometimes taking higher,
-and sometimes lower ground; now insisting upon the Divine origin
-of Diocesan Bishops, and then, supposing their origin not to be
-immediately Divine, attempting to show the inherent authority of the
-Church to determine its own frame of government, and to establish the
-sufficiency of such evidence as may be drawn from patristic sources.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HOOKER’S WORKS.</div>
-
-<p>The eighth book treats of the Royal supremacy in ecclesiastical
-matters, and is intended as a reply to certain Puritan objections
-brought against the form of that supremacy as established by the laws
-of the land. It is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_327">[327]</span> a curious circumstance that one chapter contains a
-vindication of the title, “Supreme Head of the Church;”<a id="FNanchor_449" href="#Footnote_449" class="fnanchor">[449]</a> although
-this did not remain the parliamentary title of the sovereign, according
-to the statute of supremacy in the first year of Elizabeth’s reign: and
-such being the fact, it may be inferred, that Hooker used the title as
-an equivalent to the statutable appellation of “Supreme Governor in all
-spiritual and ecclesiastical causes.”</p>
-
-<p>Hooker’s vindication of the Royal supremacy contains a course of
-elaborate reasoning in support of the prerogative with regard to Church
-assemblies, and Church legislation, the appointing of Bishops, and
-the jurisdiction of Ecclesiastical Courts. Finally, he discusses the
-Royal exemption from ecclesiastical censure, as well as from all other
-kinds of judicial power. This topic is handled with much caution, and
-some reticence, and the chapter in which it is considered remains
-in an unfinished state. I have not lighted upon any controversial
-publications arising out of the appearance of these recovered writings,
-but I notice that Kennet says, Bishop Gauden “doth, with great
-confidence, use diverse arguments to satisfy the world that the three
-books joined to the five genuine books of the said Mr. Hooker are
-genuine, and penned by him, notwithstanding those poisonous assertions
-against the regal power, which are to be found therein.”<a id="FNanchor_450" href="#Footnote_450" class="fnanchor">[450]</a> To what
-in particular the closing words refer is not plain; they can scarcely
-point to a fragment on the limits of obedience, which Gauden attached
-to the eighth book, but which Keble transfers to an Appendix, since the
-author there enforces subjection to civil governors<span class="pagenum" id="Page_328">[328]</span> as a conscientious
-duty. It is not a little remarkable, that Thorndike makes no use either
-of the earlier or later editions of the <i>Ecclesiastical Polity</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The Anglican Divines included distinguished sermon writers. They
-followed in the wake of Andrewes and Donne, whom they resembled in
-their theology, from whom they differed in their style. Like the
-Puritans after the Reformation, they were generally cut off from public
-preaching during the Interregnum; but they wrote sermons, and some
-abroad had liberty to preach,&mdash;as for example Cosin, who, at Paris,
-during his exile, delivered several discourses, which are included in
-his works. The chief of them were prepared for the festivals of the
-Church, and treat of the Nativity, the Resurrection, and the Ascension:
-subjects which are handled sometimes in a cold orthodox manner,
-sometimes with forcible and original reasoning, and now and then with
-strokes of vigorous eloquence. It is remarkable that we have no sermons
-by Cosin, written after the Restoration; and indeed there is a general
-paucity of homiletic literature by members of the Episcopal bench for
-twenty years before the Revolution.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICAN SERMON WRITERS.</div>
-
-<p>The Irish bench supplied one brilliant sermon-writer&mdash;whose
-compositions in that department are above all praise. Jeremy Taylor’s
-theology has been already considered, space here only permits the
-remark that his theology appears in his sermons, that he is the
-true Anglican throughout, and that all his opinions are there
-arrayed in robes of bewitching grace and splendour. His practical
-works,&mdash;for example <i>The Life of Christ</i> and <i>Holy Living
-and Dying</i>,&mdash;may be classed with his discourses; and abound in
-rich specimens of that golden eloquence&mdash;stamped with an Anglican
-mint-mark&mdash;which he was wont copiously to issue from the pulpit.
-Sanderson’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329">[329]</span> sermons are exhaustive treatises, in which the homiletic
-character sometimes fades, but orthodox doctrine is always implied;
-the casuistry of Christian experience is handled sometimes in almost
-a Puritan spirit, and Christian ethics are ever treated in a clear,
-manly, incisive style. Barrow’s sermons are also treatises, many of
-them most decidedly doctrinal, orthodox and argumentative. But, of all
-these Divines, it may be said&mdash;not excepting Jeremy Taylor, who exerts
-a charm of another kind&mdash;that they lack the evangelical unction, the
-softness and fragrance of which is felt to be suffused over the Puritan
-homilies.</p>
-
-<p>Controversy tinges more or less most of the sermons of that period;
-but, for invective, Dr. South has won an unenviable notoriety. No one
-can admire more than I do, the good sense and masculine style of this
-author. There are sermons of his which are perfect models of pulpit
-address; but on reading others, who but must feel that perhaps there
-never was another man who <i>could</i> so well enforce the truths
-of Christianity, who also <i>did</i> so flagrantly violate their
-spirit. He never misses, or rather, he never fails to make, when he
-had any pretence for it, an opportunity of attacking his Puritan
-contemporaries; although he must have lived on terms of civility with
-them when at Oxford. As in a sermon by Chrysostom, preached at Antioch,
-one scarcely ever gets to the end, without finding him rebuking
-swearers, so South in his sermons preached at Westminster Abbey, and in
-other places, rarely concludes without assailing English schismatics,
-who were not less bad in his eyes, than were the most profane Syrians
-in the eyes of the orator of the Eastern Church. Men destitute of
-South’s power manifested a similar temper, vilifying the Nonconformists
-“as far more dangerous enemies than the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_330">[330]</span> Papists;”<a id="FNanchor_451" href="#Footnote_451" class="fnanchor">[451]</a> and thus,
-in the treatment of opponents, they imitated and even exceeded the
-worst polemical vices of such men as Vicars and Edwards, under the
-Commonwealth.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICAN CRITICS.</div>
-
-<p>Before the Restoration there appeared a book on practical piety, which
-attained to an extraordinary degree of popularity. Every one has heard
-of the <i>Whole Duty of Man</i>; and most people given to religious
-reading have met with a treatise bearing that title; probably on
-examination it has proved to be what is entitled, the <i>New Whole
-Duty of Man</i>, a work proceeding on different principles from the
-original treatise&mdash;only the name of which it bears, only the form
-of which it imitates.<a id="FNanchor_452" href="#Footnote_452" class="fnanchor">[452]</a> The original treatise, from the pen of
-an anonymous author,<a id="FNanchor_453" href="#Footnote_453" class="fnanchor">[453]</a> bears a commendatory letter, written by
-Dr. Hammond, a circumstance which alone would suggest our ranking
-it amongst the productions of the Anglican school of theology. Its
-contents justify our doing so. It proceeds upon the theory, so largely
-illustrated by Thorndike, that by baptism men are brought into a
-gracious covenant with God; and that men become, not by merit, but by
-mercy, entitled to the blessings promised in the Gospel. A Christian
-life is the fulfilment of vows and obligations incurred in baptism.
-The book recognizes the doctrines of the Trinity, the Divinity of
-our Lord, the Atonement, and other related truths under Anglican
-forms of expression;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_331">[331]</span> but the stress of the work, indeed every page,
-except a few at the beginning, consists in an inculcation of human
-duty, considered under a threefold aspect&mdash;so common once in the
-pulpits of the Establishment&mdash;our duty towards God, our duty towards
-ourselves, and our duty towards one another. All the precepts of
-devotion, of virtue, and of beneficence are ranged under these heads.
-The great motives to godliness and goodness are not overlooked; but
-the proportion in which they are exhibited is very small compared with
-the space allotted to a prescriptive treatment of the subject. Of the
-fulness and variety of the practical advice given no one can complain;
-but the scanty reference to the distinctive doctrines of the Gospel,
-will be acknowledged by most Divines as a serious defect. The defect
-is explained, but not justified by the circumstance, that the book is
-a reaction against a theological tendency, needing to be checked&mdash;“the
-fanatics were shamefully regardless of good works, and preached up
-faith as all-sufficient.”</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Whole Duty of Man</i> has been more condemned and more praised
-than it deserves. It presents a large amount of moral advice, but it
-lacks the main motive power which produces Christian virtue; and as
-to style, it is hard and unattractive from beginning to end, utterly
-lacking tenderness, and exhibiting practical religion only in a <i>dry
-light</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the Anglican Divines zealously devoted themselves to Biblical
-criticism. In the matter of exegesis, the Puritans achieved much; but
-they looked with suspicion upon all attempts to amend the sacred text.
-In this department, certain of their theological opponents laid their
-own age and posterity under immense obligation. Bryan Walton, perhaps,
-is not to be numbered with Anglicans; and amongst his most efficient<span class="pagenum" id="Page_332">[332]</span>
-helpers, was Lightfoot, more of a Latitudinarian than an Anglican,&mdash;but
-Castell and Pocock, Herbert Thorndike, and Alexander Huish, if not
-Thomas Hyde and Samuel Clark,<a id="FNanchor_454" href="#Footnote_454" class="fnanchor">[454]</a> all of them eminent scholars, were
-more or less Anglican, certainly they were all Episcopalian, in their
-views; and it is to them, assisted by Oliver Cromwell, who permitted
-the paper for the purpose to be imported duty free, that we owe the
-English Polyglott,&mdash;which competent judges have pronounced superior to
-its more splendid predecessors, published on the Continent. Castell was
-enthusiastically devoted to critical studies, to which he sacrificed
-his property, his time, and his energies, with small reward, in the way
-of Church preferment. His <i>Lexicon Heptaglotton</i> is a monument of
-astonishing learning, and worthy of being associated with his friend’s
-Polyglott Bible.</p>
-
-<p>After the Restoration, an idea was entertained of printing the famous
-Alexandrian MS., which had been sent as a present to Charles I. from
-the Greek Patriarch Cyrillus; and the editorship was to have been
-entrusted to Dr. Smith, an Oxford scholar, to whom Charles II. promised
-a Canonry at Windsor or Westminster for his labour; but the design was
-abandoned. Dr. John Fell, Bishop of Oxford, published, in 1675, an
-edition of the Greek New Testament, with various readings, taken from
-Walton and others; his object being to show the substantial correctness
-of the received text, and how little its integrity is affected by the
-numerous lections accumulated by an industrious collation of MSS.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ANGLICAN CRITICS.</div>
-
-<p>To these critics must be added the well-known commentator Dr. Hammond,
-who, instead of following the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_333">[333]</span> Fathers and the Reformers in their
-schemes of mystical interpretation, struck out a path for himself, and
-sought to illustrate the grammatical sense of the sacred writings.
-He studied the Hellenistic dialect, compared Greek MSS., examined
-ancient manners and customs, and employed the opinions of the Gnostics
-to elucidate references in the Epistles to early heresies. This is
-very remarkable in an Anglican Divine, and it indicates what some
-who sympathized with him in other respects might have regarded as
-a rationalistic tendency&mdash;certainly they would have so regarded it
-in any one not belonging to themselves. Hammond’s <i>Paraphrase and
-Annotations</i>, published in 1659, may be taken as constituting
-an epoch in the history of exegesis; the more so on account of his
-influence, for his name stood so high with the Episcopalian clergy,
-“that he naturally turned the tide of interpretation his own way.”<a id="FNanchor_455" href="#Footnote_455" class="fnanchor">[455]</a></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_334">[334]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XV.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Four eminent Divines, who have made a deep mark on English literature,
-now claim attention, coming, as they do, from their complexion of
-thought, and from their characteristic opinions, between the Anglicans
-just reviewed, and the Latitudinarians who remain to be noticed.</p>
-
-<p>William Chillingworth was one of those clever, hard-headed men in whom
-the reasoning faculty predominates over imagination and sentiment, and
-who are thoroughly at home in the exercises of logic, subjecting the
-opinions of opponents to a subtle analysis, and entrenching themselves
-behind carefully-constructed outworks of argumentative defence. The
-skill which, as an engineer, he displayed at the siege of Gloucester,
-in framing engines to storm the place, was of a piece with the skill
-which he exhibited in attacking what he believed to be forms of error
-and superstition.<a id="FNanchor_456" href="#Footnote_456" class="fnanchor">[456]</a> He is best known by his great work, <i>The
-Religion of Protestants a Safe Way to Salvation</i>; and it is evident
-that he had derived advantages, as an assailant of the Roman Church,
-from the acquaintance with it which he had formed during the period of
-his connection with that community.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_335">[335]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LIBERAL ORTHODOX.&mdash;CHILLINGWORTH.</div>
-
-<p>His famous dictum, “The Bible, and the Bible alone, is the religion of
-Protestants”&mdash;the lever with which he sought to upheave and overthrow
-the tenets of Popery&mdash;placed him in a theological position distinct
-from that which was occupied by Anglicans; for, though they were
-ready enough to appeal to Scripture against Rome, they also appealed
-to Christian antiquity against Puritanism. Chillingworth’s method of
-reasoning betrayed an absence of sympathy with High Church Divines in
-their reverence for the early Fathers, and showed how he fixed his
-religious opinions solely upon the basis of the written revelation,
-as interpreted by reason. And at the same time, by largely insisting
-upon the principle that the Apostles’ Creed contains all necessary
-points of mere belief,<a id="FNanchor_457" href="#Footnote_457" class="fnanchor">[457]</a> and by the disposition which he manifested
-to recognize as little doctrinal meaning upon disputed points as
-possible in the articles of that early Christian confession, he not
-only separated himself from Anglicans, but he separated himself from
-Puritans. He was reticent upon evangelical subjects, respecting which
-the latter delighted to speak; and from his desire to comprehend people
-of considerable dogmatic divergency within the pale of the Church, he
-incurred reproaches from those last named, and was stigmatized by them,
-not only as an Arminian, but as a Socinian. No definite idea of his
-opinions upon some important parts of Divine truth can be gathered from
-his writings. It is plain that he loved a large liberty in all kinds
-of thinking, and set a higher value upon a religious temper, a devout
-spirit, a Catholic disposition, and a moral life, than upon orthodoxy
-of sentiment, or forms of worship, or methods of ecclesiastical
-government and discipline.</p>
-
-<p>Chillingworth, a native of the City, and an ornament<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336">[336]</span> of the University
-of Oxford, died in 1644. Eight years afterwards, the English Church
-lost another Divine, an ornament of the University of Cambridge, who,
-though very different in many respects from Chillingworth, may be
-classed with him in the same division of liberal Divines.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LIBERAL ORTHODOX.&mdash;SMITH.</div>
-
-<p>John Smith possessed a mind in which the mystical element mingled
-itself with an intense energy of reflection, a habit of calm thought,
-and an imagination which employed itself, not in painting individual
-objects, but in dyeing, with rich tints of colour, abstract and
-immutable ideas. His mental training had been in the Greek Academy.
-He had long sat as a loving disciple at the feet of Plato, and had
-conversed with the earlier and later Platonists. The reader of
-Smith’s works will, in every page, discover traces of his peculiar
-culture, as well as of his peculiar endowments. His <i>Select
-Discourses</i>, published in 1660, take a wide range, embracing the
-true method of attaining Divine knowledge; the errors that grow up
-beside it&mdash;superstition on the one hand, atheism on the other; the
-immortality of the soul, which is the subject, and the existence and
-nature of God, who is the Author and object of religion; and prophecy,
-which Smith treats as the way whereby revealed truth is dispensed
-and conveyed, rather than as a proof whereby it is established. The
-discourses upon the difference between an evangelical and legal
-righteousness, upon the excellency and nobleness of true religion, and
-upon a Christian’s conflict with and conquest over Satan, exhibit the
-author’s characteristic views of doctrinal, ethical, and experimental
-Divinity. The first only requires particular notice here. “The law was
-the ministry of death, and in itself an external and lifeless thing;
-neither could it procure or beget that Divine life and spiritual form
-of godliness, in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_337">[337]</span> the souls of men, which God expects from all the
-heirs of glory, nor that glory which is only consequent upon a true
-Divine life.” Whereas, on the other side, the Gospel is set forth “as
-a mighty efflux and emanation of life and spirit, freely issuing forth
-from an omnipotent source of grace and love, as that true, God-like,
-vital influence whereby the Divinity derives itself into the souls
-of men, enlivening and transforming them into its own likeness, and
-strongly imprinting upon them a copy of its own beauty and goodness;
-like the spermatical virtue of the heavens, which spreads itself
-freely upon this lower world, and, subtily insinuating itself into
-this benumbed, feeble, earthly matter, begets life and motion in
-it. Briefly, it is that whereby God comes to dwell in us, and we in
-Him.”<a id="FNanchor_458" href="#Footnote_458" class="fnanchor">[458]</a></p>
-
-<p>Particular passages may mislead as to the general character of an
-author’s teaching; but there is a ring in these words, indicating at
-once the kind of metal of which Smith’s theology is made. It is of the
-same substance throughout. “The righteousness of faith,” he says, “and
-the righteousness of God, is a Christ-like nature in a man’s soul, or
-Christ appearing in the minds of men by the mighty power of His Divine
-Spirit, and thereby deriving a true participation of Himself to them.”
-And in accordance with this, and showing at the same time the author’s
-shrinking from definite and precise forms of dogmatic statement, such
-as may be found in Anglicans on the one side, and in Puritans on
-the other, he observes that the Gospel “was not brought in, only to
-refine some notions of truth that might formerly seem discoloured and
-disfigured by a multitude of legal rites and ceremonies; it was not to
-cast our opinions concerning the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_338">[338]</span> way of life and happiness only into a
-new mould and shape in a pedagogical kind of way; it is not so much a
-system and body of saving Divinity, but the spirit and vital influx of
-it, spreading itself over all the powers of men’s souls, and quickening
-them into a Divine life; it is not so properly a doctrine that is
-wrapt up in ink and paper as it is <i>vitalis scientia</i>, a living
-impression made upon the soul and spirit.”<a id="FNanchor_459" href="#Footnote_459" class="fnanchor">[459]</a> Another name challenges
-attention.</p>
-
-<p>The ever-memorable John Hales, pronounced by Pearson to have had “as
-great a sharpness, quickness, and subtlety of wit as ever this or
-perhaps any nation bred,” had been a Calvinist; but he said, that at
-the Synod of Dort, which he attended, he bid John Calvin good-night.
-He had certainly what might be termed very broad views of Christian
-faith; for he remarked, “The Church is like Amphiaraus, she hath no
-device, no word in her shield; mark and essence with her are all one,
-and she hath no other note but to be.”<a id="FNanchor_460" href="#Footnote_460" class="fnanchor">[460]</a> This was a statement which
-removed him to an equal distance from both Anglicans and Puritans; and
-one sentence from a sermon by Hales is sufficient to show how widely
-his teaching as to the way of salvation differed from all preachers
-of the latter class. “The water of baptism, and the tears of true
-repentance, creatures of themselves weak and contemptible, yet through
-the wonderful operation of the grace of God annext unto them, are able,
-were our sins as red as twice-dyed scarlet, to make them as white as
-snow.”<a id="FNanchor_461" href="#Footnote_461" class="fnanchor">[461]</a> Hales was as orthodox as a man could be on the subject of
-the Trinity;<a id="FNanchor_462" href="#Footnote_462" class="fnanchor">[462]</a> and, in his masterly sermon on Christian omnipotency,
-plainly asserts the power and sufficiency of Divine grace.<a id="FNanchor_463" href="#Footnote_463" class="fnanchor">[463]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_339">[339]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LIBERAL ORTHODOX.&mdash;FARINDON.</div>
-
-<p>Hales died in 1656, and was followed to the grave two years afterwards
-by his attached friend Anthony Farindon, both of them being members
-of the University of Oxford. Farindon was far more evangelical than
-Hales and Chillingworth. He had not the mystical turn of mind which
-is so marked in John Smith, nor was he so manifestly a Platonist.
-Altogether his habits of thought are much more on a level with common
-understandings.</p>
-
-<p>The distance which severed Farindon from the Anglicans comes out in
-the following passage:&mdash;“And now, if we look into the Church, we shall
-find that most men stand in need of a ‘yea, rather.’ ... <i>Felix
-sacramentum!</i> ‘Blessed sacrament of baptism!’ ... It is true; but
-there is ... ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they that have put on Christ.’
-‘Blessed sacrament of the Lord’s Supper.’ It is true; but, ‘Yea,
-rather; blessed are they that dwell in Christ.’ ‘Blessed profession
-of Christianity!’ ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they that are Christ’s.’
-‘Blessed cross!’ The Fathers call it so. ‘Yea, rather; blessed are
-they that have crucified their flesh, with the affections and lusts.’
-‘Blessed Church!’ ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they who are members of
-Christ.’ ‘Blessed Reformation!’ ‘Yea, rather; blessed are they that
-reform themselves.’”<a id="FNanchor_464" href="#Footnote_464" class="fnanchor">[464]</a></p>
-
-<p>Nor is the distinction between Farindon and the Puritans much less
-visible, when he remarks, with regard to the act of justification,
-“What mattereth it whether I believe or not believe, know or not
-know, that our justification doth consist in one or more acts, so
-that I certainly know and believe that it is the greatest blessing
-that God can let fall upon His creature, and believe that by it I am
-made acceptable in His sight, and, though I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_340">[340]</span> have broken the law,
-yet shall be dealt with as if I had been just and righteous indeed?
-whether it be done by pardoning all my sins, or imputing universal
-obedience to me, or the active and passive obedience of Christ?”
-“And as in justification, so in the point of faith by which we are
-justified, what profit is there so busily to inquire whether the nature
-of faith consisteth in an obsequious assent, or in the appropriation
-of the grace and mercy of God, or in a mere fiducial apprehension and
-application of the merits of Christ?”<a id="FNanchor_465" href="#Footnote_465" class="fnanchor">[465]</a> It would be difficult to
-point out, in the writings of this theologian, a precise definition
-either of justification or of faith, and equally difficult to point
-out any statement adverse to those views of salvation by grace in
-which all evangelic Christians agree. He finds fault with Augustine
-for confounding justification with sanctification, and separates
-himself from the Anglican, though not so widely as from the Romanist,
-when he stigmatizes as “an unsavoury tenet” the doctrine, “that
-justification is not a pronouncing, but a making one righteous; that
-inherent holiness is the formal cause of justification; and that we
-may redeem our sins, and purchase forgiveness, by fasting, almsdeeds,
-and other good works.” Deficient in definiteness upon these points,
-Farindon is clear in reference to the Trinity, the Incarnation, and
-the Atonement. He expounds them in an orthodox way, yet he does not
-dwell upon them so frequently, and at such length, as his Anglican
-and Puritan contemporaries. He is no Calvinist; without entering into
-lengthened controversy on the five points, he shows his great dislike
-to Calvin’s views.<a id="FNanchor_466" href="#Footnote_466" class="fnanchor">[466]</a> He holds decidedly that Christ died for all
-men; and with caustic reasoning, shows that, when it is said, “God
-so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_341">[341]</span> loved the world,” it cannot mean, He so loved the elect.<a id="FNanchor_467" href="#Footnote_467" class="fnanchor">[467]</a> His
-Arminianism is perhaps nearly, if not quite, as evangelical as that of
-our Wesleyan brethren, but he lacks the fervour with which they set
-forth the verities of Christianity in relation to the deepest wants of
-man. Puritans could scarcely apply the moral lessons of the Gospel to
-the hearts of men on grounds more evangelic than those presented by
-Farindon; but we miss in his sermons a penetrating fire like that of
-John Owen, and a melting pathos like that of Richard Baxter.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAMBRIDGE SCHOOL.</div>
-
-<p>The way is now open for viewing that division of thinkers who
-distinguished themselves, after the Restoration, by the breadth of
-their opinions. They followed in the steps of those whom we have now
-described, but in some particulars they went far beyond them. In a
-former volume I touched upon the Cambridge school of theologians; it
-remains for me to trace the subsequent development and progress of
-their peculiarities. They early received the name of Latitudinarians,
-and in 1662 their name had passed into everybody’s mouth, although its
-explicit meaning, it was said, remained as great a mystery as the order
-of the Rosicrucians. Some spoke of them as holding dangerous opinions,
-others defended them; but all which people in general knew seemed to be
-that the new school of thinkers mostly belonged to the University of
-Cambridge, and that they mostly followed the new philosophy.</p>
-
-<p>A contemporary&mdash;one of their number&mdash;describes them in the first place
-as attached to the liturgy of the Church of England; and as admiring
-its solemnity, gravity, and primitive simplicity, together with its
-freedom both from affected phrases, and from any mixture of vain
-and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_342">[342]</span> doubtful opinions. They also, he says, believed “that it is the
-greatest check to devotion which can be, to hear men mix their private
-opinions with their public prayers,”&mdash;and they expressed themselves
-strongly against extempore devotions. As for rites and ceremonies,
-they approved what is called “the virtuous mediocrity of the Reformed
-Episcopal Church,” between the “meretricious gaudiness” of Rome, and
-“the squalid sluttery” of the fanatics. They contended that “so long as
-we live in this region of mortality, we must make use of such external
-helps” as the Church has thought fitted for the ends of worship.
-According to the same authority, they were averse to Presbyterianism
-and to Independency; and were decided supporters of Episcopal order. As
-for the doctrines of the Church, the Latitudinarians cordially adhered
-to the Thirty-nine Articles, to the three Creeds, and to any doctrine
-held by the Church, “unless absolute reprobation be one, which they do
-not think themselves bound to believe.” Great reverence is attributed
-to them, for the genuine monuments of the ancient Fathers, those
-especially of the first and purest age; and the writer then meets the
-charge of their hearkening too much to reason. For reason, he says,
-“is that faculty, whereby a man must judge of everything; nor can a
-man believe anything except he have some reason for it, whether that
-reason be a deduction from the light of nature, and those principles
-which are the candle of the Lord, set up in the soul of every man that
-hath not wilfully extinguished it, or a branch of Divine revelation
-in the oracles of Holy Scripture; or the general interpretation of
-genuine antiquity, or the proposal of our own Church consentaneous
-thereto; or lastly, the result of some or all of these: for he that
-will rightly make use of his reason, must take all that is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_343">[343]</span> reasonable
-into consideration. And it is admirable to consider how the same
-conclusions do naturally flow from all these several principles; and
-what in the faithful use of the faculties that God hath given, men have
-believed for true, doth excellently agree with that revelation that
-God hath exhibited in the Scripture, and the doctrine of the ancient
-Church with them both. Thus the freedom of our wills, the universal
-intent of Christ’s death, and sufficiency of God’s grace, the condition
-of justification, and many other points of the like nature, which have
-been almost exploded in these latter degenerate ages of the world, do
-again begin to obtain, though with different persons upon different
-accounts: some embrace them for their evidence in Scripture, others
-for the concurrent testimony of the primitive Church for above four
-hundred years; others for the reasonableness of the things themselves,
-and their agreement both with the Divine attributes, and the easy
-suggestions of their own minds. Nor is there any point in Divinity,
-where that which is most ancient doth not prove the most rational, and
-the most rational the ancientest; for there is an eternal consanguinity
-between all verity; and nothing is true in Divinity, which is false
-in Philosophy, or on the contrary; and therefore what God hath joined
-together, let no man put asunder.”<a id="FNanchor_468" href="#Footnote_468" class="fnanchor">[468]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAMBRIDGE SCHOOL.</div>
-
-<p>The account is that of a partizan, who evidently wishes to make
-Latitudinarianism stand well in the estimation of all sorts of
-Churchmen; and therefore he strives to paint its teachers in colours
-of orthodoxy, and he charily remarks that they will be “generally
-suspected to be for liberty of conscience.”</p>
-
-<p>Baxter, in 1665, speaks of the same school, as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_344">[344]</span> Platonists, or
-Cartesians, and of many of them as Arminians, with this addition, that
-they had more charitable thoughts than others of the salvation of
-heathens and infidels; and that some of them agreed in the opinions
-of Origen, about the pre-existence of souls.<a id="FNanchor_469" href="#Footnote_469" class="fnanchor">[469]</a> Burnet says that
-they “read Episcopius much,”<a id="FNanchor_470" href="#Footnote_470" class="fnanchor">[470]</a> respecting whose works Thorndike
-affirmed, that in them “the faith of the Holy Trinity is made an
-indifferent thing,” and the doctrine of original sin is “turned out of
-doors,”<a id="FNanchor_471" href="#Footnote_471" class="fnanchor">[471]</a>&mdash;a sweeping accusation which has been called in question,
-yet it would be difficult to establish the orthodoxy of Episcopius
-on the Trinity, in the sense attached to that term by writers like
-Thorndike. No doubt there were heterodox tendencies in the writings
-of Episcopius and his school; but in this respect some of the later
-Remonstrants went beyond their master.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FOWLER.</div>
-
-<p>The writer who most fully expounded the tenets of the Latitudinarians
-as a whole was Edward Fowler, who hesitated to conform in 1662, but who
-became afterwards Rector of Allhallows, Bread Street, and finally was
-elevated to the see of Gloucester. In his work <i>On the Principles and
-Practices of Certain Moderate Divines of the Church of England</i>,
-published in 1679, he professes truly to represent and defend them, and
-every page bears witness to the fact of their having been adopted by
-this author. He strongly maintains the eternal and immutable grounds
-of morality, against the pernicious principle which had been urged by
-some Calvinists, that the entire basis of virtue is to be found in the
-will of God, and vindicates the prominence given by the new teachers to
-the reasonableness of Christianity.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_345">[345]</span> Though the supernatural origin of
-the Gospel, and the Divine authority of its doctrines, are implied, and
-even distinctly acknowledged in the volume, yet the impression given by
-it altogether is such as to place the duty of accepting Christianity
-mainly upon the ground of its being a rational system. The production
-of faith is described as a process of reasoning, with regard to which
-the inward testimony of the Spirit is resolved “ordinarily” into a
-blessing on the use of means, <i>i.e.</i>, the consideration of the
-motives He hath given us to believe.<a id="FNanchor_472" href="#Footnote_472" class="fnanchor">[472]</a></p>
-
-<p>Another passage may be quoted, indicating the view of the writer upon a
-question which proves a touchstone of theological sentiment.</p>
-
-<p>The Latitudinarians “are very careful so to handle the doctrine
-of justifying faith, as not only to make obedience to follow it,
-but likewise to include a hearty willingness to submit to all
-Christ’s precepts in the nature of it; and to show the falsity and
-defectiveness of some descriptions of faith, that have had too general
-an entertainment, and still have. This they look upon themselves
-as greatly obliged to do, as being well aware, of what dangerous
-consequence some received notions of that grace are, and that not a few
-that have imbibed them, have so well understood their true and natural
-inferences, as to be thereby encouraged to let the reins loose to all
-ungodliness.”<a id="FNanchor_473" href="#Footnote_473" class="fnanchor">[473]</a></p>
-
-<p>Fowler affirms that those who are sincerely righteous, and from an
-inward living principle allow themselves in no known sin, nor in
-the neglect of any known duty, which is to be truly, evangelically
-righteous, shall be dealt with and rewarded, in and through Christ,
-as if they were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_346">[346]</span> perfectly and in a strict legal sense so. Entering
-essentially into Fowler’s notion of faith is the idea of its being the
-germ of Christian virtue: and, as it regards the connection between
-faith and justification, he believes that the receiving of Christ
-as Lord is a prerequisite to the obtaining of Christ as Redeemer.
-He defines justifying faith in these words:&mdash;“A grace of the Holy
-Spirit, whereby a man being convinced of his sin and miserable estate
-in regard of it, and an all-sufficiency in Christ to save from both,
-receives Him as He is tendered in the Gospel, or according to his three
-offices of Prophet, Priest, and King;” and,&mdash;which is important to
-the understanding of Fowler’s views,&mdash;he adds, “That act of receiving
-Christ as Lord, is to go before that of receiving Him as a Priest;
-for we may not rely upon Him for salvation, till we are willing to
-yield obedience to Him.”<a id="FNanchor_474" href="#Footnote_474" class="fnanchor">[474]</a> In all this, and in much more, may
-be recognized a striving after some way of thoroughly meeting the
-two sides of that redemption from evil, which in the Gospel is ever
-represented as one. Whilst some theologians made holiness the result
-of faith in a Divine salvation, which salvation was treated by them
-as identical with justification, and others considered holiness as
-an essential part of it,&mdash;Fowler leaned in the direction of making
-holiness the means of salvation; and the tendency to adopt a <i>via
-media</i> further appears in his attempt to steer a middle course
-between Calvinism and Arminianism:&mdash;He remarks, “That there is such
-a thing as distinguishing grace, whereby some persons are absolutely
-elected, by virtue whereof they shall be (having potent and infallible
-means prepared for them)<span class="pagenum" id="Page_347">[347]</span> irresistibly saved. But that others, that are
-not in the number of those singular and special favourites, are not
-at all in a desperate condition, but have sufficient means appointed
-for them to qualify them for greater or less degrees of happiness, and
-have sufficient grace offered to them some way or other, and some time
-or other; and are in a capacity of salvation either greater or less,
-through the merits of Jesus Christ; and that none of them are damned,
-but those that wilfully refuse to co-operate with that grace of God,
-and will not act in some moral suitableness to that power they have
-received.”<a id="FNanchor_475" href="#Footnote_475" class="fnanchor">[475]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">FOWLER.</div>
-
-<p>Universal redemption,&mdash;by which is signified the universal
-applicability of our Lord’s atoning sacrifice,&mdash;is strenuously
-maintained by this Divine;<a id="FNanchor_476" href="#Footnote_476" class="fnanchor">[476]</a> and he speaks hopefully of the future
-state, through Christ, of virtuous heathens.</p>
-
-<p>Passing to Church questions, the same writer expresses a preference
-for Episcopacy, but does not unchurch unepiscopal societies; he
-holds Erastian views of the power of the civil magistrate; and
-strangely denies, that liberty of conscience forms a part of Christian
-liberty. He would concede to every man liberty of opinion, but not
-the liberty of persuading others to adopt his opinion; so that this
-scheme, ecclesiastically considered, runs at last into the doctrine
-of intolerance. Throughout Fowler’s works an anti-Puritan feeling
-is predominant; and his allusions to Nonconformists are by no means
-friendly.<a id="FNanchor_477" href="#Footnote_477" class="fnanchor">[477]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_348">[348]</span></p>
-
-<p>Wilkins, the moderate and liberal Bishop of Chester, belonged to
-the same class with Fowler. Known chiefly by his scientific works,
-he, nevertheless, deserves notice as one of the early defenders of
-natural religion against the attacks and the innuendoes of sceptics
-and infidels. The authors who have been just mentioned passed over
-the evidences of religion and plunged at once into the discussion of
-doctrines; but Wilkins saw that there is much outside Christianity
-which needed defence, for the subsequent preservation of the palladium
-of the faith. He is to be reckoned amongst the first to expound those
-more general and fundamental truths which, in the next century,
-occupied so much attention, and were esteemed bulwarks of revelation.
-He wrote upon the principles and duties of natural religion; but
-only twelve chapters of the book on the subject were completed by
-himself; the rest being prepared from the Bishop’s MSS., by his
-friend Tillotson. Cumberland’s <i>De legibus Naturæ Disquisitio
-Philosophica</i> (1672) is scarcely a theological treatise, it being a
-pioneer in the dangerous region of utilitarian<span class="pagenum" id="Page_349">[349]</span> ethics; but Cumberland
-may properly be reckoned as belonging to the Latitudinarians, for his
-speculations are more or less intimately related to what is generally
-regarded as the religion of nature in its alliance with the religion of
-revelation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CUDWORTH.</div>
-
-<p>A chief&mdash;if not the very first place&mdash;amongst the opponents of atheism
-and immorality, must be adjudged to Ralph Cudworth, whose learning
-and ability have reflected so much lustre on the Cambridge school.
-His <i>Intellectual System</i> is left unfinished, and reminds us of
-costly preparations for palatial buildings which have never risen
-above a few layers of marble blocks. With such a comparison, however,
-a contrast is suggested; for whilst the substructions referred to, may
-be monuments of the folly, condemned in the Gospel, of him who begins
-to build and is not able to finish,&mdash;Cudworth’s treatise shows it was
-from no want of power that he left his work incomplete. Of the five
-chapters of the first and only book of the <i>Intellectual System</i>,
-the fourth and fifth are by very far the longest, and these are devoted
-to Theology. It comes not within my province to make an attempt at
-deciding upon the place of honour due to Cudworth in the temple of
-fame, to report his speculations, or to repeat his critical estimates
-of different philosophers; my duty is simply to call attention to the
-two chapters, in which he ventures to trace a resemblance between the
-Trinity of Plato and the Trinity of Scripture, and argues also against
-Atheism. Respecting the latter, Cudworth had stated in his second
-chapter, the various reasonings of the ancient fatalists, whose system
-he characterized as “a gigantical and titanical attempt to dethrone
-the Deity,”&mdash;“Atheism openly swaggering under the glorious appearance
-of wisdom and philosophy.” In the fourth chapter, where he speaks of
-the Trinity, he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_350">[350]</span> explains Platonic ideas, attempting to show, that
-notwithstanding the difference between them and the ideas in Scripture,
-the three hypostases of the Platonists were Homoousian, Coessential,
-and Consubstantial. He touches upon the opinions of the Fathers, and
-expounds the views of Athanasius, who supposes that the three Divine
-hypostases “make up one entire Divinity, after the same manner as the
-fountain and the stream make up one entire river; or the root, and
-the stock, and the branches, one entire tree.” Cudworth contends that
-the Christian Trinity, though a mystery, is more agreeable to reason
-than the Platonic; and that there is no absurdity at all in supposing
-“the pure soul and body of the Messiah to be made a living temple or
-Shechinah-image or statue of the Deity.”<a id="FNanchor_478" href="#Footnote_478" class="fnanchor">[478]</a> The bent of the author’s
-mind, and the tendency of the school to which he belonged, is seen
-throughout this part of his design, which is not to place the doctrine
-of the Trinity on a scriptural basis, but to establish and illustrate
-its perfect reasonableness, and to point out coincidences between it
-and some of the best guesses, or most satisfactory conclusions, of
-thinkers who never enjoyed the advantages of revelation. In harmony
-with this, is the fact of his noting, in the midst of his speculations,
-the following errors:&mdash;“The first, of those who make Christianity
-nothing but an Antinomian Plot against real righteousness, and, as
-it were, a secret confederacy with the Devil. The second, of those
-who turn that into matter of mere notion and opinion, dispute and
-controversy, which was designed by God only as a contrivance, machine,
-or engine to bring men effectually to a holy and godly life.”<a id="FNanchor_479" href="#Footnote_479" class="fnanchor">[479]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CUDWORTH.</div>
-
-<p>The fifth chapter is devoted to “a particular confutation<span class="pagenum" id="Page_351">[351]</span> of all the
-atheistic grounds,” which confutation covers 270 folio pages. The two
-principal objections which he combats are, that, either men have no
-idea of God at all, or else, none but such as is compounded and made up
-of impossible and contradictory notions; whence these Atheists would
-infer Him to be an inconceivable nothing, and that, as nothing could
-come from nothing, it may be concluded, that whatever substantially
-or really is, was from all eternity of itself unmade, or uncreated by
-any Deity. The answering of these objections&mdash;in a course of argument
-which combines great learning with metaphysical acuteness&mdash;leads
-Cudworth to introduce proofs of the Divine existence drawn from final
-causes, as in the subjoined passage, which is quoted as one of the
-most familiar and popular forms of reasoning to be found in this
-recondite treatise:&mdash;“It is no more possible, that the fortuitous
-motion of dead and senseless matter, should ever from itself be taught
-and necessitated to produce such an orderly and regular system as the
-frame of this whole world is, together with the bodies of animals, and
-constantly to continue the same; than that a man perfectly illiterate
-and neither able to write nor read, taking up a pen into his hand, and
-making all manner of scrawls, with ink upon paper, should at length be
-taught and necessitated by the thing itself, to write a whole quire of
-paper together, with such characters, as being decyphered by a certain
-key, would all prove coherent philosophic sense.” Or to take another
-instance:&mdash;“This is no more possible than that ten or a dozen persons,
-altogether unskilled in music, having several instruments given them,
-and striking the strings or keys thereof, any how as it happened,
-should, after some time of discord and jarring, at length be taught and
-necessitated, to fall into most exquisite harmony,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_352">[352]</span> and continue the
-same uninterruptedly for several hours together.”<a id="FNanchor_480" href="#Footnote_480" class="fnanchor">[480]</a></p>
-
-<p>Cudworth directed his studies chiefly to the foundations of religion
-and morality. Neither from his published works, nor, it would appear,
-from his unpublished MSS., in the British Museum, can any definite
-system of Biblical doctrine be gathered. The general colouring of his
-theological views, however, may be inferred from the very title of one
-of his printed treatises: “<i>Deus Justificatus</i>; or the Divine
-Goodness vindicated and cleared against the assertors of absolute and
-inconditionate Reprobation.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAMBRIDGE.&mdash;CRITICS.</div>
-
-<p>Edward Stillingfleet, who has claimed our attention both as a healer
-and a stirrer up of strife, although not a doctrinal controversialist,
-demands some notice as a writer on Christian evidences. His broad
-and moderate churchmanship at the period of the Restoration, and
-his sympathy also at that time with the Latitudinarian Divines of
-Cambridge,&mdash;where he was educated and obtained a Fellowship at St.
-John’s in 1653,&mdash;entitle him to a place amongst them in the early
-part of his life.<a id="FNanchor_481" href="#Footnote_481" class="fnanchor">[481]</a> It was in the year 1662, that he published his
-“<i>Origines Sacræ</i>; or Rational Account of the Christian Faith,
-as to the Truth and Divine Authority of the Scripture.” His learning,
-acuteness, logical ability, and lawyer-like habit of thought eminently
-fitted him for controversy, and these talents are signally displayed
-in the book now mentioned. The first part is occupied with an exposure
-of the obscurity, defect, and uncertainty of heathen histories, and of
-heathen chronology. In the treatment of this subject, he so completely
-undermines the credibility of all ancient<span class="pagenum" id="Page_353">[353]</span> history, except what is in
-Scripture, that he unwittingly precludes the proper use of the former
-in certain instances as a corroboration of the latter. He does not with
-thorough care distinguish between insufficiency and a complete want of
-authority. In the second book, he dwells on the knowledge, fidelity,
-and integrity of Moses; and upon the proofs of a Divine inspiration of
-the prophets from the fulfilment of their prophecies; but in this part
-of his work, he does not so much anticipate the details of the modern
-argument, as unfold the principles upon which he conceived the argument
-should rest. The evidence from miracles is also exhibited. The third
-book, to which the title of <i>Origines</i> particularly points, treats
-of the being of God, and the origin of the universe,&mdash;of evil&mdash;of the
-nations of the earth&mdash;and of the Heathen Mythology. In connection with
-the origin of nations, he vindicates the Scripture history of the
-Deluge, and falls into harmony with modern geologists, by confessing
-that he sees no necessity from Scripture, to assert, that the flood
-spread itself over the whole surface of the earth.<a id="FNanchor_482" href="#Footnote_482" class="fnanchor">[482]</a></p>
-
-<p>Before proceeding further with the current of theological opinion, let
-me pause for a moment to mention the names of men who, in the service
-of Biblical learning, may perhaps be justly classed with the Divines
-now under review. Lightfoot, the Erastian, published, between 1644 and
-1664, a Harmony of the Gospels, a Commentary upon the Acts, and Notes
-upon St. Paul’s Epistles to the Romans and Corinthians, besides <i>Horæ
-Hebraicæ, et Talmudicæ</i>, and other Exercitations of a similar kind.
-All his books exhibit Rabbinical lore applied to the elucidation of the
-Holy Scriptures; and he is not only the first of our English Divines to
-break<span class="pagenum" id="Page_354">[354]</span> up new ground decidedly and extensively in this field, but he
-actually tills the soil to such a degree, that none of his successors
-in the same path of industry are equal to this master-workman. Besides
-his own volumes, he has contributed to the interests of Biblical
-scholarship, by largely assisting Walton in his Polyglott, and Poole in
-his Synopsis.</p>
-
-<p>Simon Patrick&mdash;numbered by Burnet among the Latitudinarians&mdash;wrote
-Commentaries upon the Old Testament, as far as the Book of
-Esther,&mdash;these were published between the years 1694 and 1705,&mdash;but at
-an earlier date, between 1678 and 1681, he wrote Paraphrases of Job
-and the Psalms, of Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, and the Song of Solomon. He
-united reverence with learning, and brevity with accuracy; and avoiding
-the method of citing a number of opinions, which only perplex the
-reader, he gives his own in a style which is clear, and with arguments
-which are forcible.<a id="FNanchor_483" href="#Footnote_483" class="fnanchor">[483]</a></p>
-
-<p>There is another person entitled to honourable mention, which perhaps
-may be as fittingly introduced here as anywhere: for, though he cannot
-be identified with the Latitudinarian school, neither can he in any
-proper sense be pronounced either Anglican or Puritan. Dr. James Ussher
-occupies a niche of his own in the temple of theological literature.
-His broad sympathies seem to fix his place at least near to those
-scholars who have just been described. As to time, his publications
-take their place between the beginning of the works of Lightfoot and
-the beginning of the works of Patrick. Ussher differed from them both.
-He was far superior to the last<span class="pagenum" id="Page_355">[355]</span> in learning; but I should infer, from
-what is said of him, that in some respects&mdash;certainly in the Rabbinical
-department of study&mdash;he was inferior to Lightfoot as a Biblical critic.
-In the learning which relates to sacred chronology he had no rival.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAMBRIDGE.&mdash;SCIENCE.</div>
-
-<p>At the close of this chapter, in which so much has been said respecting
-the free thought of the Cambridge school, and just as we are on the
-point of noticing its wider developments, I would seize the opportunity
-of saying a few words in relation to views of science entertained by
-more advanced theological inquirers. Aristotle remained a favourite
-philosophical teacher with the supporters of old-fashioned orthodoxy.
-The “new learning,” as the investigation of physical phenomena after
-the Baconian method, came to be termed, inspired an immense degree of
-suspicion in the minds of a large number of clergymen, who fancied
-they could detect in it tendencies to Popery, or Socinianism,&mdash;they
-scarcely knew which; and the infant Royal Society, then beginning “to
-knock at the door where truth was to be found, although it was left for
-Newton to force it open,”<a id="FNanchor_484" href="#Footnote_484" class="fnanchor">[484]</a> expressed a good deal of indignation
-on account of its supposed arrogance. It received such treatment as
-falls to the lot of a pert and conceited child, and old people shook
-their heads as they prognosticated the end of such folly after a little
-experience. Gunning, Bishop of Ely, Barlow, Bishop of Lincoln, and
-South, when orator at the University of Oxford, denounced these new
-studies as most mischievous; and Henry Stubbe, an intense admirer of
-Aristotle, raved against the scientific associates with a violence
-which was perfectly absurd.<a id="FNanchor_485" href="#Footnote_485" class="fnanchor">[485]</a> That jealousy of science, which is
-not yet extinguished, then burnt with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_356">[356]</span> greater fury than it does now;
-and the Divines who united the inductive study of nature with the more
-immediate duties of their profession, had to sustain the brunt of a
-fierce battle. Seth Ward, Bishop of Salisbury, and Wilkins, Bishop
-of Chester, whilst theologically at variance, were scientifically in
-unison, and occupied the front rank in the clerical army on the side of
-intellectual advancement. But the person most zealous and laborious in
-the defence of the new philosophy was Joseph Glanvill, Rector of Bath,
-and Chaplain in Ordinary to Charles II., a writer of great ability, who
-had at his command a racy vigorous English style. It is amusing to find
-him employing the doctrine of a pre-existence of souls as the key to
-unlock the grand mysteries of Providence, and defending the possibility
-and real existence of witches and apparitions; still more amusing to be
-told by him that Adam needed neither spectacles nor telescope, for his
-naked eyes saw as much of the celestial world as we can discover with
-all the advantages of art.<a id="FNanchor_486" href="#Footnote_486" class="fnanchor">[486]</a> Nevertheless the tone of his philosophy
-on the whole was decidedly sceptical; more so than Descartes, more so
-than Malebranche.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">CAMBRIDGE.&mdash;SCIENCE.</div>
-
-<p>Glanvill, who was a Fellow of the Royal Society, and acted as its
-Secretary, described and vindicated its character and proceedings, as a
-noble institution, vouchsafed to the modern world for the communication
-and increase of knowledge, according to the pregnant suggestion of
-Lord Bacon, that many heads and hands should unite in making and
-recording scientific observations, thus gathering up the facts which
-lie scattered in “the vast champaign of nature,” and bringing them
-into<span class="pagenum" id="Page_357">[357]</span> a common store.<a id="FNanchor_487" href="#Footnote_487" class="fnanchor">[487]</a> But a notice of the way in which Glanvill
-defended the religious temper and tendencies of the experimental
-philosophy is more to our purpose; and I may, therefore, state that
-he executed his task in an ingenious and lively performance which is
-well worth the attention of certain people in the present day. He shows
-that God is to be praised in all His works&mdash;that His works are to be
-studied by those that would praise Him for them&mdash;that the study of
-nature in relation to God is very serviceable to religion&mdash;and that
-the ministers and professors of religion ought not to discourage, but
-promote the knowledge of the ways and works of its Author. He not only
-points out the connection between science and natural religion, but
-proves how true philosophy may be a friend of revelation, since it is
-a maxim of reason, that whatsoever God saith is to be believed, though
-we cannot apprehend the manner of it or tell how the thing should
-be.<a id="FNanchor_488" href="#Footnote_488" class="fnanchor">[488]</a> No heterodoxy lurked under the advocacy of this scientific
-Divine, for he applied his principle to the Trinity and Incarnation,
-as being defensible on the same grounds as the existence of matter
-and motion. He moves nearer to the controversies of our own time, and
-indeed takes up a position in the midst of existing strifes, when he
-challenges the imputation, that philosophy teaches doctrines contrary
-to the Word of God. He meets it by saying, philosophy teaches many
-things which are not revealed in Scripture, for the design of Scripture
-is to teach religion, not science; no tenet ought to be exploded
-because some statements in the Divine oracles seem not to comport with
-it, natural<span class="pagenum" id="Page_358">[358]</span> objects being popularly described in the Old Testament;
-and the free experimental philosophy which the author pursued, and
-undertook to recommend, ventured, he said, on no peremptory and
-dogmatical assertions opposed to Divine authority, but confined itself
-to probabilities, where religion and the Scriptures are not at all
-concerned.<a id="FNanchor_489" href="#Footnote_489" class="fnanchor">[489]</a> In many of his remarks, Glanvill anticipates the line
-of defence adopted by modern religious philosophers; and whilst he
-evinces a freedom of inquiry into natural phenomena which proves that
-he had burst the trammels of ancient prejudices, he also indicates a
-profound reverence for the Bible, and never allows his scepticism to
-utter a syllable inconsistent with belief in Divine revelation. I may
-add, that he published a discourse upon the agreement between reason
-and religion, against infidelity, scepticism, and fanaticisms of all
-sorts. It is apparent, from what he says, that he had no sympathy with
-Puritanism, but he had a great respect for Richard Baxter.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_359">[359]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XVI.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The term Latitudinarian, both as a term of praise and a term of
-reproach, intended by friends to signify that a man was liberal,
-intended by enemies to denote that he was heterodox, came to be applied
-to thinkers holding very different opinions. Amongst the Divines, often
-placed under the generic denomination, very considerable diversities of
-sentiment existed. Indeed, the name is so loosely used as to be given
-to some persons whose orthodoxy is above all just suspicion&mdash;to others
-not only verging upon but deeply involved in considerable error. When
-we examine the essence of Latitudinarianism, and find that it consisted
-in the elevation of morals above dogmas, in the assertion of charity
-against bigotry, in abstinence from a curious prying into mysteries,
-yet in the culture of a spirit of free investigation, we see that
-there might be lying concealed under much which is truly excellent,
-elements of a different description. Scepticism might nestle under
-all this virtue, and all this tolerance&mdash;under this love of what is
-reasonable, and this habit of liberal inquiry. Faith, in that which is
-most precious, might live in amicable alliance with the distinctive
-Latitudinarian temper, or scepticism might secretly nestle beneath its
-wings.</p>
-
-<p>From the beginning of the movement, some who took<span class="pagenum" id="Page_360">[360]</span> part in it,
-betrayed a want of sympathy in those strong Gospel convictions, which
-are of supreme importance, and in connection with it there were
-entertained, at an early period of its history, curious speculations
-respecting the pre-existence of souls, the salvation of the heathen,
-and the state of the body at the resurrection. Though some of these
-speculations were only fanciful, and others were capable of an orthodox
-construction, they certainly indicated a mental tendency very apt to
-resent the restraints of the Church’s faith, and to run into devious,
-if not dangerous paths. It was more than possible for this habit of
-rational and free inquiry to slip from under the control of its better
-principles, and to assume forms of even a disastrous kind.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">LATITUDINARIANISM.</div>
-
-<p>We cannot help recognizing in the movement, one wave amongst many then
-foaming and breaking over the wide ocean of human thought. Resistance
-to the strict Calvinistic theory appeared and increased in the French
-Protestant Church. In the academy of Saumur speculations were rife,
-undermining the doctrines of imputation and original sin, and pointing
-to the idea of universal grace.<a id="FNanchor_490" href="#Footnote_490" class="fnanchor">[490]</a> A similar tendency existed in
-Switzerland, not so manifest but yet operative; for the <i>Formula
-Consensus</i> adopted in 1675 to exclude Divines, who were not sound
-in the faith of Geneva, met with violent opposition, and had to be
-softened down, and explained away. Against orthodox Lutheranism, as
-expounded in its symbolical books, there had appeared in Germany,
-in the first half of the century, a scheme in support of union and
-toleration resting on the basis of the Apostles’ Creed, such a
-proposal being pronounced by opponents<span class="pagenum" id="Page_361">[361]</span> to be <i>Syncretism</i> or a
-“<i>Lying medley</i>;” and in the second half of the same century may
-be traced the rise of Pietism under Spener, who, although an orthodox
-believer, exalted spiritual life above theological belief.<a id="FNanchor_491" href="#Footnote_491" class="fnanchor">[491]</a>
-Even the Roman Catholic Church throbbed with inquisitive impulses
-perilous to the blind rule which it upheld. The theology of Jansenism,
-whilst, under one aspect, it appears as an assertion of orthodox
-Augustinianism,&mdash;under another aspect reveals itself as a protest
-against authority; and the sentiment of Quietism, with its spiritual
-ardour, tended to the depreciation of what is dogmatical. The Port
-Royalists and Madame Guyon were, in fact, falling into a current which
-they did not comprehend. Biblical criticism was looking the same
-way. It carried in its bosom elements both of faith and scepticism.
-Inquiries into the state of the sacred text alarmed many of the
-learned and the good; and Hermeneutical Canons were being followed,
-which, while soundly Protestant, imperilled ideas venerable for their
-antiquity.<a id="FNanchor_492" href="#Footnote_492" class="fnanchor">[492]</a> Historical criticism exposed ancient falsehoods. The
-spuriousness of the Isidorian Decretals, for ages the stronghold of
-Papal despotism, was demonstrated by the Protestant Controversialist
-Blondel, and was acknowledged even by the Catholic Canonist Contius.
-The abandonment of the scholastic method of reasoning, the triumph of
-modern philosophy in the Universities of Europe, the formation of a
-fresh secular literature, and the critical study of history in general,
-with the explosion of old fables and superstitions, were all signs of
-the times, conveying the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_362">[362]</span> impression that a new epoch was at hand in
-the history of human intelligence.</p>
-
-<p>Philosophy abroad placed itself at the head of these tendencies. Even
-Descartes, the Christian, in seeking a basis for positive belief,
-started with a doubt; Spinoza, the Jew, his disciple in some respects,
-found his goal in pantheism.<a id="FNanchor_493" href="#Footnote_493" class="fnanchor">[493]</a> The Malmesbury philosopher, Hobbes,
-and, still earlier, Lord Herbert of Cherbury, in their free-thinking
-speculations, long before any great movement took place at Cambridge,
-not only laid religion open to the inroads of infidelity, but aided and
-abetted attacks upon its citadel: Herbert, by denying the necessity of
-a Scripture revelation, Hobbes by representing Christianity as resting
-on a foundation, which no reasonable man can tolerate for a moment.
-Thus widely, for good and for evil, free thought was at work in Europe.
-Some saw in it a rising storm, which would tear every vessel from its
-moorings; others believed it to be the breaking up of a winter’s frost,
-and the melting down of icebergs, which had long chilled the whole
-intellectual atmosphere. For my own part, I am convinced that there was
-both evil and good in all this activity, of which the effect may be
-traced in the history of intellectual inquiry ever since. It is felt
-in the controversies of the present day; and he is the wise man who
-strives to distinguish between the precious and the vile, to separate
-the one from the other, and in the noble service of truth to abstain
-from any alliance with error.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MILTON’S OPINIONS.</div>
-
-<p>In this notice of the progress of free inquiry one great thinker should
-be mentioned, whose fame as a poet has so eclipsed the reputation
-of his genius in other respects, that he is rarely remembered in
-the character of a theologian,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_363">[363]</span> although he really was one. In that
-capacity he combined, perhaps, beyond any man of his age, peculiarities
-drawn from two schools, with neither of which could he be identified.
-In the very title of John Milton’s <i>Treatise on Christian Doctrine,
-compiled from the Holy Scriptures alone</i>, there is a Puritan-like
-renunciation of the Anglican doctrine of patristic authority: his
-inquiry touches only what the Bible teaches, and he professes, as many
-others have done, without allowing for educational and constitutional
-influences, to draw all his conclusions immediately and impartially
-from Holy Writ. He might free himself from Church trammels of all
-kinds; nevertheless even he could not deliver his mind from all
-predilections and prejudgments; and when in his old age he sat down to
-read the Bible, Milton, no more than other men, could bring to it a
-<i>tabula rasa</i> ready to receive nothing but unbiassed impressions
-from the Divine oracles.</p>
-
-<p>The Latitudinarianism of Milton&mdash;how far influenced by the spirit
-of free thought existing at Cambridge I cannot say&mdash;appears in his
-doctrine of the Son of God; yet it modestly presents itself, and it
-by no means reaches a Socinian conclusion. In contradiction to the
-title of his Treatise he approaches this mysterious subject, through
-the medium of certain metaphysical postulates, and teaches that the
-Son, produced by generation, is neither co-eternal, nor co-essential,
-and that His existence “was no less owing to the decree and will of
-the Father, than His priesthood or kingly power, or His resuscitation
-from the dead.” Milton overlooks, or virtually denies, the distinction
-in the Nicene Creed, “begotten and not made;” when he says, “nothing
-can be more evident than that God, of His own will, <i>created or
-generated</i>, or produced the Son before all things;” and again,
-whilst<span class="pagenum" id="Page_364">[364]</span> professing to discard reason in such matters, and to follow
-the doctrine of Holy Scripture exclusively, he proceeds to insist
-metaphysically upon the unity of God, and to confine that unity to
-the nature of the Father. According to this idea, he interprets a
-number of texts, respecting the union of Christ with the Father, as
-meaning no more than that the Father and the Son are one in purpose.
-Milton examines, <i>seriatim</i>, the texts adduced in proof of the
-absolute Divinity of the Redeemer, and sets them aside one by one, with
-a calmness only now and then ruffled by a slight breeze of anger&mdash;in
-striking contrast with the Neptune-like storms of controversy which he
-raises in most of his polemical works. The negative side of his theory
-of the nature of the Son is sufficiently clear; not so the positive
-side. He is not a Trinitarian. He is not a Socinian. Is he an Arian?
-If so, he belongs to the class nearest to orthodoxy, for all which he
-denies is the co-eternity, and the co-existence of the Son, whilst he
-expressly attributes to Him, Omnipresence, Omniscience, Omnipotence,
-and universal Authority, as well as Divine works, and Divine honours.
-His Editor, Dr. Sumner, remarks, that Milton ascribes to the Son
-as high a share of Divinity as was compatible with the denial of
-his self-existence, and eternal generation, his co-equality, and
-co-essentiality with the Father.<a id="FNanchor_494" href="#Footnote_494" class="fnanchor">[494]</a></p>
-
-<p>Milton devotes a chapter to the doctrine of predestination, which he
-defines as being not particular but universal:&mdash;none are predestinated
-or elected irrespectively of character (<i>e.g.</i>, Peter is not
-elected as Peter, or John as John, but inasmuch as they are believers,
-and continue in their belief); and thus, he says, the general decree of
-election becomes personally applicable to each particular<span class="pagenum" id="Page_365">[365]</span> believer,
-and is ratified to all who remain steadfast in the faith.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MILTON’S OPINIONS.</div>
-
-<p>Milton’s sympathy with Puritanism appears in his views of redemption,
-regeneration, repentance, justification, and adoption. In his chapter
-on saving faith he describes it as a full persuasion produced in us
-through the gift of God, whereby we believe, on the sole authority
-of the promise itself, that all things are ours, whatsoever he has
-promised us in Christ, and especially the grace of eternal life.<a id="FNanchor_495" href="#Footnote_495" class="fnanchor">[495]</a></p>
-
-<p>The spirit of free inquiry, at a later period, ran into decided
-Arianism and Socinianism: at the time of which I am now speaking,
-tendencies in that direction were at work in different quarters.
-When, under the Commonwealth, Philip Nye said that “to his knowledge
-the denying of the Divinity of Christ was a growing opinion;”&mdash;when
-Edwards said, it had found an entrance into some of the Independent
-Churches;&mdash;when Owen said, “The evil is at the door, there is not a
-city, a town, scarce a village in England wherein some of this poison
-is not poured forth;”&mdash;these writers might be under the influence of
-uncharitableness, or of false alarm&mdash;both are common in seasons of
-excitement&mdash;but when Parliament resolved, in the year 1652, to seize
-and burn all copies of the Racovian Catechism, that fact forces us to
-conclude that the Catechism must have been in circulation, and that the
-tenets which it expressed were being propagated.</p>
-
-<p>John Biddle, who under the Commonwealth Government suffered much
-in consequence of his opinions, may be considered the father of
-Socinianism. Being a man<span class="pagenum" id="Page_366">[366]</span> of blameless life, the persecutions that he
-underwent awaken our sympathy; and it is highly probable, that the
-treatment which he received, although intended to reclaim him from
-his errors, only served to drive him further from orthodoxy. He took
-high ground as to free inquiry; but professed to exercise it simply
-in getting at the meaning of Scripture; and he exhorted people “to
-lay aside for a while, controversial writings, together with those
-prejudicate opinions that have been instilled into the memory and
-understanding, and closely to apply themselves to the search of the New
-Testament.” At first he declared, “I believe, that our Saviour Jesus
-Christ is truly God, by being truly, really, and properly united to
-the only Person of the Infinite and Almighty Essence;”&mdash;this position,
-instead of being employed by his opponents as an admission, sufficient
-to keep him, if consistent, within the bounds of evangelical faith,
-excited their suspicions, and led to fresh controversy, and fresh
-persecution. Although he continued to use orthodox language, he made it
-more and more a vehicle for conveying unorthodox ideas. His opinions
-and modes of expression are equally peculiar.</p>
-
-<p>For example, one of the positions which he lays down is this:&mdash;“I
-believe that there is One principal Minister of God and Christ,
-principally sent from heaven to sanctify the Church, who, by reason
-of His eminency, and intimacy with God, is singled out of the number
-of the other heavenly ministers, or angels, and comprised in the Holy
-Trinity, being the third Person thereof, and that this Minister of God
-and Christ is the Holy Spirit.” Further, he observes, “the Trinity
-which the Apostle Paul believed, consisteth of One God, One Lord, and
-One Spirit, but not of three Persons in One God.” And he proceeds
-even to adduce the usual arguments for the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_367">[367]</span> personality of the Holy
-Spirit:&mdash;a doctrine which he admits throughout a singular Tract,
-published by him at an earlier period.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BIDDLE.</div>
-
-<p>In another article of faith, he avers, “I believe that Jesus Christ,
-to the intent He might be a brother, and have a fellow-feeling of our
-infirmities, and so become the more ready to help us (the consideration
-whereof is the greatest encouragement to piety that can be imagined),
-hath no other than a human nature; and, therefore, in the very nature,
-is not only a Person (since none but a human person can be our
-brother), but also our Lord, yea, our God.”</p>
-
-<p>His use of the word Trinity, which it seems he never dropped, he
-explains by saying, that the Trinity which the Apostle Peter (Acts ii.
-36) believed, consisteth of God the Father, of the Man Jesus Christ our
-Lord, and of the Holy Spirit, the gift of God through our Lord Jesus
-Christ.<a id="FNanchor_496" href="#Footnote_496" class="fnanchor">[496]</a></p>
-
-<p>In Biddle’s Catechism, which John Owen couples with the Racovian,
-and elaborately answers in his <i>Vindiciæ Evangelicæ</i>,<a id="FNanchor_497" href="#Footnote_497" class="fnanchor">[497]</a> the
-author so far from explaining away the language of Holy Writ, pushes
-its literal interpretation, respecting one subject at least, in a
-very bold, rude fashion, to such an extreme, that he attributes to
-the Almighty, a bodily and visible shape, with human affections and
-passions. Consequently, he objected to the terms <i>infinite and
-incomprehensible</i>, as forms of speech not used in Scripture, and not
-applicable to the Supreme<span class="pagenum" id="Page_368">[368]</span> Being. Tertullian, it may here be noticed,
-ascribed corporeality to God, but he seems to have meant by it nothing
-more than substance and personality.<a id="FNanchor_498" href="#Footnote_498" class="fnanchor">[498]</a></p>
-
-<p>A very different man from Biddle,&mdash;one whom from his absurd manner
-of talking, we should suspect had in him a touch of insanity,&mdash;was
-Daniel Scargill, Fellow of Corpus Christi, Cambridge. In 1669, he
-formally and publicly, before the University, recanted the following
-opinions which he had formerly maintained: that all right of dominion
-is founded only in power&mdash;that moral righteousness is based on the law
-of the Magistrate&mdash;that the authority of Scripture rests on the same
-foundation&mdash;that whatsoever the Civil Government commanded is to be
-obeyed, although it may be contrary to Divine laws, and “that there is
-a desirable glory in being, and in being reputed an Atheist&mdash;which I
-implied when I expressly affirmed that I gloried to be an Hobbist and
-an Atheist.” These retractions indicate the previous entertainment of
-most extraordinary errors.</p>
-
-<p>In the next chapter I shall examine the mysticism of the Quakers before
-I proceed to the theology of the Puritans.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_369">[369]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XVII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">George Fox was the father of Quakerism, but to William Penn belongs the
-distinction of being the first logical expounder of its principles.</p>
-
-<p>William Penn was the son of Admiral Penn. When only twelve years old
-he began “to listen to the voice of God in his soul:” and when a
-student at Oxford he suffered fines and expulsion for his incipient
-Nonconformity. His father, incensed by these religious peculiarities,
-turned him into the streets, but this did not in the least degree
-destroy his convictions; and subsequently, European travel, and
-education, which it might have been expected would dissipate his
-impressions, left them as deep as ever, combined with an accession of
-intelligence, and an acquisition of graceful manners which rendered him
-the admiration of polite society. He had learned to handle the rapier,
-with all the skill of a French gentleman, yet he remained imbued with
-“a deep sense of the vanity of the world, and the irreligiousness
-of its religions.” “Further,” to use his own language, “God, in His
-everlasting kindness, guided my feet in the flower of my youth, when
-about two-and-twenty years of age. Religion is my crime, and my
-innocence,&mdash;it makes me a prisoner to malice, but my own freeman.”
-When the fashionable world laughed at the rumour of the accomplished<span class="pagenum" id="Page_370">[370]</span>
-William Penn becoming a Quaker, such ridicule did not move his purpose,
-he only showed more steadfastness of conviction, and avowed his
-adoption of Quaker habits by going to Court with his hat on. When the
-Bishop of London menaced him with imprisonment, “My prison shall be my
-grave,” the youth replied. When Charles sent Stillingfleet to talk with
-him, the youthful Dissenter, through that Divine, returned an answer
-to every threat&mdash;“The Tower is to me the worst argument in the world.”
-This was in 1668, the year in which he published his <i>Truth Exalted,
-or a Testimony to Rulers, Priests, and Bishops</i>; and the same year,
-and in consequence of this same book, he was actually confined as a
-prisoner within the gloomy walls of the old Norman fortress, where he
-remained seven months; and where he wrote his <i>No Cross, No Crown,
-or Several Sober Reasons against Hat Worship, Titular Respect, You
-to a single person, with the Apparel and Recreations of the Times,
-in Defence of the poor despised Quakers, against the practice and
-objections of their adversaries</i>. The title is modified in later
-editions.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">QUAKERS.&mdash;WILLIAM PENN.</div>
-
-<p>The old Admiral paid his son’s fines, and on his deathbed, in altered
-tones, observed to him, “Son William, if you and your friends keep to
-your plain way of preaching and living, you will make an end of the
-priests.” Now possessed of his father’s fortune, he surprised people
-by his religious eccentricities. “You are an ingenious gentleman,”
-said a magistrate before whom he was brought, “you have a plentiful
-estate, why should you render yourself unhappy by associating with
-such a simple people?” “I prefer,” said he, “the honestly simple to
-the ingeniously wicked;” this was in 1670, when committed to Newgate,
-under the Conventicle Act, for preaching to “a riotous and seditious
-assembly,”&mdash;that is to say, for preaching to a company of Friends, who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_371">[371]</span>
-met for worship in the open-air; and from Newgate, he addressed to
-Parliament and the people of England, a plea for liberty of conscience,
-saying, if the efforts of the Quakers cannot obtain “the olive branch
-of toleration, we bless the providence of God, resolving by patience
-to outweary persecution, and by our constant sufferings, to obtain
-a victory, more glorious than our adversaries can achieve by their
-cruelties.”<a id="FNanchor_499" href="#Footnote_499" class="fnanchor">[499]</a></p>
-
-<p>These incidents in his early life were obviously connected with his
-religious opinions. Far less imbued with the element of mysticism
-than was the founder of the sect, this eminent disciple appears no
-less earnest in the advocacy of his opinions; and he works them out
-with a facility of reasoning, a compass of knowledge, and a force
-and glow of diction, in which the reader cannot but recognize, in
-connection with his natural ability, the fruits of his Oxford culture.
-A comparison between the writings of Fox and Penn, as it regards mental
-peculiarities, is interesting and instructive, showing the original
-and creative genius of the one, and the effect of academical training
-upon the other: in the enjoyment of a spiritual education, not of this
-world, they were much alike.</p>
-
-<p>The fundamental principle of Quaker theology is found in the doctrine
-of the inward light; and to the exposition and establishment of that
-doctrine, William Penn devotes himself in his work, entitled <i>The
-Christian a Quaker</i> (1674). He explains the light as being not
-something metaphorical, nor yet the mere spirit or reason of man, but
-Christ, “that glorious Sun of Righteousness and heavenly luminary
-of the intellectual or invisible world, represented of all outward
-resemblances, most exactly by the great sun of this sensible and
-visible world; that as this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_372">[372]</span> natural light ariseth upon all, and
-gives light to all about the affairs of this life, so that Divine
-light ariseth upon all and gives light to all that will receive the
-manifestations of it about the concerns of the other life.” That light
-manifests sin, and reveals duty. It saved from Adam’s day, through
-the holy patriarchs’ and prophets’ time down to Christ; amongst the
-Jews as proved from Scripture, amongst the Gentiles, as proved from
-their own literature. Under this division, Penn quotes largely from
-the <i>Stromata</i> of Clement of Alexandria, adopting his quotations
-as genuine and trustworthy. The primitive Fathers expressed themselves
-in accordance with this doctrine; and amongst the heathen there were
-men of virtuous lives, who taught the indispensableness of virtue to
-life eternal. The author contends that the latter foresaw the coming
-of Christ, and curiously adds, that their refusing to swear proves the
-sufficiency of the inward light.<a id="FNanchor_500" href="#Footnote_500" class="fnanchor">[500]</a> In the support of these opinions,
-Penn appeals to the authority of Scripture, and employs a large amount
-of general reasoning.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">QUAKERS.&mdash;WILLIAM PENN.</div>
-
-<p>Although the inward light be <i>the</i> rule,<a id="FNanchor_501" href="#Footnote_501" class="fnanchor">[501]</a> Holy Scripture
-is <i>a</i> rule, and one authoritative and binding on those who
-possess it. Hence, whilst ever appealing to reason in his theological
-arguments, Penn habitually refers to Scripture as an inspired
-revelation from God, of great importance in determining religious
-controversy. The distinction which he makes, and the place which he
-assigns to the Bible had better be given in his own words:&mdash;“<i>A</i>
-rule, and <i>the</i> rule are two things. By <i>the</i> rule of
-faith and practice I understand the living, spiritual, immediate,
-Omnipresent, discovering, ordering Spirit of God; and by <i>a</i>
-rule I apprehend some instrument,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_373">[373]</span> by and through which, this great
-and universal rule may convey its directions. Such a subordinate,
-secondary, and declaratory rule, we never said several parts of
-Scripture were not, yet we confess the reason of our obedience is not
-merely because they are there written (for that were legal) but because
-they are the eternal precepts of the Spirit in men’s consciences,
-there repeated and declared.”<a id="FNanchor_502" href="#Footnote_502" class="fnanchor">[502]</a> This is the key which unlocks
-Penn’s theological system; and it is remarkable, how the controversy
-between the old Quakers and their contemporaries, turned mainly upon
-a question, agitated in the present day by thinkers very unlike the
-Quakers in many respects.</p>
-
-<p>The two rules thus defined were regarded by this writer as requiring
-the rejection of the Anglican doctrine of the Trinity, and of the
-Puritan doctrines respecting Christ’s Atonement, as a satisfaction
-offered to God, and respecting the imputation of Christ’s
-righteousness.<a id="FNanchor_503" href="#Footnote_503" class="fnanchor">[503]</a></p>
-
-<p>In consequence of what he said touching the Trinity, Penn was charged
-with not believing in the Divinity of Christ, and indeed was sent to
-prison on that account; but he clearly avows in his apology, entitled,
-<i>Innocency with her Open Face</i>, that Christ is God; for, he
-observes, if none can save or be properly styled a Saviour, but God,
-and yet Christ is said to save, and is properly called a Saviour, it
-must needs follow that Christ the Saviour is God. The strongest passage
-I have noticed in the writings of Penn in relation to the atonement is
-the following:&mdash;“That as there was a necessity that ‘One should die for
-the people,’ so, whoever, then or since, believed in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_374">[374]</span> Him, had and have
-a seal or confirmation of the remission of their sins in His blood;
-and that blood&mdash;alluding to the custom of the Jewish sacrifices&mdash;shall
-be an utter blotting out of former iniquities, carrying them as into a
-land of forgetfulness.”</p>
-
-<p>The prominence which this Quaker Divine justly gave to the truth, that
-Christ saves <i>from</i> sin, is not associated with such ideas of
-justification as accord with Puritan standards. According to his own
-view, holiness is an integral part of that justification, which he
-seems to identify with man’s entire salvation.<a id="FNanchor_504" href="#Footnote_504" class="fnanchor">[504]</a></p>
-
-<p>Penn, no doubt, misunderstood both Anglicans and Puritans, and in some
-cases his disputes turned very much upon the meaning of words, yet
-no one who attentively studies his works, can help seeing that there
-were real and momentous differences between the Quakers and their
-fellow Christians. Quakers, absorbed by their inward experiences, did
-not attach the importance which is due to the historical and dogmatic
-instructions of the sacred volume. Not that Quakers denied what is
-historical, but they often, like early mystical expositors&mdash;Origen, for
-example&mdash;overlaid it with fanciful meanings. Not that they neglected
-all dogmatic teaching, but they failed to bring out clearly some of the
-truths revealed in the New Testament, especially in the writings of the
-Apostle Paul. The bright side of Quakerism lies in the marked elevation
-of the moral above the intellectual, of the spiritual above the formal,
-of the Divine above the human, of the work of God above the work of
-man: and it is as a corollary from the master principle of the whole
-system, the principle of the inner light, rather than as a deduction
-from reason or from expediency, or even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_375">[375]</span> from Scripture, that there is
-contained in Quaker literature such a distinct enunciation of men’s
-right, universally, to the freedom of religious speech and of religious
-worship.<a id="FNanchor_505" href="#Footnote_505" class="fnanchor">[505]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">QUAKERS.&mdash;WILLIAM PENN.</div>
-
-<p>Liberty, in William Penn’s estimation, was identical with Christianity.
-Persecution he held to be thoroughly anti-Christian. Judging people
-by their conduct, not by their creed, esteeming meekness and charity
-as fruits of the Spirit, inseparable from true religion, he looked
-upon all persecutors, whether Churchmen or Separatists, whether sound
-or heterodox, as alienated from their Maker, and as enemies to their
-race.<a id="FNanchor_506" href="#Footnote_506" class="fnanchor">[506]</a></p>
-
-<p>William Penn had an opportunity such as no other person amongst the
-authors we are now describing ever possessed, of testing his theory of
-religion and morals.</p>
-
-<p>After travelling with George Fox over the Continent upon religious
-service, and after finding all hopes of liberty crushed at home, Penn
-in 1681 resolved to cross the Atlantic, and in America to realize the
-bright dreams which had entertained his imagination from a boy&mdash;dreams
-of “a free Colony for all mankind.” He landed on the banks of the
-Delaware, to try “the holy experiment.” Tradition tells of his
-receiving the enfeoffment of the territory, by delivery of earth and
-water to him, as he stood surrounded by Swedes, Dutch, and English, in
-the Court House of the Colonial town of Newcastle; and of his ascending
-the river, fringed with pine trees, to the spot where was to rise the
-City of Philadelphia, and of his treaty with the Indians under the
-autumn-tinted elm tree of Shakamaxon. “We meet,” he said to his new
-neighbours, the red-complexioned children of the forest, “on the broad
-pathway of good faith and good<span class="pagenum" id="Page_376">[376]</span> will, no advantage shall be taken on
-either side, but all shall be openness and love. I will not call you
-children, for parents sometimes chide their children too severely; nor
-brothers only, for brothers differ. The friendship between you and me,
-I will not compare to a chain, for that the rains might rust, or the
-falling tree might break. We are the same, as if one man’s body were
-to be divided into two parts, we are all one flesh and blood.” Never
-had there been in the wild regions of the earth such colonizing as
-that before. “We will live,” said the red men, “in love with William
-Penn and his children, as long as the moon and the sun shall endure.”
-God was the sole witness of that covenant. Its only memorials were the
-strings of wampun which these covenanters hung up in their huts, and
-the shells they counted over upon a piece of bark; yet whilst other
-treaties amongst civilized Europeans have been torn into shreds as soon
-as they have been sealed, this has remained inviolate. “We have done
-better,” could the Colonists say, “than if, with the proud Spaniards,
-we had gained the mines of Potosi. We may make the ambitious heroes
-whom the world admires, blush for their shameful victories. To the
-poor dark souls round about us we teach their rights as men.” Penn
-visited the natives in their cabins, partook of their roasted acorns,
-laughed and played with the frolicksome, and spoke to them of God. “The
-poor savage people believed in God, and the soul, without the aid of
-metaphysics.”</p>
-
-<p>The infant city, the Philadelphia, which in 1683 “consisted of three or
-four little cottages,” grew and spread, hollow trees were succeeded by
-houses. The chestnut, the walnut, and the ash were cut down for the use
-of the emigrants, roads were made, boys and girls played in the streets
-of this new Jerusalem, and the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_377">[377]</span> kindly-hearted Quaker, with his genial
-good-humoured face, with his broad-brimmed hat, his long neckcloth, and
-his drab attire, might be seen patting their heads with fatherly love.</p>
-
-<p>William Penn, as a theologian, wrote books. William Penn, as a
-Christian philanthropist and statesman, did a work which surpassed his
-books. “How happy must be a community instituted on their principles,”
-said Peter the Great, speaking of the Quakers. “Beautiful,” cried
-Frederic the Great; “it is perfect, if it can endure.” It has endured.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">QUAKERS.&mdash;BARCLAY.</div>
-
-<p>Robert Barclay, a Scotch Friend, the son of Colonel David Barclay, of
-an ancient family, and of Catherine Gordon, of the ducal house of that
-name, published his famous <i>Apology</i> in 1676, two years after
-Penn had published <i>The Christian a Quaker</i>. With nothing like
-the flowing style of his English contemporary, he had a more robust
-understanding, a keener conception of what he meant to say, a still
-more logical method of treatment, and, without any show of learning,
-perhaps he had a deeper amount of scholarship, obtained during his
-education and residence in France. Barclay affords the student a great
-advantage wanting in Penn; whereas, in the case of Penn, we have to
-search through several treatises, extending to five volumes, in order
-to ascertain the beliefs which he inculcated, in Barclay they are
-brought together in their proper relation and proportions, and are
-compactly yet fully expressed. A remarkable coincidence of opinion
-appears between the two writers, although the intimacy between them
-does not seem to have commenced until after Barclay had written his
-<i>Apology</i>.</p>
-
-<p>He strikes the same key-note as does his friend. The inward light is
-the true foundation of knowledge, and the Scriptures are not to be
-esteemed the principal ground of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_378">[378]</span> truth and knowledge, the primary rule
-of faith and manners. He maintains that there is universal redemption
-by Christ, and that the saving spiritual light enlighteneth every man.
-Christ is in all men a supernatural light or seed, beyond reason, above
-conscience, <i>Vehiculum Dei</i>: yet there is a great difference
-between Christ in the wicked, and Christ in the saints. He is quenched
-and crucified in the one; He is cherished and obeyed in the other.<a id="FNanchor_507" href="#Footnote_507" class="fnanchor">[507]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">QUAKERS.&mdash;BARCLAY.</div>
-
-<p>Barclay speaks of an outward redemption wrought for man by Christ in
-His crucified body, whereby we are made capable of salvation, and of
-an inward redemption wrought within us by the Spirit of Christ. “The
-first,” he says, “is the redemption performed and accomplished by
-Christ for us, in His crucified body, without us; the other is the
-redemption wrought by Christ in us, which no less properly is called
-and accounted a redemption than the former. The first, then, is that
-whereby a man as he stands in the fall, is put into a capacity of
-salvation, and hath conveyed unto him a measure of that power, virtue,
-spirit, life, and grace, that was in Christ Jesus, which, as the
-free gift of God, is able to counterbalance, overcome, and root out
-the evil seed, wherewith we are naturally, as in the fall, leavened.
-The second is that whereby we witness and know this pure and perfect
-redemption in ourselves, purifying, cleansing, and redeeming us from
-the power of corruption, and bringing us into unity, favour, and
-friendship with God. By the first of these two, we that were lost
-in Adam are so far reconciled to God by the death of His Son, while
-enemies, that we are put into a capacity of salvation, having the glad
-tidings of the Gospel of peace offered unto us; and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_379">[379]</span> God is reconciled
-unto us in Christ. By the second, we witness this capacity brought
-into act; whereby receiving, and not resisting, the purchase of His
-death, to wit, the light, Spirit, and grace of Christ revealed in
-us, we witness and possess, a real, true, and inward redemption from
-the power and prevalency of sin; and so come to be truly and really
-redeemed, justified, and made righteous, and to a sensible union and
-friendship with God. Thus He died for us, that He might redeem us from
-all iniquity; and thus we know Him, and the power of His resurrection,
-and the fellowship of His sufferings, being made conformable to His
-death. This last follows the first in order, and is a consequence of
-it, proceeding from it, as an <i>effect</i> from its <i>cause</i>; for,
-as none could have enjoyed the last, without the first had been (such
-being the will of God); so also can none now partake of the first, but
-as he witnesseth the last. Wherefore, as to us, they are both causes of
-our justification; the first the <i>procuring efficient</i>, the other
-the <i>formal cause</i>.”<a id="FNanchor_508" href="#Footnote_508" class="fnanchor">[508]</a></p>
-
-<p>Although in Barclay’s proposition concerning justification, he seems
-verbally to distinguish between that privilege and holiness of
-character, yet he really confounds them together. Nor does he scruple
-to style good works meritorious “in a qualified sense.” He takes care,
-however, distinctly to ascribe human salvation to the merit of the
-Lord Jesus Christ. In another proposition, he expresses his faith
-in perfection, defining it as a freedom from actual sinning, yet
-admitting a growth of goodness which, however, involves a possibility
-of sin.<a id="FNanchor_509" href="#Footnote_509" class="fnanchor">[509]</a> The Calvinistic doctrine of perseverance he distinctly
-denies; and in the remainder of the treatise<span class="pagenum" id="Page_380">[380]</span> he unfolds the well-known
-Quaker views concerning the ministry, Divine worship, the sacraments,
-the power of the magistrate, and social intercourse.</p>
-
-<p>There is remarkable breadth in the Quaker scheme of theology, it has
-singular affinities to other systems; and hence, in addition to its
-inherent amiable and loving spirit&mdash;which from the beginning rose above
-its fierce antagonism to existing Churches&mdash;the hold it has frequently
-gained upon the sympathies of Christians of different communions.
-Its relationship to all mystical forms of Christianity is obvious at
-a glance. Not less real is the resemblance between it and certain
-aspects of Latitudinarianism on the one side, and of Anglicanism on
-the other. The Quaker, like the Latitudinarian, dwells chiefly on the
-moral and spiritual side of the Gospel, eschews dogmatical teaching,
-sees a heavenly Teacher in every human soul, and looks for religious
-instruction beyond what written texts convey. He also, like the
-Anglican, treats Scripture as insufficient, taken alone; it is to both
-a rule, a supreme rule, but not the only one. The Quaker finds in his
-own breast the supplemental voice which the Anglican seeks in the
-ancient Church.</p>
-
-<p>There were at that period other Mystics besides the Quakers. Indeed,
-our English theological literature of the seventeenth century is much
-richer in sentiment, speculation, and imagery of this kind, than many
-well-informed persons suppose.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OTHER MYSTICS.&mdash;SALTMARSH.</div>
-
-<p>John Saltmarsh’s “<i>Sparkles of Glory</i>, or some beams of the
-Morning Star, wherein are many discoveries as to truth and peace, to
-the establishment and pure enlargement of a Christian in spirit and
-truth,” is a book of considerable power, written in a compact and
-lucid style, such as one rarely finds in works of this description.
-The author&mdash;without condemning water baptism, or the divers<span class="pagenum" id="Page_381">[381]</span> organized
-ministries of the Churches, or the institutes of Episcopacy,
-Presbyterianism, and Independency, as the Quakers were wont to do, but
-rather counting them as mere forms, full of weakness and defect, yet
-to be tolerated, as having subordinate and preparatory uses&mdash;dwells
-chiefly upon the passage from lower ministrations to higher, and
-expatiates with much delight upon the mystery of true Christian liberty
-from God, upon the glorious discoveries of the Spirit to the soul, and
-upon the revelation of Christ in us. The history of Christ’s life and
-death, with the new relationships in which those stupendous events
-place mankind to the Divine Being, and the grand doctrines embodied
-in the ancient Church creeds, are little, if at all, noticed in this
-mystical treatise. Religion is resolved entirely into the experience
-of a spiritual life. Personal responsibility, moral obligation, and
-individual duties, are not the subjects which attract the writer’s
-attention, his one chief idea throughout being, that the Christian
-soul is the passive, quiet, trustful recipient of grace and love.
-The highest prayer is a spiritual revelation. “All that we pray&mdash;and
-not the Spirit of God in us, not that spirit of prayer spoken of
-in Scripture&mdash;is but the spirit of man praying, which is but the
-cry of the creature, or a natural complaining for what we want, as
-the Ninevites, and the children and beasts of that city, all cried
-unto the Lord.” “That which is the pure, spiritual, comprehensive
-principle of a Christian is this:&mdash;That all outward administrations,
-whether as to religion, or to natural, civil, and moral things, are
-only the visible appearances of God, as to the world, or in this
-creation; or the clothing of God, being such forms and dispensations
-as God puts on amongst men to appear to them in: this is the garment
-the Son of God was clothed with down to the feet, or to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_382">[382]</span> His lowest
-appearance. And God doth not fix Himself upon any one form or outward
-dispensation, but at His own will and pleasure comes forth in such
-and such an administration, and goes out of it, and leaves it, and
-takes up another. And this is clear in all God’s proceedings with the
-world, both in the Jewish Church and State, and Christians now. And
-when God is gone out, and hath left such or such an administration,
-of what kind soever it is, be it religious, moral, or civil, such an
-administration is a desolate house, a temple whose veil is rent, a
-sun whose light is darkened; and to worship it then, is to worship an
-idol, an image, a form, without God, or any manifestation of God in
-it, save to him who (as Paul saith) knows an idol to be nothing. The
-pure, spiritual, comprehensive Christian, is one who grows up with God
-from administration to administration, and so walks with God in all his
-removes and spiritual increasings and flowings; and such are weak and
-in the flesh who tarry behind, worshipping that form or administration
-out of which God is departed.”<a id="FNanchor_510" href="#Footnote_510" class="fnanchor">[510]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OTHER MYSTICS.&mdash;STERRY.</div>
-
-<p>Peter Sterry, one of Cromwell’s chaplains, is described as “a
-high-flown mystical Divine.” After being first much abused and then
-long neglected, he has of late been named with honour in high literary
-quarters. <i>The Rise, Race, and Royalty of the Kingdom of God in the
-Soul of Man</i>, is a publication in which the characteristics of the
-author’s mind and teaching may be fully seen. It consists of a series
-of sermons upon the words, “Except ye be converted, and become as
-little children, ye shall not enter into the kingdom of heaven;” the
-rise to the kingdom being conversion, the race to the kingdom being
-a life like that of little children, and the royalty itself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_383">[383]</span> being
-composed of the two states of present grace and future glory. The
-practice of minutely dividing and subdividing a discourse, until it
-becomes a thing of shreds and patches, is pushed in this instance to
-an intolerable extreme; and the breaking up of sentences into distinct
-paragraphs, with the carrying on of different sets of numbers from page
-to page, render the perusal of the book a tremendous task. Upon reading
-it, I find that the mysticism which it exhibits is of another order
-than that found in the pages of Saltmarsh. The substance of Saltmarsh’s
-thought is saturated with the spirit of mysticism, the whole nature and
-scope of his theology is mystical from head to foot; but the mysticism
-of Sterry strikes one as pertaining more to his imaginative forms of
-conception and modes of expression than to anything else. His doctrines
-of conversion and of religious life, of Christian experience, duty, and
-hope, are of the usual evangelical type, but his ideas are ever dressed
-in mystical phraseology. He quotes texts of Scripture in abundance, and
-then commonly runs out into some strain of allegorical interpretation.
-I will quote one passage, which, whilst a specimen of his style, is
-more than ordinarily impregnated with mysticism in the substance of the
-thought:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“God comes into our nature, as the root of each single person. Here
-He becomes our Jesus, making Himself a new seed; out of this seed He
-brings forth a new image of Divinity, by which He breaks through the
-image of the devil and nature, brings forth man out of them, brings
-them into subjection to this growing beauty. As the fuel is dissolved
-into smoke, and the smoke again breaks up into flame, so the image of
-the devil riseth up out of the image of nature, shaking that to dust,
-as it riseth: the image of God, again, sprouts forth in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_384">[384]</span> midst of
-the devil’s image, first spoiling, then triumphing over, and in both.</p>
-
-<p>“God through nature, as the root, grows up into single persons, as the
-branches. Then as the shades of night fly away before the ascending
-day, so,&mdash;as this Divine seed our Jesus sends forth itself in an image
-of beauty through our souls,&mdash;the image of darkness and death sinks
-down into its own place, and principle.”<a id="FNanchor_511" href="#Footnote_511" class="fnanchor">[511]</a></p>
-
-<p>To Sterry’s book on <i>The Kingdom of God</i> an introduction is
-prefixed, written by Jeremy White, who had been chaplain to Oliver
-Cromwell, and who lived in private after the Restoration, preaching but
-occasionally. White sympathized in the mysticism of Sterry, and, in
-the following beautiful passage, uttered truths well worth the serious
-consideration of all spiritually-minded people, especially of those who
-are disposed to undervalue, perhaps to ridicule, thoughts imbued with
-mystic elements:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Who among us is yet able to comprehend all the distinct ages and
-growths of good minds; to understand the various improvements,
-measures, and attainments, the several capacities, languages, and
-operations which are peculiar to those ages and growths? It is
-impossible for us to set the bounds to spiritual things, to stint that
-spirit in ourselves or others which is a fountain of Divine light and
-life in all regenerated souls, continually sending forth new streams,
-and running along with a fresh succession of waters without any stop or
-limit. We are too proud to understand the condescensions, too low to
-take the height, too shallow to fathom the depth, too narrow to measure
-the breadth, too short to reach the length of the Divine truth and
-goodness, and the various communications of themselves to us. We cannot
-assign<span class="pagenum" id="Page_385">[385]</span> the highest or the lowest state of saints whilst they are here
-below. We cannot say, All above this is fancy, whimsey, dream, and
-delusion; all below that is common, carnal, formal, and superstitious.
-As we ought not, then, to despise and contemn that which is below,
-so let us not censure and condemn that which is above us. Blessed be
-God, all good souls, in the midst of their greatest distances from one
-another here below, do all meet in the Divine comprehension above. We
-are all enfolded in the Divine arms, we are all encircled in the Divine
-love. That has breadth, and length, and depth, and height enough to
-reach and hold us all. And if we cannot yet receive and embrace each
-other in our several ages, growths, measures, and attainments, it is
-because we have little, low, dark, narrow, and contracted hearts, feel
-but little of the love of Christ, and are no more filled with that
-Spirit which is the spring, the centre, the circle, the band to all
-good spirits in heaven and on earth.”</p>
-
-<p>Jeremy White was a follower of Origen in his views of the ultimate
-safety and happiness of the whole universe, and he wrote a
-book,&mdash;published after his death,&mdash;the title of which sums up his
-theory: he calls it “<i>The Restoration of all Things</i>, or a
-vindication of the goodness and grace of God, to be manifested at last,
-in the recovery of the whole creation out of their fall.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OTHER MYSTICS.&mdash;SIR HENRY VANE.</div>
-
-<p>Sir Henry Vane is numbered amongst English Mystics, but he was more of
-the mystical philosopher than the mystical theologian, and the same
-may be said, to some extent, of Henry More; but the profession of the
-latter, as a clergyman, naturally directed his attention to Divinity
-properly so called, and how his mystical views influenced his religious
-life and character, will be shown in a subsequent portion of this
-volume.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_386">[386]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XVIII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The proofs of Christianity were noticed by Anglican Divines. Embedded
-in the rich quarry of Jeremy Taylor’s <i>Ductor Dubitantium</i>, may
-be found an able and eloquent summary of the external and internal
-evidences; and Hammond, in his <i>Reasonableness of Christian
-Religion</i>, points out the ground upon which men embrace it “in the
-gross, all of it together,” after which he descends in detail to the
-survey and vindication of those particular branches of Christianity
-which appeared to men at that time to be least supported. And it may be
-mentioned, as an illustration of the changing fashions of scepticism,
-that the points here considered by Hammond were&mdash;objections to God’s
-disposition of providence, founded on the prosperity of injustice and
-the calamities of innocence; and the exceptions taken to Christ’s
-commands because He enjoins the duty of taking up the cross&mdash;points
-which certainly would not engross the attention of Christian advocates
-in the present day.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.</div>
-
-<p>The evidences of our holy religion were more largely discussed by
-writers of the Latitudinarian school, as already described; and they
-also received pre-eminent attention from Puritan authors. Authors of
-that class were amongst the first keenly to discern the signs of the
-times in the direction of scepticism, amongst the first to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_387">[387]</span> combat
-the rising evil. Devoted to the study of the Sacred Volume, they also
-devoted themselves to the examination of the basis of its Divine
-claims. One reason why the Cambridge and Puritan Divines paid more
-attention to this branch of study might be, that they thought so much
-more of Christianity than of the Church, so much more of the former as
-a system of truth, than of the latter as a scheme of government; and
-further, which is only another particular effect of the same general
-cause, they were under the influence of an individualizing power, which
-is one of the secrets of Protestantism, and which makes each person
-feel so strongly his own responsibility for the creed which he adopts.
-In this respect especially, the Puritan differed from the Anglican, who
-might be said to receive his Christianity from the Church, rather than
-his Church from Christianity.</p>
-
-<p>Two distinguished Puritan writers exhibit the proofs of natural
-religion,&mdash;and two others the proofs of revealed religion.</p>
-
-<p>Cudworth’s great work was published in 1678; but nine years before
-that time, Theophilus Gale presented to the world treatises containing
-arguments against atheism. <i>The Court of the Gentiles</i>&mdash;as the
-expansion of the title shows&mdash;is “a discourse touching the original of
-human literature, both philology and philosophy, from the Scriptures
-and Jewish Church, in order to a demonstration of the perfection of
-God’s Word and Church light, the imperfection of nature’s light, and
-mischief of vain philosophy, the right use of human learning, and
-especially, sound philosophy.” The title-page describes and exhibits
-the whole work as a defence of religion. The author’s idea is that the
-philosophy of the ancients, so far as it is true, constitutes an outer
-court, leading to the Holy of Holies in the Word of God. All which is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_388">[388]</span>
-valuable in classic writings, according to Gale, had been derived from
-the chosen people. Pagan ignorance and folly arose from the obstinacy
-of the human mind in forsaking Divine oracles. The inventiveness of
-the human intellect added to the mischief, and the degradation of
-the heathen, proves the need of the Gospel. In this frame-work of
-evidence, built up in four parts, Gale inserts one book&mdash;the second
-of the fourth part upon Atheism, and the existence of the Deity, in
-which,&mdash;professedly following Plato, but often adding much to the
-force of his master’s reasoning,&mdash;he demonstrates the being of a God
-from universal consent&mdash;from a subordination of second causes to the
-first, from a <i>prime Motor</i>; from the order of the universe; from
-the connate idea of God in the soul; and from moral arguments founded
-upon conscience and a natural sense of religion. In his reasoning he
-anticipates Cudworth, and will bear honourable comparison with his
-great successor.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.</div>
-
-<p>The first part of Howe’s <i>Living Temple</i> appeared in 1676. In it
-he proves the “existence of God and His conversableness with men.” His
-first argument is the same as Gale’s,<a id="FNanchor_512" href="#Footnote_512" class="fnanchor">[512]</a> the consent of mankind;
-but Howe does not appear to be indebted to his predecessor for this
-mode of treating his subject. Common consent, Howe extends from God’s
-existence to God’s conversableness,&mdash;in other words, to religious
-worship; he quotes from Plutarch in proof of its universality, it
-being characteristic of the age to cite an ancient classic in proof of
-a statement of fact, which we should test by our own experience and
-observation. Howe anticipates the <i>Demonstration</i> contrived by
-Samuel Clarke, and engages in a strain of reasoning beyond<span class="pagenum" id="Page_389">[389]</span> that of
-either Gale or Cudworth.<a id="FNanchor_513" href="#Footnote_513" class="fnanchor">[513]</a> He argues that since something exists
-now, something must always have existed, unless we admit, that at one
-period or another, something sprung out of nothing. When he proceeds to
-prove the intelligence of this Eternal and uncaused Being, he enters
-upon the <i>à posteriori</i> path, which Gale and Cudworth, and indeed
-the ancients, traversed to some extent, but in which the moderns have
-gone so far beyond them. It is worthy of remark, that the ingenious
-reference of Paley to a watch, as illustrating the indication of
-design in nature is found in Howe; and to him also belongs the credit
-of including among the proofs of Divine purpose, the constitution of
-the human mind, as well as the organization of matter,&mdash;a department
-in natural theology the neglect of which by many was lamented by Lord
-Brougham. I may add, that when Howe demands of the atheist, whether,
-if he will reject all the preceding evidence for the existence of God,
-there are any conceivable methods by which the fact of the Divine
-existence could be certified,&mdash;he opens another spring of thought on
-this subject, as original as it is profound. After establishing the
-truth of the Divine existence, Howe resumes his argument for the Divine
-conversableness; and after ingeniously overthrowing the Epicurean
-theory, he deduces from what he has said, that God is such a Being as
-can converse with men, and he asserts His omniscience, His omnipotence,
-His immensity, and His unlimited goodness.</p>
-
-<p>There is another work by John Howe of singular eloquence&mdash;<i>The Vanity
-of Man as Mortal</i>&mdash;in which the author suggests arguments for the
-soul’s immortality, of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_390">[390]</span> a kind which only occur to minds of a superior
-order. The works just noticed relate to natural religion.</p>
-
-<p>John Owen and Richard Baxter wrote upon the evidences of revealed
-religion.</p>
-
-<p>In 1659, the former published <i>The Divine Original of the
-Scriptures</i>. He bases his argument chiefly on the <i>light</i>
-and <i>efficacy</i> of Divine truth,&mdash;a branch of reasoning too much
-neglected in after times, but vigorously renewed in our own day. Light,
-from its very nature, he says, not only makes other things visible,
-but itself manifest. So Scripture has a self-evidencing power, a power
-beyond that of miracles. And as there are <i>innate</i> arguments in
-the Bible of its Divine original and authority, so also it exerts an
-influence which confirms those arguments. Owen’s forms of expression
-suffice to show that, whilst as to the points and bearing of his
-arguments, he anticipates modern turns of thought, the details of his
-logic bear an unmistakeably Puritan impress. But he passes out of
-the range of evidence into the domains of dogmatic theology, when he
-proceeds to dwell upon the conviction of the Bible being the Word of
-God as the result of a twofold efficacy of the Spirit&mdash;that efficacy
-consisting in a Divine communication of spiritual light, enabling the
-mind to discern the majesty and authority of Revelation, and also in
-the Divine inspiration of a sense or taste for the truths revealed.<a id="FNanchor_514" href="#Footnote_514" class="fnanchor">[514]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.</div>
-
-<p>Owen, in his book upon <i>The Holy Spirit</i>, published at a later
-period, speaks of the nature of inspiration as not leaving the sacred
-writers to “the use of their natural faculties, their minds or
-memories, to understand, and remember the things spoken by Him, and so
-declare them to others. But He himself acted [upon] their faculties,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_391">[391]</span>
-making use of them to express His words, not their own conceptions.”
-This Divine reduces the modes of revelation mentioned in Scripture to
-three heads&mdash;voices, dreams, and visions, with the accidental adjuncts
-of symbolical actions and local imitations.<a id="FNanchor_515" href="#Footnote_515" class="fnanchor">[515]</a></p>
-
-<p>Owen wrote his defence of revelation in the year 1659, before the end
-of the Commonwealth;&mdash;at a still earlier period in 1655, when Oliver
-Cromwell was on the throne, before any of the authors now mentioned
-had published a word upon the subject, Richard Baxter produced his
-<i>Unreasonableness of Infidelity</i>. It is thrown into the form of
-the Spirit’s witness to the truth of Christianity, so far reminding
-us of John Owen’s later work. Baxter, however, assigns a much higher
-place to the evidential force of miracles than did his contemporary;
-and, instead of dwelling upon the Spirit’s influence, in and through
-the Holy Scriptures, he resolves the Spirit’s witness into the
-miraculous operations of the first age. Baxter proceeds to show that
-the evangelists did not deceive the world, but that they published
-undoubted truths,&mdash;and that we have received their writings without
-any considerable corruption. Having gone thus far in a path much
-trodden since, he strangely turns aside to insist upon the doctrine of
-everlasting punishment, and to explain the nature of the sin against
-the Holy Ghost. He then refers to tradition, to the creed, to church
-ordinances, to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_392">[392]</span> succession of religion, to the preservation of
-MSS., to the writings of Divines, to the laws of the Roman Empire,
-and the like, as evidences of the history of the New Testament. He
-writes, in rather a vague and confused way, upon a subject afterwards
-elaborated by Lardner and Paley, but to him belongs the distinction of
-having first entered this new field. He grapples with the objection
-to miracles, but not as Campbell afterwards did. The ground he takes
-somewhat resembles that of Bishop Douglas, when the Bishop compares
-with the miracles of Scripture, those recorded by Augustine and other
-Fathers.</p>
-
-<p>Baxter’s treatise did not satisfy its author; and, in 1667, he added
-<i>Reasons for the Christian Religion</i>. In this book, he treats of
-religion, both natural and supernatural, describing man as “a living
-wight having an active power, an understanding to guide it, and a will
-to command it,”&mdash;and pointing out the relations in which he stands
-to the Creator, as his Owner, his Governor, and his Benefactor. The
-difficulties of religious duty, a future life of retribution, the
-intrinsical evils and righteous penalties of sin, the present miserable
-state of the world, and the mercy of God, all come within the scope
-of Baxter’s observations, and are presented in the light of nature
-and of reason. In the second part the Author points out the need of
-Revelation, refers to the several religions existing in the world,
-illustrates the nature and “congruities” of Christianity, and proves
-the Divine mission of our Lord, by prophecy, by His character, by
-His miracles, and by His renovation of men. Confirmatory proofs, and
-collateral arguments follow, touching the historical grounds on which
-we believe in miracles, and unfolding certain curious considerations
-which tend to show that the world is not eternal.</p>
-
-<p>The extrinsical and intrinsical difficulties of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_393">[393]</span> Christian
-faith, altogether amounting to the number of forty, are resolved
-<i>seriatim</i>, and the refutation is extended over nearly one hundred
-pages, concluding with a long and devout address to the Deity&mdash;somewhat
-after the manner of Augustine’s confessions&mdash;in which the Puritan
-Presbyter pours out his soul in strains not less devout and eloquent
-than those of the patristic Bishop.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN WORKS ON EVIDENCES.</div>
-
-<p>In 1672 Baxter returned to the subject, and published <i>More Reasons
-for the Christian Religion and No Reason against it</i>, in which he
-answers the <i>De Veritate</i><a id="FNanchor_516" href="#Footnote_516" class="fnanchor">[516]</a> of Lord Herbert, the first of our
-English deistical writers. The author dedicates his work to Sir Henry
-Herbert, a relative of the philosopher, and makes a graceful allusion
-to Sir Henry’s brother,&mdash;the “excellently holy, as well as learned and
-ingenious,” Mr. George Herbert. Baxter also wrote two treatises on the
-Immortality of man’s soul, the nature of it, and of other spirits. And
-also a most singular production, entitled, “The certainty of the world
-of spirits fully evinced by unquestionable histories of apparitions,
-and witchcraft’s operations, voices, &amp;c.&mdash;proving the immortality
-of souls, the malice and misery of devils, and the damned, and the
-blessedness of the justified&mdash;written for the conviction of Sadducees
-and Infidels.” This treatise was not printed until the year 1691&mdash;a
-short time before Baxter’s death,&mdash;but its illustrations and arguments
-are akin to those which, forty years earlier, he had introduced into
-his incomparable <i>Saint’s Everlasting Rest</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Baxter leads the van of the great army of our Christian
-<i>Apologists</i> as they have been infelicitously termed. The armour
-which the veteran wore was made after the fashion of the times&mdash;the
-weapons which he wielded, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_394">[394]</span> which he had forged, are some of them
-not such as would be serviceable now, and all of them, as used by him,
-are unsuited to our methods of defence; his wisdom also, it must be
-admitted, was occasionally defective in his modes of attack, yet no
-small honour is due to the man who was the first to enter the lists in
-English literature against the infidelity of his day.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>Turning to the doctrinal views of the Puritan school, I shall first
-notice certain points of resemblance between them and the opinions of
-Anglican Divines. The former, as well as the latter, insisted upon the
-doctrines of the Trinity, the Deity of our Lord, and the Divinity and
-personality of the Holy Spirit&mdash;nor could any disciple of the Nicene
-faith more firmly hold the eternal generation of the Son of God than
-did some of them.<a id="FNanchor_517" href="#Footnote_517" class="fnanchor">[517]</a> Also, they firmly held the doctrine of original
-sin. At the same time, in common with the Low Church or Latitudinarian
-writers, they eschewed appeals to the Fathers as invested with any
-special authority, adopting more or less a spirit of free inquiry
-which gradually led some of them to relax a little their doctrinal
-strictness; and they went beyond their last-mentioned contemporaries
-in anti-sacerdotal and anti-sacramental views. They present marked
-characteristics of their own. They all appeal to the Scriptures, not
-only as the supreme, but as the exclusively accessible tribunal to
-which theological controversy could be brought; yet, it should be
-noticed in passing, that many of them studied patristic literature with
-great diligence, especially certain portions in harmony with their
-own opinions and tastes. There is also this peculiarity attaching<span class="pagenum" id="Page_395">[395]</span> to
-them as a class, that they do not, as Thorndike, work out a covenant
-of grace founded upon baptism,<a id="FNanchor_518" href="#Footnote_518" class="fnanchor">[518]</a>&mdash;although they occasionally allude
-to that sacrament in a way which is surprising to some of their
-descendants; nor did they, as Jackson, as Heylyn, as Pearson, or as
-Barrow, follow the creeds of the Church in their theological inquiries.
-Baxter especially valued the Apostles’ Creed, but Puritan Divines did
-not adopt that, or any other of the ancient symbols, as a formula for
-the order of their own thoughts. Not that they broke away altogether
-from the habit of beginning with God the Great Cause, and descending
-to man His creature, subject, and fallen child; not that they adopted
-an <i>à posteriori</i> method, beginning with man as a degenerate and
-guilty being, and rising up to God whom man has offended, and who alone
-can be the Author of his salvation,&mdash;a method which is adopted by some
-theological thinkers of our own time. In commencing their systematic
-ideas of theology with God, and coming down to man, the Puritans
-followed the traditional order of studious thoughtfulness upon such
-high themes. Goodwin resolved all Divine knowledge into the knowledge
-of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; but still it was
-not to the Creed as a textual authority, it was not to its clauses, one
-by one, that he or any of his brethren referred, as direction posts
-along the sacred way. Their wont was to select some one principle as
-a centre, and then to cluster round it kindred theological ideas, the
-various parts being woven into one harmonious whole. In this respect,
-they differed both from Anglicans and from Latitudinarians, who were
-not accustomed to the use of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_396">[396]</span> such a graduated scale of doctrine,
-who did not attach to what are termed <i>Evangelical</i> truths, so
-much relative importance. Certainly, the themes which the Puritans
-most devoutly cherished, were not those to which either Anglicans
-or Latitudinarians chiefly turned. Puritan theology, because it is
-more experimental than Anglican theology,&mdash;because it deals more with
-the spiritual consciousness of Divine relations, with the position
-and acts of the human soul towards the Divine Lord and Redeemer,&mdash;is
-thought by some to be less dogmatic than Anglican theology; by which
-is meant, that it deals less with those Divine fundamental facts,
-which are distinctly recognized in the Creeds, and which, whether men
-believe them or not, are absolute and unchangeable realities. But this
-apprehension is a mistake. Puritanism, indeed, does insist much upon
-what is experimental and practical in theology; it looks at Divine
-persons, at their attributes and dispensations in reference to man’s
-wants, and character, and conduct; it treats revelation rather as a
-light to walk by, than as a light to look at,&mdash;which is wise&mdash;but it
-does not throw into a distance, it does not place on the remote horizon
-of its view the doctrines respecting Father, Son, and Holy Spirit,
-taught in the Scriptures, and upheld by the early Church.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>The Puritans broke with the Anglicans&mdash;not upon the doctrines of the
-Creeds, but upon other points. They broke with them as Reformers
-had broken with Romanists on the question&mdash;What are the true means
-of grace? Clerical orders and sacraments, said the Church of Rome.
-Apostolical succession and sacraments, said the Anglican Church
-of England; but the Anglican Church of England controverted the
-doctrine of the Church of Rome as to the number, the nature, the form
-and the efficacy of the sacraments. The Puritans went much further
-than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_397">[397]</span> the Anglicans in this direction, and denied the Anglican
-views of the ministry and the sacraments. The Anglican watchwords
-were,&mdash;<i>orders</i>, <i>sacraments</i>, <i>faith</i>, <i>grace</i>.
-The Puritan watchwords were&mdash;<i>the Bible</i>, <i>grace</i>,
-<i>truth</i>, <i>faith</i>. Both parties believed that men are saved by
-grace through faith; but the one connected the salvation chiefly with
-sacraments, the other with truth.</p>
-
-<p>In considering the theology of the Puritans, we ought carefully to
-notice differences amongst them, and I shall therefore subdivide them
-into three classes&mdash;the <i>Calvinistic</i>, the <i>Arminian</i>, and
-the <i>Intermediate</i>. I begin with the Calvinists, and shall select
-Thomas Goodwin and John Owen.</p>
-
-<p>The influence exerted by Perkins and other Puritan teachers and
-friends in the University of Cambridge upon the mind of Goodwin when
-a student, his remarkable conversion, the effect of his residence in
-Holland, and of his association there, with Dutch Divines, and with
-“English Dissenting brethren,” are visible in his opinions. Three main
-stand-points come out sharply in the phases of Goodwin’s theology.</p>
-
-<p>The first is <i>Faith</i>. In his treatise on that subject he discusses
-(1) the object of faith, including the mercies in God’s nature, the
-Person and work of the Lord Jesus Christ, and the riches of free grace
-as declared and proposed in the Gospel covenant; (2) the acts of faith
-in the understanding, the affections and the will, respecting which
-he distinguishes between justifying faith in general, and the faith
-of assurance; and (3) the properties of faith, its excellence and
-use&mdash;good works, he says, so far from being slighted by the exaltation
-of belief, are really promoted in a pre-eminent degree by the influence
-of that principle. It is apparent at once, that in this way a complete
-scheme of theology is arranged with faith for a pivot on which the
-entire circle of thought is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_398">[398]</span> made to move. Accordingly, we find
-introduced into this elaborate treatise, nearly, if not quite, all the
-doctrines comprised within the writer’s evangelical creed. There are
-abundant descriptions of faith, of what it is, and of what it does,
-but we do not discover any compact definition of it in any part of the
-volume. Goodwin alludes to it as sealed in the understanding, in the
-heart, and in the will,&mdash;a description which might seem comprehensive
-enough to take in all which Thorndike or Bull has advanced on the
-subject; but Goodwin’s way of working out the idea is very different
-from theirs, and whilst they are chiefly intent upon preserving the
-interests of Christian morality, he, although not neglectful of them,
-is principally engaged in exalting the glories of sovereign grace.
-According to his theology, faith is commanded by God, it influences
-all the graces&mdash;but it is the meanest and lowest of them all, and it
-is merely and altogether a passive principle. It should be carefully
-noticed, as amongst the marked features of Goodwin’s teaching:&mdash;not,
-however, peculiar to him, but common to Puritan Divines&mdash;that although
-he enumerates many objects of faith, by far the most prominent one is
-Christ Himself, as the great propitiation for sin.<a id="FNanchor_519" href="#Footnote_519" class="fnanchor">[519]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">GOODWIN.</div>
-
-<p>Another stand-point of Goodwin’s is <i>Election</i>. He argues for the
-necessity of this&mdash;saying, that without it “Christ had died in vain,
-and not saved a man,” and had been in heaven alone to lament that He
-had come short in this work. Goodwin dwells upon the order of God’s
-decrees touching election and reprobation, and upon the end to which
-the elect are ordained, even a supernatural union with God, and the
-communication of Himself to their souls. The infinity of God’s electing
-grace is a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_399">[399]</span> special theme of this writer’s meditations, in which,
-amongst other points most repulsive to moderate Calvinists, he insists
-upon a vast disproportion between the elect and the rest&mdash;rejoicing
-not, as one would suppose, in the thought, that the saved immensely
-outnumber the lost, but in the thought, that the paucity of men who
-enjoy any privilege magnifies it the more. He speaks of the infinite
-number of those laid aside in a fallen condition, in comparison with
-the very few elected out of them, as enhancing the grace of election.
-He contends for the perfect freedom of election, and the absence in it
-of all reference to merit or worthiness; for its intimate connection
-with effectual calling, which he unfolds at length; and for the
-doctrine of final perseverance, which follows from the doctrine he has
-previously laid down. It is remarkable that he employs a whole book
-in showing that election in its ordinary course runs from believing
-parents to their posterity; that the covenant of grace is entailed
-upon the children of believers, and that God most usually makes them
-His choice. He is careful practically to apply his views to Christian
-parents on the one hand, and to their children on the other.<a id="FNanchor_520" href="#Footnote_520" class="fnanchor">[520]</a></p>
-
-<p>The doctrine of reprobation is connected by Goodwin with the
-doctrine of election; it is described as being its dark shadow. If
-Goodwin was not a supralapsarian, he was, next to that, the highest
-predestinarian a man could be.<a id="FNanchor_521" href="#Footnote_521" class="fnanchor">[521]</a> It is marvellous how, with all
-his thoughtfulness,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_400">[400]</span> he could have overlooked the question of moral
-government and human responsibility, in connection with some of his
-speculations; and it is distressing to find that one so zealous for
-what he deemed the glory of Divine grace, could lay his scheme of
-theology open to the charge of its robbing God of the attributes of
-justice and righteousness.</p>
-
-<p>Goodwin does not, in his treatise on election, or in his other
-writings, give prominence to the dogma of particular redemption; but he
-distinctly affirms in one place that the elect alone are redeemed;<a id="FNanchor_522" href="#Footnote_522" class="fnanchor">[522]</a>
-and his whole system of theology proceeds on the principle, that the
-death of Christ was a ransom for the salvation of the elect. He presses
-to the utmost extreme the ideas of suretyship, and of debt-paying;
-and refers to the sinner’s liability as met by the sufferings of
-the Saviour, and to the sinner’s bonds as for ever cancelled by the
-Redeemer’s resurrection. To such an extent does the author carry his
-notion of the identification of the Lord with His people as their
-surety, that he positively declares Christ by imputation was made the
-greatest sinner that ever was&mdash;for the sins of all God’s chosen met in
-Him!<a id="FNanchor_523" href="#Footnote_523" class="fnanchor">[523]</a></p>
-
-<p>The last stand-point of Goodwin, which I have space to notice, is
-<i>Regeneration</i>. In his treatise, entitled <i>The Work of the Holy
-Ghost in our Salvation</i>, Regeneration is the theme throughout the
-volume. Its necessity, its nature, and its cause are illustrated in
-every variety of form and phrase; and it is noteworthy that no allusion
-is made to the ordinance of baptism in connection with it, nor is any
-opportunity lost of placing this spiritual change in relation to the
-Divine decrees and electing love.<a id="FNanchor_524" href="#Footnote_524" class="fnanchor">[524]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_401">[401]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN OWEN.</div>
-
-<p>Were it not that my proper business is to present, as succinctly
-as possible, the doctrinal views of the Puritans, I should most
-earnestly combat some of Goodwin’s theological positions, and point
-out the tremendous consequences which they involve&mdash;admitting, at
-the same time, the redeeming elements, which may be found in his
-ofttimes wearisome method of instruction. I will only say, that when
-he wandered into what appear to me not only perilous but pernicious
-regions of thought, he did but stumble in the midst of fields into
-which Augustine had gone before, and where Jonathan Edwards followed
-afterwards. Happily, such men are inconsistent, and whilst sacrificing
-the righteousness of God in one way, they contend for it most zealously
-in another.</p>
-
-<p>Owen’s works may be appropriately coupled with Goodwin’s. Their
-literary defects and their religious excellencies are not dissimilar.
-In each the reader is wearied with refinements and perplexed by
-multiplied divisions; in neither can be found any graces of style,
-any delectable flow of words, any rhythm of diction, any wealth of
-expression; in both are presented signs of profound reflection, of
-patient inquiry, of logical acumen, and also, beyond all these, proofs
-of intense evangelical piety.</p>
-
-<p>Owen goes over very much of the ground which is occupied by Goodwin,
-and he is scarcely less rigid in his predestinarianism. It is
-instructive to compare with the point of view selected by Goodwin
-that which is chosen by Owen. Owen’s treatise on the <i>Doctrine of
-Justification</i> (1677) should be examined by the side of Goodwin’s
-work on the <i>Objects and Acts of Justifying Faith</i>. Owen
-describes justifying faith “as the heart’s approbation of the way of
-justification and salvation of sinners by Jesus Christ;” he omits,
-and vindicates the omission of any<span class="pagenum" id="Page_402">[402]</span> definition of this spiritual
-act: but he is singularly full in his account of the Divine side of
-justification, dwelling at great length upon its forensic nature,
-and its basis in the imputed righteousness of the Redeemer. The last
-point is wrought out with pre-eminent distinctness. It occurs at the
-beginning&mdash;it is resumed in the middle&mdash;it is enforced at the end of
-the book. The idea of Christ’s imputed righteousness is considered by
-many evangelical Divines as at the best a theoretical key to explain
-the fact of justification, rather than as an essential element of the
-doctrine. Some hold the fact without accepting the explanation, not
-finding it to be a key at all. But the state of opinion was widely
-different in Owen’s day, the whole atmosphere of controversy was
-different; he and others identified imputation with justification, and
-fought for it as for the hearth of truth, as for the altar of God. They
-deemed the interests of Protestantism, the security of the doctrines
-of grace, and the welfare of Christ’s Church at stake in this one
-doctrinal dispute.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN OWEN.</div>
-
-<p>Owen agrees substantially with Goodwin, but he is more cautious; and
-he more frequently qualifies his statements. He says men may really be
-saved by that grace which doctrinally they question, and they may be
-justified by the imputation of that righteousness, which, in opinion,
-they deny to be imputed. He shrinks from affirming what Goodwin affirms
-as to the identification of Christ with the sinner.<a id="FNanchor_525" href="#Footnote_525" class="fnanchor">[525]</a> It may again
-be observed, that throughout, Owen looks more intently at the Divine
-act of the sinner’s justification than at the human act by which
-the justification is secured. His views on the whole are coincident
-with Goodwin’s as to the Divine decrees; but he exhibits them less
-prominently in reference to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_403">[403]</span> doctrine of election than in reference
-to the doctrine of particular redemption. The Atonement is a central
-point in his thoughts; and it is in a treatise respecting the death and
-satisfaction of Christ, that his clearest statements on the tenet of
-election can be found.<a id="FNanchor_526" href="#Footnote_526" class="fnanchor">[526]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was usual with most of the Puritan Divines, in harmony with the
-order of thought pursued in the Westminster formularies, to start with
-the doctrine of the Divine decrees; to regard, as the foundation of
-all theology, the idea of God having resolved to save a certain number
-of human beings; and to view all the processes of redeeming love, as
-simply designed to accomplish that resolution. They did not deny the
-responsibility of all men in a certain sense, and they were ready to
-maintain the righteousness of God, as they understood it, against any
-who dared to impugn that righteousness. But generally they did not look
-at the moral government of God as dealing with mankind in general, on
-common grounds of justice, love, and mercy; they did not regard the
-Gospel as a gracious law for a fallen race; they did not consider it
-as alike the duty and the privilege of every sinful child of Adam, to
-accept the offer of eternal life through Jesus Christ our Lord. There
-is a deeper <i>theological</i> difference between ancient and modern
-Calvinists than some suppose&mdash;a difference appearing even more in the
-order, the relations, and the turns of thought touching salvation, than
-in any scientific mode of expressing it. But there remains a strong
-<i>religious</i> resemblance between the two classes. What most of the
-old doctrinal Puritans put first as the premises leading to certain
-conclusions, many of what may be called the new doctrinal Puritans
-put last, as a conclusion<span class="pagenum" id="Page_404">[404]</span> drawn from certain premises. In a careful
-study of the whole Bible, as a revelation of God’s government of the
-whole world, they find passages which relate to mysterious operations
-of grace upon human minds; and after a careful analysis of all human
-and secondary causes, at work in the world’s history, or at work in
-private experience, they discover rightly, in my opinion, a residuum
-which points to what is not human, but Divine and absolute; and in this
-they recognize the mysterious sovereign grace of God. Further, in those
-passages of Scripture which speak of an election, a predestination,
-and a purpose before the world began, they see a statement of the
-fact, that what God does in time He from eternity meant to do; that
-the knowledge and mercy, that the wisdom and the will of the Infinite
-and Eternal One, must have been ever the same as they are now. And
-also, the present disciples of this Puritan faith, like the former,
-delight to dwell upon the cause and character of salvation, more even
-than upon its consequences in their own experience and hopes; and they
-are not weary, and I hope never will be, of adoring the Divine love,
-righteousness, and power in which their redemption originated, and on
-which it must for ever rest.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN OWEN.</div>
-
-<p>Owen enters fully into the nature of the death of Christ, and insists
-upon its having been a price or ransom, a sacrifice and a satisfaction.
-He contends that it was a punishment for sin properly so called; and
-that the covenant between the Father and the Son was the ground and
-foundation of the penal sufferings from which redemption flows. Nor
-does he confine himself to the citation and enforcement of Scripture
-texts in support of these opinions. He supplies a dissertation on
-Divine justice&mdash;in which, from the consent of mankind, as appears
-in the testimony of the heathen, and the power<span class="pagenum" id="Page_405">[405]</span> of conscience, from
-the prevalence of sacrifices, and from the works of providence,&mdash;he
-concludes that Divine justice is a vindicating justice, and that the
-non-punishment of sin would be contrary to the glory of that justice.
-He examines and answers the objections of Socinus, and the main drift
-of the whole treatise is to establish the indispensable necessity of
-the satisfaction of Christ for the salvation of sinners.</p>
-
-<p>In his <i>Salus Electorum Sanguis Jesu</i>, a work published so early
-as 1648, Owen connects the Atonement with the Divine decrees. He points
-out what he conceives to be the false and supposed ends of the death
-of Christ, and unfolds his reasons for a belief in the doctrine of
-particular redemption.<a id="FNanchor_527" href="#Footnote_527" class="fnanchor">[527]</a> He admits that the sacrifice of Christ was
-of infinite worth and dignity, sufficient in itself for the redeeming
-of all and every man, if it had pleased the Lord to employ it to that
-purpose; but the main drift of the Essay is to prove that it did not
-please the Lord so to employ it.<a id="FNanchor_528" href="#Footnote_528" class="fnanchor">[528]</a> Whatever may be thought of the
-logical consequences of Owen’s positions in reference to election and
-particular redemption, it would be extreme injustice&mdash;and the same
-remark may be applied to Goodwin and others&mdash;to charge him or them with
-any connivance at Antinomianism, an error which they regarded with the
-utmost abhorrence, and opposed with not a whit less of zeal than burns
-intensely in their writings, when they are subjecting Arminianism to a
-process of destructive criticism.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_406">[406]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XIX.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">We have noticed a change in the Church of England, from prevalent
-Calvinism, during the reign of Elizabeth, for prevalent Arminianism,
-during the latter part of the reign of James I. A corresponding change
-occurred in the history of several eminent Divines of the seventeenth
-century: Bishop Andrewes, Dean Jackson, Bishop Davenant, Archbishop
-Ussher, John Hales, of Eton, and Dr. Sanderson, are conspicuous
-examples. Another instance, more remarkable in some respects, is
-found in the life of John Goodwin&mdash;now less known to fame than the
-celebrated Churchmen just mentioned, and yet a man who, in his own
-day, attracted not less attention than did they; and whose works for
-vigour, ingenuity, argument, and eloquence deserve to rank high amongst
-theological productions, in an age when theology bore its richest
-fruit. The names now grouped together belong to men who, from first
-to last, retained more or less of Anglican predilections, and after
-the commencement of the Stuart period, Anglicanism and anti-Calvinism
-appear in close alliance; but John Goodwin, unlike the other converts,
-began his career under the influence of that description of religious
-feeling which forms so important an element in Puritanism, and he
-retained that feeling to the end of life. Although he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_407">[407]</span> became an
-Arminian, and renounced opinions identified with doctrinal Puritanism,
-his Arminianism did not destroy the unction and ardour which were
-characteristic of his earlier creed. His Arminianism presents some
-striking differences from that of both the Anglican and Latitudinarian
-schools; it is animated by an evangelical spirit, and it is wrought
-out, in connection with evangelical principles, akin to those which
-appear prominently in the Arminianism of our Wesleyan brethren. Like
-them, this eminent predecessor of theirs maintained strenuously the
-doctrine of human depravity, of justification by faith, of the work of
-the Holy Spirit, of the new birth, and of sanctification.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN GOODWIN.</div>
-
-<p>Before John Goodwin abandoned Calvinism he repudiated the doctrine
-of the imputed righteousness of Christ as held by the Calvinists of
-his own day. Yet he concedes almost all for which modern Calvinists
-would contend, when he remarks that a believer may “be said to be
-clothed with the righteousness of Christ, and yet the righteousness of
-Christ itself may not be his clothing, but only that which procured
-his clothing to him. So Calvin calls the clothing of righteousness,
-wherewith a believer is clad in his justification, <i>Justitiam morte,
-et resurrectione Christi, acquisitam</i>&mdash;a righteousness procured by
-the death and resurrection of Christ.”<a id="FNanchor_529" href="#Footnote_529" class="fnanchor">[529]</a></p>
-
-<p>Goodwin, in his <i>Redemption Redeemed</i>, earnestly insists upon
-the broad view of the effect of the Atonement,&mdash;“that there is a
-possibility, yea a fair and gracious possibility, for all men without
-exception, considered as men, without and before their voluntary
-obduration by actual sinning to obtain actual salvation by His death;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_408">[408]</span>
-so that, in case any man perisheth, his destruction is altogether
-from himself, there being as much, and as much intended, in the death
-of Christ to and towards the procuring of his salvation, as there is
-for procuring the salvation of any of those who come to be actually
-saved.”<a id="FNanchor_530" href="#Footnote_530" class="fnanchor">[530]</a></p>
-
-<p>The great moot point between the old-fashioned Calvinists and their
-opponents is treated by this intensely-evangelical Arminian in such a
-way in his concessions, that he approaches rather closely to modern
-Calvinism, without conceding the whole for which the advocates of the
-latter system would stipulate.<a id="FNanchor_531" href="#Footnote_531" class="fnanchor">[531]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN GOODWIN.</div>
-
-<p>John Goodwin’s object was, whilst magnifying the grace of God, to
-preserve what is demanded by the personality, the free agency, and
-the responsibility of man. He so clearly explains his opinion and so
-carefully fences it round, he so distinctly asserts the Divine origin
-of salvation in every individual, and so vigilantly repels every idea
-of indigenous rectitude in human nature, suffering from the fall, that
-no one can charge his creed with any Pelagian or even semi-Pelagian
-taint. So far as that point is concerned, Goodwin’s opinion might
-have received the approval of Augustine, and it ought to have passed
-muster with the second Councils of Milevis and Orange. Whether the
-keen Catholic theologians of the fourth and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_409">[409]</span> fifth centuries, in their
-jealousy for orthodox opinion, would have endorsed the following
-sentence is another question: “That the act of believing whensoever it
-is performed, is at so low a rate of efficiency from a man’s self, that
-suppose the act could be divided into a thousand parts, nine hundred,
-ninety, and nine of them are to be ascribed unto the free grace of God,
-and only one unto man. Yea, this one is no otherwise to be ascribed to
-man, than as supported, strengthened, and assisted by the free grace of
-God.”</p>
-
-<p>Goodwin was a person who thought for himself, and looked at a subject
-on more sides than one, and was as zealous to maintain the freeness
-of Divine grace as any Divine could be; consequently, we find him
-expressing himself, so as to appear, in the eyes of opponents,
-logically inconsistent, although he had a way of his own by which to
-defend himself against the imputation. Although he distinctly denies
-the Calvinistic doctrine of predestination, yet he maintains, when
-stating his own opinion on the subject, that predestination does not
-depend on the foresight of faith, or righteousness. “For though it
-be supposed,” he says, “that God decreeth to elect, and accordingly
-actually electeth all that believe and none other; yet this, at no hand
-proveth, either that His purpose, or the execution hereof, proceed in
-their origination, from the faith of such persons foreseen, no nor from
-the foresight of their faith: though this be more tolerable than the
-other. There is nothing in the nature of faith, nor in God’s foresight
-of faith, in what persons soever, that hath in it any generative virtue
-of any such purpose in God.”</p>
-
-<p>There were other Puritans who adopted Arminian views. John Horne, Vicar
-of Allhallows, Lynn&mdash;a learned man of most exemplary and primitive
-piety who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_410">[410]</span> was ejected in 1662&mdash;previously published a book entitled,
-“The open door for Man’s approach to God; or, a vindication of the
-Record of God concerning the extent of the death of Christ.”<a id="FNanchor_532" href="#Footnote_532" class="fnanchor">[532]</a>
-Tobias Conyers, Minister of St. Ethelbert’s, London, also one of the
-ejected clergy, accused of being “schismatical and heretical,”&mdash;but
-who seems to have been a man of high character, and of a catholic
-spirit,&mdash;published, in 1657, a translation of a work by Arminius, under
-the title of “The Just Man’s Defence, or the Royal Conquest.”<a id="FNanchor_533" href="#Footnote_533" class="fnanchor">[533]</a>
-Of George Lawson, Rector of More, in Shropshire, who animadverted
-upon Baxter’s <i>Aphorisms of Justification</i>, Baxter himself
-remarks,&mdash;after eulogizing him as almost the ablest man whom he knew
-in England,&mdash;“He was himself near the Arminians, differing from them
-only in the point of perseverance as to the confirmed, and some little
-matters more.” He published (1659) an excellent sum of divinity, called
-<i>Theopolitica</i>.<a id="FNanchor_534" href="#Footnote_534" class="fnanchor">[534]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN GOODWIN.</div>
-
-<p>The position of these Divines, especially of John Goodwin, amongst the
-religious thinkers of that age, is remarkable and significant, and
-deserves much more attention than it has ever received. The common
-notion is that the Puritan movement, in its theological character, was
-essentially Calvinistic, that Calvinism constituted its life and soul;
-and, moreover, that evangelical opinions in general,&mdash;understanding
-by them those views of the Gospel which rest on a keen appreciation
-of its precious and saving character,&mdash;necessarily involve ideas
-of Divine predestination, akin to those which were entertained by
-the great Genevan Reformer. Both the disciples and the opponents of
-that illustrious man have, in many<span class="pagenum" id="Page_411">[411]</span> cases, adopted or countenanced
-this conception. But the writers we have just described show us that
-it is a mistake. Here were men Puritan in spirit, Puritan in their
-characteristic religiousness, Puritan in their habits and modes of
-life, who, so far from being imbued with the distinctive sentiments of
-John Calvin on the subject of the Divine purposes and decrees, utterly
-repudiated them, and spent an immense amount of time and thought
-upon their confutation. They believed in justification by faith, in
-conversion to God, in the gracious work of the Holy Spirit upon the
-human soul, and in the riches of Divine mercy manifested throughout the
-salvation of men, as firmly and deeply as did any of those who most
-fervently proclaimed the doctrines of election, effectual calling, and
-perseverance. Neither their philosophy, nor their logic, nor their
-religion, led them to identify the one class of ideas with the other.
-And, if the discussion were proper in a work like this, it would
-not be difficult to show, that the motive power in Puritanism&mdash;that
-which made it such a well-spring of life and energy to multitudes of
-Englishmen&mdash;consisted not in high notions of predestination, where such
-notions were entertained, but in those articles of evangelical belief
-which can unite devout Calvinists and devout Arminians in the bonds
-of a common experience, and in the inheritance of the same hope. And,
-if anything further were needful to prove that the Puritan spirit can
-exist and thrive apart from Calvinistic theology, it is sufficient to
-point to the Wesleyans of the present day, than whom none are more
-decided in their opposition to predestinarianism, none are more zealous
-in preaching salvation by grace, and none are more inspired with the
-life and glow of a warm-hearted piety.</p>
-
-<p>Anti-Calvinistic zeal, however, often took an anti-Puritanical form,
-and by assaults which were made<span class="pagenum" id="Page_412">[412]</span> upon predestinarian principles, the
-interests of evangelical religion were very seriously compromised.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">“FUR PRÆDESTINATUS.”</div>
-
-<p>A Latin tract, entitled <i>Fur Prædestinatus</i>, made some noise at
-the time of its publication, and has received the commendation of
-literary and theological critics. The <i>Fur Prædestinatus</i> was
-printed in London in 1651. D’Oyley, simply on the ground of general
-rumour, ascribes the tract to Sancroft, and prints it in his life.
-Hallam accepts the rumour, adding, “It is much the best proof of
-ability that the worthy Archbishop ever gave.” Birch says, in his
-<i>Memoirs of Tillotson</i>, that Sancroft joined with Mr. George
-Davenport, and another of his friends, in composing this satire upon
-Calvinism. But Jackson, in his <i>Life of John Goodwin</i>, affirms
-that the tract was in existence many years before Sancroft was capable
-of such a production. He adds, it was circulated in Holland, at the
-early part of the seventeenth century, and was thought to have been
-written by Henry Slatius. It is a dialogue between a condemned thief
-and a Calvinistic minister, in which it is attempted to be shown,
-that not only the doctrine of predestination but also the doctrine of
-justification by faith is marked by an immoral tendency, and several
-quotations from Luther and Zwingle, as well as from Calvin, Beza,
-and others, are pressed into the service. It exhibits, no doubt,
-some cleverness, and from the narrow view of the Atonement which
-is introduced, as held by some distinguished evangelical Divines,
-consequences are drawn which it would be difficult logically to repel.
-Yet most persons will acknowledge, that conducting controversy,
-dialogue fashion, is more easy for an author than it is satisfactory
-to a reader; and that, in this controversy especially, allusions to
-all sorts of authors can with ease be unfairly brought together, so as
-to impart a specious appearance to allegations<span class="pagenum" id="Page_413">[413]</span> which on a thorough
-scrutiny are found to be perfectly untrue. Certainly, Luther and Calvin
-never dreamt of entertaining such views as are put into the lips of the
-criminal and of his spiritual adviser&mdash;and they would have crushed,
-with a force of logic too much for a stronger man than the writer now
-under review, whoever he might be, the sophisms which are employed in
-the <i>Fur Prædestinatus</i>, to the discredit of that which Reformers
-held to be the scriptural doctrines of Divine grace.</p>
-
-<p>Two eminent Puritans remain for consideration, and they may be regarded
-as maintaining an intermediate position between High Calvinists and
-Evangelical Arminians.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_414">[414]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XX.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">BAXTER.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Few persons could have been subjected in early life to a greater
-variety of influence than Richard Baxter. His father having been a
-gambler, became, before the birth of his illustrious son, a pious man,
-and trained up his offspring in godly discipline. Whilst over his home
-a religious atmosphere diffused itself, the people in the village spent
-the greater part of most Sundays in dancing round the Maypole. After
-four successive curates of worthless character, there followed a grave
-and eminent man who expected to be made a Bishop. Having been placed
-under each of them at school, Richard afterwards had for his tutor a
-Royalist chaplain, who did all in his power to make the youth hate
-Puritanism. Baxter’s religious impressions were deepened by reading the
-works of a Jesuit, which an evangelical Protestant had revised, and by
-the perusal of evangelical books from the pens of Sibbs and Perkins.
-The youth’s first associations in life were with the Episcopal Church,
-and he was then a Conformist in practice and principle. He studied
-Richard Hooker, and did not come in contact with Nonconformists, until
-just before he attained his majority. He spent, as a young man, a month
-at Whitehall, with the chance of becoming a courtier. Accident brought
-him within an inch of the grave, and he suffered so much<span class="pagenum" id="Page_415">[415]</span> from illness,
-that at twenty he had the symptoms of fourscore. No classic, no
-mathematician, he plunged into the study of logic and metaphysics, and
-soon formed an intimate acquaintance with Aquinas and Scotus, Durandus
-and Ockham. He had omnivorous habits of reading, and it is curious
-to notice the variety of authors whom he cites or enumerates. He was
-a self-taught man, and when Anthony Wood inquired of him by letter,
-whether he had been educated at Oxford, Baxter replied, “As to myself,
-my faults are no disgrace to any University, for I was of none: I have
-little but what I had out of books, and inconsiderable helps of country
-tutors. Weakness and pain helped me to study how to die: that set me
-on studying how to live; and that set me on studying the doctrine
-from which I must fetch my motives and comforts; and beginning with
-necessaries, I proceeded to the lesser integrals by degrees, and now am
-going to see that which I have lived and studied for.”<a id="FNanchor_535" href="#Footnote_535" class="fnanchor">[535]</a></p>
-
-<p>By bearing in mind these remarkable facts, we shall be assisted in
-accounting for some peculiarities of opinions in this remarkable man.
-There was a manifold character in his theology corresponding with the
-manifold influences which moulded his religion, and we may trace the
-effects of his education in both the excellencies and defects of his
-numerous writings. In a literary point of view, they are strikingly
-different from those of Thomas Goodwin and John Owen. He is, in
-his doctrinal discussions, often as tedious as they, and sometimes
-more provoking with his endless distinctions, but, in the practical
-application of his theological principles, he exerts a charm which
-neither of those contemporaries could ever<span class="pagenum" id="Page_416">[416]</span> rival. His masculine
-style, just the outgrowth of his thought, just the natural skin, pure
-and transparent, which covers it, has been the admiration of popular
-readers and practised critics. It has been praised by Addison and
-Johnson; it has been felt and appreciated by thousands of unlettered
-people. We detect in Baxter, no rhetorical tricks, no striving to shine
-for the sake of shining, no waving of the scarlet flag, no “taking out
-his vocabulary for an airing:” and yet for fullness of expression,
-for a rich flow of words, for occasional felicity of diction, for
-poetry in prose, he surpasses all his compeers, except Jeremy Taylor:
-and in directness, force, and genuine fervour, as to a glowing heat
-of the affections, which is more intense than the eloquence of the
-imagination, as to words which come rolling out like balls of white
-fire, the great Church orator must give place to the Nonconformist
-Divine. If immense popularity, if the possession of a spell which
-can hold fast minds of all orders, be a test of genius, then Baxter
-must be allowed to have possessed it in a high degree. In activity of
-thought and in keenness of perception, in the grasp of his knowledge
-and in the retentiveness of his memory, in dialectic skill and in
-logical fencing, Baxter is acknowledged to have had no superior, if
-any equal, in his own day, and he would have been worthy of a lot
-amongst the mediæval schoolmen, to whose list of doctors his might
-have added another characteristic name. But such qualities have their
-disadvantages. In this instance, they led their possessor to travel
-over such an immense field of inquiry, to meddle with so many topics,
-to dispute with so many men, to make so many distinctions without any
-difference, at least such as less acute minds can discern, that it is
-difficult to gather together and harmonize his opinions, and to say on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_417">[417]</span>
-certain points what he believed, and what he did not. It is easy for
-a man of one-sided views to be consistent; but who that loves truth
-for the truth’s sake, and wishes to see as much of it as is possible
-in this world of imperfect knowledge, will value consistency of that
-kind? Baxter was not one-sided, but strove to look at every subject
-on its many sides, if it has many; and to reconcile aspects of truth
-which to hasty and prejudiced thinkers seem contradictory. Hence he
-has given occasion to the charge of inconsistency. His opinions have
-been a battle-ground for critics ever since he left the world; and
-in this respect he has attained a position honourable in one point
-of view, dubious in another&mdash;like that of Origen. A great thinker, a
-great debater, an eloquent expounder of his own convictions, he has
-been pronounced a heretic by some members of his own Church, and his
-orthodoxy has been endorsed by members of Churches not his own. It
-is a curious illustration of the difficulty of deciding what were
-Baxter’s sentiments on some intricate subjects, that his most copious
-and intelligent biographer should first say, that he was neither
-a Calvinist, nor an Arminian&mdash;should next assert his claims to be
-considered a faithful follower of the Synod of Dort,&mdash;and should
-finally pronounce this verdict: “Baxter was probably such an Arminian
-as Richard Watson, and as much a Calvinist as the late Dr. Edward
-Williams.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BAXTER.</div>
-
-<p>After such a verdict, I cannot hope successfully to thread the mazes
-of Baxter’s theology. Yet there are a few conclusions which appear
-to me undeniable. He took a Calvinistic view of the Divine decrees.
-Several passages, probably, might be found in his writings apparently
-inconsistent with the Genevan doctrine, but what convinces me that
-he held it substantially, is not so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_418">[418]</span> much his confession, that he
-accepted the decisions of the Synod of Dort (upon which his biographer
-just mentioned insists), for Baxter sometimes interpreted statements
-after a manner of his own,&mdash;as the fact that in his treatise <i>On
-Conversion</i>, when dealing with such as say, “Those that God will
-save shall be saved, whatsoever they be, and those that He will damn,
-shall be damned,”&mdash;instead of cutting the matter short, as an Arminian
-would do, by denying the Calvinistic dogma altogether, our Divine goes
-on to guard against the abuses of that dogma; and to argue that people
-should act in relation to the decrees of Grace, as they do respecting
-the decrees of Providence. He finishes by saying just what Calvinists
-say,&mdash;“God hath not ordinarily decreed the end without the means, and
-if you will neglect the means of salvation it is a certain mark that
-God hath not decreed you to salvation.”<a id="FNanchor_536" href="#Footnote_536" class="fnanchor">[536]</a></p>
-
-<p>Baxter’s opinions of the efficacy of Christ’s death resemble those of
-John Goodwin, rather than those of Thomas Goodwin. For he remarks,
-“God hath made a universal deed of gift of Christ and life to all
-the world, on condition that they will but accept the offer. In this
-testament or promise, or act of oblivion, the sins of all the world
-are conditionally pardoned, and they are conditionally justified, and
-reconciled to God.”<a id="FNanchor_537" href="#Footnote_537" class="fnanchor">[537]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BAXTER.</div>
-
-<p>Baxter seems to have believed that whilst those who are ultimately
-saved, are saved by the sovereign and gracious<span class="pagenum" id="Page_419">[419]</span> purpose of the
-Almighty&mdash;in other words, by Divine election&mdash;there is a provision
-made by the mediation of Christ, sufficient for the wants of all men,
-and of which all men, if they pleased, could avail themselves; and in
-this respect his views do not materially differ from those expressed
-by Dr. Edward Williams, in his treatise on <i>The Divine Equity and
-Sovereignty</i>; or from those taught by Andrew Fuller in several of
-his publications. A somewhat similar <i>via media</i> was pursued by
-Amyraut, the French Divine. Yet it is, I believe, not an uncommon
-impression that Baxter went beyond this, and supposed that whilst some
-are elected to eternal life by a special Divine decree, others are
-saved through a general provision of Divine grace. I do not pretend to
-have read all Baxter’s works: but in those with which I am acquainted,
-I find no trace of such an opinion, neither does it appear in Orme’s
-careful summary of Baxter’s theological writings. It is a curious
-fact, however, that an idea of the kind attributed to the Puritan was
-expressed, at the Council of Trent, by a Papist, Ambrosius Catarinus,
-of Siena,<a id="FNanchor_538" href="#Footnote_538" class="fnanchor">[538]</a> and that a similar idea is exhibited in the writings of
-Fowler, the Latitudinarian.<a id="FNanchor_539" href="#Footnote_539" class="fnanchor">[539]</a></p>
-
-<p>Baxter did not adopt the doctrine of imputation held by Thomas Goodwin
-and John Owen. He remarks:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Most of our ordinary Divines say, that Christ did as properly obey
-in our room or stead, as He did suffer in our stead, and that in
-God’s esteem, and in point of law, we were in Christ’s obeying and
-suffering, and so, in Him we did both perfectly fulfil the commands
-of the law by obedience, and the threatenings of it by bearing the
-penalty; and thus (say they) is Christ’s righteousness<span class="pagenum" id="Page_420">[420]</span> imputed to
-us (viz.)&mdash;His passive righteousness for the pardon of our sins and
-delivering us from the penalty, His active righteousness for the making
-of us righteous, and giving us a title to the Kingdom&mdash;and some say
-the habitual righteousness of His human nature, instead of our own
-habitual righteousness&mdash;yea, some add the righteousness of the Divine
-nature also. This opinion (in my judgment) containeth a great many of
-mistakes.”<a id="FNanchor_540" href="#Footnote_540" class="fnanchor">[540]</a></p>
-
-<p>Faith, Baxter explains as “both a general trust in God’s revelations
-and grace, and a special trust in Jesus Christ,” adding, “I have oft
-proved this justifying faith to be no less than our unfeigned taking
-Christ for our Saviour, and becoming true Christians according to
-the tenour of the baptismal covenant.” The characteristic nature of
-Christian faith he further represents as consisting of trust in a
-personal Saviour, inclusive of an assenting trust by the understanding;
-a consenting trust by the will; and a practical trust by the executive
-powers.<a id="FNanchor_541" href="#Footnote_541" class="fnanchor">[541]</a> The linking of the exercises of faith upon three faculties
-in human nature may be observed both in Goodwin and in Owen; but Baxter
-seems to have proceeded further than they in carrying out the practical
-relations of faith, and in this respect to have occupied ground not
-unlike that of Thorndike.<a id="FNanchor_542" href="#Footnote_542" class="fnanchor">[542]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_421">[421]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HOWE.</div>
-
-<p>Howe’s Puritanism might almost be said to have reached him by descent;
-but his extraordinary thoughtfulness, and his singular originality,
-require us to believe, that far from blindly accepting the inheritance,
-he carefully investigated the whole subject, and became a Puritan from
-conviction. His father, appointed to the incumbency of Loughborough
-by Archbishop Laud, afterwards displeased his patron, by refusing to
-comply with his requirements, and was consequently ejected. The father
-took the son to Ireland, whence he was driven back by the rebellion;
-after which, John Howe, before he proceeded to Oxford, went to
-Cambridge, and there, from the “Platonic tincture” of his mind, became
-associated with Cudworth, More, and John Smith, from whom his Platonic
-tastes received the highest culture. The great Pagan theologue,
-however, exerted a more powerful influence upon his sympathizing
-disciple, than did any of these under-masters; for Howe carefully read
-Plato for himself. He had “conversed closely with the heathen moralists
-and philosophers; had perused many of the writings of the schoolmen,
-and several systems and common places of the Reformers. Above all,
-he had compiled for himself a system of theology, from the Sacred
-Scriptures alone: a system which, as he was afterwards heard to say, he
-had seldom seen occasion to alter.”<a id="FNanchor_543" href="#Footnote_543" class="fnanchor">[543]</a></p>
-
-<p>His defects of style have robbed him of that meed of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_422">[422]</span> honour to which
-as a theologian he is entitled. He exhibits an utter neglect of the
-art of composition, like a man of great wealth, thoroughly careless
-about his attire, and falls into a habit of writing most inharmonious
-periods, perhaps for want of a musical ear. His frequent poverty of
-expression, and his numerous and intricate subdivisions, are failings
-in their effect vastly heightened by the unaccountably strange method
-of punctuation which he adopted himself, or left his printer to adopt
-for him.<a id="FNanchor_544" href="#Footnote_544" class="fnanchor">[544]</a> Yet his works present, in numerous instances, the most
-felicitous phrases and the choicest epithets, and only less frequently
-does he, under the inspiration of his genius, pour forth sonorous
-sentences, with an organ-like swell, in keeping with the magnificent
-ideas which they were employed to convey. After all Howe’s drawbacks, I
-have often risen from the perusal of his works with feelings similar to
-those of a traveller, who, at the end of his journey, charmed with the
-remembrance of the scenes he has visited, forgets the ruggedness of the
-road, and the inconvenience of his conveyance, however unpleasant they
-might have been at the moment they were experienced. The originality
-and compass of Howe’s mind, and the calmness and moderation of his
-temper, must ever inspire sympathy, and awaken admiration in reflective
-readers: his Platonic and Alexandrian culture commends him to the
-philosophical student, and the practical tendency of his religious
-thinking endears him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_423">[423]</span> to all Christians. His works contain no treatises
-on Faith, on Justification, on Election, or Particular Redemption.
-Though essentially evangelical, Howe’s writings are pervaded by a tone
-of thought which varies from that which is predominant in Puritan
-literature: and I may add that, as in Baxter, so in Howe, yet not from
-exactly the same cause, or in the same measure, heresy hunters, if
-their scent be keen, may discover passages open to exception.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HOWE.</div>
-
-<p>In the <i>Blessedness of the Righteous</i>, when describing those
-who bear that character, instead of dwelling upon justification by
-the imputed righteousness of Christ, after the manner of Goodwin or
-Owen, Howe exhibits chiefly the moral view of religion, that “it
-can be understood to be nothing but the impress of the Gospel upon
-a man’s heart and life; a conformity in spirit and practice to the
-revelation of the will of God in Jesus Christ; a collection of graces
-exerting themselves in suitable actions and deportments towards God
-and man.” Calamy justly says that Howe “did not consider religion
-so much a system of doctrines, as a Divine discipline to reform the
-heart and life.” He carries out the idea of Christianity being a law,
-“with evangelical mitigations and indulgences.” He speaks of the law
-of faith, and insists upon that part of the Gospel revelation which
-contains and discovers our duty&mdash;what we are to be and do, in order
-to our blessedness.<a id="FNanchor_545" href="#Footnote_545" class="fnanchor">[545]</a> Some of his expressions would scarcely have
-been used by the two Divines we have just mentioned; yet, without
-going into a theological discussion on the question, I may observe,
-that Howe certainly believed most firmly in all which is essential to
-the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_424">[424]</span> doctrine of justification by faith, and disposed of the opposite
-doctrine in a summary way by saying, “To suppose the law of works, in
-its own proper form and tenor, to be still obliging, is to suppose all
-under hopeless condemnation, inasmuch as all have sinned.” The spirit
-of his teaching throughout must be remembered, in order that we may
-qualify, somewhat, certain expressions which seem to look favourably
-towards such schemes as were advocated by Thorndike and Bull. The
-drift of Howe’s theology was different from theirs, notwithstanding an
-occasional resemblance of phraseology; and whilst I admit that some
-of his passages on this subject require to be carefully guarded, and
-others are open to exception, I must say that he did immense service
-to the cause of Gospel truth, first, by insisting upon the present
-dispensation of the Divine will as a form of moral and righteous
-government for men in general, not simply an expedient for gathering
-together the elect; and, next, by insisting upon the responsibility of
-man, as well as upon the freeness of the grace of God. In my opinion,
-Howe brought out&mdash;and Baxter did the same&mdash;phases of truth in relation
-to man as a responsible being, as a subject morally accountable to the
-universal Governor of the world, too much neglected by many of their
-Puritan brethren.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HOWE.</div>
-
-<p>The comprehensiveness of Howe’s mind, the harmony of his own spiritual
-life, and the essentially practical character of his instructions,
-appear in his <i>Carnality of Religious Contention</i>, especially in
-the following passage relative to the two great blessings of the Gospel
-which he distinguishes whilst he unites them:&mdash;In fine, therefore, the
-Apostle “makes it his business to evidence to them that both their
-justification and their sanctification must be conjoined, and arise
-together out of one and the same root,&mdash;Christ Himself,&mdash;and by faith
-in Him, without<span class="pagenum" id="Page_425">[425]</span> the works of the law, as that which must vitally unite
-them with Him; and that thereby they should become actually interested
-in all His fulness&mdash;that fulness of righteousness which was to be found
-only in Him, and nowhere but in Him; and withal, in that fulness of
-spirit and life and holy influence, which also was only in Him; so as
-that the soul, being united by this faith with Christ, must presently
-die to sin and live to God. And at the same time, when He delivered a
-man from the law as dead to it, He became to him a continual living
-spring of all the duty which God did by His holy rule require and call
-for, and render the whole life of such a man a life of devotedness to
-God.”<a id="FNanchor_546" href="#Footnote_546" class="fnanchor">[546]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Popish theory of justification, which confounds it with personal
-righteousness, and the approaches made in that direction by Anglican
-Divines, drove the Puritans to an opposite extreme; and the distinction
-they sometimes make between justification and sanctification amounts
-almost to a separation; but Howe&mdash;following St. Paul, who seems never
-to have thought of the one without having in his mind at the same time
-the thought of the other&mdash;whilst distinguishing between them, justly
-presents the two as <i>conjoint</i> blessings, “arising together out of
-one and the same root,” or as being, in reality, two harmonious aspects
-of one simple salvation.</p>
-
-<p>Howe nowhere maintains the doctrine of particular redemption, but
-he exhibits the expiatory sacrifice of Christ with great clearness,
-and introduces an argument to the effect “that to account for the
-sufferings of the perfectly holy and innocent Messiah is made
-abundantly more difficult by denying the Atonement.”<a id="FNanchor_547" href="#Footnote_547" class="fnanchor">[547]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his <i>Redeemer’s Tears wept over Lost Souls</i>, he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_426">[426]</span> does not
-enter at all into the Predestinarian controversy&mdash;a circumstance which
-distinguishes him from High Calvinistic theologians, who would not
-have failed largely to discuss the question of the Divine decrees,
-together with the Divine foreknowledge. But Howe rigorously confines
-himself to a solution of that broad difficulty which presses equally
-upon Arminians and Calvinists, supposing that both believe, as they
-generally do, that God is omniscient, and that man is responsible.
-The author’s simple purpose is to vindicate the Divine sincerity and
-wisdom, in employing methods of moral persuasion with His intelligent
-and accountable creatures, when He discerns beforehand that they will
-prove of no avail, in offering invitations of mercy which He knows will
-never be accepted, and in urging admonitions and rebukes to which He
-foresees many will turn an unlistening ear and an obdurate heart. The
-reticence of Howe, in this and in other parts of his writings, upon
-subjects which present a fascinating attraction to speculative minds,
-however incapable they may be of grappling with the objects towards
-which they are so irresistibly drawn, is worthy of special notice, and
-indicates a resemblance between him, in this respect, and Robert Hall,
-who regarded Howe with intense admiration.</p>
-
-<p>One of the characteristic imperfections of that age in relation
-to theology is found in the endeavour to define and explain many
-things which are utterly beyond the reach of human comprehension.
-Anglican and Puritan, in almost equal degrees, boldly ventured into
-regions of speculation, and mistook for solid ground what really is
-but cloud-land. Metaphysical conclusions of their own were by their
-imagination transformed into Divine verities; and they often overlooked
-the grand distinction between what revelation plainly teaches, and what
-can be only<span class="pagenum" id="Page_427">[427]</span> inferred from its teaching. John Howe is singularly free
-from all presumptuous intermeddling with subjects which lie beyond the
-ken of mortals; and, although versed in the highest philosophy, beyond
-many of his contemporaries&mdash;and, indeed, because he was thoroughly
-imbued with the purest spirit of philosophy&mdash;he knew when to stop in
-his path of inquiry, and how to distinguish between the wisdom of God
-and the reasonings of man.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BAXTER AND HOWE.</div>
-
-<p>Both Baxter and Howe were pre-eminently earnest in their endeavours
-to promote the moral righteousness of Christians, and to exhibit its
-production in human character and human life as the grand aim of the
-Gospel of Jesus. Other Puritans, more Calvinistic in their modes of
-thinking, inculcated holiness with emphasis and effect, and might
-imply, throughout their instructions, that pardon and justification
-were means to an end, that end being the conformity of the saints to
-the will of God and the image of Christ; but no teacher of that class
-impresses my mind with the positive conviction of such being the true
-order of the great redemptive process, to the same extent, and with
-the same depth, as do the two theologians now under review. They most
-effectually relieve at least their part in Puritan Divinity from the
-charge, and from the suspicion, of subordinating that which is moral in
-religion to that which is speculative, that which is personal to that
-which is relative, that which is practical to that which is emotional.
-They give the true perspective in theology, and place subjects of
-belief in their position one towards another, more accurately perhaps
-than any of their contemporaries. They exhibit the sinner’s forgiveness
-and acceptance with God, and his adoption into the Divine family of
-the Church, and his heirship of celestial felicities, not as the
-ultimatum of Christian object and desire, but as spiritual conditions<span class="pagenum" id="Page_428">[428]</span>
-and circumstances essential to the growth and maturity of that moral
-and God-like life which is begotten in the human soul at the hour of
-the new birth by the Holy Spirit. No one, who reflects upon a scheme
-of theology constructed after this type, can regard it as defective in
-moral power, or as betraying the interests of perfect righteousness.
-To place righteousness in the position of an end, rather than in the
-relation of means to an end, must be to exalt and glorify it. Those
-who impugn the whole system of evangelical belief as derogatory to
-the moral character of religion, and who <i>therefore</i> insist upon
-moral duties as the means of attaining eternal life, do really dethrone
-Christian righteousness from its Divine supremacy, and turn it into a
-prudential expedient for promoting one’s own advantage, by making it a
-series of stepping-stones or a flight of stairs by which men may climb
-from the borders of perdition to the threshold of heaven. It is they
-who dishonour&mdash;of course unintentionally&mdash;the nature and claims of
-Gospel righteousness, not teachers like Baxter and Howe, who, refusing
-to look at that righteousness merely or mainly as means to an end, as
-price paid for a treasure, or as service done for reward, represent
-it as the goal of all endeavour, the prize of the Christian race, the
-richest gift of Divine love, and the brightest diamond in the crown of
-salvation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">BAXTER AND HOWE.</div>
-
-<p>A word may be added indicative of the literary and intellectual niche
-which the names of these distinguished men deserve to occupy. Dr.
-Arnold said of the Church Divines of the seventeenth century, “I
-cannot find in any of them a really great man.”<a id="FNanchor_548" href="#Footnote_548" class="fnanchor">[548]</a> Without adopting
-the opinion so expressed, I am constrained to say that we can find
-little of what may be called genius in some of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_429">[429]</span> the most renowned. No
-one could ascribe that high gift to Thorndike, with all his stores of
-learning and powers of reflection. No one would think of ascribing it
-to Bull or Pearson. Nor, if we include Puritans, can it be attributed
-in any high degree to Goodwin or Owen. Perhaps not one of the whole
-class of theological writers at the time, able as they were, could
-be justly esteemed the equal of that magnificent moral philosopher
-and theologian in the days of Queen Elizabeth, Richard Hooker, or the
-compeer even of Thomas Jackson, whose power, learning, and eloquence so
-brightly adorned the Church in the reign of James I. Jeremy Taylor, no
-doubt, had received Heaven’s gift of genius in the form of imagination,
-and a power of musical expression in prose such as no one else could
-rival, not even John Milton; but, in my opinion, the two theologians of
-that age who possessed most of original power were Richard Baxter and
-John Howe.</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, there was in both of these men a breadth of human
-sympathy&mdash;always closely allied to the highest order of
-intellect&mdash;which redeemed them from the narrowness of some of their
-contemporaries. Baxter and Howe evinced none of the restricted
-Churchmanship which blinded the Anglicans to all goodness not seen in
-their own communion; and none of the exclusive Calvinism which made
-some Puritans virtually shut up God’s love to a few like themselves,
-and hand over to reprobation the remainder of the race. Baxter,
-although not an accomplished scholar, was a man of wide and varied
-reading, and had a decided taste for history, politics, and especially
-metaphysics, as well as for theology; and Howe, who seems to have known
-much more of Greek than his friend, was at home amongst the ancient
-masters of philosophy, and perhaps with none of his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_430">[430]</span> brethren, except
-Theophilus Gale, was Plato such an intimate acquaintance, and such a
-thorough favourite. It has been justly remarked that the man who is
-only a theological scholar is a very poor one.<a id="FNanchor_549" href="#Footnote_549" class="fnanchor">[549]</a> The remark may
-detract from the reputation of some of the Puritans, but not from the
-reputation of the two Divines we have last described.</p>
-
-<p>Before I close this imperfect survey of the theology of the Puritans,
-it is desirable to bring together, in some distinct form, the
-characteristics of their teaching in reference to certain points which
-have not been noticed in the foregoing detailed account of their
-opinions.</p>
-
-<p>Here we notice first what they say upon the nature of sacraments.</p>
-
-<p>Goodwin and Owen refer to the subject of baptism incidentally, the
-former speaking of it as the sign of salvation, and as the sealing of
-our calling, our justification, our renewal, and our union with Christ;
-the latter alluding to it chiefly for the purpose of denying that it
-has the regenerating or purifying power ascribed to it by Catholics.
-But he says a cleansing in profession and signification accompanies
-baptism, when it is rightly administered.<a id="FNanchor_550" href="#Footnote_550" class="fnanchor">[550]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN VIEWS OF SACRAMENTS.</div>
-
-<p>Baxter enters at large upon the subject, and discusses, in reference
-to it, such questions as are particularly interesting to Catholics;
-and one question at least&mdash;“Is baptism by laymen or women lawful in
-cases of necessity?”&mdash;he answers after a manner resembling that of
-the highest Anglican. He denies that there can be such necessity,
-yet he does not absolutely pronounce lay baptism a nullity; although
-he adds, If the baptizer “were in no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_431">[431]</span> possession or pretence of the
-office, I would be baptized again if it were my case; because I should
-fear that what is done in Christ’s name by one that notoriously had
-no authority from Him to do it, is not owned by Christ as His deed,
-and so is a nullity.”<a id="FNanchor_551" href="#Footnote_551" class="fnanchor">[551]</a> Again, he remarks, “All that the minister
-warrantably baptizeth are sacramentally regenerate, and are, <i>in foro
-ecclesiæ</i>, members of Christ, and children of God, and heirs of
-heaven.” “Therefore it is not unfit that the minister call the baptized
-regenerate and pardoned members of Christ, and children of God, and
-heirs of heaven, supposing that <i>in foro ecclesiæ</i> they were the
-due subjects of baptism.” What so subtle a dialectician exactly meant
-by some things he said upon this subject, I do not undertake to say;
-but certainly Baxter showed, like Thorndike, a strong disposition to
-connect the functions of faith with a baptismal covenant. Baxter’s
-theory was one which, upon a comparison of his theology in general
-with that of Thorndike, must have materially differed from it; and
-the qualifications introduced by the former in immediate connection
-with the sentences quoted&mdash;which qualifications I have deferred citing
-until now, in order that their force may be more clearly seen&mdash;must
-be considered, if we would avoid misapprehending the drift of his
-sentiments. “It is only those that are sincerely delivered up in
-covenant to God in Christ, that are spiritually and really regenerate,
-and are such as shall be owned for members of Christ and children of
-God <i>in foro cœli</i>.”<a id="FNanchor_552" href="#Footnote_552" class="fnanchor">[552]</a> Those readers who are familiar with the
-controversy on baptismal regeneration will see at once that Baxter’s
-statements, with his qualifications, may be so explained as to point
-to a condition of Divine privilege, possibilities, and opportunities,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_432">[432]</span>
-rather than to anything else. He further made a distinction between
-some baptized children and others; a distinction which seems to
-shift the conveyance of spiritual benefit from the rite itself to
-the relation sustained by the child to a godly parent. “Not,” he
-says, “that all the baptized, but that all the baptized seed of true
-Christians are pardoned, justified, adopted, and have <i>a title
-to</i> the Spirit and salvation.”<a id="FNanchor_553" href="#Footnote_553" class="fnanchor">[553]</a> And in his <i>Now or Never</i>
-(published in 1663), there occurs a very strong passage against
-baptismal regeneration as held by some Episcopalians.<a id="FNanchor_554" href="#Footnote_554" class="fnanchor">[554]</a></p>
-
-<p>Howe touches upon the subject of baptism in his <i>Living Temple</i>,
-and speaks of it as a taking on of Christ’s badge and cognizance,
-as the fit and enjoined sign and token of becoming Christians, and
-as a federal rite by which remission of sin is openly confirmed and
-sealed.<a id="FNanchor_555" href="#Footnote_555" class="fnanchor">[555]</a></p>
-
-<p>Dr. Jacomb, in his treatise on <i>Holy Dedication</i>, uses, as already
-noticed, very strong expressions relative to the nature and effects of
-the ordinance; and I may observe that generally the writings of the
-Puritans on the whole subject are pervaded by a mystic and sacramental
-tone such as would not evoke the sympathies of their religious
-descendants.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN VIEWS OF SACRAMENTS.</div>
-
-<p>The Lord’s Supper, Dr. Goodwin exhibits, in opposition to the Catholic
-view, not as a commemorative sacrifice to God, but as a remembrance of
-His sacrifice to men; and he says that by it the intention on God’s
-part is to represent the whole work of Christ; and the intention on
-our part is to show it forth, and to signify our personal interest
-in the benefits of His death.<a id="FNanchor_556" href="#Footnote_556" class="fnanchor">[556]</a> Neither in Owen nor in Howe, so
-far as I can find, is there anything indicative<span class="pagenum" id="Page_433">[433]</span> of their opinions
-on the nature of the Lord’s Supper; but Baxter writes copiously
-upon this theme. According to him, the <i>consecration</i> of the
-sacrament respects God the Father, and makes it the representative
-body and blood of Christ, whilst, in such consecration, the Church
-offers the elements to be accepted of God for this sacred use; the
-<i>commemoration</i> of the sacrament respects God the Son, and He is
-in it, “in effigy,” still crucified before the Church’s eyes, and by it
-the faithful show the Father that sacrifice in which they trust; and
-the <i>communication</i> of the sacrament respects God the Holy Ghost,
-as being that Spirit given in the flesh and blood for the quickening of
-the soul.<a id="FNanchor_557" href="#Footnote_557" class="fnanchor">[557]</a> The same author, in his <i>Dying Thoughts</i>, remarks,
-with reference to the Real Presence, “When we dispute against them
-that hold transubstantiation and the ubiquity of Christ’s body, we do
-assuredly conclude that sense is judge, whether there be real bread and
-wine present or not; but it is no judge, whether Christ’s spiritual
-body be present or not, no more than whether an angel be present. And
-we conclude that Christ’s body is not infinite or immense, as is His
-Godhead; but, what are its dimensions, limits or extent, and where it
-is absent, far be it from us to determine, when we cannot tell how far
-the sun extendeth, its secondary substance, or emanant beams; nor well
-what locality is as to Christ’s soul, or any spirit, if to a spiritual
-body.”<a id="FNanchor_558" href="#Footnote_558" class="fnanchor">[558]</a> It is strange indeed to hear a Puritan speaking thus; his
-language has almost a patristic and Anglican sound. Some mysterious
-presence of the body of Christ in the material elements on the altar
-was believed by the orthodox Fathers; and Origen regarded that body
-as being ethereal and ubiquitous, and capable of assuming different
-forms: even the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_434">[434]</span> judicious Hooker supposed that the human substance of
-Christ is universally present “after a sort, by being nowhere severed
-from that which everywhere is present.” It is easier to employ definite
-expressions on this subject, and others of a similar kind, than to form
-definite notions corresponding with the expressions; and it appears
-to me very hard to say exactly what either Origen or Hooker meant by
-the language which they employed on this subject. Certainly Baxter
-expresses no decided opinion as to the presence of Christ’s body in
-the sacrament; but he admits such a presence to be not impossible, and
-thus opens the door for such unsatisfactory speculations as those in
-which Origen and Hooker indulged. Baxter, from his scholastic habits of
-thought, and from his familiarity with Catholic as well as Protestant
-theologians, was led, on the subject of baptism and the Lord’s
-Supper&mdash;especially the latter&mdash;to adopt a much more mystical form of
-belief than his Puritan brethren were wont to entertain.<a id="FNanchor_559" href="#Footnote_559" class="fnanchor">[559]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN CONTROVERSY WITH POPERY.</div>
-
-<p>In connection with the subject of sacraments, it is pertinent to
-inquire what were the opinions of these Divines in reference to the
-ministry and ordination. Baxter, as might be expected, discusses the
-question in his usual scholastic manner. His views on baptism, as just
-stated, indicate that he attached much importance to clerical order;
-and he alludes to the power conveyed from Christ to the individual
-minister, of which power he says neither the electors nor the ordainers
-are the donors; they are only the instruments of designing an apt
-recipient, and of delivering the possession of office. This position
-involves a denial of the High Church doctrine of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_435">[435]</span> orders, and this
-doctrine Baxter still farther denies, when he concludes that imposition
-of hands is not essential to ordination, but is simply a decent, apt,
-and significant sign. Ordination, however, he holds to be needful;
-for, without this key, the office of the ministry and the doors of the
-Church would be thrown open to heretics and self-conceited persons.
-The power of ordination he believes to be vested in the senior pastors
-of the Church, and the people’s call, or consent, he does not regard
-as necessary to the minister’s reception of office in general, but
-only to his pastoral relation. He admits that laymen may preach,
-as did Origen and Constantine, but he cautiously restricts their
-preaching to their families, or within “proper bounds.” What he had
-witnessed in the army had given the good man a great horror of the
-license claimed by lay orators on religious subjects; and, no doubt,
-recollections of some of his military antagonists came before his
-mind when he laid down the law, that lay teachers must not presume to
-go beyond their abilities, especially in matters dark and difficult.
-He also forbids them to thrust themselves into public meetings, and
-proudly and schismatically to set themselves up against their lawful
-pastors.<a id="FNanchor_560" href="#Footnote_560" class="fnanchor">[560]</a> Baxter’s Presbyterianism appears throughout his treatment
-of these subjects&mdash;subjects respecting which Goodwin, Owen, and Howe
-are silent. But it is not to be inferred from this circumstance that
-they were indifferent to order in the ministry and the Church. What
-the Independents determined respecting these matters, in the Savoy
-Declaration, we have seen in a previous chapter.</p>
-
-<p>Next to the Puritan treatment of the sacraments and the ministry comes
-the Puritan share in the anti-Popish<span class="pagenum" id="Page_436">[436]</span> controversy. Although none of
-the Divines now under consideration took so prominent a part in it
-as did Cosin, Bramhall, and Barrow,&mdash;although none of them, on this
-subject, published books which have become so famous as some written
-by their brethren,&mdash;yet of their intense opposition to Romanism there
-is not the shadow of a doubt. They might not have the same reasons for
-wielding anti-Papal weapons which their Anglican contemporaries had,
-who, by the charges of Romanizing tendencies brought against them,
-were compelled to stand up in self-defence.<a id="FNanchor_561" href="#Footnote_561" class="fnanchor">[561]</a> Still, expressions
-of horror at the very thought of Rome are numerous enough in the
-works of the Puritans, and some of them couched their thoughts on the
-subject in the strongest phraseology. Nor were there wanting treatises
-expressly upon the errors of Romanism from Puritan hands. Owen, at the
-suggestion of Lord Clarendon, it is said, wrote his <i>Animadversions
-on Fiat Lux</i>; a work which so pleased His Lordship that he declared
-the writer had more merit than any English Protestant of that period,
-and offered him preferment if he would conform. Baxter went beyond
-Owen in the laborious defence of the Reformed against the Tridentine
-Church; for he published altogether nearly twenty books and pamphlets
-in this department of polemical literature, leaving “no one point in
-the extensive field untouched,” and supplying “a complete library on
-Popery.”<a id="FNanchor_562" href="#Footnote_562" class="fnanchor">[562]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN ECCLESIASTICAL CONTROVERSY.</div>
-
-<p>In addition to what has been said on the subject in other portions of
-this History, a passing notice must be taken of the ecclesiastical
-controversies carried on by the Puritans against the High Church party.
-During the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_437">[437]</span> Civil Wars, and under the Protectorate, unsparing attacks
-were made upon Prelacy, modified schemes of Episcopacy were proposed,
-Presbyterianism was upheld in books and pamphlets almost innumerable,
-and between that system of Church government and Congregationalism the
-warfare continued fierce and incessant. The Presbyterian contended
-against the Prelatist for the original identity of Bishops and
-elders, and for the scriptural authority of their own scheme of rule
-and discipline. He contended against the Congregationalist for the
-right and the duty of reducing England to a state of ecclesiastical
-uniformity, based upon the decisions of the Westminster Assembly, and
-defended by the employment of magisterial power. The Congregationalist
-contended against the Presbyterian for the liberty of gathering
-Independent Churches, and of maintaining Independent discipline&mdash;and
-for the toleration, within certain limits, of all Christian sects. Of
-course, after the Restoration, although the main differences continued
-as before, and ecclesiastical disputes, essentially the same, were
-carried on&mdash;differences in the treatment of these questions necessarily
-arose, and changes in polemics on all sides became inevitable. When
-the garrison within the castle walls are mastered and turned out by
-the besiegers&mdash;when those who were besiegers become the garrison, and
-those who formed the garrison become besiegers, the tactics of each
-party will undergo alteration. Whilst Presbyterians or Independents, or
-both, were in the ascendant, Episcopalians had to assume an offensive
-attitude. They were, in fact, for the time being, Dissenters from
-the Established religion of the country, and had, as such, to make
-good their position as best they might. But when Prelacy had been
-reestablished, its friends no longer needed the kind of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_438">[438]</span> battering-rams
-which they had used very uncomfortably for about twenty years, they
-would simply buckle on their defensive armour, and fence with their
-weapons as in days of old. The other party had now to attack those
-who were in power, and to draw their lines of circumvallation around
-the fortress of intolerance, whilst they steadily defended themselves
-against the charge of schism, and earnestly contended for liberty and
-the rights of conscience. Baxter, in his <i>Plea for Peace</i>, argued
-against Conformity on the ground of its unjust impositions,&mdash;such as
-the expression of “assent and consent” to all things contained in the
-Prayer Book, canonical subscription, re-ordination in the case of
-Presbyterians, and the oath against seeking any change in Church or
-State.</p>
-
-<p>The right of imposing things indifferent was a point which met with
-much consideration in books as well as in the Savoy discussions.
-Respecting this subject, the reader cannot do better than ponder an
-extract from Sanderson, in favour of imposing such things, and another
-from Baxter, against all impositions of the kind.</p>
-
-<p>“The liberty of a Christian,” says the Anglican, “to all indifferent
-things, is in the mind and conscience, and is then infringed, when
-the conscience is bound and straightened, by imposing upon it an
-opinion of doctrinal necessity. But it is no wrong to the liberty of
-a Christian man’s conscience, to bind him to outward observance for
-order’s sake, and to impose upon him a necessity of obedience. Which
-one distinction of doctrinal and obediential necessity well weighed,
-and rightly applied, is of itself sufficient to clear all doubts on
-this point. For, to make all restraint of the outward man in matters
-indifferent, an impeachment of Christian liberty, what were it else,
-but even to bring flat Anabaptism and anarchy into the Church; and to
-overthrow all bond of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_439">[439]</span> subjection and obedience to lawful authority?
-I beseech you consider, wherein can the immediate power and authority
-of fathers, masters, and other rulers over their inferiors consist; or
-the due obedience of inferiors be shown towards them, if not in these
-indifferent and arbitrary things. For, things absolutely necessary, as
-commanded by God, we are bound to do, whether human authority require
-them or no; and things absolutely unlawful, as prohibited by God, we
-are bound not to do, whether human authority forbid them or no. There
-are none other things left then, wherein to express properly the
-obedience due to superior authority than these indifferent things.”<a id="FNanchor_563" href="#Footnote_563" class="fnanchor">[563]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN ECCLESIASTICAL CONTROVERSY.</div>
-
-<p>Turn from the Anglican to the Puritan:&mdash;“I confess,” he says, “it is
-lawful for me to wear a helmet on my head in preaching; but it were
-not well if you would institute the wearing of a helmet, to signify
-our spiritual militia, and then resolve that all shall be silenced
-and imprisoned during life that will not wear it. It is lawful for
-me to use spectacles, or to go on crutches; but will you therefore
-ordain that all men shall read with spectacles, to signify our
-want of spiritual sight, and that no man shall go to church but on
-crutches, to signify our disability to come to God of ourselves. So,
-in circumstantials, it is lawful for me to wear a feather in my hat,
-and a hay-rope for a girdle, and a hair-cloth for a cloak: but if you
-should ordain that if any man serve God in any other habit, he shall
-be banished, or perpetually imprisoned, or hanged; in my opinion, you
-did not well: especially, if you add that he that disobeyeth you must
-also incur everlasting damnation. It is in itself lawful to kneel when
-we hear the Scriptures read, or when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_440">[440]</span> we sing psalms; but yet it is not
-lawful to drive all from hearing and singing, and lay them in prison
-that do it not kneeling. And why men should have no communion in the
-Lord’s Supper that receive it not kneeling, or in any one commanded
-posture, and why men should be forbidden to preach the Gospel that wear
-not a linen surplice, I cannot imagine any such reason as will hold
-weight at the bar of God.”<a id="FNanchor_564" href="#Footnote_564" class="fnanchor">[564]</a></p>
-
-<p>Owen was particularly active and vigorous in defending Nonconformity,
-in pleading its rights, and in expounding his own views of Church
-polity. In the year 1667, he published several tracts, the design
-of which was to promote peaceable obedience to the civil enactments
-of government; to show the injustice and impolicy of subjecting
-conscientious and useful men to suffering, on account of their
-religious sentiments; to expose the unconstitutional nature of the
-proceedings against them by informers and secret emissaries; to unfold
-his ideas of the nature and benefits of toleration in former ages, and
-in other lands; to vindicate it from various charges; and to point out
-the folly of attempting to settle the peace of the country on the basis
-of religious conformity.<a id="FNanchor_565" href="#Footnote_565" class="fnanchor">[565]</a></p>
-
-<p>At a later period, in 1681, Owen published his <i>Enquiry into
-the Original, Nature, Institution, Power, Order, and Communion of
-Evangelical Churches</i>, in which he maintains that “unless men by
-their voluntary choice, and consent, out of a sense of their duty
-unto the authority of Christ, in His institutions, do enter into a
-Church-state, they cannot, by any other ways or means, be so framed
-into it, as to find acceptance with God therein.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_441">[441]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN ECCLESIASTICAL CONTROVERSY.</div>
-
-<p>A Church he defines to be&mdash;“An especial society or congregation of
-professed believers, joined together according unto his mind, with
-their officers, guides, or rulers whom he hath appointed; which do or
-may meet together for the celebration of all the ordinances of Divine
-worship, the professing and authoritatively proposing the doctrine of
-the Gospel, with the exercise of the discipline prescribed by himself,
-unto their own mutual edification, with the glory of Christ, in the
-preservation and propagation of His kingdom in the world.”<a id="FNanchor_566" href="#Footnote_566" class="fnanchor">[566]</a></p>
-
-<p>But with all this zeal in defence of particular forms of government,
-the great Puritan Divines expressed the utmost charity towards all
-Reformed Churches at home and abroad. The schismatical sentiments of
-Anglicans, who cut off Presbyterians and Independents from communion,
-and expressed hopes of their salvation in only cautious, faltering
-terms, find no echo in the writings of their antagonists. It was the
-main business of Baxter’s life to unite together Christians of all
-kinds; for this he wrote numerous books, to this he devoted his best
-years; and if Owen came behind him in this respect, he has, as in a
-nut-shell, summed up most truly the cause of all disunion:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Men fall to judging and censuring each other as to their interest
-in Christ, or their eternal condition. By what rule? The Everlasting
-Gospel? The Covenant of Grace? No, but of the disciples: ‘Master, they
-follow not with us.’ They that believe not our opinion, we are apt to
-think believe not in Jesus Christ; and because we delight not in them,
-that Christ does not delight in them. This digs up the roots of love;
-weakens prayer; increases evil surmises; which are of the works<span class="pagenum" id="Page_442">[442]</span> of
-the flesh, genders strife and contempt, things that the soul of Christ
-abhors.”<a id="FNanchor_567" href="#Footnote_567" class="fnanchor">[567]</a></p>
-
-<p>Able as the Puritans might be in controversy, they appear to much
-greater advantage in their experimental and practical instructions.
-And here it ought to be noticed, that whilst the conforming Puritans
-did not number amongst them any great scientific Divines, they
-included well-known names of another class. Bishop Hall, by no
-means an ecclesiastical Puritan, sympathized a good deal with the
-doctrinal Puritans in their distinctive views, and still more in their
-evangelical spirit; and this British Seneca, as he is called, always
-wrote upon moral and practical subjects with the unction characteristic
-of the best kind of Puritanism. Thomas Fuller, chiefly known as an
-Historian, employed his matchless wit in the enforcement of religious
-duties, after a manner which bore much of a Puritan stamp, whilst it
-fascinated and edified all parties. Dr. Reynolds, the Puritan Bishop
-of Norwich, wrote books which were once of considerable celebrity,
-and which contain a great deal of evangelical sentiment and practical
-piety. The <i>Christian Armour</i>, by Gurnal, the Puritan Incumbent
-of Framlingham, is perhaps as popular as ever&mdash;exhibiting as it does,
-amidst much perverted ingenuity of arrangement and a vitiated style
-of expression, a surprising amount of spiritual truth and of genuine
-wisdom. The Nonconformists, however, outpeer their brethren in this
-department of literature. John Bunyan has a niche of his own in the
-temple of literary fame, where the image of his genius has been crowned
-with chaplets woven by the noblest hands. Other Puritan authors of
-that age have contributed to the wealth of our spiritual literature.
-In<span class="pagenum" id="Page_443">[443]</span> proof of which I need only mention Owen’s ideal of Christian
-character, in his <i>Mortification of Sin</i>, and his <i>Spiritual
-Mindedness</i>; Baxter’s encouragement for believers, in his <i>Saint’s
-Everlasting Rest</i>; his warnings to the ungodly, in his <i>Now
-or Never</i>; and Howe’s solace for mourners, in <i>The Redeemer’s
-Dominion over the Invisible World</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PRACTICAL PURITAN THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>Alleine’s <i>Alarm to the Unconverted</i>&mdash;of which it was stated
-in 1775 that 20,000 copies had been sold, and 50,000 more under the
-title of <i>The Sure Guide to Heaven</i>&mdash;is one of those books which
-are eminently adapted to awaken deep spiritual convictions. Bates’
-<i>Spiritual Perfection Unfolded and Enforced</i>&mdash;to mention no other
-book by this estimable author&mdash;is written in his characteristic silvery
-style: and, if there be sometimes an “abrupt dismissal of a train of
-thought,” “these breaks in the veins of valuable ore do not appear
-to be ever very material, and are rarely perceptible except to the
-eye of a closely-reflecting and examining reader.” But the religious
-excellencies of the volume surpass those which are literary, and if
-Alleine’s <i>Alarm</i> be calculated to arrest the godless, Bates’
-<i>Spiritual Perfection</i> is equally fitted to guide and edify the
-godly. The titles of Brooks’ Treatises indicate the quaint kind of
-talent which he possessed:&mdash;“A Box of Precious Ointment”&mdash;“An Ark for
-God’s Noahs”&mdash;“A Golden Key to open hidden Treasures”&mdash;“Apples of Gold
-in Pictures of Silver.” “Many of his sentences are proverbs newly
-coined, shrewd, humorous, and Saxon; and they are provided with an
-alliterative jingle, which, like a sheep-bell, keeps a good saying from
-being lost in the wilderness.” It is impossible to read his writings
-without respecting his character as well as admiring his ingenuity;
-and whilst he exhibits more originality than Bates, like him he is
-a teacher<span class="pagenum" id="Page_444">[444]</span> fitted to instruct Christian people and to comfort their
-hearts under the troubles of life.</p>
-
-<p>Flavel is entitled to occupy a niche, not far from that which is filled
-by John Bunyan; not that he possessed the inventiveness of the Great
-Dreamer, yet, like him, he delighted to use similitudes, and did it
-successfully. His <i>Husbandry Spiritualized</i>&mdash;suggested by his
-walks through pleasant farms in Dorset and Devon; and his <i>Navigation
-Spiritualized</i>, arising from observations on sea-faring life, whilst
-he resided in the picturesque town of Dartmouth, are full of sweet and
-healthy allegories.</p>
-
-<p>Less known than Flavel, but somewhat akin to him in natural and
-spiritual taste, was Isaac Ambrose, whose work, entitled <i>Looking to
-Jesus</i>, is full of pleasant illustrations, drawn from the scenes of
-nature amidst which he delighted to ramble, especially “the sweet woods
-of Widdicre,” on the banks of the Darwen, where in a little hut, to
-which he annually repaired, this Puritan hermit, for the time, spent
-hour after hour in meditation and prayer.</p>
-
-<p>John Spencer, in his <i>Things New and Old</i>; Robert Cawdray, in his
-<i>Treasury of Similes</i>; and Benjamin Keach, in his <i>Key to open
-Scripture Metaphors</i>;&mdash;also belong to the same class of authors as
-Flavel.<a id="FNanchor_568" href="#Footnote_568" class="fnanchor">[568]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PRACTICAL PURITAN THEOLOGY.</div>
-
-<p>Many of the practical treatises published in the seventeenth century
-consisted of courses of sermons, and partook largely of the diffuse
-style proper to the pulpit; also many of the sermons of that day are in
-fact practical treatises. We see this fashion of treating Divinity in
-the works of Taylor and Barrow, and still more strikingly in the works
-of Owen, Baxter, and Howe. Casuistry,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_445">[445]</span> now neglected by Protestants,
-was then much studied by theologians of all schools. Taylor’s <i>Ductor
-Dubitantium</i>, and Baxter’s <i>Christian Directory</i>, are worthy of
-a chief place on the shelf of a library appropriated to works of this
-description. The characters of the men, and the peculiarities of the
-different schools of theological thought to which they belonged, may be
-traced in these volumes, and there is truth in the remark of one well
-read in all kinds of theological literature,&mdash;“Both may be consulted
-occasionally with profit and advantage; but if resorted to as oracles,
-they will frequently be found as unsatisfactory as the responses of the
-Delphic tripod.”<a id="FNanchor_569" href="#Footnote_569" class="fnanchor">[569]</a></p>
-
-<p>As, in common with devoted Conformists, Dissenting preachers “watched
-for souls,” the means they pursued for the accomplishment of their
-end bore a stamp indicating their distinctive theological principles.
-One peculiarity in the mode of preaching adopted by the Anglican,
-and an opposite peculiarity in the mode of preaching adopted by the
-Puritan, grew&mdash;as differences always must&mdash;out of different systems
-of Divinity maintained by the two parties. The first, regarding the
-ordinance of baptism as lying at the root of Christianity, and looking
-upon all who had undergone the holy rite, as regenerated Christians,
-addressed their congregations at large&mdash;those congregations being
-composed almost entirely of the baptized&mdash;as members of the mystical
-body of Christ, as people already in fellowship with the Redeemer, and
-as needing only to be awakened to a sense of their privileges, and of
-their responsibility, and to be stimulated to the discharge of their
-duties. The Puritan, on the contrary, regarding spiritual consciousness
-as at the bottom of all spiritual life, and looking upon those<span class="pagenum" id="Page_446">[446]</span> who
-were destitute of such consciousness, as dead in trespasses and sins,
-laboured at making people feel the need of that new birth which our
-Lord inculcated upon Nicodemus. The tone of the Anglican harp is heard
-sweetly in Jeremy Taylor’s <i>Rule and Exercises of Holy Living and
-Dying</i>. The Puritan trumpet waxes loud in Baxter’s <i>Call to the
-Unconverted</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The office of expositor was necessarily, to some extent, combined
-with that of preacher. Puritan homilies were chiefly expository, and
-Puritan expositions were chiefly homiletic. Biblical criticism, in the
-precise sense of the word, was not studied then so thoroughly as it is
-in the present day; but looking at the critical literature produced
-by Puritans, in comparison with that which was produced by other
-scholars, those who come in the line of succession after the former
-have no reason to be ashamed of their predecessors. Thomas Gataker
-the younger, Incumbent of Rotherhithe, who died in 1654, was one of
-the first scholars of his age, and applied his extensive and profound
-learning to Biblical investigations. He was somewhat erratic in certain
-of his conclusions, but in the defence of them he displayed both
-erudition and ingenuity. In his work on the style of the New Testament,
-he overthrew the positions of Sebastian Pfochenius, who maintained the
-classical purity of the Scripture Greek; and in establishing the fact
-of Hebraistic peculiarities in apostolic writings, he anticipated the
-opinions of modern scholars, and also entered upon original inquiries
-respecting the origin of languages.<a id="FNanchor_570" href="#Footnote_570" class="fnanchor">[570]</a> Pool’s <i>Synopsis</i>,
-published between 1669 and 1674, with the <i>Annotations</i>, which
-appeared in 1683, present, in an accurate and well-digested form,
-the principal results of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_447">[447]</span> all the learning which had then been
-applied to the investigation of the Old and New Testament. And Owen’s
-<i>Exposition of the Epistles to the Hebrews</i> is a rare monument
-of erudition:&mdash;considering the age in which it was written, it is
-equal if not superior to anything on the same subject which has been
-composed since. Still, its value as a series of devout and practical
-meditations far surpasses its exegetical worth, and that which is a
-pre-eminent quality in Owen is a pre-eminent quality in his brethren.
-Thomas Goodwin, if not equal in Biblical scholarship to John Owen, does
-not come very far behind him. His exposition of a part of the Epistle
-to the Ephesians is a noble production; but the chief excellence of
-Goodwin, like that of the other “Atlas of Independency,” lies in his
-clearness, sagacity, comprehensiveness, and point, as a practical and
-experimental expositor. Burroughs on Hosea; Caryl on Job; Greenhill
-on Ezekiel; Manton on James, Jude, the 119th Psalm, the Lord’s
-Prayer, and the 53rd chapter of Isaiah,&mdash;and the list could be easily
-enlarged,&mdash;are commentaries, in which the critical element appears
-faint, when compared with the theological and hortatory characteristics.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">PURITAN EXPOSITORS.</div>
-
-<p>As Divines, as expositors, and preachers, the Puritans showed a
-wonderful acquaintance with the Bible and with the human heart, for
-they apply the one to the other with singular skill, force, and pathos.
-No doubt they were deficient in taste, and sometimes worried their
-metaphors to death, and handled their flowers till they dropped to
-pieces, and are open to all kinds of criticism from modern masters of
-science. No doubt, also, we in our day have many advantages over them
-in reading the Bible; for, owing to helps now familiar, we acquire a
-keener insight into ancient Eastern life than any of these worthies
-could ever attain. They had no works in those<span class="pagenum" id="Page_448">[448]</span> days like that of
-Conybeare and Howson; yet they had a pre-eminent gift in bringing
-to bear, for spiritual and practical purposes, the daily life of
-patriarchs and Apostles upon the daily life of the people to whom
-they preached, and for whom they wrote. Travellers often gaze with
-interest upon those frescoes in the churches of Florence and other
-Italian cities, in which the stories of Scripture are rendered into
-landscapes and figures, derived from streets and gardens, and costumes
-and faces, with which the artist happened to be familiar in the place
-where he dwelt. And who that has seen them has not been struck with
-the stained glass windows in Germany, grotesquely portraying Scripture
-scenes and incidents under forms borrowed from German dwellings and
-German people? So at times, when reading the homely applications of
-Bible stories in Puritan writers, are we not reminded of these works of
-art; do we not feel that amidst a great deal which provokes criticism,
-and which may make one smile, there is in the Puritan writer, as in
-the mediæval painter, an instinct of truth, and an insight into the
-connection between the Bible and common life, most profound, most keen,
-most admirable? As the wickedness of old is still reproduced, and as
-the enemies of Christ are the same in spirit whether dressed like
-Jewish priests or as Saxon burgomasters,&mdash;so the devotion and piety
-of ancient and sacred times may transmigrate into the souls, and be
-embodied in the habits of modern citizens. But of all the excellencies
-of Puritan divinity, this is the chief,&mdash;that it exhibits clearly, and
-with warmth and love, with light and fire, the distinctive doctrines of
-Christianity&mdash;the Fatherhood of God, the Divinity, the mediation, the
-priesthood, and the sacrifice of the Lord Jesus Christ, the agency of
-the Holy Spirit, the freeness of salvation, the way of acceptance with
-God through faith,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_449">[449]</span> and the new birth and sanctification of the human
-soul, through the efficacious operations of Divine grace.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">COMPARISON.</div>
-
-<p>Thus I have attempted to give an outline of the opinions which
-divided the English Christendom of the latter half of the seventeenth
-century. In citing passages from various authors I am fully aware how
-fallacious quotations are when taken by themselves; at the best they
-are insufficient for the formation of a judgment. The old illustration
-of a brick taken out of a house as a specimen of the structure scarcely
-applies to the subject; yet no judicious student of literature will
-rely upon passages extracted from an author, detached from their
-connection and separated from the leading idea and spirit of his work.
-Those which are employed in these pages have been chosen on account of
-their being not mere blocks lying upon the surface, but the croppings
-up of characteristic strata, penetrating deeply, and spreading far
-beneath the surface of the ground upon which they appear.</p>
-
-<p>How do we acquire a correct knowledge of the opinions of the Fathers?
-Not by looking at quotations alone, but by analyzing their writings,
-by tracing out their trains of thought, by measuring the space which
-they devote to particular topics, by arranging together their favourite
-texts, by examining their references to tradition and the Church, as
-well as to Scripture, and by endeavouring to detect their sympathies
-and predilections; it is in the same way that I have endeavoured,
-not so well as I could wish, to read the Divines of the seventeenth
-century, and the result is such as the reader finds imperfectly stated
-in the pages of this volume.</p>
-
-<p>What was indicated at the beginning of our survey may, in other words,
-be expressed at the close. In the Anglican teaching we find what is
-doctrinal, what is ethical, and what is emotional; we see the orthodox<span class="pagenum" id="Page_450">[450]</span>
-dogmas of Christianity, the indisputable morals of Christianity, and
-the spiritual experience of Christianity; but these are introduced in
-different proportions, the third less than the second, perhaps the
-second less than the first. Yet not in any of these do we detect the
-characteristic stamp of Anglican sentiment so much as in the belief of
-one catholic Church preserving this truth, inculcating this morality,
-and cultivating this experience, and in the idea of an organized unity,
-with its ministers, sacraments, and ordinances, receiving, enjoying,
-and dispensing God’s gifts of grace. In the Latitudinarian teaching,
-there is not much which can be called experimental, there is more of
-what is theological, but the principal feature is undoubtedly moral.
-Quakerism has its exposition of dogmas and its enforcement of duties;
-it has its creed and its forms as have other systems of Christianity;
-but it is in its mystical element that we discover the key to unlock
-the secrets of its power. Puritanism has its Church organizations,
-Presbyterian, and Independent,&mdash;it has its moral teaching, for it is
-decidedly practical, yet in neither of these do we reach its most
-prominent distinction. That consists both in its doctrinal zeal, and
-in its experimental tone, and in the last more than the first; for the
-dogmatical difference between John Goodwin<a id="FNanchor_571" href="#Footnote_571" class="fnanchor">[571]</a> and Thomas Goodwin,
-between the Arminian and the Calvinist, seems lost when we ponder
-the fellowship of these souls in the same peculiar kind of emotional
-ardour, which glows with a coloured light, easily distinguishable from
-such fires as burn in Anglican, in Latitudinarian, or in Mystic lamps
-before the altar of the one God, in the one temple of His redeemed
-Church.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_451">[451]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXI.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Doctrinal, expository, and homiletic literatures exhibit the divergent
-theological opinions of Christian men; but psalms, hymns and spiritual
-songs reveal the sensibilities of the devout, as they converge towards
-the common centre of all religious trust and hope and love. More of
-unity is possible in the worship of praise than in any other kind of
-worship. What on one side is deemed superstition, what on another is
-regarded as sectarianism, may sometimes taint the expression of pious
-thought and feeling in verse; but an immense number of compositions
-in English hymnology are altogether free from defects of either of
-these kinds, and are fitted to convey, with propriety, the sentiments
-of people who differ widely from each other whenever they enter the
-region of polemics. Broad Church and Low Church, the Anglican, the
-Evangelical, and the Nonconformist, on some occasions find it easy to
-combine in the service of song, and to adopt with common joy and love,
-the same strains of sweetness and purity which form a consentaneous
-<i>Cardiphonia</i>, a blended utterance of many hearts.<a id="FNanchor_572" href="#Footnote_572" class="fnanchor">[572]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_452">[452]</span></p>
-
-<p>Before approaching the subject of hymnology proper, a few words may
-be introduced in relation to a kind of poetry which closely resembles
-it. It would be foreign to my purpose to say anything critical of the
-grand religious epics of John Milton, known by every one: they belong
-to the realms of imagination, and scarcely come, except in some of
-the songs which they include, within those precincts of Christian
-affection where the humble hymn-writer makes his home. Nor can I
-take up Joseph Beaumont’s <i>Pysche or Love’s Mystery, displaying
-the intercourse betwixt Christ and the Soul</i>, which was published
-in 1648, and is known by very few; since its length, extending to
-40,000 lines, baffles all attempts at description, and its blending
-of Pagan fables with Bible facts, often takes it out of the circle of
-religious poetry altogether. Benlowes’ poem, entitled <i>Theophila, or
-Love’s Sacrifice</i>, published in 1652, is of a different character:
-his verses come more within the range of modern sympathies, whilst
-their quaintness of style leave no doubt as to the age in which they
-were written. Such compositions can scarcely be called devotional;
-but verses flowed from certain pens, at the time I speak of, which,
-although not meant for public or private worship, did very charmingly
-embody the aspirations of Christian men. Some of them, it is true, had
-a tinge of peculiarity, derived from ecclesiastical or theological
-preferences, but the general stamp of these compositions was such as
-to commend them to many outside the circle to which they particularly
-belonged. For instance: Richard Crashaw, a clergyman, who had been
-Master of the Temple, and who died in 1652, wrote <i>An Ode prefixed to
-a Prayer Book</i>, in which, imbued with an Anglican admiration of that
-volume, he beautifully says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_453">[453]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“It is an armory of light,</div>
- <div>Let constant use but keep it bright,</div>
- <div class="i1">You’ll find it yields</div>
- <div>To holy hands and humble hearts,</div>
- <div class="i1">More swords and shields</div>
- <div>Than sin hath snares, or hell hath darts.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">Only be sure,</div>
- <div class="i1">The hands are pure,</div>
- <div>That hold these weapons, and the eyes,</div>
- <div>Those of Christians, meek, and true,</div>
- <div class="i1">Wakeful, wise;</div>
- <div>Here is a friend shall fight for you;</div>
- <div>Hold but this book before your heart,</div>
- <div>Let prayer alone to play its part.</div>
- <div class="i1">O, but the heart</div>
- <div>That studies this high art,</div>
- <div>Must be a sure housekeeper,</div>
- <div class="i1">And yet no sleeper.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">Of all this store</div>
- <div>Of blessings, and ten thousand more,</div>
- <div>(If, when He come</div>
- <div>He find the heart from home),</div>
- <div class="i1">Doubtless He will unload</div>
- <div>Himself some other where,</div>
- <div class="i1">And pour abroad</div>
- <div class="i1">His precious things</div>
- <div>On the fair soul whom first He meets,</div>
- <div>And light around him with His wings.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>When the Anglican wrote these words, such of them as express admiration
-of the Common Prayer would not command the sympathy of certain
-Puritans; other Puritans, however, with a measure of qualification,
-could share in that sympathy; and all, one would think, might enter
-cordially into such feelings, as are expressed, generally, by the
-largest portion of the Ode, in reference to the pleasures and duties of
-devotion.</p>
-
-<p>Whatever there might be restrictive of sympathy under one form in
-the verses from which I have just<span class="pagenum" id="Page_454">[454]</span> made a selection, nothing of the
-kind, under any form, can be found to exist in Henry More’s <i>Sonnet
-on Religion</i>; for that exhibits the widest breadth of Christian
-fellowship, and embraces within the range of its regards the devout
-members of all communities. The Anglican and the Evangelical, the
-Broad Churchman and the Mystic, might consistently adopt the following
-sentiment:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“The true religion sprung from God above,</div>
- <div>Is like her fountain&mdash;full of charity;</div>
- <div>Embracing all things with a tender love,</div>
- <div>Full of good will, and meek expectancy;</div>
- <div>Full of true justice and sure verity,</div>
- <div>In heart and voice; free, large, even infinite;</div>
- <div class="i1">Not wedged in straight particularity,</div>
- <div class="i1">But grasping all in her vast active sprite&mdash;</div>
- <div>Bright Lamp of God, that men would joy in</div>
- <div class="i8h">Thy pure light.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>More died in 1687. The same year Edmund Waller passed away, singing
-the following lines, which complete and crown his <i>Divine Poems</i>;
-lines which indicate faith in the life and immortality brought to light
-by the Gospel, and which convey aspirations breathed by Christians of
-every Church and creed:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“The seas are quiet when the winds are o’er;</div>
- <div>So calm are we when passions are no more:</div>
- <div>For then we know how vain it was to boast</div>
- <div>Of fleeting things, so certain to be lost.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Clouds of affection from our younger eyes</div>
- <div>Conceal that emptiness which age descries:</div>
- <div>The soul’s dark cottage, battered and decayed,</div>
- <div>Lets in new lights through chinks that time has made.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Stronger by weakness, wiser, men become,</div>
- <div>As they draw nearer to their eternal home,</div>
- <div>Leaving the old, both worlds at once they view,</div>
- <div>That stand upon the threshold of the new.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_455">[455]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
-<p>Francis Quarles had a place assigned him in the <i>Dunciad</i>, by
-Alexander Pope, but is by Campbell admitted into “the laurelled
-fraternity,” and has lately recovered somewhat of his original renown.
-He wrote a paraphrase of the Book of Ecclesiastes, which was published
-in 1645, just after his death, but the <i>Emblems</i>, for which he is
-still so celebrated, appeared as early as 1635; and, although earlier
-than our period, may be noticed here in passing, because they seem
-to have been largely read for fifty years, or so, after their first
-publication. They strikingly reflect the poetical taste, most popular,
-under the Commonwealth, and amongst a large number of religious
-people for some time afterwards. Quarles furnishes an example of the
-combination of pictorial devices with the printed text. He tells his
-readers at the outset, “Before the knowledge of letters, God was known
-by hieroglyphics,” and then asks, “Indeed, what are the heavens, the
-earth, nay every creature, but hieroglyphics and emblems of His glory?”</p>
-
-<p>Leaving this border land of religious poetry&mdash;which, although in the
-seventeenth century large in itself, appears small in comparison with
-religious prose, and, for the most part, inferior in its literary
-pretensions&mdash;we enter the province of hymnology proper, where we
-find much to interest us. Yet here we must remember, that within the
-era prescribed in these chapters, we do not reach what may be called
-the land of Beulah in the regions of English sacred song. Before we
-can approach that region, we must pass over another half century.
-The position of hymnology in the history of our literature since the
-Reformation is a little remarkable. Hymnology was late before it
-appeared in any thing like vigorous efflorescence, and in this respect
-it exhibits a contrast to what we notice with regard to poetical
-literature in earlier times and other<span class="pagenum" id="Page_456">[456]</span> respects. Poetry came before
-philosophy in Greece. Homer composed his Iliad and Odyssey long ere
-Plato wrote his Dialogues. Something of the same order meets us in
-the succession of authorship when we turn to the Biblical and sacred
-literature of our own country in the middle ages. Versification rose
-into life much earlier than prose. Between the metrical paraphrase
-of Scripture by Cædmon, the Whitby monk, and the theology of the
-Anglo-Norman schoolmen, five centuries elapsed; the prose translations
-and treatises of Wycliffe came two centuries later still. Romantic and
-dramatic poetry took the lead at the close of the sixteenth century.
-Spencer and Shakespere are a little in advance of Raleigh and Bacon.
-But when we look at our religious literature since the Reformation,
-we notice an inversion of such order. The Church under Elizabeth and
-the earlier Stuarts produced prose theology in abundance, some of it
-of a high order; but it yielded comparatively few verses strictly
-religious. The Augustan age of divinity is comparatively poor in the
-hymnal department, poorer in quality than it is in quantity. When,
-however, doctrinal divinity had declined in the eighteenth century, and
-the most intellectual theologians were those who defended the outworks
-of Christian evidence, and no such men as Thorndike, Bull and Pearson
-appeared among Churchmen; and no Divines equal to Owen, Baxter, and
-Howe could be found in the ranks of Nonconformity,&mdash;hymn-writers arose
-in greater numbers, and with sweeter notes, than at any earlier season.
-We must not anticipate them, but confine ourselves to the scanty
-collections of psalms and hymns contributed between the commencement of
-the Civil Wars and the epoch of the Revolution.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
-<p>First we shall glance at books simply intended for use<span class="pagenum" id="Page_457">[457]</span> in public
-worship. New versions of the Psalms were early prepared by Rous and
-Barton&mdash;the first was published in 1641, the second in 1644. The
-Psalter, with titles and collects, attributed to Jeremy Taylor,
-appeared in the same year, and afterwards ran through several editions.
-“The Psalms of David from the New Translation of the Bible, turned into
-metre by Henry King,” Bishop of Chichester between 1641 and 1669&mdash;James
-I.’s “king of preachers,” and who to his fame as a preacher added some
-reputation as a poet&mdash;issued from the press under the Commonwealth,
-in 1651 or 1654. In the following year, the Rev. John White published
-“David’s Psalms in metre, agreeable to the Hebrew;” and it may be
-mentioned, as an indication of the alliance of instrumental music with
-psalmody under the Protectorate, that on the 22nd of November, 1655,
-according to a printed quarto sheet still in existence, there were
-select Psalms of a new translation, arranged to be “sung in verse, and
-chorus, of five parts, with symphonies of violins, organ, and other
-instruments.” The Psalms were paraphrased and turned into English
-verse by Thomas Garthwaite in 1664, by Dr. Samuel Woodford in 1667,
-and by Miles Smyth in 1668. In 1671 there came out “Psalms and Hymns,
-in solemn music, in four parts, on the common tunes to Psalms in metre
-used in parish churches, by John Playford;” and in 1679, “A Century
-of Select Psalms in verse, for the use of the Charter House, by Dr.
-John Patrick.” J. Chamberlayne Gent, Richard Goodridge, and Simon Ford
-added, before the Revolution, volumes of paraphrases; and in the year
-of that great event, we find another volume, bearing the title of
-“The whole Book of Psalms, as they are now sung in the churches, with
-the singing notes of time and tune to every syllable, never before
-done in England, by T. M.”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_458">[458]</span> These are the principal, if not all the
-Psalm-books, produced from the opening of the Commonwealth to the
-legal establishment of toleration. Public worship was, from the time
-of passing the Act of Uniformity, until its modification under William
-III., forbidden by constitutional law to be celebrated anywhere but in
-the churches and chapels of the Establishment; and therefore it was for
-them expressly, and for them alone, that the various translations and
-editions of the Psalter were designed. Specimens of these productions
-need not be given, as they are more or less close and unpoetical
-renderings in rhyme of the Book of Psalms.</p>
-
-<p>Besides these publications, translations of particular Psalms appeared
-in detached forms. John Milton translated several. Some, indeed, are
-only classical renderings of the thoughts contained in those sacred
-compositions; but under date April, 1648, we find, under his hand,
-“Nine of the Psalms, done into metre, wherein all, but what is in
-a different character, are the very words of the text, translated
-from the original.” This method of versification put such chains on
-the wings of poetry that it was impossible for it to do otherwise
-than stretch them with awkwardness; yet, notwithstanding such an
-incumbrance, there may be noticed a few movements in the bard’s verses
-which are free and graceful. The paraphrase of the 136th Psalm, which
-he wrote in his fifteenth year, contains strokes of magnificent
-diction, and expresses adoration and praise in some of its very highest
-strains. Milton, as a boy, there struck a key-note which must lead off
-a chorus of Divine music wherever it is heard:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Let us, with a gladsome mind,</div>
- <div>Praise the Lord, for He is kind;</div>
- <div>For His mercies aye endure,</div>
- <div>Ever faithful, ever sure.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_459">[459]</span></div>
- <div>Who by His wisdom did create</div>
- <div>The painted heavens, so full of state;</div>
- <div>Who did the solid earth ordain</div>
- <div>To rise above the watery plain;</div>
- <div>Who, by His all-commanding might,</div>
- <div>Did fill the new-made world with light,</div>
- <div>And caused the golden-tressed sun</div>
- <div>All the day long his course to run.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
-<p>Paraphrases of the Psalms were attempted by distinguished poets who
-rarely touched on sacred themes. John Oldham, for example, who died in
-1683, composed a number of elaborate lines upon the 137th Psalm, but
-they contain as little of devotion as they do of harmony and rhythm. I
-am not aware that Dryden clothed any of the Psalms in English numbers,
-but he translated the <i>Te Deum</i>, and wrote a hymn for St. John’s
-Eve. These pieces are little known, and scarcely strike the chords of
-devotion; but there is a rich, full, Divine spirit in his rendering of
-the <i>Veni Creator Spiritus</i>, such as floods the soul with heavenly
-desires:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Creator Spirit, by whose aid</div>
- <div>The world’s foundations first were laid,</div>
- <div>Come visit every pious mind;</div>
- <div>Come pour Thy joys on human kind;</div>
- <div>From sin and sorrow set us free,</div>
- <div>And make Thy temples worthy Thee.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>George Wither, the Puritan poet, who died in 1667, wrote hymns and
-songs of the Church; and amongst translations of the Lord’s Prayer,
-perhaps there never was one so compact, and so closely adhering to the
-original, as his:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Our Father, which in heaven art,</div>
- <div class="i1">We sanctify Thy name;</div>
- <div>Thy kingdom come; Thy will be done,</div>
- <div class="i1">In heaven and earth the same:<span class="pagenum" id="Page_460">[460]</span></div>
- <div>Give us this day our daily bread;</div>
- <div class="i1">And us forgive Thou so,</div>
- <div>As we, on them that us offend,</div>
- <div class="i1">Forgiveness do bestow.</div>
- <div>Into temptation lead us not,</div>
- <div class="i1">But us from evil free:</div>
- <div>For Thine the kingdom, power, and praise,</div>
- <div class="i1">Is, and shall ever be.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>I proceed now to notice a few original productions. Jeremy Taylor wrote
-hymns, which he describes as “celebrating the mysteries and chief
-festivals of the year, according to the manner of the ancient Church;
-fitted to the fancy and devotion of the younger and pious persons: apt
-for memory, and to be joined to their other prayers.” In much of his
-poetry we miss the exquisite rhythm of his prose; nor can there be said
-to be in it much of that Divine power, or that human pathos, which
-kindles devotion in Christian bosoms. The first hymn for Christmas Day
-is perhaps the best of all:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Mysterious truth! that the self-same should be</div>
- <div>A Lamb, a Shepherd, and a Lion too!</div>
- <div class="i3">Yet such was He</div>
- <div class="i2">Whom first the shepherds knew,</div>
- <div class="i2">When they themselves became</div>
- <div class="i2">Sheep to the Shepherd-Lamb.</div>
- <div>Shepherd of men and angels,&mdash;Lamb of God,</div>
- <div>Lion of Judah,&mdash;by these titles keep</div>
- <div>The wolf from Thy endangered sheep.</div>
- <div class="i1">Bring all the world into Thy fold;</div>
- <div class="i1">Let Jews and Gentiles hither come</div>
- <div class="i1">In numbers great, that can’t be told;</div>
- <div class="i1">And call Thy lambs, that wander, home.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>These lines are thrown into a form which partakes of the nature of
-an ode more than that of a hymn: certainly they are altogether unfit
-for Divine worship, and the same remark may be made of all the verses
-printed in Taylor’s works.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_461">[461]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
-<p>Robert Herrick, who comes within our range of time&mdash;for he died about
-1674&mdash;wrote a beautiful litany to the Holy Spirit, which bears a
-lyrical character suitable for psalmody, and contains the following
-earnest cries:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“In the hour of my distress,</div>
- <div>When temptations me oppress,</div>
- <div>And when I my sins confess,</div>
- <div class="i3">Sweet Spirit, comfort me!</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>When I lie within my bed,</div>
- <div>Sick in heart and sick in head,</div>
- <div>And with doubts discomforted,</div>
- <div class="i3">Sweet Spirit, comfort me!</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>When the house doth sigh and weep,</div>
- <div>And the world is drown’d in sleep,</div>
- <div>Yet mine eyes the watch do keep,</div>
- <div class="i3">Sweet Spirit, comfort me!</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>When, God knows, I’m tost about,</div>
- <div>Either with despair, or doubt,</div>
- <div>Yet before the glass be out,</div>
- <div class="i3">Sweet Spirit, comfort me!</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>When the judgment is reveal’d,</div>
- <div>And that open’d which was seal’d,</div>
- <div>When to Thee I have appeal’d,</div>
- <div class="i3">Sweet Spirit, comfort me!”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>Although Richard Baxter has been always so renowned as a prose writer,
-his poetry was for a long time neglected; but of late one of his
-lyrical compositions has obtained a very extensive popularity. There
-is in it a quaint beauty, which evokes our admiration of the author’s
-piety, beyond the praise which we bestow upon the freshness and
-originality of his mind. It is a specimen of that devout confidence
-in God which so thoroughly inspired the best religiousness of the
-seventeenth century; it furnishes an incentive to pure and hallowed
-affections,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_462">[462]</span> in every bosom, and it possesses some of the best
-qualities of a Christian hymn:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Lord, it belongs not to my care,</div>
- <div class="i1">Whether I die or live:</div>
- <div>To live and serve Thee is my share,</div>
- <div class="i1">And this Thy grace must give.</div>
- <div>If life be long, I will be glad</div>
- <div class="i1">That I may long obey:</div>
- <div>If short, yet why should I be sad,</div>
- <div class="i1">That shall have the same pay?</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>If death shall bruise this springing seed,</div>
- <div class="i1">Before it comes to fruit,</div>
- <div>The will with Thee goes for the deed,</div>
- <div class="i1">Thy life was in the root.</div>
- <div>Long life is a long grief and toil,</div>
- <div class="i1">And multiplieth faults:</div>
- <div>In long wars he may have the foil,</div>
- <div class="i1">That ’scapes in short assaults.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Christ leads me through no darker rooms</div>
- <div class="i1">Than He went through before;</div>
- <div>He that unto God’s kingdom comes,</div>
- <div class="i1">Must enter by this door.</div>
- <div>Come, Lord! when grace has made me meet</div>
- <div class="i1">Thy blessed face to see;</div>
- <div>For if Thy work on earth be sweet,</div>
- <div class="i1">What must Thy glory be?</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Then shall I end my sad complaints,</div>
- <div class="i1">And weary, sinful days;</div>
- <div>And join with the triumphant saints,</div>
- <div class="i1">That sing Jehovah’s praise.</div>
- <div>My knowledge of that life is small,</div>
- <div class="i1">The eye of faith is dim;</div>
- <div>But ’tis enough that Christ knows all,</div>
- <div class="i1">And I shall be with Him.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
-<p>John Mason, who died in 1694&mdash;father of him who wrote the <i>Treatise
-on Self-Knowledge</i>&mdash;was a very superior hymnologist. Between the
-verses just quoted from Richard Baxter, and the following, taken from
-a hymn by Mason,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_463">[463]</span> entitled <i>Surely I come quickly</i>, there is a
-remarkable resemblance:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“And dost Thou <i>come</i>, my dearest Lord?</div>
- <div class="i1">And dost Thou <i>surely</i> come?</div>
- <div>And dost Thou <i>surely quickly</i> come?</div>
- <div class="i1">Methinks I am at home!</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>My Jesus is gone up to heaven</div>
- <div class="i1">To get a place for me;</div>
- <div>For ’tis His will that where He is,</div>
- <div class="i1">There should His servants be.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Canaan I view from Pisgah’s top,</div>
- <div class="i1">Of Canaan’s grapes I taste;</div>
- <div>My Lord, who sends unto me here,</div>
- <div class="i1">Will send for me at last.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>I have a God that changeth not,</div>
- <div class="i1">Why should I be perplext?</div>
- <div>My God, that owns me in this world,</div>
- <div class="i1">Will own me in the next.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Go fearless, then, my soul, with God</div>
- <div class="i1">Into another room:</div>
- <div>Thou, who hast walked with Him here,</div>
- <div class="i1">Go, see thy God at home.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>Flourishing between the age of Quarles and Watts, Mason attained a
-style which is described by Montgomery as “a middle tint between the
-raw colouring of the former and the daylight tint of the latter. His
-talent is equally poised between both, having more vigour and more
-versatility than that of either his forerunner or his successor.”<a id="FNanchor_573" href="#Footnote_573" class="fnanchor">[573]</a>
-His merit as a hymn-writer&mdash;extraordinary for the age in which he
-lived&mdash;seems to have been appreciated by Pope, Watts, and the Wesleys,
-who studied and copied him; but he was much neglected for a long time,
-to be reinstated in popular favour of late years.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_464">[464]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mason’s <i>Song of Praise for the Evening</i> is now well known, but,
-in its modern form, we miss the middle stanza of the original:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“Now from the altar of my heart</div>
- <div class="i1">Let incense-flames arise:</div>
- <div>Assist me, Lord, to offer up</div>
- <div class="i1">Mine evening sacrifice.</div>
- <div>Awake, my love; awake, my joy;</div>
- <div class="i1">Awake, my heart and tongue;</div>
- <div>Sleep not when mercies loudly call,</div>
- <div class="i1">Break forth into a song.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Man’s life’s a book of history;</div>
- <div class="i1">The leaves thereof are days;</div>
- <div>The letters mercies closely joined;</div>
- <div class="i1">The title is Thy praise.</div>
- <div>This day God was my Sun and Shield,</div>
- <div class="i1">My Keeper and my Guide;</div>
- <div>His care was on my frailty shewn,</div>
- <div class="i1">His mercies multiply’d.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Minutes and mercies multiply’d</div>
- <div class="i1">Have made up all this day:</div>
- <div>Minutes came quick; but mercies were</div>
- <div class="i1">More fleet and free than they.</div>
- <div>New time, new favour, and new joys,</div>
- <div class="i1">Do a new song require:</div>
- <div>Till I shall praise Thee as I would,</div>
- <div class="i1">Accept my heart’s desire.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
-<p>Amongst the anonymous poetry of that period there is a hymn of the
-sacred ballad type, so singularly touching to my mind, so expressive
-of that admiration of Christ which lies at the heart of all Christian
-piety, and so much less known than it ought to be, that I venture to
-introduce several of its stanzas:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ih">“There was a King of old,</div>
- <div class="i1">That did in Jewry dwell;</div>
- <div>Whether a God, or Man, or both,</div>
- <div class="i1">I’m sure I love Him well.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_465">[465]</span></div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">Love Him! why, who doth not?</div>
- <div class="i1">Did ever any wight</div>
- <div>Not goodness, beauty, sweetness, love&mdash;</div>
- <div class="i1">Not comfort, love, and light?</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">None ever did, or can;</div>
- <div class="i1">But here’s the cause alone</div>
- <div>Why He of all few lovers finds,</div>
- <div class="i1">Because He is not known.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">There are so many fair,</div>
- <div class="i1">He’s lost among the throng;</div>
- <div>Yet they that seek Him nowhere else</div>
- <div class="i1">May find Him in a song.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">This God, Man, King, and Priest</div>
- <div class="i1">Almighty was, yet meek:</div>
- <div>He was most just, yet merciful;</div>
- <div class="i1">The guilty did Him seek.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">He never any failed</div>
- <div class="i1">That sought Him in their need:</div>
- <div>He never quenched the smoking flax,</div>
- <div class="i1">Nor brake the bruised reed.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">He was the truest Friend</div>
- <div class="i1">That ever any tried,</div>
- <div>For whom He loved He never left,</div>
- <div class="i1">For them He lived and died.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">And if you’d know the folk</div>
- <div class="i1">That brought Him to His end,</div>
- <div>Read but His title&mdash;you shall find</div>
- <div class="i1">Him styled the sinner’s Friend.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">His life all wonder was,</div>
- <div class="i1">But here’s a wonder more,</div>
- <div>That He, who was all life and love,</div>
- <div class="i1">Should be beloved no more.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i1">I’ll love Him while I live;</div>
- <div class="i1">To those that be His foes,</div>
- <div>Though I them hate, I’ll wish no worse</div>
- <div class="i1">Than His dear love to lose.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>Benjamin Keach, the author of <i>Tropologia; a Key to open Scripture
-Metaphors and Types</i>, was a zealous hymnologist. This Baptist
-minister vindicated the practice of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_466">[466]</span> singing against the objections
-of some of his brethren, in a curious book printed in 1661 under the
-title of <i>Breach repaired in good Worship, or singing Psalms proved
-to be an Ordinance of Christ</i>. Having written <i>The Glorious
-Lover, a Divine Poem</i>, in 1679, he published, in 1691, a volume
-entitled <i>Spiritual Melody</i>, containing “Psalms and Hymns from
-the Old and New Testament,” and also <i>The Bread revived in God’s
-Worship, or singing of Psalms, Hymns, and Spiritual Songs proved to be
-an Holy Ordinance</i>. These were followed, in 1696, by <i>The Feast
-of Fat Things full of Marrow</i>. In referring to hymns of this date,
-however, we pass over our boundary line, yet, if I may trespass so far,
-I would select a copy of verses composed by Keach as a specimen of
-the extraordinary doggerel which he considered fit for congregational
-worship. It is not to be taken as a specimen of the worship which was
-actually celebrated in Nonconformist chapels before the Revolution;
-for Keach’s book, as it appears from what I have just said, was
-not published until afterwards, and the state of psalmody amongst
-Dissenters must be reserved for future consideration. It, however,
-indicates a certain taste, or a want of taste altogether, which in some
-quarters might be found during the period covered by our present survey.</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">“If saints, O Lord, do season all</div>
- <div class="i1">Amongst whom they do live,</div>
- <div>Salt all with grace, both great and small,</div>
- <div class="i1">They may sweet relish give.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>And, blessed be Thy glorious name!</div>
- <div class="i1">In England salt is found,</div>
- <div>Some savoury souls who do proclaim</div>
- <div class="i1">Thy grace, which doth abound.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>But O the want of salt, O Lord!</div>
- <div class="i1">How few are salted well!</div>
- <div>How few are like to salt indeed!</div>
- <div class="i1">Salt Thou Thy Israel!<span class="pagenum" id="Page_467">[467]</span></div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>Now sing, ye saints who are this salt,</div>
- <div class="i1">And let all seasoned be</div>
- <div>With your most holy gracious lives;</div>
- <div class="i1">Great need of it we see.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div>The earth will else corrupt and stink;</div>
- <div class="i1">O salt it well, therefore,</div>
- <div>And live to Him that salted you,</div>
- <div class="i1">And sing for evermore.”</div>
- </div>
-
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">POETRY.</div>
-
-<p>Certainly this is not one of the hymns fitted to convey the devotion
-of the united Church; but I suppose we must take it for granted, that
-there existed people, at the time when it was written, who could sing
-it with gravity. It is impossible to mark absolutely the point of
-separation between what demands some respect, if it do not inspire
-reverence, from that which excites ridicule, and even contempt. So much
-depends upon education, association, and habit, in religious matters,
-that we may here truly apply the adage of one man’s meat being another
-man’s poison. People who laugh at Keach’s metaphors and hymns perhaps
-indulge in forms of worship which appear excessively ludicrous to
-religionists of his order. The devoutness of some people may feed on
-aliment which would produce only revulsion in others; and let us hope
-that the good folks who were taught to conduct services of song after
-this very peculiar fashion could nevertheless make melody in their
-hearts unto the Lord. At all events, Keach’s <i>Saints the Salt of the
-Earth</i> is a specimen of one kind of hymnology which the seventeenth
-century produced.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_468">[468]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">We have completed the circle of theological schools. Many illustrations
-of religious character and experience growing out of the principles
-now explained, or rather, in some cases, producing sympathy with them,
-have been already exhibited. To give completeness to the task I have
-undertaken, it is desirable that there should be added some other
-biographical illustrations, and that they should be brought together in
-immediate connection with the forms of opinion to which they belong.</p>
-
-<p>I may again begin with the Anglicans, and as the examples of the class
-hitherto have been clerical, I shall now select examples from the laity.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">ISAAK WALTON.</div>
-
-<p>Isaak Walton deserves to be taken first. Disliking “the active
-Romanists,” averse, perhaps still more, to the “restless
-Nonconformists,” he would rank himself as “one of the passive and
-peaceable Protestants;” but the Anglican tincture of his Protestantism
-is visible in the whole of his writings. Without giving to the
-world any theological treatise, or entering into any ecclesiastical
-controversy, he has diffused his religious sentiments with singular
-sweetness and purity over his works, so as to leave no doubt respecting
-their distinctive colour. How far the influence of his parentage and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_469">[469]</span>
-education might contribute to the formation of his character we do not
-know; but no doubt the natural bent of his mind, his taste for quiet
-contemplation, his reverence for antiquity, his disposition to submit
-to authority, his faculty of imagination, and his taste for music, had
-prepared him for those paths of faith and worship in which, through a
-long life, he loved to walk. In addition to this, we should remember
-his early, as well as his later friendships, with certain distinguished
-members of the Anglican communion.</p>
-
-<p>In his Elegy on Dr. Donne, he exclaims&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i6">“Oh do not call</div>
- <div>Grief back by thinking on his funeral,</div>
- <div>Forget he loved me&mdash;</div>
- <div>Forget his <i>powerful preaching</i>, and forget</div>
- <div>I am his <i>convert</i>:”&mdash;</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p class="p-left">words which indicate the writer’s spiritual obligation to
-that eminent orator. Walton’s marriage with his first wife brought him
-into “happy affinity” with the descendants of Archbishop Cranmer; and
-to this circumstance is attributed the origin of Walton’s <i>Life of
-Hooker</i>. The marriage with his second wife&mdash;half-sister to Bishop
-Ken&mdash;placed him, in his latter days, upon intimate terms with that
-holy prelate. Morley, Sanderson, and King were amongst his endeared
-associates.</p>
-
-<p>Walton’s <i>Lives</i> give us glimpses of himself: for he is one of
-those artists who introduce their own portrait in a corner of their
-pictures. Of all his heroes, Bishop Sanderson was the man respecting
-whom he knew most; and, at the close of his memoir, Walton touchingly
-reveals his own spiritual aspiration:&mdash;“’Tis now too late to wish that
-my <i>life</i> may be like his, for I am in the eighty-fifth year of my
-age; but I humbly beseech Almighty God, that my <i>death</i> may; and
-do as earnestly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_470">[470]</span> beg of every reader to say, Amen.&mdash;‘Blessed is the man
-in whose spirit there is no guile.’” (Psalm xxxii. 2.)</p>
-
-<p>His <i>Complete Angler, or the Contemplative Man’s Recreation</i>,
-is a mirror of his life. His moral and religious sympathies are seen
-gleaming over his pages from beginning to end; and as the revelation
-of an inner life, the first part by himself should be compared with
-the second part by Cotton; we see at once that he was not born to be a
-reformer, that he was not one of those who can grapple with falsehood
-and corruption, and that if all had resembled him, England’s destiny
-would have been humiliating indeed,&mdash;we feel that in his case absence
-from any active part in the controversies of his time, can be regarded
-neither as a virtue nor as a vice, neither as censurable nor as
-admirable, but simply as the operation of a natural tendency.</p>
-
-<p>Being what he was, he loved the quiet nooks and corners of human
-experience and interest, and in every place manifested purity,
-gentleness, meekness, and charity; as he wandered along the banks
-of the Lea, or sat in the fishing house beside the Dove, Scripture
-thoughts, like flowers, bright and sweet, entwined about the
-trellis-work of his cherished recreations; sacred thoughts, of the
-quaintest kind, gathered round his rod, and his fish-hooks, and that
-“most honest, ingenuous, quiet, and harmless art of angling.” “Evil
-communications, which corrupt good manners,” filled him with sadness.
-“Such discourse,” he observes, in one of his walks, “as we heard last
-night, it infects others, the very boys will learn to talk and swear
-as they heard mine host, and another of the company that shall be
-nameless; I am sorry the other is a gentleman, for less religion will
-not save their souls than a beggar’s; I think more will be required at
-the last great day.” He counted every misery he missed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_471">[471]</span> a new mercy,
-was thankful for health, competence, and a quiet conscience, and dwelt,
-with sympathetic joy, on the character of the meek man who has no
-“turbulent, repining, or vexatious thoughts,” who possesses what he has
-“with such a quietness as makes his very dreams pleasing both to God
-and himself.” “When,” he says in another place, “I would beget content,
-and increase confidence in the power, and wisdom, and providence of
-Almighty God, I will walk the meadows of some gliding stream, and there
-contemplate the lilies that take no care, and those very many other
-various little living creatures, that are not only created, but fed,
-man knows not how, by the goodness of the God of nature, and therefore
-trust in Him. This is my purpose, and so ‘let everything that hath
-breath praise the Lord;’ and let the blessing of St. Peter’s Master be
-with mine.”</p>
-
-<p>Walton, at his death&mdash;amidst the great frost of 1683&mdash;could not but
-enter that world of perfect harmony to which his thoughts and desires
-had so often ascended as he listened to the nightingale. “He that at
-midnight, when the very labourer sleeps securely, should hear, as I
-have very often, the clear airs, the sweet descants, the natural rising
-and falling, the doubling and redoubling of her voice, might well be
-lifted above earth, and say; Lord, what music hast thou provided for
-the saints in Heaven, when thou affordest bad men such music on earth?”
-We now turn to another and somewhat different type of the same school.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN EVELYN.</div>
-
-<p>John Evelyn lost his mother when he had reached his fifteenth year;
-and her beautiful memory, as of one “whose constitution inclined to a
-religious melancholy, or pious sadness,” seemed to have remained with
-him all his days, giving that plaintiveness to his piety, which, as a
-richly-coloured thread, appears interwoven with the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_472">[472]</span> brightest joys
-of his calm yet active life. He records her death with reverential
-affection, and how she summoned her children around her, and expressed
-herself in a manner so heavenly, with instructions so pious and
-Christian, as made them strangely sensible of the extraordinary loss
-then becoming imminent:&mdash;after which, she gave to each a ring, with
-her blessing. Evelyn lost his father at twenty-one; and again he
-minutely relates the tale of his sorrow, how, at night, they followed
-the mourning hearse to the church at Wotton, where, after a sermon and
-funeral oration by the minister, the ashes of the husband were mingled
-with those of the wife. “Thus,” he adds, “we were bereft of both our
-parents, in a period when we<a id="FNanchor_574" href="#Footnote_574" class="fnanchor">[574]</a> most of all stood in need of their
-counsel and assistance, especially myself, of a raw, vain, uncertain,
-and very unwary inclination; but so it pleased God to make trial of my
-conduct in a conjuncture of the greatest and most prodigious hazard
-that ever the youth of England saw; and, if I did not, amidst all this,
-impeach my liberty nor my virtue with the rest who made shipwreck of
-both, it was more the infinite goodness and mercy of God, than the
-least providence or discretion of mine own, who now thought of nothing
-but the pursuit of vanity, and the confused imaginations of young
-men.”<a id="FNanchor_575" href="#Footnote_575" class="fnanchor">[575]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN EVELYN.</div>
-
-<p>The mercy of Providence, the truths of Christianity, and the grace of
-the Holy Spirit, kept him amidst his extensive travels, amidst his
-intercourse with men of different countries and classes, and especially
-amidst the temptations of fashionable society at a period when such
-as frequented courts were commonly addicted to vice. Notwithstanding
-the great moral peril to which Evelyn stood exposed, he preserved a
-pure mind and a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_473">[473]</span> virtuous reputation. He loved the Episcopal Church
-of England with a jealous affection,&mdash;finding in her liturgy what
-was congenial with his spiritual taste; deriving nourishment for
-his spiritual sensibilities from the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper
-administered according to her ritual; and, in short, living in the
-culture of those habits which are distinctive of Anglican piety.
-He did not, indeed, refuse to attend his parish church during the
-Commonwealth, and to hear a Presbyterian or Independent minister;
-but this proceeded from prudence rather than from sympathy. Evelyn’s
-Catholic feeling shrank from Puritanism; his charity leaned towards
-Roman Catholics. It is with regard to such that he says:&mdash;“For the
-rest we must commit to Providence the success of times and mitigation
-of proselytical fervours, having for my own particular a very great
-charity for all who sincerely adore the blessed Jesus, our common and
-dear Saviour, as being full of hope that God (however the present zeal
-of some, and the scandals taken by others at the instant [present]
-affliction of the Church of England may transport them), will at
-last compassionate our infirmities, clarify our judgments, and make
-abatement for our ignorances, superstructures, passions, and errors of
-corrupt times and interests, of which the Romish persuasion can no way
-acquit herself, whatever the present prosperity and secular polity may
-pretend. But God will make all things manifest in His own time, only
-let us possess ourselves in patience and charity. This will cover a
-multitude of imperfections.”<a id="FNanchor_576" href="#Footnote_576" class="fnanchor">[576]</a></p>
-
-<p>Like other persons of his cast of sentiment, like the nuns at Gidding
-eulogized by Isaak Walton and condemned by the Puritans, like the
-Anglican sisterhoods<span class="pagenum" id="Page_474">[474]</span> of the present day, Evelyn had a liking for a
-semi-monastic life; and in the year 1659, when affairs were unsettled
-in England, he proposed to Robert Boyle, an elaborate plan for an
-establishment of this description. There was to be a house erected
-in the midst of a tall wood, and “opposite to the house, towards the
-wood, should be erected a pretty chapel; and at equal distances, even
-within the flanking walls of the square, six apartments or cells
-for the members of the society, and not contiguous to the pavilion;
-each whereof should contain a small bedchamber, an outward room,
-a closet, and a private garden, somewhat after the manner of the
-Carthusians.”<a id="FNanchor_577" href="#Footnote_577" class="fnanchor">[577]</a> There was to be maintained at the public charge
-a “chaplain well qualified.” There were to be prayers in the chapel
-morning and evening; and a weekly fast and communion once every
-fortnight or month at least, with divers arrangements for study and
-recreations. The scheme came to nothing, but it shows the bent of its
-author’s inclinations. Whatever may be thought of them, one impression
-only can be justly derived from reading on the white marble, covering
-his tomb, in Wotton Church, the record of his death:&mdash;“He fell asleep
-the 27th day of February, 170⅚, being the 86th year of his age, in
-full hope of a glorious resurrection, through faith in Jesus Christ.
-Living in an age of extraordinary events and revolutions, he learnt (as
-himself asserted) this truth&mdash;which, pursuant to his intention, is here
-declared&mdash;‘<i>That all is vanity which is not honest, and that there is
-no solid wisdom but in real piety</i>.’”<a id="FNanchor_578" href="#Footnote_578" class="fnanchor">[578]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_475">[475]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN EVELYN.</div>
-
-<p>The cast of Evelyn’s religion is further illustrated in that of his
-friend Margaret Blagge,<a id="FNanchor_579" href="#Footnote_579" class="fnanchor">[579]</a> afterwards the wife of Sidney Godolphin.
-When he heard some distinguished persons speaking of her, he fancied
-she was “some airy thing that had more wit than discretion.” But,
-making a visit to Whitehall with his wife, he fell in with the youthful
-maid of honour, and “admired her temperance, and took especial notice,
-that, however wide or indifferent the subject of their discourse
-was amongst the rest, she would always direct it to some religious
-conclusion, and so temper and season her replies, as showed a gracious
-heart, and that she had a mind wholly taken up with heavenly thoughts.”
-Their acquaintance was ratified by a quaint solemnity; after a formal
-solicitation, that he would look upon her thenceforth as his child,
-she took a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_476">[476]</span> sheet of paper, upon which Evelyn had been carelessly
-sketching the shape of an altar, and wrote these words: “Be this
-a symbol of inviolable friendship: Margaret Blagge, 16th October,
-1672;” and underneath, “For my brother E&mdash;&mdash;.” Something of romance
-is visible in the singular attachment which this girl formed for her
-amiable and pious friend; and it issued in his guiding her affairs,
-in his increasing her wisdom, and in his ripening her piety. Never at
-home amidst the gaieties of Whitehall, Margaret, after seven years’
-experience, felt that she could no longer endure living at Court, and
-therefore earnestly sought, and at length, with difficulty, obtained
-Royal permission to retire. On a Sunday night, after most of the
-company were departed, Evelyn waited on her down to her chamber, which
-she had no sooner entered, than falling on her knees, she blessed God,
-as for a signal deliverance: “She was come,” she said, “out of Egypt,
-and was now in the way to the land of promise.” Tears trickled down
-her cheeks, “like the dew of flowers, making a lovely grief,” as she
-parted from one of the ladies who had a spirit kindred to her own. She
-found a home with Lady Berkeley, and what she especially sought, time
-for meditation and prayer; indeed the love of seclusion so increased,
-that she manifested a strong tinge of asceticism. Evelyn, in this
-respect more sober-minded, availed himself of his influence, and
-with success, to persuade her to renounce a celibate life, to which
-she seemed strongly disposed; and she came to see that union with a
-virtuous and religious person, would tend rather to promote than to
-retard her spiritual progress. Accordingly, she was married privately
-in the Temple Church, on the 16th of May, being Ascension Day, “both
-the blessed pair receiving the Holy Sacrament, and consecrating the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_477">[477]</span>
-solemnity with a double mystery;”<a id="FNanchor_580" href="#Footnote_580" class="fnanchor">[580]</a> but, in a letter written shortly
-after, she showed what continued to be the main bent of her mind. “I
-have this day,” she says, addressing Evelyn, “thought your thoughts,
-wished I dare say your wishes, which were, that I might every day sit
-looser and looser to the things of this world; discerning as every day
-I do, the folly and vanity of it; how short all its pleasures, how
-trifling all its recreations, how false most of its friendships, how
-transitory everything in it; and on the contrary, how sweet the service
-of God, how delightful the meditating on His Word, how pleasant the
-conversation of the faithful, and, above all, how charming prayer, how
-glorious our hopes, how gracious our God is to all His children, how
-gentle His corrections, and how frequently, by the first invitations of
-His Spirit, He calls us from our low designs to those great and noble
-ones of serving Him, and attaining eternal happiness.”<a id="FNanchor_581" href="#Footnote_581" class="fnanchor">[581]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">MARGARET GODOLPHIN.</div>
-
-<p>Margaret Godolphin became an exemplary matron. She instructed her
-servants, she cultivated domestic religion, she breathed towards
-everybody a kind considerate spirit, and with all this condescension as
-a mistress, she blended the utmost devotion and tenderness as a wife.
-She also assisted the poor, and in the spirit of Elizabeth Fry, visited
-the hospital and the prison: and Evelyn could produce a list of above
-thirty, restrained for debts in several prisons, which she paid and
-compounded for at once; and another list of no fewer than twenty-three
-poor creatures whom she clad at one time. She employed “most part of
-Lent in working for poor people, cutting out and making waistcoats and
-other necessary<span class="pagenum" id="Page_478">[478]</span> coverings, which she constantly distributed amongst
-them, like another Dorcas, spending much of her time, and no little
-of her money, in relieving, visiting, and inquiring of them out. And
-whilst she was thus busy with her needle, she would commonly have one
-or other read by her, through which means and a happy memory, she
-had almost the whole Scriptures by heart, and was so versed in Dr.
-Hammond’s <i>Annotations</i> and other practical books, controversies,
-and cases, as might have stocked some who pass for no small Divines:
-not to mention sundry Divine penitential and other hymns, breathing of
-a spirit of holiness, and such as showed the tenderness of her heart,
-and wonderful love to God.”<a id="FNanchor_582" href="#Footnote_582" class="fnanchor">[582]</a></p>
-
-<p>Within a few days after the birth of her only child, she expired,
-September 9, 1678, in the twenty-fifth year of her age, and she lies
-buried in the church of Breague, in Cornwall: her tomb reminding us of
-the pillar over Rachel’s grave.</p>
-
-<p>As in the Court of Arcadius, we meet with the pious Olympias in
-contrast with the Empress Eudoxia, and her ladies,&mdash;so, in the Court
-of Charles II., we discover a Margaret Godolphin in contrast with a
-Castelmaine and a Gwynn.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SIR MATTHEW HALE.</div>
-
-<p>There are, in every age, Christians whom it would be difficult
-to connect with one particular school of theological sentiment,
-because they have sympathies with all good men, and do not adopt
-the peculiarities of any class. Such a person was Sir Matthew Hale.
-No ecclesiastical history of the period&mdash;unless written upon some
-miserable sectarian principle&mdash;could be considered complete which did
-not include a reference to so eminently excellent a man. His parents
-dying when he was very young, he became<span class="pagenum" id="Page_479">[479]</span> dependent for his education
-upon a relative who was a Puritan minister, and this circumstance
-may account for some points in his character which present a rather
-Puritanical appearance. After being addicted to the gaieties of youth,
-he was, whilst at Oxford, <i>converted</i>, in heart and life, as the
-result, partly at least, of an affecting circumstance which occurred
-at a convivial meeting when he was present. A boon-companion fell
-down in a state of death-like insensibility, when Hale, overwhelmed
-with remorse and pity, retired into another room, and, prostrating
-himself before God, asked forgiveness for his own sins, and interceded
-earnestly for the restoration of his friend. A sudden spiritual
-crisis like that, when the soul is suddenly fused, and poured into a
-new mould, is sure to be remembered afterwards, and to influence all
-subsequent religious feeling. As it has been justly said, a man no
-more forgets the moral deliverance it involves, than he forgets an
-escape from shipwreck,<a id="FNanchor_583" href="#Footnote_583" class="fnanchor">[583]</a> and therefore Hale’s conversion gave a
-marked evangelical impress to his subsequent experience. He glorified
-the riches of Divine grace, and delighted “in studying the Mystery
-of Christ.” He found in God an overflowing fulness which fills up
-the intensest gaspings and outgoings of the soul, a fulness which
-continues to eternity, ever increasing gratitude, adoration, and
-love. Throughout a course of remarkable diligence in business, this
-illustrious Judge manifested no less fervour of spirit. Prayer “gave a
-tincture of devotion” to his secular employments&mdash;it was “a Christian
-chemistry converting those acts which are materially natural and civil,
-into acts truly and formally religious, whereby all life is rendered
-interpretatively a service to Almighty<span class="pagenum" id="Page_480">[480]</span> God.” It was a sun which “gave
-light in the midst of darkness, a fortress that kept safe in the
-greatest danger, that never could be taken unless self-betrayed,”&mdash;a
-“Goshen to, and within itself, when the rest of the world, without and
-round about a man, is like an Egypt for plagues and darkness.” “To
-lose this,” Hale went on to say, “is, like Samson, to lose the lock
-wherein next to God our strength lieth.” Such expressions as these
-have a Puritanical sound in the ears of many, and there are other
-things noticeable in his memoirs in harmony with such expressions:&mdash;for
-it is stated, as very probable, that he took the Solemn League and
-Covenant, it is certain that he did not approve of the rigours of the
-Act of Uniformity, and he severely condemned the conduct of many of the
-clergy. He had also the deepest reverence for the Sabbath, he cherished
-an intense aversion to Romanism, he cultivated, with great respect,
-a friendship with Richard Baxter&mdash;to whom he acknowledged himself
-under great theological obligations&mdash;and, if we may mention so minute
-a circumstance, which however is significant&mdash;“in common prayer, he
-behaved himself as others, saving that to avoid the differencing of the
-Gospels from the Epistles, and the bowing at the name of Jesus, from
-the names Christ, Saviour, God, &amp;c., he would use some equality in his
-gestures and stand up at the reading of all God’s Word alike.” These
-facts separate him from the Anglo-Catholic division of the Church of
-England, yet they are not sufficient to identify him with the fully
-developed, and sharply defined Puritan party. For he did not use such
-religious language in conversation, as satisfied them&mdash;they considered
-him too reticent on spiritual subjects;&mdash;and, as Baxter says, those
-that took no men for religious, who frequented not private meetings,
-regarded him simply, as “an excellently<span class="pagenum" id="Page_481">[481]</span> righteous man.” Baxter himself
-seems to have wished, that Hale had been a little more communicative
-on spiritual matters, instead of confining himself in conversation to
-what is philosophical in religion. The Divine remarks, respecting the
-Judge:&mdash;“At last I understood that his averseness to hypocrisy made him
-purposely conceal the most of such of his practical thoughts and works
-as the world now findeth by his Contemplations and other writings.”
-In some respects, Sir Matthew sympathized with the Latitudinarian
-school&mdash;for, like them, he believed, “that true religion consisteth
-in great plain necessary things, the life of faith and hope, the love
-of God and man, an humble self-denying mind, with mortification of
-worldly affection&mdash;and that the calamity of the Church, and withering
-of religion hath come from proud and busy men’s additions, that cannot
-give peace to themselves and others by living in love and quietness on
-this Christian simplicity of faith and practice, but vex and turmoil
-the Church with these needless and hurtful superfluities.”<a id="FNanchor_584" href="#Footnote_584" class="fnanchor">[584]</a> Nor
-did he believe in any divinely authorized form of ecclesiastical
-government; although he greatly preferred, on grounds of expediency,
-the Episcopalian polity to any other. Yet these points of affinity
-do not justify us in numbering him with the Latitudinarians any more
-than with the Puritans, because there was in him more of evangelical
-sentiment, more of attachment to dogmatic truth, and more of spiritual
-fervour, than belonged to the former description of thinkers. He
-counted amongst his religious friends, the High Churchman, Seth Ward,
-Bishop of Salisbury, as well as the Broad Churchman, Wilkins, Bishop
-of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_482">[482]</span> Chester, and the Low Churchman, Richard Baxter, who refused to be a
-Bishop at all. It suggests rebuke to all bigoted partizans, to remember
-that a layman of the latter half of the seventeenth century most
-renowned for his wisdom, justice, charity and piety, was one of whom it
-is equally true that he can be claimed by no particular party, and yet
-can be claimed by all single-minded Christians.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">HENRY MORE.</div>
-
-<p>It is little more than a nominal departure from the purpose of
-selecting lay examples in this chapter, to introduce Dr. Henry More, as
-another distinctive type of the spiritual life of the period&mdash;inasmuch
-as he was a clergyman in little more than name, and constantly eschewed
-public office. For after being appointed to a stall at Gloucester, he
-quickly resigned it to another person, and a deanery, a provostship,
-and two bishoprics he successively refused. Retirement and study were
-his delight. He has been commonly numbered amongst the members of the
-Cambridge school, but he&mdash;and there were others of that school more
-or less like him&mdash;ought to be regarded as a most decided Mystic. As
-an Eton boy, when wandering in the quaint old quadrangle, or in the
-beautiful playing fields, with his head on one side, and kicking the
-stones with his feet, he had, he says, a deep consciousness of the
-Divine presence; and believed that no deed, or word, or thought could
-be hidden from the Invisible yet All-seeing One. He early conceived
-an antipathy to Calvinism, in which he had been educated, and plunged
-himself, to use his own words, “head over ears” into the study of
-philosophy. He forsook Aristotle for Plato, and found a most congenial
-teacher in John Tauler, whose deep spiritual thoughts he drank in with
-avidity.</p>
-
-<p>He was a philosopher, a friend of Cudworth, and a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_483">[483]</span> correspondent
-with Descartes. Imagination largely influenced his opinions, and in
-his enthusiastic reveries,&mdash;under the influence of which, he seemed
-unconscious of the outer world, and fancied himself to be living in
-a trance,&mdash;he conceived that he possessed an ethereal body, which
-“exhaled the perfume of violets.” Yet, Mystic as he was, he could
-criticise other Mystics, and find just the same fault with them, which
-others of a different turn of mind would find with him.</p>
-
-<p>More says of Jacob Behmen:&mdash;He, “I conceive is to be reckoned in the
-number of those whose imaginative faculty has the pre-eminence above
-the rational: and though he was an holy and good man, his natural
-complexion, notwithstanding, was not destroyed, but retained its
-property still; and therefore his imagination, being very busy about
-Divine things, he could not, without a miracle, fail of becoming an
-enthusiast.”</p>
-
-<p>It is further curious to couple with this, More’s opinion of the
-Quakers:&mdash;“To tell you my opinion of that sect which are called
-Quakers, though I must allow that there may be some amongst them
-good and sincere-hearted men, and it may be nearer to the purity of
-Christianity for the life and power of it than many others; yet, I am
-well assured, that the generality of them are prodigiously melancholy,
-and some few perhaps possessed with the devil.”<a id="FNanchor_585" href="#Footnote_585" class="fnanchor">[585]</a></p>
-
-<p>As his philosophy is poetical so his poetry is philosophical; and his
-<i>Psychozoia, or Life of the Soul</i>, puzzles, if it does not weary
-its readers: yet it leaves the impression that he “believed the magic
-wonders which he sung;” and it has been well compared to a grotto,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_484">[484]</span>
-“whose gloomy labyrinths we might be curious to explore, for the
-strange and mystic associations they excite.”<a id="FNanchor_586" href="#Footnote_586" class="fnanchor">[586]</a></p>
-
-<p>His philosophy and his poetry touched his religion, and he was wont
-to speak in language very different from that of the Anglican on the
-one hand, and from that of the Puritan on the other. “The oracle of
-God,” he remarked, “is not to be heard but in His Holy Temple, that is
-to say in a good and holy man thoroughly sanctified.” “This or such
-like rhapsodies,” he observes, relative to his <i>Dialogues</i>, “do I
-often sing to myself in the silent night, or betimes in the morning,
-at break of day, subjoining always, that of our Saviour, as a suitable
-<i>Epiphonema</i> to all, ‘Abraham saw my day afar, and rejoiced at
-it.’ At this window, I take breath, while I am choked and stifled with
-the crowd, and stench of the daily wickedness of this present evil
-world; and am almost wearied out with the tediousness and irksomeness
-of this my earthly pilgrimage.”<a id="FNanchor_587" href="#Footnote_587" class="fnanchor">[587]</a> More felt deeply the sins and
-sorrows which he could not remove, yet a strain of holy peace ran
-through such melancholy; and it was doubtless from experience that
-he exclaimed&mdash;“Even the most miserable objects in this present life
-cannot divest him (the good man) of his happiness, but rather modify
-it, the sweetness of his spirit being melted into a kindly compassion
-in the behalf of others, whom, if he be able to help, it is a greater
-accession to his joy; and if he cannot, the being conscious to himself
-of so sincere a compassion, and so harmonious and suitable to the
-present state of things, carries along with it some degree of pleasure,
-like mournful notes of music, exquisitely well fitted to the sadness
-of the ditty.”<a id="FNanchor_588" href="#Footnote_588" class="fnanchor">[588]</a> Yet More’s life was not all<span class="pagenum" id="Page_485">[485]</span> sentiment; he was
-charitable to the needy, and “his chamber door was an hospital.”</p>
-
-<p>His death was like his life, holy, peaceful, happy; and even in
-his last hours, he could not help expressing his Christian hope in
-philosophical language&mdash;uttering the beautiful words of Cicero, which
-come so near the Gospel, “<i>O præclarum illum diem</i>,” &amp;c., and
-declaring that he was going to join that blessed company, with whom, in
-a quarter of an hour, he would be as familiar as if he had known them
-for years.<a id="FNanchor_589" href="#Footnote_589" class="fnanchor">[589]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SIR THOMAS BROWNE.</div>
-
-<p>Our notice of the phases of religious life in the Church of England
-would be defective, did we omit all reference to a distinguished,
-but eccentric individual, who has left his mark upon our religious
-literature. Eccentricity is sometimes the main distinction of a man’s
-religious life, and even in such cases there may be no room to doubt
-the genuineness of personal piety; but in the instance to which we now
-refer, there were distinguishing qualities of another and a worthier
-nature. Sir Thomas Browne was charged with being a Quaker, on what
-ground it is difficult to say; and a Roman Catholic, although the
-Pope honoured his <i>Religio Medici</i> with a place in the <i>Index
-Expurgatorius</i>; and an atheist, whilst all his writings bear witness
-to his reverence for the Divine Being.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Johnson has vindicated the character of this remarkable person
-by referring to passages in which he says, that he was of the belief
-taught by our Saviour, disseminated by the Apostles, authorized by
-the fathers, and confirmed by the martyrs; that though paradoxical in
-philosophy, he loved in Divinity to keep the beaten road, and pleased
-himself with the idea; that he had no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_486">[486]</span> taint of heresy, schism, or
-error.<a id="FNanchor_590" href="#Footnote_590" class="fnanchor">[590]</a> But a more satisfactory vindication is supplied in his
-memorable resolutions, never to let a day pass “without calling upon
-God in a solemn formed prayer seven times within the compass thereof,”
-after the example of David and Daniel; always to magnify God, in the
-night, on his “dark bed when he could not sleep,” and to pray in all
-places where privacy invited&mdash;in any house, highway, or street; to
-know no street or passage in the City of Norwich, where he lived,
-which might not witness that he remembered God and his Saviour in it;
-never to miss the sacrament upon the accustomed days; to intercede
-for his patients, for the minister after preaching, and for all
-people in tempestuous weather, lightning and thunder, that God would
-have mercy upon their souls, bodies, and goods; and “upon sight of
-beautiful persons, to bless God in His creatures, to pray for the
-beauty of their souls, and to enrich them with inward graces to be
-answerable unto the outward; upon sight of deformed persons, to send
-them inward graces, and enrich their souls, and give them the beauty
-of the resurrection.”<a id="FNanchor_591" href="#Footnote_591" class="fnanchor">[591]</a> A dash of eccentricity is obvious in these
-his pious regulations for the government of life, such as might be
-expected in the author of the <i>Hydriotaphia</i> and the <i>Garden
-of Cyrus</i>; but there is no reason whatever to question their
-perfect sincerity, or to suspect his affection towards the Church of
-England&mdash;with respect to which he said that he was a sworn subject to
-her faith, subscribing unto her Articles, and endeavouring to observe
-her constitutions.<a id="FNanchor_592" href="#Footnote_592" class="fnanchor">[592]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">SIR THOMAS BROWNE.</div>
-
-<p>We notice with deep regret an absence in his writings of all reference
-to certain important evangelical doctrines, and only a slight allusion
-to others. Besides this grave<span class="pagenum" id="Page_487">[487]</span> omission, we find a positive statement
-of opinions generally pronounced to be heterodox, namely, that the
-soul sleeps with the body until the last day, that the damned will at
-last be released from torture, and that prayers may be offered for the
-dead; and these opinions he implies he had entertained himself, but
-he insists in his own characteristic style, that he never maintained
-them with pertinacity; that without the addition of new fuel, “they
-went out insensibly of themselves;” and that they were not heresies
-in him, but bare errors, and single lapses of the understanding,
-without a joint depravity of the will. “Those,” he remarks, “have not
-only depraved understandings, but diseased affections, which cannot
-enjoy a singularity without a heresy, or be the author of an opinion,
-without they be of a sect also.”<a id="FNanchor_593" href="#Footnote_593" class="fnanchor">[593]</a> Browne entertained comprehensive
-and liberal views of the extent of salvation, saying, that though
-“the bridge is narrow, the passage strait unto life&mdash;yet those who do
-confine the Church of God either to particular nations, Churches, or
-families, have made it far narrower than our Saviour ever meant it.”
-“There must be therefore more than one St. Peter. Particular Churches
-and sects usurp the gates of heaven, and turn the key against each
-other, and thus we go to heaven against each other’s wills, conceits,
-and opinions, and, with as much uncharity as ignorance, do err, I
-fear, in points not only of our own, but one another’s salvation.”
-He professes a consciousness of there being, not only in philosophy,
-but in Divinity, “sturdy doubts and boisterous objections, wherewith
-the unhappiness of our knowledge too nearly acquainted us;” and
-declares that, after having in his earlier years, “read all the books
-against religion, he was in the latter part of his life, averse from
-controversies.”<a id="FNanchor_594" href="#Footnote_594" class="fnanchor">[594]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_488">[488]</span></p>
-
-<p>We dismiss the character of Sir Thomas Browne by quoting the following
-passage, with which he concludes his <i>Religio Medici</i>, and
-which taken alone is sufficient to show the devoutness of the man’s
-spirit:&mdash;“Bless me in this life with but the peace of my conscience,
-command of my affections, the love of Thyself, and my dearest friends,
-and I shall be happy enough to pity Cæsar! These are, O Lord, the
-humble desires of my most reasonable ambition, and all I dare call
-happiness on earth, wherein I set no rule or limit to Thy hand or
-providence. Dispose of me according to the wisdom of Thy pleasure. Thy
-will be done, though in my own undoing.”<a id="FNanchor_595" href="#Footnote_595" class="fnanchor">[595]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">COUNTESS OF WARWICK.</div>
-
-<p>The Countess Dowager of Warwick&mdash;seventh daughter of Richard, first
-Earl of Cork&mdash;died in 1678, and remained in the Church of England to
-the close of her life. Her education, her conversion, her abstinence,
-her inward beauty, her love to souls, her family government, together
-with her justice and prudence, have been duly celebrated by Samuel
-Clarke, in his <i>Lives of Sundry Eminent Persons</i>; and her Diary,
-extensively circulated of late years, has made this lady very widely
-known. “She was neither of Paul, or of Apollos, or of Cephas, but only
-of Christ. Her name was Christian, and her surname Catholic. She had
-a large and unconfined soul, not hemmed in or pounded up within the
-circle of any man’s name.” She bountifully relieved both Conformist
-and Nonconformist ministers; but she “very inoffensively regularly and
-devoutly observed the orders of the Church of England, in its liturgy
-and public service, which she failed not to attend twice a day, with
-exemplary reverence. Yet was she far from placing religion in ritual
-observances.”<a id="FNanchor_596" href="#Footnote_596" class="fnanchor">[596]</a></p>
-
-<p>“She needed neither borrowed shades, nor reflexious<span class="pagenum" id="Page_489">[489]</span> lights, to
-set her off, being personally great in all natural endowments and
-accomplishments of soul and body, wisdom, beauty, favour, and virtue.
-Great by her tongue, for never woman used one better, speaking so
-gracefully, promptly, discreetly, pertinently, holily, that I have
-often admired the edifying words that proceeded from her mouth. Great
-by her pen, as you may (<i>ex pede Herculem</i>) discover by that
-little taste of it, the world hath been happy in, the hasty fruit of
-one or two interrupted hours after supper, which she professed to me,
-with a little regret, when she was surprised with its sliding into
-the world without her knowledge, or allowance, and wholly beside her
-expectation. Great, by being the greatest mistress and promotress,
-not to say the foundress and inventress of a new science&mdash;the art of
-obliging; in which she attained that sovereign perfection, that she
-reigned over all their hearts with whom she did converse. Great in
-her nobleness of living and hospitality. Great in the unparalleled
-sincerity of constant, faithful, condescending friendship, and for
-that law of kindness which dwelt in her lips and heart. Great in
-her dexterity of management. Great in her quick apprehension of the
-difficulties of her affairs, and where the stress and pinch lay, to
-untie the knot, and loose and ease them. Great in the conquest of
-herself. Great in a thousand things beside, which the world admires as
-such: but she despised them all, and counted them but loss and dung in
-comparison of the fear of God, and the excellency of the knowledge of
-Christ Jesus.”<a id="FNanchor_597" href="#Footnote_597" class="fnanchor">[597]</a></p>
-
-<p>Before concluding this review of different forms assumed by personal
-religion in the national Church, at least one word is due to a
-remarkable instance of conversion, in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_490">[490]</span> the case of the Earl of
-Rochester, whose deep repentance and Christian faith, after a career
-of reckless vice, have been made familiar to the world through the
-memoir of him written by Bishop Burnet. Nor should Ley, Earl of
-Marlborough, less known to posterity, be entirely overlooked; for,
-after having contemned religion, he was “brought to a different sense
-of things, upon real conviction, even in full health, some time before
-he was killed in the sea-fight at Southold Bay, 1665.”<a id="FNanchor_598" href="#Footnote_598" class="fnanchor">[598]</a> Neither
-can I omit all notice of that quiet, unobtrusive piety which in those
-days adorned some in the higher walks of life; for example, “the
-Lord Crew,” of whom, in a contemporary diary, it is said,&mdash;“Friday,
-December 12th, 1679. The Lord Crew died, who had been very eminent in
-his age for holiness and charity; and at, and in his death, for useful
-and suitable instructions to those about him, and for well-grounded
-peace, and solid comfort for himself.”<a id="FNanchor_599" href="#Footnote_599" class="fnanchor">[599]</a> Much of the religion in
-the Church of England, however, bore a very different impress. Many
-were of the same type as William Cavendish, the loyal Marquis of
-Newcastle, of whom Clarendon says: “He loved monarchy, as it was the
-foundation and support of his own greatness; and the Church, as it
-was well constituted for the splendour and security of the Crown; and
-religion, as it cherished and maintained that order and obedience that
-was necessary to both; without any other passion for the particular
-opinions which were grown up in it, and distinguished it into parties,
-than as he detested whatsoever was like to disturb the public
-peace.”<a id="FNanchor_600" href="#Footnote_600" class="fnanchor">[600]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THEOLOGICAL DIVERGENCES.</div>
-
-<p>These notices of persons, all of them members of the Church of
-England, present great differences of character.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_491">[491]</span> As amongst the
-Divines described in a former chapter, we observed, in connection with
-their maintenance of the established Episcopal order and government,
-their use of the same formularies, and their subscription to the same
-standards of faith, a wide divergence of theological belief, and the
-indications of a considerable diversity of religious sentiment; so
-amongst the laity, as might be expected from the circumstance of no
-subscription being exacted in their case, we discover a still greater
-divergence of belief, and a still greater variety of sentiment. Not to
-speak here of that deep inner life, existent in the Church of Christ
-under various outward forms, to which I shall refer hereafter, I may
-observe now that the only manifest resemblance amongst those who have
-just been indicated, consisted in the uniformity of their worship,
-and in their submission to the same kind of Church government. The
-High Church, the Low Church, and the Broad Church of the nineteenth
-century find their historical parallels in the seventeenth, although
-by no means in the same measure of development; and if legal questions
-touching Church matters were not raised at that time as they are at
-present, the same radical differences between one section and another
-existed then as now.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_492">[492]</span></p>
-
-<h2>CHAPTER XXIII.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOHN BURNYEAT.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">A characteristic specimen of Quakers’ piety is furnished in the
-following narrative, extracted from a volume of their biographies:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“John Burnyeat was born in the parish of Lows-water, in the county of
-Cumberland, about the year 1631. And when it pleased God to send His
-faithful servant George Fox, with other of the messengers of the Gospel
-of peace and salvation, to proclaim the day of the Lord in the county
-of Cumberland and north parts of England, this dear servant of Christ
-was one that received their testimony, which was in the year 1653,
-when he was about twenty-two years of age; and through his waiting in
-the light of Jesus Christ, unto which he was turned, he was brought
-into deep judgment and great tribulation of soul, such as he had not
-known in all his profession of religion, and by this light of Christ
-was manifested all the reproved things, and so he came to see the body
-of death and power of sin which had reigned in him, and felt the guilt
-thereof upon his conscience, so that he did possess the sins of his
-youth. ‘Then,’ said he, ‘I saw that I had need of a Saviour to save
-from sin, as well as the blood of a sacrificed Christ to blot out sin,
-and faith in His name for the remission of sins; and so being given up
-to bear the indignation of the Lord, because of sin, and wait<span class="pagenum" id="Page_493">[493]</span> till
-the indignation should be over, and the Lord in mercy would blot out
-the guilt that remained (which was the cause of wrath), and sprinkle
-my heart from an evil conscience, and wash our bodies with pure water,
-that we might draw near to Him with a true heart in the full assurance
-of faith, as the Christians of old did (Heb. x. 22).’ Thus did this
-servant of the Lord, with many more in the beginning, receive the truth
-(as more at large may be seen in the journal of his life) in much fear
-and trembling, meeting often together, and seeking the Lord night and
-day, until the promises of the Lord came to be fulfilled, spoken of by
-the prophet Isaiah, chap. xlii. 7, and xlix. 9, and lxi. 3; and some
-taste of the oil of joy came to be witnessed, and a heavenly gladness
-extended into the hearts of many, who in the joy of their souls broke
-forth in praises unto the Lord, so that the tongue of the dumb (which
-Christ, the healer of our infirmities, did unloose) began to speak
-and utter the wonderful things of God. And great was the dread and
-glory of that power, that one meeting after another was graciously and
-richly manifested amongst them, to the breaking and melting many hearts
-before the Lord. Thus being taught of the Lord, according to Isaiah
-liv. 13, John vi. 45, they became able ministers of the Gospel, and
-instructors of the ignorant in the way of truth, as this our friend
-was one, who after four years’ waiting, mostly in silence, before he
-did appear in a public testimony, which was in the year 1657, being at
-first concerned to go to divers public places of worship, reproving
-both priests and people for their deadness and formality of worship,
-for which he endured sore beating with their staves and Bibles, &amp;c.,
-and imprisonment also in Carlisle Gaol, where he suffer’d twenty-three
-weeks’ imprisonment for speaking to one priest Denton, at Briggham.
-After he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_494">[494]</span> was at liberty, he went into Scotland, in the year 1658,
-where he spent three months, travelling both north and west. His work
-was to call people to repentance from their lifeless hypocritical
-profession and dead formalities, and to turn to the true light of
-Jesus Christ in their hearts, that therein they might come to know the
-power of God, and the remission of sins, &amp;c. And in the year 1659 he
-travelled to Ireland, and preached the truth and true faith of Jesus in
-many parts of that nation.”<a id="FNanchor_601" href="#Footnote_601" class="fnanchor">[601]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of the piety of Puritan Nonconformists several examples have already
-appeared; but it is proper to add a few more.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">JOSEPH ALLEINE.</div>
-
-<p>Joseph Alleine was born in 1634. As a child, whilst living in Devizes,
-the sieges and battles of the Civil Wars made him familiar with the
-question then being fought out, both by the sword and the pen; and as
-he heard gun answering gun, and saw the flashes “through the chinks of
-his father’s barred and shuttered windows,” and as he read fly-leaves
-which were then distributed far and wide, ideas were entering his
-mind which shaped the Puritanism of his whole after-life. He went to
-Oxford when that University had fallen into the hands of the Army, and
-just before the time when Oliver Cromwell became Chancellor. There he
-distinguished himself by his diligence, often rising at four o’clock
-in the morning, and prolonging his studies beyond midnight; and he
-added to the exhaustion of toil, the mortification of fasting; for he
-often gave away his “commons” at least once a day. In the year 1655
-he became minister at Taunton, as assistant to George Newton, the
-minister of St. Mary’s; and there he married: a long love-letter, which
-he wrote<span class="pagenum" id="Page_495">[495]</span> to the lady of his affections, still remains, as a specimen
-of the grave courtship of Puritan suitors. Having been ordained
-according to Presbyterian order, his activity as a pastor rivalled
-his assiduity as a student. What he did as a catechist long remained
-amongst the traditions of the town. “In this work, his course was to
-draw a catalogue of the names of the families in each street, and so
-to send a day or two before he intended to visit them. Those that sent
-slight excuses, or did obstinately refuse his message, he would speak
-some affectionate words to them, or, if he saw cause, denounce the
-threatenings of God against them that despise His ministers, and so
-departed; and after would send letters to them so full of love as did
-overcome their hearts, and they did many of them afterwards receive him
-into their houses. Herein was his compassion shown to all sorts, both
-poor and rich.” All this may be regarded as not only characteristic of
-Alleine, but of the class to which he belonged; for there was nothing
-about which the Presbyterians were more anxious than the culture of
-domestic religion. Alleine’s preaching also stood in high repute, the
-judgment in his discourses being likened to “a pot of manna,”&mdash;the
-fancy to “Aaron’s rod that budded,”&mdash;and the fervour to “a live coal
-from off the altar.” His public career of labour, usefulness, and
-honour, in the town of Taunton, reached its close at the general
-ejectment of 1662, to the common grief of himself and his parishioners.
-Alleine’s habits of indefatigable toil could not be repressed by the
-Act of Uniformity, and he still preached, ordinarily in some weeks six
-or seven times, in others ten or fourteen. Such a zealous evangelist
-could not escape the hand of the law; and in the year 1663 he was
-sent a prisoner to Ilchester Gaol. He remained in confinement a year
-all but three days. The vigilance of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_496">[496]</span> his gaoler could not have been
-strict, for he had “very great meetings, week-days and Sabbath-days,
-and many days of humiliation and thanksgiving. The Lord’s days many
-hundreds came.” Alleine held conferences, wrote to his old flock,
-taught children, circulated catechisms, and, during the chaplain’s
-illness, discharged his duties, exerting himself to such a degree that
-he would keep on his clothes all night, and allow himself to sleep only
-one or two hours. After his liberation, his indomitable perseverance
-in preaching, and in other religious efforts, brought him again into
-trouble: indeed, it is said, “he was far more earnest than before,”
-although that appears impossible. A second imprisonment followed in the
-year 1666. In the June of 1667, he was again liberated; but excessive
-labour, severe self-mortification, and the vexations and sorrows of
-imprisonment, had broken down his constitution. “It was impossible,”
-observed Dr. Annesley, “that anguish like his could continue long, and
-at last his sufferings for Christ hurried him to heaven in a fiery
-chariot.” When conveyed in a horse-litter to Bath&mdash;then called the
-“King’s Bathe,” a mere maze of five hundred houses&mdash;“the doctors were
-amazed to behold such a wasted object, professing they never saw the
-like, much wondering how he was come alive; and, on his appearance
-at the Bathe, some of the ladies were affrighted, as though death
-had come amongst them.” The Puritan was much grieved by “the oaths,
-drinking, and ungodly carriage of the persons of quality there;” and he
-failed not to reprove them for their misconduct. “His way was first to
-converse of things that might be taking with them; for, being furnished
-by his studies for any company, he did use his learning for such ends,
-and by such means hath caught many souls.” He caused himself to be
-carried in a chair to visit schools and almshouses; he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_497">[497]</span> persuaded
-teachers to adopt the Assembly’s Catechism as a class-book; and on a
-Sunday he gathered sixty or seventy children together at his lodgings,
-and he also paid daily visits to the poor.</p>
-
-<p>The Puritan impress rests on all Alleine’s labours, on all his
-self-denial, on all his social intercourse, and on much of his
-suffering. The same may be said of his last moments. We are told
-that the night before he died, about nine o’clock, he brake out with
-an audible voice, speaking for <i>sixteen hours</i> together, and
-did cease but a little space now and then all the afternoon. About
-three o’clock in the afternoon he had some conflict with Satan, for
-he uttered these words:&mdash;“Away, thou foul fiend, thou enemy of all
-mankind, thou subtle sophister: art thou come now to molest me&mdash;now I
-am just going&mdash;now I am so weak, and death upon me? Trouble me not,
-for I am none of thine! I am the Lord’s; Christ is mine, and I am
-His; His by covenant. I have sworn myself to be the Lord’s, and His
-I will be. Therefore begone!” These last words he repeated often.
-Thus his covenanting with God was the method he used to expel the
-devil and all his temptations. In November, 1668, he died, and was
-buried in the chancel of St. Mary’s, Taunton, under a brass plate with
-this inscription: <i>Hic jacet Dominus Josephus Alleine holocaustum
-Tauntonensis et Deo et vobis</i>.<a id="FNanchor_602" href="#Footnote_602" class="fnanchor">[602]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THOMAS EWINS.</div>
-
-<p>Thomas Ewins, a Baptist minister at Bristol, was mentioned in a former
-volume, as a man of great natural power: the character of his life also
-deserves commemoration. The records of the Broadmead Church, which
-have already supplied us with many illustrations, afford us touching
-memorials of this good man’s piety. When<span class="pagenum" id="Page_498">[498]</span> his flock were about to
-meet for prayer on his behalf, during his final illness, he addressed
-to them the following letter, which indicates at once the close and
-confidential religious relations in which he stood to them, and the
-deep spirituality of the pastor’s character:&mdash;“Dear brother,” he says,
-addressing one of the ruling elders, “understanding that some friends
-intend to become suitors at the throne of grace this day on my behalf,
-I think good to send these few lines for information, to acquaint you
-that being weak, I cannot conveniently be with you, but hope I shall
-meet you with some few sighs and groans to Him that heareth prayer;
-first, that the God of all grace and health will command health and
-cure to the soul and body, chiefly to that soul of all soul maladies,
-unbelief, and all the fruits thereof; and also to the body, for the
-cure of those maladies which unfit for work and service, especially
-melancholy, and the fruits thereof; and that God will, of His infinite
-riches of grace and mercy, bestow a double portion of His blessed
-Spirit both upon me and upon the whole congregation, and that we may
-obtain more of the blessed spirit of adoption, and all the fruits
-thereof. Amen. Which is all at present from your weak brother, Thomas
-Ewins. The Lord give you much of His presence, and grant that His ear
-may be open to your prayers.”</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">THOMAS EWINS.</div>
-
-<p>He had been declining very fast, and had kept his chamber nearly five
-months when he sent this letter. The end was at hand; and his departure
-and character are thus recorded in these simple and beautiful annals:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Our pastor, brother Ewins, having lain a great while weak, he departed
-this life in the second month, 1670, having faithfully served his Lord
-and Master, Jesus Christ, near towards twenty years in this city,
-in the work of the ministry; preaching clearly the gospel of free<span class="pagenum" id="Page_499">[499]</span>
-grace, by faith in Jesus Christ, wherein he laboured abundantly, in
-the public (places), and in his particular charge&mdash;the congregation;
-and also would go and preach to the poor people in their almshouses
-at Michael’s Hill, and Lawford’s Gate almshouse, once a fortnight, in
-the morning; and in those times of liberty, would, for some convenient
-seasons, set up a lecture, and preach at Bedminster and other places.
-And at other times, during the winter long evenings, would keep an
-expository lecture or meeting at T’Ewins’ Church, and sometimes at
-Leonard’s Church, besides his constant public preaching, as he was one
-of the city lecturers, every third day, Tuesday, at Nicolas Church,
-and every fifth day (Thursday) at the Church meeting of Conference,
-and twice every Lord’s Day constantly; besides many times a word to
-the Church, after that those who were not members were departed, upon
-the Lord’s Day, in the evening, at the Church’s select meeting. Thus,
-as one unwearied to serve the Lord Jesus, he took all opportunities,
-doing good; insomuch that many ministers did admire him for his great,
-diligent labours, and that he had always variety of matter; which,
-though he had not the original tongues, yet God did endue him with
-great grace, and a quick understanding in the things of God, and (in)
-the Gospel of our Lord Jesus, to the winning and converting many souls
-to Christ, and building and binding up the broken-hearted. He was a
-man full of self-denial, and subduing his natural temper; so that he
-walked very lovely and holy in his conversation, showing patience
-where it required, and meekness toward all men; visiting all his
-members carefully, and searching into the state of their souls; and
-by some ministers that were his familiars (it was) observed and said,
-they never saw him over merry nor over sad, but given to prayer and
-almsdeeds. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_500">[500]</span> was interred in James’s Yard, the 29th day of the second
-month, April, <i>anno Domini</i>, 1670, accompanied with many hundreds
-to the grave, the like funeral not seen long before in Bristol. He left
-so good a savour behind for faithfulness to God and humility towards
-man, that his very chief persecutor, Sir John Knight, said, He did
-believe he was gone to heaven.”<a id="FNanchor_603" href="#Footnote_603" class="fnanchor">[603]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OWEN STOCKTON.</div>
-
-<p>Owen Stockton was born at Chichester in 1630, his father being a
-Prebendary of the Cathedral in that city. The father died when the
-son was only seven years old; the mother then removed to Ely, and, as
-the boy was looking into a copy of <i>Foxe’s Acts and Monuments</i>,
-chained to the wall of one of the parish churches, he was so affected
-by what he read, that he begged his friends to obtain at least a part
-of the work for his private use. Having secured his object, he spent
-the vacant hours which other children devoted to play, in eagerly
-perusing the martyrology; and he thus imbibed the strong Protestant
-and Puritan spirit, which influenced his whole after-life. On being
-sent to Cambridge he enjoyed the instruction of Dr. Henry More as his
-tutor, and being only sixteen years old, and of small stature, the
-tiny gownsman attracted general attention as he walked the streets.
-When he accompanied some of his fellow-students into the presence of
-Charles I., to express their loyalty, the King gave him a “gracious
-benediction,” saying, “Here is a little scholar indeed, God bless
-him.” Stockton devoted himself to study; and coming up to London for
-awhile, he attended the Gresham Lectures and the library of Sion
-College, and availed himself of the City bookstalls. After receiving
-his degree of Master of Arts, he “exercised his gifts” in villages
-around the University, and also<span class="pagenum" id="Page_501">[501]</span> became a catechist in his own college.
-His ordination to the full work of the University occurred in London
-in the year 1655; and on the Sunday following, he preached at the
-Charterhouse. “In the afternoon”&mdash;so runs the quaint memoir of this
-worthy&mdash;“one put up a bill to him, wherein the person that put it up
-acknowledged, that he had long lain under the guilt of a known sin, and
-was convinced of it by the morning sermon, and desired prayers to God
-for help against it.” Upon receiving an invitation to become the Town
-Lecturer at Colchester, Stockton accepted that office, adding to it the
-voluntary task of preaching every Sunday morning in St. James’ Church;
-and, until he was ejected in 1662, his labours were abundant, winning
-for him honourable renown amongst the Essex Puritans.</p>
-
-<p>He removed to Chattisham in Suffolk, where he not only continued
-to preach privately, but in the absence of the Incumbent, once a
-fortnight, he had, in spite of his Nonconformity, freedom to occupy
-the pulpit of the parish church. He enjoyed a like privilege in
-neighbouring villages. His doing so being illegal, as soon as the
-vigilance of his enemies succeeded the connivance of his friends,
-Stockton felt himself exposed to peril. “It being a time of danger,”
-he wrote in his diary, April 16th, 1665,&mdash;“as to the keeping of my
-meeting-service, many soldiers being in the town, I being dubious
-whether I should admit the people to come or no,&mdash;when I considered
-that Christ took it as an act of love to feed His sheep&mdash;that he
-exposed Himself to death to save me, I being under a sense of the
-comfort that the Lord had given me in the morning,&mdash;in my meditation on
-1 Timothy i. 15, I was willing to adventure myself upon the providence
-of God.” In this case, it would appear, that the alarm was unnecessary.
-It certainly proved so in another<span class="pagenum" id="Page_502">[502]</span> instance, and the incident may be
-mentioned, as illustrative of the double trials of the period,&mdash;the
-fightings without producing fears within:&mdash;“As I was exercising in my
-family, in the afternoon, several of my friends being with me, I had
-word sent me that Sir J(ohn) S(haw), the Recorder; the Mayor, Thomas
-Wade; and Justices, would come down to my house. Whereupon I, being
-near the end of my exercise, concluded with a short prayer. After I
-(had) done, and dismissed the people, one of the constables came to me
-and told me he was sent to dissolve my meeting, and had some kind of
-trembling upon him when he spoke to me, and said he blessed God that
-had given him an heart to come sometimes himself, and his wife, to my
-meetings, so that instead of doing me any hurt, he gave glory to God
-for giving him an heart to be present.”<a id="FNanchor_604" href="#Footnote_604" class="fnanchor">[604]</a></p>
-
-<p>Stockton was reported at Lambeth in the year 1669, for holding a
-“conventicle in Colchester with George Done.” He also preached at
-Manningtree, Marks Tay, and Ipswich. In the year 1672, Stockton
-took out a license to be “a Presbyterian and Independent teacher in
-Grayfriars House, in St. Nicholas Parish,” in the county town of
-Suffolk. These were halcyon days for men like him: and again his
-ministry became his whole business. Besides conducting Sunday services,
-including two sermons, several expositions, and catechetical exercises,
-he “preached a lecture at Ipswich, on the week day, once a fortnight;
-and, scarce a week passed, but he preached at some other lecture,
-or funeral, besides keeping of private fasts, which he frequently
-practised both at home and abroad.”<a id="FNanchor_605" href="#Footnote_605" class="fnanchor">[605]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">OWEN STOCKTON.</div>
-
-<p>Not only Stockton’s ministerial work, but his spiritual<span class="pagenum" id="Page_503">[503]</span> life also, is
-fully described in his Diary. His conversion, which took place when
-he was young, he tells us was not preceded by any “notable workings
-of the spirit of bondage,” or followed “by those ravishing joys which
-some have felt.” He feared his humiliation was not deep enough; but
-he received full satisfaction from a passage in a sermon, which he
-heard preached by that worthy and excellent servant of Jesus Christ,
-Mr. Richard Vines, then Master of Pembroke Hall. Phraseology of this
-kind indicates the kind of theology and of spiritual life which gave
-a stamp to the character of Owen Stockton: and the whole of the Diary
-bears the same religious complexion. He entered into a solemn covenant
-with God, and he set down at large the evidences of his faith and
-of his pardon,&mdash;of his being one of God’s servants, and having an
-interest in Jesus Christ,&mdash;of the Divine love to his soul, and of
-his possession of eternal life. No Anglican or Latitudinarian could
-have dealt with questions of personal religion after the manner which
-Stockton adopted. His accounts of providences, and of dreams, are
-tinged with superstition. The analysis which he gives of his motives
-for doing certain things; and his statement of cases of casuistry&mdash;as
-for example, whether it was lawful to write a letter, even of spiritual
-advice, on the Lord’s Day, and his long list of reasons for and
-against courses of conduct which he specifies&mdash;indicate a morbid
-conscientiousness, and a habit of keen and irritating introspection
-far beyond that self-examination which the Scriptures recommend. Yet,
-accompanying these infirmities, there appear a strong conviction of the
-realities of the invisible world, a tenacious grasp of the doctrines
-of grace, and a deep tone of devotion, a thorough consecration to the
-service of God, and a burning zeal for the glory of Christ, and for
-the welfare of souls. The manner<span class="pagenum" id="Page_504">[504]</span> in which his death is described
-harmonizes with the rest of his biography, and accurately describes
-what he professed:&mdash;“Discharging his dying office by grave exhortations
-and encouragement to serious religion and suffering for it, which
-he especially applied to his only child; owning and professing his
-Nonconformity to the last, as judging himself obliged thereto in
-conscience towards God; blessing God for His invaluable gift of Jesus
-Christ to the children of men; blessing God, who had called him to the
-honourable employment of the ministry of the Gospel, and had enabled
-him to be faithful therein, and encouraged him with His presence and
-blessing under all the difficulties thereof; blessing God, who had
-lifted him up above the fear of death; rejoicing in the peace and
-testimony of a good conscience, and hope of the glory of God, after ten
-or eleven days’ conflict with his disease (which, after some hope of
-recovery, very suddenly and unexpectedly seized his head), he quietly
-slept in the Lord, September 10th, 1680, in the one and fiftieth year
-of his age.”<a id="FNanchor_606" href="#Footnote_606" class="fnanchor">[606]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">DR. JACOMB.</div>
-
-<p>Another of the ejected ministers&mdash;one who survived the two excellent
-persons just described, and who is much better known than either of
-them&mdash;ought to be noticed before concluding this selection from the
-roll of Puritan names. Dr. Thomas Jacomb has been mentioned already, as
-a man who took a prominent part in the ecclesiastical affairs of his
-age. His biographers speak of his zeal for the glory of his Master,
-of his love to the souls of men, and of his constancy and diligence
-in ministerial work. He suffered much from cancer in the mouth; but
-when pain became tolerable, preaching acted<span class="pagenum" id="Page_505">[505]</span> as an anodyne; and, at
-all times, reflection upon the Divine goodness afforded him relief. He
-manifested much compassion, charity, and beneficence, and was moderate
-in his Nonconformity&mdash;“rather desiring to have been comprehended in the
-National Church, than to have separated from it.” His last illness is
-described as very distressing, and he said to an intimate friend&mdash;“I
-am using the means, but I think my appointed time is come. If my life
-might be serviceable to convert or build up one soul I should be
-content to live; but if God hath no more work for me to do, here I am,
-let Him do with me as He pleaseth.” On another occasion, he observed:
-“It will not be long before we meet in Heaven, never to part more: and
-there we shall be perfectly happy; there neither your doubts and fears,
-nor my pains shall follow us; nor our sins, which is best of all.” He
-longed to be above, and said with some regret&mdash;“Death flies from me; I
-make no haste to my Father’s house.”<a id="FNanchor_607" href="#Footnote_607" class="fnanchor">[607]</a> Dr. Jacomb expired under the
-roof of the Countess of Exeter, March 27, 1687.</p>
-
-<p>Burnet affords a pleasant sketch of an eminent Puritan layman, Sir
-Harbottle Grimston, Speaker of the House of Commons in the Convention
-Parliament, and afterwards Master of the Rolls; and in connection with
-this sketch occurs an equally pleasant notice of his exemplary wife.</p>
-
-<p>“He gave yearly great sums in charity, discharging many prisoners by
-paying their debts. He was a very pious and devout man, and spent
-every day at least an hour in the morning, and as much at night, in
-prayer and meditation. And even in winter, when he was obliged to be
-very early on the bench, he took care to rise so soon, that he had
-always the command of that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_506">[506]</span> time, which, he gave to those exercises.
-He was much sharpened against Popery; but had always a tenderness to
-the Dissenters, though he himself continued still in the communion
-of the Church. His second wife, whom I knew, was niece to the great
-Sir Francis Bacon: and was the last heir of that family. She had all
-the high notions for the Church and the Crown, in which she had been
-bred; but was the humblest, the devoutest, and best tempered person I
-ever knew of that sort. It was really a pleasure to hear her talk of
-religion; she did it with so much elevation and force. She was always
-very plain in her clothes; and went oft to jails, to consider the wants
-of the prisoners, and relieve, or discharge them; and by the meanness
-of her dress she passed but for a servant trusted with the charities
-of others. When she was travelling in the country, as she drew near
-a village, she often ordered her coach to stay behind till she had
-walked about it, giving orders for the instruction of the children, and
-leaving liberally for that end. With two such persons I spent several
-of my years very happily.”<a id="FNanchor_608" href="#Footnote_608" class="fnanchor">[608]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">UNITY OF SPIRITUAL LIFE.</div>
-
-<p>Without repeating what I have said in a former volume, respecting
-the varieties of spiritual life, I would observe, that it is of very
-great importance to distinguish between religion and theology: between
-spiritual life in man, and the philosophy of its causes, its nature,
-and its modes of operation. The philosophy of that life is of a far
-higher description than any other branch of science in relation to
-either material things or the human mind. Christian personal religion,
-when complete and satisfactory, must rest upon the study of Divine
-Revelation&mdash;this is the supreme authority for the religious beliefs of
-all to whom it comes&mdash;without which those beliefs are as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_507">[507]</span> the shifting
-sands and as the changeful clouds. It is of immense moment to search
-out the truth amidst various theories, and theological theories are
-to some minds an intellectual necessity, which it is idle to deny and
-foolish to ignore. Nor should the fact be overlooked that creeds&mdash;the
-creeds of the early Church&mdash;may serve as guards and preservers of the
-Church’s faith; as lines which have been drawn, after sounding the
-channels of Christian thought, to guard us against shoals towards which
-we are apt to be driven, as buoys which may help to preserve us from
-shipwreck, and as landmarks which may continue to secure for us the
-precious inheritance of truth bequeathed by Christ.<a id="FNanchor_609" href="#Footnote_609" class="fnanchor">[609]</a> But at the
-same time these theories and these creeds should be distinguished from
-religion itself; and beyond all doubt, the religion of the soul, in a
-multitude of cases, is much less influenced by definite theological
-opinions on certain points than many persons are disposed to admit.
-Theology is oftener determined by religion, than religion is determined
-by theology. Hence the trite maxim that some men are better than their
-creeds and some are worse.</p>
-
-<p>Christianity teaches, that faith in Christ is essential to religion in
-the case of all those to whom the Gospel comes, by which faith is meant
-trust in Him as the Divine Redeemer of souls. It further teaches that
-love to God is essential to religion, which love is to be expressed
-in worship and obedience. Finally, it teaches that morality is
-essential to religion, which morality includes all the pure, exalted,
-comprehensive, and noble virtues inculcated in the Scriptures. This
-threefold kind of religion may be found in cases where, what many
-may<span class="pagenum" id="Page_508">[508]</span> deem, erroneous views on various points are entertained; and it
-may be absent in cases where no such erroneous views exist. Religion
-does not centre in intellectual opinions, but in the affections of the
-heart, and the volitions of the will. Consequently, we have been able
-to trace, with more or less distinctness, the presence and power of
-real piety in all the great schools of theological thought, which have
-come under our review. We recognize amongst men of different creeds,
-of different forms of worship, of different ecclesiastical polities,
-members of the one Holy Catholic Church, because we discover in them
-that faith, devotion, and morality, which are the constituent elements
-of true religion. It is remarkable how, in these respects, Christians
-of various communions, such as I have attempted to portray, resemble
-each other. They have not been able to repeat the same theological
-confession: but under a sense of sin, in the great exigencies of their
-existence, in the hour of death, and looking forward to the day of
-judgment, they have rested upon the only <i>Name</i> given under heaven
-whereby we can be saved. They could not unite in the same symbolic
-rites, but there are hymns of praise and supplication in which they
-have all been enabled to express the devoutness of their spiritual
-life. They could not co-operate in ecclesiastical action, but each in
-his own sphere could and did engage in deeds of Christian justice,
-zeal, and charity.</p>
-
-<p>I am not writing the history of any sect, but of Christ’s Church
-in England during the latter half of the seventeenth century, and
-therefore I have endeavoured to make these pages reflect, as far as
-possible, the many coloured types of moral and spiritual beauty, with
-which the Spirit of truth and love adorned and blessed our land at that
-eventful period.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_509">[509]</span></p>
-
-<h2>APPENDIX.</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>No. I.&mdash;See Vol. I., p. 60.</h3>
-
-<p>I find in the Record Office a very
-curious letter, dated Llanothyng,<a id="FNanchor_610" href="#Footnote_610" class="fnanchor">[610]</a> the 8th of April, and addressed
-to Linwell Chapman. There is placed in the same bundle in which
-I discovered it a fairly transcribed copy. As the contents are
-remarkable, I shall give a full description of them, and supply a few
-extracts.</p>
-
-<p>The letter purports to come from more persons than one, and it
-commences by expressing their joy on account of suffering for Christ’s
-sake, their spirits being borne up by the fury of the adversary, by the
-patience dispensed to the godly, and the great spirit of prayer poured
-out, together with active faith in the most precious promises. They
-had sent messengers to their brethren, all over the nation, including
-three to South Wales, exhorting them to stand by the good old cause,
-once the most precious in the eyes of the saints. They mention “Dr.
-Owen, that precious servant of Christ,” as having had a sinecure in
-their neighbourhood, and as having sent them word “that he doubted
-not of good issue.” “We hope very speedily,” they proceed, “to give
-you a good account when that discontented part of the army we expect
-is come up, to countenance us until we can get together. We have laid
-out £10,000 in arms, and distributed most of them; we have raised such
-a jealousy here between the Cavaliers and Presbyterians as opens us
-a wider door than otherwise could be expected; and, indeed, were we
-considerable, the Presbyterians would close with us, upon any terms,
-rather than undergo an intolerable yoke under an implacable enemy.”
-The writers refer to an attempt upon “Charles Stewart,” which, they
-heard, “did not succeed in the way intended, but there was another
-way more successful.” They afterwards state,&mdash;“Mr. Kiffin, and Mr.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_510">[510]</span>
-Cockam, Mr. Hudson, Mr. M. the Committee-man, and Mr. Feake, write to
-us of securing the General and the Parliament about the 6th of May,
-to which they say all the congregations in London agree, except Mr.
-Caryles and Mr. Griffiths. Mr. Nie [Nye] doth great service in it, we
-hear. Mr. Brooks is very willing. Mr. Barker is, they say, indifferent.
-Indeed Sir Harry Vane is a man that seems to be born for such a time as
-this. He will come up, we hear, to head us; for we shall rise first,
-being furthest off.” After further explanation of their policy, they
-continue: “This we know, that we shall be (the Lord assisting us), a
-month hence, so considerable, coming towards London, that most of your
-Londoners must draw out, and then you have your opportunity. We hope
-you have received the arms, ammunitions, &amp;c. V. A. L. was appointed to
-bring from C. to B., and then to D., where your carts were to meet him.
-What use you may make of the training day at London we leave to your
-discretion. Would we were rid of all the carnal and self-interested men
-on our side, and we doubt not but to do well. Mr. Thomas, the bearer
-hereof, will tell you how far we prevailed upon the Irish Brigade, and
-pray do you tell him how far you prevailed upon your London forces. The
-report of their being to be disbanded makes much for us here; what it
-doth there we know not. Col. Okey is very successful, and it’s believed
-his agitation may produce what may make both their ears tingle. Whether
-Mr. Powell, Mr. Mostyn, and Mr. Lloyd, be come up to you, we hear not.
-When they come, we doubt not they will put life in the cause. Mr.
-Jessey, with the brethren of Swan Alley, Mr. Rogers, Mr. Spilsbury,
-&amp;c., are very zealous. And it’s good to be zealous in a good matter.
-Mr. Row, of Westminster, hath been very instrumental in a late design.
-The Lord strengthen the hands of such faithful souls. I pray, let us
-hear what the brethren of Gloucestershire intend to do. Mr. Helme, of
-Winchcombe, is diligent, spending himself and being spent among the
-neighbouring congregations if they be not already at London.” (The
-congregations referred to were either Independents or Baptists.) The
-writers further state that they heard a piece was “coming out on the
-character of the wretched villain Monk,” and an account of his plots.
-They advised that the first work should be to secure the militia and
-gentry, seize several of the Welsh castles, and be at Gloucester by
-the 12th of May, and tempt the General out. “Let the Quakers,” the
-letter goes on to say, “have the knottiest piece, for they are resolute
-in performing, though but rash in advising. It were to be wished the
-House had some bones to pick, that they might determine nothing until
-the 12th of May.” The writers then ask, whether the Long Parliament
-members, under whose authority they and their friends were acting,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_511">[511]</span>
-would sit at Shrewsbury as a place of rendezvous; that would be the
-safest place. They refer to Scotland, adding, “If it may be, it were
-well all places were at once disordered by a common alarm, while one
-place is chiefly aimed at. We expect Sir Arthur here suddenly, and
-then, when a convenient number of the old Parliament and army are met,
-we declare. The declaration is already agreed on.” ... “We are apt to
-believe that every honest man of all interests will acquiesce in it.
-Verily some Presbyterians, upon their late experience, are ready to
-hear and submit to the reason of it, when proposed to them. The press
-is free enough for it, there being no restraint upon that as yet.” The
-letter concludes with an exhortation to prosecute the design on the
-Tower, the House, and the head-quarters.</p>
-
-<p>Besides this letter, there is another dated a few days earlier,
-addressed to Master Evan Thomas Taylor, relating to the same subject,
-but not containing any important information.</p>
-
-<p>When I first lighted upon the letter of the 8th of April, 1660, with
-the actual outbreak under Lambert, in the same month, fresh in my
-mind, I was startled at the sight of these extraordinary statements,
-and began to think that they supplied new and important information
-respecting Republican movements going on at that confused period. A
-little reflection, however, sufficed to raise very considerable doubts
-as to whether much reliance could be placed upon several parts of the
-letter of the 8th, in which mere rumours are related, and accounts
-are given of what was going on at a distance. Further consideration
-made me suspicious as to the origin of the papers altogether. For
-the fabrication of letters said to be intercepted, and containing
-treasonable matter, was no uncommon device in those days, of which a
-signal instance is furnished in our notice of William Kiffin (Vol.
-I., p. 211). Besides, there are certain things about these professed
-communications from Wales, which the more I thought of them the more
-suspicious they appeared,&mdash;such as the statement respecting Dr.
-Owen, the expenditure of so large a sum as £10,000 by poor Welshmen
-in procuring arms, the reference made to Quakers as engaged in
-military movements, and the engagement of all the Congregational
-Churches in London, with two exceptions, in a plot to secure Monk and
-the Parliament. The more I considered these circumstances the more
-incredible they looked. Impressed with very strong doubts, I applied to
-my kind friend, the late Mr. John Bruce, whose judgment on the point I
-felt would be most valuable.</p>
-
-<p>He gave the following opinion:&mdash;“I have looked at the letters dated 4th
-and 8th of the 2nd month of 1660, and the copy of the latter, which is
-endorsed in the handwriting of the Secretary, Sir Joseph Williamson.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_512">[512]</span>
-That they are all of the period assigned to them is, I think, pretty
-certain, but whether they are genuine or fabricated is a question not
-easily answered.</p>
-
-<p>“It seems to me probable that the two letters were written by the same
-hand, the writing of the letter of the 4th being a feigned hand. That
-of the 4th was intended to contain that of the 8th, which is rather
-strange, and the oddity is increased by the circumstance, that in
-that of the 4th there is an allusion to that of the 8th as if it were
-already written:&mdash;‘Pray tell Mr. Chapman, which I forgot to write.’</p>
-
-<p>“The letter of the 8th, purporting to be dated at ‘Llanothyng,’ a
-place I do not know; that of the 4th at ‘Llanvaire,’ I suppose in
-Monmouthshire. The former mentions ‘Dr. Owen, that precious servant
-of Christ,’ as having had a ‘sinecure here.’ If this be John Owen, it
-seems very like a blunder.</p>
-
-<p>“Probably many other strangenesses might be discovered upon a close
-study of the letters, but that which in my mind makes most against the
-genuineness of the letter of the 8th, is the enormous improbability
-that any one would have sent a letter in such manner as this has been
-forwarded, which disclosed a plot to kill the King and other members of
-the Royal Family, and implicated in movements connected with it, not
-one or two persons only, but all the most conspicuous persons of the
-Republican party. The letter is in this respect so overdone as on that
-account alone to be a subject of very great suspicion. But, supposing
-it possible that a man could be found who was fool enough to write such
-a letter, I cannot believe that it would have been transmitted in the
-careless, half-open way in which these have been sent to Master Thomas
-in Quart-Pot Alley, Philpot Lane&mdash;if that be the address.</p>
-
-<p>“My present impression is that these letters are not genuine, but if
-anything turns upon a point, or you are about to publish an opinion, I
-should like to reconsider the question.”</p>
-
-<p>A little while afterwards, Mr. Bruce wrote the following:&mdash;“I
-have looked again at the letters said to have been intercepted,
-and am more and more convinced they are not genuine. Contents,
-handwriting&mdash;everything&mdash;is against them. They are not papers upon
-which any one ought to found an historical conclusion.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Hardy came in just as I was putting up the bundle which contains
-these letters. I took them out and asked him what he thought of them.
-He shook his head, and pronounced them to be most suspicious-looking
-papers.”</p>
-
-<p>After such an opinion, confirmatory of my own strong doubts, I could
-not think of using these documents in the text, but, as curiosities, I
-have transferred them to this Appendix.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_513">[513]</span></p>
-
-
-<h3>No. II.&mdash;Vol. I., p. 244.</h3>
-
-<p>The following important Memorandum from W. J. Thoms, Esq., House of
-Lords, on the MS. Prayer Book attached to the Act of Uniformity, 1662,
-occurs in the Appendix to the Minutes of Evidence taken before the
-Royal Commission on Ritual:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“In the course of a conversation with the Dean of Westminster on
-Tuesday week (30th July), after calling my attention to a pamphlet of
-Mr. Hull on the subject of the supposed loss of the Book of Common
-Prayer attached to the Act of Uniformity, the Dean expressed a wish to
-see the tower (formerly a portion of the Abbey) in which the original
-Acts of Parliament were till lately kept, the rooms in the Victoria
-Tower where the Acts are now deposited, and the Act of Uniformity
-itself. I promised to make the necessary arrangements for his doing so,
-on the following Thursday (1st August).</p>
-
-<p>“My attention having been called by the Dean to the Prayer Book before
-alluded to, when settling with the person who arranges the Acts in the
-Victoria Tower to be in the way at the time the Dean had appointed to
-come, I spoke to him about the book; and he then told me, that when the
-Acts were removed, he had found, among other books, MS. Journals, &amp;c.,
-a Manuscript Prayer Book, which he had handed over to the Chief Clerk,
-Mr. Smith. I at once felt satisfied that that was the book respecting
-which there seems to have been so much mistaken anxiety; but the
-accidental absence of Mr. Smith prevented my then examining the book;
-and until I had seen it, and positively ascertained the fact, I thought
-it better, in case I should prove mistaken, not to mention to the Dean
-that the book was in Mr. Smith’s custody.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Smith, who came to me in the Library a few minutes after the Dean
-had left, at once said the Prayer Book was in his custody, showed it to
-me, and I communicated the fact on the same evening to the Dean.</p>
-
-<p class="smcap r2">“William J. Thoms.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">“Library, House of Lords,</span><br />
-<span class="left2">“<i>8th August, 1867</i>.</span>”</p>
-
-<p>“An inspection of this MS. Prayer Book has proved to the Commissioners
-that the ‘Order for Morning and Evening Prayer daily to be said and
-used throughout the year,’ is identical in all respects with that which
-is ordinarily prefixed to the Book of Common Prayer.”</p>
-
-<p>It would be beyond my purpose to attempt a description of these
-books&mdash;indeed no full and correct idea of their appearance and contents
-could be supplied except by a <i>fac-simile</i> reprint of them,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_514">[514]</span> which
-I hope will be some day published&mdash;but in the meanwhile I will present
-the reader with a transcript of the list of alterations inserted at the
-beginning of the MS. volume. This copy was carefully compared with the
-original by Mr. Thoms and myself.</p>
-
-<p>With the MS. volume now in the Library of the House of Lords, there
-is also a copy of the Prayer Book, printed by Robert Barker, in 1636,
-containing alterations of the text made with a pen in a very neat hand,
-believed to be that of Sancroft. I have been permitted to inspect these
-volumes on three occasions; and there are two instances of alterations
-made in the printed copy, and in the MS. book, so curious, and indeed
-important, that I will transfer them to these pages.</p>
-
-<p>The first relates to a passage at the end of the service for the public
-baptism of infants. In the printed book it stands thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“It is certain by God’s Word,
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">children <span class="strikethrough">persons</span> w<sup>ch</sup> are</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">that children being</span>
-</span>
-baptized,
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">dying before they committ actuall sinne are</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">have all things necessary for their salvation, and be</span>
-</span>
-undoubtedly saved.”</p>
-
-<p>The MS. book presents the same sentence thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“It is certain by God’s Word, that children which are baptized, dyeing
-before they commit actuall sin, are undoubtedly saved.”</p>
-
-<p>The second instance relates to the last rubric prefixed to the
-Communion service. In the printed book it stands thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<table summary="MS.Book" class="smaller">
- <tr>
- <td class="cht2">“Most convenient place in the upper end of y<sup>e</sup> chancel
- (or of y<sup>e</sup> body of y<sup>e</sup> church where there is no chancel.”</td>
- <td class="cht3">“The table at the communion time having a fair white linnen
- cloth upon it shall stand in the
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">body of the church or in the chancell</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">body of the church or in the chancell</span>
-</span>
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">where morning <span class="strikethrough">prayer</span> and evening</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">where morning prayer and evening</span>
-</span>
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">prayer are appointed to be said.</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">prayer be appointed to be said.</span>
-</span>
-And the priest standing
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm"><a id="FNanchor_611" href="#Footnote_611" class="fnanchor">[611]</a>at</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">at</span>
-</span>
-the north
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm"><span class="strikethrough">part</span> side</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">side</span>
-</span>
-of the table, shall say
-the Lord’s Prayer with
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">the</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">the</span>
-</span>
-collect following” [MS., y<sup>e</sup> people
-kneeling.]</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p>In the MS. book it appears thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“The table at the Communion time having a fair white linen cloth
-upon it, shall stand in the body<a id="FNanchor_612" href="#Footnote_612" class="fnanchor">[612]</a>
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">of the church, or</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">or convenient place</span>
-</span>
-in the <span class="strikethrough">upper end of the</span> chancel
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">where Morning and Evening Prayer are appointed to be said.</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">or of the body of the church where there is no chancel.</span>
-</span></p>
-
-<p>And the priest standing at<a id="FNanchor_613" href="#Footnote_613" class="fnanchor">[613]</a> the north
-<span class="inline">
-<span class="sm">side</span><br />
-<span class="strikethrough">part</span>
-</span>
-of the table, shall say
-the Lord’s Prayer with the Collect followeing, the people kneeling.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>LIST OF ALTERATIONS PREFIXED.</h3>
-
-<table summary="list" class="smaller" style="max-width: 40em">
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">OLD.</td>
- <td class="ctr">NEW.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Litany.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Bishops, Pastors, &amp; Ministers.</td>
- <td>Bishops, Priests, &amp; Deacons.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Collect.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>The 3d Sunday in Advent</td>
- <td>A larger &amp; more proper inserted.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>For Christmas-day.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>this day.</td>
- <td>as at this time [as also in y<sup>e</sup> preface at y<sup>e</sup> Communion].</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>For Easter Tuesday</i> is put <i>For Low Easter</i>.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>For Whitsunday.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>upon this day.</td>
- <td>as at this time.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>y<sup>e</sup> Epistle.</td>
- <td>For y<sup>e</sup> Epistle [as often as it is not taken out of an Epistle].</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Communion.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Overnight or else in y<sup>e</sup> morning before y<sup>e</sup> beginning
- of morning prayer, or immediately after.--<i>Rubrick.</i></td>
- <td>at least some time y<sup>e</sup> day before.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>in y<sup>e</sup> body of y<sup>e</sup> Church or in y<sup>e</sup> Chancel.</td>
- <td>in y<sup>e</sup> most convenient place in y<sup>e</sup> upper end of y<sup>e</sup> Chancel, or
- of y<sup>e</sup> body of y<sup>e</sup> Church where there is no Chancel.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>north side.</td>
- <td>north part.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Bishops Pastor &amp; Curates.</td>
- <td>Bishops and Curates.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>The 1st &amp; 2d Exhortations</td>
- <td>are altered and fitted for timely notice &amp; preparation to y<sup>e</sup> Communion.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> 3rd Exhortations this Clause [If any of you be a
- blasphemer of God, an hinderer, &amp;c.]</td>
- <td>is left out.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>These words [before this Congregation]</td>
- <td>omitted.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Before y<sup>e</sup> Confession for these words [either by one
- of them or else by y<sup>e</sup> Minister.]</td>
- <td>by one of y<sup>e</sup> Ministers.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> 2d prayer after Receiving for [in thy mysticall body]</td>
- <td>in y<sup>e</sup> mysticall body of thy Son.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> last Rubrick but one these words [And y<sup>e</sup> Parish
- shall be discharged of such sums of money or other
- dutyes w<sup>ch</sup> hitherto they have payed for y<sup>e</sup> same by
- order of their houses.</td>
- <td>omitted as needlesse now.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Baptisme.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>didst sanctify y<sup>e</sup> flood Jordan &amp; all other waters.</td>
- <td>in y<sup>e</sup> River Jordan didst sanctify water.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>dost thou forsake? <i>Ans.</i> I forsake.</td>
- <td>doest thou in y<sup>e</sup> name of this this Child renounce? <i>Ans.</i> I renounce.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Private Baptisme.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>This Demand [whether thinke you y<sup>e</sup> Childe to be
- lawfully &amp; perfectly baptized]</td>
- <td>omitted.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Confirmation.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> Rubrick for these words [untill such time as
- he can say y<sup>e</sup> Catechisme &amp; be confirmed] these</td>
- <td>set before y<sup>e</sup> Catechisme until such time as he be confirmed,
- or be ready and desirous to be confirmed.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Catechisme.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>y<sup>e</sup> King and his Ministers.</td>
- <td>y<sup>e</sup> King and all that are put in authority under him.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Water, wherein y<sup>e</sup> person baptized is dipped, or
- sprinkled in it, In y<sup>e</sup> name, &amp;c.</td>
- <td>Water, wherein y<sup>e</sup> person is baptized, in y<sup>e</sup> name, &amp;c.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Yea they doe performe them both by their sureties, who
- promise and vow them both in their names.</td>
- <td>Because they promise them both by their sureties, which promise.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Matrimony.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Thes words [In Paradise]</td>
- <td>omitted.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>depart.</td>
- <td>do part.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Children’s Children unto y<sup>e</sup> 3d &amp; 4th generation.</td>
- <td>Children, Christianly &amp; virtuously brought up.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>loving &amp; amiable to her husband as Rachel--wise as
- Rebecca--faithfull &amp; obedient as Sara.</td>
- <td>amiable, faithfull &amp; obedient to her husband.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>The new married persons, the same day of their marriage,
- must receive y<sup>e</sup> Communion.</td>
- <td>It is convenient y<sup>t</sup> y<sup>e</sup> new married persons should receive
- y<sup>e</sup> Communion at y<sup>e</sup> time of y<sup>r</sup> marriage or at y<sup>e</sup> first
- opportunity after y<sup>e</sup> marriage.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Visitation of y<sup>e</sup> Sick.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> Psalme</td>
- <td>y<sup>e</sup> 5 last verses omitted</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Buriall.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Y<sup>e</sup> Lesson read</td>
- <td>before they goe to y<sup>e</sup> grave.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>eyes.</td>
- <td>eares.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>of resurrection.</td>
- <td>of y<sup>e</sup> resurrection.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>this our brother.</td>
- <td>omitted.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>them that be elected.</td>
- <td>y<sup>e</sup> faithfull.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Churching.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>For Psalme 121</td>
- <td>116 or 127.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>w<sup>ch</sup> hast delivered.</td>
- <td>wee give thee hearty thanks for that thou hast vouchsafed to deliver.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>in her vocation.</td>
- <td>omitted.</td>
- </tr>
-
-</table>
-
-<p>NOTE y<sup>t</sup> All y<sup>e</sup> Epistles &amp; Gospels &amp; most of y<sup>e</sup> Sentences of
-Scripture are put in y<sup>e</sup> last Translation of y<sup>e</sup> Bible.</p>
-
-<p class="p2">These are all y<sup>e</sup> materiall alterations--y<sup>e</sup> rest are onely verball, or
-y<sup>e</sup> changeing of some Rubricks for y<sup>e</sup> better performing of y<sup>e</sup> service
-or y<sup>e</sup> new moulding some of y<sup>e</sup> Collects.</p>
-
-
- <h3>ADDITIONS.</h3>
-
-<table summary="list" class="smaller" style="max-width: 40em">
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">OLD.</td>
- <td class="ctr">NEW.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>deliver us from evil,</td>
- <td>for thine is y<sup>e</sup> Kingdome, y<sup>e</sup> power &amp; y<sup>e</sup> glory for ever and ever
- [here and in some other places].</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Praise y<sup>e</sup> the Lord.</td>
- <td><i>Ans.</i> The Lord’s name be praised.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Litany.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>privy conspiracy</td>
- <td>&amp; rebellion.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>heresy</td>
- <td>&amp; schisme</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>To y<sup>e</sup> Prayer in time of Dearth</td>
- <td>another prayer added.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>In y<sup>t</sup> of Plague.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Almighty God, w<sup>ch</sup> in thy wrath</td>
- <td>didst send a plague upon thine owne people in y<sup>e</sup> wildernesse,
- for their obstinate rebellion against Moses and Aaron, and also</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>didst then</td>
- <td>accept of an atonement and</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>Two Prayers for y<sup>e</sup> Ember-weekes.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>A Thanksgiving for restoring publique peace.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>A Prayer for y<sup>e</sup> Parliament.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Collects.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>A Collect for y<sup>e</sup> 6 Sunday after the Epiphany</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Epistle 1 S. John, 3. 1.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Gospel S. Matt. 24. 23.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>A Collect for Easter Eve.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>An Antheme on Easter day, I Cor. 5. 7.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Communion.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> 3d Rubrick added</td>
- <td>Provided y<sup>t</sup> every Minister so repelling any as is specified, in
- this or in y<sup>e</sup> next preceding Paragraph of this Rubrick shall
- be obliged to give an account of y<sup>e</sup> same to y<sup>e</sup> Ordinary within
- 14 days after at y<sup>e</sup> furthest, &amp; y<sup>e</sup> Ordinary shall proceede
- against y<sup>e</sup> offending person according to y<sup>e</sup> Canon.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>the Lord thy God</td>
- <td>who brought thee out of y<sup>e</sup> land of Egypt, out of y<sup>e</sup> house of bondage.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> prayer for whole state of Christs Church--</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>to accept our almes</td>
- <td>and oblations.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>adversity.</td>
- <td>And wee also blesse thy holy name for all thy servants departed
- this life in thy faith &amp; fear, beseeching thee to give us grace
- so to follow their good examples that w<sup>th</sup> them wee may be
- partakers of thy heavenly Kingdome.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>draw neere</td>
- <td>in full assurance of faith.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>At y<sup>e</sup> prayer of consecration</td>
- <td>Marginall notes, directing y<sup>e</sup> Action of y<sup>e</sup> Priest.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Baptisme.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>A fourth demand added here &amp; in private Baptisme</td>
- <td>Wilt thou then obediently keepe Gods holy Will &amp; Commandments,
- &amp; walke in y<sup>e</sup> same all y<sup>e</sup> dayes of thy life? <i>Ans.</i> I will.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> prayer after y<sup>e</sup> demands after these words
- [y<sup>e</sup> supplications of thy Congregation] added</td>
- <td>Sanctify this Water to y<sup>e</sup> mysticall washing away of sin.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>A marginall note added</td>
- <td>Here shall y<sup>e</sup> Priest make a crosse upon y<sup>e</sup> childes forehead.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>At y<sup>e</sup> end of y<sup>e</sup> Rubrick is added this Declaration</td>
- <td>It is certaine by Gods word that persons w<sup>ch</sup> are baptized, dying
- before they committ actuall sin, are undoubtedly saved.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>An Office for baptizing such as are of riper yeeres.</td>
- <td>added.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Confirmation.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>Then shall y<sup>e</sup> Bishop say, Doe you here in y<sup>e</sup> presence of G<sup>d</sup> &amp; of
- this Congregation &amp;c. And every one shall audibly answer, I doe.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>After y<sup>e</sup> words of Confirmation added</td>
- <td>Y<sup>e</sup> L<sup>d</sup> be w<sup>th</sup> you. <i>Ans.</i> And w<sup>th</sup> thy spirit.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>Y<sup>e</sup> Lords Prayer.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>After y<sup>e</sup> Collect</td>
- <td>Another prayer added.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Visitation of y<sup>e</sup> Sick.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>for ever.</td>
- <td><i>Ans.</i> Spare us good Lord.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Y<sup>e</sup> 2d prayer</td>
- <td>enlarged.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>A Commendatory Prayer.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>A Prayer for a Sick Child.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>A Prayer when there appears small hope of recovery.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>A Commendatory at y<sup>e</sup> point of death.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>A Prayer for persons troubled in minde.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Buriall.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>After they are come into y<sup>e</sup> Church, shall be read one or both these
- Psalms, 30, 90.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>Everlasting Glory</td>
- <td>through Jesus Christ our Lord.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>At the End</td>
- <td>Y<sup>e</sup> Grace of our L<sup>d</sup> Jesus Christ &amp;c.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="header1" colspan="2"><i>Commination.</i></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td>In y<sup>e</sup> last prayer after [look upon us]</td>
- <td>in y<sup>e</sup> merits &amp; mediation of thy blessed Son Jesus Christ our L<sup>d</sup>. Amen.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td>Then shall y<sup>e</sup> Minister alone say, Y<sup>e</sup> Lord blesse us, &amp; keepe us,
- y<sup>e</sup> L<sup>d</sup> lift up y<sup>e</sup> light of his countenance upon us &amp; give us
- peace, now and for ever more. Amen.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_521">[521]</span></p>
-
-
-<h3>No. III.&mdash;Vol. I., p. 180.</h3>
-
-<p>Points in which the Prayer Book, according to <i>Cardwell’s
-Conferences</i>, was modified in 1662, in compliance with the
-recommendation of the Puritans.</p>
-
-<p>This list of alterations has been given me by my kind friend, Dr.
-Swainson.</p>
-
-<p>Page 314. <i>Lord’s Prayer.</i> The Doxology was added at the beginning
-of Morning and Evening Prayer, in the Post-Communion service, and in
-the Churching of women.</p>
-
-<p>Page 315. <i>Plain tune.</i> Altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 316. Collect for Christmas Day. <i>This day</i> altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 316. &emsp;&ensp;„&emsp;&nbsp; „&ensp; Whit Sunday. &emsp;&ensp;„&emsp; „&ensp; altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 317. Very many of the Collects were altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 317. “Time assigned not sufficient.” Rubric altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 317. The next Rubric was altered too, though insufficiently.</p>
-
-<p>Page 318. [The preface asked for was inserted in the written book which
-we saw in the Library of the House of Lords, and then erased.<a id="FNanchor_614" href="#Footnote_614" class="fnanchor">[614]</a>]</p>
-
-<p>Page 319, line 10. Exhortation altered; the words are read now on the
-Sunday before the administration, and not “at the Communion.”</p>
-
-<p>Page 319, line 30. The confession is now appointed to be made “by one
-of the Ministers,” not by one of the people.</p>
-
-<p>Page 320, line 11, &amp;c. The words “this day” altered, “as at this time.”</p>
-
-<p>Page 320, line 17, &amp;c. This is interesting. My note from the MS. book
-is this. The words there ran, “that our sinful bodies and souls may be
-made clean by his body, and washed through his most precious blood.”
-This would have pleased the Puritan party. It was however altered
-<i>back</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Page 321, line 1. Thus it was in accordance with the wishes of the
-same party that the marginal directions were added in the prayer of
-Consecration.</p>
-
-<p>Page 322, line 15. The Rubric was added with alterations, not however
-affecting the point at issue.</p>
-
-
-<p>Page 324, line 5. Expressions altered. (Query, sufficiently?)</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 324, line 18. “Doest thou forsake?” The words were altered, but not as
-the Puritans desired.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_522">[522]</span></p>
-
-<p>Page 325, line 10. Unless by <i>a lawful</i> minister. (Altered
-accordingly.)</p>
-
-<p>Page 325, line 13. [No part is reiterated.]</p>
-
-<p>Page 327, line 1. Altered. Note the praise of that part of the catechism
-which concerns the doctrine of the Sacraments.</p>
-
-<p>Page 327, line 20. [Rubrick was altered, whether satisfactorily, I
-question.]</p>
-
-<p>Page 327, line 32. The words “are come to a competent age,” were added,
-and another rubric limiting the children to be presented, to those whom
-<i>the Curate shall think fit</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Page 328, line 23. Altered slightly.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 329, line 30. Altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 330, line 31. <i>Depart.</i> Altered to “Do part.”</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 331, line 13. Omitted.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 331, line 18. Altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 331, line 30. Altered.</p>
-
-<p>&emsp;„&ensp; 333, line 14. Altered. “Resurrection” into “the resurrection.”</p>
-
-<p>Page 333, line 22. Altered.</p>
-
-<p>Page &emsp;„&ensp;, line 1–9. Altered.</p>
-
-<p>Page &emsp;„&ensp;, line 11. The Psalm 121 altered.</p>
-
-<p><i>So much for details.</i></p>
-
-<p>I will make a few more notes in the <i>same direction</i>:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>The prayer, “O God, whose nature and property,” altered as recommended
-in 1641. (<i>Cardwell</i>, page 277, line 10.)</p>
-
-<p>Thanksgiving added. (<i>Cardwell</i>, page 309, line 30.)</p>
-
-<p>New Translation used in Gospels and Epistles. (<i>Cardwell</i>, page
-307, line 4, &amp;c.)</p>
-
-<p>“Portion of Scripture appointed for the Epistles.” (<i>Cardwell</i>,
-page 308, line 13.)</p>
-
-<p>The first Rubric in the Burial Service, “Here it is to be noted, &amp;c.,”
-would clearly gratify the Puritans.</p>
-
-<p>The position of the woman at churching was altered. (<i>Cardwell</i>,
-page 334.)</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. IV.&mdash;Vol. I. chap. x.</h3>
-
-<p>The following is a copy of the Act of Uniformity taken from the Rolls
-by a clerk connected with the House of Lords. All the passages printed
-within brackets, with a broader margin or underlined, are amendments
-upon the Bill in its original form, and notified accordingly in the
-original.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_523">[523]</span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">14 C. 2, Chap 4.</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><i>An Act for the Uniformity of Publique Prayers and
-Administration of Sacraments other Rites Ceremonies and for
-establishing the form of making ordaining and consecrating
-Bishops Priests and Deacons in the Church of England.</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">I. Recital of Act of Uniformity under Elizabeth.</div>
-
-<p>Whereas in the first yeare of the late Queene Elizabeth there was one
-uniforme Order of Comon Service and Prayer and of the Administration
-of Sacraments rites and Ceremonies in the Church of England (agreeable
-to the word of God and usage of the primitive Church) compiled by the
-Reverend Bishopps and Clergy set forth in one Booke entituled the Booke
-of Comon prayer and Administration of Sacraments and other Rites and
-Ceremonies in the Church of England and enjoyned to be used by Act
-of Parliament holden in the said first yeare of the said late Queene
-entituled An Act for the Uniformity of Comon prayer and Service in
-the Church and Administration of the Sacraments very comfortable to
-all good people desirous to live in Christian conversation and most
-profitable to the Estate of this Realme upon the which the Mercy Favour
-and Blessing of Almighty God is in no wise so readily and plentifully
-poured as by Comon prayers due useing of the Sacraments and often
-preaching of the Gospell with Devotion of the Hearers And yet this
-notwithstanding a great number of people in divers parts of this Realm
-following their own sensualitie and liveing without knowledge and due
-feare of God do willfully and schismatically abstaine and refuse to
-come to theire Parish Churches and other publique places where Comon
-Prayer Administration of the Sacraments and preaching of the word of
-God is used upon the Sundayes and other dayes ordained and appointed
-to be kept and observed as Holy dayes. And whereas by the great and
-scandalous neglect of Ministers in using the said order or Liturgy so
-set forth and enjoined as aforesaid great mischeefs inconveniences
-during the times of the late unhappy troubles have arisen and grown
-and many people have been led into Factions and Schismes to the great
-decay and scandall of the Reformed Religion of the Church of England
-and to the hazard of many souls [For prevention whereof in time to
-<span class="sni">Amendment.</span>
-come for setling the Peace of the Church and for allaying the present
-distempers which the indisposition of the time hath contracted. The
-<span class="sni">The King’s declaration 25th October 1660.</span>King’s Majestie according to His Declaration of the five and twentieth
-of October One thousand six hundred and sixty granted <span class="sni">Commission for Conference.</span>His Comission
-under the Great Seale of England to severall Bishopps and other Divines
-to review the Booke of Comon prayer and to prepare such alterations
-and additions as they thought fitt to offer. And afterwards the
-Convocations of both the provinces of <span class="sni">Convocation.</span>Canterbury and Yorke being by
-His Majesty called and assembled and now sitting His<span class="pagenum" id="Page_524">[524]</span> Majestie hath
-beene pleased to authorize and require the presidents of the said
-Convocations and other the Bishopps and Clergy of the same to review
-the said Booke of Comon prayer and the booke of the forme and manner
-of the making and consecrating of Bishops Preists and Deacons. And
-that after mature consideration they should make such additions and
-alterations in the said Bookes respectively as to them should seem
-meet and convenient and should exhibit and present the same to His
-Majesty in writing for his further allowance or confirmation since
-which time upon full and mature deliberation they the said President
-Bishops and Clergy of both provinces have accordingly reviewed the said
-Bookes and have made some alterations which they thinke fitt to be
-inserted to the same and some additionall prayers to the said booke of
-Comon prayer to be used upon proper and emergent occasions. And have
-exhibited and presented the same unto His Majestie in writing in one
-Booke entituled the Booke of Comon Prayer and Administration of the
-Sacraments and other rites and Ceremonies of the Church according to
-the use of the Church of England togeather with the psalter or Psalmes
-of David pointed as they are to be sung or said in Churches and (the)
-forme and manner of making ordaining and consecrating of Bishopps
-Preists and Deacons All which His Majesty haveing duly considered hath
-fully approved and allowed the same and recomended to this present
-Parliament that the said bookes of Comon prayer and of the forme of
-ordination and consecration of Bishops priests and Deacons with the
-alterations and additions which have beene soe made and psented to His
-Majesty by the said Convocations be the Booke which shall be appointed
-to be used by all that officiate in all Cathedrall and Collegiate
-Churches and Chappells and in all Chappells of Colledges and Halls in
-both the Universities and the Colledges of Eaton and Winchester and
-in all Parish Churches and Chappells within the Kingdome of England
-Dominion of Wales and Toune of Berwick upon Tweed and by all that make
-or consecrate Bishops Preists or Deacons in any of the said places
-under such sanctions and penalties as the Houses of parliament shall
-thinke fitt] <span class="sni">II. Religion advanced by Uniform worship.</span>Now in regard that nothing conduceth more to the setling
-of the Peace of this Nation (which is desired of all good men) nor
-to the honour of our Religion and the propagation thereof than an
-universall agreement in the publique worshipp of Almighty God and
-to the intent that every person within this Realme may certainely
-knowe the rule in which he is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_525">[525]</span> to comforme in publique worship and
-administration of Sacraments [<i>and other rites and ceremonies of the
-Church of England and the manner how and by whom Bishops Preists and
-Deacons are and ought to be made ordained and consecrated</i>]. Be it
-enacted by the Kings most Excellent Majestie by the advice and with
-the consent of the Lords [<i>Spirituall and Temporall and of the</i>]
-Comons in this present parliament assembled and by the authority of
-the same That all and singular Ministers in any Cathedrall Collegiate
-or Parish Church or Chappell or other place of publique worship within
-this Realme of England Dominion of Wales and Toun of Berwick upon
-Tweed shall be bound to say and use the morning prayer Evening prayer
-Celebracon and administracon of both the Sacraments and all other
-the publique and Comon prayer in such order and forme as is menconed
-in the [<i>said</i>] booke annexed and joyned in this present Act
-and intituled The Booke of Comon prayer and administration of the
-Sacraments and other rites and Ceremonies of the Church [<i>according
-to the use of the Church</i>] of England [<i>togeather with the
-psalter or Psalmes of David pointed as they are to be sung or said in
-Churches and (the) forme or manner of making ordaining and consecrating
-of Bishops Preists &amp; Deacons</i>] And that the Morning and Evening
-prayers therein contained shall upon every Lords day and upon all
-other [<i>dayes and</i>] occasions and att the times therein appointed
-be openly and solemnly read by all and every minister or Curate in
-every Church Chappell or other place of publique worshipp within this
-Realme of England and places aforesaid <span class="sni">III. All ministers to declare assent to Book of Common Prayer.</span>And to the end that uniformity
-in the publique worshipp of God (which is so much desired) may be
-speedily effected bee it farther Enacted by the authority aforesaid
-That every parson vicar or other Minister whatsoever who now hath and
-enjoyeth any Ecclesiasticall Benefice or promotion within this Realme
-of England or places aforesaid shall in the Church Chappell or place
-of publique worshipp belonging to his said benefice or promotion upon
-some Lords day before the Feast of Saint Bartholomew which shall be
-in the yeare of our Lord God One thousand six hundred sixty and two
-openly publiquely and solemnly read the morning and Evening prayer
-appointed to be read by and according to the said Booke of Comon prayer
-att the times thereby appointed and after such reading thereof shall
-openly and publiquely before the congregation there assembled declare
-his unfeigned assent &amp; consent to the use of all things in the said
-booke contained and prescribed <span class="sni">Amendment.</span>[in these words and no other. I, A.
-B doe declare my unfaigned assent and <span class="sni">IV. Form of Declaration.</span>consent to all and everything
-contained and prescribed in and by the booke intituled The booke of
-Comon Prayer and Administration of the Sacraments and other rites
-and ceremonies of the Church<span class="pagenum" id="Page_526">[526]</span> according to the use of the Church of
-England togeather with the psalter or psalmes of David poynted as they
-are to be sung or said in Churches and the form or manner of making
-ordaining and consecrating of <span class="sni">V. Penalty of refusing.</span>Bishops Preists and Deacons] And that
-all and every such person who shall (without some lawfull impediment
-to be allowed and approved of by the Ordinary of the place) neglect
-or refuse to doe the same within the time aforesaid (or in case of
-such impediment) within one moneth after such impediment removed shall
-(ipso facto) be deprived of all his spirituall promotions And that
-from thenceforth it shall be lawfull to and for all patrons and donors
-of all and singuler the said Spiritual promotions or of any of them
-according to theire respective rights and titles to present or collate
-to the same as though the person or persons so offending or neglecting
-were dead. <span class="sni">VI. Declaration to be made in all cases of promotion.</span>And bee it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that
-every person whoe shall hereafter be presented or collated or put
-into any Ecclesiastical Benefice or promotion within this Realme of
-England and places aforesaid shall in the Church Chappell or place of
-publiq worshipp belonging to his said benefice or promotion within
-two moneths next after that he shall be in the actuall possession of
-the said Ecclesiastical benefice or promotion upon some Lords day
-openly publiquely and solemnly read the morning and Evening prayers
-appointed to be read by and according to the said booke of Comon
-prayer att the times thereby appointed and after such reading thereof
-shall openly and publiquely before the Congregation there assembled
-declare his unfeigned assent and consent to the use of all things
-therein contained and prescribed [<i>according to the forme before
-appointed</i>] And that all and every such person who shall (without
-some lawful impediment to be allowed and approved by the ordinary of
-the place) neglect or refuse to doe the same within the time aforesaid
-(or in case of such impediment within one moneth after such impediment
-removed) shall [ipso facto] be deprived of all his said Ecclesiasticall
-Benefices and promotions And that from thenceforth it shall and may
-be lawfull to and for all patrons and Donors of all and singuler the
-said Ecclesiastical Benefices and promotions or any of them (according
-to theire respective rights and titles) to present or collate to the
-same as though the person or persons so offending or neglecting were
-dead <span class="sni">VII. Amendment Incumbents to read the Common Prayer once a month.</span>[And be it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that in
-all places where the proper Incumbent of any parsonage or vicaridge
-or Benefice with Cure doth reside on his living and keepe a Curate
-the Incumbent himselfe in person (not haveing some lawful impediment
-to be allowed by the Ordinary of the place) shall once (at the least)
-in every moneth openly and publiquely read the Comon prayers<span class="pagenum" id="Page_527">[527]</span> and
-service in and by the said Booke prescribed and (if there be occasion)
-administer each of the sacraments and other rites of the Church in
-the parish Church or Chappell of or belonging to the same parsonage
-vicarage or benefice in such order manner and forme as in and by the
-said booke is appointed upon pain to forfeit the sum of five pounds to
-the use of the poore of the Parish for every offence upon conviction
-by confession or proofe of two credible witnesses upon Oath before
-two Justices of the peace of the County City or Toun Corporate where
-the offence shall be comitted (which Oath the said Justices are hereby
-impowered to administer) and in default of payment within ten dayes
-to be levied by distresse and sale of the goods and chattells of the
-offender by the warrant of the said Justices by the Church Wardens or
-Overseers of the poore of the said Parish rendring the surplusage to
-the party <span class="sni">VIII. Deans and Canons, &amp;c., shall subscribe declaration
-following.</span>And be it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that
-every Deane Canon and prebendary of every Cathedrall or Collegiate
-Church and all Masters and other Heads Fellowes Chaplaines and Tutors
-of or in any Colledge Hall House of Learning or Hospitall and every
-publique professor and Reader in either of the Universities and in
-every Colledge elsewhere and every parson viccar curate lecturer and
-every other person in Holy Orders and every Schoolmaster keeping any
-publique or private Schools and every person instructing or teaching
-any youth in any House or private family as a Tutor or Schoolmaster
-who upon the first day of May which shall be in the yeare of our Lord
-God One thousand six hundred sixty two or at any time thereafter
-shall be Incumbent or have possession of any Deanry Canonry Prebend
-Mastershipp Headshipp Fellowshipp Professors place or Readers place
-Parsonage vicarage or any other Ecclesiasticall Dignity or promotion
-or of any Curates place Lecture or School or shall instruct or teach
-any youth as Tutor or Schoolmaster shall before the Feast day of St.
-Bartholomew which shall be in the yeare of our Lord One thousand six
-hundred sixty two or at or before his or theire respective admission to
-the Incumbent or have possession aforesaid subscribe the Declaration
-or acknowledgement following scilicet.&mdash;I, A, B, do declare that it
-is not lawfull upon any pretence whatsoever to take Armes against
-the King and that I do abhorr that traiterous position of taking
-<span class="sni">IX. The declaration of non-resistance and repudiating the Covenant.</span>Armes by his Authority against his person or against those that are
-commissionated by him And that I will conforme to the Liturgy of the
-Church of England as it is now by Law established And I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_528">[528]</span> do declare
-that I do hold there lies no obligacon upon me or on any other
-person from the Oath comonly called the Solemne League and Covenant
-[<i>to endeavour any change or alteration of Government either in
-Church or State</i>] And that the same was in itselfe an unlawfull
-Oath and imposed upon the subjects of this Realme against the knowne
-lawes and liberties of this <span class="sni">X. Penalty for not subscribing.</span>Kingdome.&mdash;Which said Declaration and
-acknowledgment shall be subscribed by every of the said Masters and
-other Heads fellowes Chaplaines and Tutors of or in any Colledge
-Hall or House of Learning and by every publique professor and Reader
-in either of the Universities before the Vice-Chancellor of the
-respective Universities for the time being, or his Deputy And the said
-Declaration or acknowledgment shall he subscribed before the respective
-Archbishopp Bishopp or Ordinary of the Diocesse by every other person
-hereby enjoyned to subscribe the same upon pain that all and every of
-the persons aforesaid failing in such subscription shall loose and
-forfeit such respective Deanery Canonry Prebend Mastershipp headshipp
-fellowshipp Professors place Readers place parsonage viccarage
-Ecclesiasticall Dignity or promotion Curates place Lecture and School
-and shall be utterly disabled and (ipso facto) deprived of the same
-And that every such respective Deanry Canonry Prebend Mastership
-headship fellowship Professors place Readers place parsonage viccarage
-Ecclesiasticall Dignity or promotion Curates place lecture and schools
-shall be void as if such person so failing were naturally <span class="sni">XI. Schoolmasters in private houses included.</span>dead.&mdash;And if
-any Schoolmaster or other person instructing or teaching youth in any
-private House or family as a Tutor or Schoolmaster shall instruct or
-teach any youth as a Tutor or Schoolmaster before licence obtained from
-his respective Archbishop Bishop or Ordinary of the Diocesse according
-to the Lawes and Statutes of this Realme (for which he shall pay twelve
-pence onely) and before such subscription and acknowledgement made
-as aforesaid then every such Schoolmaster and other instructing and
-teaching as aforesaid shall for the first offence suffer three moneth
-imprisonment without baile or mainprize and for every second and other
-such offence shall suffer three months imprisonment without baile or
-mainprize and alsoe forfeit to his Majesty the sume of five pounds
-And after such subscription made every such Parson Viccar Curate and
-Lecturer shall procure a Certificate under the hand and seal of the
-respective Archbishop Bishop or Ordinary of the Diocese (whoe are
-hereby enjoyned and required upon demaund to make and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_529">[529]</span> deliver the
-same) and shall publickly and openly read the same togeather with the
-declaration or acknowledgement aforesaid upon some Lords day within
-three moneths then next following in his Parish Church where he is to
-officiate in the presence of the Congregation there assembled in the
-time of Divine Service upon pain that every person failing therein
-shall loose such Parsonage Viccarage or Benefice Curates place or
-Lecturers place respectively and shall be utterly disabled (ipso
-facto) deprived of the same And that the said Parsonage Viccarage or
-Benefice Curates place or Lecturers place shall be void as if he was
-naturally dead Provided alwaies that from and <span class="sni">XII. Omissions in declaration after 25 March, 1682.</span>after the twenty fifth
-day of March which shall be in the yeare of our Lord God one thousand
-six hundred eighty two there shall be omitted in the said Declaration
-or Acknowledg<sup>t.</sup> so to be subscribed and read these words following
-scilicet.&mdash;And I do declare that I do hold there lies no obligacon on
-me or any other person from the Oath comonly called the Solemne League
-and Covenant to endeavour any change or alteration of Government either
-in Church or State and that the same was in itselfe an unlawfull Oath
-and imposed upon the Subjects of this Realme against the knowne lawes
-and liberties of this Kingdome So as none of the persons aforesaid
-shall from thence forth be at all obliged to subscribe or read that
-part of the said declaration or acknowledgement <span class="sni">XIII. Persons not episcopally ordained incapable of ecclesiastical referment.</span>Provided alwaies and be
-it Enacted that from and after the feast of St. Bartholomew which shall
-be in the yeare of our Lord One thousand six hundred sixty and two no
-person who now is Incumbent and in possession of any Parsonage Vicarage
-or Benefice and who is not already in Holy Orders by Episcopall
-Ordination or shall not before the said feast day of St. Bartholomew
-be ordained Preist or Deacon according to the forme of Episcopall
-Ordination shall have hold or enjoye the said Parsonage Vicarage
-Benefice with Cure or other Ecclesiasticall Promotion within this
-Kingdome of England or the Dominion of Wales [<i>or town of Berwick
-upon Tweed</i>] but shall be utterly disabled and (ipso facto) deprived
-of the same And all his Ecclesiastical promotions shall be void as
-if he was naturally dead. And be it further Enacted by the authority
-aforesaid that no person whatsoever shall thenceforth <span class="sni">XIV. And of administering sacraments.</span>(<i>be capable to
-bee admitted to any parsonage vicarage benefice or other Ecclesiastical
-Promotion or Dignity whatsoever nor shall</i>) presume to consecrate
-and administer the Holy Sacrament of the Lords Supper before such time
-as he shall be ordained Preist according to the forme<span class="pagenum" id="Page_530">[530]</span> and manner in
-and by the said booke prescribed unlesse he have formerly beene made
-Preist by Episcopall Ordination upon pain to forfeit for every offence
-the sum of one hundred pounds one moyety thereof to the Kings Majesty
-the other moyety thereof to be equally divided betweene the poore of
-the parish where the offence shall be comitted and such person or
-persons as shall sue for the same by Action of debt bill plaint or
-information in any of His Majesties Courts of Record wherein no essoine
-protection or wager of law shall be allowed and to be disabled from
-taking or being admitted into the order of Preist by the space of one
-whole yeare then next following <span class="sni">XV. Exception on behalf of foreigners.</span>Provided that the penalties in this Act
-shall not extend to the forreiners or aliens of the forrein Reformed
-Churches allowed or to be allowed by the Kings Majestie his heires and
-successors in England <span class="sni">XVI. Cases of voidance or deprivation.</span>Provided alwaies that no title to conferre or
-present by lapse shall accrewe by any avoydance or deprivation (ipso
-facto) by vertue of this Statute but after six moneths after notice
-of such voidance or deprivation given by the Ordinary to the patron
-or such sentence of deprivation openly and publiquely read in the
-Parish Church of the Benefice Parsonage or Vicarage becomeing void or
-whereof the Incumbent shall be deprived by vertue of this Act. <span class="sni">XVII. No other form of prayer to be publicly used.</span>And be
-it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid that no form or order of
-Comon prayers administracon of Sacraments rites or Ceremonies shall
-be openly used in any Church Chappell or other publique place of or
-in any Colledge or Hall in either of the Universities the Colledges
-of Westminster Winchester or Eaton or any of them other than what is
-pscribed and appointed to be used in and by the said booke And that
-the present Governour or Head of every Colledge or Hall in the said
-Universities and of the said Colledges of Westminster Winchester and
-Eaton within one moneth after the feast of S<sup>t.</sup> Bartholomew which
-shall be in the yeare of our Lord One thousand six hundred sixty and
-two And every Governour or Head of any of the said Colledges or Halls
-hereafter to be elected or appointed within one moneth next after
-his Election or Collation and admission into the same Government or
-Headship shall openly and publiquely in the Church Chappell or other
-publique place of the same College or Hall and in the psence of the
-fellowes and Sckolars of the same or the greater part of them then
-resident subscribe <span class="sni">Subscription to Articles.</span>unto the nine and thirty Articles of Religion
-mentioned in the Statute made in the thirteenth yeare of the Reigne
-of the late Queene Elizabeth And unto the said booke and declare his
-unfeigned assent and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_531">[531]</span> consent unto and approbation of the said Articles
-and of the same booke and to the use of all the prayers rites and
-ceremonies formes and orders in the said Booke prescribed and contained
-according to the form aforesaid And that all such Governours or Heads
-of the said Colledges and Halls or any of them as are or shall be in
-Holy Orders shall once (at least) in every quarter of the yeare (not
-having a lawfull impediment) openly and publiquely read the Morning
-prayer and service in and by the said booke appointed to be read in the
-Church Chappell or other publique place of the same Colledge or Hall
-upon pain to loose and be suspended of and from all (the) benefitts and
-profitts belonging to the same Government or headshipp by the space of
-six moneths by the Visitor or visitors of the same Colledge or hall
-And if any Governour or head of any Colledge or Hall suspended for not
-subscribing unto the said Articles and booke or for not reading of the
-Morning prayer and service as aforesaid shall not att or before the
-end of six moneths next after such suspension subscribe unto the said
-Articles and booke and declare his consent thereunto as aforesaid or
-read the Morning prayer and service as aforesaid then such Government
-or headshipp shall be (ipso facto) void. <span class="sni">XVIII. Who may use the service in Latin.</span>Provided alwaies that it
-shall and may be lawful to use the Morning and Evening prayer and
-all other prayers and service prescribed in and by the said booke in
-the Chappells or other publique places of the respective Colledges
-and Halls in both the Universities in the Colledges of Westminster
-Winchester and Eaton and in the Convocations of the Clergies of either
-province in Latine any thing in this Act contained to the contrary
-notwithstanding.]</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">XIX. Amendment Lecturers.</div>
-
-<p>And be it further Enacted by the authority aforesaid [that no person
-shall be or be received as a Lecturer or permitted suffered or allowed
-to preach as a Lecturer or to preach or read any Sermon or Lecture
-in any Church Chappell or other place of publique worshipp within
-this Realme of England or the Dominion of Wales and Towne of Berwick
-upon Tweed unless he be first approved and thereunto licensed by the
-Archbishopp of the province or Bishopp of the Diocesse or (in case the
-See be void) by the Guardian of the Spiritualities under his Seale and
-shall in the psence of the same Archbishop or Bishop or Guardian read
-the nine and thirty Articles of Religion mentioned in the Statute of
-the thirteenth yeare of the late Queene Elizabeth with declaration of
-his unfeigned assent to the same And] that every person and persons
-whoe nowe is or hereafter shall bee (<i>licensed</i>) assigned<span class="pagenum" id="Page_532">[532]</span> (or)
-appointed or received as a Lecturer to preach upon any day of the weeke
-in any Church Chappell or place of publique worship within this Realme
-of England or places aforesaid the first time he preacheth (before his
-Sermon) shall openly publiquely and solemnly read the Comon prayers
-and service in and by the said booke appointed to be read for that
-time of the day and then and there publiquely and openly declare his
-assent unto and approbation of the said booke and to the use of all
-the prayers rites and ceremonies formes and orders therein contained
-and prescribed according to the forme before appointed in this Act <span class="sni">Amendment.</span>And
-alsoe shall upon the first lecture day [of every moneth afterwards so
-long as he continues lecturer or preacher there at the place appointed
-for his said lecture or sermon before his said Lecture or Sermon openly
-publiquely and solemnly read the Common prayers and service in and by
-the said booke appointed to be read for that time of the day at which
-the said lecture or sermon is to be preached and after such reading
-thereof shall openly and publiquely before the Congregation there
-assembled declare his unfeigned assent and consent unto and approbation
-of the said booke and to the use of all the prayers rites and
-ceremonies forms and orders therein contained and prescribed according
-to the forme aforesaid] and that all and every such person and persons
-who shall neglect or refuse to do the same shall from thenceforth be
-disabled to preach the said or any other lecture or sermon in the said
-or any other Church Chappell or place of publique worshipp untill such
-time as he (<i>and they</i>) shall openly publiquely and solemnly read
-the (<i>Common</i>) prayers (<i>and service appointed</i>) by the said
-booke and conform in all points to the things therein appointed and
-prescribed (<i>according to the purport true intent and meaning of this
-Act</i>) <span class="sni">XX. Amendment. In Cathedral or Collegiate Churches.</span>[Provided alwaies that if the said Sermon or Lecture be to be
-preached or read in any Cathedrall or Collegiate Church or Chappell it
-shall be sufficient for the said Lecturer openly at the time aforesaid
-to declare his assent and consent to all things contained in the said
-booke according to the form aforesaid] <span class="sni">XXI. Penalty for preaching by persons disabled.</span>And be it further Enacted by
-the authority aforesaid That if any person who is by this Act disabled
-to preach any Lecture or Sermon shall during the time that he shall
-continue and remaine so disabled preach any Sermon or Lecture that
-then for every such offence the person and persons so offending shall
-suffer three monthes imprisonment in the Comon Goal without baile or
-mainprize and that any two Justices of the Peace of any County of this
-Kingdome and places aforesaid and the Maior or other Cheife Magistrate
-of any City or Town Corporate within the same upon Certificate from
-the Ordinary of the place made to him or them of the offence committed
-(<i>shall and are<span class="pagenum" id="Page_533">[533]</span> hereby required</i>) to committ the person or
-persons so offending to the Gaol of the same County City or Town
-Corporate accordingly [Provided alwaies and be it further <span class="sni">XXII. Amendment. Common Prayer to be read before every
-lecture.</span>Enacted by
-the authority aforesaid that at all and every time and times when any
-Sermon or Lecture is to be preached the Comon Prayers and Service in
-and by the said Booke appointed to be read for that time of the day
-shall be openly publiquely and solemnely read by some Preist or Deacon
-in the Church Chappell or place of publique Worship where the said
-Sermon or Lecture is to be preached before such Sermon or Lecture be
-preached and that the Lecturer then to preach shall be present at the
-reading thereof <span class="sni">XXIII. Proviso touching Universities.</span>Provided neverthelesse that this Act shall not extend
-to the University-Churches in the Universities of this Realme or either
-of them when or at such times as any Sermon or Lecture is preached
-or read in the same Churches or any of them for or as the publique
-University-Sermon or Lecture but that the same Sermons and Lectures
-may be preached or read in such sort and manner as the same have been
-heretofore preached or read this Act or anything herein conteyned to
-the contrary thereof in any wise notwithstanding.] <span class="sni">XXIV. Former laws for uniformity confirmed.</span>And bee it further
-Enacted by the authority aforesaid That the severall good Lawes and
-Statutes of this Realme which have been formerly made and are now in
-force for the uniformity of Prayer and administration of the Sacraments
-within this Realme of England and places aforesaid shall stand in full
-force and strength to all intents and purposes whatsoever for the
-establishing and confirming of the [<i>said booke entitled the</i>]
-booke of Comon Prayer and administration of the Sacraments [<i>and
-other rites and ceremonies of the Church according to y<sup>e</sup> use of y<sup>e</sup>
-Church of England together with the Psalter or Psalmes of David pointed
-as they are to be sung or said in Churches and the forme or manner of
-making ordeyning and consecrating of Bishops Preists and Deacons</i>]
-herein before menconed to bee joyned and annexed to this Act And shall
-be applyed practised and put in use for the punishing of all offences
-contrary to the said Lawes with relation to the Booke aforesaid and
-no other Provided alwayes <span class="sni">XXV. Prayers for the King, &amp;c.</span>And bee it further Enacted by the authority
-aforesaid That in all those Prayers Letanyes and Collects which doe any
-way relate to the King Queene or Royal Progeny the names be altered
-and changed from time to time and fitted to the present occasion
-according to the direccon of lawfull authority. <span class="sni">XXVI. Copies of Prayer Book to be provided in all parishes
-&amp;c.</span>Provided also and be
-it Enacted by the authority aforesaid that a true printed Copy of the
-said Booke entituled the Booke of Comon Prayer and Administration of
-the Sacraments and other rites and ceremonyes of the Church according
-to the use of the Church of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_534">[534]</span> England togeather with the Psalter or
-Psalmes of David pointed as they are to be sung or said in Churches
-and the forme [<i>and manner</i>] of making ordeyning and consecrating
-of Bishops Preists and Deacons shall at the costs and charges of the
-parishioners of every parish church and chappelry cathedrall church
-colledge and hall be attained and gotten before the Feast day of Saint
-Bartholomew in the yeare of our Lord one thousand Sixe hundred sixty
-and two upon paine of forfeiture of three pounds by the moneth for
-so long time as they shall thenafter be unprovided thereof by every
-Parish or Chappelry Cathedrall Church Colledge and Hall making default
-therein. <span class="sni">XXVII. Translation of Common Prayer into Welsh.</span>Provided alwayes and bee it Enacted by the authority aforesaid
-That the Bishops of Hereford St. David’s Asaph Bangor and Landaph and
-their successors shall take such order among themselves for the soules
-health of the flocks comitted to their charge within Wales That the
-Booke hereunto annexed be truly and exactly translated [<i>into the
-British or Welsh Tongue and that the same so translated</i>] and being
-by them or any three of them at the least viewed perused and allowed
-bee imprinted to such number at least so that one of the said Books so
-translated and imprinted may be had for every Cathedrall Collegiate and
-Parish Church and Chappell of Ease in the said respective Diocesses and
-places in Wales where the Welsh is comonly spoken or used before the
-first day of May one thousand six hundred sixty five And that from and
-after the imprinting and publishing of the said Booke so translated
-the whole Divine Service shall be used and said by the Ministers and
-Curates throughout all Wales within the said Diocesses where the Welsh
-Tongue is comonly used in the Brittish or Welsh Tongue in such manner
-and forme as is prescribed according to the Booke hereunto annexed
-to be used in the English Tongue differing nothing in any order or
-forme from the said English Booke For which Booke so translated and
-imprinted the Churchwardens of every of the said Parishes shall pay
-out of the parish money in their hands for the use of the respective
-Churches and be allowed the same on their account And that the said
-Bishops and their successors or any three of them at the least shall
-sett and appoynt the price for which the said Booke shall be sold And
-one other Booke of Comon Prayer in the English tongue shall be bought
-and had in every Church throughout Wales in which the Booke of Comon
-Prayer in which is to bee had by force of this Act before the first
-day of May one thousand six hundred sixty and fower and the same Booke
-to remaine in such convenient places within the said Churches that
-such as understand them may resort at all convenient tymes to read
-and peruse the same. And alsoe such as doe not understand the sayd
-language may by conferring both tongues together the sooner attaine
-to the knowledge of the English<span class="pagenum" id="Page_535">[535]</span> Tongue Any thing in this Act to the
-contrary notwithstanding And untill printed Copies of the said booke
-soe to bee translated may bee had and provided The forme of Comon
-Prayer established by Parlyament before the making of this Act shall
-be used as formerly in such parts of Wales where the English Tongue is
-not comonly understood <span class="sni">XXVIII. “Sealed books” to be obtained and kept.</span>And to the end that the true and perfect copies
-of this Act and the said booke hereunto annexed may be safely kept and
-perpetually preserved and for the avoyding of all disputes for the
-tyme to come Bee it therefore Enacted by the authority aforesaid that
-the respective Deanes and Chapters of every Cathedrall or Collegiate
-Church within England and Wales shall at their proper costs and charges
-before the Twentie fifth day of December one thousand six hundred sixty
-and two obtaine under the Greate Seale of England a true and perfect
-printed Copie of this Act and of the said booke annexed hereunto to bee
-by the said Deanes and Chapters and their successors kept and preserved
-in safety for ever and to bee allso produced and shewed forth in any
-Court of Record as often as they shall bee thereunto lawfully required
-and also there shall bee delivered true and perfect Copies of this Act
-and of the same booke into the respective Courts at Westminster and
-into the Tower of London to be kept and preserved for ever among the
-Records of the said Courts and the Records of the Tower to be alsoe
-produced and shewed forth in any Court as neede shall require which
-sayd books soe to be exemplyfied under the Great Seale of England shall
-be examined by such persons as the King’s Majestie shall appoint under
-the Great Seale of England for that purpose and shall bee compared with
-the originall booke hereunto annexed and shall have power to correct
-and amend in writing any error comitted by the Printer in the printing
-of the same booke or of any thing therein conteyned and shall certifie
-in writing under their hands and seales or the hands and seales of any
-three of them at the end of the same booke that they have examined
-and compared the same booke and finde it to bee a true and perfect
-copie which said bookes and every one of them so exemplyfied under the
-Greate Seale of England as aforesaid shall be deemed taken adjudged
-and expounded to bee good and available in the law to all intents and
-purposes whatsoever and shall be accounted as good Records as this
-booke it selfe hereunto annexed any law or custome to the contrary
-in any wise notwithstanding <span class="sni">XXIX. Proviso for King’s Professor of Law at Oxford.</span>Provided also that this Act or any thing
-therein conteyned shall not be prejudiciall or hurtfull unto the King’s
-Professor of the Law within the University of Oxford for or concerning
-the Prebend of Shipton within the Cathedrall Church of Sarum united and
-annexed unto the place of the same King’s Professor for the time being
-by the late King James of blessed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_536">[536]</span> memory Provided alwaies that whereas
-the sixe and thirtieth Article of the <span class="sni">XXX. Proviso concerning Art. 36.</span>nine and thirty Articles agreed
-upon by the Archbishops and Bishops of both Provinces and the whole
-Cleargy in the Convocation holden at London in the yeare of our Lord
-One thousand five hundred sixty two for the avoyding of diversities
-of opinions and for establishing of consent touching true Religion is
-in these words following (vizt.) “That the Book of Consecration of
-Archbishops and Bishops and ordeyning of Preistes and Deacons lately
-set forth in the time of King Edward the Sixth and confirmed at the
-same time by Authority of Parliament doth conteyne althings necessary
-to such Consecration and ordeyning Neither hath it any thing that of
-it selfe is superstitious and ungodly: And therefore whosoever are
-consecrated or Ordered according to the Rites of that Booke since the
-second yeare of the aforenamed King Edward unto this time or hereafter
-shall be consecrated or ordered according to the same rites. Wee decree
-all such to be rightly orderly and lawfully consecrated and ordered.”
-<span class="sni">XXXI. Subscription to extend to form of Consecrating
-Bishops, &amp;c.</span>It be Enacted And Be it therefore Enacted by the authority aforesaid
-That all subscriptions hereafter to be had or made unto the said
-Articles by any Deacon Preist or Ecclesiasticall person or other person
-whatsoever who by this Act or any other Law now in force is required
-to subscribe unto the said Articles shall be construed and taken to
-extend and shalbe applyed (for and touching the s<sup>d</sup> sixe and thirtieth
-Article) unto the Booke conteyning the forme and manner of making
-ordeyning and consecrating of Bishops Preists and Deacons in this Act
-mentioned in such sort and manner as the same did heretofore extend
-unto the Booke set forth in the time of King Edward the Sixth mentioned
-in the said six and thirtieth Article anything in the s<sup>d</sup> Article or
-in any Statute Act or Canon heretofore had or made to the contrary
-thereof in any wise notwithstanding <span class="sni">XXXII. Form to be used till Bartholomew’s Day, 1662.</span>Provided also that the Booke of
-Comon Prayer and Administration of the Sacraments and other rites and
-ceremonyes of this Church of England together with the forme and manner
-of ordeyning and consecrating Bishops Preists and Deacons heretofore in
-use and respectively established by Act of Parliament in the first and
-eighth years of Queen Elizabeth shalbe still used and observed in the
-Church of England untill the Feast of Saint Bartholomew which shall be
-in the yeare of our Lord God one thousand six hundred sixty and two.</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. V.&mdash;Vol. I., p. 261.</h3>
-
-<p>Letters patent on parchment are attached to the sealed books. A copy of
-the letter is given in Stephens’ edition of the Prayer Book, published
-by the Ecclesiastical History Society.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_537">[537]</span></p>
-
-<p>After reciting the Act of Uniformity, it is said, “And whereas the
-printed copy of the Act of Parliament, and Book aforesaid hereunto
-annexed, hath been duly examined by the persons, whose names are
-thereunto subscribed, in pursuance of our Commission to them and others
-in that behalf directed. Now know ye, that, we according to the form
-and effect of the said Act of Parliament, and in accomplishment of
-the intent thereof, in this behalf, have inspected the said examined
-copy of the Act of Parliament and Book aforesaid, and have caused the
-same to be hereunto annexed, and to be exemplified under the Great
-Seal of England. In witness, &amp;c.,&mdash;&mdash;; signed Barker.” No copy of the
-Commission is supplied, nor the names of the Commissioners.</p>
-
-<p>In the sealed books alterations are made by the pen of the
-Commissioners to bring them into accordance with the copy of the book
-attached to the Act. Most of these are quite unimportant. For example:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>1. <i>In the titles of the services</i>, “<i>The</i>” is prefixed to
-the word collect.</p>
-
-<p>2. <i>In the headings of the pages</i>, “<i>Trinity Sunday XXIII</i>”
-is altered into “<i>The XXIII Sunday after Trinity</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Whitsun Munday</i>” into “<i>Munday in Whitsun Week</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>It is important to notice, that the title “<i>The Creed of St.
-Athanasius</i>” was printed originally, in the sealed books, on the top
-of the page over the creed; it was then struck out by the Commissioners.</p>
-
-<p>3. <i>In the text of prayers</i>:</p>
-
-<p>In the sentences at beginning of morning prayer, it was printed,
-“Hide thy face from my sins, and blot out <i>all</i> my iniquities:”
-“<i>all</i>” was struck out. “Forgiveness” was altered into
-“Forgivene<i>sses</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>In the clause of the Lord’s Prayer “Thine is the kingdom <i>and</i> the
-power and the glory,” the first “<i>and</i>” is cancelled.</p>
-
-<p>In the Absolution, “Wherefore <i>let us beseech Him</i>,” is changed
-into “Wherefore <i>beseech we Him</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>In the sealed book at Chichester, Dr. Swainson pointed out to me
-in Psalm xc. verse 8, as used in the Burial Service, <i>light</i>
-corrected into <i>sight</i>; and in verse 12 <i>so</i> into <i>O</i>.
-Some of our modern Prayer Books retain the <i>O</i>, but have given up
-the <i>sight</i>.</p>
-
-<p>4. <i>In the Rubric</i>, at the end of the Communion Service, the
-words, “<i>for the whole state of Christ’s Church militant here on
-earth</i>,” are inserted, by the Commissioners, in some sealed books,
-after an erasure of the original printed words.</p>
-
-<p>Many of the alterations cannot be corrections of the printer’s errata.
-They evidently indicate changes of words made in the original copy
-after the printing of the books which were used as sealed copies.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_538">[538]</span></p>
-
-<p>In the Appendix to the first Report of the Royal Commission on Ritual
-will be found remarks upon the sealed copy at Ely.</p>
-
-<p>It is strange that the printers of Prayer Books do not bring them into
-correspondence with the sealed books, which alone contain the legally
-correct formularies of the Church.</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. VI.&mdash;Vol. I., p. 282.</h3>
-
-<p>The number of the ejected is a vexed question. We possess at present
-unsatisfactory data; and I fear that we shall never obtain such a
-knowledge of facts as will enable us to reach a precise conclusion.
-The Ecclesiastical Registers of the country might seem to afford great
-hope of being sufficient to decide the controversy; but, to say nothing
-of the labour of searching them, unfortunately when the work has been
-begun, in some cases, from the imperfection of the records, it has
-yielded little or no fruit.</p>
-
-<p>Some years ago I attempted searching the records of the See of London,
-in St. Paul’s Cathedral; but from the state of the records at that time
-the attempt proved unsuccessful.</p>
-
-<p>The friendly kindness of the Dean of Chichester, and Canon Swainson,
-afforded me every facility for examining the Archives in the
-Cathedral. The latter assisted me in examining the Registers; to our
-disappointment they were found defective for 1662. But as this Work
-was passing through the press, Canon Swainson communicated to me some
-valuable information, which will be subjoined to this note. At present
-our conclusions must rest upon the lists of names which have been
-published by Calamy and Palmer; and upon such general statements as are
-furnished by writers who were living at the time when the ejectment
-took place.</p>
-
-<p>Calamy, in his second volume, undertakes to give an “Account of the
-ministers who were ejected or <i>silenced</i> after the Restoration
-of King Charles II.” In his second, and two following volumes, he
-includes ministers, lecturers, masters and fellows of colleges,
-and schoolmasters. Palmer, in his <i>Nonconformist Memorial</i>,
-describes those whom he registers as “Ejected or <i>silenced</i>
-after the Restoration, particularly by the Act of Uniformity.” These
-important distinctions are often overlooked; and it is imagined that
-all the names collected together, are the names of clergymen who were
-removed from their livings on Bartholomew’s Day. Such an imagination
-is contradicted by facts. In agreement with the indication given on
-the title pages of our two principal authorities,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_539">[539]</span> we discover in
-these biographical sketches a number of incumbents who were displaced
-before the Uniformity Act was passed, most of them in consequence of
-Episcopalian clergymen having returned to claim their sequestered
-livings. Cases of this kind appear in the present History. Those
-ministers who thus lost their benefices clearly ought to be arranged in
-a class by themselves. Having set them aside, there remain others who,
-according to all accounts, did not forfeit their emoluments through
-the operation of the new Act. They consisted of such clergymen as,
-through Episcopal connivance, or from some other cause, continued to
-hold their benefices; they were comparatively few in number, and the
-benefices of most were of inconsiderable value. We are then to add
-another class, described as simple candidates for the ministry, who
-therefore possessed no livings from which they could be driven. Also we
-must separate the cases of persons who, though mentioned amongst the
-ejected, did not quit the Church until after St. Bartholomew’s Day;
-some of whom were not ministers in the Establishment at that time. The
-exceptional cases of the last three kinds, such as were connived at,
-such as were only candidates, and such as did not quit the Church until
-afterwards, so far as I can see, are altogether below fifty. I may have
-overlooked some.</p>
-
-<p>What would be the total number of the persons who, although included
-in the general list of sufferers, did not surrender their incumbencies
-on St. Bartholomew’s Day, I am at a loss to determine. The information
-given in many cases is so incomplete, that it does not show when and
-how the persons mentioned were removed. In more than five hundred
-instances bare names occur, and in many more so little is added as to
-be next to nothing. Most of the persons named were probably in some way
-or other losers for conscience’ sake; but I am not aware of any means
-by which all those among them who left the Establishment before the
-24th of August of 1662, can be separated from those who were ejected on
-that day.</p>
-
-<p>If we refer to general statements, we find Baxter saying, in his
-<i>Petition for Peace</i> presented to the Bishops with the proposed
-reformation of the Liturgy, at the Savoy Conference, “<i>Some</i>
-hundreds of able, holy, faithful ministers, are of late cast
-out.”<a id="FNanchor_615" href="#Footnote_615" class="fnanchor">[615]</a> He also speaks in the <i>Rejoinder</i> of “<i>several</i>
-hundreds.”<a id="FNanchor_616" href="#Footnote_616" class="fnanchor">[616]</a> These statements were made in 1661, more than a year
-before the Uniformity Act came into operation. Taking the indefinite
-<i>several</i> hundreds at the lowest reasonable computation,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_540">[540]</span> and
-remembering, that during the intermediate year more Nonconformists
-would be “cast out,” we can scarcely reckon the ejected, before St.
-Bartholomew’s Day, 1662, at less than six hundred. Hook’s letter
-written in the month of March, 1663, alludes to the number of the
-ejected on St. Bartholomew’s Day as 1,600, and says “as many had been
-removed before.” This, no doubt, is an exaggeration; but it would seem
-to suggest, at least, that the number previously removed bore a large
-proportion to the number ultimately ejected. To the six hundred, or
-so, ejected before the Uniformity Act came into effect, let there be
-added two or three hundred more,&mdash;which would be a very large allowance
-for such exceptional cases as I have indicated, and for the great
-uncertainty respecting the five hundred bare names in the lists of
-“the ejected and <i>silenced</i>,”&mdash;and we thus reach a total of some
-eight or nine hundred, who may be admitted to have suffered more or
-less in consequence of the Restoration, but who must not be considered
-as undergoing ejectment on Bartholomew’s Day. The last and the longest
-list of sufferers, before and upon the 24th of August, 1662, put all
-together, is that furnished by Palmer, amounting to 2,231,&mdash;a list
-evidently prepared with much care. He mentions a MS. “Index eorum
-Theologorum Aliorumque No. 2,257, qui propter Legem Uniformitatis, Aug.
-24, <span class="allsmcap">A. D.</span> 1662, ab Ecclesia Anglicana secesserunt.” Calamy’s
-entire list reckons 2,190. Making the largest allowable deduction for
-those deprived before Bartholomew’s Day&mdash;that of nine hundred as just
-suggested&mdash;then the number of those who were deprived on that day would
-amount to about 1,200. I do not see how more than that number could
-have been then displaced. I am induced to believe there were scarcely
-so many.</p>
-
-<p>But whilst the distinctions and abatements which I have just made are
-demanded with a view to some accurate conclusion, it is to be borne
-in mind that the whole body of Nonconformist ministers, including
-the ejected, the candidates for the ministry, and all who had been
-accustomed in any way to preach the Gospel, were <i>silenced</i> by
-the Act. They could no longer any of them preach in a place of public
-worship. Therefore if we include the silenced, I should think that
-Baxter is rather under than above the mark in saying, “When Bartholomew
-Day came, about one thousand eight hundred, or two thousand ministers
-were silenced and cast out.”&mdash;<i>Life and Times</i>, ii. 385. After
-all, no bare statistics, no enumeration of figures, can ever represent
-the amount of trial, sorrow, and loss inflicted upon conscientious men
-at that lamentable era in our ecclesiastical history.</p>
-
-<p>Palmer, following Calamy, gives a large number of names of clergymen
-who “afterwards conformed.” It may be inferred that amongst<span class="pagenum" id="Page_541">[541]</span> these were
-not a few who passed through considerable conflict of mind before they
-did so.</p>
-
-<p>What was the exact number of the clergy just after the Act of
-Uniformity I cannot ascertain. Chamberlayne says, in his <i>Present
-State of England</i>, ed. 1692, that there were 9,700 rectors and
-vicars, besides dignitaries and curates&mdash;p. 189. In another place, he
-says:&mdash;“The whole number of the clergy of England are in all, first,
-two archbishops, twenty-four bishops, twenty-six deans of cathedral and
-collegiate churches, 576 prebendaries, 9,653 rectors and vicars, and
-about so many more, with curates, and others in Holy Orders.”&mdash;Part
-ii., 19. But this estimate must be greatly in excess of the actual
-number.</p>
-
-<p>The communication from Dr. Swainson is as follows:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Let me inform you that I have found a book in our muniment-room which
-to a certain extent supplies the place of the Episcopal Registers of
-Henry King, who was restored to his see with the Restoration. The
-Registers, you know, are reported as lost. This book is the book
-of subscriptions to the three articles of the 36th Canon, and the
-declaration against the Solemn League and Covenant. With the assistance
-of a friend I have analysed the former, and the enclosed paper contains
-the result. But I must notice that it gives no intimation as to the
-number of clergymen who returned to the livings from which they were
-banished during the Commonwealth, nor of the Presbyterians and others
-who were then ejected from their homes; it only gives the livings into
-which <i>new</i> incumbents were installed; and I think you will agree
-with me that the number is very small. At the same time my attention
-has been drawn to the large number of ordinations of deacons in the
-first two years after the book commences. My impression is that a
-Presbyterian or Independent minister in legal possession of a living
-might retain it by the Act of Uniformity, if he accepted deacon’s
-orders. Thus we should have in the first three years twenty-three more
-vacancies than in the last three of the period before us; and in the
-first three years one hundred and eight men ordained deacons, in the
-last three fourteen or fifteen. I infer that, of these one hundred and
-eight a large proportion conformed and retained their preferment. My
-friend notices a large ordination in 1673. Eighteen priests and sixteen
-deacons on Trinity Sunday; eight priests and eleven deacons in Advent.”
-The enclosed paper states, “The book of subscriptions commences on 2nd
-November, 1662, and the last subscription is dated on 22nd September,
-1678, thus it includes a period of sixteen years. I have no reason
-to suppose that it is imperfect. On analysing it, the subscriptions
-describe, that the subscriber is about to be admitted (1) to some
-rectory, vicarage, or cure of souls; (2) to a prebend or dignity in the
-cathedral; (3) to ‘Presbyteratus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_542">[542]</span> ordinen;’ (4) to deacon’s orders.
-There are a few who are about to be licensed to preach, and about four
-in the sixteen years who come to qualify themselves to keep school. The
-number of vacancies in rectories, vicarages, and places with cure of
-souls thus indicated in the several years are:&mdash;</p>
-
-<table summary="vacancies" class="smaller">
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">November 1,</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1662</td>
- <td class="ctr1">to October 31,</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1663</td>
- <td class="right1">19</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1664</td>
- <td class="right1">26</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1665</td>
- <td class="right1">14</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1666</td>
- <td class="right1">16</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1667</td>
- <td class="right1">18</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1668</td>
- <td class="right1">20</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1669</td>
- <td class="right1">12</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1670</td>
- <td class="right1">10</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1671</td>
- <td class="right1">20</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1672</td>
- <td class="right1">13</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1673</td>
- <td class="right1">16</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1674</td>
- <td class="right1">16</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1675</td>
- <td class="right1">9</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1676</td>
- <td class="right1">8</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1677</td>
- <td class="right1">15</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="ctr1">1678</td>
- <td class="right1">13</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="p-left">making a total of 245 in 16 years, or an average of 15¼ per
-annum.</p>
-
-<p>“The number of vacancies in the first three years is thus fifty-nine;
-in the last three, thirty-six. Taking the last figures as representing
-the number from ordinary causes, we have an overplus of twenty-three
-due to extraordinary causes, <i>i.e.</i>, nonconformity, in the first
-three years. The number of men ordained deacons in the first three
-years was one hundred and seven; in the last three years, fifteen.
-Therefore the overplus of ninety-two ordained in the first three years
-was due to extraordinary causes; the question is what these causes were?</p>
-
-<p>“N.B.&mdash;Eighty-three men were ordained priests during the same first
-three years. The number of benefices in the diocese of Chichester is
-<i>now</i> (1869) 330.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. VII.&mdash;Vol. I., p. 314.</h3>
-
-<p>Of the informer’s <i>Note Book</i>, preserved in the Record Office, I
-have an entire copy in my possession, made by the late Mr. Clarence
-Hopper, and from it I give the following extracts:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Brokes</i> (Pastor)&mdash;Meets at Mr. Shaw’s, sailmaker, in Tower
-Wharf, sometimes at one Palmer’s Wise, [<i>sic</i>] and Holmes’s,
-who dwell all<span class="pagenum" id="Page_543">[543]</span> in the fields on the left hand, near Moorgate, where
-the quarters hang; where there is suspected some persons of note lie
-dormant, viz., Col. Danvers, Col. Gledman, Mr. Wollaston. The field is
-named ‘Phines-berry’ (Finsbury).”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Caitnesse.</i>&mdash;A Scotchman intimately acquainted with Lawrye the
-merchant (his old maid knows much of him). He dwells a little beyond
-Ratcliffe Church, hard by Gun Alley, next door to a shoemaker’s.
-Brother-in-law to Mr. Roe (formerly minister), a schoolmaster in
-Christchurch, within the Cloisters can tell of Caitnesse. Several of
-the Lord General’s old soldiers know Caitnesse; he knows Lieut.-Col.
-Desborough and Ellison.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Duckenfield.</i>&mdash;They are 3 brothers all officers in the Army.
-Col. Jo Duckenfield, a stout fellow, now in Ireland, 1663, married
-an Exchange-woman, commanded the Foot at Winnington-bridge, 1659.
-Major Wm. Duckenfield in Ireland, 1663, married Franklin’s daughter,
-over against Salisbury House, an Exchange-man. Col. Rob. Duckenfield
-married Fleetwood’s sister, and hath an estate at Duckenfield Hall, in
-Cheshire, all 3 dangerous fellows.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Forbes.</i>&mdash;Formerly in Gloucester, a Scottishman. Caitnes.
-Rawdon. His wife’s mother lives near Henley-upon-Thames, in Bucks. When
-in town, lodges behind Abchurch, going into Sherburne Lane from Cannon
-Street, upon the right hand, beyond the church; his landlord keeps a
-shop in Pope’s Head Alley. Enquire of Henley Coach, where it stands,
-for Mr. Forbes. His sister is an apothecary’s wife, over against
-Warwick House, in Holborn; and at Mr. Johnston’s, in Gr. Inne Lane, &amp;c.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Thomas Goodwine</i> (pastor).&mdash;Dwells in the fields, on the left
-hand near Moorgate, where the quarters stand, and meets often with Dr.
-Owen.”&mdash;(<i>Vide O.</i>)</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Mrs. Homes</i>, at the Red Lion, a grocer’s shop, in St. Laurence
-Lane, is the great patroness of the worst of people now in London, and
-Ewell in particular. (Mrs. Holond Com. his wife), and Mr. Sheldon,
-prisoner in the Tower, who married Holond’s daughter; Mrs. Homes, now
-or lately, paid and discharged the rent for the house, which Thomas
-Goodwin lies in, at Bone Hill, beyond the Artillery Ground, near Cherry
-Tree Alley. She has a great estate; and spends it among those that lie
-in wait to disturb the peace of the kingdom. She is a frequent visitor
-of the prisons, and encourages and confirms those that are in greatest
-opposition to the Government. Her chief servant is called Browne,
-who ’tis thought, was one of the Rump Parliament. Her cash-keeper
-confessed, that, in six weeks after her husband died, she gave away
-£800. ’Tis no wonder, for she gains, with her money,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_544">[544]</span> several from the
-Church daily and under pretence of charity, corrupts many poor and
-wanting people.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Jessey</i>, meets often at one Thomas Goodwine’s, and Dr. Owen’s in
-the fields, near to Moorgate, where the quarters hang; (pastor). The
-said Jessey meets also at the Lady Hartups, at Newington, Harfordshire,
-dead 1663.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Harwood</i>, Jo., a merchant at Mile-end Green, a factious
-dangerous Independent; and the common factor for all the merchants
-trading especially to New England; who uses constantly to cover and
-disguise, the ships, goods, and persons, of those of that opinion in
-their voyages and passages, so as the officers of the Customs, &amp;c., at
-Gravesend, and other places, are, by his interest and money, corrupted
-to slip the oaths, which otherwise ought to be tendered to all persons
-going out, &amp;c.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Knowles</i>, an Anabaptist minister, a good scholar, and a leading
-man, now in Amsterdam, maintained by the churches; and one Thibalds
-(his elder), in Tower Street, corresponds with him, (to him Mr. Riggs
-was recommended by Thibalds.) Knowles dwells in Wapping.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Meade</i>, Pastor of the Independent Church, meets twice a week
-with Greenhill at Ratcliffe, and Stepney.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Dr. Owen</i> (<i>Pastor</i>), dwells in the fields, on the left
-hand near Moorgate, where the quarters hang, and meets often with
-Goodwine.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Robinson</i> (Andrew), a Scotts Quaker, dangerous young fellow;
-carries letters between London and Edinburgh; comes frequently to Mr.
-Lawrye’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Sprig</i>, a minister, and great creature of the late usurper’s.
-Mr. Johnson knows him intimately. Sprig is a great acquaintance of Sir
-Hen. Vane’s and Ludlow’s.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. VIII.&mdash;Vol. I., p. 319.</h3>
-
-<p>In connection with the narrative on this page, and others elsewhere of
-the same kind, I would request the reader to bear in mind what I have
-remarked on p. 102. of this volume.</p>
-
-<p>After the printing of the anecdote respecting Mr. Ince, a very
-interesting little book, entitled <i>The Church at Birdbush</i>, has
-come under my notice, from which I extract the following passages
-in reference to the story I have related:&mdash;“This striking narrative
-has sometimes been repudiated as a fiction. The evidence for its
-credibility<span class="pagenum" id="Page_545">[545]</span> seems, however, to be stronger than the supposition of its
-falsehood. The fact that the individual on whose authority it rests,
-had spent much time and labour in collecting authentic accounts of
-the period to which it refers, and that before the year 1705, he had
-lived at Shaftesbury, where, from its proximity to the scene of its
-occurrence, this event would be the theme of general conversation,
-is a fair argument in proof of its validity. Assuming then, in the
-absence of proof to the contrary, that the principal points in this
-striking incident are true, there are connected circumstances which
-require that some additional remarks should be made. The <i>date</i>
-of the occurrence of this remarkable event has been a matter of
-conflicting statement. While the <i>Nonconformist’s Memorial</i> fixes
-it at ‘not long after the year 1662,’ a writer in the <i>Evangelical
-Magazine</i> for 1798, states it to have taken place ‘soon after the
-Toleration Act passed in 1689.’ Perhaps the precise year cannot be
-fixed, and yet, from an incidental remark in the life of the Rev. T.
-Rosewell, given in the <i>Nonconformist’s Memorial</i>, we may arrive
-at a satisfactory conclusion. His biographer says, ‘After leaving
-Lady Hungerford’s family, he was invited, in 1672, into that of Mr.
-Grove, at Ferne, where Mr. Ince lived, where he spent some months
-much to his comfort.’ By this it is evident that the event referred
-to happened before the year 1672. A second disputed point is, the
-apparent improbability of Mr. Ince being unknown at Ferne, after having
-been Rector of the adjoining parish for fourteen years or more. It
-should be remembered, that some few years, at least, elapsed between
-his ejectment at Donhead, and his being employed on the before-named
-estate. Time would of course leave its impressions on the form which
-would otherwise have been easily recognized. Besides, it is attested
-that he had hired himself to the ‘employment of tending sheep;’ and the
-shepherd’s dress, connected with the effects of prison usage, and of
-the other circumstances of trial to which he had been exposed, may all
-have combined to conceal his true profession as a minister of Christ,
-until the time fixed in the Infinite Mind arrived for its discovery.
-His ‘appearance’ was that which surprised Mr. Grove, when he contrasted
-it with his ‘language and manner.’ The last sentence of the statement
-obviously requires correction. The <i>Meeting-house</i> referred to,
-was <i>not</i> erected on the estate at Ferne, nor by Mr. Grove.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. IX.&mdash;Vol. I., p. 374.</h3>
-
-<p>I have adopted the common account of Cecil’s signing Edward VI.’s
-Instrument of Succession as a witness. It is endorsed by Mr.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_546">[546]</span>
-Froude.&mdash;(<i>Hist.</i>, v. 509). But I ought to add, that Tytler, in
-his <i>England under the Reigns of Edward VI. and Mary</i>, discredits
-the story which rests on a statement made by Roger Alford, twenty years
-afterwards, who on Cecil’s authority, and at his request, was trying
-to make out a case in favour of his master. Cecil’s signature occurs
-in the midst of many names appended to the document, not at all in
-the way of witness; and Tytler thinks, that Cecil had determined to
-retain his place, whatever sacrifice it might cost him. It did cost him
-dear&mdash;“for he was driven by it to falsehood, to evasion, and to little
-subterfuges, from which every upright mind would have recoiled.”&mdash;(Vol.
-ii. 175.) In a defence of himself, written in his own hand, for the eye
-of Queen Mary, and which Tytler has printed (vol. ii. 192), he says
-nothing of having signed the instrument as a witness.</p>
-
-<p>It appears further, from an examination by Tytler, of some of Cecil’s
-papers in the Record Office, that in the reign of Queen Mary he
-conformed to the established religion by attending mass.&mdash;(Vol. ii.
-443.) Yet it is remarkable that although regarded kindly at court,
-he never held office under the Popish Sovereign; and is distinctly
-described as “a heretic” by the Count de Feria, writing in 1558.&mdash;(p.
-499). Whatever his compliances at the time, there must have been enough
-in his conduct to indicate that he was an unwilling Conformist, and
-that he was in heart a Protestant. Still, in respect to religious
-profession in the earlier part of life, he is seen to disadvantage when
-compared with Clarendon.</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. X.&mdash;Vol. II., p. 88.</h3>
-
-<p>Lord Macaulay mentions in his <i>History of England</i>, a broadside
-which he had seen, and which is printed in Somers’ <i>Tracts</i>. The
-author, as he says, was a Roman Catholic, having access to good sources
-of information, and although no name but one is given at length, the
-initials are intelligible except in a single instance. The Duke of
-York is said to have been reminded of his duty to his brother by P. M.
-A. C. F., which mysterious letters puzzled his Lordship as they had
-done Sir Walter Scott, who edited Somers’ <i>Collection</i>. Plausible
-conjectures as to their meaning occurred at the same time to Macaulay
-and others, and though the conviction continued in his mind, that the
-true solution had not been suggested, he was inclined to read the
-initials thus: “Père Mansuete, a Cordelier Friar.” A Cordelier of that
-name was James’ Confessor.</p>
-
-<p>After all, the shrewd conjecture was correct. The following paper,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_547">[547]</span>
-mentioned in my Preface, settles the question. It is substantially the
-same as the paper printed in <i>Somers</i> (Scott’s Edition, viii.
-428), but the verbal differences are considerable, and the P. M. A. C.
-F. is identified as Père Mansuete, a Cordelier Friar, Confessor to the
-Duke.</p>
-
-<p>I print the MS. at length, as it will be interesting for the historical
-student to compare it with the broad sheet reprinted by Somers:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“On Munday 2<sup>d</sup> of February Candlemas day the King rose early, said he
-had not slept well. About 7 a clock comeing from his private devotions
-out of his Closett, fell downe so that he was dead for foure hours
-in an Apoplecticke fitt: with losse of 16 ounces of blood and other
-applications came to his sences againe: Great hopes of his recovery
-till Thursday one a clocke. But at 5 the Doctors being come before the
-Councill declared he was in great danger. On Friday a quarter before
-12 he departed. God have mercy upon his soule. <i>P. M. a C. ffryar
-C</i> to the Duke upon the Doctors first telling him of the State of
-the K. told him that now was the time to take care of his soule and
-that it was his duty to tell him so. The D. with this admonition went
-unto the King and told it, The K. answered O Brother how long have I
-wished but now help me: He said he would have Father Hudd:<a id="FNanchor_617" href="#Footnote_617" class="fnanchor">[617]</a> who
-preserved him in the tree, and now hoped he would preserve his soule;
-H was sent for to bring all necessaries for a dying man: not having
-the B: S. by him, H mett one of the Q<sup>s</sup> P,<a id="FNanchor_618" href="#Footnote_618" class="fnanchor">[618]</a> told him the occasion,
-desiring his assistance to procure it and bring it to the back staires.
-The King having notice that Mr. Hudd: waited desired to be in private
-with his Brother. All the Bpps and Nobles goeing out, the D latching
-the dore, the L<sup>de</sup> P. B. and F.<a id="FNanchor_619" href="#Footnote_619" class="fnanchor">[619]</a> were goeing out also, the D told
-them they might stay, the Kg seeing Father cryed out: Almighty God
-what good planet governes me that all my life is wonders and miracles
-when I O Lord consider my infancy, my exile, my escape at Wor’ster my
-preservation in the tree by this good Father and now to have him againe
-to be the Preserver of my Soule, O’ Lord my wonderfull Restauration,
-the great danger of the late Conspiracy and last of all to be raised
-from death and to have my soule preserved by the assistance of this
-good Father whom I see that thou O Lord hast created for my good: the D
-and E<sup>s,</sup><a id="FNanchor_620" href="#Footnote_620" class="fnanchor">[620]</a> withdrew into the Closett, they were private for some
-time, after which the D and E<sup>s</sup> entred againe, the Father remaining
-comforting and praying with him, He said, if I am worthy of it, Pray
-lett me<span class="pagenum" id="Page_548">[548]</span> have it, the Father said he exspected it and offered to
-proceed with the extreeme unction, The King said, with all my heart:
-the D and the L<sup>ds</sup> assisting at the time M<sup>r.</sup> Hudd: being called
-to the doore received the B: S: he desired the Kg to compose himselfe
-to receive. the King would rise, he was perswaded to the Contrary,
-Let me meet my heavenly father in a better posture then lying thus,
-being overruled they pray, amongst other the Father repeated an Act
-of Contrition, the King desired him to repeate it againe, saying it
-word by word after him, Received with the greatest expressions of
-devotion imaginable: This being ended they proceeded in the Prayer de
-Recommendacöne animæ, that being done, the King desired a repetition of
-the Act of Contrition once more, Lord Good God when my Lips faile let
-my heart speake these words eternally.</p>
-
-<p>“The Bishops and Lords entred againe and perswaded the King to remember
-his last end and to endeavour to make a good end. He said he had
-thought on it and made his peace with God. Asking him whether he would
-receive, he said he would not, he persisting in extolling the Queene
-and Duke said he was not sorry to leave the world leaving so good a
-brother to rule behind him.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>No. XI.&mdash;Vol. II., p. 148.</h3>
-
-<p>Macaulay, speaking of the disobedience of the London clergy to the
-Royal order, says:&mdash;“Samuel Wesley, the father of John and Charles
-Wesley, a curate in London, took for his text that day the noble
-answer of the three Jews to the Chaldean tyrant, ‘Be it known unto
-thee, O King, that we will not serve thy gods, nor worship the golden
-image which thou hast set up.’” The historian quotes as his authority
-Southey’s <i>Life of Wesley</i>. The story has been repeated again
-and again. Unfortunately, in reference to Wesley, it cannot be true.
-He was ordained in deacon’s orders the 17th of August, 1688, about
-three months after the issuing of the order: and the only foundation
-for the story seems to be a poem by the younger Wesley, written
-“upon a clergyman lately deceased,” the Rev. John Berry, the poet’s
-father-in-law, and published four years before Samuel Wesley’s
-death.&mdash;See <i>The Mother of the Wesleys</i>, by the Rev. John Kirk, p.
-58.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_549">[549]</span></p>
-
-<h3>No. XII.&mdash;Vol. II., chap. xiv.<br />
-<span class="subhed"><span class="smcap">Anglican Views on the Relations of Church and State.</span></span></h3>
-
-<p>In the review of Anglican opinions in the 14th chapter I have scarcely
-entered upon what is understood by the Church and State question. I am
-not able to supply, from the works of Bull, Pearson, Cosin, Heylyn,
-Barrow, and others, any satisfactory catena of passages bearing on this
-point, or to report any definite theory, or any sustained arguments of
-theirs in relation to it. Their theological writings treat of other
-themes. Thorndike, indeed, has a good deal to say of the State, as
-well as of the Church, and speaks, on the one hand, of the State being
-in subjection to the Church, of the State being bound to protect the
-Church, and of the State being justified in inflicting penalties for
-religion when the latter interferes with civil peace. On the other
-hand, he speaks of kings being justified in reforming the Church, even
-against the ecclesiastical order. (Reference to these passages will
-be found in the index to the Oxford Edition of Thorndike.) Yet I can
-find in Thorndike no precise theory of Church and State relations.
-Jeremy Taylor treats of ecclesiastical laws and power; he insists on
-the concurrence in them of the civil authorities, and that kings are
-bound to keep the Church’s laws; yet he denies that Christian princes
-can be lawfully excommunicated. (<i>Works</i>, xiii. 583–616.) Bramhall
-alludes to the Royal nomination and investiture of bishops in England
-as approved by ancient canons and constitutions (part iv. dis. 6);
-and Sanderson goes so far as to declare, that the king hath power, if
-he shall see cause, to suspend any bishop from the execution of his
-office, and to deprive him utterly of his dignity. (<i>Episcopacy not
-prejudicial</i>, s. iii. 33.) Morley’s extravagant views of the Royal
-prerogative have been noticed. On the whole it appears that after the
-Restoration, High Churchmanship manifested itself more in theological
-doctrine, than in either ritualism or in ecclesiastical supremacy.
-Looking at the whole history of the period between the Restoration and
-the Revolution, we see in the ascendant that which is commonly meant by
-the word Erastianism. Indications of this are afforded by the manner
-in which the Act of Uniformity was carried; by the utter inactivity
-of Convocation after the year 1664,&mdash;for it did scarcely more than
-formally assemble from time to time,&mdash;and by the notions of the Royal
-supremacy so generally maintained, and so plainly expressed, not only
-by Bishop Morley but by the two Universities.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_550">[550]</span></p>
-
-
-<h3>No. XIII.&mdash;Vol. II., p. 93.</h3>
-
-<p>“On the 19th of May, 1685, the King (about 11 a clock in the morning)
-came to the House of Peers in his royal robes, and with his crown off
-his head, being attended with the great officers of state, and having
-placed himself on his throne, the Usher of the Black Rod, Sir Thomas
-Duppa, was sent to bring up the Commons to the bar of the Lords’ House.</p>
-
-<p>The Commons being come, the Lord Keeper standing behind the Chair of
-State (from whence he usually speaks to the two Houses) acquainted the
-Commons that his Majesty had commanded him to tell them that it was his
-royal pleasure, that they should go down to the Lower House, and choose
-their speaker, and present him at 4 of the clock in the afternoon, to
-his Majesty at the bar of the Lords’ House, for his approbation.</p>
-
-<p>The Lord Keeper acquainted the Lords and Commons at the same time, that
-they should, in the mean time, apply themselves to take the oaths of
-allegiance and supremacy and the test, as the law requires, and when
-that was done in both Houses, his Majesty would then acquaint them with
-the reasons why he called them to Parliament.</p>
-
-<p>Thereupon the Commons withdrew, and went down to their own House, and
-(as I have been informed) forthwith chose Sir John Trevor to be their
-speaker.</p>
-
-<p>In the mean time, the Lords went about the taking of the oath of
-allegiance, and supremacy, and the test; and in the first place, the
-Lord Keeper took the oaths and test singly; and then the Lords in their
-order, beginning with the Barons, and ending at the Archbishop of
-Canterbury.</p>
-
-<p>When that business was over, the Lords called to go to prayers, and
-the Bishop of Bath and Wells read prayers, he being Junior Bishop.
-When prayers were ended, the Lords that were lately created by new
-patents, were introduced, according to the usual solemnity, that is to
-say, the Lord Keeper went below the bar, and being attended with the
-Usher of the Black Rod, and Sir W. Dugdale, King at Arms, and the Lord
-Marshall, and the Lord Great Chamberlain, and two other Barons (for
-Barons introduce Barons, and Earls do introduce Earls, &amp;c.), the patent
-was carried by my Lord Keeper, and laid at his Majesty’s footstool, at
-the throne, he kneeling; and then he took his patent up, and carried it
-to his side upon the Woolsack, and then delivered it to the Clerk of
-the Parliament, who read it, and after the reading of it, he was, by
-the Lords and Officers aforesaid, brought to his seat upon the Barons’<span class="pagenum" id="Page_551">[551]</span>
-bench, from thence he went to his place upon the woolsack, which is his
-seat as Speaker to the Lords’ House.</p>
-
-<p>The rest of the Lords were introduced in the same manner, only they
-went out of the House to bring in their patents; and so did the Earl
-Marshall, and the Lord Great Chamberlain, and Sir William Dugdale, and
-the Usher of the Black Rod go out of the House to fetch them in; but
-the Lord Keeper did not go out of the House, because he being Speaker,
-ought not to be absent from the House, while its sitting, and that is
-the reason why he did not go out.</p>
-
-<p>The Lords that were introduced were these:&mdash;First, Lord Keeper; second,
-Lord Treasurer; third, Lord President; fourth, Duke of Beaufort; three
-Earls, <i>i.e.</i>, Earl Maclesfield, Earl Berkley, Earl Nottingham;
-three Viscounts, Viscount Hatton, Viscount Weymouth, Viscount Townsend.
-The Barons that were introduced were Dartmouth, Stawell, Churchill,
-Wemen; there were more, but I do not now remember their names, but I
-will hereafter insert them.</p>
-
-<p>Then all those Lords that were introduced took the oath of allegiance
-and supremacy, and the test; and so went into their seats. And this was
-about 3 of the clock in the afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Lord Privy Seal moved the House in the behalf of the three
-Popish Lords, that were upon bail to appear at the bar of the Lords’
-House the first day of the Parliament, and he produced a petition
-from them, which was read; and in it they set forth, that they were
-impeached of high treason, and imprisoned for five years, and upwards,
-upon the single testimony of Titus Oates, who was found guilty of
-perjury by several indictments, and they prayed to be set at liberty,
-with reparation of their honours.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Earl of Chesterfield moved the House in behalf of the Earl of
-Danby, and told their Lordships that he had a petition from the Earl of
-Danby, and prayed it might be read; and it was ordered to be read by
-the Clerk. The purport of his petition was to shew to the Lords, that
-he had been impeached and imprisoned for above four years, merely upon
-suggestion, without oath, and prayed their Lordships’ favour for his
-enlargement.</p>
-
-<p>This petition of the Earl of Danby was more modest than the other
-Lords’ petition, which made the Lord Keeper observe, and say to the
-House, that the prayer of the Earl of Danby’s petition was different
-from the prayer of the Popish Lords’ petition; for they desired to be
-enlarged forthwith with reparation. And the Earl of Danby prayed either
-to have his trial, or to renew his bail, or to have such directions as
-their Lordships should think meet in his case.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_552">[552]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Lord Keeper’s intimation was not taken well by my Lord Danby’s
-friends; and therefore the Earl of Chesterfield, Lord High Chamberlain,
-and others stood, and moved successively, that the Earl of Danby’s
-case was the same with the Popish Lords, <i>i.e.</i>, imprisonment and
-impeachment without oath, and therefore the remedy was the same.</p>
-
-<p>Upon these motions, the House came to this resolution and order,
-<i>i.e.</i>, they ordered that the Lords should be called in, and stand
-at the bar, to whom the Lord Keeper said that the House had read their
-petition, and had given order to record or enter the appearance, and
-that they should withdraw, and attend the House the first time they sat
-after this day, to know the further pleasure of the House as to their
-petitions.</p>
-
-<p>The Lord Butler moved in behalf of the Earl of Tyrone, and he appeared
-at the bar, and had the same answer as the other Lords, viz., to attend
-at the next sitting day.</p>
-
-<p>When this was done the House adjourned during pleasure, and the King
-withdrew into the Prince’s lodgings for a quarter of an hour, and
-the Lords went to the adjacent rooms to refresh themselves; and in a
-quarter of an hour the King returned into the House, and the Lords into
-their places, and then the House was resumed.</p>
-
-<p>Thereupon the King withdrew, and presently came in his robes, and his
-crown upon his head, attended with the officers of state and heralds
-as aforesaid, and sat on his throne, and then the Usher of the Black
-Rod went down to call the Commons, who forthwith, with Sir John Trevor,
-their Speaker, attended at the bar of the House, and said (having made
-their bows or <i>congé</i> of reverence) that the Commons assembled in
-Parliament had made choice of him for their Speaker, and that he was
-sensible of his great disabilities to undergo that weighty task, and
-thereupon prayed his Majesty, that he would graciously be pleased to
-command the House of Commons to go down and choose another Speaker.</p>
-
-<p>The King having heard his disabling harangue, whispered the Lord
-Keeper; and then the Lord Keeper (from behind the Chair of State) said,
-“Sir John Trevor, the King hath commanded me to tell you, that he is
-well apprised of your parts and zeal to serve him, and the Commons,
-and therefore he approves of their choice, and admits you to be the
-Speaker.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the Speaker, in a short speech (read out of his paper, which was
-the first time that I observed a Speaker read any speech) expressed
-his thankfulness for his Majesty’s good opinion of him, and his parts,
-and promised to do his duty zealously and loyally, and then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_553">[553]</span> prayed
-(after the usual manner) that the Commons might have (1) their freedom
-of speech and (2) freedom from arrest, and (3) access to his Majesty to
-deliver their addresses, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>Again the King called to the Lord Keeper, and spake privately to him;
-and then the Lord Keeper told the Speaker, that the King had granted
-their petitions; and so the Commons and the Speaker were dismissed. And
-when the company was withdrawn, and the House clear of the people that
-thronged there, the doors were shut, and then the Lord Lovelace called
-to the Clerk to be sworn, and tendered himself to take the test.</p>
-
-<p>But the Lord Keeper said that by the order of the House he should have
-offered himself to do that business in the morning after prayers, and
-therefore he could not be sworn that day.</p>
-
-<p>Then the House called to adjourn, and they did adjourn, that is, the
-Lord Keeper as Speaker adjourned the House until Friday, at nine of the
-clock in the morning.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Friday 22 May, 1685.</i></h4>
-
-<p>The Lords met in their House, and in their robes that day. In the
-Lords’ House there was a canopy of state for the Queen Consort set up
-in the Lords’ House, near the Archbishop’s seat. The Queen came into
-the House about ten of the clock, and was in the House, while the House
-went to prayers.</p>
-
-<p>In the same seat with her, that is with the Queen, sat the Prince of
-Denmark, and the Princess Anne, his consort.</p>
-
-<p>About eleven of the clock, the King came to the House in his robes and
-attended as aforesaid, and sat upon his throne. And immediately the
-Commons, with their Speaker, came to the bar of the Lords’ House, at
-which time the King made a gracious speech, which is in print, and it
-is his first speech to the Parliament. The Lords and Commons hummed
-joyfully and loudly at those parts of it which concerned our religion,
-and the established government.</p>
-
-<p>When the King’s speech was ended, the Commons went down to their own
-House, where, as I have been told, they forthwith voted the King’s
-revenue to be settled upon him for life.</p>
-
-<p>The Lords, after reading an order <i>pro formâ</i>, chose committees
-for receiving and trying of petitions, committees for privileges and
-for the journal book.</p>
-
-<p>The next thing was a motion made by the Lord Newport, and seconded by
-others, against several Lords that were minors or under 21 years, who
-would sit in the Lords’ House against the order of the House.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_554">[554]</span></p>
-
-<p>In fine, the minor Lords were ordered to withdraw, and told that they
-were not to sit there until they attained 21 years of age.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Lords took unto consideration the petition of the imprisoned
-Lords, and after a warm debate, they came to the question about
-vacating an order of the House made anno 1678 about the continuance
-of impeachments after the dissolution of Parliament. The question was
-carried for the vacating of that order, and by that means the three
-Lords were <i>ipso facto</i> set at liberty.</p>
-
-<p>Its observable that there was not above nine Lords in the negative, and
-there was above 80 in the affirmative at the question.</p>
-
-<p>The same day there was a bill brought in and read against clandestine
-marriages, and then the House adjourned; only they voted thanks to the
-King for his gracious speech, and attended the King at the banquetting
-house, with the House of Commons, to give their thanks at 4 o’clock
-that day.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Saturday 23 of May.</i></h4>
-
-<p>The House met about ten of the clock, and after prayers, as is usual,
-some orders, <i>pro formâ</i>, were read, and then some Lords were
-sworn.</p>
-
-<p>Then several petitions for appeals from decrees in chancery were read
-and admitted.</p>
-
-<p>Then the bill against clandestine marriages was read 2nd time and
-committed.</p>
-
-<p>The House fell upon consideration of Argyle’s declaration, which was
-by his Majesty’s order communicated to the House. It was a treasonable
-declaration, inviting his friends and vassals to take arms and oppose
-the King, whom he traitorously called a tyrant and usurper in that
-wicked paper.</p>
-
-<p>The House returned thanks to his Majesty for imparting that matter unto
-the Lords, and they declared Argyle to be a traitor, and that they
-would be ready with their lives and fortunes to stand by his Majesty
-in the defence of his person, crown and dignity against that traitor
-and all his enemies. And they sent a message to the Commons for their
-concurrence in that vote, who sent answer that they did readily concur.</p>
-
-<p>Then an address was made to the King by the Lords of the White Staves,
-to know when both Houses might wait upon his Majesty, to give him
-thanks for communicating unto them, the designs of Argyle, and to
-present their declaration upon the subject matter of his traiterous
-declaration.</p>
-
-<p>The King’s answer was, that he would be waited upon at 5 of the clock
-in the afternoon in the banquetting house.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_555">[555]</span></p>
-
-<p>Then the house adjourned till Monday.</p>
-
-<p>Both houses attended the King at the banquetting house at 5 of the
-clock on Saturday.</p>
-
-<p>[This journal is all in the Bishop of Norwich’s (Dr. Lloyd) own
-hand.]”&mdash;<i>MS. in the University Library, Cambridge.</i></p>
-
-
-<h3>No. XIV.&mdash;Vol. II., p. 139.</h3>
-
-<p>James, towards the close of the year 1687, contemplated the calling of
-a Parliament. There is a collection of papers in the Bodleian Library,
-Oxford, to which my attention has been directed by the learned and
-courteous librarian, the Rev. Mr. Coxe, containing interrogations,
-addressed to Justices of the Peace and others, as to whether persons
-were likely to be returned who would pledge themselves to vote for
-taking off the tests and penal laws respecting religion. The following
-extract from a letter by John Eston, dated Bedford, November 22, 1687,
-is very curious:&mdash;“My Lord,&mdash;Since your honour spake with me at Bedford
-I have conferred with the heads of the Dissenters, and particularly
-with Mr. Margetts and Mr. Bunyon, whom your Lordship named to me. The
-first of these was Judge Advocate in the Army under the Lord General
-Monk, when the late King was restored; the other is the pastor to the
-dissenting congregation in this town. I find them all to be unanimous
-for electing only such members of Parliament as will certainly vote
-for repealing all the tests and penal laws touching religion, and they
-hope to steer all their friends and followers accordingly; so that if
-the Lord Lieutenant will cordially assist with his influence over the
-Church party, there cannot be in human reason any doubt of our electing
-two such members.” Again, December 6, 1687, the same writer says:&mdash;“The
-Dissenters are firm for us, but the Churchmen are implacable against
-us.”&mdash;<i>MSS., Vol. I., Penal Laws of Test.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_556">[556]</span></p>
-
-<h2>INDEX.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="transnote">Pages to Vol. I have external links to the relevant
- pages. To view these pages, an Internet connection is necessary.</p>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Abney, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_431">431</a></li>
-
- <li>Acts, Indemnity and Oblivion, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
- <li class="i1" id="Uniformity">Uniformity,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_229">229</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_245">245–255</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Effects of the Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_261">261</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_270">270</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Conventicle,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_322">322–327</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_388">388</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Five Mile,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_345">345–354</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Test,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_425">425–428</a></li>
- <li class="i1">For better observance of Lord’s Day,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_465">465</a></li>
- <li class="i1">For Improvement of Small Livings,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_467">467</a></li>
-
- <li>Adams, Alderman, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li>Adda, D’, Papal Nuncio, ii.
- <a href="#Page_109">109</a>,
- <a href="#Page_129">129</a>,
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
- <li>Albemarle, Duke of, <i>see</i> <a href="#Monk">Monk</a></li>
-
- <li>Alleine, Joseph, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_264">264</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Writings, ii.
- <a href="#Page_443">443</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His spiritual life,
- <a href="#Page_494">494–497</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Allybone, one of the Judges at the Bishops’ Trial, ii.
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a>,
- <a href="#Page_155">155</a></li>
-
- <li>Alsop, Vincent, ii.
- <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
- <li>Ambrose, Isaac, ii.
- <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li>
-
- <li>Andrewes, Bishop, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_219">219</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_259">259</a>,
- <a href="#Page_328">328</a>,
- <a href="#Page_406">406</a></li>
-
- <li>Angier, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_291">291</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_484">484</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
- <li>Anglesea, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
-
- <li>Annesley, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_394">394</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_57">57</a>,
- <a href="#Page_496">496</a></li>
-
- <li>Ann Hyde, Duchess of York, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
- <li>Argyle, Earl of, his Trial and Execution, ii.
- <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
- <li>Arlington, Lord, <i>see</i> <a href="#Bennet">Sir Henry Bennet</a></li>
-
- <li>Arminianism, ii.
- <a href="#Page_397">397</a>,
- <a href="#Page_406">406–413</a></li>
-
- <li>Army, Discontent of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_22">22</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_42">42</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Petitions,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_25">25</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Violence against Richard,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_24">24</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Difficulty in managing it,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_67">67</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Meets the King at Blackheath,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_76">76</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Disbanding of Old Army,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Religious Character,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_88">88</a></li>
-
- <li>Ash, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_101">101</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_102">102</a></li>
-
- <li>Ashby, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
- <li>Ashenden, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_204">204</a></li>
-
- <li>Ashley, <i>see</i> <a href="#Cooper">Sir A. A. Cooper</a></li>
-
- <li>Ashurst, Sir Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_95">95</a>,
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
- <li>Atkins, Robert, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_278">278</a></li>
-
- <li>Atkins, Sir Robert, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_379">379</a></li>
-
- <li>Aubony, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
- <li>Aubrey, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_474">474</a></li>
-
- <li>Axtell, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
- <li>Aylesbury, Countess of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Bacon, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_254">254</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_506">506</a></li>
-
- <li>Bacon, Sir Edmund, ii.
- <a href="#Page_206">206</a></li>
-
- <li>Bagshawe, Edward, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_293">293</a></li>
-
- <li>Balsh, Justice, ii.
- <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
- <li>Bampfield, Francis, ii.
- <a href="#Page_75">75</a>,
- <a href="#Page_174">174</a></li>
-
- <li>Baptists, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_9">9</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_138">138</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_144">144</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_395">395</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Overtures made by them to Charles,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_31">31</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Forbidden to meet in large numbers,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_143">143</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Not represented at Savoy Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_195">195</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Amongst the ejected,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_281">281</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Persecution of them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_296">296</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Laws against them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_321">321</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Sufferings, ii.
- <a href="#Page_73">73</a>,
- <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Treatment of them by James II.,
- <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Churches,
- <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Particular and General,
- <a href="#Page_172">172</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Confession of Faith,
- <a href="#Page_172">172</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Strict and Open,
- <a href="#Page_174">174</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Broadmead Records,
- <a href="#Page_175">175</a>,
- <a href="#Page_497">497–500</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Accused of Schism,
- <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-
- <li>Barclay, David, ii.
- <a href="#Page_377">377</a></li>
-
- <li>Barclay, Robert, his Friendship with Penn, ii.
- <a href="#Page_377">377</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Similarity in their Writings,
- <a href="#Page_377">377</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Teaching,
- <a href="#Page_378">378–380</a></li>
-
- <li>Barillon, ii.
- <a href="#Page_114">114</a></li>
-
- <li>Barkstead, Colonel John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_256">256</a></li>
-
- <li>Barlow, Bishop of Lincoln, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_379">379</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_192">192</a>,
- <a href="#Page_197">197</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Account of Scheme of Comprehension, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_381">381–385</a></li>
-
- <li>Barrow, Dr. Isaac, ii.
- <a href="#Page_251">251</a>,
- <a href="#Page_395">395</a>,
- <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Long Sermons,
- <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Travels and Studies,
- <a href="#Page_311">311</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theology,
- <a href="#Page_311">311–315</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Defence of Protestantism,
- <a href="#Page_316">316</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Sermons,
- <a href="#Page_329">329</a></li>
-
- <li>Bartholomew’s Day, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_278">278–282</a></li>
-
- <li>Barton, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Barwick, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_125">125</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_174">174</a></li>
-
- <li>Barwick, Dr. John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_225">225</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Correspondence with Clarendon,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_36">36</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Goes to Breda,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_71">71</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Exertions in Restoration of Cathedrals, ii.
- <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-
- <li>Basire, Isaac, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_481">481</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Bates, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_120">120</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_168">168</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_191">191</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_302">302</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_381">381</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_29">29</a>,
- <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_165">165</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Farewell Sermons,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_271">271</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Takes Oath of Non-resistance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_349">349</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Warrant for his Apprehension, ii.
- <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Baxter’s Trial,
- <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Sermons,
- <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Spiritual Perfection</i>,
- <a href="#Page_443">443</a></li>
-
- <li>Bathurst, Dr. Ralph, ii.
- <a href="#Page_255">255</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Baxter, Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_52">52</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_168">168</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_259">259</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_340">340</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_362">362</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_391">391</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_449">449</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_485">485</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_503">503</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_26">26</a>,
- <a href="#Page_122">122</a>,
- <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Preaches in St. Paul’s, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_63">63</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His appointment as Chaplain at Court,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Address to Charles,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_101">101</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Present at Sion College,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_102">102</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Vindicates his Policy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_106">106</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Petition to the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_107">107</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Worcester House,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Buys the King’s Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_117">117</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Receives the Offer of a Bishopric,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_118">118</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Declines it,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_119">119</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Complains of Letters being Intercepted,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_145">145</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Leader of Presbyterians in Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_164">164–166</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Objections to the Prayer Book,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Reformed Liturgy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_180">180–182</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Composes Rejoinder to Bishops’ Answers,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_183">183</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Savoy Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_185">185–188</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Account of his Brother Commissioners,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by his Opponents,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_190">190</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Account of Conference presented to the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_191">191</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Leaves the Establishment,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_262">262</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Disapproves of Declaration of Indulgence,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_298">298</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Independence after being Ejected,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_318">318</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Refuses to take Oath of Non-resistance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_351">351</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Charged with keeping an Unlawful Conventicle,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_393">393</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Imprisonment,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_394">394</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Refuses a Pension,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_410">410</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Overtures made to him respecting Comprehension,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_438">438</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Tires of Disputation, ii.
- <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Trial,
- <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Imprisonment,
- <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Release,
- <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Baptism,
- <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Preaching,
- <a href="#Page_210">210–212</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Observance of the Sabbath,
- <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Interest in Missionary Work,
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Writings on the Evidences of Revealed Religion,
- <a href="#Page_391">391–394</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Incidents in his Early Life,
- <a href="#Page_414">414</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theology,
- <a href="#Page_415">415–420</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Resemblance between his Teaching and Howe’s,
- <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Baptism,
- <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li>
- <li class="i1">On the Lord’s Supper,
- <a href="#Page_432">432</a></li>
- <li class="i1">On the Ministry,
- <a href="#Page_434">434</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His share in Anti-Popish Controversy,
- <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Works on Union,
- <a href="#Page_441">441</a></li>
- <li class="i1"><i>Christian Directory</i>, and other Works,
- <a href="#Page_445">445</a>,
- <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Hymns</i>,
- <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
- <li>Beamish, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_409">409</a></li>
-
- <li>Beaufort, Duke of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_91">91</a>,
- <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
-
- <li>Beaufort, Duchess of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
-
- <li>Beaulieu, Luke de, ii.
- <a href="#Page_300">300</a></li>
-
- <li>Beaumont, Agnes, ii.
- <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
- <li>Beaumont, Joseph, ii.
- <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
- <li>Beddingfield, Colonel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
- <li>Behmen, Jacob, ii.
- <a href="#Page_483">483</a></li>
-
- <li>Behn, Aphara, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_356">356</a></li>
-
- <li>Bellarmine, ii.
- <a href="#Page_285">285</a></li>
-
- <li>Bendish, Mrs., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_431">431</a></li>
-
- <li>Benlowes, ii.
- <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
- <li id="Bennet">Bennet, Sir Henry, Lord Arlington, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_123">123</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_253">253</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Secretary of State, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_293">293</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_308">308</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_336">336</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_391">391</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Member of the Cabal,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_401">401</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_425">425</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Relinquishes his Secretaryship,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_434">434</a></li>
-
- <li>Berry, Major-General, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
- <li>Bertie, Peregrine, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_348">348</a></li>
-
- <li>Beveridge, ii.
- <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li>
-
- <li>Biddle, John, the Father of Socinianism, ii.
- <a href="#Page_365">365</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Catechism,
- <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li>
-
- <li>Biggin, ii.
- <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
- <li>Billingsley, Nicholas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_291">291</a></li>
-
- <li>Birch, Colonel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_153">153</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_379">379</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_380">380</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_386">386</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a></li>
-
- <li>Bishops, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_83">83</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_284">284</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_463">463</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_204">204</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Censured by Hyde, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_36">36</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Loyal Address,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_71">71</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Nine of the Old Régime,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Appointment of New Bishops,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_98">98</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Answer to Proposals made by Presbyterians,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_105">105</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Worcester House,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
- <li class="i1">New Bishops Consecrated,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Savoy Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_165">165</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_184">184–188</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Convocation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_173">173</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Answers to Presbyterians’ Exceptions,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_179">179</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill for Restoring them to Upper House,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_197">197</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Take their Seats in Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_209">209</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Revision of Prayer Book,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_213">213</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_219">219–222</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dioceses in Confusion,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_226">226</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Issue Articles of Visitation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_289">289</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Effects of their Opposition to King’s Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_300">300</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Deaths amongst them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Accounts of some of them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_470">470–504</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Manner of receiving James’ Declaration, ii.
- <a href="#Page_120">120–122</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Lambeth Conference,
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
- <li class="i1">The <i>Seven</i>,
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Petition,
- <a href="#Page_144">144</a></li>
- <li class="i1">King’s Displeasure,
- <a href="#Page_147">147</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Sent to the Tower,
- <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Trial,
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Acquittal,
- <a href="#Page_155">155</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Revenues,
- <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Survey,
- <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
- <li>Blackmore, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a></li>
-
- <li>Blagge, Margaret, <i>see</i> <a href="#Godolphin">Godolphin</a></li>
-
- <li>Blagge, ii.
- <a href="#Page_475">475</a></li>
-
- <li>Blake, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_273">273</a></li>
-
- <li>Blandford, Dr. Walter, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_494">494</a></li>
-
- <li>Bloworth, Sir Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li>Boscawen, Hugh, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_153">153</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-
- <li>Bowen, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_432">432</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_433">433</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
- <li>Bowles, Edward, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_44">44</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_277">277</a></li>
-
- <li>Boyle, Robert, ii.
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
- <li>Braham, Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_157">157</a></li>
-
- <li>Bramhall, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_37">37</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="#Page_318">318</a>,
- <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Appointed Archbishop of Armagh, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_133">133</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_307">307</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Writings, ii.
- <a href="#Page_303">303</a>,
- <a href="#Page_304">304</a></li>
-
- <li>Bramston, Sir John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
- <li>Brewster, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_432">432</a></li>
-
- <li>Brideoake, Dr. Ralph, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_501">501</a></li>
-
- <li>Bridge, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_29">29</a></li>
-
- <li>Bridgeman, Chief Justice, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_284">284</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_348">348</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Lord Keeper,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_380">380</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_403">403</a></li>
-
- <li>Bridgeman, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
- <li>Bridgwater, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a></li>
-
- <li>Bristol, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_198">198</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_298">298</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_426">426</a></li>
-
- <li>Broderick, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
- <li>Broghill, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a></li>
-
- <li>Brooks, ii.
- <a href="#Page_443">443</a></li>
-
- <li>Brown, Sir Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li>Browne, Sir Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_287">287</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_214">214</a>,
- <a href="#Page_215">215</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Religious Life,
- <a href="#Page_485">485</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Eccentricity,
- <a href="#Page_486">486</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Writings,
- <a href="#Page_488">488</a></li>
-
- <li>Brownrigg, Bishop of Exeter, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_37">37</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_142">142</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Buckingham, Duke of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_73">73</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_75">75</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_77">77</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_245">245</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_427">427</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_434">434</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_457">457</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Favours Toleration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_352">352</a></li>
- <li class="i1">A member of the Cabal,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_401">401</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Raises Recruits,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_457">457</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Speech for a New Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_461">461</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Committed to the Tower,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Liberated,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Overtures to Nonconformists, ii.
- <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Chancellor of Cambridge,
- <a href="#Page_253">253</a>,
- <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Bull, Bishop of St. David’s, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_492">492</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_213">213</a>,
- <a href="#Page_317">317</a>,
- <a href="#Page_424">424</a>,
- <a href="#Page_429">429</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Harmonia Apostolica</i>,
- <a href="#Page_279">279–282</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Answers to his Book,
- <a href="#Page_283">283</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Violent Polemical Spirit,
- <a href="#Page_285">285</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Defensio Fidei Nicenæ</i>,
- <a href="#Page_285">285</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Teaching compared with Barrow’s,
- <a href="#Page_314">314</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Bunyan, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_138">138</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_316">316</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_409">409</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_414">414</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_175">175</a>,
- <a href="#Page_205">205</a>,
- <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Burleigh, Cecil, Lord, Comparison between him and Lord Clarendon, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_373">373</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Burnet, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_256">256</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_258">258</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_392">392</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_410">410</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_4">4</a>,
- <a href="#Page_67">67</a>,
- <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
- <li>Burnyeat, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_492">492–494</a></li>
-
- <li>Burret, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
- <li>Busby, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_264">264</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Cabal Ministry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_400">400–403</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_416">416</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_434">434</a></li>
-
- <li>Calamy, Dr. Benjamin, ii.
- <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Calamy, Dr. Edmund, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_63">63</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_169">169</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_302">302</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Funeral Sermon for Ash,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_277">277</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Offered a Bishopric,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_120">120</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_164">164</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_183">183</a></li>
-
- <li>Calamy, Dr. (Historian), ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Calvinism, ii.
- <a href="#Page_274">274</a>,
- <a href="#Page_397">397–405</a>,
- <a href="#Page_406">406</a>,
- <a href="#Page_408">408</a>,
- <a href="#Page_410">410</a></li>
-
- <li>Campbell, ii.
- <a href="#Page_392">392</a></li>
-
- <li>Care, Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
- <li>Carlile, Lawson, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_416">416</a></li>
-
- <li>Carr, Colonel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_364">364</a></li>
-
- <li>Carr, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_253">253</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Cartwright, Thomas, Bishop of Chester, ii.
- <a href="#Page_109">109</a>,
- <a href="#Page_137">137</a>,
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a>,
- <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li>
-
- <li>Carver, Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_412">412</a></li>
-
- <li>Caryl, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_194">194</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_394">394</a></li>
-
- <li>Case, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_69">69</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Castell, ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-
- <li>Castelmaine, Earl of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
- <li>Cathedrals, Injuries Repaired, ii.
- <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Furniture,
- <a href="#Page_184">184</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Processions,
- <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Worship,
- <a href="#Page_188">188</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Catherine of Braganza, Queen of Charles II., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_268">268</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_275">275</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_276">276</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_294">294</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_450">450</a></li>
-
- <li>Cavendish, William, Marquis of Newcastle, ii.
- <a href="#Page_490">490</a></li>
-
- <li>Cawdray, ii.
- <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li>
-
- <li>Cellier, ii.
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
- <li>Chaise, Père la, ii.
- <a href="#Page_3">3</a></li>
-
- <li>Chamberlayne, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Chandler, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_290">290</a></li>
-
- <li>Charles I., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_84">84</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Churches named in his honour,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_177">177</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Alexandrian MS. sent to him by Cyrillus, ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Charles II., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_6">6</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_43">43</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_51">51</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_124">124</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_141">141</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_191">191</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_213">213</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_321">321</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_336">336</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_369">369</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_392">392</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_424">424</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_435">435</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_441">441</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_457">457</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_2">2</a>,
- <a href="#Page_10">10</a>,
- <a href="#Page_18">18</a>,
- <a href="#Page_45">45</a>,
- <a href="#Page_141">141</a>,
- <a href="#Page_187">187</a>,
- <a href="#Page_245">245</a>,
- <a href="#Page_300">300</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Suggestions made to him by his friends, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_53">53</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_54">54</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Letters to Monk and the Commons,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_60">60</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_61">61</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Proclaimed King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_63">63</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Invited back without conditions,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_65">65–67</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Presbyterian Deputation visit him at the Hague,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Attachment to the Liturgy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_69">69</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Character and Opinions,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_73">73</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_74">74</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Lands at Dover,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_75">75</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Addresses presented to him,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_77">77–80</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Counsellors,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_83">83</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Speech to the two Houses,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_95">95</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Appoints Commission to compose Differences in Ecclesiastical Affairs,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_96">96</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Baxter’s Address to him,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_101">101</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Presbyterian Proposals,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_104">104</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Baxter’s Petition,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_107">107</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Worcester House,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114–116</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His new Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_117">117</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Opens New Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_154">154</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Coronation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_161">161</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_166">166</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_167">167</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Cabinet Meetings,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_201">201</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Speeches at Opening of Parliaments,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_209">209</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_416">416</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_31">31</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Sanctions Revised Copy of Prayer Book, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_229">229</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Aims at a Dispensing Power,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_232">232</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Gives Assent to Uniformity Bill,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_245">245</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Head of Roman Catholic Party who concur in the Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_252">252</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Unpopularity of his Government,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_267">267</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_268">268</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Marriage,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_275">275</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Presbyterians’ Petition,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Hampton Court,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_284">284</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Holds a Council,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_284">284</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Declaration of Indulgence,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_296">296</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_303">303</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_403">403–408</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Toleration towards Colonists,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_311">311</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Disapproval of Dutch War,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_344">344</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Interest in Sufferers by Fire,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_359">359</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Empty Exchequer,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_367">367</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Anxious for Union amongst Protestants,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_386">386</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Grants an Audience to Presbyterians,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_390">390</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Interviews with Carver and Moore,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_412">412</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Releases Quakers from Prison,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_414">414</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Popularity Declines,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_417">417</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Gives Assent to Test Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_427">427</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Withdraws Declaration of Indulgence,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_428">428</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Desire for Absolutism,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_437">437</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Suspected of being a Romanist,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_450">450</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Signs a Treaty with Louis XIV.,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_451">451</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Proposes Terms of Compromise in reference to Succession, ii.
- <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Illness,
- <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His despotism,
- <a href="#Page_63">63</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Proficiency in Kingcraft,
- <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Offers an Asylum to French Refugees,
- <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Invites his Brother to seat at Council-table,
- <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Licentiousness,
- <a href="#Page_85">85</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Scenes at Whitehall,
- <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="#Page_87">87</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Touches for King’s Evil,
- <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Visit to Cambridge,
- <a href="#Page_253">253</a></li>
-
- <li>Charlton, Sergeant, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_241">241</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_243">243</a></li>
-
- <li>Charnock, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
-
- <li>Charrochi, ii.
- <a href="#Page_137">137</a></li>
-
- <li>Chase, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
- <li>Chaworth, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_222">222</a></li>
-
- <li>Chelsea College and Hospital, ii.
- <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Chillingworth, William, his Theological Opinions, ii.
- <a href="#Page_334">334–336</a></li>
-
- <li>Churches, Architecture, ii.
- <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Furniture,
- <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Vestments and Manner of Worship,
- <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li>
-
- <li>Churchill, Lord, ii.
- <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
- <li>Clagett, ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Clare, Sir Ralph, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
- <li>Clarendon, <i>see</i> <a href="#Hyde">Hyde</a></li>
-
- <li>Clark, Samuel, the Episcopalian, ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-
- <li>Clarke, Samuel, the Puritan, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_121">121</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_349">349</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Commissioner at Savoy Conference, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_165">165</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
- <li>Clarkson, David, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_409">409</a></li>
-
- <li>Clergy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_89">89</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_90">90</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_261">261</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Petitions, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_99">99</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_321">321</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Taxation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_329">329</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their conduct during the Plague,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_336">336</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Miserable Condition,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_505">505</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Ignorance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_507">507</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Costume,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_509">509</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Character,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_510">510</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Articles of Visitation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_509">509–512</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Writings against Errors of Church of Rome, ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Change in them,
- <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Ecclesiastical Tribunals,
- <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Discipline exercised on them by Bishops,
- <a href="#Page_204">204</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Private Life,
- <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li>
-
- <li>Cleveland, Duchess of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_500">500</a></li>
-
- <li>Clewer, ii.
- <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
- <li>Cleypole, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_18">18</a></li>
-
- <li>Clifford, Sir Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_401">401</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_427">427</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_429">429</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_434">434</a></li>
-
- <li>Coffee Houses, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_443">443</a></li>
-
- <li>Colbert, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_397">397</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_420">420</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_429">429</a></li>
-
- <li>Coleman, ii.
- <a href="#Page_3">3</a>,
- <a href="#Page_6">6</a>,
- <a href="#Page_9">9</a></li>
-
- <li>Colledge, Stephen, his Trial and Execution, ii.
- <a href="#Page_45">45–49</a></li>
-
- <li>Collinges, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li>
-
- <li>Collins, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Colonies, Ecclesiastical Policy towards them, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_310">310</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_311">311</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Spiritual Destitution, ii.
- <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Missionary Work,
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
- <li>Compton, ii.
- <a href="#Page_110">110</a>,
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
- <li>Commons, House of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_468">468</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Members excluded by Pride restored,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_48">48</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Solemn League and Covenant reappears,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_50">50</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Letter from the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_60">60</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Conference with the Lords,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_62">62</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Debate on Church’s Settlement,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_88">88</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill founded on King’s Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_121">121–124</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Uniformity Bill,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_201">201</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_204">204</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_229">229–244</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Intolerance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_250">250</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Zeal for the Established Church,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_303">303</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bills against Papists and Nonconformists,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_304">304</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill for better Observance of the Sabbath,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_305">305</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their Opposition to Measures for Comprehension,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_386">386</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill for Reviving Conventicle Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_388">388</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Country Party Predominant,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Exclusion Bill,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_469">469</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Complain of Trick on Toleration Bill,
- <a href="#Page_30">30</a>,
- <a href="#Page_32">32</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Grand Committee of Religion,
- <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
- <li class="i1">James II. annoyed with their Proceedings,
- <a href="#Page_94">94</a></li>
-
- <li>Conant, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_288">288</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_52">52</a>,
- <a href="#Page_198">198</a></li>
-
- <li>Convocation, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_158">158</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Writs drawn up,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_159">159</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Election of Members,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_168">168</a></li>
- <li class="i1">First Meeting since 1640,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_173">173–178</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Resume their Deliberation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_213">213–222</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Subscribe Book of Common Prayer,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_223">223</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Accomplish no Alterations in the Canons,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_226">226</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Power diminishes,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_331">331</a></li>
-
- <li>Conway, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_141">141</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a>,
- <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-
- <li>Conyers, Tobias, ii.
- <a href="#Page_410">410</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent" id="Cooper">Cooper, Sir Anthony Ashley, Earl of Shaftesbury, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_34">34</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_56">56</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_416">416</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_437">437</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_4">4</a>,
- <a href="#Page_33">33</a>,
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a></li>
- <li class="i1">A Member of the Cabal, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_401">401</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Lord Chancellor,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_403">403</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_426">426</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dismissed from Office,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_434">434</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Desires a Dissolution of Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_460">460</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Supports the Duke of Buckingham,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Committed to the Tower,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Obtains his Liberty,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Accused of entering into a Conspiracy against the King, ii.
- <a href="#Page_50">50</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Imprisonment,
- <a href="#Page_50">50</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dies in Holland,
- <a href="#Page_50">50</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Effects of his Schemes,
- <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
- <li>Cooper, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Corbet, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_378">378</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Cosin, Dr. John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_37">37</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_159">159</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_222">222</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_290">290</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_406">406</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_236">236</a>,
- <a href="#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="#Page_320">320</a>,
- <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Consecrated Bishop of Durham, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_163">163</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_184">184</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_188">188</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Notes on the Prayer Book,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_219">219</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_221">221</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Account of him,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_478">478–481</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Improves the See of Durham, ii.
- <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Opinions,
- <a href="#Page_299">299–301</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Declares against Sectaries,
- <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Preaches abroad,
- <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li>
-
- <li>Cotterel, Sir Charles, ii.
- <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
- <li>Court of Wards, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Of Delegates, ii.
- <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
- <li class="i1">High Commission,
- <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Arches,
- <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
- <li>Covel, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
-
- <li>Coventry, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
- <li>Coventry, Sir W., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_419">419</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_420">420</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_423">423</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-
- <li>Crabb, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_294">294</a></li>
-
- <li>Crabb, Nathaniel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_211">211</a></li>
-
- <li>Crabb, Peter, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_294">294</a></li>
-
- <li>Cradock, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a></li>
-
- <li>Crashaw, Richard, ii.
- <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
-
- <li>Cressey, Hugh Paulin, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_453">453</a></li>
-
- <li>Crew, Bishop of Durham, ii.
- <a href="#Page_111">111</a>,
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
- <li>Crew, Lord, ii.
- <a href="#Page_490">490</a></li>
-
- <li>Crisp, Sir Nicholas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Croft, Herbert, Bishop of Hereford, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_503">503</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_2">2</a>,
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a>,
- <a href="#Page_188">188</a>,
- <a href="#Page_192">192</a>,
- <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Publishes <i>Naked Truth</i>, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_447">447–449</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Account of him, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_487">487</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_2">2</a></li>
-
- <li>Crofton, Zachary, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_150">150</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_394">394</a></li>
-
- <li>Cromwell, Henry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_17">17</a></li>
-
- <li>Cromwell, Oliver, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_49">49</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_347">347</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Confusion after his Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_6">6</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Acts set aside,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_21">21</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Corpse disinterred and hanged at Tyburn,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
- <li>Cromwell, Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_20">20</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_140">140</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Is acknowledged Protector,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_15">15</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Tolerance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_16">16</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Calls a Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_17">17</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Opening Speech,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_18">18</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Is personally Popular,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_22">22</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Summons a Council,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Is forced to dissolve Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_24">24</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Retires into Private Life,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_27">27</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Rumour of attempt to restore him,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_354">354</a></li>
-
- <li>Cudworth, Dr. Ralph, ii.
- <a href="#Page_251">251</a>,
- <a href="#Page_253">253</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Intellectual System,
- <a href="#Page_349">349–352</a>,
- <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li>
-
- <li>Culpepper, Nicholas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_85">85</a></li>
-
- <li>Cyrillus, ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Dalgarno, George, ii.
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
-
- <li>Danby, Earl of (<i>see</i> <a href="#Osborne">Osborne</a>)</li>
-
- <li>Dangerfield’s Plot, ii.
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a>,
- <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
- <li>Davenant, Bishop, ii.
- <a href="#Page_406">406</a></li>
-
- <li>Davenport, ii.
- <a href="#Page_412">412</a></li>
-
- <li>Declaration of Indulgence, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_296">296–301</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_403">403–408</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Debate on Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Withdrawn,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_428">428</a></li>
- <li class="i1">James II.’s Declaration, ii.
- <a href="#Page_118">118–125</a></li>
-
- <li>Defoe, Daniel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_5">5</a></li>
-
- <li>Delaune, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_73">73</a></li>
-
- <li>Denham, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_313">313</a></li>
-
- <li>Derby, Countess of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_501">501</a></li>
-
- <li>Derby, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_353">353</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_501">501</a></li>
-
- <li>Desborough, Colonel John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_22">22</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
- <li>Dillingham, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
- <li>Dobson, ii.
- <a href="#Page_137">137</a></li>
-
- <li>Dod, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_484">484</a></li>
-
- <li>Dodwell, ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Doe, Charles, ii.
- <a href="#Page_205">205</a></li>
-
- <li>Dolben, John, Bishop of Rochester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_478">478</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_498">498</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_499">499</a></li>
-
- <li>Donne, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_210">210</a>,
- <a href="#Page_328">328</a>,
- <a href="#Page_469">469</a></li>
-
- <li>Doolittle, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_408">408</a></li>
-
- <li>Douglas, Bishop, ii.
- <a href="#Page_392">392</a></li>
-
- <li>Drake, Commissioner at the Savoy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Dryden, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a>,
- <a href="#Page_459">459</a></li>
-
- <li>Dugdale, ii.
- <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
- <li>Duppa, Bishop of Salisbury, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_37">37</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_98">98</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Translated to Winchester,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Expends large Sums in Charity, ii.
- <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
- <li>Dutch, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_344">344</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_366">366</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_402">402</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Defeated by the English Fleet,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_355">355</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Alarm the Nation again,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_366">366</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li class="hangingindent">Earle (or Erle), John, Dean of Westminster, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_160">160</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bishop of Salisbury,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_491">491</a></li>
-
- <li>Ebury, Elizabeth, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Edwards, Jonathan, ii.
- <a href="#Page_401">401</a></li>
-
- <li>Eliot, John, Missionary to the Indians, ii.
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li>
-
- <li>Ellwood, ii.
- <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Episcopalians, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_34">34</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_39">39</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_52">52</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_53">53</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_77">77</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_93">93</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_94">94</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_161">161</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_292">292</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their violence in Elections for New Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_57">57</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Joy at prospect of King’s return,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_71">71</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Recovery of their sway in Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_88">88</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their Refusal to make Concessions to the Presbyterians,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_105">105</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Differences between the two Parties,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_107">107–112</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Scheme of Comprehension,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_381">381–383</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Secure the Succession to James II., ii.
- <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Treachery towards them,
- <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Cathedrals and Churches,
- <a href="#Page_180">180–185</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Revenues,
- <a href="#Page_190">190–198</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Ecclesiastical Courts,
- <a href="#Page_198">198–205</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their numbers as compared with Nonconformists,
- <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Contrasts in Preaching,
- <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Observance of the Sabbath,
- <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Recreations,
- <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Charities,
- <a href="#Page_243">243</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Examples of the Teaching of High Anglicans,
- <a href="#Page_268">268–303</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Semi-Anglicans,
- <a href="#Page_305">305–311</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Sermon Writers,
- <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Critics,
- <a href="#Page_331">331</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Liberal Orthodox,
- <a href="#Page_335">335</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Latitudinarians,
- <a href="#Page_341">341</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Points of Resemblance between them and the Puritan Divines,
- <a href="#Page_394">394</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Points of Difference,
- <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Biographical Sketches of Anglicans,
- <a href="#Page_468">468–491</a></li>
-
- <li>Essex, Earl of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
- <li>Evans, George, ii.
- <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Evelyn, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_38">38</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_43">43</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_91">91</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_277">277</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="#Page_124">124</a>,
- <a href="#Page_142">142</a>,
- <a href="#Page_183">183</a>,
- <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Biographical Sketch of him,
- <a href="#Page_471">471–474</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Friendship with Margaret Godolphin,
- <a href="#Page_475">475–477</a></li>
-
- <li>Ewins, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_497">497</a>,
- <a href="#Page_500">500</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Fairfax, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_313">313</a></li>
-
- <li>Fairfax, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
-
- <li>Fairfull, Archbishop of Glasgow, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
- <li>Falconbridge, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_27">27</a></li>
-
- <li>Falconbridge, Lady, ii.
- <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
-
- <li>Falkland, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
- <li>Fanshaw, Sir Richard, ii.
- <a href="#Page_251">251</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Farindon, Anthony, his Theological Teaching, ii.
- <a href="#Page_339">339–341</a></li>
-
- <li>Farmer, Anthony, ii.
- <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
- <li>Faucet, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_433">433</a></li>
-
- <li>Feake, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
- <li>Featley, Dr. Daniel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
- <li>Fell, John, Bishop of Oxford, ii.
- <a href="#Page_196">196</a>,
- <a href="#Page_257">257</a>,
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-
- <li>Ferne, Dr. Henry, Dean of Ely, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_175">175</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Promoted to the Bishopric of Chester,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
- <li>Feversham, Lord, ii.
- <a href="#Page_87">87</a></li>
-
- <li>Fiennes, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_16">16</a></li>
-
- <li>Fifth Monarchy Men, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_41">41</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_144">144</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_325">325</a></li>
-
- <li>Finch, Sir Heneage, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_435">435</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_437">437</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-
- <li>Finch, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_141">141</a></li>
-
- <li>Fire of London, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_357">357–362</a></li>
-
- <li>Firman, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Flavel, John, his <i>Husbandry Spiritualized</i>, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_318">318</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li>
-
- <li>Fleetwood, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_17">17</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_22">22</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_48">48</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Power,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
- <li>Fogg, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_288">288</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
- <li>Ford, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
- <li>Ford, Sir Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li>Ford, Simon, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Foster, Lady, ii.
- <a href="#Page_256">256</a></li>
-
- <li>Foulke, Alderman, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li>Fownes, ii.
- <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-
- <li>Fox, George, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_258">258</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_415">415</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Petitions Charles for Release of Quakers,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_275">275</a></li>
- <li class="i1">The Father of Quakerism, ii.
- <a href="#Page_369">369</a></li>
-
- <li>Frampton, ii.
- <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li>
-
- <li>Francis, Alban, ii.
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
- <li>Francklin, ii.
- <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
- <li>Frankland, ii.
- <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
- <li>Franklin, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a></li>
-
- <li>French Protestants, ii.
- <a href="#Page_76">76–81</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Frewen, Accepted, Bishop of Lichfield and Coventry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_98">98</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Promoted to the Archbishopric of York,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Member of Savoy Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_165">165</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_495">495</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Authorship of <i>Whole Duty of Man</i> ascribed to him, ii.
- <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li>
-
- <li>Fuller, Andrew, ii.
- <a href="#Page_419">419</a></li>
-
- <li>Fuller, Dr. Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_479">479</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
- <li>Fuller, Dr. William, ii.
- <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
- <li>Fulwood, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_103">103</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li class="hangingindent">Gale, Theophilus, his Writings on Evidences of Natural Religion, ii.
- <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li>
-
- <li>Garroway, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_421">421</a></li>
-
- <li>Garthwaite, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Gasches, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_52">52</a></li>
-
- <li>Gataker, ii.
- <a href="#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="#Page_284">284</a>,
- <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
-
- <li>Gauden, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_150">150</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_160">160</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_474">474</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Consecrated Bishop of Exeter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_163">163</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a></li>
-
- <li>Gaunt, Elizabeth, her Trial and Execution, ii.
- <a href="#Page_98">98–100</a></li>
-
- <li>Germain, St., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_458">458</a></li>
-
- <li>Gibbons, Grinling, ii.
- <a href="#Page_189">189</a></li>
-
- <li>Giffard, Bonaventura, ii.
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
- <li>Gifford, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a></li>
-
- <li>Glanvill, Joseph, ii.
- <a href="#Page_356">356</a></li>
-
- <li>Glemham, Henry, Bishop of St. Asaph, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_499">499</a></li>
-
- <li>Gloucester, Duke of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_75">75</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_77">77</a></li>
-
- <li>Glynne, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_152">152</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_153">153</a></li>
-
- <li>Godden, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Godfrey, Sir Edmondbury, ii.
- <a href="#Page_3">3</a>,
- <a href="#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="#Page_8">8</a></li>
-
- <li>Godolphin, Sidney, ii.
- <a href="#Page_475">475</a></li>
-
- <li id="Godolphin">Godolphin, Margaret, ii.
- <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Her Piety,
- <a href="#Page_475">475–478</a></li>
-
- <li>Goodridge, Richard, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Goodwin, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li>
- <li class="i1">An Arminian, ii.
- <a href="#Page_407">407</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Opinions,
- <a href="#Page_407">407</a>,
- <a href="#Page_409">409</a>,
- <a href="#Page_410">410</a>,
- <a href="#Page_450">450</a></li>
-
- <li>Goodwin, Dr. Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_294">294</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_418">418</a>,
- <a href="#Page_419">419</a>,
- <a href="#Page_450">450</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Baptism, ii.
- <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Stand-points in his Theology: <i>Faith</i>,
- <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li>
- <li class="i1"><i>Election</i>,
- <a href="#Page_398">398</a></li>
- <li class="i1"><i>Regeneration</i>,
- <a href="#Page_400">400</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Works compared with Owen’s,
- <a href="#Page_401">401</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Baptism,
- <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li>
- <li class="i1">On the Lord’s Supper,
- <a href="#Page_432">432</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Commentaries,
- <a href="#Page_447">447</a></li>
-
- <li>Gordon, Catherine, ii.
- <a href="#Page_377">377</a></li>
-
- <li>Gother, John i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_453">453</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Gough, Major-General, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_259">259</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_260">260</a></li>
-
- <li>Gouge, ii.
- <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-
- <li>Gower, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_489">489</a></li>
-
- <li>Gower, Sir Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_313">313</a></li>
-
- <li>Graffen, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_150">150</a></li>
-
- <li>Grafton, Duke of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
- <li>Greathead, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_312">312</a></li>
-
- <li>Greene, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a></li>
-
- <li>Gregory, ii.
- <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-
- <li>Greenhill, ii.
- <a href="#Page_447">447</a></li>
-
- <li>Grenville, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
- <li>Griffin, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_211">211</a></li>
-
- <li>Griffith, Bishop of St. Asaph, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_290">290</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_499">499</a></li>
-
- <li>Griffiths, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
- <li>Grimston, Mrs., her death, ii.
- <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
-
- <li>Grimston, Sir Harbottle, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_61">61</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Speaker of Convention Parliament, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Member of New Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_153">153</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Sketch of his Life,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_506">506</a></li>
-
- <li>Grindal, Bishop, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_217">217</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_254">254</a></li>
-
- <li>Grosvenor, Sir Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Grotius, ii.
- <a href="#Page_279">279</a></li>
-
- <li>Grove, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_319">319</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
- <li>Guilford, <i>see</i> <a href="#Guilford">North</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Gunning, Peter, Bishop of Ely, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_220">220</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_449">449</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_502">502</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_11">11</a>,
- <a href="#Page_355">355</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Savoy Conference, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_163">163</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Intolerance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_397">397</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death and Character,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_489">489</a></li>
-
- <li>Gurnal, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_288">288</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
- <li>Gwynn, Nell, ii.
- <a href="#Page_87">87</a>,
- <a href="#Page_141">141</a>,
- <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Hacker, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
- <li>Hacket, John, Bishop of Lichfield, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_502">502</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Account of him,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_481">481–483</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Labours in Restoration of his Cathedral,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_481">481</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
-
- <li>Hagger, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_476">476</a></li>
-
- <li>Haines, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Hale, Sir Matthew, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_62">62</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_124">124</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_202">202</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_380">380</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Draws up Comprehension Bill, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_384">384</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Sketch of his Life, ii.
- <a href="#Page_478">478–481</a></li>
-
- <li>Hales, Sir Edward, ii.
- <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li>
-
- <li>Hales, John, his Theological Teaching, ii.
- <a href="#Page_338">338</a>,
- <a href="#Page_406">406</a></li>
-
- <li>Halifax, Viscount, ii.
- <a href="#Page_19">19</a>,
- <a href="#Page_93">93</a>,
- <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Character,
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a></li>
- <li class="i1">A “Trimmer,”
- <a href="#Page_42">42</a></li>
-
- <li>Hall, George, Bishop of Chester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_263">263</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a></li>
-
- <li>Hall, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_196">196</a>,
- <a href="#Page_198">198</a></li>
-
- <li>Hamilton, Bishop of Galloway, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
- <li>Hammond, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_52">52</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="#Page_330">330</a>,
- <a href="#Page_386">386</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Intimacy with Sanderson,
- <a href="#Page_306">306</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Doctrinal Opinions,
- <a href="#Page_307">307</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Practical Catechism</i>,
- <a href="#Page_307">307</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Paraphrase</i> and <i>Annotations</i>,
- <a href="#Page_287">287</a>,
- <a href="#Page_333">333</a></li>
-
- <li>Hampden, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
- <li>Hanmer, Mrs., ii.
- <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li>
-
- <li>Harcourt, Count D’, ii.
- <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
- <li>Harcourt, Sir Philip, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_464">464</a></li>
-
- <li>Harding, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
- <li>Hardy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Preaches before the King at the Hague,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
- <li>Hardy, Matthew, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_199">199</a></li>
-
- <li>Harrington, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-
- <li>Harrison, Major-General, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Trial and Execution,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
- <li>Hart, Theophilus, ii.
- <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li>
-
- <li>Hartlib, Samuel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
- <li>Hartopp, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
- <li>Haselrig, Sir Arthur, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_17">17</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_20">20</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_34">34</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
- <li>Hatton, Sir Christopher, ii.
- <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
- <li>Havers, Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_102">102</a></li>
-
- <li>Hawes, Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_292">292</a></li>
-
- <li>Haywood, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
- <li>Heber, Bishop, ii.
- <a href="#Page_294">294</a>,
- <a href="#Page_299">299</a></li>
-
- <li>Hellier, ii.
- <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-
- <li>Henchman, Dr. Humphrey, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_222">222</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_290">290</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_491">491</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His appointment to the Bishopric of Salisbury,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Translation to the Bishopric of London,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_492">492</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_493">493</a></li>
-
- <li>Henrietta, Maria, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_84">84</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_268">268</a></li>
-
- <li>Henrietta, Duchess of Orleans, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_451">451</a></li>
-
- <li>Henry, Philip, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_65">65</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_138">138</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_206">206</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_207">207</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_409">409</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_512">512</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Difficulty with regard to Act of Uniformity,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_263">263</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_264">264</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Refusal to take Oath of Non-Resistance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_352">352</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Hospitality, ii.
- <a href="#Page_219">219</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Home Life,
- <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-
- <li>Henshaw, Joseph, Bishop of Peterborough, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_493">493</a></li>
-
- <li>Herbert, Sir Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li>
-
- <li>Herbert, Lord, ii.
- <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li>
-
- <li>Herbert, George, ii.
- <a href="#Page_237">237</a>,
- <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li>
-
- <li>Hermann, Archbishop of Cologne, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_216">216</a></li>
-
- <li>Herrick, Robert, ii.
- <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Heylyn, Dr. Peter, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_112">112</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_158">158</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_161">161</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_309">309</a>,
- <a href="#Page_316">316</a>,
- <a href="#Page_317">317</a>,
- <a href="#Page_395">395</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theology, ii.
- <a href="#Page_288">288</a>,
- <a href="#Page_289">289</a></li>
-
- <li>Heyricke, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a></li>
-
- <li>Heywood, Nathaniel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_431">431</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
- <li>Heywood, Oliver, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_207">207</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_351">351</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_409">409</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_160">160</a>,
- <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Imprisonment,
- <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Family Meeting,
- <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li>
-
- <li>Hickeringhill, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_505">505</a></li>
-
- <li>Hicks, ii.
- <a href="#Page_98">98</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Hobbes, The Malmesbury Philosopher, ii.
- <a href="#Page_270">270</a>,
- <a href="#Page_304">304</a>,
- <a href="#Page_362">362</a></li>
-
- <li>Hoghton, Sir Charles, ii.
- <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
- <li>Hoghton, Lady, ii.
- <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li>
-
- <li>Holcroft, Francis, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_316">316</a></li>
-
- <li>Holden, ii.
- <a href="#Page_136">136</a></li>
-
- <li>Holdsworth, ii.
- <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
- <li>Holles (or Hollis), i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Holloway, one of the Judges at Baxter’s trial, ii.
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a>,
- <a href="#Page_155">155</a></li>
-
- <li>Hook, William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_286">286</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_301">301</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_302">302</a></li>
-
- <li>Hooker, Richard, ii.
- <a href="#Page_268">268</a>,
- <a href="#Page_277">277</a>,
- <a href="#Page_429">429</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His <i>Ecclesiastical Polity</i>,
- <a href="#Page_298">298</a>,
- <a href="#Page_324">324</a>,
- <a href="#Page_328">328</a>,
- <a href="#Page_434">434</a></li>
-
- <li>Hookes, Ellis, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_415">415</a></li>
-
- <li>Horne, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_409">409</a></li>
-
- <li>Horton, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_288">288</a></li>
-
- <li>Hough, Dr. John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_133">133–138</a></li>
-
- <li>Howard, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Howe, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_138">138</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_194">194</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_29">29</a>,
- <a href="#Page_71">71</a>,
- <a href="#Page_103">103</a>,
- <a href="#Page_122">122</a>,
- <a href="#Page_223">223</a>,
- <a href="#Page_224">224</a>,
- <a href="#Page_426">426</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Difficulties with respect to the Act of Uniformity, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_264">264</a></li>
- <li class="i1">In Lord Massarene’s Family,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_317">317</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Defends cause of Nonconformists, ii.
- <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Expostulates with Tillotson,
- <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Interview with the Duke of Buckingham,
- <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Sermon on Controversy,
- <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Writings on Evidences of Natural Religion,
- <a href="#Page_388">388–390</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Puritanism,
- <a href="#Page_421">421</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His System of Theology,
- <a href="#Page_421">421</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Resemblance between his Teaching and Baxter’s,
- <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Original Power,
- <a href="#Page_429">429</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Baptism,
- <a href="#Page_432">432</a></li>
-
- <li>Hubberthorn, Richard, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_275">275</a></li>
-
- <li>Huish, Alexander, ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent" id="Hyde">Hyde, Edward, Earl of Clarendon, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_31">31</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_71">71</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_95">95</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_101">101</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_105">105</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_154">154</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_159">159</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_198">198</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_299">299</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_311">311</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_328">328</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Correspondence with Dr. Barwick, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_36">36–38</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Prime Minister,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_83">83</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Attachment to Episcopal Church,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_84">84</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Proposes a Meeting between the Court and Presbyterians,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Desire for the Restoration of the Establishment,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_125">125</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Interview with Presbyterians,
- <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Answerable for the Severity of the Act of Uniformity,
- <a href="#Page_250">250</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Opposes King’s Declaration,
- <a href="#Page_300">300</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Disapproves of Dutch War,
- <a href="#Page_344">344</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Resigns the Great Seal,
- <a href="#Page_368">368</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Impeachment,
- <a href="#Page_369">369</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Letter to his Daughter,
- <a href="#Page_370">370</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Character,
- <a href="#Page_371">371</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Comparison between him and Lord Burleigh,
- <a href="#Page_373">373</a>,
- <a href="#Page_374">374</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His object, the Establishment of the Episcopal Church and Crushing of Dissent,
- <a href="#Page_374">374</a></li>
-
- <li id="Laurence_Hyde">Hyde, Laurence, Earl of Rochester, ii.
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a>,
- <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Appointed Lord Treasurer,
- <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dismissed from Office,
- <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
-
- <li>Hyde, Dr. Alexander, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_491">491</a></li>
-
- <li>Hymnology, ii.
- <a href="#Page_451">451</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Ince, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_319">319</a></li>
-
- <li>Independents, during the Protectorate, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_9">9</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Meetings,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_29">29</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Lose their Political Influence,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_48">48</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_193">193</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Address to the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_79">79</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Protest against Vernier’s Insurrection,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_144">144</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Ejection,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_281">281</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Hopes revive at King’s Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_297">297</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Return Thanks for Indulgence,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_408">408</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Numbers diminished, ii.
- <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Declaration of Faith,
- <a href="#Page_166">166–168</a></li>
- <li class="i1">compared with Presbyterians,
- <a href="#Page_168">168–170</a></li>
- <li class="i1">With Baptists,
- <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Accused of Schism,
- <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-
- <li>Ingoldsby, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_59">59</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
- <li>Innocent XI., ii.
- <a href="#Page_104">104–131</a></li>
-
- <li>Ireland, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_37">37</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Consecration of Irish Bishops,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_133">133</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">James II. establishes a Roman Catholic Hierarchy in Ireland, ii.
- <a href="#Page_114">114</a></li>
-
- <li>Ireton, Henry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
- <li>Ironside, Gilbert, Bishop of Bristol, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_494">494</a></li>
-
- <li>Isle of Man, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_134">134</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Jackson, Commissioner at the Savoy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Jacomb, Dr. Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_120">120</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_317">317</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Commissioner at the Savoy Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_165">165</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Farewell Sermon,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_272">272</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Preaches in London after the Fire,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Baptism,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_432">432</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_505">505</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent" id="James">James, Duke of York, afterwards James II., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_75">75</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_304">304</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_328">328</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_425">425</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_11">11</a>,
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a>,
- <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Supports Provisions for Uniformity, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_252">252</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Approves of Dutch War,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_344">344</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Energy at the time of the Fire,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_359">359</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Pleads on behalf of Clarendon,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_368">368</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Becomes a Roman Catholic,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_452">452</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Interview with Bishops, ii.
- <a href="#Page_15">15</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Exclusion Bill,
- <a href="#Page_20">20</a>,
- <a href="#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="#Page_25">25</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill dropped,
- <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Becomes a Member of the Council,
- <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Present at Death of Charles,
- <a href="#Page_87">87</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Meets his Privy Councillors,
- <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Duplicity,
- <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Declares himself a Roman Catholic,
- <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Coronation,
- <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Annoyance with proceedings of House of Commons,
- <a href="#Page_94">94</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Violates the Constitution of his Country,
- <a href="#Page_105">105</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Treatment of the Persecuted Sects,
- <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Declaration of Indulgence,
- <a href="#Page_107">107</a>,
- <a href="#Page_119">119–125</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Policy,
- <a href="#Page_108">108–118</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Attempt to establish Popery,
- <a href="#Page_113">113–118</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Receives D’Adda as the Pope’s Ambassador,
- <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His anxiety for Promotion of Romanists,
- <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dissolves Parliament,
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Attack on the Universities,
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Visits Oxford,
- <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Second Declaration,
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Displeasure with the <i>Seven</i> Bishops,
- <a href="#Page_147">147</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Prosecutes them for a Misdemeanour,
- <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li>
-
- <li>Jeffreys, Judge, ii.
- <a href="#Page_72">72</a>,
- <a href="#Page_98">98</a>,
- <a href="#Page_111">111</a>,
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a>,
- <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li>
- <li class="i1">A Member of the Council,
- <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Proposes Release of Popish Recusants,
- <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Political Power,
- <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Behaviour at Baxter’s Trial,
- <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
-
- <li>Jenkins, Sir Leoline, ii.
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a>,
- <a href="#Page_43">43</a>,
- <a href="#Page_51">51</a>,
- <a href="#Page_59">59</a>,
- <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li>
-
- <li>Jenkyn, William, ii.
- <a href="#Page_84">84</a></li>
-
- <li>Jermyn, Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-
- <li>Jessy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_211">211</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li>
-
- <li>Jews, Bill for their Suppression, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
- <li>Jones, Colonel Philip, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_16">16</a></li>
-
- <li>Jordan, Elizabeth, ii.
- <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li>
-
- <li>Juxon, Dr., Bishop of London, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_174">174</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Translation to Canterbury,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Crowns and anoints Charles II.,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_160">160</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_167">167</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_307">307</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Keach, Benjamin, ii.
- <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Hymns,
- <a href="#Page_465">465</a>,
- <a href="#Page_467">467</a></li>
-
- <li>Keeling, Sergeant, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_202">202</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_203">203</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_349">349</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Ken, Thomas, Bishop of Bath and Wells, ii.
- <a href="#Page_87">87</a>,
- <a href="#Page_97">97</a>,
- <a href="#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="#Page_469">469</a></li>
- <li class="i1">One of the <i>Seven</i> Bishops,
- <a href="#Page_141">141</a>,
- <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li>
-
- <li>Kiffin, William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_211">211</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_212">212</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_127">127</a>,
- <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li>
-
- <li>Kildare, John, Earl of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
- <li>Killegrew, Sir William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_54">54</a></li>
-
- <li>King, Lancaster Herald, ii.
- <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-
- <li>King, Henry, Bishop of Chichester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_98">98</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_160">160</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li class="hangingindent">Lake, Bishop of Chichester, one of the <i>Seven</i> Bishops, ii.
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="#Page_147">147</a></li>
-
- <li>Lamb, Philip, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_274">274</a></li>
-
- <li>Lambert, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_33">33</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_44">44</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_87">87</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dissolves Remains of Long Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_39">39</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_40">40</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Outbreak,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Taken Prisoner,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_59">59</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Son, ii.
- <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
- <li>Laney, Dr. Benjamin, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_503">503</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Appointed Bishop of Peterborough,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Translated to Lincoln, then to Ely,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_488">488</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-
- <li>Latitudinarians, their Theology, ii.
- <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Cambridge,
- <a href="#Page_267">267</a>,
- <a href="#Page_341">341–344</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Expounders of their Tenets,
- <a href="#Page_344">344–354</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Term Latitudinarian applied to holders of very different Opinions,
- <a href="#Page_359">359–369</a></li>
-
- <li>Lauderdale, a Member of the Cabal, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_401">401</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_427">427</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_434">434</a></li>
-
- <li>Lawson, George, ii.
- <a href="#Page_410">410</a></li>
-
- <li>Lee, Sir Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a></li>
-
- <li>Leighton, Bishop of Dunblaine, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_227">227</a></li>
-
- <li>Leighton, Sir Ellis, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Lenthall, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_42">42</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
-
- <li>Lesley, Henry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_133">133</a></li>
-
- <li>L’Estrange, Hamon, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_181">181</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li>
-
- <li>L’Estrange, Sir Roger, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_269">269</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_45">45</a>,
- <a href="#Page_62">62</a>,
- <a href="#Page_84">84</a></li>
-
- <li>Letters intercepted, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_151">151</a></li>
-
- <li>Lewis, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
- <li>Ley, Earl of Marlborough, ii.
- <a href="#Page_490">490</a></li>
-
- <li>Lightfoot, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_288">288</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Biblical learning, ii.
- <a href="#Page_353">353</a></li>
-
- <li>Lisle, Lady Alicia, her Trial and Execution, ii.
- <a href="#Page_98">98</a></li>
-
- <li>Littleton, Sir Charles, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_145">145</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Lloyd, William, Bishop of St. Asaph, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_500">500</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
- <li class="i1">One of the <i>Seven</i> Bishops,
- <a href="#Page_141">141</a>,
- <a href="#Page_142">142</a>,
- <a href="#Page_146">146</a></li>
-
- <li>Lloyd, William, Bishop of Llandaff, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Translated to Peterborough, and then to Norwich,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_502">502</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_28">28</a>,
- <a href="#Page_204">204</a></li>
-
- <li>Lobb, Stephen, ii.
- <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li>
-
- <li>Locke, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_292">292</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_422">422</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Expelled from Oxford, ii.
- <a href="#Page_257">257</a></li>
-
- <li>Lords, House of, Charles’ Letter from Breda, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_61">61</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Conferences between the two Houses,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_62">62</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill for restoring Prelates,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_198">198</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_199">199</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Uniformity Bill,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_204">204</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Bill for repealing Statutes concerning Jesuits and Nonconformists,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_205">205</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Pretended Plots reported,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_210">210</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Appoint Committee for Revision of Prayer Book,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_219">219</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Uniformity Bill,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_229">229</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_232">232</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_235">235</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_241">241</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Less intolerant than the Commons,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_250">250</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Bills against Papists and Nonconformists not sanctioned by them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_304">304</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Disapprove of Exclusion Bill, ii.
- <a href="#Page_11">11</a></li>
-
- <li>Louis XIV., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_355">355</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_397">397</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_420">420</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_429">429</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_12">12</a>,
- <a href="#Page_76">76</a>,
- <a href="#Page_114">114</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Treaty with Charles II., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_451">451</a></li>
-
- <li>Love, Alderman, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_419">419</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_421">421</a></li>
-
- <li>Lucy, Bishop of St. David, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
- <li>Ludlow, Edmund, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_20">20</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Supports Republicanism,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Flies to Vevay,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_258">258</a></li>
-
- <li>Luzancy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_458">458</a></li>
-
- <li>Lye, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_278">278</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Manchester, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_380">380</a></li>
-
- <li>Mansel, Colonel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Manton, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_120">120</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_302">302</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_394">394</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_408">408</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_190">190</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Preaches in London after the Fire,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_362">362</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His account of Interview between the King and Presbyterians,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_390">390</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Imprisonment,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_397">397</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Commentaries, ii.
- <a href="#Page_447">447</a></li>
-
- <li>Markham, Major, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_367">367</a></li>
-
- <li>Marten, Henry, tried as a Regicide, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_129">129</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dies in Prison,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_130">130</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_232">232</a></li>
-
- <li>Martindale, Adam, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_119">119</a></li>
-
- <li>Marvell, Andrew, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_222">222</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Satires,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_446">446</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_449">449</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_464">464</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Mary of Modena, Queen of James II., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_452">452</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_90">90</a>,
- <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
- <li>Mason, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_462">462–464</a></li>
-
- <li>Massarene, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_317">317</a></li>
-
- <li>Massey, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
-
- <li>Maynard, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_152">152</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_153">153</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_203">203</a></li>
-
- <li>Mazarin, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-
- <li>Mead, William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_398">398</a></li>
-
- <li>Meades, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
- <li>Meal Tub Plot, ii.
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a>,
- <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li>
-
- <li>Meres, Sir Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_420">420</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_94">94</a></li>
-
- <li>Mew, Bishop of Winchester, ii.
- <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
- <li>Middleton, Sir Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_33">33</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_34">34</a></li>
-
- <li>Milles, Isaac, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_510">510</a></li>
-
- <li>Milton, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_285">285</a>,
- <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Lament for the Commonwealth, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_47">47</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Opinions; ii.
- <a href="#Page_362">362–365</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Translation of Psalms,
- <a href="#Page_458">458</a></li>
-
- <li>Milton, Sir Christopher, brother of the Poet, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Mompesson, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_341">341</a></li>
-
- <li id="Monk">Monk, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_77">77</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_141">141</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_245">245</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_475">475</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Military Power,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_44">44</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Believed to be a Republican,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_45">45</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Issues Writs for re-filling Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_46">46</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Addresses Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_48">48</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Declares his devotion to Charles,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_56">56</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Character,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_56">56</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Hastens the Restoration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_62">62</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Meets the King at Dover,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_75">75</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Invested with the Order of the Garter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_76">76</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Created Duke of Albemarle,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Burial in Westminster Abbey, ii.
- <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li>
-
- <li>Monk, Nicholas, Bishop of Hereford, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_487">487</a></li>
-
- <li>Monmouth, Duke of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_33">33</a>,
- <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His pretensions to the Crown,
- <a href="#Page_60">60</a>,
- <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Execution,
- <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Chancellor of Cambridge in 1674,
- <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li>
-
- <li>Moore, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_413">413–415</a></li>
-
- <li>More, Henry, his Mysticism, ii.
- <a href="#Page_385">385</a>,
- <a href="#Page_454">454</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Religious Life and Character,
- <a href="#Page_482">482–485</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Morley, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_52">52</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_169">169</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_245">245</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_435">435</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_437">437</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_502">502</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_15">15</a>,
- <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Appointed Bishop of Worcester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_163">163</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Preaches at Coronation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_160">160</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_167">167</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bishop of Winchester from 1662 to 1684,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_435">435</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_477">477</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Inconsistencies,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Old Age,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_478">478</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Vindication</i>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_36">36</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Expends Money in Charity,
- <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Learning,
- <a href="#Page_302">302</a></li>
-
- <li>Morrice, Secretary, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_122">122</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
- <li>Morton, Bishop of Durham, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_388">388</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_487">487</a></li>
-
- <li>Moulin, Lewis du, ii.
- <a href="#Page_44">44</a>,
- <a href="#Page_102">102</a></li>
-
- <li>Muggletonians, ii.
- <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
- <li>Mylles, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
- <li>Mystics, ii.
- <a href="#Page_262">262</a>,
- <a href="#Page_369">369–385</a>,
- <a href="#Page_482">482</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Neile, Dr. John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_197">197</a></li>
-
- <li>Nelson, Robert, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Nelson, Lady Theophila, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Neville, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
- <li>Newcastle, Duke of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
- <li>Newcome, Henry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_65">65</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_353">353</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_242">242</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Newcomen, Commissioner at the Savoy, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_165">165</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
- <li>Newton, George, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_274">274</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_494">494</a></li>
-
- <li>Newton, Isaac, ii.
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
- <li>Nicholas, Sir Edward, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_123">123</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_124">124</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_293">293</a></li>
-
- <li>Nicholas, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_157">157</a></li>
-
- <li>Nicholson, William, Bishop of Gloucester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_492">492</a></li>
-
- <li>Nonconformists, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_57">57</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_144">144</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_149">149</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_207">207</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_292">292</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_384">384</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Sufferings,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_135">135–138</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Accused of being Disaffected,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_210">210</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Act of Uniformity,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_255">255</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Effects of the Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_261">261</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Farewell Sermons,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_271">271–275</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_279">279</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Ejectment,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_282">282</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_286">286</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bills against them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_304">304</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Assemblies treated as Revolutionary,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_308">308</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Nonconformists in the Colonies,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_311">311</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Informers against them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_313">313</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Places of Worship,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_314">314–316</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Ejected Ministers,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_316">316–320</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_336">336</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_362">362</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their Sufferings from Conventicle Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_322">322–327</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_388">388</a></li>
- <li class="i1">From Five Mile Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_345">345–354</a></li>
- <li class="i1">New Conventicle Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_395">395–398</a></li>
- <li class="i1">A change in feeling towards them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_400">400</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Declaration of Indulgence affected them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_404">404</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Receive Pecuniary Assistance from the Crown,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_411">411</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Measures for their Relief,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_421">421–424</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">How affected by Test Act and Cancelling of Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_429">429</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their changeful Fortunes,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_442">442</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their dislike of Romanism,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_454">454</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Conformist’s Plea for them, ii.
- <a href="#Page_37">37</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Duke of Buckingham’s Overtures to them,
- <a href="#Page_40">40</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Renewed Persecution of them,
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a>,
- <a href="#Page_50">50–59</a>,
- <a href="#Page_71">71–75</a>,
- <a href="#Page_100">100–103</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Disposition of Government towards them,
- <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their manner of receiving James’ Declaration,
- <a href="#Page_122">122–128</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Places of Worship,
- <a href="#Page_205">205</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Relative number of Conformists and Nonconformists,
- <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Contrasts in Preaching,
- <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Family Life,
- <a href="#Page_217">217–226</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Family Persecution,
- <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Accused of Schism,
- <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Observance of the Sabbath,
- <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Recreations,
- <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-
- <li>Nonconformity, its growth, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_375">375–377</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_159">159–179</a></li>
-
- <li>Norfolk, Duke of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li>
-
- <li>North, Dr. John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_230">230</a>,
- <a href="#Page_251">251</a></li>
-
- <li>North, Roger, ii.
- <a href="#Page_181">181</a>,
- <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-
- <li id="Guilford">North, Sir Francis, Baron Guilford, ii.
- <a href="#Page_46">46</a>,
- <a href="#Page_81">81–84</a></li>
-
- <li>Northumberland, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_229">229</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_294">294</a></li>
-
- <li>Nowell, Charles, ii.
- <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-
- <li>Nye, Philip, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_45">45</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_91">91</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_194">194</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_297">297</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Oates, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_312">312</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Oates, Titus, his Extravagant Stories, ii.
- <a href="#Page_6">6</a>,
- <a href="#Page_7">7</a>,
- <a href="#Page_49">49</a>,
- <a href="#Page_95">95</a>,
- <a href="#Page_143">143</a></li>
-
- <li>Okey, Colonel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_60">60</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_256">256</a></li>
-
- <li>Oldham, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_459">459</a></li>
-
- <li>Ormond, Duke of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_84">84</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_284">284</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_93">93</a>,
- <a href="#Page_255">255</a></li>
-
- <li>Ormond, Lady, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_141">141</a></li>
-
- <li>Orrery, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_438">438</a></li>
-
- <li id="Osborne">Osborne, Thomas, Earl of Danby, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_348">348</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Minister of Charles II., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_434">434</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_2">2</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Policy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_435">435</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_436">436</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_463">463</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Fall, ii.
- <a href="#Page_2">2</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Impeachment,
- <a href="#Page_13">13</a>,
- <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li>
-
- <li>Osmund, Bishop of Salisbury, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_214">214</a></li>
-
- <li>Outram, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a></li>
-
- <li>Overall, Bishop, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_219">219</a></li>
-
- <li>Overton, Major-General, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Owen, Dr. John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_29">29</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_45">45</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_194">194</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_411">411</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_433">433</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_26">26</a>,
- <a href="#Page_65">65</a>,
- <a href="#Page_212">212</a>,
- <a href="#Page_222">222</a>,
- <a href="#Page_365">365</a>,
- <a href="#Page_367">367</a>,
- <a href="#Page_419">419</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Opinion on the Power of Magistrates and Maintenance of Ministers, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_30">30</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_31">31</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His removal from Deanery of Christ Church,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_50">50</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Means of Support after his Ejection,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_316">316</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Refusal to take Oath of Non-Resistance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_351">351</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His loyal Address,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_408">408</a>;</li>
- <li class="hangingindent2">His Answer to Parker’s Attack on Nonconformists,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_446">446</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Illness, ii.
- <a href="#Page_69">69</a>,
- <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Views on Baptism,
- <a href="#Page_170">170</a>,
- <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li>
- <li class="i1">On the Observance of the Sabbath,
- <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Writings on the Evidences of Revealed Religion,
- <a href="#Page_390">390</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Works compared with Thomas Goodwin’s,
- <a href="#Page_401">401</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Treatise on the <i>Doctrine of Justification</i>,
- <a href="#Page_401">401</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Views on Election and Particular Redemption,
- <a href="#Page_403">403–405</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Defence of Nonconformity,
- <a href="#Page_440">440</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Commentaries,
- <a href="#Page_447">447</a></li>
-
- <li>Oxford, <i>see</i> <a href="#Universities">Universities</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Packington, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_212">212</a></li>
-
- <li>Packington, Lady, ii.
- <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li>
-
- <li>Palmer, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_309">309</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Parker, Samuel, his Attack on Nonconformists, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_444">444–447</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Appointed to the Bishopric of Oxford, ii.
- <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Nominated President of Magdalen,
- <a href="#Page_134">134–138</a></li>
-
- <li>Parliament, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_38">38</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_303">303</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_361">361</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Opening of Richard Cromwell’s Parliament, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_18">18</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Debates,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_19">19–24</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Dissolution,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_24">24</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Members of Long summoned to resume their places,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_24">24</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Dissolution by Lambert,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_39">39</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Again restored,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_42">42</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Convention Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_57">57</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Letter to the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_63">63</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Ecclesiastical proceedings,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_88">88–95</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Acts of Indemnity and Oblivion,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Elections for a New Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_147">147–152</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Assembles,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_154">154</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Order League and Covenant to be burnt,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_196">196</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill against Quakers,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_197">197</a></li>
- <li class="i1">For restoring Prelates,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_197">197</a></li>
- <li class="i1">For governing Corporations,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_199">199</a></li>
- <li class="i1">For Restoration of Ecclesiastical Courts,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_200">200</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Parliament Reassembles,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_209">209</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Reports respecting Plots,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_212">212</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Conventicle Acts,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_322">322–327</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_396">396</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Oxford during the Plague,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_343">343</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Five Mile Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_345">345–354</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Debate on Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Relief Bill,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_421">421-424</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Test Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_425">425</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Cancel Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_429">429</a></li>
- <li class="i1">New Test,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_436">436</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Comprehension,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_438">438–440</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Debate on a Dissolution,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_461">461</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Four Lords sent to the Tower,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bills against Popery,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_463">463</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Act for Better Observance of Lord’s Day,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_465">465</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">For Repeal of the law <i>De Hæretico Comburendo</i>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_467">467</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Exclusion Bill, ii.
- <a href="#Page_10">10</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Parliament Dissolved,
- <a href="#Page_13">13</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Third Parliament Meets and Dissolves,
- <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Fourth Parliament,
- <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Dangerfield’s Plot,
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Exclusion Bill,
- <a href="#Page_23">23–25</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill for Comprehension,
- <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill for Toleration laid aside by a trick,
- <a href="#Page_30">30</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Fifth Parliament,
- <a href="#Page_31">31</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Exclusion Bill,
- <a href="#Page_32">32</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Assembling of James II.’s Parliament,
- <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Dissolution,
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Parliamentary Returns,
- <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
- <li>Pascal, Blaise, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_277">277</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_455">455</a></li>
-
- <li>Patrick, Dr. John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Patrick, Simon, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_338">338</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-
- <li>Paul, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li>
-
- <li>Paul, William, Bishop of Oxford, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_490">490</a></li>
-
- <li>Paul’s, St., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_357">357</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-
- <li>Payne, ii.
- <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li>
-
- <li>Peachell, Dr. John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
-
- <li>Pearce, Dr. Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_174">174</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Pearson, John, Bishop of Chester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_175">175</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_485">485</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_503">503</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_289">289</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at Savoy Conference, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_163">163</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Teaching, ii.
- <a href="#Page_308">308</a>,
- <a href="#Page_311">311</a></li>
-
- <li>Peirce, Sir Edmond, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_204">204</a></li>
-
- <li>Pell, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_221">221</a></li>
-
- <li>Pembroke, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_230">230</a></li>
-
- <li>Penn, William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_129">129</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_398">398</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_101">101</a>,
- <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Charges against him,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Incidents in his Early Life,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_369">369</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Exposition of the Doctrine of Inward Light,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_371">371-374</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Travels with Fox,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_375">375</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Colony in America,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_375">375</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Intimacy with Barclay,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_377">377</a></li>
-
- <li>Pennington, Isaac, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_129">129</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Pepys, Samuel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_47">47</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_258">258</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_271">271</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_340">340</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_380">380–386</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Perinchief, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_378">378</a></li>
-
- <li>Peterborough, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Peters, Hugh, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_45">45</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Execution,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_128">128</a></li>
-
- <li>Petre, Father, ii.
- <a href="#Page_104">104</a>,
- <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
- <li>Pett, Sir Peter, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_292">292</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_484">484</a></li>
-
- <li>Petties, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_432">432</a></li>
-
- <li>Piers, or Pearce, Bishop of Bath and Wells, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
- <li>Pierrepoint, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
- <li>Plague, The, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_333">333</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_343">343</a></li>
-
- <li>Plots, Rumours of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_292">292–295</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_312">312</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Popish, ii.
- <a href="#Page_1">1-10</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Meal Tub,
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Rye House,
- <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
- <li>Pocock, ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-
- <li>Pokanoket, Indian Chief, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_260">260</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Pool (or Poole), Matthew, his <i>Synopsis</i>, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_410">410</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_354">354</a>,
- <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
-
- <li>Pory, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_177">177</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Powell, one of the Judges at the Bishops’ Trial, ii.
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a>,
- <a href="#Page_155">155</a></li>
-
- <li>Powis, Lady, ii.
- <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li>
-
- <li>Powys, ii.
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-
- <li>Prayer Book, Reintroduced, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_91">91</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commission for Revising it,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Exceptions taken to the Liturgy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170–173</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bishops’ Answers to Exceptions,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_179">179</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Baxter’s Additions,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_180">180–182</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Discussions on Liturgy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_184">184</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Search for Edward’s Prayer Book,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_201">201</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Revision,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_213">213</a></li>
- <li class="i1">History of the Book,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_214">214–219</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Alterations made,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_220">220–222</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Adopted and Subscribed,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_223">223</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Revised Copy sanctioned by the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_229">229</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Attached to Act of Uniformity,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_244">244</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Revised Edition published,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_260">260</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Episcopalians’ Attachment to it, ii.
- <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li>
-
- <li>Presbyterianism, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_88">88</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Revival,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_20">20</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Re-established as the National Religion,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_49">49</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Innovations in the Old System, ii.
- <a href="#Page_159">159–163</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Differences between Independency and Presbyterianism,
- <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Resemblances,
- <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li>
-
- <li>Presbyterians, during the Protectorate, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_8">8</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_10">10</a></li>
- <li class="i1">In Richard Cromwell’s Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_17">17</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Loyalty to the Stuarts,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_33">33</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Rising put down by Republicans,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_33">33</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Contend for Solemn League,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_41">41</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Power again in their hands,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_48">48</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Principal Instruments in Charles’ Restoration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_51">51</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Influence over Monk,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_51">51</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Union between them and Episcopalians thought to be possible,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_53">53</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their wish to control the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_55">55</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their Efforts in Elections for a New Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_57">57</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Deputation visit Charles at the Hague,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Intolerance,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_69">69</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Are kept in Suspense,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_83">83</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Clergy Displaced,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_89">89</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Chaplains appointed at Court,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Meetings at Sion College,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_102">102–107</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their anxiety for Union,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_102">102</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Proposals,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_103">103</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Defend their Proposals,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_106">106</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Receives a Draft of Royal Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_107">107</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Difference between the two parties,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_107">107–112</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Divines at Worcester House,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Present an Address to the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_120">120</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Change in their Affairs,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_125">125</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Numerous in Convention Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_147">147</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Not well represented in New Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_152">152</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioners at Savoy Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Exceptions to Liturgy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_172">172–173</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Rejoinder to Bishops’ Answers,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_183">183</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Debate with Bishops,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_184">184–187</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Interview with Clarendon,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_190">190</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Attachment to the Covenant,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_237">237</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their Conduct with regard to the Act of Uniformity,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_263">263</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Petition for Redress,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_283">283</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Some Conform,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_288">288</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Some remain in the Establishment without Conforming,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_290">290</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Disapprove of Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_298">298</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Scheme of Comprehension as Modified by them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_383">383</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Interview with the King,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_390">390</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Differ in their Opinion of the Declaration,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_406">406</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Desire for <i>Accommodation</i>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Persecuted, ii.
- <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Become more Tolerant,
- <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Thorndike accuses them of Schism,
- <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-
- <li>Pride, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
- <li>Prideaux, Bishop of Worcester, ii.
- <a href="#Page_288">288</a></li>
-
- <li>Prynne, William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_43">43</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_89">89</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_121">121</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_153">153</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_455">455</a></li>
-
- <li>Psalms, New Versions, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457–459</a></li>
-
- <li>Pudsey, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Puritanism, Failure of Puritanism as a Political Institution, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_1">1-6</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Ecclesiastical Aspect,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_7">7–11</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Its Spiritual Aspect,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_11">11-13</a></li>
-
- <li>Puritans, ii.
- <a href="#Page_262">262–265</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Works on Evidences,
- <a href="#Page_386">386–394</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Points of Resemblance between them and the Anglican Divines,
- <a href="#Page_394">394</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Points of Difference,
- <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Divided into Three Classes:</li>
- <li class="i2">Calvinistic,
- <a href="#Page_397">397</a>;</li>
- <li class="i2">Arminian,
- <a href="#Page_406">406–413</a>;</li>
- <li class="i2">Intermediate,
- <a href="#Page_414">414</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Opinions on the Nature of Sacraments,
- <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li>
- <li class="i1">On the Ministry and Ordination,
- <a href="#Page_434">434</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Controversies,
- <a href="#Page_435">435</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Practical Theology,
- <a href="#Page_442">442–446</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Expositors,
- <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Examples of their Piety,
- <a href="#Page_494">494–505</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Quakers, opposed to Union of Church and State, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_9">9</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill for their Suppression,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_19">19</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Sufferings,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_137">137</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_138">138</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_75">75</a>,
- <a href="#Page_101">101</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Forbidden to meet in large numbers, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_143">143</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bill against them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_197">197</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Released from Gaol,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_275">275</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Persecuted,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_296">296</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Suffer under Conventicle Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_398">398</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Released from Prison,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_413">413</a></li>
- <li class="i1">James II.’s Treatment of them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_107">107</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Differ from other Nonconformists in Doctrinal Opinions,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_177">177</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Form of Church Government,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_177">177</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_178">178</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Method of Marriage,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_179">179</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Doctrines,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_264">264</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_266">266</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Penn an Expounder of their Principles,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_369">369</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Exposition of the Doctrine of the Inward Light,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_371">371</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_374">374</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Barclay,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_377">377</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Teaching,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_378">378–380</a></li>
- <li class="i1">John Burnyeat,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_492">492</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_494">494</a></li>
-
- <li>Quarles, Francis, his Emblems, ii.
- <a href="#Page_455">455</a></li>
-
- <li>Querouaille, Duchess of Portsmouth, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_451">451</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Racovian Catechism, ii.
- <a href="#Page_365">365</a>,
- <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li>
-
- <li>Radnor, Lord, ii.
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a></li>
-
- <li>Rainbow, Dr. Edward, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_493">493</a></li>
-
- <li>Rawlinson, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Reeve, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_208">208</a></li>
-
- <li>Republicans, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_21">21</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_22">22</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_33">33</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_34">34</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_40">40</a></li>
-
- <li>Reresby, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_458">458</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Reynolds, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_50">50</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_191">191</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_220">220</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_245">245</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_290">290</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Appointed Chaplain at Court, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Worcester House,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Accepts a Bishopric,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_119">119</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Member of Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_164">164</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_183">183</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Peculiar Position,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_179">179</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Character,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_485">485</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Writings, ii.
- <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li>
-
- <li>Richardson, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_312">312</a></li>
-
- <li>Richmond, Duke of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
- <li>Roberts, Bishop of Bangor, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
- <li>Robinson, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li>Rochester, Earl of, <i>see</i> <a href="#Laurence_Hyde">Laurence Hyde</a></li>
-
- <li>Rochester, Earl of, <i>see</i> <a href="#Wilmot">Wilmot</a></li>
-
- <li>Rogers, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Roman Catholics, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_19">19</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_78">78</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_404">404</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_460">460</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_113">113</a>,
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Concurrence in Act of Uniformity, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_251">251</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Prospects brighten,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_298">298</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bills against them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_304">304</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_361">361</a></li>
- <li class="i1">How affected by Test Act,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_425">425</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_429">429</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Hopes in the Royal Family,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_450">450</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Zeal in making Converts,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_453">453</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Proclamations concerning them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_456">456</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Popish Books Seized,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_459">459</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Bills against Popery,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_303">303</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_463">463–465</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Titus Oates’ Popish Plot, ii.
- <a href="#Page_1">1-9</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Suspected Persons Apprehended,
- <a href="#Page_6">6</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Exclusion Bill,
- <a href="#Page_10">10</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Court,
- <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Numbers increase,
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Their Satisfaction with James II.’s Declaration,
- <a href="#Page_119">119</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Promotion,
- <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Numbers,
- <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
-
- <li>Rosewell, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_72">72</a>,
- <a href="#Page_123">123</a></li>
-
- <li>Roughed, Josias, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_409">409</a></li>
-
- <li>Rous, Lady, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_318">318</a></li>
-
- <li>Rous, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Royalists, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_43">43</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_66">66</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_151">151</a></li>
-
- <li>Rupert, Prince, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_142">142</a></li>
-
- <li>Rushworth, ii.
- <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li>
-
- <li>Russel, Lord William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_418">418</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_20">20</a>,
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a>,
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Joins in an Attempt to resist the Despotism of Government,
- <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Trial and Execution,
- <a href="#Page_65">65–67</a></li>
-
- <li>Rustat, Tobias, ii.
- <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
- <li>Rutherford, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_293">293</a></li>
-
- <li>Rye House Plot, ii.
- <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
- <li>Rymer, Ralph, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_313">313</a></li>
-
- <li>Ryves, Dr. Bruno, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_91">91</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Sabran, ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Salisbury, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Salkeld, ii.
- <a href="#Page_206">206</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Saltmarsh, John, his <i>Sparkles of Glory</i>, ii.
- <a href="#Page_380">380–383</a></li>
-
- <li>Samwayes, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_213">213</a></li>
-
- <li>Sancroft, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_93">93</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_132">132</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_221">221</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_225">225</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_90">90</a>,
- <a href="#Page_192">192</a>,
- <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Assists Pell to Revise the Calendar, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_221">221</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Created Archbishop of Canterbury, ii.
- <a href="#Page_14">14</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Interview with the Duke of York,
- <a href="#Page_15">15</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Opposition to Popery,
- <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">Sanctions the Publication of King’s Declaration,
- <a href="#Page_35">35</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Inconsistency with regard to Declaration,
- <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">One of the Seven Bishops who signed the Petition,
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="#Page_146">146</a>,
- <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Trial,
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Acquittal,
- <a href="#Page_155">155</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Interest in Rebuilding of St. Paul’s,
- <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Sanderson, Bishop of Lincoln, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="#Page_406">406</a>,
- <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Manner of Preaching, ii.
- <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Approval of Sabbath Pastimes,
- <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Doctrinal Opinions,
- <a href="#Page_305">305</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Intimacy with Hammond,
- <a href="#Page_306">306</a></li>
- <li class="i1">And with Isaak Walton,
- <a href="#Page_469">469</a></li>
-
- <li>Saville, Sir George, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_366">366</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Savoy Conference, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_163">163–167</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170–173</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_179">179–188</a></li>
-
- <li>Savoy Palace, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_162">162</a></li>
-
- <li>Sawyer, ii.
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-
- <li>Scargill, Daniel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_368">368</a></li>
-
- <li>Scattergood, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
- <li>Sclater, Edward, ii.
- <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Scotch, their Anxiety for an Exclusive Presbyterian Establishment, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Religious Rising,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Cruelty to them,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_364">364</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Their Rebellion, ii.
- <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li>
-
- <li>Scott, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_20">20</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
-
- <li>Severne, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_284">284</a></li>
-
- <li>Shaftesbury, Earl of, <i>see</i> <a href="#Cooper">Sir A. A. Cooper</a></li>
-
- <li>Shakerley, Sir Geoffry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_367">367</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Sharp, Dr., Agent in London of Scotch Presbyterians, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_63">63</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_68">68–69</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_94">94</a></li>
-
- <li>Sharp, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_110">110</a>,
- <a href="#Page_112">112</a></li>
-
- <li>Shaw, Sir John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_502">502</a></li>
-
- <li>Shaw, Samuel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_342">342</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Sheldon, Dr. Gilbert, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_99">99</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_122">122</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_221">221</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_285">285</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_296">296</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_330">330</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_331">331</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_334">334</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_348">348</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_397">397</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_415">415</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_502">502</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_145">145</a>,
- <a href="#Page_188">188</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Appointment to the Bishopric of London, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Master of the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_157">157</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Officiates at Coronation of Charles II.,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_160">160</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_163">163</a></li>
- <li class="i1">President of Convocation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_174">174</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Appointment to Archbishopric of Canterbury,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_308">308</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Exertions during the Plague,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_337">337</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Inquiries respecting Conventicles,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_392">392</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Circular on Education,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_402">402</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death and Character,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_470">470–473</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Expenditure of Large Sums in Charity, ii.
- <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li>
-
- <li>Sherlock, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_110">110</a>,
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a>,
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
- <li>Shorter, Sir John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-
- <li>Sibthorpe, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a></li>
-
- <li>Sidney, Algernon, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_344">344</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Trial and Execution, ii.
- <a href="#Page_64">64</a>,
- <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li>
-
- <li>Sidney, Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li>
-
- <li>Skinker, Mary, ii.
- <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li>
-
- <li>Skinner, Bishop of Oxford, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_37">37</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Translated to Worcester,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_491">491</a></li>
-
- <li>Slader, ii.
- <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
- <li>Slatius, Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_412">412</a></li>
-
- <li>Smalridge, ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Smith, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-
- <li>Smith, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_421">421</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Teaching,
- <a href="#Page_336">336–338</a></li>
-
- <li>Smith, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_93">93</a></li>
-
- <li>Smyth, Miles, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Soame, Bartholomew, ii.
- <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-
- <li>Solemn League and Covenant, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_50">50</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_89">89</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_235">235–237</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Publicly Burnt,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_196">196</a></li>
-
- <li>Somerset, Duke of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li>
-
- <li>South, ii.
- <a href="#Page_257">257</a>,
- <a href="#Page_329">329</a></li>
-
- <li>Southampton, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_124">124</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_300">300</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_347">347</a></li>
-
- <li>Sparrow, Dr., Commissioner at the Savoy i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Spencer, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li>
-
- <li>Spragg, Sir Edward, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_416">416</a></li>
-
- <li>Sprat, Bishop of Rochester, ii.
- <a href="#Page_111">111</a>,
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
- <li>Spring, Sir William, ii.
- <a href="#Page_206">206</a></li>
-
- <li>Sprint, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_478">478</a></li>
-
- <li>Spurstow, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Stayley, ii.
- <a href="#Page_6">6</a></li>
-
- <li>Stanley, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_342">342</a></li>
-
- <li>Stanley, Lady, ii.
- <a href="#Page_219">219</a></li>
-
- <li>Stanley, Sir Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_219">219</a></li>
-
- <li>Steel, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_261">261</a></li>
-
- <li>Sterne, Richard, Bishop of Carlisle, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Savoy Conference,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_493">493</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Described by Baxter,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_189">189</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Translated to Archbishopric of York,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_493">493</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_497">497</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Imprisonment,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_495">495</a></li>
-
- <li>Sterry, Peter, ii.
- <a href="#Page_382">382</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Stillingfleet, Edward, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_117">117</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_385">385</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_410">410</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_2">2</a>,
- <a href="#Page_114">114</a>,
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="#Page_370">370</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Disapproval of Act of Uniformity, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_292">292</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His Sermon on “The Mischief of Separation,” ii.
- <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Entertains Howe, Bates, and Tillotson,
- <a href="#Page_29">29</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Opinions,
- <a href="#Page_352">352</a></li>
-
- <li>Stockton, Owen, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_340">340</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_500">500–504</a></li>
-
- <li>Strode, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li>
-
- <li>Stubbe, Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_355">355</a></li>
-
- <li>Suffolk, Earl of, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_167">167</a></li>
-
- <li>Sunderland, ii.
- <a href="#Page_19">19</a>,
- <a href="#Page_93">93</a>,
- <a href="#Page_104">104</a>,
- <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li>
-
- <li>Sutcliffe, Dr., ii.
- <a href="#Page_245">245</a></li>
-
- <li>Sylvester, his Funeral Sermon for Baxter, ii.
- <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Taswell, William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_358">358</a></li>
-
- <li>Tattersall, Nicholas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_412">412</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Taylor, Jeremy, ii.
- <a href="#Page_235">235</a>,
- <a href="#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="#Page_318">318</a>,
- <a href="#Page_386">386</a>,
- <a href="#Page_416">416</a>,
- <a href="#Page_429">429</a>,
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Nominated to Diocese of Down and Connor, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_133">133</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Preaches Funeral Sermon for Bramhall,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_307">307</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theology; ii.
- <a href="#Page_289">289–297</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Advocates an Episcopal Church,
- <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li>
- <li class="i1">A brilliant Sermon Writer,
- <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Writings,
- <a href="#Page_445">445</a>,
- <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Hymns,
- <a href="#Page_460">460</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Temple, Sir William, appointed Secretary of State, ii.
- <a href="#Page_19">19</a>,
- <a href="#Page_41">41</a></li>
-
- <li>Tenison, Archbishop of Canterbury, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_243">243</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
- <li class="i1">When Vicar of St. Marten’s, ii.
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Founds the Tenison Library, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_508">508</a></li>
-
- <li>Terrill, ii.
- <a href="#Page_177">177</a></li>
-
- <li>Thompson, Alderman, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Thorndike, Herbert, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_112">112</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_235">235</a>,
- <a href="#Page_316">316</a>,
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a>,
- <a href="#Page_395">395</a>,
- <a href="#Page_424">424</a>,
- <a href="#Page_431">431</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>Epilogue</i>, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_34">34–36</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_269">269</a></li>
- <li class="i1">At Savoy Conference, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Member of Convocation,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_222">222</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_227">227</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_248">248</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His <i>True Principle of Comprehension</i>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_385">385</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological Learning, ii.
- <a href="#Page_268">268</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Principles of Christian Truth,
- <a href="#Page_270">270</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Scheme of Salvation by Grace,
- <a href="#Page_272">272–277</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Laws of the Church,
- <a href="#Page_277">277–279</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His teaching compared with Bull’s,
- <a href="#Page_287">287</a></li>
- <li class="i1">With Taylor’s,
- <a href="#Page_294">294</a></li>
- <li class="i1">With Pearson’s,
- <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Barrow’s,
- <a href="#Page_314">314</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His opinion of Nonconformists,
- <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-
- <li>Thurloe, Secretary, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_55">55</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Tillotson, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_184">184</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_29">29</a>,
- <a href="#Page_47">47</a>,
- <a href="#Page_79">79</a>,
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a>,
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="#Page_246">246</a>,
- <a href="#Page_316">316</a>,
- <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Letter to Baxter, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_440">440</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Inconsistency, ii.
- <a href="#Page_27">27</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Reproved by Howe,
- <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Attends Russell on the Scaffold,
- <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li>
-
- <li>Tilsey, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_291">291</a></li>
-
- <li>Tindal, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Tombes, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_317">317</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="#Page_285">285</a></li>
-
- <li>Tomkyns, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_378">378</a></li>
-
- <li>Tompson, Sir John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
- <li>Tompson, Lady, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
- <li>Tongue, ii.
- <a href="#Page_9">9</a></li>
-
- <li>Tory, Origin of Term, ii.
- <a href="#Page_32">32</a></li>
-
- <li>Trelawny, Bishop of Bristol, ii.
- <a href="#Page_141">141</a>,
- <a href="#Page_147">147</a>,
- <a href="#Page_189">189</a></li>
-
- <li>Truman, Joseph, ii.
- <a href="#Page_283">283</a></li>
-
- <li>Tuckney, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_489">489</a></li>
-
- <li>Tully, Dr. Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_196">196</a>,
- <a href="#Page_283">283</a>,
- <a href="#Page_284">284</a></li>
-
- <li>Turbeville, ii.
- <a href="#Page_49">49</a></li>
-
- <li>Turner, Bishop of Ely, ii.
- <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li>
-
- <li>Turner, Sir Edward, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-
- <li>Turner, Sir James, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_363">363</a></li>
-
- <li>Tyrconnel, Earl of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Uniformity (<i>see</i> <a href="#Uniformity">Act</a>)</li>
-
- <li id="Universities">Universities, their Petitions to Parliament, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_92">92</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Changes at Oxford and Cambridge,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_93">93</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Puritan Power at Cambridge,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_93">93</a></li>
- <li class="i1">James II.’s Attack on their Liberties, ii.
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Proceedings at Cambridge,
- <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Proceedings at Oxford,
- <a href="#Page_133">133–139</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Studies and Habits of Members,
- <a href="#Page_250">250–258</a></li>
-
- <li>Ussher, Dr. James, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_100">100</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_278">278</a>,
- <a href="#Page_406">406</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Biblical Learning,
- <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li class="hangingindent">Vane, Sir Henry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_20">20</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_21">21</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_49">49</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_140">140</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_202">202</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Member of Richard’s Parliament,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_17">17</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Member of New Council of State,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_25">25</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Trial,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_257">257</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Mysticism,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_256">256</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_385">385</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Execution, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_258">258</a></li>
-
- <li>Vane, Lady, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_366">366</a></li>
-
- <li>Venner, his Insurrection, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_140">140–144</a></li>
-
- <li>Vernon, Alderman, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_64">64</a></li>
-
- <li>Vic, Sir Henry de, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_124">124</a></li>
-
- <li>Vincent, Nathaniel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_54">54–56</a></li>
-
- <li>Vincent, Thomas, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_338">338</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_339">339</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li>
-
- <li>Vincent, William, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-
- <li>Vines, Richard, ii.
- <a href="#Page_503">503</a></li>
-
- <li>Visitation, Articles of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_183">183–185</a>,
- <a href="#Page_189">189</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Wade, Thomas, ii.
- <a href="#Page_502">502</a></li>
-
- <li>Wake, ii.
- <a href="#Page_117">117</a></li>
-
- <li>Wakerley, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_313">313</a></li>
-
- <li>Wales, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_19">19</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_137">137</a></li>
-
- <li>Walker, Obadiah, ii.
- <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li>
-
- <li>Waller, Edmund, ii.
- <a href="#Page_454">454</a></li>
-
- <li>Wallis, Dr. John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_115">115</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_288">288</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_198">198</a></li>
-
- <li>Walters, Lucy, ii.
- <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li>
-
- <li>Walters, ii.
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
- <li>Walton, Bryan, Bishop of Chester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Death,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_306">306</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Polyglott, ii.
- <a href="#Page_332">332</a>,
- <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li>
-
- <li>Walton, Isaak, ii.
- <a href="#Page_468">468–471</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Ward, Seth, Bishop of Exeter, afterwards Bishop of Salisbury, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_264">264</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_348">348</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_385">385</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_395">395</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_478">478</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_483">483</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_502">502</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_192">192</a>,
- <a href="#Page_356">356</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Intolerance, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_397">397</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_435">435–437</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Account of him,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_474">474–476</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Improves Exeter Cathedral, ii.
- <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Hospitality,
- <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-
- <li>Warmestry, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_157">157</a></li>
-
- <li>Warner, Bishop of Rochester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_98">98</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_490">490</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Commissioner at the Savoy,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_160">160</a></li>
-
- <li>Warwick, Countess of, ii.
- <a href="#Page_488">488</a>,
- <a href="#Page_489">489</a></li>
-
- <li>Watson, Richard, ii.
- <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li>
-
- <li>Whalley, Edward, Major-General, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_259">259</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_260">260</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Wharton, Philip, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_313">313</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_347">347</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Supports the Duke of Buckingham, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_461">461</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Committed to the Tower,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Released,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_462">462</a></li>
- <li class="hangingindent1">His House a resort of Nonconformist Divines, ii.
- <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li>
-
- <li>Whig, Origin of Term, ii.
- <a href="#Page_32">32</a></li>
-
- <li>Whinnel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-
- <li>White, Jeremy, ii.
- <a href="#Page_101">101</a>,
- <a href="#Page_384">384</a></li>
-
- <li>White, Bishop of Peterborough, ii.
- <a href="#Page_141">141</a></li>
-
- <li>White, John, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Whitehead, George, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_414">414</a></li>
-
- <li>Whitelocke, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_45">45</a></li>
-
- <li>Whitford, John, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_91">91</a></li>
-
- <li><i>Whole Duty of Man</i>, ii.
- <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li>
-
- <li>Wilde, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_120">120</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Wilkins, Dr. John, Bishop of Chester, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_264">264</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_380">380</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_385">385</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_396">396</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_503">503</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_248">248</a>,
- <a href="#Page_356">356</a></li>
- <li class="i1">Account of him, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_483">483–485</a></li>
- <li class="i1">His Theological teaching, ii.
- <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li>
-
- <li>Wilkinson, Lady Vere, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_430">430</a></li>
-
- <li>Williams, Dr. Edward, ii.
- <a href="#Page_417">417</a>,
- <a href="#Page_419">419</a></li>
-
- <li>Williams, Solicitor-General, ii.
- <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Williamson, Joseph, Esq. (afterwards knighted), i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_365">365</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_367">367</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_410">410</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_432">432</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_442">442</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_456">456</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_182">182</a>,
- <a href="#Page_193">193</a>,
- <a href="#Page_253">253</a>,
- <a href="#Page_255">255</a></li>
-
- <li id="Wilmot">Wilmot, John, Earl of Rochester; ii.
- <a href="#Page_490">490</a></li>
-
- <li>Windsor, Lord, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_145">145</a></li>
-
- <li>Wiquefort, De, Dutch Minister, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_231">231</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_232">232</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_267">267</a></li>
-
- <li>Witchcot, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_439">439</a></li>
-
- <li>Wither, George, ii.
- <a href="#Page_459">459</a></li>
-
- <li>Wood, Captain Henry, ii.
- <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li>
-
- <li class="hangingindent">Wood, Thomas, Bishop of Lichfield and Coventry, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_500">500</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li>
-
- <li>Woodbridge, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_156">156</a></li>
-
- <li>Woodford, Dr. Samuel, ii.
- <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li>
-
- <li>Woodhead, Abraham, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_453">453</a>; ii.
- <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li>
-
- <li>Woodward, William, ii.
- <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li>
-
- <li>Worcester House, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
-
- <li>Worth, Dr., i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_103">103</a></li>
-
- <li>Wren, Bishop of Ely, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_37">37</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_97">97</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_488">488</a>,
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_502">502</a></li>
-
- <li>Wren, Sir Christopher, ii.
- <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li>
-
- <li>Wright, Chief Justice, ii.
- <a href="#Page_153">153–155</a></li>
-
- <li>Wyche, Sir Cyril, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_243">243</a></li>
-
- <li>Wycherley, ii.
- <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li>
-
- <li>Wylde, Recorder, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<ul>
- <li>Yarrington, Captain, i.
- <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/65334/65334-h/65334-h.htm#Page_212">212</a></li>
-
- <li>York, Duke of (<i>see</i> <a href="#James">James II.</a>)</li>
-
- <li>Young, ii.
- <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center p-left">Vol. I.</p>
-
-<table summary="errata">
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr1">Page</td>
- <td class="right2">34,</td>
- <td class="ctr1">line</td>
- <td class="right2">28,</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Henry</i>,</td>
- <td class="ctr1">should be</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Herbert</i>.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="right2">160,</td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="right2">7,</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Convocation</i></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Coronation</i>.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="right2">181,</td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="right2">6,</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Hammond</i></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Hamon</i>.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="right2">277,</td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="right2">11,</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Edward</i></td>
- <td class="ctr1">„</td>
- <td class="cht"><i>Edmund</i>.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p class="center p-left p6 xs">UNWIN BROTHERS, PRINTERS, BUCKLERSBURY, LONDON.</p>
-
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h2>FOOTNOTES:</h2>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">[1]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, <i>Rapin</i>, <i>Hume</i>, and
-<i>Lingard</i>, give numerous particulars, but the account I have
-presented is drawn from <i>A True Narrative of the Horrid Plot and
-Conspiracy of the Popish Party against the Life of His Majesty, the
-Government, and the Protestant Religion</i>, by Titus Oates himself,
-published 1679.</p>
-
-<p>In the Dedication there is a sentiment expressed worthy of a better
-man. “It is a false suggestion,” says Oates, “which such tempters use,
-that a King that rules by will is more great and glorious than a King
-that rules by law:&mdash;the quality of the retinue best proves the state
-of the lord; the one being but a king of slaves, while the other, like
-God, is a king of kings and hearts.”</p>
-
-<p>I have before me a narrative of “the horrid Popish plot,” by Capt.
-W. Bedloe, 1679; another by Miles Prance, 1679; and a collection of
-letters relating to it published by order of the House of Commons,
-1681. Oates’ narrative, which, though dated the 27th of September,
-1678, was not published until the following April, contains a digested
-statement, in eighty-one items, of all the particulars which he had
-alleged.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">[2]</a> The letters are published in the collection just named.
-Some are in <i>Rapin</i>, iii. 171.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">[3]</a> <i>History of his Own Time</i>, i. 434.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">[4]</a> <i>Life of Calamy</i>, i. 83.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">[5]</a> Defoe quoted in <i>Knight’s Hist. of England</i>, iv. 335.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="label">[6]</a> Stayley was executed November 26th, Coleman December 3rd.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="label">[7]</a> In the <i>Moneys for Secret Services</i>, published by the
-Camden Society, are numerous entries of sums paid to Oates and others.
-Curious references to Oates’ character as an impostor, may be found in
-<i>Reresby’s Memoirs</i>, 239, and <i>North’s Lives</i>, i. 325.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_8" href="#FNanchor_8" class="label">[8]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1678, November
-1, December (without further date), and December 28. It would divert
-attention from the main current of this history to go fully into Oates’
-plot. The historical student will find a bundle of papers bearing on
-the subject under date 1678, and further papers on the same subject
-under 1679, January to June.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_9" href="#FNanchor_9" class="label">[9]</a> Lord Keeper North “was of opinion that the fiction of the
-Popish Plot did not arise from the accident of Tongue’s and Oates’
-informations, but from a preconcerted design.” The reasons are given
-in a MS. of North’s, printed in <i>Dalrymple’s Memoirs</i>, ii. app.
-320. That the plot was <i>invented</i> by Shaftesbury there seems
-no sufficient ground for believing. See <i>Campbell’s Lives of Lord
-Chancellors</i>, iv. 197.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_10" href="#FNanchor_10" class="label">[10]</a> <i>Rapin</i>, iii. 172. Evelyn says, “For my part I
-look on Oates as a vain insolent man, puffed up with the favour
-of the Commons, for having discovered something really true, more
-especially as detecting the dangerous intrigue of Coleman, proved
-out of his own letters, and of a general design which the Jesuited
-party of the Papists ever had and still have, to ruin the Church of
-England.”&mdash;<i>Diary</i>, ii. 140.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_11" href="#FNanchor_11" class="label">[11]</a> <i>Commons’ Journals</i>, October 28. “The Oath of
-Supremacy was already taken by the Commons, though not by the Lords;
-and it is a great mistake to imagine that Catholics were legally
-capable of sitting in the Lower House before the Act of 1679”
-(1678).&mdash;<i>Hallam’s Const. Hist.</i>, ii. 121.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_12" href="#FNanchor_12" class="label">[12]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, <i>Hist. of his Own Times</i>, i. 436.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_13" href="#FNanchor_13" class="label">[13]</a> <i>Journals</i>, Nov. 21 and 30; <i>Lingard</i>, xii.
-151, 152. Reresby says, (<i>Memoirs</i>, 230), “In April, 1680, I went
-to London to solicit some business at Court, but the application of all
-men being to the Duke, who quite engrossed the King to himself, His
-Highness had but little leisure to give ear to, or assist his friends.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_14" href="#FNanchor_14" class="label">[14]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, i. 340.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_15" href="#FNanchor_15" class="label">[15]</a> <i>Sir Thomas Browne’s Works</i>, i. 241. This relates
-to a second election for Norwich in the month of May, the first having
-been set aside. It illustrates both the excitement and the custom of
-the times. The general election took place in February.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_16" href="#FNanchor_16" class="label">[16]</a> <i>Evelyn’s Diary</i>, ii. 136.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_17" href="#FNanchor_17" class="label">[17]</a> Quoted in <i>D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft</i>, i. 165–176.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_18" href="#FNanchor_18" class="label">[18]</a> <i>Life of James II.</i>, i. 539.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_19" href="#FNanchor_19" class="label">[19]</a> <i>Wilkins</i>, iv. 606.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_20" href="#FNanchor_20" class="label">[20]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, iv. 600.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_21" href="#FNanchor_21" class="label">[21]</a> <i>Wilkins</i>, iv. 605; <i>Sancroft’s Life by
-D’Oyley</i>, i. 186.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_22" href="#FNanchor_22" class="label">[22]</a> <i>Wilkins</i>, iv. 607.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_23" href="#FNanchor_23" class="label">[23]</a> <i>Tanner MSS.</i>, 32, 208; <i>Life of Sancroft</i>,
-i. 204. D’Oyley conjecturally assigns this document to the reign of
-Charles, but he is not sure it may not belong to the reign of James.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_24" href="#FNanchor_24" class="label">[24]</a> Sir W. Temple, in his <i>Memoirs</i>, part iii., gives
-an account of the plan and working of this Council. His object was to
-enable the Crown to manage the Commons, by making the Crown, as far as
-possible, independent of the Commons. After noticing the wealth of the
-Council in revenues of land or offices as amounting to £300,000 per
-annum, whilst that of the House of Commons seldom exceeded £400,000,
-he adds, “And authority is observed much to follow land, and, at the
-worst, such a Council might, out of their own stock, and upon a pinch,
-furnish the King so far as to relieve some great necessity of the
-Crown.”&mdash;<i>Temple’s Works</i>, vol. i. 414. He says (436) he told
-the Duke of York, “he might always reckon upon me as a legal man, and
-one that would always follow the Crown as became me.” These passages
-seem to be overlooked by some historians, in estimating the nature and
-objects of Temple’s scheme.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_25" href="#FNanchor_25" class="label">[25]</a> April 30, 1679.&mdash;<i>Parl. Hist.</i> iv. 1128.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_26" href="#FNanchor_26" class="label">[26]</a> The Habeas Corpus Act was passed during the spring of
-1679.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_27" href="#FNanchor_27" class="label">[27]</a> <i>Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time</i>, i. 475.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_28" href="#FNanchor_28" class="label">[28]</a> “The information of Dangerfield, delivered at the bar
-of the Commons, the 26th of October, 1680.” <i>Lords’ Journals</i>,
-Nov. 15, 1680. <i>State Trials.</i> <i>Burnet</i>, i. 475 and 637.
-<i>Lingard</i>, xii. 227, <i>et seq.</i> Dangerfield died from a blow,
-struck whilst he was being whipped.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_29" href="#FNanchor_29" class="label">[29]</a> Dated August 25. Received September 1.&mdash;<i>State
-Papers.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_30" href="#FNanchor_30" class="label">[30]</a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i> iv. 1162, <i>et seq.</i> Again let me
-refer the reader to Fox, <i>Hist. of James</i> ii., p. 311, for some
-admirable remarks on this whole question, politically considered.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_31" href="#FNanchor_31" class="label">[31]</a> <i>Sommers’ Tracts</i> i. 97.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_32" href="#FNanchor_32" class="label">[32]</a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i> iv. 1197, <i>et seq.</i>;
-<i>Rapin</i>, iii. 198, <i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_33" href="#FNanchor_33" class="label">[33]</a> <i>Reresby’s Memoirs</i>, 234. He says that the speech of
-Halifax, “so all confessed, influenced the House, and persuaded them to
-throw out the Bill.” The debate took place on the 15th of November.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_34" href="#FNanchor_34" class="label">[34]</a> <i>Rogers’ Life of Howe</i>, 181.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_35" href="#FNanchor_35" class="label">[35]</a> <i>Calamy’s Life of Baxter</i>, 354.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_36" href="#FNanchor_36" class="label">[36]</a> <i>Rogers’ Life of Howe</i>, 183.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_37" href="#FNanchor_37" class="label">[37]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 187.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_38" href="#FNanchor_38" class="label">[38]</a> “Tillotson’s conduct on this occasion places his
-amiable character in the fairest light. One can hardly regret that he
-committed a fault for which he so nobly atoned, and which has furnished
-us with so impressive an example of ingenuousness, candour, and
-humility.”&mdash;<i>Rogers’ Life of Howe</i>, 190.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_39" href="#FNanchor_39" class="label">[39]</a> There were two Bishop Lloyds at the time; one of Norwich,
-the other of St. Asaph, consecrated October 3, 1680. It was most
-likely the latter. We shall meet with him as one of the seven Bishops
-committed to the Tower in 1688.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_40" href="#FNanchor_40" class="label">[40]</a> <i>Life of Howe</i>, 191, 192.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_41" href="#FNanchor_41" class="label">[41]</a> <i>Kennet</i> quoted in <i>Neal</i>, iv. 496.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_42" href="#FNanchor_42" class="label">[42]</a> Dec. 30, 1680. “The Commons have before them a Bill
-of comprehension and a Bill for indulgence. The latter is proposed
-very full and clear, requiring nothing but subscription to Thirty-six
-Articles, and taking a test against Popery. This hath been read twice,
-and is before the Committee. The former moreover requires the use of
-Common Prayer, and, I think, as proposed even relapses almost all other
-things that almost anybody scruples. This has been read twice and
-passed the Committee. Opinions about these Bills are various. All that
-I have heard of, who desire comprehension, desire indulgence also for
-others, though multitudes desire indulgence that most fervently oppose
-comprehension. This begets great misunderstandings.”&mdash;<i>Entring Book,
-Morice MSS.</i>, Dr. Williams’ Library.</p>
-
-<p>On the 24th of December a clergyman was charged before the House of
-Commons with saying that the Presbyterians were such as the very devil
-blushed at, and were as bad as Jesuits, and otherwise denying the
-Popish plot, throwing the same on Protestants. It was resolved that he
-should be impeached.&mdash;<i>Journals.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_43" href="#FNanchor_43" class="label">[43]</a> Both read the first time Dec. 16.&mdash;<i>Journals.</i> The
-Bill for toleration was read a second time Dec. 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_44" href="#FNanchor_44" class="label">[44]</a> The Lords desired the concurrence of the Commons in
-the amendments which they had made to this relief Bill Jan. 3. See
-<i>Journals</i> of both Houses.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_45" href="#FNanchor_45" class="label">[45]</a> <i>Burnet</i> (i. 495) says the Clerk of the Crown
-withdrew it from the table by the King’s particular order.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_46" href="#FNanchor_46" class="label">[46]</a> <i>Journals</i>, Jan. 10, 1681. Eachard, Rapin, Burnet,
-and Calamy quote or mention two resolutions on this subject, as passed
-at the same time by the Commons&mdash;the first, that the Act of Elizabeth
-and James against Popish recusants ought not to be extended against
-Protestant Dissenters&mdash;the second, that which has just been noticed.
-It is the only one respecting toleration, recorded in the Journals for
-that day.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_47" href="#FNanchor_47" class="label">[47]</a> I have, in the history of this whole affair, followed the
-Journals; and they show the inaccuracy, more or less of <i>Burnet</i>,
-<i>Eachard</i>, and <i>Neal</i>. Even what Sir William Jones says in
-his <i>Vindication</i> (<i>Parl. Hist.</i> iv. <i>Appendix</i>) is
-scarcely consistent with the records of the Houses.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_48" href="#FNanchor_48" class="label">[48]</a> “The Court was at Christ Church, and the Commons sat in
-the schools, but were very much straitened for room, there being a very
-great concourse of members.” “Many of the discontented members, of both
-Houses, came armed, and more than usually attended; and it was affirmed
-there was a design to have seized the King, and to have restrained him
-till he had granted their petitions.”&mdash;<i>Reresby’s Memoirs</i>, 243,
-245.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_49" href="#FNanchor_49" class="label">[49]</a> March 24, <i>Parl. Hist.</i> iv. 1308.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_50" href="#FNanchor_50" class="label">[50]</a> <i>Lords’ Journals</i>, March 26.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_51" href="#FNanchor_51" class="label">[51]</a> <i>Reresby’s Memoirs</i>, 290.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_52" href="#FNanchor_52" class="label">[52]</a> <i>Lingard</i>, xii. 281.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_53" href="#FNanchor_53" class="label">[53]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, i. 500; <i>D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft</i>,
-i. 252. The King’s letter to Sancroft is dated April 11, 1681.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_54" href="#FNanchor_54" class="label">[54]</a> Address from the University of Cambridge. <i>Wilkins</i>,
-iv. 607; <i>State Papers, Charles II. Dom.</i> 1681, May 16. I have
-pretty closely adhered to the words used in the addresses.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_55" href="#FNanchor_55" class="label">[55]</a> <i>Bishop of Winchester’s Vindication</i>, 394, 410. This
-work was published in 1683, but the author says that it was written a
-year before. Probably the above passage may belong to 1681.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_56" href="#FNanchor_56" class="label">[56]</a> Preface to <i>The Happy Future State of England</i>,
-published 1688.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_57" href="#FNanchor_57" class="label">[57]</a> <i>The Conformist’s Plea for Nonconformists</i>, 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_58" href="#FNanchor_58" class="label">[58]</a> <i>The Conformist’s Plea for the Nonconformists</i>, 34.
-<i>The Life of Julian the Apostate</i> also made a great noise at that
-time.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_59" href="#FNanchor_59" class="label">[59]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1677.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_60" href="#FNanchor_60" class="label">[60]</a> There is a remarkable absence of information in Sir
-Joseph Williamson’s papers of this date, preserved in the Record
-Office. Several letters, written at this time by the informer Bowen, of
-Yarmouth, upon local matters, contain no allusion to the Nonconformists
-there. The Histories of Nonconformists silently bear witness to this
-fact. Neal, Crosby, and Sewel, under these years, say little or
-nothing of persecution. It must not, however, be inferred that it was
-then unknown, for it is stated in the Church Book of Guildhall-street
-Chapel, Canterbury, that Mr. Durant, the pastor, and some of his
-congregation, in 1679, “fled for refuge to Holland, and some forsook
-the Church and fell off&mdash;<i>Timpson’s Church Hist. of Kent</i>, 307.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_61" href="#FNanchor_61" class="label">[61]</a> <i>Rogers’ Life of Howe</i>, 180.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_62" href="#FNanchor_62" class="label">[62]</a> <i>Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Times</i>, i. 267, 268, 476.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_63" href="#FNanchor_63" class="label">[63]</a> <i>Earl Russell’s Life of Lord William Russell</i>, 159.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_64" href="#FNanchor_64" class="label">[64]</a> Macaulay describes the manner in which Halifax
-endeavoured to vindicate his trimming. <i>Hist.</i>, i. 254. The
-following quotation from Halifax is characteristic:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Why,” he asks, “after we have played the fool with throwing
-<i>Whig</i> and <i>Tory</i> at one another, as boys do snowballs,
-should we grow angry at a new name, which by its signification might
-do as much to put us into our wits, as the other has done to put us
-out of them. This innocent word <i>Trimmer</i> signifies no more than
-this, that if men are together in a boat, and one part of the company
-would weigh it down on one side, another would make it lean as much
-the contrary; it happens that there is a third opinion of those who
-conceive it would do as well if the boat went even, without endangering
-the passengers. Now ’tis hard to imagine by what figure in language, or
-by what rule in sense, this comes to be a fault, and it is much more
-a wonder it should be thought a heresy.” By a common fallacy, Halifax
-applies what is true of one thing to another thing very different. Too
-many miserably act respecting religion on the same principle as Halifax
-adopted in relation to politics.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_65" href="#FNanchor_65" class="label">[65]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, i. 266.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_66" href="#FNanchor_66" class="label">[66]</a> <i>Memoirs of Count de Grammont</i>, vol. ii. 112;
-<i>Clarendon</i>, 503.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_67" href="#FNanchor_67" class="label">[67]</a> <i>Lives</i>, ii. 57.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_68" href="#FNanchor_68" class="label">[68]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, i. 482.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_69" href="#FNanchor_69" class="label">[69]</a> Printed document. <i>State Papers, Dom.</i>, 1681, Sept.
-2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_70" href="#FNanchor_70" class="label">[70]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1681, Aug. 25,
-Sept. 2. There are several very curious papers relative to Oates, which
-I have copied, but have not space to insert.</p>
-
-<p>The Prevaricator at Cambridge at the commencement of 1680, referred to
-the plot. The reference seems to have been very brief and unimportant,
-but it gave concern in high quarters. A letter was written to the
-Vice-Chancellor, by direction of the Bishop of London, complaining
-of the Prevaricator turning the plot into ridicule, that it would be
-brought before Parliament “to the reproach of the government of the
-Universities, if not to strike at the Universities themselves, unless
-it be timely prevented by a severe animadversion.”&mdash;<i>Cambridge
-Portfolio</i>, 242.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_71" href="#FNanchor_71" class="label">[71]</a> <i>Life of Baxter</i>, 349. The book is dated 1680, and
-the author, Lewis du Moulin, recanted his reflections on the Divines of
-the Church of England, the same year.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_72" href="#FNanchor_72" class="label">[72]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, i. 461.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_73" href="#FNanchor_73" class="label">[73]</a> There is a letter from the Lieutenant of the Tower in the
-Record Office, <i>Dom. Charles II.</i>, August 5, 1681, in which the
-writer describes how the prisoner was to be conveyed to Oxford “in a
-coach with ten or twelve of the warders on horseback, with carabines.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_74" href="#FNanchor_74" class="label">[74]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, i. 505. Colledge was tried on the 17th
-and 18th of August. The trial is reported at full length in a folio
-pamphlet of 102 pages published by authority, 1681. Colledge defended
-himself, examined witnesses and made speeches. It is plain that under
-the circumstances, with such judges, the poor fellow stood no chance.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_75" href="#FNanchor_75" class="label">[75]</a> September 1, 1681, Oxon. Letter from Thomas Hyde states
-that just before the execution of Colledge, he had denied having
-written certain letters, but that when he heard these letters had been
-intercepted, he acknowledged them.</p>
-
-<p>There are several letters respecting Colledge; amongst other papers
-is the following:&mdash;September 30, 1681. “Deposition of Benjamin Wyche
-of the parish of Saint Andrew’s, Holborn, London, Apothecary. This
-deponent saith that being in Richards’ coffee-house near Temple
-Bar, soon after His Majesty had dissolved the Parliament sitting at
-Westminster, amongst other company in the room, Mr. Colledge was one
-whom (upon discourse of the Parliament being then dissolved) he this
-deponent, heard uttering these words, ‘<i>Well I see what it will come
-to, we must e’en draw our swords, and fight it out again</i>,’ or words
-to that effect.&mdash;<i>Ben Wyche.</i>”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Jurat coram me.&mdash;L. Jenkins.</i>”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_76" href="#FNanchor_76" class="label">[76]</a> The first letter is dated Sept. 21. In the second letter,
-in the same bundle, the day of the month is not given. The letter is
-numbered 164. Another paper in the Record Office, dated August 20,
-1681, reports that the Countess of Rochester said “Colledge was a
-Papist to her knowledge, and had been so for a long time.” There are
-other statements to the same effect. Thomas Hyde (September 1, 1681)
-writing from Oxford, says that Colledge would not acknowledge what
-religion he was of, but that “he was of the Anabaptists.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_77" href="#FNanchor_77" class="label">[77]</a> It is added “this fanatic’s name was formerly Bishop,
-but being a hater of bishops changed his name into Marten; and because
-he is by that name known for a notorious villain he hath changed it
-again.”&mdash;<i>Dom. Charles II.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_78" href="#FNanchor_78" class="label">[78]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, August 27, 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_79" href="#FNanchor_79" class="label">[79]</a> The confession, of which a portion is missing, bears date
-August 24, 1681. <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i> The dying speech
-is in MS. in the same collection dated August 31. It was published as a
-distinct tract, 1681; also it is printed in <i>The Dying Speeches and
-Behaviour of several State Prisoners</i>. Ed. 1720. The reason for his
-being called the Protestant Joiner he thus describes:&mdash;“The Duke of
-Monmouth called me to him, and told me he had heard a good report of
-me, and that I was an honest man, and one that may be trusted: and they
-did not know but their enemies, the Papists, might have some design to
-serve them as they did in King James’s time by gunpowder, or any other
-way; and the Duke with several Lords and Commons did desire me to use
-my utmost skill in searching all places suspected by them, which I did
-perform: and from thence I had as I think, the popular name of <i>The
-Protestant Joiner</i>, because they had entrusted me, before any man in
-England to do that office.”&mdash;<i>Dying Speeches</i>, 387.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_80" href="#FNanchor_80" class="label">[80]</a> There is amongst the <i>State Papers</i>, one dated
-November 26, 1681, <i>Dom. Charles II.</i>, by George Evans, who
-complains that there was a bonfire on Cornhill, and that gentlemen
-were stopped in their coaches and required to drink Lord Shaftesbury’s
-health. This was on the occasion of the Grand Jury ignoring the bill
-against him. There are a number of documents relating to Shaftesbury
-under the year 1681.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_81" href="#FNanchor_81" class="label">[81]</a> <i>Campbell’s Lives of the Chancellors</i>, iv. 229. Lord
-Campbell has not done justice to Shaftesbury. It should be remarked to
-Shaftesbury’s honour, Earl Russell says, “that though in the secret
-of every party, he never betrayed any one: and that the purity of his
-administration of justice is allowed even by his enemies.”&mdash;<i>Life of
-Lord William Russell</i>, 61.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_82" href="#FNanchor_82" class="label">[82]</a> From a mass of illustrations I select the following in
-reference to the last point:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><i>Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1681, Sept. 9. “I was interrupted,” says
-the Archdeacon of Durham, “in the execution of my office, as I was
-officiating in my own church, by a very bold and insolent fanatic,
-who though indicted at our last assizes, escaped punishment&mdash;to the
-great contempt, I hear, of God’s house and service&mdash;I am sure to the
-great trouble of the clergy, who fear it may go very hard with them,
-in the execution of their offices, when so great a violence offered
-to the Archdeacon should go unpunished. Since a Churchman can expect
-to meet with no more favour from a lay judicatory, I am forced to fly
-to the ecclesiastical courts, where this person stands presented, for
-disturbing the minister in time of Divine service, and I think no
-ecclesiastical judge can be of the same mind with the jury, that what
-was done between the Nicene Creed and the sermon, was not done in time
-of Divine service, upon which point he was found not guilty, to the
-admiration [wonder] of those that understood the rubric.”</p>
-
-<p>John Strode, of Rye, writes, September 13, “that the new Mayor chosen
-by the fanatics refused to grant warrants according to the Act of
-Parliament, pretending some frivolous thing.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_83" href="#FNanchor_83" class="label">[83]</a> November 7, 1681.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_84" href="#FNanchor_84" class="label">[84]</a> <i>Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1681, November 15. I find, dated
-November 25, “The names of such Nonconformists who being presented
-in the Attorney-General’s name, are actually served with subpœnas
-returnable on Monday last:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="parent">
-<ul class="left">
- <li>“John Collins, D.D.</li>
- <li>“John Owen, D.D.</li>
- <li>“Samuel Annesley, D.D.</li>
- <li>“Thomas Jacomb, D.D.</li>
- <li>“Thomas Watson.</li>
- <li>“Matthew Meade.</li>
- <li>“Robert Fergusson.</li>
- <li>“Edmund Calamy.</li>
- <li>“Thomas Doolittle.</li>
- <li>“Samuel Slater.</li>
- <li>“Nicholas Blackley.</li>
-</ul>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Sir,</p>
-
-<p>“There are two informations filed against every
-one of the above-named Nonconformist ministers, <i>i.e.</i>,
-one on the Statute for not repairing to Church, upon which
-they forfeit £20 per mensem. This information is laid for
-twenty months. The other is on the Oxford Act, prohibiting
-Nonconformist ministers, &amp;c., to reside within five miles of
-any corporation, upon the penalty of £40. So that the penalties
-against the persons above-named, if recovered, and not remitted,
-will amount to the sum of £4,840.</p>
-
-<p class="r4">“Yours,</p>
-
-<p class="smcap r2">“Wm. Shermar”</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_85" href="#FNanchor_85" class="label">[85]</a> The Minutes of Council show that the Mayors of Plymouth
-and Reading were directed to put the Oxford Act in execution against
-the preachers in Conventicles.&mdash;December 2. The constables of the East
-Riding of Yorkshire refused to disturb meetings.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>,
-bundle 260, No. 474. The magistrates at Hickes’ Hall complain that the
-laws respecting Conventicles had been long silent.&mdash;December 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_86" href="#FNanchor_86" class="label">[86]</a> <i>Echard</i>, <i>Neal</i>, iv. 507.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_87" href="#FNanchor_87" class="label">[87]</a> <i>Calamy’s Continuation</i>, 137.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_88" href="#FNanchor_88" class="label">[88]</a> <i>State Papers</i>, Dec. 19.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_89" href="#FNanchor_89" class="label">[89]</a> <i>State Papers</i>, 1682, February 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_90" href="#FNanchor_90" class="label">[90]</a> <i>Calamy’s Continuation</i>, 139.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_91" href="#FNanchor_91" class="label">[91]</a> I copied these extracts many years ago from the old
-Church books, now unfortunately lost. In the State Paper Office,
-under date of the 2nd February, 1682, there is a long report of the
-political sentiments of people in different parts of Norfolk, in
-which report,&mdash;besides mention of the Anabaptists and the Quakers
-worshipping under one roof, and of a clergyman in the Commission of
-the Peace, an itinerant Justice, “who rides all the circuit, and makes
-disturbances wherever he comes by his pragmaticalness and unskilfulness
-in the laws”&mdash;a reference is made to Dr. Collinges, a very respectable
-Presbyterian minister at Norwich, and it is suggested, “were he
-removed, it is probable many of that sect would fall off.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_92" href="#FNanchor_92" class="label">[92]</a> <i>Morice MSS., Entring Book</i>, i., 1682, November 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_93" href="#FNanchor_93" class="label">[93]</a> December 30.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_94" href="#FNanchor_94" class="label">[94]</a> December 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_95" href="#FNanchor_95" class="label">[95]</a> November 30, December 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_96" href="#FNanchor_96" class="label">[96]</a> December 14, February 6, 1682–3. “On Monday, in the
-Common Pleas, some citizens were cited, because they did not receive
-the sacrament at Easter by their minister, the Churchwardens saying
-they believed that they did not receive it then. But because the
-process saith not what Easter it was, and because there was no
-sacrament at their church the last Easter; and further, because the
-Churchwardens do but believe they did not receive it, therefore a
-prohibition was granted unless cause be shown to the contrary.”</p>
-
-<p>The Countess of Aylesbury was informed against for being at a
-Conventicle.&mdash;March 15, 1684.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_97" href="#FNanchor_97" class="label">[97]</a> December 14, 1682; March, 1683.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_98" href="#FNanchor_98" class="label">[98]</a> Much trouble and suffering arose from fear; and many
-congregations, after apprehending disturbance, were allowed to worship
-in peace. This I learn from the <i>Entring Book</i>, 1683, January,
-in the <i>Morice MSS.</i> (in Dr. Williams’ Library,) from which the
-passage in the text is taken.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_99" href="#FNanchor_99" class="label">[99]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i>, February 21, 1682.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_100" href="#FNanchor_100" class="label">[100]</a> The Presbyterians are reckoned altogether at 5,420; the
-Baptists, &amp;c., at 4,250.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_101" href="#FNanchor_101" class="label">[101]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1682, June 2, 16,
-20. On the 9th of December, the following queries were submitted to
-Secretary Jenkins:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Whether, at a time when the Dissenters in shoals transport themselves
-beyond sea, to the apparent throwing up of many farms throughout
-England, and a dearth of servants, it may not be thought reasonable to
-prohibit such a transportation occasioned by a sullen humour?</p>
-
-<p>“2. Whether, at this time, when the Dissenters calumniate the
-Government with a connivance at debaucheries, while themselves are
-vigorously prosecuted about matters of religion, it may not be thought
-reasonable to revive His Majesty’s proclamation against profane cursing
-and swearing and other debaucheries?</p>
-
-<p>“3. Whether the prosecution against Dissenters ought not to be
-prosecuted to excommunication, for not coming to church and receiving
-the Sacrament, in Corporations especially,&mdash;thereby to incapacitate
-them from being elected, or electors of, members of Parliament?”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_102" href="#FNanchor_102" class="label">[102]</a> There are many documents connected with this subject
-amongst the <i>State Papers</i>, 1680, January to June.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_103" href="#FNanchor_103" class="label">[103]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom.</i>, 1682, September 11, 13, 16.
-There is also a letter describing the Duke’s visit to Chichester, and
-the insults offered to the Bishop’s chaplain. February 24, 1683.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_104" href="#FNanchor_104" class="label">[104]</a> It is said (Sept. 18) the Duke had not the encouragement
-which Dissenters expected.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_105" href="#FNanchor_105" class="label">[105]</a> L’Estrange was a censor of the press. In the Record
-Office, <i>Dom. Charles II.</i>, may be found Williamson’s authority to
-“Roger L’Estrange, surveyor of the press, to act as one of his deputies
-in the licensing of books,” dated Whitehall, February 5, 1674–5.</p>
-
-<p>In 1684 L’Estrange commenced a periodical entitled <i>The
-Observator</i>, which he carried on until 1687. He there upholds the
-Royal dispensing power, and ridicules Protestant excitements, the right
-to liberty of conscience, the Long Parliament, and Nonconformists of
-all kinds, pronouncing Dissent a political schism. He published the
-paper irregularly, sometimes twice, sometimes thrice a week. It is
-written after the manner of a dialogue between <i>The Observator</i>
-and its opponents. I have met with three or four large volumes of the
-publication, in the library of Trinity College, Cambridge. They justify
-the strong language I have used.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_106" href="#FNanchor_106" class="label">[106]</a> <i>State Trials</i>, 1683. The judgment was that the
-franchise and liberty of the City of London should be taken and seized
-into the King’s hands.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_107" href="#FNanchor_107" class="label">[107]</a> The Act for annulling Russell’s attainder, in the first
-year of William and Mary, justly declared that “he was, by undue and
-illegal return of jurors, having been refused his lawful challenge
-to the said jurors, for want of freehold, and by partial and unjust
-constructions of law, wrongfully convicted, attainted, and executed for
-high treason.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_108" href="#FNanchor_108" class="label">[108]</a> The charges against Russell and Sidney, of being engaged
-in negotiations with the French Court, and of the latter receiving pay
-from that quarter, belong to the political history of England. I must
-refer the reader to <i>Hallam</i>, <i>Mackintosh</i>, and especially
-to <i>Earl Russell’s Life of Lord William Russell</i>. Supposing
-that Sidney accepted money from France, I am not at all disposed to
-regard his conduct so leniently as do the first two of the above-named
-writers; but, after pondering what Earl Russell says, I feel some doubt
-respecting the truth of Barillon’s reports, and the accuracy of his
-accounts. As to Lord William Russell’s conduct, his biographer says
-it “was not criminal, but it would be difficult to acquit him of the
-charge of imprudence.”&mdash;p. 107.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_109" href="#FNanchor_109" class="label">[109]</a> “Much discourse hath been about the apparition of Lord
-William Russell’s ghost in Southampton square, July 27 (1683), about
-twelve o’clock at night.”&mdash;<i>Entring Book, Morice MSS.</i>, Dr.
-Williams’ Library. The above notice of Russell’s execution is almost
-entirely drawn up from Earl Russell’s life of this illustrious person,
-337, <i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_110" href="#FNanchor_110" class="label">[110]</a> <i>Tillotson’s Life</i>, 109.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_111" href="#FNanchor_111" class="label">[111]</a> <i>Collier</i>, ii. 903. Filmer’s writings were most
-in vogue with the partisans of despotism. See <i>Hallam’s Const.
-Hist.</i>, ii. 156, on the subject.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_112" href="#FNanchor_112" class="label">[112]</a> <i>Orme’s Life of Owen.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_113" href="#FNanchor_113" class="label">[113]</a> <i>Howe’s Case of Protestant Dissenters; Life</i>, 247.
-In a letter which Howe wrote in the year 1685 from the Continent, when
-he was travelling with Philip Lord Wharton, to escape the persecution
-of the times, he uses the following words, which indicate, more than
-any laboured description, the reign of terror he had left behind
-him in England:&mdash;“The anger and jealousies of such as I never had a
-disposition to offend, have of later times <i>occasioned persons of
-my circumstances</i> very seldom to walk the streets.”&mdash;<i>Life by
-Rogers</i>, 225.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_114" href="#FNanchor_114" class="label">[114]</a> The trial is published in a volume edited by Samuel
-Rosewell, 1718. The trial took place in the months of October and
-November, 1684. In the <i>Memoir</i> there is an account of his
-apprehension and first appearance before Jeffreys at his house in
-Aldermanbury. Rosewell, lest he should commit himself before witnesses,
-answered Jeffreys in Latin. The Judge flew into a passion, and told
-him, he supposed he could not utter another sentence in the same
-language to save his neck. Rosewell did not give him the lie, but
-thought it better to give his next answer in Greek. “The Judge seemed
-to be thunderstruck upon this.”&mdash;p. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_115" href="#FNanchor_115" class="label">[115]</a> <i>Trial of Rosewell</i>, p. 52, <i>et seq.</i> Speaking
-of the latter part of the reign of Charles II. Mrs. Mary Churchman
-says, “Persecution now came on apace, the Dissenters could have no
-meetings but in woods and corners. I, myself, have seen our companies
-often alarmed with drums and soldiers; every one was fined five pounds
-a month for being in their company.”&mdash;<i>Abstract of the Gracious
-Dealings of God, &amp;c.</i>, by Samuel James, 74.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_116" href="#FNanchor_116" class="label">[116]</a> I have gathered this account entirely from Delaune’s
-pamphlets on the subject, which were collected and published in
-a volume in the year 1704. The controversy had been mixed up
-with a reference to Calamy’s invitation to private Christians,
-to consult their pastors in their religious difficulties; and to
-Nonconformists also to hear both sides; which&mdash;by a wide stretch of
-interpretation&mdash;Delaune construed into a public challenge to an answer
-in print. It had been further complicated with reproaches, because
-Calamy did not intercede for the sufferer, or visit him in prison.
-Defoe says, “It was very hard such a man, such a Christian, and such a
-scholar, and on such an occasion should starve in a dungeon; and the
-whole body of Dissenters in England, whose cause he died for defending,
-should not raise him £66 13s. 4d. to save his life.” A modern Baptist
-historian justly says, “We would not mitigate this crime an atom;
-but it is right to suggest that Mr. Delaune may have interdicted
-the payment of the fine.”&mdash;<i>Evans’ English Baptists</i>, ii. 337.
-Delaune, I suspect, was one of those men who, in the judgment of an
-opposite class, are said to court martyrdom.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_117" href="#FNanchor_117" class="label">[117]</a> <i>Neal</i>, iv. 521.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_118" href="#FNanchor_118" class="label">[118]</a> <i>De Felice</i>, <i>Hist. of the Protestants of
-France</i>, 261.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_119" href="#FNanchor_119" class="label">[119]</a> “The King of France uses the Huguenots with
-inexpressible severity, takes away very many of their children
-by force, and puts them into Popish convents, and has published
-an edict for taking away one half of their churches that remain
-throughout all the provinces, and has actually begun to execute it
-in Normandy.”&mdash;<i>Morice’s Diary</i>, December 2, 1679. For a minute
-record of proceedings against the French Protestants, see <i>Histoire
-Chronologique de L’Eglise Protestante de France, par C. Drion</i>, ii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_120" href="#FNanchor_120" class="label">[120]</a> <i>Elie Benoit Hist. de L’Edit de Nantes</i>, iv. 479.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_121" href="#FNanchor_121" class="label">[121]</a> <i>Hist. des Réfugiés Protestants, par Weiss</i>, i.
-265–267.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_122" href="#FNanchor_122" class="label">[122]</a> <i>Hist. des Réfugiés Protestants, par Weiss</i>, i.
-268.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_123" href="#FNanchor_123" class="label">[123]</a> <i>Coxe’s House of Austria</i>, ii. 352.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_124" href="#FNanchor_124" class="label">[124]</a> <i>State Papers</i>, 1682, quoted in <i>Smiles’
-Huguenots</i>. I have found several other documents on the same subject
-in the Record Office. The Mayor and Aldermen of Bristol, on the 2nd of
-January 1682, oddly enough, proposed that fines levied on Dissenters
-should be applied to the relief of French Protestants.&mdash;<i>State
-Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_125" href="#FNanchor_125" class="label">[125]</a> <i>Life of Tillotson, by Birch</i>, 131.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_126" href="#FNanchor_126" class="label">[126]</a> I find an illustration of the number of refugees who
-arrived in London, in a curious book I have elsewhere cited, <i>The
-Happy Future State of England</i>, published in 1688. It is there
-noticed (p. 122), that they had lately come, and filled 800 of the
-empty new-built houses of London.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_127" href="#FNanchor_127" class="label">[127]</a> The letter is dated January 2, 1684.&mdash;<i>Life of
-Sancroft</i>, i. 197.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_128" href="#FNanchor_128" class="label">[128]</a> <i>Reresby’s Memoirs</i>, 290.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_129" href="#FNanchor_129" class="label">[129]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, ii. 70.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_130" href="#FNanchor_130" class="label">[130]</a> Abridged from <i>North’s Lives</i>, ii. 72.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_131" href="#FNanchor_131" class="label">[131]</a> <i>Palmer’s Nonconformist Memorial</i>, i. 100;
-<i>Observator</i>, January 29 and 31, 1685; <i>Macaulay</i>, i. 407.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_132" href="#FNanchor_132" class="label">[132]</a> By Ward.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_133" href="#FNanchor_133" class="label">[133]</a> <i>James’ Memoirs</i>, by Clarke, i. 747–9. See
-<i>Macaulay</i>, ii. 13, for authorities respecting the death of
-Charles. In the appendix to this volume will be found a copy of the
-recently discovered MS., which solves a riddle referred to by Macaulay.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_134" href="#FNanchor_134" class="label">[134]</a> <i>Gazette</i>, 2006.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_135" href="#FNanchor_135" class="label">[135]</a> <i>James’ Memoirs</i>, by Clarke, ii. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_136" href="#FNanchor_136" class="label">[136]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, ii. 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_137" href="#FNanchor_137" class="label">[137]</a> <i>Dalrymple’s Memoirs</i>, i. 109. I do not find
-that this circumstance is referred to by D’Oyley in his <i>Life of
-Sancroft</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_138" href="#FNanchor_138" class="label">[138]</a> As to the coronation, it is observed in a <i>Diary</i>
-amongst the <i>Morice MSS.</i> in Dr. Williams’ library, under date
-April 25, “Far above one-half of the nobility made excuses, for one
-reason or another, and were absent.” “The noblemen were rather more
-than the ladies.”</p>
-
-<p>Amongst the <i>Baker MSS.</i>, Cambridge University Library, marked
-40–2, are notes concerning the Coronation Office by Archbishops Laud
-and Sancroft, with the Coronation Office at large, used by Archbishop
-Sancroft.</p>
-
-<p>“During the coronation of James, the crown not being properly fitted
-to his head, tottered. Henry Sidney, Keeper of the Robes, afterwards
-so famous for the mischiefs he brought upon James, kept it once from
-falling off, and said, with pleasantry to him, ‘This is not the first
-time our family has supported the Crown.’ This trifle was much remarked
-and talked of at the time; a sure mark that the minds of the people
-were under unusual agitations.”&mdash;<i>Dalrymple’s Memoirs</i>, i. 112.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_139" href="#FNanchor_139" class="label">[139]</a> <i>Evelyn.</i> 1685, May 10, 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_140" href="#FNanchor_140" class="label">[140]</a> From a MS. in the University Library, Cambridge. See
-<i>Appendix</i> to this volume.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_141" href="#FNanchor_141" class="label">[141]</a> It was proposed in Committee that the word
-<i>Reformed</i> religion should be inserted in the address, for the
-word <i>Protestant</i> was excepted against. Sir Thomas Meres said,
-“The word Protestant had been used in a good sense by well-meaning
-persons, but time and use change the nature of words. As knave formerly
-was an honourable title, but now signified a very ill man.”&mdash;<i>Entring
-Book</i>, June 4.&mdash;<i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_142" href="#FNanchor_142" class="label">[142]</a> Compare <i>Eachard</i>, <i>Kennet</i>, <i>Reresby</i>,
-<i>Barillon</i>, and <i>Fox</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_143" href="#FNanchor_143" class="label">[143]</a> See <i>Commons’ Journals</i>, May 27; <i>Parl.
-Hist.</i>, iv. 1358.</p>
-
-<p>“Lest the last words of this resolution should not make sufficient
-impression on James, the Speaker, when he presented the Revenue Bill,
-remarked, that the Commons had passed that Bill, without joining any
-Bill to it for the security of their religion, though <i>that was
-dearer to them than their lives</i>.”&mdash;<i>Dalrymple’s Memoirs</i>, i.
-133.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_144" href="#FNanchor_144" class="label">[144]</a> <i>Orme’s Life of Baxter</i>, 359.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_145" href="#FNanchor_145" class="label">[145]</a> The appearance of Sharp and Moore is mentioned in the
-<i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_146" href="#FNanchor_146" class="label">[146]</a> <i>Baxter MSS.</i>, Dr. Williams’ Library. Quoted by
-Orme, <i>Life of Baxter</i>, 363–366.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_147" href="#FNanchor_147" class="label">[147]</a> <i>Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time</i>, i. 649. For a
-report of the proceedings against Alicia Lisle and Elizabeth Gaunt, see
-<i>State Trials</i>, iv. 105, <i>et esq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_148" href="#FNanchor_148" class="label">[148]</a> <i>Hist. of the Revolution</i>, 31.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_149" href="#FNanchor_149" class="label">[149]</a> <i>Mackintosh’s Hist. of Revolution</i>, 159, where
-authorities are given.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_150" href="#FNanchor_150" class="label">[150]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 160; <i>Neal</i>, iv. 552, 554.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_151" href="#FNanchor_151" class="label">[151]</a> The story told about <i>White’s MS.</i> in <i>Neal</i>,
-iv. 555, does not appear to me at all probable.</p>
-
-<p>When persecution was at its height, extraordinary cases of escape
-occurred. Many a wonderful story is told of deliverances vouchsafed
-to suffering Dissenters, of which the following anecdote is a
-conspicuous example. Henry Havers, of Catherine Hall, Cambridge,
-had been ejected from the Rectory of Stambourne in Essex. Receiving
-friendly warning of an attempt to apprehend him, and finding the
-pursuers on his track, he sought refuge in a malt-house, and crept
-into the kiln. Immediately afterwards, he observed a spider fixing the
-first line of a large and beautiful web, across the narrow entrance.
-The web being placed directly between him and the light, he was so
-much struck with the skill of the insect weaver, that, for a while,
-he forgot his own imminent danger; but, by the time the network had
-crossed and re-crossed the mouth of the kiln in every direction,
-the pursuers came to search for their victim. He listened as they
-approached, and distinctly overheard one of them say, “It’s no use to
-look in <i>there</i>, the old villain can never be there. <i>Look at
-that spider’s web, he could never have got in there without breaking
-it.</i>” Giving up further search, they went to seek him elsewhere, and
-he escaped out of their hands.</p>
-
-<p>A similar narrative I find related in reference to Du Moulin, the
-French Protestant. It is impossible, after the lapse of two centuries,
-to ascertain the exact truth of such accounts. That incidents of the
-kind occurred I have no doubt; but whether they are attributed to the
-right persons, and are quite accurate in minute details, may admit of
-question.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_152" href="#FNanchor_152" class="label">[152]</a> Castlemaine wrote an apology for the
-Catholics.&mdash;<i>Butler’s English Cath.</i>, iii. 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_153" href="#FNanchor_153" class="label">[153]</a> I must refer to the pages of Macaulay and others, for
-the politics of the period. Of the theological debates in the presence
-of the King and the Earl of Rochester, there is a curious account in
-<i>Patrick’s Autobiography</i>, 107.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_154" href="#FNanchor_154" class="label">[154]</a> <i>Entring Book</i>, 1686, July 17, <i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_155" href="#FNanchor_155" class="label">[155]</a> <i>Abridgment</i>, 374.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_156" href="#FNanchor_156" class="label">[156]</a> <i>Entring Book</i>, 1686, June 26, <i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_157" href="#FNanchor_157" class="label">[157]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 1687, Jan. 1.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_158" href="#FNanchor_158" class="label">[158]</a> Compare, as to James’ designs, <i>Fox’s Hist. of James
-II.</i>, 332; <i>Hallam’s Const. Hist.</i> ii. 212; and <i>Mackintosh’s
-Hist. of Revolution</i>, chap. v.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_159" href="#FNanchor_159" class="label">[159]</a> Articles were exhibited against them “too scandalous
-to be repeated.” <i>Burnet’s Own Time</i>, i. 696; <i>D’Oyley’s Life
-of Sancroft</i>, i. 237. Sancroft consecrated these two worthless
-men at Lambeth Palace, the 17th October, 1686, from fear of a
-<i>premunire</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_160" href="#FNanchor_160" class="label">[160]</a> <i>Clarendon’s Correspondence</i>, i. 258.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_161" href="#FNanchor_161" class="label">[161]</a> “At Tonbridge Wells, this last summer, some company of
-condition, dining with Dr. Sherlock, amongst others the Doctor himself,
-talking of the great changes that had been in men and things these
-late years, even in his time, who was not old. Saith Mrs. Sherlock,
-his wife (who is a very brisk, sharp gentlewoman), ‘a greater instance
-thereof cannot be given, than yourself Doctor, for I have known you
-set up for a Sectary, a Presbyterian, a Papist, a Church of England
-man, but you never nickt your time right, nor turned seasonably, but
-when those respective interests were falling, and what you will turn to
-next, no man living knows. If ever I become a Papist, call me a knave,’
-whereupon the company smiled.”&mdash;<i>Entring Book</i>, 1686, August 9,
-<i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_162" href="#FNanchor_162" class="label">[162]</a> Printed in <i>State Trials</i>, iv. 243.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_163" href="#FNanchor_163" class="label">[163]</a> See <i>Evelyn’s Diary</i>, December 29, 1686.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_164" href="#FNanchor_164" class="label">[164]</a> The last of these facts comes to light in the <i>State
-Papers, Dom.</i> 1687, August 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_165" href="#FNanchor_165" class="label">[165]</a> <i>Mackintosh’s Hist. of Revolution</i>, 207.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_166" href="#FNanchor_166" class="label">[166]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 209. Mackintosh cites proofs from letters
-written by the King, the Queen, the Nuncio, and the French Minister.</p>
-
-<p>In the <i>Entring Book</i>, <i>Morice MSS.</i>, it is remarked, under
-date 1686, November 7&mdash;“The King told the Archbishop of York he
-depended upon his vote to take off the Test, and other penal laws from
-the Papists, for he remembered his lordship was against the making of
-the Test. The Archbishop answered, he hoped His Majesty would excuse
-him in that, and leave him to give his vote according to his judgment.
-It was true he <i>was</i> against the imposing of the Test, but the
-case was altered; for then the Papists’ interest was so little, that
-he thought it not (as others did) then necessary, but now the Papists’
-interest did so preponderate, that he thought it necessary to keep it
-on.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_167" href="#FNanchor_167" class="label">[167]</a> <i>Dalrymple’s Memoirs</i>, ii. 175.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_168" href="#FNanchor_168" class="label">[168]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, i. 166.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_169" href="#FNanchor_169" class="label">[169]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 157.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_170" href="#FNanchor_170" class="label">[170]</a> <i>Entring Book</i>, January 9, <i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_171" href="#FNanchor_171" class="label">[171]</a> <i>Macaulay</i>, ii. 337, 453; <i>Secretan’s Life of
-Nelson</i>, 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_172" href="#FNanchor_172" class="label">[172]</a> <i>Concilia</i>, iv. 612.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_173" href="#FNanchor_173" class="label">[173]</a> <i>Abridgment</i>, 373.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_174" href="#FNanchor_174" class="label">[174]</a> April 19/29, 1686. Quoted in <i>Macaulay</i>, ii. 375.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_175" href="#FNanchor_175" class="label">[175]</a> October 4, 1685. <i>Dalrymple</i>, ii. 177.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_176" href="#FNanchor_176" class="label">[176]</a> <i>Lingard</i>, xiii. 105. In the <i>Entring Book,
-Morice MSS.</i>, under date 1687, January 8, there are allusions to
-the anti-Jesuitical Papists, as uneasy at present proceedings&mdash;fearing
-lest by an ill-understanding between the King and the Prince of
-Orange, there should come a revolution, and Roman Catholics should be
-destroyed. It was still treason to be reconciled to the Church of Rome;
-and Papists might be convicted now by law, though twenty years after
-the fact. It was asked, if the King pardoned their past conversion,
-would not the continuance of their fellowship with the Romish Church be
-a continuance of treason?</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_177" href="#FNanchor_177" class="label">[177]</a> All this information I gather from the <i>Morice MSS.,
-Entring Book</i>, 1687, April 30; May 14, 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_178" href="#FNanchor_178" class="label">[178]</a> <i>Transcripts of Digby MSS.</i>, D.d., iii. 64, 57.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_179" href="#FNanchor_179" class="label">[179]</a> <i>London Gazette</i>, April 14.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_180" href="#FNanchor_180" class="label">[180]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, April 28.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_181" href="#FNanchor_181" class="label">[181]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, April 30.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_182" href="#FNanchor_182" class="label">[182]</a> <i>London Gazette</i>, June 11.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Macaulay is very severe upon Lobb. He certainly disgraced
-himself; but Wilson, in his <i>Dissenting Churches</i> (iii. 436),
-puts the whole case so as to modify the reader’s judgment. What may
-be said in palliation of Alsop’s conduct may be seen in <i>Calamy</i>
-(<i>Account</i>, ii. 488); but really Alsop’s address to James (see
-<i>Somers’ Tracts</i>, i. 236) is inexcusable. Alsop accepted an
-Alderman’s gown, and was called Alderman Alsop. His Lordship mentions
-also Henry Care and Thomas Rosewell amongst the tools of the Court.
-As to Henry Care, I cannot find that he was a Nonconformist minister;
-and as to Thomas Rosewell, there is not one word in the <i>State
-Trials</i>, or in his <i>Life</i> by his son, or in <i>Calamy’s
-Account</i> (the references made in his Lordship’s notes), to justify
-his statement in the text about Rosewell’s services being “secured.”
-No doubt much was done to court the Dissenters at this time, but the
-picture in <i>Macaulay’s Hist.</i> (ii. 474), is too highly coloured.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_183" href="#FNanchor_183" class="label">[183]</a> <i>London Gazette</i>, July 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_184" href="#FNanchor_184" class="label">[184]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, August 18.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_185" href="#FNanchor_185" class="label">[185]</a> <i>Dalrymple</i>, i. 169.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_186" href="#FNanchor_186" class="label">[186]</a> <i>Diary</i>, April 10, 1687.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_187" href="#FNanchor_187" class="label">[187]</a> It appears to me that no impartial person, who reads
-Macaulay’s defence of his own charges against Penn, in the last edition
-of the <i>History of England</i>, can fail to see how unsatisfactory
-are the arguments which he employs. The subject has been discussed
-afresh in the Spring number of the <i>Quarterly Review</i> for 1868.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_188" href="#FNanchor_188" class="label">[188]</a> When the sister of these youths presented a petition on
-their behalf, while waiting in the ante-chamber for admission to the
-Royal presence, Lord Churchill, standing near the chimney-piece, said,
-“Madam, I dare not flatter you with any such hopes, for that marble is
-as capable of feeling compassion as the King’s heart.”&mdash;<i>Kiffin’s
-Life</i>, quoted in <i>Wilson</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_189" href="#FNanchor_189" class="label">[189]</a> <i>Wilson’s Dissenting Churches</i>, i. 403–31.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_190" href="#FNanchor_190" class="label">[190]</a> <i>Clarendon’s Correspondence</i>, ii. 506.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_191" href="#FNanchor_191" class="label">[191]</a> <i>Autobiography of Sir John Bramston.</i>&mdash;<i>Camden
-Society</i>, p. 280.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_192" href="#FNanchor_192" class="label">[192]</a> <i>Autobiography of Sir John Bramston</i>, and <i>A Full
-and True Relation</i> of the Entry, reprinted in <i>Somers’ Tracts</i>,
-2nd Edition.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_193" href="#FNanchor_193" class="label">[193]</a> <i>State Trials</i>, iv. 250.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_194" href="#FNanchor_194" class="label">[194]</a> <i>State Trials</i>, 258, <i>et seq.</i> “Dr. Fairfax
-is a very modest, quiet-tempered man, of very few words, loves to be
-concerned in no public business, and offered great violence to his own
-temper, to appear now; but he has other apprehensions of the danger
-the Church and State are in, than formerly he had, and so is far more
-tender to the Dissenters for these last ten or twelve years than he was
-before.”&mdash;<i>Entring Book</i>, June 11. <i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_195" href="#FNanchor_195" class="label">[195]</a> Vol. iv. 265, <i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_196" href="#FNanchor_196" class="label">[196]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. James II.</i> 1867, Sept. 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_197" href="#FNanchor_197" class="label">[197]</a> <i>Life of James II.</i>, ii. 120.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_198" href="#FNanchor_198" class="label">[198]</a> “Penn went the progress with His Majesty, and earnestly
-pressed the King to let the business of Oxford fall; for, he said, it
-would prejudice his designs and purposes more than his Declaration had
-advanced them.”&mdash;<i>Entring Book</i>, Sept. 3, <i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_199" href="#FNanchor_199" class="label">[199]</a> <i>Neal</i>, iv. 588.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_200" href="#FNanchor_200" class="label">[200]</a> <i>Mackintosh</i>, 246.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_201" href="#FNanchor_201" class="label">[201]</a> See notice of Fowler’s writings in a subsequent chapter.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_202" href="#FNanchor_202" class="label">[202]</a> Salmon, in his <i>Lives</i>, p. 212, states that Lake
-was useful in the Church in maintaining order and decency, and tells a
-story of what he did on a Shrove Tuesday, when Archdeacon of Cleveland.
-He went from his seat in the choir, and pulled off the hats of a noisy
-mob, who afterwards insulted him, and attacked his house.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_203" href="#FNanchor_203" class="label">[203]</a> <i>Granger</i>, iv. 290.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_204" href="#FNanchor_204" class="label">[204]</a> <i>Life of Ken</i>, by a Layman, 142. An entry appears
-in the list of contributors to the rebuilding of St. Paul’s. “January
-26, 1684/5. Dr. Thomas Ken, Lord Bishop of Bath and Wells, in lieu of
-his consecration dinner and gloves, £100.” <i>Ibid.</i>, 148.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_205" href="#FNanchor_205" class="label">[205]</a> <i>Diary</i>, 1687, March 20; 1688, April 1. This sermon
-for its circumstances, ingenuity, eloquence, and power was one of the
-most remarkable ever preached.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_206" href="#FNanchor_206" class="label">[206]</a> <i>Hawkins’ Life of Ken</i>, 17, 99.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_207" href="#FNanchor_207" class="label">[207]</a> <i>Life of Ken</i>, by a Layman, 62, 207.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_208" href="#FNanchor_208" class="label">[208]</a> <i>Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time</i>, i. 424, 429, 434,
-446.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_209" href="#FNanchor_209" class="label">[209]</a> See Burnet’s account of Lloyd’s conduct in reference
-to Turbervill’s evidence against Lord Stafford. <i>Hist. of his Own
-Time</i>, i. 488. Neither Lloyd nor Burnet appear to advantage in this
-business.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_210" href="#FNanchor_210" class="label">[210]</a> <i>Philip Henry’s Life</i>, by Matthew Henry. Edited
-by Williams, p. 152. For particulars and remarks respecting Lloyd see
-<i>Wood, Burnet, Salmon, Mackintosh’s Hist. of Revolution, Wharton’s
-Life</i> in <i>Appendix to D’Oyley’s Sancroft</i>, and <i>Rees’
-Nonconformity in Wales</i>. There were two other Bishops of the same
-name. The following extract in the <i>Entring Book</i>, 1686, September
-25, <i>Morice MSS.</i>, refers to Dr. Lloyd, Bishop of Norwich: “He,
-at his first going down thither, gave great encouragement to religion,
-and set up evening exercises in his family upon the Lord’s Days, in the
-evening, and explained <i>The Whole Duty of Man</i>, and prayed and
-carried himself very respectfully to all. But of late, he has set a day
-for all Dissenters to come to the Sacrament, and if they do not come,
-then he will proceed against them with all severity. Many of his own
-way always had and still have bad thoughts of him.” The other Lloyd was
-Bishop of St. David’s, 1686–7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_211" href="#FNanchor_211" class="label">[211]</a> <i>D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft</i>, i. 263.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_212" href="#FNanchor_212" class="label">[212]</a> <i>Calamy’s Life</i>, i. 198.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_213" href="#FNanchor_213" class="label">[213]</a> <i>Perry’s Hist. of the Church of England</i>, ii. 510.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_214" href="#FNanchor_214" class="label">[214]</a> <i>State Papers</i>, 1682/3, Feb. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_215" href="#FNanchor_215" class="label">[215]</a> The significant Articles which he sent out to the clergy
-in July, 1688, will be considered in the next volume in connection with
-the ecclesiastical history of the Revolution.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_216" href="#FNanchor_216" class="label">[216]</a> <i>State Trials</i>, iv. 362. <i>Gutch Collect.
-Curiosa</i>, i. 335.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_217" href="#FNanchor_217" class="label">[217]</a> <i>Patrick’s Autobiography</i>, 134.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_218" href="#FNanchor_218" class="label">[218]</a> <i>D’Oyley’s Life of Sancroft</i>, i. 265–268.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_219" href="#FNanchor_219" class="label">[219]</a> <i>Evelyn</i>, ii. 285, May 20, 1688.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_220" href="#FNanchor_220" class="label">[220]</a> <i>Mackintosh</i>, 252. He observes, “perhaps the
-smaller number refers to parochial clergy and the larger to those of
-every denomination.” We are not aware that other denominations did read
-it.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_221" href="#FNanchor_221" class="label">[221]</a> Buckden, May 29, 1688, <i>Baker MSS.</i>, Cambridge
-University Library.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_222" href="#FNanchor_222" class="label">[222]</a> In <i>James’s Memoirs</i>, ii. 158, the foolish step of
-committing the Bishops is attributed to Jeffrey’s influence, and it is
-added, “When the veil was taken off,” the King “owned it to have been a
-fatal counsel.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_223" href="#FNanchor_223" class="label">[223]</a> <i>Reresby’s Memoirs</i>, 347.</p>
-
-<p>“Sir Edward Hales, Lieutenant of the Tower, invited the Bishops to
-dine on Lord’s Day; but being to receive the sacrament that day, they
-desired to be excused. He sent them half a buck, and knowing that they
-would be at church on Lord’s Day, being now sufferers, he, on Saturday
-night, told Dr. Hawkins he had an express command to deliver to him
-from the King, to read the Declaration in the Tower Church the next
-Lord’s Day following. Hawkins, after expressing the most abject kind
-of loyalty, refused.”&mdash;<i>Entring Book</i>, 1688, June 9, <i>Morice
-MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_224" href="#FNanchor_224" class="label">[224]</a> <i>Entring Book</i>, 1688, June 9, <i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_225" href="#FNanchor_225" class="label">[225]</a> <i>Gazette</i>, May 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_226" href="#FNanchor_226" class="label">[226]</a> <i>Mackintosh’s Hist. of the Revolution</i>, 253; also,
-<i>Ibid.</i>, <i>D’Adda</i>, 1/11 June.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_227" href="#FNanchor_227" class="label">[227]</a> <i>D’Adda</i>, 15/22 June; <i>Mackintosh</i>, 262.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_228" href="#FNanchor_228" class="label">[228]</a> <i>State Trials</i>, iv; <i>D’Oyley</i>, i. 297. The
-first part of the defence was entrusted to Sawyer. That part which
-related to the dispensing power was in the hands of Finch.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_229" href="#FNanchor_229" class="label">[229]</a> <i>Reresby</i>, 348. A letter of Barillon (12 Juillet)
-leaves no room for doubt as to the reason of their discharge.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_230" href="#FNanchor_230" class="label">[230]</a> <i>Hunter’s Life of Oliver Heywood</i>, 163, 187, 219.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_231" href="#FNanchor_231" class="label">[231]</a> <i>Life of Oliver Heywood</i>, 235.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_232" href="#FNanchor_232" class="label">[232]</a> <i>Hunter’s Life of Heywood</i>, 244.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_233" href="#FNanchor_233" class="label">[233]</a> <i>Hunter’s Life of Heywood</i>, 285–6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_234" href="#FNanchor_234" class="label">[234]</a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 600.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_235" href="#FNanchor_235" class="label">[235]</a> For preparations made in Oliver’s lifetime with a view
-to this meeting, see <i>Church of the Commonwealth</i>, 514. For a
-notice of the place of meeting, see the third volume of this history
-(<i>Church of the Restoration</i>, i.).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_236" href="#FNanchor_236" class="label">[236]</a> The Savoy Declaration is printed in <i>Hanbury’s
-Memorials</i>. Most of the passages I have given are abridged.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_237" href="#FNanchor_237" class="label">[237]</a> Mather remarks, “There is no Congregational man,
-but he reports to the Church something of what the person desiring
-communion with them has related to him, which the Presbyterian
-does not, only declares his own satisfaction, and giveth the
-brethren a liberty to object against the conversation of the
-<i>admittendi</i>.”&mdash;<i>Magnalia</i>, ii. 61. Such reports may be found
-in the <i>Choice Experience of Mrs. Rebecca Combe, and Mrs. Gertrude
-Clarkson</i>, printed in <i>An Abstract of the Gracious Dealings of
-God, &amp;c.</i>, by Samuel James.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_238" href="#FNanchor_238" class="label">[238]</a> <i>Life of Heywood</i>, 238.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_239" href="#FNanchor_239" class="label">[239]</a> <i>Works</i>, xxi. 547.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_240" href="#FNanchor_240" class="label">[240]</a> <i>Works</i>, v. 46.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_241" href="#FNanchor_241" class="label">[241]</a> <i>Works</i>, xi. 452.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_242" href="#FNanchor_242" class="label">[242]</a> Some very high views and strong expressions may be found
-in <i>Jacomb’s Dedication</i>, 136.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_243" href="#FNanchor_243" class="label">[243]</a> <i>Baillie’s Letters and Journals.</i> <i>Gould’s
-Introduction to the Report of St. Mary’s Norwich Chapel Case</i> cxiv.
-<i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_244" href="#FNanchor_244" class="label">[244]</a> I refer to what Crosby says of Mr. Spilsbury’s Church
-(i. 148; iii. 41). A number seceded from Mr. Jessy’s Church in 1638,
-1641, and 1643, and became Baptists before he did.&mdash;<i>Crosby</i>, i.
-310.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_245" href="#FNanchor_245" class="label">[245]</a> <i>Gould</i>, xxviii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_246" href="#FNanchor_246" class="label">[246]</a> See generally upon this subject <i>Underhill’s
-Confessions of Faith</i>, and <i>Gould’s Introduction to St. Mary’s
-Case</i>. The latter writer, who has carefully studied the subject,
-says, “The history of the Baptists in England has yet to be written.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_247" href="#FNanchor_247" class="label">[247]</a> See p. 75 of this vol.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_248" href="#FNanchor_248" class="label">[248]</a> <i>State Papers</i>, 1676, April 8. Appended to this
-document is an unsigned letter, addressed to the same person, whose
-name was Warner, expostulating with him for absenting himself from
-communion, because he was dissatisfied with the writer.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_249" href="#FNanchor_249" class="label">[249]</a> The history of the controversy is itself a subject
-of controversy. I cannot notice it. The question is ably argued on
-both sides in the <i>Report of St. Mary’s Norwich Chapel Case</i>.
-The character and limits of this work prevent me from entering more
-fully into Baptist affairs. The most learned representatives of that
-denomination seem to be dissatisfied with all the books which relate
-their own history.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_250" href="#FNanchor_250" class="label">[250]</a> <i>Broadmead Records</i>, 189–221, 458, 459.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_251" href="#FNanchor_251" class="label">[251]</a> <i>Hist. of Friends</i>, ii. 448 and 442.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_252" href="#FNanchor_252" class="label">[252]</a> <i>Pope’s Life of Ward.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_253" href="#FNanchor_253" class="label">[253]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, i. 296, 279.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_254" href="#FNanchor_254" class="label">[254]</a> <i>Barwick’s Life</i>, 302. I find the following in the
-Cambridge University Library:&mdash;“Negotium Consecrationis Sacelli palatio
-Episcopali Norw. pertinentis.”</p>
-
-<p>“May 16, 1672. The chapel was built and adorned at Bp. Reynolds’
-expense, having been demolished in the Civil War. Consecration of the
-reading-desk, pulpit, and altar. Sermon by Jno. Conant, D.D., the
-Bishop’s son-in-law, the Bishop being disabled by illness.”&mdash;<i>Baker
-MSS.</i>, 40, 5. Cat. v. 478.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_255" href="#FNanchor_255" class="label">[255]</a> <i>D’Oyley’s Life</i>, i. 145. Reynolds, Bishop of
-Norwich, zealously assisted.&mdash;<i>Blomefield</i>, i. 585.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_256" href="#FNanchor_256" class="label">[256]</a> <i>Webster’s Poetical and Dramatic Works</i>, i. 274.
-<i>Duchess of Malfey</i>, a tragedy published in 1623.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_257" href="#FNanchor_257" class="label">[257]</a> <i>John Evelyn’s Diary.</i> 1684, Dec. 7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_258" href="#FNanchor_258" class="label">[258]</a> <i>Entring Book</i>, March 3, 1681, <i>Morice MSS.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_259" href="#FNanchor_259" class="label">[259]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i> Entry of
-Ecclesiastical business. 1670, July 27.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_260" href="#FNanchor_260" class="label">[260]</a> <i>Evelyn.</i> 1677, Sept. 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_261" href="#FNanchor_261" class="label">[261]</a> <i>Cosin’s Works</i>, iv. 381.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_262" href="#FNanchor_262" class="label">[262]</a> <i>Articles of Visitation</i>, in Appendix to Report of
-the Commission on Ritual. Most of these requirements were in compliance
-with the Canons of 1603.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_263" href="#FNanchor_263" class="label">[263]</a> <i>Naked Truth.</i> <i>Somers’ Tracts</i>, iii. 346.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_264" href="#FNanchor_264" class="label">[264]</a> <i>Lives of North</i>, i. 279.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_265" href="#FNanchor_265" class="label">[265]</a> <i>State Papers.</i> Osborne to Williamson, March 27,
-1675.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_266" href="#FNanchor_266" class="label">[266]</a> <i>Lathbury’s Convocation</i>, 309.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_267" href="#FNanchor_267" class="label">[267]</a> <i>Blomefield’s Norwich</i>, i. 413.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_268" href="#FNanchor_268" class="label">[268]</a> <i>Ashmole’s Order of the Garter</i>, 357, 542.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_269" href="#FNanchor_269" class="label">[269]</a> <i>Sandford’s Funeral of Monk.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_270" href="#FNanchor_270" class="label">[270]</a> <i>Evelyn.</i> 1684, March 30.</p>
-
-<p>In Sancroft’s form of “Dedication and Consecration of a Church or
-Chapel, 1685,” this direction is found:&mdash;“So likewise, when a censer is
-presented and received, they say, ‘While the King sitteth at his table,
-my spikenard sendeth forth the smell thereof,’” &amp;c. In the <i>MS. Life
-of Ashmole</i>, Ashmole Museum, Oxford, he says&mdash;1675, Jan. 6&mdash;“I wore
-the chain of gold sent me from the King of Denmark before the King in
-his proceeding to the chapel to offer gold, frankincense, and myrrh.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_271" href="#FNanchor_271" class="label">[271]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, i. 296.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_272" href="#FNanchor_272" class="label">[272]</a> <i>Wilkins’ Concilia</i>, iv. 590. June 4, 1670.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_273" href="#FNanchor_273" class="label">[273]</a> <i>Naked Truth.</i> <i>Somers’ Tracts</i>, iii. 347.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_274" href="#FNanchor_274" class="label">[274]</a> From an autograph letter addressed to Sancroft, shown
-in 1862 at an exhibition of autographs in the Institution of the
-Incorporated Law Society. See Catalogue.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_275" href="#FNanchor_275" class="label">[275]</a> <i>Articles</i> of Fuller, Bishop of Lincoln, 1671.
-Appendix to Second Report of Commission on Ritual, 641.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_276" href="#FNanchor_276" class="label">[276]</a> They are computed by the writer of <i>The Future Happy
-State of England</i> (109) as having amounted, in 1660, to between
-£300,000 and £500,000 a year. The annual revenue of the whole nation he
-puts down at eight millions.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_277" href="#FNanchor_277" class="label">[277]</a> <i>Stowe.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_278" href="#FNanchor_278" class="label">[278]</a> <i>Chamberlayne’s Angliæ Notitia.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_279" href="#FNanchor_279" class="label">[279]</a> <i>Wood</i>, iv. 311. There is in the Record Office
-(1678, May) a petition from Croft, Bishop of Hereford, in which he says
-the bishopric is not worth, in rents, £700 a year. In sixteen years
-he had not raised £2,000 in fines. There is also a letter from Bishop
-Barlow (Oxford, May 29, 1675), in which he writes, “Fees, first-fruits,
-&amp;c., will cost me £2,000 or £1,500 before I shall receive a penny from
-the bishopric.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_280" href="#FNanchor_280" class="label">[280]</a> <i>Granger’s Lives</i>, iii. 235.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_281" href="#FNanchor_281" class="label">[281]</a> Notice of Morley in <i>Life of Ken</i>, 138, and <i>Le
-Neve</i>, 192. According to another computation, Sheldon gave away
-£72,000.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_282" href="#FNanchor_282" class="label">[282]</a> <i>Life, by Pope</i>, 57–63.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_283" href="#FNanchor_283" class="label">[283]</a> <i>Life of Sancroft</i>, i. 147. <i>State
-Papers&mdash;Entring Book.</i> Ecclesiastical business, 1670–4. 1670, 13th
-June.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_284" href="#FNanchor_284" class="label">[284]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i> 1678, May.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_285" href="#FNanchor_285" class="label">[285]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, i. 289.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_286" href="#FNanchor_286" class="label">[286]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i> 1667, Sept. 30.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_287" href="#FNanchor_287" class="label">[287]</a> Dec. 18, 1669.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_288" href="#FNanchor_288" class="label">[288]</a> March 12, 1672.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_289" href="#FNanchor_289" class="label">[289]</a> <i>State Papers</i>, April 27, 1675.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_290" href="#FNanchor_290" class="label">[290]</a> <i>Dom. Charles II.</i> April, 1675.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_291" href="#FNanchor_291" class="label">[291]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i> Wood says (<i>Ath.
-Ox.</i> iv. 334), “On the 22nd of April, 1675, being the very day that
-Dr. Fuller, Bishop of Lincoln, died, after several discussions that
-passed between His Majesty, and certain persons of honour then present,
-concerning the person to be preferred, Dr. Barlow was introduced
-into the presence of His Majesty, and had the grant of that see,
-and forthwith kissed His Majesty’s hand for the same.” Coventry and
-Williamson were his friends.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_292" href="#FNanchor_292" class="label">[292]</a> Parliamentary Return on <i>Ecclesiastical Appeals</i>,
-ordered by the House of Commons April 3, 1868, p. xxviii.&mdash;<i>Oughton’s
-Ordo Judiciorum</i>, vol. i. 219, <i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_293" href="#FNanchor_293" class="label">[293]</a> Act of 25th Henry VIII., c. 19, 1533.&mdash;<i>Parl.
-Return</i>, p. iii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_294" href="#FNanchor_294" class="label">[294]</a> <i>Parl. Return</i>, p. xxx.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_295" href="#FNanchor_295" class="label">[295]</a> There were two Commissions on this case: the first
-contained four Bishops and ten laymen&mdash;the second, five Bishops and ten
-laymen.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_296" href="#FNanchor_296" class="label">[296]</a> There are papers relating to him in the Record
-Office.&mdash;<i>Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1673, October.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_297" href="#FNanchor_297" class="label">[297]</a> The cases are given in the <i>Parliamentary Return</i>;
-they are numbered:&mdash;53, William Duncke; 74, Edward Hirst (there are
-three other cases for not resorting to parish church, 53, 70, and 76;)
-78, Catherine Gounter; 82, Jonathan Rutter. Duncke and Rutter were
-excommunicated.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_298" href="#FNanchor_298" class="label">[298]</a> <i>Return</i>, p. viii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_299" href="#FNanchor_299" class="label">[299]</a> <i>Salmon’s Lives of the Bishops</i>, 310.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_300" href="#FNanchor_300" class="label">[300]</a> I am not sure of the date in the 17th century when the
-Hall was so used. A fine copy of <i>Baxter’s Christian Directory</i> is
-preserved in Dr. Williams’ Library, and is said to have been chained
-to some part of the porch of the great meeting-house in the City of
-Coventry.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_301" href="#FNanchor_301" class="label">[301]</a> <i>Offor’s Life of Bunyan, Works</i>, iii. lxix.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_302" href="#FNanchor_302" class="label">[302]</a> <i>Thoresby.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_303" href="#FNanchor_303" class="label">[303]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1674, Nov. 4.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_304" href="#FNanchor_304" class="label">[304]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom. Charles II.</i>, 1674, Feb. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_305" href="#FNanchor_305" class="label">[305]</a> I find these anecdotes in a <i>MS. History of the
-Suffolk Churches</i>, by the Rev. T. Harmer, author of <i>Observations
-on Scripture</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_306" href="#FNanchor_306" class="label">[306]</a> <i>History of England</i>, i. 294.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_307" href="#FNanchor_307" class="label">[307]</a> The author, however, considers that the Bishops’ survey
-came far below the mark,&mdash;he mentions a conjectural estimate of eight
-millions.&mdash;<i>Happy Future, &amp;c.</i>, 116.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_308" href="#FNanchor_308" class="label">[308]</a> <i>Happy Future, &amp;c.</i>, 281.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_309" href="#FNanchor_309" class="label">[309]</a> <i>Dalrymple’s Memoirs</i>, Appendix, ii. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_310" href="#FNanchor_310" class="label">[310]</a> <i>Happy Future, &amp;c.</i>, 150.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_311" href="#FNanchor_311" class="label">[311]</a> <i>Pope’s Life of Ward</i>, 148.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_312" href="#FNanchor_312" class="label">[312]</a> <i>Pope’s Life of Ward</i>, 148.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_313" href="#FNanchor_313" class="label">[313]</a> James II. said at Oxford, “he heard many of them used
-notes in their sermons, but none of his Church ever did.”&mdash;<i>Wood</i>,
-quoted in <i>Southey’s Common-Place Book</i>, iii. 496. The early
-Puritans greatly disliked read sermons. See <i>Hooker (Keble)</i>, ii.
-107.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_314" href="#FNanchor_314" class="label">[314]</a> <i>Howe’s Works</i>, vi. 295.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_315" href="#FNanchor_315" class="label">[315]</a> <i>Life</i>, 419. This was Bull’s advice after he became
-a Bishop in 1705.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_316" href="#FNanchor_316" class="label">[316]</a> <i>Wood, Ath. Ox.</i>&mdash;Ed. Bliss. iv. 619.&mdash;See at the
-end of chapter xii. the Chancellor’s injunctions.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_317" href="#FNanchor_317" class="label">[317]</a> <i>Worcester MS.</i> 1660, May 14. <i>State Papers</i>,
-1666, Jan. 30.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_318" href="#FNanchor_318" class="label">[318]</a> <i>Williams’ Life of Hale</i>, 106.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_319" href="#FNanchor_319" class="label">[319]</a> <i>Kennet’s Register</i>, 154.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_320" href="#FNanchor_320" class="label">[320]</a> These instances are gathered from the <i>State
-Papers</i> and the works of Sir Thomas Browne.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_321" href="#FNanchor_321" class="label">[321]</a> <i>Diary and Correspondence of Dr. John Worthington</i>,
-i. 360, August 20, 1661. Samuel Hartlib was the son of a Polish refugee
-who lived in Prussia. He came to England in 1630, and devoted his time
-and fortune to the promotion of literature and science. Milton speaks
-highly of him in his <i>Treatise on Education</i>. Hartlib was reduced
-to poverty soon after the Restoration.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_322" href="#FNanchor_322" class="label">[322]</a> <i>Worthington’s Reply</i>, ii., Sept. 12, 1661.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_323" href="#FNanchor_323" class="label">[323]</a> <i>Hunter’s Life of Heywood</i>, 162.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_324" href="#FNanchor_324" class="label">[324]</a> <i>Hunter’s Life of Heywood</i>, 219, 252, 204.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_325" href="#FNanchor_325" class="label">[325]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 254.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_326" href="#FNanchor_326" class="label">[326]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 192.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_327" href="#FNanchor_327" class="label">[327]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 277.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_328" href="#FNanchor_328" class="label">[328]</a> <i>Hunter’s Life of Heywood</i>, 276.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_329" href="#FNanchor_329" class="label">[329]</a> Dean Stanley informs me, that his father, the Bishop of
-Norwich, delighted to relate this anecdote of the connection between
-his ancestors and Oliver Heywood.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_330" href="#FNanchor_330" class="label">[330]</a> <i>Life of Philip Henry</i>, 120.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_331" href="#FNanchor_331" class="label">[331]</a> <i>Turner’s Hist. of Remarkable Providences</i>, ch.
-lxv. p. 80.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_332" href="#FNanchor_332" class="label">[332]</a> <i>Life of Heywood</i>, 215, 331.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_333" href="#FNanchor_333" class="label">[333]</a> For the knowledge of this tradition, I am indebted to
-Mr. Parker, of Wycombe.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_334" href="#FNanchor_334" class="label">[334]</a> <i>Howe’s Works</i>, ii. 362, 369.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_335" href="#FNanchor_335" class="label">[335]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, iv. 3, 47.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_336" href="#FNanchor_336" class="label">[336]</a> <i>Life of Heywood</i>, 290.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_337" href="#FNanchor_337" class="label">[337]</a> From an account entitled <i>The Singular Experience and
-Great Sufferings of Mrs. Agnes Beaumont</i>, printed in <i>An Abstract
-of the Gracious Dealings of God, &amp;c.</i> Edited by Samuel James. 4th
-Edit., 1774, p. 83.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_338" href="#FNanchor_338" class="label">[338]</a> <i>Life by Dr. Pope.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_339" href="#FNanchor_339" class="label">[339]</a> <i>Pope’s Life of Ward.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_340" href="#FNanchor_340" class="label">[340]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, iii. 323, 324.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_341" href="#FNanchor_341" class="label">[341]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, i. 275.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_342" href="#FNanchor_342" class="label">[342]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, i. 242.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_343" href="#FNanchor_343" class="label">[343]</a> Heneage Finch to his sister.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, Feb.
-10, 1671/2.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_344" href="#FNanchor_344" class="label">[344]</a> <i>Sabbatum Redivivum</i>, ii. 37.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_345" href="#FNanchor_345" class="label">[345]</a> <i>Works</i>, iii. 102. Baxter’s doctrine was that the
-Jewish Sabbath was abrogated, and that the Lord’s Day was instituted by
-Divine authority.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, xiii. 369, <i>et seq.</i> According to
-Orme, there is only another writer of the same period with Baxter who
-takes just the same view of the subject, and almost the same ground. He
-alludes to <i>Warren’s Jews’ Sabbath Antiquated</i>, 1659.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_346" href="#FNanchor_346" class="label">[346]</a> <i>Exposition of the Hebrews</i>, ii. 453.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_347" href="#FNanchor_347" class="label">[347]</a> <i>Taylor’s Works</i>, xii. 437.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_348" href="#FNanchor_348" class="label">[348]</a> <i>Thorndike’s Works</i>, vi. 73; iv. 483–507.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_349" href="#FNanchor_349" class="label">[349]</a> Cases of Conscience, <i>Sanderson’s Works</i>, v. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_350" href="#FNanchor_350" class="label">[350]</a> <i>Cosin’s Works</i>, i. 188.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_351" href="#FNanchor_351" class="label">[351]</a> <i>Annals of Windsor</i>, ii. 404.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_352" href="#FNanchor_352" class="label">[352]</a> Hooker paints the sacred year in magnificent
-colours.&mdash;Book V., c. lxx., s. 8.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_353" href="#FNanchor_353" class="label">[353]</a> <i>Newcome’s Diary.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_354" href="#FNanchor_354" class="label">[354]</a> Reeve’s Charity at Windsor is an example.&mdash;<i>Annals of
-Windsor</i>, ii. 370.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_355" href="#FNanchor_355" class="label">[355]</a> <i>Blomefield</i>, i. 412.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_356" href="#FNanchor_356" class="label">[356]</a> <i>Faulkener’s History of Chelsea</i>, 153.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_357" href="#FNanchor_357" class="label">[357]</a> Tillotson’s funeral sermon for Mr. Gouge, 62–64.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_358" href="#FNanchor_358" class="label">[358]</a> <i>Life of Thomas Firman, late Citizen of London</i>,
-1698.</p>
-
-<p>Wesley prefaces the life of Firman in the <i>Arminian Magazine</i>
-with these words: “I was exceedingly struck at reading the following
-life, having long settled it in my mind that the entertaining wrong
-notions concerning the Trinity was inconsistent with real piety.
-But I cannot argue against matter of fact. I dare not deny that Mr.
-Firman was a pious man, although his notions of the Trinity were quite
-erroneous.”&mdash;<i>Southey’s Life of Wesley</i>, ii. 68.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_359" href="#FNanchor_359" class="label">[359]</a> <i>Life and Times</i>, pt. ii. 296–7.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_360" href="#FNanchor_360" class="label">[360]</a> <i>Birch’s Life of Boyle</i>, Appendix. The New England
-Company is still in existence. I hope to be able to give some account
-of its proceedings in a future volume.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_361" href="#FNanchor_361" class="label">[361]</a> The College referred to was Emmanuel.&mdash;<i>D’Oyley’s Life
-of Sancroft</i> i. 128.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_362" href="#FNanchor_362" class="label">[362]</a> “The gradual exclusion of mental by physical science
-from the circle of ‘philosophy’ as defined in the Cambridge Schools,
-belongs to the first half of the 18th, not of the 17th century,”
-says the author of <i>Thorndike’s Life</i>, but he justly adds that
-in the 17th century ancient philosophy and languages were yielding
-“to the continually-increasing influence of mathematics and natural
-philosophy.”&mdash;<i>Works</i>, vi. 166.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_363" href="#FNanchor_363" class="label">[363]</a> <i>State Papers, Dom.</i>, 1667, Cal. 301.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_364" href="#FNanchor_364" class="label">[364]</a> <i>North’s Lives</i>, iii. 362–367.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_365" href="#FNanchor_365" class="label">[365]</a> <i>Cooper’s Annals</i>, iii. 549.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_366" href="#FNanchor_366" class="label">[366]</a> Dated Oct. 8, 1674.&mdash;<i>Wilkins’ Concilia</i>, iv. 594.
-Letters referring to Monmouth’s election as Chancellor, may be found
-amongst the <i>State Papers</i>, (1674,) and a characteristic one from
-the Duke, accepting this office in Lambeth Library, <i>Tenison MSS.</i>
-674, fol. 5.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_367" href="#FNanchor_367" class="label">[367]</a> Printed Copy of the programme in Latin:&mdash;“Quod se
-unusquisque, post sex hebdomodas abhinc numerandas, coram Academicis
-Concionem, sive Anglice, sive Latine habiturus, Illam, more majorum,
-a principio ad finem, memoriter recitare tenebitur; ita ut, vel non
-omnino, vel saltem perraro, nec nisi carptim, et stringente oculo,
-librum consulere opus habeat.”&mdash;<i>State Papers, Dom.</i>, 1674, Nov.
-24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_368" href="#FNanchor_368" class="label">[368]</a> <i>Dom. Charles II.</i> 1666, Aug. 16, 17. There is
-a curious letter, dated 1677, July 23, written by Joseph Addison’s
-father, Launcelot Addison, begging preferment.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_369" href="#FNanchor_369" class="label">[369]</a> <i>Autobiography of A. Wood</i>, quoted <i>Oxoniana</i>,
-ii. 23.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_370" href="#FNanchor_370" class="label">[370]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 89.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_371" href="#FNanchor_371" class="label">[371]</a> Letter from Dr. Wallis, July, 1669, <i>Neal</i>, iv.
-423.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_372" href="#FNanchor_372" class="label">[372]</a> <i>State Papers.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_373" href="#FNanchor_373" class="label">[373]</a> The letters are dated 1684, Nov. 6, 8, 12, 16,
-<i>Oxoniana</i>, ii. 205–210.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_374" href="#FNanchor_374" class="label">[374]</a> See the Writings of William Penn.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_375" href="#FNanchor_375" class="label">[375]</a> <i>Life, Works</i>, vi. 176, <i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_376" href="#FNanchor_376" class="label">[376]</a> <i>Works</i>, ii. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_377" href="#FNanchor_377" class="label">[377]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, ii. 88–100.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_378" href="#FNanchor_378" class="label">[378]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, v. 488.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_379" href="#FNanchor_379" class="label">[379]</a> <i>Works</i>, i. 118; iii. 246.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_380" href="#FNanchor_380" class="label">[380]</a> Vol. ii. 424, 409, 471, 564.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_381" href="#FNanchor_381" class="label">[381]</a> Vol. iii. 68, 80, 128. It is well to recollect, all
-through this account of the Anglo-Catholic view of faith, what is the
-doctrine of Roman Catholics upon the subject&mdash;“Jam vero Catholici
-agnoscunt quidem vocabulum fidei, in divinis literis non semper
-uno, et eodem modo sumi ... tamen fidem historicam, et miraculorum,
-et promissionum, unam et eandem esse docent, atque illam unam non
-esse proprie notitiam, aut fiduciam, sed assensum certum, atque
-firmissimum, ob auctoritatem primæ veritatis; et hanc unam esse fidem
-justificantem.”&mdash;<i>Bellarmin, De Justificatione</i>, c. iv.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_382" href="#FNanchor_382" class="label">[382]</a> Vol. iii. 173, 355.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_383" href="#FNanchor_383" class="label">[383]</a> Vol. iii. 313.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_384" href="#FNanchor_384" class="label">[384]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 393, 496.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_385" href="#FNanchor_385" class="label">[385]</a> Vol. iii. 541-547; chap. xxviii.–xxx.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_386" href="#FNanchor_386" class="label">[386]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 649.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_387" href="#FNanchor_387" class="label">[387]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 660.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_388" href="#FNanchor_388" class="label">[388]</a> Any one who wishes to verify this may do so by
-consulting the useful index to the Oxford Edition of <i>Thorndike’s
-Works</i>. It is interesting and instructive, in connection with
-the study of Thorndike, to read the deeply thoughtful sermon on
-Justification by Hooker (<i>Works</i>, iii.). The divergence between
-them is manifest. Thorndike could not consistently hold Hooker’s clear
-view of justification, as distinguished from holiness. It may not be
-amiss here to observe that the doctrine of justification by faith,
-though tenaciously held by the Puritans, was not held by them alone.
-It was maintained by Reformers who opposed Puritanism, and by some
-Roman Catholics before the Council of Trent. There were anti-Lutherans
-who so far agreed with Luther. Whether they were consistent is another
-question.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_389" href="#FNanchor_389" class="label">[389]</a> Vol. iii. 695.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_390" href="#FNanchor_390" class="label">[390]</a> <i>Life of Thorndike</i>, 224, 253.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_391" href="#FNanchor_391" class="label">[391]</a> <i>Nelson’s Life of Bull</i>, 24.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_392" href="#FNanchor_392" class="label">[392]</a> <i>Harmonia Apostolica</i>, 10.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_393" href="#FNanchor_393" class="label">[393]</a> <i>Harmonia Apostolica</i>, 21, 22.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_394" href="#FNanchor_394" class="label">[394]</a> <i>Harmonia Apostolica</i>, 58, 71, 76, 87–166.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_395" href="#FNanchor_395" class="label">[395]</a> This quotation is taken from the <i>Tracts for the
-Times</i>, iv. 63. The words in <i>Bull’s Apology</i>, sect. i., are
-not closely followed.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_396" href="#FNanchor_396" class="label">[396]</a> <i>Nelson’s Life of Bull</i>, 191.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_397" href="#FNanchor_397" class="label">[397]</a> <i>Bull’s Exam. Cens., &amp;c.</i>, Oxford Edit., 38–91.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_398" href="#FNanchor_398" class="label">[398]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 228.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_399" href="#FNanchor_399" class="label">[399]</a> Preface to <i>Exam. Cens.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_400" href="#FNanchor_400" class="label">[400]</a> See for example his defence of Origen, <i>Def.
-Fid.</i>, i. 190, 196, 200. Notice, also, what Hallam says of Bull,
-<i>Introduction to Lit.</i>, iv. 152. Hooker (in the <i>Eccl.
-Polity</i>, book v. s. 42) speaks of the Deity of our Lord Jesus
-Christ&mdash;the co-equality and co-eternity of the Son with the Father&mdash;as
-contained but not opened in the former Creed (the Apostles’). I would
-call attention to a pregnant remark of that great Divine:&mdash;“Howbeit,
-because this Divine mystery is more true than plain, divers having
-framed the same to their own conceits and fancies, are found in their
-expositions thereof more plain than true.”&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>, s. 52. May I
-add, that he seems to forget his own remarks in s. 56.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_401" href="#FNanchor_401" class="label">[401]</a> <i>Bull’s State of Man</i>, ii. 96; <i>Jackson</i>, iii.
-117; <i>Ellicott’s Destiny of the Creature</i>, 172.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_402" href="#FNanchor_402" class="label">[402]</a> <i>Theologia Veterum</i>, 407.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_403" href="#FNanchor_403" class="label">[403]</a> The word <i>being</i> is used by Pearson and Heylyn in
-the same way as we use the word <i>since</i>. The quotation is from
-p. 251, in the 12th fol. edit. of <i>Pearson’s Exposition</i>. For
-Heylyn’s opinions, see <i>Theol. Vet.</i>, 255. The contrast between
-the tone of Pearson and Heylyn is very striking.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_404" href="#FNanchor_404" class="label">[404]</a> <i>Works</i>, ii. 241-255.&mdash;<i>Life of Christ</i>, first
-published in 1649, afterwards “with additionals,” 1653.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_405" href="#FNanchor_405" class="label">[405]</a> <i>Taylor’s Works</i>, ix. 424.&mdash;<i>Real Presence</i>,
-1654.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_406" href="#FNanchor_406" class="label">[406]</a> See Sect. iii. iv. v. vi. of the <i>Real Presence</i>,
-ix. 436, <i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_407" href="#FNanchor_407" class="label">[407]</a> <i>Taylor’s Works</i>, i., p. ccxxviii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_408" href="#FNanchor_408" class="label">[408]</a> <i>Taylor’s Works</i>, vi. 271. <i>Sermons.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_409" href="#FNanchor_409" class="label">[409]</a> <i>Taylor’s Works</i>, ii. 323.&mdash;<i>Life of Christ.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_410" href="#FNanchor_410" class="label">[410]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, vi. 279.&mdash;<i>Sermons.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_411" href="#FNanchor_411" class="label">[411]</a> <i>Taylor’s Works</i>, vii. 444.&mdash;<i>Liberty of
-Prophesying</i>, 1647.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_412" href="#FNanchor_412" class="label">[412]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 445.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_413" href="#FNanchor_413" class="label">[413]</a> <i>Works</i>, i. ccxi.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_414" href="#FNanchor_414" class="label">[414]</a> <i>Life</i>, clxxxiii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_415" href="#FNanchor_415" class="label">[415]</a> <i>Hooker’s Works</i>, book iii., sect. 3.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_416" href="#FNanchor_416" class="label">[416]</a> <i>Life</i>, clxxxv.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_417" href="#FNanchor_417" class="label">[417]</a> <i>Cosin’s Works</i>, vol. v., pref. xix.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_418" href="#FNanchor_418" class="label">[418]</a> <i>Bingham</i>, in his <i>Antiquities</i> (v. 358,
-<i>et seq.</i>), expends much learning upon proofs that the Fathers
-believed in the continued substantial presence of bread and wine. In
-<i>Hooker</i>, there is a clear description of the Anglican view as
-distinguished from other views.&mdash;<i>Eccl. Polity</i>, v.c. lv., &amp;c.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_419" href="#FNanchor_419" class="label">[419]</a> “Nam multi ex antiquissimis patribus, ut Justinus
-Martyr, Tertullianus, Clemens Romanus, Lanctantius, Victorinus Martyr,
-et alii, non putabant animas justorum hinc recta ad cœlos ire: sed
-in sinu Abrahæ, vel in aliquo alio refrigerii loco usque ad ultimi
-judicii diem detineri; adeoque interea Beatificæ visionis, seu perfectæ
-felicitatis, ex Dei promissione et Christi merito illis debitæ,
-expertes esse. Quare cum sic judicarent non abs re erat Deum illorum
-nomine orare, ut maturaret illum diem, quem coronandis Sanctis suis in
-plenitudine Redemptionis destinâsset.”&mdash;<i>Epistolaris Dissertatio</i>,
-&amp;c., 18.&mdash;Compare <i>Tracts for the Times</i>, No. 72.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_420" href="#FNanchor_420" class="label">[420]</a> <i>Works</i>, Oxford Edit., iv. 507.&mdash;Preface to the
-“Catching of Leviathan,”&mdash;this preface is very clever and amusing.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_421" href="#FNanchor_421" class="label">[421]</a> <i>Walton’s Lives: Pierce’s Letter.</i> For an account
-of Sublapsarianism, &amp;c., see <i>Burnet</i> on the <i>Articles</i>,
-xvii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_422" href="#FNanchor_422" class="label">[422]</a> <i>Walton’s Lives</i>: Pierce’s letter, 52.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_423" href="#FNanchor_423" class="label">[423]</a> <i>Sermons</i>, 60.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_424" href="#FNanchor_424" class="label">[424]</a> Some account has been given of Hammond in the <i>Church
-of the Commonwealth</i>. A letter, from which a quotation is inserted
-on p. 333, has been incorrectly supposed to refer to him. Hammond was
-unmarried.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_425" href="#FNanchor_425" class="label">[425]</a> <i>Practical Catechism</i> (published in 1662), p. 78.
-Oxford Edit., 1847.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_426" href="#FNanchor_426" class="label">[426]</a> <i>Practical Catechism</i>, 34, 79, 25. His minor
-Theological Works are controversial.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_427" href="#FNanchor_427" class="label">[427]</a> <i>Exposition</i>, 337, 345.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_428" href="#FNanchor_428" class="label">[428]</a> <i>Exposition</i>, 348, 364, 365, 366.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_429" href="#FNanchor_429" class="label">[429]</a> <i>Works</i>, ii. 85, 117, 131.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_430" href="#FNanchor_430" class="label">[430]</a> <i>Works</i>, ii. 113.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_431" href="#FNanchor_431" class="label">[431]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 128.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_432" href="#FNanchor_432" class="label">[432]</a> <i>Works</i>, ii. 337.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_433" href="#FNanchor_433" class="label">[433]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 13, 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_434" href="#FNanchor_434" class="label">[434]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 16.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_435" href="#FNanchor_435" class="label">[435]</a> <i>Works</i>, ii. 533.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_436" href="#FNanchor_436" class="label">[436]</a> <i>Thorndike’s Works</i>, ii. 4; iv. 910.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_437" href="#FNanchor_437" class="label">[437]</a> <i>Bull’s Works</i>, ii. 187.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_438" href="#FNanchor_438" class="label">[438]</a> <i>Theologia Veterum</i>, 450.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_439" href="#FNanchor_439" class="label">[439]</a> <i>Theologia Veterum</i>, 417.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_440" href="#FNanchor_440" class="label">[440]</a> <i>Preface to Dissuasive from Popery.</i>&mdash;<i>Works</i>,
-x., cxviii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_441" href="#FNanchor_441" class="label">[441]</a> <i>Works</i>, i. 72.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_442" href="#FNanchor_442" class="label">[442]</a> <i>Bramhall’s Vindication of Grotius</i>, quoted in
-<i>Tracts for the Times</i>, No. 74.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_443" href="#FNanchor_443" class="label">[443]</a> <i>Cosin’s Latin Confession.</i>&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iv. 525.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_444" href="#FNanchor_444" class="label">[444]</a> <i>Treatises.</i> <i>Answer to Father Cressy</i>, 31.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_445" href="#FNanchor_445" class="label">[445]</a> <i>Thorndike’s Works</i>, v. 20; i. 622, 530.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_446" href="#FNanchor_446" class="label">[446]</a> <i>Works</i>, iv. 923, 173.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_447" href="#FNanchor_447" class="label">[447]</a> <i>Cosin’s Works</i>, iv. 527.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_448" href="#FNanchor_448" class="label">[448]</a> Hallam speaks of the testimony brought forward as
-consisting of “vague and self-contradictory stories, which gossiping
-compilers of literary anecdote can easily accumulate.”&mdash;<i>Const.
-Hist.</i>, i. 216.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_449" href="#FNanchor_449" class="label">[449]</a> Compare this with what I have said in vol. iii., p. 81.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_450" href="#FNanchor_450" class="label">[450]</a> <i>Register</i>, 386.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_451" href="#FNanchor_451" class="label">[451]</a> <i>Thoresby’s Diary</i>, i. 61.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_452" href="#FNanchor_452" class="label">[452]</a> I have before me the 20th edition of the <i>New Whole
-Duty of Man</i>, authorized by the King’s most excellent Majesty, in
-which there is a decided attack made upon the old <i>Whole Duty of
-Man</i>. Some of the author’s criticisms are scarcely fair.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_453" href="#FNanchor_453" class="label">[453]</a> The first edition was published 1659. In Aubrey’s
-<i>Letters</i>, ii. 125–134 there is an interesting discussion
-respecting the authorship of the book. It has been ascribed to Lady
-Packington, to Archbishop Frewen, to Archbishop Sancroft, and to
-Woodhead, who, after the Restoration, became a Roman Catholic.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_454" href="#FNanchor_454" class="label">[454]</a> He is to be distinguished from Samuel Clarke, the
-Puritan. Walton’s Polyglott is noticed in <i>Ecclesiastical Hist.</i>,
-vol. ii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_455" href="#FNanchor_455" class="label">[455]</a> <i>Hallam</i>, <i>Introduction</i>, &amp;c., iv. 149. See
-note to this chapter in the Appendix. It is too long for insertion
-here.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_456" href="#FNanchor_456" class="label">[456]</a> See vol. i. of this history for particulars in
-Chillingworth’s life.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_457" href="#FNanchor_457" class="label">[457]</a> Chap. iv.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_458" href="#FNanchor_458" class="label">[458]</a> <i>John Smith’s Select Works</i>, 333.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_459" href="#FNanchor_459" class="label">[459]</a> <i>John Smith’s Select Works</i>, 344, 349.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_460" href="#FNanchor_460" class="label">[460]</a> <i>Golden Remains</i>, 157.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_461" href="#FNanchor_461" class="label">[461]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 95.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_462" href="#FNanchor_462" class="label">[462]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 257.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_463" href="#FNanchor_463" class="label">[463]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 114.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_464" href="#FNanchor_464" class="label">[464]</a> <i>Farindon’s Sermons</i>, iii. 171.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_465" href="#FNanchor_465" class="label">[465]</a> <i>Farindon’s Sermons</i>, iii. 285, 286.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_466" href="#FNanchor_466" class="label">[466]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 562.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_467" href="#FNanchor_467" class="label">[467]</a> <i>Farindon’s Sermons</i>, i. 71.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_468" href="#FNanchor_468" class="label">[468]</a> <i>Phenix</i>, ii. 505.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_469" href="#FNanchor_469" class="label">[469]</a> <i>Life and Times</i>, ii. 386.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_470" href="#FNanchor_470" class="label">[470]</a> <i>Hist. of his Own Times</i>, i. 188.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_471" href="#FNanchor_471" class="label">[471]</a> <i>Works</i>, v. 316.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_472" href="#FNanchor_472" class="label">[472]</a> <i>The Principles and Practices of Certain Moderate
-Divines of the Church of England</i>, by Edward Fowler, 89.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_473" href="#FNanchor_473" class="label">[473]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 114.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_474" href="#FNanchor_474" class="label">[474]</a> <i>The Principles and Practices of Certain Moderate
-Divines of the Church of England</i>, 126, 161.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_475" href="#FNanchor_475" class="label">[475]</a> <i>The Principles and Practices of Certain Moderate
-Divines of the Church of England</i>, 213, 228.&mdash;Compare with this
-extract what is said hereafter respecting the opinions of Richard
-Baxter.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_476" href="#FNanchor_476" class="label">[476]</a> <i>A Discourse of Christian Liberty</i>, Sect. II. chap.
-viii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_477" href="#FNanchor_477" class="label">[477]</a> Sect. III., chap. xv.; see also chap. xiii.
-<i>Fowler’s Discourse on the Principles of certain Moderate Divines,
-&amp;c.</i>, was published 1679. In 1671, he published <i>The Design
-of Christianity</i>, in which he dwelt upon the restoration of
-righteousness in man as the chief purpose of the Gospel. He was
-answered in the following year by John Bunyan. The reply is entitled,
-“A defence of the doctrine of justification by faith in Christ Jesus;
-showing true Gospel holiness flows from thence; or Mr. Fowler’s
-pretended <i>Design of Christianity</i>, proved to be nothing more,
-than to trample under foot the blood of the Son of God; and the
-idolizing of man’s own righteousness: as also how while he pretends to
-be a minister of the Church of England, he overthroweth the wholesome
-doctrine contained in the 10th, 11th, and 13th of the Thirty-nine
-Articles of the same, and that he falleth in with the Quaker and
-Romanist against them.” The bad temper of the book is indicated in this
-long title. Bunyan points out Fowler’s defects, and defends important
-doctrines which Fowler impugns; but he deals in a good deal of fierce
-and coarse invective. In this respect, Fowler equalled him, when he
-published a rejoinder.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_478" href="#FNanchor_478" class="label">[478]</a> <i>Intellectual System</i>, 61, 597, 619.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_479" href="#FNanchor_479" class="label">[479]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 191.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_480" href="#FNanchor_480" class="label">[480]</a> <i>Intellectual System</i>, 676.&mdash;We may gather from the
-passage, how Cudworth would have treated the Darwinian hypotheses of
-natural selection and struggle for life.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_481" href="#FNanchor_481" class="label">[481]</a> <i>Burnet</i>, i. 189, includes him when describing the
-Latitudinarians.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_482" href="#FNanchor_482" class="label">[482]</a> <i>Origines Sacræ</i>, 539.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_483" href="#FNanchor_483" class="label">[483]</a> <i>Kitto’s Cycl., Art. Patrick.</i>&mdash;It is many years
-ago since I consulted Patrick, but my impressions are of the kind
-stated above. Of Lightfoot’s learning I am not a competent judge, but I
-follow the current of opinion as I find it in the best critics.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_484" href="#FNanchor_484" class="label">[484]</a> <i>Whewell’s Inductive Sciences</i>, ii. 112.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_485" href="#FNanchor_485" class="label">[485]</a> See <i>Letters by Stubbe</i>, in <i>Birch’s Life of
-Boyle</i>, 189–200.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_486" href="#FNanchor_486" class="label">[486]</a> See his <i>Lex Orientalis</i>, <i>Sadducismus
-Triumphans</i>, and <i>Vanity of Dogmatizing</i>, Ed. 1661.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_487" href="#FNanchor_487" class="label">[487]</a> <i>Plus Ultra</i>, 88.&mdash;Glanvill answered Stubbe’s
-attack. No love was lost between them; most bitterly did they abuse one
-another.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_488" href="#FNanchor_488" class="label">[488]</a> In the <i>Plus Ultra</i>, p. 141, is a passage which
-might have been written by a modern controversialist.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_489" href="#FNanchor_489" class="label">[489]</a> <i>Philosophia Pia</i>, particularly pp. 81 and 119.
-This treatise and others, published under new titles, may be found in
-his volume of <i>Essays</i>, published in 1676. He was addicted to the
-habit of reprinting old treatises under new titles. There is, in Dr.
-Williams’ Library, a good collection of Glanvill’s works, including the
-first and second editions of <i>The Vanity of Dogmatizing</i>, now very
-scarce.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_490" href="#FNanchor_490" class="label">[490]</a> <i>Joshua de la Place</i> (<i>Placæus</i>) died 1655;
-<i>Claude Pagon</i>, 1685. They were leaders in this direction.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_491" href="#FNanchor_491" class="label">[491]</a> Spener commenced his ministry in 1662, and died in 1705.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_492" href="#FNanchor_492" class="label">[492]</a> See Andrew Rivet, <i>Isagoge</i>, &amp;c., 1627, xx. “Nullum
-esse hominum cœtum, nullum hominem quantacunque dignitate polleat,
-qui sensus Scripturæ aut controversiarum fidei, sit judex supremus et
-judici infallibalis.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_493" href="#FNanchor_493" class="label">[493]</a> Descartes died 1650; Spinoza, 1677.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_494" href="#FNanchor_494" class="label">[494]</a> <i>Christian Doctrine</i>, translated by Sumner, 85–89,
-135.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_495" href="#FNanchor_495" class="label">[495]</a> Chap. xiv.-xxiii. One of the most extraordinary charges
-which party spirit ever created was that of Milton being a Papist.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_496" href="#FNanchor_496" class="label">[496]</a> <i>Biddle’s Confession of Faith touching the Holy
-Trinity.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_497" href="#FNanchor_497" class="label">[497]</a> <i>Works</i>, viii. 83, <i>et seq.</i> In the Lambeth
-Library, Tenison MSS., 673, is a curious volume containing “Original
-papers, which a cabal of Socinians in London offered to present to the
-Ambassadors of the King of Fez and Morocco, when he was taking leave
-of England in 1682.” The agent of the Socinians is said to have been
-Monsieur de Verze.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_498" href="#FNanchor_498" class="label">[498]</a> <i>De Carne Christo.</i>&mdash;<i>Adv. Prax.</i>, c. vii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_499" href="#FNanchor_499" class="label">[499]</a> Quoted in <i>Bancroft’s Hist. of the United States</i>,
-ii. 373.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_500" href="#FNanchor_500" class="label">[500]</a> <i>Works</i>, i. 150, 151, 157, 167, 209, 215, 231.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_501" href="#FNanchor_501" class="label">[501]</a> <i>A Discourse of the General Rule of Faith and
-Practice.</i>&mdash;<i>Works</i>, i. 294.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_502" href="#FNanchor_502" class="label">[502]</a> <i>Works</i>, i. 310.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_503" href="#FNanchor_503" class="label">[503]</a> See his <i>Sandy Foundation</i>.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, i.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_504" href="#FNanchor_504" class="label">[504]</a> <i>Works</i>, i. 62, 262, 267.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_505" href="#FNanchor_505" class="label">[505]</a> See Penn’s <i>Great Case of Liberty of Conscience</i>,
-published 1670.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_506" href="#FNanchor_506" class="label">[506]</a> See <i>Truth Exalted</i>.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, i.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_507" href="#FNanchor_507" class="label">[507]</a> <i>Third Proposition concerning the Scriptures.</i> See
-pp. 142–146, 204.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_508" href="#FNanchor_508" class="label">[508]</a> <i>Apology</i>, 204 (abridged).</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_509" href="#FNanchor_509" class="label">[509]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 207, 226, 241.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_510" href="#FNanchor_510" class="label">[510]</a> <i>Sparkles of Glory</i>, 145, 200.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_511" href="#FNanchor_511" class="label">[511]</a> <i>Sterry’s Sermons</i>, 17.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_512" href="#FNanchor_512" class="label">[512]</a> Gale insists upon the sense of religion in barbarous
-nations.&mdash;Part iv., 238.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_513" href="#FNanchor_513" class="label">[513]</a> <i>Howe’s Works</i>, iii. 37. He refers to Cudworth. See
-remarks on the argument in <i>Rogers’ Life of Howe</i>, 368.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_514" href="#FNanchor_514" class="label">[514]</a> <i>Works</i>, iv. 416, <i>et seq.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_515" href="#FNanchor_515" class="label">[515]</a> <i>Works</i>, ii. 144, <i>et. seq.</i>&mdash;I have, in
-speaking of Thorndike, mentioned the distinction which he makes between
-degrees of inspirations. But that was a turn of thought which seems
-to have been rarely taken in those days. I have searched Pearson, and
-Taylor, and Goodwin, and even Baxter, besides others, in vain for any
-indication of their having contemplated any such controversy on the
-subject as exists in our day. The complete inspiration of the Bible
-was believed. The Lutheran theologians of the seventeenth century
-maintained the inspiration of every word, and also that the Hebrew
-vowel points are original.&mdash;<i>Hagenbach Hist. of Doctrine</i>, ii.
-231.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_516" href="#FNanchor_516" class="label">[516]</a> <i>Herbert’s De Veritate</i> was published in 1624.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_517" href="#FNanchor_517" class="label">[517]</a> For the doctrine of the Eternal Generation, see
-<i>Goodwin’s Works</i>, v. 547; <i>Owen’s Works</i>, viii. 112, 291.
-For the doctrine of the Trinity: <i>Goodwin</i>, iv. 231; <i>Owen</i>,
-ii. 64, 175; <i>Orme’s Life of Baxter</i>, 470.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_518" href="#FNanchor_518" class="label">[518]</a> See Howe’s mode of speaking about the covenant in
-contrast with Thorndike’s.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iii. 448.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_519" href="#FNanchor_519" class="label">[519]</a> <i>Works</i>, viii. 4, 257, 459, 546; ii. 234; viii.
-288.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_520" href="#FNanchor_520" class="label">[520]</a> <i>Works</i>, ix. <i>Discourse of Election.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_521" href="#FNanchor_521" class="label">[521]</a> See <i>Ibid.</i>, 154, 160, 344. He mentions a good
-woman, who said to her wicked son, “Well, I shall one day rejoice that
-thou shalt be damned, and take part with the glory of God therein.” The
-conviction of so high a grace in her soul he declares was the means of
-breaking the man’s heart, and converting him.</p>
-
-<p>Such things had been said by the schoolmen. Thomas Aquinas, in his
-<i>Summa</i> (pt. iii. sup. quest. 94, art. i.), alludes to the bliss
-of the saved being increased by the sight of the lost.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_522" href="#FNanchor_522" class="label">[522]</a> <i>Works</i>, iii. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_523" href="#FNanchor_523" class="label">[523]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, iii. 15; iv. 64, 9.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_524" href="#FNanchor_524" class="label">[524]</a> Vol. VI. bk. ii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_525" href="#FNanchor_525" class="label">[525]</a> <i>Owen’s Works</i>, xi. 203, 209.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_526" href="#FNanchor_526" class="label">[526]</a> <i>Owen’s Works</i>, ix. 198.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_527" href="#FNanchor_527" class="label">[527]</a> <i>Works</i>, v. 325 <i>et seq.</i> They are sixteen in
-number, and are stated in such a way that it is impossible to condense
-them satisfactorily.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_528" href="#FNanchor_528" class="label">[528]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 267, 308, 318.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_529" href="#FNanchor_529" class="label">[529]</a> <i>Imputatio Fidei</i> (1642), pp. 7, 17. Nothing can
-exceed the clearness and precision with which the whole case is stated
-at the beginning of the Treatise.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_530" href="#FNanchor_530" class="label">[530]</a> <i>Redemption Redeemed</i>, (1651), 433.&mdash;This point
-he pursues at great length in chapters v., viii., xvi., xx. He
-argues, that if Christ died <i>sufficiently</i> for all, He died
-<i>intentionally</i> for all.&mdash;p. 95. Although I agree with Goodwin,
-so far as to believe that Christ died for all men, I may observe that
-sometimes his reasonings against the Calvinistic doctrine of election,
-as for instance in chap. xviii. sec. 4 and 7, are as unsatisfactory
-as they are intricate. He frequently attributes to his opponents
-implications in argument, and consequences of doctrine, which they
-would indignantly repudiate. It is a common vice in controversy.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_531" href="#FNanchor_531" class="label">[531]</a> <i>Ibid.</i> Preface.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_532" href="#FNanchor_532" class="label">[532]</a> <i>Calamy’s Account</i>, 484. <i>Cont.</i> 632.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_533" href="#FNanchor_533" class="label">[533]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 35.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_534" href="#FNanchor_534" class="label">[534]</a> <i>Baxter’s Life and Times</i>, i. 107.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_535" href="#FNanchor_535" class="label">[535]</a> <i>Ath. Ox.</i> iv. 784. Even Wood seems to have been a
-little touched by this beautiful statement, for after calling Baxter
-the late pride of the Presbyterians, he remarks, “he very civilly
-returned me this answer.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_536" href="#FNanchor_536" class="label">[536]</a> <i>Works</i>, vii. 312, 315.&mdash;<i>Treatise on
-Conversion</i>, 1657. The first chapter of the <i>Saint’s Everlasting
-Rest</i>, published in 1649, is Calvinistic.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_537" href="#FNanchor_537" class="label">[537]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, viii. 119. He says, however, in his <i>End
-of Doctrinal Controversies</i>, published in 1691 (p. 160): “Christ
-died for all, but not for all alike, or equally; that is, He intended
-good to all, but not an equal good, with an equal intention.” See also
-extracts from his <i>Catholic Theology</i> (1675), <i>Orme’s Life
-of Baxter</i>, p. 477. In the Appendix to <i>Baxter’s Aphorisms</i>
-(1649), there are Animadversions on Owen’s views of Redemption.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_538" href="#FNanchor_538" class="label">[538]</a> <i>Polano’s History of the Council of Trent</i>, 212.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_539" href="#FNanchor_539" class="label">[539]</a> See p. 347 of this volume.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_540" href="#FNanchor_540" class="label">[540]</a> <i>Aphorisms of Justification</i>, 44.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_541" href="#FNanchor_541" class="label">[541]</a> <i>Works</i>, xviii. 503.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_542" href="#FNanchor_542" class="label">[542]</a> It is interesting here to observe, that as the Anglicans
-differed from the Romanists, so did the later Puritans from the
-Reformers, as to the nature of faith. “Quid est fides? Est non tantum
-notitia qua firmiter assentior omnibus, quæ Deus nobis in verbo suo
-patefecit, sed etiam certa fiducia, a Spiritu Sancto, per Evangelium
-in corde meo accensa, qua in Deo acquiesco, certò statuens, non solum
-aliis, <i>sed mihi quoque remissionem peccatorum, eternam justitiam
-et vitam, donatam esse</i>, idque gratis ex Dei misericordia propter
-unius Christi meritum.”&mdash;<i>Cat. Rel. Christ. quæ in Eccl. et Scholis
-Palitinatus</i>, p. 8. Bull, in his <i>Harmonia Ap.</i>, Diss.
-I., cap. iv. s. 6, attributes this doctrine of personal assurance
-as the essence of faith, to the Reformers generally. Owen admits,
-“Many great Divines at the first Reformation, did (as the Lutherans
-generally yet do) thus make the mercy of God in Christ, and thereby
-the forgiveness of our own sins, to be the proper object of justifying
-faith, as such.”&mdash;<i>Justification by Faith.</i>&mdash;<i>Works</i>, xi.
-104. Owen’s idea of justifying faith did not include assurance.
-As we have noticed already, Goodwin’s, at any rate, was much more
-comprehensive. The Romanists regarded faith as <i>Credence</i>; the
-Reformers as <i>Assurance</i>; the Anglicans and the Latitudinarians as
-<i>Obedience</i>; the Puritans as <i>Reliance</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_543" href="#FNanchor_543" class="label">[543]</a> <i>Rogers’ Life of Howe</i>, 21.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_544" href="#FNanchor_544" class="label">[544]</a> The new edition of <i>Howe’s Works</i>, published by
-the Tract Society, has done much, not only to make them accessible to
-the public, but to make the reading of them more easy and pleasant.
-Professor Rogers, by an improved punctuation and arrangement of
-paragraph, has provided the latter advantage. The work of an Editor is
-too often in the present day mere pretence, but in this case there has
-been an amount of painstaking, which renders these volumes, in point of
-accuracy, worthy of a place by the side of <i>Keble’s Hooker</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_545" href="#FNanchor_545" class="label">[545]</a> <i>Works</i>, i. 30, <i>et seq.</i> <i>The Blessedness
-of the Righteous</i> was published in 1668.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_546" href="#FNanchor_546" class="label">[546]</a> <i>Howe’s Works</i>, iv. 322.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_547" href="#FNanchor_547" class="label">[547]</a> <i>Rogers’ Life of Howe</i>, 389.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_548" href="#FNanchor_548" class="label">[548]</a> <i>Life of Arnold</i>, ii. 67.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_549" href="#FNanchor_549" class="label">[549]</a> The remark, I believe, was made by the late Bishop of
-Lichfield.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_550" href="#FNanchor_550" class="label">[550]</a> <i>Goodwin’s Works</i>, iv. 41; ix. 82, 362. <i>Owen’s
-Works</i>, ii. 247, 513.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_551" href="#FNanchor_551" class="label">[551]</a> <i>Works</i>, v. 364.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_552" href="#FNanchor_552" class="label">[552]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, v. 46; <i>Christian Directory</i>, 1673.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_553" href="#FNanchor_553" class="label">[553]</a> <i>Works</i>, v. 346.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_554" href="#FNanchor_554" class="label">[554]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, vii. 517.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_555" href="#FNanchor_555" class="label">[555]</a> <i>Howe’s Works</i>, iii. 460.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_556" href="#FNanchor_556" class="label">[556]</a> <i>Goodwin’s Works</i>, vii. 311.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_557" href="#FNanchor_557" class="label">[557]</a> <i>Baxter’s Works</i>, iv. (<i>Christian Directory</i>),
-315.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_558" href="#FNanchor_558" class="label">[558]</a> <i>Works</i>, xviii. 301.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_559" href="#FNanchor_559" class="label">[559]</a> <i>Baxter’s Works</i>, v. 346. Compare <i>Origen</i>,
-<i>cont. Celsum</i>; <i>Hooker</i>, <i>Eccl. Polity</i>, ii. 310; and
-<i>Thorndike’s Works</i>, iv. 39.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_560" href="#FNanchor_560" class="label">[560]</a> <i>Baxter’s Works</i>, v. 287, <i>et seq.</i>, 400.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_561" href="#FNanchor_561" class="label">[561]</a> Compare this with what has been said at p. 117.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_562" href="#FNanchor_562" class="label">[562]</a> <i>Orme’s Life of Baxter</i>, 659.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_563" href="#FNanchor_563" class="label">[563]</a> <i>Sermons</i>, 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_564" href="#FNanchor_564" class="label">[564]</a> <i>Orme’s Life of Baxter</i>, 589. These passages I have
-before referred to.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_565" href="#FNanchor_565" class="label">[565]</a> <i>Orme’s Life of Owen</i>, 234.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_566" href="#FNanchor_566" class="label">[566]</a> <i>Works</i>, xx. 74, 113.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_567" href="#FNanchor_567" class="label">[567]</a> <i>Works</i>, xvi. 256.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_568" href="#FNanchor_568" class="label">[568]</a> I confine myself here to books published before the
-Revolution, and of course must omit numbers worthy of mention.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_569" href="#FNanchor_569" class="label">[569]</a> <i>Orme’s Baxter</i>, 552.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_570" href="#FNanchor_570" class="label">[570]</a> Brook gives an account of the book in his <i>Lives of
-the Puritans</i>, iii. 213.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_571" href="#FNanchor_571" class="label">[571]</a> It is a significant fact that John Goodwin’s work
-on <i>The Spirit</i> is included in Nicholl’s series of <i>Puritan
-Divines</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_572" href="#FNanchor_572" class="label">[572]</a> I cannot but refer, and that with sincere pleasure,
-to a Sunday evening spent at Pontresina, in the Engadine, the summer
-before last, when, together with a Nonconformist friend, I united in
-such a service, with representatives of different sections of the
-Establishment.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_573" href="#FNanchor_573" class="label">[573]</a> <i>The Christian Poet.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_574" href="#FNanchor_574" class="label">[574]</a> Himself and his brothers.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_575" href="#FNanchor_575" class="label">[575]</a> <i>Diary</i>, i. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_576" href="#FNanchor_576" class="label">[576]</a> Memoir prefixed to <i>Diary</i>, p. xviii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_577" href="#FNanchor_577" class="label">[577]</a> Memoir prefixed to <i>Silva</i>, i. 15.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_578" href="#FNanchor_578" class="label">[578]</a> My rule has been to select characters who died
-before the Revolution, but it is necessary to notice Evelyn’s life
-in connection with Margaret Godolphin; and although he survived
-the Revolution so many years, he may fairly be taken as a type of
-religious life before that period. A MS. by him was published in the
-year 1850, in two volumes, entitled, <i>A Rational Account of the True
-Religion</i>. The first volume treats of natural theology. In the
-second, besides a description of Judaism, primitive Christianity, and
-the decadence and corruption of religion, Evelyn “professes to explain
-the true doctrines of Holy Scripture and of the Church of England.” The
-chief interest attaching to the work will be found to consist in its
-value “as an impartial interpretation of her Articles and her Liturgy;
-conveyed too in a manner which shows he was not propounding new views,
-but merely stating them as understood by her members in his time.”&mdash;p.
-xi. In other words, Evelyn explains the doctrines of the Church of
-England from an Anglo-Catholic point of view. The book indicates the
-intelligence and devoutness of the author.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_579" href="#FNanchor_579" class="label">[579]</a> One of the Blagge family was Gentleman of the Privy
-Chamber to Henry VIII., and a great favourite with the King, who, for
-some reason, called him his pig. “He was a Sacramentarian; and when
-Wriothesley and Gardiner, in 1546, commenced their persecution on the
-Statute of the Six Articles, Blagge was clapped up in Newgate, and,
-after a hurried trial, condemned to be burnt. But the moment the King
-heard of it, he rated the Chancellor for coming so near him, even to
-his privy chamber, and commanded him instantly to draw out a pardon.
-On his release, Blagge flew to thank his master, who, seeing him,
-cried out, ‘Ah, my <i>pig</i>, are you here safe again?’ ‘Yes, Sire,’
-said he, ‘and if your Majesty had not been better than your Bishops,
-your <i>pig</i> had been <i>roasted</i> ere this time.’”&mdash;<i>Tytler’s
-England under Edward VI. and Mary</i>, i. 146.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_580" href="#FNanchor_580" class="label">[580]</a> <i>The Life of Mrs. Godolphin</i>, by Evelyn, edited by
-the Bishop of Oxford. p. 104. The year of the marriage is not given.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_581" href="#FNanchor_581" class="label">[581]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 106.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_582" href="#FNanchor_582" class="label">[582]</a> <i>The Life of Mrs. Godolphin</i>, 176.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_583" href="#FNanchor_583" class="label">[583]</a> Paley.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_584" href="#FNanchor_584" class="label">[584]</a> These quotations from Hale’s writings are found in his
-<i>Life</i> by Sir J. B. Williams. See also <i>Life</i> by Burnet.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_585" href="#FNanchor_585" class="label">[585]</a> These passages are taken from a work entitled
-<i>Mastix</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_586" href="#FNanchor_586" class="label">[586]</a> <i>Campbell’s Essay on Poetry</i>, 245.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_587" href="#FNanchor_587" class="label">[587]</a> <i>More’s Dialogues.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_588" href="#FNanchor_588" class="label">[588]</a> <i>Ward’s Life of More</i> gives a full account of this
-excellent man. See also <i>Willmot’s Lives of the Poets</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_589" href="#FNanchor_589" class="label">[589]</a> See the thought expanded in More’s <i>Letters on Several
-Subjects</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_590" href="#FNanchor_590" class="label">[590]</a> <i>Sir T. Browne’s Works</i>, i. liv.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_591" href="#FNanchor_591" class="label">[591]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, iv. 420.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_592" href="#FNanchor_592" class="label">[592]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, ii. 6.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_593" href="#FNanchor_593" class="label">[593]</a> <i>Sir T. Browne’s Works</i>, ii. 12.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_594" href="#FNanchor_594" class="label">[594]</a> <i>Ibid.</i>, ii. 27, 81, 82; i. xlvii.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_595" href="#FNanchor_595" class="label">[595]</a> <i>Sir T. Browne’s Works</i>, ii. 117.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_596" href="#FNanchor_596" class="label">[596]</a> <i>Lives</i>, ii. 172.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_597" href="#FNanchor_597" class="label">[597]</a> <i>Aubrey’s Letters</i>, ii. 255.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_598" href="#FNanchor_598" class="label">[598]</a> <i>Birch’s Tillotson</i>, 75.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_599" href="#FNanchor_599" class="label">[599]</a> <i>Morice MSS., Ent. Book</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_600" href="#FNanchor_600" class="label">[600]</a> <i>Clarendon, Hist.</i>, 493.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_601" href="#FNanchor_601" class="label">[601]</a> <i>Tomkins’ Piety Promoted</i>, quoted in <i>Pattison’s
-Rise and Progress of Religious Life in England</i>, 248.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_602" href="#FNanchor_602" class="label">[602]</a> See <i>Stanford’s Life of Alleine</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_603" href="#FNanchor_603" class="label">[603]</a> <i>Broadmead Records</i>, 97.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_604" href="#FNanchor_604" class="label">[604]</a> <i>Stockton MSS., Diary</i>, Dr. Williams’ Library.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_605" href="#FNanchor_605" class="label">[605]</a> <i>Life</i>, 43.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_606" href="#FNanchor_606" class="label">[606]</a> <i>Life</i>, 24, 26, 59, 147. Stockton bequeathed £500
-and his valuable library to Gonville and Caius College.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_607" href="#FNanchor_607" class="label">[607]</a> <i>Calamy.</i></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_608" href="#FNanchor_608" class="label">[608]</a> <i>Burnet’s Hist. of his Own Time</i>, i. 381.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_609" href="#FNanchor_609" class="label">[609]</a> Such illustrations occur in Dr. Swainson’s valuable
-Hulsean Lectures on <i>The Creeds of the Church</i>, 58.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_610" href="#FNanchor_610" class="label">[610]</a> There is, in Glamorganshire, an extra-parochial district
-called Llan-vethin.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_611" href="#FNanchor_611" class="label">[611]</a> <i>At</i> was first struck out, and <i>on</i> written
-over it, then <i>on</i> was altered into <i>at</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_612" href="#FNanchor_612" class="label">[612]</a> Appears as if <i>midst</i> had been altered into
-<i>body</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_613" href="#FNanchor_613" class="label">[613]</a> <i>On</i> altered into <i>at</i>.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_614" href="#FNanchor_614" class="label">[614]</a> I examined the books once with Dr. Swainson, and once
-with the Dean of Westminster.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_615" href="#FNanchor_615" class="label">[615]</a> <i>Documents</i>, 177.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_616" href="#FNanchor_616" class="label">[616]</a> I find this stated by Dr. Vaughan, and I have no doubt
-of its correctness; but in looking over the <i>Rejoinder</i>, I cannot
-lay my finger on the passage.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_617" href="#FNanchor_617" class="label">[617]</a> Father Huddlestone.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_618" href="#FNanchor_618" class="label">[618]</a> The Queen’s Priests.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_619" href="#FNanchor_619" class="label">[619]</a> Petre, Bath, and Feversham.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_620" href="#FNanchor_620" class="label">[620]</a> In the Somers’ copy it is “‘the Duke and Lords’ withdrew
-into the closet for the space of an hour and a half.”</p>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<p class="transnote">Transcriber’s Note:<br />
-
-1. Obvious printer’s, spelling and punctuation errors have been
-silently corrected.<br />
-
-2. Where appropriate, original spelling has been retained.<br />
-
-3. The INDEX has been added to the Table of Contents.<br />
-
-4. Where necessary the sidenotes have been placed inside the text of
-the paragraph. In other places the page header text has been turned
-into sidenotes.
-</p>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY OF ENGLAND, THE CHURCH OF THE RESTORATION, VOL. 2 OF 2 ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/67413-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67413-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cadeef3..0000000
--- a/old/67413-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67413-h/images/illo003.jpg b/old/67413-h/images/illo003.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 375c010..0000000
--- a/old/67413-h/images/illo003.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67413-h/images/illo004.jpg b/old/67413-h/images/illo004.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bff949e..0000000
--- a/old/67413-h/images/illo004.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ